summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes7
-rw-r--r--5343-0.txt~9409
-rw-r--r--5343-h/5343-h.htm~12839
-rw-r--r--5343-h/images/cover.jpg~bin294344 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt4
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/5343.txt9240
-rw-r--r--old/old-2025-06-17/5343-0.txt9409
-rw-r--r--old/old-2025-06-17/5343-0.zipbin183673 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/old-2025-06-17/5343-h.zipbin483961 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/old-2025-06-17/5343-h/5343-h.htm12839
-rw-r--r--old/old-2025-06-17/5343-h/images/cover.jpgbin294344 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/rnbvl10.zipbin183212 -> 0 bytes
13 files changed, 7 insertions, 53742 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
index 6833f05..d7b82bc 100644
--- a/.gitattributes
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -1,3 +1,4 @@
-* text=auto
-*.txt text
-*.md text
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/5343-0.txt~ b/5343-0.txt~
deleted file mode 100644
index e2d49d4..0000000
--- a/5343-0.txt~
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,9409 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of Rainbow Valley, by Lucy Maud Montgomery
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: Rainbow Valley
-
-Author: Lucy Maud Montgomery
-
-Release Date: July 3, 2002 [eBook #5343]
-[Most recently updated: May 5, 2021]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-Produced by: Bernard J. Farber, Carmen Baxter, Dona Rucci, Elizabeth
-Morton, Rebekah Neely, Joe Johnson, Joan Chovan, Judith Fetterolf,
-Mary Nuzzo, Sally Drake, Sally Starks, Steve Callis, Virginia
-Mohlere-Dellinger, Mary Mark Ockerbloom, Ben Crowder and David Widger
-
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RAINBOW VALLEY ***
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-Rainbow Valley
-
-by Lucy Maud Montgomery
-
-Author of “Anne of Green Gables,” “Anne of the
-Island,”
-
-“Anne’s House of Dreams,” “The Story Girl,”
-“The Watchman,” etc.
-
-“The thoughts of youth are long, long thoughts.”
-—LONGFELLOW
-
-TO THE MEMORY OF
-
-GOLDWIN LAPP, ROBERT BROOKES AND MORLEY SHIER
-
-WHO MADE THE SUPREME SACRIFICE THAT THE HAPPY VALLEYS OF THEIR HOME
-LAND MIGHT BE KEPT SACRED FROM THE RAVAGE OF THE INVADER
-
-
-Contents
-
- I. HOME AGAIN
- II. SHEER GOSSIP
- III. THE INGLESIDE CHILDREN
- IV. THE MANSE CHILDREN
- V. THE ADVENT OF MARY VANCE
- VI. MARY STAYS AT THE MANSE
- VII. A FISHY EPISODE
- VIII. MISS CORNELIA INTERVENES
- IX. UNA INTERVENES
- X. THE MANSE GIRLS CLEAN HOUSE
- XI. A DREADFUL DISCOVERY
- XII. AN EXPLANATION AND A DARE
- XIII. THE HOUSE ON THE HILL
- XIV. MRS. ALEC DAVIS MAKES A CALL
- XV. MORE GOSSIP
- XVI. TIT FOR TAT
- XVII. A DOUBLE VICTORY
- XVIII. MARY BRINGS EVIL TIDINGS
- XIX. POOR ADAM!
- XX. FAITH MAKES A FRIEND
- XXI. THE IMPOSSIBLE WORD
- XXII. ST. GEORGE KNOWS ALL ABOUT IT
- XXIII. THE GOOD-CONDUCT CLUB
- XXIV. A CHARITABLE IMPULSE
- XXV. ANOTHER SCANDAL AND ANOTHER “EXPLANATION”
- XXVI. MISS CORNELIA GETS A NEW POINT OF VIEW
- XXVII. A SACRED CONCERT
- XXVIII. A FAST DAY
- XXIX. A WEIRD TALE
- XXX. THE GHOST ON THE DYKE
- XXXI. CARL DOES PENANCE
- XXXII. TWO STUBBORN PEOPLE
- XXXIII. CARL IS—NOT—WHIPPED
- XXXIV. UNA VISITS THE HILL
- XXXV. “LET THE PIPER COME”
-
-
-
-
-RAINBOW VALLEY
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I.
-HOME AGAIN
-
-
-It was a clear, apple-green evening in May, and Four Winds Harbour was
-mirroring back the clouds of the golden west between its softly dark
-shores. The sea moaned eerily on the sand-bar, sorrowful even in
-spring, but a sly, jovial wind came piping down the red harbour road
-along which Miss Cornelia’s comfortable, matronly figure was making its
-way towards the village of Glen St. Mary. Miss Cornelia was rightfully
-Mrs. Marshall Elliott, and had been Mrs. Marshall Elliott for thirteen
-years, but even yet more people referred to her as Miss Cornelia than
-as Mrs. Elliott. The old name was dear to her old friends, only one of
-them contemptuously dropped it. Susan Baker, the gray and grim and
-faithful handmaiden of the Blythe family at Ingleside, never lost an
-opportunity of calling her “Mrs. Marshall Elliott,” with the most
-killing and pointed emphasis, as if to say “You wanted to be Mrs. and
-Mrs. you shall be with a vengeance as far as I am concerned.”
-
-Miss Cornelia was going up to Ingleside to see Dr. and Mrs. Blythe, who
-were just home from Europe. They had been away for three months, having
-left in February to attend a famous medical congress in London; and
-certain things, which Miss Cornelia was anxious to discuss, had taken
-place in the Glen during their absence. For one thing, there was a new
-family in the manse. And such a family! Miss Cornelia shook her head
-over them several times as she walked briskly along.
-
-Susan Baker and the Anne Shirley of other days saw her coming, as they
-sat on the big veranda at Ingleside, enjoying the charm of the cat’s
-light, the sweetness of sleepy robins whistling among the twilit
-maples, and the dance of a gusty group of daffodils blowing against the
-old, mellow, red brick wall of the lawn.
-
-Anne was sitting on the steps, her hands clasped over her knee,
-looking, in the kind dusk, as girlish as a mother of many has any right
-to be; and the beautiful gray-green eyes, gazing down the harbour road,
-were as full of unquenchable sparkle and dream as ever. Behind her, in
-the hammock, Rilla Blythe was curled up, a fat, roly-poly little
-creature of six years, the youngest of the Ingleside children. She had
-curly red hair and hazel eyes that were now buttoned up after the
-funny, wrinkled fashion in which Rilla always went to sleep.
-
-Shirley, “the little brown boy,” as he was known in the family “Who’s
-Who,” was asleep in Susan’s arms. He was brown-haired, brown-eyed and
-brown-skinned, with very rosy cheeks, and he was Susan’s especial love.
-After his birth Anne had been very ill for a long time, and Susan
-“mothered” the baby with a passionate tenderness which none of the
-other children, dear as they were to her, had ever called out. Dr.
-Blythe had said that but for her he would never have lived.
-
-“I gave him life just as much as you did, Mrs. Dr. dear,” Susan was
-wont to say. “He is just as much my baby as he is yours.” And, indeed,
-it was always to Susan that Shirley ran, to be kissed for bumps, and
-rocked to sleep, and protected from well-deserved spankings. Susan had
-conscientiously spanked all the other Blythe children when she thought
-they needed it for their souls’ good, but she would not spank Shirley
-nor allow his mother to do it. Once, Dr. Blythe had spanked him and
-Susan had been stormily indignant.
-
-“That man would spank an angel, Mrs. Dr. dear, that he would,” she had
-declared bitterly; and she would not make the poor doctor a pie for
-weeks.
-
-She had taken Shirley with her to her brother’s home during his
-parents’ absence, while all the other children had gone to Avonlea, and
-she had three blessed months of him all to herself. Nevertheless, Susan
-was very glad to find herself back at Ingleside, with all her darlings
-around her again. Ingleside was her world and in it she reigned
-supreme. Even Anne seldom questioned her decisions, much to the disgust
-of Mrs. Rachel Lynde of Green Gables, who gloomily told Anne, whenever
-she visited Four Winds, that she was letting Susan get to be entirely
-too much of a boss and would live to rue it.
-
-“Here is Cornelia Bryant coming up the harbour road, Mrs. Dr. dear,”
-said Susan. “She will be coming up to unload three months’ gossip on
-us.”
-
-“I hope so,” said Anne, hugging her knees. “I’m starving for Glen St.
-Mary gossip, Susan. I hope Miss Cornelia can tell me everything that
-has happened while we’ve been away—_everything_—who has got born, or
-married, or drunk; who has died, or gone away, or come, or fought, or
-lost a cow, or found a beau. It’s so delightful to be home again with
-all the dear Glen folks, and I want to know all about them. Why, I
-remember wondering, as I walked through Westminster Abbey which of her
-two especial beaux Millicent Drew would finally marry. Do you know,
-Susan, I have a dreadful suspicion that I love gossip.”
-
-“Well, of course, Mrs. Dr. dear,” admitted Susan, “every proper woman
-likes to hear the news. I am rather interested in Millicent Drew’s case
-myself. I never had a beau, much less two, and I do not mind now, for
-being an old maid does not hurt when you get used to it. Millicent’s
-hair always looks to me as if she had swept it up with a broom. But the
-men do not seem to mind that.”
-
-“They see only her pretty, piquant, mocking, little face, Susan.”
-
-“That may very well be, Mrs. Dr. dear. The Good Book says that favour
-is deceitful and beauty is vain, but I should not have minded finding
-that out for myself, if it had been so ordained. I have no doubt we
-will all be beautiful when we are angels, but what good will it do us
-then? Speaking of gossip, however, they do say that poor Mrs. Harrison
-Miller over harbour tried to hang herself last week.”
-
-“Oh, Susan!”
-
-“Calm yourself, Mrs. Dr. dear. She did not succeed. But I really do not
-blame her for trying, for her husband is a terrible man. But she was
-very foolish to think of hanging herself and leaving the way clear for
-him to marry some other woman. If I had been in her shoes, Mrs. Dr.
-dear, I would have gone to work to worry him so that he would try to
-hang himself instead of me. Not that I hold with people hanging
-themselves under any circumstances, Mrs. Dr. dear.”
-
-“What is the matter with Harrison Miller, anyway?” said Anne
-impatiently. “He is always driving some one to extremes.”
-
-“Well, some people call it religion and some call it cussedness,
-begging your pardon, Mrs. Dr. dear, for using such a word. It seems
-they cannot make out which it is in Harrison’s case. There are days
-when he growls at everybody because he thinks he is fore-ordained to
-eternal punishment. And then there are days when he says he does not
-care and goes and gets drunk. My own opinion is that he is not sound in
-his intellect, for none of that branch of the Millers were. His
-grandfather went out of his mind. He thought he was surrounded by big
-black spiders. They crawled over him and floated in the air about him.
-I hope I shall never go insane, Mrs. Dr. dear, and I do not think I
-will, because it is not a habit of the Bakers. But, if an all-wise
-Providence should decree it, I hope it will not take the form of big
-black spiders, for I loathe the animals. As for Mrs. Miller, I do not
-know whether she really deserves pity or not. There are some who say
-she just married Harrison to spite Richard Taylor, which seems to me a
-very peculiar reason for getting married. But then, of course, _I_ am
-no judge of things matrimonial, Mrs. Dr. dear. And there is Cornelia
-Bryant at the gate, so I will put this blessed brown baby on his bed
-and get my knitting.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II.
-SHEER GOSSIP
-
-
-“Where are the other children?” asked Miss Cornelia, when the first
-greetings—cordial on her side, rapturous on Anne’s, and dignified on
-Susan’s—were over.
-
-“Shirley is in bed and Jem and Walter and the twins are down in their
-beloved Rainbow Valley,” said Anne. “They just came home this
-afternoon, you know, and they could hardly wait until supper was over
-before rushing down to the valley. They love it above every spot on
-earth. Even the maple grove doesn’t rival it in their affections.”
-
-“I am afraid they love it too well,” said Susan gloomily. “Little Jem
-said once he would rather go to Rainbow Valley than to heaven when he
-died, and that was not a proper remark.”
-
-“I suppose they had a great time in Avonlea?” said Miss Cornelia.
-
-“Enormous. Marilla does spoil them terribly. Jem, in particular, can do
-no wrong in her eyes.”
-
-“Miss Cuthbert must be an old lady now,” said Miss Cornelia, getting
-out her knitting, so that she could hold her own with Susan. Miss
-Cornelia held that the woman whose hands were employed always had the
-advantage over the woman whose hands were not.
-
-“Marilla is eighty-five,” said Anne with a sigh. “Her hair is
-snow-white. But, strange to say, her eyesight is better than it was
-when she was sixty.”
-
-“Well, dearie, I’m real glad you’re all back. I’ve been dreadful
-lonesome. But we haven’t been dull in the Glen, believe _me_. There
-hasn’t been such an exciting spring in my time, as far as church
-matters go. We’ve got settled with a minister at last, Anne dearie.”
-
-“The Reverend John Knox Meredith, Mrs. Dr. dear,” said Susan, resolved
-not to let Miss Cornelia tell all the news.
-
-“Is he nice?” asked Anne interestedly.
-
-Miss Cornelia sighed and Susan groaned.
-
-“Yes, he’s nice enough if that were all,” said the former. “He is
-_very_ nice—and very learned—and very spiritual. But, oh Anne dearie,
-he has no common sense!
-
-“How was it you called him, then?”
-
-“Well, there’s no doubt he is by far the best preacher we ever had in
-Glen St. Mary church,” said Miss Cornelia, veering a tack or two. “I
-suppose it is because he is so moony and absent-minded that he never
-got a town call. His trial sermon was simply wonderful, believe _me_.
-Every one went mad about it—and his looks.”
-
-“He is _very_ comely, Mrs. Dr. dear, and when all is said and done, I
-_do_ like to see a well-looking man in the pulpit,” broke in Susan,
-thinking it was time she asserted herself again.
-
-“Besides,” said Miss Cornelia, “we were anxious to get settled. And Mr.
-Meredith was the first candidate we were all agreed on. Somebody had
-some objection to all the others. There was some talk of calling Mr.
-Folsom. He was a good preacher, too, but somehow people didn’t care for
-his appearance. He was too dark and sleek.”
-
-“He looked exactly like a great black tomcat, that he did, Mrs. Dr.
-dear,” said Susan. “I never could abide such a man in the pulpit every
-Sunday.”
-
-“Then Mr. Rogers came and he was like a chip in porridge—neither harm
-nor good,” resumed Miss Cornelia. “But if he had preached like Peter
-and Paul it would have profited him nothing, for that was the day old
-Caleb Ramsay’s sheep strayed into church and gave a loud ‘ba-a-a’ just
-as he announced his text. Everybody laughed, and poor Rogers had no
-chance after that. Some thought we ought to call Mr. Stewart, because
-he was so well educated. He could read the New Testament in five
-languages.”
-
-“But I do not think he was any surer than other men of getting to
-heaven because of that,” interjected Susan.
-
-“Most of us didn’t like his delivery,” said Miss Cornelia, ignoring
-Susan. “He talked in grunts, so to speak. And Mr. Arnett couldn’t
-preach _at all_. And he picked about the worst candidating text there
-is in the Bible—‘Curse ye Meroz.’”
-
-“Whenever he got stuck for an idea, he would bang the Bible and shout
-very bitterly, ‘Curse ye Meroz.’ Poor Meroz got thoroughly cursed that
-day, whoever he was, Mrs. Dr. dear,” said Susan.
-
-“The minister who is candidating can’t be too careful what text he
-chooses,” said Miss Cornelia solemnly. “I believe Mr. Pierson would
-have got the call if he had picked a different text. But when he
-announced ‘I will lift my eyes to the hills’ _he_ was done for. Every
-one grinned, for every one knew that those two Hill girls from the
-Harbour Head have been setting their caps for every single minister who
-came to the Glen for the last fifteen years. And Mr. Newman had too
-large a family.”
-
-“He stayed with my brother-in-law, James Clow,” said Susan. “‘How many
-children have you got?’ I asked him. ‘Nine boys and a sister for each
-of them,’ he said. ‘Eighteen!’ said I. ‘Dear me, what a family!’ And
-then he laughed and laughed. But I do not know why, Mrs. Dr. dear, and
-I am certain that eighteen children would be too many for any manse.”
-
-“He had only ten children, Susan,” explained Miss Cornelia, with
-contemptuous patience. “And ten good children would not be much worse
-for the manse and congregation than the four who are there now. Though
-I wouldn’t say, Anne dearie, that they are so bad, either. I like
-them—everybody likes them. It’s impossible to help liking them. They
-would be real nice little souls if there was anyone to look after their
-manners and teach them what is right and proper. For instance, at
-school the teacher says they are model children. But at home they
-simply run wild.”
-
-“What about Mrs. Meredith?” asked Anne.
-
-“There’s _no_ Mrs. Meredith. That is just the trouble. Mr. Meredith is
-a widower. His wife died four years ago. If we had known that I don’t
-suppose we would have called him, for a widower is even worse in a
-congregation than a single man. But he was heard to speak of his
-children and we all supposed there was a mother, too. And when they
-came there was nobody but old Aunt Martha, as they call her. She’s a
-cousin of Mr. Meredith’s mother, I believe, and he took her in to save
-her from the poorhouse. She is seventy-five years old, half blind, and
-very deaf and very cranky.”
-
-“And a very poor cook, Mrs. Dr. dear.”
-
-“The worst possible manager for a manse,” said Miss Cornelia bitterly.
-“Mr. Meredith won’t get any other housekeeper because he says it would
-hurt Aunt Martha’s feelings. Anne dearie, believe me, the state of that
-manse is something terrible. Everything is thick with dust and nothing
-is ever in its place. And we had painted and papered it all so nice
-before they came.”
-
-“There are four children, you say?” asked Anne, beginning to mother
-them already in her heart.
-
-“Yes. They run up just like the steps of a stair. Gerald’s the oldest.
-He’s twelve and they call him Jerry. He’s a clever boy. Faith is
-eleven. She is a regular tomboy but pretty as a picture, I must say.”
-
-“She looks like an angel but she is a holy terror for mischief, Mrs.
-Dr. dear,” said Susan solemnly. “I was at the manse one night last week
-and Mrs. James Millison was there, too. She had brought them up a dozen
-eggs and a little pail of milk—a _very_ little pail, Mrs. Dr. dear.
-Faith took them and whisked down the cellar with them. Near the bottom
-of the stairs she caught her toe and fell the rest of the way, milk and
-eggs and all. You can imagine the result, Mrs. Dr. dear. But that child
-came up laughing. ‘I don’t know whether I’m myself or a custard pie,’
-she said. And Mrs. James Millison was very angry. She said she would
-never take another thing to the manse if it was to be wasted and
-destroyed in that fashion.”
-
-“Maria Millison never hurt herself taking things to the manse,” sniffed
-Miss Cornelia. “She just took them that night as an excuse for
-curiosity. But poor Faith is always getting into scrapes. She is so
-heedless and impulsive.”
-
-“Just like me. I’m going to like your Faith,” said Anne decidedly.
-
-“She is full of spunk—and I do like spunk, Mrs. Dr. dear,” admitted
-Susan.
-
-“There’s something taking about her,” conceded Miss Cornelia. “You
-never see her but she’s laughing, and somehow it always makes you want
-to laugh too. She can’t even keep a straight face in church. Una is
-ten—she’s a sweet little thing—not pretty, but sweet. And Thomas
-Carlyle is nine. They call him Carl, and he has a regular mania for
-collecting toads and bugs and frogs and bringing them into the house.”
-
-“I suppose he was responsible for the dead rat that was lying on a
-chair in the parlour the afternoon Mrs. Grant called. It gave her a
-turn,” said Susan, “and I do not wonder, for manse parlours are no
-places for dead rats. To be sure it may have been the cat who left it,
-there. _He_ is as full of the old Nick as he can be stuffed, Mrs. Dr.
-dear. A manse cat should at least _look_ respectable, in my opinion,
-whatever he really is. But I never saw such a rakish-looking beast. And
-he walks along the ridgepole of the manse almost every evening at
-sunset, Mrs. Dr. dear, and waves his tail, and that is not becoming.”
-
-“The worst of it is, they are _never_ decently dressed,” sighed Miss
-Cornelia. “And since the snow went they go to school barefooted. Now,
-you know Anne dearie, that isn’t the right thing for manse
-children—especially when the Methodist minister’s little girl always
-wears such nice buttoned boots. And I _do_ wish they wouldn’t play in
-the old Methodist graveyard.”
-
-“It’s very tempting, when it’s right beside the manse,” said Anne.
-“I’ve always thought graveyards must be delightful places to play in.”
-
-“Oh, no, you did not, Mrs. Dr. dear,” said loyal Susan, determined to
-protect Anne from herself. “You have too much good sense and decorum.”
-
-“Why did they ever build that manse beside the graveyard in the first
-place?” asked Anne. “Their lawn is so small there is no place for them
-to play except in the graveyard.”
-
-“It _was_ a mistake,” admitted Miss Cornelia. “But they got the lot
-cheap. And no other manse children ever thought of playing there. Mr.
-Meredith shouldn’t allow it. But he has always got his nose buried in a
-book, when he is home. He reads and reads, or walks about in his study
-in a day-dream. So far he hasn’t forgotten to be in church on Sundays,
-but twice he has forgotten about the prayer-meeting and one of the
-elders had to go over to the manse and remind him. And he forgot about
-Fanny Cooper’s wedding. They rang him up on the ‘phone and then he
-rushed right over, just as he was, carpet slippers and all. One
-wouldn’t mind if the Methodists didn’t laugh so about it. But there’s
-one comfort—they can’t criticize his sermons. He wakes up when he’s in
-the pulpit, believe _me_. And the Methodist minister can’t preach at
-all—so they tell me. _I_ have never heard him, thank goodness.”
-
-Miss Cornelia’s scorn of men had abated somewhat since her marriage,
-but her scorn of Methodists remained untinged of charity. Susan smiled
-slyly.
-
-“They do say, Mrs. Marshall Elliott, that the Methodists and
-Presbyterians are talking of uniting,” she said.
-
-“Well, all I hope is that I’ll be under the sod if that ever comes to
-pass,” retorted Miss Cornelia. “I shall never have truck or trade with
-Methodists, and Mr. Meredith will find that he’d better steer clear of
-them, too. He is entirely too sociable with them, believe _me_. Why, he
-went to the Jacob Drews’ silver-wedding supper and got into a nice
-scrape as a result.”
-
-“What was it?”
-
-“Mrs. Drew asked him to carve the roast goose—for Jacob Drew never did
-or could carve. Well, Mr. Meredith tackled it, and in the process he
-knocked it clean off the platter into Mrs. Reese’s lap, who was sitting
-next him. And he just said dreamily. ‘Mrs. Reese, will you kindly
-return me that goose?’ Mrs. Reese ‘returned’ it, as meek as Moses, but
-she must have been furious, for she had on her new silk dress. The
-worst of it is, she was a Methodist.”
-
-“But I think that is better than if she was a Presbyterian,”
-interjected Susan. “If she had been a Presbyterian she would mostly
-likely have left the church and we cannot afford to lose our members.
-And Mrs. Reese is not liked in her own church, because she gives
-herself such great airs, so that the Methodists would be rather pleased
-that Mr. Meredith spoiled her dress.”
-
-“The point is, he made himself ridiculous, and _I_, for one, do not
-like to see my minister made ridiculous in the eyes of the Methodists,”
-said Miss Cornelia stiffly. “If he had had a wife it would not have
-happened.”
-
-“I do not see if he had a dozen wives how they could have prevented
-Mrs. Drew from using up her tough old gander for the wedding-feast,”
-said Susan stubbornly.
-
-“They say that was her husband’s doing,” said Miss Cornelia. “Jacob
-Drew is a conceited, stingy, domineering creature.”
-
-“And they do say he and his wife detest each other—which does not seem
-to me the proper way for married folks to get along. But then, of
-course, I have had no experience along that line,” said Susan, tossing
-her head. “And _I_ am not one to blame everything on the men. Mrs. Drew
-is mean enough herself. They say that the only thing she was ever known
-to give away was a crock of butter made out of cream a rat had fell
-into. She contributed it to a church social. Nobody found out about the
-rat until afterwards.”
-
-“Fortunately, all the people the Merediths have offended so far are
-Methodists,” said Miss Cornelia. “That Jerry went to the Methodist
-prayer-meeting one night about a fortnight ago and sat beside old
-William Marsh who got up as usual and testified with fearful groans.
-‘Do you feel any better now?’ whispered Jerry when William sat down.
-Poor Jerry meant to be sympathetic, but Mr. Marsh thought he was
-impertinent and is furious at him. Of course, Jerry had no business to
-be in a Methodist prayer-meeting at all. But they go where they like.”
-
-“I hope they will not offend Mrs. Alec Davis of the Harbour Head,” said
-Susan. “She is a very touchy woman, I understand, but she is very well
-off and pays the most of any one to the salary. I have heard that she
-says the Merediths are the worst brought up children she ever saw.”
-
-“Every word you say convinces me more and more that the Merediths
-belong to the race that knows Joseph,” said Mistress Anne decidedly.
-
-“When all is said and done, they _do_,” admitted Miss Cornelia. “And
-that balances everything. Anyway, we’ve got them now and we must just
-do the best we can by them and stick up for them to the Methodists.
-Well, I suppose I must be getting down harbour. Marshall will soon be
-home—he went over-harbour to-day—and wanting his super, man-like. I’m
-sorry I haven’t seen the other children. And where’s the doctor?”
-
-“Up at the Harbour Head. We’ve only been home three days and in that
-time he has spent three hours in his own bed and eaten two meals in his
-own house.”
-
-“Well, everybody who has been sick for the last six weeks has been
-waiting for him to come home—and I don’t blame them. When that
-over-harbour doctor married the undertaker’s daughter at Lowbridge
-people felt suspicious of him. It didn’t look well. You and the doctor
-must come down soon and tell us all about your trip. I suppose you’ve
-had a splendid time.”
-
-“We had,” agreed Anne. “It was the fulfilment of years of dreams. The
-old world is very lovely and very wonderful. But we have come back very
-well satisfied with our own land. Canada is the finest country in the
-world, Miss Cornelia.”
-
-“Nobody ever doubted that,” said Miss Cornelia, complacently.
-
-“And old P.E.I. is the loveliest province in it and Four Winds the
-loveliest spot in P.E.I.,” laughed Anne, looking adoringly out over the
-sunset splendour of glen and harbour and gulf. She waved her hand at
-it. “I saw nothing more beautiful than that in Europe, Miss Cornelia.
-Must you go? The children will be sorry to have missed you.”
-
-“They must come and see me soon. Tell them the doughnut jar is always
-full.”
-
-“Oh, at supper they were planning a descent on you. They’ll go soon;
-but they must settle down to school again now. And the twins are going
-to take music lessons.”
-
-“Not from the Methodist minister’s wife, I hope?” said Miss Cornelia
-anxiously.
-
-“No—from Rosemary West. I was up last evening to arrange it with her.
-What a pretty girl she is!”
-
-“Rosemary holds her own well. She isn’t as young as she once was.”
-
-“I thought her very charming. I’ve never had any real acquaintance with
-her, you know. Their house is so out of the way, and I’ve seldom ever
-seen her except at church.”
-
-“People always have liked Rosemary West, though they don’t understand
-her,” said Miss Cornelia, quite unconscious of the high tribute she was
-paying to Rosemary’s charm. “Ellen has always kept her down, so to
-speak. She has tyrannized over her, and yet she has always indulged her
-in a good many ways. Rosemary was engaged once, you know—to young
-Martin Crawford. His ship was wrecked on the Magdalens and all the crew
-were drowned. Rosemary was just a child—only seventeen. But she was
-never the same afterwards. She and Ellen have stayed very close at home
-since their mother’s death. They don’t often get to their own church at
-Lowbridge and I understand Ellen doesn’t approve of going too often to
-a Presbyterian church. To the Methodist she _never_ goes, I’ll say that
-much for her. That family of Wests have always been strong
-Episcopalians. Rosemary and Ellen are pretty well off. Rosemary doesn’t
-really need to give music lessons. She does it because she likes to.
-They are distantly related to Leslie, you know. Are the Fords coming to
-the harbour this summer?”
-
-“No. They are going on a trip to Japan and will probably be away for a
-year. Owen’s new novel is to have a Japanese setting. This will be the
-first summer that the dear old House of Dreams will be empty since we
-left it.”
-
-“I should think Owen Ford might find enough to write about in Canada
-without dragging his wife and his innocent children off to a heathen
-country like Japan,” grumbled Miss Cornelia. “_The Life Book_ was the
-best book he’s ever written and he got the material for that right here
-in Four Winds.”
-
-“Captain Jim gave him the most of that, you know. And he collected it
-all over the world. But Owen’s books are all delightful, I think.”
-
-“Oh, they’re well enough as far as they go. I make it a point to read
-every one he writes, though I’ve always held, Anne dearie, that reading
-novels is a sinful waste of time. I shall write and tell him my opinion
-of this Japanese business, believe _me_. Does he want Kenneth and
-Persis to be converted into pagans?”
-
-With which unanswerable conundrum Miss Cornelia took her departure.
-Susan proceeded to put Rilla in bed and Anne sat on the veranda steps
-under the early stars and dreamed her incorrigible dreams and learned
-all over again for the hundredth happy time what a moonrise splendour
-and sheen could be on Four Winds Harbour.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III.
-THE INGLESIDE CHILDREN
-
-
-In daytime the Blythe children liked very well to play in the rich,
-soft greens and glooms of the big maple grove between Ingleside and the
-Glen St. Mary pond; but for evening revels there was no place like the
-little valley behind the maple grove. It was a fairy realm of romance
-to them. Once, looking from the attic windows of Ingleside, through the
-mist and aftermath of a summer thunderstorm, they had seen the beloved
-spot arched by a glorious rainbow, one end of which seemed to dip
-straight down to where a corner of the pond ran up into the lower end
-of the valley.
-
-“Let us call it Rainbow Valley,” said Walter delightedly, and Rainbow
-Valley thenceforth it was.
-
-Outside of Rainbow Valley the wind might be rollicking and boisterous.
-Here it always went gently. Little, winding, fairy paths ran here and
-there over spruce roots cushioned with moss. Wild cherry trees, that in
-blossom time would be misty white, were scattered all over the valley,
-mingling with the dark spruces. A little brook with amber waters ran
-through it from the Glen village. The houses of the village were
-comfortably far away; only at the upper end of the valley was a little
-tumble-down, deserted cottage, referred to as “the old Bailey house.”
-It had not been occupied for many years, but a grass-grown dyke
-surrounded it and inside was an ancient garden where the Ingleside
-children could find violets and daisies and June lilies still blooming
-in season. For the rest, the garden was overgrown with caraway that
-swayed and foamed in the moonshine of summer eves like seas of silver.
-
-To the sought lay the pond and beyond it the ripened distance lost
-itself in purple woods, save where, on a high hill, a solitary old gray
-homestead looked down on glen and harbour. There was a certain wild
-woodsiness and solitude about Rainbow Valley, in spite of its nearness
-to the village, which endeared it to the children of Ingleside.
-
-The valley was full of dear, friendly hollows and the largest of these
-was their favourite stamping ground. Here they were assembled on this
-particular evening. There was a grove of young spruces in this hollow,
-with a tiny, grassy glade in its heart, opening on the bank of the
-brook. By the brook grew a silver birch-tree, a young, incredibly
-straight thing which Walter had named the “White Lady.” In this glade,
-too, were the “Tree Lovers,” as Walter called a spruce and maple which
-grew so closely together that their boughs were inextricably
-intertwined. Jem had hung an old string of sleigh-bells, given him by
-the Glen blacksmith, on the Tree Lovers, and every visitant breeze
-called out sudden fairy tinkles from it.
-
-“How nice it is to be back!” said Nan. “After all, none of the Avonlea
-places are quite as nice as Rainbow Valley.”
-
-But they were very fond of the Avonlea places for all that. A visit to
-Green Gables was always considered a great treat. Aunt Marilla was very
-good to them, and so was Mrs. Rachel Lynde, who was spending the
-leisure of her old age in knitting cotton-warp quilts against the day
-when Anne’s daughters should need a “setting-out.” There were jolly
-playmates there, too—“Uncle” Davy’s children and “Aunt” Diana’s
-children. They knew all the spots their mother had loved so well in her
-girlhood at old Green Gables—the long Lover’s Lane, that was
-pink-hedged in wild-rose time, the always neat yard, with its willows
-and poplars, the Dryad’s Bubble, lucent and lovely as of yore, the Lake
-of Shining Waters, and Willowmere. The twins had their mother’s old
-porch-gable room, and Aunt Marilla used to come in at night, when she
-thought they were asleep, to gloat over them. But they all knew she
-loved Jem the best.
-
-Jem was at present busily occupied in frying a mess of small trout
-which he had just caught in the pond. His stove consisted of a circle
-of red stones, with a fire kindled in it, and his culinary utensils
-were an old tin can, hammered out flat, and a fork with only one tine
-left. Nevertheless, ripping good meals had before now been thus
-prepared.
-
-Jem was the child of the House of Dreams. All the others had been born
-at Ingleside. He had curly red hair, like his mother’s, and frank hazel
-eyes, like his father’s; he had his mother’s fine nose and his father’s
-steady, humorous mouth. And he was the only one of the family who had
-ears nice enough to please Susan. But he had a standing feud with Susan
-because she would not give up calling him Little Jem. It was
-outrageous, thought thirteen-year-old Jem. Mother had more sense.
-
-“I’m _not_ little any more, Mother,” he had cried indignantly, on his
-eighth birthday. “I’m _awful_ big.”
-
-Mother had sighed and laughed and sighed again; and she never called
-him Little Jem again—in his hearing at least.
-
-He was and always had been a sturdy, reliable little chap. He never
-broke a promise. He was not a great talker. His teachers did not think
-him brilliant, but he was a good, all-round student. He never took
-things on faith; he always liked to investigate the truth of a
-statement for himself. Once Susan had told him that if he touched his
-tongue to a frosty latch all the skin would tear off it. Jem had
-promptly done it, “just to see if it was so.” He found it was “so,” at
-the cost of a very sore tongue for several days. But Jem did not grudge
-suffering in the interests of science. By constant experiment and
-observation he learned a great deal and his brothers and sisters
-thought his extensive knowledge of their little world quite wonderful.
-Jem always knew where the first and ripest berries grew, where the
-first pale violets shyly wakened from their winter’s sleep, and how
-many blue eggs were in a given robin’s nest in the maple grove. He
-could tell fortunes from daisy petals and suck honey from red clovers,
-and grub up all sorts of edible roots on the banks of the pond, while
-Susan went in daily fear that they would all be poisoned. He knew where
-the finest spruce-gum was to be found, in pale amber knots on the
-lichened bark, he knew where the nuts grew thickest in the beechwoods
-around the Harbour Head, and where the best trouting places up the
-brooks were. He could mimic the call of any wild bird or beast in Four
-Winds and he knew the haunt of every wild flower from spring to autumn.
-
-Walter Blythe was sitting under the White Lady, with a volume of poems
-lying beside him, but he was not reading. He was gazing now at the
-emerald-misted willows by the pond, and now at a flock of clouds, like
-little silver sheep, herded by the wind, that were drifting over
-Rainbow Valley, with rapture in his wide splendid eyes. Walter’s eyes
-were very wonderful. All the joy and sorrow and laughter and loyalty
-and aspiration of many generations lying under the sod looked out of
-their dark gray depths.
-
-Walter was a “hop out of kin,” as far as looks went. He did not
-resemble any known relative. He was quite the handsomest of the
-Ingleside children, with straight black hair and finely modelled
-features. But he had all his mother’s vivid imagination and passionate
-love of beauty. Frost of winter, invitation of spring, dream of summer
-and glamour of autumn, all meant much to Walter.
-
-In school, where Jem was a chieftain, Walter was not thought highly of.
-He was supposed to be “girly” and milk-soppish, because he never fought
-and seldom joined in the school sports, preferring to herd by himself
-in out of the way corners and read books—especially “po’try books.”
-Walter loved the poets and pored over their pages from the time he
-could first read. Their music was woven into his growing soul—the music
-of the immortals. Walter cherished the ambition to be a poet himself
-some day. The thing could be done. A certain Uncle Paul—so called out
-of courtesy—who lived now in that mysterious realm called “the States,”
-was Walter’s model. Uncle Paul had once been a little school boy in
-Avonlea and now his poetry was read everywhere. But the Glen schoolboys
-did not know of Walter’s dreams and would not have been greatly
-impressed if they had. In spite of his lack of physical prowess,
-however, he commanded a certain unwilling respect because of his power
-of “talking book talk.” Nobody in Glen St. Mary school could talk like
-him. He “sounded like a preacher,” one boy said; and for this reason he
-was generally left alone and not persecuted, as most boys were who were
-suspected of disliking or fearing fisticuffs.
-
-The ten year old Ingleside twins violated twin tradition by not looking
-in the least alike. Anne, who was always called Nan, was very pretty,
-with velvety nut-brown eyes and silky nut-brown hair. She was a very
-blithe and dainty little maiden—Blythe by name and blithe by nature,
-one of her teachers had said. Her complexion was quite faultless, much
-to her mother’s satisfaction.
-
-“I’m so glad I have one daughter who can wear pink,” Mrs. Blythe was
-wont to say jubilantly.
-
-Diana Blythe, known as Di, was very like her mother, with gray-green
-eyes that always shone with a peculiar lustre and brilliancy in the
-dusk, and red hair. Perhaps this was why she was her father’s
-favourite. She and Walter were especial chums; Di was the only one to
-whom he would ever read the verses he wrote himself—the only one who
-knew that he was secretly hard at work on an epic, strikingly
-resembling “Marmion” in some things, if not in others. She kept all his
-secrets, even from Nan, and told him all hers.
-
-“Won’t you soon have those fish ready, Jem?” said Nan, sniffing with
-her dainty nose. “The smell makes me awfully hungry.”
-
-“They’re nearly ready,” said Jem, giving one a dexterous turn. “Get out
-the bread and the plates, girls. Walter, wake up.”
-
-“How the air shines to-night,” said Walter dreamily. Not that he
-despised fried trout either, by any means; but with Walter food for the
-soul always took first place. “The flower angel has been walking over
-the world to-day, calling to the flowers. I can see his blue wings on
-that hill by the woods.”
-
-“Any angels’ wings I ever saw were white,” said Nan.
-
-“The flower angel’s aren’t. They are a pale misty blue, just like the
-haze in the valley. Oh, how I wish I could fly. It must be glorious.”
-
-“One does fly in dreams sometimes,” said Di.
-
-“I never dream that I’m flying exactly,” said Walter. “But I often
-dream that I just rise up from the ground and float over the fences and
-the trees. It’s delightful—and I always think, ‘This _isn’t_ a dream
-like it’s always been before. _This_ is real’—and then I wake up after
-all, and it’s heart-breaking.”
-
-“Hurry up, Nan,” ordered Jem.
-
-Nan had produced the banquet-board—a board literally as well as
-figuratively—from which many a feast, seasoned as no viands were
-elsewhere, had been eaten in Rainbow Valley. It was converted into a
-table by propping it on two large, mossy stones. Newspapers served as
-tablecloth, and broken plates and handleless cups from Susan’s discard
-furnished the dishes. From a tin box secreted at the root of a spruce
-tree Nan brought forth bread and salt. The brook gave Adam’s ale of
-unsurpassed crystal. For the rest, there was a certain sauce,
-compounded of fresh air and appetite of youth, which gave to everything
-a divine flavour. To sit in Rainbow Valley, steeped in a twilight half
-gold, half amethyst, rife with the odours of balsam-fir and woodsy
-growing things in their springtime prime, with the pale stars of wild
-strawberry blossoms all around you, and with the sough of the wind and
-tinkle of bells in the shaking tree tops, and eat fried trout and dry
-bread, was something which the mighty of earth might have envied them.
-
-“Sit in,” invited Nan, as Jem placed his sizzling tin platter of trout
-on the table. “It’s your turn to say grace, Jem.”
-
-“I’ve done my part frying the trout,” protested Jem, who hated saying
-grace. “Let Walter say it. He _likes_ saying grace. And cut it short,
-too, Walt. I’m starving.”
-
-But Walter said no grace, short or long, just then. An interruption
-occurred.
-
-“Who’s coming down from the manse hill?” said Di.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV.
-THE MANSE CHILDREN
-
-
-Aunt Martha might be, and was, a very poor housekeeper; the Rev. John
-Knox Meredith might be, and was, a very absent-minded, indulgent man.
-But it could not be denied that there was something very homelike and
-lovable about the Glen St. Mary manse in spite of its untidiness. Even
-the critical housewives of the Glen felt it, and were unconsciously
-mellowed in judgment because of it. Perhaps its charm was in part due
-to accidental circumstances—the luxuriant vines clustering over its
-gray, clap-boarded walls, the friendly acacias and balm-of-gileads that
-crowded about it with the freedom of old acquaintance, and the
-beautiful views of harbour and sand-dunes from its front windows. But
-these things had been there in the reign of Mr. Meredith’s predecessor,
-when the manse had been the primmest, neatest, and dreariest house in
-the Glen. So much of the credit must be given to the personality of its
-new inmates. There was an atmosphere of laughter and comradeship about
-it; the doors were always open; and inner and outer worlds joined
-hands. Love was the only law in Glen St. Mary manse.
-
-The people of his congregation said that Mr. Meredith spoiled his
-children. Very likely he did. It is certain that he could not bear to
-scold them. “They have no mother,” he used to say to himself, with a
-sigh, when some unusually glaring peccadillo forced itself upon his
-notice. But he did not know the half of their goings-on. He belonged to
-the sect of dreamers. The windows of his study looked out on the
-graveyard but, as he paced up and down the room, reflecting deeply on
-the immortality of the soul, he was quite unaware that Jerry and Carl
-were playing leap-frog hilariously over the flat stones in that abode
-of dead Methodists. Mr. Meredith had occasional acute realizations that
-his children were not so well looked after, physically or morally, as
-they had been before his wife died, and he had always a dim
-sub-consciousness that house and meals were very different under Aunt
-Martha’s management from what they had been under Cecilia’s. For the
-rest, he lived in a world of books and abstractions; and, therefore,
-although his clothes were seldom brushed, and although the Glen
-housewives concluded, from the ivory-like pallor of his clear-cut
-features and slender hands, that he never got enough to eat, he was not
-an unhappy man.
-
-If ever a graveyard could be called a cheerful place, the old Methodist
-graveyard at Glen St. Mary might be so called. The new graveyard, at
-the other side of the Methodist church, was a neat and proper and
-doleful spot; but the old one had been left so long to Nature’s kindly
-and gracious ministries that it had become very pleasant.
-
-It was surrounded on three sides by a dyke of stones and sod, topped by
-a gray and uncertain paling. Outside the dyke grew a row of tall fir
-trees with thick, balsamic boughs. The dyke, which had been built by
-the first settlers of the Glen, was old enough to be beautiful, with
-mosses and green things growing out of its crevices, violets purpling
-at its base in the early spring days, and asters and golden-rod making
-an autumnal glory in its corners. Little ferns clustered companionably
-between its stones, and here and there a big bracken grew.
-
-On the eastern side there was neither fence nor dyke. The graveyard
-there straggled off into a young fir plantation, ever pushing nearer to
-the graves and deepening eastward into a thick wood. The air was always
-full of the harp-like voices of the sea, and the music of gray old
-trees, and in the spring mornings the choruses of birds in the elms
-around the two churches sang of life and not of death. The Meredith
-children loved the old graveyard.
-
-Blue-eyed ivy, “garden-spruce,” and mint ran riot over the sunken
-graves. Blueberry bushes grew lavishly in the sandy corner next to the
-fir wood. The varying fashions of tombstones for three generations were
-to be found there, from the flat, oblong, red sandstone slabs of old
-settlers, down through the days of weeping willows and clasped hands,
-to the latest monstrosities of tall “monuments” and draped urns. One of
-the latter, the biggest and ugliest in the graveyard, was sacred to the
-memory of a certain Alec Davis who had been born a Methodist but had
-taken to himself a Presbyterian bride of the Douglas clan. She had made
-him turn Presbyterian and kept him toeing the Presbyterian mark all his
-life. But when he died she did not dare to doom him to a lonely grave
-in the Presbyterian graveyard over-harbour. His people were all buried
-in the Methodist cemetery; so Alec Davis went back to his own in death
-and his widow consoled herself by erecting a monument which cost more
-than any of the Methodists could afford. The Meredith children hated
-it, without just knowing why, but they loved the old, flat, bench-like
-stones with the tall grasses growing rankly about them. They made jolly
-seats for one thing. They were all sitting on one now. Jerry, tired of
-leap frog, was playing on a jew’s-harp. Carl was lovingly poring over a
-strange beetle he had found; Una was trying to make a doll’s dress, and
-Faith, leaning back on her slender brown wrists, was swinging her bare
-feet in lively time to the jew’s-harp.
-
-Jerry had his father’s black hair and large black eyes, but in him the
-latter were flashing instead of dreamy. Faith, who came next to him,
-wore her beauty like a rose, careless and glowing. She had golden-brown
-eyes, golden-brown curls and crimson cheeks. She laughed too much to
-please her father’s congregation and had shocked old Mrs. Taylor, the
-disconsolate spouse of several departed husbands, by saucily
-declaring—in the church-porch at that—“The world _isn’t_ a vale of
-tears, Mrs. Taylor. It’s a world of laughter.”
-
-Little dreamy Una was not given to laughter. Her braids of straight,
-dead-black hair betrayed no lawless kinks, and her almond-shaped,
-dark-blue eyes had something wistful and sorrowful in them. Her mouth
-had a trick of falling open over her tiny white teeth, and a shy,
-meditative smile occasionally crept over her small face. She was much
-more sensitive to public opinion than Faith, and had an uneasy
-consciousness that there was something askew in their way of living.
-She longed to put it right, but did not know how. Now and then she
-dusted the furniture—but it was so seldom she could find the duster
-because it was never in the same place twice. And when the
-clothes-brush was to be found she tried to brush her father’s best suit
-on Saturdays, and once sewed on a missing button with coarse white
-thread. When Mr. Meredith went to church next day every female eye saw
-that button and the peace of the Ladies’ Aid was upset for weeks.
-
-Carl had the clear, bright, dark-blue eyes, fearless and direct, of his
-dead mother, and her brown hair with its glints of gold. He knew the
-secrets of bugs and had a sort of freemasonry with bees and beetles.
-Una never liked to sit near him because she never knew what uncanny
-creature might be secreted about him. Jerry refused to sleep with him
-because Carl had once taken a young garter snake to bed with him; so
-Carl slept in his old cot, which was so short that he could never
-stretch out, and had strange bed-fellows. Perhaps it was just as well
-that Aunt Martha was half blind when she made that bed. Altogether they
-were a jolly, lovable little crew, and Cecilia Meredith’s heart must
-have ached bitterly when she faced the knowledge that she must leave
-them.
-
-“Where would you like to be buried if you were a Methodist?” asked
-Faith cheerfully.
-
-This opened up an interesting field of speculation.
-
-“There isn’t much choice. The place is full,” said Jerry. “_I’d_ like
-that corner near the road, I guess. I could hear the teams going past
-and the people talking.”
-
-“I’d like that little hollow under the weeping birch,” said Una. “That
-birch is such a place for birds and they sing like mad in the
-mornings.”
-
-“I’d take the Porter lot where there’s so many children buried. _I_
-like lots of company,” said Faith. “Carl, where’d you?”
-
-“I’d rather not be buried at all,” said Carl, “but if I had to be I’d
-like the ant-bed. Ants are _awf’ly_ int’resting.”
-
-“How very good all the people who are buried here must have been,” said
-Una, who had been reading the laudatory old epitaphs. “There doesn’t
-seem to be a single bad person in the whole graveyard. Methodists must
-be better than Presbyterians after all.”
-
-“Maybe the Methodists bury their bad people just like they do cats,”
-suggested Carl. “Maybe they don’t bother bringing them to the graveyard
-at all.”
-
-“Nonsense,” said Faith. “The people that are buried here weren’t any
-better than other folks, Una. But when anyone is dead you mustn’t say
-anything of him but good or he’ll come back and ha’nt you. Aunt Martha
-told me that. I asked father if it was true and he just looked through
-me and muttered, ‘True? True? What is truth? What _is_ truth, O jesting
-Pilate?’ I concluded from that it must be true.”
-
-“I wonder if Mr. Alec Davis would come back and ha’nt me if I threw a
-stone at the urn on top of his tombstone,” said Jerry.
-
-“Mrs. Davis would,” giggled Faith. “She just watches us in church like
-a cat watching mice. Last Sunday I made a face at her nephew and he
-made one back at me and you should have seen her glare. I’ll bet she
-boxed _his_ ears when they got out. Mrs. Marshall Elliott told me we
-mustn’t offend her on any account or I’d have made a face at her, too!”
-
-“They say Jem Blythe stuck out his tongue at her once and she would
-never have his father again, even when her husband was dying,” said
-Jerry. “I wonder what the Blythe gang will be like.”
-
-“I liked their looks,” said Faith. The manse children had been at the
-station that afternoon when the Blythe small fry had arrived. “I liked
-Jem’s looks _especially_.”
-
-“They say in school that Walter’s a sissy,” said Jerry.
-
-“I don’t believe it,” said Una, who had thought Walter very handsome.
-
-“Well, he writes poetry, anyhow. He won the prize the teacher offered
-last year for writing a poem, Bertie Shakespeare Drew told me. Bertie’s
-mother thought _he_ should have got the prize because of his name, but
-Bertie said he couldn’t write poetry to save his soul, name or no
-name.”
-
-“I suppose we’ll get acquainted with them as soon as they begin going
-to school,” mused Faith. “I hope the girls are nice. I don’t like most
-of the girls round here. Even the nice ones are poky. But the Blythe
-twins look jolly. I thought twins always looked alike, but they don’t.
-I think the red-haired one is the nicest.”
-
-“I liked their mother’s looks,” said Una with a little sigh. Una envied
-all children their mothers. She had been only six when her mother died,
-but she had some very precious memories, treasured in her soul like
-jewels, of twilight cuddlings and morning frolics, of loving eyes, a
-tender voice, and the sweetest, gayest laugh.
-
-“They say she isn’t like other people,” said Jerry.
-
-“Mrs. Elliot says that is because she never really grew up,” said
-Faith.
-
-“She’s taller than Mrs. Elliott.”
-
-“Yes, yes, but it is inside—Mrs. Elliot says Mrs. Blythe just stayed a
-little girl inside.”
-
-“What do I smell?” interrupted Carl, sniffing.
-
-They all smelled it now. A most delectable odour came floating up on
-the still evening air from the direction of the little woodsy dell
-below the manse hill.
-
-“That makes me hungry,” said Jerry.
-
-“We had only bread and molasses for supper and cold ditto for dinner,”
-said Una plaintively.
-
-Aunt Martha’s habit was to boil a large slab of mutton early in the
-week and serve it up every day, cold and greasy, as long as it lasted.
-To this Faith, in a moment of inspiration, had give the name of
-“ditto”, and by this it was invariably known at the manse.
-
-“Let’s go and see where that smell is coming from,” said Jerry.
-
-They all sprang up, frolicked over the lawn with the abandon of young
-puppies, climbed a fence, and tore down the mossy slope, guided by the
-savory lure that ever grew stronger. A few minutes later they arrived
-breathlessly in the sanctum sanctorum of Rainbow Valley where the
-Blythe children were just about to give thanks and eat.
-
-They halted shyly. Una wished they had not been so precipitate: but Di
-Blythe was equal to that and any occasion. She stepped forward, with a
-comrade’s smile.
-
-“I guess I know who you are,” she said. “You belong to the manse, don’t
-you?”
-
-Faith nodded, her face creased by dimples.
-
-“We smelled your trout cooking and wondered what it was.”
-
-“You must sit down and help us eat them,” said Di.
-
-“Maybe you haven’t more than you want yourselves,” said Jerry, looking
-hungrily at the tin platter.
-
-“We’ve heaps—three apiece,” said Jem. “Sit down.”
-
-No more ceremony was necessary. Down they all sat on mossy stones.
-Merry was that feast and long. Nan and Di would probably have died of
-horror had they known what Faith and Una knew perfectly well—that Carl
-had two young mice in his jacket pocket. But they never knew it, so it
-never hurt them. Where can folks get better acquainted than over a meal
-table? When the last trout had vanished, the manse children and the
-Ingleside children were sworn friends and allies. They had always known
-each other and always would. The race of Joseph recognized its own.
-
-They poured out the history of their little pasts. The manse children
-heard of Avonlea and Green Gables, of Rainbow Valley traditions, and of
-the little house by the harbour shore where Jem had been born. The
-Ingleside children heard of Maywater, where the Merediths had lived
-before coming to the Glen, of Una’s beloved, one-eyed doll and Faith’s
-pet rooster.
-
-Faith was inclined to resent the fact that people laughed at her for
-petting a rooster. She liked the Blythes because they accepted it
-without question.
-
-“A handsome rooster like Adam is just as nice a pet as a dog or cat,
-_I_ think,” she said. “If he was a canary nobody would wonder. And I
-brought him up from a little, wee, yellow chicken. Mrs. Johnson at
-Maywater gave him to me. A weasel had killed all his brothers and
-sisters. I called him after her husband. I never liked dolls or cats.
-Cats are too sneaky and dolls are _dead_.”
-
-“Who lives in that house away up there?” asked Jerry.
-
-“The Miss Wests—Rosemary and Ellen,” answered Nan. “Di and I are going
-to take music lessons from Miss Rosemary this summer.”
-
-Una gazed at the lucky twins with eyes whose longing was too gentle for
-envy. Oh, if she could only have music lessons! It was one of the
-dreams of her little hidden life. But nobody ever thought of such a
-thing.
-
-“Miss Rosemary is so sweet and she always dresses so pretty,” said Di.
-“Her hair is just the colour of new molasses taffy,” she added
-wistfully—for Di, like her mother before her, was not resigned to her
-own ruddy tresses.
-
-“I like Miss Ellen, too,” said Nan. “She always used to give me candies
-when she came to church. But Di is afraid of her.”
-
-“Her brows are so black and she has such a great deep voice,” said Di.
-“Oh, how scared of her Kenneth Ford used to be when he was little!
-Mother says the first Sunday Mrs. Ford brought him to church Miss Ellen
-happened to be there, sitting right behind them. And the minute Kenneth
-saw her he just screamed and screamed until Mrs. Ford had to carry him
-out.”
-
-“Who is Mrs. Ford?” asked Una wonderingly.
-
-“Oh, the Fords don’t live here. They only come here in the summer. And
-they’re not coming this summer. They live in that little house ‘way,
-‘way down on the harbour shore where father and mother used to live. I
-wish you could see Persis Ford. She is just like a picture.”
-
-“I’ve heard of Mrs. Ford,” broke in Faith. “Bertie Shakespeare Drew
-told me about her. She was married fourteen years to a dead man and
-then he came to life.”
-
-“Nonsense,” said Nan. “That isn’t the way it goes at all. Bertie
-Shakespeare can never get anything straight. I know the whole story and
-I’ll tell it to you some time, but not now, for it’s too long and it’s
-time for us to go home. Mother doesn’t like us to be out late these
-damp evenings.”
-
-Nobody cared whether the manse children were out in the damp or not.
-Aunt Martha was already in bed and the minister was still too deeply
-lost in speculations concerning the immortality of the soul to remember
-the mortality of the body. But they went home, too, with visions of
-good times coming in their heads.
-
-“I think Rainbow Valley is even nicer than the graveyard,” said Una.
-“And I just love those dear Blythes. It’s _so_ nice when you can love
-people because so often you _can’t_. Father said in his sermon last
-Sunday that we should love everybody. But how can we? How could we love
-Mrs. Alec Davis?”
-
-“Oh, father only said that in the pulpit,” said Faith airily. “He has
-more sense than to really think it outside.”
-
-The Blythe children went up to Ingleside, except Jem, who slipped away
-for a few moments on a solitary expedition to a remote corner of
-Rainbow Valley. Mayflowers grew there and Jem never forgot to take his
-mother a bouquet as long as they lasted.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V.
-THE ADVENT OF MARY VANCE
-
-
-“This is just the sort of day you feel as if things might happen,” said
-Faith, responsive to the lure of crystal air and blue hills. She hugged
-herself with delight and danced a hornpipe on old Hezekiah Pollock’s
-bench tombstone, much to the horror of two ancient maidens who happened
-to be driving past just as Faith hopped on one foot around the stone,
-waving the other and her arms in the air.
-
-“And that,” groaned one ancient maiden, “is our minister’s daughter.”
-
-“What else could you expect of a widower’s family?” groaned the other
-ancient maiden. And then they both shook their heads.
-
-It was early on Saturday morning and the Merediths were out in the
-dew-drenched world with a delightful consciousness of the holiday. They
-had never had anything to do on a holiday. Even Nan and Di Blythe had
-certain household tasks for Saturday mornings, but the daughters of the
-manse were free to roam from blushing morn to dewy eve if so it pleased
-them. It _did_ please Faith, but Una felt a secret, bitter humiliation
-because they never learned to do anything. The other girls in her class
-at school could cook and sew and knit; she only was a little ignoramus.
-
-Jerry suggested that they go exploring; so they went lingeringly
-through the fir grove, picking up Carl on the way, who was on his knees
-in the dripping grass studying his darling ants. Beyond the grove they
-came out in Mr. Taylor’s pasture field, sprinkled over with the white
-ghosts of dandelions; in a remote corner was an old tumbledown barn,
-where Mr. Taylor sometimes stored his surplus hay crop but which was
-never used for any other purpose. Thither the Meredith children
-trooped, and prowled about the ground floor for several minutes.
-
-“What was that?” whispered Una suddenly.
-
-They all listened. There was a faint but distinct rustle in the hayloft
-above. The Merediths looked at each other.
-
-“There’s something up there,” breathed Faith.
-
-“I’m going up to see what it is,” said Jerry resolutely.
-
-“Oh, don’t,” begged Una, catching his arm.
-
-“I’m going.”
-
-“We’ll all go, too, then,” said Faith.
-
-The whole four climbed the shaky ladder, Jerry and Faith quite
-dauntless, Una pale from fright, and Carl rather absent-mindedly
-speculating on the possibility of finding a bat up in the loft. He
-longed to see a bat in daylight.
-
-When they stepped off the ladder they saw what had made the rustle and
-the sight struck them dumb for a few moments.
-
-In a little nest in the hay a girl was curled up, looking as if she had
-just wakened from sleep. When she saw them she stood up, rather
-shakily, as it seemed, and in the bright sunlight that streamed through
-the cobwebbed window behind her, they saw that her thin, sunburned face
-was very pale under its tan. She had two braids of lank, thick,
-tow-coloured hair and very odd eyes—“white eyes,” the manse children
-thought, as she stared at them half defiantly, half piteously. They
-were really of so pale a blue that they did seem almost white,
-especially when contrasted with the narrow black ring that circled the
-iris. She was barefooted and bareheaded, and was clad in a faded,
-ragged, old plaid dress, much too short and tight for her. As for
-years, she might have been almost any age, judging from her wizened
-little face, but her height seemed to be somewhere in the neighbourhood
-of twelve.
-
-“Who are you?” asked Jerry.
-
-The girl looked about her as if seeking a way of escape. Then she
-seemed to give in with a little shiver of despair.
-
-“I’m Mary Vance,” she said.
-
-“Where’d you come from?” pursued Jerry.
-
-Mary, instead of replying, suddenly sat, or fell, down on the hay and
-began to cry. Instantly Faith had flung herself down beside her and put
-her arm around the thin, shaking shoulders.
-
-“You stop bothering her,” she commanded Jerry. Then she hugged the
-waif. “Don’t cry, dear. Just tell us what’s the matter. _We’re_
-friends.”
-
-“I’m so—so—hungry,” wailed Mary. “I—I hain’t had a thing to eat since
-Thursday morning, ‘cept a little water from the brook out there.”
-
-The manse children gazed at each other in horror. Faith sprang up.
-
-“You come right up to the manse and get something to eat before you say
-another word.”
-
-Mary shrank.
-
-“Oh—I can’t. What will your pa and ma say? Besides, they’d send me
-back.”
-
-“We’ve no mother, and father won’t bother about you. Neither will Aunt
-Martha. Come, I say.” Faith stamped her foot impatiently. Was this
-queer girl going to insist on starving to death almost at their very
-door?
-
-Mary yielded. She was so weak that she could hardly climb down the
-ladder, but somehow they got her down and over the field and into the
-manse kitchen. Aunt Martha, muddling through her Saturday cooking, took
-no notice of her. Faith and Una flew to the pantry and ransacked it for
-such eatables as it contained—some “ditto,” bread, butter, milk and a
-doubtful pie. Mary Vance attacked the food ravenously and uncritically,
-while the manse children stood around and watched her. Jerry noticed
-that she had a pretty mouth and very nice, even, white teeth. Faith
-decided, with secret horror, that Mary had not one stitch on her except
-that ragged, faded dress. Una was full of pure pity, Carl of amused
-wonder, and all of them of curiosity.
-
-“Now come out to the graveyard and tell us about yourself,” ordered
-Faith, when Mary’s appetite showed signs of failing her. Mary was now
-nothing loath. Food had restored her natural vivacity and unloosed her
-by no means reluctant tongue.
-
-“You won’t tell your pa or anybody if I tell you?” she stipulated, when
-she was enthroned on Mr. Pollock’s tombstone. Opposite her the manse
-children lined up on another. Here was spice and mystery and adventure.
-Something _had_ happened.
-
-“No, we won’t.”
-
-“Cross your hearts?”
-
-“Cross our hearts.”
-
-“Well, I’ve run away. I was living with Mrs. Wiley over-harbour. Do you
-know Mrs. Wiley?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“Well, you don’t want to know her. She’s an awful woman. My, how I hate
-her! She worked me to death and wouldn’t give me half enough to eat,
-and she used to larrup me ‘most every day. Look a-here.”
-
-Mary rolled up her ragged sleeves, and held up her scrawny arms and
-thin hands, chapped almost to rawness. They were black with bruises.
-The manse children shivered. Faith flushed crimson with indignation.
-Una’s blue eyes filled with tears.
-
-“She licked me Wednesday night with a stick,” said Mary, indifferently.
-“It was ‘cause I let the cow kick over a pail of milk. How’d I know the
-darn old cow was going to kick?”
-
-A not unpleasant thrill ran over her listeners. They would never dream
-of using such dubious words, but it was rather titivating to hear
-someone else use them—and a girl, at that. Certainly this Mary Vance
-was an interesting creature.
-
-“I don’t blame you for running away,” said Faith.
-
-“Oh, I didn’t run away ‘cause she licked me. A licking was all in the
-day’s work with me. I was darn well used to it. Nope, I’d meant to run
-away for a week ‘cause I’d found out that Mrs. Wiley was going to rent
-her farm and go to Lowbridge to live and give me to a cousin of hers up
-Charlottetown way. I wasn’t going to stand for _that_. She was a worse
-sort than Mrs. Wiley even. Mrs. Wiley lent me to her for a month last
-summer and I’d rather live with the devil himself.”
-
-Sensation number two. But Una looked doubtful.
-
-“So I made up my mind I’d beat it. I had seventy cents saved up that
-Mrs. John Crawford give me in the spring for planting potatoes for her.
-Mrs. Wiley didn’t know about it. She was away visiting her cousin when
-I planted them. I thought I’d sneak up here to the Glen and buy a
-ticket to Charlottetown and try to get work there. I’m a hustler, let
-me tell you. There ain’t a lazy bone in _my_ body. So I lit out
-Thursday morning ‘fore Mrs. Wiley was up and walked to the Glen—six
-miles. And when I got to the station I found I’d lost my money. Dunno
-how—dunno where. Anyhow, it was gone. I didn’t know what to do. If I
-went back to old Lady Wiley she’d take the hide off me. So I went and
-hid in that old barn.”
-
-“And what will you do now?” asked Jerry.
-
-“Dunno. I s’pose I’ll have to go back and take my medicine. Now that
-I’ve got some grub in my stomach I guess I can stand it.”
-
-But there was fear behind the bravado in Mary’s eyes. Una suddenly
-slipped from the one tombstone to the other and put her arm about Mary.
-
-“Don’t go back. Just stay here with us.”
-
-“Oh, Mrs. Wiley’ll hunt me up,” said Mary. “It’s likely she’s on my
-trail before this. I might stay here till she finds me, I s’pose, if
-your folks don’t mind. I was a darn fool ever to think of skipping out.
-She’d run a weasel to earth. But I was so misrebul.”
-
-Mary’s voice quivered, but she was ashamed of showing her weakness.
-
-“I hain’t had the life of a dog for these four years,” she explained
-defiantly.
-
-“You’ve been four years with Mrs. Wiley?”
-
-“Yip. She took me out of the asylum over in Hopetown when I was eight.”
-
-“That’s the same place Mrs. Blythe came from,” exclaimed Faith.
-
-“I was two years in the asylum. I was put there when I was six. My ma
-had hung herself and my pa had cut his throat.”
-
-“Holy cats! Why?” said Jerry.
-
-“Booze,” said Mary laconically.
-
-“And you’ve no relations?”
-
-“Not a darn one that I know of. Must have had some once, though. I was
-called after half a dozen of them. My full name is Mary Martha Lucilla
-Moore Ball Vance. Can you beat that? My grandfather was a rich man.
-I’ll bet he was richer than _your_ grandfather. But pa drunk it all up
-and ma, she did her part. _They_ used to beat me, too. Laws, I’ve been
-licked so much I kind of like it.”
-
-Mary tossed her head. She divined that the manse children were pitying
-her for her many stripes and she did not want pity. She wanted to be
-envied. She looked gaily about her. Her strange eyes, now that the
-dullness of famine was removed from them, were brilliant. She would
-show these youngsters what a personage she was.
-
-“I’ve been sick an awful lot,” she said proudly. “There’s not many kids
-could have come through what I have. I’ve had scarlet fever and measles
-and ersipelas and mumps and whooping cough and pewmonia.”
-
-“Were you ever fatally sick?” asked Una.
-
-“I don’t know,” said Mary doubtfully.
-
-“Of course she wasn’t,” scoffed Jerry. “If you’re fatally sick you
-die.”
-
-“Oh, well, I never died exactly,” said Mary, “but I come blamed near it
-once. They thought I was dead and they were getting ready to lay me out
-when I up and come to.”
-
-“What is it like to be half dead?” asked Jerry curiously.
-
-“Like nothing. I didn’t know it for days afterwards. It was when I had
-the pewmonia. Mrs. Wiley wouldn’t have the doctor—said she wasn’t going
-to no such expense for a home girl. Old Aunt Christina MacAllister
-nursed me with poultices. She brung me round. But sometimes I wish I’d
-just died the other half and done with it. I’d been better off.”
-
-“If you went to heaven I s’pose you would,” said Faith, rather
-doubtfully.
-
-“Well, what other place is there to go to?” demanded Mary in a puzzled
-voice.
-
-“There’s hell, you know,” said Una, dropping her voice and hugging Mary
-to lessen the awfulness of the suggestion.
-
-“Hell? What’s that?”
-
-“Why, it’s where the devil lives,” said Jerry. “You’ve heard of him—you
-spoke about him.”
-
-“Oh, yes, but I didn’t know he lived anywhere. I thought he just roamed
-round. Mr. Wiley used to mention hell when he was alive. He was always
-telling folks to go there. I thought it was some place over in New
-Brunswick where he come from.”
-
-“Hell is an awful place,” said Faith, with the dramatic enjoyment that
-is born of telling dreadful things. “Bad people go there when they die
-and burn in fire for ever and ever and ever.”
-
-“Who told you that?” demanded Mary incredulously.
-
-“It’s in the Bible. And Mr. Isaac Crothers at Maywater told us, too, in
-Sunday School. He was an elder and a pillar in the church and knew all
-about it. But you needn’t worry. If you’re good you’ll go to heaven and
-if you’re bad I guess you’d rather go to hell.”
-
-“I wouldn’t,” said Mary positively. “No matter how bad I was I wouldn’t
-want to be burned and burned. _I_ know what it’s like. I picked up a
-red hot poker once by accident. What must you do to be good?”
-
-“You must go to church and Sunday School and read your Bible and pray
-every night and give to missions,” said Una.
-
-“It sounds like a large order,” said Mary. “Anything else?”
-
-“You must ask God to forgive the sins you’ve committed.
-
-“But I’ve never com—committed any,” said Mary. “What’s a sin any way?”
-
-“Oh, Mary, you must have. Everybody does. Did you never tell a lie?”
-
-“Heaps of ‘em,” said Mary.
-
-“That’s a dreadful sin,” said Una solemnly.
-
-“Do you mean to tell me,” demanded Mary, “that I’d be sent to hell for
-telling a lie now and then? Why, I _had_ to. Mr. Wiley would have
-broken every bone in my body one time if I hadn’t told him a lie. Lies
-have saved me many a whack, I can tell you.”
-
-Una sighed. Here were too many difficulties for her to solve. She
-shuddered as she thought of being cruelly whipped. Very likely she
-would have lied too. She squeezed Mary’s little calloused hand.
-
-“Is that the only dress you’ve got?” asked Faith, whose joyous nature
-refused to dwell on disagreeable subjects.
-
-“I just put on this dress because it was no good,” cried Mary flushing.
-“Mrs. Wiley’d bought my clothes and I wasn’t going to be beholden to
-her for anything. And I’m honest. If I was going to run away I wasn’t
-going to take what belong to _her_ that was worth anything. When I grow
-up I’m going to have a blue sating dress. Your own clothes don’t look
-so stylish. I thought ministers’ children were always dressed up.”
-
-It was plain that Mary had a temper and was sensitive on some points.
-But there was a queer, wild charm about her which captivated them all.
-She was taken to Rainbow Valley that afternoon and introduced to the
-Blythes as “a friend of ours from over-harbour who is visiting us.” The
-Blythes accepted her unquestioningly, perhaps because she was fairly
-respectable now. After dinner—through which Aunt Martha had mumbled and
-Mr. Meredith had been in a state of semi-unconsciousness while brooding
-his Sunday sermon—Faith had prevailed on Mary to put on one of her
-dresses, as well as certain other articles of clothing. With her hair
-neatly braided Mary passed muster tolerably well. She was an acceptable
-playmate, for she knew several new and exciting games, and her
-conversation lacked not spice. In fact, some of her expressions made
-Nan and Di look at her rather askance. They were not quite sure what
-their mother would have thought of her, but they knew quite well what
-Susan would. However, she was a visitor at the manse, so she must be
-all right.
-
-When bedtime came there was the problem of where Mary should sleep.
-
-“We can’t put her in the spare room, you know,” said Faith perplexedly
-to Una.
-
-“I haven’t got anything in my head,” cried Mary in an injured tone.
-
-“Oh, I didn’t mean _that_,” protested Faith. “The spare room is all
-torn up. The mice have gnawed a big hole in the feather tick and made a
-nest in it. We never found it out till Aunt Martha put the Rev. Mr.
-Fisher from Charlottetown there to sleep last week. _He_ soon found it
-out. Then father had to give him his bed and sleep on the study lounge.
-Aunt Martha hasn’t had time to fix the spare room bed up yet, so she
-says; so _nobody_ can sleep there, no matter how clean their heads are.
-And our room is so small, and the bed so small you can’t sleep with
-us.”
-
-“I can go back to the hay in the old barn for the night if you’ll lend
-me a quilt,” said Mary philosophically. “It was kind of chilly last
-night, but ‘cept for that I’ve had worse beds.”
-
-“Oh, no, no, you mustn’t do that,” said Una. “I’ve thought of a plan,
-Faith. You know that little trestle bed in the garret room, with the
-old mattress on it, that the last minister left there? Let’s take up
-the spare room bedclothes and make Mary a bed there. You won’t mind
-sleeping in the garret, will you, Mary? It’s just above our room.”
-
-“Any place’ll do me. Laws, I never had a decent place to sleep in my
-life. I slept in the loft over the kitchen at Mrs. Wiley’s. The roof
-leaked rain in the summer and the snow druv in in winter. My bed was a
-straw tick on the floor. You won’t find me a mite huffy about where _I_
-sleep.”
-
-The manse garret was a long, low, shadowy place, with one gable end
-partitioned off. Here a bed was made up for Mary of the dainty
-hemstitched sheets and embroidered spread which Cecilia Meredith had
-once so proudly made for her spare-room, and which still survived Aunt
-Martha’s uncertain washings. The good nights were said and silence fell
-over the manse. Una was just falling asleep when she heard a sound in
-the room just above that made her sit up suddenly.
-
-“Listen, Faith—Mary’s crying,” she whispered. Faith replied not, being
-already asleep. Una slipped out of bed, and made her way in her little
-white gown down the hall and up the garret stairs. The creaking floor
-gave ample notice of her coming, and when she reached the corner room
-all was moonlit silence and the trestle bed showed only a hump in the
-middle.
-
-“Mary,” whispered Una.
-
-There was no response.
-
-Una crept close to the bed and pulled at the spread. “Mary, I know you
-are crying. I heard you. Are you lonesome?”
-
-Mary suddenly appeared to view but said nothing.
-
-“Let me in beside you. I’m cold,” said Una shivering in the chilly air,
-for the little garret window was open and the keen breath of the north
-shore at night blew in.
-
-Mary moved over and Una snuggled down beside her.
-
-“_Now_ you won’t be lonesome. We shouldn’t have left you here alone the
-first night.”
-
-“I wasn’t lonesome,” sniffed Mary.
-
-“What were you crying for then?”
-
-“Oh, I just got to thinking of things when I was here alone. I thought
-of having to go back to Mrs. Wiley—and of being licked for running
-away—and—and—and of going to hell for telling lies. It all worried me
-something scandalous.”
-
-“Oh, Mary,” said poor Una in distress. “I don’t believe God will send
-you to hell for telling lies when you didn’t know it was wrong. He
-_couldn’t_. Why, He’s kind and good. Of course, you mustn’t tell any
-more now that you know it’s wrong.”
-
-“If I can’t tell lies what’s to become of me?” said Mary with a sob.
-“_You_ don’t understand. You don’t know anything about it. You’ve got a
-home and a kind father—though it does seem to me that he isn’t more’n
-about half there. But anyway he doesn’t lick you, and you get enough to
-eat such as it is—though that old aunt of yours doesn’t know _anything_
-about cooking. Why, this is the first day I ever remember of feeling
-‘sif I’d enough to eat. I’ve been knocked about all of my life, ‘cept
-for the two years I was at the asylum. They didn’t lick me there and it
-wasn’t too bad, though the matron was cross. She always looked ready to
-bite my head off a nail. But Mrs. Wiley is a holy terror, that’s what
-_she_ is, and I’m just scared stiff when I think of going back to her.”
-
-“Perhaps you won’t have to. Perhaps we’ll be able to think of a way
-out. Let’s both ask God to keep you from having to go back to Mrs.
-Wiley. You say your prayers, don’t you Mary?”
-
-“Oh, yes, I always go over an old rhyme ‘fore I get into bed,” said
-Mary indifferently. “I never thought of asking for anything in
-particular though. Nobody in this world ever bothered themselves about
-me so I didn’t s’pose God would. He _might_ take more trouble for you,
-seeing you’re a minister’s daughter.”
-
-“He’d take every bit as much trouble for you, Mary, I’m sure,” said
-Una. “It doesn’t matter whose child you are. You just ask Him—and I
-will, too.”
-
-“All right,” agreed Mary. “It won’t do any harm if it doesn’t do much
-good. If you knew Mrs. Wiley as well as I do you wouldn’t think God
-would want to meddle with her. Anyhow, I won’t cry any more about it.
-This is a big sight better’n last night down in that old barn, with the
-mice running about. Look at the Four Winds light. Ain’t it pretty?”
-
-“This is the only window we can see it from,” said Una. “I love to
-watch it.”
-
-“Do you? So do I. I could see it from the Wiley loft and it was the
-only comfort I had. When I was all sore from being licked I’d watch it
-and forget about the places that hurt. I’d think of the ships sailing
-away and away from it and wish I was on one of them sailing far away
-too—away from everything. On winter nights when it didn’t shine, I just
-felt real lonesome. Say, Una, what makes all you folks so kind to me
-when I’m just a stranger?”
-
-“Because it’s right to be. The bible tells us to be kind to everybody.”
-
-“Does it? Well, I guess most folks don’t mind it much then. I never
-remember of any one being kind to me before—true’s you live I don’t.
-Say, Una, ain’t them shadows on the walls pretty? They look just like a
-flock of little dancing birds. And say, Una, I like all you folks and
-them Blythe boys and Di, but I don’t like that Nan. She’s a proud one.”
-
-“Oh, no, Mary, she isn’t a bit proud,” said Una eagerly. “Not a single
-bit.”
-
-“Don’t tell me. Any one that holds her head like that _is_ proud. I
-don’t like her.”
-
-“_We_ all like her very much.”
-
-“Oh, I s’pose you like her better’n me?” said Mary jealously. “Do you?”
-
-“Why, Mary—we’ve known her for weeks and we’ve only known you a few
-hours,” stammered Una.
-
-“So you do like her better then?” said Mary in a rage. “All right! Like
-her all you want to. _I_ don’t care. _I_ can get along without you.”
-
-She flung herself over against the wall of the garret with a slam.
-
-“Oh, Mary,” said Una, pushing a tender arm over Mary’s uncompromising
-back, “don’t talk like that. I _do_ like you ever so much. And you make
-me feel so bad.”
-
-No answer. Presently Una gave a sob. Instantly Mary squirmed around
-again and engulfed Una in a bear’s hug.
-
-“Hush up,” she ordered. “Don’t go crying over what I said. I was as
-mean as the devil to talk that way. I orter to be skinned alive—and you
-all so good to me. I should think you _would_ like any one better’n me.
-I deserve every licking I ever got. Hush, now. If you cry any more I’ll
-go and walk right down to the harbour in this night-dress and drown
-myself.”
-
-This terrible threat made Una choke back her sobs. Her tears were wiped
-away by Mary with the lace frill of the spare-room pillow and forgiver
-and forgiven cuddled down together again, harmony restored, to watch
-the shadows of the vine leaves on the moonlit wall until they fell
-asleep.
-
-And in the study below Rev. John Meredith walked the floor with rapt
-face and shining eyes, thinking out his message of the morrow, and knew
-not that under his own roof there was a little forlorn soul, stumbling
-in darkness and ignorance, beset by terror and compassed about with
-difficulties too great for it to grapple in its unequal struggle with a
-big indifferent world.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI.
-MARY STAYS AT THE MANSE
-
-
-The manse children took Mary Vance to church with them the next day. At
-first Mary objected to the idea.
-
-“Didn’t you go to church over-harbour?” asked Una.
-
-“You bet. Mrs. Wiley never troubled church much, but I went every
-Sunday I could get off. I was mighty thankful to go to some place where
-I could sit down for a spell. But I can’t go to church in this old
-ragged dress.”
-
-This difficulty was removed by Faith offering the loan of her second
-best dress.
-
-“It’s faded a little and two of the buttons are off, but I guess it’ll
-do.”
-
-“I’ll sew the buttons on in a jiffy,” said Mary.
-
-“Not on Sunday,” said Una, shocked.
-
-“Sure. The better the day the better the deed. You just gimme a needle
-and thread and look the other way if you’re squeamish.”
-
-Faith’s school boots, and an old black velvet cap that had once been
-Cecilia Meredith’s, completed Mary’s costume, and to church she went.
-Her behaviour was quite conventional, and though some wondered who the
-shabby little girl with the manse children was she did not attract much
-attention. She listened to the sermon with outward decorum and joined
-lustily in the singing. She had, it appeared, a clear, strong voice and
-a good ear.
-
-“His blood can make the _violets_ clean,” carolled Mary blithely. Mrs.
-Jimmy Milgrave, whose pew was just in front of the manse pew, turned
-suddenly and looked the child over from top to toe. Mary, in a mere
-superfluity of naughtiness, stuck out her tongue at Mrs. Milgrave, much
-to Una’s horror.
-
-“I couldn’t help it,” she declared after church. “What’d she want to
-stare at me like that for? Such manners! I’m _glad_ stuck my tongue out
-at her. I wish I’d stuck it farther out. Say, I saw Rob MacAllister
-from over-harbour there. Wonder if he’ll tell Mrs. Wiley on me.”
-
-No Mrs. Wiley appeared, however, and in a few day the children forgot
-to look for her. Mary was apparently a fixture at the manse. But she
-refused to go to school with the others.
-
-“Nope. I’ve finished my education,” she said, when Faith urged her to
-go. “I went to school four winters since I come to Mrs. Wiley’s and
-I’ve had all I want of _that_. I’m sick and tired of being
-everlastingly jawed at ‘cause I didn’t get my home-lessons done. _I’d_
-no time to do home-lessons.”
-
-“Our teacher won’t jaw you. He is awfully nice,” said Faith.
-
-“Well, I ain’t going. I can read and write and cipher up to fractions.
-That’s all I want. You fellows go and I’ll stay home. You needn’t be
-scared I’ll steal anything. I swear I’m honest.”
-
-Mary employed herself while the others were at school in cleaning up
-the manse. In a few days it was a different place. Floors were swept,
-furniture dusted, everything straightened out. She mended the
-spare-room bed-tick, she sewed on missing buttons, she patched clothes
-neatly, she even invaded the study with broom and dustpan and ordered
-Mr. Meredith out while she put it to rights. But there was one
-department with which Aunt Martha refused to let her interfere. Aunt
-Martha might be deaf and half blind and very childish, but she was
-resolved to keep the commissariat in her own hands, in spite of all
-Mary’s wiles and stratagems.
-
-“I can tell you if old Martha’d let _me_ cook you’d have some decent
-meals,” she told the manse children indignantly. “There’d be no more
-‘ditto’—and no more lumpy porridge and blue milk either. What _does_
-she do with all the cream?”
-
-“She gives it to the cat. He’s hers, you know,” said Faith.
-
-“I’d like to _cat_ her,” exclaimed Mary bitterly. “I’ve no use for cats
-anyhow. They belong to the old Nick. You can tell that by their eyes.
-Well, if old Martha won’t, she won’t, I s’pose. But it gits on my
-nerves to see good vittles spoiled.”
-
-When school came out they always went to Rainbow Valley. Mary refused
-to play in the graveyard. She declared she was afraid of ghosts.
-
-“There’s no such thing as ghosts,” declared Jem Blythe.
-
-“Oh, ain’t there?”
-
-“Did you ever see any?”
-
-“Hundreds of ‘em,” said Mary promptly.
-
-“What are they like?” said Carl.
-
-“Awful-looking. Dressed all in white with skellington hands and heads,”
-said Mary.
-
-“What did you do?” asked Una.
-
-“Run like the devil,” said Mary. Then she caught Walter’s eyes and
-blushed. Mary was a good deal in awe of Walter. She declared to the
-manse girls that his eyes made her nervous.
-
-“I think of all the lies I’ve ever told when I look into them,” she
-said, “and I wish I hadn’t.”
-
-Jem was Mary’s favourite. When he took her to the attic at Ingleside
-and showed her the museum of curios that Captain Jim Boyd had
-bequeathed to him she was immensely pleased and flattered. She also won
-Carl’s heart entirely by her interest in his beetles and ants. It could
-not be denied that Mary got on rather better with the boys than with
-the girls. She quarrelled bitterly with Nan Blythe the second day.
-
-“Your mother is a witch,” she told Nan scornfully. “Red-haired women
-are always witches.” Then she and Faith fell out about the rooster.
-Mary said its tail was too short. Faith angrily retorted that she
-guessed God know what length to make a rooster’s tail. They did not
-“speak” for a day over this. Mary treated Una’s hairless, one-eyed doll
-with consideration; but when Una showed her other prized treasure—a
-picture of an angel carrying a baby, presumably to heaven, Mary
-declared that it looked too much like a ghost for her. Una crept away
-to her room and cried over this, but Mary hunted her out, hugged her
-repentantly and implored forgiveness. No one could keep up a quarrel
-long with Mary—not even Nan, who was rather prone to hold grudges and
-never quite forgave the insult to her mother. Mary was jolly. She could
-and did tell the most thrilling ghost stories. Rainbow Valley seances
-were undeniably more exciting after Mary came. She learned to play on
-the jew’s-harp and soon eclipsed Jerry.
-
-“Never struck anything yet I couldn’t do if I put my mind to it,” she
-declared. Mary seldom lost a chance of tooting her own horn. She taught
-them how to make “blow-bags” out of the thick leaves of the
-“live-forever” that flourished in the old Bailey garden, she initiated
-them into the toothsome qualities of the “sours” that grew in the
-niches of the graveyard dyke, and she could make the most wonderful
-shadow pictures on the walls with her long, flexible fingers. And when
-they all went picking gum in Rainbow Valley Mary always got “the
-biggest chew” and bragged about it. There were times when they hated
-her and times when they loved her. But at all times they found her
-interesting. So they submitted quite meekly to her bossing, and by the
-end of a fortnight had come to feel that she must always have been with
-them.
-
-“It’s the queerest thing that Mrs. Wiley hain’t been after me,” said
-Mary. “I can’t understand it.”
-
-“Maybe she isn’t going to bother about you at all,” said Una. “Then you
-can just go on staying here.”
-
-“This house ain’t hardly big enough for me and old Martha,” said Mary
-darkly. “It’s a very fine thing to have enough to eat—I’ve often
-wondered what it would be like—but I’m p’ticler about my cooking. And
-Mrs. Wiley’ll be here yet. _She’s_ got a rod in pickle for me all
-right. I don’t think about it so much in daytime but say, girls, up
-there in that garret at night I git to thinking and thinking of it,
-till I just almost wish she’d come and have it over with. I dunno’s one
-real good whipping would be much worse’n all the dozen I’ve lived
-through in my mind ever since I run away. Were any of you ever licked?”
-
-“No, of course not,” said Faith indignantly. “Father would never do
-such a thing.”
-
-“You don’t know you’re alive,” said Mary with a sigh half of envy, half
-of superiority. “You don’t know what I’ve come through. And I s’pose
-the Blythes were never licked either?”
-
-“No-o-o, I guess not. But I _think_ they were sometimes spanked when
-they were small.”
-
-“A spanking doesn’t amount to anything,” said Mary contemptuously. “If
-my folks had just spanked me I’d have thought they were petting me.
-Well, it ain’t a fair world. I wouldn’t mind taking my share of
-wallopings but I’ve had a darn sight too many.”
-
-“It isn’t right to say that word, Mary,” said Una reproachfully. “You
-promised me you wouldn’t say it.”
-
-“G’way,” responded Mary. “If you knew some of the words I _could_ say
-if I liked you wouldn’t make such a fuss over darn. And you know very
-well I hain’t ever told any lies since I come here.”
-
-“What about all those ghosts you said you saw?” asked Faith.
-
-Mary blushed.
-
-“That was diff’runt,” she said defiantly. “I knew you wouldn’t believe
-them yarns and I didn’t intend you to. And I really did see something
-queer one night when I was passing the over-harbour graveyard, true’s
-you live. I dunno whether ‘twas a ghost or Sandy Crawford’s old white
-nag, but it looked blamed queer and I tell you I scooted at the rate of
-no man’s business.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII.
-A FISHY EPISODE
-
-
-Rilla Blythe walked proudly, and perhaps a little primly, through the
-main “street” of the Glen and up the manse hill, carefully carrying a
-small basketful of early strawberries, which Susan had coaxed into
-lusciousness in one of the sunny nooks of Ingleside. Susan had charged
-Rilla to give the basket to nobody except Aunt Martha or Mr. Meredith,
-and Rilla, very proud of being entrusted with such an errand, was
-resolved to carry out her instructions to the letter.
-
-Susan had dressed her daintily in a white, starched, and embroidered
-dress, with sash of blue and beaded slippers. Her long ruddy curls were
-sleek and round, and Susan had let her put on her best hat, out of
-compliment to the manse. It was a somewhat elaborate affair, wherein
-Susan’s taste had had more to say than Anne’s, and Rilla’s small soul
-gloried in its splendours of silk and lace and flowers. She was very
-conscious of her hat, and I am afraid she strutted up the manse hill.
-The strut, or the hat, or both, got on the nerves of Mary Vance, who
-was swinging on the lawn gate. Mary’s temper was somewhat ruffled just
-then, into the bargain. Aunt Martha had refused to let her peel the
-potatoes and had ordered her out of the kitchen.
-
-“Yah! You’ll bring the potatoes to the table with strips of skin
-hanging to them and half boiled as usual! My, but it’ll be nice to go
-to your funeral,” shrieked Mary. She went out of the kitchen, giving
-the door such a bang that even Aunt Martha heard it, and Mr. Meredith
-in his study felt the vibration and thought absently that there must
-have been a slight earthquake shock. Then he went on with his sermon.
-
-Mary slipped from the gate and confronted the spick-and-span damsel of
-Ingleside.
-
-“What you got there?” she demanded, trying to take the basket.
-
-Rilla resisted. “It’th for Mithter Meredith,” she lisped.
-
-“Give it to me. _I’ll_ give it to him,” said Mary.
-
-“No. Thuthan thaid that I wathn’t to give it to anybody but Mithter
-Mer’dith or Aunt Martha,” insisted Rilla.
-
-Mary eyed her sourly.
-
-“You think you’re something, don’t you, all dressed up like a doll!
-Look at me. My dress is all rags and _I_ don’t care! I’d rather be
-ragged than a doll baby. Go home and tell them to put you in a glass
-case. Look at me—look at me—look at me!”
-
-Mary executed a wild dance around the dismayed and bewildered Rilla,
-flirting her ragged skirt and vociferating “Look at me—look at me”
-until poor Rilla was dizzy. But as the latter tried to edge away
-towards the gate Mary pounced on her again.
-
-“You give me that basket,” she ordered with a grimace. Mary was past
-mistress in the art of “making faces.” She could give her countenance a
-most grotesque and unearthly appearance out of which her strange,
-brilliant, white eyes gleamed with weird effect.
-
-“I won’t,” gasped Rilla, frightened but staunch. “You let me go, Mary
-Vanth.”
-
-Mary let go for a minute and looked around her. Just inside the gate
-was a small “flake,” on which a half a dozen large codfish were drying.
-One of Mr. Meredith’s parishioners had presented him with them one day,
-perhaps in lieu of the subscription he was supposed to pay to the
-stipend and never did. Mr. Meredith had thanked him and then forgotten
-all about the fish, which would have promptly spoiled had not the
-indefatigable Mary prepared them for drying and rigged up the “flake”
-herself on which to dry them.
-
-Mary had a diabolical inspiration. She flew to the “flake” and seized
-the largest fish there—a huge, flat thing, nearly as big as herself.
-With a whoop she swooped down on the terrified Rilla, brandishing her
-weird missile. Rilla’s courage gave way. To be lambasted with a dried
-codfish was such an unheard-of thing that Rilla could not face it. With
-a shriek she dropped her basket and fled. The beautiful berries, which
-Susan had so tenderly selected for the minister, rolled in a rosy
-torrent over the dusty road and were trodden on by the flying feet of
-pursuer and pursued. The basket and contents were no longer in Mary’s
-mind. She thought only of the delight of giving Rilla Blythe the scare
-of her life. She would teach _her_ to come giving herself airs because
-of her fine clothes.
-
-Rilla flew down the hill and along the street. Terror lent wings to her
-feet, and she just managed to keep ahead of Mary, who was somewhat
-hampered by her own laughter, but who had breath enough to give
-occasional blood-curdling whoops as she ran, flourishing her codfish in
-the air. Through the Glen street they swept, while everybody ran to the
-windows and gates to see them. Mary felt she was making a tremendous
-sensation and enjoyed it. Rilla, blind with terror and spent of breath,
-felt that she could run no longer. In another instant that terrible
-girl would be on her with the codfish. At this point the poor mite
-stumbled and fell into the mud-puddle at the end of the street just as
-Miss Cornelia came out of Carter Flagg’s store.
-
-Miss Cornelia took the whole situation in at a glance. So did Mary. The
-latter stopped short in her mad career and before Miss Cornelia could
-speak she had whirled around and was running up as fast as she had run
-down. Miss Cornelia’s lips tightened ominously, but she knew it was no
-use to think of chasing her. So she picked up poor, sobbing,
-dishevelled Rilla instead and took her home. Rilla was heart-broken.
-Her dress and slippers and hat were ruined and her six year old pride
-had received terrible bruises.
-
-Susan, white with indignation, heard Miss Cornelia’s story of Mary
-Vance’s exploit.
-
-“Oh, the hussy—oh, the littly hussy!” she said, as she carried Rilla
-away for purification and comfort.
-
-“This thing has gone far enough, Anne dearie,” said Miss Cornelia
-resolutely. “Something must be done. _Who_ is this creature who is
-staying at the manse and where does she come from?”
-
-“I understood she was a little girl from over-harbour who was visiting
-at the manse,” answered Anne, who saw the comical side of the codfish
-chase and secretly thought Rilla was rather vain and needed a lesson or
-two.
-
-“I know all the over-harbour families who come to our church and that
-imp doesn’t belong to any of them,” retorted Miss Cornelia. “She is
-almost in rags and when she goes to church she wears Faith Meredith’s
-old clothes. There’s some mystery here, and I’m going to investigate
-it, since it seems nobody else will. I believe she was at the bottom of
-their goings-on in Warren Mead’s spruce bush the other day. Did you
-hear of their frightening his mother into a fit?”
-
-“No. I knew Gilbert had been called to see her, but I did not hear what
-the trouble was.”
-
-“Well, you know she has a weak heart. And one day last week, when she
-was all alone on the veranda, she heard the most awful shrieks of
-‘murder’ and ‘help’ coming from the bush—positively frightful sounds,
-Anne dearie. Her heart gave out at once. Warren heard them himself at
-the barn, and went straight to the bush to investigate, and there he
-found all the manse children sitting on a fallen tree and screaming
-‘murder’ at the top of their lungs. They told him they were only in fun
-and didn’t think anyone would hear them. They were just playing Indian
-ambush. Warren went back to the house and found his poor mother
-unconscious on the veranda.”
-
-Susan, who had returned, sniffed contemptuously.
-
-“I think she was very far from being unconscious, Mrs. Marshall
-Elliott, and that you may tie to. I have been hearing of Amelia
-Warren’s weak heart for forty years. She had it when she was twenty.
-She enjoys making a fuss and having the doctor, and any excuse will
-do.”
-
-“I don’t think Gilbert thought her attack very serious,” said Anne.
-
-“Oh, that may very well be,” said Miss Cornelia. “But the matter has
-made an awful lot of talk and the Meads being Methodists makes it that
-much worse. What is going to become of those children? Sometimes I
-can’t sleep at nights for thinking about them, Anne dearie. I really do
-question if they get enough to eat, even, for their father is so lost
-in dreams that he doesn’t often remember he has a stomach, and that
-lazy old woman doesn’t bother cooking what she ought. They are just
-running wild and now that school is closing they’ll be worse than
-ever.”
-
-“They do have jolly times,” said Anne, laughing over the recollections
-of some Rainbow Valley happenings that had come to her ears. “And they
-are all brave and frank and loyal and truthful.”
-
-“That’s a true word, Anne dearie, and when you come to think of all the
-trouble in the church those two tattling, deceitful youngsters of the
-last minister’s made, I’m inclined to overlook a good deal in the
-Merediths.”
-
-“When all is said and done, Mrs. Dr. dear, they are very nice
-children,” said Susan. “They have got plenty of original sin in them
-and that I will admit, but maybe it is just as well, for if they had
-not they might spoil from over-sweetness. Only I do think it is not
-proper for them to play in a graveyard and that I will maintain.”
-
-“But they really play quite quietly there,” excused Anne. “They don’t
-run and yell as they do elsewhere. Such howls as drift up here from
-Rainbow Valley sometimes! Though I fancy my own small fry bear a
-valiant part in them. They had a sham battle there last night and had
-to ‘roar’ themselves, because they had no artillery to do it, so Jem
-says. Jem is passing through the stage where all boys hanker to be
-soldiers.”
-
-“Well, thank goodness, he’ll never be a soldier,” said Miss Cornelia.
-“I never approved of our boys going to that South African fracas. But
-it’s over, and not likely anything of the kind will ever happen again.
-I think the world is getting more sensible. As for the Merediths, I’ve
-said many a time and I say it again, if Mr. Meredith had a wife all
-would be well.”
-
-“He called twice at the Kirks’ last week, so I am told,” said Susan.
-
-“Well,” said Miss Cornelia thoughtfully, “as a rule, I don’t approve of
-a minister marrying in his congregation. It generally spoils him. But
-in this case it would do no harm, for every one likes Elizabeth Kirk
-and nobody else is hankering for the job of stepmothering those
-youngsters. Even the Hill girls balk at that. They haven’t been found
-laying traps for Mr. Meredith. Elizabeth would make him a good wife if
-he only thought so. But the trouble is, she really is homely and, Anne
-dearie, Mr. Meredith, abstracted as he is, has an eye for a
-good-looking woman, man-like. He isn’t _so_ other-worldly when it comes
-to that, believe _me_.”
-
-“Elizabeth Kirk is a very nice person, but they do say that people have
-nearly frozen to death in her mother’s spare-room bed before now, Mrs.
-Dr. dear,” said Susan darkly. “If I felt I had any right to express an
-opinion concerning such a solemn matter as a minister’s marriage I
-would say that I think Elizabeth’s cousin Sarah, over-harbour, would
-make Mr. Meredith a better wife.”
-
-“Why, Sarah Kirk is a Methodist,” said Miss Cornelia, much as if Susan
-had suggested a Hottentot as a manse bride.
-
-“She would likely turn Presbyterian if she married Mr. Meredith,”
-retorted Susan.
-
-Miss Cornelia shook her head. Evidently with her it was, once a
-Methodist, always a Methodist.
-
-“Sarah Kirk is entirely out of the question,” she said positively. “And
-so is Emmeline Drew—though the Drews are all trying to make the match.
-They are literally throwing poor Emmeline at his head, and he hasn’t
-the least idea of it.”
-
-“Emmeline Drew has no gumption, I must allow,” said Susan. “She is the
-kind of woman, Mrs. Dr. dear, who would put a hot-water bottle in your
-bed on a dog-night and then have her feelings hurt because you were not
-grateful. And her mother was a very poor housekeeper. Did you ever hear
-the story of her dishcloth? She lost her dishcloth one day. But the
-next day she found it. Oh, yes, Mrs. Dr. dear, she found it, in the
-goose at the dinner-table, mixed up with the stuffing. Do you think a
-woman like that would do for a minister’s mother-in-law? I do not. But
-no doubt I would be better employed in mending little Jem’s trousers
-than in talking gossip about my neighbours. He tore them something
-scandalous last night in Rainbow Valley.”
-
-“Where is Walter?” asked Anne.
-
-“He is up to no good, I fear, Mrs. Dr. dear. He is in the attic writing
-something in an exercise book. And he has not done as well in
-arithmetic this term as he should, so the teacher tells me. Too well I
-know the reason why. He has been writing silly rhymes when he should
-have been doing his sums. I am afraid that boy is going to be a poet,
-Mrs. Dr. dear.”
-
-“He is a poet now, Susan.”
-
-“Well, you take it real calm, Mrs. Dr. dear. I suppose it is the best
-way, when a person has the strength. I had an uncle who began by being
-a poet and ended up by being a tramp. Our family were dreadfully
-ashamed of him.”
-
-“You don’t seem to think very highly of poets, Susan,” said Anne,
-laughing.
-
-“Who does, Mrs. Dr. dear?” asked Susan in genuine astonishment.
-
-“What about Milton and Shakespeare? And the poets of the Bible?”
-
-“They tell me Milton could not get along with his wife, and Shakespeare
-was no more than respectable by times. As for the Bible, of course
-things were different in those sacred days—although I never had a high
-opinion of King David, say what you will. I never knew any good to come
-of writing poetry, and I hope and pray that blessed boy will outgrow
-the tendency. If he does not—we must see what emulsion of cod-liver oil
-will do.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII.
-MISS CORNELIA INTERVENES
-
-
-Miss Cornelia descended upon the manse the next day and
-cross-questioned Mary, who, being a young person of considerable
-discernment and astuteness, told her story simple and truthfully, with
-an entire absence of complaint or bravado. Miss Cornelia was more
-favourably impressed than she had expected to be, but deemed it her
-duty to be severe.
-
-“Do you think,” she said sternly, “that you showed your gratitude to
-this family, who have been far too kind to you, by insulting and
-chasing one of their little friends as you did yesterday?”
-
-“Say, it was rotten mean of me,” admitted Mary easily. “I dunno what
-possessed me. That old codfish seemed to come in so blamed handy. But I
-was awful sorry—I cried last night after I went to bed about it, honest
-I did. You ask Una if I didn’t. I wouldn’t tell her what for ‘cause I
-was ashamed of it, and then she cried, too, because she was afraid
-someone had hurt my feelings. Laws, _I_ ain’t got any feelings to hurt
-worth speaking of. What worries me is why Mrs. Wiley hain’t been
-hunting for me. It ain’t like her.”
-
-Miss Cornelia herself thought it rather peculiar, but she merely
-admonished Mary sharply not to take any further liberties with the
-minister’s codfish, and went to report progress at Ingleside.
-
-“If the child’s story is true the matter ought to be looked into,” she
-said. “I know something about that Wiley woman, believe _me_. Marshall
-used to be well acquainted with her when he lived over-harbour. I heard
-him say something last summer about her and a home child she had—likely
-this very Mary-creature. He said some one told him she was working the
-child to death and not half feeding and clothing it. You know, Anne
-dearie, it has always been my habit neither to make nor meddle with
-those over-harbour folks. But I shall send Marshall over to-morrow to
-find out the rights of this if he can. And _then_ I’ll speak to the
-minister. Mind you, Anne dearie, the Merediths found this girl
-literally starving in James Taylor’s old hay barn. She had been there
-all night, cold and hungry and alone. And us sleeping warm in our beds
-after good suppers.”
-
-“The poor little thing,” said Anne, picturing one of her own dear
-babies, cold and hungry and alone in such circumstances. “If she has
-been ill-used, Miss Cornelia, she mustn’t be taken back to such a
-place. _I_ was an orphan once in a very similar situation.”
-
-“We’ll have to consult the Hopetown asylum folks,” said Miss Cornelia.
-“Anyway, she can’t be left at the manse. Dear knows what those poor
-children might learn from her. I understand that she has been known to
-swear. But just think of her being there two whole weeks and Mr
-Meredith never waking up to it! What business has a man like that to
-have a family? Why, Anne dearie, he ought to be a monk.”
-
-Two evenings later Miss Cornelia was back at Ingleside.
-
-“It’s the most amazing thing!” she said. “Mrs. Wiley was found dead in
-her bed the very morning after this Mary-creature ran away. She has had
-a bad heart for years and the doctor had warned her it might happen at
-any time. She had sent away her hired man and there was nobody in the
-house. Some neighbours found her the next day. They missed the child,
-it seems, but supposed Mrs. Wiley had sent her to her cousin near
-Charlottetown as she had said she was going to do. The cousin didn’t
-come to the funeral and so nobody ever knew that Mary wasn’t with her.
-The people Marshall talked to told him some things about the way Mrs.
-Wiley used this Mary that made his blood boil, so he declares. You
-know, it puts Marshall in a regular fury to hear of a child being
-ill-used. They said she whipped her mercilessly for every little fault
-or mistake. Some folks talked of writing to the asylum authorities but
-everybody’s business is nobody’s business and it was never done.”
-
-“I am sorry that Wiley person is dead,” said Susan fiercely. “I should
-like to go over-harbour and give her a piece of my mind. Starving and
-beating a child, Mrs. Dr. dear! As you know, I hold with lawful
-spanking, but I go no further. And what is to become of this poor child
-now, Mrs. Marshall Elliott?”
-
-“I suppose she must be sent back to Hopetown,” said Miss Cornelia. “I
-think every one hereabouts who wants a home child has one. I’ll see Mr.
-Meredith to-morrow and tell him my opinion of the whole affair.”
-
-“And no doubt she will, Mrs. Dr. dear,” said Susan, after Miss Cornelia
-had gone. “She would stick at nothing, not even at shingling the church
-spire if she took it into her head. But I cannot understand how even
-Cornelia Bryant can talk to a minister as she does. You would think he
-was just any common person.”
-
-When Miss Cornelia had gone, Nan Blythe uncurled herself from the
-hammock where she had been studying her lessons and slipped away to
-Rainbow Valley. The others were already there. Jem and Jerry were
-playing quoits with old horseshoes borrowed from the Glen blacksmith.
-Carl was stalking ants on a sunny hillock. Walter, lying on his stomach
-among the fern, was reading aloud to Mary and Di and Faith and Una from
-a wonderful book of myths wherein were fascinating accounts of Prester
-John and the Wandering Jew, divining rods and tailed men, of Schamir,
-the worm that split rocks and opened the way to golden treasure, of
-Fortunate Isles and swan-maidens. It was a great shock to Walter to
-learn that William Tell and Gelert were myths also; and the story of
-Bishop Hatto was to keep him awake all that night; but best of all he
-loved the stories of the Pied Piper and the San Greal. He read them
-thrillingly, while the bells on the Tree Lovers tinkled in the summer
-wind and the coolness of the evening shadows crept across the valley.
-
-“Say, ain’t them in’resting lies?” said Mary admiringly when Walter had
-closed the book.
-
-“They aren’t lies,” said Di indignantly.
-
-“You don’t mean they’re true?” asked Mary incredulously.
-
-“No—not exactly. They’re like those ghost-stories of yours. They
-weren’t true—but you didn’t expect us to believe them, so they weren’t
-lies.”
-
-“That yarn about the divining rod is no lie, anyhow,” said Mary. “Old
-Jake Crawford over-harbour can work it. They send for him from
-everywhere when they want to dig a well. And I believe I know the
-Wandering Jew.”
-
-“Oh, Mary,” said Una, awe-struck.
-
-“I do—true’s you’re alive. There was an old man at Mrs. Wiley’s one day
-last fall. He looked old enough to be _anything_. She was asking him
-about cedar posts, if he thought they’d last well. And he said, ‘Last
-well? They’ll last a thousand years. I know, for I’ve tried them
-twice.’ Now, if he was two thousand years old who was he but your
-Wandering Jew?”
-
-“I don’t believe the Wandering Jew would associate with a person like
-Mrs. Wiley,” said Faith decidedly.
-
-“I love the Pied Piper story,” said Di, “and so does mother. I always
-feel so sorry for the poor little lame boy who couldn’t keep up with
-the others and got shut out of the mountain. He must have been so
-disappointed. I think all the rest of his life he’d be wondering what
-wonderful thing he had missed and wishing he could have got in with the
-others.”
-
-“But how glad his mother must have been,” said Una softly. “I think she
-had been sorry all her life that he was lame. Perhaps she even used to
-cry about it. But she would never be sorry again—never. She would be
-glad he was lame because that was why she hadn’t lost him.”
-
-“Some day,” said Walter dreamily, looking afar into the sky, “the Pied
-Piper will come over the hill up there and down Rainbow Valley, piping
-merrily and sweetly. And I will follow him—follow him down to the
-shore—down to the sea—away from you all. I don’t think I’ll want to
-go—Jem will want to go—it will be such an adventure—but I won’t. Only
-I’ll _have_ to—the music will call and call and call me until I _must_
-follow.”
-
-“We’ll all go,” cried Di, catching fire at the flame of Walter’s fancy,
-and half-believing she could see the mocking, retreating figure of the
-mystic piper in the far, dim end of the valley.
-
-“No. You’ll sit here and wait,” said Walter, his great, splendid eyes
-full of strange glamour. “You’ll wait for us to come back. And we may
-not come—for we cannot come as long as the Piper plays. He may pipe us
-round the world. And still you’ll sit here and wait—and _wait_.”
-
-“Oh, dry up,” said Mary, shivering. “Don’t look like that, Walter
-Blythe. You give me the creeps. Do you want to set me bawling? I could
-just see that horrid old Piper going away on, and you boys following
-him, and us girls sitting here waiting all alone. I dunno why it is—I
-never was one of the blubbering kind—but as soon as you start your
-spieling I always want to cry.”
-
-Walter smiled in triumph. He liked to exercise this power of his over
-his companions—to play on their feelings, waken their fears, thrill
-their souls. It satisfied some dramatic instinct in him. But under his
-triumph was a queer little chill of some mysterious dread. The Pied
-Piper had seemed very real to him—as if the fluttering veil that hid
-the future had for a moment been blown aside in the starlit dusk of
-Rainbow Valley and some dim glimpse of coming years granted to him.
-
-Carl, coming up to their group with a report of the doings in ant-land,
-brought them all back to the realm of facts.
-
-“Ants _are_ darned in’resting,” exclaimed Mary, glad to escape the
-shadowy Piper’s thrall. “Carl and me watched that bed in the graveyard
-all Saturday afternoon. I never thought there was so much in bugs. Say,
-but they’re quarrelsome little cusses—some of ‘em like to start a fight
-‘thout any reason, far’s we could see. And some of ‘em are cowards.
-They got so scared they just doubled theirselves up into a ball and let
-the other fellows bang ‘em. They wouldn’t put up a fight at all. Some
-of ‘em are lazy and won’t work. We watched ‘em shirking. And there was
-one ant died of grief ‘cause another ant got killed—wouldn’t
-work—wouldn’t eat—just died—it did, honest to Go—oodness.”
-
-A shocked silence prevailed. Every one knew that Mary had not started
-out to say “goodness.” Faith and Di exchanged glances that would have
-done credit to Miss Cornelia herself. Walter and Carl looked
-uncomfortable and Una’s lip trembled.
-
-Mary squirmed uncomfortably.
-
-“That slipped out ‘fore I thought—it did, honest to—I mean, true’s you
-live, and I swallowed half of it. You folks over here are mighty
-squeamish seems to me. Wish you could have heard the Wileys when they
-had a fight.”
-
-“Ladies don’t say such things,” said Faith, very primly for her.
-
-“It isn’t right,” whispered Una.
-
-“I ain’t a lady,” said Mary. “What chance’ve I ever had of being a
-lady? But I won’t say that again if I can help it. I promise you.”
-
-“Besides,” said Una, “you can’t expect God to answer your prayers if
-you take His name in vain, Mary.”
-
-“I don’t expect Him to answer ‘em anyhow,” said Mary of little faith.
-“I’ve been asking Him for a week to clear up this Wiley affair and He
-hasn’t done a thing. I’m going to give up.”
-
-At this juncture Nan arrived breathless.
-
-“Oh, Mary, I’ve news for you. Mrs. Elliott has been over-harbour and
-what do you think she found out? Mrs. Wiley is dead—she was found dead
-in bed the morning after you ran away. So you’ll never have to go back
-to her.”
-
-“Dead!” said Mary stupefied. Then she shivered.
-
-“Do you s’pose my praying had anything to do with that?” she cried
-imploringly to Una. “If it had I’ll never pray again as long as I live.
-Why, she may come back and ha’nt me.”
-
-“No, no, Mary,” said Una comfortingly, “it hadn’t. Why, Mrs. Wiley died
-long before you ever began to pray about it at all.”
-
-“That’s so,” said Mary recovering from her panic. “But I tell you it
-gave me a start. I wouldn’t like to think I’d prayed anybody to death.
-I never thought of such a thing as her dying when I was praying. She
-didn’t seem much like the dying kind. Did Mrs. Elliott say anything
-about me?”
-
-“She said you would likely have to go back to the asylum.”
-
-“I thought as much,” said Mary drearily. “And then they’ll give me out
-again—likely to some one just like Mrs. Wiley. Well, I s’pose I can
-stand it. I’m tough.”
-
-“I’m going to pray that you won’t have to go back,” whispered Una, as
-she and Mary walked home to the manse.
-
-“You can do as you like,” said Mary decidedly, “but I vow _I_ won’t.
-I’m good and scared of this praying business. See what’s come of it. If
-Mrs. Wiley _had_ died after I started praying it would have been my
-doings.”
-
-“Oh, no, it wouldn’t,” said Una. “I wish I could explain things
-better—father could, I know, if you’d talk to him, Mary.”
-
-“Catch me! I don’t know what to make of your father, that’s the long
-and short of it. He goes by me and never sees me in broad daylight. I
-ain’t proud—but I ain’t a door-mat, neither!”
-
-“Oh, Mary, it’s just father’s way. Most of the time he never sees us,
-either. He is thinking deeply, that is all. And I _am_ going to pray
-that God will keep you in Four Winds—because I like you, Mary.”
-
-“All right. Only don’t let me hear of any more people dying on account
-of it,” said Mary. “I’d like to stay in Four Winds fine. I like it and
-I like the harbour and the light house—and you and the Blythes. You’re
-the only friends I ever had and I’d hate to leave you.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX.
-UNA INTERVENES
-
-
-Miss Cornelia had an interview with Mr. Meredith which proved something
-of a shock to that abstracted gentleman. She pointed out to him, none
-too respectfully, his dereliction of duty in allowing a waif like Mary
-Vance to come into his family and associate with his children without
-knowing or learning anything about her.
-
-“I don’t say there is much harm done, of course,” she concluded. “This
-Mary-creature isn’t what you might call bad, when all is said and done.
-I’ve been questioning your children and the Blythes, and from what I
-can make out there’s nothing much to be said against the child except
-that she’s slangy and doesn’t use very refined language. But think what
-might have happened if she’d been like some of those home children we
-know of. You know yourself what that poor little creature the Jim
-Flaggs’ had, taught and told the Flagg children.”
-
-Mr. Meredith did know and was honestly shocked over his own
-carelessness in the matter.
-
-“But what is to be done, Mrs. Elliott?” he asked helplessly. “We can’t
-turn the poor child out. She must be cared for.”
-
-“Of course. We’d better write to the Hopetown authorities at once.
-Meanwhile, I suppose she might as well stay here for a few more days
-till we hear from them. But keep your eyes and ears open, Mr.
-Meredith.”
-
-Susan would have died of horror on the spot if she had heard Miss
-Cornelia so admonishing a minister. But Miss Cornelia departed in a
-warm glow of satisfaction over duty done, and that night Mr. Meredith
-asked Mary to come into his study with him. Mary obeyed, looking
-literally ghastly with fright. But she got the surprise of her poor,
-battered little life. This man, of whom she had stood so terribly in
-awe, was the kindest, gentlest soul she had ever met. Before she knew
-what happened Mary found herself pouring all her troubles into his ear
-and receiving in return such sympathy and tender understanding as it
-had never occurred to her to imagine. Mary left the study with her face
-and eyes so softened that Una hardly knew her.
-
-“Your father’s all right, when he does wake up,” she said with a sniff
-that just escaped being a sob. “It’s a pity he doesn’t wake up oftener.
-He said I wasn’t to blame for Mrs. Wiley dying, but that I must try to
-think of her good points and not of her bad ones. I dunno what good
-points she had, unless it was keeping her house clean and making
-first-class butter. I know I ‘most wore my arms out scrubbing her old
-kitchen floor with the knots in it. But anything your father says goes
-with me after this.”
-
-Mary proved a rather dull companion in the following days, however. She
-confided to Una that the more she thought of going back to the asylum
-the more she hated it. Una racked her small brains for some way of
-averting it, but it was Nan Blythe who came to the rescue with a
-somewhat startling suggestion.
-
-“Mrs. Elliott might take Mary herself. She has a great big house and
-Mr. Elliott is always wanting her to have help. It would be just a
-splendid place for Mary. Only she’d have to behave herself.”
-
-“Oh, Nan, do you think Mrs. Elliott would take her?”
-
-“It wouldn’t do any harm if you asked her,” said Nan. At first Una did
-not think she could. She was so shy that to ask a favour of anybody was
-agony to her. And she was very much in awe of the bustling, energetic
-Mrs. Elliott. She liked her very much and always enjoyed a visit to her
-house; but to go and ask her to adopt Mary Vance seemed such a height
-of presumption that Una’s timid spirit quailed.
-
-When the Hopetown authorities wrote to Mr. Meredith to send Mary to
-them without delay Mary cried herself to sleep in the manse attic that
-night and Una found a desperate courage. The next evening she slipped
-away from the manse to the harbour road. Far down in Rainbow Valley she
-heard joyous laughter but her way lay not there. She was terribly pale
-and terribly in earnest—so much so that she took no notice of the
-people she met—and old Mrs. Stanley Flagg was quite huffed and said Una
-Meredith would be as absentminded as her father when she grew up.
-
-Miss Cornelia lived half way between the Glen and Four Winds Point, in
-a house whose original glaring green hue had mellowed down to an
-agreeable greenish gray. Marshall Elliott had planted trees about it
-and set out a rose garden and a spruce hedge. It was quite a different
-place from what it had been in years agone. The manse children and the
-Ingleside children liked to go there. It was a beautiful walk down the
-old harbour road, and there was always a well-filled cooky jar at the
-end.
-
-The misty sea was lapping softly far down on the sands. Three big boats
-were skimming down the harbour like great white sea-birds. A schooner
-was coming up the channel. The world of Four Winds was steeped in
-glowing colour, and subtle music, and strange glamour, and everybody
-should have been happy in it. But when Una turned in at Miss Cornelia’s
-gate her very legs had almost refused to carry her.
-
-Miss Cornelia was alone on the veranda. Una had hoped Mr. Elliott would
-be there. He was so big and hearty and twinkly that there would be
-encouragement in his presence. She sat on the little stool Miss
-Cornelia brought out and tried to eat the doughnut Miss Cornelia gave
-her. It stuck in her throat, but she swallowed desperately lest Miss
-Cornelia be offended. She could not talk; she was still pale; and her
-big, dark-blue eyes looked so piteous that Miss Cornelia concluded the
-child was in some trouble.
-
-“What’s on your mind, dearie?” she asked. “There’s something, that’s
-plain to be seen.”
-
-Una swallowed the last twist of doughnut with a desperate gulp.
-
-“Mrs. Elliott, won’t you take Mary Vance?” she said beseechingly.
-
-Miss Cornelia stared blankly.
-
-“Me! Take Mary Vance! Do you mean keep her?”
-
-“Yes—keep her—adopt her,” said Una eagerly, gaining courage now that
-the ice was broken. “Oh, Mrs. Elliott, _please_ do. She doesn’t want to
-go back to the asylum—she cries every night about it. She’s so afraid
-of being sent to another hard place. And she’s _so_ smart—there isn’t
-anything she can’t do. I know you wouldn’t be sorry if you took her.”
-
-“I never thought of such a thing,” said Miss Cornelia rather
-helplessly.
-
-“_Won’t_ you think of it?” implored Una.
-
-“But, dearie, I don’t want help. I’m quite able to do all the work
-here. And I never thought I’d like to have a home girl if I did need
-help.”
-
-The light went out of Una’s eyes. Her lips trembled. She sat down on
-her stool again, a pathetic little figure of disappointment, and began
-to cry.
-
-“Don’t—dearie—don’t,” exclaimed Miss Cornelia in distress. She could
-never bear to hurt a child. “I don’t say I _won’t_ take her—but the
-idea is so new it has just kerflummuxed me. I must think it over.”
-
-“Mary is _so_ smart,” said Una again.
-
-“Humph! So I’ve heard. I’ve heard she swears, too. Is that true?”
-
-“I’ve never heard her swear _exactly_,” faltered Una uncomfortably.
-“But I’m afraid she _could_.”
-
-“I believe you! Does she always tell the truth?”
-
-“I think she does, except when she’s afraid of a whipping.”
-
-“And yet you want me to take her!”
-
-“_Some one_ has to take her,” sobbed Una. “_Some one_ has to look after
-her, Mrs. Elliott.”
-
-“That’s true. Perhaps it _is_ my duty to do it,” said Miss Cornelia
-with a sigh. “Well, I’ll have to talk it over with Mr. Elliott. So
-don’t say anything about it just yet. Take another doughnut, dearie.”
-
-Una took it and ate it with a better appetite.
-
-“I’m very fond of doughnuts,” she confessed “Aunt Martha never makes
-any. But Miss Susan at Ingleside does, and sometimes she lets us have a
-plateful in Rainbow Valley. Do you know what I do when I’m hungry for
-doughnuts and can’t get any, Mrs. Elliott?”
-
-“No, dearie. What?”
-
-“I get out mother’s old cook book and read the doughnut recipe—and the
-other recipes. They sound _so_ nice. I always do that when I’m
-hungry—especially after we’ve had ditto for dinner. _Then_ I read the
-fried chicken and the roast goose recipes. Mother could make all those
-nice things.”
-
-“Those manse children will starve to death yet if Mr. Meredith doesn’t
-get married,” Miss Cornelia told her husband indignantly after Una had
-gone. “And he won’t—and what’s to be done? And _shall_ we take this
-Mary-creature, Marshall?”
-
-“Yes, take her,” said Marshall laconically.
-
-“Just like a man,” said his wife, despairingly. “‘Take her’—as if that
-was all. There are a hundred things to be considered, believe _me_.”
-
-“Take her—and we’ll consider them afterwards, Cornelia,” said her
-husband.
-
-In the end Miss Cornelia did take her and went up to announce her
-decision to the Ingleside people first.
-
-“Splendid!” said Anne delightedly. “I’ve been hoping you would do that
-very thing, Miss Cornelia. I want that poor child to get a good home. I
-was a homeless little orphan just like her once.”
-
-“I don’t think this Mary-creature is or ever will be much like you,”
-retorted Miss Cornelia gloomily. “She’s a cat of another colour. But
-she’s also a human being with an immortal soul to save. I’ve got a
-shorter catechism and a small tooth comb and I’m going to do my duty by
-her, now that I’ve set my hand to the plough, believe me.”
-
-Mary received the news with chastened satisfaction.
-
-“It’s better luck than I expected,” she said.
-
-“You’ll have to mind your p’s and q’s with Mrs. Elliott,” said Nan.
-
-“Well, I can do that,” flashed Mary. “I know how to behave when I want
-to just as well as you, Nan Blythe.”
-
-“You mustn’t use bad words, you know, Mary,” said Una anxiously.
-
-“I s’pose she’d die of horror if I did,” grinned Mary, her white eyes
-shining with unholy glee over the idea. “But you needn’t worry, Una.
-Butter won’t melt in my mouth after this. I’ll be all prunes and
-prisms.”
-
-“Nor tell lies,” added Faith.
-
-“Not even to get off from a whipping?” pleaded Mary.
-
-“Mrs. Elliott will _never_ whip you—_never_,” exclaimed Di.
-
-“Won’t she?” said Mary skeptically. “If I ever find myself in a place
-where I ain’t licked I’ll think it’s heaven all right. No fear of me
-telling lies then. I ain’t fond of telling ‘em—I’d ruther not, if it
-comes to that.”
-
-The day before Mary’s departure from the manse they had a picnic in her
-honour in Rainbow Valley, and that evening all the manse children gave
-her something from their scanty store of treasured things for a
-keepsake. Carl gave her his Noah’s ark and Jerry his second best
-jew’s-harp. Faith gave her a little hairbrush with a mirror in the back
-of it, which Mary had always considered very wonderful. Una hesitated
-between an old beaded purse and a gay picture of Daniel in the lion’s
-den, and finally offered Mary her choice. Mary really hankered after
-the beaded purse, but she knew Una loved it, so she said,
-
-“Give me Daniel. I’d rusher have it ‘cause I’m partial to lions. Only I
-wish they’d et Daniel up. It would have been more exciting.”
-
-At bedtime Mary coaxed Una to sleep with her.
-
-“It’s for the last time,” she said, “and it’s raining tonight, and I
-hate sleeping up there alone when it’s raining on account of that
-graveyard. I don’t mind it on fine nights, but a night like this I
-can’t see anything but the rain pouring down on them old white stones,
-and the wind round the window sounds as if them dead people were trying
-to get in and crying ‘cause they couldn’t.”
-
-“I like rainy nights,” said Una, when they were cuddled down together
-in the little attic room, “and so do the Blythe girls.”
-
-“I don’t mind ‘em when I’m not handy to graveyards,” said Mary. “If I
-was alone here I’d cry my eyes out I’d be so lonesome. I feel awful bad
-to be leaving you all.”
-
-“Mrs. Elliott will let you come up and play in Rainbow Valley quite
-often I’m sure,” said Una. “And you _will_ be a good girl, won’t you,
-Mary?”
-
-“Oh, I’ll try,” sighed Mary. “But it won’t be as easy for me to be
-good—inside, I mean, as well as outside—as it is for you. You hadn’t
-such scalawags of relations as I had.”
-
-“But your people must have had some good qualities as well as bad
-ones,” argued Una. “You must live up to them and never mind their bad
-ones.”
-
-“I don’t believe they had any good qualities,” said Mary gloomily. “I
-never heard of any. My grandfather had money, but they say he was a
-rascal. No, I’ll just have to start out on my own hook and do the best
-I can.”
-
-“And God will help you, you know, Mary, if you ask Him.”
-
-“I don’t know about that.”
-
-“Oh, Mary. You know we asked God to get a home for you and He did.”
-
-“I don’t see what He had to do with it,” retorted Mary. “It was you put
-it into Mrs. Elliott’s head.”
-
-“But God put it into her _heart_ to take you. All my putting it into
-her _head_ wouldn’t have done any good if He hadn’t.”
-
-“Well, there may be something in that,” admitted Mary. “Mind you, I
-haven’t got anything against God, Una. I’m willing to give Him a
-chance. But, honest, I think He’s an awful lot like your father—just
-absent-minded and never taking any notice of a body most of the time,
-but sometimes waking up all of a suddent and being awful good and kind
-and sensible.”
-
-“Oh, Mary, no!” exclaimed horrified Una. “God isn’t a bit like father—I
-mean He’s a thousand times better and kinder.”
-
-“If He’s as good as your father He’ll do for me,” said Mary. “When your
-father was talking to me I felt as if I never could be bad any more.”
-
-“I wish you’d talk to father about Him,” sighed Una. “He can explain it
-all so much better than I can.”
-
-“Why, so I will, next time he wakes up,” promised Mary. “That night he
-talked to me in the study he showed me real clear that my praying
-didn’t kill Mrs. Wiley. My mind’s been easy since, but I’m real
-cautious about praying. I guess the old rhyme is the safest. Say, Una,
-it seems to me if one has to pray to anybody it’d be better to pray to
-the devil than to God. God’s good, anyhow so you say, so He won’t do
-you any harm, but from all I can make out the devil needs to be
-pacified. I think the sensible way would be to say to _him_, ‘Good
-devil, please don’t tempt me. Just leave me alone, please.’ Now, don’t
-you?”
-
-“Oh, no, no, Mary. I’m sure it couldn’t be right to pray to the devil.
-And it wouldn’t do any good because he’s bad. It might aggravate him
-and he’d be worse than ever.”
-
-“Well, as to this God-matter,” said Mary stubbornly, “since you and I
-can’t settle it, there ain’t no use in talking more about it until
-we’ve a chanct to find out the rights of it. I’ll do the best I can
-alone till then.”
-
-“If mother was alive she could tell us everything,” said Una with a
-sigh.
-
-“I wisht she was alive,” said Mary. “I don’t know what’s going to
-become of you youngsters when I’m gone. Anyhow, _do_ try and keep the
-house a little tidy. The way people talks about it is scandalous. And
-the first thing you know your father will be getting married again and
-then your noses will be out of joint.”
-
-Una was startled. The idea of her father marrying again had never
-presented itself to her before. She did not like it and she lay silent
-under the chill of it.
-
-“Stepmothers are _awful_ creatures,” Mary went on. “I could make your
-blood run cold if I was to tell you all I know about ‘em. The Wilson
-kids across the road from Wiley’s had a stepmother. She was just as bad
-to ‘em as Mrs. Wiley was to me. It’ll be awful if you get a
-stepmother.”
-
-“I’m sure we won’t,” said Una tremulously. “Father won’t marry anybody
-else.”
-
-“He’ll be hounded into it, I expect,” said Mary darkly. “All the old
-maids in the settlement are after him. There’s no being up to them. And
-the worst of stepmothers is, they always set your father against you.
-He’d never care anything about you again. He’d always take her part and
-her children’s part. You see, she’d make him believe you were all bad.”
-
-“I wish you hadn’t told me this, Mary,” cried Una. “It makes me feel so
-unhappy.”
-
-“I only wanted to warn you,” said Mary, rather repentantly. “Of course,
-your father’s so absent-minded he mightn’t happen to think of getting
-married again. But it’s better to be prepared.”
-
-Long after Mary slept serenely little Una lay awake, her eyes smarting
-with tears. On, how dreadful it would be if her father should marry
-somebody who would make him hate her and Jerry and Faith and Carl! She
-couldn’t bear it—she couldn’t!
-
-Mary had not instilled any poison of the kind Miss Cornelia had feared
-into the manse children’s minds. Yet she had certainly contrived to do
-a little mischief with the best of intentions. But she slept
-dreamlessly, while Una lay awake and the rain fell and the wind wailed
-around the old gray manse. And the Rev. John Meredith forgot to go to
-bed at all because he was absorbed in reading a life of St. Augustine.
-It was gray dawn when he finished it and went upstairs, wrestling with
-the problems of two thousand years ago. The door of the girls’ room was
-open and he saw Faith lying asleep, rosy and beautiful. He wondered
-where Una was. Perhaps she had gone over to “stay all night” with the
-Blythe girls. She did this occasionally, deeming it a great treat. John
-Meredith sighed. He felt that Una’s whereabouts ought not to be a
-mystery to him. Cecelia would have looked after her better than that.
-
-If only Cecelia were still with him! How pretty and gay she had been!
-How the old manse up at Maywater had echoed to her songs! And she had
-gone away so suddenly, taking her laughter and music and leaving
-silence—so suddenly that he had never quite got over his feeling of
-amazement. How could _she_, the beautiful and vivid, have died?
-
-The idea of a second marriage had never presented itself seriously to
-John Meredith. He had loved his wife so deeply that he believed he
-could never care for any woman again. He had a vague idea that before
-very long Faith would be old enough to take her mother’s place. Until
-then, he must do the best he could alone. He sighed and went to his
-room, where the bed was still unmade. Aunt Martha had forgotten it, and
-Mary had not dared to make it because Aunt Martha had forbidden her to
-meddle with anything in the minister’s room. But Mr. Meredith did not
-notice that it was unmade. His last thoughts were of St. Augustine.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X.
-THE MANSE GIRLS CLEAN HOUSE
-
-
-“Ugh,” said Faith, sitting up in bed with a shiver. “It’s raining. I do
-hate a rainy Sunday. Sunday is dull enough even when it’s fine.”
-
-“We oughtn’t to find Sunday dull,” said Una sleepily, trying to pull
-her drowsy wits together with an uneasy conviction that they had
-overslept.
-
-“But we _do_, you know,” said Faith candidly. “Mary Vance says most
-Sundays are so dull she could hang herself.”
-
-“We ought to like Sunday better than Mary Vance,” said Una
-remorsefully. “We’re the minister’s children.”
-
-“I wish we were a blacksmith’s children,” protested Faith angrily,
-hunting for her stockings. “_Then_ people wouldn’t expect us to be
-better than other children. _Just_ look at the holes in my heels. Mary
-darned them all up before she went away, but they’re as bad as ever
-now. Una, get up. I can’t get the breakfast alone. Oh, dear. I wish
-father and Jerry were home. You wouldn’t think we’d miss father much—we
-don’t see much of him when he is home. And yet _everything_ seems gone.
-I must run in and see how Aunt Martha is.”
-
-“Is she any better?” asked Una, when Faith returned.
-
-“No, she isn’t. She’s groaning with the misery still. Maybe we ought to
-tell Dr. Blythe. But she says not—she never had a doctor in her life
-and she isn’t going to begin now. She says doctors just live by
-poisoning people. Do you suppose they do?”
-
-“No, of course not,” said Una indignantly. “I’m sure Dr. Blythe
-wouldn’t poison anybody.”
-
-“Well, we’ll have to rub Aunt Martha’s back again after breakfast. We’d
-better not make the flannels as hot as we did yesterday.”
-
-Faith giggled over the remembrance. They had nearly scalded the skin
-off poor Aunt Martha’s back. Una sighed. Mary Vance would have known
-just what the precise temperature of flannels for a misery back should
-be. Mary knew everything. They knew nothing. And how could they learn,
-save by bitter experience for which, in this instance, unfortunate Aunt
-Martha had paid?
-
-The preceding Monday Mr. Meredith had left for Nova Scotia to spend his
-short vacation, taking Jerry with him. On Wednesday Aunt Martha was
-suddenly seized with a recurring and mysterious ailment which she
-always called “the misery,” and which was tolerably certain to attack
-her at the most inconvenient times. She could not rise from her bed,
-any movement causing agony. A doctor she flatly refused to have. Faith
-and Una cooked the meals and waited on her. The less said about the
-meals the better—yet they were not much worse than Aunt Martha’s had
-been. There were many women in the village who would have been glad to
-come and help, but Aunt Martha refused to let her plight be known.
-
-“You must worry on till I kin git around,” she groaned. “Thank
-goodness, John isn’t here. There’s a plenty o’ cold biled meat and
-bread and you kin try your hand at making porridge.”
-
-The girls had tried their hand, but so far without much success. The
-first day it had been too thin. The next day so thick that you could
-cut it in slices. And both days it had been burned.
-
-“I hate porridge,” said Faith viciously. “When I have a house of my own
-I’m _never_ going to have a single bit of porridge in it.”
-
-“What’ll your children do then?” asked Una. “Children have to have
-porridge or they won’t grow. Everybody says so.”
-
-“They’ll have to get along without it or stay runts,” retorted Faith
-stubbornly. “Here, Una, you stir it while I set the table. If I leave
-it for a minute the horrid stuff will burn. It’s half past nine. We’ll
-be late for Sunday School.”
-
-“I haven’t seen anyone going past yet,” said Una. “There won’t likely
-be many out. Just see how it’s pouring. And when there’s no preaching
-the folks won’t come from a distance to bring the children.”
-
-“Go and call Carl,” said Faith.
-
-Carl, it appeared, had a sore throat, induced by getting wet in the
-Rainbow Valley marsh the previous evening while pursuing dragon-flies.
-He had come home with dripping stockings and boots and had sat out the
-evening in them. He could not eat any breakfast and Faith made him go
-back to bed again. She and Una left the table as it was and went to
-Sunday School. There was no one in the school room when they got there
-and no one came. They waited until eleven and then went home.
-
-“There doesn’t seem to be anybody at the Methodist Sunday School
-either,” said Una.
-
-“I’m _glad_,” said Faith. “I’d hate to think the Methodists were better
-at going to Sunday School on rainy Sundays than the Presbyterians. But
-there’s no preaching in their Church to-day, either, so likely their
-Sunday School is in the afternoon.”
-
-Una washed the dishes, doing them quite nicely, for so much had she
-learned from Mary Vance. Faith swept the floor after a fashion and
-peeled the potatoes for dinner, cutting her finger in the process.
-
-“I wish we had something for dinner besides ditto,” sighed Una. “I’m so
-tired of it. The Blythe children don’t know what ditto is. And we
-_never_ have any pudding. Nan says Susan would faint if they had no
-pudding on Sundays. Why aren’t we like other people, Faith?”
-
-“I don’t want to be like other people,” laughed Faith, tying up her
-bleeding finger. “I like being myself. It’s more interesting. Jessie
-Drew is as good a housekeeper as her mother, but would you want to be
-as stupid as she is?”
-
-“But our house isn’t right. Mary Vance says so. She says people talk
-about it being so untidy.”
-
-Faith had an inspiration.
-
-“We’ll clean it all up,” she cried. “We’ll go right to work to-morrow.
-It’s a real good chance when Aunt Martha is laid up and can’t interfere
-with us. We’ll have it all lovely and clean when father comes home,
-just like it was when Mary went away. _any one_ can sweep and dust and
-wash windows. People won’t be able to talk about us any more. Jem
-Blythe says it’s only old cats that talk, but their talk hurts just as
-much as anybody’s.”
-
-“I hope it will be fine to-morrow,” said Una, fired with enthusiasm.
-“Oh, Faith, it will be splendid to be all cleaned up and like other
-people.”
-
-“I hope Aunt Martha’s misery will last over to-morrow,” said Faith. “If
-it doesn’t we won’t get a single thing done.”
-
-Faith’s amiable wish was fulfilled. The next day found Aunt Martha
-still unable to rise. Carl, too, was still sick and easily prevailed on
-to stay in bed. Neither Faith nor Una had any idea how sick the boy
-really was; a watchful mother would have had a doctor without delay;
-but there was no mother, and poor little Carl, with his sore throat and
-aching head and crimson cheeks, rolled himself up in his twisted
-bedclothes and suffered alone, somewhat comforted by the companionship
-of a small green lizard in the pocket of his ragged nighty.
-
-The world was full of summer sunshine after the rain. It was a peerless
-day for house-cleaning and Faith and Una went gaily to work.
-
-“We’ll clean the dining-room and the parlour,” said Faith. “It wouldn’t
-do to meddle with the study, and it doesn’t matter much about the
-upstairs. The first thing is to take everything out.”
-
-Accordingly, everything was taken out. The furniture was piled on the
-veranda and lawn and the Methodist graveyard fence was gaily draped
-with rugs. An orgy of sweeping followed, with an attempt at dusting on
-Una’s part, while Faith washed the windows of the dining-room, breaking
-one pane and cracking two in the process. Una surveyed the streaked
-result dubiously.
-
-“They don’t look right, somehow,” she said. “Mrs. Elliott’s and Susan’s
-windows just shine and sparkle.”
-
-“Never mind. They let the sunshine through just as well,” said Faith
-cheerfully. “They _must_ be clean after all the soap and water I’ve
-used, and that’s the main thing. Now, it’s past eleven, so I’ll wipe up
-this mess on the floor and we’ll go outside. You dust the furniture and
-I’ll shake the rugs. I’m going to do it in the graveyard. I don’t want
-to send dust flying all over the lawn.”
-
-Faith enjoyed the rug shaking. To stand on Hezekiah Pollock’s
-tombstone, flapping and shaking rugs, was real fun. To be sure, Elder
-Abraham Clow and his wife, driving past in their capacious
-double-seated buggy, seemed to gaze at her in grim disapproval.
-
-“Isn’t that a terrible sight?” said Elder Abraham solemnly.
-
-“I would never have believed it if I hadn’t seen it with my own eyes,”
-said Mrs. Elder Abraham, more solemnly still.
-
-Faith waved a door mat cheerily at the Clow party. It did not worry her
-that the elder and his wife did not return her greeting. Everybody knew
-that Elder Abraham had never been known to smile since he had been
-appointed Superintendent of the Sunday School fourteen years
-previously. But it hurt her that Minnie and Adella Clow did not wave
-back. Faith liked Minnie and Adella. Next to the Blythes, they were her
-best friends in school and she always helped Adella with her sums. This
-was gratitude for you. Her friends cut her because she was shaking rugs
-in an old graveyard where, as Mary Vance said, not a living soul had
-been buried for years. Faith flounced around to the veranda, where she
-found Una grieved in spirit because the Clow girls had not waved to
-her, either.
-
-“I suppose they’re mad over something,” said Faith. “Perhaps they’re
-jealous because we play so much in Rainbow Valley with the Blythes.
-Well, just wait till school opens and Adella wants me to show her how
-to do her sums! We’ll get square then. Come on, let’s put the things
-back in. I’m tired to death and I don’t believe the rooms will look
-much better than before we started—though I shook out pecks of dust in
-the graveyard. I _hate_ house-cleaning.”
-
-It was two o’clock before the tired girls finished the two rooms. They
-got a dreary bite in the kitchen and intended to wash the dishes at
-once. But Faith happened to pick up a new story-book Di Blythe had lent
-her and was lost to the world until sunset. Una took a cup of rank tea
-up to Carl but found him asleep; so she curled herself up on Jerry’s
-bed and went to sleep too. Meanwhile, a weird story flew through Glen
-St. Mary and folks asked each other seriously what was to be done with
-those manse youngsters.
-
-“That is past laughing at, believe _me_,” said Miss Cornelia to her
-husband, with a heavy sigh. “I couldn’t believe it at first. Miranda
-Drew brought the story home from the Methodist Sunday School this
-afternoon and I simply scoffed at it. But Mrs. Elder Abraham says she
-and the Elder saw it with their own eyes.”
-
-“Saw what?” asked Marshall.
-
-“Faith and Una Meredith stayed home from Sunday School this morning and
-_cleaned house_,” said Miss Cornelia, in accents of despair. “When
-Elder Abraham went home from the church—he had stayed behind to
-straighten out the library books—he saw them shaking rugs in the
-Methodist graveyard. I can never look a Methodist in the face again.
-Just think what a scandal it will make!”
-
-A scandal it assuredly did make, growing more scandalous as it spread,
-until the over-harbour people heard that the manse children had not
-only cleaned house and put out a washing on Sunday, but had wound up
-with an afternoon picnic in the graveyard while the Methodist Sunday
-School was going on. The only household which remained in blissful
-ignorance of the terrible thing was the manse itself; on what Faith and
-Una fondly believed to be Tuesday it rained again; for the next three
-days it rained; nobody came near the manse; the manse folk went
-nowhere; they might have waded through the misty Rainbow Valley up to
-Ingleside, but all the Blythe family, save Susan and the doctor, were
-away on a visit to Avonlea.
-
-“This is the last of our bread,” said Faith, “and the ditto is done. If
-Aunt Martha doesn’t get better soon _what_ will we do?”
-
-“We can buy some bread in the village and there’s the codfish Mary
-dried,” said Una. “But we don’t know how to cook it.”
-
-“Oh, that’s easy,” laughed Faith. “You just boil it.”
-
-Boil it they did; but as it did not occur to them to soak it beforehand
-it was too salty to eat. That night they were very hungry; but by the
-following day their troubles were over. Sunshine returned to the world;
-Carl was well and Aunt Martha’s misery left her as suddenly as it had
-come; the butcher called at the manse and chased famine away. To crown
-all, the Blythes returned home, and that evening they and the manse
-children and Mary Vance kept sunset tryst once more in Rainbow Valley,
-where the daisies were floating upon the grass like spirits of the dew
-and the bells on the Tree Lovers rang like fairy chimes in the scented
-twilight.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI.
-A DREADFUL DISCOVERY
-
-
-“Well, you kids have gone and done it now,” was Mary’s greeting, as she
-joined them in the Valley. Miss Cornelia was up at Ingleside, holding
-agonized conclave with Anne and Susan, and Mary hoped that the session
-might be a long one, for it was all of two weeks since she had been
-allowed to revel with her chums in the dear valley of rainbows.
-
-“Done what?” demanded everybody but Walter, who was day-dreaming as
-usual.
-
-“It’s you manse young ones, I mean,” said Mary. “It was just awful of
-you. _I_ wouldn’t have done such a thing for the world, and _I_ weren’t
-brought up in a manse—weren’t brought up _anywhere_—just _come_ up.”
-
-“What have _we_ done?” asked Faith blankly.
-
-“Done! You’d _better_ ask! The talk is something terrible. I expect
-it’s ruined your father in this congregation. He’ll never be able to
-live it down, poor man! Everybody blames him for it, and that isn’t
-fair. But nothing _is_ fair in this world. You ought to be ashamed of
-yourselves.”
-
-“What _have_ we done?” asked Una again, despairingly. Faith said
-nothing, but her eyes flashed golden-brown scorn at Mary.
-
-“Oh, don’t pretend innocence,” said Mary, witheringly. “Everybody knows
-what you have done.”
-
-“_I_ don’t,” interjected Jem Blythe indignantly. “Don’t let me catch
-you making Una cry, Mary Vance. What are you talking about?”
-
-“I s’pose you don’t know, since you’re just back from up west,” said
-Mary, somewhat subdued. Jem could always manage her. “But everybody
-else knows, you’d better believe.”
-
-“Knows what?”
-
-“That Faith and Una stayed home from Sunday School last Sunday and
-_cleaned house_.”
-
-“We didn’t,” cried Faith and Una, in passionate denial.
-
-Mary looked haughtily at them.
-
-“I didn’t suppose you’d deny it, after the way you’ve combed _me_ down
-for lying,” she said. “What’s the good of saying you didn’t? Everybody
-knows you _did_. Elder Clow and his wife saw you. Some people say it
-will break up the church, but _I_ don’t go that far. You _are_ nice
-ones.”
-
-Nan Blythe stood up and put her arms around the dazed Faith and Una.
-
-“They were nice enough to take you in and feed you and clothe you when
-you were starving in Mr. Taylor’s barn, Mary Vance,” she said. “You are
-_very_ grateful, I must say.”
-
-“I _am_ grateful,” retorted Mary. “You’d know it if you’d heard me
-standing up for Mr. Meredith through thick and thin. I’ve blistered my
-tongue talking for him this week. I’ve said again and again that he
-isn’t to blame if his young ones did clean house on Sunday. He was
-away—and they knew better.”
-
-“But we didn’t,” protested Una. “It was _Monday_ we cleaned house.
-Wasn’t it, Faith?”
-
-“Of course it was,” said Faith, with flashing eyes. “We went to Sunday
-School in spite of the rain—and no one came—not even Elder Abraham, for
-all his talk about fair-weather Christians.”
-
-“It was Saturday it rained,” said Mary. “Sunday was as fine as silk. I
-wasn’t at Sunday School because I had toothache, but every one else was
-and they saw all your stuff out on the lawn. And Elder Abraham and Mrs.
-Elder Abraham saw you shaking rugs in the graveyard.”
-
-Una sat down among the daisies and began to cry.
-
-“Look here,” said Jem resolutely, “this thing must be cleared up.
-_Somebody_ has made a mistake. Sunday _was_ fine, Faith. How could you
-have thought Saturday was Sunday?”
-
-“Prayer-meeting was Thursday night,” cried Faith, “and Adam flew into
-the soup-pot on Friday when Aunt Martha’s cat chased him, and spoiled
-our dinner; and Saturday there was a snake in the cellar and Carl
-caught it with a forked stick and carried it out, and Sunday it rained.
-So there!”
-
-“Prayer-meeting was Wednesday night,” said Mary. “Elder Baxter was to
-lead and he couldn’t go Thursday night and it was changed to Wednesday.
-You were just a day out, Faith Meredith, and you _did_ work on Sunday.”
-
-Suddenly Faith burst into a peal of laughter.
-
-“I suppose we did. What a joke!”
-
-“It isn’t much of a joke for your father,” said Mary sourly.
-
-“It’ll be all right when people find out it was just a mistake,” said
-Faith carelessly. “We’ll explain.”
-
-“You can explain till you’re black in the face,” said Mary, “but a lie
-like that’ll travel faster’n further than you ever will. I’VE seen more
-of the world than you and _I_ know. Besides, there are plenty of folks
-won’t believe it was a mistake.”
-
-“They will if I tell them,” said Faith.
-
-“You can’t tell everybody,” said Mary. “No, I tell you you’ve disgraced
-your father.”
-
-Una’s evening was spoiled by this dire reflection, but Faith refused to
-be made uncomfortable. Besides, she had a plan that would put
-everything right. So she put the past with its mistake behind her and
-gave herself over to enjoyment of the present. Jem went away to fish
-and Walter came out of his reverie and proceeded to describe the woods
-of heaven. Mary pricked up her ears and listened respectfully. Despite
-her awe of Walter she revelled in his “book talk.” It always gave her a
-delightful sensation. Walter had been reading his Coleridge that day,
-and he pictured a heaven where
-
-“There were gardens bright with sinuous rills
-Where blossomed many an incense bearing tree,
-And there were forests ancient as the hills
-Enfolding sunny spots of greenery.”
-
-“I didn’t know there was any woods in heaven,” said Mary, with a long
-breath. “I thought it was all streets—and streets—_and_ streets.”
-
-“Of course there are woods,” said Nan. “Mother can’t live without trees
-and I can’t, so what would be the use of going to heaven if there
-weren’t any trees?”
-
-“There are cities, too,” said the young dreamer, “splendid
-cities—coloured just like the sunset, with sapphire towers and rainbow
-domes. They are built of gold and diamonds—whole streets of diamonds,
-flashing like the sun. In the squares there are crystal fountains
-kissed by the light, and everywhere the asphodel blooms—the flower of
-heaven.”
-
-“Fancy!” said Mary. “I saw the main street in Charlottetown once and I
-thought it was real grand, but I s’pose it’s nothing to heaven. Well,
-it all sounds gorgeous the way you tell it, but won’t it be kind of
-dull, too?”
-
-“Oh, I guess we can have some fun when the angels’ backs are turned,”
-said Faith comfortably.
-
-“Heaven is _all_ fun,” declared Di.
-
-“The Bible doesn’t say so,” cried Mary, who had read so much of the
-Bible on Sunday afternoons under Miss Cornelia’s eye that she now
-considered herself quite an authority on it.
-
-“Mother says the Bible language is figurative,” said Nan.
-
-“Does that mean that it isn’t true?” asked Mary hopefully.
-
-“No—not exactly—but I think it means that heaven will be just like what
-you’d like it to be.”
-
-“I’d like it to be just like Rainbow Valley,” said Mary, “with all you
-kids to gas and play with. _That’s_ good enough for me. Anyhow, we
-can’t go to heaven till we’re dead and maybe not then, so what’s the
-use of worrying? Here’s Jem with a string of trout and it’s my turn to
-fry them.”
-
-“We ought to know more about heaven than Walter does when we’re the
-minister’s family,” said Una, as they walked home that night.
-
-“We _know_ just as much, but Walter can _imagine_,” said Faith. “Mrs.
-Elliott says he gets it from his mother.”
-
-“I do wish we hadn’t made that mistake about Sunday,” sighed Una.
-
-“Don’t worry over that. I’ve thought of a great plan to explain so that
-everybody will know,” said Faith. “Just wait till to-morrow night.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII.
-AN EXPLANATION AND A DARE
-
-
-The Rev. Dr. Cooper preached in Glen St. Mary the next evening and the
-Presbyterian Church was crowded with people from near and far. The
-Reverend Doctor was reputed to be a very eloquent speaker; and, bearing
-in mind the old dictum that a minister should take his best clothes to
-the city and his best sermons to the country, he delivered a very
-scholarly and impressive discourse. But when the folks went home that
-night it was not of Dr. Cooper’s sermon they talked. They had
-completely forgotten all about it.
-
-Dr. Cooper had concluded with a fervent appeal, had wiped the
-perspiration from his massive brow, had said “Let us pray” as he was
-famed for saying it, and had duly prayed. There was a slight pause. In
-Glen St. Mary church the old fashion of taking the collection after the
-sermon instead of before still held—mainly because the Methodists had
-adopted the new fashion first, and Miss Cornelia and Elder Clow would
-not hear of following where Methodists had led. Charles Baxter and
-Thomas Douglas, whose duty it was to pass the plates, were on the point
-of rising to their feet. The organist had got out the music of her
-anthem and the choir had cleared its throat. Suddenly Faith Meredith
-rose in the manse pew, walked up to the pulpit platform, and faced the
-amazed audience.
-
-Miss Cornelia half rose in her seat and then sat down again. Her pew
-was far back and it occurred to her that whatever Faith meant to do or
-say would be half done or said before she could reach her. There was no
-use making the exhibition worse than it had to be. With an anguished
-glance at Mrs. Dr. Blythe, and another at Deacon Warren of the
-Methodist Church, Miss Cornelia resigned herself to another scandal.
-
-“If the child was only dressed decently itself,” she groaned in spirit.
-
-Faith, having spilled ink on her good dress, had serenely put on an old
-one of faded pink print. A caticornered rent in the skirt had been
-darned with scarlet tracing cotton and the hem had been let down,
-showing a bright strip of unfaded pink around the skirt. But Faith was
-not thinking of her clothes at all. She was feeling suddenly nervous.
-What had seemed easy in imagination was rather hard in reality.
-Confronted by all those staring questioning eyes Faith’s courage almost
-failed her. The lights were so bright, the silence so awesome. She
-thought she could not speak after all. But she _must_—her father _must_
-be cleared of suspicion. Only—the words would _not_ come.
-
-Una’s little pearl-pure face gleamed up at her beseechingly from the
-manse pew. The Blythe children were lost in amazement. Back under the
-gallery Faith saw the sweet graciousness of Miss Rosemary West’s smile
-and the amusement of Miss Ellen’s. But none of these helped her. It was
-Bertie Shakespeare Drew who saved the situation. Bertie Shakespeare sat
-in the front seat of the gallery and he made a derisive face at Faith.
-Faith promptly made a dreadful one back at him, and, in her anger over
-being grimaced at by Bertie Shakespeare, forgot her stage fright. She
-found her voice and spoke out clearly and bravely.
-
-“I want to explain something,” she said, “and I want to do it now
-because everybody will hear it that heard the other. People are saying
-that Una and I stayed home last Sunday and cleaned house instead of
-going to Sunday School. Well, we did—but we didn’t mean to. We got
-mixed up in the days of the week. It was all Elder Baxter’s
-fault”—sensation in Baxter’s pew—“because he went and changed the
-prayer-meeting to Wednesday night and then we thought Thursday was
-Friday and so on till we thought Saturday was Sunday. Carl was laid up
-sick and so was Aunt Martha, so they couldn’t put us right. We went to
-Sunday School in all that rain on Saturday and nobody came. And then we
-thought we’d clean house on Monday and stop old cats from talking about
-how dirty the manse was”—general sensation all over the church—“and we
-did. I shook the rugs in the Methodist graveyard because it was such a
-convenient place and not because I meant to be disrespectful of the
-dead. It isn’t the dead folks who have made the fuss over this—it’s the
-living folks. And it isn’t right for any of you to blame my father for
-this, because he was away and didn’t know, and anyhow we thought it was
-Monday. He’s just the best father that ever lived in the world and we
-love him with all our hearts.”
-
-Faith’s bravado ebbed out in a sob. She ran down the steps and flashed
-out of the side door of the church. There the friendly starlit, summer
-night comforted her and the ache went out of her eyes and throat. She
-felt very happy. The dreadful explanation was over and everybody knew
-now that her father wasn’t to blame and that she and Una were not so
-wicked as to have cleaned house knowingly on Sunday.
-
-Inside the church people gazed blankly at each other, but Thomas
-Douglas rose and walked up the aisle with a set face. _His_ duty was
-clear; the collection must be taken if the skies fell. Taken it was;
-the choir sang the anthem, with a dismal conviction that it fell
-terribly flat, and Dr. Cooper gave out the concluding hymn and
-pronounced the benediction with considerably less unction than usual.
-The Reverend Doctor had a sense of humour and Faith’s performance
-tickled him. Besides, John Meredith was well known in Presbyterian
-circles.
-
-Mr. Meredith returned home the next afternoon, but before his coming
-Faith contrived to scandalize Glen St. Mary again. In the reaction from
-Sunday evening’s intensity and strain she was especially full of what
-Miss Cornelia would have called “devilment” on Monday. This led her to
-dare Walter Blythe to ride through Main Street on a pig, while she rode
-another one.
-
-The pigs in question were two tall, lank animals, supposed to belong to
-Bertie Shakespeare Drew’s father, which had been haunting the roadside
-by the manse for a couple of weeks. Walter did not want to ride a pig
-through Glen St. Mary, but whatever Faith Meredith dared him to do must
-be done. They tore down the hill and through the village, Faith bent
-double with laughter over her terrified courser, Walter crimson with
-shame. They tore past the minister himself, just coming home from the
-station; he, being a little less dreamy and abstracted than usual—owing
-to having had a talk on the train with Miss Cornelia who always wakened
-him up temporarily—noticed them, and thought he really must speak to
-Faith about it and tell her that such conduct was not seemly. But he
-had forgotten the trifling incident by the time he reached home. They
-passed Mrs. Alec Davis, who shrieked in horror, and they passed Miss
-Rosemary West who laughed and sighed. Finally, just before the pigs
-swooped into Bertie Shakespeare Drew’s back yard, never to emerge
-therefrom again, so great had been the shock to their nerves—Faith and
-Walter jumped off, as Dr. and Mrs. Blythe drove swiftly by.
-
-“So that is how you bring up your boys,” said Gilbert with mock
-severity.
-
-“Perhaps I do spoil them a little,” said Anne contritely, “but, oh,
-Gilbert, when I think of my own childhood before I came to Green Gables
-I haven’t the heart to be very strict. How hungry for love and fun I
-was—an unloved little drudge with never a chance to play! They do have
-such good times with the manse children.”
-
-“What about the poor pigs?” asked Gilbert.
-
-Anne tried to look sober and failed.
-
-“Do you really think it hurt them?” she said. “I don’t think anything
-could hurt those animals. They’ve been the plague of the neighbourhood
-this summer and the Drews _won’t_ shut them up. But I’ll talk to
-Walter—if I can keep from laughing when I do it.”
-
-Miss Cornelia came up to Ingleside that evening to relieve her feelings
-over Sunday night. To her surprise she found that Anne did not view
-Faith’s performance in quite the same light as she did.
-
-“I thought there was something brave and pathetic in her getting up
-there before that churchful of people, to confess,” she said. “You
-could see she was frightened to death—yet she was bound to clear her
-father. I loved her for it.”
-
-“Oh, of course, the poor child meant well,” sighed Miss Cornelia, “but
-just the same it was a terrible thing to do, and is making more talk
-than the house-cleaning on Sunday. _That_ had begun to die away, and
-this has started it all up again. Rosemary West is like you—she said
-last night as she left the church that it was a plucky thing for Faith
-to do, but it made her feel sorry for the child, too. Miss Ellen
-thought it all a good joke, and said she hadn’t had as much fun in
-church for years. Of course _they_ don’t care—they are Episcopalians.
-But we Presbyterians feel it. And there were so many hotel people there
-that night and scores of Methodists. Mrs. Leander Crawford cried, she
-felt so bad. And Mrs. Alec Davis said the little hussy ought to be
-spanked.”
-
-“Mrs. Leander Crawford is always crying in church,” said Susan
-contemptuously. “She cries over every affecting thing the minister
-says. But you do not often see her name on a subscription list, Mrs.
-Dr. dear. Tears come cheaper. She tried to talk to me one day about
-Aunt Martha being such a dirty housekeeper; and I wanted to say, ‘Every
-one knows that _you_ have been seen mixing up cakes in the kitchen
-wash-pan, Mrs. Leander Crawford!’ But I did not say it, Mrs. Dr. dear,
-because I have too much respect for myself to condescend to argue with
-the likes of her. But I could tell worse things than _that_ of Mrs.
-Leander Crawford, if I was disposed to gossip. And as for Mrs. Alec
-Davis, if she had said that to me, Mrs. Dr. dear, do you know what I
-would have said? I would have said, ‘I have no doubt you would like to
-spank Faith, Mrs. Davis, but you will never have the chance to spank a
-minister’s daughter either in this world or in that which is to come.’”
-
-“If poor Faith had only been decently dressed,” lamented Miss Cornelia
-again, “it wouldn’t have been quite that bad. But that dress looked
-dreadful, as she stood there upon the platform.”
-
-“It was clean, though, Mrs. Dr. dear,” said Susan. “They _are_ clean
-children. They may be very heedless and reckless, Mrs. Dr. dear, and I
-am not saying they are not, but they _never_ forget to wash behind
-their ears.”
-
-“The idea of Faith forgetting what day was Sunday,” persisted Miss
-Cornelia. “She will grow up just as careless and impractical as her
-father, believe _me_. I suppose Carl would have known better if he
-hadn’t been sick. I don’t know what was wrong with him, but I think it
-very likely he had been eating those blueberries that grew in the
-graveyard. No wonder they made him sick. If I was a Methodist I’d try
-to keep my graveyard cleaned up at least.”
-
-“I am of the opinion that Carl only ate the sours that grow on the
-dyke,” said Susan hopefully. “I do not think _any_ minister’s son would
-eat blueberries that grew on the graves of dead people. You know it
-would not be so bad, Mrs. Dr. dear, to eat things that grew on the
-dyke.”
-
-“The worst of last night’s performance was the face Faith made made at
-somebody in the congregation before she started in,” said Miss
-Cornelia. “Elder Clow declares she made it at him. And _did_ you hear
-that she was seen riding on a pig to-day?”
-
-“I saw her. Walter was with her. I gave him a little—a _very_
-little—scolding about it. He did not say much, but he gave me the
-impression that it had been his idea and that Faith was not to blame.”
-
-“I do not not believe _that_, Mrs. Dr. dear,” cried Susan, up in arms.
-“That is just Walter’s way—to take the blame on himself. But you know
-as well as I do, Mrs. Dr. dear, that that blessed child would never
-have thought of riding on a pig, even if he does write poetry.”
-
-“Oh, there’s no doubt the notion was hatched in Faith Meredith’s
-brain,” said Miss Cornelia. “And I don’t say that I’m sorry that Amos
-Drew’s old pigs did get their come-uppance for once. But the minister’s
-daughter!”
-
-“_And_ the doctor’s son!” said Anne, mimicking Miss Cornelia’s tone.
-Then she laughed. “Dear Miss Cornelia, they’re only little children.
-And you _know_ they’ve never yet done anything bad—they’re just
-heedless and impulsive—as I was myself once. They’ll grow sedate and
-sober—as I’ve done.”
-
-Miss Cornelia laughed, too.
-
-“There are times, Anne dearie, when I know by your eyes that _your_
-soberness is put on like a garment and you’re really aching to do
-something wild and young again. Well, I feel encouraged. Somehow, a
-talk with you always does have that effect on me. Now, when I go to see
-Barbara Samson, it’s just the opposite. She makes me feel that
-everything’s wrong and always will be. But of course living all your
-life with a man like Joe Samson wouldn’t be exactly cheering.”
-
-“It is a very strange thing to think that she married Joe Samson after
-all her chances,” remarked Susan. “She was much sought after when she
-was a girl. She used to boast to me that she had twenty-one beaus and
-Mr. Pethick.”
-
-“What was Mr. Pethick?”
-
-“Well, he was a sort of hanger-on, Mrs. Dr. dear, but you could not
-exactly call him a beau. He did not really have any intentions.
-Twenty-one beaus—and me that never had one! But Barbara went through
-the woods and picked up the crooked stick after all. And yet they say
-her husband can make better baking powder biscuits than she can, and
-she always gets him to make them when company comes to tea.”
-
-“Which reminds _me_ that I have company coming to tea to-morrow and I
-must go home and set my bread,” said Miss Cornelia. “Mary said she
-could set it and no doubt she could. But while I live and move and have
-my being _I_ set my own bread, believe me.”
-
-“How is Mary getting on?” asked Anne.
-
-“I’ve no fault to find with Mary,” said Miss Cornelia rather gloomily.
-“She’s getting some flesh on her bones and she’s clean and
-respectful—though there’s more in her than _I_ can fathom. She’s a sly
-puss. If you dug for a thousand years you couldn’t get to the bottom of
-that child’s mind, believe _me!_ As for work, I never saw anything like
-her. She _eats_ it up. Mrs. Wiley may have been cruel to her, but folks
-needn’t say she made Mary work. Mary’s a born worker. Sometimes I
-wonder which will wear out first—her legs or her tongue. I don’t have
-enough to do to keep me out of mischief these days. I’ll be real glad
-when school opens, for then I’ll have something to do again. Mary
-doesn’t want to go to school, but I put my foot down and said that go
-she must. I shall _not_ have the Methodists saying that I kept her out
-of school while I lolled in idleness.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII.
-THE HOUSE ON THE HILL
-
-
-There was a little unfailing spring, always icy cold and crystal pure,
-in a certain birch-screened hollow of Rainbow Valley in the lower
-corner near the marsh. Not a great many people knew of its existence.
-The manse and Ingleside children knew, of course, as they knew
-everything else about the magic valley. Occasionally they went there to
-get a drink, and it figured in many of their plays as a fountain of old
-romance. Anne knew of it and loved it because it somehow reminded her
-of the beloved Dryad’s Bubble at Green Gables. Rosemary West knew of
-it; it was her fountain of romance, too. Eighteen years ago she had sat
-behind it one spring twilight and heard young Martin Crawford stammer
-out a confession of fervent, boyish love. She had whispered her own
-secret in return, and they had kissed and promised by the wild wood
-spring. They had never stood together by it again—Martin had sailed on
-his fatal voyage soon after; but to Rosemary West it was always a
-sacred spot, hallowed by that immortal hour of youth and love. Whenever
-she passed near it she turned aside to hold a secret tryst with an old
-dream—a dream from which the pain had long gone, leaving only its
-unforgettable sweetness.
-
-The spring was a hidden thing. You might have passed within ten feet of
-it and never have suspected its existence. Two generations past a huge
-old pine had fallen almost across it. Nothing was left of the tree but
-its crumbling trunk out of which the ferns grew thickly, making a green
-roof and a lacy screen for the water. A maple-tree grew beside it with
-a curiously gnarled and twisted trunk, creeping along the ground for a
-little way before shooting up into the air, and so forming a quaint
-seat; and September had flung a scarf of pale smoke-blue asters around
-the hollow.
-
-John Meredith, taking the cross-lots road through Rainbow Valley on his
-way home from some pastoral visitations around the Harbour head one
-evening, turned aside to drink of the little spring. Walter Blythe had
-shown it to him one afternoon only a few days before, and they had had
-a long talk together on the maple seat. John Meredith, under all his
-shyness and aloofness, had the heart of a boy. He had been called Jack
-in his youth, though nobody in Glen St. Mary would ever have believed
-it. Walter and he had taken to each other and had talked unreservedly.
-Mr. Meredith found his way into some sealed and sacred chambers of the
-lad’s soul wherein not even Di had ever looked. They were to be chums
-from that friendly hour and Walter knew that he would never be
-frightened of the minister again.
-
-“I never believed before that it was possible to get really acquainted
-with a minister,” he told his mother that night.
-
-John Meredith drank from his slender white hand, whose grip of steel
-always surprised people who were unacquainted with it, and then sat
-down on the maple seat. He was in no hurry to go home; this was a
-beautiful spot and he was mentally weary after a round of rather
-uninspiring conversations with many good and stupid people. The moon
-was rising. Rainbow Valley was wind-haunted and star-sentinelled only
-where he was, but afar from the upper end came the gay notes of
-children’s laughter and voices.
-
-The ethereal beauty of the asters in the moonlight, the glimmer of the
-little spring, the soft croon of the brook, the wavering grace of the
-brackens all wove a white magic round John Meredith. He forgot
-congregational worries and spiritual problems; the years slipped away
-from him; he was a young divinity student again and the roses of June
-were blooming red and fragrant on the dark, queenly head of his
-Cecilia. He sat there and dreamed like any boy. And it was at this
-propitious moment that Rosemary West stepped aside from the by-path and
-stood beside him in that dangerous, spell-weaving place. John Meredith
-stood up as she came in and saw her—_really_ saw her—for the first
-time.
-
-He had met her in his church once or twice and shaken hands with her
-abstractedly as he did with anyone he happened to encounter on his way
-down the aisle. He had never met her elsewhere, for the Wests were
-Episcopalians, with church affinities in Lowbridge, and no occasion for
-calling upon them had ever arisen. Before to-night, if anyone had asked
-John Meredith what Rosemary West looked like he would not have had the
-slightest notion. But he was never to forget her, as she appeared to
-him in the glamour of kind moonlight by the spring.
-
-She was certainly not in the least like Cecilia, who had always been
-his ideal of womanly beauty. Cecilia had been small and dark and
-vivacious—Rosemary West was tall and fair and placid, yet John Meredith
-thought he had never seen so beautiful a woman.
-
-She was bareheaded and her golden hair—hair of a warm gold, “molasses
-taffy” colour as Di Blythe had said—was pinned in sleek, close coils
-over her head; she had large, tranquil, blue eyes that always seemed
-full of friendliness, a high white forehead and a finely shaped face.
-
-Rosemary West was always called a “sweet woman.” She was so sweet that
-even her high-bred, stately air had never gained for her the reputation
-of being “stuck-up,” which it would inevitably have done in the case of
-anyone else in Glen St. Mary. Life had taught her to be brave, to be
-patient, to love, to forgive. She had watched the ship on which her
-lover went sailing out of Four Winds Harbour into the sunset. But,
-though she watched long, she had never seen it coming sailing back.
-That vigil had taken girlhood from her eyes, yet she kept her youth to
-a marvellous degree. Perhaps this was because she always seemed to
-preserve that attitude of delighted surprise towards life which most of
-us leave behind in childhood—an attitude which not only made Rosemary
-herself seem young, but flung a pleasing illusion of youth over the
-consciousness of every one who talked to her.
-
-John Meredith was startled by her loveliness and Rosemary was startled
-by his presence. She had never thought she would find anyone by that
-remote spring, least of all the recluse of Glen St. Mary manse. She
-almost dropped the heavy armful of books she was carrying home from the
-Glen lending library, and then, to cover her confusion, she told one of
-those small fibs which even the best of women do tell at times.
-
-“I—I came for a drink,” she said, stammering a little, in answer to Mr.
-Meredith’s grave “good evening, Miss West.” She felt that she was an
-unpardonable goose and she longed to shake herself. But John Meredith
-was not a vain man and he knew she would likely have been as much
-startled had she met old Elder Clow in that unexpected fashion. Her
-confusion put him at ease and he forgot to be shy; besides, even the
-shyest of men can sometimes be quite audacious in moonlight.
-
-“Let me get you a cup,” he said smiling. There was a cup near by, if he
-had only known it, a cracked, handleless blue cup secreted under the
-maple by the Rainbow Valley children; but he did not know it, so he
-stepped out to one of the birch-trees and stripped a bit of its white
-skin away. Deftly he fashioned this into a three-cornered cup, filled
-it from the spring, and handed it to Rosemary.
-
-Rosemary took it and drank every drop to punish herself for her fib,
-for she was not in the least thirsty, and to drink a fairly large
-cupful of water when you are not thirsty is somewhat of an ordeal. Yet
-the memory of that draught was to be very pleasant to Rosemary. In
-after years it seemed to her that there was something sacramental about
-it. Perhaps this was because of what the minister did when she handed
-him back the cup. He stooped again and filled it and drank of it
-himself. It was only by accident that he put his lips just where
-Rosemary had put hers, and Rosemary knew it. Nevertheless, it had a
-curious significance for her. They two had drunk of the same cup. She
-remembered idly that an old aunt of hers used to say that when two
-people did this their after-lives would be linked in some fashion,
-whether for good or ill.
-
-John Meredith held the cup uncertainly. He did not know what to do with
-it. The logical thing would have been to toss it away, but somehow he
-was disinclined to do this. Rosemary held out her hand for it.
-
-“Will you let me have it?” she said. “You made it so knackily. I never
-saw anyone make a birch cup so since my little brother used to make
-them long ago—before he died.”
-
-“I learned how to make them when _I_ was a boy, camping out one summer.
-An old hunter taught me,” said Mr. Meredith. “Let me carry your books,
-Miss West.”
-
-Rosemary was startled into another fib and said oh, they were not
-heavy. But the minister took them from her with quite a masterful air
-and they walked away together. It was the first time Rosemary had stood
-by the valley spring without thinking of Martin Crawford. The mystic
-tryst had been broken.
-
-The little by-path wound around the marsh and then struck up the long
-wooded hill on the top of which Rosemary lived. Beyond, through the
-trees, they could see the moonlight shining across the level summer
-fields. But the little path was shadowy and narrow. Trees crowded over
-it, and trees are never quite as friendly to human beings after
-nightfall as they are in daylight. They wrap themselves away from us.
-They whisper and plot furtively. If they reach out a hand to us it has
-a hostile, tentative touch. People walking amid trees after night
-always draw closer together instinctively and involuntarily, making an
-alliance, physical and mental, against certain alien powers around
-them. Rosemary’s dress brushed against John Meredith as they walked.
-Not even an absent-minded minister, who was after all a young man
-still, though he firmly believed he had outlived romance, could be
-insensible to the charm of the night and the path and the companion.
-
-It is never quite safe to think we have done with life. When we imagine
-we have finished our story fate has a trick of turning the page and
-showing us yet another chapter. These two people each thought their
-hearts belonged irrevocably to the past; but they both found their walk
-up that hill very pleasant. Rosemary thought the Glen minister was by
-no means as shy and tongue-tied as he had been represented. He seemed
-to find no difficulty in talking easily and freely. Glen housewives
-would have been amazed had they heard him. But then so many Glen
-housewives talked only gossip and the price of eggs, and John Meredith
-was not interested in either. He talked to Rosemary of books and music
-and wide-world doings and something of his own history, and found that
-she could understand and respond. Rosemary, it appeared, possessed a
-book which Mr. Meredith had not read and wished to read. She offered to
-lend it to him and when they reached the old homestead on the hill he
-went in to get it.
-
-The house itself was an old-fashioned gray one, hung with vines,
-through which the light in the sitting-room winked in friendly fashion.
-It looked down the Glen, over the harbour, silvered in the moonlight,
-to the sand-dunes and the moaning ocean. They walked in through a
-garden that always seemed to smell of roses, even when no roses were in
-bloom. There was a sisterhood of lilies at the gate and a ribbon of
-asters on either side of the broad walk, and a lacery of fir trees on
-the hill’s edge beyond the house.
-
-“You have the whole world at your doorstep here,” said John Meredith,
-with a long breath. “What a view—what an outlook! At times I feel
-stifled down there in the Glen. You can breathe up here.”
-
-“It is calm to-night,” said Rosemary laughing. “If there were a wind it
-would blow your breath away. We get ‘a’ the airts the wind can blow’ up
-here. This place should be called Four Winds instead of the Harbour.”
-
-“I like wind,” he said. “A day when there is no wind seems to me
-_dead_. A windy day wakes me up.” He gave a conscious laugh. “On a calm
-day I fall into day dreams. No doubt you know my reputation, Miss West.
-If I cut you dead the next time we meet don’t put it down to bad
-manners. Please understand that it is only abstraction and forgive
-me—and speak to me.”
-
-They found Ellen West in the sitting room when they went in. She laid
-her glasses down on the book she had been reading and looked at them in
-amazement tinctured with something else. But she shook hands amiably
-with Mr. Meredith and he sat down and talked to her, while Rosemary
-hunted out his book.
-
-Ellen West was ten years older than Rosemary, and so different from her
-that it was hard to believe they were sisters. She was dark and
-massive, with black hair, thick, black eyebrows and eyes of the clear,
-slaty blue of the gulf water in a north wind. She had a rather stern,
-forbidding look, but she was in reality very jolly, with a hearty,
-gurgling laugh and a deep, mellow, pleasant voice with a suggestion of
-masculinity about it. She had once remarked to Rosemary that she would
-really like to have a talk with that Presbyterian minister at the Glen,
-to see if he could find a word to say to a woman when he was cornered.
-She had her chance now and she tackled him on world politics. Miss
-Ellen, who was a great reader, had been devouring a book on the Kaiser
-of Germany, and she demanded Mr. Meredith’s opinion of him.
-
-“A dangerous man,” was his answer.
-
-“I believe you!” Miss Ellen nodded. “Mark my words, Mr. Meredith, that
-man is going to fight somebody yet. He’s _aching_ to. He is going to
-set the world on fire.”
-
-“If you mean that he will wantonly precipitate a great war I hardly
-think so,” said Mr. Meredith. “The day has gone by for that sort of
-thing.”
-
-“Bless you, it hasn’t,” rumbled Ellen. “The day never goes by for men
-and nations to make asses of themselves and take to the fists. The
-millenniun isn’t _that_ near, Mr. Meredith, and _you_ don’t think it is
-any more than I do. As for this Kaiser, mark my words, he is going to
-make a heap of trouble”—and Miss Ellen prodded her book emphatically
-with her long finger. “Yes, if he isn’t nipped in the bud he’s going to
-make trouble. _We’ll_ live to see it—you and I will live to see it, Mr.
-Meredith. And who is going to nip him? England should, but she won’t.
-_Who_ is going to nip him? Tell me that, Mr. Meredith.”
-
-Mr. Meredith couldn’t tell her, but they plunged into a discussion of
-German militarism that lasted long after Rosemary had found the book.
-Rosemary said nothing, but sat in a little rocker behind Ellen and
-stroked an important black cat meditatively. John Meredith hunted big
-game in Europe with Ellen, but he looked oftener at Rosemary than at
-Ellen, and Ellen noticed it. After Rosemary had gone to the door with
-him and come back Ellen rose and looked at her accusingly.
-
-“Rosemary West, that man has a notion of courting you.”
-
-Rosemary quivered. Ellen’s speech was like a blow to her. It rubbed all
-the bloom off the pleasant evening. But she would not let Ellen see how
-it hurt her.
-
-“Nonsense,” she said, and laughed, a little too carelessly. “You see a
-beau for me in every bush, Ellen. Why he told me all about his wife
-to-night—how much she was to him—how empty her death had left the
-world.”
-
-“Well, that may be _his_ way of courting,” retorted Ellen. “Men have
-all kinds of ways, I understand. But don’t forget your promise,
-Rosemary.”
-
-“There is no need of my either forgetting or remembering it,” said
-Rosemary, a little wearily. “_You_ forget that I’m an old maid, Ellen.
-It is only your sisterly delusion that I am still young and blooming
-and dangerous. Mr. Meredith merely wants to be a friend—if he wants
-that much itself. He’ll forget us both long before he gets back to the
-manse.”
-
-“I’ve no objection to your being friends with him,” conceded Ellen,
-“but it musn’t go beyond friendship, remember. I’m always suspicious of
-widowers. They are not given to romantic ideas about friendship.
-They’re apt to mean business. As for this Presbyterian man, what do
-they call him shy for? He’s not a bit shy, though he may be
-absent-minded—so absent-minded that he forgot to say goodnight to _me_
-when you started to go to the door with him. He’s got brains, too.
-There’s so few men round here that can talk sense to a body. I’ve
-enjoyed the evening. I wouldn’t mind seeing more of him. But no
-philandering, Rosemary, mind you—no philandering.”
-
-Rosemary was quite used to being warned by Ellen from philandering if
-she so much as talked five minutes to any marriageable man under eighty
-or over eighteen. She had always laughed at the warning with unfeigned
-amusement. This time it did not amuse her—it irritated her a little.
-Who wanted to philander?
-
-“Don’t be such a goose, Ellen,” she said with unaccustomed shortness as
-she took her lamp. She went upstairs without saying goodnight.
-
-Ellen shook her head dubiously and looked at the black cat.
-
-“What is she so cross about, St. George?” she asked. “When you howl
-you’re hit, I’ve always heard, George. But she promised, Saint—she
-promised, and we Wests always keep our word. So it won’t matter if he
-does want to philander, George. She promised. I won’t worry.”
-
-Upstairs, in her room, Rosemary sat for a long while looking out of the
-window across the moonlit garden to the distant, shining harbour. She
-felt vaguely upset and unsettled. She was suddenly tired of outworn
-dreams. And in the garden the petals of the last red rose were
-scattered by a sudden little wind. Summer was over—it was autumn.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV.
-MRS. ALEC DAVIS MAKES A CALL
-
-
-John Meredith walked slowly home. At first he thought a little about
-Rosemary, but by the time he reached Rainbow Valley he had forgotten
-all about her and was meditating on a point regarding German theology
-which Ellen had raised. He passed through Rainbow Valley and knew it
-not. The charm of Rainbow Valley had no potency against German
-theology. When he reached the manse he went to his study and took down
-a bulky volume in order to see which had been right, he or Ellen. He
-remained immersed in its mazes until dawn, struck a new trail of
-speculation and pursued it like a sleuth hound for the next week,
-utterly lost to the world, his parish and his family. He read day and
-night; he forgot to go to his meals when Una was not there to drag him
-to them; he never thought about Rosemary or Ellen again. Old Mrs.
-Marshall, over-harbour, was very ill and sent for him, but the message
-lay unheeded on his desk and gathered dust. Mrs. Marshall recovered but
-never forgave him. A young couple came to the manse to be married and
-Mr. Meredith, with unbrushed hair, in carpet slippers and faded
-dressing gown, married them. To be sure, he began by reading the
-funeral service to them and got along as far as “ashes to ashes and
-dust to dust” before he vaguely suspected that something was wrong.
-
-“Dear me,” he said absently, “that is strange—very strange.”
-
-The bride, who was very nervous, began to cry. The bridegroom, who was
-not in the least nervous, giggled.
-
-“Please, sir, I think you’re burying us instead of marrying us,” he
-said.
-
-“Excuse me,” said Mr. Meredith, as it it did not matter much. He turned
-up the marriage service and got through with it, but the bride never
-felt quite properly married for the rest of her life.
-
-He forgot his prayer-meeting again—but that did not matter, for it was
-a wet night and nobody came. He might even have forgotten his Sunday
-service if it had not been for Mrs. Alec Davis. Aunt Martha came in on
-Saturday afternoon and told him that Mrs. Davis was in the parlour and
-wanted to see him. Mr. Meredith sighed. Mrs. Davis was the only woman
-in Glen St. Mary church whom he positively detested. Unfortunately, she
-was also the richest, and his board of managers had warned Mr. Meredith
-against offending her. Mr. Meredith seldom thought of such a worldly
-matter as his stipend; but the managers were more practical. Also, they
-were astute. Without mentioning money, they contrived to instil into
-Mr. Meredith’s mind a conviction that he should not offend Mrs. Davis.
-Otherwise, he would likely have forgotten all about her as soon as Aunt
-Martha had gone out. As it was, he turned down his Ewald with a feeling
-of annoyance and went across the hall to the parlour.
-
-Mrs. Davis was sitting on the sofa, looking about her with an air of
-scornful disapproval.
-
-What a scandalous room! There were no curtains on the window. Mrs.
-Davis did not know that Faith and Una had taken them down the day
-before to use as court trains in one of their plays and had forgotten
-to put them up again, but she could not have accused those windows more
-fiercely if she had known. The blinds were cracked and torn. The
-pictures on the walls were crooked; the rugs were awry; the vases were
-full of faded flowers; the dust lay in heaps—literally in heaps.
-
-“What are we coming to?” Mrs. Davis asked herself, and then primmed up
-her unbeautiful mouth.
-
-Jerry and Carl had been whooping and sliding down the banisters as she
-came through the hall. They did not see her and continued whooping and
-sliding, and Mrs. Davis was convinced they did it on purpose. Faith’s
-pet rooster ambled through the hall, stood in the parlour doorway and
-looked at her. Not liking her looks, he did not venture in. Mrs. Davis
-gave a scornful sniff. A pretty manse, indeed, where roosters paraded
-the halls and stared people out of countenance.
-
-“Shoo, there,” commanded Mrs. Davis, poking her flounced,
-changeable-silk parasol at him.
-
-Adam shooed. He was a wise rooster and Mrs. Davis had wrung the necks
-of so many roosters with her own fair hands in the course of her fifty
-years that an air of the executioner seemed to hang around her. Adam
-scuttled through the hall as the minister came in.
-
-Mr. Meredith still wore slippers and dressing gown, and his dark hair
-still fell in uncared-for locks over his high brow. But he looked the
-gentleman he was; and Mrs. Alec Davis, in her silk dress and beplumed
-bonnet, and kid gloves and gold chain looked the vulgar, coarse-souled
-woman she was. Each felt the antagonisn of the other’s personality. Mr.
-Meredith shrank, but Mrs. Davis girded up her loins for the fray. She
-had come to the manse to propose a certain thing to the minister and
-she meant to lose no time in proposing it. She was going to do him a
-favour—a great favour—and the sooner he was made aware of it the
-better. She had been thinking about it all summer and had come to a
-decision at last. This was all that mattered, Mrs. Davis thought. When
-she decided a thing it _was_ decided. Nobody else had any say in the
-matter. That had always been her attitude. When she had made her mind
-up to marry Alec Davis she had married him and that was the end to it.
-Alec had never known how it happened, but what odds? So in this
-case—Mrs. Davis had arranged everything to her own satisfaction. Now it
-only remained to inform Mr. Meredith.
-
-“Will you please shut that door?” said Mrs. Davis, unprimming her mouth
-slightly to say it, but speaking with asperity. “I have something
-important to say, and I can’t say it with that racket in the hall.”
-
-Mr. Meredith shut the door meekly. Then he sat down before Mrs. Davis.
-He was not wholly aware of her yet. His mind was still wrestling with
-Ewald’s arguments. Mrs. Davis sensed this detachment and it annoyed
-her.
-
-“I have come to tell you, Mr. Meredith,” she said aggressively, “that I
-have decided to adopt Una.”
-
-“To—adopt—Una!” Mr. Meredith gazed at her blankly, not understanding in
-the least.
-
-“Yes. I’ve been thinking it over for some time. I have often thought of
-adopting a child, since my husband’s death. But it seemed so hard to
-get a suitable one. It is very few children I would want to take into
-_my_ home. I wouldn’t think of taking a home child—some outcast of the
-slums in all probability. And there is hardly ever any other child to
-be got. One of the fishermen down at the harbour died last fall and
-left six youngsters. They tried to get me to take one, but I soon gave
-them to understand that I had no idea of adopting trash like that.
-Their grandfather stole a horse. Besides, they were all boys and I
-wanted a girl—a quiet, obedient girl that I could train up to be a
-lady. Una will suit me exactly. She would be a nice little thing if she
-was properly looked after—so different from Faith. I would never dream
-of adopting Faith. But I’ll take Una and I’ll give her a good home, and
-up-bringing, Mr. Meredith, and if she behaves herself I’ll leave her
-all my money when I die. Not one of my own relatives shall have a cent
-of it in any case, I’m determined on that. It was the idea of
-aggravating them that set me to thinking of adopting a child as much as
-anything in the first place. Una shall be well dressed and educated and
-trained, Mr. Meredith, and I shall give her music and painting lessons
-and treat her as if she was my own.”
-
-Mr. Meredith was wide enough awake by this time. There was a faint
-flush in his pale cheek and a dangerous light in his fine dark eyes.
-Was this woman, whose vulgarity and consciousness of money oozed out of
-her at every pore, actually asking him to give her Una—his dear little
-wistful Una with Cecilia’s own dark-blue eyes—the child whom the dying
-mother had clasped to her heart after the other children had been led
-weeping from the room. Cecilia had clung to her baby until the gates of
-death had shut between them. She had looked over the little dark head
-to her husband.
-
-“Take good care of her, John,” she had entreated. “She is so small—and
-sensitive. The others can fight their way—but the world will hurt
-_her_. Oh, John, I don’t know what you and she are going to do. You
-both need me so much. But keep her close to you—keep her close to you.”
-
-These had been almost her last words except a few unforgettable ones
-for him alone. And it was this child whom Mrs. Davis had coolly
-announced her intention of taking from him. He sat up straight and
-looked at Mrs. Davis. In spite of the worn dressing gown and the frayed
-slippers there was something about him that made Mrs. Davis feel a
-little of the old reverence for “the cloth” in which she had been
-brought up. After all, there _was_ a certain divinity hedging a
-minister, even a poor, unworldly, abstracted one.
-
-“I thank you for your kind intentions, Mrs. Davis,” said Mr. Meredith
-with a gentle, final, quite awful courtesy, “but I cannot give you my
-child.”
-
-Mrs. Davis looked blank. She had never dreamed of his refusing.
-
-“Why, Mr. Meredith,” she said in astonishment. “You must be cr—you
-can’t mean it. You must think it over—think of all the advantages I can
-give her.”
-
-“There is no need to think it over, Mrs. Davis. It is entirely out of
-the question. All the worldly advantages it is in your power to bestow
-on her could not compensate for the loss of a father’s love and care. I
-thank you again—but it is not to be thought of.”
-
-Disappointment angered Mrs. Davis beyond the power of old habit to
-control. Her broad red face turned purple and her voice trembled.
-
-“I thought you’d be only too glad to let me have her,” she sneered.
-
-“Why did you think that?” asked Mr. Meredith quietly.
-
-“Because nobody ever supposed you cared anything about any of your
-children,” retorted Mrs. Davis contemptuously. “You neglect them
-scandalously. It is the talk of the place. They aren’t fed and dressed
-properly, and they’re not trained at all. They have no more manners
-than a pack of wild Indians. You never think of doing your duty as a
-father. You let a stray child come here among them for a fortnight and
-never took any notice of her—a child that swore like a trooper I’m
-told. _You_ wouldn’t have cared if they’d caught small-pox from her.
-And Faith made an exhibition of herself getting up in preaching and
-making that speech! And she rid a pig down the street—under your very
-eyes I understand. The way they act is past belief and you never lift a
-finger to stop them or try to teach them anything. And now when I offer
-one of them a good home and good prospects you refuse it and insult me.
-A pretty father you, to talk of loving and caring for your children!”
-
-“That will do, woman!” said Mr. Meredith. He stood up and looked at
-Mrs. Davis with eyes that made her quail. “That will do,” he repeated.
-“I desire to hear no more, Mrs. Davis. You have said too much. It may
-be that I have been remiss in some respects in my duty as a parent, but
-it is not for you to remind me of it in such terms as you have used.
-Let us say good afternoon.”
-
-Mrs. Davis did not say anything half so amiable as good afternoon, but
-she took her departure. As she swept past the minister a large, plump
-toad, which Carl had secreted under the lounge, hopped out almost under
-her feet. Mrs. Davis gave a shriek and in trying to avoid treading on
-the awful thing, lost her balance and her parasol. She did not exactly
-fall, but she staggered and reeled across the room in a very
-undignified fashion and brought up against the door with a thud that
-jarred her from head to foot. Mr. Meredith, who had not seen the toad,
-wondered if she had been attacked with some kind of apoplectic or
-paralytic seizure, and ran in alarm to her assistance. But Mrs. Davis,
-recovering her feet, waved him back furiously.
-
-“Don’t you dare to touch me,” she almost shouted. “This is some more of
-your children’s doings, I suppose. This is no fit place for a decent
-woman. Give me my umbrella and let me go. I’ll never darken the doors
-of your manse or your church again.”
-
-Mr. Meredith picked up the gorgeous parasol meekly enough and gave it
-to her. Mrs. Davis seized it and marched out. Jerry and Carl had given
-up banister sliding and were sitting on the edge of the veranda with
-Faith. Unfortunately, all three were singing at the tops of their
-healthy young voices “There’ll be a hot time in the old town to-night.”
-Mrs. Davis believed the song was meant for her and her only. She
-stopped and shook her parasol at them.
-
-“Your father is a fool,” she said, “and you are three young varmints
-that ought to be whipped within an inch of your lives.”
-
-“He isn’t,” cried Faith. “We’re not,” cried the boys. But Mrs. Davis
-was gone.
-
-“Goodness, isn’t she mad!” said Jerry. “And what is a ‘varmint’
-anyhow?”
-
-John Meredith paced up and down the parlour for a few minutes; then he
-went back to his study and sat down. But he did not return to his
-German theology. He was too grievously disturbed for that. Mrs. Davis
-had wakened him up with a vengeance. _Was_ he such a remiss, careless
-father as she had accused him of being? _Had_ he so scandalously
-neglected the bodily and spiritual welfare of the four little
-motherless creatures dependent on him? _Were_ his people talking of it
-as harshly as Mrs. Davis had declared? It must be so, since Mrs. Davis
-had come to ask for Una in the full and confident belief that he would
-hand the child over to her as unconcernedly and gladly as one might
-hand over a strayed, unwelcome kitten. And, if so, what then?
-
-John Meredith groaned and resumed his pacing up and down the dusty,
-disordered room. What could he do? He loved his children as deeply as
-any father could and he knew, past the power of Mrs. Davis or any of
-her ilk, to disturb his conviction, that they loved him devotedly. But
-_was_ he fit to have charge of them? He knew—none better—his weaknesses
-and limitations. What was needed was a good woman’s presence and
-influence and common sense. But how could that be arranged? Even were
-he able to get such a housekeeper it would cut Aunt Martha to the
-quick. She believed she could still do all that was meet and necessary.
-He could not so hurt and insult the poor old woman who had been so kind
-to him and his. How devoted she had been to Cecilia! And Cecilia had
-asked him to be very considerate of Aunt Martha. To be sure, he
-suddenly remembered that Aunt Martha had once hinted that he ought to
-marry again. He felt she would not resent a wife as she would a
-housekeeper. But that was out of the question. He did not wish to
-marry—he did not and could not care for anyone. Then what could he do?
-It suddenly occurred to him that he would go over to Ingleside and talk
-over his difficulties with Mrs. Blythe. Mrs. Blythe was one of the few
-women he never felt shy or tongue-tied with. She was always so
-sympathetic and refreshing. It might be that she could suggest some
-solution of his problems. And even if she could not Mr. Meredith felt
-that he needed a little decent human companionship after his dose of
-Mrs. Davis—something to take the taste of her out of his soul.
-
-He dressed hurriedly and ate his supper less abstractedly than usual.
-It occurred to him that it was a poor meal. He looked at his children;
-they were rosy and healthy looking enough—except Una, and she had never
-been very strong even when her mother was alive. They were all laughing
-and talking—certainly they seemed happy. Carl was especially happy
-because he had two most beautiful spiders crawling around his supper
-plate. Their voices were pleasant, their manners did not seem bad, they
-were considerate of and gentle to one another. Yet Mrs. Davis had said
-their behaviour was the talk of the congregation.
-
-As Mr. Meredith went through his gate Dr. Blythe and Mrs. Blythe drove
-past on the road that led to Lowbridge. The minister’s face fell. Mrs.
-Blythe was going away—there was no use in going to Ingleside. And he
-craved a little companionship more than ever. As he gazed rather
-hopelessly over the landscape the sunset light struck on a window of
-the old West homestead on the hill. It flared out rosily like a beacon
-of good hope. He suddenly remembered Rosemary and Ellen West. He
-thought that he would relish some of Ellen’s pungent conversation. He
-thought it would be pleasant to see Rosemary’s slow, sweet smile and
-calm, heavenly blue eyes again. What did that old poem of Sir Philip
-Sidney’s say?—“continual comfort in a face”—that just suited her. And
-he needed comfort. Why not go and call? He remembered that Ellen had
-asked him to drop in sometimes and there was Rosemary’s book to take
-back—he ought to take it back before he forgot. He had an uneasy
-suspicion that there were a great many books in his library which he
-had borrowed at sundry times and in divers places and had forgotten to
-take back. It was surely his duty to guard against that in this case.
-He went back into his study, got the book, and plunged downward into
-Rainbow Valley.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV.
-MORE GOSSIP
-
-
-On the evening after Mrs. Myra Murray of the over-harbour section had
-been buried Miss Cornelia and Mary Vance came up to Ingleside. There
-were several things concerning which Miss Cornelia wished to unburden
-her soul. The funeral had to be all talked over, of course. Susan and
-Miss Cornelia thrashed this out between them; Anne took no part or
-delight in such goulish conversations. She sat a little apart and
-watched the autumnal flame of dahlias in the garden, and the dreaming,
-glamorous harbour of the September sunset. Mary Vance sat beside her,
-knitting meekly. Mary’s heart was down in the Rainbow Valley, whence
-came sweet, distance-softened sounds of children’s laughter, but her
-fingers were under Miss Cornelia’s eye. She had to knit so many rounds
-of her stocking before she might go to the valley. Mary knit and held
-her tongue, but used her ears.
-
-“I never saw a nicer looking corpse,” said Miss Cornelia judicially.
-“Myra Murray was always a pretty woman—she was a Corey from Lowbridge
-and the Coreys were noted for their good looks.”
-
-“I said to the corpse as I passed it, ‘poor woman. I hope you are as
-happy as you look.’” sighed Susan. “She had not changed much. That
-dress she wore was the black satin she got for her daughter’s wedding
-fourteen years ago. Her Aunt told her then to keep it for her funeral,
-but Myra laughed and said, ‘I may wear it to my funeral, Aunty, but I
-will have a good time out of it first.’ And I may say she did. Myra
-Murray was not a woman to attend her own funeral before she died. Many
-a time afterwards when I saw her enjoying herself out in company I
-thought to myself, ‘You are a handsome woman, Myra Murray, and that
-dress becomes you, but it will likely be your shroud at last.’ And you
-see my words have come true, Mrs. Marshall Elliott.”
-
-Susan sighed again heavily. She was enjoying herself hugely. A funeral
-was really a delightful subject of conversation.
-
-“I always liked to meet Myra,” said Miss Cornelia. “She was always so
-gay and cheerful—she made you feel better just by her handshake. Myra
-always made the best of things.”
-
-“That is true,” asserted Susan. “Her sister-in-law told me that when
-the doctor told her at last that he could do nothing for her and she
-would never rise from that bed again, Myra said quite cheerfully,
-‘Well, if that is so, I’m thankful the preserving is all done, and I
-will not have to face the fall house-cleaning. I always liked
-house-cleaning in spring,’ she says, ‘but I always hated it in the
-fall. I will get clear of it this year, thank goodness.’ There are
-people who would call that levity, Mrs. Marshall Elliott, and I think
-her sister-in-law was a little ashamed of it. She said perhaps her
-sickness had made Myra a little light-headed. But I said, ‘No, Mrs.
-Murray, do not worry over it. It was just Myra’s way of looking at the
-bright side.’”
-
-“Her sister Luella was just the opposite,” said Miss Cornelia. “There
-was no bright side for Luella—there was just black and shades of gray.
-For years she used always to be declaring she was going to die in a
-week or so. ‘I won’t be here to burden you long,’ she would tell her
-family with a groan. And if any of them ventured to talk about their
-little future plans she’d groan also and say, ‘Ah, _I_ won’t be here
-then.’ When I went to see her I always agreed with her and it made her
-so mad that she was always quite a lot better for several days
-afterwards. She has better health now but no more cheerfulness. Myra
-was so different. She was always doing or saying something to make some
-one feel good. Perhaps the men they married had something to do with
-it. Luella’s man was a Tartar, believe _me_, while Jim Murray was
-decent, as men go. He looked heart-broken to-day. It isn’t often I feel
-sorry for a man at his wife’s funeral, but I did feel for Jim Murray.”
-
-“No wonder he looked sad. He will not get a wife like Myra again in a
-hurry,” said Susan. “Maybe he will not try, since his children are all
-grown up and Mirabel is able to keep house. But there is no predicting
-what a widower may or may not do and I, for one, will not try.”
-
-“We’ll miss Myra terrible in church,” said Miss Cornelia. “She was such
-a worker. Nothing ever stumped _her_. If she couldn’t get over a
-difficulty she’d get around it, and if she couldn’t get around it she’d
-pretend it wasn’t there—and generally it wasn’t. ‘I’ll keep a stiff
-upper lip to my journey’s end,’ said she to me once. Well, she has
-ended her journey.”
-
-“Do you think so?” asked Anne suddenly, coming back from dreamland. “I
-can’t picture _her_ journey as being ended. Can _you_ think of her
-sitting down and folding her hands—that eager, asking spirit of hers,
-with its fine adventurous outlook? No, I think in death she just opened
-a gate and went through—on—on—to new, shining adventures.”
-
-“Maybe—maybe,” assented Miss Cornelia. “Do you know, Anne dearie, I
-never was much taken with this everlasting rest doctrine myself—though
-I hope it isn’t heresy to say so. I want to bustle round in heaven the
-same as here. And I hope there’ll be a celestial substitute for pies
-and doughnuts—something that has to be MADE. Of course, one does get
-awful tired at times—and the older you are the tireder you get. But the
-very tiredest could get rested in something short of eternity, you’d
-think—except, perhaps, a lazy man.”
-
-“When I meet Myra Murray again,” said Anne, “I want to see her coming
-towards me, brisk and laughing, just as she always did here.”
-
-“Oh, Mrs. Dr. dear,” said Susan, in a shocked tone, “you surely do not
-think that Myra will be laughing in the world to come?”
-
-“Why not, Susan? Do you think we will be crying there?”
-
-“No, no, Mrs. Dr. dear, do not misunderstand me. I do not think we
-shall be either crying or laughing.”
-
-“What then?”
-
-“Well,” said Susan, driven to it, “it is my opinion, Mrs. Dr. dear,
-that we shall just look solemn and holy.”
-
-“And do you really think, Susan,” said Anne, looking solemn enough,
-“that either Myra Murray or I could look solemn and holy all the
-time—_all_ the time, Susan?”
-
-“Well,” admitted Susan reluctantly, “I might go so far as to say that
-you both would have to smile now and again, but I can never admit that
-there will be laughing in heaven. The idea seems really irreverent,
-Mrs. Dr. dear.”
-
-“Well, to come back to earth,” said Miss Cornelia, “who can we get to
-take Myra’s class in Sunday School? Julia Clow has been teaching it
-since Myra took ill, but she’s going to town for the winter and we’ll
-have to get somebody else.”
-
-“I heard that Mrs. Laurie Jamieson wanted it,” said Anne. “The
-Jamiesons have come to church very regularly since they moved to the
-Glen from Lowbridge.”
-
-“New brooms!” said Miss Cornelia dubiously. “Wait till they’ve gone
-regularly for a year.”
-
-“You cannot depend on Mrs. Jamieson a bit, Mrs. Dr. dear,” said Susan
-solemnly. “She died once and when they were measuring her for her
-coffin, after laying her out just beautiful, did she not go and come
-back to life! Now, Mrs. Dr. dear, you know you _cannot_ depend on a
-woman like that.”
-
-“She might turn Methodist at any moment,” said Miss Cornelia. “They
-tell me they went to the Methodist Church at Lowbridge quite as often
-as to the Presbyterian. I haven’t caught them at it here yet, but I
-would not approve of taking Mrs. Jamieson into the Sunday School. Yet
-we must not offend them. We are losing too many people, by death or bad
-temper. Mrs. Alec Davis has left the church, no one knows why. She told
-the managers that she would never pay another cent to Mr. Meredith’s
-salary. Of course, most people say that the children offended her, but
-somehow I don’t think so. I tried to pump Faith, but all I could get
-out of her was that Mrs. Davis had come, seemingly in high good humour,
-to see her father, and had left in an awful rage, calling them all
-‘varmints!’”
-
-“Varmints, indeed!” said Susan furiously. “Does Mrs. Alec Davis forget
-that her uncle on her mother’s side was suspected of poisoning his
-wife? Not that it was ever proved, Mrs. Dr. dear, and it does not do to
-believe all you hear. But if _I_ had an uncle whose wife died without
-any satisfactory reason, _I_ would not go about the country calling
-innocent children varmints.”
-
-“The point is,” said Miss Cornelia, “that Mrs. Davis paid a large
-subscription, and how its loss is going to be made up is a problem. And
-if she turns the other Douglases against Mr. Meredith, as she will
-certainly try to do, he will just have to go.”
-
-“I do not think Mrs. Alec Davis is very well liked by the rest of the
-clan,” said Susan. “It is not likely she will be able to influence
-them.”
-
-“But those Douglases all hang together so. If you touch one, you touch
-all. We can’t do without them, so much is certain. They pay half the
-salary. They are not mean, whatever else may be said of them. Norman
-Douglas used to give a hundred a year long ago before he left.”
-
-“What did he leave for?” asked Anne.
-
-“He declared a member of the session cheated him in a cow deal. He
-hasn’t come to church for twenty years. His wife used to come regular
-while she was alive, poor thing, but he never would let her pay
-anything, except one red cent every Sunday. She felt dreadfully
-humiliated. I don’t know that he was any too good a husband to her,
-though she was never heard to complain. But she always had a cowed
-look. Norman Douglas didn’t get the woman he wanted thirty years ago
-and the Douglases never liked to put up with second best.”
-
-“Who was the woman he did want.”
-
-“Ellen West. They weren’t engaged exactly, I believe, but they went
-about together for two years. And then they just broke off—nobody ever
-knew why. Just some silly quarrel, I suppose. And Norman went and
-married Hester Reese before his temper had time to cool—married her
-just to spite Ellen, I haven’t a doubt. So like a man! Hester was a
-nice little thing, but she never had much spirit and he broke what
-little she had. She was too meek for Norman. He needed a woman who
-could stand up to him. Ellen would have kept him in fine order and he
-would have liked her all the better for it. He despised Hester, that is
-the truth, just because she always gave in to him. I used to hear him
-say many a time, long ago when he was a young fellow ‘Give me a spunky
-woman—spunk for me every time.’ And then he went and married a girl who
-couldn’t say boo to a goose—man-like. That family of Reeses were just
-vegetables. They went through the motions of living, but they didn’t
-_live_.”
-
-“Russell Reese used his first wife’s wedding-ring to marry his second,”
-said Susan reminiscently. “That was _too_ economical in my opinion,
-Mrs. Dr. dear. And his brother John has his own tombstone put up in the
-over-harbour graveyard, with everything on it but the date of death,
-and he goes and looks at it every Sunday. Most folks would not consider
-that much fun, but it is plain he does. People do have such different
-ideas of enjoyment. As for Norman Douglas, he is a perfect heathen.
-When the last minister asked him why he never went to church he said
-‘Too many ugly women there, parson—too many ugly women!’ I should like
-to go to such a man, Mrs. Dr. dear, and say to him solemnly, ‘There is
-a hell!’”
-
-“Oh, Norman doesn’t believe there is such a place,” said Miss Cornelia.
-“I hope he’ll find out his mistake when he comes to die. There, Mary,
-you’ve knit your three inches and you can go and play with the children
-for half an hour.”
-
-Mary needed no second bidding. She flew to Rainbow Valley with a heart
-as light as her heels, and in the course of conversation told Faith
-Meredith all about Mrs. Alec Davis.
-
-“And Mrs. Elliott says that she’ll turn all the Douglases against your
-father and then he’ll have to leave the Glen because his salary won’t
-be paid,” concluded Mary. “_I_ don’t know what is to be done, honest to
-goodness. If only old Norman Douglas would come back to church and pay,
-it wouldn’t be so bad. But he won’t—and the Douglases will leave—and
-you all will have to go.”
-
-Faith carried a heavy heart to bed with her that night. The thought of
-leaving the Glen was unbearable. Nowhere else in the world were there
-such chums as the Blythes. Her little heart had been wrung when they
-had left Maywater—she had shed many bitter tears when she parted with
-Maywater chums and the old manse there where her mother had lived and
-died. She could not contemplate calmly the thought of such another and
-harder wrench. She _couldn’t_ leave Glen St. Mary and dear Rainbow
-Valley and that delicious graveyard.
-
-“It’s awful to be minister’s family,” groaned Faith into her pillow.
-“Just as soon as you get fond of a place you are torn up by the roots.
-I’ll never, never, _never_ marry a minister, no matter how nice he is.”
-
-Faith sat up in bed and looked out of the little vine-hung window. The
-night was very still, the silence broken only by Una’s soft breathing.
-Faith felt terribly alone in the world. She could see Glen St. Mary
-lying under the starry blue meadows of the autumn night. Over the
-valley a light shone from the girls’ room at Ingleside, and another
-from Walter’s room. Faith wondered if poor Walter had toothache again.
-Then she sighed, with a little passing sigh of envy of Nan and Di. They
-had a mother and a settled home—_they_ were not at the mercy of people
-who got angry without any reason and called you a varmint. Away beyond
-the Glen, amid fields that were very quiet with sleep, another light
-was burning. Faith knew it shone in the house where Norman Douglas
-lived. He was reputed to sit up all hours of the night reading. Mary
-had said if he could only be induced to return to the church all would
-be well. And why not? Faith looked at a big, low star hanging over the
-tall, pointed spruce at the gate of the Methodist Church and had an
-inspiration. She knew what ought to be done and she, Faith Meredith,
-would do it. She would make everything right. With a sigh of
-satisfaction, she turned from the lonely, dark world and cuddled down
-beside Una.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI.
-TIT FOR TAT
-
-
-With Faith, to decide was to act. She lost no time in carrying out the
-idea. As soon as she came home from school the next day she left the
-manse and made her way down the Glen. Walter Blythe joined her as she
-passed the post office.
-
-“I’m going to Mrs. Elliott’s on an errand for mother,” he said. “Where
-are you going, Faith?”
-
-“I am going somewhere on church business,” said Faith loftily. She did
-not volunteer any further information and Walter felt rather snubbed.
-They walked on in silence for a little while. It was a warm, windy
-evening with a sweet, resinous air. Beyond the sand dunes were gray
-seas, soft and beautiful. The Glen brook bore down a freight of gold
-and crimson leaves, like fairy shallops. In Mr. James Reese’s buckwheat
-stubble-land, with its beautiful tones of red and brown, a crow
-parliament was being held, whereat solemn deliberations regarding the
-welfare of crowland were in progress. Faith cruelly broke up the august
-assembly by climbing up on the fence and hurling a broken rail at it.
-Instantly the air was filled with flapping black wings and indignant
-caws.
-
-“Why did you do that?” said Walter reproachfully. “They were having
-such a good time.”
-
-“Oh, I hate crows,” said Faith airily. “The are so black and sly I feel
-sure they’re hypocrites. They steal little birds’ eggs out of their
-nests, you know. I saw one do it on our lawn last spring. Walter, what
-makes you so pale to-day? Did you have the toothache again last night?”
-
-Walter shivered.
-
-“Yes—a raging one. I couldn’t sleep a wink—so I just paced up and down
-the floor and imagined I was an early Christian martyr being tortured
-at the command of Nero. That helped ever so much for a while—and then I
-got so bad I couldn’t imagine anything.”
-
-“Did you cry?” asked Faith anxiously.
-
-“No—but I lay down on the floor and groaned,” admitted Walter. “Then
-the girls came in and Nan put cayenne pepper in it—and that made it
-worse—Di made me hold a swallow of cold water in my mouth—and I
-couldn’t stand it, so they called Susan. Susan said it served me right
-for sitting up in the cold garret yesterday writing poetry trash. But
-she started up the kitchen fire and got me a hot-water bottle and it
-stopped the toothache. As soon as I felt better I told Susan my poetry
-wasn’t trash and she wasn’t any judge. And she said no, thank goodness
-she was not and she did not know anything about poetry except that it
-was mostly a lot of lies. Now you know, Faith, that isn’t so. That is
-one reason why I like writing poetry—you can say so many things in it
-that are true in poetry but wouldn’t be true in prose. I told Susan so,
-but she said to stop my jawing and go to sleep before the water got
-cold, or she’d leave me to see if rhyming would cure toothache, and she
-hoped it would be a lesson to me.”
-
-“Why don’t you go to the dentist at Lowbridge and get the tooth out?”
-
-Walter shivered again.
-
-“They want me to—but I can’t. It would hurt so.”
-
-“Are you afraid of a little pain?” asked Faith contemptuously.
-
-Walter flushed.
-
-“It would be a _big_ pain. I hate being hurt. Father said he wouldn’t
-insist on my going—he’d wait until I’d made up my own mind to go.”
-
-“It wouldn’t hurt as long as the toothache,” argued Faith, “You’ve had
-five spells of toothache. If you’d just go and have it out there’d be
-no more bad nights. _I_ had a tooth out once. I yelled for a moment,
-but it was all over then—only the bleeding.”
-
-“The bleeding is worst of all—it’s so ugly,” cried Walter. “It just
-made me sick when Jem cut his foot last summer. Susan said I looked
-more like fainting than Jem did. But I couldn’t bear to see Jem hurt,
-either. Somebody is always getting hurt, Faith—and it’s awful. I just
-can’t _bear_ to see things hurt. It makes me just want to run—and
-run—and run—till I can’t hear or see them.”
-
-“There’s no use making a fuss over anyone getting hurt,” said Faith,
-tossing her curls. “Of course, if you’ve hurt yourself very bad, you
-have to yell—and blood _is_ messy—and I don’t like seeing other people
-hurt, either. But I don’t want to run—I want to go to work and help
-them. Your father _has_ to hurt people lots of times to cure them. What
-would they do if _he_ ran away?”
-
-“I didn’t say I _would_ run. I said I _wanted_ to run. That’s a
-different thing. I want to help people, too. But oh, I wish there
-weren’t any ugly, dreadful things in the world. I wish everything was
-glad and beautiful.”
-
-“Well, don’t let’s think of what isn’t,” said Faith. “After all,
-there’s lots of fun in being alive. You wouldn’t have toothache if you
-were dead, but still, wouldn’t you lots rather be alive than dead? I
-would, a hundred times. Oh, here’s Dan Reese. He’s been down to the
-harbour for fish.”
-
-“I hate Dan Reese,” said Walter.
-
-“So do I. All us girls do. I’m just going to walk past and never take
-the least notice of him. You watch me!”
-
-Faith accordingly stalked past Dan with her chin out and an expression
-of scorn that bit into his soul. He turned and shouted after her.
-
-“Pig-girl! Pig-girl!! Pig-girl!!!” in a crescendo of insult.
-
-Faith walked on, seemingly oblivious. But her lip trembled slightly
-with a sense of outrage. She knew she was no match for Dan Reese when
-it came to an exchange of epithets. She wished Jem Blythe had been with
-her instead of Walter. If Dan Reese had dared to call her a pig-girl in
-Jem’s hearing, Jem would have wiped up the dust with him. But it never
-occurred to Faith to expect Walter to do it, or blame him for not doing
-it. Walter, she knew, never fought other boys. Neither did Charlie Clow
-of the north road. The strange part was that, while she despised
-Charlie for a coward, it never occurred to her to disdain Walter. It
-was simply that he seemed to her an inhabitant of a world of his own,
-where different traditions prevailed. Faith would as soon have expected
-a starry-eyed young angel to pummel dirty, freckled Dan Reese for her
-as Walter Blythe. She would not have blamed the angel and she did not
-blame Walter Blythe. But she wished that sturdy Jem or Jerry had been
-there and Dan’s insult continued to rankle in her soul.
-
-Walter was pale no longer. He had flushed crimson and his beautiful
-eyes were clouded with shame and anger. He knew that he ought to have
-avenged Faith. Jem would have sailed right in and made Dan eat his
-words with bitter sauce. Ritchie Warren would have overwhelmed Dan with
-worse “names” than Dan had called Faith. But Walter could not—simply
-could not—“call names.” He knew he would get the worst of it. He could
-never conceive or utter the vulgar, ribald insults of which Dan Reese
-had unlimited command. And as for the trial by fist, Walter couldn’t
-fight. He hated the idea. It was rough and painful—and, worst of all,
-it was ugly. He never could understand Jem’s exultation in an
-occasional conflict. But he wished he _could_ fight Dan Reese. He was
-horribly ashamed because Faith Meredith had been insulted in his
-presence and he had not tried to punish her insulter. He felt sure she
-must despise him. She had not even spoken to him since Dan had called
-her pig-girl. He was glad when they came to the parting of the ways.
-
-Faith, too, was relieved, though for a different reason. She wanted to
-be alone because she suddenly felt rather nervous about her errand.
-Impulse had cooled, especially since Dan had bruised her self-respect.
-She must go through with it, but she no longer had enthusiasm to
-sustain her. She was going to see Norman Douglas and ask him to come
-back to church, and she began to be afraid of him. What had seemed so
-easy and simple up at the Glen seemed very different down here. She had
-heard a good deal about Norman Douglas, and she knew that even the
-biggest boys in school were afraid of him. Suppose he called her
-something nasty—she had heard he was given to that. Faith could not
-endure being called names—they subdued her far more quickly than a
-physical blow. But she would go on—Faith Meredith always went on. If
-she did not her father might have to leave the Glen.
-
-At the end of the long lane Faith came to the house—a big,
-old-fashioned one with a row of soldierly Lombardies marching past it.
-On the back veranda Norman Douglas himself was sitting, reading a
-newspaper. His big dog was beside him. Behind, in the kitchen, where
-his housekeeper, Mrs. Wilson, was getting supper, there was a clatter
-of dishes—an angry clatter, for Norman Douglas had just had a quarrel
-with Mrs. Wilson, and both were in a very bad temper over it.
-Consequently, when Faith stepped on the veranda and Norman Douglas
-lowered his newspaper she found herself looking into the choleric eyes
-of an irritated man.
-
-Norman Douglas was rather a fine-looking personage in his way. He had a
-sweep of long red beard over his broad chest and a mane of red hair,
-ungrizzled by the years, on his massive head. His high, white forehead
-was unwrinkled and his blue eyes could flash still with all the fire of
-his tempestuous youth. He could be very amiable when he liked, and he
-could be very terrible. Poor Faith, so anxiously bent on retrieving the
-situation in regard to the church, had caught him in one of his
-terrible moods.
-
-He did not know who she was and he gazed at her with disfavour. Norman
-Douglas liked girls of spirit and flame and laughter. At this moment
-Faith was very pale. She was of the type to which colour means
-everything. Lacking her crimson cheeks she seemed meek and even
-insignificant. She looked apologetic and afraid, and the bully in
-Norman Douglas’s heart stirred.
-
-“Who the dickens are you? And what do you want here?” he demanded in
-his great resounding voice, with a fierce scowl.
-
-For once in her life Faith had nothing to say. She had never supposed
-Norman Douglas was like _this_. She was paralyzed with terror of him.
-He saw it and it made him worse.
-
-“What’s the matter with you?” he boomed. “You look as if you wanted to
-say something and was scared to say it. What’s troubling you? Confound
-it, speak up, can’t you?”
-
-No. Faith could not speak up. No words would come. But her lips began
-to tremble.
-
-“For heaven’s sake, don’t cry,” shouted Norman. “I can’t stand
-snivelling. If you’ve anything to say, say it and have done. Great
-Kitty, is the girl possessed of a dumb spirit? Don’t look at me like
-that—I’m human—I haven’t got a tail! Who are you—who are you, I say?”
-
-Norman’s voice could have been heard at the harbour. Operations in the
-kitchen were suspended. Mrs. Wilson was listening open-eared and eyed.
-Norman put his huge brown hands on his knees and leaned forward,
-staring into Faith’s pallid, shrinking face. He seemed to loom over her
-like some evil giant out of a fairy tale. She felt as if he would eat
-her up next thing, body and bones.
-
-“I—am—Faith—Meredith,” she said, in little more than a whisper.
-
-“Meredith, hey? One of the parson’s youngsters, hey? I’ve heard of
-you—I’ve heard of you! Riding on pigs and breaking the Sabbath! A nice
-lot! What do you want here, hey? What do you want of the old pagan,
-hey? _I_ don’t ask favours of parsons—and I don’t give any. What do you
-want, I say?”
-
-Faith wished herself a thousand miles away. She stammered out her
-thought in its naked simplicity.
-
-“I came—to ask you—to go to church—and pay—to the salary.”
-
-Norman glared at her. Then he burst forth again.
-
-“You impudent hussy—you! Who put you up to it, jade? Who put you up to
-it?”
-
-“Nobody,” said poor Faith.
-
-“That’s a lie. Don’t lie to me! Who sent you here? It wasn’t your
-father—he hasn’t the smeddum of a flea—but he wouldn’t send you to do
-what he dassn’t do himself. I suppose it was some of them confounded
-old maids at the Glen, was it—was it, hey?”
-
-“No—I—I just came myself.”
-
-“Do you take me for a fool?” shouted Norman.
-
-“No—I thought you were a gentleman,” said Faith faintly, and certainly
-without any thought of being sarcastic.
-
-Norman bounced up.
-
-“Mind your own business. I don’t want to hear another word from you. If
-you wasn’t such a kid I’d teach you to interfere in what doesn’t
-concern you. When I want parsons or pill-dosers I’ll send for them.
-Till I do I’ll have no truck with them. Do you understand? Now, get
-out, cheese-face.”
-
-Faith got out. She stumbled blindly down the steps, out of the yard
-gate and into the lane. Half way up the lane her daze of fear passed
-away and a reaction of tingling anger possessed her. By the time she
-reached the end of the lane she was in such a furious temper as she had
-never experienced before. Norman Douglas’ insults burned in her soul,
-kindling a scorching flame. Go home! Not she! She would go straight
-back and tell that old ogre just what she thought of him—she would show
-him—oh, wouldn’t she! Cheese-face, indeed!
-
-Unhesitatingly she turned and walked back. The veranda was deserted and
-the kitchen door shut. Faith opened the door without knocking, and went
-in. Norman Douglas had just sat down at the supper table, but he still
-held his newspaper. Faith walked inflexibly across the room, caught the
-paper from his hand, flung it on the floor and stamped on it. Then she
-faced him, with her flashing eyes and scarlet cheeks. She was such a
-handsome young fury that Norman Douglas hardly recognized her.
-
-“What’s brought you back?” he growled, but more in bewilderment than
-rage.
-
-Unquailingly she glared back into the angry eyes against which so few
-people could hold their own.
-
-“I have come back to tell you exactly what I think of you,” said Faith
-in clear, ringing tones. “I am not afraid of you. You are a rude,
-unjust, tyrannical, disagreeable old man. Susan says you are sure to go
-to hell, and I was sorry for you, but I am not now. Your wife never had
-a new hat for ten years—no wonder she died. I am going to make faces at
-you whenever I see you after this. Every time I am behind you you will
-know what is happening. Father has a picture of the devil in a book in
-his study, and I mean to go home and write your name under it. You are
-an old vampire and I hope you’ll have the Scotch fiddle!”
-
-Faith did not know what a vampire meant any more than she knew what the
-Scotch fiddle was. She had heard Susan use the expressions and gathered
-from her tone that both were dire things. But Norman Douglas knew what
-the latter meant at least. He had listened in absolute silence to
-Faith’s tirade. When she paused for breath, with a stamp of her foot,
-he suddenly burst into loud laughter. With a mighty slap of hand on
-knee he exclaimed,
-
-“I vow you’ve got spunk, after all—I like spunk. Come, sit down—sit
-down!”
-
-“I will not.” Faith’s eyes flashed more passionately. She thought she
-was being made fun of—treated contemptuously. She would have enjoyed
-another explosion of rage, but this cut deep. “I will not sit down in
-your house. I am going home. But I am glad I came back here and told
-you exactly what my opinion of you is.”
-
-“So am I—so am I,” chuckled Norman. “I like you—you’re fine—you’re
-great. Such roses—such vim! Did I call her cheese-face? Why, she never
-smelt a cheese. Sit down. If you’d looked like that at the first, girl!
-So you’ll write my name under the devil’s picture, will you? But he’s
-black, girl, he’s black—and I’m red. It won’t do—it won’t do! And you
-hope I’ll have the Scotch fiddle, do you? Lord love you, girl, I had
-_it_ when I was a boy. Don’t wish it on me again. Sit down—sit in.
-We’ll tak’ a cup o’ kindness.”
-
-“No, thank you,” said Faith haughtily.
-
-“Oh, yes, you will. Come, come now, I apologize, girl—I apologize. I
-made a fool of myself and I’m sorry. Man can’t say fairer. Forget and
-forgive. Shake hands, girl—shake hands. She won’t—no, she won’t! But
-she must! Look-a-here, girl, if you’ll shake hands and break bread with
-me I’ll pay what I used to to the salary and I’ll go to church the
-first Sunday in every month and I’ll make Kitty Alec hold her jaw. I’m
-the only one in the clan can do it. Is it a bargain, girl?”
-
-It seemed a bargain. Faith found herself shaking hands with the ogre
-and then sitting at his board. Her temper was over—Faith’s tempers
-never lasted very long—but its excitement still sparkled in her eyes
-and crimsoned her cheeks. Norman Douglas looked at her admiringly.
-
-“Go, get some of your best preserves, Wilson,” he ordered, “and stop
-sulking, woman, stop sulking. What if we did have a quarrel, woman? A
-good squall clears the air and briskens things up. But no drizzling and
-fogging afterwards—no drizzling and fogging, woman. I can’t stand that.
-Temper in a woman but no tears for me. Here, girl, is some messed up
-meat and potatoes for you. Begin on that. Wilson has some fancy name
-for it, but I call lit macanaccady. Anything I can’t analyze in the
-eating line I call macanaccady and anything wet that puzzles me I call
-shallamagouslem. Wilson’s tea is shallamagouslem. I swear she makes it
-out of burdocks. Don’t take any of the ungodly black liquid—here’s some
-milk for you. What did you say your name was?”
-
-“Faith.”
-
-“No name that—no name that! I can’t stomach such a name. Got any
-other?”
-
-“No, sir.”
-
-“Don’t like the name, don’t like it. There’s no smeddum to it. Besides,
-it makes me think of my Aunt Jinny. She called her three girls Faith,
-Hope, and Charity. Faith didn’t believe in anything—Hope was a born
-pessimist—and Charity was a miser. You ought to be called Red Rose—you
-look like one when you’re mad. _I’ll_ call you Red Rose. And you’ve
-roped me into promising to go to church? But only once a month,
-remember—only once a month. Come now, girl, will you let me off? I used
-to pay a hundred to the salary every year and go to church. If I
-promise to pay two hundred a year will you let me off going to church?
-Come now!”
-
-“No, no, sir,” said Faith, dimpling roguishly. “I want you to go to
-church, too.”
-
-“Well, a bargain is a bargain. I reckon I can stand it twelve times a
-year. What a sensation it’ll make the first Sunday I go! And old Susan
-Baker says I’m going to hell, hey? Do you believe I’ll go there—come,
-now, do you?”
-
-“I hope not, sir,” stammered Faith in some confusion.
-
-“_Why_ do you hope not? Come, now, _why_ do you hope not? Give us a
-reason, girl—give us a reason.”
-
-“It—it must be a very—uncomfortable place, sir.”
-
-“Uncomfortable? All depends on your taste in comfortable, girl. I’d
-soon get tired of angels. Fancy old Susan in a halo, now!”
-
-Faith did fancy it, and it tickled her so much that she had to laugh.
-Norman eyed her approvingly.
-
-“See the fun of it, hey? Oh, I like you—you’re great. About this church
-business, now—can your father preach?”
-
-“He is a splendid preacher,” said loyal Faith.
-
-“He is, hey? I’ll see—I’ll watch out for flaws. He’d better be careful
-what he says before _me_. I’ll catch him—I’ll trip him up—I’ll keep
-tabs on his arguments. I’m bound to have some fun out of this church
-going business. Does he ever preach hell?”
-
-“No—o—o—I don’t think so.”
-
-“Too bad. I like sermons on that subject. You tell him that if he wants
-to keep me in good humour to preach a good rip-roaring sermon on hell
-once every six months—and the more brimstone the better. I like ‘em
-smoking. And think of all the pleasure he’d give the old maids, too.
-They’d all keep looking at old Norman Douglas and thinking, ‘That’s for
-you, you old reprobate. That’s what’s in store for _you!_’ I’ll give an
-extra ten dollars every time you get your father to preach on hell.
-Here’s Wilson and the jam. Like that, hey? _It_ isn’t macanaccady.
-Taste!”
-
-Faith obediently swallowed the big spoonful Norman held out to her.
-Luckily it _was_ good.
-
-“Best plum jam in the world,” said Norman, filling a large saucer and
-plumping it down before her. “Glad you like it. I’ll give you a couple
-of jars to take home with you. There’s nothing mean about me—never was.
-The devil can’t catch me at _that_ corner, anyhow. It wasn’t my fault
-that Hester didn’t have a new hat for ten years. It was her own—she
-pinched on hats to save money to give yellow fellows over in China. _I_
-never gave a cent to missions in my life—never will. Never you try to
-bamboozle me into that! A hundred a year to the salary and church once
-a month—but no spoiling good heathens to make poor Christians! Why,
-girl, they wouldn’t be fit for heaven or hell—clean spoiled for either
-place—clean spoiled. Hey, Wilson, haven’t you got a smile on yet? Beats
-all how you women can sulk! _I_ never sulked in my life—it’s just one
-big flash and crash with me and then—pouf—the squall’s over and the sun
-is out and you could eat out of my hand.”
-
-Norman insisted on driving Faith home after supper and he filled the
-buggy up with apples, cabbages, potatoes and pumpkins and jars of jam.
-
-“There’s a nice little tom-pussy out in the barn. I’ll give you that
-too, if you’d like it. Say the word,” he said.
-
-“No, thank you,” said Faith decidedly. “I don’t like cats, and besides,
-I have a rooster.”
-
-“Listen to her. You can’t cuddle a rooster as you can a kitten. Who
-ever heard of petting a rooster? Better take little Tom. I want to find
-a good home for him.”
-
-“No. Aunt Martha has a cat and he would kill a strange kitten.”
-
-Norman yielded the point rather reluctantly. He gave Faith an exciting
-drive home, behind his wild two-year old, and when he had let her out
-at the kitchen door of the manse and dumped his cargo on the back
-veranda he drove away shouting,
-
-“It’s only once a month—only once a month, mind!”
-
-Faith went up to bed, feeling a little dizzy and breathless, as if she
-had just escaped from the grasp of a genial whirlwind. She was happy
-and thankful. No fear now that they would have to leave the Glen and
-the graveyard and Rainbow Valley. But she fell asleep troubled by a
-disagreeable subconsciousness that Dan Reese had called her pig-girl
-and that, having stumbled on such a congenial epithet, he would
-continue to call her so whenever opportunity offered.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII.
-A DOUBLE VICTORY
-
-
-Norman Douglas came to church the first Sunday in November and made all
-the sensation he desired. Mr. Meredith shook hands with him absently on
-the church steps and hoped dreamily that Mrs. Douglas was well.
-
-“She wasn’t very well just before I buried her ten years ago, but I
-reckon she has better health now,” boomed Norman, to the horror and
-amusement of every one except Mr. Meredith, who was absorbed in
-wondering if he had made the last head of his sermon as clear as he
-might have, and hadn’t the least idea what Norman had said to him or he
-to Norman.
-
-Norman intercepted Faith at the gate.
-
-“Kept my word, you see—kept my word, Red Rose. I’m free now till the
-first Sunday in December. Fine sermon, girl—fine sermon. Your father
-has more in his head than he carries on his face. But he contradicted
-himself once—tell him he contradicted himself. And tell him I want that
-brimstone sermon in December. Great way to wind up the old year—with a
-taste of hell, you know. And what’s the matter with a nice tasty
-discourse on heaven for New Year’s? Though it wouldn’t be half as
-interesting as hell, girl—not half. Only I’d like to know what your
-father thinks about heaven—he _can_ think—rarest thing in the world—a
-person who can think. But he _did_ contradict himself. Ha, ha! Here’s a
-question you might ask him sometime when he’s awake, girl. ‘Can God
-make a stone so big He couldn’t lift it Himself?’ Don’t forget now. I
-want to hear his opinion on it. I’ve stumped many a minister with that,
-girl.”
-
-Faith was glad to escape him and run home. Dan Reese, standing among
-the crowd of boys at the gate, looked at her and shaped his mouth into
-“pig-girl,” but dared not utter it aloud just there. Next day in school
-was a different matter. At noon recess Faith encountered Dan in the
-little spruce plantation behind the school and Dan shouted once more,
-
-“Pig-girl! Pig-girl! _Rooster-girl!_”
-
-Walter Blythe suddenly rose from a mossy cushion behind a little clump
-of firs where he had been reading. He was very pale, but his eyes
-blazed.
-
-“You hold your tongue, Dan Reese!” he said.
-
-“Oh, hello, Miss Walter,” retorted Dan, not at all abashed. He vaulted
-airily to the top of the rail fence and chanted insultingly,
-
-“Cowardy, cowardy-custard
-Stole a pot of mustard,
-Cowardy, cowardy-custard!”
-
-“You are a coincidence!” said Walter scornfully, turning still whiter.
-He had only a very hazy idea what a coincidence was, but Dan had none
-at all and thought it must be something peculiarly opprobrious.
-
-“Yah! Cowardy!” he yelled gain. “Your mother writes lies—lies—lies! And
-Faith Meredith is a pig-girl—a—pig-girl—a pig-girl! And she’s a
-rooster-girl—a rooster-girl—a rooster-girl! Yah! Cowardy—cowardy—cust—”
-
-Dan got no further. Walter had hurled himself across the intervening
-space and knocked Dan off the fence backward with one well-directed
-blow. Dan’s sudden inglorious sprawl was greeted with a burst of
-laughter and a clapping of hands from Faith. Dan sprang up, purple with
-rage, and began to climb the fence. But just then the school-bell rang
-and Dan knew what happened to boys who were late during Mr. Hazard’s
-regime.
-
-“We’ll fight this out,” he howled. “Cowardy!”
-
-“Any time you like,” said Walter.
-
-“Oh, no, no, Walter,” protested Faith. “Don’t fight him. _I_ don’t mind
-what he says—I wouldn’t condescend to mind the like of _him_.”
-
-“He insulted you and he insulted my mother,” said Walter, with the same
-deadly calm. “Tonight after school, Dan.”
-
-“I’ve got to go right home from school to pick taters after the
-harrows, dad says,” answered Dan sulkily. “But to-morrow night’ll do.”
-
-“All right—here to-morrow night,” agreed Walter.
-
-“And I’ll smash your sissy-face for you,” promised Dan.
-
-Walter shuddered—not so much from fear of the threat as from repulsion
-over the ugliness and vulgarity of it. But he held his head high and
-marched into school. Faith followed in a conflict of emotions. She
-hated to think of Walter fighting that little sneak, but oh, he had
-been splendid! And he was going to fight for _her_—Faith Meredith—to
-punish her insulter! Of course he would win—such eyes spelled victory.
-
-Faith’s confidence in her champion had dimmed a little by evening,
-however. Walter had seemed so very quiet and dull the rest of the day
-in school.
-
-“If it were only Jem,” she sighed to Una, as they sat on Hezekiah
-Pollock’s tombstone in the graveyard. “_He_ is such a fighter—he could
-finish Dan off in no time. But Walter doesn’t know much about
-fighting.”
-
-“I’m so afraid he’ll be hurt,” sighed Una, who hated fighting and
-couldn’t understand the subtle, secret exultation she divined in Faith.
-
-“He oughtn’t to be,” said Faith uncomfortably. “He’s every bit as big
-as Dan.”
-
-“But Dan’s so much older,” said Una. “Why, he’s nearly a year older.”
-
-“Dan hasn’t done much fighting when you come to count up,” said Faith.
-“I believe he’s really a coward. He didn’t think Walter would fight, or
-he wouldn’t have called names before him. Oh, if you could just have
-seen Walter’s face when he looked at him, Una! It made me shiver—with a
-nice shiver. He looked just like Sir Galahad in that poem father read
-us on Saturday.”
-
-“I hate the thought of them fighting and I wish it could be stopped,”
-said Una.
-
-“Oh, it’s got to go on now,” cried Faith. “It’s a matter of honour.
-Don’t you _dare_ tell anyone, Una. If you do I’ll never tell you
-secrets again!”
-
-“I won’t tell,” agreed Una. “But I won’t stay to-morrow to watch the
-fight. I’m coming right home.”
-
-“Oh, all right. _I_ have to be there—it would be mean not to, when
-Walter is fighting for me. I’m going to tie my colours on his
-arm—that’s the thing to do when he’s my knight. How lucky Mrs. Blythe
-gave me that pretty blue hair-ribbon for my birthday! I’ve only worn it
-twice so it will be almost new. But I wish I was sure Walter would win.
-It will be so—so _humiliating_ if he doesn’t.”
-
-Faith would have been yet more dubious if she could have seen her
-champion just then. Walter had gone home from school with all his
-righteous anger at a low ebb and a very nasty feeling in its place. He
-had to fight Dan Reese the next night—and he didn’t want to—he hated
-the thought of it. And he kept thinking of it all the time. Not for a
-minute could he get away from the thought. Would it hurt much? He was
-terribly afraid that it would hurt. And would he be defeated and
-shamed?
-
-He could not eat any supper worth speaking of. Susan had made a big
-batch of his favourite monkey-faces, but he could choke only one down.
-Jem ate four. Walter wondered how he could. How could _anybody_ eat?
-And how could they all talk gaily as they were doing? There was mother,
-with her shining eyes and pink cheeks. _She_ didn’t know her son had to
-fight next day. Would she be so gay if she knew, Walter wondered
-darkly. Jem had taken Susan’s picture with his new camera and the
-result was passed around the table and Susan was terribly indignant
-over it.
-
-“I am no beauty, Mrs. Dr. dear, and well I know it, and have always
-known it,” she said in an aggrieved tone, “but that I am as ugly as
-that picture makes me out I will never, no, never believe.”
-
-Jem laughed over this and Anne laughed again with him. Walter couldn’t
-endure it. He got up and fled to his room.
-
-“That child has got something on his mind, Mrs. Dr. dear,” said Susan.
-“He has et next to nothing. Do you suppose he is plotting another
-poem?”
-
-Poor Walter was very far removed in spirit from the starry realms of
-poesy just then. He propped his elbow on his open window-sill and
-leaned his head drearily on his hands.
-
-“Come on down to the shore, Walter,” cried Jem, busting in. “The boys
-are going to burn the sand-hill grass to-night. Father says we can go.
-Come on.”
-
-At any other time Walter would have been delighted. He gloried in the
-burning of the sand-hill grass. But now he flatly refused to go, and no
-arguments or entreaties could move him. Disappointed Jem, who did not
-care for the long dark walk to Four Winds Point alone, retreated to his
-museum in the garret and buried himself in a book. He soon forgot his
-disappointment, revelling with the heroes of old romance, and pausing
-occasionally to picture himself a famous general, leading his troops to
-victory on some great battlefield.
-
-Walter sat at his window until bedtime. Di crept in, hoping to be told
-what was wrong, but Walter could not talk of it, even to Di. Talking of
-it seemed to give it a reality from which he shrank. It was torture
-enough to think of it. The crisp, withered leaves rustled on the maple
-trees outside his window. The glow of rose and flame had died out of
-the hollow, silvery sky, and the full moon was rising gloriously over
-Rainbow Valley. Afar off, a ruddy woodfire was painting a page of glory
-on the horizon beyond the hills. It was a sharp, clear evening when
-far-away sounds were heard distinctly. A fox was barking across the
-pond; an engine was puffing down at the Glen station; a blue-jay was
-screaming madly in the maple grove; there was laughter over on the
-manse lawn. How could people laugh? How could foxes and blue-jays and
-engines behave as if nothing were going to happen on the morrow?
-
-“Oh, I wish it was over,” groaned Walter.
-
-He slept very little that night and had hard work choking down his
-porridge in the morning. Susan _was_ rather lavish in her platefuls.
-Mr. Hazard found him an unsatisfactory pupil that day. Faith Meredith’s
-wits seemed to be wool-gathering, too. Dan Reese kept drawing
-surreptitious pictures of girls, with pig or rooster heads, on his
-slate and holding them up for all to see. The news of the coming battle
-had leaked out and most of the boys and many of the girls were in the
-spruce plantation when Dan and Walter sought it after school. Una had
-gone home, but Faith was there, having tied her blue ribbon around
-Walter’s arm. Walter was thankful that neither Jem nor Di nor Nan were
-among the crowd of spectators. Somehow they had not heard of what was
-in the wind and had gone home, too. Walter faced Dan quite undauntedly
-now. At the last moment all his fear had vanished, but he still felt
-disgust at the idea of fighting. Dan, it was noted, was really paler
-under his freckles than Walter was. One of the older boys gave the word
-and Dan struck Walter in the face.
-
-Walter reeled a little. The pain of the blow tingled through all his
-sensitive frame for a moment. Then he felt pain no longer. Something,
-such as he had never experienced before, seemed to roll over him like a
-flood. His face flushed crimson, his eyes burned like flame. The
-scholars of Glen St. Mary school had never dreamed that “Miss Walter”
-could look like that. He hurled himself forward and closed with Dan
-like a young wildcat.
-
-There were no particular rules in the fights of the Glen school boys.
-It was catch-as-catch can, and get your blows in anyhow. Walter fought
-with a savage fury and a joy in the struggle against which Dan could
-not hold his ground. It was all over very speedily. Walter had no clear
-consciousness of what he was doing until suddenly the red mist cleared
-from his sight and he found himself kneeling on the body of the
-prostrate Dan whose nose—oh, horror!—was spouting blood.
-
-“Have you had enough?” demanded Walter through his clenched teeth.
-
-Dan sulkily admitted that he had.
-
-“My mother doesn’t write lies?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“Faith Meredith isn’t a pig-girl?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“Nor a rooster-girl?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“And I’m not a coward?”
-
-“No.”
-
-Walter had intended to ask, “And you are a liar?” but pity intervened
-and he did not humiliate Dan further. Besides, that blood was so
-horrible.
-
-“You can go, then,” he said contemptuously.
-
-There was a loud clapping from the boys who were perched on the rail
-fence, but some of the girls were crying. They were frightened. They
-had seen schoolboy fights before, but nothing like Walter as he had
-grappled with Dan. There had been something terrifying about him. They
-thought he would kill Dan. Now that all was over they sobbed
-hysterically—except Faith, who still stood tense and crimson cheeked.
-
-Walter did not stay for any conqueror’s meed. He sprang over the fence
-and rushed down the spruce hill to Rainbow Valley. He felt none of the
-victor’s joy, but he felt a certain calm satisfaction in duty done and
-honour avenged—mingled with a sickish qualm when he thought of Dan’s
-gory nose. It had been so ugly, and Walter hated ugliness.
-
-Also, he began to realize that he himself was somewhat sore and
-battered up. His lip was cut and swollen and one eye felt very strange.
-In Rainbow Valley he encountered Mr. Meredith, who was coming home from
-an afternoon call on the Miss Wests. That reverend gentleman looked
-gravely at him.
-
-“It seems to me that you have been fighting, Walter?”
-
-“Yes, sir,” said Walter, expecting a scolding.
-
-“What was it about?”
-
-“Dan Reese said my mother wrote lies and that that Faith was a
-pig-girl,” answered Walter bluntly.
-
-“Oh—h! Then you were certainly justified, Walter.”
-
-“Do you think it’s right to fight, sir?” asked Walter curiously.
-
-“Not always—and not often—but sometimes—yes, sometimes,” said John
-Meredith. “When womenkind are insulted for instance—as in your case. My
-motto, Walter, is, don’t fight till you’re sure you ought to, and
-_then_ put every ounce of you into it. In spite of sundry
-discolorations I infer that you came off best.”
-
-“Yes. I made him take it all back.”
-
-“Very good—very good, indeed. I didn’t think you were such a fighter,
-Walter.”
-
-“I never fought before—and I didn’t want to right up to the last—and
-then,” said Walter, determined to make a clean breast of it, “I liked
-it while I was at it.”
-
-The Rev. John’s eyes twinkled.
-
-“You were—a little frightened—at first?”
-
-“I was a whole lot frightened,” said honest Walter. “But I’m not going
-to be frightened any more, sir. Being frightened of things is worse
-than the things themselves. I’m going to ask father to take me over to
-Lowbridge to-morrow to get my tooth out.”
-
-“Right again. ‘Fear is more pain than is the pain it fears.’ Do you
-know who wrote that, Walter? It was Shakespeare. Was there any feeling
-or emotion or experience of the human heart that that wonderful man did
-not know? When you go home tell your mother I am proud of you.”
-
-Walter did not tell her that, however; but he told her all the rest,
-and she sympathized with him and told him she was glad he had stood up
-for her and Faith, and she anointed his sore spots and rubbed cologne
-on his aching head.
-
-“Are all mothers as nice as you?” asked Walter, hugging her. “You’re
-_worth_ standing up for.”
-
-Miss Cornelia and Susan were in the living room when Anne came
-downstairs, and listened to the story with much enjoyment. Susan in
-particular was highly gratified.
-
-“I am real glad to hear he has had a good fight, Mrs. Dr. dear. Perhaps
-it may knock that poetry nonsense out of him. And I never, no, never
-could bear that little viper of a Dan Reese. Will you not sit nearer to
-the fire, Mrs. Marshall Elliott? These November evenings are very
-chilly.”
-
-“Thank you, Susan, I’m not cold. I called at the manse before I came
-here and got quite warm—though I had to go to the kitchen to do it, for
-there was no fire anywhere else. The kitchen looked as if it had been
-stirred up with a stick, believe _me_. Mr. Meredith wasn’t home. I
-couldn’t find out where he was, but I have an idea that he was up at
-the Wests’. Do you know, Anne dearie, they say he has been going there
-frequently all the fall and people are beginning to think he is going
-to see Rosemary.”
-
-“He would get a very charming wife if he married Rosemary,” said Anne,
-piling driftwood on the fire. “She is one of the most delightful girls
-I’ve ever known—truly one of the race of Joseph.”
-
-“Ye—s—only she is an Episcopalian,” said Miss Cornelia doubtfully. “Of
-course, that is better than if she was a Methodist—but I do think Mr.
-Meredith could find a good enough wife in his own denomination.
-However, very likely there is nothing in it. It’s only a month ago that
-I said to him, ‘You ought to marry again, Mr. Meredith.’ He looked as
-shocked as if I had suggested something improper. ‘My wife is in her
-grave, Mrs. Elliott,’ he said, in that gentle, saintly way of his. ‘I
-suppose so,’ I said, ‘or I wouldn’t be advising you to marry again.’
-Then he looked more shocked than ever. So I doubt if there is much in
-this Rosemary story. If a single minister calls twice at a house where
-there is a single woman all the gossips have it he is courting her.”
-
-“It seems to me—if I may presume to say so—that Mr. Meredith is too shy
-to go courting a second wife,” said Susan solemnly.
-
-“He _isn’t_ shy, believe _me_,” retorted Miss Cornelia.
-“Absent-minded,—yes—but shy, no. And for all he is so abstracted and
-dreamy he has a very good opinion of himself, man-like, and when he is
-really awake he wouldn’t think it much of a chore to ask any woman to
-have him. No, the trouble is, he’s deluding himself into believing that
-his heart is buried, while all the time it’s beating away inside of him
-just like anybody else’s. He may have a notion of Rosemary West and he
-may not. If he has, we must make the best of it. She is a sweet girl
-and a fine housekeeper, and would make a good mother for those poor,
-neglected children. And,” concluded Miss Cornelia resignedly, “my own
-grandmother was an Episcopalian.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII.
-MARY BRINGS EVIL TIDINGS
-
-
-Mary Vance, whom Mrs. Elliott had sent up to the manse on an errand,
-came tripping down Rainbow Valley on her way to Ingleside where she was
-to spend the afternoon with Nan and Di as a Saturday treat. Nan and Di
-had been picking spruce gum with Faith and Una in the manse woods and
-the four of them were now sitting on a fallen pine by the brook, all,
-it must be admitted, chewing rather vigorously. The Ingleside twins
-were not allowed to chew spruce gum anywhere but in the seclusion of
-Rainbow Valley, but Faith and Una were unrestricted by such rules of
-etiquette and cheerfully chewed it everywhere, at home and abroad, to
-the very proper horror of the Glen. Faith had been chewing it in church
-one day; but Jerry had realized the enormity of _that_, and had given
-her such an older-brotherly scolding that she never did it again.
-
-“I was so hungry I just felt as if I had to chew something,” she
-protested. “You know well enough what breakfast was like, Jerry
-Meredith. I _couldn’t_ eat scorched porridge and my stomach just felt
-so queer and empty. The gum helped a lot—and I didn’t chew _very_ hard.
-I didn’t make any noise and I never cracked the gum once.”
-
-“You mustn’t chew gum in church, anyhow,” insisted Jerry. “Don’t let me
-catch you at it again.”
-
-“You chewed yourself in prayer-meeting last week,” cried Faith.
-
-“_that’s_ different,” said Jerry loftily. “Prayer-meeting isn’t on
-Sunday. Besides, I sat away at the back in a dark seat and nobody saw
-me. You were sitting right up front where every one saw you. And I took
-the gum out of my mouth for the last hymn and stuck it on the back of
-the pew right up in front where every one saw you. Then I came away and
-forgot it. I went back to get it next morning, but it was gone. I
-suppose Rod Warren swiped it. And it was a dandy chew.”
-
-Mary Vance walked down the Valley with her head held high. She had on a
-new blue velvet cap with a scarlet rosette in it, a coat of navy blue
-cloth and a little squirrel-fur muff. She was very conscious of her new
-clothes and very well pleased with herself. Her hair was elaborately
-crimped, her face was quite plump, her cheeks rosy, her white eyes
-shining. She did not look much like the forlorn and ragged waif the
-Merediths had found in the old Taylor barn. Una tried not to feel
-envious. Here was Mary with a new velvet cap, but she and Faith had to
-wear their shabby old gray tams again this winter. Nobody ever thought
-of getting them new ones and they were afraid to ask their father for
-them for fear that he might be short of money and then he would feel
-badly. Mary had told them once that ministers were always short of
-money, and found it “awful hard” to make ends meet. Since then Faith
-and Una would have gone in rags rather than ask their father for
-anything if they could help it. They did not worry a great deal over
-their shabbiness; but it was rather trying to see Mary Vance coming out
-in such style and putting on such airs about it, too. The new squirrel
-muff was really the last straw. Neither Faith nor Una had ever had a
-muff, counting themselves lucky if they could compass mittens without
-holes in them. Aunt Martha could not see to darn holes and though Una
-tried to, she made sad cobbling. Somehow, they could not make their
-greeting of Mary very cordial. But Mary did not mind or notice that;
-she was not overly sensitive. She vaulted lightly to a seat on the pine
-tree, and laid the offending muff on a bough. Una saw that it was lined
-with shirred red satin and had red tassels. She looked down at her own
-rather purple, chapped, little hands and wondered if she would ever,
-_ever_ be able to put them into a muff like that.
-
-“Give us a chew,” said Mary companionably. Nan, Di and Faith all
-produced an amber-hued knot or two from their pockets and passed them
-to Mary. Una sat very still. She had four lovely big knots in the
-pocket of her tight, thread-bare little jacket, but she wasn’t going to
-give one of them to Mary Vance—not one Let Mary pick her own gum!
-People with squirrel muffs needn’t expect to get everything in the
-world.
-
-“Great day, isn’t it?” said Mary, swinging her legs, the better,
-perhaps, to display new boots with very smart cloth tops. Una tucked
-_her_ feet under her. There was a hole in the toe of one of her boots
-and both laces were much knotted. But they were the best she had. Oh,
-this Mary Vance! Why hadn’t they left her in the old barn?
-
-Una never felt badly because the Ingleside twins were better dressed
-than she and Faith were. _They_ wore their pretty clothes with careless
-grace and never seemed to think about them at all. Somehow, they did
-not make other people feel shabby. But when Mary Vance was dressed up
-she seemed fairly to exude clothes—to walk in an atmosphere of
-clothes—to make everybody else feel and think clothes. Una, as she sat
-there in the honey-tinted sunshine of the gracious December afternoon,
-was acutely and miserably conscious of everything she had on—the faded
-tam, which was yet her best, the skimpy jacket she had worn for three
-winters, the holes in her skirt and her boots, the shivering
-insufficiency of her poor little undergarments. Of course, Mary was
-going out for a visit and she was not. But even if she had been she had
-nothing better to put on and in this lay the sting.
-
-“Say, this is great gum. Listen to me cracking it. There ain’t any gum
-spruces down at Four Winds,” said Mary. “Sometimes I just hanker after
-a chew. Mrs. Elliott won’t let me chew gum if she sees me. She says it
-ain’t lady-like. This lady-business puzzles me. I can’t get on to all
-its kinks. Say, Una, what’s the matter with you? Cat got your tongue?”
-
-“No,” said Una, who could not drag her fascinated eyes from that
-squirrel muff. Mary leaned past her, picked it up and thrust it into
-Una’s hands.
-
-“Stick your paws in that for a while,” she ordered. “They look sorter
-pinched. Ain’t that a dandy muff? Mrs. Elliott give it to me last week
-for a birthday present. I’m to get the collar at Christmas. I heard her
-telling Mr. Elliott that.”
-
-“Mrs. Elliott is very good to you,” said Faith.
-
-“You bet she is. And _I’m_ good to her, too,” retorted Mary. “I work
-like a nigger to make it easy for her and have everything just as she
-likes it. We was made for each other. ‘Tisn’t every one could get along
-with her as well as I do. She’s pizen neat, but so am I, and so we
-agree fine.”
-
-“I told you she would never whip you.”
-
-“So you did. She’s never tried to lay a finger on me and I ain’t never
-told a lie to her—not one, true’s you live. She combs me down with her
-tongue sometimes though, but that just slips off _me_ like water off a
-duck’s back. Say, Una, why didn’t you hang on to the muff?”
-
-Una had put it back on the bough.
-
-“My hands aren’t cold, thank you,” she said stiffly.
-
-“Well, if you’re satisfied, _I_ am. Say, old Kitty Alec has come back
-to church as meek as Moses and nobody knows why. But everybody is
-saying it was Faith brought Norman Douglas out. His housekeeper says
-you went there and gave him an awful tongue-lashing. Did you?”
-
-“I went and asked him to come to church,” said Faith uncomfortably.
-
-“Fancy your spunk!” said Mary admiringly. “_I_ wouldn’t have dared do
-that and I’m not so slow. Mrs. Wilson says the two of you jawed
-something scandalous, but you come off best and then he just turned
-round and like to eat you up. Say, is your father going to preach here
-to-morrow?”
-
-“No. He’s going to exchange with Mr. Perry from Charlottetown. Father
-went to town this morning and Mr. Perry is coming out to-night.”
-
-“I _thought_ there was something in the wind, though old Martha
-wouldn’t give me any satisfaction. But I felt sure she wouldn’t have
-been killing that rooster for nothing.”
-
-“What rooster? What do you mean?” cried Faith, turning pale.
-
-“_I_ don’t know what rooster. I didn’t see it. When she took the butter
-Mrs. Elliott sent up she said she’d been out to the barn killing a
-rooster for dinner tomorrow.”
-
-Faith sprang down from the pine.
-
-“It’s Adam—we have no other rooster—she has killed Adam.”
-
-“Now, don’t fly off the handle. Martha said the butcher at the Glen had
-no meat this week and she had to have something and the hens were all
-laying and too poor.”
-
-“If she has killed Adam—” Faith began to run up the hill.
-
-Mary shrugged her shoulders.
-
-“She’ll go crazy now. She was so fond of that Adam. He ought to have
-been in the pot long ago—he’ll be as tough as sole leather. But _I_
-wouldn’t like to be in Martha’s shoes. Faith’s just white with rage;
-Una, you’d better go after her and try to peacify her.”
-
-Mary had gone a few steps with the Blythe girls when Una suddenly
-turned and ran after her.
-
-“Here’s some gum for you, Mary,” she said, with a little repentant
-catch in her voice, thrusting all her four knots into Mary’s hands,
-“and I’m glad you have such a pretty muff.”
-
-“Why, thanks,” said Mary, rather taken by surprise. To the Blythe
-girls, after Una had gone, she said, “Ain’t she a queer little mite?
-But I’ve always said she had a good heart.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX.
-POOR ADAM!
-
-
-When Una got home Faith was lying face downwards on her bed, utterly
-refusing to be comforted. Aunt Martha had killed Adam. He was reposing
-on a platter in the pantry that very minute, trussed and dressed,
-encircled by his liver and heart and gizzard. Aunt Martha heeded
-Faith’s passion of grief and anger not a whit.
-
-“We had to have something for the strange minister’s dinner,” she said.
-“You’re too big a girl to make such a fuss over an old rooster. You
-knew he’d have to be killed sometime.”
-
-“I’ll tell father when he comes home what you’ve done,” sobbed Faith.
-
-“Don’t you go bothering your poor father. He has troubles enough. And
-_I’m_ housekeeper here.”
-
-“Adam was _mine_—Mrs. Johnson gave him to me. You had no business to
-touch him,” stormed Faith.
-
-“Don’t you get sassy now. The rooster’s killed and there’s an end of
-it. I ain’t going to set no strange minister down to a dinner of cold
-b’iled mutton. I was brought up to know better than that, if I have
-come down in the world.”
-
-Faith would not go down to supper that night and she would not go to
-church the next morning. But at dinner time she went to the table, her
-eyes swollen with crying, her face sullen.
-
-The Rev. James Perry was a sleek, rubicund man, with a bristling white
-moustache, bushy white eyebrows, and a shining bald head. He was
-certainly not handsome and he was a very tiresome, pompous sort of
-person. But if he had looked like the Archangel Michael and talked with
-the tongues of men and angels Faith would still have utterly detested
-him. He carved Adam up dexterously, showing off his plump white hands
-and very handsome diamond ring. Also, he made jovial remarks all
-through the performance. Jerry and Carl giggled, and even Una smiled
-wanly, because she thought politeness demanded it. But Faith only
-scowled darkly. The Rev. James thought her manners shockingly bad.
-Once, when he was delivering himself of an unctuous remark to Jerry,
-Faith broke in rudely with a flat contradiction. The Rev. James drew
-his bushy eyebrows together at her.
-
-“Little girls should not interrupt,” he said, “and they should not
-contradict people who know far more than they do.”
-
-This put Faith in a worse temper than ever. To be called “little girl”
-as if she were no bigger than chubby Rilla Blythe over at Ingleside! It
-was insufferable. And how that abominable Mr. Perry did eat! He even
-picked poor Adam’s bones. Neither Faith nor Una would touch a mouthful,
-and looked upon the boys as little better than cannibals. Faith felt
-that if that awful repast did not soon come to an end she would wind it
-up by throwing something at Mr. Perry’s gleaming head. Fortunately, Mr.
-Perry found Aunt Martha’s leathery apple pie too much even for his
-powers of mastication and the meal came to an end, after a long grace
-in which Mr. Perry offered up devout thanks for the food which a kind
-and beneficent Providence had provided for sustenance and temperate
-pleasure.
-
-“God hadn’t a single thing to do with providing Adam for you,” muttered
-Faith rebelliously under her breath.
-
-The boys gladly made their escape to outdoors, Una went to help Aunt
-Martha with the dishes—though that rather grumpy old dame never
-welcomed her timid assistance—and Faith betook herself to the study
-where a cheerful wood fire was burning in the grate. She thought she
-would thereby escape from the hated Mr. Perry, who had announced his
-intention of taking a nap in his room during the afternoon. But
-scarcely had Faith settled herself in a corner, with a book, when he
-walked in and, standing before the fire, proceeded to survey the
-disorderly study with an air of disapproval.
-
-“You father’s books seem to be in somewhat deplorable confusion, my
-little girl,” he said severely.
-
-Faith darkled in her corner and said not a word. She would _not_ talk
-to this—this creature.
-
-“You should try to put them in order,” Mr. Perry went on, playing with
-his handsome watch chain and smiling patronizingly on Faith. “You are
-quite old enough to attend to such duties. _My_ little daughter at home
-is only ten and she is already an excellent little housekeeper and the
-greatest help and comfort to her mother. She is a very sweet child. I
-wish you had the privilege of her acquaintance. She could help you in
-many ways. Of course, you have not had the inestimable privilege of a
-good mother’s care and training. A sad lack—a very sad lack. I have
-spoken more than once to your father in this connection and pointed out
-his duty to him faithfully, but so far with no effect. I trust he may
-awaken to a realization of his responsibility before it is too late. In
-the meantime, it is your duty and privilege to endeavour to take your
-sainted mother’s place. You might exercise a great influence over your
-brothers and your little sister—you might be a true mother to them. I
-fear that you do not think of these things as you should. My dear
-child, allow me to open your eyes in regard to them.”
-
-Mr. Perry’s oily, complacent voice trickled on. He was in his element.
-Nothing suited him better than to lay down the law, patronize and
-exhort. He had no idea of stopping, and he did not stop. He stood
-before the fire, his feet planted firmly on the rug, and poured out a
-flood of pompous platitudes. Faith heard not a word. She was really not
-listening to him at all. But she was watching his long black coat-tails
-with impish delight growing in her brown eyes. Mr. Perry was standing
-_very_ near the fire. His coat-tails began to scorch—his coat-tails
-began to smoke. He still prosed on, wrapped up in his own eloquence.
-The coat-tails smoked worse. A tiny spark flew up from the burning wood
-and alighted in the middle of one. It clung and caught and spread into
-a smouldering flame. Faith could restrain herself no longer and broke
-into a stifled giggle.
-
-Mr. Perry stopped short, angered over this impertinence. Suddenly he
-became conscious that a reek of burning cloth filled the room. He
-whirled round and saw nothing. Then he clapped his hands to his
-coat-tails and brought them around in front of him. There was already
-quite a hole in one of them—and this was his new suit. Faith shook with
-helpless laughter over his pose and expression.
-
-“Did you see my coat-tails burning?” he demanded angrily.
-
-“Yes, sir,” said Faith demurely.
-
-“Why didn’t you tell me?” he demanded, glaring at her.
-
-“You said it wasn’t good manners to interrupt, sir,” said Faith, more
-demurely still.
-
-“If—if I was your father, I would give you a spanking that you would
-remember all your life, Miss,” said a very angry reverend gentleman, as
-he stalked out of the study. The coat of Mr. Meredith’s second best
-suit would not fit Mr. Perry, so he had to go to the evening service
-with his singed coat-tail. But he did not walk up the aisle with his
-usual consciousness of the honour he was conferring on the building. He
-never would agree to an exchange of pulpits with Mr. Meredith again,
-and he was barely civil to the latter when they met for a few minutes
-at the station the next morning. But Faith felt a certain gloomy
-satisfaction. Adam was partially avenged.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX.
-FAITH MAKES A FRIEND
-
-
-Next day in school was a hard one for Faith. Mary Vance had told the
-tale of Adam, and all the scholars, except the Blythes, thought it
-quite a joke. The girls told Faith, between giggles, that it was too
-bad, and the boys wrote sardonic notes of condolence to her. Poor Faith
-went home from school feeling her very soul raw and smarting within
-her.
-
-“I’m going over to Ingleside to have a talk with Mrs. Blythe,” she
-sobbed. “_She_ won’t laugh at me, as everybody else does. I’ve just
-_got_ to talk to somebody who understands how bad I feel.”
-
-She ran down through Rainbow Valley. Enchantment had been at work the
-night before. A light snow had fallen and the powdered firs were
-dreaming of a spring to come and a joy to be. The long hill beyond was
-richly purple with leafless beeches. The rosy light of sunset lay over
-the world like a pink kiss. Of all the airy, fairy places, full of
-weird, elfin grace, Rainbow Valley that winter evening was the most
-beautiful. But all its dreamlike loveliness was lost on poor,
-sore-hearted little Faith.
-
-By the brook she came suddenly upon Rosemary West, who was sitting on
-the old pine tree. She was on her way home from Ingleside, where she
-had been giving the girls their music lesson. She had been lingering in
-Rainbow Valley quite a little time, looking across its white beauty and
-roaming some by-ways of dream. Judging from the expression of her face,
-her thoughts were pleasant ones. Perhaps the faint, occasional tinkle
-from the bells on the Tree Lovers brought the little lurking smile to
-her lips. Or perhaps it was occasioned by the consciousness that John
-Meredith seldom failed to spend Monday evening in the gray house on the
-white wind-swept hill.
-
-Into Rosemary’s dreams burst Faith Meredith full of rebellious
-bitterness. Faith stopped abruptly when she saw Miss West. She did not
-know her very well—just well enough to speak to when they met. And she
-did not want to see any one just then—except Mrs. Blythe. She knew her
-eyes and nose were red and swollen and she hated to have a stranger
-know she had been crying.
-
-“Good evening, Miss West,” she said uncomfortably.
-
-“What is the matter, Faith?” asked Rosemary gently.
-
-“Nothing,” said Faith rather shortly.
-
-“Oh!” Rosemary smiled. “You mean nothing that you can tell to
-outsiders, don’t you?”
-
-Faith looked at Miss West with sudden interest. Here was a person who
-understood things. And how pretty she was! How golden her hair was
-under her plumy hat! How pink her cheeks were over her velvet coat! How
-blue and companionable her eyes were! Faith felt that Miss West could
-be a lovely friend—if only she were a friend instead of a stranger!
-
-“I—I’m going up to tell Mrs. Blythe,” said Faith. “She always
-understands—she never laughs at us. I always talk things over with her.
-It helps.”
-
-“Dear girlie, I’m sorry to have to tell you that Mrs. Blythe isn’t
-home,” said Miss West, sympathetically. “She went to Avonlea to-day and
-isn’t coming back till the last of the week.”
-
-Faith’s lip quivered.
-
-“Then I might as well go home again,” she said miserably.
-
-“I suppose so—unless you think you could bring yourself to talk it over
-with me instead,” said Miss Rosemary gently. “It _is_ such a help to
-talk things over. _I_ know. I don’t suppose I can be as good at
-understanding as Mrs. Blythe—but I promise you that I won’t laugh.”
-
-“You wouldn’t laugh outside,” hesitated Faith. “But you might—inside.”
-
-“No, I wouldn’t laugh inside, either. Why should I? Something has hurt
-you—it never amuses me to see anybody hurt, no matter what hurts them.
-If you feel that you’d like to tell me what has hurt you I’ll be glad
-to listen. But if you think you’d rather not—that’s all right, too,
-dear.”
-
-Faith took another long, earnest look into Miss West’s eyes. They were
-very serious—there was no laughter in them, not even far, far back.
-With a little sigh she sat down on the old pine beside her new friend
-and told her all about Adam and his cruel fate.
-
-Rosemary did not laugh or feel like laughing. She understood and
-sympathized—really, she was almost as good as Mrs. Blythe—yes, quite as
-good.
-
-“Mr. Perry is a minister, but he should have been a _butcher_,” said
-Faith bitterly. “He is so fond of carving things up. He _enjoyed_
-cutting poor Adam to pieces. He just sliced into him as if he were any
-common rooster.”
-
-“Between you and me, Faith, _I_ don’t like Mr. Perry very well myself,”
-said Rosemary, laughing a little—but at Mr. Perry, not at Adam, as
-Faith clearly understood. “I never did like him. I went to school with
-him—he was a Glen boy, you know—and he was a most detestable little
-prig even then. Oh, how we girls used to hate holding his fat, clammy
-hands in the ring-around games. But we must remember, dear, that he
-didn’t know that Adam had been a pet of yours. He thought he _was_ just
-a common rooster. We must be just, even when we are terribly hurt.”
-
-“I suppose so,” admitted Faith. “But why does everybody seem to think
-it funny that I should have loved Adam so much, Miss West? If it had
-been a horrid old cat nobody would have thought it queer. When Lottie
-Warren’s kitten had its legs cut off by the binder everybody was sorry
-for her. She cried two days in school and nobody laughed at her, not
-even Dan Reese. And all her chums went to the kitten’s funeral and
-helped her bury it—only they couldn’t bury its poor little paws with
-it, because they couldn’t find them. It was a horrid thing to have
-happen, of course, but I don’t think it was as dreadful as seeing your
-pet _eaten up_. Yet everybody laughs at _me_.”
-
-“I think it is because the name ‘rooster’ seems rather a funny one,”
-said Rosemary gravely. “There _is_ something in it that is comical.
-Now, ‘chicken’ is different. It doesn’t sound so funny to talk of
-loving a chicken.”
-
-“Adam was the dearest little chicken, Miss West. He was just a little
-golden ball. He would run up to me and peck out of my hand. And he was
-handsome when he grew up, too—white as snow, with such a beautiful
-curving white tail, though Mary Vance said it was too short. He knew
-his name and always came when I called him—he was a very intelligent
-rooster. And Aunt Martha had no right to kill him. He was mine. It
-wasn’t fair, was it, Miss West?”
-
-“No, it wasn’t,” said Rosemary decidedly. “Not a bit fair. I remember I
-had a pet hen when I was a little girl. She was such a pretty little
-thing—all golden brown and speckly. I loved her as much as I ever loved
-any pet. She was never killed—she died of old age. Mother wouldn’t have
-her killed because she was my pet.”
-
-“If _my_ mother had been living she wouldn’t have let Adam be killed,”
-said Faith. “For that matter, father wouldn’t have either, if he’d been
-home and known of it. I’m _sure_ he wouldn’t, Miss West.”
-
-“I’m sure, too,” said Rosemary. There was a little added flush on her
-face. She looked rather conscious but Faith noticed nothing.
-
-“Was it _very_ wicked of me not to tell Mr. Perry his coat-tails were
-scorching?” she asked anxiously.
-
-“Oh, terribly wicked,” answered Rosemary, with dancing eyes. “But _I_
-would have been just as naughty, Faith—_I_ wouldn’t have told him they
-were scorching—and I don’t believe I would ever have been a bit sorry
-for my wickedness, either.”
-
-“Una thought I should have told him because he was a minister.”
-
-“Dearest, if a minister doesn’t behave as a gentleman we are not bound
-to respect his coat-tails. I know _I_ would just have loved to see
-Jimmy Perry’s coat-tails burning up. It must have been fun.”
-
-Both laughed; but Faith ended with a bitter little sigh.
-
-“Well, anyway, Adam is dead and I am _never_ going to love anything
-again.”
-
-“Don’t say that, dear. We miss so much out of life if we don’t love.
-The more we love the richer life is—even if it is only some little
-furry or feathery pet. Would you like a canary, Faith—a little golden
-bit of a canary? If you would I’ll give you one. We have two up home.”
-
-“Oh, I _would_ like that,” cried Faith. “I love birds. Only—would Aunt
-Martha’s cat eat it? It’s so _tragic_ to have your pets eaten. I don’t
-think I could endure it a second time.”
-
-“If you hang the cage far enough from the wall I don’t think the cat
-could harm it. I’ll tell you just how to take care of it and I’ll bring
-it to Ingleside for you the next time I come down.”
-
-To herself, Rosemary was thinking,
-
-“It will give every gossip in the Glen something to talk of, but I
-_will_ not care. I want to comfort this poor little heart.”
-
-Faith was comforted. Sympathy and understanding were very sweet. She
-and Miss Rosemary sat on the old pine until the twilight crept softly
-down over the white valley and the evening star shone over the gray
-maple grove. Faith told Rosemary all her small history and hopes, her
-likes and dislikes, the ins and outs of life at the manse, the ups and
-downs of school society. Finally they parted firm friends.
-
-Mr. Meredith was, as usual, lost in dreams when supper began that
-evening, but presently a name pierced his abstraction and brought him
-back to reality. Faith was telling Una of her meeting with Rosemary.
-
-“She is just lovely, I think,” said Faith. “Just as nice as Mrs.
-Blythe—but different. I felt as if I wanted to hug her. She did hug
-_me_—such a nice, velvety hug. And she called me ‘dearest.’ It
-_thriled_ me. I could tell her _anything_.”
-
-“So you liked Miss West, Faith?” Mr. Meredith asked, with a rather odd
-intonation.
-
-“I love her,” cried Faith.
-
-“Ah!” said Mr. Meredith. “Ah!”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI.
-THE IMPOSSIBLE WORD
-
-
-John Meredith walked meditatively through the clear crispness of a
-winter night in Rainbow Valley. The hills beyond glistened with the
-chill splendid lustre of moonlight on snow. Every little fir tree in
-the long valley sang its own wild song to the harp of wind and frost.
-His children and the Blythe lads and lasses were coasting down the
-eastern slope and whizzing over the glassy pond. They were having a
-glorious time and their gay voices and gayer laughter echoed up and
-down the valley, dying away in elfin cadences among the trees. On the
-right the lights of Ingleside gleamed through the maple grove with the
-genial lure and invitation which seems always to glow in the beacons of
-a home where we know there is love and good-cheer and a welcome for all
-kin, whether of flesh or spirit. Mr. Meredith liked very well on
-occasion to spend an evening arguing with the doctor by the drift wood
-fire, where the famous china dogs of Ingleside kept ceaseless watch and
-ward, as became deities of the hearth, but to-night he did not look
-that way. Far on the western hill gleamed a paler but more alluring
-star. Mr. Meredith was on his way to see Rosemary West, and he meant to
-tell her something which had been slowly blossoming in his heart since
-their first meeting and had sprung into full flower on the evening when
-Faith had so warmly voiced her admiration for Rosemary.
-
-He had come to realize that he had learned to care for Rosemary. Not as
-he had cared for Cecilia, of course. _That_ was entirely different.
-That love of romance and dream and glamour could never, he thought,
-return. But Rosemary was beautiful and sweet and dear—very dear. She
-was the best of companions. He was happier in her company than he had
-ever expected to be again. She would be an ideal mistress for his home,
-a good mother to his children.
-
-During the years of his widowhood Mr. Meredith had received innumerable
-hints from brother members of Presbytery and from many parishioners who
-could not be suspected of any ulterior motive, as well as from some who
-could, that he ought to marry again: But these hints never made any
-impression on him. It was commonly thought he was never aware of them.
-But he was quite acutely aware of them. And in his own occasional
-visitations of common sense he knew that the common sensible thing for
-him to do was to marry. But common sense was not the strong point of
-John Meredith, and to choose out, deliberately and cold-bloodedly, some
-“suitable” woman, as one might choose a housekeeper or a business
-partner, was something he was quite incapable of doing. How he hated
-that word “suitable.” It reminded him so strongly of James Perry. “A
-_suit_ able woman of _suit_ able age,” that unctuous brother of the
-cloth had said, in his far from subtle hint. For the moment John
-Meredith had had a perfectly unbelievable desire to rush madly away and
-propose marriage to the youngest, most unsuitable woman it was possible
-to discover.
-
-Mrs. Marshall Elliott was his good friend and he liked her. But when
-she had bluntly told him he should marry again he felt as if she had
-torn away the veil that hung before some sacred shrine of his innermost
-life, and he had been more or less afraid of her ever since. He knew
-there were women in his congregation “of suitable age” who would marry
-him quite readily. That fact had seeped through all his abstraction
-very early in his ministry in Glen St. Mary. They were good,
-substantial, uninteresting women, one or two fairly comely, the others
-not exactly so and John Meredith would as soon have thought of marrying
-any one of them as of hanging himself. He had some ideals to which no
-seeming necessity could make him false. He could ask no woman to fill
-Cecilia’s place in his home unless he could offer her at least some of
-the affection and homage he had given to his girlish bride. And where,
-in his limited feminine acquaintance, was such a woman to be found?
-
-Rosemary West had come into his life on that autumn evening bringing
-with her an atmosphere in which his spirit recognized native air.
-Across the gulf of strangerhood they clasped hands of friendship. He
-knew her better in that ten minutes by the hidden spring than he knew
-Emmeline Drew or Elizabeth Kirk or Amy Annetta Douglas in a year, or
-could know them, in a century. He had fled to her for comfort when Mrs.
-Alec Davis had outraged his mind and soul and had found it. Since then
-he had gone often to the house on the hill, slipping through the
-shadowy paths of night in Rainbow Valley so astutely that Glen gossip
-could never be absolutely certain that he _did_ go to see Rosemary
-West. Once or twice he had been caught in the West living room by other
-visitors; that was all the Ladies’ Aid had to go by. But when Elizabeth
-Kirk heard it she put away a secret hope she had allowed herself to
-cherish, without a change of expression on her kind plain face, and
-Emmeline Drew resolved that the next time she saw a certain old
-bachelor of Lowbridge she would not snub him as she had done at a
-previous meeting. Of course, if Rosemary West was out to catch the
-minister she would catch him; she looked younger than she was and _men_
-thought her pretty; besides, the West girls had money!
-
-“It is to be hoped that he won’t be so absent-minded as to propose to
-Ellen by mistake,” was the only malicious thing she allowed herself to
-say to a sympathetic sister Drew. Emmeline bore no further grudge
-towards Rosemary. When all was said and done, an unencumbered bachelor
-was far better than a widower with four children. It had been only the
-glamour of the manse that had temporarily blinded Emmeline’s eyes to
-the better part.
-
-A sled with three shrieking occupants sped past Mr. Meredith to the
-pond. Faith’s long curls streamed in the wind and her laughter rang
-above that of the others. John Meredith looked after them kindly and
-longingly. He was glad that his children had such chums as the
-Blythes—glad that they had so wise and gay and tender a friend as Mrs.
-Blythe. But they needed something more, and that something would be
-supplied when he brought Rosemary West as a bride to the old manse.
-There was in her a quality essentially maternal.
-
-It was Saturday night and he did not often go calling on Saturday
-night, which was supposed to be dedicated to a thoughtful revision of
-Sunday’s sermon. But he had chosen this night because he had learned
-that Ellen West was going to be away and Rosemary would be alone. Often
-as he had spent pleasant evenings in the house on the hill he had
-never, since that first meeting at the spring, seen Rosemary alone.
-Ellen had always been there.
-
-He did not precisely object to Ellen being there. He liked Ellen West
-very much and they were the best of friends. Ellen had an almost
-masculine understanding and a sense of humour which his own shy, hidden
-appreciation of fun found very agreeable. He liked her interest in
-politics and world events. There was no man in the Glen, not even
-excepting Dr. Blythe, who had a better grasp of such things.
-
-“I think it is just as well to be interested in things as long as you
-live,” she had said. “If you’re not, it doesn’t seem to me that there’s
-much difference between the quick and the dead.”
-
-He liked her pleasant, deep, rumbly voice; he liked the hearty laugh
-with which she always ended up some jolly and well-told story. She
-never gave him digs about his children as other Glen women did; she
-never bored him with local gossip; she had no malice and no pettiness.
-She was always splendidly sincere. Mr. Meredith, who had picked up Miss
-Cornelia’s way of classifying people, considered that Ellen belonged to
-the race of Joseph. Altogether, an admirable woman for a sister-in-law.
-Nevertheless, a man did not want even the most admirable of women
-around when he was proposing to another woman. And Ellen was always
-around. She did not insist on talking to Mr. Meredith herself all the
-time. She let Rosemary have a fair share of him. Many evenings, indeed,
-Ellen effaced herself almost totally, sitting back in the corner with
-St. George in her lap, and letting Mr. Meredith and Rosemary talk and
-sing and read books together. Sometimes they quite forgot her presence.
-But if their conversation or choice of duets ever betrayed the least
-tendency to what Ellen considered philandering, Ellen promptly nipped
-that tendency in the bud and blotted Rosemary out for the rest of the
-evening. But not even the grimmest of amiable dragons can altogether
-prevent a certain subtle language of eye and smile and eloquent
-silence; and so the minister’s courtship progressed after a fashion.
-
-But if it was ever to reach a climax that climax must come when Ellen
-was away. And Ellen was so seldom away, especially in winter. She found
-her own fireside the pleasantest place in the world, she vowed. Gadding
-had no attraction for her. She was fond of company but she wanted it at
-home. Mr. Meredith had almost been driven to the conclusion that he
-must write to Rosemary what he wanted to say, when Ellen casually
-announced one evening that she was going to a silver wedding next
-Saturday night. She had been bridesmaid when the principals were
-married. Only old guests were invited, so Rosemary was not included.
-Mr. Meredith pricked up his ears a trifle and a gleam flashed into his
-dreamy dark eyes. Both Ellen and Rosemary saw it; and both Ellen and
-Rosemary felt, with a tingling shock, that Mr. Meredith would certainly
-come up the hill next Saturday night.
-
-“Might as well have it over with, St. George,” Ellen sternly told the
-black cat, after Mr. Meredith had gone home and Rosemary had silently
-gone upstairs. “He means to ask her, St. George—I’m perfectly sure of
-that. So he might as well have his chance to do it and find out he
-can’t get her, George. She’d rather like to take him, Saint. I know
-that—but she promised, and she’s got to keep her promise. I’m rather
-sorry in some ways, St. George. I don’t know of a man I’d sooner have
-for a brother-in-law if a brother-in-law was convenient. I haven’t a
-thing against him, Saint—not a thing except that he won’t see and can’t
-be made to see that the Kaiser is a menace to the peace of Europe.
-That’s _his_ blind spot. But he’s good company and I like him. A woman
-can say anything she likes to a man with a mouth like John Meredith’s
-and be sure of not being misunderstood. Such a man is more precious
-than rubies, Saint—and much rarer, George. But he can’t have
-Rosemary—and I suppose when he finds out he can’t have her he’ll drop
-us both. And we’ll miss him, Saint—we’ll miss him something scandalous,
-George. But she promised, and I’ll see that she keeps her promise!”
-
-Ellen’s face looked almost ugly in its lowering resolution. Upstairs
-Rosemary was crying into her pillow.
-
-So Mr. Meredith found his lady alone and looking very beautiful.
-Rosemary had not made any special toilet for the occasion; she wanted
-to, but she thought it would be absurd to dress up for a man you meant
-to refuse. So she wore her plain dark afternoon dress and looked like a
-queen in it. Her suppressed excitement coloured her face to brilliancy,
-her great blue eyes were pools of light less placid than usual.
-
-She wished the interview were over. She had looked forward to it all
-day with dread. She felt quite sure that John Meredith cared a great
-deal for her after a fashion—and she felt just as sure that he did not
-care for her as he had cared for his first love. She felt that her
-refusal would disappoint him considerably, but she did not think it
-would altogether overwhelm him. Yet she hated to make it; hated for his
-sake and—Rosemary was quite honest with herself—for her own. She knew
-she could have loved John Meredith if—if it had been permissible. She
-knew that life would be a blank thing if, rejected as lover, he refused
-longer to be a friend. She knew that she could be very happy with him
-and that she could make him happy. But between her and happiness stood
-the prison gate of the promise she had made to Ellen years ago.
-Rosemary could not remember her father. He had died when she was only
-three years old. Ellen, who had been thirteen, remembered him, but with
-no special tenderness. He had been a stern, reserved man many years
-older than his fair, pretty wife. Five years later their brother of
-twelve died also; since his death the two girls had always lived alone
-with their mother. They had never mingled very freely in the social
-life of the Glen or Lowbridge, though where they went the wit and
-spirit of Ellen and the sweetness and beauty of Rosemary made them
-welcome guests. Both had what was called “a disappointment” in their
-girlhood. The sea had not given up Rosemary’s lover; and Norman
-Douglas, then a handsome, red-haired young giant, noted for wild
-driving and noisy though harmless escapades, had quarrelled with Ellen
-and left her in a fit of pique.
-
-There were not lacking candidates for both Martin’s and Norman’s
-places, but none seemed to find favour in the eyes of the West girls,
-who drifted slowly out of youth and bellehood without any seeming
-regret. They were devoted to their mother, who was a chronic invalid.
-The three had a little circle of home interests—books and pets and
-flowers—which made them happy and contented.
-
-Mrs. West’s death, which occurred on Rosemary’s twenty-fifth birthday,
-was a bitter grief to them. At first they were intolerably lonely.
-Ellen, especially, continued to grieve and brood, her long, moody
-musings broken only by fits of stormy, passionate weeping. The old
-Lowbridge doctor told Rosemary that he feared permanent melancholy or
-worse.
-
-Once, when Ellen had sat all day, refusing either to speak or eat,
-Rosemary had flung herself on her knees by her sister’s side.
-
-“Oh, Ellen, you have me yet,” she said imploringly. “Am I nothing to
-you? We have always loved each other so.”
-
-“I won’t have you always,” Ellen had said, breaking her silence with
-harsh intensity. “You will marry and leave me. I shall be left all
-alone. I cannot bear the thought—I _cannot_. I would rather die.”
-
-“I will never marry,” said Rosemary, “never, Ellen.”
-
-Ellen bent forward and looked searchingly into Rosemary’s eyes.
-
-“Will you promise me that solemnly?” she said. “Promise it on mother’s
-Bible.”
-
-Rosemary assented at once, quite willing to humour Ellen. What did it
-matter? She knew quite well she would never want to marry any one. Her
-love had gone down with Martin Crawford to the deeps of the sea; and
-without love she could not marry any one. So she promised readily,
-though Ellen made rather a fearsome rite of it. They clasped hands over
-the Bible, in their mother’s vacant room, and both vowed to each other
-that they would never marry and would always live together.
-
-Ellen’s condition improved from that hour. She soon regained her normal
-cheery poise. For ten years she and Rosemary lived in the old house
-happily, undisturbed by any thought of marrying or giving in marriage.
-Their promise sat very lightly on them. Ellen never failed to remind
-her sister of it whenever any eligible male creature crossed their
-paths, but she had never been really alarmed until John Meredith came
-home that night with Rosemary. As for Rosemary, Ellen’s obsession
-regarding that promise had always been a little matter of mirth to
-her—until lately. Now, it was a merciless fetter, self-imposed but
-never to be shaken off. Because of it to-night she must turn her face
-from happiness.
-
-It was true that the shy, sweet, rosebud love she had given to her
-boy-lover she could never give to another. But she knew now that she
-could give to John Meredith a love richer and more womanly. She knew
-that he touched deeps in her nature that Martin had never touched—that
-had not, perhaps, been in the girl of seventeen to touch. And she must
-send him away to-night—send him back to his lonely hearth and his empty
-life and his heart-breaking problems, because she had promised Ellen,
-ten years before, on their mother’s Bible, that she would never marry.
-
-John Meredith did not immediately grasp his opportunity. On the
-contrary, he talked for two good hours on the least lover-like of
-subjects. He even tried politics, though politics always bored
-Rosemary. The later began to think that she had been altogether
-mistaken, and her fears and expectations suddenly seemed to her
-grotesque. She felt flat and foolish. The glow went out of her face and
-the lustre out of her eyes. John Meredith had not the slightest
-intention of asking her to marry him.
-
-And then, quite suddenly, he rose, came across the room, and standing
-by her chair, he asked it. The room had grown terribly still. Even St.
-George ceased to purr. Rosemary heard her own heart beating and was
-sure John Meredith must hear it too.
-
-Now was the time for her to say no, gently but firmly. She had been
-ready for days with her stilted, regretful little formula. And now the
-words of it had completely vanished from her mind. She had to say
-no—and she suddenly found she could not say it. It was the impossible
-word. She knew now that it was not that she _could_ have loved John
-Meredith, but that she _did_ love him. The thought of putting him from
-her life was agony.
-
-She must say _something;_ she lifted her bowed golden head and asked
-him stammeringly to give her a few days for—for consideration.
-
-John Meredith was a little surprised. He was not vainer than any man
-has a right to be, but he had expected that Rosemary West would say
-yes. He had been tolerably sure she cared for him. Then why this
-doubt—this hesitation? She was not a school girl to be uncertain as to
-her own mind. He felt an ugly shock of disappointment and dismay. But
-he assented to her request with his unfailing gentle courtesy and went
-away at once.
-
-“I will tell you in a few days,” said Rosemary, with downcast eyes and
-burning face.
-
-When the door shut behind him she went back into the room and wrung her
-hands.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXII.
-ST. GEORGE KNOWS ALL ABOUT IT
-
-
-At midnight Ellen West was walking home from the Pollock silver
-wedding. She had stayed a little while after the other guests had gone,
-to help the gray-haired bride wash the dishes. The distance between the
-two houses was not far and the road good, so that Ellen was enjoying
-the walk back home in the moonlight.
-
-The evening had been a pleasant one. Ellen, who had not been to a party
-for years, found it very pleasant. All the guests had been members of
-her old set and there was no intrusive youth to spoil the flavour, for
-the only son of the bride and groom was far away at college and could
-not be present. Norman Douglas had been there and they had met socially
-for the first time in years, though she had seen him once or twice in
-church that winter. Not the least sentiment was awakened in Ellen’s
-heart by their meeting. She was accustomed to wonder, when she thought
-about it at all, how she could ever have fancied him or felt so badly
-over his sudden marriage. But she had rather liked meeting him again.
-She had forgotten how bracing and stimulating he could be. No gathering
-was ever stagnant when Norman Douglas was present. Everybody had been
-surprised when Norman came. It was well known he never went anywhere.
-The Pollocks had invited him because he had been one of the original
-guests, but they never thought he would come. He had taken his second
-cousin, Amy Annetta Douglas, out to supper and seemed rather attentive
-to her. But Ellen sat across the table from him and had a spirited
-argument with him—an argument during which all his shouting and banter
-could not fluster her and in which she came off best, flooring Norman
-so composedly and so completely that he was silent for ten minutes. At
-the end of which time he had muttered in his ruddy beard—“spunky as
-ever—spunky as ever”—and began to hector Amy Annetta, who giggled
-foolishly over his sallies where Ellen would have retorted bitingly.
-
-Ellen thought these things over as she walked home, tasting them with
-reminiscent relish. The moonlit air sparkled with frost. The snow
-crisped under her feet. Below her lay the Glen with the white harbour
-beyond. There was a light in the manse study. So John Meredith had gone
-home. Had he asked Rosemary to marry him? And after what fashion had
-she made her refusal known? Ellen felt that she would never know this,
-though she was quite curious. She was sure Rosemary would never tell
-her anything about it and she would not dare to ask. She must just be
-content with the fact of the refusal. After all, that was the only
-thing that really mattered.
-
-“I hope he’ll have sense enough to come back once in a while and be
-friendly,” she said to herself. She disliked so much to be alone that
-thinking aloud was one of her devices for circumventing unwelcome
-solitude. “It’s awful never to have a man-body with some brains to talk
-to once in a while. And like as not he’ll never come near the house
-again. There’s Norman Douglas, too—I like that man, and I’d like to
-have a good rousing argument with him now and then. But he’d never dare
-come up for fear people would think he was courting me again—for fear
-_I’d_ think it, too, most likely—though he’s more a stranger to me now
-than John Meredith. It seems like a dream that we could ever have been
-beaus. But there it is—there’s only two men in the Glen I’d ever want
-to talk to—and what with gossip and this wretched love-making business
-it’s not likely I’ll ever see either of them again. I could,” said
-Ellen, addressing the unmoved stars with a spiteful emphasis, “I could
-have made a better world myself.”
-
-She paused at her gate with a sudden vague feeling of alarm. There was
-still a light in the living-room and to and fro across the
-window-shades went the shadow of a woman walking restlessly up and
-down. What was Rosemary doing up at this hour of the night? And why was
-she striding about like a lunatic?
-
-Ellen went softly in. As she opened the hall door Rosemary came out of
-the room. She was flushed and breathless. An atmosphere of stress and
-passion hung about her like a garment.
-
-“Why aren’t you in bed, Rosemary?” demanded Ellen.
-
-“Come in here,” said Rosemary intensely. “I want to tell you
-something.”
-
-Ellen composedly removed her wraps and overshoes, and followed her
-sister into the warm, fire-lighted room. She stood with her hand on the
-table and waited. She was looking very handsome herself, in her own
-grim, black-browed style. The new black velvet dress, with its train
-and V-neck, which she had made purposely for the party, became her
-stately, massive figure. She wore coiled around her neck the rich heavy
-necklace of amber beads which was a family heirloom. Her walk in the
-frosty air had stung her cheeks into a glowing scarlet. But her
-steel-blue eyes were as icy and unyielding as the sky of the winter
-night. She stood waiting in a silence which Rosemary could break only
-by a convulsive effort.
-
-“Ellen, Mr. Meredith was here this evening.”
-
-“Yes?”
-
-“And—and—he asked me to marry him.”
-
-“So I expected. Of course, you refused him?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“Rosemary.” Ellen clenched her hands and took an involuntary step
-forward. “Do you mean to tell me that you accepted him?”
-
-“No—no.”
-
-Ellen recovered her self-command.
-
-“What _did_ you do then?”
-
-“I—I asked him to give me a few days to think it over.”
-
-“I hardly see why that was necessary,” said Ellen, coldly contemptuous,
-“when there is only the one answer you can make him.”
-
-Rosemary held out her hands beseechingly.
-
-“Ellen,” she said desperately, “I love John Meredith—I want to be his
-wife. Will you set me free from that promise?”
-
-“No,” said Ellen, merciless, because she was sick from fear.
-
-“Ellen—Ellen—”
-
-“Listen,” interrupted Ellen. “I did not ask you for that promise. You
-offered it.”
-
-“I know—I know. But I did not think then that I could ever care for
-anyone again.”
-
-“You offered it,” went on Ellen unmovably. “You promised it over our
-mother’s Bible. It was more than a promise—it was an oath. Now you want
-to break it.”
-
-“I only asked you to set me free from it, Ellen.”
-
-“I will not do it. A promise is a promise in my eyes. I will not do it.
-Break your promise—be forsworn if you will—but it shall not be with any
-assent of mine.”
-
-“You are very hard on me, Ellen.”
-
-“Hard on you! And what of me? Have you ever given a thought to what my
-loneliness would be here if you left me? I could not bear it—I would go
-crazy. I _cannot_ live alone. Haven’t I been a good sister to you? Have
-I ever opposed any wish of yours? Haven’t I indulged you in
-everything?”
-
-“Yes—yes.”
-
-“Then why do you want to leave me for this man whom you hadn’t seen a
-year ago?”
-
-“I love him, Ellen.”
-
-“Love! You talk like a school miss instead of a middle-aged woman. He
-doesn’t love you. He wants a housekeeper and a governess. You don’t
-love him. You want to be ‘Mrs.’—you are one of those weak-minded women
-who think it’s a disgrace to be ranked as an old maid. That’s all there
-is to it.”
-
-Rosemary quivered. Ellen could not, or would not, understand. There was
-no use arguing with her.
-
-“So you won’t release me, Ellen?”
-
-“No, I won’t. And I won’t talk of it again. You promised and you’ve got
-to keep your word. That’s all. Go to bed. Look at the time! You’re all
-romantic and worked up. To-morrow you’ll be more sensible. At any rate,
-don’t let me hear any more of this nonsense. Go.”
-
-Rosemary went without another word, pale and spiritless. Ellen walked
-stormily about the room for a few minutes, then paused before the chair
-where St. George had been calmly sleeping through the whole evening. A
-reluctant smile overspread her dark face. There had been only one time
-in her life—the time of her mother’s death—when Ellen had not been able
-to temper tragedy with comedy. Even in that long ago bitterness, when
-Norman Douglas had, after a fashion, jilted her, she had laughed at
-herself quite as often as she had cried.
-
-“I expect there’ll be some sulking, St. George. Yes, Saint, I expect we
-are in for a few unpleasant foggy days. Well, we’ll weather them
-through, George. We’ve dealt with foolish children before, Saint.
-Rosemary’ll sulk a while—and then she’ll get over it—and all will be as
-before, George. She promised—and she’s got to keep her promise. And
-that’s the last word on the subject I’ll say to you or her or anyone,
-Saint.”
-
-But Ellen lay savagely awake till morning.
-
-There was no sulking, however. Rosemary was pale and quiet the next
-day, but beyond that Ellen could detect no difference in her.
-Certainly, she seemed to bear Ellen no grudge. It was stormy, so no
-mention was made of going to church. In the afternoon Rosemary shut
-herself in her room and wrote a note to John Meredith. She could not
-trust herself to say “no” in person. She felt quite sure that if he
-suspected she was saying “no” reluctantly he would not take it for an
-answer, and she could not face pleading or entreaty. She must make him
-think she cared nothing at all for him and she could do that only by
-letter. She wrote him the stiffest, coolest little refusal imaginable.
-It was barely courteous; it certainly left no loophole of hope for the
-boldest lover—and John Meredith was anything but that. He shrank into
-himself, hurt and mortified, when he read Rosemary’s letter next day in
-his dusty study. But under his mortification a dreadful realization
-presently made itself felt. He had thought he did not love Rosemary as
-deeply as he had loved Cecilia. Now, when he had lost her, he knew that
-he did. She was everything to him—everything! And he must put her out
-of his life completely. Even friendship was impossible now. Life
-stretched before him in intolerable dreariness. He must go on—there was
-his work—his children—but the heart had gone out of him. He sat alone
-all that evening in his dark, cold, comfortless study with his head
-bowed on his hands. Up on the hill Rosemary had a headache and went
-early to bed, while Ellen remarked to St. George, purring his disdain
-of foolish humankind, who did not know that a soft cushion was the only
-thing that really mattered,
-
-“What would women do if headaches had never been invented, St. George?
-But never mind, Saint. We’ll just wink the other eye for a few weeks. I
-admit I don’t feel comfortable myself, George. I feel as if I had
-drowned a kitten. But she promised, Saint—and she was the one to offer
-it, George. Bismillah!”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIII.
-THE GOOD-CONDUCT CLUB
-
-
-A light rain had been falling all day—a little, delicate, beautiful
-spring rain, that somehow seemed to hint and whisper of mayflowers and
-wakening violets. The harbour and the gulf and the low-lying shore
-fields had been dim with pearl-gray mists. But now in the evening the
-rain had ceased and the mists had blown out to sea. Clouds sprinkled
-the sky over the harbour like little fiery roses. Beyond it the hills
-were dark against a spendthrift splendour of daffodil and crimson. A
-great silvery evening star was watching over the bar. A brisk, dancing,
-new-sprung wind was blowing up from Rainbow Valley, resinous with the
-odours of fir and damp mosses. It crooned in the old spruces around the
-graveyard and ruffled Faith’s splendid curls as she sat on Hezekiah
-Pollock’s tombstone with her arms round Mary Vance and Una. Carl and
-Jerry were sitting opposite them on another tombstone and all were
-rather full of mischief after being cooped up all day.
-
-“The air just _shines_ to-night, doesn’t it? It’s been washed so clean,
-you see,” said Faith happily.
-
-Mary Vance eyed her gloomily. Knowing what she knew, or fancied she
-knew, Mary considered that Faith was far too light-hearted. Mary had
-something on her mind to say and she meant to say it before she went
-home. Mrs. Elliott had sent her up to the manse with some new-laid
-eggs, and had told her not to stay longer than half an hour. The half
-hour was nearly up, so Mary uncurled her cramped legs from under her
-and said abruptly,
-
-“Never mind about the air. Just you listen to me. You manse young ones
-have just got to behave yourselves better than you’ve been doing this
-spring—that’s all there is to it. I just come up to-night a-purpose to
-tell you so. The way people are talking about you is awful.”
-
-“What have we been doing now?” cried Faith in amazement, pulling her
-arm away from Mary. Una’s lips trembled and her sensitive little soul
-shrank within her. Mary was always so brutally frank. Jerry began to
-whistle out of bravado. He meant to let Mary see he didn’t care for
-_her_ tirades. Their behaviour was no business of _hers_ anyway. What
-right had _she_ to lecture them on their conduct?
-
-“Doing now! You’re doing _all_ the time,” retorted Mary. “Just as soon
-as the talk about one of your didos fades away you do something else to
-start it up again. It seems to me you haven’t any idea of how manse
-children ought to behave!”
-
-“Maybe _you_ can tell us,” said Jerry, killingly sarcastic.
-
-Sarcasm was quite thrown away on Mary.
-
-“_I_ can tell you what will happen if you don’t learn to behave
-yourselves. The session will ask your father to resign. There now,
-Master Jerry-know-it-all. Mrs. Alec Davis said so to Mrs. Elliott. I
-heard her. I always have my ears pricked up when Mrs. Alec Davis comes
-to tea. She said you were all going from bad to worse and that though
-it was only what was to be expected when you had nobody to bring you
-up, still the congregation couldn’t be expected to put up with it much
-longer, and something would have to be done. The Methodists just laugh
-and laugh at you, and that hurts the Presbyterian feelings. _She_ says
-you all need a good dose of birch tonic. Lor’, if that would make folks
-good _I_ oughter be a young saint. I’m not telling you this because I
-want to hurt _your_ feelings. I’m sorry for you”—Mary was past mistress
-of the gentle art of condescension. “_I_ understand that you haven’t
-much chance, the way things are. But other people don’t make as much
-allowance as _I_ do. Miss Drew says Carl had a frog in his pocket in
-Sunday School last Sunday and it hopped out while she was hearing the
-lesson. She says she’s going to give up the class. Why don’t you keep
-your insecks home?”
-
-“I popped it right back in again,” said Carl. “It didn’t hurt anybody—a
-poor little frog! And I wish old Jane Drew _would_ give up our class. I
-hate her. Her own nephew had a dirty plug of tobacco in his pocket and
-offered us fellows a chew when Elder Clow was praying. I guess that’s
-worse than a frog.”
-
-“No, ‘cause frogs are more unexpected-like. They make more of a
-sensation. ‘Sides, he wasn’t caught at it. And then that praying
-competition you had last week has made a fearful scandal. Everybody is
-talking about it.”
-
-“Why, the Blythes were in that as well as us,” cried Faith,
-indignantly. “It was Nan Blythe who suggested it in the first place.
-And Walter took the prize.”
-
-“Well, you get the credit of it any way. It wouldn’t have been so bad
-if you hadn’t had it in the graveyard.”
-
-“I should think a graveyard was a very good place to pray in,” retorted
-Jerry.
-
-“Deacon Hazard drove past when _you_ were praying,” said Mary, “and he
-saw and heard you, with your hands folded over your stomach, and
-groaning after every sentence. He thought you were making fun of
-_him_.”
-
-“So I was,” declared unabashed Jerry. “Only I didn’t know he was going
-by, of course. That was just a mean accident. _I_ wasn’t praying in
-real earnest—I knew I had no chance of winning the prize. So I was just
-getting what fun I could out of it. Walter Blythe can pray bully. Why,
-he can pray as well as dad.”
-
-“Una is the only one of US who really likes praying,” said Faith
-pensively.
-
-“Well, if praying scandalizes people so much we mustn’t do it any
-more,” sighed Una.
-
-“Shucks, you can pray all you want to, only not in the graveyard—and
-don’t make a game of it. That was what made it so bad—that, and having
-a tea-party on the tombstones.”
-
-“We hadn’t.”
-
-“Well, a soap-bubble party then. You had _something_. The over-harbour
-people swear you had a tea-party, but I’m willing to take your word.
-And you used this tombstone as a table.”
-
-“Well, Martha wouldn’t let us blow bubbles in the house. She was awful
-cross that day,” explained Jerry. “And this old slab made such a jolly
-table.”
-
-“Weren’t they pretty?” cried Faith, her eyes sparkling over the
-remembrance. “They reflected the trees and the hills and the harbour
-like little fairy worlds, and when we shook them loose they floated
-away down to Rainbow Valley.”
-
-“All but one and it went over and bust up on the Methodist spire,” said
-Carl.
-
-“I’m glad we did it once, anyhow, before we found out it was wrong,”
-said Faith.
-
-“It wouldn’t have been wrong to blow them on the lawn,” said Mary
-impatiently. “Seems like I can’t knock any sense into your heads.
-You’ve been told often enough you shouldn’t play in the graveyard. The
-Methodists are sensitive about it.”
-
-“We forget,” said Faith dolefully. “And the lawn is so small—and so
-caterpillary—and so full of shrubs and things. We can’t be in Rainbow
-Valley all the time—and where are we to go?”
-
-“It’s the things you _do_ in the graveyard. It wouldn’t matter if you
-just sat here and talked quiet, same as we’re doing now. Well, I don’t
-know what is going to come of it all, but I _do_ know that Elder Warren
-is going to speak to your pa about it. Deacon Hazard is his cousin.”
-
-“I wish they wouldn’t bother father about us,” said Una.
-
-“Well, people think he ought to bother himself about you a little more.
-_I_ don’t—_I_ understand him. He’s a child in some ways himself—that’s
-what he is, and needs some one to look after him as bad as you do.
-Well, perhaps he’ll have some one before long, if all tales is true.”
-
-“What do you mean?” asked Faith.
-
-“Haven’t you got any idea—honest?” demanded Mary.
-
-“No, no. What _do_ you mean?”
-
-“Well, you are a lot of innocents, upon my word. Why, _every_body is
-talking of it. Your pa goes to see Rosemary West. _She_ is going to be
-your step-ma.”
-
-“I don’t believe it,” cried Una, flushing crimson.
-
-“Well, _I_ dunno. I just go by what folks say. _I_ don’t give it for a
-fact. But it would be a good thing. Rosemary West’d make you toe the
-mark if she came here, I’ll bet a cent, for all she’s so sweet and
-smiley on the face of her. They’re always that way till they’ve caught
-them. But you need some one to bring you up. You’re disgracing your pa
-and I feel for him. I’ve always thought an awful lot of your pa ever
-since that night he talked to me so nice. I’ve never said a single
-swear word since, or told a lie. And I’d like to see him happy and
-comfortable, with his buttons on and his meals decent, and you young
-ones licked into shape, and that old cat of a Martha put in _her_
-proper place. The way she looked at the eggs I brought her to-night. ‘I
-hope they’re fresh,’ says she. I just wished they _was_ rotten. But you
-just mind that she gives you all one for breakfast, including your pa.
-Make a fuss if she doesn’t. That was what they was sent up for—but I
-don’t trust old Martha. She’s quite capable of feeding ‘em to her cat.”
-
-Mary’s tongue being temporarily tired, a brief silence fell over the
-graveyard. The manse children did not feel like talking. They were
-digesting the new and not altogether palatable ideas Mary had suggested
-to them. Jerry and Carl were somewhat startled. But, after all, what
-did it matter? And it wasn’t likely there was a word of truth in it.
-Faith, on the whole, was pleased. Only Una was seriously upset. She
-felt that she would like to get away and cry.
-
-“Will there be any stars in my crown?” sang the Methodist choir,
-beginning to practise in the Methodist church.
-
-“_I_ want just three,” said Mary, whose theological knowledge had
-increased notably since her residence with Mrs. Elliott. “Just
-three—setting up on my head, like a corownet, a big one in the middle
-and a small one each side.”
-
-“Are there different sizes in souls?” asked Carl.
-
-“Of course. Why, little babies must have smaller ones than big men.
-Well, it’s getting dark and I must scoot home. Mrs. Elliott doesn’t
-like me to be out after dark. Laws, when I lived with Mrs. Wiley the
-dark was just the same as the daylight to me. I didn’t mind it no
-more’n a gray cat. Them days seem a hundred years ago. Now, you mind
-what I’ve said and try to behave yourselves, for you pa’s sake. _I’ll_
-always back you up and defend you—you can be dead sure of that. Mrs.
-Elliott says she never saw the like of me for sticking up for my
-friends. I was real sassy to Mrs. Alec Davis about you and Mrs. Elliott
-combed me down for it afterwards. The fair Cornelia has a tongue of her
-own and no mistake. But she was pleased underneath for all, ‘cause she
-hates old Kitty Alec and she’s real fond of you. _I_ can see through
-folks.”
-
-Mary sailed off, excellently well pleased with herself, leaving a
-rather depressed little group behind her.
-
-“Mary Vance always says something that makes us feel bad when she comes
-up,” said Una resentfully.
-
-“I wish we’d left her to starve in the old barn,” said Jerry
-vindictively.
-
-“Oh, that’s wicked, Jerry,” rebuked Una.
-
-“May as well have the game as the name,” retorted unrepentant Jerry.
-“If people say we’re so bad let’s _be_ bad.”
-
-“But not if it hurts father,” pleaded Faith.
-
-Jerry squirmed uncomfortably. He adored his father. Through the
-unshaded study window they could see Mr. Meredith at his desk. He did
-not seem to be either reading or writing. His head was in his hands and
-there was something in his whole attitude that spoke of weariness and
-dejection. The children suddenly felt it.
-
-“I dare say somebody’s been worrying him about us to-day,” said Faith.
-“I wish we _could_ get along without making people talk. Oh—Jem Blythe!
-How you scared me!”
-
-Jem Blythe had slipped into the graveyard and sat down beside the
-girls. He had been prowling about Rainbow Valley and had succeeded in
-finding the first little star-white cluster of arbutus for his mother.
-The manse children were rather silent after his coming. Jem was
-beginning to grow away from them somewhat this spring. He was studying
-for the entrance examination of Queen’s Academy and stayed after school
-with the older pupils for extra lessons. Also, his evenings were so
-full of work that he seldom joined the others in Rainbow Valley now. He
-seemed to be drifting away into grown-up land.
-
-“What is the matter with you all to-night?” he asked. “There’s no fun
-in you.”
-
-“Not much,” agreed Faith dolefully. “There wouldn’t be much fun in you
-either if _you_ knew you were disgracing your father and making people
-talk about you.”
-
-“Who’s been talking about you now?”
-
-“Everybody—so Mary Vance says.” And Faith poured out her troubles to
-sympathetic Jem. “You see,” she concluded dolefully, “we’ve nobody to
-bring us up. And so we get into scrapes and people think we’re bad.”
-
-“Why don’t you bring yourselves up?” suggested Jem. “I’ll tell you what
-to do. Form a Good-Conduct Club and punish yourselves every time you do
-anything that’s not right.”
-
-“That’s a good idea,” said Faith, struck by it. “But,” she added
-doubtfully, “things that don’t seem a bit of harm to US seem simply
-dreadful to other people. How can we tell? We can’t be bothering father
-all the time—and he has to be away a lot, anyhow.”
-
-“You could mostly tell if you stopped to think a thing over before
-doing it and ask yourselves what the congregation would say about it,”
-said Jem. “The trouble is you just rush into things and don’t think
-them over at all. Mother says you’re all too impulsive, just as she
-used to be. The Good-Conduct Club would help you to think, if you were
-fair and honest about punishing yourselves when you broke the rules.
-You’d have to punish in some way that really _hurt_, or it wouldn’t do
-any good.”
-
-“Whip each other?”
-
-“Not exactly. You’d have to think up different ways of punishment to
-suit the person. You wouldn’t punish each other—you’d punish
-_yourselves_. I read all about such a club in a story-book. You try it
-and see how it works.”
-
-“Let’s,” said Faith; and when Jem was gone they agreed they would. “If
-things aren’t right we’ve just got to make them right,” said Faith,
-resolutely.
-
-“We’ve got to be fair and square, as Jem says,” said Jerry. “This is a
-club to bring ourselves up, seeing there’s nobody else to do it.
-There’s no use in having many rules. Let’s just have one and any of us
-that breaks it has got to be punished hard.”
-
-“But _how_.”
-
-“We’ll think that up as we go along. We’ll hold a session of the club
-here in the graveyard every night and talk over what we’ve done through
-the day, and if we think we’ve done anything that isn’t right or that
-would disgrace dad the one that does it, or is responsible for it, must
-be punished. That’s the rule. We’ll all decide on the kind of
-punishment—it must be made to fit the crime, as Mr. Flagg says. And the
-one that’s, guilty will be bound to carry it out and no shirking.
-There’s going to be fun in this,” concluded Jerry, with a relish.
-
-“You suggested the soap-bubble party,” said Faith.
-
-“But that was before we’d formed the club,” said Jerry hastily.
-“Everything starts from to-night.”
-
-“But what if we can’t agree on what’s right, or what the punishment
-ought to be? S’pose two of us thought of one thing and two another.
-There ought to be five in a club like this.”
-
-“We can ask Jem Blythe to be umpire. He is the squarest boy in Glen St.
-Mary. But I guess we can settle our own affairs mostly. We want to keep
-this as much of a secret as we can. Don’t breathe a word to Mary Vance.
-She’d want to join and do the bringing up.”
-
-“_I_ think,” said Faith, “that there’s no use in spoiling every day by
-dragging punishments in. Let’s have a punishment day.”
-
-“We’d better choose Saturday because there is no school to interfere,”
-suggested Una.
-
-“And spoil the one holiday in the week,” cried Faith. “Not much! No,
-let’s take Friday. That’s fish day, anyhow, and we all hate fish. We
-may as well have all the disagreeable things in one day. Then other
-days we can go ahead and have a good time.”
-
-“Nonsense,” said Jerry authoritatively. “Such a scheme wouldn’t work at
-all. We’ll just punish ourselves as we go along and keep a clear slate.
-Now, we all understand, don’t we? This is a Good-Conduct Club, for the
-purpose of bringing ourselves up. We agree to punish ourselves for bad
-conduct, and always to stop before we do anything, no matter what, and
-ask ourselves if it is likely to hurt dad in any way, and any one who
-shirks is to be cast out of the club and never allowed to play with the
-rest of us in Rainbow Valley again. Jem Blythe to be umpire in case of
-disputes. No more taking bugs to Sunday School, Carl, and no more
-chewing gum in public, if you please, Miss Faith.”
-
-“No more making fun of elders praying or going to the Methodist prayer
-meeting,” retorted Faith.
-
-“Why, it isn’t any harm to go to the Methodist prayer meeting,”
-protested Jerry in amazement.
-
-“Mrs. Elliott says it is, She says manse children have no business to
-go anywhere but to Presbyterian things.”
-
-“Darn it, I won’t give up going to the Methodist prayer meeting,” cried
-Jerry. “It’s ten times more fun than ours is.”
-
-“You said a naughty word,” cried Faith. “_Now_, you’ve got to punish
-yourself.”
-
-“Not till it’s all down in black and white. We’re only talking the club
-over. It isn’t really formed until we’ve written it out and signed it.
-There’s got to be a constitution and by-laws. And you _know_ there’s
-nothing wrong in going to a prayer meeting.”
-
-“But it’s not only the wrong things we’re to punish ourselves for, but
-anything that might hurt father.”
-
-“It won’t hurt anybody. You know Mrs. Elliott is cracked on the subject
-of Methodists. Nobody else makes any fuss about my going. I always
-behave myself. You ask Jem or Mrs. Blythe and see what they say. I’ll
-abide by their opinion. I’m going for the paper now and I’ll bring out
-the lantern and we’ll all sign.”
-
-Fifteen minutes later the document was solemnly signed on Hezekiah
-Pollock’s tombstone, on the centre of which stood the smoky manse
-lantern, while the children knelt around it. Mrs. Elder Clow was going
-past at the moment and next day all the Glen heard that the manse
-children had been having another praying competition and had wound it
-up by chasing each other all over the graves with a lantern. This piece
-of embroidery was probably suggested by the fact that, after the
-signing and sealing was completed, Carl had taken the lantern and had
-walked circumspectly to the little hollow to examine his ant-hill. The
-others had gone quietly into the manse and to bed.
-
-“Do you think it is true that father is going to marry Miss West?” Una
-had tremulously asked of Faith, after their prayers had been said.
-
-“I don’t know, but I’d like it,” said Faith.
-
-“Oh, I wouldn’t,” said Una, chokingly. “She is nice the way she is. But
-Mary Vance says it changes people _altogether_ to be made stepmothers.
-They get horrid cross and mean and hateful then, and turn your father
-against you. She says they’re sure to do that. She never knew it to
-fail in a single case.”
-
-“I don’t believe Miss West would _ever_ try to do that,” cried Faith.
-
-“Mary says _anybody_ would. She knows _all_ about stepmothers,
-Faith—she says she’s seen hundreds of them—and you’ve never seen one.
-Oh, Mary has told me blood-curdling things about them. She says she
-knew of one who whipped her husband’s little girls on their bare
-shoulders till they bled, and then shut them up in a cold, dark coal
-cellar all night. She says they’re _all_ aching to do things like
-that.”
-
-“I don’t believe Miss West would. You don’t know her as well as I do,
-Una. Just think of that sweet little bird she sent me. I love it far
-more even than Adam.”
-
-“It’s just being a stepmother changes them. Mary says they can’t help
-it. I wouldn’t mind the whippings so much as having father hate us.”
-
-“You know nothing could make father hate us. Don’t be silly, Una. I
-dare say there’s nothing to worry over. Likely if we run our club right
-and bring ourselves up properly father won’t think of marrying any one.
-And if he does, I _know_ Miss West will be lovely to us.”
-
-But Una had no such conviction and she cried herself to sleep.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIV.
-A CHARITABLE IMPULSE
-
-
-For a fortnight things ran smoothly in the Good-Conduct Club. It seemed
-to work admirably. Not once was Jem Blythe called in as umpire. Not
-once did any of the manse children set the Glen gossips by the ears. As
-for their minor peccadilloes at home, they kept sharp tabs on each
-other and gamely underwent their self-imposed punishment—generally a
-voluntary absence from some gay Friday night frolic in Rainbow Valley,
-or a sojourn in bed on some spring evening when all young bones ached
-to be out and away. Faith, for whispering in Sunday School, condemned
-herself to pass a whole day without speaking a single word, unless it
-was absolutely necessary, and accomplished it. It was rather
-unfortunate that Mr. Baker from over-harbour should have chosen that
-evening for calling at the manse, and that Faith should have happened
-to go to the door. Not one word did she reply to his genial greeting,
-but went silently away to call her father briefly. Mr. Baker was
-slightly offended and told his wife when he went home that that the
-biggest Meredith girl seemed a very shy, sulky little thing, without
-manners enough to speak when she was spoken to. But nothing worse came
-of it, and generally their penances did no harm to themselves or
-anybody else. All of them were beginning to feel quite cocksure that
-after all, it was a very easy matter to bring yourself up.
-
-“I guess people will soon see that we can behave ourselves properly as
-well as anybody,” said Faith jubilantly. “It isn’t hard when we put our
-minds to it.”
-
-She and Una were sitting on the Pollock tombstone. It had been a cold,
-raw, wet day of spring storm and Rainbow Valley was out of the question
-for girls, though the manse and the Ingleside boys were down there
-fishing. The rain had held up, but the east wind blew mercilessly in
-from the sea, cutting to bone and marrow. Spring was late in spite of
-its early promise, and there was even yet a hard drift of old snow and
-ice in the northern corner of the graveyard. Lida Marsh, who had come
-up to bring the manse a mess of herring, slipped in through the gate
-shivering. She belonged to the fishing village at the harbour mouth and
-her father had, for thirty years, made a practice of sending a mess
-from his first spring catch to the manse. He never darkened a church
-door; he was a hard drinker and a reckless man, but as long as he sent
-those herring up to the manse every spring, as his father had done
-before him, he felt comfortably sure that his account with the Powers
-That Govern was squared for the year. He would not have expected a good
-mackerel catch if he had not so sent the first fruits of the season.
-
-Lida was a mite of ten and looked younger, because she was such a
-small, wizened little creature. To-night, as she sidled boldly enough
-up to the manse girls, she looked as if she had never been warm since
-she was born. Her face was purple and her pale-blue, bold little eyes
-were red and watery. She wore a tattered print dress and a ragged
-woollen comforter, tied across her thin shoulders and under her arms.
-She had walked the three miles from the harbour mouth barefooted, over
-a road where there was still snow and slush and mud. Her feet and legs
-were as purple as her face. But Lida did not mind this much. She was
-used to being cold, and she had been going barefooted for a month
-already, like all the other swarming young fry of the fishing village.
-There was no self-pity in her heart as she sat down on the tombstone
-and grinned cheerfully at Faith and Una. Faith and Una grinned
-cheerfully back. They knew Lida slightly, having met her once or twice
-the preceding summer when they had gone down the harbour with the
-Blythes.
-
-“Hello!” said Lida, “ain’t this a fierce kind of a night? ‘T’ain’t fit
-for a dog to be out, is it?”
-
-“Then why are you out?” asked Faith.
-
-“Pa made me bring you up some herring,” returned Lida. She shivered,
-coughed, and stuck out her bare feet. Lida was not thinking about
-herself or her feet, and was making no bid for sympathy. She held her
-feet out instinctively to keep them from the wet grass around the
-tombstone. But Faith and Una were instantly swamped with a wave of pity
-for her. She looked so cold—so miserable.
-
-“Oh, why are you barefooted on such a cold night?” cried Faith. “Your
-feet must be almost frozen.”
-
-“Pretty near,” said Lida proudly. “I tell you it was fierce walking up
-that harbour road.”
-
-“Why didn’t you put on your shoes and stockings?” asked Una.
-
-“Hain’t none to put on. All I had was wore out by the time winter was
-over,” said Lida indifferently.
-
-For a moment Faith stated in horror. This was terrible. Here was a
-little girl, almost a neighbour, half frozen because she had no shoes
-or stockings in this cruel spring weather. Impulsive Faith thought of
-nothing but the dreadfulness of it. In a moment she was pulling off her
-own shoes and stockings.
-
-“Here, take these and put them right on,” she said, forcing them into
-the hands of the astonished Lida. “Quick now. You’ll catch your death
-of cold. I’ve got others. Put them right on.”
-
-Lida, recovering her wits, snatched at the offered gift, with a sparkle
-in her dull eyes. Sure she would put them on, and that mighty quick,
-before any one appeared with authority to recall them. In a minute she
-had pulled the stockings over her scrawny little legs and slipped
-Faith’s shoes over her thick little ankles.
-
-“I’m obliged to you,” she said, “but won’t your folks be cross?”
-
-“No—and I don’t care if they are,” said Faith. “Do you think I could
-see any one freezing to death without helping them if I could? It
-wouldn’t be right, especially when my father’s a minister.”
-
-“Will you want them back? It’s awful cold down at the harbour
-mouth—long after it’s warm up here,” said Lida slyly.
-
-“No, you’re to keep them, of course. That is what I meant when I gave
-them. I have another pair of shoes and plenty of stockings.”
-
-Lida had meant to stay awhile and talk to the girls about many things.
-But now she thought she had better get away before somebody came and
-made her yield up her booty. So she shuffled off through the bitter
-twilight, in the noiseless, shadowy way she had slipped in. As soon as
-she was out of sight of the manse she sat down, took off the shoes and
-stockings, and put them in her herring basket. She had no intention of
-keeping them on down that dirty harbour road. They were to be kept good
-for gala occasions. Not another little girl down at the harbour mouth
-had such fine black cashmere stockings and such smart, almost new
-shoes. Lida was furnished forth for the summer. She had no qualms in
-the matter. In her eyes the manse people were quite fabulously rich,
-and no doubt those girls had slathers of shoes and stockings. Then Lida
-ran down to the Glen village and played for an hour with the boys
-before Mr. Flagg’s store, splashing about in a pool of slush with the
-maddest of them, until Mrs. Elliott came along and bade her begone
-home.
-
-“I don’t think, Faith, that you should have done that,” said Una, a
-little reproachfully, after Lida had gone. “You’ll have to wear your
-good boots every day now and they’ll soon scuff out.”
-
-“I don’t care,” cried Faith, still in the fine glow of having done a
-kindness to a fellow creature. “It isn’t fair that I should have two
-pairs of shoes and poor little Lida Marsh not have any. _Now_ we both
-have a pair. You know perfectly well, Una, that father said in his
-sermon last Sunday that there was no real happiness in getting or
-having—only in giving. And it’s true. I feel _far_ happier now than I
-ever did in my whole life before. Just think of Lida walking home this
-very minute with her poor little feet all nice and warm and comfy.”
-
-“You know you haven’t another pair of black cashmere stockings,” said
-Una. “Your other pair were so full of holes that Aunt Martha said she
-couldn’t darn them any more and she cut the legs up for stove dusters.
-You’ve nothing but those two pairs of striped stockings you hate so.”
-
-All the glow and uplift went out of Faith. Her gladness collapsed like
-a pricked balloon. She sat for a few dismal minutes in silence, facing
-the consequences of her rash act.
-
-“Oh, Una, I never thought of that,” she said dolefully. “I didn’t stop
-to think at all.”
-
-The striped stockings were thick, heavy, coarse, ribbed stockings of
-blue and red which Aunt Martha had knit for Faith in the winter. They
-were undoubtedly hideous. Faith loathed them as she had never loathed
-anything before. Wear them she certainly would not. They were still
-unworn in her bureau drawer.
-
-“You’ll have to wear the striped stockings after this,” said Una. “Just
-think how the boys in school will laugh at you. You know how they laugh
-at Mamie Warren for her striped stockings and call her barber pole and
-yours are far worse.”
-
-“I won’t wear them,” said Faith. “I’ll go barefooted first, cold as it
-is.”
-
-“You can’t go barefooted to church to-morrow. Think what people would
-say.”
-
-“Then I’ll stay home.”
-
-“You can’t. You know very well Aunt Martha will make you go.”
-
-Faith did know this. The one thing on which Aunt Martha troubled
-herself to insist was that they must all go to church, rain or shine.
-How they were dressed, or if they were dressed at all, never concerned
-her. But go they must. That was how Aunt Martha had been brought up
-seventy years ago, and that was how she meant to bring them up.
-
-“Haven’t you got a pair you can lend me, Una?” said poor Faith
-piteously.
-
-Una shook her head. “No, you know I only have the one black pair. And
-they’re so tight I can hardly get them on. They wouldn’t go on you.
-Neither would my gray ones. Besides, the legs of _them_ are all darned
-_and_ darned.”
-
-“I won’t wear those striped stockings,” said Faith stubbornly. “The
-feel of them is even worse than the looks. They make me feel as if my
-legs were as big as barrels and they’re so _scratchy_.”
-
-“Well, I don’t know what you’re going to do.”
-
-“If father was home I’d go and ask him to get me a new pair before the
-store closes. But he won’t be home till too late. I’ll ask him
-Monday—and I won’t go to church tomorrow. I’ll pretend I’m sick and
-Aunt Martha’ll _have_ to let me stay home.”
-
-“That would be acting a lie, Faith,” cried Una. “You _can’t_ do that.
-You know it would be dreadful. What would father say if he knew? Don’t
-you remember how he talked to us after mother died and told us we must
-always be _true_, no matter what else we failed in. He said we must
-never tell or act a lie—he said he’d _trust_ us not to. You _can’t_ do
-it, Faith. Just wear the striped stockings. It’ll only be for once.
-Nobody will notice them in church. It isn’t like school. And your new
-brown dress is so long they won’t show much. Wasn’t it lucky Aunt
-Martha made it big, so you’d have room to grow in it, for all you hated
-it so when she finished it?”
-
-“I won’t wear those stockings,” repeated Faith. She uncoiled her bare,
-white legs from the tombstone and deliberately walked through the wet,
-cold grass to the bank of snow. Setting her teeth, she stepped upon it
-and stood there.
-
-“What are you doing?” cried Una aghast. “You’ll catch your death of
-cold, Faith Meredith.”
-
-“I’m trying to,” answered Faith. “I hope I’ll catch a fearful cold and
-be _awful_ sick to-morrow. Then I won’t be acting a lie. I’m going to
-stand here as long as I can bear it.”
-
-“But, Faith, you might really die. You might get pneumonia. Please,
-Faith don’t. Let’s go into the house and get _something_ for your feet.
-Oh, here’s Jerry. I’m so thankful. Jerry, _make_ Faith get off that
-snow. Look at her feet.”
-
-“Holy cats! Faith, what _are_ you doing?” demanded Jerry. “Are you
-crazy?”
-
-“No. Go away!” snapped Faith.
-
-“Then are you punishing yourself for something? It isn’t right, if you
-are. You’ll be sick.”
-
-“I want to be sick. I’m not punishing myself. Go away.”
-
-“Where’s her shoes and stockings?” asked Jerry of Una.
-
-“She gave them to Lida Marsh.”
-
-“Lida Marsh? What for?”
-
-“Because Lida had none—and her feet were so cold. And now she wants to
-be sick so that she won’t have to go to church to-morrow and wear her
-striped stockings. But, Jerry, she may die.”
-
-“Faith,” said Jerry, “get off that ice-bank or I’ll pull you off.”
-
-“Pull away,” dared Faith.
-
-Jerry sprang at her and caught her arms. He pulled one way and Faith
-pulled another. Una ran behind Faith and pushed. Faith stormed at Jerry
-to leave her alone. Jerry stormed back at her not to be a dizzy idiot;
-and Una cried. They made no end of noise and they were close to the
-road fence of the graveyard. Henry Warren and his wife drove by and
-heard and saw them. Very soon the Glen heard that the manse children
-had been having an awful fight in the graveyard and using most improper
-language. Meanwhile, Faith had allowed herself to be pulled off the ice
-because her feet were aching so sharply that she was ready to get off
-any way. They all went in amiably and went to bed. Faith slept like a
-cherub and woke in the morning without a trace of a cold. She felt that
-she couldn’t feign sickness and act a lie, after remembering that
-long-ago talk with her father. But she was still as fully determined as
-ever that she would not wear those abominable stockings to church.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXV.
-ANOTHER SCANDAL AND ANOTHER “EXPLANATION”
-
-
-Faith went early to Sunday School and was seated in the corner of her
-class pew before any one came. Therefore, the dreadful truth did not
-burst upon any one until Faith left the class pew near the door to walk
-up to the manse pew after Sunday School. The church was already half
-filled and all who were sitting near the aisle saw that the minister’s
-daughter had boots on but no stockings!
-
-Faith’s new brown dress, which Aunt Martha had made from an ancient
-pattern, was absurdly long for her, but even so it did not meet her
-boot-tops. Two good inches of bare white leg showed plainly.
-
-Faith and Carl sat alone in the manse pew. Jerry had gone into the
-gallery to sit with a chum and the Blythe girls had taken Una with
-them. The Meredith children were given to “sitting all over the church”
-in this fashion and a great many people thought it very improper. The
-gallery especially, where irresponsible lads congregated and were known
-to whisper and suspected of chewing tobacco during service, was no
-place, for a son of the manse. But Jerry hated the manse pew at the
-very top of the church, under the eyes of Elder Clow and his family. He
-escaped from it whenever he could.
-
-Carl, absorbed in watching a spider spinning its web at the window, did
-not notice Faith’s legs. She walked home with her father after church
-and he never noticed them. She got on the hated striped stockings
-before Jerry and Una arrived, so that for the time being none of the
-occupants of the manse knew what she had done. But nobody else in Glen
-St. Mary was ignorant of it. The few who had not seen soon heard.
-Nothing else was talked of on the way home from church. Mrs. Alec Davis
-said it was only what she expected, and the next thing you would see
-some of those young ones coming to church with no clothes on at all.
-The president of the Ladies’ Aid decided that she would bring the
-matter up at the next Aid meeting, and suggest that they wait in a body
-on the minister and protest. Miss Cornelia said that she, for her part,
-gave up. There was no use worrying over the manse fry any longer. Even
-Mrs. Dr. Blythe felt a little shocked, though she attributed the
-occurrence solely to Faith’s forgetfulness. Susan could not immediately
-begin knitting stockings for Faith because it was Sunday, but she had
-one set up before any one else was out of bed at Ingleside the next
-morning.
-
-“You need not tell me anything but that it was old Martha’s fault, Mrs.
-Dr. dear.” she told Anne. “I suppose that poor little child had no
-decent stockings to wear. I suppose every stocking she had was in
-holes, as you know very well they generally are. And _I_ think, Mrs.
-Dr. dear, that the Ladies’ Aid would be better employed in knitting
-some for them than in fighting over the new carpet for the pulpit
-platform. _I_ am not a Ladies’ Aider, but I shall knit Faith two pairs
-of stockings, out of this nice black yarn, as fast as my fingers can
-move and that you may tie to. Never shall I forget my sensations, Mrs.
-Dr. dear, when I saw a minister’s child walking up the aisle of our
-church with no stockings on. I really did not know what way to look.”
-
-“And the church was just full of Methodists yesterday, too,” groaned
-Miss Cornelia, who had come up to the Glen to do some shopping and run
-into Ingleside to talk the affair over. “I don’t know how it is, but
-just as sure as those manse children do something especially awful the
-church is sure to be crowded with Methodists. I thought Mrs. Deacon
-Hazard’s eyes would drop out of her head. When she came out of church
-she said, ‘Well, that exhibition was no more than decent. I do pity the
-Presbyterians.’ And we just had to _take_ it. There was nothing one
-could say.”
-
-“There was something _I_ could have said, Mrs. Dr. dear, if I had heard
-her,” said Susan grimly. “I would have said, for one thing, that in my
-opinion clean bare legs were quite as decent as holes. And I would have
-said, for another, that the Presbyterians did not feel greatly in need
-of pity seeing that they had a minister who could _preach_ and the
-Methodists had _not_. I could have squelched Mrs. Deacon Hazard, Mrs.
-Dr dear, and that you may tie to.”
-
-“I wish Mr. Meredith didn’t preach quite so well and looked after his
-family a little better,” retorted Miss Cornelia. “He could at least
-glance over his children before they went to church and see that they
-were quite properly clothed. I’m tired making excuses for him, believe
-_me_.”
-
-Meanwhile, Faith’s soul was being harrowed up in Rainbow Valley. Mary
-Vance was there and, as usual, in a lecturing mood. She gave Faith to
-understand that she had disgraced herself and her father beyond
-redemption and that she, Mary Vance, was done with her. “Everybody” was
-talking, and “everybody” said the same thing.
-
-“I simply feel that I can’t associate with you any longer,” she
-concluded.
-
-“_We_ are going to associate with her then,” cried Nan Blythe. Nan
-secretly thought Faith _had_ done a awful thing, but she wasn’t going
-to let Mary Vance run matters in this high-handed fashion. “And if
-_you_ are not you needn’t come any more to Rainbow Valley, _Miss_
-Vance.”
-
-Nan and Di both put their arms around Faith and glared defiance at
-Mary. The latter suddenly crumpled up, sat down on a stump and began to
-cry.
-
-“It ain’t that I don’t want to,” she wailed. “But if I keep in with
-Faith people’ll be saying I put her up to doing things. Some are saying
-it now, true’s you live. I can’t afford to have such things said of me,
-now that I’m in a respectable place and trying to be a lady. And _I_
-never went bare-legged in church in my toughest days. I’d never have
-thought of doing such a thing. But that hateful old Kitty Alec says
-Faith has never been the same girl since that time I stayed in the
-manse. She says Cornelia Elliott will live to rue the day she took me
-in. It hurts my feelings, I tell you. But it’s Mr. Meredith I’m really
-worried over.”
-
-“I think you needn’t worry about him,” said Di scornfully. “It isn’t
-likely necessary. Now, Faith darling, stop crying and tell us why you
-did it.”
-
-Faith explained tearfully. The Blythe girls sympathized with her, and
-even Mary Vance agreed that it was a hard position to be in. But Jerry,
-on whom the thing came like a thunderbolt, refused to be placated. So
-_this_ was what some mysterious hints he had got in school that day
-meant! He marched Faith and Una home without ceremony, and the
-Good-Conduct Club held an immediate session in the graveyard to sit in
-judgment on Faith’s case.
-
-“I don’t see that it was any harm,” said Faith defiantly. “Not _much_
-of my legs showed. It wasn’t _wrong_ and it didn’t hurt anybody.”
-
-“It will hurt Dad. You _know_ it will. You know people blame him
-whenever we do anything queer.”
-
-“I didn’t think of that,” muttered Faith.
-
-“That’s just the trouble. You didn’t think and you _should_ have
-thought. That’s what our Club is for—to bring us up and _make_ us
-think. We promised we’d always stop and think before doing things. You
-didn’t and you’ve got to be punished, Faith—and real hard, too. You’ll
-wear those striped stockings to school for a week for punishment.”
-
-“Oh, Jerry, won’t a day do—two days? Not a whole week!”
-
-“Yes, a whole week,” said inexorable Jerry. “It is fair—ask Jem Blythe
-if it isn’t.”
-
-Faith felt she would rather submit then ask Jem Blythe about such a
-matter. She was beginning to realize that her offence was a quite
-shameful one.
-
-“I’ll do it, then,” she muttered, a little sulkily.
-
-“You’re getting off easy,” said, Jerry severely. “And no matter how we
-punish you it won’t help father. People will always think you just did
-it for mischief, and they’ll blame father for not stopping it. We can
-never explain it to everybody.”
-
-This aspect of the case weighed on Faith’s mind. Her own condemnation
-she could bear, but it tortured her that her father should be blamed.
-If people knew the true facts of the case they would not blame him. But
-how could she make them known to all the world? Getting up in church,
-as she had once done, and explaining the matter was out of the
-question. Faith had heard from Mary Vance how the congregation had
-looked upon that performance and realized that she must not repeat it.
-Faith worried over the problem for half a week. Then she had an
-inspiration and promptly acted upon it. She spent that evening in the
-garret, with a lamp and an exercise book, writing busily, with flushed
-cheeks and shining eyes. It was the very thing! How clever she was to
-have thought of it! It would put everything right and explain
-everything and yet cause no scandal. It was eleven o’clock when she had
-finished to her satisfaction and crept down to bed, dreadfully tired,
-but perfectly happy.
-
-In a few days the little weekly published in the Glen under the name of
-_The Journal_ came out as usual, and the Glen had another sensation. A
-letter signed “Faith Meredith” occupied a prominent place on the front
-page and ran as follows:—
-
-“TO WHOM IT MAY CONCERN:
-
-“I want to explain to everybody how it was I came to go to church
-without stockings on, so that everybody will know that father was not
-to blame one bit for it, and the old gossips need not say he is,
-because it is not true. I gave my only pair of black stockings to Lida
-Marsh, because she hadn’t any and her poor little feet were awful cold
-and I was so sorry for her. No child ought to have to go without shoes
-and stockings in a Christian community before the snow is all gone, and
-I think the W. F. M. S. ought to have given her stockings. Of course, I
-know they are sending things to the little heathen children, and that
-is all right and a kind thing to do. But the little heathen children
-have lots more warm weather than we have, and I think the women of our
-church ought to look after Lida and not leave it all to me. When I gave
-her my stockings I forgot they were the only black pair I had without
-holes, but I am glad I did give them to her, because my conscience
-would have been uncomfortable if I hadn’t. When she had gone away,
-looking so proud and happy, the poor little thing, I remembered that
-all I had to wear were the horrid red and blue things Aunt Martha knit
-last winter for me out of some yarn that Mrs. Joseph Burr of Upper Glen
-sent us. It was dreadfully coarse yarn and all knots, and I never saw
-any of Mrs. Burr’s own children wearing things made of such yarn. But
-Mary Vance says Mrs. Burr gives the minister stuff that she can’t use
-or eat herself, and thinks it ought to go as part of the salary her
-husband signed to pay, but never does.
-
-“I just couldn’t bear to wear those hateful stockings. They were so
-ugly and rough and felt so scratchy. Everybody would have made fun of
-me. I thought at first I’d pretend to be sick and not go to church next
-day, but I decided I couldn’t do that, because it would be acting a
-lie, and father told us after mother died that was something we must
-never, never do. It is just as bad to act a lie as to tell one, though
-I know some people, right here in the Glen, who act them, and never
-seem to feel a bit bad about it. I will not mention any names, but I
-know who they are and so does father.
-
-“Then I tried my best to catch cold and really be sick by standing on
-the snowbank in the Methodist graveyard with my bare feet until Jerry
-pulled me off. But it didn’t hurt me a bit and so I couldn’t get out of
-going to church. So I just decided I would put my boots on and go that
-way. I can’t see why it was so wrong and I was so careful to wash my
-legs just as clean as my face, but, anyway, father wasn’t to blame for
-it. He was in the study thinking of his sermon and other heavenly
-things, and I kept out of his way before I went to Sunday School.
-Father does not look at people’s legs in church, so of course he did
-not notice mine, but all the gossips did and talked about it, and that
-is why I am writing this letter to the _Journal_ to explain. I suppose
-I did very wrong, since everybody says so, and I am sorry and I am
-wearing those awful stockings to punish myself, although father bought
-me two nice new black pairs as soon as Mr. Flagg’s store opened on
-Monday morning. But it was all my fault, and if people blame father for
-it after they read this they are not Christians and so I do not mind
-what they say.
-
-“There is another thing I want to explain about before I stop. Mary
-Vance told me that Mr. Evan Boyd is blaming the Lew Baxters for
-stealing potatoes out of his field last fall. They did not touch his
-potatoes. They are very poor, but they are honest. It was us did
-it—Jerry and Carl and I. Una was not with us at the time. We never
-thought it was stealing. We just wanted a few potatoes to cook over a
-fire in Rainbow Valley one evening to eat with our fried trout. Mr.
-Boyd’s field was the nearest, just between the valley and the village,
-so we climbed over his fence and pulled up some stalks. The potatoes
-were awful small, because Mr. Boyd did not put enough fertilizer on
-them and we had to pull up a lot of stalks before we got enough, and
-then they were not much bigger than marbles. Walter and Di Blythe
-helped us eat them, but they did not come along until we had them
-cooked and did not know where we got them, so they were not to blame at
-all, only us. We didn’t mean any harm, but if it was stealing we are
-very sorry and we will pay Mr. Boyd for them if he will wait until we
-grow up. We never have any money now because we are not big enough to
-earn any, and Aunt Martha says it takes every cent of poor father’s
-salary, even when it is paid up regularly—and it isn’t often—to run
-this house. But Mr. Boyd must not blame the Lew Baxters any more, when
-they were quite innocent, and give them a bad name.
-
-“Yours respectfully,
-“FAITH MEREDITH.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVI.
-MISS CORNELIA GETS A NEW POINT OF VIEW
-
-
-“Susan, after I’m dead I’m going to come back to earth every time when
-the daffodils blow in this garden,” said Anne rapturously. “Nobody may
-see me, but I’ll be here. If anybody is in the garden at the time—I
-_think_ I’ll come on an evening just like this, but it _might_ be just
-at dawn—a lovely, pale-pinky spring dawn—they’ll just see the daffodils
-nodding wildly as if an extra gust of wind had blown past them, but it
-will be _I_.”
-
-“Indeed, Mrs. Dr. dear, you will not be thinking of flaunting worldly
-things like daffies after you are dead,” said Susan. “And I do _not_
-believe in ghosts, seen or unseen.”
-
-“Oh, Susan, I shall not be a ghost! That has such a horrible sound. I
-shall just be _me_. And I shall run around in the twilight, whether it
-is morn or eve, and see all the spots I love. Do you remember how badly
-I felt when I left our little House of Dreams, Susan? I thought I could
-never love Ingleside so well. But I do. I love every inch of the ground
-and every stick and stone on it.”
-
-“I am rather fond of the place myself,” said Susan, who would have died
-if she had been removed from it, “but we must not set our affections
-too much on earthly things, Mrs. Dr. dear. There are such things as
-fires and earthquakes. We should always be prepared. The Tom
-MacAllisters over-harbour were burned out three nights ago. Some say
-Tom MacAllister set the house on fire himself to get the insurance.
-That may or may not be. But I advise the doctor to have our chimneys
-seen to at once. An ounce of prevention is worth a pound of cure. But I
-see Mrs. Marshall Elliott coming in at the gate, looking as if she had
-been sent for and couldn’t go.”
-
-“Anne dearie, have you seen the _Journal_ to-day?”
-
-Miss Cornelia’s voice was trembling, partly from emotion, partly from
-the fact that she had hurried up from the store too fast and lost her
-breath.
-
-Anne bent over the daffodils to hide a smile. She and Gilbert had
-laughed heartily and heartlessly over the front page of the _Journal_
-that day, but she knew that to dear Miss Cornelia it was almost a
-tragedy, and she must not wound her feelings by any display of levity.
-
-“Isn’t it dreadful? What _is_ to be done?” asked Miss Cornelia
-despairingly. Miss Cornelia had vowed that she was done with worrying
-over the pranks of the manse children, but she went on worrying just
-the same.
-
-Anne led the way to the veranda, where Susan was knitting, with Shirley
-and Rilla conning their primers on either side. Susan was already on
-her second pair of stockings for Faith. Susan never worried over poor
-humanity. She did what in her lay for its betterment and serenely left
-the rest to the Higher Powers.
-
-“Cornelia Elliott thinks she was born to run this world, Mrs. Dr.
-dear,” she had once said to Anne, “and so she is always in a stew over
-something. I have never thought _I_ was, and so I go calmly along. Not
-but what it has sometimes occurred to me that things might be run a
-little better than they are. But it is not for us poor worms to nourish
-such thoughts. They only make us uncomfortable and do not get us
-anywhere.”
-
-“I don’t see that anything can be done—now—” said Anne, pulling out a
-nice, cushiony chair for Miss Cornelia. “But how in the world did Mr.
-Vickers allow that letter to be printed? Surely he should have known
-better.”
-
-“Why, he’s away, Anne dearie—he’s been away to New Brunswick for a
-week. And that young scalawag of a Joe Vickers is editing the _Journal_
-in his absence. Of course, Mr. Vickers would never have put it in, even
-if he is a Methodist, but Joe would just think it a good joke. As you
-say, I don’t suppose there is anything to be done now, only live it
-down. But if I ever get Joe Vickers cornered somewhere I’ll give him a
-talking to he won’t forget in a hurry. I wanted Marshall to stop our
-subscription to the _Journal_ instantly, but he only laughed and said
-that to-day’s issue was the only one that had had anything readable in
-it for a year. Marshall never will take anything seriously—just like a
-man. Fortunately, Evan Boyd is like that, too. He takes it as a joke
-and is laughing all over the place about it. And he’s another
-Methodist! As for Mrs. Burr of Upper Glen, of course she will be
-furious and they will leave the church. Not that it will be a great
-loss from any point of view. The Methodists are quite welcome to
-_them_.”
-
-“It serves Mrs. Burr right,” said Susan, who had an old feud with the
-lady in question and had been hugely tickled over the reference to her
-in Faith’s letter. “She will find that she will not be able to cheat
-the Methodist parson out of _his_ salary with bad yarn.”
-
-“The worst of it is, there’s not much hope of things getting any
-better,” said Miss Cornelia gloomily. “As long as Mr. Meredith was
-going to see Rosemary West I did hope the manse would soon have a
-proper mistress. But that is all off. I suppose she wouldn’t have him
-on account of the children—at least, everybody seems to think so.”
-
-“I do not believe that he ever asked her,” said Susan, who could not
-conceive of any one refusing a minister.
-
-“Well, nobody knows anything about _that_. But one thing is certain, he
-doesn’t go there any longer. And Rosemary didn’t look well all the
-spring. I hope her visit to Kingsport will do her good. She’s been gone
-for a month and will stay another month, I understand. I can’t remember
-when Rosemary was away from home before. She and Ellen could never bear
-to be parted. But I understand Ellen insisted on her going this time.
-And meanwhile Ellen and Norman Douglas are warming up the old soup.”
-
-“Is that really so?” asked Anne, laughing. “I heard a rumour of it, but
-I hardly believed it.”
-
-“Believe it! You may believe it all right, Anne, dearie. Nobody is in
-ignorance of it. Norman Douglas never left anybody in doubt as to his
-intentions in regard to anything. He always did his courting before the
-public. He told Marshall that he hadn’t thought about Ellen for years,
-but the first time he went to church last fall he saw her and fell in
-love with her all over again. He said he’d clean forgot how handsome
-she was. He hadn’t seen her for twenty years, if you can believe it. Of
-course he never went to church, and Ellen never went anywhere else
-round here. Oh, we all know what Norman means, but what Ellen means is
-a different matter. I shan’t take it upon me to predict whether it will
-be a match or not.”
-
-“He jilted her once—but it seems that does not count with some people,
-Mrs. Dr. dear,” Susan remarked rather acidly.
-
-“He jilted her in a fit of temper and repented it all his life,” said
-Miss Cornelia. “That is different from a cold-blooded jilting. For my
-part, I never detested Norman as some folks do. He could never
-over-crow _me_. I _do_ wonder what started him coming to church. I have
-never been able to believe Mrs. Wilsons’s story that Faith Meredith
-went there and bullied him into it. I’ve always intended to ask Faith
-herself, but I’ve never happened to think of it just when I saw her.
-What influence could _she_ have over Norman Douglas? He was in the
-store when I left, bellowing with laughter over that scandalous letter.
-You could have heard him at Four Winds Point. ‘The greatest girl in the
-world,’ he was shouting. ‘She’s that full of spunk she’s bursting with
-it. And all the old grannies want to tame her, darn them. But they’ll
-never be able to do it—never! They might as well try to drown a fish.
-Boyd, see that you put more fertilizer on your potatoes next year. Ho,
-ho, ho!’ And then he laughed till the roof shook.”
-
-“Mr. Douglas pays well to the salary, at least,” remarked Susan.
-
-“Oh, Norman isn’t mean in some ways. He’d give a thousand without
-blinking a lash, and roar like a Bull of Bashan if he had to pay five
-cents too much for anything. Besides, he likes Mr. Meredith’s sermons,
-and Norman Douglas was always willing to shell out if he got his brains
-tickled up. There is no more Christianity about him than there is about
-a black, naked heathen in Africa and never will be. But he’s clever and
-well read and he judges sermons as he would lectures. Anyhow, it’s well
-he backs up Mr. Meredith and the children as he does, for they’ll need
-friends more than ever after this. I am tired of making excuses for
-them, believe _me_.”
-
-“Do you know, dear Miss Cornelia,” said Anne seriously, “I think we
-have all been making too many excuses. It is very foolish and we ought
-to stop it. I am going to tell you what I’d _like_ to do. I shan’t do
-it, of course”—Anne had noted a glint of alarm in Susan’s eye—“it would
-be too unconventional, and we must be conventional or die, after we
-reach what is supposed to be a dignified age. But I’d _like_ to do it.
-I’d like to call a meeting of the Ladies Aid and W.M.S. and the Girls
-Sewing Society, and include in the audience all and any Methodists who
-have been criticizing the Merediths—although I do think if we
-Presbyterians stopped criticizing and excusing we would find that other
-denominations would trouble themselves very little about our manse
-folks. I would say to them, ‘Dear Christian friends’—with marked
-emphasis on ‘Christian’—I have something to say to you and I want to
-say it good and hard, that you may take it home and repeat it to your
-families. You Methodists need not pity us, and we Presbyterians need
-not pity ourselves. We are not going to do it any more. And we are
-going to say, boldly and truthfully, to all critics and sympathizers,
-‘We are _proud_ of our minister and his family. Mr. Meredith is the
-best preacher Glen St. Mary church ever had. Moreover, he is a sincere,
-earnest teacher of truth and Christian charity. He is a faithful
-friend, a judicious pastor in all essentials, and a refined, scholarly,
-well-bred man. His family are worthy of him. Gerald Meredith is the
-cleverest pupil in the Glen school, and Mr. Hazard says that he is
-destined to a brilliant career. He is a manly, honourable, truthful
-little fellow. Faith Meredith is a beauty, and as inspiring and
-original as she is beautiful. There is nothing commonplace about her.
-All the other girls in the Glen put together haven’t the vim, and wit,
-and joyousness and ‘spunk’ she has. She has not an enemy in the world.
-Every one who knows her loves her. Of how many, children or grown-ups,
-can that be said? Una Meredith is sweetness personified. She will make
-a most lovable woman. Carl Meredith, with his love for ants and frogs
-and spiders, will some day be a naturalist whom all Canada—nay, all the
-world, will delight to honour. Do you know of any other family in the
-Glen, or out of it, of whom all these things can be said? Away with
-shamefaced excuses and apologies. We _rejoice_ in our minister and his
-splendid boys and girls!”
-
-Anne stopped, partly because she was out of breath after her vehement
-speech and partly because she could not trust herself to speak further
-in view of Miss Cornelia’s face. That good lady was staring helplessly
-at Anne, apparently engulfed in billows of new ideas. But she came up
-with a gasp and struck out for shore gallantly.
-
-“Anne Blythe, I wish you _would_ call that meeting and say just that!
-You’ve made me ashamed of myself, for one, and far be it from me to
-refuse to admit it. _Of course_, that is how we should have
-talked—especially to the Methodists. And it’s every word of it
-true—every word. We’ve just been shutting our eyes to the big
-worth-while things and squinting them on the little things that don’t
-really matter a pin’s worth. Oh, Anne dearie, I can see a thing when
-it’s hammered into my head. No more apologizing for Cornelia Marshall!
-_I_ shall hold _my_ head up after this, believe _me_—though I _may_
-talk things over with you as usual just to relieve my feelings if the
-Merediths do any more startling stunts. Even that letter I felt so bad
-about—why, it’s only a good joke after all, as Norman says. Not many
-girls would have been cute enough to think of writing it—and all
-punctuated so nicely and not one word misspelled. Just let me hear any
-Methodist say one word about it—though all the same I’ll never forgive
-Joe Vickers—believe _me!_ Where are the rest of your small fry
-to-night?”
-
-“Walter and the twins are in Rainbow Valley. Jem is studying in the
-garret.”
-
-“They are all crazy about Rainbow Valley. Mary Vance thinks it’s the
-only place in the world. She’d be off up here every evening if I’d let
-her. But I don’t encourage her in gadding. Besides, I miss the creature
-when she isn’t around, Anne dearie. I never thought I’d get so fond of
-her. Not but what I see her faults and try to correct them. But she has
-never said one saucy word to me since she came to my house and she is a
-_great_ help—for when all is said and done, Anne dearie, I am not so
-young as I once was, and there is no sense denying it. I was fifty-nine
-my last birthday. I don’t _feel_ it, but there is no gainsaying the
-Family Bible.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVII.
-A SACRED CONCERT
-
-
-In spite of Miss Cornelia’s new point of view she could not help
-feeling a little disturbed over the next performance of the manse
-children. In public she carried off the situation splendidly, saying to
-all the gossips the substance of what Anne had said in daffodil time,
-and saying it so pointedly and forcibly that her hearers found
-themselves feeling rather foolish and began to think that, after all,
-they were making too much of a childish prank. But in private Miss
-Cornelia allowed herself the relief of bemoaning it to Anne.
-
-“Anne dearie, they had a _concert in the graveyard_ last Thursday
-evening, while the Methodist prayer meeting was going on. There they
-sat, on Hezekiah Pollock’s tombstone, and sang for a solid hour. Of
-course, I understand it was mostly hymns they sang, and it wouldn’t
-have been quite so bad if they’d done nothing else. But I’m told they
-finished up with _Polly Wolly Doodle_ at full length—and that just when
-Deacon Baxter was praying.”
-
-“I was there that night,” said Susan, “and, although I did not say
-anything about it to you, Mrs. Dr. dear, I could not help thinking that
-it was a great pity they picked that particular evening. It was truly
-blood-curdling to hear them sitting there in that abode of the dead,
-shouting that frivolous song at the tops of their lungs.”
-
-“I don’t know what _you_ were doing in a Methodist prayer meeting,”
-said Miss Cornelia acidly.
-
-“I have never found that Methodism was catching,” retorted Susan
-stiffly. “And, as I was going to say when I was interrupted, badly as I
-felt, I did _not_ give in to the Methodists. When Mrs. Deacon Baxter
-said, as we came out, ‘What a disgraceful exhibition!’ _I_ said,
-looking her fairly in the eye, ‘They are all beautiful singers, and
-none of _your_ choir, Mrs. Baxter, ever bother themselves coming out to
-your prayer meeting, it seems. Their voices appear to be in tune only
-on Sundays!’ She was quite meek and I felt that I had snubbed her
-properly. But I could have done it much more thoroughly, Mrs. Dr. dear,
-if only they had left out _Polly Wolly Doodle_. It is truly terrible to
-think of that being sung in a graveyard.”
-
-“Some of those dead folks sang _Polly Wolly Doodle_ when they were
-living, Susan. Perhaps they like to hear it yet,” suggested Gilbert.
-
-Miss Cornelia looked at him reproachfully and made up her mind that, on
-some future occasion, she would hint to Anne that the doctor should be
-admonished not to say such things. They might injure his practice.
-People might get it into their heads that he wasn’t orthodox. To be
-sure, Marshall said even worse things habitually, but then _he_ was not
-a public man.
-
-“I understand that their father was in his study all the time, with his
-windows open, but never noticed them at all. Of course, he was lost in
-a book as usual. But I spoke to him about it yesterday, when he
-called.”
-
-“How could you dare, Mrs. Marshall Elliott?” asked Susan rebukingly.
-
-“Dare! It’s time somebody dared something. Why, they say he knows
-nothing about that letter of Faith’s to the _journal_ because nobody
-liked to mention it to him. He never looks at a _journal_ of course.
-But I thought he ought to know of this to prevent any such performances
-in future. He said he would ‘discuss it with them.’ But of course he’d
-never think of it again after he got out of our gate. That man has no
-sense of humour, Anne, believe _me_. He preached last Sunday on ‘How to
-Bring up Children.’ A beautiful sermon it was, too—and everybody in
-church thinking ‘what a pity you can’t practise what you preach.’”
-
-Miss Cornelia did Mr. Meredith an injustice in thinking he would soon
-forget what she had told him. He went home much disturbed and when the
-children came from Rainbow Valley that night, at a much later hour than
-they should have been prowling in it, he called them into his study.
-
-They went in, somewhat awed. It was such an unusual thing for their
-father to do. What could he be going to say to them? They racked their
-memories for any recent transgression of sufficient importance, but
-could not recall any. Carl had spilled a saucerful of jam on Mrs. Peter
-Flagg’s silk dress two evenings before, when, at Aunt Martha’s
-invitation, she had stayed to supper. But Mr. Meredith had not noticed
-it, and Mrs. Flagg, who was a kindly soul, had made no fuss. Besides,
-Carl had been punished by having to wear Una’s dress all the rest of
-the evening.
-
-Una suddenly thought that perhaps her father meant to tell them that he
-was going to marry Miss West. Her heart began to beat violently and her
-legs trembled. Then she saw that Mr. Meredith looked very stern and
-sorrowful. No, it could not be that.
-
-“Children,” said Mr. Meredith, “I have heard something that has pained
-me very much. Is it true that you sat out in the graveyard all last
-Thursday evening and sang ribald songs while a prayer meeting was being
-held in the Methodist church?”
-
-“Great Caesar, Dad, we forgot all about it being their prayer meeting
-night,” exclaimed Jerry in dismay.
-
-“Then it is true—you did do this thing?”
-
-“Why, Dad, I don’t know what you mean by ribald songs. We sang hymns—it
-was a sacred concert, you know. What harm was that? I tell you we never
-thought about it’s being Methodist prayer meeting night. They used to
-have their meeting Tuesday nights and since they’ve changed to
-Thursdays it’s hard to remember.”
-
-“Did you sing nothing but hymns?”
-
-“Why,” said Jerry, turning red, “we _did_ sing _Polly Wolly Doodle_ at
-the last. Faith said, ‘Let’s have something cheerful to wind up with.’
-But we didn’t mean any harm, Father—truly we didn’t.”
-
-“The concert was my idea, Father,” said Faith, afraid that Mr. Meredith
-might blame Jerry too much. “You know the Methodists themselves had a
-sacred concert in their church three Sunday nights ago. I thought it
-would be good fun to get one up in imitation of it. Only they had
-prayers at theirs, and we left that part out, because we heard that
-people thought it awful for us to pray in a graveyard. _You_ were
-sitting in here all the time,” she added, “and never said a word to
-us.”
-
-“I did not notice what you were doing. That is no excuse for me, of
-course. I am more to blame than you—I realize that. But why did you
-sing that foolish song at the end?”
-
-“We didn’t think,” muttered Jerry, feeling that it was a very lame
-excuse, seeing that he had lectured Faith so strongly in the
-Good-Conduct Club sessions for her lack of thought. “We’re sorry,
-Father—truly, we are. Pitch into us hard—we deserve a regular combing
-down.”
-
-But Mr. Meredith did no combing down or pitching into. He sat down and
-gathered his small culprits close to him and talked a little to them,
-tenderly and wisely. They were overcome with remorse and shame, and
-felt that they could never be so silly and thoughtless again.
-
-“We’ve just got to punish ourselves good and hard for this,” whispered
-Jerry as they crept upstairs. “We’ll have a session of the Club first
-thing tomorrow and decide how we’ll do it. I never saw father so cut
-up. But I wish to goodness the Methodists would stick to one night for
-their prayer meeting and not wander all over the week.”
-
-“Anyhow, I’m glad it wasn’t what I was afraid it was,” murmured Una to
-herself.
-
-Behind them, in the study, Mr. Meredith had sat down at his desk and
-buried his face in his arms.
-
-“God help me!” he said. “I’m a poor sort of father. Oh, Rosemary! If
-you had only cared!”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVIII.
-A FAST DAY
-
-
-The Good-Conduct Club had a special session the next morning before
-school. After various suggestions, it was decided that a fast day would
-be an appropriate punishment.
-
-“We won’t eat a single thing for a whole day,” said Jerry. “I’m kind of
-curious to see what fasting is like, anyhow. This will be a good chance
-to find out.”
-
-“What day will we choose for it?” asked Una, who thought it would be
-quite an easy punishment and rather wondered that Jerry and Faith had
-not devised something harder.
-
-“Let’s pick Monday,” said Faith. “We mostly have a pretty _filling_
-dinner on Sundays, and Mondays meals never amount to much anyhow.”
-
-“But that’s just the point,” exclaimed Jerry. “We mustn’t take the
-easiest day to fast, but the hardest—and that’s Sunday, because, as you
-say, we mostly have roast beef that day instead of cold ditto. It
-wouldn’t be much punishment to fast from ditto. Let’s take next Sunday.
-It will be a good day, for father is going to exchange for the morning
-service with the Upper Lowbridge minister. Father will be away till
-evening. If Aunt Martha wonders what’s got into us, we’ll tell her
-right up that we’re fasting for the good of our souls, and it is in the
-Bible and she is not to interfere, and I guess she won’t.”
-
-Aunt Martha did not. She merely said in her fretful mumbling way, “What
-foolishness are you young rips up to now?” and thought no more about
-it. Mr. Meredith had gone away early in the morning before any one was
-up. He went without his breakfast, too, but that was, of course, of
-common occurrence. Half of the time he forgot it and there was no one
-to remind him of it. Breakfast—Aunt Martha’s breakfast—was not a hard
-meal to miss. Even the hungry “young rips” did not feel it any great
-deprivation to abstain from the “lumpy porridge and blue milk” which
-had aroused the scorn of Mary Vance. But it was different at dinner
-time. They were furiously hungry then, and the odor of roast beef which
-pervaded the manse, and which was wholly delightful in spite of the
-fact that the roast beef was badly underdone, was almost more than they
-could stand. In desperation they rushed to the graveyard where they
-couldn’t smell it. But Una could not keep her eyes from the dining room
-window, through which the Upper Lowbridge minister could be seen,
-placidly eating.
-
-“If I could only have just a weeny, teeny piece,” she sighed.
-
-“Now, you stop that,” commanded Jerry. “Of course it’s hard—but that’s
-the punishment of it. I could eat a graven image this very minute, but
-am I complaining? Let’s think of something else. We’ve just got to rise
-above our stomachs.”
-
-At supper time they did not feel the pangs of hunger which they had
-suffered earlier in the day.
-
-“I suppose we’re getting used to it,” said Faith. “I feel an awfully
-queer all-gone sort of feeling, but I can’t say I’m hungry.”
-
-“My head is funny,” said Una. “It goes round and round sometimes.”
-
-But she went gamely to church with the others. If Mr. Meredith had not
-been so wholly wrapped up in and carried away with his subject he might
-have noticed the pale little face and hollow eyes in the manse pew
-beneath. But he noticed nothing and his sermon was something longer
-than usual. Then, just before he gave out the final hymn, Una Meredith
-tumbled off the seat of the manse pew and lay in a dead faint on the
-floor.
-
-Mrs. Elder Clow was the first to reach her. She caught the thin little
-body from the arms of white-faced, terrified Faith and carried it into
-the vestry. Mr. Meredith forgot the hymn and everything else and rushed
-madly after her. The congregation dismissed itself as best it could.
-
-“Oh, Mrs. Clow,” gasped Faith, “is Una dead? Have we killed her?”
-
-“What is the matter with my child?” demanded the pale father.
-
-“She has just fainted, I think,” said Mrs. Clow. “Oh, here’s the
-doctor, thank goodness.”
-
-Gilbert did not find it a very easy thing to bring Una back to
-consciousness. He worked over her for a long time before her eyes
-opened. Then he carried her over to the manse, followed by Faith,
-sobbing hysterically in her relief.
-
-“She is just hungry, you know—she didn’t eat a thing to-day—none of us
-did—we were all fasting.”
-
-“Fasting!” said Mr. Meredith, and “Fasting?” said the doctor.
-
-“Yes—to punish ourselves for singing _Polly Wolly_ in the graveyard,”
-said Faith.
-
-“My child, I don’t want you to punish yourselves for that,” said Mr.
-Meredith in distress. “I gave you your little scolding—and you were all
-penitent—and I forgave you.”
-
-“Yes, but we had to be punished,” explained Faith. “It’s our rule—in
-our Good-Conduct Club, you know—if we do anything wrong, or anything
-that is likely to hurt father in the congregation, we _have_ to punish
-ourselves. We are bringing ourselves up, you know, because there is
-nobody to do it.”
-
-Mr. Meredith groaned, but the doctor got up from Una’s side with an air
-of relief.
-
-“Then this child simply fainted from lack of food and all she needs is
-a good square meal,” he said. “Mrs. Clow, will you be kind enough to
-see she gets it? And I think from Faith’s story that they all would be
-the better for something to eat, or we shall have more faintings.”
-
-“I suppose we shouldn’t have made Una fast,” said Faith remorsefully.
-“When I think of it, only Jerry and I should have been punished. _We_
-got up the concert and we were the oldest.”
-
-“I sang _Polly Wolly_ just the same as the rest of you,” said Una’s
-weak little voice, “so I had to be punished, too.”
-
-Mrs. Clow came with a glass of milk, Faith and Jerry and Carl sneaked
-off to the pantry, and John Meredith went into his study, where he sat
-in the darkness for a long time, alone with his bitter thoughts. So his
-children were bringing themselves up because there was “nobody to do
-it”—struggling along amid their little perplexities without a hand to
-guide or a voice to counsel. Faith’s innocently uttered phrase rankled
-in her father’s mind like a barbed shaft. There was “nobody” to look
-after them—to comfort their little souls and care for their little
-bodies. How frail Una had looked, lying there on the vestry sofa in
-that long faint! How thin were her tiny hands, how pallid her little
-face! She looked as if she might slip away from him in a breath—sweet
-little Una, of whom Cecilia had begged him to take such special care.
-Since his wife’s death he had not felt such an agony of dread as when
-he had hung over his little girl in her unconsciousness. He must do
-something—but what? Should he ask Elizabeth Kirk to marry him? She was
-a good woman—she would be kind to his children. He might bring himself
-to do it if it were not for his love for Rosemary West. But until he
-had crushed that out he could not seek another woman in marriage. And
-he could not crush it out—he had tried and he could not. Rosemary had
-been in church that evening, for the first time since her return from
-Kingsport. He had caught a glimpse of her face in the back of the
-crowded church, just as he had finished his sermon. His heart had given
-a fierce throb. He sat while the choir sang the “collection piece,”
-with his bent head and tingling pulses. He had not seen her since the
-evening upon which he had asked her to marry him. When he had risen to
-give out the hymn his hands were trembling and his pale face was
-flushed. Then Una’s fainting spell had banished everything from his
-mind for a time. Now, in the darkness and solitude of the study it
-rushed back. Rosemary was the only woman in the world for him. It was
-of no use for him to think of marrying any other. He could not commit
-such a sacrilege even for his children’s sake. He must take up his
-burden alone—he must try to be a better, a more watchful father—he must
-tell his children not to be afraid to come to him with all their little
-problems. Then he lighted his lamp and took up a bulky new book which
-was setting the theological world by the ears. He would read just one
-chapter to compose his mind. Five minutes later he was lost to the
-world and the troubles of the world.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIX.
-A WEIRD TALE
-
-
-On an early June evening Rainbow Valley was an entirely delightful
-place and the children felt it to be so, as they sat in the open glade
-where the bells rang elfishly on the Tree Lovers, and the White Lady
-shook her green tresses. The wind was laughing and whistling about them
-like a leal, glad-hearted comrade. The young ferns were spicy in the
-hollow. The wild cherry trees scattered over the valley, among the dark
-firs, were mistily white. The robins were whistling over in the maples
-behind Ingleside. Beyond, on the slopes of the Glen, were blossoming
-orchards, sweet and mystic and wonderful, veiled in dusk. It was
-spring, and young things _must_ be glad in spring. Everybody was glad
-in Rainbow Valley that evening—until Mary Vance froze their blood with
-the story of Henry Warren’s ghost.
-
-Jem was not there. Jem spent his evenings now studying for his entrance
-examination in the Ingleside garret. Jerry was down near the pond,
-trouting. Walter had been reading Longfellow’s sea poems to the others
-and they were steeped in the beauty and mystery of the ships. Then they
-talked of what they would do when they were grown up—where they would
-travel—the far, fair shores they would see. Nan and Di meant to go to
-Europe. Walter longed for the Nile moaning past its Egyptian sands, and
-a glimpse of the sphinx. Faith opined rather dismally that she supposed
-she would have to be a missionary—old Mrs. Taylor told her she ought to
-be—and then she would at least see India or China, those mysterious
-lands of the Orient. Carl’s heart was set on African jungles. Una said
-nothing. She thought she would just like to stay at home. It was
-prettier here than anywhere else. It would be dreadful when they were
-all grown up and had to scatter over the world. The very idea made Una
-feel lonesome and homesick. But the others dreamed on delightedly until
-Mary Vance arrived and vanished poesy and dreams at one fell swoop.
-
-“Laws, but I’m out of puff,” she exclaimed. “I’ve run down that hill
-like sixty. I got an awful scare up there at the old Bailey place.”
-
-“What frightened you?” asked Di.
-
-“I dunno. I was poking about under them lilacs in the old garden,
-trying to see if there was any lilies-of-the-valley out yet. It was
-dark as a pocket there—and all at once I seen something stirring and
-rustling round at the other side of the garden, in those cherry bushes.
-It was _white_. I tell you I didn’t stop for a second look. I flew over
-the dyke quicker than quick. I was sure it was Henry Warren’s ghost.”
-
-“Who was Henry Warren?” asked Di.
-
-“And why should he have a ghost?” asked Nan.
-
-“Laws, did you never hear the story? And you brought up in the Glen.
-Well, wait a minute till I get by breath all back and I’ll tell you.”
-
-Walter shivered delightsomely. He loved ghost stories. Their mystery,
-their dramatic climaxes, their eeriness gave him a fearful, exquisite
-pleasure. Longfellow instantly grew tame and commonplace. He threw the
-book aside and stretched himself out, propped upon his elbows to listen
-whole-heartedly, fixing his great luminous eyes on Mary’s face. Mary
-wished he wouldn’t look at her so. She felt she could make a better job
-of the ghost story if Walter were not looking at her. She could put on
-several frills and invent a few artistic details to enhance the horror.
-As it was, she had to stick to the bare truth—or what had been told her
-for the truth.
-
-“Well,” she began, “you know old Tom Bailey and his wife used to live
-in that house up there thirty years ago. He was an awful old rip, they
-say, and his wife wasn’t much better. They’d no children of their own,
-but a sister of old Tom’s died and left a little boy—this Henry
-Warren—and they took him. He was about twelve when he came to them, and
-kind of undersized and delicate. They say Tom and his wife used him
-awful from the start—whipped him and starved him. Folks said they
-wanted him to die so’s they could get the little bit of money his
-mother had left for him. Henry didn’t die right off, but he begun
-having fits—epileps, they called ‘em—and he grew up kind of simple,
-till he was about eighteen. His uncle used to thrash him in that garden
-up there ‘cause it was back of the house where no one could see him.
-But folks could hear, and they say it was awful sometimes hearing poor
-Henry plead with his uncle not to kill him. But nobody dared interfere
-‘cause old Tom was such a reprobate he’d have been sure to get square
-with ‘em some way. He burned the barns of a man at Harbour Head who
-offended him. At last Henry died and his uncle and aunt give out he
-died in one of his fits and that was all anybody ever knowed, but
-everybody said Tom had just up and killed him for keeps at last. And it
-wasn’t long till it got around that Henry _walked_. That old garden was
-_ha’nted_. He was heard there at nights, moaning and crying. Old Tom
-and his wife got out—went out West and never came back. The place got
-such a bad name nobody’d buy or rent it. That’s why it’s all gone to
-ruin. That was thirty years ago, but Henry Warren’s ghost ha’nts it
-yet.”
-
-“Do you believe that?” asked Nan scornfully. “_I_ don’t.”
-
-“Well, _good_ people have seen him—and heard him.” retorted Mary. “They
-say he appears and grovels on the ground and holds you by the legs and
-gibbers and moans like he did when he was alive. I thought of that as
-soon as I seen that white thing in the bushes and thought if it caught
-me like that and moaned I’d drop down dead on the spot. So I cut and
-run. It _mightn’t_ have been his ghost, but I wasn’t going to take any
-chances with a ha’nt.”
-
-“It was likely old Mrs. Stimson’s white calf,” laughed Di. “It pastures
-in that garden—I’ve seen it.”
-
-“Maybe so. But _I’m_ not going home through the Bailey garden any more.
-Here’s Jerry with a big string of trout and it’s my turn to cook them.
-Jem and Jerry both say I’m the best cook in the Glen. And Cornelia told
-me I could bring up this batch of cookies. I all but dropped them when
-I saw Henry’s ghost.”
-
-Jerry hooted when he heard the ghost story—which Mary repeated as she
-fried the fish, touching it up a trifle or so, since Walter had gone to
-help Faith to set the table. It made no impression on Jerry, but Faith
-and Una and Carl had been secretly much frightened, though they would
-never have given in to it. It was all right as long as the others were
-with them in the valley: but when the feast was over and the shadows
-fell they quaked with remembrance. Jerry went up to Ingleside with the
-Blythes to see Jem about something, and Mary Vance went around that way
-home. So Faith and Una and Carl had to go back to the manse alone. They
-walked very close together and gave the old Bailey garden a wide berth.
-They did not believe that it was haunted, of course, but they would not
-go near it for all that.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXX.
-THE GHOST ON THE DYKE
-
-
-Somehow, Faith and Carl and Una could not shake off the hold which the
-story of Henry Warren’s ghost had taken upon their imaginations. They
-had never believed in ghosts. Ghost tales they had heard a-plenty—Mary
-Vance had told some far more blood-curdling than this; but those tales
-were all of places and people and spooks far away and unknown. After
-the first half-awful, half-pleasant thrill of awe and terror they
-thought of them no more. But this story came home to them. The old
-Bailey garden was almost at their very door—almost in their beloved
-Rainbow Valley. They had passed and repassed it constantly; they had
-hunted for flowers in it; they had made short cuts through it when they
-wished to go straight from the village to the valley. But never again!
-After the night when Mary Vance told them its gruesome tale they would
-not have gone through or near it on pain of death. Death! What was
-death compared to the unearthly possibility of falling into the
-clutches of Henry Warren’s grovelling ghost?
-
-One warm July evening the three of them were sitting under the Tree
-Lovers, feeling a little lonely. Nobody else had come near the valley
-that evening. Jem Blythe was away in Charlottetown, writing on his
-entrance examinations. Jerry and Walter Blythe were off for a sail on
-the harbour with old Captain Crawford. Nan and Di and Rilla and Shirley
-had gone down the harbour road to visit Kenneth and Persis Ford, who
-had come with their parents for a flying visit to the little old House
-of Dreams. Nan had asked Faith to go with them, but Faith had declined.
-She would never have admitted it, but she felt a little secret jealousy
-of Persis Ford, concerning whose wonderful beauty and city glamour she
-had heard a great deal. No, she wasn’t going to go down there and play
-second fiddle to anybody. She and Una took their story books to Rainbow
-Valley and read, while Carl investigated bugs along the banks of the
-brook, and all three were happy until they suddenly realized that it
-was twilight and that the old Bailey garden was uncomfortably near by.
-Carl came and sat down close to the girls. They all wished they had
-gone home a little sooner, but nobody said anything.
-
-Great, velvety, purple clouds heaped up in the west and spread over the
-valley. There was no wind and everything was suddenly, strangely,
-dreadfully still. The marsh was full of thousands of fire-flies. Surely
-some fairy parliament was being convened that night. Altogether,
-Rainbow Valley was not a canny place just then.
-
-Faith looked fearfully up the valley to the old Bailey garden. Then, if
-anybody’s blood ever did freeze, Faith Meredith’s certainly froze at
-that moment. The eyes of Carl and Una followed her entranced gaze and
-chills began gallopading up and down their spines also. For there,
-under the big tamarack tree on the tumble-down, grass-grown dyke of the
-Bailey garden, was something white—shapelessly white in the gathering
-gloom. The three Merediths sat and gazed as if turned to stone.
-
-“It’s—it’s the—calf,” whispered Una at last.
-
-“It’s—too—big—for the calf,” whispered Faith. Her mouth and lips were
-so dry she could hardly articulate the words.
-
-Suddenly Carl gasped,
-
-“It’s coming here.”
-
-The girls gave one last agonized glance. Yes, it was creeping down over
-the dyke, as no calf ever did or could creep. Reason fled before
-sudden, over-mastering panic. For the moment every one of the trio was
-firmly convinced that what they saw was Henry Warren’s ghost. Carl
-sprang to his feet and bolted blindly. With a simultaneous shriek the
-girls followed him. Like mad creatures they tore up the hill, across
-the road and into the manse. They had left Aunt Martha sewing in the
-kitchen. She was not there. They rushed to the study. It was dark and
-tenantless. As with one impulse, they swung around and made for
-Ingleside—but not across Rainbow Valley. Down the hill and through the
-Glen street they flew on the wings of their wild terror, Carl in the
-lead, Una bringing up the rear. Nobody tried to stop them, though
-everybody who saw them wondered what fresh devilment those manse
-youngsters were up to now. But at the gate of Ingleside they ran into
-Rosemary West, who had just been in for a moment to return some
-borrowed books.
-
-She saw their ghastly faces and staring eyes. She realized that their
-poor little souls were wrung with some awful and real fear, whatever
-its cause. She caught Carl with one arm and Faith with the other. Una
-stumbled against her and held on desperately.
-
-“Children, dear, what has happened?” she said. “What has frightened
-you?”
-
-“Henry Warren’s ghost,” answered Carl, through his chattering teeth.
-
-“Henry—Warren’s—ghost!” said amazed Rosemary, who had never heard the
-story.
-
-“Yes,” sobbed Faith hysterically. “It’s there—on the Bailey dyke—we saw
-it—and it started to—chase us.”
-
-Rosemary herded the three distracted creatures to the Ingleside
-veranda. Gilbert and Anne were both away, having also gone to the House
-of Dreams, but Susan appeared in the doorway, gaunt and practical and
-unghostlike.
-
-“What is all this rumpus about?” she inquired.
-
-Again the children gasped out their awful tale, while Rosemary held
-them close to her and soothed them with wordless comfort.
-
-“Likely it was an owl,” said Susan, unstirred.
-
-An owl! The Meredith children never had any opinion of Susan’s
-intelligence after that!
-
-“It was bigger than a million owls,” said Carl, sobbing—oh, how ashamed
-Carl was of that sobbing in after days—“and it—it _grovelled_ just as
-Mary said—and it was crawling down over the dyke to get at us. Do owls
-_crawl?_”
-
-Rosemary looked at Susan.
-
-“They must have seen something to frighten them so,” she said.
-
-“I will go and see,” said Susan coolly. “Now, children, calm
-yourselves. Whatever you have seen, it was not a ghost. As for poor
-Henry Warren, I feel sure he would be only too glad to rest quietly in
-his peaceful grave once he got there. No fear of _him_ venturing back,
-and that you may tie to. If you can make them see reason, Miss West, I
-will find out the truth of the matter.”
-
-Susan departed for Rainbow Valley, valiantly grasping a pitchfork which
-she found leaning against the back fence where the doctor had been
-working in his little hay-field. A pitchfork might not be of much use
-against “ha’nts,” but it was a comforting sort of weapon. There was
-nothing to be seen in Rainbow Valley when Susan reached it. No white
-visitants appeared to be lurking in the shadowy, tangled old Bailey
-garden. Susan marched boldly through it and beyond it, and rapped with
-her pitchfork on the door of the little cottage on the other side,
-where Mrs. Stimson lived with her two daughters.
-
-Back at Ingleside Rosemary had succeeded in calming the children. They
-still sobbed a little from shock, but they were beginning to feel a
-lurking and salutary suspicion that they had made dreadful geese of
-themselves. This suspicion became a certainty when Susan finally
-returned.
-
-“I have found out what your ghost was,” she said, with a grim smile,
-sitting down on a rocker and fanning herself. “Old Mrs. Stimson has had
-a pair of factory cotton sheets bleaching in the Bailey garden for a
-week. She spread them on the dyke under the tamarack tree because the
-grass was clean and short there. This evening she went out to take them
-in. She had her knitting in her hands so she hung the sheets over her
-shoulders by way of carrying them. And then she must have dropped one
-of her needles and find it she could not and has not yet. But she went
-down on her knees and crept about to hunt for it, and she was at that
-when she heard awful yells down in the valley and saw the three
-children tearing up the hill past her. She thought they had been bit by
-something and it gave her poor old heart such a turn that she could not
-move or speak, but just crouched there till they disappeared. Then she
-staggered back home and they have been applying stimulants to her ever
-since, and her heart is in a terrible condition and she says she will
-not get over this fright all summer.”
-
-The Merediths sat, crimson with a shame that even Rosemary’s
-understanding sympathy could not remove. They sneaked off home, met
-Jerry at the manse gate and made remorseful confession. A session of
-the Good-Conduct Club was arranged for next morning.
-
-“Wasn’t Miss West sweet to us to-night?” whispered Faith in bed.
-
-“Yes,” admitted Una. “It is such a pity it changes people so much to be
-made stepmothers.”
-
-“I don’t believe it does,” said Faith loyally.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXI.
-CARL DOES PENANCE
-
-
-“I don’t see why we should be punished at all,” said Faith, rather
-sulkily. “We didn’t do anything wrong. We couldn’t help being
-frightened. And it won’t do father any harm. It was just an accident.”
-
-“You were cowards,” said Jerry with judicial scorn, “and you gave way
-to your cowardice. That is why you should be punished. Everybody will
-laugh at you about this, and that is a disgrace to the family.”
-
-“If you knew how awful the whole thing was,” said Faith with a shiver,
-“you would think we had been punished enough already. I wouldn’t go
-through it again for anything in the whole world.”
-
-“I believe you’d have run yourself if you’d been there,” muttered Carl.
-
-“From an old woman in a cotton sheet,” mocked Jerry. “Ho, ho, ho!”
-
-“It didn’t look a bit like an old woman,” cried Faith. “It was just a
-great, big, white thing crawling about in the grass just as Mary Vance
-said Henry Warren did. It’s all very fine for you to laugh, Jerry
-Meredith, but you’d have laughed on the other side of your mouth if
-you’d been there. And how are we to be punished? _I_ don’t think it’s
-fair, but let’s know what we have to do, Judge Meredith!”
-
-“The way I look at it,” said Jerry, frowning, “is that Carl was the
-most to blame. He bolted first, as I understand it. Besides, he was a
-boy, so he should have stood his ground to protect you girls, whatever
-the danger was. You know that, Carl, don’t you?”
-
-“I s’pose so,” growled Carl shamefacedly.
-
-“Very well. This is to be your punishment. To-night you’ll sit on Mr.
-Hezekiah Pollock’s tombstone in the graveyard alone, until twelve
-o’clock.”
-
-Carl gave a little shudder. The graveyard was not so very far from the
-old Bailey garden. It would be a trying ordeal, but Carl was anxious to
-wipe out his disgrace and prove that he was not a coward after all.
-
-“All right,” he said sturdily. “But how’ll I know when it is twelve?”
-
-“The study windows are open and you’ll hear the clock striking. And
-mind you that you are not to budge out of that graveyard until the last
-stroke. As for you girls, you’ve got to go without jam at supper for a
-week.”
-
-Faith and Una looked rather blank. They were inclined to think that
-even Carl’s comparatively short though sharp agony was lighter
-punishment than this long drawn-out ordeal. A whole week of soggy bread
-without the saving grace of jam! But no shirking was permitted in the
-club. The girls accepted their lot with such philosophy as they could
-summon up.
-
-That night they all went to bed at nine, except Carl, who was already
-keeping vigil on the tombstone. Una slipped in to bid him good night.
-Her tender heart was wrung with sympathy.
-
-“Oh, Carl, are you much scared?” she whispered.
-
-“Not a bit,” said Carl airily.
-
-“I won’t sleep a wink till after twelve,” said Una. “If you get
-lonesome just look up at our window and remember that I’m inside,
-awake, and thinking about you. That will be a little company, won’t
-it?”
-
-“I’ll be all right. Don’t you worry about me,” said Carl.
-
-But in spite of his dauntless words Carl was a pretty lonely boy when
-the lights went out in the manse. He had hoped his father would be in
-the study as he so often was. He would not feel alone then. But that
-night Mr. Meredith had been summoned to the fishing village at the
-harbour mouth to see a dying man. He would not likely be back until
-after midnight. Carl must dree his weird alone.
-
-A Glen man went past carrying a lantern. The mysterious shadows caused
-by the lantern-light went hurtling madly over the graveyard like a
-dance of demons or witches. Then they passed and darkness fell again.
-One by one the lights in the Glen went out. It was a very dark night,
-with a cloudy sky, and a raw east wind that was cold in spite of the
-calendar. Far away on the horizon was the low dim lustre of the
-Charlottetown lights. The wind wailed and sighed in the old fir-trees.
-Mr. Alec Davis’ tall monument gleamed whitely through the gloom. The
-willow beside it tossed long, writhing arms spectrally. At times, the
-gyrations of its boughs made it seem as if the monument were moving,
-too.
-
-Carl curled himself up on the tombstone with his legs tucked under him.
-It wasn’t precisely pleasant to hang them over the edge of the stone.
-Just suppose—just suppose—bony hands should reach up out of Mr.
-Pollock’s grave under it and clutch him by the ankles. That had been
-one of Mary Vance’s cheerful speculations one time when they had all
-been sitting there. It returned to haunt Carl now. He didn’t believe
-those things; he didn’t even really believe in Henry Warren’s ghost. As
-for Mr. Pollock, he had been dead sixty years, so it wasn’t likely he
-cared who sat on his tombstone now. But there is something very strange
-and terrible in being awake when all the rest of the world is asleep.
-You are alone then with nothing but your own feeble personality to pit
-against the mighty principalities and powers of darkness. Carl was only
-ten and the dead were all around him—and he wished, oh, he wished that
-the clock would strike twelve. Would it _never_ strike twelve? Surely
-Aunt Martha must have forgotten to wind it.
-
-And then it struck eleven—only eleven! He must stay yet another hour in
-that grim place. If only there were a few friendly stars to be seen!
-The darkness was so thick it seemed to press against his face. There
-was a sound as of stealthy passing footsteps all over the graveyard.
-Carl shivered, partly with prickling terror, partly with real cold.
-
-Then it began to rain—a chill, penetrating drizzle. Carl’s thin little
-cotton blouse and shirt were soon wet through. He felt chilled to the
-bone. He forgot mental terrors in his physical discomfort. But he must
-stay there till twelve—he was punishing himself and he was on his
-honour. Nothing had been said about rain—but it did not make any
-difference. When the study clock finally struck twelve a drenched
-little figure crept stiffly down off Mr. Pollock’s tombstone, made its
-way into the manse and upstairs to bed. Carl’s teeth were chattering.
-He thought he would never get warm again.
-
-He was warm enough when morning came. Jerry gave one startled look at
-his crimson face and then rushed to call his father. Mr. Meredith came
-hurriedly, his own face ivory white from the pallor of his long night
-vigil by a death bed. He had not got home until daylight. He bent over
-his little lad anxiously.
-
-“Carl, are you sick?” he said.
-
-“That—tombstone—over here,” said Carl, “it’s—moving—about—it’s
-coming—at—me—keep it—away—please.”
-
-Mr. Meredith rushed to the telephone. In ten minutes Dr. Blythe was at
-the manse. Half an hour later a wire was sent to town for a trained
-nurse, and all the Glen knew that Carl Meredith was very ill with
-pneumonia and that Dr. Blythe had been seen to shake his head.
-
-Gilbert shook his head more than once in the fortnight that followed.
-Carl developed double pneumonia. There was one night when Mr. Meredith
-paced his study floor, and Faith and Una huddled in their bedroom and
-cried, and Jerry, wild with remorse, refused to budge from the floor of
-the hall outside Carl’s door. Dr. Blythe and the nurse never left the
-bedside. They fought death gallantly until the red dawn and they won
-the victory. Carl rallied and passed the crisis in safety. The news was
-phoned about the waiting Glen and people found out how much they really
-loved their minister and his children.
-
-“I haven’t had one decent night’s sleep since I heard the child was
-sick,” Miss Cornelia told Anne, “and Mary Vance has cried until those
-queer eyes of hers looked like burnt holes in a blanket. Is it true
-that Carl got pneumonia from straying out in the graveyard that wet
-night for a dare?”
-
-“No. He was staying there to punish himself for cowardice in that
-affair of the Warren ghost. It seems they have a club for bringing
-themselves up, and they punish themselves when they do wrong. Jerry
-told Mr. Meredith all about it.”
-
-“The poor little souls,” said Miss Cornelia.
-
-Carl got better rapidly, for the congregation took enough nourishing
-things to the manse to furnish forth a hospital. Norman Douglas drove
-up every evening with a dozen fresh eggs and a jar of Jersey cream.
-Sometimes he stayed an hour and bellowed arguments on predestination
-with Mr. Meredith in the study; oftener he drove on up to the hill that
-overlooked the Glen.
-
-When Carl was able to go again to Rainbow Valley they had a special
-feast in his honour and the doctor came down and helped them with the
-fireworks. Mary Vance was there, too, but she did not tell any ghost
-stories. Miss Cornelia had given her a talking on that subject which
-Mary would not forget in a hurry.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXII.
-TWO STUBBORN PEOPLE
-
-
-Rosemary West, on her way home from a music lesson at Ingleside, turned
-aside to the hidden spring in Rainbow Valley. She had not been there
-all summer; the beautiful little spot had no longer any allurement for
-her. The spirit of her young lover never came to the tryst now; and the
-memories connected with John Meredith were too painful and poignant.
-But she had happened to glance backward up the valley and had seen
-Norman Douglas vaulting as airily as a stripling over the old stone
-dyke of the Bailey garden and thought he was on his way up the hill. If
-he overtook her she would have to walk home with him and she was not
-going to do that. So she slipped at once behind the maples of the
-spring, hoping he had not seen her and would pass on.
-
-But Norman had seen her and, what was more, was in pursuit of her. He
-had been wanting for some time to have talk with Rosemary, but she had
-always, so it seemed, avoided him. Rosemary had never, at any time,
-liked Norman Douglas very well. His bluster, his temper, his noisy
-hilarity, had always antagonized her. Long ago she had often wondered
-how Ellen could possibly be attracted to him. Norman Douglas was
-perfectly aware of her dislike and he chuckled over it. It never
-worried Norman if people did not like him. It did not even make him
-dislike them in return, for he took it as a kind of extorted
-compliment. He thought Rosemary a fine girl, and he meant to be an
-excellent, generous brother-in-law to her. But before he could be her
-brother-in-law he had to have a talk with her, so, having seen her
-leaving Ingleside as he stood in the doorway of a Glen store, he had
-straightway plunged into the valley to overtake her.
-
-Rosemary was sitting pensively on the maple seat where John Meredith
-had been sitting on that evening nearly a year ago. The tiny spring
-shimmered and dimpled under its fringe of ferns. Ruby-red gleams of
-sunset fell through the arching boughs. A tall clump of perfect asters
-grew at her side. The little spot was as dreamy and witching and
-evasive as any retreat of fairies and dryads in ancient forests. Into
-it Norman Douglas bounced, scattering and annihilating its charm in a
-moment. His personality seemed to swallow the place up. There was
-simply nothing there but Norman Douglas, big, red-bearded, complacent.
-
-“Good evening,” said Rosemary coldly, standing up.
-
-“‘Evening, girl. Sit down again—sit down again. I want to have a talk
-with you. Bless the girl, what’s she looking at me like that for? I
-don’t want to eat you—I’ve had my supper. Sit down and be civil.”
-
-“I can hear what you have to say quite as well here,” said Rosemary.
-
-“So you can, girl, if you use your ears. I only wanted you to be
-comfortable. You look so durned uncomfortable, standing there. Well,
-_I’ll_ sit anyway.”
-
-Norman accordingly sat down in the very place John Meredith had once
-sat. The contrast was so ludicrous that Rosemary was afraid she would
-go off into a peal of hysterical laughter over it. Norman cast his hat
-aside, placed his huge, red hands on his knees, and looked up at her
-with his eyes a-twinkle.
-
-“Come, girl, don’t be so stiff,” he said, ingratiatingly. When he liked
-he could be very ingratiating. “Let’s have a reasonable, sensible,
-friendly chat. There’s something I want to ask you. Ellen says she
-won’t, so it’s up to me to do it.”
-
-Rosemary looked down at the spring, which seemed to have shrunk to the
-size of a dewdrop. Norman gazed at her in despair.
-
-“Durn it all, you might help a fellow out a bit,” he burst forth.
-
-“What is it you want me to help you say?” asked Rosemary scornfully.
-
-“You know as well as I do, girl. Don’t be putting on your tragedy airs.
-No wonder Ellen was scared to ask you. Look here, girl, Ellen and I
-want to marry each other. That’s plain English, isn’t it? Got that? And
-Ellen says she can’t unless you give her back some tom-fool promise she
-made. Come now, will you do it? Will you do it?”
-
-“Yes,” said Rosemary.
-
-Norman bounced up and seized her reluctant hand.
-
-“Good! I knew you would—I told Ellen you would. I knew it would only
-take a minute. Now, girl, you go home and tell Ellen, and we’ll have a
-wedding in a fortnight and you’ll come and live with us. We shan’t
-leave you to roost on that hill-top like a lonely crow—don’t you worry.
-I know you hate me, but, Lord, it’ll be great fun living with some one
-that hates me. Life’ll have some spice in it after this. Ellen will
-roast me and you’ll freeze me. I won’t have a dull moment.”
-
-Rosemary did not condescend to tell him that nothing would ever induce
-her to live in his house. She let him go striding back to the Glen,
-oozing delight and complacency, and she walked slowly up the hill home.
-She had known this was coming ever since she had returned from
-Kingsport, and found Norman Douglas established as a frequent evening
-caller. His name was never mentioned between her and Ellen, but the
-very avoidance of it was significant. It was not in Rosemary’s nature
-to feel bitter, or she would have felt very bitter. She was coldly
-civil to Norman, and she made no difference in any way with Ellen. But
-Ellen had not found much comfort in her second courtship.
-
-She was in the garden, attended by St. George, when Rosemary came home.
-The two sisters met in the dahlia walk. St. George sat down on the
-gravel walk between them and folded his glossy black tail gracefully
-around his white paws, with all the indifference of a well-fed,
-well-bred, well-groomed cat.
-
-“Did you ever see such dahlias?” demanded Ellen proudly. “They are just
-the finest we’ve ever had.”
-
-Rosemary had never cared for dahlias. Their presence in the garden was
-her concession to Ellen’s taste. She noticed one huge mottled one of
-crimson and yellow that lorded it over all the others.
-
-“That dahlia,” she said, pointing to it, “is exactly like Norman
-Douglas. It might easily be his twin brother.”
-
-Ellen’s dark-browed face flushed. She admired the dahlia in question,
-but she knew Rosemary did not, and that no compliment was intended. But
-she dared not resent Rosemary’s speech—poor Ellen dared not resent
-anything just then. And it was the first time Rosemary had ever
-mentioned Norman’s name to her. She felt that this portended something.
-
-“I met Norman Douglas in the valley,” said Rosemary, looking straight
-at her sister, “and he told me you and he wanted to be married—if I
-would give you permission.”
-
-“Yes? What did you say?” asked Ellen, trying to speak naturally and
-off-handedly, and failing completely. She could not meet Rosemary’s
-eyes. She looked down at St. George’s sleek back and felt horribly
-afraid. Rosemary had either said she would or she wouldn’t. If she
-would Ellen would feel so ashamed and remorseful that she would be a
-very uncomfortable bride-elect; and if she wouldn’t—well, Ellen had
-once learned to live without Norman Douglas, but she had forgotten the
-lesson and felt that she could never learn it again.
-
-“I said that as far as I was concerned you were at full liberty to
-marry each other as soon as you liked,” said Rosemary.
-
-“Thank you,” said Ellen, still looking at St. George.
-
-Rosemary’s face softened.
-
-“I hope you’ll be happy, Ellen,” she said gently.
-
-“Oh, Rosemary,” Ellen looked up in distress, “I’m so ashamed—I don’t
-deserve it—after all I said to you—”
-
-“We won’t speak about that,” said Rosemary hurriedly and decidedly.
-
-“But—but,” persisted Ellen, “you are free now, too—and it’s not too
-late—John Meredith—”
-
-“Ellen West!” Rosemary had a little spark of temper under all her
-sweetness and it flashed forth now in her blue eyes. “Have you quite
-lost your senses in _every_ respect? Do you suppose for an instant that
-_I_ am going to go to John Meredith and say meekly, ‘Please, sir, I’ve
-changed my mind and please, sir, I hope you haven’t changed yours.’ Is
-that what you want me to do?”
-
-“No—no—but a little—encouragement—he would come back—”
-
-“Never. He despises me—and rightly. No more of this, Ellen. I bear you
-no grudge—marry whom you like. But no meddling in my affairs.”
-
-“Then you must come and live with me,” said Ellen. “I shall not leave
-you here alone.”
-
-“Do you really think that I would go and live in Norman Douglas’s
-house?”
-
-“Why not?” cried Ellen, half angrily, despite her humiliation.
-
-Rosemary began to laugh.
-
-“Ellen, I thought you had a sense of humour. Can you see me doing it?”
-
-“I don’t see why you wouldn’t. His house is big enough—you’d have your
-share of it to yourself—he wouldn’t interfere.”
-
-“Ellen, the thing is not to be thought of. Don’t bring this up again.”
-
-“Then,” said Ellen coldly, and determinedly, “I shall not marry him. I
-shall not leave you here alone. That is all there is to be said about
-it.”
-
-“Nonsense, Ellen.”
-
-“It is not nonsense. It is my firm decision. It would be absurd for you
-to think of living here by yourself—a mile from any other house. If you
-won’t come with me I’ll stay with you. Now, we won’t argue the matter,
-so don’t try.”
-
-“I shall leave Norman to do the arguing,” said Rosemary.
-
-“_I’ll_ deal with Norman. I can manage _him_. I would never have asked
-you to give me back my promise—never—but I had to tell Norman why I
-couldn’t marry him and he said _he_ would ask you. I couldn’t prevent
-him. You need not suppose you are the only person in the world who
-possesses self-respect. I never dreamed of marrying and leaving you
-here alone. And you’ll find I can be as determined as yourself.”
-
-Rosemary turned away and went into the house, with a shrug of her
-shoulders. Ellen looked down at St. George, who had never blinked an
-eyelash or stirred a whisker during the whole interview.
-
-“St. George, this world would be a dull place without the men, I’ll
-admit, but I’m almost tempted to wish there wasn’t one of ‘em in it.
-Look at the trouble and bother they’ve made right here, George—torn our
-happy old life completely up by the roots, Saint. John Meredith began
-it and Norman Douglas has finished it. And now both of them have to go
-into limbo. Norman is the only man I ever met who agrees with me that
-the Kaiser of Germany is the most dangerous creature alive on this
-earth—and I can’t marry this sensible person because my sister is
-stubborn and I’m stubborner. Mark my words, St. George, the minister
-would come back if she raised her little finger. But she won’t
-George—she’ll never do it—she won’t even crook it—and I don’t dare
-meddle, Saint. I won’t sulk, George; Rosemary didn’t sulk, so I’m
-determined I won’t either, Saint; Norman will tear up the turf, but the
-long and short of it is, St. George, that all of us old fools must just
-stop thinking of marrying. Well, well, ‘despair is a free man, hope is
-a slave,’ Saint. So now come into the house, George, and I’ll solace
-you with a saucerful of cream. Then there will be one happy and
-contented creature on this hill at least.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIII.
-CARL IS—NOT—WHIPPED
-
-
-“There is something I think I ought to tell you,” said Mary Vance
-mysteriously.
-
-She and Faith and Una were walking arm in arm through the village,
-having foregathered at Mr. Flagg’s store. Una and Faith exchanged looks
-which said, “_Now_ something disagreeable is coming.” When Mary Vance
-thought she ought to tell them things there was seldom much pleasure in
-the hearing. They often wondered why they kept on liking Mary Vance—for
-like her they did, in spite of everything. To be sure, she was
-generally a stimulating and agreeable companion. If only she would not
-have those convictions that it was her duty to tell them things!
-
-“Do you know that Rosemary West won’t marry your pa because she thinks
-you are such a wild lot? She’s afraid she couldn’t bring you up right
-and so she turned him down.”
-
-Una’s heart thrilled with secret exultation. She was very glad to hear
-that Miss West would not marry her father. But Faith was rather
-disappointed.
-
-“How do you know?” she asked.
-
-“Oh, everybody’s saying it. I heard Mrs. Elliott talking it over with
-Mrs. Doctor. They thought I was too far away to hear, but I’ve got ears
-like a cat’s. Mrs. Elliott said she hadn’t a doubt that Rosemary was
-afraid to try stepmothering you because you’d got such a reputation.
-Your pa never goes up the hill now. Neither does Norman Douglas. Folks
-say Ellen has jilted him just to get square with him for jilting her
-ages ago. But Norman is going about declaring he’ll get her yet. And I
-think you ought to know you’ve spoiled your pa’s match and _I_ think
-it’s a pity, for he’s bound to marry somebody before long, and Rosemary
-West would have been the best wife _I_ know of for him.”
-
-“You told me all stepmothers were cruel and wicked,” said Una.
-
-“Oh—well,” said Mary rather confusedly, “they’re mostly awful cranky, I
-know. But Rosemary West couldn’t be very mean to any one. I tell you if
-your pa turns round and marries Emmeline Drew you’ll wish you’d behaved
-yourselves better and not frightened Rosemary out of it. It’s awful
-that you’ve got such a reputation that no decent woman’ll marry your pa
-on account of you. Of course, _I_ know that half the yarns that are
-told about you ain’t true. But give a dog a bad name. Why, some folks
-are saying that it was Jerry and Carl that threw the stones through
-Mrs. Stimson’s window the other night when it was really them two Boyd
-boys. But I’m afraid it was Carl that put the eel in old Mrs. Carr’s
-buggy, though I said at first I wouldn’t believe it until I’d better
-proof than old Kitty Alec’s word. I told Mrs. Elliott so right to her
-face.”
-
-“What did Carl do?” cried Faith.
-
-“Well, they say—now, mind, I’m only telling you what people say—so
-there’s no use in your blaming me for it—that Carl and a lot of other
-boys were fishing eels over the bridge one evening last week. Mrs. Carr
-drove past in that old rattletrap buggy of hers with the open back. And
-Carl he just up and threw a big eel into the back. When poor old Mrs.
-Carr was driving up the hill by Ingleside that eel came squirming out
-between her feet. She thought it was a snake and she just give one
-awful screech and stood up and jumped clean over the wheels. The horse
-bolted, but it went home and no damage was done. But Mrs. Carr jarred
-her legs most terrible, and has had nervous spasms ever since whenever
-she thinks of the eel. Say, it was a rotten trick to play on the poor
-old soul. She’s a decent body, if she is as queer as Dick’s hat band.”
-
-Faith and Una looked at each other again. This was a matter for the
-Good-Conduct Club. They would not talk it over with Mary.
-
-“There goes your pa,” said Mary as Mr. Meredith passed them, “and never
-seeing us no more’n if we weren’t here. Well, I’m getting so’s I don’t
-mind it. But there are folks who do.”
-
-Mr. Meredith had not seen them, but he was not walking along in his
-usual dreamy and abstracted fashion. He strode up the hill in agitation
-and distress. Mrs. Alec Davis had just told him the story of Carl and
-the eel. She had been very indignant about it. Old Mrs. Carr was her
-third cousin. Mr. Meredith was more than indignant. He was hurt and
-shocked. He had not thought Carl would do anything like this. He was
-not inclined to be hard on pranks of heedlessness or forgetfulness, but
-_this_ was different. _This_ had a nasty tang in it. When he reached
-home he found Carl on the lawn, patiently studying the habits and
-customs of a colony of wasps. Calling him into the study Mr. Meredith
-confronted him, with a sterner face than any of his children had ever
-seen before, and asked him if the story were true.
-
-“Yes,” said Carl, flushing, but meeting his father’s eyes bravely.
-
-Mr. Meredith groaned. He had hoped that there had been at least
-exaggeration.
-
-“Tell me the whole matter,” he said.
-
-“The boys were fishing for eels over the bridge,” said Carl. “Link Drew
-had caught a whopper—I mean an awful big one—the biggest eel I ever
-saw. He caught it right at the start and it had been lying in his
-basket a long time, still as still. I thought it was dead, honest I
-did. Then old Mrs. Carr drove over the bridge and she called us all
-young varmints and told us to go home. And we hadn’t said a word to
-her, father, truly. So when she drove back again, after going to the
-store, the boys dared me to put Link’s eel in her buggy. I thought it
-was so dead it couldn’t hurt her and I threw it in. Then the eel came
-to life on the hill and we heard her scream and saw her jump out. I was
-awful sorry. That’s all, father.”
-
-It was not quite as bad as Mr. Meredith had feared, but it was quite
-bad enough. “I must punish you, Carl,” he said sorrowfully.
-
-“Yes, I know, father.”
-
-“I—I must whip you.”
-
-Carl winced. He had never been whipped. Then, seeing how badly his
-father felt, he said cheerfully,
-
-“All right, father.”
-
-Mr. Meredith misunderstood his cheerfulness and thought him insensible.
-He told Carl to come to the study after supper, and when the boy had
-gone out he flung himself into his chair and groaned again. He dreaded
-the evening sevenfold more than Carl did. The poor minister did not
-even know what he should whip his boy with. What was used to whip boys?
-Rods? Canes? No, that would be too brutal. A timber switch, then? And
-he, John Meredith, must hie him to the woods and cut one. It was an
-abominable thought. Then a picture presented itself unbidden to his
-mind. He saw Mrs. Carr’s wizened, nut-cracker little face at the
-appearance of that reviving eel—he saw her sailing witch-like over the
-buggy wheels. Before he could prevent himself the minister laughed.
-Then he was angry with himself and angrier still with Carl. He would
-get that switch at once—and it must not be too limber, after all.
-
-Carl was talking the matter over in the graveyard with Faith and Una,
-who had just come home. They were horrified at the idea of his being
-whipped—and by father, who had never done such a thing! But they agreed
-soberly that it was just.
-
-“You know it was a dreadful thing to do,” sighed Faith. “And you never
-owned up in the club.”
-
-“I forgot,” said Carl. “Besides, I didn’t think any harm came of it. I
-didn’t know she jarred her legs. But I’m to be whipped and that will
-make things square.”
-
-“Will it hurt—very much?” said Una, slipping her hand into Carl’s.
-
-“Oh, not so much, I guess,” said Carl gamely. “Anyhow, I’m not going to
-cry, no matter how much it hurts. It would make father feel so bad, if
-I did. He’s all cut up now. I wish I could whip myself hard enough and
-save him doing it.”
-
-After supper, at which Carl had eaten little and Mr. Meredith nothing
-at all, both went silently into the study. The switch lay on the table.
-Mr. Meredith had had a bad time getting a switch to suit him. He cut
-one, then felt it was too slender. Carl had done a really indefensible
-thing. Then he cut another—it was far too thick. After all, Carl had
-thought the eel was dead. The third one suited him better; but as he
-picked it up from the table it seemed very thick and heavy—more like a
-stick than a switch.
-
-“Hold out your hand,” he said to Carl.
-
-Carl threw back his head and held out his hand unflinchingly. But he
-was not very old and he could not quite keep a little fear out of his
-eyes. Mr. Meredith looked down into those eyes—why, they were Cecilia’s
-eyes—her very eyes—and in them was the selfsame expression he had once
-seen in Cecilia’s eyes when she had come to him to tell him something
-she had been a little afraid to tell him. Here were her eyes in Carl’s
-little, white face—and six weeks ago he had thought, through one
-endless, terrible night, that his little lad was dying.
-
-John Meredith threw down the switch.
-
-“Go,” he said, “I cannot whip you.”
-
-Carl fled to the graveyard, feeling that the look on his father’s face
-was worse than any whipping.
-
-“Is it over so soon?” asked Faith. She and Una had been holding hands
-and setting teeth on the Pollock tombstone.
-
-“He—he didn’t whip me at all,” said Carl with a sob, “and—I wish he
-had—and he’s in there, feeling just awful.”
-
-Una slipped away. Her heart yearned to comfort her father. As
-noiselessly as a little gray mouse she opened the study door and crept
-in. The room was dark with twilight. Her father was sitting at his
-desk. His back was towards her—his head was in his hands. He was
-talking to himself—broken, anguished words—but Una heard—heard and
-understood, with the sudden illumination that comes to sensitive,
-unmothered children. As silently as she had come in she slipped out and
-closed the door. John Meredith went on talking out his pain in what he
-deemed his undisturbed solitude.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIV.
-UNA VISITS THE HILL
-
-
-Una went upstairs. Carl and Faith were already on their way through the
-early moonlight to Rainbow Valley, having heard therefrom the elfin
-lilt of Jerry’s jews-harp and having guessed that the Blythes were
-there and fun afoot. Una had no wish to go. She sought her own room
-first where she sat down on her bed and had a little cry. She did not
-want anybody to come in her dear mother’s place. She did not want a
-stepmother who would hate her and make her father hate her. But father
-was so desperately unhappy—and if she could do any anything to make him
-happier she _must_ do it. There was only one thing she could do—and she
-had known the moment she had left the study that she must do it. But it
-was a very hard thing to do.
-
-After Una cried her heart out she wiped her eyes and went to the spare
-room. It was dark and rather musty, for the blind had not been drawn up
-nor the window opened for a long time. Aunt Martha was no fresh-air
-fiend. But as nobody ever thought of shutting a door in the manse this
-did not matter so much, save when some unfortunate minister came to
-stay all night and was compelled to breathe the spare room atmosphere.
-
-There was a closet in the spare room and far back in the closet a gray
-silk dress was hanging. Una went into the closet and shut the door,
-went down on her knees and pressed her face against the soft silken
-folds. It had been her mother’s wedding-dress. It was still full of a
-sweet, faint, haunting perfume, like lingering love. Una always felt
-very close to her mother there—as if she were kneeling at her feet with
-head in her lap. She went there once in a long while when life was
-_too_ hard.
-
-“Mother,” she whispered to the gray silk gown, “_I_ will never forget
-you, mother, and I’ll _always_ love you best. But I have to do it,
-mother, because father is so very unhappy. I know you wouldn’t want him
-to be unhappy. And I will be very good to her, mother, and try to love
-her, even if she is like Mary Vance said stepmothers always were.”
-
-Una carried some fine, spiritual strength away from her secret shrine.
-She slept peacefully that night with the tear stains still glistening
-on her sweet, serious, little face.
-
-The next afternoon she put on her best dress and hat. They were shabby
-enough. Every other little girl in the Glen had new clothes that summer
-except Faith and Una. Mary Vance had a lovely dress of white
-embroidered lawn, with scarlet silk sash and shoulder bows. But to-day
-Una did not mind her shabbiness. She only wanted to be very neat. She
-washed her face carefully. She brushed her black hair until it was as
-smooth as satin. She tied her shoelaces carefully, having first sewed
-up two runs in her one pair of good stockings. She would have liked to
-black her shoes, but she could not find any blacking. Finally, she
-slipped away from the manse, down through Rainbow Valley, up through
-the whispering woods, and out to the road that ran past the house on
-the hill. It was quite a long walk and Una was tired and warm when she
-got there.
-
-She saw Rosemary West sitting under a tree in the garden and stole past
-the dahlia beds to her. Rosemary had a book in her lap, but she was
-gazing afar across the harbour and her thoughts were sorrowful enough.
-Life had not been pleasant lately in the house on the hill. Ellen had
-not sulked—Ellen had been a brick. But things can be felt that are
-never said and at times the silence between the two women was
-intolerably eloquent. All the many familiar things that had once made
-life sweet had a flavour of bitterness now. Norman Douglas made
-periodical irruptions also, bullying and coaxing Ellen by turns. It
-would end, Rosemary believed, by his dragging Ellen off with him some
-day, and Rosemary felt that she would be almost glad when it happened.
-Existence would be horribly lonely then, but it would be no longer
-charged with dynamite.
-
-She was roused from her unpleasant reverie by a timid little touch on
-her shoulder. Turning, she saw Una Meredith.
-
-“Why, Una, dear, did you walk up here in all this heat?”
-
-“Yes,” said Una, “I came to—I came to—”
-
-But she found it very hard to say what she had come to do. Her voice
-failed—her eyes filled with tears.
-
-“Why, Una, little girl, what is the trouble? Don’t be afraid to tell
-me.”
-
-Rosemary put her arm around the thin little form and drew the child
-close to her. Her eyes were very beautiful—her touch so tender that Una
-found courage.
-
-“I came—to ask you—to marry father,” she gasped.
-
-Rosemary was silent for a moment from sheer dumbfounderment. She stared
-at Una blankly.
-
-“Oh, don’t be angry, please, dear Miss West,” said Una, pleadingly.
-“You see, everybody is saying that you wouldn’t marry father because we
-are so bad. He is _very_ unhappy about it. So I thought I would come
-and tell you that we are never bad _on purpose_. And if you will only
-marry father we will all try to be good and do just what you tell us.
-I’m _sure_ you won’t have any trouble with us. _Please_, Miss West.”
-
-Rosemary had been thinking rapidly. Gossiping surmise, she saw, had put
-this mistaken idea into Una’s mind. She must be perfectly frank and
-sincere with the child.
-
-“Una, dear,” she said softly. “It isn’t because of you poor little
-souls that I cannot be your father’s wife. I never thought of such a
-thing. You are not bad—I never supposed you were. There—there was
-another reason altogether, Una.”
-
-“Don’t you like father?” asked Una, lifting reproachful eyes. “Oh, Miss
-West, you don’t know how nice he is. I’m sure he’d make you a _good_
-husband.”
-
-Even in the midst of her perplexity and distress Rosemary couldn’t help
-a twisted, little smile.
-
-“Oh, don’t laugh, Miss West,” Una cried passionately. “Father feels
-_dreadful_ about it.”
-
-“I think you’re mistaken, dear,” said Rosemary.
-
-“I’m not. I’m _sure_ I’m not. Oh, Miss West, father was going to whip
-Carl yesterday—Carl had been naughty—and father couldn’t do it because
-you see he had no _practice_ in whipping. So when Carl came out and
-told us father felt so bad, I slipped into the study to see if I could
-help him—he _likes_ me to comfort him, Miss West—and he didn’t hear me
-come in and I heard what he was saying. I’ll tell you, Miss West, if
-you’ll let me whisper it in your ear.”
-
-Una whispered earnestly. Rosemary’s face turned crimson. So John
-Meredith still cared. _He_ hadn’t changed his mind. And he must care
-intensely if he had said that—care more than she had ever supposed he
-did. She sat still for a moment, stroking Una’s hair. Then she said,
-
-“Will you take a little letter from me to your father, Una?”
-
-“Oh, are you going to marry him, Miss West?” asked Una eagerly.
-
-“Perhaps—if he really wants me to,” said Rosemary, blushing again.
-
-“I’m glad—I’m glad,” said Una bravely. Then she looked up, with
-quivering lips. “Oh, Miss West, you won’t turn father against us—you
-won’t make him hate us, will you?” she said beseechingly.
-
-Rosemary stared again.
-
-“Una Meredith! Do you think I would do such a thing? Whatever put such
-an idea into your head?”
-
-“Mary Vance said stepmothers were all like that—and that they all hated
-their stepchildren and made their father hate them—she said they just
-couldn’t help it—just being stepmothers made them like that”—
-
-“You poor child! And yet you came up here and asked me to marry your
-father because you wanted to make him happy? You’re a darling—a
-heroine—as Ellen would say, you’re a brick. Now listen to me, very
-closely, dearest. Mary Vance is a silly little girl who doesn’t know
-very much and she is dreadfully mistaken about some things. I would
-never dream of trying to turn your father against you. I would love you
-all dearly. I don’t want to take your own mother’s place—she must
-always have that in your hearts. But neither have I any intention of
-being a stepmother. I want to be your friend and helper and _chum_.
-Don’t you think that would be nice, Una—if you and Faith and Carl and
-Jerry could just think of me as a good jolly chum—a big older sister?”
-
-“Oh, it would be lovely,” cried Una, with a transfigured face. She
-flung her arms impulsively round Rosemary’s neck. She was so happy that
-she felt as if she could fly on wings.
-
-“Do the others—do Faith and the boys have the same idea you had about
-stepmothers?”
-
-“No. Faith never believed Mary Vance. I was dreadfully foolish to
-believe her, either. Faith loves you already—she has loved you ever
-since poor Adam was eaten. And Jerry and Carl will think it is jolly.
-Oh, Miss West, when you come to live with us, will you—could you—teach
-me to cook—a little—and sew—and—and—and do things? I don’t know
-anything. I won’t be much trouble—I’ll try to learn fast.”
-
-“Darling, I’ll teach you and help you all I can. Now, you won’t say a
-word to anybody about this, will you—not even to Faith, until your
-father himself tells you you may? And you’ll stay and have tea with
-me?”
-
-“Oh, thank you—but—but—I think I’d rather go right back and take the
-letter to father,” faltered Una. “You see, he’ll be glad that much
-_sooner_, Miss West.”
-
-“I see,” said Rosemary. She went to the house, wrote a note and gave it
-to Una. When that small damsel had run off, a palpitating bundle of
-happiness, Rosemary went to Ellen, who was shelling peas on the back
-porch.
-
-“Ellen,” she said, “Una Meredith has just been here to ask me to marry
-her father.”
-
-Ellen looked up and read her sister’s face.
-
-“And you’re going to?” she said.
-
-“It’s quite likely.”
-
-Ellen went on shelling peas for a few minutes. Then she suddenly put
-her hands up to her own face. There were tears in her black-browed
-eyes.
-
-“I—I hope we’ll all be happy,” she said between a sob and a laugh.
-
-Down at the manse Una Meredith, warm, rosy, triumphant, marched boldly
-into her father’s study and laid a letter on the desk before him. His
-pale face flushed as he saw the clear, fine handwriting he knew so
-well. He opened the letter. It was very short—but he shed twenty years
-as he read it. Rosemary asked him if he could meet her that evening at
-sunset by the spring in Rainbow Valley.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXV.
-“LET THE PIPER COME”
-
-
-“And so,” said Miss Cornelia, “the double wedding is to be sometime
-about the middle of this month.”
-
-There was a faint chill in the air of the early September evening, so
-Anne had lighted her ever ready fire of driftwood in the big living
-room, and she and Miss Cornelia basked in its fairy flicker.
-
-“It is so delightful—especially in regard to Mr. Meredith and
-Rosemary,” said Anne. “I’m as happy in the thought of it, as I was when
-I was getting married myself. I felt exactly like a bride again last
-evening when I was up on the hill seeing Rosemary’s trousseau.”
-
-“They tell me her things are fine enough for a princess,” said Susan
-from a shadowy corner where she was cuddling her brown boy. “I have
-been invited up to see them also and I intend to go some evening. I
-understand that Rosemary is to wear white silk and a veil, but Ellen is
-to be married in navy blue. I have no doubt, Mrs. Dr. dear, that that
-is very sensible of her, but for my own part I have always felt that if
-I were ever married _I_ would prefer the white and the veil, as being
-more bride-like.”
-
-A vision of Susan in “white and a veil” presented itself before Anne’s
-inner vision and was almost too much for her.
-
-“As for Mr. Meredith,” said Miss Cornelia, “even his engagement has
-made a different man of him. He isn’t half so dreamy and absent-minded,
-believe me. I was so relieved when I heard that he had decided to close
-the manse and let the children visit round while he was away on his
-honeymoon. If he had left them and old Aunt Martha there alone for a
-month I should have expected to wake every morning and see the place
-burned down.”
-
-“Aunt Martha and Jerry are coming here,” said Anne. “Carl is going to
-Elder Clow’s. I haven’t heard where the girls are going.”
-
-“Oh, I’m going to take them,” said Miss Cornelia. “Of course, I was
-glad to, but Mary would have given me no peace till I asked them any
-way. The Ladies’ Aid is going to clean the manse from top to bottom
-before the bride and groom come back, and Norman Douglas has arranged
-to fill the cellar with vegetables. Nobody ever saw or heard anything
-quite like Norman Douglas these days, believe _me_. He’s so tickled
-that he’s going to marry Ellen West after wanting her all his life. If
-_I_ was Ellen—but then, I’m not, and if she is satisfied I can very
-well be. I heard her say years ago when she was a schoolgirl that she
-didn’t want a tame puppy for a husband. There’s nothing tame about
-Norman, believe _me_.”
-
-The sun was setting over Rainbow Valley. The pond was wearing a
-wonderful tissue of purple and gold and green and crimson. A faint blue
-haze rested on the eastern hill, over which a great, pale, round moon
-was just floating up like a silver bubble.
-
-They were all there, squatted in the little open glade—Faith and Una,
-Jerry and Carl, Jem and Walter, Nan and Di, and Mary Vance. They had
-been having a special celebration, for it would be Jem’s last evening
-in Rainbow Valley. On the morrow he would leave for Charlottetown to
-attend Queen’s Academy. Their charmed circle would be broken; and, in
-spite of the jollity of their little festival, there was a hint of
-sorrow in every gay young heart.
-
-“See—there is a great golden palace over there in the sunset,” said
-Walter, pointing. “Look at the shining tower—and the crimson banners
-streaming from them. Perhaps a conqueror is riding home from battle—and
-they are hanging them out to do honour to him.”
-
-“Oh, I wish we had the old days back again,” exclaimed Jem. “I’d love
-to be a soldier—a great, triumphant general. I’d give _everything_ to
-see a big battle.”
-
-Well, Jem was to be a soldier and see a greater battle than had ever
-been fought in the world; but that was as yet far in the future; and
-the mother, whose first-born son he was, was wont to look on her boys
-and thank God that the “brave days of old,” which Jem longed for, were
-gone for ever, and that never would it be necessary for the sons of
-Canada to ride forth to battle “for the ashes of their fathers and the
-temples of their gods.”
-
-The shadow of the Great Conflict had not yet made felt any forerunner
-of its chill. The lads who were to fight, and perhaps fall, on the
-fields of France and Flanders, Gallipoli and Palestine, were still
-roguish schoolboys with a fair life in prospect before them: the girls
-whose hearts were to be wrung were yet fair little maidens a-star with
-hopes and dreams.
-
-Slowly the banners of the sunset city gave up their crimson and gold;
-slowly the conqueror’s pageant faded out. Twilight crept over the
-valley and the little group grew silent. Walter had been reading again
-that day in his beloved book of myths and he remembered how he had once
-fancied the Pied Piper coming down the valley on an evening just like
-this.
-
-He began to speak dreamily, partly because he wanted to thrill his
-companions a little, partly because something apart from him seemed to
-be speaking through his lips.
-
-“The Piper is coming nearer,” he said, “he is nearer than he was that
-evening I saw him before. His long, shadowy cloak is blowing around
-him. He pipes—he pipes—and we must follow—Jem and Carl and Jerry and
-I—round and round the world. Listen—listen—can’t you hear his wild
-music?”
-
-The girls shivered.
-
-“You know you’re only pretending,” protested Mary Vance, “and I wish
-you wouldn’t. You make it too real. I hate that old Piper of yours.”
-
-But Jem sprang up with a gay laugh. He stood up on a little hillock,
-tall and splendid, with his open brow and his fearless eyes. There were
-thousands like him all over the land of the maple.
-
-“Let the Piper come and welcome,” he cried, waving his hand. “_I’ll_
-follow him gladly round and round the world.”
-
-THE END
-
-
-
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RAINBOW VALLEY ***
-
-***** This file should be named 5343-0.txt or 5343-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- https://www.gutenberg.org/5/3/4/5343/
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
diff --git a/5343-h/5343-h.htm~ b/5343-h/5343-h.htm~
deleted file mode 100644
index c78571d..0000000
--- a/5343-h/5343-h.htm~
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,12839 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
-"http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
-<head>
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
-<title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of Rainbow Valley, by Lucy Maud Montgomery</title>
-<link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
-<style type="text/css">
-
-body { margin-left: 20%;
- margin-right: 20%;
- text-align: justify; }
-
-h1, h2, h3, h4, h5 {text-align: center; font-style: normal; font-weight:
-normal; line-height: 1.5; margin-top: .5em; margin-bottom: .5em;}
-
-h1 {font-size: 300%;
- margin-top: 0.6em;
- margin-bottom: 0.6em;
- letter-spacing: 0.12em;
- word-spacing: 0.2em;
- text-indent: 0em;}
-h2 {font-size: 150%; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 1em;}
-h3 {font-size: 130%; margin-top: 1em;}
-h4 {font-size: 120%;}
-h5 {font-size: 110%;}
-
-.no-break {page-break-before: avoid;} /* for epubs */
-
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always; margin-top: 4em;}
-
-hr {width: 80%; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 2em;}
-
-p {text-indent: 1em;
- margin-top: 0.25em;
- margin-bottom: 0.25em; }
-
-p.poem {text-indent: 0%;
- margin-left: 10%;
- font-size: 90%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; }
-
-p.letter {text-indent: 0%;
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; }
-
-p.right {text-align: right;
- margin-right: 10%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; }
-
-div.fig { display:block;
- margin:0 auto;
- text-align:center;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;}
-
-a:link {color:blue; text-decoration:none}
-a:visited {color:blue; text-decoration:none}
-a:hover {color:red}
-
-</style>
-
-</head>
-
-<body>
-
-<div style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold;'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of Rainbow Valley, by Lucy Maud Montgomery</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: Rainbow Valley</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Lucy Maud Montgomery</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0'>Release Date: July 3, 2002 [eBook #5343]<br />
-[Most recently updated: May 5, 2021]</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0'>Language: English</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0'>Character set encoding: UTF-8</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Produced by: Bernard J. Farber, Carmen Baxter, Dona Rucci, Elizabeth Morton, Rebekah Neely, Joe Johnson, Joan Chovan, Judith Fetterolf, Mary Nuzzo, Sally Drake, Sally Starks, Steve Callis, Virginia Mohlere-Dellinger, Mary Mark Ockerbloom, Ben Crowder and David Widger</div>
-<div style='margin-top:2em;margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RAINBOW VALLEY ***</div>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:55%;">
-<img src="images/cover.jpg" style="width:100%;" alt="[Illustration]" />
-</div>
-
-<h1>Rainbow Valley</h1>
-
-<h2 class="no-break">by Lucy Maud Montgomery</h2>
-
-<h5>Author of &ldquo;Anne of Green Gables,&rdquo; &ldquo;Anne of the
-Island,&rdquo;<br />
-&ldquo;Anne&rsquo;s House of Dreams,&rdquo; &ldquo;The Story Girl,&rdquo;
-&ldquo;The Watchman,&rdquo; etc.</h5>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p class="letter">
-&ldquo;The thoughts of youth are long, long thoughts.&rdquo;<br />
-&mdash;LONGFELLOW
-</p>
-
-<h5>TO THE MEMORY OF<br />
-<br />
-GOLDWIN LAPP, ROBERT BROOKES AND MORLEY SHIER<br />
-<br />
-WHO MADE THE SUPREME SACRIFICE THAT THE HAPPY VALLEYS OF THEIR HOME LAND MIGHT
-BE KEPT SACRED FROM THE RAVAGE OF THE INVADER</h5>
-
-<hr />
-
-<h2>Contents</h2>
-
-<table summary="" style="">
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap01">I. HOME AGAIN</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap02">II. SHEER GOSSIP</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap03">III. THE INGLESIDE CHILDREN</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap04">IV. THE MANSE CHILDREN</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap05">V. THE ADVENT OF MARY VANCE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap06">VI. MARY STAYS AT THE MANSE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap07">VII. A FISHY EPISODE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap08">VIII. MISS CORNELIA INTERVENES</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap09">IX. UNA INTERVENES</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap10">X. THE MANSE GIRLS CLEAN HOUSE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap11">XI. A DREADFUL DISCOVERY</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap12">XII. AN EXPLANATION AND A DARE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap13">XIII. THE HOUSE ON THE HILL</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap14">XIV. MRS. ALEC DAVIS MAKES A CALL</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap15">XV. MORE GOSSIP</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap16">XVI. TIT FOR TAT</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap17">XVII. A DOUBLE VICTORY</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap18">XVIII. MARY BRINGS EVIL TIDINGS</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap19">XIX. POOR ADAM!</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap20">XX. FAITH MAKES A FRIEND</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap21">XXI. THE IMPOSSIBLE WORD</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap22">XXII. ST. GEORGE KNOWS ALL ABOUT IT</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap23">XXIII. THE GOOD-CONDUCT CLUB</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap24">XXIV. A CHARITABLE IMPULSE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap25">XXV. ANOTHER SCANDAL AND ANOTHER &ldquo;EXPLANATION&rdquo;</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap26">XXVI. MISS CORNELIA GETS A NEW POINT OF VIEW</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap27">XXVII. A SACRED CONCERT</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap28">XXVIII. A FAST DAY</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap29">XXIX. A WEIRD TALE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap30">XXX. THE GHOST ON THE DYKE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap31">XXXI. CARL DOES PENANCE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap32">XXXII. TWO STUBBORN PEOPLE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap33">XXXIII. CARL IS&mdash;NOT&mdash;WHIPPED</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap34">XXXIV. UNA VISITS THE HILL</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap35">XXXV. &ldquo;LET THE PIPER COME&rdquo;</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-</table>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2>RAINBOW VALLEY</h2>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap01"></a>CHAPTER I.<br />
-HOME AGAIN</h2>
-
-<p>
-It was a clear, apple-green evening in May, and Four Winds Harbour was
-mirroring back the clouds of the golden west between its softly dark shores.
-The sea moaned eerily on the sand-bar, sorrowful even in spring, but a sly,
-jovial wind came piping down the red harbour road along which Miss
-Cornelia&rsquo;s comfortable, matronly figure was making its way towards the
-village of Glen St. Mary. Miss Cornelia was rightfully Mrs. Marshall Elliott,
-and had been Mrs. Marshall Elliott for thirteen years, but even yet more people
-referred to her as Miss Cornelia than as Mrs. Elliott. The old name was dear to
-her old friends, only one of them contemptuously dropped it. Susan Baker, the
-gray and grim and faithful handmaiden of the Blythe family at Ingleside, never
-lost an opportunity of calling her &ldquo;Mrs. Marshall Elliott,&rdquo; with
-the most killing and pointed emphasis, as if to say &ldquo;You wanted to be
-Mrs. and Mrs. you shall be with a vengeance as far as I am concerned.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia was going up to Ingleside to see Dr. and Mrs. Blythe, who were
-just home from Europe. They had been away for three months, having left in
-February to attend a famous medical congress in London; and certain things,
-which Miss Cornelia was anxious to discuss, had taken place in the Glen during
-their absence. For one thing, there was a new family in the manse. And such a
-family! Miss Cornelia shook her head over them several times as she walked
-briskly along.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan Baker and the Anne Shirley of other days saw her coming, as they sat on
-the big veranda at Ingleside, enjoying the charm of the cat&rsquo;s light, the
-sweetness of sleepy robins whistling among the twilit maples, and the dance of
-a gusty group of daffodils blowing against the old, mellow, red brick wall of
-the lawn.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Anne was sitting on the steps, her hands clasped over her knee, looking, in the
-kind dusk, as girlish as a mother of many has any right to be; and the
-beautiful gray-green eyes, gazing down the harbour road, were as full of
-unquenchable sparkle and dream as ever. Behind her, in the hammock, Rilla
-Blythe was curled up, a fat, roly-poly little creature of six years, the
-youngest of the Ingleside children. She had curly red hair and hazel eyes that
-were now buttoned up after the funny, wrinkled fashion in which Rilla always
-went to sleep.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Shirley, &ldquo;the little brown boy,&rdquo; as he was known in the family
-&ldquo;Who&rsquo;s Who,&rdquo; was asleep in Susan&rsquo;s arms. He was
-brown-haired, brown-eyed and brown-skinned, with very rosy cheeks, and he was
-Susan&rsquo;s especial love. After his birth Anne had been very ill for a long
-time, and Susan &ldquo;mothered&rdquo; the baby with a passionate tenderness
-which none of the other children, dear as they were to her, had ever called
-out. Dr. Blythe had said that but for her he would never have lived.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I gave him life just as much as you did, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; Susan was
-wont to say. &ldquo;He is just as much my baby as he is yours.&rdquo; And,
-indeed, it was always to Susan that Shirley ran, to be kissed for bumps, and
-rocked to sleep, and protected from well-deserved spankings. Susan had
-conscientiously spanked all the other Blythe children when she thought they
-needed it for their souls&rsquo; good, but she would not spank Shirley nor
-allow his mother to do it. Once, Dr. Blythe had spanked him and Susan had been
-stormily indignant.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That man would spank an angel, Mrs. Dr. dear, that he would,&rdquo; she
-had declared bitterly; and she would not make the poor doctor a pie for weeks.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She had taken Shirley with her to her brother&rsquo;s home during his
-parents&rsquo; absence, while all the other children had gone to Avonlea, and
-she had three blessed months of him all to herself. Nevertheless, Susan was
-very glad to find herself back at Ingleside, with all her darlings around her
-again. Ingleside was her world and in it she reigned supreme. Even Anne seldom
-questioned her decisions, much to the disgust of Mrs. Rachel Lynde of Green
-Gables, who gloomily told Anne, whenever she visited Four Winds, that she was
-letting Susan get to be entirely too much of a boss and would live to rue it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Here is Cornelia Bryant coming up the harbour road, Mrs. Dr.
-dear,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;She will be coming up to unload three
-months&rsquo; gossip on us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope so,&rdquo; said Anne, hugging her knees. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m
-starving for Glen St. Mary gossip, Susan. I hope Miss Cornelia can tell me
-everything that has happened while we&rsquo;ve been
-away&mdash;<i>everything</i>&mdash;who has got born, or married, or drunk; who
-has died, or gone away, or come, or fought, or lost a cow, or found a beau.
-It&rsquo;s so delightful to be home again with all the dear Glen folks, and I
-want to know all about them. Why, I remember wondering, as I walked through
-Westminster Abbey which of her two especial beaux Millicent Drew would finally
-marry. Do you know, Susan, I have a dreadful suspicion that I love
-gossip.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, of course, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; admitted Susan, &ldquo;every
-proper woman likes to hear the news. I am rather interested in Millicent
-Drew&rsquo;s case myself. I never had a beau, much less two, and I do not mind
-now, for being an old maid does not hurt when you get used to it.
-Millicent&rsquo;s hair always looks to me as if she had swept it up with a
-broom. But the men do not seem to mind that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They see only her pretty, piquant, mocking, little face, Susan.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That may very well be, Mrs. Dr. dear. The Good Book says that favour is
-deceitful and beauty is vain, but I should not have minded finding that out for
-myself, if it had been so ordained. I have no doubt we will all be beautiful
-when we are angels, but what good will it do us then? Speaking of gossip,
-however, they do say that poor Mrs. Harrison Miller over harbour tried to hang
-herself last week.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Susan!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Calm yourself, Mrs. Dr. dear. She did not succeed. But I really do not
-blame her for trying, for her husband is a terrible man. But she was very
-foolish to think of hanging herself and leaving the way clear for him to marry
-some other woman. If I had been in her shoes, Mrs. Dr. dear, I would have gone
-to work to worry him so that he would try to hang himself instead of me. Not
-that I hold with people hanging themselves under any circumstances, Mrs. Dr.
-dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is the matter with Harrison Miller, anyway?&rdquo; said Anne
-impatiently. &ldquo;He is always driving some one to extremes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, some people call it religion and some call it cussedness, begging
-your pardon, Mrs. Dr. dear, for using such a word. It seems they cannot make
-out which it is in Harrison&rsquo;s case. There are days when he growls at
-everybody because he thinks he is fore-ordained to eternal punishment. And then
-there are days when he says he does not care and goes and gets drunk. My own
-opinion is that he is not sound in his intellect, for none of that branch of
-the Millers were. His grandfather went out of his mind. He thought he was
-surrounded by big black spiders. They crawled over him and floated in the air
-about him. I hope I shall never go insane, Mrs. Dr. dear, and I do not think I
-will, because it is not a habit of the Bakers. But, if an all-wise Providence
-should decree it, I hope it will not take the form of big black spiders, for I
-loathe the animals. As for Mrs. Miller, I do not know whether she really
-deserves pity or not. There are some who say she just married Harrison to spite
-Richard Taylor, which seems to me a very peculiar reason for getting married.
-But then, of course, <i>I</i> am no judge of things matrimonial, Mrs. Dr. dear.
-And there is Cornelia Bryant at the gate, so I will put this blessed brown baby
-on his bed and get my knitting.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap02"></a>CHAPTER II.<br />
-SHEER GOSSIP</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where are the other children?&rdquo; asked Miss Cornelia, when the first
-greetings&mdash;cordial on her side, rapturous on Anne&rsquo;s, and dignified
-on Susan&rsquo;s&mdash;were over.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Shirley is in bed and Jem and Walter and the twins are down in their
-beloved Rainbow Valley,&rdquo; said Anne. &ldquo;They just came home this
-afternoon, you know, and they could hardly wait until supper was over before
-rushing down to the valley. They love it above every spot on earth. Even the
-maple grove doesn&rsquo;t rival it in their affections.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am afraid they love it too well,&rdquo; said Susan gloomily.
-&ldquo;Little Jem said once he would rather go to Rainbow Valley than to heaven
-when he died, and that was not a proper remark.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose they had a great time in Avonlea?&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Enormous. Marilla does spoil them terribly. Jem, in particular, can do
-no wrong in her eyes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Miss Cuthbert must be an old lady now,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia,
-getting out her knitting, so that she could hold her own with Susan. Miss
-Cornelia held that the woman whose hands were employed always had the advantage
-over the woman whose hands were not.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Marilla is eighty-five,&rdquo; said Anne with a sigh. &ldquo;Her hair is
-snow-white. But, strange to say, her eyesight is better than it was when she
-was sixty.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, dearie, I&rsquo;m real glad you&rsquo;re all back. I&rsquo;ve been
-dreadful lonesome. But we haven&rsquo;t been dull in the Glen, believe
-<i>me</i>. There hasn&rsquo;t been such an exciting spring in my time, as far
-as church matters go. We&rsquo;ve got settled with a minister at last, Anne
-dearie.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The Reverend John Knox Meredith, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said Susan,
-resolved not to let Miss Cornelia tell all the news.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is he nice?&rdquo; asked Anne interestedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia sighed and Susan groaned.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, he&rsquo;s nice enough if that were all,&rdquo; said the former.
-&ldquo;He is <i>very</i> nice&mdash;and very learned&mdash;and very spiritual.
-But, oh Anne dearie, he has no common sense!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How was it you called him, then?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, there&rsquo;s no doubt he is by far the best preacher we ever had
-in Glen St. Mary church,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, veering a tack or two.
-&ldquo;I suppose it is because he is so moony and absent-minded that he never
-got a town call. His trial sermon was simply wonderful, believe <i>me</i>.
-Every one went mad about it&mdash;and his looks.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is <i>very</i> comely, Mrs. Dr. dear, and when all is said and done,
-I <i>do</i> like to see a well-looking man in the pulpit,&rdquo; broke in
-Susan, thinking it was time she asserted herself again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Besides,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, &ldquo;we were anxious to get
-settled. And Mr. Meredith was the first candidate we were all agreed on.
-Somebody had some objection to all the others. There was some talk of calling
-Mr. Folsom. He was a good preacher, too, but somehow people didn&rsquo;t care
-for his appearance. He was too dark and sleek.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He looked exactly like a great black tomcat, that he did, Mrs. Dr.
-dear,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;I never could abide such a man in the pulpit
-every Sunday.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then Mr. Rogers came and he was like a chip in porridge&mdash;neither
-harm nor good,&rdquo; resumed Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;But if he had preached like
-Peter and Paul it would have profited him nothing, for that was the day old
-Caleb Ramsay&rsquo;s sheep strayed into church and gave a loud
-&lsquo;ba-a-a&rsquo; just as he announced his text. Everybody laughed, and poor
-Rogers had no chance after that. Some thought we ought to call Mr. Stewart,
-because he was so well educated. He could read the New Testament in five
-languages.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But I do not think he was any surer than other men of getting to heaven
-because of that,&rdquo; interjected Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Most of us didn&rsquo;t like his delivery,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia,
-ignoring Susan. &ldquo;He talked in grunts, so to speak. And Mr. Arnett
-couldn&rsquo;t preach <i>at all</i>. And he picked about the worst candidating
-text there is in the Bible&mdash;&lsquo;Curse ye Meroz.&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Whenever he got stuck for an idea, he would bang the Bible and shout
-very bitterly, &lsquo;Curse ye Meroz.&rsquo; Poor Meroz got thoroughly cursed
-that day, whoever he was, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The minister who is candidating can&rsquo;t be too careful what text he
-chooses,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia solemnly. &ldquo;I believe Mr. Pierson would
-have got the call if he had picked a different text. But when he announced
-&lsquo;I will lift my eyes to the hills&rsquo; <i>he</i> was done for. Every
-one grinned, for every one knew that those two Hill girls from the Harbour Head
-have been setting their caps for every single minister who came to the Glen for
-the last fifteen years. And Mr. Newman had too large a family.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He stayed with my brother-in-law, James Clow,&rdquo; said Susan.
-&ldquo;&lsquo;How many children have you got?&rsquo; I asked him. &lsquo;Nine
-boys and a sister for each of them,&rsquo; he said. &lsquo;Eighteen!&rsquo;
-said I. &lsquo;Dear me, what a family!&rsquo; And then he laughed and laughed.
-But I do not know why, Mrs. Dr. dear, and I am certain that eighteen children
-would be too many for any manse.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He had only ten children, Susan,&rdquo; explained Miss Cornelia, with
-contemptuous patience. &ldquo;And ten good children would not be much worse for
-the manse and congregation than the four who are there now. Though I
-wouldn&rsquo;t say, Anne dearie, that they are so bad, either. I like
-them&mdash;everybody likes them. It&rsquo;s impossible to help liking them.
-They would be real nice little souls if there was anyone to look after their
-manners and teach them what is right and proper. For instance, at school the
-teacher says they are model children. But at home they simply run wild.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What about Mrs. Meredith?&rdquo; asked Anne.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s <i>no</i> Mrs. Meredith. That is just the trouble. Mr.
-Meredith is a widower. His wife died four years ago. If we had known that I
-don&rsquo;t suppose we would have called him, for a widower is even worse in a
-congregation than a single man. But he was heard to speak of his children and
-we all supposed there was a mother, too. And when they came there was nobody
-but old Aunt Martha, as they call her. She&rsquo;s a cousin of Mr.
-Meredith&rsquo;s mother, I believe, and he took her in to save her from the
-poorhouse. She is seventy-five years old, half blind, and very deaf and very
-cranky.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And a very poor cook, Mrs. Dr. dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The worst possible manager for a manse,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia
-bitterly. &ldquo;Mr. Meredith won&rsquo;t get any other housekeeper because he
-says it would hurt Aunt Martha&rsquo;s feelings. Anne dearie, believe me, the
-state of that manse is something terrible. Everything is thick with dust and
-nothing is ever in its place. And we had painted and papered it all so nice
-before they came.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There are four children, you say?&rdquo; asked Anne, beginning to mother
-them already in her heart.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes. They run up just like the steps of a stair. Gerald&rsquo;s the
-oldest. He&rsquo;s twelve and they call him Jerry. He&rsquo;s a clever boy.
-Faith is eleven. She is a regular tomboy but pretty as a picture, I must
-say.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She looks like an angel but she is a holy terror for mischief, Mrs. Dr.
-dear,&rdquo; said Susan solemnly. &ldquo;I was at the manse one night last week
-and Mrs. James Millison was there, too. She had brought them up a dozen eggs
-and a little pail of milk&mdash;a <i>very</i> little pail, Mrs. Dr. dear. Faith took
-them and whisked down the cellar with them. Near the bottom of the stairs she
-caught her toe and fell the rest of the way, milk and eggs and all. You can
-imagine the result, Mrs. Dr. dear. But that child came up laughing. &lsquo;I
-don&rsquo;t know whether I&rsquo;m myself or a custard pie,&rsquo; she said.
-And Mrs. James Millison was very angry. She said she would never take another
-thing to the manse if it was to be wasted and destroyed in that fashion.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maria Millison never hurt herself taking things to the manse,&rdquo;
-sniffed Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;She just took them that night as an excuse for
-curiosity. But poor Faith is always getting into scrapes. She is so heedless
-and impulsive.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Just like me. I&rsquo;m going to like your Faith,&rdquo; said Anne
-decidedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She is full of spunk&mdash;and I do like spunk, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo;
-admitted Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s something taking about her,&rdquo; conceded Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;You never see her but she&rsquo;s laughing, and somehow it always makes
-you want to laugh too. She can&rsquo;t even keep a straight face in church. Una
-is ten&mdash;she&rsquo;s a sweet little thing&mdash;not pretty, but sweet. And
-Thomas Carlyle is nine. They call him Carl, and he has a regular mania for
-collecting toads and bugs and frogs and bringing them into the house.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose he was responsible for the dead rat that was lying on a chair
-in the parlour the afternoon Mrs. Grant called. It gave her a turn,&rdquo; said
-Susan, &ldquo;and I do not wonder, for manse parlours are no places for dead
-rats. To be sure it may have been the cat who left it, there. <i>He</i> is as full of
-the old Nick as he can be stuffed, Mrs. Dr. dear. A manse cat should at least
-<i>look</i> respectable, in my opinion, whatever he really is. But I never saw such a
-rakish-looking beast. And he walks along the ridgepole of the manse almost
-every evening at sunset, Mrs. Dr. dear, and waves his tail, and that is not
-becoming.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The worst of it is, they are <i>never</i> decently dressed,&rdquo; sighed Miss
-Cornelia. &ldquo;And since the snow went they go to school barefooted. Now, you
-know Anne dearie, that isn&rsquo;t the right thing for manse
-children&mdash;especially when the Methodist minister&rsquo;s little girl
-always wears such nice buttoned boots. And I <i>do</i> wish they wouldn&rsquo;t play
-in the old Methodist graveyard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s very tempting, when it&rsquo;s right beside the manse,&rdquo;
-said Anne. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve always thought graveyards must be delightful
-places to play in.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, no, you did not, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said loyal Susan, determined
-to protect Anne from herself. &ldquo;You have too much good sense and
-decorum.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why did they ever build that manse beside the graveyard in the first
-place?&rdquo; asked Anne. &ldquo;Their lawn is so small there is no place for
-them to play except in the graveyard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It <i>was</i> a mistake,&rdquo; admitted Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;But they got the
-lot cheap. And no other manse children ever thought of playing there. Mr.
-Meredith shouldn&rsquo;t allow it. But he has always got his nose buried in a
-book, when he is home. He reads and reads, or walks about in his study in a
-day-dream. So far he hasn&rsquo;t forgotten to be in church on Sundays, but
-twice he has forgotten about the prayer-meeting and one of the elders had to go
-over to the manse and remind him. And he forgot about Fanny Cooper&rsquo;s
-wedding. They rang him up on the &lsquo;phone and then he rushed right over,
-just as he was, carpet slippers and all. One wouldn&rsquo;t mind if the
-Methodists didn&rsquo;t laugh so about it. But there&rsquo;s one
-comfort&mdash;they can&rsquo;t criticize his sermons. He wakes up when
-he&rsquo;s in the pulpit, believe <i>me</i>. And the Methodist minister can&rsquo;t
-preach at all&mdash;so they tell me. <i>I</i> have never heard him, thank
-goodness.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s scorn of men had abated somewhat since her marriage, but
-her scorn of Methodists remained untinged of charity. Susan smiled slyly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They do say, Mrs. Marshall Elliott, that the Methodists and
-Presbyterians are talking of uniting,&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, all I hope is that I&rsquo;ll be under the sod if that ever comes
-to pass,&rdquo; retorted Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;I shall never have truck or
-trade with Methodists, and Mr. Meredith will find that he&rsquo;d better steer
-clear of them, too. He is entirely too sociable with them, believe <i>me</i>. Why, he
-went to the Jacob Drews&rsquo; silver-wedding supper and got into a nice scrape
-as a result.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What was it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Drew asked him to carve the roast goose&mdash;for Jacob Drew never
-did or could carve. Well, Mr. Meredith tackled it, and in the process he
-knocked it clean off the platter into Mrs. Reese&rsquo;s lap, who was sitting
-next him. And he just said dreamily. &lsquo;Mrs. Reese, will you kindly return
-me that goose?&rsquo; Mrs. Reese &lsquo;returned&rsquo; it, as meek as Moses,
-but she must have been furious, for she had on her new silk dress. The worst of
-it is, she was a Methodist.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But I think that is better than if she was a Presbyterian,&rdquo;
-interjected Susan. &ldquo;If she had been a Presbyterian she would mostly
-likely have left the church and we cannot afford to lose our members. And Mrs.
-Reese is not liked in her own church, because she gives herself such great
-airs, so that the Methodists would be rather pleased that Mr. Meredith spoiled
-her dress.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The point is, he made himself ridiculous, and <i>I</i>, for one, do not
-like to see my minister made ridiculous in the eyes of the Methodists,&rdquo;
-said Miss Cornelia stiffly. &ldquo;If he had had a wife it would not have
-happened.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do not see if he had a dozen wives how they could have prevented Mrs.
-Drew from using up her tough old gander for the wedding-feast,&rdquo; said
-Susan stubbornly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They say that was her husband&rsquo;s doing,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;Jacob Drew is a conceited, stingy, domineering creature.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And they do say he and his wife detest each other&mdash;which does not
-seem to me the proper way for married folks to get along. But then, of course,
-I have had no experience along that line,&rdquo; said Susan, tossing her head.
-&ldquo;And <i>I</i> am not one to blame everything on the men. Mrs. Drew is
-mean enough herself. They say that the only thing she was ever known to give
-away was a crock of butter made out of cream a rat had fell into. She
-contributed it to a church social. Nobody found out about the rat until
-afterwards.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Fortunately, all the people the Merediths have offended so far are
-Methodists,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;That Jerry went to the Methodist
-prayer-meeting one night about a fortnight ago and sat beside old William Marsh
-who got up as usual and testified with fearful groans. &lsquo;Do you feel any
-better now?&rsquo; whispered Jerry when William sat down. Poor Jerry meant to
-be sympathetic, but Mr. Marsh thought he was impertinent and is furious at him.
-Of course, Jerry had no business to be in a Methodist prayer-meeting at all.
-But they go where they like.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope they will not offend Mrs. Alec Davis of the Harbour Head,&rdquo;
-said Susan. &ldquo;She is a very touchy woman, I understand, but she is very
-well off and pays the most of any one to the salary. I have heard that she says
-the Merediths are the worst brought up children she ever saw.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Every word you say convinces me more and more that the Merediths belong
-to the race that knows Joseph,&rdquo; said Mistress Anne decidedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;When all is said and done, they <i>do</i>,&rdquo; admitted Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;And that balances everything. Anyway, we&rsquo;ve got them now and we
-must just do the best we can by them and stick up for them to the Methodists.
-Well, I suppose I must be getting down harbour. Marshall will soon be
-home&mdash;he went over-harbour to-day&mdash;and wanting his super, man-like.
-I&rsquo;m sorry I haven&rsquo;t seen the other children. And where&rsquo;s the
-doctor?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Up at the Harbour Head. We&rsquo;ve only been home three days and in
-that time he has spent three hours in his own bed and eaten two meals in his
-own house.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, everybody who has been sick for the last six weeks has been
-waiting for him to come home&mdash;and I don&rsquo;t blame them. When that
-over-harbour doctor married the undertaker&rsquo;s daughter at Lowbridge people
-felt suspicious of him. It didn&rsquo;t look well. You and the doctor must come
-down soon and tell us all about your trip. I suppose you&rsquo;ve had a
-splendid time.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We had,&rdquo; agreed Anne. &ldquo;It was the fulfilment of years of
-dreams. The old world is very lovely and very wonderful. But we have come back
-very well satisfied with our own land. Canada is the finest country in the
-world, Miss Cornelia.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nobody ever doubted that,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, complacently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And old P.E.I. is the loveliest province in it and Four Winds the
-loveliest spot in P.E.I.,&rdquo; laughed Anne, looking adoringly out over the
-sunset splendour of glen and harbour and gulf. She waved her hand at it.
-&ldquo;I saw nothing more beautiful than that in Europe, Miss Cornelia. Must
-you go? The children will be sorry to have missed you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They must come and see me soon. Tell them the doughnut jar is always
-full.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, at supper they were planning a descent on you. They&rsquo;ll go
-soon; but they must settle down to school again now. And the twins are going to
-take music lessons.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not from the Methodist minister&rsquo;s wife, I hope?&rdquo; said Miss
-Cornelia anxiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;from Rosemary West. I was up last evening to arrange it with
-her. What a pretty girl she is!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Rosemary holds her own well. She isn&rsquo;t as young as she once
-was.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I thought her very charming. I&rsquo;ve never had any real acquaintance
-with her, you know. Their house is so out of the way, and I&rsquo;ve seldom
-ever seen her except at church.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;People always have liked Rosemary West, though they don&rsquo;t
-understand her,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, quite unconscious of the high
-tribute she was paying to Rosemary&rsquo;s charm. &ldquo;Ellen has always kept
-her down, so to speak. She has tyrannized over her, and yet she has always
-indulged her in a good many ways. Rosemary was engaged once, you know&mdash;to
-young Martin Crawford. His ship was wrecked on the Magdalens and all the crew
-were drowned. Rosemary was just a child&mdash;only seventeen. But she was never
-the same afterwards. She and Ellen have stayed very close at home since their
-mother&rsquo;s death. They don&rsquo;t often get to their own church at
-Lowbridge and I understand Ellen doesn&rsquo;t approve of going too often to a
-Presbyterian church. To the Methodist she <i>never</i> goes, I&rsquo;ll say that much
-for her. That family of Wests have always been strong Episcopalians. Rosemary
-and Ellen are pretty well off. Rosemary doesn&rsquo;t really need to give music
-lessons. She does it because she likes to. They are distantly related to
-Leslie, you know. Are the Fords coming to the harbour this summer?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. They are going on a trip to Japan and will probably be away for a
-year. Owen&rsquo;s new novel is to have a Japanese setting. This will be the
-first summer that the dear old House of Dreams will be empty since we left
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I should think Owen Ford might find enough to write about in Canada
-without dragging his wife and his innocent children off to a heathen country
-like Japan,&rdquo; grumbled Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;<i>The Life Book</i> was the
-best book he&rsquo;s ever written and he got the material for that right here
-in Four Winds.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Captain Jim gave him the most of that, you know. And he collected it all
-over the world. But Owen&rsquo;s books are all delightful, I think.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, they&rsquo;re well enough as far as they go. I make it a point to
-read every one he writes, though I&rsquo;ve always held, Anne dearie, that
-reading novels is a sinful waste of time. I shall write and tell him my opinion
-of this Japanese business, believe <i>me</i>. Does he want Kenneth and Persis to be
-converted into pagans?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-With which unanswerable conundrum Miss Cornelia took her departure. Susan
-proceeded to put Rilla in bed and Anne sat on the veranda steps under the early
-stars and dreamed her incorrigible dreams and learned all over again for the
-hundredth happy time what a moonrise splendour and sheen could be on Four Winds
-Harbour.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap03"></a>CHAPTER III.<br />
-THE INGLESIDE CHILDREN</h2>
-
-<p>
-In daytime the Blythe children liked very well to play in the rich, soft greens
-and glooms of the big maple grove between Ingleside and the Glen St. Mary pond;
-but for evening revels there was no place like the little valley behind the
-maple grove. It was a fairy realm of romance to them. Once, looking from the
-attic windows of Ingleside, through the mist and aftermath of a summer
-thunderstorm, they had seen the beloved spot arched by a glorious rainbow, one
-end of which seemed to dip straight down to where a corner of the pond ran up
-into the lower end of the valley.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let us call it Rainbow Valley,&rdquo; said Walter delightedly, and
-Rainbow Valley thenceforth it was.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Outside of Rainbow Valley the wind might be rollicking and boisterous. Here it
-always went gently. Little, winding, fairy paths ran here and there over spruce
-roots cushioned with moss. Wild cherry trees, that in blossom time would be
-misty white, were scattered all over the valley, mingling with the dark
-spruces. A little brook with amber waters ran through it from the Glen village.
-The houses of the village were comfortably far away; only at the upper end of
-the valley was a little tumble-down, deserted cottage, referred to as
-&ldquo;the old Bailey house.&rdquo; It had not been occupied for many years,
-but a grass-grown dyke surrounded it and inside was an ancient garden where the
-Ingleside children could find violets and daisies and June lilies still
-blooming in season. For the rest, the garden was overgrown with caraway that
-swayed and foamed in the moonshine of summer eves like seas of silver.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-To the sought lay the pond and beyond it the ripened distance lost itself in
-purple woods, save where, on a high hill, a solitary old gray homestead looked
-down on glen and harbour. There was a certain wild woodsiness and solitude
-about Rainbow Valley, in spite of its nearness to the village, which endeared
-it to the children of Ingleside.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The valley was full of dear, friendly hollows and the largest of these was
-their favourite stamping ground. Here they were assembled on this particular
-evening. There was a grove of young spruces in this hollow, with a tiny, grassy
-glade in its heart, opening on the bank of the brook. By the brook grew a
-silver birch-tree, a young, incredibly straight thing which Walter had named
-the &ldquo;White Lady.&rdquo; In this glade, too, were the &ldquo;Tree
-Lovers,&rdquo; as Walter called a spruce and maple which grew so closely
-together that their boughs were inextricably intertwined. Jem had hung an old
-string of sleigh-bells, given him by the Glen blacksmith, on the Tree Lovers,
-and every visitant breeze called out sudden fairy tinkles from it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How nice it is to be back!&rdquo; said Nan. &ldquo;After all, none of
-the Avonlea places are quite as nice as Rainbow Valley.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But they were very fond of the Avonlea places for all that. A visit to Green
-Gables was always considered a great treat. Aunt Marilla was very good to them,
-and so was Mrs. Rachel Lynde, who was spending the leisure of her old age in
-knitting cotton-warp quilts against the day when Anne&rsquo;s daughters should
-need a &ldquo;setting-out.&rdquo; There were jolly playmates there,
-too&mdash;&ldquo;Uncle&rdquo; Davy&rsquo;s children and &ldquo;Aunt&rdquo;
-Diana&rsquo;s children. They knew all the spots their mother had loved so well
-in her girlhood at old Green Gables&mdash;the long Lover&rsquo;s Lane, that was
-pink-hedged in wild-rose time, the always neat yard, with its willows and
-poplars, the Dryad&rsquo;s Bubble, lucent and lovely as of yore, the Lake of
-Shining Waters, and Willowmere. The twins had their mother&rsquo;s old
-porch-gable room, and Aunt Marilla used to come in at night, when she thought
-they were asleep, to gloat over them. But they all knew she loved Jem the best.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jem was at present busily occupied in frying a mess of small trout which he had
-just caught in the pond. His stove consisted of a circle of red stones, with a
-fire kindled in it, and his culinary utensils were an old tin can, hammered out
-flat, and a fork with only one tine left. Nevertheless, ripping good meals had
-before now been thus prepared.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jem was the child of the House of Dreams. All the others had been born at
-Ingleside. He had curly red hair, like his mother&rsquo;s, and frank hazel
-eyes, like his father&rsquo;s; he had his mother&rsquo;s fine nose and his
-father&rsquo;s steady, humorous mouth. And he was the only one of the family
-who had ears nice enough to please Susan. But he had a standing feud with Susan
-because she would not give up calling him Little Jem. It was outrageous,
-thought thirteen-year-old Jem. Mother had more sense.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m <i>not</i> little any more, Mother,&rdquo; he had cried indignantly,
-on his eighth birthday. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m <i>awful</i> big.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mother had sighed and laughed and sighed again; and she never called him Little
-Jem again&mdash;in his hearing at least.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He was and always had been a sturdy, reliable little chap. He never broke a
-promise. He was not a great talker. His teachers did not think him brilliant,
-but he was a good, all-round student. He never took things on faith; he always
-liked to investigate the truth of a statement for himself. Once Susan had told
-him that if he touched his tongue to a frosty latch all the skin would tear off
-it. Jem had promptly done it, &ldquo;just to see if it was so.&rdquo; He found
-it was &ldquo;so,&rdquo; at the cost of a very sore tongue for several days.
-But Jem did not grudge suffering in the interests of science. By constant
-experiment and observation he learned a great deal and his brothers and sisters
-thought his extensive knowledge of their little world quite wonderful. Jem
-always knew where the first and ripest berries grew, where the first pale
-violets shyly wakened from their winter&rsquo;s sleep, and how many blue eggs
-were in a given robin&rsquo;s nest in the maple grove. He could tell fortunes
-from daisy petals and suck honey from red clovers, and grub up all sorts of
-edible roots on the banks of the pond, while Susan went in daily fear that they
-would all be poisoned. He knew where the finest spruce-gum was to be found, in
-pale amber knots on the lichened bark, he knew where the nuts grew thickest in
-the beechwoods around the Harbour Head, and where the best trouting places up
-the brooks were. He could mimic the call of any wild bird or beast in Four
-Winds and he knew the haunt of every wild flower from spring to autumn.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter Blythe was sitting under the White Lady, with a volume of poems lying
-beside him, but he was not reading. He was gazing now at the emerald-misted
-willows by the pond, and now at a flock of clouds, like little silver sheep,
-herded by the wind, that were drifting over Rainbow Valley, with rapture in his
-wide splendid eyes. Walter&rsquo;s eyes were very wonderful. All the joy and
-sorrow and laughter and loyalty and aspiration of many generations lying under
-the sod looked out of their dark gray depths.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter was a &ldquo;hop out of kin,&rdquo; as far as looks went. He did not
-resemble any known relative. He was quite the handsomest of the Ingleside
-children, with straight black hair and finely modelled features. But he had all
-his mother&rsquo;s vivid imagination and passionate love of beauty. Frost of
-winter, invitation of spring, dream of summer and glamour of autumn, all meant
-much to Walter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In school, where Jem was a chieftain, Walter was not thought highly of. He was
-supposed to be &ldquo;girly&rdquo; and milk-soppish, because he never fought
-and seldom joined in the school sports, preferring to herd by himself in out of
-the way corners and read books&mdash;especially &ldquo;po&rsquo;try
-books.&rdquo; Walter loved the poets and pored over their pages from the time
-he could first read. Their music was woven into his growing soul&mdash;the
-music of the immortals. Walter cherished the ambition to be a poet himself some
-day. The thing could be done. A certain Uncle Paul&mdash;so called out of
-courtesy&mdash;who lived now in that mysterious realm called &ldquo;the
-States,&rdquo; was Walter&rsquo;s model. Uncle Paul had once been a little
-school boy in Avonlea and now his poetry was read everywhere. But the Glen
-schoolboys did not know of Walter&rsquo;s dreams and would not have been
-greatly impressed if they had. In spite of his lack of physical prowess,
-however, he commanded a certain unwilling respect because of his power of
-&ldquo;talking book talk.&rdquo; Nobody in Glen St. Mary school could talk like
-him. He &ldquo;sounded like a preacher,&rdquo; one boy said; and for this
-reason he was generally left alone and not persecuted, as most boys were who
-were suspected of disliking or fearing fisticuffs.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The ten year old Ingleside twins violated twin tradition by not looking in the
-least alike. Anne, who was always called Nan, was very pretty, with velvety
-nut-brown eyes and silky nut-brown hair. She was a very blithe and dainty
-little maiden&mdash;Blythe by name and blithe by nature, one of her teachers
-had said. Her complexion was quite faultless, much to her mother&rsquo;s
-satisfaction.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m so glad I have one daughter who can wear pink,&rdquo; Mrs.
-Blythe was wont to say jubilantly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Diana Blythe, known as Di, was very like her mother, with gray-green eyes that
-always shone with a peculiar lustre and brilliancy in the dusk, and red hair.
-Perhaps this was why she was her father&rsquo;s favourite. She and Walter were
-especial chums; Di was the only one to whom he would ever read the verses he
-wrote himself&mdash;the only one who knew that he was secretly hard at work on
-an epic, strikingly resembling &ldquo;Marmion&rdquo; in some things, if not in
-others. She kept all his secrets, even from Nan, and told him all hers.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Won&rsquo;t you soon have those fish ready, Jem?&rdquo; said Nan,
-sniffing with her dainty nose. &ldquo;The smell makes me awfully hungry.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They&rsquo;re nearly ready,&rdquo; said Jem, giving one a dexterous
-turn. &ldquo;Get out the bread and the plates, girls. Walter, wake up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How the air shines to-night,&rdquo; said Walter dreamily. Not that he
-despised fried trout either, by any means; but with Walter food for the soul
-always took first place. &ldquo;The flower angel has been walking over the
-world to-day, calling to the flowers. I can see his blue wings on that hill by
-the woods.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Any angels&rsquo; wings I ever saw were white,&rdquo; said Nan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The flower angel&rsquo;s aren&rsquo;t. They are a pale misty blue, just
-like the haze in the valley. Oh, how I wish I could fly. It must be
-glorious.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;One does fly in dreams sometimes,&rdquo; said Di.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I never dream that I&rsquo;m flying exactly,&rdquo; said Walter.
-&ldquo;But I often dream that I just rise up from the ground and float over the
-fences and the trees. It&rsquo;s delightful&mdash;and I always think,
-&lsquo;This <i>isn&rsquo;t</i> a dream like it&rsquo;s always been before. <i>This</i> is
-real&rsquo;&mdash;and then I wake up after all, and it&rsquo;s
-heart-breaking.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hurry up, Nan,&rdquo; ordered Jem.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Nan had produced the banquet-board&mdash;a board literally as well as
-figuratively&mdash;from which many a feast, seasoned as no viands were
-elsewhere, had been eaten in Rainbow Valley. It was converted into a table by
-propping it on two large, mossy stones. Newspapers served as tablecloth, and
-broken plates and handleless cups from Susan&rsquo;s discard furnished the
-dishes. From a tin box secreted at the root of a spruce tree Nan brought forth
-bread and salt. The brook gave Adam&rsquo;s ale of unsurpassed crystal. For the
-rest, there was a certain sauce, compounded of fresh air and appetite of youth,
-which gave to everything a divine flavour. To sit in Rainbow Valley, steeped in
-a twilight half gold, half amethyst, rife with the odours of balsam-fir and
-woodsy growing things in their springtime prime, with the pale stars of wild
-strawberry blossoms all around you, and with the sough of the wind and tinkle
-of bells in the shaking tree tops, and eat fried trout and dry bread, was
-something which the mighty of earth might have envied them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Sit in,&rdquo; invited Nan, as Jem placed his sizzling tin platter of
-trout on the table. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s your turn to say grace, Jem.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve done my part frying the trout,&rdquo; protested Jem, who
-hated saying grace. &ldquo;Let Walter say it. He <i>likes</i> saying grace. And cut it
-short, too, Walt. I&rsquo;m starving.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Walter said no grace, short or long, just then. An interruption occurred.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who&rsquo;s coming down from the manse hill?&rdquo; said Di.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap04"></a>CHAPTER IV.<br />
-THE MANSE CHILDREN</h2>
-
-<p>
-Aunt Martha might be, and was, a very poor housekeeper; the Rev. John Knox
-Meredith might be, and was, a very absent-minded, indulgent man. But it could
-not be denied that there was something very homelike and lovable about the Glen
-St. Mary manse in spite of its untidiness. Even the critical housewives of the
-Glen felt it, and were unconsciously mellowed in judgment because of it.
-Perhaps its charm was in part due to accidental circumstances&mdash;the
-luxuriant vines clustering over its gray, clap-boarded walls, the friendly
-acacias and balm-of-gileads that crowded about it with the freedom of old
-acquaintance, and the beautiful views of harbour and sand-dunes from its front
-windows. But these things had been there in the reign of Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s
-predecessor, when the manse had been the primmest, neatest, and dreariest house
-in the Glen. So much of the credit must be given to the personality of its new
-inmates. There was an atmosphere of laughter and comradeship about it; the
-doors were always open; and inner and outer worlds joined hands. Love was the
-only law in Glen St. Mary manse.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The people of his congregation said that Mr. Meredith spoiled his children.
-Very likely he did. It is certain that he could not bear to scold them.
-&ldquo;They have no mother,&rdquo; he used to say to himself, with a sigh, when
-some unusually glaring peccadillo forced itself upon his notice. But he did not
-know the half of their goings-on. He belonged to the sect of dreamers. The
-windows of his study looked out on the graveyard but, as he paced up and down
-the room, reflecting deeply on the immortality of the soul, he was quite
-unaware that Jerry and Carl were playing leap-frog hilariously over the flat
-stones in that abode of dead Methodists. Mr. Meredith had occasional acute
-realizations that his children were not so well looked after, physically or
-morally, as they had been before his wife died, and he had always a dim
-sub-consciousness that house and meals were very different under Aunt
-Martha&rsquo;s management from what they had been under Cecilia&rsquo;s. For
-the rest, he lived in a world of books and abstractions; and, therefore,
-although his clothes were seldom brushed, and although the Glen housewives
-concluded, from the ivory-like pallor of his clear-cut features and slender
-hands, that he never got enough to eat, he was not an unhappy man.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-If ever a graveyard could be called a cheerful place, the old Methodist
-graveyard at Glen St. Mary might be so called. The new graveyard, at the other
-side of the Methodist church, was a neat and proper and doleful spot; but the
-old one had been left so long to Nature&rsquo;s kindly and gracious ministries
-that it had become very pleasant.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was surrounded on three sides by a dyke of stones and sod, topped by a gray
-and uncertain paling. Outside the dyke grew a row of tall fir trees with thick,
-balsamic boughs. The dyke, which had been built by the first settlers of the
-Glen, was old enough to be beautiful, with mosses and green things growing out
-of its crevices, violets purpling at its base in the early spring days, and
-asters and golden-rod making an autumnal glory in its corners. Little ferns
-clustered companionably between its stones, and here and there a big bracken
-grew.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-On the eastern side there was neither fence nor dyke. The graveyard there
-straggled off into a young fir plantation, ever pushing nearer to the graves
-and deepening eastward into a thick wood. The air was always full of the
-harp-like voices of the sea, and the music of gray old trees, and in the spring
-mornings the choruses of birds in the elms around the two churches sang of life
-and not of death. The Meredith children loved the old graveyard.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Blue-eyed ivy, &ldquo;garden-spruce,&rdquo; and mint ran riot over the sunken
-graves. Blueberry bushes grew lavishly in the sandy corner next to the fir
-wood. The varying fashions of tombstones for three generations were to be found
-there, from the flat, oblong, red sandstone slabs of old settlers, down through
-the days of weeping willows and clasped hands, to the latest monstrosities of
-tall &ldquo;monuments&rdquo; and draped urns. One of the latter, the biggest
-and ugliest in the graveyard, was sacred to the memory of a certain Alec Davis
-who had been born a Methodist but had taken to himself a Presbyterian bride of
-the Douglas clan. She had made him turn Presbyterian and kept him toeing the
-Presbyterian mark all his life. But when he died she did not dare to doom him
-to a lonely grave in the Presbyterian graveyard over-harbour. His people were
-all buried in the Methodist cemetery; so Alec Davis went back to his own in
-death and his widow consoled herself by erecting a monument which cost more
-than any of the Methodists could afford. The Meredith children hated it,
-without just knowing why, but they loved the old, flat, bench-like stones with
-the tall grasses growing rankly about them. They made jolly seats for one
-thing. They were all sitting on one now. Jerry, tired of leap frog, was playing
-on a jew&rsquo;s-harp. Carl was lovingly poring over a strange beetle he had
-found; Una was trying to make a doll&rsquo;s dress, and Faith, leaning back on
-her slender brown wrists, was swinging her bare feet in lively time to the
-jew&rsquo;s-harp.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jerry had his father&rsquo;s black hair and large black eyes, but in him the
-latter were flashing instead of dreamy. Faith, who came next to him, wore her
-beauty like a rose, careless and glowing. She had golden-brown eyes,
-golden-brown curls and crimson cheeks. She laughed too much to please her
-father&rsquo;s congregation and had shocked old Mrs. Taylor, the disconsolate
-spouse of several departed husbands, by saucily declaring&mdash;in the
-church-porch at that&mdash;&ldquo;The world <i>isn&rsquo;t</i> a vale of tears, Mrs.
-Taylor. It&rsquo;s a world of laughter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Little dreamy Una was not given to laughter. Her braids of straight, dead-black
-hair betrayed no lawless kinks, and her almond-shaped, dark-blue eyes had
-something wistful and sorrowful in them. Her mouth had a trick of falling open
-over her tiny white teeth, and a shy, meditative smile occasionally crept over
-her small face. She was much more sensitive to public opinion than Faith, and
-had an uneasy consciousness that there was something askew in their way of
-living. She longed to put it right, but did not know how. Now and then she
-dusted the furniture&mdash;but it was so seldom she could find the duster
-because it was never in the same place twice. And when the clothes-brush was to
-be found she tried to brush her father&rsquo;s best suit on Saturdays, and once
-sewed on a missing button with coarse white thread. When Mr. Meredith went to
-church next day every female eye saw that button and the peace of the
-Ladies&rsquo; Aid was upset for weeks.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl had the clear, bright, dark-blue eyes, fearless and direct, of his dead
-mother, and her brown hair with its glints of gold. He knew the secrets of bugs
-and had a sort of freemasonry with bees and beetles. Una never liked to sit
-near him because she never knew what uncanny creature might be secreted about
-him. Jerry refused to sleep with him because Carl had once taken a young garter
-snake to bed with him; so Carl slept in his old cot, which was so short that he
-could never stretch out, and had strange bed-fellows. Perhaps it was just as
-well that Aunt Martha was half blind when she made that bed. Altogether they
-were a jolly, lovable little crew, and Cecilia Meredith&rsquo;s heart must have
-ached bitterly when she faced the knowledge that she must leave them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where would you like to be buried if you were a Methodist?&rdquo; asked
-Faith cheerfully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This opened up an interesting field of speculation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There isn&rsquo;t much choice. The place is full,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-&ldquo;<i>I&rsquo;d</i> like that corner near the road, I guess. I could hear the
-teams going past and the people talking.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;d like that little hollow under the weeping birch,&rdquo; said
-Una. &ldquo;That birch is such a place for birds and they sing like mad in the
-mornings.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;d take the Porter lot where there&rsquo;s so many children
-buried. <i>I</i> like lots of company,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;Carl,
-where&rsquo;d you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;d rather not be buried at all,&rdquo; said Carl, &ldquo;but if I
-had to be I&rsquo;d like the ant-bed. Ants are <i>awf&rsquo;ly</i>
-int&rsquo;resting.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How very good all the people who are buried here must have been,&rdquo;
-said Una, who had been reading the laudatory old epitaphs. &ldquo;There
-doesn&rsquo;t seem to be a single bad person in the whole graveyard. Methodists
-must be better than Presbyterians after all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maybe the Methodists bury their bad people just like they do
-cats,&rdquo; suggested Carl. &ldquo;Maybe they don&rsquo;t bother bringing them
-to the graveyard at all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;The people that are buried here
-weren&rsquo;t any better than other folks, Una. But when anyone is dead you
-mustn&rsquo;t say anything of him but good or he&rsquo;ll come back and
-ha&rsquo;nt you. Aunt Martha told me that. I asked father if it was true and he
-just looked through me and muttered, &lsquo;True? True? What is truth? What <i>is</i>
-truth, O jesting Pilate?&rsquo; I concluded from that it must be true.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wonder if Mr. Alec Davis would come back and ha&rsquo;nt me if I threw
-a stone at the urn on top of his tombstone,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Davis would,&rdquo; giggled Faith. &ldquo;She just watches us in
-church like a cat watching mice. Last Sunday I made a face at her nephew and he
-made one back at me and you should have seen her glare. I&rsquo;ll bet she
-boxed <i>his</i> ears when they got out. Mrs. Marshall Elliott told me we
-mustn&rsquo;t offend her on any account or I&rsquo;d have made a face at her,
-too!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They say Jem Blythe stuck out his tongue at her once and she would never
-have his father again, even when her husband was dying,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-&ldquo;I wonder what the Blythe gang will be like.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I liked their looks,&rdquo; said Faith. The manse children had been at
-the station that afternoon when the Blythe small fry had arrived. &ldquo;I
-liked Jem&rsquo;s looks <i>especially</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They say in school that Walter&rsquo;s a sissy,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe it,&rdquo; said Una, who had thought Walter very
-handsome.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, he writes poetry, anyhow. He won the prize the teacher offered
-last year for writing a poem, Bertie Shakespeare Drew told me. Bertie&rsquo;s
-mother thought <i>he</i> should have got the prize because of his name, but Bertie
-said he couldn&rsquo;t write poetry to save his soul, name or no name.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose we&rsquo;ll get acquainted with them as soon as they begin
-going to school,&rdquo; mused Faith. &ldquo;I hope the girls are nice. I
-don&rsquo;t like most of the girls round here. Even the nice ones are poky. But
-the Blythe twins look jolly. I thought twins always looked alike, but they
-don&rsquo;t. I think the red-haired one is the nicest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I liked their mother&rsquo;s looks,&rdquo; said Una with a little sigh.
-Una envied all children their mothers. She had been only six when her mother
-died, but she had some very precious memories, treasured in her soul like
-jewels, of twilight cuddlings and morning frolics, of loving eyes, a tender
-voice, and the sweetest, gayest laugh.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They say she isn&rsquo;t like other people,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliot says that is because she never really grew up,&rdquo; said
-Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She&rsquo;s taller than Mrs. Elliott.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, yes, but it is inside&mdash;Mrs. Elliot says Mrs. Blythe just
-stayed a little girl inside.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What do I smell?&rdquo; interrupted Carl, sniffing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They all smelled it now. A most delectable odour came floating up on the still
-evening air from the direction of the little woodsy dell below the manse hill.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That makes me hungry,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We had only bread and molasses for supper and cold ditto for
-dinner,&rdquo; said Una plaintively.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Aunt Martha&rsquo;s habit was to boil a large slab of mutton early in the week
-and serve it up every day, cold and greasy, as long as it lasted. To this
-Faith, in a moment of inspiration, had give the name of &ldquo;ditto&rdquo;,
-and by this it was invariably known at the manse.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let&rsquo;s go and see where that smell is coming from,&rdquo; said
-Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They all sprang up, frolicked over the lawn with the abandon of young puppies,
-climbed a fence, and tore down the mossy slope, guided by the savory lure that
-ever grew stronger. A few minutes later they arrived breathlessly in the
-sanctum sanctorum of Rainbow Valley where the Blythe children were just about
-to give thanks and eat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They halted shyly. Una wished they had not been so precipitate: but Di Blythe
-was equal to that and any occasion. She stepped forward, with a comrade&rsquo;s
-smile.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I guess I know who you are,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;You belong to the
-manse, don&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith nodded, her face creased by dimples.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We smelled your trout cooking and wondered what it was.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You must sit down and help us eat them,&rdquo; said Di.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maybe you haven&rsquo;t more than you want yourselves,&rdquo; said
-Jerry, looking hungrily at the tin platter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ve heaps&mdash;three apiece,&rdquo; said Jem. &ldquo;Sit
-down.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-No more ceremony was necessary. Down they all sat on mossy stones. Merry was
-that feast and long. Nan and Di would probably have died of horror had they
-known what Faith and Una knew perfectly well&mdash;that Carl had two young mice
-in his jacket pocket. But they never knew it, so it never hurt them. Where can
-folks get better acquainted than over a meal table? When the last trout had
-vanished, the manse children and the Ingleside children were sworn friends and
-allies. They had always known each other and always would. The race of Joseph
-recognized its own.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They poured out the history of their little pasts. The manse children heard of
-Avonlea and Green Gables, of Rainbow Valley traditions, and of the little house
-by the harbour shore where Jem had been born. The Ingleside children heard of
-Maywater, where the Merediths had lived before coming to the Glen, of
-Una&rsquo;s beloved, one-eyed doll and Faith&rsquo;s pet rooster.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith was inclined to resent the fact that people laughed at her for petting a
-rooster. She liked the Blythes because they accepted it without question.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;A handsome rooster like Adam is just as nice a pet as a dog or cat,
-<i>I</i> think,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;If he was a canary nobody would wonder.
-And I brought him up from a little, wee, yellow chicken. Mrs. Johnson at
-Maywater gave him to me. A weasel had killed all his brothers and sisters. I
-called him after her husband. I never liked dolls or cats. Cats are too sneaky
-and dolls are <i>dead</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who lives in that house away up there?&rdquo; asked Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The Miss Wests&mdash;Rosemary and Ellen,&rdquo; answered Nan. &ldquo;Di
-and I are going to take music lessons from Miss Rosemary this summer.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una gazed at the lucky twins with eyes whose longing was too gentle for envy.
-Oh, if she could only have music lessons! It was one of the dreams of her
-little hidden life. But nobody ever thought of such a thing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Miss Rosemary is so sweet and she always dresses so pretty,&rdquo; said
-Di. &ldquo;Her hair is just the colour of new molasses taffy,&rdquo; she added
-wistfully&mdash;for Di, like her mother before her, was not resigned to her own
-ruddy tresses.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I like Miss Ellen, too,&rdquo; said Nan. &ldquo;She always used to give
-me candies when she came to church. But Di is afraid of her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Her brows are so black and she has such a great deep voice,&rdquo; said
-Di. &ldquo;Oh, how scared of her Kenneth Ford used to be when he was little!
-Mother says the first Sunday Mrs. Ford brought him to church Miss Ellen
-happened to be there, sitting right behind them. And the minute Kenneth saw her
-he just screamed and screamed until Mrs. Ford had to carry him out.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who is Mrs. Ford?&rdquo; asked Una wonderingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, the Fords don&rsquo;t live here. They only come here in the summer.
-And they&rsquo;re not coming this summer. They live in that little house
-&lsquo;way, &lsquo;way down on the harbour shore where father and mother used
-to live. I wish you could see Persis Ford. She is just like a picture.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve heard of Mrs. Ford,&rdquo; broke in Faith. &ldquo;Bertie
-Shakespeare Drew told me about her. She was married fourteen years to a dead
-man and then he came to life.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense,&rdquo; said Nan. &ldquo;That isn&rsquo;t the way it goes at
-all. Bertie Shakespeare can never get anything straight. I know the whole story
-and I&rsquo;ll tell it to you some time, but not now, for it&rsquo;s too long
-and it&rsquo;s time for us to go home. Mother doesn&rsquo;t like us to be out
-late these damp evenings.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Nobody cared whether the manse children were out in the damp or not. Aunt
-Martha was already in bed and the minister was still too deeply lost in
-speculations concerning the immortality of the soul to remember the mortality
-of the body. But they went home, too, with visions of good times coming in
-their heads.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think Rainbow Valley is even nicer than the graveyard,&rdquo; said
-Una. &ldquo;And I just love those dear Blythes. It&rsquo;s <i>so</i> nice when you can
-love people because so often you <i>can&rsquo;t</i>. Father said in his sermon last
-Sunday that we should love everybody. But how can we? How could we love Mrs.
-Alec Davis?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, father only said that in the pulpit,&rdquo; said Faith airily.
-&ldquo;He has more sense than to really think it outside.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Blythe children went up to Ingleside, except Jem, who slipped away for a
-few moments on a solitary expedition to a remote corner of Rainbow Valley.
-Mayflowers grew there and Jem never forgot to take his mother a bouquet as long
-as they lasted.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap05"></a>CHAPTER V.<br />
-THE ADVENT OF MARY VANCE</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This is just the sort of day you feel as if things might happen,&rdquo;
-said Faith, responsive to the lure of crystal air and blue hills. She hugged
-herself with delight and danced a hornpipe on old Hezekiah Pollock&rsquo;s
-bench tombstone, much to the horror of two ancient maidens who happened to be
-driving past just as Faith hopped on one foot around the stone, waving the
-other and her arms in the air.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And that,&rdquo; groaned one ancient maiden, &ldquo;is our
-minister&rsquo;s daughter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What else could you expect of a widower&rsquo;s family?&rdquo; groaned
-the other ancient maiden. And then they both shook their heads.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was early on Saturday morning and the Merediths were out in the dew-drenched
-world with a delightful consciousness of the holiday. They had never had
-anything to do on a holiday. Even Nan and Di Blythe had certain household tasks
-for Saturday mornings, but the daughters of the manse were free to roam from
-blushing morn to dewy eve if so it pleased them. It <i>did</i> please Faith, but Una
-felt a secret, bitter humiliation because they never learned to do anything.
-The other girls in her class at school could cook and sew and knit; she only
-was a little ignoramus.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jerry suggested that they go exploring; so they went lingeringly through the
-fir grove, picking up Carl on the way, who was on his knees in the dripping
-grass studying his darling ants. Beyond the grove they came out in Mr.
-Taylor&rsquo;s pasture field, sprinkled over with the white ghosts of
-dandelions; in a remote corner was an old tumbledown barn, where Mr. Taylor
-sometimes stored his surplus hay crop but which was never used for any other
-purpose. Thither the Meredith children trooped, and prowled about the ground
-floor for several minutes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What was that?&rdquo; whispered Una suddenly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They all listened. There was a faint but distinct rustle in the hayloft above.
-The Merediths looked at each other.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s something up there,&rdquo; breathed Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m going up to see what it is,&rdquo; said Jerry resolutely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, don&rsquo;t,&rdquo; begged Una, catching his arm.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m going.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll all go, too, then,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The whole four climbed the shaky ladder, Jerry and Faith quite dauntless, Una
-pale from fright, and Carl rather absent-mindedly speculating on the
-possibility of finding a bat up in the loft. He longed to see a bat in
-daylight.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When they stepped off the ladder they saw what had made the rustle and the
-sight struck them dumb for a few moments.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In a little nest in the hay a girl was curled up, looking as if she had just
-wakened from sleep. When she saw them she stood up, rather shakily, as it
-seemed, and in the bright sunlight that streamed through the cobwebbed window
-behind her, they saw that her thin, sunburned face was very pale under its tan.
-She had two braids of lank, thick, tow-coloured hair and very odd
-eyes&mdash;&ldquo;white eyes,&rdquo; the manse children thought, as she stared
-at them half defiantly, half piteously. They were really of so pale a blue that
-they did seem almost white, especially when contrasted with the narrow black
-ring that circled the iris. She was barefooted and bareheaded, and was clad in
-a faded, ragged, old plaid dress, much too short and tight for her. As for
-years, she might have been almost any age, judging from her wizened little
-face, but her height seemed to be somewhere in the neighbourhood of twelve.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who are you?&rdquo; asked Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The girl looked about her as if seeking a way of escape. Then she seemed to
-give in with a little shiver of despair.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m Mary Vance,&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where&rsquo;d you come from?&rdquo; pursued Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary, instead of replying, suddenly sat, or fell, down on the hay and began to
-cry. Instantly Faith had flung herself down beside her and put her arm around
-the thin, shaking shoulders.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You stop bothering her,&rdquo; she commanded Jerry. Then she hugged the
-waif. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t cry, dear. Just tell us what&rsquo;s the matter.
-<i>We&rsquo;re</i> friends.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m so&mdash;so&mdash;hungry,&rdquo; wailed Mary. &ldquo;I&mdash;I
-hain&rsquo;t had a thing to eat since Thursday morning, &lsquo;cept a little
-water from the brook out there.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The manse children gazed at each other in horror. Faith sprang up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You come right up to the manse and get something to eat before you say
-another word.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary shrank.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh&mdash;I can&rsquo;t. What will your pa and ma say? Besides,
-they&rsquo;d send me back.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ve no mother, and father won&rsquo;t bother about you. Neither
-will Aunt Martha. Come, I say.&rdquo; Faith stamped her foot impatiently. Was
-this queer girl going to insist on starving to death almost at their very door?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary yielded. She was so weak that she could hardly climb down the ladder, but
-somehow they got her down and over the field and into the manse kitchen. Aunt
-Martha, muddling through her Saturday cooking, took no notice of her. Faith and
-Una flew to the pantry and ransacked it for such eatables as it
-contained&mdash;some &ldquo;ditto,&rdquo; bread, butter, milk and a doubtful
-pie. Mary Vance attacked the food ravenously and uncritically, while the manse
-children stood around and watched her. Jerry noticed that she had a pretty
-mouth and very nice, even, white teeth. Faith decided, with secret horror, that
-Mary had not one stitch on her except that ragged, faded dress. Una was full of
-pure pity, Carl of amused wonder, and all of them of curiosity.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now come out to the graveyard and tell us about yourself,&rdquo; ordered
-Faith, when Mary&rsquo;s appetite showed signs of failing her. Mary was now
-nothing loath. Food had restored her natural vivacity and unloosed her by no
-means reluctant tongue.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You won&rsquo;t tell your pa or anybody if I tell you?&rdquo; she
-stipulated, when she was enthroned on Mr. Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone. Opposite
-her the manse children lined up on another. Here was spice and mystery and
-adventure. Something <i>had</i> happened.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, we won&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Cross your hearts?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Cross our hearts.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I&rsquo;ve run away. I was living with Mrs. Wiley over-harbour. Do
-you know Mrs. Wiley?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you don&rsquo;t want to know her. She&rsquo;s an awful woman. My,
-how I hate her! She worked me to death and wouldn&rsquo;t give me half enough
-to eat, and she used to larrup me &lsquo;most every day. Look a-here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary rolled up her ragged sleeves, and held up her scrawny arms and thin hands,
-chapped almost to rawness. They were black with bruises. The manse children
-shivered. Faith flushed crimson with indignation. Una&rsquo;s blue eyes filled
-with tears.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She licked me Wednesday night with a stick,&rdquo; said Mary,
-indifferently. &ldquo;It was &lsquo;cause I let the cow kick over a pail of
-milk. How&rsquo;d I know the darn old cow was going to kick?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A not unpleasant thrill ran over her listeners. They would never dream of using
-such dubious words, but it was rather titivating to hear someone else use
-them&mdash;and a girl, at that. Certainly this Mary Vance was an interesting
-creature.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t blame you for running away,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I didn&rsquo;t run away &lsquo;cause she licked me. A licking was
-all in the day&rsquo;s work with me. I was darn well used to it. Nope,
-I&rsquo;d meant to run away for a week &lsquo;cause I&rsquo;d found out that
-Mrs. Wiley was going to rent her farm and go to Lowbridge to live and give me
-to a cousin of hers up Charlottetown way. I wasn&rsquo;t going to stand for
-<i>that</i>. She was a worse sort than Mrs. Wiley even. Mrs. Wiley lent me to her for
-a month last summer and I&rsquo;d rather live with the devil himself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Sensation number two. But Una looked doubtful.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So I made up my mind I&rsquo;d beat it. I had seventy cents saved up
-that Mrs. John Crawford give me in the spring for planting potatoes for her.
-Mrs. Wiley didn&rsquo;t know about it. She was away visiting her cousin when I
-planted them. I thought I&rsquo;d sneak up here to the Glen and buy a ticket to
-Charlottetown and try to get work there. I&rsquo;m a hustler, let me tell you.
-There ain&rsquo;t a lazy bone in <i>my</i> body. So I lit out Thursday morning
-&lsquo;fore Mrs. Wiley was up and walked to the Glen&mdash;six miles. And when
-I got to the station I found I&rsquo;d lost my money. Dunno how&mdash;dunno
-where. Anyhow, it was gone. I didn&rsquo;t know what to do. If I went back to
-old Lady Wiley she&rsquo;d take the hide off me. So I went and hid in that old
-barn.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And what will you do now?&rdquo; asked Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dunno. I s&rsquo;pose I&rsquo;ll have to go back and take my medicine.
-Now that I&rsquo;ve got some grub in my stomach I guess I can stand it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But there was fear behind the bravado in Mary&rsquo;s eyes. Una suddenly
-slipped from the one tombstone to the other and put her arm about Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t go back. Just stay here with us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mrs. Wiley&rsquo;ll hunt me up,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s
-likely she&rsquo;s on my trail before this. I might stay here till she finds
-me, I s&rsquo;pose, if your folks don&rsquo;t mind. I was a darn fool ever to
-think of skipping out. She&rsquo;d run a weasel to earth. But I was so
-misrebul.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary&rsquo;s voice quivered, but she was ashamed of showing her weakness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hain&rsquo;t had the life of a dog for these four years,&rdquo; she
-explained defiantly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;ve been four years with Mrs. Wiley?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yip. She took me out of the asylum over in Hopetown when I was
-eight.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s the same place Mrs. Blythe came from,&rdquo; exclaimed
-Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I was two years in the asylum. I was put there when I was six. My ma had
-hung herself and my pa had cut his throat.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Holy cats! Why?&rdquo; said Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Booze,&rdquo; said Mary laconically.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And you&rsquo;ve no relations?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not a darn one that I know of. Must have had some once, though. I was
-called after half a dozen of them. My full name is Mary Martha Lucilla Moore
-Ball Vance. Can you beat that? My grandfather was a rich man. I&rsquo;ll bet he
-was richer than <i>your</i> grandfather. But pa drunk it all up and ma, she did her
-part. <i>They</i> used to beat me, too. Laws, I&rsquo;ve been licked so much I kind of
-like it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary tossed her head. She divined that the manse children were pitying her for
-her many stripes and she did not want pity. She wanted to be envied. She looked
-gaily about her. Her strange eyes, now that the dullness of famine was removed
-from them, were brilliant. She would show these youngsters what a personage she
-was.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve been sick an awful lot,&rdquo; she said proudly.
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s not many kids could have come through what I have.
-I&rsquo;ve had scarlet fever and measles and ersipelas and mumps and whooping
-cough and pewmonia.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Were you ever fatally sick?&rdquo; asked Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know,&rdquo; said Mary doubtfully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course she wasn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; scoffed Jerry. &ldquo;If you&rsquo;re
-fatally sick you die.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, well, I never died exactly,&rdquo; said Mary, &ldquo;but I come
-blamed near it once. They thought I was dead and they were getting ready to lay
-me out when I up and come to.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is it like to be half dead?&rdquo; asked Jerry curiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Like nothing. I didn&rsquo;t know it for days afterwards. It was when I
-had the pewmonia. Mrs. Wiley wouldn&rsquo;t have the doctor&mdash;said she
-wasn&rsquo;t going to no such expense for a home girl. Old Aunt Christina
-MacAllister nursed me with poultices. She brung me round. But sometimes I wish
-I&rsquo;d just died the other half and done with it. I&rsquo;d been better
-off.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If you went to heaven I s&rsquo;pose you would,&rdquo; said Faith,
-rather doubtfully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, what other place is there to go to?&rdquo; demanded Mary in a
-puzzled voice.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s hell, you know,&rdquo; said Una, dropping her voice and
-hugging Mary to lessen the awfulness of the suggestion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hell? What&rsquo;s that?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, it&rsquo;s where the devil lives,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;ve heard of him&mdash;you spoke about him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, yes, but I didn&rsquo;t know he lived anywhere. I thought he just
-roamed round. Mr. Wiley used to mention hell when he was alive. He was always
-telling folks to go there. I thought it was some place over in New Brunswick
-where he come from.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hell is an awful place,&rdquo; said Faith, with the dramatic enjoyment
-that is born of telling dreadful things. &ldquo;Bad people go there when they
-die and burn in fire for ever and ever and ever.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who told you that?&rdquo; demanded Mary incredulously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s in the Bible. And Mr. Isaac Crothers at Maywater told us,
-too, in Sunday School. He was an elder and a pillar in the church and knew all
-about it. But you needn&rsquo;t worry. If you&rsquo;re good you&rsquo;ll go to
-heaven and if you&rsquo;re bad I guess you&rsquo;d rather go to hell.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wouldn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said Mary positively. &ldquo;No matter how bad
-I was I wouldn&rsquo;t want to be burned and burned. <i>I</i> know what
-it&rsquo;s like. I picked up a red hot poker once by accident. What must you do
-to be good?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You must go to church and Sunday School and read your Bible and pray
-every night and give to missions,&rdquo; said Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It sounds like a large order,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;Anything
-else?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You must ask God to forgive the sins you&rsquo;ve committed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But I&rsquo;ve never com&mdash;committed any,&rdquo; said Mary.
-&ldquo;What&rsquo;s a sin any way?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary, you must have. Everybody does. Did you never tell a
-lie?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Heaps of &lsquo;em,&rdquo; said Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s a dreadful sin,&rdquo; said Una solemnly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you mean to tell me,&rdquo; demanded Mary, &ldquo;that I&rsquo;d be
-sent to hell for telling a lie now and then? Why, I <i>had</i> to. Mr. Wiley would
-have broken every bone in my body one time if I hadn&rsquo;t told him a lie.
-Lies have saved me many a whack, I can tell you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una sighed. Here were too many difficulties for her to solve. She shuddered as
-she thought of being cruelly whipped. Very likely she would have lied too. She
-squeezed Mary&rsquo;s little calloused hand.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is that the only dress you&rsquo;ve got?&rdquo; asked Faith, whose
-joyous nature refused to dwell on disagreeable subjects.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I just put on this dress because it was no good,&rdquo; cried Mary
-flushing. &ldquo;Mrs. Wiley&rsquo;d bought my clothes and I wasn&rsquo;t going
-to be beholden to her for anything. And I&rsquo;m honest. If I was going to run
-away I wasn&rsquo;t going to take what belong to <i>her</i> that was worth anything.
-When I grow up I&rsquo;m going to have a blue sating dress. Your own clothes
-don&rsquo;t look so stylish. I thought ministers&rsquo; children were always
-dressed up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was plain that Mary had a temper and was sensitive on some points. But there
-was a queer, wild charm about her which captivated them all. She was taken to
-Rainbow Valley that afternoon and introduced to the Blythes as &ldquo;a friend
-of ours from over-harbour who is visiting us.&rdquo; The Blythes accepted her
-unquestioningly, perhaps because she was fairly respectable now. After
-dinner&mdash;through which Aunt Martha had mumbled and Mr. Meredith had been in
-a state of semi-unconsciousness while brooding his Sunday sermon&mdash;Faith
-had prevailed on Mary to put on one of her dresses, as well as certain other
-articles of clothing. With her hair neatly braided Mary passed muster tolerably
-well. She was an acceptable playmate, for she knew several new and exciting
-games, and her conversation lacked not spice. In fact, some of her expressions
-made Nan and Di look at her rather askance. They were not quite sure what their
-mother would have thought of her, but they knew quite well what Susan would.
-However, she was a visitor at the manse, so she must be all right.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When bedtime came there was the problem of where Mary should sleep.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We can&rsquo;t put her in the spare room, you know,&rdquo; said Faith
-perplexedly to Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I haven&rsquo;t got anything in my head,&rdquo; cried Mary in an injured
-tone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I didn&rsquo;t mean <i>that</i>,&rdquo; protested Faith. &ldquo;The spare
-room is all torn up. The mice have gnawed a big hole in the feather tick and
-made a nest in it. We never found it out till Aunt Martha put the Rev. Mr.
-Fisher from Charlottetown there to sleep last week. <i>He</i> soon found it out. Then
-father had to give him his bed and sleep on the study lounge. Aunt Martha
-hasn&rsquo;t had time to fix the spare room bed up yet, so she says; so <i>nobody</i>
-can sleep there, no matter how clean their heads are. And our room is so small,
-and the bed so small you can&rsquo;t sleep with us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I can go back to the hay in the old barn for the night if you&rsquo;ll
-lend me a quilt,&rdquo; said Mary philosophically. &ldquo;It was kind of chilly
-last night, but &lsquo;cept for that I&rsquo;ve had worse beds.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, no, no, you mustn&rsquo;t do that,&rdquo; said Una.
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve thought of a plan, Faith. You know that little trestle bed in
-the garret room, with the old mattress on it, that the last minister left
-there? Let&rsquo;s take up the spare room bedclothes and make Mary a bed there.
-You won&rsquo;t mind sleeping in the garret, will you, Mary? It&rsquo;s just
-above our room.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Any place&rsquo;ll do me. Laws, I never had a decent place to sleep in
-my life. I slept in the loft over the kitchen at Mrs. Wiley&rsquo;s. The roof
-leaked rain in the summer and the snow druv in in winter. My bed was a straw
-tick on the floor. You won&rsquo;t find me a mite huffy about where <i>I</i>
-sleep.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The manse garret was a long, low, shadowy place, with one gable end partitioned
-off. Here a bed was made up for Mary of the dainty hemstitched sheets and
-embroidered spread which Cecilia Meredith had once so proudly made for her
-spare-room, and which still survived Aunt Martha&rsquo;s uncertain washings.
-The good nights were said and silence fell over the manse. Una was just falling
-asleep when she heard a sound in the room just above that made her sit up
-suddenly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Listen, Faith&mdash;Mary&rsquo;s crying,&rdquo; she whispered. Faith
-replied not, being already asleep. Una slipped out of bed, and made her way in
-her little white gown down the hall and up the garret stairs. The creaking
-floor gave ample notice of her coming, and when she reached the corner room all
-was moonlit silence and the trestle bed showed only a hump in the middle.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mary,&rdquo; whispered Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was no response.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una crept close to the bed and pulled at the spread. &ldquo;Mary, I know you
-are crying. I heard you. Are you lonesome?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary suddenly appeared to view but said nothing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let me in beside you. I&rsquo;m cold,&rdquo; said Una shivering in the
-chilly air, for the little garret window was open and the keen breath of the
-north shore at night blew in.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary moved over and Una snuggled down beside her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Now</i> you won&rsquo;t be lonesome. We shouldn&rsquo;t have left you here
-alone the first night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wasn&rsquo;t lonesome,&rdquo; sniffed Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What were you crying for then?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I just got to thinking of things when I was here alone. I thought of
-having to go back to Mrs. Wiley&mdash;and of being licked for running
-away&mdash;and&mdash;and&mdash;and of going to hell for telling lies. It all
-worried me something scandalous.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary,&rdquo; said poor Una in distress. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe
-God will send you to hell for telling lies when you didn&rsquo;t know it was
-wrong. He <i>couldn&rsquo;t</i>. Why, He&rsquo;s kind and good. Of course, you
-mustn&rsquo;t tell any more now that you know it&rsquo;s wrong.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If I can&rsquo;t tell lies what&rsquo;s to become of me?&rdquo; said
-Mary with a sob. &ldquo;<i>You</i> don&rsquo;t understand. You don&rsquo;t know
-anything about it. You&rsquo;ve got a home and a kind father&mdash;though it
-does seem to me that he isn&rsquo;t more&rsquo;n about half there. But anyway
-he doesn&rsquo;t lick you, and you get enough to eat such as it is&mdash;though
-that old aunt of yours doesn&rsquo;t know <i>anything</i> about cooking. Why, this is
-the first day I ever remember of feeling &lsquo;sif I&rsquo;d enough to eat.
-I&rsquo;ve been knocked about all of my life, &lsquo;cept for the two years I
-was at the asylum. They didn&rsquo;t lick me there and it wasn&rsquo;t too bad,
-though the matron was cross. She always looked ready to bite my head off a
-nail. But Mrs. Wiley is a holy terror, that&rsquo;s what <i>she</i> is, and I&rsquo;m
-just scared stiff when I think of going back to her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Perhaps you won&rsquo;t have to. Perhaps we&rsquo;ll be able to think of
-a way out. Let&rsquo;s both ask God to keep you from having to go back to Mrs.
-Wiley. You say your prayers, don&rsquo;t you Mary?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, yes, I always go over an old rhyme &lsquo;fore I get into
-bed,&rdquo; said Mary indifferently. &ldquo;I never thought of asking for
-anything in particular though. Nobody in this world ever bothered themselves
-about me so I didn&rsquo;t s&rsquo;pose God would. He <i>might</i> take more trouble
-for you, seeing you&rsquo;re a minister&rsquo;s daughter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He&rsquo;d take every bit as much trouble for you, Mary, I&rsquo;m
-sure,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;It doesn&rsquo;t matter whose child you are. You
-just ask Him&mdash;and I will, too.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right,&rdquo; agreed Mary. &ldquo;It won&rsquo;t do any harm if it
-doesn&rsquo;t do much good. If you knew Mrs. Wiley as well as I do you
-wouldn&rsquo;t think God would want to meddle with her. Anyhow, I won&rsquo;t
-cry any more about it. This is a big sight better&rsquo;n last night down in
-that old barn, with the mice running about. Look at the Four Winds light.
-Ain&rsquo;t it pretty?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This is the only window we can see it from,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;I
-love to watch it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you? So do I. I could see it from the Wiley loft and it was the only
-comfort I had. When I was all sore from being licked I&rsquo;d watch it and
-forget about the places that hurt. I&rsquo;d think of the ships sailing away
-and away from it and wish I was on one of them sailing far away too&mdash;away
-from everything. On winter nights when it didn&rsquo;t shine, I just felt real
-lonesome. Say, Una, what makes all you folks so kind to me when I&rsquo;m just
-a stranger?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because it&rsquo;s right to be. The bible tells us to be kind to
-everybody.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Does it? Well, I guess most folks don&rsquo;t mind it much then. I never
-remember of any one being kind to me before&mdash;true&rsquo;s you live I
-don&rsquo;t. Say, Una, ain&rsquo;t them shadows on the walls pretty? They look
-just like a flock of little dancing birds. And say, Una, I like all you folks
-and them Blythe boys and Di, but I don&rsquo;t like that Nan. She&rsquo;s a
-proud one.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, no, Mary, she isn&rsquo;t a bit proud,&rdquo; said Una eagerly.
-&ldquo;Not a single bit.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t tell me. Any one that holds her head like that <i>is</i> proud. I
-don&rsquo;t like her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>We</i> all like her very much.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I s&rsquo;pose you like her better&rsquo;n me?&rdquo; said Mary
-jealously. &ldquo;Do you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Mary&mdash;we&rsquo;ve known her for weeks and we&rsquo;ve only
-known you a few hours,&rdquo; stammered Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So you do like her better then?&rdquo; said Mary in a rage. &ldquo;All
-right! Like her all you want to. <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t care. <i>I</i> can get
-along without you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She flung herself over against the wall of the garret with a slam.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary,&rdquo; said Una, pushing a tender arm over Mary&rsquo;s
-uncompromising back, &ldquo;don&rsquo;t talk like that. I <i>do</i> like you ever so
-much. And you make me feel so bad.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-No answer. Presently Una gave a sob. Instantly Mary squirmed around again and
-engulfed Una in a bear&rsquo;s hug.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hush up,&rdquo; she ordered. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t go crying over what I
-said. I was as mean as the devil to talk that way. I orter to be skinned
-alive&mdash;and you all so good to me. I should think you <i>would</i> like any one
-better&rsquo;n me. I deserve every licking I ever got. Hush, now. If you cry
-any more I&rsquo;ll go and walk right down to the harbour in this night-dress
-and drown myself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This terrible threat made Una choke back her sobs. Her tears were wiped away by
-Mary with the lace frill of the spare-room pillow and forgiver and forgiven
-cuddled down together again, harmony restored, to watch the shadows of the vine
-leaves on the moonlit wall until they fell asleep.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And in the study below Rev. John Meredith walked the floor with rapt face and
-shining eyes, thinking out his message of the morrow, and knew not that under
-his own roof there was a little forlorn soul, stumbling in darkness and
-ignorance, beset by terror and compassed about with difficulties too great for
-it to grapple in its unequal struggle with a big indifferent world.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap06"></a>CHAPTER VI.<br />
-MARY STAYS AT THE MANSE</h2>
-
-<p>
-The manse children took Mary Vance to church with them the next day. At first
-Mary objected to the idea.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Didn&rsquo;t you go to church over-harbour?&rdquo; asked Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You bet. Mrs. Wiley never troubled church much, but I went every Sunday
-I could get off. I was mighty thankful to go to some place where I could sit
-down for a spell. But I can&rsquo;t go to church in this old ragged
-dress.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This difficulty was removed by Faith offering the loan of her second best
-dress.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s faded a little and two of the buttons are off, but I guess
-it&rsquo;ll do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll sew the buttons on in a jiffy,&rdquo; said Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not on Sunday,&rdquo; said Una, shocked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Sure. The better the day the better the deed. You just gimme a needle
-and thread and look the other way if you&rsquo;re squeamish.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith&rsquo;s school boots, and an old black velvet cap that had once been
-Cecilia Meredith&rsquo;s, completed Mary&rsquo;s costume, and to church she
-went. Her behaviour was quite conventional, and though some wondered who the
-shabby little girl with the manse children was she did not attract much
-attention. She listened to the sermon with outward decorum and joined lustily
-in the singing. She had, it appeared, a clear, strong voice and a good ear.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;His blood can make the <i>violets</i> clean,&rdquo; carolled Mary blithely.
-Mrs. Jimmy Milgrave, whose pew was just in front of the manse pew, turned
-suddenly and looked the child over from top to toe. Mary, in a mere superfluity
-of naughtiness, stuck out her tongue at Mrs. Milgrave, much to Una&rsquo;s
-horror.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I couldn&rsquo;t help it,&rdquo; she declared after church.
-&ldquo;What&rsquo;d she want to stare at me like that for? Such manners!
-I&rsquo;m <i>glad</i> stuck my tongue out at her. I wish I&rsquo;d stuck it farther
-out. Say, I saw Rob MacAllister from over-harbour there. Wonder if he&rsquo;ll
-tell Mrs. Wiley on me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-No Mrs. Wiley appeared, however, and in a few day the children forgot to look
-for her. Mary was apparently a fixture at the manse. But she refused to go to
-school with the others.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nope. I&rsquo;ve finished my education,&rdquo; she said, when Faith
-urged her to go. &ldquo;I went to school four winters since I come to Mrs.
-Wiley&rsquo;s and I&rsquo;ve had all I want of <i>that</i>. I&rsquo;m sick and tired
-of being everlastingly jawed at &lsquo;cause I didn&rsquo;t get my home-lessons
-done. <i>I&rsquo;d</i> no time to do home-lessons.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Our teacher won&rsquo;t jaw you. He is awfully nice,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I ain&rsquo;t going. I can read and write and cipher up to
-fractions. That&rsquo;s all I want. You fellows go and I&rsquo;ll stay home.
-You needn&rsquo;t be scared I&rsquo;ll steal anything. I swear I&rsquo;m
-honest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary employed herself while the others were at school in cleaning up the manse.
-In a few days it was a different place. Floors were swept, furniture dusted,
-everything straightened out. She mended the spare-room bed-tick, she sewed on
-missing buttons, she patched clothes neatly, she even invaded the study with
-broom and dustpan and ordered Mr. Meredith out while she put it to rights. But
-there was one department with which Aunt Martha refused to let her interfere.
-Aunt Martha might be deaf and half blind and very childish, but she was
-resolved to keep the commissariat in her own hands, in spite of all
-Mary&rsquo;s wiles and stratagems.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I can tell you if old Martha&rsquo;d let <i>me</i> cook you&rsquo;d have some
-decent meals,&rdquo; she told the manse children indignantly.
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;d be no more &lsquo;ditto&rsquo;&mdash;and no more lumpy
-porridge and blue milk either. What <i>does</i> she do with all the cream?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She gives it to the cat. He&rsquo;s hers, you know,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;d like to <i>cat</i> her,&rdquo; exclaimed Mary bitterly.
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve no use for cats anyhow. They belong to the old Nick. You can
-tell that by their eyes. Well, if old Martha won&rsquo;t, she won&rsquo;t, I
-s&rsquo;pose. But it gits on my nerves to see good vittles spoiled.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When school came out they always went to Rainbow Valley. Mary refused to play
-in the graveyard. She declared she was afraid of ghosts.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s no such thing as ghosts,&rdquo; declared Jem Blythe.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, ain&rsquo;t there?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Did you ever see any?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hundreds of &lsquo;em,&rdquo; said Mary promptly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What are they like?&rdquo; said Carl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Awful-looking. Dressed all in white with skellington hands and
-heads,&rdquo; said Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What did you do?&rdquo; asked Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Run like the devil,&rdquo; said Mary. Then she caught Walter&rsquo;s
-eyes and blushed. Mary was a good deal in awe of Walter. She declared to the
-manse girls that his eyes made her nervous.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think of all the lies I&rsquo;ve ever told when I look into
-them,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;and I wish I hadn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jem was Mary&rsquo;s favourite. When he took her to the attic at Ingleside and
-showed her the museum of curios that Captain Jim Boyd had bequeathed to him she
-was immensely pleased and flattered. She also won Carl&rsquo;s heart entirely
-by her interest in his beetles and ants. It could not be denied that Mary got
-on rather better with the boys than with the girls. She quarrelled bitterly
-with Nan Blythe the second day.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Your mother is a witch,&rdquo; she told Nan scornfully.
-&ldquo;Red-haired women are always witches.&rdquo; Then she and Faith fell out
-about the rooster. Mary said its tail was too short. Faith angrily retorted
-that she guessed God know what length to make a rooster&rsquo;s tail. They did
-not &ldquo;speak&rdquo; for a day over this. Mary treated Una&rsquo;s hairless,
-one-eyed doll with consideration; but when Una showed her other prized
-treasure&mdash;a picture of an angel carrying a baby, presumably to heaven,
-Mary declared that it looked too much like a ghost for her. Una crept away to
-her room and cried over this, but Mary hunted her out, hugged her repentantly
-and implored forgiveness. No one could keep up a quarrel long with
-Mary&mdash;not even Nan, who was rather prone to hold grudges and never quite
-forgave the insult to her mother. Mary was jolly. She could and did tell the
-most thrilling ghost stories. Rainbow Valley seances were undeniably more
-exciting after Mary came. She learned to play on the jew&rsquo;s-harp and soon
-eclipsed Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Never struck anything yet I couldn&rsquo;t do if I put my mind to
-it,&rdquo; she declared. Mary seldom lost a chance of tooting her own horn. She
-taught them how to make &ldquo;blow-bags&rdquo; out of the thick leaves of the
-&ldquo;live-forever&rdquo; that flourished in the old Bailey garden, she
-initiated them into the toothsome qualities of the &ldquo;sours&rdquo; that
-grew in the niches of the graveyard dyke, and she could make the most wonderful
-shadow pictures on the walls with her long, flexible fingers. And when they all
-went picking gum in Rainbow Valley Mary always got &ldquo;the biggest
-chew&rdquo; and bragged about it. There were times when they hated her and
-times when they loved her. But at all times they found her interesting. So they
-submitted quite meekly to her bossing, and by the end of a fortnight had come
-to feel that she must always have been with them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s the queerest thing that Mrs. Wiley hain&rsquo;t been after
-me,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;I can&rsquo;t understand it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maybe she isn&rsquo;t going to bother about you at all,&rdquo; said Una.
-&ldquo;Then you can just go on staying here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This house ain&rsquo;t hardly big enough for me and old Martha,&rdquo;
-said Mary darkly. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a very fine thing to have enough to
-eat&mdash;I&rsquo;ve often wondered what it would be like&mdash;but I&rsquo;m
-p&rsquo;ticler about my cooking. And Mrs. Wiley&rsquo;ll be here yet.
-<i>She&rsquo;s</i> got a rod in pickle for me all right. I don&rsquo;t think about it
-so much in daytime but say, girls, up there in that garret at night I git to
-thinking and thinking of it, till I just almost wish she&rsquo;d come and have
-it over with. I dunno&rsquo;s one real good whipping would be much
-worse&rsquo;n all the dozen I&rsquo;ve lived through in my mind ever since I
-run away. Were any of you ever licked?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, of course not,&rdquo; said Faith indignantly. &ldquo;Father would
-never do such a thing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You don&rsquo;t know you&rsquo;re alive,&rdquo; said Mary with a sigh
-half of envy, half of superiority. &ldquo;You don&rsquo;t know what I&rsquo;ve
-come through. And I s&rsquo;pose the Blythes were never licked either?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No-o-o, I guess not. But I <i>think</i> they were sometimes spanked when they
-were small.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;A spanking doesn&rsquo;t amount to anything,&rdquo; said Mary
-contemptuously. &ldquo;If my folks had just spanked me I&rsquo;d have thought
-they were petting me. Well, it ain&rsquo;t a fair world. I wouldn&rsquo;t mind
-taking my share of wallopings but I&rsquo;ve had a darn sight too many.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t right to say that word, Mary,&rdquo; said Una
-reproachfully. &ldquo;You promised me you wouldn&rsquo;t say it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;G&rsquo;way,&rdquo; responded Mary. &ldquo;If you knew some of the words
-I <i>could</i> say if I liked you wouldn&rsquo;t make such a fuss over darn. And you
-know very well I hain&rsquo;t ever told any lies since I come here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What about all those ghosts you said you saw?&rdquo; asked Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary blushed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That was diff&rsquo;runt,&rdquo; she said defiantly. &ldquo;I knew you
-wouldn&rsquo;t believe them yarns and I didn&rsquo;t intend you to. And I
-really did see something queer one night when I was passing the over-harbour
-graveyard, true&rsquo;s you live. I dunno whether &lsquo;twas a ghost or Sandy
-Crawford&rsquo;s old white nag, but it looked blamed queer and I tell you I
-scooted at the rate of no man&rsquo;s business.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap07"></a>CHAPTER VII.<br />
-A FISHY EPISODE</h2>
-
-<p>
-Rilla Blythe walked proudly, and perhaps a little primly, through the main
-&ldquo;street&rdquo; of the Glen and up the manse hill, carefully carrying a
-small basketful of early strawberries, which Susan had coaxed into lusciousness
-in one of the sunny nooks of Ingleside. Susan had charged Rilla to give the
-basket to nobody except Aunt Martha or Mr. Meredith, and Rilla, very proud of
-being entrusted with such an errand, was resolved to carry out her instructions
-to the letter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan had dressed her daintily in a white, starched, and embroidered dress,
-with sash of blue and beaded slippers. Her long ruddy curls were sleek and
-round, and Susan had let her put on her best hat, out of compliment to the
-manse. It was a somewhat elaborate affair, wherein Susan&rsquo;s taste had had
-more to say than Anne&rsquo;s, and Rilla&rsquo;s small soul gloried in its
-splendours of silk and lace and flowers. She was very conscious of her hat, and
-I am afraid she strutted up the manse hill. The strut, or the hat, or both, got
-on the nerves of Mary Vance, who was swinging on the lawn gate. Mary&rsquo;s
-temper was somewhat ruffled just then, into the bargain. Aunt Martha had
-refused to let her peel the potatoes and had ordered her out of the kitchen.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yah! You&rsquo;ll bring the potatoes to the table with strips of skin
-hanging to them and half boiled as usual! My, but it&rsquo;ll be nice to go to
-your funeral,&rdquo; shrieked Mary. She went out of the kitchen, giving the
-door such a bang that even Aunt Martha heard it, and Mr. Meredith in his study
-felt the vibration and thought absently that there must have been a slight
-earthquake shock. Then he went on with his sermon.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary slipped from the gate and confronted the spick-and-span damsel of
-Ingleside.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What you got there?&rdquo; she demanded, trying to take the basket.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rilla resisted. &ldquo;It&rsquo;th for Mithter Meredith,&rdquo; she lisped.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Give it to me. <i>I&rsquo;ll</i> give it to him,&rdquo; said Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. Thuthan thaid that I wathn&rsquo;t to give it to anybody but Mithter
-Mer&rsquo;dith or Aunt Martha,&rdquo; insisted Rilla.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary eyed her sourly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You think you&rsquo;re something, don&rsquo;t you, all dressed up like a
-doll! Look at me. My dress is all rags and <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t care! I&rsquo;d
-rather be ragged than a doll baby. Go home and tell them to put you in a glass
-case. Look at me&mdash;look at me&mdash;look at me!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary executed a wild dance around the dismayed and bewildered Rilla, flirting
-her ragged skirt and vociferating &ldquo;Look at me&mdash;look at me&rdquo;
-until poor Rilla was dizzy. But as the latter tried to edge away towards the
-gate Mary pounced on her again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You give me that basket,&rdquo; she ordered with a grimace. Mary was
-past mistress in the art of &ldquo;making faces.&rdquo; She could give her
-countenance a most grotesque and unearthly appearance out of which her strange,
-brilliant, white eyes gleamed with weird effect.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t,&rdquo; gasped Rilla, frightened but staunch. &ldquo;You
-let me go, Mary Vanth.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary let go for a minute and looked around her. Just inside the gate was a
-small &ldquo;flake,&rdquo; on which a half a dozen large codfish were drying.
-One of Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s parishioners had presented him with them one day,
-perhaps in lieu of the subscription he was supposed to pay to the stipend and
-never did. Mr. Meredith had thanked him and then forgotten all about the fish,
-which would have promptly spoiled had not the indefatigable Mary prepared them
-for drying and rigged up the &ldquo;flake&rdquo; herself on which to dry them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary had a diabolical inspiration. She flew to the &ldquo;flake&rdquo; and
-seized the largest fish there&mdash;a huge, flat thing, nearly as big as
-herself. With a whoop she swooped down on the terrified Rilla, brandishing her
-weird missile. Rilla&rsquo;s courage gave way. To be lambasted with a dried
-codfish was such an unheard-of thing that Rilla could not face it. With a
-shriek she dropped her basket and fled. The beautiful berries, which Susan had
-so tenderly selected for the minister, rolled in a rosy torrent over the dusty
-road and were trodden on by the flying feet of pursuer and pursued. The basket
-and contents were no longer in Mary&rsquo;s mind. She thought only of the
-delight of giving Rilla Blythe the scare of her life. She would teach <i>her</i> to
-come giving herself airs because of her fine clothes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rilla flew down the hill and along the street. Terror lent wings to her feet,
-and she just managed to keep ahead of Mary, who was somewhat hampered by her
-own laughter, but who had breath enough to give occasional blood-curdling
-whoops as she ran, flourishing her codfish in the air. Through the Glen street
-they swept, while everybody ran to the windows and gates to see them. Mary felt
-she was making a tremendous sensation and enjoyed it. Rilla, blind with terror
-and spent of breath, felt that she could run no longer. In another instant that
-terrible girl would be on her with the codfish. At this point the poor mite
-stumbled and fell into the mud-puddle at the end of the street just as Miss
-Cornelia came out of Carter Flagg&rsquo;s store.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia took the whole situation in at a glance. So did Mary. The latter
-stopped short in her mad career and before Miss Cornelia could speak she had
-whirled around and was running up as fast as she had run down. Miss
-Cornelia&rsquo;s lips tightened ominously, but she knew it was no use to think
-of chasing her. So she picked up poor, sobbing, dishevelled Rilla instead and
-took her home. Rilla was heart-broken. Her dress and slippers and hat were
-ruined and her six year old pride had received terrible bruises.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan, white with indignation, heard Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s story of Mary
-Vance&rsquo;s exploit.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, the hussy&mdash;oh, the littly hussy!&rdquo; she said, as she
-carried Rilla away for purification and comfort.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This thing has gone far enough, Anne dearie,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia
-resolutely. &ldquo;Something must be done. <i>Who</i> is this creature who is staying
-at the manse and where does she come from?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I understood she was a little girl from over-harbour who was visiting at
-the manse,&rdquo; answered Anne, who saw the comical side of the codfish chase
-and secretly thought Rilla was rather vain and needed a lesson or two.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I know all the over-harbour families who come to our church and that imp
-doesn&rsquo;t belong to any of them,&rdquo; retorted Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;She
-is almost in rags and when she goes to church she wears Faith Meredith&rsquo;s
-old clothes. There&rsquo;s some mystery here, and I&rsquo;m going to
-investigate it, since it seems nobody else will. I believe she was at the
-bottom of their goings-on in Warren Mead&rsquo;s spruce bush the other day. Did
-you hear of their frightening his mother into a fit?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. I knew Gilbert had been called to see her, but I did not hear what
-the trouble was.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you know she has a weak heart. And one day last week, when she was
-all alone on the veranda, she heard the most awful shrieks of
-&lsquo;murder&rsquo; and &lsquo;help&rsquo; coming from the
-bush&mdash;positively frightful sounds, Anne dearie. Her heart gave out at
-once. Warren heard them himself at the barn, and went straight to the bush to
-investigate, and there he found all the manse children sitting on a fallen tree
-and screaming &lsquo;murder&rsquo; at the top of their lungs. They told him
-they were only in fun and didn&rsquo;t think anyone would hear them. They were
-just playing Indian ambush. Warren went back to the house and found his poor
-mother unconscious on the veranda.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan, who had returned, sniffed contemptuously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think she was very far from being unconscious, Mrs. Marshall Elliott,
-and that you may tie to. I have been hearing of Amelia Warren&rsquo;s weak
-heart for forty years. She had it when she was twenty. She enjoys making a fuss
-and having the doctor, and any excuse will do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t think Gilbert thought her attack very serious,&rdquo; said
-Anne.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, that may very well be,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;But the
-matter has made an awful lot of talk and the Meads being Methodists makes it
-that much worse. What is going to become of those children? Sometimes I
-can&rsquo;t sleep at nights for thinking about them, Anne dearie. I really do
-question if they get enough to eat, even, for their father is so lost in dreams
-that he doesn&rsquo;t often remember he has a stomach, and that lazy old woman
-doesn&rsquo;t bother cooking what she ought. They are just running wild and now
-that school is closing they&rsquo;ll be worse than ever.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They do have jolly times,&rdquo; said Anne, laughing over the
-recollections of some Rainbow Valley happenings that had come to her ears.
-&ldquo;And they are all brave and frank and loyal and truthful.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s a true word, Anne dearie, and when you come to think of all
-the trouble in the church those two tattling, deceitful youngsters of the last
-minister&rsquo;s made, I&rsquo;m inclined to overlook a good deal in the
-Merediths.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;When all is said and done, Mrs. Dr. dear, they are very nice
-children,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;They have got plenty of original sin in
-them and that I will admit, but maybe it is just as well, for if they had not
-they might spoil from over-sweetness. Only I do think it is not proper for them
-to play in a graveyard and that I will maintain.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But they really play quite quietly there,&rdquo; excused Anne.
-&ldquo;They don&rsquo;t run and yell as they do elsewhere. Such howls as drift
-up here from Rainbow Valley sometimes! Though I fancy my own small fry bear a
-valiant part in them. They had a sham battle there last night and had to
-&lsquo;roar&rsquo; themselves, because they had no artillery to do it, so Jem
-says. Jem is passing through the stage where all boys hanker to be
-soldiers.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, thank goodness, he&rsquo;ll never be a soldier,&rdquo; said Miss
-Cornelia. &ldquo;I never approved of our boys going to that South African
-fracas. But it&rsquo;s over, and not likely anything of the kind will ever
-happen again. I think the world is getting more sensible. As for the Merediths,
-I&rsquo;ve said many a time and I say it again, if Mr. Meredith had a wife all
-would be well.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He called twice at the Kirks&rsquo; last week, so I am told,&rdquo; said
-Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia thoughtfully, &ldquo;as a rule, I
-don&rsquo;t approve of a minister marrying in his congregation. It generally
-spoils him. But in this case it would do no harm, for every one likes Elizabeth
-Kirk and nobody else is hankering for the job of stepmothering those
-youngsters. Even the Hill girls balk at that. They haven&rsquo;t been found
-laying traps for Mr. Meredith. Elizabeth would make him a good wife if he only
-thought so. But the trouble is, she really is homely and, Anne dearie, Mr.
-Meredith, abstracted as he is, has an eye for a good-looking woman, man-like.
-He isn&rsquo;t <i>so</i> other-worldly when it comes to that, believe <i>me</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Elizabeth Kirk is a very nice person, but they do say that people have
-nearly frozen to death in her mother&rsquo;s spare-room bed before now, Mrs.
-Dr. dear,&rdquo; said Susan darkly. &ldquo;If I felt I had any right to express
-an opinion concerning such a solemn matter as a minister&rsquo;s marriage I
-would say that I think Elizabeth&rsquo;s cousin Sarah, over-harbour, would make
-Mr. Meredith a better wife.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Sarah Kirk is a Methodist,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, much as if
-Susan had suggested a Hottentot as a manse bride.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She would likely turn Presbyterian if she married Mr. Meredith,&rdquo;
-retorted Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia shook her head. Evidently with her it was, once a Methodist,
-always a Methodist.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Sarah Kirk is entirely out of the question,&rdquo; she said positively.
-&ldquo;And so is Emmeline Drew&mdash;though the Drews are all trying to make
-the match. They are literally throwing poor Emmeline at his head, and he
-hasn&rsquo;t the least idea of it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Emmeline Drew has no gumption, I must allow,&rdquo; said Susan.
-&ldquo;She is the kind of woman, Mrs. Dr. dear, who would put a hot-water
-bottle in your bed on a dog-night and then have her feelings hurt because you
-were not grateful. And her mother was a very poor housekeeper. Did you ever
-hear the story of her dishcloth? She lost her dishcloth one day. But the next
-day she found it. Oh, yes, Mrs. Dr. dear, she found it, in the goose at the
-dinner-table, mixed up with the stuffing. Do you think a woman like that would
-do for a minister&rsquo;s mother-in-law? I do not. But no doubt I would be
-better employed in mending little Jem&rsquo;s trousers than in talking gossip
-about my neighbours. He tore them something scandalous last night in Rainbow
-Valley.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where is Walter?&rdquo; asked Anne.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is up to no good, I fear, Mrs. Dr. dear. He is in the attic writing
-something in an exercise book. And he has not done as well in arithmetic this
-term as he should, so the teacher tells me. Too well I know the reason why. He
-has been writing silly rhymes when he should have been doing his sums. I am
-afraid that boy is going to be a poet, Mrs. Dr. dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is a poet now, Susan.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you take it real calm, Mrs. Dr. dear. I suppose it is the best
-way, when a person has the strength. I had an uncle who began by being a poet
-and ended up by being a tramp. Our family were dreadfully ashamed of
-him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You don&rsquo;t seem to think very highly of poets, Susan,&rdquo; said
-Anne, laughing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who does, Mrs. Dr. dear?&rdquo; asked Susan in genuine astonishment.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What about Milton and Shakespeare? And the poets of the Bible?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They tell me Milton could not get along with his wife, and Shakespeare
-was no more than respectable by times. As for the Bible, of course things were
-different in those sacred days&mdash;although I never had a high opinion of
-King David, say what you will. I never knew any good to come of writing poetry,
-and I hope and pray that blessed boy will outgrow the tendency. If he does
-not&mdash;we must see what emulsion of cod-liver oil will do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap08"></a>CHAPTER VIII.<br />
-MISS CORNELIA INTERVENES</h2>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia descended upon the manse the next day and cross-questioned Mary,
-who, being a young person of considerable discernment and astuteness, told her
-story simple and truthfully, with an entire absence of complaint or bravado.
-Miss Cornelia was more favourably impressed than she had expected to be, but
-deemed it her duty to be severe.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you think,&rdquo; she said sternly, &ldquo;that you showed your
-gratitude to this family, who have been far too kind to you, by insulting and
-chasing one of their little friends as you did yesterday?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Say, it was rotten mean of me,&rdquo; admitted Mary easily. &ldquo;I
-dunno what possessed me. That old codfish seemed to come in so blamed handy.
-But I was awful sorry&mdash;I cried last night after I went to bed about it,
-honest I did. You ask Una if I didn&rsquo;t. I wouldn&rsquo;t tell her what for
-&lsquo;cause I was ashamed of it, and then she cried, too, because she was
-afraid someone had hurt my feelings. Laws, <i>I</i> ain&rsquo;t got any
-feelings to hurt worth speaking of. What worries me is why Mrs. Wiley
-hain&rsquo;t been hunting for me. It ain&rsquo;t like her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia herself thought it rather peculiar, but she merely admonished
-Mary sharply not to take any further liberties with the minister&rsquo;s
-codfish, and went to report progress at Ingleside.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If the child&rsquo;s story is true the matter ought to be looked
-into,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;I know something about that Wiley woman, believe
-<i>me</i>. Marshall used to be well acquainted with her when he lived over-harbour. I
-heard him say something last summer about her and a home child she
-had&mdash;likely this very Mary-creature. He said some one told him she was
-working the child to death and not half feeding and clothing it. You know, Anne
-dearie, it has always been my habit neither to make nor meddle with those
-over-harbour folks. But I shall send Marshall over to-morrow to find out the
-rights of this if he can. And <i>then</i> I&rsquo;ll speak to the minister. Mind you,
-Anne dearie, the Merediths found this girl literally starving in James
-Taylor&rsquo;s old hay barn. She had been there all night, cold and hungry and
-alone. And us sleeping warm in our beds after good suppers.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The poor little thing,&rdquo; said Anne, picturing one of her own dear
-babies, cold and hungry and alone in such circumstances. &ldquo;If she has been
-ill-used, Miss Cornelia, she mustn&rsquo;t be taken back to such a place.
-<i>I</i> was an orphan once in a very similar situation.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll have to consult the Hopetown asylum folks,&rdquo; said Miss
-Cornelia. &ldquo;Anyway, she can&rsquo;t be left at the manse. Dear knows what
-those poor children might learn from her. I understand that she has been known
-to swear. But just think of her being there two whole weeks and Mr Meredith
-never waking up to it! What business has a man like that to have a family? Why,
-Anne dearie, he ought to be a monk.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Two evenings later Miss Cornelia was back at Ingleside.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s the most amazing thing!&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;Mrs. Wiley
-was found dead in her bed the very morning after this Mary-creature ran away.
-She has had a bad heart for years and the doctor had warned her it might happen
-at any time. She had sent away her hired man and there was nobody in the house.
-Some neighbours found her the next day. They missed the child, it seems, but
-supposed Mrs. Wiley had sent her to her cousin near Charlottetown as she had
-said she was going to do. The cousin didn&rsquo;t come to the funeral and so
-nobody ever knew that Mary wasn&rsquo;t with her. The people Marshall talked to
-told him some things about the way Mrs. Wiley used this Mary that made his
-blood boil, so he declares. You know, it puts Marshall in a regular fury to
-hear of a child being ill-used. They said she whipped her mercilessly for every
-little fault or mistake. Some folks talked of writing to the asylum authorities
-but everybody&rsquo;s business is nobody&rsquo;s business and it was never
-done.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am sorry that Wiley person is dead,&rdquo; said Susan fiercely.
-&ldquo;I should like to go over-harbour and give her a piece of my mind.
-Starving and beating a child, Mrs. Dr. dear! As you know, I hold with lawful
-spanking, but I go no further. And what is to become of this poor child now,
-Mrs. Marshall Elliott?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose she must be sent back to Hopetown,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;I think every one hereabouts who wants a home child has one. I&rsquo;ll
-see Mr. Meredith to-morrow and tell him my opinion of the whole affair.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And no doubt she will, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said Susan, after Miss
-Cornelia had gone. &ldquo;She would stick at nothing, not even at shingling the
-church spire if she took it into her head. But I cannot understand how even
-Cornelia Bryant can talk to a minister as she does. You would think he was just
-any common person.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When Miss Cornelia had gone, Nan Blythe uncurled herself from the hammock where
-she had been studying her lessons and slipped away to Rainbow Valley. The
-others were already there. Jem and Jerry were playing quoits with old
-horseshoes borrowed from the Glen blacksmith. Carl was stalking ants on a sunny
-hillock. Walter, lying on his stomach among the fern, was reading aloud to Mary
-and Di and Faith and Una from a wonderful book of myths wherein were
-fascinating accounts of Prester John and the Wandering Jew, divining rods and
-tailed men, of Schamir, the worm that split rocks and opened the way to golden
-treasure, of Fortunate Isles and swan-maidens. It was a great shock to Walter
-to learn that William Tell and Gelert were myths also; and the story of Bishop
-Hatto was to keep him awake all that night; but best of all he loved the
-stories of the Pied Piper and the San Greal. He read them thrillingly, while
-the bells on the Tree Lovers tinkled in the summer wind and the coolness of the
-evening shadows crept across the valley.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Say, ain&rsquo;t them in&rsquo;resting lies?&rdquo; said Mary admiringly
-when Walter had closed the book.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They aren&rsquo;t lies,&rdquo; said Di indignantly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You don&rsquo;t mean they&rsquo;re true?&rdquo; asked Mary
-incredulously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;not exactly. They&rsquo;re like those ghost-stories of yours.
-They weren&rsquo;t true&mdash;but you didn&rsquo;t expect us to believe them,
-so they weren&rsquo;t lies.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That yarn about the divining rod is no lie, anyhow,&rdquo; said Mary.
-&ldquo;Old Jake Crawford over-harbour can work it. They send for him from
-everywhere when they want to dig a well. And I believe I know the Wandering
-Jew.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary,&rdquo; said Una, awe-struck.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do&mdash;true&rsquo;s you&rsquo;re alive. There was an old man at Mrs.
-Wiley&rsquo;s one day last fall. He looked old enough to be <i>anything</i>. She was
-asking him about cedar posts, if he thought they&rsquo;d last well. And he
-said, &lsquo;Last well? They&rsquo;ll last a thousand years. I know, for
-I&rsquo;ve tried them twice.&rsquo; Now, if he was two thousand years old who
-was he but your Wandering Jew?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe the Wandering Jew would associate with a person
-like Mrs. Wiley,&rdquo; said Faith decidedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I love the Pied Piper story,&rdquo; said Di, &ldquo;and so does mother.
-I always feel so sorry for the poor little lame boy who couldn&rsquo;t keep up
-with the others and got shut out of the mountain. He must have been so
-disappointed. I think all the rest of his life he&rsquo;d be wondering what
-wonderful thing he had missed and wishing he could have got in with the
-others.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But how glad his mother must have been,&rdquo; said Una softly. &ldquo;I
-think she had been sorry all her life that he was lame. Perhaps she even used
-to cry about it. But she would never be sorry again&mdash;never. She would be
-glad he was lame because that was why she hadn&rsquo;t lost him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Some day,&rdquo; said Walter dreamily, looking afar into the sky,
-&ldquo;the Pied Piper will come over the hill up there and down Rainbow Valley,
-piping merrily and sweetly. And I will follow him&mdash;follow him down to the
-shore&mdash;down to the sea&mdash;away from you all. I don&rsquo;t think
-I&rsquo;ll want to go&mdash;Jem will want to go&mdash;it will be such an
-adventure&mdash;but I won&rsquo;t. Only I&rsquo;ll <i>have</i> to&mdash;the music will
-call and call and call me until I <i>must</i> follow.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll all go,&rdquo; cried Di, catching fire at the flame of
-Walter&rsquo;s fancy, and half-believing she could see the mocking, retreating
-figure of the mystic piper in the far, dim end of the valley.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. You&rsquo;ll sit here and wait,&rdquo; said Walter, his great,
-splendid eyes full of strange glamour. &ldquo;You&rsquo;ll wait for us to come
-back. And we may not come&mdash;for we cannot come as long as the Piper plays.
-He may pipe us round the world. And still you&rsquo;ll sit here and
-wait&mdash;and <i>wait</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, dry up,&rdquo; said Mary, shivering. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t look like
-that, Walter Blythe. You give me the creeps. Do you want to set me bawling? I
-could just see that horrid old Piper going away on, and you boys following him,
-and us girls sitting here waiting all alone. I dunno why it is&mdash;I never
-was one of the blubbering kind&mdash;but as soon as you start your spieling I
-always want to cry.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter smiled in triumph. He liked to exercise this power of his over his
-companions&mdash;to play on their feelings, waken their fears, thrill their
-souls. It satisfied some dramatic instinct in him. But under his triumph was a
-queer little chill of some mysterious dread. The Pied Piper had seemed very
-real to him&mdash;as if the fluttering veil that hid the future had for a
-moment been blown aside in the starlit dusk of Rainbow Valley and some dim
-glimpse of coming years granted to him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl, coming up to their group with a report of the doings in ant-land, brought
-them all back to the realm of facts.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ants <i>are</i> darned in&rsquo;resting,&rdquo; exclaimed Mary, glad to escape
-the shadowy Piper&rsquo;s thrall. &ldquo;Carl and me watched that bed in the
-graveyard all Saturday afternoon. I never thought there was so much in bugs.
-Say, but they&rsquo;re quarrelsome little cusses&mdash;some of &lsquo;em like
-to start a fight &lsquo;thout any reason, far&rsquo;s we could see. And some of
-&lsquo;em are cowards. They got so scared they just doubled theirselves up into
-a ball and let the other fellows bang &lsquo;em. They wouldn&rsquo;t put up a
-fight at all. Some of &lsquo;em are lazy and won&rsquo;t work. We watched
-&lsquo;em shirking. And there was one ant died of grief &lsquo;cause another
-ant got killed&mdash;wouldn&rsquo;t work&mdash;wouldn&rsquo;t eat&mdash;just
-died&mdash;it did, honest to Go&mdash;oodness.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A shocked silence prevailed. Every one knew that Mary had not started out to
-say &ldquo;goodness.&rdquo; Faith and Di exchanged glances that would have done
-credit to Miss Cornelia herself. Walter and Carl looked uncomfortable and
-Una&rsquo;s lip trembled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary squirmed uncomfortably.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That slipped out &lsquo;fore I thought&mdash;it did, honest to&mdash;I
-mean, true&rsquo;s you live, and I swallowed half of it. You folks over here
-are mighty squeamish seems to me. Wish you could have heard the Wileys when
-they had a fight.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ladies don&rsquo;t say such things,&rdquo; said Faith, very primly for
-her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t right,&rdquo; whispered Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I ain&rsquo;t a lady,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;What chance&rsquo;ve I
-ever had of being a lady? But I won&rsquo;t say that again if I can help it. I
-promise you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Besides,&rdquo; said Una, &ldquo;you can&rsquo;t expect God to answer
-your prayers if you take His name in vain, Mary.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t expect Him to answer &lsquo;em anyhow,&rdquo; said Mary of
-little faith. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve been asking Him for a week to clear up this
-Wiley affair and He hasn&rsquo;t done a thing. I&rsquo;m going to give
-up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At this juncture Nan arrived breathless.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary, I&rsquo;ve news for you. Mrs. Elliott has been over-harbour
-and what do you think she found out? Mrs. Wiley is dead&mdash;she was found
-dead in bed the morning after you ran away. So you&rsquo;ll never have to go
-back to her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dead!&rdquo; said Mary stupefied. Then she shivered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you s&rsquo;pose my praying had anything to do with that?&rdquo; she
-cried imploringly to Una. &ldquo;If it had I&rsquo;ll never pray again as long
-as I live. Why, she may come back and ha&rsquo;nt me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, no, Mary,&rdquo; said Una comfortingly, &ldquo;it hadn&rsquo;t. Why,
-Mrs. Wiley died long before you ever began to pray about it at all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s so,&rdquo; said Mary recovering from her panic. &ldquo;But
-I tell you it gave me a start. I wouldn&rsquo;t like to think I&rsquo;d prayed
-anybody to death. I never thought of such a thing as her dying when I was
-praying. She didn&rsquo;t seem much like the dying kind. Did Mrs. Elliott say
-anything about me?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She said you would likely have to go back to the asylum.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I thought as much,&rdquo; said Mary drearily. &ldquo;And then
-they&rsquo;ll give me out again&mdash;likely to some one just like Mrs. Wiley.
-Well, I s&rsquo;pose I can stand it. I&rsquo;m tough.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m going to pray that you won&rsquo;t have to go back,&rdquo;
-whispered Una, as she and Mary walked home to the manse.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can do as you like,&rdquo; said Mary decidedly, &ldquo;but I vow
-<i>I</i> won&rsquo;t. I&rsquo;m good and scared of this praying business. See
-what&rsquo;s come of it. If Mrs. Wiley <i>had</i> died after I started praying it
-would have been my doings.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, no, it wouldn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;I wish I could
-explain things better&mdash;father could, I know, if you&rsquo;d talk to him,
-Mary.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Catch me! I don&rsquo;t know what to make of your father, that&rsquo;s
-the long and short of it. He goes by me and never sees me in broad daylight. I
-ain&rsquo;t proud&mdash;but I ain&rsquo;t a door-mat, neither!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary, it&rsquo;s just father&rsquo;s way. Most of the time he never
-sees us, either. He is thinking deeply, that is all. And I <i>am</i> going to pray
-that God will keep you in Four Winds&mdash;because I like you, Mary.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right. Only don&rsquo;t let me hear of any more people dying on
-account of it,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;I&rsquo;d like to stay in Four Winds
-fine. I like it and I like the harbour and the light house&mdash;and you and
-the Blythes. You&rsquo;re the only friends I ever had and I&rsquo;d hate to
-leave you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap09"></a>CHAPTER IX.<br />
-UNA INTERVENES</h2>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia had an interview with Mr. Meredith which proved something of a
-shock to that abstracted gentleman. She pointed out to him, none too
-respectfully, his dereliction of duty in allowing a waif like Mary Vance to
-come into his family and associate with his children without knowing or
-learning anything about her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t say there is much harm done, of course,&rdquo; she
-concluded. &ldquo;This Mary-creature isn&rsquo;t what you might call bad, when
-all is said and done. I&rsquo;ve been questioning your children and the
-Blythes, and from what I can make out there&rsquo;s nothing much to be said
-against the child except that she&rsquo;s slangy and doesn&rsquo;t use very
-refined language. But think what might have happened if she&rsquo;d been like
-some of those home children we know of. You know yourself what that poor little
-creature the Jim Flaggs&rsquo; had, taught and told the Flagg children.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith did know and was honestly shocked over his own carelessness in the
-matter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But what is to be done, Mrs. Elliott?&rdquo; he asked helplessly.
-&ldquo;We can&rsquo;t turn the poor child out. She must be cared for.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course. We&rsquo;d better write to the Hopetown authorities at once.
-Meanwhile, I suppose she might as well stay here for a few more days till we
-hear from them. But keep your eyes and ears open, Mr. Meredith.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan would have died of horror on the spot if she had heard Miss Cornelia so
-admonishing a minister. But Miss Cornelia departed in a warm glow of
-satisfaction over duty done, and that night Mr. Meredith asked Mary to come
-into his study with him. Mary obeyed, looking literally ghastly with fright.
-But she got the surprise of her poor, battered little life. This man, of whom
-she had stood so terribly in awe, was the kindest, gentlest soul she had ever
-met. Before she knew what happened Mary found herself pouring all her troubles
-into his ear and receiving in return such sympathy and tender understanding as
-it had never occurred to her to imagine. Mary left the study with her face and
-eyes so softened that Una hardly knew her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Your father&rsquo;s all right, when he does wake up,&rdquo; she said
-with a sniff that just escaped being a sob. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a pity he
-doesn&rsquo;t wake up oftener. He said I wasn&rsquo;t to blame for Mrs. Wiley
-dying, but that I must try to think of her good points and not of her bad ones.
-I dunno what good points she had, unless it was keeping her house clean and
-making first-class butter. I know I &lsquo;most wore my arms out scrubbing her
-old kitchen floor with the knots in it. But anything your father says goes with
-me after this.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary proved a rather dull companion in the following days, however. She
-confided to Una that the more she thought of going back to the asylum the more
-she hated it. Una racked her small brains for some way of averting it, but it
-was Nan Blythe who came to the rescue with a somewhat startling suggestion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott might take Mary herself. She has a great big house and Mr.
-Elliott is always wanting her to have help. It would be just a splendid place
-for Mary. Only she&rsquo;d have to behave herself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Nan, do you think Mrs. Elliott would take her?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It wouldn&rsquo;t do any harm if you asked her,&rdquo; said Nan. At
-first Una did not think she could. She was so shy that to ask a favour of
-anybody was agony to her. And she was very much in awe of the bustling,
-energetic Mrs. Elliott. She liked her very much and always enjoyed a visit to
-her house; but to go and ask her to adopt Mary Vance seemed such a height of
-presumption that Una&rsquo;s timid spirit quailed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When the Hopetown authorities wrote to Mr. Meredith to send Mary to them
-without delay Mary cried herself to sleep in the manse attic that night and Una
-found a desperate courage. The next evening she slipped away from the manse to
-the harbour road. Far down in Rainbow Valley she heard joyous laughter but her
-way lay not there. She was terribly pale and terribly in earnest&mdash;so much
-so that she took no notice of the people she met&mdash;and old Mrs. Stanley
-Flagg was quite huffed and said Una Meredith would be as absentminded as her
-father when she grew up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia lived half way between the Glen and Four Winds Point, in a house
-whose original glaring green hue had mellowed down to an agreeable greenish
-gray. Marshall Elliott had planted trees about it and set out a rose garden and
-a spruce hedge. It was quite a different place from what it had been in years
-agone. The manse children and the Ingleside children liked to go there. It was
-a beautiful walk down the old harbour road, and there was always a well-filled
-cooky jar at the end.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The misty sea was lapping softly far down on the sands. Three big boats were
-skimming down the harbour like great white sea-birds. A schooner was coming up
-the channel. The world of Four Winds was steeped in glowing colour, and subtle
-music, and strange glamour, and everybody should have been happy in it. But
-when Una turned in at Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s gate her very legs had almost
-refused to carry her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia was alone on the veranda. Una had hoped Mr. Elliott would be
-there. He was so big and hearty and twinkly that there would be encouragement
-in his presence. She sat on the little stool Miss Cornelia brought out and
-tried to eat the doughnut Miss Cornelia gave her. It stuck in her throat, but
-she swallowed desperately lest Miss Cornelia be offended. She could not talk;
-she was still pale; and her big, dark-blue eyes looked so piteous that Miss
-Cornelia concluded the child was in some trouble.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What&rsquo;s on your mind, dearie?&rdquo; she asked.
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s something, that&rsquo;s plain to be seen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una swallowed the last twist of doughnut with a desperate gulp.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott, won&rsquo;t you take Mary Vance?&rdquo; she said
-beseechingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia stared blankly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Me! Take Mary Vance! Do you mean keep her?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes&mdash;keep her&mdash;adopt her,&rdquo; said Una eagerly, gaining
-courage now that the ice was broken. &ldquo;Oh, Mrs. Elliott, <i>please</i> do. She
-doesn&rsquo;t want to go back to the asylum&mdash;she cries every night about
-it. She&rsquo;s so afraid of being sent to another hard place. And she&rsquo;s
-<i>so</i> smart&mdash;there isn&rsquo;t anything she can&rsquo;t do. I know you
-wouldn&rsquo;t be sorry if you took her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I never thought of such a thing,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia rather
-helplessly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Won&rsquo;t</i> you think of it?&rdquo; implored Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But, dearie, I don&rsquo;t want help. I&rsquo;m quite able to do all the
-work here. And I never thought I&rsquo;d like to have a home girl if I did need
-help.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The light went out of Una&rsquo;s eyes. Her lips trembled. She sat down on her
-stool again, a pathetic little figure of disappointment, and began to cry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t&mdash;dearie&mdash;don&rsquo;t,&rdquo; exclaimed Miss
-Cornelia in distress. She could never bear to hurt a child. &ldquo;I
-don&rsquo;t say I <i>won&rsquo;t</i> take her&mdash;but the idea is so new it has just
-kerflummuxed me. I must think it over.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mary is <i>so</i> smart,&rdquo; said Una again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Humph! So I&rsquo;ve heard. I&rsquo;ve heard she swears, too. Is that
-true?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve never heard her swear <i>exactly</i>,&rdquo; faltered Una
-uncomfortably. &ldquo;But I&rsquo;m afraid she <i>could</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I believe you! Does she always tell the truth?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think she does, except when she&rsquo;s afraid of a whipping.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And yet you want me to take her!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Some one</i> has to take her,&rdquo; sobbed Una. &ldquo;<i>Some one</i> has to look
-after her, Mrs. Elliott.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s true. Perhaps it <i>is</i> my duty to do it,&rdquo; said Miss
-Cornelia with a sigh. &ldquo;Well, I&rsquo;ll have to talk it over with Mr.
-Elliott. So don&rsquo;t say anything about it just yet. Take another doughnut,
-dearie.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una took it and ate it with a better appetite.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m very fond of doughnuts,&rdquo; she confessed &ldquo;Aunt
-Martha never makes any. But Miss Susan at Ingleside does, and sometimes she
-lets us have a plateful in Rainbow Valley. Do you know what I do when I&rsquo;m
-hungry for doughnuts and can&rsquo;t get any, Mrs. Elliott?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, dearie. What?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I get out mother&rsquo;s old cook book and read the doughnut
-recipe&mdash;and the other recipes. They sound <i>so</i> nice. I always do that when
-I&rsquo;m hungry&mdash;especially after we&rsquo;ve had ditto for dinner. <i>Then</i>
-I read the fried chicken and the roast goose recipes. Mother could make all
-those nice things.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Those manse children will starve to death yet if Mr. Meredith
-doesn&rsquo;t get married,&rdquo; Miss Cornelia told her husband indignantly
-after Una had gone. &ldquo;And he won&rsquo;t&mdash;and what&rsquo;s to be
-done? And <i>shall</i> we take this Mary-creature, Marshall?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, take her,&rdquo; said Marshall laconically.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Just like a man,&rdquo; said his wife, despairingly. &ldquo;&lsquo;Take
-her&rsquo;&mdash;as if that was all. There are a hundred things to be
-considered, believe <i>me</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Take her&mdash;and we&rsquo;ll consider them afterwards,
-Cornelia,&rdquo; said her husband.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In the end Miss Cornelia did take her and went up to announce her decision to
-the Ingleside people first.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Splendid!&rdquo; said Anne delightedly. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve been hoping
-you would do that very thing, Miss Cornelia. I want that poor child to get a
-good home. I was a homeless little orphan just like her once.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t think this Mary-creature is or ever will be much like
-you,&rdquo; retorted Miss Cornelia gloomily. &ldquo;She&rsquo;s a cat of
-another colour. But she&rsquo;s also a human being with an immortal soul to
-save. I&rsquo;ve got a shorter catechism and a small tooth comb and I&rsquo;m
-going to do my duty by her, now that I&rsquo;ve set my hand to the plough,
-believe me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary received the news with chastened satisfaction.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s better luck than I expected,&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;ll have to mind your p&rsquo;s and q&rsquo;s with Mrs.
-Elliott,&rdquo; said Nan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I can do that,&rdquo; flashed Mary. &ldquo;I know how to behave
-when I want to just as well as you, Nan Blythe.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You mustn&rsquo;t use bad words, you know, Mary,&rdquo; said Una
-anxiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I s&rsquo;pose she&rsquo;d die of horror if I did,&rdquo; grinned Mary,
-her white eyes shining with unholy glee over the idea. &ldquo;But you
-needn&rsquo;t worry, Una. Butter won&rsquo;t melt in my mouth after this.
-I&rsquo;ll be all prunes and prisms.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nor tell lies,&rdquo; added Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not even to get off from a whipping?&rdquo; pleaded Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott will <i>never</i> whip you&mdash;<i>never</i>,&rdquo; exclaimed Di.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Won&rsquo;t she?&rdquo; said Mary skeptically. &ldquo;If I ever find
-myself in a place where I ain&rsquo;t licked I&rsquo;ll think it&rsquo;s heaven
-all right. No fear of me telling lies then. I ain&rsquo;t fond of telling
-&lsquo;em&mdash;I&rsquo;d ruther not, if it comes to that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The day before Mary&rsquo;s departure from the manse they had a picnic in her
-honour in Rainbow Valley, and that evening all the manse children gave her
-something from their scanty store of treasured things for a keepsake. Carl gave
-her his Noah&rsquo;s ark and Jerry his second best jew&rsquo;s-harp. Faith gave
-her a little hairbrush with a mirror in the back of it, which Mary had always
-considered very wonderful. Una hesitated between an old beaded purse and a gay
-picture of Daniel in the lion&rsquo;s den, and finally offered Mary her choice.
-Mary really hankered after the beaded purse, but she knew Una loved it, so she
-said,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Give me Daniel. I&rsquo;d rusher have it &lsquo;cause I&rsquo;m partial
-to lions. Only I wish they&rsquo;d et Daniel up. It would have been more
-exciting.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At bedtime Mary coaxed Una to sleep with her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s for the last time,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;and it&rsquo;s
-raining tonight, and I hate sleeping up there alone when it&rsquo;s raining on
-account of that graveyard. I don&rsquo;t mind it on fine nights, but a night
-like this I can&rsquo;t see anything but the rain pouring down on them old
-white stones, and the wind round the window sounds as if them dead people were
-trying to get in and crying &lsquo;cause they couldn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I like rainy nights,&rdquo; said Una, when they were cuddled down
-together in the little attic room, &ldquo;and so do the Blythe girls.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t mind &lsquo;em when I&rsquo;m not handy to
-graveyards,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;If I was alone here I&rsquo;d cry my eyes
-out I&rsquo;d be so lonesome. I feel awful bad to be leaving you all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott will let you come up and play in Rainbow Valley quite often
-I&rsquo;m sure,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;And you <i>will</i> be a good girl,
-won&rsquo;t you, Mary?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I&rsquo;ll try,&rdquo; sighed Mary. &ldquo;But it won&rsquo;t be as
-easy for me to be good&mdash;inside, I mean, as well as outside&mdash;as it is
-for you. You hadn&rsquo;t such scalawags of relations as I had.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But your people must have had some good qualities as well as bad
-ones,&rdquo; argued Una. &ldquo;You must live up to them and never mind their
-bad ones.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe they had any good qualities,&rdquo; said Mary
-gloomily. &ldquo;I never heard of any. My grandfather had money, but they say
-he was a rascal. No, I&rsquo;ll just have to start out on my own hook and do
-the best I can.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And God will help you, you know, Mary, if you ask Him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know about that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary. You know we asked God to get a home for you and He did.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t see what He had to do with it,&rdquo; retorted Mary.
-&ldquo;It was you put it into Mrs. Elliott&rsquo;s head.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But God put it into her <i>heart</i> to take you. All my putting it into her
-<i>head</i> wouldn&rsquo;t have done any good if He hadn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, there may be something in that,&rdquo; admitted Mary. &ldquo;Mind
-you, I haven&rsquo;t got anything against God, Una. I&rsquo;m willing to give
-Him a chance. But, honest, I think He&rsquo;s an awful lot like your
-father&mdash;just absent-minded and never taking any notice of a body most of
-the time, but sometimes waking up all of a suddent and being awful good and
-kind and sensible.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary, no!&rdquo; exclaimed horrified Una. &ldquo;God isn&rsquo;t a
-bit like father&mdash;I mean He&rsquo;s a thousand times better and
-kinder.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If He&rsquo;s as good as your father He&rsquo;ll do for me,&rdquo; said
-Mary. &ldquo;When your father was talking to me I felt as if I never could be
-bad any more.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish you&rsquo;d talk to father about Him,&rdquo; sighed Una.
-&ldquo;He can explain it all so much better than I can.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, so I will, next time he wakes up,&rdquo; promised Mary. &ldquo;That
-night he talked to me in the study he showed me real clear that my praying
-didn&rsquo;t kill Mrs. Wiley. My mind&rsquo;s been easy since, but I&rsquo;m
-real cautious about praying. I guess the old rhyme is the safest. Say, Una, it
-seems to me if one has to pray to anybody it&rsquo;d be better to pray to the
-devil than to God. God&rsquo;s good, anyhow so you say, so He won&rsquo;t do
-you any harm, but from all I can make out the devil needs to be pacified. I
-think the sensible way would be to say to <i>him</i>, &lsquo;Good devil, please
-don&rsquo;t tempt me. Just leave me alone, please.&rsquo; Now, don&rsquo;t
-you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, no, no, Mary. I&rsquo;m sure it couldn&rsquo;t be right to pray to
-the devil. And it wouldn&rsquo;t do any good because he&rsquo;s bad. It might
-aggravate him and he&rsquo;d be worse than ever.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, as to this God-matter,&rdquo; said Mary stubbornly, &ldquo;since
-you and I can&rsquo;t settle it, there ain&rsquo;t no use in talking more about
-it until we&rsquo;ve a chanct to find out the rights of it. I&rsquo;ll do the
-best I can alone till then.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If mother was alive she could tell us everything,&rdquo; said Una with a
-sigh.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wisht she was alive,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know
-what&rsquo;s going to become of you youngsters when I&rsquo;m gone. Anyhow, <i>do</i>
-try and keep the house a little tidy. The way people talks about it is
-scandalous. And the first thing you know your father will be getting married
-again and then your noses will be out of joint.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una was startled. The idea of her father marrying again had never presented
-itself to her before. She did not like it and she lay silent under the chill of
-it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Stepmothers are <i>awful</i> creatures,&rdquo; Mary went on. &ldquo;I could
-make your blood run cold if I was to tell you all I know about &lsquo;em. The
-Wilson kids across the road from Wiley&rsquo;s had a stepmother. She was just
-as bad to &lsquo;em as Mrs. Wiley was to me. It&rsquo;ll be awful if you get a
-stepmother.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m sure we won&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said Una tremulously.
-&ldquo;Father won&rsquo;t marry anybody else.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He&rsquo;ll be hounded into it, I expect,&rdquo; said Mary darkly.
-&ldquo;All the old maids in the settlement are after him. There&rsquo;s no
-being up to them. And the worst of stepmothers is, they always set your father
-against you. He&rsquo;d never care anything about you again. He&rsquo;d always
-take her part and her children&rsquo;s part. You see, she&rsquo;d make him
-believe you were all bad.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish you hadn&rsquo;t told me this, Mary,&rdquo; cried Una. &ldquo;It
-makes me feel so unhappy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I only wanted to warn you,&rdquo; said Mary, rather repentantly.
-&ldquo;Of course, your father&rsquo;s so absent-minded he mightn&rsquo;t happen
-to think of getting married again. But it&rsquo;s better to be prepared.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Long after Mary slept serenely little Una lay awake, her eyes smarting with
-tears. On, how dreadful it would be if her father should marry somebody who
-would make him hate her and Jerry and Faith and Carl! She couldn&rsquo;t bear
-it&mdash;she couldn&rsquo;t!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary had not instilled any poison of the kind Miss Cornelia had feared into the
-manse children&rsquo;s minds. Yet she had certainly contrived to do a little
-mischief with the best of intentions. But she slept dreamlessly, while Una lay
-awake and the rain fell and the wind wailed around the old gray manse. And the
-Rev. John Meredith forgot to go to bed at all because he was absorbed in
-reading a life of St. Augustine. It was gray dawn when he finished it and went
-upstairs, wrestling with the problems of two thousand years ago. The door of
-the girls&rsquo; room was open and he saw Faith lying asleep, rosy and
-beautiful. He wondered where Una was. Perhaps she had gone over to &ldquo;stay
-all night&rdquo; with the Blythe girls. She did this occasionally, deeming it a
-great treat. John Meredith sighed. He felt that Una&rsquo;s whereabouts ought
-not to be a mystery to him. Cecelia would have looked after her better than
-that.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-If only Cecelia were still with him! How pretty and gay she had been! How the
-old manse up at Maywater had echoed to her songs! And she had gone away so
-suddenly, taking her laughter and music and leaving silence&mdash;so suddenly
-that he had never quite got over his feeling of amazement. How could <i>she</i>, the
-beautiful and vivid, have died?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The idea of a second marriage had never presented itself seriously to John
-Meredith. He had loved his wife so deeply that he believed he could never care
-for any woman again. He had a vague idea that before very long Faith would be
-old enough to take her mother&rsquo;s place. Until then, he must do the best he
-could alone. He sighed and went to his room, where the bed was still unmade.
-Aunt Martha had forgotten it, and Mary had not dared to make it because Aunt
-Martha had forbidden her to meddle with anything in the minister&rsquo;s room.
-But Mr. Meredith did not notice that it was unmade. His last thoughts were of
-St. Augustine.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap10"></a>CHAPTER X.<br />
-THE MANSE GIRLS CLEAN HOUSE</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ugh,&rdquo; said Faith, sitting up in bed with a shiver.
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s raining. I do hate a rainy Sunday. Sunday is dull enough even
-when it&rsquo;s fine.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We oughtn&rsquo;t to find Sunday dull,&rdquo; said Una sleepily, trying
-to pull her drowsy wits together with an uneasy conviction that they had
-overslept.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But we <i>do</i>, you know,&rdquo; said Faith candidly. &ldquo;Mary Vance says
-most Sundays are so dull she could hang herself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We ought to like Sunday better than Mary Vance,&rdquo; said Una
-remorsefully. &ldquo;We&rsquo;re the minister&rsquo;s children.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish we were a blacksmith&rsquo;s children,&rdquo; protested Faith
-angrily, hunting for her stockings. &ldquo;<i>Then</i> people wouldn&rsquo;t expect us
-to be better than other children. <i>Just</i> look at the holes in my heels. Mary
-darned them all up before she went away, but they&rsquo;re as bad as ever now.
-Una, get up. I can&rsquo;t get the breakfast alone. Oh, dear. I wish father and
-Jerry were home. You wouldn&rsquo;t think we&rsquo;d miss father much&mdash;we
-don&rsquo;t see much of him when he is home. And yet <i>everything</i> seems gone. I
-must run in and see how Aunt Martha is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is she any better?&rdquo; asked Una, when Faith returned.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, she isn&rsquo;t. She&rsquo;s groaning with the misery still. Maybe
-we ought to tell Dr. Blythe. But she says not&mdash;she never had a doctor in
-her life and she isn&rsquo;t going to begin now. She says doctors just live by
-poisoning people. Do you suppose they do?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, of course not,&rdquo; said Una indignantly. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m sure
-Dr. Blythe wouldn&rsquo;t poison anybody.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, we&rsquo;ll have to rub Aunt Martha&rsquo;s back again after
-breakfast. We&rsquo;d better not make the flannels as hot as we did
-yesterday.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith giggled over the remembrance. They had nearly scalded the skin off poor
-Aunt Martha&rsquo;s back. Una sighed. Mary Vance would have known just what the
-precise temperature of flannels for a misery back should be. Mary knew
-everything. They knew nothing. And how could they learn, save by bitter
-experience for which, in this instance, unfortunate Aunt Martha had paid?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The preceding Monday Mr. Meredith had left for Nova Scotia to spend his short
-vacation, taking Jerry with him. On Wednesday Aunt Martha was suddenly seized
-with a recurring and mysterious ailment which she always called &ldquo;the
-misery,&rdquo; and which was tolerably certain to attack her at the most
-inconvenient times. She could not rise from her bed, any movement causing
-agony. A doctor she flatly refused to have. Faith and Una cooked the meals and
-waited on her. The less said about the meals the better&mdash;yet they were not
-much worse than Aunt Martha&rsquo;s had been. There were many women in the
-village who would have been glad to come and help, but Aunt Martha refused to
-let her plight be known.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You must worry on till I kin git around,&rdquo; she groaned.
-&ldquo;Thank goodness, John isn&rsquo;t here. There&rsquo;s a plenty o&rsquo;
-cold biled meat and bread and you kin try your hand at making porridge.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The girls had tried their hand, but so far without much success. The first day
-it had been too thin. The next day so thick that you could cut it in slices.
-And both days it had been burned.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hate porridge,&rdquo; said Faith viciously. &ldquo;When I have a house
-of my own I&rsquo;m <i>never</i> going to have a single bit of porridge in it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What&rsquo;ll your children do then?&rdquo; asked Una. &ldquo;Children
-have to have porridge or they won&rsquo;t grow. Everybody says so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They&rsquo;ll have to get along without it or stay runts,&rdquo;
-retorted Faith stubbornly. &ldquo;Here, Una, you stir it while I set the table.
-If I leave it for a minute the horrid stuff will burn. It&rsquo;s half past
-nine. We&rsquo;ll be late for Sunday School.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I haven&rsquo;t seen anyone going past yet,&rdquo; said Una.
-&ldquo;There won&rsquo;t likely be many out. Just see how it&rsquo;s pouring.
-And when there&rsquo;s no preaching the folks won&rsquo;t come from a distance
-to bring the children.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Go and call Carl,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl, it appeared, had a sore throat, induced by getting wet in the Rainbow
-Valley marsh the previous evening while pursuing dragon-flies. He had come home
-with dripping stockings and boots and had sat out the evening in them. He could
-not eat any breakfast and Faith made him go back to bed again. She and Una left
-the table as it was and went to Sunday School. There was no one in the school
-room when they got there and no one came. They waited until eleven and then
-went home.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There doesn&rsquo;t seem to be anybody at the Methodist Sunday School
-either,&rdquo; said Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m <i>glad</i>,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;I&rsquo;d hate to think the
-Methodists were better at going to Sunday School on rainy Sundays than the
-Presbyterians. But there&rsquo;s no preaching in their Church to-day, either,
-so likely their Sunday School is in the afternoon.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una washed the dishes, doing them quite nicely, for so much had she learned
-from Mary Vance. Faith swept the floor after a fashion and peeled the potatoes
-for dinner, cutting her finger in the process.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish we had something for dinner besides ditto,&rdquo; sighed Una.
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m so tired of it. The Blythe children don&rsquo;t know what
-ditto is. And we <i>never</i> have any pudding. Nan says Susan would faint if they had
-no pudding on Sundays. Why aren&rsquo;t we like other people, Faith?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t want to be like other people,&rdquo; laughed Faith, tying
-up her bleeding finger. &ldquo;I like being myself. It&rsquo;s more
-interesting. Jessie Drew is as good a housekeeper as her mother, but would you
-want to be as stupid as she is?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But our house isn&rsquo;t right. Mary Vance says so. She says people
-talk about it being so untidy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith had an inspiration.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll clean it all up,&rdquo; she cried. &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll go
-right to work to-morrow. It&rsquo;s a real good chance when Aunt Martha is laid
-up and can&rsquo;t interfere with us. We&rsquo;ll have it all lovely and clean
-when father comes home, just like it was when Mary went away. <i>any one</i> can sweep
-and dust and wash windows. People won&rsquo;t be able to talk about us any
-more. Jem Blythe says it&rsquo;s only old cats that talk, but their talk hurts
-just as much as anybody&rsquo;s.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope it will be fine to-morrow,&rdquo; said Una, fired with
-enthusiasm. &ldquo;Oh, Faith, it will be splendid to be all cleaned up and like
-other people.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope Aunt Martha&rsquo;s misery will last over to-morrow,&rdquo; said
-Faith. &ldquo;If it doesn&rsquo;t we won&rsquo;t get a single thing
-done.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith&rsquo;s amiable wish was fulfilled. The next day found Aunt Martha still
-unable to rise. Carl, too, was still sick and easily prevailed on to stay in
-bed. Neither Faith nor Una had any idea how sick the boy really was; a watchful
-mother would have had a doctor without delay; but there was no mother, and poor
-little Carl, with his sore throat and aching head and crimson cheeks, rolled
-himself up in his twisted bedclothes and suffered alone, somewhat comforted by
-the companionship of a small green lizard in the pocket of his ragged nighty.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The world was full of summer sunshine after the rain. It was a peerless day for
-house-cleaning and Faith and Una went gaily to work.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll clean the dining-room and the parlour,&rdquo; said Faith.
-&ldquo;It wouldn&rsquo;t do to meddle with the study, and it doesn&rsquo;t
-matter much about the upstairs. The first thing is to take everything
-out.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Accordingly, everything was taken out. The furniture was piled on the veranda
-and lawn and the Methodist graveyard fence was gaily draped with rugs. An orgy
-of sweeping followed, with an attempt at dusting on Una&rsquo;s part, while
-Faith washed the windows of the dining-room, breaking one pane and cracking two
-in the process. Una surveyed the streaked result dubiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They don&rsquo;t look right, somehow,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;Mrs.
-Elliott&rsquo;s and Susan&rsquo;s windows just shine and sparkle.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Never mind. They let the sunshine through just as well,&rdquo; said
-Faith cheerfully. &ldquo;They <i>must</i> be clean after all the soap and water
-I&rsquo;ve used, and that&rsquo;s the main thing. Now, it&rsquo;s past eleven,
-so I&rsquo;ll wipe up this mess on the floor and we&rsquo;ll go outside. You
-dust the furniture and I&rsquo;ll shake the rugs. I&rsquo;m going to do it in
-the graveyard. I don&rsquo;t want to send dust flying all over the lawn.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith enjoyed the rug shaking. To stand on Hezekiah Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone,
-flapping and shaking rugs, was real fun. To be sure, Elder Abraham Clow and his
-wife, driving past in their capacious double-seated buggy, seemed to gaze at
-her in grim disapproval.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Isn&rsquo;t that a terrible sight?&rdquo; said Elder Abraham solemnly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I would never have believed it if I hadn&rsquo;t seen it with my own
-eyes,&rdquo; said Mrs. Elder Abraham, more solemnly still.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith waved a door mat cheerily at the Clow party. It did not worry her that
-the elder and his wife did not return her greeting. Everybody knew that Elder
-Abraham had never been known to smile since he had been appointed
-Superintendent of the Sunday School fourteen years previously. But it hurt her
-that Minnie and Adella Clow did not wave back. Faith liked Minnie and Adella.
-Next to the Blythes, they were her best friends in school and she always helped
-Adella with her sums. This was gratitude for you. Her friends cut her because
-she was shaking rugs in an old graveyard where, as Mary Vance said, not a
-living soul had been buried for years. Faith flounced around to the veranda,
-where she found Una grieved in spirit because the Clow girls had not waved to
-her, either.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose they&rsquo;re mad over something,&rdquo; said Faith.
-&ldquo;Perhaps they&rsquo;re jealous because we play so much in Rainbow Valley
-with the Blythes. Well, just wait till school opens and Adella wants me to show
-her how to do her sums! We&rsquo;ll get square then. Come on, let&rsquo;s put
-the things back in. I&rsquo;m tired to death and I don&rsquo;t believe the
-rooms will look much better than before we started&mdash;though I shook out
-pecks of dust in the graveyard. I <i>hate</i> house-cleaning.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was two o&rsquo;clock before the tired girls finished the two rooms. They
-got a dreary bite in the kitchen and intended to wash the dishes at once. But
-Faith happened to pick up a new story-book Di Blythe had lent her and was lost
-to the world until sunset. Una took a cup of rank tea up to Carl but found him
-asleep; so she curled herself up on Jerry&rsquo;s bed and went to sleep too.
-Meanwhile, a weird story flew through Glen St. Mary and folks asked each other
-seriously what was to be done with those manse youngsters.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is past laughing at, believe <i>me</i>,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia to her
-husband, with a heavy sigh. &ldquo;I couldn&rsquo;t believe it at first.
-Miranda Drew brought the story home from the Methodist Sunday School this
-afternoon and I simply scoffed at it. But Mrs. Elder Abraham says she and the
-Elder saw it with their own eyes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Saw what?&rdquo; asked Marshall.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Faith and Una Meredith stayed home from Sunday School this morning and
-<i>cleaned house</i>,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, in accents of despair. &ldquo;When
-Elder Abraham went home from the church&mdash;he had stayed behind to
-straighten out the library books&mdash;he saw them shaking rugs in the
-Methodist graveyard. I can never look a Methodist in the face again. Just think
-what a scandal it will make!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A scandal it assuredly did make, growing more scandalous as it spread, until
-the over-harbour people heard that the manse children had not only cleaned
-house and put out a washing on Sunday, but had wound up with an afternoon
-picnic in the graveyard while the Methodist Sunday School was going on. The
-only household which remained in blissful ignorance of the terrible thing was
-the manse itself; on what Faith and Una fondly believed to be Tuesday it rained
-again; for the next three days it rained; nobody came near the manse; the manse
-folk went nowhere; they might have waded through the misty Rainbow Valley up to
-Ingleside, but all the Blythe family, save Susan and the doctor, were away on a
-visit to Avonlea.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This is the last of our bread,&rdquo; said Faith, &ldquo;and the ditto
-is done. If Aunt Martha doesn&rsquo;t get better soon <i>what</i> will we do?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We can buy some bread in the village and there&rsquo;s the codfish Mary
-dried,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;But we don&rsquo;t know how to cook it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, that&rsquo;s easy,&rdquo; laughed Faith. &ldquo;You just boil
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Boil it they did; but as it did not occur to them to soak it beforehand it was
-too salty to eat. That night they were very hungry; but by the following day
-their troubles were over. Sunshine returned to the world; Carl was well and
-Aunt Martha&rsquo;s misery left her as suddenly as it had come; the butcher
-called at the manse and chased famine away. To crown all, the Blythes returned
-home, and that evening they and the manse children and Mary Vance kept sunset
-tryst once more in Rainbow Valley, where the daisies were floating upon the
-grass like spirits of the dew and the bells on the Tree Lovers rang like fairy
-chimes in the scented twilight.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap11"></a>CHAPTER XI.<br />
-A DREADFUL DISCOVERY</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you kids have gone and done it now,&rdquo; was Mary&rsquo;s
-greeting, as she joined them in the Valley. Miss Cornelia was up at Ingleside,
-holding agonized conclave with Anne and Susan, and Mary hoped that the session
-might be a long one, for it was all of two weeks since she had been allowed to
-revel with her chums in the dear valley of rainbows.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Done what?&rdquo; demanded everybody but Walter, who was day-dreaming as
-usual.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s you manse young ones, I mean,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;It was
-just awful of you. <i>I</i> wouldn&rsquo;t have done such a thing for the
-world, and <i>I</i> weren&rsquo;t brought up in a manse&mdash;weren&rsquo;t
-brought up <i>anywhere</i>&mdash;just <i>come</i> up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What have <i>we</i> done?&rdquo; asked Faith blankly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Done! You&rsquo;d <i>better</i> ask! The talk is something terrible. I expect
-it&rsquo;s ruined your father in this congregation. He&rsquo;ll never be able
-to live it down, poor man! Everybody blames him for it, and that isn&rsquo;t
-fair. But nothing <i>is</i> fair in this world. You ought to be ashamed of
-yourselves.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What <i>have</i> we done?&rdquo; asked Una again, despairingly. Faith said
-nothing, but her eyes flashed golden-brown scorn at Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, don&rsquo;t pretend innocence,&rdquo; said Mary, witheringly.
-&ldquo;Everybody knows what you have done.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>I</i> don&rsquo;t,&rdquo; interjected Jem Blythe indignantly.
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t let me catch you making Una cry, Mary Vance. What are you
-talking about?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I s&rsquo;pose you don&rsquo;t know, since you&rsquo;re just back from
-up west,&rdquo; said Mary, somewhat subdued. Jem could always manage her.
-&ldquo;But everybody else knows, you&rsquo;d better believe.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Knows what?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That Faith and Una stayed home from Sunday School last Sunday and
-<i>cleaned house</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We didn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; cried Faith and Una, in passionate denial.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary looked haughtily at them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t suppose you&rsquo;d deny it, after the way you&rsquo;ve
-combed <i>me</i> down for lying,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;What&rsquo;s the good of
-saying you didn&rsquo;t? Everybody knows you <i>did</i>. Elder Clow and his wife saw
-you. Some people say it will break up the church, but <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t go
-that far. You <i>are</i> nice ones.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Nan Blythe stood up and put her arms around the dazed Faith and Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They were nice enough to take you in and feed you and clothe you when
-you were starving in Mr. Taylor&rsquo;s barn, Mary Vance,&rdquo; she said.
-&ldquo;You are <i>very</i> grateful, I must say.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I <i>am</i> grateful,&rdquo; retorted Mary. &ldquo;You&rsquo;d know it if
-you&rsquo;d heard me standing up for Mr. Meredith through thick and thin.
-I&rsquo;ve blistered my tongue talking for him this week. I&rsquo;ve said again
-and again that he isn&rsquo;t to blame if his young ones did clean house on
-Sunday. He was away&mdash;and they knew better.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But we didn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; protested Una. &ldquo;It was <i>Monday</i> we
-cleaned house. Wasn&rsquo;t it, Faith?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course it was,&rdquo; said Faith, with flashing eyes. &ldquo;We went
-to Sunday School in spite of the rain&mdash;and no one came&mdash;not even
-Elder Abraham, for all his talk about fair-weather Christians.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It was Saturday it rained,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;Sunday was as fine
-as silk. I wasn&rsquo;t at Sunday School because I had toothache, but every one
-else was and they saw all your stuff out on the lawn. And Elder Abraham and
-Mrs. Elder Abraham saw you shaking rugs in the graveyard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una sat down among the daisies and began to cry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Look here,&rdquo; said Jem resolutely, &ldquo;this thing must be cleared
-up. <i>Somebody</i> has made a mistake. Sunday <i>was</i> fine, Faith. How could you have
-thought Saturday was Sunday?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Prayer-meeting was Thursday night,&rdquo; cried Faith, &ldquo;and Adam
-flew into the soup-pot on Friday when Aunt Martha&rsquo;s cat chased him, and
-spoiled our dinner; and Saturday there was a snake in the cellar and Carl
-caught it with a forked stick and carried it out, and Sunday it rained. So
-there!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Prayer-meeting was Wednesday night,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;Elder
-Baxter was to lead and he couldn&rsquo;t go Thursday night and it was changed
-to Wednesday. You were just a day out, Faith Meredith, and you <i>did</i> work on
-Sunday.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Suddenly Faith burst into a peal of laughter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose we did. What a joke!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t much of a joke for your father,&rdquo; said Mary sourly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;ll be all right when people find out it was just a
-mistake,&rdquo; said Faith carelessly. &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll explain.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can explain till you&rsquo;re black in the face,&rdquo; said Mary,
-&ldquo;but a lie like that&rsquo;ll travel faster&rsquo;n further than you ever
-will. I&rsquo;VE seen more of the world than you and <i>I</i> know. Besides,
-there are plenty of folks won&rsquo;t believe it was a mistake.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They will if I tell them,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can&rsquo;t tell everybody,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;No, I tell you
-you&rsquo;ve disgraced your father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una&rsquo;s evening was spoiled by this dire reflection, but Faith refused to
-be made uncomfortable. Besides, she had a plan that would put everything right.
-So she put the past with its mistake behind her and gave herself over to
-enjoyment of the present. Jem went away to fish and Walter came out of his
-reverie and proceeded to describe the woods of heaven. Mary pricked up her ears
-and listened respectfully. Despite her awe of Walter she revelled in his
-&ldquo;book talk.&rdquo; It always gave her a delightful sensation. Walter had
-been reading his Coleridge that day, and he pictured a heaven where
-</p>
-
-<p class="poem">
-&ldquo;There were gardens bright with sinuous rills<br />
-Where blossomed many an incense bearing tree,<br />
-And there were forests ancient as the hills<br />
-Enfolding sunny spots of greenery.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t know there was any woods in heaven,&rdquo; said Mary,
-with a long breath. &ldquo;I thought it was all streets&mdash;and
-streets&mdash;<i>and</i> streets.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course there are woods,&rdquo; said Nan. &ldquo;Mother can&rsquo;t
-live without trees and I can&rsquo;t, so what would be the use of going to
-heaven if there weren&rsquo;t any trees?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There are cities, too,&rdquo; said the young dreamer, &ldquo;splendid
-cities&mdash;coloured just like the sunset, with sapphire towers and rainbow
-domes. They are built of gold and diamonds&mdash;whole streets of diamonds,
-flashing like the sun. In the squares there are crystal fountains kissed by the
-light, and everywhere the asphodel blooms&mdash;the flower of heaven.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Fancy!&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;I saw the main street in Charlottetown
-once and I thought it was real grand, but I s&rsquo;pose it&rsquo;s nothing to
-heaven. Well, it all sounds gorgeous the way you tell it, but won&rsquo;t it be
-kind of dull, too?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I guess we can have some fun when the angels&rsquo; backs are
-turned,&rdquo; said Faith comfortably.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Heaven is <i>all</i> fun,&rdquo; declared Di.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The Bible doesn&rsquo;t say so,&rdquo; cried Mary, who had read so much
-of the Bible on Sunday afternoons under Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s eye that she now
-considered herself quite an authority on it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mother says the Bible language is figurative,&rdquo; said Nan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Does that mean that it isn&rsquo;t true?&rdquo; asked Mary hopefully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;not exactly&mdash;but I think it means that heaven will be just
-like what you&rsquo;d like it to be.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;d like it to be just like Rainbow Valley,&rdquo; said Mary,
-&ldquo;with all you kids to gas and play with. <i>That&rsquo;s</i> good enough for me.
-Anyhow, we can&rsquo;t go to heaven till we&rsquo;re dead and maybe not then,
-so what&rsquo;s the use of worrying? Here&rsquo;s Jem with a string of trout
-and it&rsquo;s my turn to fry them.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We ought to know more about heaven than Walter does when we&rsquo;re the
-minister&rsquo;s family,&rdquo; said Una, as they walked home that night.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We <i>know</i> just as much, but Walter can <i>imagine</i>,&rdquo; said Faith.
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott says he gets it from his mother.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do wish we hadn&rsquo;t made that mistake about Sunday,&rdquo; sighed
-Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t worry over that. I&rsquo;ve thought of a great plan to
-explain so that everybody will know,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;Just wait till
-to-morrow night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap12"></a>CHAPTER XII.<br />
-AN EXPLANATION AND A DARE</h2>
-
-<p>
-The Rev. Dr. Cooper preached in Glen St. Mary the next evening and the
-Presbyterian Church was crowded with people from near and far. The Reverend
-Doctor was reputed to be a very eloquent speaker; and, bearing in mind the old
-dictum that a minister should take his best clothes to the city and his best
-sermons to the country, he delivered a very scholarly and impressive discourse.
-But when the folks went home that night it was not of Dr. Cooper&rsquo;s sermon
-they talked. They had completely forgotten all about it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dr. Cooper had concluded with a fervent appeal, had wiped the perspiration from
-his massive brow, had said &ldquo;Let us pray&rdquo; as he was famed for saying
-it, and had duly prayed. There was a slight pause. In Glen St. Mary church the
-old fashion of taking the collection after the sermon instead of before still
-held&mdash;mainly because the Methodists had adopted the new fashion first, and
-Miss Cornelia and Elder Clow would not hear of following where Methodists had
-led. Charles Baxter and Thomas Douglas, whose duty it was to pass the plates,
-were on the point of rising to their feet. The organist had got out the music
-of her anthem and the choir had cleared its throat. Suddenly Faith Meredith
-rose in the manse pew, walked up to the pulpit platform, and faced the amazed
-audience.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia half rose in her seat and then sat down again. Her pew was far
-back and it occurred to her that whatever Faith meant to do or say would be
-half done or said before she could reach her. There was no use making the
-exhibition worse than it had to be. With an anguished glance at Mrs. Dr.
-Blythe, and another at Deacon Warren of the Methodist Church, Miss Cornelia
-resigned herself to another scandal.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If the child was only dressed decently itself,&rdquo; she groaned in
-spirit.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith, having spilled ink on her good dress, had serenely put on an old one of
-faded pink print. A caticornered rent in the skirt had been darned with scarlet
-tracing cotton and the hem had been let down, showing a bright strip of unfaded
-pink around the skirt. But Faith was not thinking of her clothes at all. She
-was feeling suddenly nervous. What had seemed easy in imagination was rather
-hard in reality. Confronted by all those staring questioning eyes Faith&rsquo;s
-courage almost failed her. The lights were so bright, the silence so awesome.
-She thought she could not speak after all. But she <i>must</i>&mdash;her father <i>must</i>
-be cleared of suspicion. Only&mdash;the words would <i>not</i> come.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una&rsquo;s little pearl-pure face gleamed up at her beseechingly from the
-manse pew. The Blythe children were lost in amazement. Back under the gallery
-Faith saw the sweet graciousness of Miss Rosemary West&rsquo;s smile and the
-amusement of Miss Ellen&rsquo;s. But none of these helped her. It was Bertie
-Shakespeare Drew who saved the situation. Bertie Shakespeare sat in the front
-seat of the gallery and he made a derisive face at Faith. Faith promptly made a
-dreadful one back at him, and, in her anger over being grimaced at by Bertie
-Shakespeare, forgot her stage fright. She found her voice and spoke out clearly
-and bravely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I want to explain something,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;and I want to do it
-now because everybody will hear it that heard the other. People are saying that
-Una and I stayed home last Sunday and cleaned house instead of going to Sunday
-School. Well, we did&mdash;but we didn&rsquo;t mean to. We got mixed up in the
-days of the week. It was all Elder Baxter&rsquo;s fault&rdquo;&mdash;sensation
-in Baxter&rsquo;s pew&mdash;&ldquo;because he went and changed the
-prayer-meeting to Wednesday night and then we thought Thursday was Friday and
-so on till we thought Saturday was Sunday. Carl was laid up sick and so was
-Aunt Martha, so they couldn&rsquo;t put us right. We went to Sunday School in
-all that rain on Saturday and nobody came. And then we thought we&rsquo;d clean
-house on Monday and stop old cats from talking about how dirty the manse
-was&rdquo;&mdash;general sensation all over the church&mdash;&ldquo;and we did.
-I shook the rugs in the Methodist graveyard because it was such a convenient
-place and not because I meant to be disrespectful of the dead. It isn&rsquo;t
-the dead folks who have made the fuss over this&mdash;it&rsquo;s the living
-folks. And it isn&rsquo;t right for any of you to blame my father for this,
-because he was away and didn&rsquo;t know, and anyhow we thought it was Monday.
-He&rsquo;s just the best father that ever lived in the world and we love him
-with all our hearts.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith&rsquo;s bravado ebbed out in a sob. She ran down the steps and flashed
-out of the side door of the church. There the friendly starlit, summer night
-comforted her and the ache went out of her eyes and throat. She felt very
-happy. The dreadful explanation was over and everybody knew now that her father
-wasn&rsquo;t to blame and that she and Una were not so wicked as to have
-cleaned house knowingly on Sunday.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Inside the church people gazed blankly at each other, but Thomas Douglas rose
-and walked up the aisle with a set face. <i>His</i> duty was clear; the collection
-must be taken if the skies fell. Taken it was; the choir sang the anthem, with
-a dismal conviction that it fell terribly flat, and Dr. Cooper gave out the
-concluding hymn and pronounced the benediction with considerably less unction
-than usual. The Reverend Doctor had a sense of humour and Faith&rsquo;s
-performance tickled him. Besides, John Meredith was well known in Presbyterian
-circles.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith returned home the next afternoon, but before his coming Faith
-contrived to scandalize Glen St. Mary again. In the reaction from Sunday
-evening&rsquo;s intensity and strain she was especially full of what Miss
-Cornelia would have called &ldquo;devilment&rdquo; on Monday. This led her to
-dare Walter Blythe to ride through Main Street on a pig, while she rode another
-one.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The pigs in question were two tall, lank animals, supposed to belong to Bertie
-Shakespeare Drew&rsquo;s father, which had been haunting the roadside by the
-manse for a couple of weeks. Walter did not want to ride a pig through Glen St.
-Mary, but whatever Faith Meredith dared him to do must be done. They tore down
-the hill and through the village, Faith bent double with laughter over her
-terrified courser, Walter crimson with shame. They tore past the minister
-himself, just coming home from the station; he, being a little less dreamy and
-abstracted than usual&mdash;owing to having had a talk on the train with Miss
-Cornelia who always wakened him up temporarily&mdash;noticed them, and thought
-he really must speak to Faith about it and tell her that such conduct was not
-seemly. But he had forgotten the trifling incident by the time he reached home.
-They passed Mrs. Alec Davis, who shrieked in horror, and they passed Miss
-Rosemary West who laughed and sighed. Finally, just before the pigs swooped
-into Bertie Shakespeare Drew&rsquo;s back yard, never to emerge therefrom
-again, so great had been the shock to their nerves&mdash;Faith and Walter
-jumped off, as Dr. and Mrs. Blythe drove swiftly by.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So that is how you bring up your boys,&rdquo; said Gilbert with mock
-severity.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Perhaps I do spoil them a little,&rdquo; said Anne contritely,
-&ldquo;but, oh, Gilbert, when I think of my own childhood before I came to
-Green Gables I haven&rsquo;t the heart to be very strict. How hungry for love
-and fun I was&mdash;an unloved little drudge with never a chance to play! They
-do have such good times with the manse children.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What about the poor pigs?&rdquo; asked Gilbert.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Anne tried to look sober and failed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you really think it hurt them?&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t
-think anything could hurt those animals. They&rsquo;ve been the plague of the
-neighbourhood this summer and the Drews <i>won&rsquo;t</i> shut them up. But
-I&rsquo;ll talk to Walter&mdash;if I can keep from laughing when I do
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia came up to Ingleside that evening to relieve her feelings over
-Sunday night. To her surprise she found that Anne did not view Faith&rsquo;s
-performance in quite the same light as she did.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I thought there was something brave and pathetic in her getting up there
-before that churchful of people, to confess,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;You could
-see she was frightened to death&mdash;yet she was bound to clear her father. I
-loved her for it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, of course, the poor child meant well,&rdquo; sighed Miss Cornelia,
-&ldquo;but just the same it was a terrible thing to do, and is making more talk
-than the house-cleaning on Sunday. <i>That</i> had begun to die away, and this has
-started it all up again. Rosemary West is like you&mdash;she said last night as
-she left the church that it was a plucky thing for Faith to do, but it made her
-feel sorry for the child, too. Miss Ellen thought it all a good joke, and said
-she hadn&rsquo;t had as much fun in church for years. Of course <i>they</i>
-don&rsquo;t care&mdash;they are Episcopalians. But we Presbyterians feel it.
-And there were so many hotel people there that night and scores of Methodists.
-Mrs. Leander Crawford cried, she felt so bad. And Mrs. Alec Davis said the
-little hussy ought to be spanked.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Leander Crawford is always crying in church,&rdquo; said Susan
-contemptuously. &ldquo;She cries over every affecting thing the minister says.
-But you do not often see her name on a subscription list, Mrs. Dr. dear. Tears
-come cheaper. She tried to talk to me one day about Aunt Martha being such a
-dirty housekeeper; and I wanted to say, &lsquo;Every one knows that <i>you</i> have
-been seen mixing up cakes in the kitchen wash-pan, Mrs. Leander
-Crawford!&rsquo; But I did not say it, Mrs. Dr. dear, because I have too much
-respect for myself to condescend to argue with the likes of her. But I could
-tell worse things than <i>that</i> of Mrs. Leander Crawford, if I was disposed to
-gossip. And as for Mrs. Alec Davis, if she had said that to me, Mrs. Dr. dear,
-do you know what I would have said? I would have said, &lsquo;I have no doubt
-you would like to spank Faith, Mrs. Davis, but you will never have the chance
-to spank a minister&rsquo;s daughter either in this world or in that which is
-to come.&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If poor Faith had only been decently dressed,&rdquo; lamented Miss
-Cornelia again, &ldquo;it wouldn&rsquo;t have been quite that bad. But that
-dress looked dreadful, as she stood there upon the platform.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It was clean, though, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;They <i>are</i>
-clean children. They may be very heedless and reckless, Mrs. Dr. dear, and I am
-not saying they are not, but they <i>never</i> forget to wash behind their
-ears.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The idea of Faith forgetting what day was Sunday,&rdquo; persisted Miss
-Cornelia. &ldquo;She will grow up just as careless and impractical as her
-father, believe <i>me</i>. I suppose Carl would have known better if he hadn&rsquo;t
-been sick. I don&rsquo;t know what was wrong with him, but I think it very
-likely he had been eating those blueberries that grew in the graveyard. No
-wonder they made him sick. If I was a Methodist I&rsquo;d try to keep my
-graveyard cleaned up at least.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am of the opinion that Carl only ate the sours that grow on the
-dyke,&rdquo; said Susan hopefully. &ldquo;I do not think <i>any</i> minister&rsquo;s
-son would eat blueberries that grew on the graves of dead people. You know it
-would not be so bad, Mrs. Dr. dear, to eat things that grew on the dyke.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The worst of last night&rsquo;s performance was the face Faith made made
-at somebody in the congregation before she started in,&rdquo; said Miss
-Cornelia. &ldquo;Elder Clow declares she made it at him. And <i>did</i> you hear that
-she was seen riding on a pig to-day?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I saw her. Walter was with her. I gave him a little&mdash;a <i>very</i>
-little&mdash;scolding about it. He did not say much, but he gave me the
-impression that it had been his idea and that Faith was not to blame.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do not not believe <i>that</i>, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; cried Susan, up in
-arms. &ldquo;That is just Walter&rsquo;s way&mdash;to take the blame on
-himself. But you know as well as I do, Mrs. Dr. dear, that that blessed child
-would never have thought of riding on a pig, even if he does write
-poetry.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, there&rsquo;s no doubt the notion was hatched in Faith
-Meredith&rsquo;s brain,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;And I don&rsquo;t say
-that I&rsquo;m sorry that Amos Drew&rsquo;s old pigs did get their come-uppance
-for once. But the minister&rsquo;s daughter!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>And</i> the doctor&rsquo;s son!&rdquo; said Anne, mimicking Miss
-Cornelia&rsquo;s tone. Then she laughed. &ldquo;Dear Miss Cornelia,
-they&rsquo;re only little children. And you <i>know</i> they&rsquo;ve never yet done
-anything bad&mdash;they&rsquo;re just heedless and impulsive&mdash;as I was
-myself once. They&rsquo;ll grow sedate and sober&mdash;as I&rsquo;ve
-done.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia laughed, too.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There are times, Anne dearie, when I know by your eyes that <i>your</i>
-soberness is put on like a garment and you&rsquo;re really aching to do
-something wild and young again. Well, I feel encouraged. Somehow, a talk with
-you always does have that effect on me. Now, when I go to see Barbara Samson,
-it&rsquo;s just the opposite. She makes me feel that everything&rsquo;s wrong
-and always will be. But of course living all your life with a man like Joe
-Samson wouldn&rsquo;t be exactly cheering.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is a very strange thing to think that she married Joe Samson after
-all her chances,&rdquo; remarked Susan. &ldquo;She was much sought after when
-she was a girl. She used to boast to me that she had twenty-one beaus and Mr.
-Pethick.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What was Mr. Pethick?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, he was a sort of hanger-on, Mrs. Dr. dear, but you could not
-exactly call him a beau. He did not really have any intentions. Twenty-one
-beaus&mdash;and me that never had one! But Barbara went through the woods and
-picked up the crooked stick after all. And yet they say her husband can make
-better baking powder biscuits than she can, and she always gets him to make
-them when company comes to tea.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Which reminds <i>me</i> that I have company coming to tea to-morrow and I must
-go home and set my bread,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;Mary said she could
-set it and no doubt she could. But while I live and move and have my being
-<i>I</i> set my own bread, believe me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How is Mary getting on?&rdquo; asked Anne.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve no fault to find with Mary,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia rather
-gloomily. &ldquo;She&rsquo;s getting some flesh on her bones and she&rsquo;s
-clean and respectful&mdash;though there&rsquo;s more in her than <i>I</i> can
-fathom. She&rsquo;s a sly puss. If you dug for a thousand years you
-couldn&rsquo;t get to the bottom of that child&rsquo;s mind, believe <i>me!</i> As for
-work, I never saw anything like her. She <i>eats</i> it up. Mrs. Wiley may have been
-cruel to her, but folks needn&rsquo;t say she made Mary work. Mary&rsquo;s a
-born worker. Sometimes I wonder which will wear out first&mdash;her legs or her
-tongue. I don&rsquo;t have enough to do to keep me out of mischief these days.
-I&rsquo;ll be real glad when school opens, for then I&rsquo;ll have something
-to do again. Mary doesn&rsquo;t want to go to school, but I put my foot down
-and said that go she must. I shall <i>not</i> have the Methodists saying that I kept
-her out of school while I lolled in idleness.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap13"></a>CHAPTER XIII.<br />
-THE HOUSE ON THE HILL</h2>
-
-<p>
-There was a little unfailing spring, always icy cold and crystal pure, in a
-certain birch-screened hollow of Rainbow Valley in the lower corner near the
-marsh. Not a great many people knew of its existence. The manse and Ingleside
-children knew, of course, as they knew everything else about the magic valley.
-Occasionally they went there to get a drink, and it figured in many of their
-plays as a fountain of old romance. Anne knew of it and loved it because it
-somehow reminded her of the beloved Dryad&rsquo;s Bubble at Green Gables.
-Rosemary West knew of it; it was her fountain of romance, too. Eighteen years
-ago she had sat behind it one spring twilight and heard young Martin Crawford
-stammer out a confession of fervent, boyish love. She had whispered her own
-secret in return, and they had kissed and promised by the wild wood spring.
-They had never stood together by it again&mdash;Martin had sailed on his fatal
-voyage soon after; but to Rosemary West it was always a sacred spot, hallowed
-by that immortal hour of youth and love. Whenever she passed near it she turned
-aside to hold a secret tryst with an old dream&mdash;a dream from which the
-pain had long gone, leaving only its unforgettable sweetness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The spring was a hidden thing. You might have passed within ten feet of it and
-never have suspected its existence. Two generations past a huge old pine had
-fallen almost across it. Nothing was left of the tree but its crumbling trunk
-out of which the ferns grew thickly, making a green roof and a lacy screen for
-the water. A maple-tree grew beside it with a curiously gnarled and twisted
-trunk, creeping along the ground for a little way before shooting up into the
-air, and so forming a quaint seat; and September had flung a scarf of pale
-smoke-blue asters around the hollow.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith, taking the cross-lots road through Rainbow Valley on his way
-home from some pastoral visitations around the Harbour head one evening, turned
-aside to drink of the little spring. Walter Blythe had shown it to him one
-afternoon only a few days before, and they had had a long talk together on the
-maple seat. John Meredith, under all his shyness and aloofness, had the heart
-of a boy. He had been called Jack in his youth, though nobody in Glen St. Mary
-would ever have believed it. Walter and he had taken to each other and had
-talked unreservedly. Mr. Meredith found his way into some sealed and sacred
-chambers of the lad&rsquo;s soul wherein not even Di had ever looked. They were
-to be chums from that friendly hour and Walter knew that he would never be
-frightened of the minister again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I never believed before that it was possible to get really acquainted
-with a minister,&rdquo; he told his mother that night.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith drank from his slender white hand, whose grip of steel always
-surprised people who were unacquainted with it, and then sat down on the maple
-seat. He was in no hurry to go home; this was a beautiful spot and he was
-mentally weary after a round of rather uninspiring conversations with many good
-and stupid people. The moon was rising. Rainbow Valley was wind-haunted and
-star-sentinelled only where he was, but afar from the upper end came the gay
-notes of children&rsquo;s laughter and voices.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The ethereal beauty of the asters in the moonlight, the glimmer of the little
-spring, the soft croon of the brook, the wavering grace of the brackens all
-wove a white magic round John Meredith. He forgot congregational worries and
-spiritual problems; the years slipped away from him; he was a young divinity
-student again and the roses of June were blooming red and fragrant on the dark,
-queenly head of his Cecilia. He sat there and dreamed like any boy. And it was
-at this propitious moment that Rosemary West stepped aside from the by-path and
-stood beside him in that dangerous, spell-weaving place. John Meredith stood up
-as she came in and saw her&mdash;<i>really</i> saw her&mdash;for the first time.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He had met her in his church once or twice and shaken hands with her
-abstractedly as he did with anyone he happened to encounter on his way down the
-aisle. He had never met her elsewhere, for the Wests were Episcopalians, with
-church affinities in Lowbridge, and no occasion for calling upon them had ever
-arisen. Before to-night, if anyone had asked John Meredith what Rosemary West
-looked like he would not have had the slightest notion. But he was never to
-forget her, as she appeared to him in the glamour of kind moonlight by the
-spring.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She was certainly not in the least like Cecilia, who had always been his ideal
-of womanly beauty. Cecilia had been small and dark and vivacious&mdash;Rosemary
-West was tall and fair and placid, yet John Meredith thought he had never seen
-so beautiful a woman.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She was bareheaded and her golden hair&mdash;hair of a warm gold,
-&ldquo;molasses taffy&rdquo; colour as Di Blythe had said&mdash;was pinned in
-sleek, close coils over her head; she had large, tranquil, blue eyes that
-always seemed full of friendliness, a high white forehead and a finely shaped
-face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary West was always called a &ldquo;sweet woman.&rdquo; She was so sweet
-that even her high-bred, stately air had never gained for her the reputation of
-being &ldquo;stuck-up,&rdquo; which it would inevitably have done in the case
-of anyone else in Glen St. Mary. Life had taught her to be brave, to be
-patient, to love, to forgive. She had watched the ship on which her lover went
-sailing out of Four Winds Harbour into the sunset. But, though she watched
-long, she had never seen it coming sailing back. That vigil had taken girlhood
-from her eyes, yet she kept her youth to a marvellous degree. Perhaps this was
-because she always seemed to preserve that attitude of delighted surprise
-towards life which most of us leave behind in childhood&mdash;an attitude which
-not only made Rosemary herself seem young, but flung a pleasing illusion of
-youth over the consciousness of every one who talked to her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith was startled by her loveliness and Rosemary was startled by his
-presence. She had never thought she would find anyone by that remote spring,
-least of all the recluse of Glen St. Mary manse. She almost dropped the heavy
-armful of books she was carrying home from the Glen lending library, and then,
-to cover her confusion, she told one of those small fibs which even the best of
-women do tell at times.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&mdash;I came for a drink,&rdquo; she said, stammering a little, in
-answer to Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s grave &ldquo;good evening, Miss West.&rdquo; She
-felt that she was an unpardonable goose and she longed to shake herself. But
-John Meredith was not a vain man and he knew she would likely have been as much
-startled had she met old Elder Clow in that unexpected fashion. Her confusion
-put him at ease and he forgot to be shy; besides, even the shyest of men can
-sometimes be quite audacious in moonlight.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let me get you a cup,&rdquo; he said smiling. There was a cup near by,
-if he had only known it, a cracked, handleless blue cup secreted under the
-maple by the Rainbow Valley children; but he did not know it, so he stepped out
-to one of the birch-trees and stripped a bit of its white skin away. Deftly he
-fashioned this into a three-cornered cup, filled it from the spring, and handed
-it to Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary took it and drank every drop to punish herself for her fib, for she
-was not in the least thirsty, and to drink a fairly large cupful of water when
-you are not thirsty is somewhat of an ordeal. Yet the memory of that draught
-was to be very pleasant to Rosemary. In after years it seemed to her that there
-was something sacramental about it. Perhaps this was because of what the
-minister did when she handed him back the cup. He stooped again and filled it
-and drank of it himself. It was only by accident that he put his lips just
-where Rosemary had put hers, and Rosemary knew it. Nevertheless, it had a
-curious significance for her. They two had drunk of the same cup. She
-remembered idly that an old aunt of hers used to say that when two people did
-this their after-lives would be linked in some fashion, whether for good or
-ill.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith held the cup uncertainly. He did not know what to do with it. The
-logical thing would have been to toss it away, but somehow he was disinclined
-to do this. Rosemary held out her hand for it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will you let me have it?&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;You made it so
-knackily. I never saw anyone make a birch cup so since my little brother used
-to make them long ago&mdash;before he died.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I learned how to make them when <i>I</i> was a boy, camping out one
-summer. An old hunter taught me,&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith. &ldquo;Let me carry
-your books, Miss West.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary was startled into another fib and said oh, they were not heavy. But
-the minister took them from her with quite a masterful air and they walked away
-together. It was the first time Rosemary had stood by the valley spring without
-thinking of Martin Crawford. The mystic tryst had been broken.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The little by-path wound around the marsh and then struck up the long wooded
-hill on the top of which Rosemary lived. Beyond, through the trees, they could
-see the moonlight shining across the level summer fields. But the little path
-was shadowy and narrow. Trees crowded over it, and trees are never quite as
-friendly to human beings after nightfall as they are in daylight. They wrap
-themselves away from us. They whisper and plot furtively. If they reach out a
-hand to us it has a hostile, tentative touch. People walking amid trees after
-night always draw closer together instinctively and involuntarily, making an
-alliance, physical and mental, against certain alien powers around them.
-Rosemary&rsquo;s dress brushed against John Meredith as they walked. Not even
-an absent-minded minister, who was after all a young man still, though he
-firmly believed he had outlived romance, could be insensible to the charm of
-the night and the path and the companion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It is never quite safe to think we have done with life. When we imagine we have
-finished our story fate has a trick of turning the page and showing us yet
-another chapter. These two people each thought their hearts belonged
-irrevocably to the past; but they both found their walk up that hill very
-pleasant. Rosemary thought the Glen minister was by no means as shy and
-tongue-tied as he had been represented. He seemed to find no difficulty in
-talking easily and freely. Glen housewives would have been amazed had they
-heard him. But then so many Glen housewives talked only gossip and the price of
-eggs, and John Meredith was not interested in either. He talked to Rosemary of
-books and music and wide-world doings and something of his own history, and
-found that she could understand and respond. Rosemary, it appeared, possessed a
-book which Mr. Meredith had not read and wished to read. She offered to lend it
-to him and when they reached the old homestead on the hill he went in to get
-it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The house itself was an old-fashioned gray one, hung with vines, through which
-the light in the sitting-room winked in friendly fashion. It looked down the
-Glen, over the harbour, silvered in the moonlight, to the sand-dunes and the
-moaning ocean. They walked in through a garden that always seemed to smell of
-roses, even when no roses were in bloom. There was a sisterhood of lilies at
-the gate and a ribbon of asters on either side of the broad walk, and a lacery
-of fir trees on the hill&rsquo;s edge beyond the house.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You have the whole world at your doorstep here,&rdquo; said John
-Meredith, with a long breath. &ldquo;What a view&mdash;what an outlook! At
-times I feel stifled down there in the Glen. You can breathe up here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is calm to-night,&rdquo; said Rosemary laughing. &ldquo;If there were
-a wind it would blow your breath away. We get &lsquo;a&rsquo; the airts the
-wind can blow&rsquo; up here. This place should be called Four Winds instead of
-the Harbour.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I like wind,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;A day when there is no wind seems to
-me <i>dead</i>. A windy day wakes me up.&rdquo; He gave a conscious laugh. &ldquo;On a
-calm day I fall into day dreams. No doubt you know my reputation, Miss West. If
-I cut you dead the next time we meet don&rsquo;t put it down to bad manners.
-Please understand that it is only abstraction and forgive me&mdash;and speak to
-me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They found Ellen West in the sitting room when they went in. She laid her
-glasses down on the book she had been reading and looked at them in amazement
-tinctured with something else. But she shook hands amiably with Mr. Meredith
-and he sat down and talked to her, while Rosemary hunted out his book.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen West was ten years older than Rosemary, and so different from her that it
-was hard to believe they were sisters. She was dark and massive, with black
-hair, thick, black eyebrows and eyes of the clear, slaty blue of the gulf water
-in a north wind. She had a rather stern, forbidding look, but she was in
-reality very jolly, with a hearty, gurgling laugh and a deep, mellow, pleasant
-voice with a suggestion of masculinity about it. She had once remarked to
-Rosemary that she would really like to have a talk with that Presbyterian
-minister at the Glen, to see if he could find a word to say to a woman when he
-was cornered. She had her chance now and she tackled him on world politics.
-Miss Ellen, who was a great reader, had been devouring a book on the Kaiser of
-Germany, and she demanded Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s opinion of him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;A dangerous man,&rdquo; was his answer.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I believe you!&rdquo; Miss Ellen nodded. &ldquo;Mark my words, Mr.
-Meredith, that man is going to fight somebody yet. He&rsquo;s <i>aching</i> to. He is
-going to set the world on fire.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If you mean that he will wantonly precipitate a great war I hardly think
-so,&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith. &ldquo;The day has gone by for that sort of
-thing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Bless you, it hasn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; rumbled Ellen. &ldquo;The day never
-goes by for men and nations to make asses of themselves and take to the fists.
-The millenniun isn&rsquo;t <i>that</i> near, Mr. Meredith, and <i>you</i> don&rsquo;t think
-it is any more than I do. As for this Kaiser, mark my words, he is going to
-make a heap of trouble&rdquo;&mdash;and Miss Ellen prodded her book
-emphatically with her long finger. &ldquo;Yes, if he isn&rsquo;t nipped in the
-bud he&rsquo;s going to make trouble. <i>We&rsquo;ll</i> live to see it&mdash;you and
-I will live to see it, Mr. Meredith. And who is going to nip him? England
-should, but she won&rsquo;t. <i>Who</i> is going to nip him? Tell me that, Mr.
-Meredith.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith couldn&rsquo;t tell her, but they plunged into a discussion of
-German militarism that lasted long after Rosemary had found the book. Rosemary
-said nothing, but sat in a little rocker behind Ellen and stroked an important
-black cat meditatively. John Meredith hunted big game in Europe with Ellen, but
-he looked oftener at Rosemary than at Ellen, and Ellen noticed it. After
-Rosemary had gone to the door with him and come back Ellen rose and looked at
-her accusingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Rosemary West, that man has a notion of courting you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary quivered. Ellen&rsquo;s speech was like a blow to her. It rubbed all
-the bloom off the pleasant evening. But she would not let Ellen see how it hurt
-her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense,&rdquo; she said, and laughed, a little too carelessly.
-&ldquo;You see a beau for me in every bush, Ellen. Why he told me all about his
-wife to-night&mdash;how much she was to him&mdash;how empty her death had left
-the world.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, that may be <i>his</i> way of courting,&rdquo; retorted Ellen. &ldquo;Men
-have all kinds of ways, I understand. But don&rsquo;t forget your promise,
-Rosemary.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is no need of my either forgetting or remembering it,&rdquo; said
-Rosemary, a little wearily. &ldquo;<i>You</i> forget that I&rsquo;m an old maid,
-Ellen. It is only your sisterly delusion that I am still young and blooming and
-dangerous. Mr. Meredith merely wants to be a friend&mdash;if he wants that much
-itself. He&rsquo;ll forget us both long before he gets back to the
-manse.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve no objection to your being friends with him,&rdquo; conceded
-Ellen, &ldquo;but it musn&rsquo;t go beyond friendship, remember. I&rsquo;m
-always suspicious of widowers. They are not given to romantic ideas about
-friendship. They&rsquo;re apt to mean business. As for this Presbyterian man,
-what do they call him shy for? He&rsquo;s not a bit shy, though he may be
-absent-minded&mdash;so absent-minded that he forgot to say goodnight to <i>me</i> when
-you started to go to the door with him. He&rsquo;s got brains, too.
-There&rsquo;s so few men round here that can talk sense to a body. I&rsquo;ve
-enjoyed the evening. I wouldn&rsquo;t mind seeing more of him. But no
-philandering, Rosemary, mind you&mdash;no philandering.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary was quite used to being warned by Ellen from philandering if she so
-much as talked five minutes to any marriageable man under eighty or over
-eighteen. She had always laughed at the warning with unfeigned amusement. This
-time it did not amuse her&mdash;it irritated her a little. Who wanted to
-philander?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t be such a goose, Ellen,&rdquo; she said with unaccustomed
-shortness as she took her lamp. She went upstairs without saying goodnight.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen shook her head dubiously and looked at the black cat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is she so cross about, St. George?&rdquo; she asked. &ldquo;When
-you howl you&rsquo;re hit, I&rsquo;ve always heard, George. But she promised,
-Saint&mdash;she promised, and we Wests always keep our word. So it won&rsquo;t
-matter if he does want to philander, George. She promised. I won&rsquo;t
-worry.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Upstairs, in her room, Rosemary sat for a long while looking out of the window
-across the moonlit garden to the distant, shining harbour. She felt vaguely
-upset and unsettled. She was suddenly tired of outworn dreams. And in the
-garden the petals of the last red rose were scattered by a sudden little wind.
-Summer was over&mdash;it was autumn.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap14"></a>CHAPTER XIV.<br />
-MRS. ALEC DAVIS MAKES A CALL</h2>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith walked slowly home. At first he thought a little about Rosemary,
-but by the time he reached Rainbow Valley he had forgotten all about her and
-was meditating on a point regarding German theology which Ellen had raised. He
-passed through Rainbow Valley and knew it not. The charm of Rainbow Valley had
-no potency against German theology. When he reached the manse he went to his
-study and took down a bulky volume in order to see which had been right, he or
-Ellen. He remained immersed in its mazes until dawn, struck a new trail of
-speculation and pursued it like a sleuth hound for the next week, utterly lost
-to the world, his parish and his family. He read day and night; he forgot to go
-to his meals when Una was not there to drag him to them; he never thought about
-Rosemary or Ellen again. Old Mrs. Marshall, over-harbour, was very ill and sent
-for him, but the message lay unheeded on his desk and gathered dust. Mrs.
-Marshall recovered but never forgave him. A young couple came to the manse to
-be married and Mr. Meredith, with unbrushed hair, in carpet slippers and faded
-dressing gown, married them. To be sure, he began by reading the funeral
-service to them and got along as far as &ldquo;ashes to ashes and dust to
-dust&rdquo; before he vaguely suspected that something was wrong.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dear me,&rdquo; he said absently, &ldquo;that is strange&mdash;very
-strange.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The bride, who was very nervous, began to cry. The bridegroom, who was not in
-the least nervous, giggled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Please, sir, I think you&rsquo;re burying us instead of marrying
-us,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Excuse me,&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith, as it it did not matter much. He
-turned up the marriage service and got through with it, but the bride never
-felt quite properly married for the rest of her life.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He forgot his prayer-meeting again&mdash;but that did not matter, for it was a
-wet night and nobody came. He might even have forgotten his Sunday service if
-it had not been for Mrs. Alec Davis. Aunt Martha came in on Saturday afternoon
-and told him that Mrs. Davis was in the parlour and wanted to see him. Mr.
-Meredith sighed. Mrs. Davis was the only woman in Glen St. Mary church whom he
-positively detested. Unfortunately, she was also the richest, and his board of
-managers had warned Mr. Meredith against offending her. Mr. Meredith seldom
-thought of such a worldly matter as his stipend; but the managers were more
-practical. Also, they were astute. Without mentioning money, they contrived to
-instil into Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s mind a conviction that he should not offend
-Mrs. Davis. Otherwise, he would likely have forgotten all about her as soon as
-Aunt Martha had gone out. As it was, he turned down his Ewald with a feeling of
-annoyance and went across the hall to the parlour.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. Davis was sitting on the sofa, looking about her with an air of scornful
-disapproval.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-What a scandalous room! There were no curtains on the window. Mrs. Davis did
-not know that Faith and Una had taken them down the day before to use as court
-trains in one of their plays and had forgotten to put them up again, but she
-could not have accused those windows more fiercely if she had known. The blinds
-were cracked and torn. The pictures on the walls were crooked; the rugs were
-awry; the vases were full of faded flowers; the dust lay in
-heaps&mdash;literally in heaps.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What are we coming to?&rdquo; Mrs. Davis asked herself, and then primmed
-up her unbeautiful mouth.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jerry and Carl had been whooping and sliding down the banisters as she came
-through the hall. They did not see her and continued whooping and sliding, and
-Mrs. Davis was convinced they did it on purpose. Faith&rsquo;s pet rooster
-ambled through the hall, stood in the parlour doorway and looked at her. Not
-liking her looks, he did not venture in. Mrs. Davis gave a scornful sniff. A
-pretty manse, indeed, where roosters paraded the halls and stared people out of
-countenance.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Shoo, there,&rdquo; commanded Mrs. Davis, poking her flounced,
-changeable-silk parasol at him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Adam shooed. He was a wise rooster and Mrs. Davis had wrung the necks of so
-many roosters with her own fair hands in the course of her fifty years that an
-air of the executioner seemed to hang around her. Adam scuttled through the
-hall as the minister came in.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith still wore slippers and dressing gown, and his dark hair still
-fell in uncared-for locks over his high brow. But he looked the gentleman he
-was; and Mrs. Alec Davis, in her silk dress and beplumed bonnet, and kid gloves
-and gold chain looked the vulgar, coarse-souled woman she was. Each felt the
-antagonisn of the other&rsquo;s personality. Mr. Meredith shrank, but Mrs.
-Davis girded up her loins for the fray. She had come to the manse to propose a
-certain thing to the minister and she meant to lose no time in proposing it.
-She was going to do him a favour&mdash;a great favour&mdash;and the sooner he
-was made aware of it the better. She had been thinking about it all summer and
-had come to a decision at last. This was all that mattered, Mrs. Davis thought.
-When she decided a thing it <i>was</i> decided. Nobody else had any say in the matter.
-That had always been her attitude. When she had made her mind up to marry Alec
-Davis she had married him and that was the end to it. Alec had never known how
-it happened, but what odds? So in this case&mdash;Mrs. Davis had arranged
-everything to her own satisfaction. Now it only remained to inform Mr.
-Meredith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will you please shut that door?&rdquo; said Mrs. Davis, unprimming her
-mouth slightly to say it, but speaking with asperity. &ldquo;I have something
-important to say, and I can&rsquo;t say it with that racket in the hall.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith shut the door meekly. Then he sat down before Mrs. Davis. He was
-not wholly aware of her yet. His mind was still wrestling with Ewald&rsquo;s
-arguments. Mrs. Davis sensed this detachment and it annoyed her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have come to tell you, Mr. Meredith,&rdquo; she said aggressively,
-&ldquo;that I have decided to adopt Una.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;To&mdash;adopt&mdash;Una!&rdquo; Mr. Meredith gazed at her blankly, not
-understanding in the least.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes. I&rsquo;ve been thinking it over for some time. I have often
-thought of adopting a child, since my husband&rsquo;s death. But it seemed so
-hard to get a suitable one. It is very few children I would want to take into
-<i>my</i> home. I wouldn&rsquo;t think of taking a home child&mdash;some outcast of
-the slums in all probability. And there is hardly ever any other child to be
-got. One of the fishermen down at the harbour died last fall and left six
-youngsters. They tried to get me to take one, but I soon gave them to
-understand that I had no idea of adopting trash like that. Their grandfather
-stole a horse. Besides, they were all boys and I wanted a girl&mdash;a quiet,
-obedient girl that I could train up to be a lady. Una will suit me exactly. She
-would be a nice little thing if she was properly looked after&mdash;so
-different from Faith. I would never dream of adopting Faith. But I&rsquo;ll
-take Una and I&rsquo;ll give her a good home, and up-bringing, Mr. Meredith,
-and if she behaves herself I&rsquo;ll leave her all my money when I die. Not
-one of my own relatives shall have a cent of it in any case, I&rsquo;m
-determined on that. It was the idea of aggravating them that set me to thinking
-of adopting a child as much as anything in the first place. Una shall be well
-dressed and educated and trained, Mr. Meredith, and I shall give her music and
-painting lessons and treat her as if she was my own.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith was wide enough awake by this time. There was a faint flush in his
-pale cheek and a dangerous light in his fine dark eyes. Was this woman, whose
-vulgarity and consciousness of money oozed out of her at every pore, actually
-asking him to give her Una&mdash;his dear little wistful Una with
-Cecilia&rsquo;s own dark-blue eyes&mdash;the child whom the dying mother had
-clasped to her heart after the other children had been led weeping from the
-room. Cecilia had clung to her baby until the gates of death had shut between
-them. She had looked over the little dark head to her husband.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Take good care of her, John,&rdquo; she had entreated. &ldquo;She is so
-small&mdash;and sensitive. The others can fight their way&mdash;but the world
-will hurt <i>her</i>. Oh, John, I don&rsquo;t know what you and she are going to do.
-You both need me so much. But keep her close to you&mdash;keep her close to
-you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-These had been almost her last words except a few unforgettable ones for him
-alone. And it was this child whom Mrs. Davis had coolly announced her intention
-of taking from him. He sat up straight and looked at Mrs. Davis. In spite of
-the worn dressing gown and the frayed slippers there was something about him
-that made Mrs. Davis feel a little of the old reverence for &ldquo;the
-cloth&rdquo; in which she had been brought up. After all, there <i>was</i> a certain
-divinity hedging a minister, even a poor, unworldly, abstracted one.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I thank you for your kind intentions, Mrs. Davis,&rdquo; said Mr.
-Meredith with a gentle, final, quite awful courtesy, &ldquo;but I cannot give
-you my child.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. Davis looked blank. She had never dreamed of his refusing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Mr. Meredith,&rdquo; she said in astonishment. &ldquo;You must be
-cr&mdash;you can&rsquo;t mean it. You must think it over&mdash;think of all the
-advantages I can give her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is no need to think it over, Mrs. Davis. It is entirely out of the
-question. All the worldly advantages it is in your power to bestow on her could
-not compensate for the loss of a father&rsquo;s love and care. I thank you
-again&mdash;but it is not to be thought of.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Disappointment angered Mrs. Davis beyond the power of old habit to control. Her
-broad red face turned purple and her voice trembled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I thought you&rsquo;d be only too glad to let me have her,&rdquo; she
-sneered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why did you think that?&rdquo; asked Mr. Meredith quietly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because nobody ever supposed you cared anything about any of your
-children,&rdquo; retorted Mrs. Davis contemptuously. &ldquo;You neglect them
-scandalously. It is the talk of the place. They aren&rsquo;t fed and dressed
-properly, and they&rsquo;re not trained at all. They have no more manners than
-a pack of wild Indians. You never think of doing your duty as a father. You let
-a stray child come here among them for a fortnight and never took any notice of
-her&mdash;a child that swore like a trooper I&rsquo;m told. <i>You</i> wouldn&rsquo;t
-have cared if they&rsquo;d caught small-pox from her. And Faith made an
-exhibition of herself getting up in preaching and making that speech! And she
-rid a pig down the street&mdash;under your very eyes I understand. The way they
-act is past belief and you never lift a finger to stop them or try to teach
-them anything. And now when I offer one of them a good home and good prospects
-you refuse it and insult me. A pretty father you, to talk of loving and caring
-for your children!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That will do, woman!&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith. He stood up and looked at
-Mrs. Davis with eyes that made her quail. &ldquo;That will do,&rdquo; he
-repeated. &ldquo;I desire to hear no more, Mrs. Davis. You have said too much.
-It may be that I have been remiss in some respects in my duty as a parent, but
-it is not for you to remind me of it in such terms as you have used. Let us say
-good afternoon.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. Davis did not say anything half so amiable as good afternoon, but she took
-her departure. As she swept past the minister a large, plump toad, which Carl
-had secreted under the lounge, hopped out almost under her feet. Mrs. Davis
-gave a shriek and in trying to avoid treading on the awful thing, lost her
-balance and her parasol. She did not exactly fall, but she staggered and reeled
-across the room in a very undignified fashion and brought up against the door
-with a thud that jarred her from head to foot. Mr. Meredith, who had not seen
-the toad, wondered if she had been attacked with some kind of apoplectic or
-paralytic seizure, and ran in alarm to her assistance. But Mrs. Davis,
-recovering her feet, waved him back furiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t you dare to touch me,&rdquo; she almost shouted. &ldquo;This
-is some more of your children&rsquo;s doings, I suppose. This is no fit place
-for a decent woman. Give me my umbrella and let me go. I&rsquo;ll never darken
-the doors of your manse or your church again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith picked up the gorgeous parasol meekly enough and gave it to her.
-Mrs. Davis seized it and marched out. Jerry and Carl had given up banister
-sliding and were sitting on the edge of the veranda with Faith. Unfortunately,
-all three were singing at the tops of their healthy young voices
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;ll be a hot time in the old town to-night.&rdquo; Mrs. Davis
-believed the song was meant for her and her only. She stopped and shook her
-parasol at them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Your father is a fool,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;and you are three young
-varmints that ought to be whipped within an inch of your lives.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He isn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; cried Faith. &ldquo;We&rsquo;re not,&rdquo; cried
-the boys. But Mrs. Davis was gone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Goodness, isn&rsquo;t she mad!&rdquo; said Jerry. &ldquo;And what is a
-&lsquo;varmint&rsquo; anyhow?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith paced up and down the parlour for a few minutes; then he went
-back to his study and sat down. But he did not return to his German theology.
-He was too grievously disturbed for that. Mrs. Davis had wakened him up with a
-vengeance. <i>Was</i> he such a remiss, careless father as she had accused him of
-being? <i>Had</i> he so scandalously neglected the bodily and spiritual welfare of the
-four little motherless creatures dependent on him? <i>Were</i> his people talking of
-it as harshly as Mrs. Davis had declared? It must be so, since Mrs. Davis had
-come to ask for Una in the full and confident belief that he would hand the
-child over to her as unconcernedly and gladly as one might hand over a strayed,
-unwelcome kitten. And, if so, what then?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith groaned and resumed his pacing up and down the dusty, disordered
-room. What could he do? He loved his children as deeply as any father could and
-he knew, past the power of Mrs. Davis or any of her ilk, to disturb his
-conviction, that they loved him devotedly. But <i>was</i> he fit to have charge of
-them? He knew&mdash;none better&mdash;his weaknesses and limitations. What was
-needed was a good woman&rsquo;s presence and influence and common sense. But
-how could that be arranged? Even were he able to get such a housekeeper it
-would cut Aunt Martha to the quick. She believed she could still do all that
-was meet and necessary. He could not so hurt and insult the poor old woman who
-had been so kind to him and his. How devoted she had been to Cecilia! And
-Cecilia had asked him to be very considerate of Aunt Martha. To be sure, he
-suddenly remembered that Aunt Martha had once hinted that he ought to marry
-again. He felt she would not resent a wife as she would a housekeeper. But that
-was out of the question. He did not wish to marry&mdash;he did not and could
-not care for anyone. Then what could he do? It suddenly occurred to him that he
-would go over to Ingleside and talk over his difficulties with Mrs. Blythe.
-Mrs. Blythe was one of the few women he never felt shy or tongue-tied with. She
-was always so sympathetic and refreshing. It might be that she could suggest
-some solution of his problems. And even if she could not Mr. Meredith felt that
-he needed a little decent human companionship after his dose of Mrs.
-Davis&mdash;something to take the taste of her out of his soul.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He dressed hurriedly and ate his supper less abstractedly than usual. It
-occurred to him that it was a poor meal. He looked at his children; they were
-rosy and healthy looking enough&mdash;except Una, and she had never been very
-strong even when her mother was alive. They were all laughing and
-talking&mdash;certainly they seemed happy. Carl was especially happy because he
-had two most beautiful spiders crawling around his supper plate. Their voices
-were pleasant, their manners did not seem bad, they were considerate of and
-gentle to one another. Yet Mrs. Davis had said their behaviour was the talk of
-the congregation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-As Mr. Meredith went through his gate Dr. Blythe and Mrs. Blythe drove past on
-the road that led to Lowbridge. The minister&rsquo;s face fell. Mrs. Blythe was
-going away&mdash;there was no use in going to Ingleside. And he craved a little
-companionship more than ever. As he gazed rather hopelessly over the landscape
-the sunset light struck on a window of the old West homestead on the hill. It
-flared out rosily like a beacon of good hope. He suddenly remembered Rosemary
-and Ellen West. He thought that he would relish some of Ellen&rsquo;s pungent
-conversation. He thought it would be pleasant to see Rosemary&rsquo;s slow,
-sweet smile and calm, heavenly blue eyes again. What did that old poem of Sir
-Philip Sidney&rsquo;s say?&mdash;&ldquo;continual comfort in a
-face&rdquo;&mdash;that just suited her. And he needed comfort. Why not go and
-call? He remembered that Ellen had asked him to drop in sometimes and there was
-Rosemary&rsquo;s book to take back&mdash;he ought to take it back before he
-forgot. He had an uneasy suspicion that there were a great many books in his
-library which he had borrowed at sundry times and in divers places and had
-forgotten to take back. It was surely his duty to guard against that in this
-case. He went back into his study, got the book, and plunged downward into
-Rainbow Valley.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap15"></a>CHAPTER XV.<br />
-MORE GOSSIP</h2>
-
-<p>
-On the evening after Mrs. Myra Murray of the over-harbour section had been
-buried Miss Cornelia and Mary Vance came up to Ingleside. There were several
-things concerning which Miss Cornelia wished to unburden her soul. The funeral
-had to be all talked over, of course. Susan and Miss Cornelia thrashed this out
-between them; Anne took no part or delight in such goulish conversations. She
-sat a little apart and watched the autumnal flame of dahlias in the garden, and
-the dreaming, glamorous harbour of the September sunset. Mary Vance sat beside
-her, knitting meekly. Mary&rsquo;s heart was down in the Rainbow Valley, whence
-came sweet, distance-softened sounds of children&rsquo;s laughter, but her
-fingers were under Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s eye. She had to knit so many rounds of
-her stocking before she might go to the valley. Mary knit and held her tongue,
-but used her ears.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I never saw a nicer looking corpse,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia
-judicially. &ldquo;Myra Murray was always a pretty woman&mdash;she was a Corey
-from Lowbridge and the Coreys were noted for their good looks.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I said to the corpse as I passed it, &lsquo;poor woman. I hope you are
-as happy as you look.&rsquo;&rdquo; sighed Susan. &ldquo;She had not changed
-much. That dress she wore was the black satin she got for her daughter&rsquo;s
-wedding fourteen years ago. Her Aunt told her then to keep it for her funeral,
-but Myra laughed and said, &lsquo;I may wear it to my funeral, Aunty, but I
-will have a good time out of it first.&rsquo; And I may say she did. Myra
-Murray was not a woman to attend her own funeral before she died. Many a time
-afterwards when I saw her enjoying herself out in company I thought to myself,
-&lsquo;You are a handsome woman, Myra Murray, and that dress becomes you, but
-it will likely be your shroud at last.&rsquo; And you see my words have come
-true, Mrs. Marshall Elliott.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan sighed again heavily. She was enjoying herself hugely. A funeral was
-really a delightful subject of conversation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I always liked to meet Myra,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;She was
-always so gay and cheerful&mdash;she made you feel better just by her
-handshake. Myra always made the best of things.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is true,&rdquo; asserted Susan. &ldquo;Her sister-in-law told me
-that when the doctor told her at last that he could do nothing for her and she
-would never rise from that bed again, Myra said quite cheerfully, &lsquo;Well,
-if that is so, I&rsquo;m thankful the preserving is all done, and I will not
-have to face the fall house-cleaning. I always liked house-cleaning in
-spring,&rsquo; she says, &lsquo;but I always hated it in the fall. I will get
-clear of it this year, thank goodness.&rsquo; There are people who would call
-that levity, Mrs. Marshall Elliott, and I think her sister-in-law was a little
-ashamed of it. She said perhaps her sickness had made Myra a little
-light-headed. But I said, &lsquo;No, Mrs. Murray, do not worry over it. It was
-just Myra&rsquo;s way of looking at the bright side.&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Her sister Luella was just the opposite,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;There was no bright side for Luella&mdash;there was just black and
-shades of gray. For years she used always to be declaring she was going to die
-in a week or so. &lsquo;I won&rsquo;t be here to burden you long,&rsquo; she
-would tell her family with a groan. And if any of them ventured to talk about
-their little future plans she&rsquo;d groan also and say, &lsquo;Ah, <i>I</i>
-won&rsquo;t be here then.&rsquo; When I went to see her I always agreed with
-her and it made her so mad that she was always quite a lot better for several
-days afterwards. She has better health now but no more cheerfulness. Myra was
-so different. She was always doing or saying something to make some one feel
-good. Perhaps the men they married had something to do with it. Luella&rsquo;s
-man was a Tartar, believe <i>me</i>, while Jim Murray was decent, as men go. He looked
-heart-broken to-day. It isn&rsquo;t often I feel sorry for a man at his
-wife&rsquo;s funeral, but I did feel for Jim Murray.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No wonder he looked sad. He will not get a wife like Myra again in a
-hurry,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;Maybe he will not try, since his children are
-all grown up and Mirabel is able to keep house. But there is no predicting what
-a widower may or may not do and I, for one, will not try.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll miss Myra terrible in church,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;She was such a worker. Nothing ever stumped <i>her</i>. If she couldn&rsquo;t
-get over a difficulty she&rsquo;d get around it, and if she couldn&rsquo;t get
-around it she&rsquo;d pretend it wasn&rsquo;t there&mdash;and generally it
-wasn&rsquo;t. &lsquo;I&rsquo;ll keep a stiff upper lip to my journey&rsquo;s
-end,&rsquo; said she to me once. Well, she has ended her journey.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you think so?&rdquo; asked Anne suddenly, coming back from dreamland.
-&ldquo;I can&rsquo;t picture <i>her</i> journey as being ended. Can <i>you</i> think of her
-sitting down and folding her hands&mdash;that eager, asking spirit of hers,
-with its fine adventurous outlook? No, I think in death she just opened a gate
-and went through&mdash;on&mdash;on&mdash;to new, shining adventures.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maybe&mdash;maybe,&rdquo; assented Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;Do you know,
-Anne dearie, I never was much taken with this everlasting rest doctrine
-myself&mdash;though I hope it isn&rsquo;t heresy to say so. I want to bustle
-round in heaven the same as here. And I hope there&rsquo;ll be a celestial
-substitute for pies and doughnuts&mdash;something that has to be MADE. Of
-course, one does get awful tired at times&mdash;and the older you are the
-tireder you get. But the very tiredest could get rested in something short of
-eternity, you&rsquo;d think&mdash;except, perhaps, a lazy man.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;When I meet Myra Murray again,&rdquo; said Anne, &ldquo;I want to see
-her coming towards me, brisk and laughing, just as she always did here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said Susan, in a shocked tone, &ldquo;you
-surely do not think that Myra will be laughing in the world to come?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why not, Susan? Do you think we will be crying there?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, no, Mrs. Dr. dear, do not misunderstand me. I do not think we shall
-be either crying or laughing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What then?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Susan, driven to it, &ldquo;it is my opinion, Mrs. Dr.
-dear, that we shall just look solemn and holy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And do you really think, Susan,&rdquo; said Anne, looking solemn enough,
-&ldquo;that either Myra Murray or I could look solemn and holy all the
-time&mdash;<i>all</i> the time, Susan?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well,&rdquo; admitted Susan reluctantly, &ldquo;I might go so far as to
-say that you both would have to smile now and again, but I can never admit that
-there will be laughing in heaven. The idea seems really irreverent, Mrs. Dr.
-dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, to come back to earth,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, &ldquo;who can
-we get to take Myra&rsquo;s class in Sunday School? Julia Clow has been
-teaching it since Myra took ill, but she&rsquo;s going to town for the winter
-and we&rsquo;ll have to get somebody else.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I heard that Mrs. Laurie Jamieson wanted it,&rdquo; said Anne.
-&ldquo;The Jamiesons have come to church very regularly since they moved to the
-Glen from Lowbridge.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;New brooms!&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia dubiously. &ldquo;Wait till
-they&rsquo;ve gone regularly for a year.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You cannot depend on Mrs. Jamieson a bit, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said
-Susan solemnly. &ldquo;She died once and when they were measuring her for her
-coffin, after laying her out just beautiful, did she not go and come back to
-life! Now, Mrs. Dr. dear, you know you <i>cannot</i> depend on a woman like
-that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She might turn Methodist at any moment,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;They tell me they went to the Methodist Church at Lowbridge quite as
-often as to the Presbyterian. I haven&rsquo;t caught them at it here yet, but I
-would not approve of taking Mrs. Jamieson into the Sunday School. Yet we must
-not offend them. We are losing too many people, by death or bad temper. Mrs.
-Alec Davis has left the church, no one knows why. She told the managers that
-she would never pay another cent to Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s salary. Of course,
-most people say that the children offended her, but somehow I don&rsquo;t think
-so. I tried to pump Faith, but all I could get out of her was that Mrs. Davis
-had come, seemingly in high good humour, to see her father, and had left in an
-awful rage, calling them all &lsquo;varmints!&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Varmints, indeed!&rdquo; said Susan furiously. &ldquo;Does Mrs. Alec
-Davis forget that her uncle on her mother&rsquo;s side was suspected of
-poisoning his wife? Not that it was ever proved, Mrs. Dr. dear, and it does not
-do to believe all you hear. But if <i>I</i> had an uncle whose wife died
-without any satisfactory reason, <i>I</i> would not go about the country
-calling innocent children varmints.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The point is,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, &ldquo;that Mrs. Davis paid a
-large subscription, and how its loss is going to be made up is a problem. And
-if she turns the other Douglases against Mr. Meredith, as she will certainly
-try to do, he will just have to go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do not think Mrs. Alec Davis is very well liked by the rest of the
-clan,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;It is not likely she will be able to influence
-them.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But those Douglases all hang together so. If you touch one, you touch
-all. We can&rsquo;t do without them, so much is certain. They pay half the
-salary. They are not mean, whatever else may be said of them. Norman Douglas
-used to give a hundred a year long ago before he left.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What did he leave for?&rdquo; asked Anne.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He declared a member of the session cheated him in a cow deal. He
-hasn&rsquo;t come to church for twenty years. His wife used to come regular
-while she was alive, poor thing, but he never would let her pay anything,
-except one red cent every Sunday. She felt dreadfully humiliated. I don&rsquo;t
-know that he was any too good a husband to her, though she was never heard to
-complain. But she always had a cowed look. Norman Douglas didn&rsquo;t get the
-woman he wanted thirty years ago and the Douglases never liked to put up with
-second best.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who was the woman he did want.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen West. They weren&rsquo;t engaged exactly, I believe, but they went
-about together for two years. And then they just broke off&mdash;nobody ever
-knew why. Just some silly quarrel, I suppose. And Norman went and married
-Hester Reese before his temper had time to cool&mdash;married her just to spite
-Ellen, I haven&rsquo;t a doubt. So like a man! Hester was a nice little thing,
-but she never had much spirit and he broke what little she had. She was too
-meek for Norman. He needed a woman who could stand up to him. Ellen would have
-kept him in fine order and he would have liked her all the better for it. He
-despised Hester, that is the truth, just because she always gave in to him. I
-used to hear him say many a time, long ago when he was a young fellow
-&lsquo;Give me a spunky woman&mdash;spunk for me every time.&rsquo; And then he
-went and married a girl who couldn&rsquo;t say boo to a goose&mdash;man-like.
-That family of Reeses were just vegetables. They went through the motions of
-living, but they didn&rsquo;t <i>live</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Russell Reese used his first wife&rsquo;s wedding-ring to marry his
-second,&rdquo; said Susan reminiscently. &ldquo;That was <i>too</i> economical in my
-opinion, Mrs. Dr. dear. And his brother John has his own tombstone put up in
-the over-harbour graveyard, with everything on it but the date of death, and he
-goes and looks at it every Sunday. Most folks would not consider that much fun,
-but it is plain he does. People do have such different ideas of enjoyment. As
-for Norman Douglas, he is a perfect heathen. When the last minister asked him
-why he never went to church he said &lsquo;Too many ugly women there,
-parson&mdash;too many ugly women!&rsquo; I should like to go to such a man,
-Mrs. Dr. dear, and say to him solemnly, &lsquo;There is a hell!&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Norman doesn&rsquo;t believe there is such a place,&rdquo; said Miss
-Cornelia. &ldquo;I hope he&rsquo;ll find out his mistake when he comes to die.
-There, Mary, you&rsquo;ve knit your three inches and you can go and play with
-the children for half an hour.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary needed no second bidding. She flew to Rainbow Valley with a heart as light
-as her heels, and in the course of conversation told Faith Meredith all about
-Mrs. Alec Davis.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And Mrs. Elliott says that she&rsquo;ll turn all the Douglases against
-your father and then he&rsquo;ll have to leave the Glen because his salary
-won&rsquo;t be paid,&rdquo; concluded Mary. &ldquo;<i>I</i> don&rsquo;t know
-what is to be done, honest to goodness. If only old Norman Douglas would come
-back to church and pay, it wouldn&rsquo;t be so bad. But he
-won&rsquo;t&mdash;and the Douglases will leave&mdash;and you all will have to
-go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith carried a heavy heart to bed with her that night. The thought of leaving
-the Glen was unbearable. Nowhere else in the world were there such chums as the
-Blythes. Her little heart had been wrung when they had left Maywater&mdash;she
-had shed many bitter tears when she parted with Maywater chums and the old
-manse there where her mother had lived and died. She could not contemplate
-calmly the thought of such another and harder wrench. She <i>couldn&rsquo;t</i> leave
-Glen St. Mary and dear Rainbow Valley and that delicious graveyard.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s awful to be minister&rsquo;s family,&rdquo; groaned Faith
-into her pillow. &ldquo;Just as soon as you get fond of a place you are torn up
-by the roots. I&rsquo;ll never, never, <i>never</i> marry a minister, no matter how
-nice he is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith sat up in bed and looked out of the little vine-hung window. The night
-was very still, the silence broken only by Una&rsquo;s soft breathing. Faith
-felt terribly alone in the world. She could see Glen St. Mary lying under the
-starry blue meadows of the autumn night. Over the valley a light shone from the
-girls&rsquo; room at Ingleside, and another from Walter&rsquo;s room. Faith
-wondered if poor Walter had toothache again. Then she sighed, with a little
-passing sigh of envy of Nan and Di. They had a mother and a settled
-home&mdash;<i>they</i> were not at the mercy of people who got angry without any
-reason and called you a varmint. Away beyond the Glen, amid fields that were
-very quiet with sleep, another light was burning. Faith knew it shone in the
-house where Norman Douglas lived. He was reputed to sit up all hours of the
-night reading. Mary had said if he could only be induced to return to the
-church all would be well. And why not? Faith looked at a big, low star hanging
-over the tall, pointed spruce at the gate of the Methodist Church and had an
-inspiration. She knew what ought to be done and she, Faith Meredith, would do
-it. She would make everything right. With a sigh of satisfaction, she turned
-from the lonely, dark world and cuddled down beside Una.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap16"></a>CHAPTER XVI.<br />
-TIT FOR TAT</h2>
-
-<p>
-With Faith, to decide was to act. She lost no time in carrying out the idea. As
-soon as she came home from school the next day she left the manse and made her
-way down the Glen. Walter Blythe joined her as she passed the post office.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m going to Mrs. Elliott&rsquo;s on an errand for mother,&rdquo;
-he said. &ldquo;Where are you going, Faith?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am going somewhere on church business,&rdquo; said Faith loftily. She
-did not volunteer any further information and Walter felt rather snubbed. They
-walked on in silence for a little while. It was a warm, windy evening with a
-sweet, resinous air. Beyond the sand dunes were gray seas, soft and beautiful.
-The Glen brook bore down a freight of gold and crimson leaves, like fairy
-shallops. In Mr. James Reese&rsquo;s buckwheat stubble-land, with its beautiful
-tones of red and brown, a crow parliament was being held, whereat solemn
-deliberations regarding the welfare of crowland were in progress. Faith cruelly
-broke up the august assembly by climbing up on the fence and hurling a broken
-rail at it. Instantly the air was filled with flapping black wings and
-indignant caws.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why did you do that?&rdquo; said Walter reproachfully. &ldquo;They were
-having such a good time.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I hate crows,&rdquo; said Faith airily. &ldquo;The are so black and
-sly I feel sure they&rsquo;re hypocrites. They steal little birds&rsquo; eggs
-out of their nests, you know. I saw one do it on our lawn last spring. Walter,
-what makes you so pale to-day? Did you have the toothache again last
-night?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter shivered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes&mdash;a raging one. I couldn&rsquo;t sleep a wink&mdash;so I just
-paced up and down the floor and imagined I was an early Christian martyr being
-tortured at the command of Nero. That helped ever so much for a while&mdash;and
-then I got so bad I couldn&rsquo;t imagine anything.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Did you cry?&rdquo; asked Faith anxiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;but I lay down on the floor and groaned,&rdquo; admitted
-Walter. &ldquo;Then the girls came in and Nan put cayenne pepper in
-it&mdash;and that made it worse&mdash;Di made me hold a swallow of cold water
-in my mouth&mdash;and I couldn&rsquo;t stand it, so they called Susan. Susan
-said it served me right for sitting up in the cold garret yesterday writing
-poetry trash. But she started up the kitchen fire and got me a hot-water bottle
-and it stopped the toothache. As soon as I felt better I told Susan my poetry
-wasn&rsquo;t trash and she wasn&rsquo;t any judge. And she said no, thank
-goodness she was not and she did not know anything about poetry except that it
-was mostly a lot of lies. Now you know, Faith, that isn&rsquo;t so. That is one
-reason why I like writing poetry&mdash;you can say so many things in it that
-are true in poetry but wouldn&rsquo;t be true in prose. I told Susan so, but
-she said to stop my jawing and go to sleep before the water got cold, or
-she&rsquo;d leave me to see if rhyming would cure toothache, and she hoped it
-would be a lesson to me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why don&rsquo;t you go to the dentist at Lowbridge and get the tooth
-out?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter shivered again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They want me to&mdash;but I can&rsquo;t. It would hurt so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Are you afraid of a little pain?&rdquo; asked Faith contemptuously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter flushed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It would be a <i>big</i> pain. I hate being hurt. Father said he wouldn&rsquo;t
-insist on my going&mdash;he&rsquo;d wait until I&rsquo;d made up my own mind to
-go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It wouldn&rsquo;t hurt as long as the toothache,&rdquo; argued Faith,
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;ve had five spells of toothache. If you&rsquo;d just go and
-have it out there&rsquo;d be no more bad nights. <i>I</i> had a tooth out once.
-I yelled for a moment, but it was all over then&mdash;only the bleeding.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The bleeding is worst of all&mdash;it&rsquo;s so ugly,&rdquo; cried
-Walter. &ldquo;It just made me sick when Jem cut his foot last summer. Susan
-said I looked more like fainting than Jem did. But I couldn&rsquo;t bear to see
-Jem hurt, either. Somebody is always getting hurt, Faith&mdash;and it&rsquo;s
-awful. I just can&rsquo;t <i>bear</i> to see things hurt. It makes me just want to
-run&mdash;and run&mdash;and run&mdash;till I can&rsquo;t hear or see
-them.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s no use making a fuss over anyone getting hurt,&rdquo; said
-Faith, tossing her curls. &ldquo;Of course, if you&rsquo;ve hurt yourself very
-bad, you have to yell&mdash;and blood <i>is</i> messy&mdash;and I don&rsquo;t like
-seeing other people hurt, either. But I don&rsquo;t want to run&mdash;I want to
-go to work and help them. Your father <i>has</i> to hurt people lots of times to cure
-them. What would they do if <i>he</i> ran away?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t say I <i>would</i> run. I said I <i>wanted</i> to run. That&rsquo;s a
-different thing. I want to help people, too. But oh, I wish there weren&rsquo;t
-any ugly, dreadful things in the world. I wish everything was glad and
-beautiful.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, don&rsquo;t let&rsquo;s think of what isn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said
-Faith. &ldquo;After all, there&rsquo;s lots of fun in being alive. You
-wouldn&rsquo;t have toothache if you were dead, but still, wouldn&rsquo;t you
-lots rather be alive than dead? I would, a hundred times. Oh, here&rsquo;s Dan
-Reese. He&rsquo;s been down to the harbour for fish.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hate Dan Reese,&rdquo; said Walter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So do I. All us girls do. I&rsquo;m just going to walk past and never
-take the least notice of him. You watch me!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith accordingly stalked past Dan with her chin out and an expression of scorn
-that bit into his soul. He turned and shouted after her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pig-girl! Pig-girl!! Pig-girl!!!&rdquo; in a crescendo of insult.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith walked on, seemingly oblivious. But her lip trembled slightly with a
-sense of outrage. She knew she was no match for Dan Reese when it came to an
-exchange of epithets. She wished Jem Blythe had been with her instead of
-Walter. If Dan Reese had dared to call her a pig-girl in Jem&rsquo;s hearing,
-Jem would have wiped up the dust with him. But it never occurred to Faith to
-expect Walter to do it, or blame him for not doing it. Walter, she knew, never
-fought other boys. Neither did Charlie Clow of the north road. The strange part
-was that, while she despised Charlie for a coward, it never occurred to her to
-disdain Walter. It was simply that he seemed to her an inhabitant of a world of
-his own, where different traditions prevailed. Faith would as soon have
-expected a starry-eyed young angel to pummel dirty, freckled Dan Reese for her
-as Walter Blythe. She would not have blamed the angel and she did not blame
-Walter Blythe. But she wished that sturdy Jem or Jerry had been there and
-Dan&rsquo;s insult continued to rankle in her soul.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter was pale no longer. He had flushed crimson and his beautiful eyes were
-clouded with shame and anger. He knew that he ought to have avenged Faith. Jem
-would have sailed right in and made Dan eat his words with bitter sauce.
-Ritchie Warren would have overwhelmed Dan with worse &ldquo;names&rdquo; than
-Dan had called Faith. But Walter could not&mdash;simply could
-not&mdash;&ldquo;call names.&rdquo; He knew he would get the worst of it. He
-could never conceive or utter the vulgar, ribald insults of which Dan Reese had
-unlimited command. And as for the trial by fist, Walter couldn&rsquo;t fight.
-He hated the idea. It was rough and painful&mdash;and, worst of all, it was
-ugly. He never could understand Jem&rsquo;s exultation in an occasional
-conflict. But he wished he <i>could</i> fight Dan Reese. He was horribly ashamed
-because Faith Meredith had been insulted in his presence and he had not tried
-to punish her insulter. He felt sure she must despise him. She had not even
-spoken to him since Dan had called her pig-girl. He was glad when they came to
-the parting of the ways.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith, too, was relieved, though for a different reason. She wanted to be alone
-because she suddenly felt rather nervous about her errand. Impulse had cooled,
-especially since Dan had bruised her self-respect. She must go through with it,
-but she no longer had enthusiasm to sustain her. She was going to see Norman
-Douglas and ask him to come back to church, and she began to be afraid of him.
-What had seemed so easy and simple up at the Glen seemed very different down
-here. She had heard a good deal about Norman Douglas, and she knew that even
-the biggest boys in school were afraid of him. Suppose he called her something
-nasty&mdash;she had heard he was given to that. Faith could not endure being
-called names&mdash;they subdued her far more quickly than a physical blow. But
-she would go on&mdash;Faith Meredith always went on. If she did not her father
-might have to leave the Glen.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At the end of the long lane Faith came to the house&mdash;a big, old-fashioned
-one with a row of soldierly Lombardies marching past it. On the back veranda
-Norman Douglas himself was sitting, reading a newspaper. His big dog was beside
-him. Behind, in the kitchen, where his housekeeper, Mrs. Wilson, was getting
-supper, there was a clatter of dishes&mdash;an angry clatter, for Norman
-Douglas had just had a quarrel with Mrs. Wilson, and both were in a very bad
-temper over it. Consequently, when Faith stepped on the veranda and Norman
-Douglas lowered his newspaper she found herself looking into the choleric eyes
-of an irritated man.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman Douglas was rather a fine-looking personage in his way. He had a sweep
-of long red beard over his broad chest and a mane of red hair, ungrizzled by
-the years, on his massive head. His high, white forehead was unwrinkled and his
-blue eyes could flash still with all the fire of his tempestuous youth. He
-could be very amiable when he liked, and he could be very terrible. Poor Faith,
-so anxiously bent on retrieving the situation in regard to the church, had
-caught him in one of his terrible moods.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He did not know who she was and he gazed at her with disfavour. Norman Douglas
-liked girls of spirit and flame and laughter. At this moment Faith was very
-pale. She was of the type to which colour means everything. Lacking her crimson
-cheeks she seemed meek and even insignificant. She looked apologetic and
-afraid, and the bully in Norman Douglas&rsquo;s heart stirred.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who the dickens are you? And what do you want here?&rdquo; he demanded
-in his great resounding voice, with a fierce scowl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-For once in her life Faith had nothing to say. She had never supposed Norman
-Douglas was like <i>this</i>. She was paralyzed with terror of him. He saw it and it
-made him worse.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What&rsquo;s the matter with you?&rdquo; he boomed. &ldquo;You look as
-if you wanted to say something and was scared to say it. What&rsquo;s troubling
-you? Confound it, speak up, can&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-No. Faith could not speak up. No words would come. But her lips began to
-tremble.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;For heaven&rsquo;s sake, don&rsquo;t cry,&rdquo; shouted Norman.
-&ldquo;I can&rsquo;t stand snivelling. If you&rsquo;ve anything to say, say it
-and have done. Great Kitty, is the girl possessed of a dumb spirit? Don&rsquo;t
-look at me like that&mdash;I&rsquo;m human&mdash;I haven&rsquo;t got a tail!
-Who are you&mdash;who are you, I say?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman&rsquo;s voice could have been heard at the harbour. Operations in the
-kitchen were suspended. Mrs. Wilson was listening open-eared and eyed. Norman
-put his huge brown hands on his knees and leaned forward, staring into
-Faith&rsquo;s pallid, shrinking face. He seemed to loom over her like some evil
-giant out of a fairy tale. She felt as if he would eat her up next thing, body
-and bones.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&mdash;am&mdash;Faith&mdash;Meredith,&rdquo; she said, in little more
-than a whisper.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Meredith, hey? One of the parson&rsquo;s youngsters, hey? I&rsquo;ve
-heard of you&mdash;I&rsquo;ve heard of you! Riding on pigs and breaking the
-Sabbath! A nice lot! What do you want here, hey? What do you want of the old
-pagan, hey? <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t ask favours of parsons&mdash;and I don&rsquo;t
-give any. What do you want, I say?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith wished herself a thousand miles away. She stammered out her thought in
-its naked simplicity.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I came&mdash;to ask you&mdash;to go to church&mdash;and pay&mdash;to the
-salary.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman glared at her. Then he burst forth again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You impudent hussy&mdash;you! Who put you up to it, jade? Who put you up
-to it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nobody,&rdquo; said poor Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s a lie. Don&rsquo;t lie to me! Who sent you here? It
-wasn&rsquo;t your father&mdash;he hasn&rsquo;t the smeddum of a flea&mdash;but
-he wouldn&rsquo;t send you to do what he dassn&rsquo;t do himself. I suppose it
-was some of them confounded old maids at the Glen, was it&mdash;was it,
-hey?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;I&mdash;I just came myself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you take me for a fool?&rdquo; shouted Norman.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;I thought you were a gentleman,&rdquo; said Faith faintly, and
-certainly without any thought of being sarcastic.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman bounced up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mind your own business. I don&rsquo;t want to hear another word from
-you. If you wasn&rsquo;t such a kid I&rsquo;d teach you to interfere in what
-doesn&rsquo;t concern you. When I want parsons or pill-dosers I&rsquo;ll send
-for them. Till I do I&rsquo;ll have no truck with them. Do you understand? Now,
-get out, cheese-face.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith got out. She stumbled blindly down the steps, out of the yard gate and
-into the lane. Half way up the lane her daze of fear passed away and a reaction
-of tingling anger possessed her. By the time she reached the end of the lane
-she was in such a furious temper as she had never experienced before. Norman
-Douglas&rsquo; insults burned in her soul, kindling a scorching flame. Go home!
-Not she! She would go straight back and tell that old ogre just what she
-thought of him&mdash;she would show him&mdash;oh, wouldn&rsquo;t she!
-Cheese-face, indeed!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Unhesitatingly she turned and walked back. The veranda was deserted and the
-kitchen door shut. Faith opened the door without knocking, and went in. Norman
-Douglas had just sat down at the supper table, but he still held his newspaper.
-Faith walked inflexibly across the room, caught the paper from his hand, flung
-it on the floor and stamped on it. Then she faced him, with her flashing eyes
-and scarlet cheeks. She was such a handsome young fury that Norman Douglas
-hardly recognized her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What&rsquo;s brought you back?&rdquo; he growled, but more in
-bewilderment than rage.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Unquailingly she glared back into the angry eyes against which so few people
-could hold their own.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have come back to tell you exactly what I think of you,&rdquo; said
-Faith in clear, ringing tones. &ldquo;I am not afraid of you. You are a rude,
-unjust, tyrannical, disagreeable old man. Susan says you are sure to go to
-hell, and I was sorry for you, but I am not now. Your wife never had a new hat
-for ten years&mdash;no wonder she died. I am going to make faces at you
-whenever I see you after this. Every time I am behind you you will know what is
-happening. Father has a picture of the devil in a book in his study, and I mean
-to go home and write your name under it. You are an old vampire and I hope
-you&rsquo;ll have the Scotch fiddle!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith did not know what a vampire meant any more than she knew what the Scotch
-fiddle was. She had heard Susan use the expressions and gathered from her tone
-that both were dire things. But Norman Douglas knew what the latter meant at
-least. He had listened in absolute silence to Faith&rsquo;s tirade. When she
-paused for breath, with a stamp of her foot, he suddenly burst into loud
-laughter. With a mighty slap of hand on knee he exclaimed,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I vow you&rsquo;ve got spunk, after all&mdash;I like spunk. Come, sit
-down&mdash;sit down!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I will not.&rdquo; Faith&rsquo;s eyes flashed more passionately. She
-thought she was being made fun of&mdash;treated contemptuously. She would have
-enjoyed another explosion of rage, but this cut deep. &ldquo;I will not sit
-down in your house. I am going home. But I am glad I came back here and told
-you exactly what my opinion of you is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So am I&mdash;so am I,&rdquo; chuckled Norman. &ldquo;I like
-you&mdash;you&rsquo;re fine&mdash;you&rsquo;re great. Such roses&mdash;such
-vim! Did I call her cheese-face? Why, she never smelt a cheese. Sit down. If
-you&rsquo;d looked like that at the first, girl! So you&rsquo;ll write my name
-under the devil&rsquo;s picture, will you? But he&rsquo;s black, girl,
-he&rsquo;s black&mdash;and I&rsquo;m red. It won&rsquo;t do&mdash;it
-won&rsquo;t do! And you hope I&rsquo;ll have the Scotch fiddle, do you? Lord
-love you, girl, I had <i>it</i> when I was a boy. Don&rsquo;t wish it on me again. Sit
-down&mdash;sit in. We&rsquo;ll tak&rsquo; a cup o&rsquo; kindness.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, thank you,&rdquo; said Faith haughtily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, yes, you will. Come, come now, I apologize, girl&mdash;I apologize.
-I made a fool of myself and I&rsquo;m sorry. Man can&rsquo;t say fairer. Forget
-and forgive. Shake hands, girl&mdash;shake hands. She won&rsquo;t&mdash;no, she
-won&rsquo;t! But she must! Look-a-here, girl, if you&rsquo;ll shake hands and
-break bread with me I&rsquo;ll pay what I used to to the salary and I&rsquo;ll
-go to church the first Sunday in every month and I&rsquo;ll make Kitty Alec
-hold her jaw. I&rsquo;m the only one in the clan can do it. Is it a bargain,
-girl?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It seemed a bargain. Faith found herself shaking hands with the ogre and then
-sitting at his board. Her temper was over&mdash;Faith&rsquo;s tempers never
-lasted very long&mdash;but its excitement still sparkled in her eyes and
-crimsoned her cheeks. Norman Douglas looked at her admiringly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Go, get some of your best preserves, Wilson,&rdquo; he ordered,
-&ldquo;and stop sulking, woman, stop sulking. What if we did have a quarrel,
-woman? A good squall clears the air and briskens things up. But no drizzling
-and fogging afterwards&mdash;no drizzling and fogging, woman. I can&rsquo;t
-stand that. Temper in a woman but no tears for me. Here, girl, is some messed
-up meat and potatoes for you. Begin on that. Wilson has some fancy name for it,
-but I call lit macanaccady. Anything I can&rsquo;t analyze in the eating line I
-call macanaccady and anything wet that puzzles me I call shallamagouslem.
-Wilson&rsquo;s tea is shallamagouslem. I swear she makes it out of burdocks.
-Don&rsquo;t take any of the ungodly black liquid&mdash;here&rsquo;s some milk
-for you. What did you say your name was?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Faith.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No name that&mdash;no name that! I can&rsquo;t stomach such a name. Got
-any other?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, sir.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t like the name, don&rsquo;t like it. There&rsquo;s no smeddum
-to it. Besides, it makes me think of my Aunt Jinny. She called her three girls
-Faith, Hope, and Charity. Faith didn&rsquo;t believe in anything&mdash;Hope was
-a born pessimist&mdash;and Charity was a miser. You ought to be called Red
-Rose&mdash;you look like one when you&rsquo;re mad. <i>I&rsquo;ll</i> call you Red
-Rose. And you&rsquo;ve roped me into promising to go to church? But only once a
-month, remember&mdash;only once a month. Come now, girl, will you let me off? I
-used to pay a hundred to the salary every year and go to church. If I promise
-to pay two hundred a year will you let me off going to church? Come now!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, no, sir,&rdquo; said Faith, dimpling roguishly. &ldquo;I want you to
-go to church, too.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, a bargain is a bargain. I reckon I can stand it twelve times a
-year. What a sensation it&rsquo;ll make the first Sunday I go! And old Susan
-Baker says I&rsquo;m going to hell, hey? Do you believe I&rsquo;ll go
-there&mdash;come, now, do you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope not, sir,&rdquo; stammered Faith in some confusion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Why</i> do you hope not? Come, now, <i>why</i> do you hope not? Give us a reason,
-girl&mdash;give us a reason.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&mdash;it must be a very&mdash;uncomfortable place, sir.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Uncomfortable? All depends on your taste in comfortable, girl. I&rsquo;d
-soon get tired of angels. Fancy old Susan in a halo, now!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith did fancy it, and it tickled her so much that she had to laugh. Norman
-eyed her approvingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;See the fun of it, hey? Oh, I like you&mdash;you&rsquo;re great. About
-this church business, now&mdash;can your father preach?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is a splendid preacher,&rdquo; said loyal Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is, hey? I&rsquo;ll see&mdash;I&rsquo;ll watch out for flaws.
-He&rsquo;d better be careful what he says before <i>me</i>. I&rsquo;ll catch
-him&mdash;I&rsquo;ll trip him up&mdash;I&rsquo;ll keep tabs on his arguments.
-I&rsquo;m bound to have some fun out of this church going business. Does he
-ever preach hell?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;o&mdash;o&mdash;I don&rsquo;t think so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Too bad. I like sermons on that subject. You tell him that if he wants
-to keep me in good humour to preach a good rip-roaring sermon on hell once
-every six months&mdash;and the more brimstone the better. I like &lsquo;em
-smoking. And think of all the pleasure he&rsquo;d give the old maids, too.
-They&rsquo;d all keep looking at old Norman Douglas and thinking,
-&lsquo;That&rsquo;s for you, you old reprobate. That&rsquo;s what&rsquo;s in
-store for <i>you!</i>&rsquo; I&rsquo;ll give an extra ten dollars every time you get
-your father to preach on hell. Here&rsquo;s Wilson and the jam. Like that, hey?
-<i>It</i> isn&rsquo;t macanaccady. Taste!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith obediently swallowed the big spoonful Norman held out to her. Luckily it
-<i>was</i> good.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Best plum jam in the world,&rdquo; said Norman, filling a large saucer
-and plumping it down before her. &ldquo;Glad you like it. I&rsquo;ll give you a
-couple of jars to take home with you. There&rsquo;s nothing mean about
-me&mdash;never was. The devil can&rsquo;t catch me at <i>that</i> corner, anyhow. It
-wasn&rsquo;t my fault that Hester didn&rsquo;t have a new hat for ten years. It
-was her own&mdash;she pinched on hats to save money to give yellow fellows over
-in China. <i>I</i> never gave a cent to missions in my life&mdash;never will.
-Never you try to bamboozle me into that! A hundred a year to the salary and
-church once a month&mdash;but no spoiling good heathens to make poor
-Christians! Why, girl, they wouldn&rsquo;t be fit for heaven or
-hell&mdash;clean spoiled for either place&mdash;clean spoiled. Hey, Wilson,
-haven&rsquo;t you got a smile on yet? Beats all how you women can sulk!
-<i>I</i> never sulked in my life&mdash;it&rsquo;s just one big flash and crash
-with me and then&mdash;pouf&mdash;the squall&rsquo;s over and the sun is out
-and you could eat out of my hand.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman insisted on driving Faith home after supper and he filled the buggy up
-with apples, cabbages, potatoes and pumpkins and jars of jam.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s a nice little tom-pussy out in the barn. I&rsquo;ll give
-you that too, if you&rsquo;d like it. Say the word,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, thank you,&rdquo; said Faith decidedly. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t like
-cats, and besides, I have a rooster.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Listen to her. You can&rsquo;t cuddle a rooster as you can a kitten. Who
-ever heard of petting a rooster? Better take little Tom. I want to find a good
-home for him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. Aunt Martha has a cat and he would kill a strange kitten.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman yielded the point rather reluctantly. He gave Faith an exciting drive
-home, behind his wild two-year old, and when he had let her out at the kitchen
-door of the manse and dumped his cargo on the back veranda he drove away
-shouting,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s only once a month&mdash;only once a month, mind!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith went up to bed, feeling a little dizzy and breathless, as if she had just
-escaped from the grasp of a genial whirlwind. She was happy and thankful. No
-fear now that they would have to leave the Glen and the graveyard and Rainbow
-Valley. But she fell asleep troubled by a disagreeable subconsciousness that
-Dan Reese had called her pig-girl and that, having stumbled on such a congenial
-epithet, he would continue to call her so whenever opportunity offered.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap17"></a>CHAPTER XVII.<br />
-A DOUBLE VICTORY</h2>
-
-<p>
-Norman Douglas came to church the first Sunday in November and made all the
-sensation he desired. Mr. Meredith shook hands with him absently on the church
-steps and hoped dreamily that Mrs. Douglas was well.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She wasn&rsquo;t very well just before I buried her ten years ago, but I
-reckon she has better health now,&rdquo; boomed Norman, to the horror and
-amusement of every one except Mr. Meredith, who was absorbed in wondering if he
-had made the last head of his sermon as clear as he might have, and
-hadn&rsquo;t the least idea what Norman had said to him or he to Norman.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman intercepted Faith at the gate.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Kept my word, you see&mdash;kept my word, Red Rose. I&rsquo;m free now
-till the first Sunday in December. Fine sermon, girl&mdash;fine sermon. Your
-father has more in his head than he carries on his face. But he contradicted
-himself once&mdash;tell him he contradicted himself. And tell him I want that
-brimstone sermon in December. Great way to wind up the old year&mdash;with a
-taste of hell, you know. And what&rsquo;s the matter with a nice tasty
-discourse on heaven for New Year&rsquo;s? Though it wouldn&rsquo;t be half as
-interesting as hell, girl&mdash;not half. Only I&rsquo;d like to know what your
-father thinks about heaven&mdash;he <i>can</i> think&mdash;rarest thing in the
-world&mdash;a person who can think. But he <i>did</i> contradict himself. Ha, ha!
-Here&rsquo;s a question you might ask him sometime when he&rsquo;s awake, girl.
-&lsquo;Can God make a stone so big He couldn&rsquo;t lift it Himself?&rsquo;
-Don&rsquo;t forget now. I want to hear his opinion on it. I&rsquo;ve stumped
-many a minister with that, girl.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith was glad to escape him and run home. Dan Reese, standing among the crowd
-of boys at the gate, looked at her and shaped his mouth into
-&ldquo;pig-girl,&rdquo; but dared not utter it aloud just there. Next day in
-school was a different matter. At noon recess Faith encountered Dan in the
-little spruce plantation behind the school and Dan shouted once more,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pig-girl! Pig-girl! <i>Rooster-girl!</i>&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter Blythe suddenly rose from a mossy cushion behind a little clump of firs
-where he had been reading. He was very pale, but his eyes blazed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You hold your tongue, Dan Reese!&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, hello, Miss Walter,&rdquo; retorted Dan, not at all abashed. He
-vaulted airily to the top of the rail fence and chanted insultingly,
-</p>
-
-<p class="poem">
-&ldquo;Cowardy, cowardy-custard<br />
-Stole a pot of mustard,<br />
-Cowardy, cowardy-custard!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are a coincidence!&rdquo; said Walter scornfully, turning still
-whiter. He had only a very hazy idea what a coincidence was, but Dan had none
-at all and thought it must be something peculiarly opprobrious.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yah! Cowardy!&rdquo; he yelled gain. &ldquo;Your mother writes
-lies&mdash;lies&mdash;lies! And Faith Meredith is a
-pig-girl&mdash;a&mdash;pig-girl&mdash;a pig-girl! And she&rsquo;s a
-rooster-girl&mdash;a rooster-girl&mdash;a rooster-girl! Yah!
-Cowardy&mdash;cowardy&mdash;cust&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dan got no further. Walter had hurled himself across the intervening space and
-knocked Dan off the fence backward with one well-directed blow. Dan&rsquo;s
-sudden inglorious sprawl was greeted with a burst of laughter and a clapping of
-hands from Faith. Dan sprang up, purple with rage, and began to climb the
-fence. But just then the school-bell rang and Dan knew what happened to boys
-who were late during Mr. Hazard&rsquo;s regime.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll fight this out,&rdquo; he howled. &ldquo;Cowardy!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Any time you like,&rdquo; said Walter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, no, no, Walter,&rdquo; protested Faith. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t fight
-him. <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t mind what he says&mdash;I wouldn&rsquo;t condescend
-to mind the like of <i>him</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He insulted you and he insulted my mother,&rdquo; said Walter, with the
-same deadly calm. &ldquo;Tonight after school, Dan.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve got to go right home from school to pick taters after the
-harrows, dad says,&rdquo; answered Dan sulkily. &ldquo;But to-morrow
-night&rsquo;ll do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right&mdash;here to-morrow night,&rdquo; agreed Walter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And I&rsquo;ll smash your sissy-face for you,&rdquo; promised Dan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter shuddered&mdash;not so much from fear of the threat as from repulsion
-over the ugliness and vulgarity of it. But he held his head high and marched
-into school. Faith followed in a conflict of emotions. She hated to think of
-Walter fighting that little sneak, but oh, he had been splendid! And he was
-going to fight for <i>her</i>&mdash;Faith Meredith&mdash;to punish her insulter! Of
-course he would win&mdash;such eyes spelled victory.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith&rsquo;s confidence in her champion had dimmed a little by evening,
-however. Walter had seemed so very quiet and dull the rest of the day in
-school.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If it were only Jem,&rdquo; she sighed to Una, as they sat on Hezekiah
-Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone in the graveyard. &ldquo;<i>He</i> is such a
-fighter&mdash;he could finish Dan off in no time. But Walter doesn&rsquo;t know
-much about fighting.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m so afraid he&rsquo;ll be hurt,&rdquo; sighed Una, who hated
-fighting and couldn&rsquo;t understand the subtle, secret exultation she
-divined in Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He oughtn&rsquo;t to be,&rdquo; said Faith uncomfortably.
-&ldquo;He&rsquo;s every bit as big as Dan.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But Dan&rsquo;s so much older,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;Why, he&rsquo;s
-nearly a year older.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dan hasn&rsquo;t done much fighting when you come to count up,&rdquo;
-said Faith. &ldquo;I believe he&rsquo;s really a coward. He didn&rsquo;t think
-Walter would fight, or he wouldn&rsquo;t have called names before him. Oh, if
-you could just have seen Walter&rsquo;s face when he looked at him, Una! It
-made me shiver&mdash;with a nice shiver. He looked just like Sir Galahad in
-that poem father read us on Saturday.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hate the thought of them fighting and I wish it could be
-stopped,&rdquo; said Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, it&rsquo;s got to go on now,&rdquo; cried Faith. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a
-matter of honour. Don&rsquo;t you <i>dare</i> tell anyone, Una. If you do I&rsquo;ll
-never tell you secrets again!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t tell,&rdquo; agreed Una. &ldquo;But I won&rsquo;t stay
-to-morrow to watch the fight. I&rsquo;m coming right home.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, all right. <i>I</i> have to be there&mdash;it would be mean not to,
-when Walter is fighting for me. I&rsquo;m going to tie my colours on his
-arm&mdash;that&rsquo;s the thing to do when he&rsquo;s my knight. How lucky
-Mrs. Blythe gave me that pretty blue hair-ribbon for my birthday! I&rsquo;ve
-only worn it twice so it will be almost new. But I wish I was sure Walter would
-win. It will be so&mdash;so <i>humiliating</i> if he doesn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith would have been yet more dubious if she could have seen her champion just
-then. Walter had gone home from school with all his righteous anger at a low
-ebb and a very nasty feeling in its place. He had to fight Dan Reese the next
-night&mdash;and he didn&rsquo;t want to&mdash;he hated the thought of it. And
-he kept thinking of it all the time. Not for a minute could he get away from
-the thought. Would it hurt much? He was terribly afraid that it would hurt. And
-would he be defeated and shamed?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He could not eat any supper worth speaking of. Susan had made a big batch of
-his favourite monkey-faces, but he could choke only one down. Jem ate four.
-Walter wondered how he could. How could <i>anybody</i> eat? And how could they all
-talk gaily as they were doing? There was mother, with her shining eyes and pink
-cheeks. <i>She</i> didn&rsquo;t know her son had to fight next day. Would she be so
-gay if she knew, Walter wondered darkly. Jem had taken Susan&rsquo;s picture
-with his new camera and the result was passed around the table and Susan was
-terribly indignant over it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am no beauty, Mrs. Dr. dear, and well I know it, and have always known
-it,&rdquo; she said in an aggrieved tone, &ldquo;but that I am as ugly as that
-picture makes me out I will never, no, never believe.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jem laughed over this and Anne laughed again with him. Walter couldn&rsquo;t
-endure it. He got up and fled to his room.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That child has got something on his mind, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said
-Susan. &ldquo;He has et next to nothing. Do you suppose he is plotting another
-poem?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Poor Walter was very far removed in spirit from the starry realms of poesy just
-then. He propped his elbow on his open window-sill and leaned his head drearily
-on his hands.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come on down to the shore, Walter,&rdquo; cried Jem, busting in.
-&ldquo;The boys are going to burn the sand-hill grass to-night. Father says we
-can go. Come on.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At any other time Walter would have been delighted. He gloried in the burning
-of the sand-hill grass. But now he flatly refused to go, and no arguments or
-entreaties could move him. Disappointed Jem, who did not care for the long dark
-walk to Four Winds Point alone, retreated to his museum in the garret and
-buried himself in a book. He soon forgot his disappointment, revelling with the
-heroes of old romance, and pausing occasionally to picture himself a famous
-general, leading his troops to victory on some great battlefield.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter sat at his window until bedtime. Di crept in, hoping to be told what was
-wrong, but Walter could not talk of it, even to Di. Talking of it seemed to
-give it a reality from which he shrank. It was torture enough to think of it.
-The crisp, withered leaves rustled on the maple trees outside his window. The
-glow of rose and flame had died out of the hollow, silvery sky, and the full
-moon was rising gloriously over Rainbow Valley. Afar off, a ruddy woodfire was
-painting a page of glory on the horizon beyond the hills. It was a sharp, clear
-evening when far-away sounds were heard distinctly. A fox was barking across
-the pond; an engine was puffing down at the Glen station; a blue-jay was
-screaming madly in the maple grove; there was laughter over on the manse lawn.
-How could people laugh? How could foxes and blue-jays and engines behave as if
-nothing were going to happen on the morrow?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I wish it was over,&rdquo; groaned Walter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He slept very little that night and had hard work choking down his porridge in
-the morning. Susan <i>was</i> rather lavish in her platefuls. Mr. Hazard found him an
-unsatisfactory pupil that day. Faith Meredith&rsquo;s wits seemed to be
-wool-gathering, too. Dan Reese kept drawing surreptitious pictures of girls,
-with pig or rooster heads, on his slate and holding them up for all to see. The
-news of the coming battle had leaked out and most of the boys and many of the
-girls were in the spruce plantation when Dan and Walter sought it after school.
-Una had gone home, but Faith was there, having tied her blue ribbon around
-Walter&rsquo;s arm. Walter was thankful that neither Jem nor Di nor Nan were
-among the crowd of spectators. Somehow they had not heard of what was in the
-wind and had gone home, too. Walter faced Dan quite undauntedly now. At the
-last moment all his fear had vanished, but he still felt disgust at the idea of
-fighting. Dan, it was noted, was really paler under his freckles than Walter
-was. One of the older boys gave the word and Dan struck Walter in the face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter reeled a little. The pain of the blow tingled through all his sensitive
-frame for a moment. Then he felt pain no longer. Something, such as he had
-never experienced before, seemed to roll over him like a flood. His face
-flushed crimson, his eyes burned like flame. The scholars of Glen St. Mary
-school had never dreamed that &ldquo;Miss Walter&rdquo; could look like that.
-He hurled himself forward and closed with Dan like a young wildcat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There were no particular rules in the fights of the Glen school boys. It was
-catch-as-catch can, and get your blows in anyhow. Walter fought with a savage
-fury and a joy in the struggle against which Dan could not hold his ground. It
-was all over very speedily. Walter had no clear consciousness of what he was
-doing until suddenly the red mist cleared from his sight and he found himself
-kneeling on the body of the prostrate Dan whose nose&mdash;oh,
-horror!&mdash;was spouting blood.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Have you had enough?&rdquo; demanded Walter through his clenched teeth.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dan sulkily admitted that he had.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My mother doesn&rsquo;t write lies?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Faith Meredith isn&rsquo;t a pig-girl?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nor a rooster-girl?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And I&rsquo;m not a coward?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter had intended to ask, &ldquo;And you are a liar?&rdquo; but pity
-intervened and he did not humiliate Dan further. Besides, that blood was so
-horrible.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can go, then,&rdquo; he said contemptuously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was a loud clapping from the boys who were perched on the rail fence, but
-some of the girls were crying. They were frightened. They had seen schoolboy
-fights before, but nothing like Walter as he had grappled with Dan. There had
-been something terrifying about him. They thought he would kill Dan. Now that
-all was over they sobbed hysterically&mdash;except Faith, who still stood tense
-and crimson cheeked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter did not stay for any conqueror&rsquo;s meed. He sprang over the fence
-and rushed down the spruce hill to Rainbow Valley. He felt none of the
-victor&rsquo;s joy, but he felt a certain calm satisfaction in duty done and
-honour avenged&mdash;mingled with a sickish qualm when he thought of
-Dan&rsquo;s gory nose. It had been so ugly, and Walter hated ugliness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Also, he began to realize that he himself was somewhat sore and battered up.
-His lip was cut and swollen and one eye felt very strange. In Rainbow Valley he
-encountered Mr. Meredith, who was coming home from an afternoon call on the
-Miss Wests. That reverend gentleman looked gravely at him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It seems to me that you have been fighting, Walter?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, sir,&rdquo; said Walter, expecting a scolding.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What was it about?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dan Reese said my mother wrote lies and that that Faith was a
-pig-girl,&rdquo; answered Walter bluntly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh&mdash;h! Then you were certainly justified, Walter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you think it&rsquo;s right to fight, sir?&rdquo; asked Walter
-curiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not always&mdash;and not often&mdash;but sometimes&mdash;yes,
-sometimes,&rdquo; said John Meredith. &ldquo;When womenkind are insulted for
-instance&mdash;as in your case. My motto, Walter, is, don&rsquo;t fight till
-you&rsquo;re sure you ought to, and <i>then</i> put every ounce of you into it. In
-spite of sundry discolorations I infer that you came off best.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes. I made him take it all back.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Very good&mdash;very good, indeed. I didn&rsquo;t think you were such a
-fighter, Walter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I never fought before&mdash;and I didn&rsquo;t want to right up to the
-last&mdash;and then,&rdquo; said Walter, determined to make a clean breast of
-it, &ldquo;I liked it while I was at it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Rev. John&rsquo;s eyes twinkled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You were&mdash;a little frightened&mdash;at first?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I was a whole lot frightened,&rdquo; said honest Walter. &ldquo;But
-I&rsquo;m not going to be frightened any more, sir. Being frightened of things
-is worse than the things themselves. I&rsquo;m going to ask father to take me
-over to Lowbridge to-morrow to get my tooth out.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Right again. &lsquo;Fear is more pain than is the pain it fears.&rsquo;
-Do you know who wrote that, Walter? It was Shakespeare. Was there any feeling
-or emotion or experience of the human heart that that wonderful man did not
-know? When you go home tell your mother I am proud of you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter did not tell her that, however; but he told her all the rest, and she
-sympathized with him and told him she was glad he had stood up for her and
-Faith, and she anointed his sore spots and rubbed cologne on his aching head.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Are all mothers as nice as you?&rdquo; asked Walter, hugging her.
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;re <i>worth</i> standing up for.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia and Susan were in the living room when Anne came downstairs, and
-listened to the story with much enjoyment. Susan in particular was highly
-gratified.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am real glad to hear he has had a good fight, Mrs. Dr. dear. Perhaps
-it may knock that poetry nonsense out of him. And I never, no, never could bear
-that little viper of a Dan Reese. Will you not sit nearer to the fire, Mrs.
-Marshall Elliott? These November evenings are very chilly.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Thank you, Susan, I&rsquo;m not cold. I called at the manse before I
-came here and got quite warm&mdash;though I had to go to the kitchen to do it,
-for there was no fire anywhere else. The kitchen looked as if it had been
-stirred up with a stick, believe <i>me</i>. Mr. Meredith wasn&rsquo;t home. I
-couldn&rsquo;t find out where he was, but I have an idea that he was up at the
-Wests&rsquo;. Do you know, Anne dearie, they say he has been going there
-frequently all the fall and people are beginning to think he is going to see
-Rosemary.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He would get a very charming wife if he married Rosemary,&rdquo; said
-Anne, piling driftwood on the fire. &ldquo;She is one of the most delightful
-girls I&rsquo;ve ever known&mdash;truly one of the race of Joseph.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ye&mdash;s&mdash;only she is an Episcopalian,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia
-doubtfully. &ldquo;Of course, that is better than if she was a
-Methodist&mdash;but I do think Mr. Meredith could find a good enough wife in
-his own denomination. However, very likely there is nothing in it. It&rsquo;s
-only a month ago that I said to him, &lsquo;You ought to marry again, Mr.
-Meredith.&rsquo; He looked as shocked as if I had suggested something improper.
-&lsquo;My wife is in her grave, Mrs. Elliott,&rsquo; he said, in that gentle,
-saintly way of his. &lsquo;I suppose so,&rsquo; I said, &lsquo;or I
-wouldn&rsquo;t be advising you to marry again.&rsquo; Then he looked more
-shocked than ever. So I doubt if there is much in this Rosemary story. If a
-single minister calls twice at a house where there is a single woman all the
-gossips have it he is courting her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It seems to me&mdash;if I may presume to say so&mdash;that Mr. Meredith
-is too shy to go courting a second wife,&rdquo; said Susan solemnly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He <i>isn&rsquo;t</i> shy, believe <i>me</i>,&rdquo; retorted Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;Absent-minded,&mdash;yes&mdash;but shy, no. And for all he is so
-abstracted and dreamy he has a very good opinion of himself, man-like, and when
-he is really awake he wouldn&rsquo;t think it much of a chore to ask any woman
-to have him. No, the trouble is, he&rsquo;s deluding himself into believing
-that his heart is buried, while all the time it&rsquo;s beating away inside of
-him just like anybody else&rsquo;s. He may have a notion of Rosemary West and
-he may not. If he has, we must make the best of it. She is a sweet girl and a
-fine housekeeper, and would make a good mother for those poor, neglected
-children. And,&rdquo; concluded Miss Cornelia resignedly, &ldquo;my own
-grandmother was an Episcopalian.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap18"></a>CHAPTER XVIII.<br />
-MARY BRINGS EVIL TIDINGS</h2>
-
-<p>
-Mary Vance, whom Mrs. Elliott had sent up to the manse on an errand, came
-tripping down Rainbow Valley on her way to Ingleside where she was to spend the
-afternoon with Nan and Di as a Saturday treat. Nan and Di had been picking
-spruce gum with Faith and Una in the manse woods and the four of them were now
-sitting on a fallen pine by the brook, all, it must be admitted, chewing rather
-vigorously. The Ingleside twins were not allowed to chew spruce gum anywhere
-but in the seclusion of Rainbow Valley, but Faith and Una were unrestricted by
-such rules of etiquette and cheerfully chewed it everywhere, at home and
-abroad, to the very proper horror of the Glen. Faith had been chewing it in
-church one day; but Jerry had realized the enormity of <i>that</i>, and had given her
-such an older-brotherly scolding that she never did it again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I was so hungry I just felt as if I had to chew something,&rdquo; she
-protested. &ldquo;You know well enough what breakfast was like, Jerry Meredith.
-I <i>couldn&rsquo;t</i> eat scorched porridge and my stomach just felt so queer and
-empty. The gum helped a lot&mdash;and I didn&rsquo;t chew <i>very</i> hard. I
-didn&rsquo;t make any noise and I never cracked the gum once.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You mustn&rsquo;t chew gum in church, anyhow,&rdquo; insisted Jerry.
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t let me catch you at it again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You chewed yourself in prayer-meeting last week,&rdquo; cried Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>that&rsquo;s</i> different,&rdquo; said Jerry loftily. &ldquo;Prayer-meeting
-isn&rsquo;t on Sunday. Besides, I sat away at the back in a dark seat and
-nobody saw me. You were sitting right up front where every one saw you. And I
-took the gum out of my mouth for the last hymn and stuck it on the back of the
-pew right up in front where every one saw you. Then I came away and forgot it.
-I went back to get it next morning, but it was gone. I suppose Rod Warren
-swiped it. And it was a dandy chew.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary Vance walked down the Valley with her head held high. She had on a new
-blue velvet cap with a scarlet rosette in it, a coat of navy blue cloth and a
-little squirrel-fur muff. She was very conscious of her new clothes and very
-well pleased with herself. Her hair was elaborately crimped, her face was quite
-plump, her cheeks rosy, her white eyes shining. She did not look much like the
-forlorn and ragged waif the Merediths had found in the old Taylor barn. Una
-tried not to feel envious. Here was Mary with a new velvet cap, but she and
-Faith had to wear their shabby old gray tams again this winter. Nobody ever
-thought of getting them new ones and they were afraid to ask their father for
-them for fear that he might be short of money and then he would feel badly.
-Mary had told them once that ministers were always short of money, and found it
-&ldquo;awful hard&rdquo; to make ends meet. Since then Faith and Una would have
-gone in rags rather than ask their father for anything if they could help it.
-They did not worry a great deal over their shabbiness; but it was rather trying
-to see Mary Vance coming out in such style and putting on such airs about it,
-too. The new squirrel muff was really the last straw. Neither Faith nor Una had
-ever had a muff, counting themselves lucky if they could compass mittens
-without holes in them. Aunt Martha could not see to darn holes and though Una
-tried to, she made sad cobbling. Somehow, they could not make their greeting of
-Mary very cordial. But Mary did not mind or notice that; she was not overly
-sensitive. She vaulted lightly to a seat on the pine tree, and laid the
-offending muff on a bough. Una saw that it was lined with shirred red satin and
-had red tassels. She looked down at her own rather purple, chapped, little
-hands and wondered if she would ever, <i>ever</i> be able to put them into a muff like
-that.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Give us a chew,&rdquo; said Mary companionably. Nan, Di and Faith all
-produced an amber-hued knot or two from their pockets and passed them to Mary.
-Una sat very still. She had four lovely big knots in the pocket of her tight,
-thread-bare little jacket, but she wasn&rsquo;t going to give one of them to
-Mary Vance&mdash;not one Let Mary pick her own gum! People with squirrel muffs
-needn&rsquo;t expect to get everything in the world.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Great day, isn&rsquo;t it?&rdquo; said Mary, swinging her legs, the
-better, perhaps, to display new boots with very smart cloth tops. Una tucked
-<i>her</i> feet under her. There was a hole in the toe of one of her boots and both
-laces were much knotted. But they were the best she had. Oh, this Mary Vance!
-Why hadn&rsquo;t they left her in the old barn?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una never felt badly because the Ingleside twins were better dressed than she
-and Faith were. <i>They</i> wore their pretty clothes with careless grace and never
-seemed to think about them at all. Somehow, they did not make other people feel
-shabby. But when Mary Vance was dressed up she seemed fairly to exude
-clothes&mdash;to walk in an atmosphere of clothes&mdash;to make everybody else
-feel and think clothes. Una, as she sat there in the honey-tinted sunshine of
-the gracious December afternoon, was acutely and miserably conscious of
-everything she had on&mdash;the faded tam, which was yet her best, the skimpy
-jacket she had worn for three winters, the holes in her skirt and her boots,
-the shivering insufficiency of her poor little undergarments. Of course, Mary
-was going out for a visit and she was not. But even if she had been she had
-nothing better to put on and in this lay the sting.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Say, this is great gum. Listen to me cracking it. There ain&rsquo;t any
-gum spruces down at Four Winds,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;Sometimes I just
-hanker after a chew. Mrs. Elliott won&rsquo;t let me chew gum if she sees me.
-She says it ain&rsquo;t lady-like. This lady-business puzzles me. I can&rsquo;t
-get on to all its kinks. Say, Una, what&rsquo;s the matter with you? Cat got
-your tongue?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Una, who could not drag her fascinated eyes from that
-squirrel muff. Mary leaned past her, picked it up and thrust it into
-Una&rsquo;s hands.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Stick your paws in that for a while,&rdquo; she ordered. &ldquo;They
-look sorter pinched. Ain&rsquo;t that a dandy muff? Mrs. Elliott give it to me
-last week for a birthday present. I&rsquo;m to get the collar at Christmas. I
-heard her telling Mr. Elliott that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott is very good to you,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You bet she is. And <i>I&rsquo;m</i> good to her, too,&rdquo; retorted Mary.
-&ldquo;I work like a nigger to make it easy for her and have everything just as
-she likes it. We was made for each other. &lsquo;Tisn&rsquo;t every one could
-get along with her as well as I do. She&rsquo;s pizen neat, but so am I, and so
-we agree fine.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I told you she would never whip you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So you did. She&rsquo;s never tried to lay a finger on me and I
-ain&rsquo;t never told a lie to her&mdash;not one, true&rsquo;s you live. She
-combs me down with her tongue sometimes though, but that just slips off <i>me</i> like
-water off a duck&rsquo;s back. Say, Una, why didn&rsquo;t you hang on to the
-muff?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una had put it back on the bough.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My hands aren&rsquo;t cold, thank you,&rdquo; she said stiffly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, if you&rsquo;re satisfied, <i>I</i> am. Say, old Kitty Alec has
-come back to church as meek as Moses and nobody knows why. But everybody is
-saying it was Faith brought Norman Douglas out. His housekeeper says you went
-there and gave him an awful tongue-lashing. Did you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I went and asked him to come to church,&rdquo; said Faith uncomfortably.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Fancy your spunk!&rdquo; said Mary admiringly. &ldquo;<i>I</i>
-wouldn&rsquo;t have dared do that and I&rsquo;m not so slow. Mrs. Wilson says
-the two of you jawed something scandalous, but you come off best and then he
-just turned round and like to eat you up. Say, is your father going to preach
-here to-morrow?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. He&rsquo;s going to exchange with Mr. Perry from Charlottetown.
-Father went to town this morning and Mr. Perry is coming out to-night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I <i>thought</i> there was something in the wind, though old Martha
-wouldn&rsquo;t give me any satisfaction. But I felt sure she wouldn&rsquo;t
-have been killing that rooster for nothing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What rooster? What do you mean?&rdquo; cried Faith, turning pale.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>I</i> don&rsquo;t know what rooster. I didn&rsquo;t see it. When she
-took the butter Mrs. Elliott sent up she said she&rsquo;d been out to the barn
-killing a rooster for dinner tomorrow.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith sprang down from the pine.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s Adam&mdash;we have no other rooster&mdash;she has killed
-Adam.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now, don&rsquo;t fly off the handle. Martha said the butcher at the Glen
-had no meat this week and she had to have something and the hens were all
-laying and too poor.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If she has killed Adam&mdash;&rdquo; Faith began to run up the hill.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary shrugged her shoulders.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She&rsquo;ll go crazy now. She was so fond of that Adam. He ought to
-have been in the pot long ago&mdash;he&rsquo;ll be as tough as sole leather.
-But <i>I</i> wouldn&rsquo;t like to be in Martha&rsquo;s shoes. Faith&rsquo;s
-just white with rage; Una, you&rsquo;d better go after her and try to peacify
-her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary had gone a few steps with the Blythe girls when Una suddenly turned and
-ran after her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Here&rsquo;s some gum for you, Mary,&rdquo; she said, with a little
-repentant catch in her voice, thrusting all her four knots into Mary&rsquo;s
-hands, &ldquo;and I&rsquo;m glad you have such a pretty muff.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, thanks,&rdquo; said Mary, rather taken by surprise. To the Blythe
-girls, after Una had gone, she said, &ldquo;Ain&rsquo;t she a queer little
-mite? But I&rsquo;ve always said she had a good heart.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap19"></a>CHAPTER XIX.<br />
-POOR ADAM!</h2>
-
-<p>
-When Una got home Faith was lying face downwards on her bed, utterly refusing
-to be comforted. Aunt Martha had killed Adam. He was reposing on a platter in
-the pantry that very minute, trussed and dressed, encircled by his liver and
-heart and gizzard. Aunt Martha heeded Faith&rsquo;s passion of grief and anger
-not a whit.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We had to have something for the strange minister&rsquo;s dinner,&rdquo;
-she said. &ldquo;You&rsquo;re too big a girl to make such a fuss over an old
-rooster. You knew he&rsquo;d have to be killed sometime.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll tell father when he comes home what you&rsquo;ve done,&rdquo;
-sobbed Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t you go bothering your poor father. He has troubles enough.
-And <i>I&rsquo;m</i> housekeeper here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Adam was <i>mine</i>&mdash;Mrs. Johnson gave him to me. You had no business to
-touch him,&rdquo; stormed Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t you get sassy now. The rooster&rsquo;s killed and
-there&rsquo;s an end of it. I ain&rsquo;t going to set no strange minister down
-to a dinner of cold b&rsquo;iled mutton. I was brought up to know better than
-that, if I have come down in the world.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith would not go down to supper that night and she would not go to church the
-next morning. But at dinner time she went to the table, her eyes swollen with
-crying, her face sullen.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Rev. James Perry was a sleek, rubicund man, with a bristling white
-moustache, bushy white eyebrows, and a shining bald head. He was certainly not
-handsome and he was a very tiresome, pompous sort of person. But if he had
-looked like the Archangel Michael and talked with the tongues of men and angels
-Faith would still have utterly detested him. He carved Adam up dexterously,
-showing off his plump white hands and very handsome diamond ring. Also, he made
-jovial remarks all through the performance. Jerry and Carl giggled, and even
-Una smiled wanly, because she thought politeness demanded it. But Faith only
-scowled darkly. The Rev. James thought her manners shockingly bad. Once, when
-he was delivering himself of an unctuous remark to Jerry, Faith broke in rudely
-with a flat contradiction. The Rev. James drew his bushy eyebrows together at
-her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Little girls should not interrupt,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;and they
-should not contradict people who know far more than they do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This put Faith in a worse temper than ever. To be called &ldquo;little
-girl&rdquo; as if she were no bigger than chubby Rilla Blythe over at
-Ingleside! It was insufferable. And how that abominable Mr. Perry did eat! He
-even picked poor Adam&rsquo;s bones. Neither Faith nor Una would touch a
-mouthful, and looked upon the boys as little better than cannibals. Faith felt
-that if that awful repast did not soon come to an end she would wind it up by
-throwing something at Mr. Perry&rsquo;s gleaming head. Fortunately, Mr. Perry
-found Aunt Martha&rsquo;s leathery apple pie too much even for his powers of
-mastication and the meal came to an end, after a long grace in which Mr. Perry
-offered up devout thanks for the food which a kind and beneficent Providence
-had provided for sustenance and temperate pleasure.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;God hadn&rsquo;t a single thing to do with providing Adam for
-you,&rdquo; muttered Faith rebelliously under her breath.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The boys gladly made their escape to outdoors, Una went to help Aunt Martha
-with the dishes&mdash;though that rather grumpy old dame never welcomed her
-timid assistance&mdash;and Faith betook herself to the study where a cheerful
-wood fire was burning in the grate. She thought she would thereby escape from
-the hated Mr. Perry, who had announced his intention of taking a nap in his
-room during the afternoon. But scarcely had Faith settled herself in a corner,
-with a book, when he walked in and, standing before the fire, proceeded to
-survey the disorderly study with an air of disapproval.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You father&rsquo;s books seem to be in somewhat deplorable confusion, my
-little girl,&rdquo; he said severely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith darkled in her corner and said not a word. She would <i>not</i> talk to
-this&mdash;this creature.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You should try to put them in order,&rdquo; Mr. Perry went on, playing
-with his handsome watch chain and smiling patronizingly on Faith. &ldquo;You
-are quite old enough to attend to such duties. <i>My</i> little daughter at home is
-only ten and she is already an excellent little housekeeper and the greatest
-help and comfort to her mother. She is a very sweet child. I wish you had the
-privilege of her acquaintance. She could help you in many ways. Of course, you
-have not had the inestimable privilege of a good mother&rsquo;s care and
-training. A sad lack&mdash;a very sad lack. I have spoken more than once to
-your father in this connection and pointed out his duty to him faithfully, but
-so far with no effect. I trust he may awaken to a realization of his
-responsibility before it is too late. In the meantime, it is your duty and
-privilege to endeavour to take your sainted mother&rsquo;s place. You might
-exercise a great influence over your brothers and your little sister&mdash;you
-might be a true mother to them. I fear that you do not think of these things as
-you should. My dear child, allow me to open your eyes in regard to them.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Perry&rsquo;s oily, complacent voice trickled on. He was in his element.
-Nothing suited him better than to lay down the law, patronize and exhort. He
-had no idea of stopping, and he did not stop. He stood before the fire, his
-feet planted firmly on the rug, and poured out a flood of pompous platitudes.
-Faith heard not a word. She was really not listening to him at all. But she was
-watching his long black coat-tails with impish delight growing in her brown
-eyes. Mr. Perry was standing <i>very</i> near the fire. His coat-tails began to
-scorch&mdash;his coat-tails began to smoke. He still prosed on, wrapped up in
-his own eloquence. The coat-tails smoked worse. A tiny spark flew up from the
-burning wood and alighted in the middle of one. It clung and caught and spread
-into a smouldering flame. Faith could restrain herself no longer and broke into
-a stifled giggle.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Perry stopped short, angered over this impertinence. Suddenly he became
-conscious that a reek of burning cloth filled the room. He whirled round and
-saw nothing. Then he clapped his hands to his coat-tails and brought them
-around in front of him. There was already quite a hole in one of them&mdash;and
-this was his new suit. Faith shook with helpless laughter over his pose and
-expression.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Did you see my coat-tails burning?&rdquo; he demanded angrily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, sir,&rdquo; said Faith demurely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why didn&rsquo;t you tell me?&rdquo; he demanded, glaring at her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You said it wasn&rsquo;t good manners to interrupt, sir,&rdquo; said
-Faith, more demurely still.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If&mdash;if I was your father, I would give you a spanking that you
-would remember all your life, Miss,&rdquo; said a very angry reverend
-gentleman, as he stalked out of the study. The coat of Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s
-second best suit would not fit Mr. Perry, so he had to go to the evening
-service with his singed coat-tail. But he did not walk up the aisle with his
-usual consciousness of the honour he was conferring on the building. He never
-would agree to an exchange of pulpits with Mr. Meredith again, and he was
-barely civil to the latter when they met for a few minutes at the station the
-next morning. But Faith felt a certain gloomy satisfaction. Adam was partially
-avenged.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap20"></a>CHAPTER XX.<br />
-FAITH MAKES A FRIEND</h2>
-
-<p>
-Next day in school was a hard one for Faith. Mary Vance had told the tale of
-Adam, and all the scholars, except the Blythes, thought it quite a joke. The
-girls told Faith, between giggles, that it was too bad, and the boys wrote
-sardonic notes of condolence to her. Poor Faith went home from school feeling
-her very soul raw and smarting within her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m going over to Ingleside to have a talk with Mrs.
-Blythe,&rdquo; she sobbed. &ldquo;<i>She</i> won&rsquo;t laugh at me, as everybody
-else does. I&rsquo;ve just <i>got</i> to talk to somebody who understands how bad I
-feel.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She ran down through Rainbow Valley. Enchantment had been at work the night
-before. A light snow had fallen and the powdered firs were dreaming of a spring
-to come and a joy to be. The long hill beyond was richly purple with leafless
-beeches. The rosy light of sunset lay over the world like a pink kiss. Of all
-the airy, fairy places, full of weird, elfin grace, Rainbow Valley that winter
-evening was the most beautiful. But all its dreamlike loveliness was lost on
-poor, sore-hearted little Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-By the brook she came suddenly upon Rosemary West, who was sitting on the old
-pine tree. She was on her way home from Ingleside, where she had been giving
-the girls their music lesson. She had been lingering in Rainbow Valley quite a
-little time, looking across its white beauty and roaming some by-ways of dream.
-Judging from the expression of her face, her thoughts were pleasant ones.
-Perhaps the faint, occasional tinkle from the bells on the Tree Lovers brought
-the little lurking smile to her lips. Or perhaps it was occasioned by the
-consciousness that John Meredith seldom failed to spend Monday evening in the
-gray house on the white wind-swept hill.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Into Rosemary&rsquo;s dreams burst Faith Meredith full of rebellious
-bitterness. Faith stopped abruptly when she saw Miss West. She did not know her
-very well&mdash;just well enough to speak to when they met. And she did not
-want to see any one just then&mdash;except Mrs. Blythe. She knew her eyes and
-nose were red and swollen and she hated to have a stranger know she had been
-crying.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good evening, Miss West,&rdquo; she said uncomfortably.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is the matter, Faith?&rdquo; asked Rosemary gently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nothing,&rdquo; said Faith rather shortly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; Rosemary smiled. &ldquo;You mean nothing that you can tell to
-outsiders, don&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith looked at Miss West with sudden interest. Here was a person who
-understood things. And how pretty she was! How golden her hair was under her
-plumy hat! How pink her cheeks were over her velvet coat! How blue and
-companionable her eyes were! Faith felt that Miss West could be a lovely
-friend&mdash;if only she were a friend instead of a stranger!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&mdash;I&rsquo;m going up to tell Mrs. Blythe,&rdquo; said Faith.
-&ldquo;She always understands&mdash;she never laughs at us. I always talk
-things over with her. It helps.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dear girlie, I&rsquo;m sorry to have to tell you that Mrs. Blythe
-isn&rsquo;t home,&rdquo; said Miss West, sympathetically. &ldquo;She went to
-Avonlea to-day and isn&rsquo;t coming back till the last of the week.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith&rsquo;s lip quivered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then I might as well go home again,&rdquo; she said miserably.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose so&mdash;unless you think you could bring yourself to talk it
-over with me instead,&rdquo; said Miss Rosemary gently. &ldquo;It <i>is</i> such a
-help to talk things over. <i>I</i> know. I don&rsquo;t suppose I can be as good
-at understanding as Mrs. Blythe&mdash;but I promise you that I won&rsquo;t
-laugh.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You wouldn&rsquo;t laugh outside,&rdquo; hesitated Faith. &ldquo;But you
-might&mdash;inside.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, I wouldn&rsquo;t laugh inside, either. Why should I? Something has
-hurt you&mdash;it never amuses me to see anybody hurt, no matter what hurts
-them. If you feel that you&rsquo;d like to tell me what has hurt you I&rsquo;ll
-be glad to listen. But if you think you&rsquo;d rather not&mdash;that&rsquo;s
-all right, too, dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith took another long, earnest look into Miss West&rsquo;s eyes. They were
-very serious&mdash;there was no laughter in them, not even far, far back. With
-a little sigh she sat down on the old pine beside her new friend and told her
-all about Adam and his cruel fate.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary did not laugh or feel like laughing. She understood and
-sympathized&mdash;really, she was almost as good as Mrs. Blythe&mdash;yes,
-quite as good.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mr. Perry is a minister, but he should have been a <i>butcher</i>,&rdquo; said
-Faith bitterly. &ldquo;He is so fond of carving things up. He <i>enjoyed</i> cutting
-poor Adam to pieces. He just sliced into him as if he were any common
-rooster.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Between you and me, Faith, <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t like Mr. Perry very well
-myself,&rdquo; said Rosemary, laughing a little&mdash;but at Mr. Perry, not at
-Adam, as Faith clearly understood. &ldquo;I never did like him. I went to
-school with him&mdash;he was a Glen boy, you know&mdash;and he was a most
-detestable little prig even then. Oh, how we girls used to hate holding his
-fat, clammy hands in the ring-around games. But we must remember, dear, that he
-didn&rsquo;t know that Adam had been a pet of yours. He thought he <i>was</i> just a
-common rooster. We must be just, even when we are terribly hurt.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose so,&rdquo; admitted Faith. &ldquo;But why does everybody seem
-to think it funny that I should have loved Adam so much, Miss West? If it had
-been a horrid old cat nobody would have thought it queer. When Lottie
-Warren&rsquo;s kitten had its legs cut off by the binder everybody was sorry
-for her. She cried two days in school and nobody laughed at her, not even Dan
-Reese. And all her chums went to the kitten&rsquo;s funeral and helped her bury
-it&mdash;only they couldn&rsquo;t bury its poor little paws with it, because
-they couldn&rsquo;t find them. It was a horrid thing to have happen, of course,
-but I don&rsquo;t think it was as dreadful as seeing your pet <i>eaten up</i>. Yet
-everybody laughs at <i>me</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think it is because the name &lsquo;rooster&rsquo; seems rather a
-funny one,&rdquo; said Rosemary gravely. &ldquo;There <i>is</i> something in it that
-is comical. Now, &lsquo;chicken&rsquo; is different. It doesn&rsquo;t sound so
-funny to talk of loving a chicken.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Adam was the dearest little chicken, Miss West. He was just a little
-golden ball. He would run up to me and peck out of my hand. And he was handsome
-when he grew up, too&mdash;white as snow, with such a beautiful curving white
-tail, though Mary Vance said it was too short. He knew his name and always came
-when I called him&mdash;he was a very intelligent rooster. And Aunt Martha had
-no right to kill him. He was mine. It wasn&rsquo;t fair, was it, Miss
-West?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, it wasn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said Rosemary decidedly. &ldquo;Not a bit
-fair. I remember I had a pet hen when I was a little girl. She was such a
-pretty little thing&mdash;all golden brown and speckly. I loved her as much as
-I ever loved any pet. She was never killed&mdash;she died of old age. Mother
-wouldn&rsquo;t have her killed because she was my pet.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If <i>my</i> mother had been living she wouldn&rsquo;t have let Adam be
-killed,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;For that matter, father wouldn&rsquo;t have
-either, if he&rsquo;d been home and known of it. I&rsquo;m <i>sure</i> he
-wouldn&rsquo;t, Miss West.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m sure, too,&rdquo; said Rosemary. There was a little added
-flush on her face. She looked rather conscious but Faith noticed nothing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Was it <i>very</i> wicked of me not to tell Mr. Perry his coat-tails were
-scorching?&rdquo; she asked anxiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, terribly wicked,&rdquo; answered Rosemary, with dancing eyes.
-&ldquo;But <i>I</i> would have been just as naughty, Faith&mdash;<i>I</i>
-wouldn&rsquo;t have told him they were scorching&mdash;and I don&rsquo;t
-believe I would ever have been a bit sorry for my wickedness, either.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Una thought I should have told him because he was a minister.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dearest, if a minister doesn&rsquo;t behave as a gentleman we are not
-bound to respect his coat-tails. I know <i>I</i> would just have loved to see
-Jimmy Perry&rsquo;s coat-tails burning up. It must have been fun.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Both laughed; but Faith ended with a bitter little sigh.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, anyway, Adam is dead and I am <i>never</i> going to love anything
-again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t say that, dear. We miss so much out of life if we
-don&rsquo;t love. The more we love the richer life is&mdash;even if it is only
-some little furry or feathery pet. Would you like a canary, Faith&mdash;a
-little golden bit of a canary? If you would I&rsquo;ll give you one. We have
-two up home.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I <i>would</i> like that,&rdquo; cried Faith. &ldquo;I love birds.
-Only&mdash;would Aunt Martha&rsquo;s cat eat it? It&rsquo;s so <i>tragic</i> to have
-your pets eaten. I don&rsquo;t think I could endure it a second time.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If you hang the cage far enough from the wall I don&rsquo;t think the
-cat could harm it. I&rsquo;ll tell you just how to take care of it and
-I&rsquo;ll bring it to Ingleside for you the next time I come down.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-To herself, Rosemary was thinking,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It will give every gossip in the Glen something to talk of, but I <i>will</i>
-not care. I want to comfort this poor little heart.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith was comforted. Sympathy and understanding were very sweet. She and Miss
-Rosemary sat on the old pine until the twilight crept softly down over the
-white valley and the evening star shone over the gray maple grove. Faith told
-Rosemary all her small history and hopes, her likes and dislikes, the ins and
-outs of life at the manse, the ups and downs of school society. Finally they
-parted firm friends.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith was, as usual, lost in dreams when supper began that evening, but
-presently a name pierced his abstraction and brought him back to reality. Faith
-was telling Una of her meeting with Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She is just lovely, I think,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;Just as nice as
-Mrs. Blythe&mdash;but different. I felt as if I wanted to hug her. She did hug
-<i>me</i>&mdash;such a nice, velvety hug. And she called me &lsquo;dearest.&rsquo; It
-<i>thriled</i> me. I could tell her <i>anything</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So you liked Miss West, Faith?&rdquo; Mr. Meredith asked, with a rather
-odd intonation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I love her,&rdquo; cried Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah!&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith. &ldquo;Ah!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap21"></a>CHAPTER XXI.<br />
-THE IMPOSSIBLE WORD</h2>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith walked meditatively through the clear crispness of a winter night
-in Rainbow Valley. The hills beyond glistened with the chill splendid lustre of
-moonlight on snow. Every little fir tree in the long valley sang its own wild
-song to the harp of wind and frost. His children and the Blythe lads and lasses
-were coasting down the eastern slope and whizzing over the glassy pond. They
-were having a glorious time and their gay voices and gayer laughter echoed up
-and down the valley, dying away in elfin cadences among the trees. On the right
-the lights of Ingleside gleamed through the maple grove with the genial lure
-and invitation which seems always to glow in the beacons of a home where we
-know there is love and good-cheer and a welcome for all kin, whether of flesh
-or spirit. Mr. Meredith liked very well on occasion to spend an evening arguing
-with the doctor by the drift wood fire, where the famous china dogs of
-Ingleside kept ceaseless watch and ward, as became deities of the hearth, but
-to-night he did not look that way. Far on the western hill gleamed a paler but
-more alluring star. Mr. Meredith was on his way to see Rosemary West, and he
-meant to tell her something which had been slowly blossoming in his heart since
-their first meeting and had sprung into full flower on the evening when Faith
-had so warmly voiced her admiration for Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He had come to realize that he had learned to care for Rosemary. Not as he had
-cared for Cecilia, of course. <i>That</i> was entirely different. That love of romance
-and dream and glamour could never, he thought, return. But Rosemary was
-beautiful and sweet and dear&mdash;very dear. She was the best of companions.
-He was happier in her company than he had ever expected to be again. She would
-be an ideal mistress for his home, a good mother to his children.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-During the years of his widowhood Mr. Meredith had received innumerable hints
-from brother members of Presbytery and from many parishioners who could not be
-suspected of any ulterior motive, as well as from some who could, that he ought
-to marry again: But these hints never made any impression on him. It was
-commonly thought he was never aware of them. But he was quite acutely aware of
-them. And in his own occasional visitations of common sense he knew that the
-common sensible thing for him to do was to marry. But common sense was not the
-strong point of John Meredith, and to choose out, deliberately and
-cold-bloodedly, some &ldquo;suitable&rdquo; woman, as one might choose a
-housekeeper or a business partner, was something he was quite incapable of
-doing. How he hated that word &ldquo;suitable.&rdquo; It reminded him so
-strongly of James Perry. &ldquo;A <i>suit</i> able woman of <i>suit</i> able age,&rdquo; that
-unctuous brother of the cloth had said, in his far from subtle hint. For the
-moment John Meredith had had a perfectly unbelievable desire to rush madly away
-and propose marriage to the youngest, most unsuitable woman it was possible to
-discover.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. Marshall Elliott was his good friend and he liked her. But when she had
-bluntly told him he should marry again he felt as if she had torn away the veil
-that hung before some sacred shrine of his innermost life, and he had been more
-or less afraid of her ever since. He knew there were women in his congregation
-&ldquo;of suitable age&rdquo; who would marry him quite readily. That fact had
-seeped through all his abstraction very early in his ministry in Glen St. Mary.
-They were good, substantial, uninteresting women, one or two fairly comely, the
-others not exactly so and John Meredith would as soon have thought of marrying
-any one of them as of hanging himself. He had some ideals to which no seeming
-necessity could make him false. He could ask no woman to fill Cecilia&rsquo;s
-place in his home unless he could offer her at least some of the affection and
-homage he had given to his girlish bride. And where, in his limited feminine
-acquaintance, was such a woman to be found?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary West had come into his life on that autumn evening bringing with her
-an atmosphere in which his spirit recognized native air. Across the gulf of
-strangerhood they clasped hands of friendship. He knew her better in that ten
-minutes by the hidden spring than he knew Emmeline Drew or Elizabeth Kirk or
-Amy Annetta Douglas in a year, or could know them, in a century. He had fled to
-her for comfort when Mrs. Alec Davis had outraged his mind and soul and had
-found it. Since then he had gone often to the house on the hill, slipping
-through the shadowy paths of night in Rainbow Valley so astutely that Glen
-gossip could never be absolutely certain that he <i>did</i> go to see Rosemary West.
-Once or twice he had been caught in the West living room by other visitors;
-that was all the Ladies&rsquo; Aid had to go by. But when Elizabeth Kirk heard
-it she put away a secret hope she had allowed herself to cherish, without a
-change of expression on her kind plain face, and Emmeline Drew resolved that
-the next time she saw a certain old bachelor of Lowbridge she would not snub
-him as she had done at a previous meeting. Of course, if Rosemary West was out
-to catch the minister she would catch him; she looked younger than she was and
-<i>men</i> thought her pretty; besides, the West girls had money!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is to be hoped that he won&rsquo;t be so absent-minded as to propose
-to Ellen by mistake,&rdquo; was the only malicious thing she allowed herself to
-say to a sympathetic sister Drew. Emmeline bore no further grudge towards
-Rosemary. When all was said and done, an unencumbered bachelor was far better
-than a widower with four children. It had been only the glamour of the manse
-that had temporarily blinded Emmeline&rsquo;s eyes to the better part.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A sled with three shrieking occupants sped past Mr. Meredith to the pond.
-Faith&rsquo;s long curls streamed in the wind and her laughter rang above that
-of the others. John Meredith looked after them kindly and longingly. He was
-glad that his children had such chums as the Blythes&mdash;glad that they had
-so wise and gay and tender a friend as Mrs. Blythe. But they needed something
-more, and that something would be supplied when he brought Rosemary West as a
-bride to the old manse. There was in her a quality essentially maternal.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was Saturday night and he did not often go calling on Saturday night, which
-was supposed to be dedicated to a thoughtful revision of Sunday&rsquo;s sermon.
-But he had chosen this night because he had learned that Ellen West was going
-to be away and Rosemary would be alone. Often as he had spent pleasant evenings
-in the house on the hill he had never, since that first meeting at the spring,
-seen Rosemary alone. Ellen had always been there.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He did not precisely object to Ellen being there. He liked Ellen West very much
-and they were the best of friends. Ellen had an almost masculine understanding
-and a sense of humour which his own shy, hidden appreciation of fun found very
-agreeable. He liked her interest in politics and world events. There was no man
-in the Glen, not even excepting Dr. Blythe, who had a better grasp of such
-things.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think it is just as well to be interested in things as long as you
-live,&rdquo; she had said. &ldquo;If you&rsquo;re not, it doesn&rsquo;t seem to
-me that there&rsquo;s much difference between the quick and the dead.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He liked her pleasant, deep, rumbly voice; he liked the hearty laugh with which
-she always ended up some jolly and well-told story. She never gave him digs
-about his children as other Glen women did; she never bored him with local
-gossip; she had no malice and no pettiness. She was always splendidly sincere.
-Mr. Meredith, who had picked up Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s way of classifying
-people, considered that Ellen belonged to the race of Joseph. Altogether, an
-admirable woman for a sister-in-law. Nevertheless, a man did not want even the
-most admirable of women around when he was proposing to another woman. And
-Ellen was always around. She did not insist on talking to Mr. Meredith herself
-all the time. She let Rosemary have a fair share of him. Many evenings, indeed,
-Ellen effaced herself almost totally, sitting back in the corner with St.
-George in her lap, and letting Mr. Meredith and Rosemary talk and sing and read
-books together. Sometimes they quite forgot her presence. But if their
-conversation or choice of duets ever betrayed the least tendency to what Ellen
-considered philandering, Ellen promptly nipped that tendency in the bud and
-blotted Rosemary out for the rest of the evening. But not even the grimmest of
-amiable dragons can altogether prevent a certain subtle language of eye and
-smile and eloquent silence; and so the minister&rsquo;s courtship progressed
-after a fashion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But if it was ever to reach a climax that climax must come when Ellen was away.
-And Ellen was so seldom away, especially in winter. She found her own fireside
-the pleasantest place in the world, she vowed. Gadding had no attraction for
-her. She was fond of company but she wanted it at home. Mr. Meredith had almost
-been driven to the conclusion that he must write to Rosemary what he wanted to
-say, when Ellen casually announced one evening that she was going to a silver
-wedding next Saturday night. She had been bridesmaid when the principals were
-married. Only old guests were invited, so Rosemary was not included. Mr.
-Meredith pricked up his ears a trifle and a gleam flashed into his dreamy dark
-eyes. Both Ellen and Rosemary saw it; and both Ellen and Rosemary felt, with a
-tingling shock, that Mr. Meredith would certainly come up the hill next
-Saturday night.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Might as well have it over with, St. George,&rdquo; Ellen sternly told
-the black cat, after Mr. Meredith had gone home and Rosemary had silently gone
-upstairs. &ldquo;He means to ask her, St. George&mdash;I&rsquo;m perfectly sure
-of that. So he might as well have his chance to do it and find out he
-can&rsquo;t get her, George. She&rsquo;d rather like to take him, Saint. I know
-that&mdash;but she promised, and she&rsquo;s got to keep her promise. I&rsquo;m
-rather sorry in some ways, St. George. I don&rsquo;t know of a man I&rsquo;d
-sooner have for a brother-in-law if a brother-in-law was convenient. I
-haven&rsquo;t a thing against him, Saint&mdash;not a thing except that he
-won&rsquo;t see and can&rsquo;t be made to see that the Kaiser is a menace to
-the peace of Europe. That&rsquo;s <i>his</i> blind spot. But he&rsquo;s good company
-and I like him. A woman can say anything she likes to a man with a mouth like
-John Meredith&rsquo;s and be sure of not being misunderstood. Such a man is
-more precious than rubies, Saint&mdash;and much rarer, George. But he
-can&rsquo;t have Rosemary&mdash;and I suppose when he finds out he can&rsquo;t
-have her he&rsquo;ll drop us both. And we&rsquo;ll miss him,
-Saint&mdash;we&rsquo;ll miss him something scandalous, George. But she
-promised, and I&rsquo;ll see that she keeps her promise!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen&rsquo;s face looked almost ugly in its lowering resolution. Upstairs
-Rosemary was crying into her pillow.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-So Mr. Meredith found his lady alone and looking very beautiful. Rosemary had
-not made any special toilet for the occasion; she wanted to, but she thought it
-would be absurd to dress up for a man you meant to refuse. So she wore her
-plain dark afternoon dress and looked like a queen in it. Her suppressed
-excitement coloured her face to brilliancy, her great blue eyes were pools of
-light less placid than usual.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She wished the interview were over. She had looked forward to it all day with
-dread. She felt quite sure that John Meredith cared a great deal for her after
-a fashion&mdash;and she felt just as sure that he did not care for her as he
-had cared for his first love. She felt that her refusal would disappoint him
-considerably, but she did not think it would altogether overwhelm him. Yet she
-hated to make it; hated for his sake and&mdash;Rosemary was quite honest with
-herself&mdash;for her own. She knew she could have loved John Meredith
-if&mdash;if it had been permissible. She knew that life would be a blank thing
-if, rejected as lover, he refused longer to be a friend. She knew that she
-could be very happy with him and that she could make him happy. But between her
-and happiness stood the prison gate of the promise she had made to Ellen years
-ago. Rosemary could not remember her father. He had died when she was only
-three years old. Ellen, who had been thirteen, remembered him, but with no
-special tenderness. He had been a stern, reserved man many years older than his
-fair, pretty wife. Five years later their brother of twelve died also; since
-his death the two girls had always lived alone with their mother. They had
-never mingled very freely in the social life of the Glen or Lowbridge, though
-where they went the wit and spirit of Ellen and the sweetness and beauty of
-Rosemary made them welcome guests. Both had what was called &ldquo;a
-disappointment&rdquo; in their girlhood. The sea had not given up
-Rosemary&rsquo;s lover; and Norman Douglas, then a handsome, red-haired young
-giant, noted for wild driving and noisy though harmless escapades, had
-quarrelled with Ellen and left her in a fit of pique.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There were not lacking candidates for both Martin&rsquo;s and Norman&rsquo;s
-places, but none seemed to find favour in the eyes of the West girls, who
-drifted slowly out of youth and bellehood without any seeming regret. They were
-devoted to their mother, who was a chronic invalid. The three had a little
-circle of home interests&mdash;books and pets and flowers&mdash;which made them
-happy and contented.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. West&rsquo;s death, which occurred on Rosemary&rsquo;s twenty-fifth
-birthday, was a bitter grief to them. At first they were intolerably lonely.
-Ellen, especially, continued to grieve and brood, her long, moody musings
-broken only by fits of stormy, passionate weeping. The old Lowbridge doctor
-told Rosemary that he feared permanent melancholy or worse.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Once, when Ellen had sat all day, refusing either to speak or eat, Rosemary had
-flung herself on her knees by her sister&rsquo;s side.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Ellen, you have me yet,&rdquo; she said imploringly. &ldquo;Am I
-nothing to you? We have always loved each other so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t have you always,&rdquo; Ellen had said, breaking her
-silence with harsh intensity. &ldquo;You will marry and leave me. I shall be
-left all alone. I cannot bear the thought&mdash;I <i>cannot</i>. I would rather
-die.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I will never marry,&rdquo; said Rosemary, &ldquo;never, Ellen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen bent forward and looked searchingly into Rosemary&rsquo;s eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will you promise me that solemnly?&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;Promise it on
-mother&rsquo;s Bible.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary assented at once, quite willing to humour Ellen. What did it matter?
-She knew quite well she would never want to marry any one. Her love had gone
-down with Martin Crawford to the deeps of the sea; and without love she could
-not marry any one. So she promised readily, though Ellen made rather a fearsome
-rite of it. They clasped hands over the Bible, in their mother&rsquo;s vacant
-room, and both vowed to each other that they would never marry and would always
-live together.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen&rsquo;s condition improved from that hour. She soon regained her normal
-cheery poise. For ten years she and Rosemary lived in the old house happily,
-undisturbed by any thought of marrying or giving in marriage. Their promise sat
-very lightly on them. Ellen never failed to remind her sister of it whenever
-any eligible male creature crossed their paths, but she had never been really
-alarmed until John Meredith came home that night with Rosemary. As for
-Rosemary, Ellen&rsquo;s obsession regarding that promise had always been a
-little matter of mirth to her&mdash;until lately. Now, it was a merciless
-fetter, self-imposed but never to be shaken off. Because of it to-night she
-must turn her face from happiness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was true that the shy, sweet, rosebud love she had given to her boy-lover
-she could never give to another. But she knew now that she could give to John
-Meredith a love richer and more womanly. She knew that he touched deeps in her
-nature that Martin had never touched&mdash;that had not, perhaps, been in the
-girl of seventeen to touch. And she must send him away to-night&mdash;send him
-back to his lonely hearth and his empty life and his heart-breaking problems,
-because she had promised Ellen, ten years before, on their mother&rsquo;s
-Bible, that she would never marry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith did not immediately grasp his opportunity. On the contrary, he
-talked for two good hours on the least lover-like of subjects. He even tried
-politics, though politics always bored Rosemary. The later began to think that
-she had been altogether mistaken, and her fears and expectations suddenly
-seemed to her grotesque. She felt flat and foolish. The glow went out of her
-face and the lustre out of her eyes. John Meredith had not the slightest
-intention of asking her to marry him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And then, quite suddenly, he rose, came across the room, and standing by her
-chair, he asked it. The room had grown terribly still. Even St. George ceased
-to purr. Rosemary heard her own heart beating and was sure John Meredith must
-hear it too.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Now was the time for her to say no, gently but firmly. She had been ready for
-days with her stilted, regretful little formula. And now the words of it had
-completely vanished from her mind. She had to say no&mdash;and she suddenly
-found she could not say it. It was the impossible word. She knew now that it
-was not that she <i>could</i> have loved John Meredith, but that she <i>did</i> love him. The
-thought of putting him from her life was agony.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She must say <i>something;</i> she lifted her bowed golden head and asked him
-stammeringly to give her a few days for&mdash;for consideration.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith was a little surprised. He was not vainer than any man has a
-right to be, but he had expected that Rosemary West would say yes. He had been
-tolerably sure she cared for him. Then why this doubt&mdash;this hesitation?
-She was not a school girl to be uncertain as to her own mind. He felt an ugly
-shock of disappointment and dismay. But he assented to her request with his
-unfailing gentle courtesy and went away at once.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I will tell you in a few days,&rdquo; said Rosemary, with downcast eyes
-and burning face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When the door shut behind him she went back into the room and wrung her hands.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap22"></a>CHAPTER XXII.<br />
-ST. GEORGE KNOWS ALL ABOUT IT</h2>
-
-<p>
-At midnight Ellen West was walking home from the Pollock silver wedding. She
-had stayed a little while after the other guests had gone, to help the
-gray-haired bride wash the dishes. The distance between the two houses was not
-far and the road good, so that Ellen was enjoying the walk back home in the
-moonlight.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The evening had been a pleasant one. Ellen, who had not been to a party for
-years, found it very pleasant. All the guests had been members of her old set
-and there was no intrusive youth to spoil the flavour, for the only son of the
-bride and groom was far away at college and could not be present. Norman
-Douglas had been there and they had met socially for the first time in years,
-though she had seen him once or twice in church that winter. Not the least
-sentiment was awakened in Ellen&rsquo;s heart by their meeting. She was
-accustomed to wonder, when she thought about it at all, how she could ever have
-fancied him or felt so badly over his sudden marriage. But she had rather liked
-meeting him again. She had forgotten how bracing and stimulating he could be.
-No gathering was ever stagnant when Norman Douglas was present. Everybody had
-been surprised when Norman came. It was well known he never went anywhere. The
-Pollocks had invited him because he had been one of the original guests, but
-they never thought he would come. He had taken his second cousin, Amy Annetta
-Douglas, out to supper and seemed rather attentive to her. But Ellen sat across
-the table from him and had a spirited argument with him&mdash;an argument
-during which all his shouting and banter could not fluster her and in which she
-came off best, flooring Norman so composedly and so completely that he was
-silent for ten minutes. At the end of which time he had muttered in his ruddy
-beard&mdash;&ldquo;spunky as ever&mdash;spunky as ever&rdquo;&mdash;and began
-to hector Amy Annetta, who giggled foolishly over his sallies where Ellen would
-have retorted bitingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen thought these things over as she walked home, tasting them with
-reminiscent relish. The moonlit air sparkled with frost. The snow crisped under
-her feet. Below her lay the Glen with the white harbour beyond. There was a
-light in the manse study. So John Meredith had gone home. Had he asked Rosemary
-to marry him? And after what fashion had she made her refusal known? Ellen felt
-that she would never know this, though she was quite curious. She was sure
-Rosemary would never tell her anything about it and she would not dare to ask.
-She must just be content with the fact of the refusal. After all, that was the
-only thing that really mattered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope he&rsquo;ll have sense enough to come back once in a while and be
-friendly,&rdquo; she said to herself. She disliked so much to be alone that
-thinking aloud was one of her devices for circumventing unwelcome solitude.
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s awful never to have a man-body with some brains to talk to
-once in a while. And like as not he&rsquo;ll never come near the house again.
-There&rsquo;s Norman Douglas, too&mdash;I like that man, and I&rsquo;d like to
-have a good rousing argument with him now and then. But he&rsquo;d never dare
-come up for fear people would think he was courting me again&mdash;for fear
-<i>I&rsquo;d</i> think it, too, most likely&mdash;though he&rsquo;s more a stranger to
-me now than John Meredith. It seems like a dream that we could ever have been
-beaus. But there it is&mdash;there&rsquo;s only two men in the Glen I&rsquo;d
-ever want to talk to&mdash;and what with gossip and this wretched love-making
-business it&rsquo;s not likely I&rsquo;ll ever see either of them again. I
-could,&rdquo; said Ellen, addressing the unmoved stars with a spiteful
-emphasis, &ldquo;I could have made a better world myself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She paused at her gate with a sudden vague feeling of alarm. There was still a
-light in the living-room and to and fro across the window-shades went the
-shadow of a woman walking restlessly up and down. What was Rosemary doing up at
-this hour of the night? And why was she striding about like a lunatic?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen went softly in. As she opened the hall door Rosemary came out of the
-room. She was flushed and breathless. An atmosphere of stress and passion hung
-about her like a garment.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why aren&rsquo;t you in bed, Rosemary?&rdquo; demanded Ellen.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come in here,&rdquo; said Rosemary intensely. &ldquo;I want to tell you
-something.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen composedly removed her wraps and overshoes, and followed her sister into
-the warm, fire-lighted room. She stood with her hand on the table and waited.
-She was looking very handsome herself, in her own grim, black-browed style. The
-new black velvet dress, with its train and V-neck, which she had made purposely
-for the party, became her stately, massive figure. She wore coiled around her
-neck the rich heavy necklace of amber beads which was a family heirloom. Her
-walk in the frosty air had stung her cheeks into a glowing scarlet. But her
-steel-blue eyes were as icy and unyielding as the sky of the winter night. She
-stood waiting in a silence which Rosemary could break only by a convulsive
-effort.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen, Mr. Meredith was here this evening.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And&mdash;and&mdash;he asked me to marry him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So I expected. Of course, you refused him?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Rosemary.&rdquo; Ellen clenched her hands and took an involuntary step
-forward. &ldquo;Do you mean to tell me that you accepted him?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;no.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen recovered her self-command.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What <i>did</i> you do then?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&mdash;I asked him to give me a few days to think it over.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hardly see why that was necessary,&rdquo; said Ellen, coldly
-contemptuous, &ldquo;when there is only the one answer you can make him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary held out her hands beseechingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen,&rdquo; she said desperately, &ldquo;I love John Meredith&mdash;I
-want to be his wife. Will you set me free from that promise?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Ellen, merciless, because she was sick from fear.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen&mdash;Ellen&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Listen,&rdquo; interrupted Ellen. &ldquo;I did not ask you for that
-promise. You offered it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I know&mdash;I know. But I did not think then that I could ever care for
-anyone again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You offered it,&rdquo; went on Ellen unmovably. &ldquo;You promised it
-over our mother&rsquo;s Bible. It was more than a promise&mdash;it was an oath.
-Now you want to break it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I only asked you to set me free from it, Ellen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I will not do it. A promise is a promise in my eyes. I will not do it.
-Break your promise&mdash;be forsworn if you will&mdash;but it shall not be with
-any assent of mine.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are very hard on me, Ellen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hard on you! And what of me? Have you ever given a thought to what my
-loneliness would be here if you left me? I could not bear it&mdash;I would go
-crazy. I <i>cannot</i> live alone. Haven&rsquo;t I been a good sister to you? Have I
-ever opposed any wish of yours? Haven&rsquo;t I indulged you in
-everything?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes&mdash;yes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then why do you want to leave me for this man whom you hadn&rsquo;t seen
-a year ago?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I love him, Ellen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Love! You talk like a school miss instead of a middle-aged woman. He
-doesn&rsquo;t love you. He wants a housekeeper and a governess. You don&rsquo;t
-love him. You want to be &lsquo;Mrs.&rsquo;&mdash;you are one of those
-weak-minded women who think it&rsquo;s a disgrace to be ranked as an old maid.
-That&rsquo;s all there is to it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary quivered. Ellen could not, or would not, understand. There was no use
-arguing with her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So you won&rsquo;t release me, Ellen?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, I won&rsquo;t. And I won&rsquo;t talk of it again. You promised and
-you&rsquo;ve got to keep your word. That&rsquo;s all. Go to bed. Look at the
-time! You&rsquo;re all romantic and worked up. To-morrow you&rsquo;ll be more
-sensible. At any rate, don&rsquo;t let me hear any more of this nonsense.
-Go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary went without another word, pale and spiritless. Ellen walked stormily
-about the room for a few minutes, then paused before the chair where St. George
-had been calmly sleeping through the whole evening. A reluctant smile
-overspread her dark face. There had been only one time in her life&mdash;the
-time of her mother&rsquo;s death&mdash;when Ellen had not been able to temper
-tragedy with comedy. Even in that long ago bitterness, when Norman Douglas had,
-after a fashion, jilted her, she had laughed at herself quite as often as she
-had cried.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I expect there&rsquo;ll be some sulking, St. George. Yes, Saint, I
-expect we are in for a few unpleasant foggy days. Well, we&rsquo;ll weather
-them through, George. We&rsquo;ve dealt with foolish children before, Saint.
-Rosemary&rsquo;ll sulk a while&mdash;and then she&rsquo;ll get over
-it&mdash;and all will be as before, George. She promised&mdash;and she&rsquo;s
-got to keep her promise. And that&rsquo;s the last word on the subject
-I&rsquo;ll say to you or her or anyone, Saint.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Ellen lay savagely awake till morning.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was no sulking, however. Rosemary was pale and quiet the next day, but
-beyond that Ellen could detect no difference in her. Certainly, she seemed to
-bear Ellen no grudge. It was stormy, so no mention was made of going to church.
-In the afternoon Rosemary shut herself in her room and wrote a note to John
-Meredith. She could not trust herself to say &ldquo;no&rdquo; in person. She
-felt quite sure that if he suspected she was saying &ldquo;no&rdquo;
-reluctantly he would not take it for an answer, and she could not face pleading
-or entreaty. She must make him think she cared nothing at all for him and she
-could do that only by letter. She wrote him the stiffest, coolest little
-refusal imaginable. It was barely courteous; it certainly left no loophole of
-hope for the boldest lover&mdash;and John Meredith was anything but that. He
-shrank into himself, hurt and mortified, when he read Rosemary&rsquo;s letter
-next day in his dusty study. But under his mortification a dreadful realization
-presently made itself felt. He had thought he did not love Rosemary as deeply
-as he had loved Cecilia. Now, when he had lost her, he knew that he did. She
-was everything to him&mdash;everything! And he must put her out of his life
-completely. Even friendship was impossible now. Life stretched before him in
-intolerable dreariness. He must go on&mdash;there was his work&mdash;his
-children&mdash;but the heart had gone out of him. He sat alone all that evening
-in his dark, cold, comfortless study with his head bowed on his hands. Up on
-the hill Rosemary had a headache and went early to bed, while Ellen remarked to
-St. George, purring his disdain of foolish humankind, who did not know that a
-soft cushion was the only thing that really mattered,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What would women do if headaches had never been invented, St. George?
-But never mind, Saint. We&rsquo;ll just wink the other eye for a few weeks. I
-admit I don&rsquo;t feel comfortable myself, George. I feel as if I had drowned
-a kitten. But she promised, Saint&mdash;and she was the one to offer it,
-George. Bismillah!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap23"></a>CHAPTER XXIII.<br />
-THE GOOD-CONDUCT CLUB</h2>
-
-<p>
-A light rain had been falling all day&mdash;a little, delicate, beautiful
-spring rain, that somehow seemed to hint and whisper of mayflowers and wakening
-violets. The harbour and the gulf and the low-lying shore fields had been dim
-with pearl-gray mists. But now in the evening the rain had ceased and the mists
-had blown out to sea. Clouds sprinkled the sky over the harbour like little
-fiery roses. Beyond it the hills were dark against a spendthrift splendour of
-daffodil and crimson. A great silvery evening star was watching over the bar. A
-brisk, dancing, new-sprung wind was blowing up from Rainbow Valley, resinous
-with the odours of fir and damp mosses. It crooned in the old spruces around
-the graveyard and ruffled Faith&rsquo;s splendid curls as she sat on Hezekiah
-Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone with her arms round Mary Vance and Una. Carl and
-Jerry were sitting opposite them on another tombstone and all were rather full
-of mischief after being cooped up all day.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The air just <i>shines</i> to-night, doesn&rsquo;t it? It&rsquo;s been washed
-so clean, you see,&rdquo; said Faith happily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary Vance eyed her gloomily. Knowing what she knew, or fancied she knew, Mary
-considered that Faith was far too light-hearted. Mary had something on her mind
-to say and she meant to say it before she went home. Mrs. Elliott had sent her
-up to the manse with some new-laid eggs, and had told her not to stay longer
-than half an hour. The half hour was nearly up, so Mary uncurled her cramped
-legs from under her and said abruptly,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Never mind about the air. Just you listen to me. You manse young ones
-have just got to behave yourselves better than you&rsquo;ve been doing this
-spring&mdash;that&rsquo;s all there is to it. I just come up to-night a-purpose
-to tell you so. The way people are talking about you is awful.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What have we been doing now?&rdquo; cried Faith in amazement, pulling
-her arm away from Mary. Una&rsquo;s lips trembled and her sensitive little soul
-shrank within her. Mary was always so brutally frank. Jerry began to whistle
-out of bravado. He meant to let Mary see he didn&rsquo;t care for <i>her</i> tirades.
-Their behaviour was no business of <i>hers</i> anyway. What right had <i>she</i> to lecture
-them on their conduct?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Doing now! You&rsquo;re doing <i>all</i> the time,&rdquo; retorted Mary.
-&ldquo;Just as soon as the talk about one of your didos fades away you do
-something else to start it up again. It seems to me you haven&rsquo;t any idea
-of how manse children ought to behave!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maybe <i>you</i> can tell us,&rdquo; said Jerry, killingly sarcastic.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Sarcasm was quite thrown away on Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>I</i> can tell you what will happen if you don&rsquo;t learn to
-behave yourselves. The session will ask your father to resign. There now,
-Master Jerry-know-it-all. Mrs. Alec Davis said so to Mrs. Elliott. I heard her.
-I always have my ears pricked up when Mrs. Alec Davis comes to tea. She said
-you were all going from bad to worse and that though it was only what was to be
-expected when you had nobody to bring you up, still the congregation
-couldn&rsquo;t be expected to put up with it much longer, and something would
-have to be done. The Methodists just laugh and laugh at you, and that hurts the
-Presbyterian feelings. <i>She</i> says you all need a good dose of birch tonic.
-Lor&rsquo;, if that would make folks good <i>I</i> oughter be a young saint.
-I&rsquo;m not telling you this because I want to hurt <i>your</i> feelings. I&rsquo;m
-sorry for you&rdquo;&mdash;Mary was past mistress of the gentle art of
-condescension. &ldquo;<i>I</i> understand that you haven&rsquo;t much chance,
-the way things are. But other people don&rsquo;t make as much allowance as
-<i>I</i> do. Miss Drew says Carl had a frog in his pocket in Sunday School last
-Sunday and it hopped out while she was hearing the lesson. She says she&rsquo;s
-going to give up the class. Why don&rsquo;t you keep your insecks home?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I popped it right back in again,&rdquo; said Carl. &ldquo;It
-didn&rsquo;t hurt anybody&mdash;a poor little frog! And I wish old Jane Drew
-<i>would</i> give up our class. I hate her. Her own nephew had a dirty plug of tobacco
-in his pocket and offered us fellows a chew when Elder Clow was praying. I
-guess that&rsquo;s worse than a frog.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, &lsquo;cause frogs are more unexpected-like. They make more of a
-sensation. &lsquo;Sides, he wasn&rsquo;t caught at it. And then that praying
-competition you had last week has made a fearful scandal. Everybody is talking
-about it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, the Blythes were in that as well as us,&rdquo; cried Faith,
-indignantly. &ldquo;It was Nan Blythe who suggested it in the first place. And
-Walter took the prize.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you get the credit of it any way. It wouldn&rsquo;t have been so
-bad if you hadn&rsquo;t had it in the graveyard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I should think a graveyard was a very good place to pray in,&rdquo;
-retorted Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Deacon Hazard drove past when <i>you</i> were praying,&rdquo; said Mary,
-&ldquo;and he saw and heard you, with your hands folded over your stomach, and
-groaning after every sentence. He thought you were making fun of <i>him</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So I was,&rdquo; declared unabashed Jerry. &ldquo;Only I didn&rsquo;t
-know he was going by, of course. That was just a mean accident. <i>I</i>
-wasn&rsquo;t praying in real earnest&mdash;I knew I had no chance of winning
-the prize. So I was just getting what fun I could out of it. Walter Blythe can
-pray bully. Why, he can pray as well as dad.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Una is the only one of US who really likes praying,&rdquo; said Faith
-pensively.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, if praying scandalizes people so much we mustn&rsquo;t do it any
-more,&rdquo; sighed Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Shucks, you can pray all you want to, only not in the
-graveyard&mdash;and don&rsquo;t make a game of it. That was what made it so
-bad&mdash;that, and having a tea-party on the tombstones.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We hadn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, a soap-bubble party then. You had <i>something</i>. The over-harbour
-people swear you had a tea-party, but I&rsquo;m willing to take your word. And
-you used this tombstone as a table.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Martha wouldn&rsquo;t let us blow bubbles in the house. She was
-awful cross that day,&rdquo; explained Jerry. &ldquo;And this old slab made
-such a jolly table.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Weren&rsquo;t they pretty?&rdquo; cried Faith, her eyes sparkling over
-the remembrance. &ldquo;They reflected the trees and the hills and the harbour
-like little fairy worlds, and when we shook them loose they floated away down
-to Rainbow Valley.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All but one and it went over and bust up on the Methodist spire,&rdquo;
-said Carl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m glad we did it once, anyhow, before we found out it was
-wrong,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It wouldn&rsquo;t have been wrong to blow them on the lawn,&rdquo; said
-Mary impatiently. &ldquo;Seems like I can&rsquo;t knock any sense into your
-heads. You&rsquo;ve been told often enough you shouldn&rsquo;t play in the
-graveyard. The Methodists are sensitive about it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We forget,&rdquo; said Faith dolefully. &ldquo;And the lawn is so
-small&mdash;and so caterpillary&mdash;and so full of shrubs and things. We
-can&rsquo;t be in Rainbow Valley all the time&mdash;and where are we to
-go?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s the things you <i>do</i> in the graveyard. It wouldn&rsquo;t matter
-if you just sat here and talked quiet, same as we&rsquo;re doing now. Well, I
-don&rsquo;t know what is going to come of it all, but I <i>do</i> know that Elder
-Warren is going to speak to your pa about it. Deacon Hazard is his
-cousin.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish they wouldn&rsquo;t bother father about us,&rdquo; said Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, people think he ought to bother himself about you a little more.
-<i>I</i> don&rsquo;t&mdash;<i>I</i> understand him. He&rsquo;s a child in some
-ways himself&mdash;that&rsquo;s what he is, and needs some one to look after
-him as bad as you do. Well, perhaps he&rsquo;ll have some one before long, if
-all tales is true.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What do you mean?&rdquo; asked Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Haven&rsquo;t you got any idea&mdash;honest?&rdquo; demanded Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, no. What <i>do</i> you mean?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you are a lot of innocents, upon my word. Why, <i>every</i>body is
-talking of it. Your pa goes to see Rosemary West. <i>She</i> is going to be your
-step-ma.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe it,&rdquo; cried Una, flushing crimson.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, <i>I</i> dunno. I just go by what folks say. <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t
-give it for a fact. But it would be a good thing. Rosemary West&rsquo;d make
-you toe the mark if she came here, I&rsquo;ll bet a cent, for all she&rsquo;s
-so sweet and smiley on the face of her. They&rsquo;re always that way till
-they&rsquo;ve caught them. But you need some one to bring you up. You&rsquo;re
-disgracing your pa and I feel for him. I&rsquo;ve always thought an awful lot
-of your pa ever since that night he talked to me so nice. I&rsquo;ve never said
-a single swear word since, or told a lie. And I&rsquo;d like to see him happy
-and comfortable, with his buttons on and his meals decent, and you young ones
-licked into shape, and that old cat of a Martha put in <i>her</i> proper place. The
-way she looked at the eggs I brought her to-night. &lsquo;I hope they&rsquo;re
-fresh,&rsquo; says she. I just wished they <i>was</i> rotten. But you just mind that
-she gives you all one for breakfast, including your pa. Make a fuss if she
-doesn&rsquo;t. That was what they was sent up for&mdash;but I don&rsquo;t trust
-old Martha. She&rsquo;s quite capable of feeding &lsquo;em to her cat.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary&rsquo;s tongue being temporarily tired, a brief silence fell over the
-graveyard. The manse children did not feel like talking. They were digesting
-the new and not altogether palatable ideas Mary had suggested to them. Jerry
-and Carl were somewhat startled. But, after all, what did it matter? And it
-wasn&rsquo;t likely there was a word of truth in it. Faith, on the whole, was
-pleased. Only Una was seriously upset. She felt that she would like to get away
-and cry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will there be any stars in my crown?&rdquo; sang the Methodist choir,
-beginning to practise in the Methodist church.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>I</i> want just three,&rdquo; said Mary, whose theological knowledge
-had increased notably since her residence with Mrs. Elliott. &ldquo;Just
-three&mdash;setting up on my head, like a corownet, a big one in the middle and
-a small one each side.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Are there different sizes in souls?&rdquo; asked Carl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course. Why, little babies must have smaller ones than big men. Well,
-it&rsquo;s getting dark and I must scoot home. Mrs. Elliott doesn&rsquo;t like
-me to be out after dark. Laws, when I lived with Mrs. Wiley the dark was just
-the same as the daylight to me. I didn&rsquo;t mind it no more&rsquo;n a gray
-cat. Them days seem a hundred years ago. Now, you mind what I&rsquo;ve said and
-try to behave yourselves, for you pa&rsquo;s sake. <i>I&rsquo;ll</i> always back you
-up and defend you&mdash;you can be dead sure of that. Mrs. Elliott says she
-never saw the like of me for sticking up for my friends. I was real sassy to
-Mrs. Alec Davis about you and Mrs. Elliott combed me down for it afterwards.
-The fair Cornelia has a tongue of her own and no mistake. But she was pleased
-underneath for all, &lsquo;cause she hates old Kitty Alec and she&rsquo;s real
-fond of you. <i>I</i> can see through folks.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary sailed off, excellently well pleased with herself, leaving a rather
-depressed little group behind her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mary Vance always says something that makes us feel bad when she comes
-up,&rdquo; said Una resentfully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish we&rsquo;d left her to starve in the old barn,&rdquo; said Jerry
-vindictively.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, that&rsquo;s wicked, Jerry,&rdquo; rebuked Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;May as well have the game as the name,&rdquo; retorted unrepentant
-Jerry. &ldquo;If people say we&rsquo;re so bad let&rsquo;s <i>be</i> bad.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But not if it hurts father,&rdquo; pleaded Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jerry squirmed uncomfortably. He adored his father. Through the unshaded study
-window they could see Mr. Meredith at his desk. He did not seem to be either
-reading or writing. His head was in his hands and there was something in his
-whole attitude that spoke of weariness and dejection. The children suddenly
-felt it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I dare say somebody&rsquo;s been worrying him about us to-day,&rdquo;
-said Faith. &ldquo;I wish we <i>could</i> get along without making people talk.
-Oh&mdash;Jem Blythe! How you scared me!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jem Blythe had slipped into the graveyard and sat down beside the girls. He had
-been prowling about Rainbow Valley and had succeeded in finding the first
-little star-white cluster of arbutus for his mother. The manse children were
-rather silent after his coming. Jem was beginning to grow away from them
-somewhat this spring. He was studying for the entrance examination of
-Queen&rsquo;s Academy and stayed after school with the older pupils for extra
-lessons. Also, his evenings were so full of work that he seldom joined the
-others in Rainbow Valley now. He seemed to be drifting away into grown-up land.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is the matter with you all to-night?&rdquo; he asked.
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s no fun in you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not much,&rdquo; agreed Faith dolefully. &ldquo;There wouldn&rsquo;t be
-much fun in you either if <i>you</i> knew you were disgracing your father and making
-people talk about you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who&rsquo;s been talking about you now?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Everybody&mdash;so Mary Vance says.&rdquo; And Faith poured out her
-troubles to sympathetic Jem. &ldquo;You see,&rdquo; she concluded dolefully,
-&ldquo;we&rsquo;ve nobody to bring us up. And so we get into scrapes and people
-think we&rsquo;re bad.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why don&rsquo;t you bring yourselves up?&rdquo; suggested Jem.
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll tell you what to do. Form a Good-Conduct Club and punish
-yourselves every time you do anything that&rsquo;s not right.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s a good idea,&rdquo; said Faith, struck by it.
-&ldquo;But,&rdquo; she added doubtfully, &ldquo;things that don&rsquo;t seem a
-bit of harm to US seem simply dreadful to other people. How can we tell? We
-can&rsquo;t be bothering father all the time&mdash;and he has to be away a lot,
-anyhow.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You could mostly tell if you stopped to think a thing over before doing
-it and ask yourselves what the congregation would say about it,&rdquo; said
-Jem. &ldquo;The trouble is you just rush into things and don&rsquo;t think them
-over at all. Mother says you&rsquo;re all too impulsive, just as she used to
-be. The Good-Conduct Club would help you to think, if you were fair and honest
-about punishing yourselves when you broke the rules. You&rsquo;d have to punish
-in some way that really <i>hurt</i>, or it wouldn&rsquo;t do any good.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Whip each other?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not exactly. You&rsquo;d have to think up different ways of punishment
-to suit the person. You wouldn&rsquo;t punish each other&mdash;you&rsquo;d
-punish <i>yourselves</i>. I read all about such a club in a story-book. You try it and
-see how it works.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let&rsquo;s,&rdquo; said Faith; and when Jem was gone they agreed they
-would. &ldquo;If things aren&rsquo;t right we&rsquo;ve just got to make them
-right,&rdquo; said Faith, resolutely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ve got to be fair and square, as Jem says,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-&ldquo;This is a club to bring ourselves up, seeing there&rsquo;s nobody else
-to do it. There&rsquo;s no use in having many rules. Let&rsquo;s just have one
-and any of us that breaks it has got to be punished hard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But <i>how</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll think that up as we go along. We&rsquo;ll hold a session of
-the club here in the graveyard every night and talk over what we&rsquo;ve done
-through the day, and if we think we&rsquo;ve done anything that isn&rsquo;t
-right or that would disgrace dad the one that does it, or is responsible for
-it, must be punished. That&rsquo;s the rule. We&rsquo;ll all decide on the kind
-of punishment&mdash;it must be made to fit the crime, as Mr. Flagg says. And
-the one that&rsquo;s, guilty will be bound to carry it out and no shirking.
-There&rsquo;s going to be fun in this,&rdquo; concluded Jerry, with a relish.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You suggested the soap-bubble party,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But that was before we&rsquo;d formed the club,&rdquo; said Jerry
-hastily. &ldquo;Everything starts from to-night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But what if we can&rsquo;t agree on what&rsquo;s right, or what the
-punishment ought to be? S&rsquo;pose two of us thought of one thing and two
-another. There ought to be five in a club like this.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We can ask Jem Blythe to be umpire. He is the squarest boy in Glen St.
-Mary. But I guess we can settle our own affairs mostly. We want to keep this as
-much of a secret as we can. Don&rsquo;t breathe a word to Mary Vance.
-She&rsquo;d want to join and do the bringing up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>I</i> think,&rdquo; said Faith, &ldquo;that there&rsquo;s no use in
-spoiling every day by dragging punishments in. Let&rsquo;s have a punishment
-day.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;d better choose Saturday because there is no school to
-interfere,&rdquo; suggested Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And spoil the one holiday in the week,&rdquo; cried Faith. &ldquo;Not
-much! No, let&rsquo;s take Friday. That&rsquo;s fish day, anyhow, and we all
-hate fish. We may as well have all the disagreeable things in one day. Then
-other days we can go ahead and have a good time.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense,&rdquo; said Jerry authoritatively. &ldquo;Such a scheme
-wouldn&rsquo;t work at all. We&rsquo;ll just punish ourselves as we go along
-and keep a clear slate. Now, we all understand, don&rsquo;t we? This is a
-Good-Conduct Club, for the purpose of bringing ourselves up. We agree to punish
-ourselves for bad conduct, and always to stop before we do anything, no matter
-what, and ask ourselves if it is likely to hurt dad in any way, and any one who
-shirks is to be cast out of the club and never allowed to play with the rest of
-us in Rainbow Valley again. Jem Blythe to be umpire in case of disputes. No
-more taking bugs to Sunday School, Carl, and no more chewing gum in public, if
-you please, Miss Faith.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No more making fun of elders praying or going to the Methodist prayer
-meeting,&rdquo; retorted Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, it isn&rsquo;t any harm to go to the Methodist prayer
-meeting,&rdquo; protested Jerry in amazement.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott says it is, She says manse children have no business to go
-anywhere but to Presbyterian things.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Darn it, I won&rsquo;t give up going to the Methodist prayer
-meeting,&rdquo; cried Jerry. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s ten times more fun than ours
-is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You said a naughty word,&rdquo; cried Faith. &ldquo;<i>Now</i>, you&rsquo;ve
-got to punish yourself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not till it&rsquo;s all down in black and white. We&rsquo;re only
-talking the club over. It isn&rsquo;t really formed until we&rsquo;ve written
-it out and signed it. There&rsquo;s got to be a constitution and by-laws. And
-you <i>know</i> there&rsquo;s nothing wrong in going to a prayer meeting.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But it&rsquo;s not only the wrong things we&rsquo;re to punish ourselves
-for, but anything that might hurt father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It won&rsquo;t hurt anybody. You know Mrs. Elliott is cracked on the
-subject of Methodists. Nobody else makes any fuss about my going. I always
-behave myself. You ask Jem or Mrs. Blythe and see what they say. I&rsquo;ll
-abide by their opinion. I&rsquo;m going for the paper now and I&rsquo;ll bring
-out the lantern and we&rsquo;ll all sign.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Fifteen minutes later the document was solemnly signed on Hezekiah
-Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone, on the centre of which stood the smoky manse
-lantern, while the children knelt around it. Mrs. Elder Clow was going past at
-the moment and next day all the Glen heard that the manse children had been
-having another praying competition and had wound it up by chasing each other
-all over the graves with a lantern. This piece of embroidery was probably
-suggested by the fact that, after the signing and sealing was completed, Carl
-had taken the lantern and had walked circumspectly to the little hollow to
-examine his ant-hill. The others had gone quietly into the manse and to bed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you think it is true that father is going to marry Miss West?&rdquo;
-Una had tremulously asked of Faith, after their prayers had been said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know, but I&rsquo;d like it,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I wouldn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said Una, chokingly. &ldquo;She is nice the
-way she is. But Mary Vance says it changes people <i>altogether</i> to be made
-stepmothers. They get horrid cross and mean and hateful then, and turn your
-father against you. She says they&rsquo;re sure to do that. She never knew it
-to fail in a single case.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe Miss West would <i>ever</i> try to do that,&rdquo; cried
-Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mary says <i>anybody</i> would. She knows <i>all</i> about stepmothers,
-Faith&mdash;she says she&rsquo;s seen hundreds of them&mdash;and you&rsquo;ve
-never seen one. Oh, Mary has told me blood-curdling things about them. She says
-she knew of one who whipped her husband&rsquo;s little girls on their bare
-shoulders till they bled, and then shut them up in a cold, dark coal cellar all
-night. She says they&rsquo;re <i>all</i> aching to do things like that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe Miss West would. You don&rsquo;t know her as well
-as I do, Una. Just think of that sweet little bird she sent me. I love it far
-more even than Adam.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s just being a stepmother changes them. Mary says they
-can&rsquo;t help it. I wouldn&rsquo;t mind the whippings so much as having
-father hate us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You know nothing could make father hate us. Don&rsquo;t be silly, Una. I
-dare say there&rsquo;s nothing to worry over. Likely if we run our club right
-and bring ourselves up properly father won&rsquo;t think of marrying any one.
-And if he does, I <i>know</i> Miss West will be lovely to us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Una had no such conviction and she cried herself to sleep.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap24"></a>CHAPTER XXIV.<br />
-A CHARITABLE IMPULSE</h2>
-
-<p>
-For a fortnight things ran smoothly in the Good-Conduct Club. It seemed to work
-admirably. Not once was Jem Blythe called in as umpire. Not once did any of the
-manse children set the Glen gossips by the ears. As for their minor
-peccadilloes at home, they kept sharp tabs on each other and gamely underwent
-their self-imposed punishment&mdash;generally a voluntary absence from some gay
-Friday night frolic in Rainbow Valley, or a sojourn in bed on some spring
-evening when all young bones ached to be out and away. Faith, for whispering in
-Sunday School, condemned herself to pass a whole day without speaking a single
-word, unless it was absolutely necessary, and accomplished it. It was rather
-unfortunate that Mr. Baker from over-harbour should have chosen that evening
-for calling at the manse, and that Faith should have happened to go to the
-door. Not one word did she reply to his genial greeting, but went silently away
-to call her father briefly. Mr. Baker was slightly offended and told his wife
-when he went home that that the biggest Meredith girl seemed a very shy, sulky
-little thing, without manners enough to speak when she was spoken to. But
-nothing worse came of it, and generally their penances did no harm to
-themselves or anybody else. All of them were beginning to feel quite cocksure
-that after all, it was a very easy matter to bring yourself up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I guess people will soon see that we can behave ourselves properly as
-well as anybody,&rdquo; said Faith jubilantly. &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t hard when
-we put our minds to it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She and Una were sitting on the Pollock tombstone. It had been a cold, raw, wet
-day of spring storm and Rainbow Valley was out of the question for girls,
-though the manse and the Ingleside boys were down there fishing. The rain had
-held up, but the east wind blew mercilessly in from the sea, cutting to bone
-and marrow. Spring was late in spite of its early promise, and there was even
-yet a hard drift of old snow and ice in the northern corner of the graveyard.
-Lida Marsh, who had come up to bring the manse a mess of herring, slipped in
-through the gate shivering. She belonged to the fishing village at the harbour
-mouth and her father had, for thirty years, made a practice of sending a mess
-from his first spring catch to the manse. He never darkened a church door; he
-was a hard drinker and a reckless man, but as long as he sent those herring up
-to the manse every spring, as his father had done before him, he felt
-comfortably sure that his account with the Powers That Govern was squared for
-the year. He would not have expected a good mackerel catch if he had not so
-sent the first fruits of the season.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Lida was a mite of ten and looked younger, because she was such a small,
-wizened little creature. To-night, as she sidled boldly enough up to the manse
-girls, she looked as if she had never been warm since she was born. Her face
-was purple and her pale-blue, bold little eyes were red and watery. She wore a
-tattered print dress and a ragged woollen comforter, tied across her thin
-shoulders and under her arms. She had walked the three miles from the harbour
-mouth barefooted, over a road where there was still snow and slush and mud. Her
-feet and legs were as purple as her face. But Lida did not mind this much. She
-was used to being cold, and she had been going barefooted for a month already,
-like all the other swarming young fry of the fishing village. There was no
-self-pity in her heart as she sat down on the tombstone and grinned cheerfully
-at Faith and Una. Faith and Una grinned cheerfully back. They knew Lida
-slightly, having met her once or twice the preceding summer when they had gone
-down the harbour with the Blythes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hello!&rdquo; said Lida, &ldquo;ain&rsquo;t this a fierce kind of a
-night? &lsquo;T&rsquo;ain&rsquo;t fit for a dog to be out, is it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then why are you out?&rdquo; asked Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pa made me bring you up some herring,&rdquo; returned Lida. She
-shivered, coughed, and stuck out her bare feet. Lida was not thinking about
-herself or her feet, and was making no bid for sympathy. She held her feet out
-instinctively to keep them from the wet grass around the tombstone. But Faith
-and Una were instantly swamped with a wave of pity for her. She looked so
-cold&mdash;so miserable.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, why are you barefooted on such a cold night?&rdquo; cried Faith.
-&ldquo;Your feet must be almost frozen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pretty near,&rdquo; said Lida proudly. &ldquo;I tell you it was fierce
-walking up that harbour road.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why didn&rsquo;t you put on your shoes and stockings?&rdquo; asked Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hain&rsquo;t none to put on. All I had was wore out by the time winter
-was over,&rdquo; said Lida indifferently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-For a moment Faith stated in horror. This was terrible. Here was a little girl,
-almost a neighbour, half frozen because she had no shoes or stockings in this
-cruel spring weather. Impulsive Faith thought of nothing but the dreadfulness
-of it. In a moment she was pulling off her own shoes and stockings.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Here, take these and put them right on,&rdquo; she said, forcing them
-into the hands of the astonished Lida. &ldquo;Quick now. You&rsquo;ll catch
-your death of cold. I&rsquo;ve got others. Put them right on.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Lida, recovering her wits, snatched at the offered gift, with a sparkle in her
-dull eyes. Sure she would put them on, and that mighty quick, before any one
-appeared with authority to recall them. In a minute she had pulled the
-stockings over her scrawny little legs and slipped Faith&rsquo;s shoes over her
-thick little ankles.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m obliged to you,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;but won&rsquo;t your
-folks be cross?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;and I don&rsquo;t care if they are,&rdquo; said Faith.
-&ldquo;Do you think I could see any one freezing to death without helping them
-if I could? It wouldn&rsquo;t be right, especially when my father&rsquo;s a
-minister.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will you want them back? It&rsquo;s awful cold down at the harbour
-mouth&mdash;long after it&rsquo;s warm up here,&rdquo; said Lida slyly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, you&rsquo;re to keep them, of course. That is what I meant when I
-gave them. I have another pair of shoes and plenty of stockings.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Lida had meant to stay awhile and talk to the girls about many things. But now
-she thought she had better get away before somebody came and made her yield up
-her booty. So she shuffled off through the bitter twilight, in the noiseless,
-shadowy way she had slipped in. As soon as she was out of sight of the manse
-she sat down, took off the shoes and stockings, and put them in her herring
-basket. She had no intention of keeping them on down that dirty harbour road.
-They were to be kept good for gala occasions. Not another little girl down at
-the harbour mouth had such fine black cashmere stockings and such smart, almost
-new shoes. Lida was furnished forth for the summer. She had no qualms in the
-matter. In her eyes the manse people were quite fabulously rich, and no doubt
-those girls had slathers of shoes and stockings. Then Lida ran down to the Glen
-village and played for an hour with the boys before Mr. Flagg&rsquo;s store,
-splashing about in a pool of slush with the maddest of them, until Mrs. Elliott
-came along and bade her begone home.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t think, Faith, that you should have done that,&rdquo; said
-Una, a little reproachfully, after Lida had gone. &ldquo;You&rsquo;ll have to
-wear your good boots every day now and they&rsquo;ll soon scuff out.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t care,&rdquo; cried Faith, still in the fine glow of having
-done a kindness to a fellow creature. &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t fair that I should
-have two pairs of shoes and poor little Lida Marsh not have any. <i>Now</i> we both
-have a pair. You know perfectly well, Una, that father said in his sermon last
-Sunday that there was no real happiness in getting or having&mdash;only in
-giving. And it&rsquo;s true. I feel <i>far</i> happier now than I ever did in my whole
-life before. Just think of Lida walking home this very minute with her poor
-little feet all nice and warm and comfy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You know you haven&rsquo;t another pair of black cashmere
-stockings,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;Your other pair were so full of holes that
-Aunt Martha said she couldn&rsquo;t darn them any more and she cut the legs up
-for stove dusters. You&rsquo;ve nothing but those two pairs of striped
-stockings you hate so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-All the glow and uplift went out of Faith. Her gladness collapsed like a
-pricked balloon. She sat for a few dismal minutes in silence, facing the
-consequences of her rash act.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Una, I never thought of that,&rdquo; she said dolefully. &ldquo;I
-didn&rsquo;t stop to think at all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The striped stockings were thick, heavy, coarse, ribbed stockings of blue and
-red which Aunt Martha had knit for Faith in the winter. They were undoubtedly
-hideous. Faith loathed them as she had never loathed anything before. Wear them
-she certainly would not. They were still unworn in her bureau drawer.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;ll have to wear the striped stockings after this,&rdquo; said
-Una. &ldquo;Just think how the boys in school will laugh at you. You know how
-they laugh at Mamie Warren for her striped stockings and call her barber pole
-and yours are far worse.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t wear them,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll go
-barefooted first, cold as it is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can&rsquo;t go barefooted to church to-morrow. Think what people
-would say.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then I&rsquo;ll stay home.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can&rsquo;t. You know very well Aunt Martha will make you go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith did know this. The one thing on which Aunt Martha troubled herself to
-insist was that they must all go to church, rain or shine. How they were
-dressed, or if they were dressed at all, never concerned her. But go they must.
-That was how Aunt Martha had been brought up seventy years ago, and that was
-how she meant to bring them up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Haven&rsquo;t you got a pair you can lend me, Una?&rdquo; said poor
-Faith piteously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una shook her head. &ldquo;No, you know I only have the one black pair. And
-they&rsquo;re so tight I can hardly get them on. They wouldn&rsquo;t go on you.
-Neither would my gray ones. Besides, the legs of <i>them</i> are all darned <i>and</i>
-darned.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t wear those striped stockings,&rdquo; said Faith
-stubbornly. &ldquo;The feel of them is even worse than the looks. They make me
-feel as if my legs were as big as barrels and they&rsquo;re so <i>scratchy</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I don&rsquo;t know what you&rsquo;re going to do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If father was home I&rsquo;d go and ask him to get me a new pair before
-the store closes. But he won&rsquo;t be home till too late. I&rsquo;ll ask him
-Monday&mdash;and I won&rsquo;t go to church tomorrow. I&rsquo;ll pretend
-I&rsquo;m sick and Aunt Martha&rsquo;ll <i>have</i> to let me stay home.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That would be acting a lie, Faith,&rdquo; cried Una. &ldquo;You
-<i>can&rsquo;t</i> do that. You know it would be dreadful. What would father say if he
-knew? Don&rsquo;t you remember how he talked to us after mother died and told
-us we must always be <i>true</i>, no matter what else we failed in. He said we must
-never tell or act a lie&mdash;he said he&rsquo;d <i>trust</i> us not to. You
-<i>can&rsquo;t</i> do it, Faith. Just wear the striped stockings. It&rsquo;ll only be
-for once. Nobody will notice them in church. It isn&rsquo;t like school. And
-your new brown dress is so long they won&rsquo;t show much. Wasn&rsquo;t it
-lucky Aunt Martha made it big, so you&rsquo;d have room to grow in it, for all
-you hated it so when she finished it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t wear those stockings,&rdquo; repeated Faith. She uncoiled
-her bare, white legs from the tombstone and deliberately walked through the
-wet, cold grass to the bank of snow. Setting her teeth, she stepped upon it and
-stood there.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What are you doing?&rdquo; cried Una aghast. &ldquo;You&rsquo;ll catch
-your death of cold, Faith Meredith.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m trying to,&rdquo; answered Faith. &ldquo;I hope I&rsquo;ll
-catch a fearful cold and be <i>awful</i> sick to-morrow. Then I won&rsquo;t be acting
-a lie. I&rsquo;m going to stand here as long as I can bear it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But, Faith, you might really die. You might get pneumonia. Please, Faith
-don&rsquo;t. Let&rsquo;s go into the house and get <i>something</i> for your feet. Oh,
-here&rsquo;s Jerry. I&rsquo;m so thankful. Jerry, <i>make</i> Faith get off that snow.
-Look at her feet.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Holy cats! Faith, what <i>are</i> you doing?&rdquo; demanded Jerry. &ldquo;Are
-you crazy?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. Go away!&rdquo; snapped Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then are you punishing yourself for something? It isn&rsquo;t right, if
-you are. You&rsquo;ll be sick.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I want to be sick. I&rsquo;m not punishing myself. Go away.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where&rsquo;s her shoes and stockings?&rdquo; asked Jerry of Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She gave them to Lida Marsh.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Lida Marsh? What for?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because Lida had none&mdash;and her feet were so cold. And now she wants
-to be sick so that she won&rsquo;t have to go to church to-morrow and wear her
-striped stockings. But, Jerry, she may die.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Faith,&rdquo; said Jerry, &ldquo;get off that ice-bank or I&rsquo;ll
-pull you off.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pull away,&rdquo; dared Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jerry sprang at her and caught her arms. He pulled one way and Faith pulled
-another. Una ran behind Faith and pushed. Faith stormed at Jerry to leave her
-alone. Jerry stormed back at her not to be a dizzy idiot; and Una cried. They
-made no end of noise and they were close to the road fence of the graveyard.
-Henry Warren and his wife drove by and heard and saw them. Very soon the Glen
-heard that the manse children had been having an awful fight in the graveyard
-and using most improper language. Meanwhile, Faith had allowed herself to be
-pulled off the ice because her feet were aching so sharply that she was ready
-to get off any way. They all went in amiably and went to bed. Faith slept like
-a cherub and woke in the morning without a trace of a cold. She felt that she
-couldn&rsquo;t feign sickness and act a lie, after remembering that long-ago
-talk with her father. But she was still as fully determined as ever that she
-would not wear those abominable stockings to church.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap25"></a>CHAPTER XXV.<br />
-ANOTHER SCANDAL AND ANOTHER &ldquo;EXPLANATION&rdquo;</h2>
-
-<p>
-Faith went early to Sunday School and was seated in the corner of her class pew
-before any one came. Therefore, the dreadful truth did not burst upon any one
-until Faith left the class pew near the door to walk up to the manse pew after
-Sunday School. The church was already half filled and all who were sitting near
-the aisle saw that the minister&rsquo;s daughter had boots on but no stockings!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith&rsquo;s new brown dress, which Aunt Martha had made from an ancient
-pattern, was absurdly long for her, but even so it did not meet her boot-tops.
-Two good inches of bare white leg showed plainly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith and Carl sat alone in the manse pew. Jerry had gone into the gallery to
-sit with a chum and the Blythe girls had taken Una with them. The Meredith
-children were given to &ldquo;sitting all over the church&rdquo; in this
-fashion and a great many people thought it very improper. The gallery
-especially, where irresponsible lads congregated and were known to whisper and
-suspected of chewing tobacco during service, was no place, for a son of the
-manse. But Jerry hated the manse pew at the very top of the church, under the
-eyes of Elder Clow and his family. He escaped from it whenever he could.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl, absorbed in watching a spider spinning its web at the window, did not
-notice Faith&rsquo;s legs. She walked home with her father after church and he
-never noticed them. She got on the hated striped stockings before Jerry and Una
-arrived, so that for the time being none of the occupants of the manse knew
-what she had done. But nobody else in Glen St. Mary was ignorant of it. The few
-who had not seen soon heard. Nothing else was talked of on the way home from
-church. Mrs. Alec Davis said it was only what she expected, and the next thing
-you would see some of those young ones coming to church with no clothes on at
-all. The president of the Ladies&rsquo; Aid decided that she would bring the
-matter up at the next Aid meeting, and suggest that they wait in a body on the
-minister and protest. Miss Cornelia said that she, for her part, gave up. There
-was no use worrying over the manse fry any longer. Even Mrs. Dr. Blythe felt a
-little shocked, though she attributed the occurrence solely to Faith&rsquo;s
-forgetfulness. Susan could not immediately begin knitting stockings for Faith
-because it was Sunday, but she had one set up before any one else was out of
-bed at Ingleside the next morning.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You need not tell me anything but that it was old Martha&rsquo;s fault,
-Mrs. Dr. dear.&rdquo; she told Anne. &ldquo;I suppose that poor little child
-had no decent stockings to wear. I suppose every stocking she had was in holes,
-as you know very well they generally are. And <i>I</i> think, Mrs. Dr. dear,
-that the Ladies&rsquo; Aid would be better employed in knitting some for them
-than in fighting over the new carpet for the pulpit platform. <i>I</i> am not a
-Ladies&rsquo; Aider, but I shall knit Faith two pairs of stockings, out of this
-nice black yarn, as fast as my fingers can move and that you may tie to. Never
-shall I forget my sensations, Mrs. Dr. dear, when I saw a minister&rsquo;s
-child walking up the aisle of our church with no stockings on. I really did not
-know what way to look.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And the church was just full of Methodists yesterday, too,&rdquo;
-groaned Miss Cornelia, who had come up to the Glen to do some shopping and run
-into Ingleside to talk the affair over. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know how it is,
-but just as sure as those manse children do something especially awful the
-church is sure to be crowded with Methodists. I thought Mrs. Deacon
-Hazard&rsquo;s eyes would drop out of her head. When she came out of church she
-said, &lsquo;Well, that exhibition was no more than decent. I do pity the
-Presbyterians.&rsquo; And we just had to <i>take</i> it. There was nothing one could
-say.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There was something <i>I</i> could have said, Mrs. Dr. dear, if I had
-heard her,&rdquo; said Susan grimly. &ldquo;I would have said, for one thing,
-that in my opinion clean bare legs were quite as decent as holes. And I would
-have said, for another, that the Presbyterians did not feel greatly in need of
-pity seeing that they had a minister who could <i>preach</i> and the Methodists had
-<i>not</i>. I could have squelched Mrs. Deacon Hazard, Mrs. Dr dear, and that you may
-tie to.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish Mr. Meredith didn&rsquo;t preach quite so well and looked after
-his family a little better,&rdquo; retorted Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;He could at
-least glance over his children before they went to church and see that they
-were quite properly clothed. I&rsquo;m tired making excuses for him, believe
-<i>me</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Meanwhile, Faith&rsquo;s soul was being harrowed up in Rainbow Valley. Mary
-Vance was there and, as usual, in a lecturing mood. She gave Faith to
-understand that she had disgraced herself and her father beyond redemption and
-that she, Mary Vance, was done with her. &ldquo;Everybody&rdquo; was talking,
-and &ldquo;everybody&rdquo; said the same thing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I simply feel that I can&rsquo;t associate with you any longer,&rdquo;
-she concluded.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>We</i> are going to associate with her then,&rdquo; cried Nan Blythe. Nan
-secretly thought Faith <i>had</i> done a awful thing, but she wasn&rsquo;t going to
-let Mary Vance run matters in this high-handed fashion. &ldquo;And if <i>you</i> are
-not you needn&rsquo;t come any more to Rainbow Valley, <i>Miss</i> Vance.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Nan and Di both put their arms around Faith and glared defiance at Mary. The
-latter suddenly crumpled up, sat down on a stump and began to cry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It ain&rsquo;t that I don&rsquo;t want to,&rdquo; she wailed. &ldquo;But
-if I keep in with Faith people&rsquo;ll be saying I put her up to doing things.
-Some are saying it now, true&rsquo;s you live. I can&rsquo;t afford to have
-such things said of me, now that I&rsquo;m in a respectable place and trying to
-be a lady. And <i>I</i> never went bare-legged in church in my toughest days.
-I&rsquo;d never have thought of doing such a thing. But that hateful old Kitty
-Alec says Faith has never been the same girl since that time I stayed in the
-manse. She says Cornelia Elliott will live to rue the day she took me in. It
-hurts my feelings, I tell you. But it&rsquo;s Mr. Meredith I&rsquo;m really
-worried over.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think you needn&rsquo;t worry about him,&rdquo; said Di scornfully.
-&ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t likely necessary. Now, Faith darling, stop crying and
-tell us why you did it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith explained tearfully. The Blythe girls sympathized with her, and even Mary
-Vance agreed that it was a hard position to be in. But Jerry, on whom the thing
-came like a thunderbolt, refused to be placated. So <i>this</i> was what some
-mysterious hints he had got in school that day meant! He marched Faith and Una
-home without ceremony, and the Good-Conduct Club held an immediate session in
-the graveyard to sit in judgment on Faith&rsquo;s case.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t see that it was any harm,&rdquo; said Faith defiantly.
-&ldquo;Not <i>much</i> of my legs showed. It wasn&rsquo;t <i>wrong</i> and it didn&rsquo;t
-hurt anybody.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It will hurt Dad. You <i>know</i> it will. You know people blame him whenever
-we do anything queer.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t think of that,&rdquo; muttered Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s just the trouble. You didn&rsquo;t think and you <i>should</i>
-have thought. That&rsquo;s what our Club is for&mdash;to bring us up and <i>make</i>
-us think. We promised we&rsquo;d always stop and think before doing things. You
-didn&rsquo;t and you&rsquo;ve got to be punished, Faith&mdash;and real hard,
-too. You&rsquo;ll wear those striped stockings to school for a week for
-punishment.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Jerry, won&rsquo;t a day do&mdash;two days? Not a whole week!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, a whole week,&rdquo; said inexorable Jerry. &ldquo;It is
-fair&mdash;ask Jem Blythe if it isn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith felt she would rather submit then ask Jem Blythe about such a matter. She
-was beginning to realize that her offence was a quite shameful one.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll do it, then,&rdquo; she muttered, a little sulkily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;re getting off easy,&rdquo; said, Jerry severely. &ldquo;And
-no matter how we punish you it won&rsquo;t help father. People will always
-think you just did it for mischief, and they&rsquo;ll blame father for not
-stopping it. We can never explain it to everybody.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This aspect of the case weighed on Faith&rsquo;s mind. Her own condemnation she
-could bear, but it tortured her that her father should be blamed. If people
-knew the true facts of the case they would not blame him. But how could she
-make them known to all the world? Getting up in church, as she had once done,
-and explaining the matter was out of the question. Faith had heard from Mary
-Vance how the congregation had looked upon that performance and realized that
-she must not repeat it. Faith worried over the problem for half a week. Then
-she had an inspiration and promptly acted upon it. She spent that evening in
-the garret, with a lamp and an exercise book, writing busily, with flushed
-cheeks and shining eyes. It was the very thing! How clever she was to have
-thought of it! It would put everything right and explain everything and yet
-cause no scandal. It was eleven o&rsquo;clock when she had finished to her
-satisfaction and crept down to bed, dreadfully tired, but perfectly happy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In a few days the little weekly published in the Glen under the name of <i>The
-Journal</i> came out as usual, and the Glen had another sensation. A letter
-signed &ldquo;Faith Meredith&rdquo; occupied a prominent place on the front
-page and ran as follows:&mdash;
-</p>
-
-<p class="letter">
-&ldquo;T<small>O WHOM IT MAY CONCERN</small>:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I want to explain to everybody how it was I came to go to church without
-stockings on, so that everybody will know that father was not to blame one bit
-for it, and the old gossips need not say he is, because it is not true. I gave
-my only pair of black stockings to Lida Marsh, because she hadn&rsquo;t any and
-her poor little feet were awful cold and I was so sorry for her. No child ought
-to have to go without shoes and stockings in a Christian community before the
-snow is all gone, and I think the W. F. M. S. ought to have given her
-stockings. Of course, I know they are sending things to the little heathen
-children, and that is all right and a kind thing to do. But the little heathen
-children have lots more warm weather than we have, and I think the women of our
-church ought to look after Lida and not leave it all to me. When I gave her my
-stockings I forgot they were the only black pair I had without holes, but I am
-glad I did give them to her, because my conscience would have been
-uncomfortable if I hadn&rsquo;t. When she had gone away, looking so proud and
-happy, the poor little thing, I remembered that all I had to wear were the
-horrid red and blue things Aunt Martha knit last winter for me out of some yarn
-that Mrs. Joseph Burr of Upper Glen sent us. It was dreadfully coarse yarn and
-all knots, and I never saw any of Mrs. Burr&rsquo;s own children wearing things
-made of such yarn. But Mary Vance says Mrs. Burr gives the minister stuff that
-she can&rsquo;t use or eat herself, and thinks it ought to go as part of the
-salary her husband signed to pay, but never does.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I just couldn&rsquo;t bear to wear those hateful stockings. They were so
-ugly and rough and felt so scratchy. Everybody would have made fun of me. I
-thought at first I&rsquo;d pretend to be sick and not go to church next day,
-but I decided I couldn&rsquo;t do that, because it would be acting a lie, and
-father told us after mother died that was something we must never, never do. It
-is just as bad to act a lie as to tell one, though I know some people, right
-here in the Glen, who act them, and never seem to feel a bit bad about it. I
-will not mention any names, but I know who they are and so does father.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then I tried my best to catch cold and really be sick by standing on the
-snowbank in the Methodist graveyard with my bare feet until Jerry pulled me
-off. But it didn&rsquo;t hurt me a bit and so I couldn&rsquo;t get out of going
-to church. So I just decided I would put my boots on and go that way. I
-can&rsquo;t see why it was so wrong and I was so careful to wash my legs just
-as clean as my face, but, anyway, father wasn&rsquo;t to blame for it. He was
-in the study thinking of his sermon and other heavenly things, and I kept out
-of his way before I went to Sunday School. Father does not look at
-people&rsquo;s legs in church, so of course he did not notice mine, but all the
-gossips did and talked about it, and that is why I am writing this letter to
-the <i>Journal</i> to explain. I suppose I did very wrong, since everybody says
-so, and I am sorry and I am wearing those awful stockings to punish myself,
-although father bought me two nice new black pairs as soon as Mr. Flagg&rsquo;s
-store opened on Monday morning. But it was all my fault, and if people blame
-father for it after they read this they are not Christians and so I do not mind
-what they say.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is another thing I want to explain about before I stop. Mary Vance
-told me that Mr. Evan Boyd is blaming the Lew Baxters for stealing potatoes out
-of his field last fall. They did not touch his potatoes. They are very poor,
-but they are honest. It was us did it&mdash;Jerry and Carl and I. Una was not
-with us at the time. We never thought it was stealing. We just wanted a few
-potatoes to cook over a fire in Rainbow Valley one evening to eat with our
-fried trout. Mr. Boyd&rsquo;s field was the nearest, just between the valley
-and the village, so we climbed over his fence and pulled up some stalks. The
-potatoes were awful small, because Mr. Boyd did not put enough fertilizer on
-them and we had to pull up a lot of stalks before we got enough, and then they
-were not much bigger than marbles. Walter and Di Blythe helped us eat them, but
-they did not come along until we had them cooked and did not know where we got
-them, so they were not to blame at all, only us. We didn&rsquo;t mean any harm,
-but if it was stealing we are very sorry and we will pay Mr. Boyd for them if
-he will wait until we grow up. We never have any money now because we are not
-big enough to earn any, and Aunt Martha says it takes every cent of poor
-father&rsquo;s salary, even when it is paid up regularly&mdash;and it
-isn&rsquo;t often&mdash;to run this house. But Mr. Boyd must not blame the Lew
-Baxters any more, when they were quite innocent, and give them a bad name.
-</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&ldquo;Yours respectfully,<br />
-&ldquo;F<small>AITH</small> M<small>EREDITH</small>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap26"></a>CHAPTER XXVI.<br />
-MISS CORNELIA GETS A NEW POINT OF VIEW</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Susan, after I&rsquo;m dead I&rsquo;m going to come back to earth every
-time when the daffodils blow in this garden,&rdquo; said Anne rapturously.
-&ldquo;Nobody may see me, but I&rsquo;ll be here. If anybody is in the garden
-at the time&mdash;I <i>think</i> I&rsquo;ll come on an evening just like this, but it
-<i>might</i> be just at dawn&mdash;a lovely, pale-pinky spring
-dawn&mdash;they&rsquo;ll just see the daffodils nodding wildly as if an extra
-gust of wind had blown past them, but it will be <i>I</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Indeed, Mrs. Dr. dear, you will not be thinking of flaunting worldly
-things like daffies after you are dead,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;And I do <i>not</i>
-believe in ghosts, seen or unseen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Susan, I shall not be a ghost! That has such a horrible sound. I
-shall just be <i>me</i>. And I shall run around in the twilight, whether it is morn or
-eve, and see all the spots I love. Do you remember how badly I felt when I left
-our little House of Dreams, Susan? I thought I could never love Ingleside so
-well. But I do. I love every inch of the ground and every stick and stone on
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am rather fond of the place myself,&rdquo; said Susan, who would have
-died if she had been removed from it, &ldquo;but we must not set our affections
-too much on earthly things, Mrs. Dr. dear. There are such things as fires and
-earthquakes. We should always be prepared. The Tom MacAllisters over-harbour
-were burned out three nights ago. Some say Tom MacAllister set the house on
-fire himself to get the insurance. That may or may not be. But I advise the
-doctor to have our chimneys seen to at once. An ounce of prevention is worth a
-pound of cure. But I see Mrs. Marshall Elliott coming in at the gate, looking
-as if she had been sent for and couldn&rsquo;t go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Anne dearie, have you seen the <i>Journal</i> to-day?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s voice was trembling, partly from emotion, partly from the
-fact that she had hurried up from the store too fast and lost her breath.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Anne bent over the daffodils to hide a smile. She and Gilbert had laughed
-heartily and heartlessly over the front page of the <i>Journal</i> that day,
-but she knew that to dear Miss Cornelia it was almost a tragedy, and she must
-not wound her feelings by any display of levity.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Isn&rsquo;t it dreadful? What <i>is</i> to be done?&rdquo; asked Miss Cornelia
-despairingly. Miss Cornelia had vowed that she was done with worrying over the
-pranks of the manse children, but she went on worrying just the same.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Anne led the way to the veranda, where Susan was knitting, with Shirley and
-Rilla conning their primers on either side. Susan was already on her second
-pair of stockings for Faith. Susan never worried over poor humanity. She did
-what in her lay for its betterment and serenely left the rest to the Higher
-Powers.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Cornelia Elliott thinks she was born to run this world, Mrs. Dr.
-dear,&rdquo; she had once said to Anne, &ldquo;and so she is always in a stew
-over something. I have never thought <i>I</i> was, and so I go calmly along.
-Not but what it has sometimes occurred to me that things might be run a little
-better than they are. But it is not for us poor worms to nourish such thoughts.
-They only make us uncomfortable and do not get us anywhere.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t see that anything can be done&mdash;now&mdash;&rdquo; said
-Anne, pulling out a nice, cushiony chair for Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;But how in
-the world did Mr. Vickers allow that letter to be printed? Surely he should
-have known better.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, he&rsquo;s away, Anne dearie&mdash;he&rsquo;s been away to New
-Brunswick for a week. And that young scalawag of a Joe Vickers is editing the
-<i>Journal</i> in his absence. Of course, Mr. Vickers would never have put it
-in, even if he is a Methodist, but Joe would just think it a good joke. As you
-say, I don&rsquo;t suppose there is anything to be done now, only live it down.
-But if I ever get Joe Vickers cornered somewhere I&rsquo;ll give him a talking
-to he won&rsquo;t forget in a hurry. I wanted Marshall to stop our subscription
-to the <i>Journal</i> instantly, but he only laughed and said that
-to-day&rsquo;s issue was the only one that had had anything readable in it for
-a year. Marshall never will take anything seriously&mdash;just like a man.
-Fortunately, Evan Boyd is like that, too. He takes it as a joke and is laughing
-all over the place about it. And he&rsquo;s another Methodist! As for Mrs. Burr
-of Upper Glen, of course she will be furious and they will leave the church.
-Not that it will be a great loss from any point of view. The Methodists are
-quite welcome to <i>them</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It serves Mrs. Burr right,&rdquo; said Susan, who had an old feud with
-the lady in question and had been hugely tickled over the reference to her in
-Faith&rsquo;s letter. &ldquo;She will find that she will not be able to cheat
-the Methodist parson out of <i>his</i> salary with bad yarn.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The worst of it is, there&rsquo;s not much hope of things getting any
-better,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia gloomily. &ldquo;As long as Mr. Meredith was
-going to see Rosemary West I did hope the manse would soon have a proper
-mistress. But that is all off. I suppose she wouldn&rsquo;t have him on account
-of the children&mdash;at least, everybody seems to think so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do not believe that he ever asked her,&rdquo; said Susan, who could
-not conceive of any one refusing a minister.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, nobody knows anything about <i>that</i>. But one thing is certain, he
-doesn&rsquo;t go there any longer. And Rosemary didn&rsquo;t look well all the
-spring. I hope her visit to Kingsport will do her good. She&rsquo;s been gone
-for a month and will stay another month, I understand. I can&rsquo;t remember
-when Rosemary was away from home before. She and Ellen could never bear to be
-parted. But I understand Ellen insisted on her going this time. And meanwhile
-Ellen and Norman Douglas are warming up the old soup.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is that really so?&rdquo; asked Anne, laughing. &ldquo;I heard a rumour
-of it, but I hardly believed it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Believe it! You may believe it all right, Anne, dearie. Nobody is in
-ignorance of it. Norman Douglas never left anybody in doubt as to his
-intentions in regard to anything. He always did his courting before the public.
-He told Marshall that he hadn&rsquo;t thought about Ellen for years, but the
-first time he went to church last fall he saw her and fell in love with her all
-over again. He said he&rsquo;d clean forgot how handsome she was. He
-hadn&rsquo;t seen her for twenty years, if you can believe it. Of course he
-never went to church, and Ellen never went anywhere else round here. Oh, we all
-know what Norman means, but what Ellen means is a different matter. I
-shan&rsquo;t take it upon me to predict whether it will be a match or
-not.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He jilted her once&mdash;but it seems that does not count with some
-people, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; Susan remarked rather acidly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He jilted her in a fit of temper and repented it all his life,&rdquo;
-said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;That is different from a cold-blooded jilting. For
-my part, I never detested Norman as some folks do. He could never over-crow <i>me</i>.
-I <i>do</i> wonder what started him coming to church. I have never been able to
-believe Mrs. Wilsons&rsquo;s story that Faith Meredith went there and bullied
-him into it. I&rsquo;ve always intended to ask Faith herself, but I&rsquo;ve
-never happened to think of it just when I saw her. What influence could <i>she</i>
-have over Norman Douglas? He was in the store when I left, bellowing with
-laughter over that scandalous letter. You could have heard him at Four Winds
-Point. &lsquo;The greatest girl in the world,&rsquo; he was shouting.
-&lsquo;She&rsquo;s that full of spunk she&rsquo;s bursting with it. And all the
-old grannies want to tame her, darn them. But they&rsquo;ll never be able to do
-it&mdash;never! They might as well try to drown a fish. Boyd, see that you put
-more fertilizer on your potatoes next year. Ho, ho, ho!&rsquo; And then he
-laughed till the roof shook.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mr. Douglas pays well to the salary, at least,&rdquo; remarked Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Norman isn&rsquo;t mean in some ways. He&rsquo;d give a thousand
-without blinking a lash, and roar like a Bull of Bashan if he had to pay five
-cents too much for anything. Besides, he likes Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s sermons,
-and Norman Douglas was always willing to shell out if he got his brains tickled
-up. There is no more Christianity about him than there is about a black, naked
-heathen in Africa and never will be. But he&rsquo;s clever and well read and he
-judges sermons as he would lectures. Anyhow, it&rsquo;s well he backs up Mr.
-Meredith and the children as he does, for they&rsquo;ll need friends more than
-ever after this. I am tired of making excuses for them, believe <i>me</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you know, dear Miss Cornelia,&rdquo; said Anne seriously, &ldquo;I
-think we have all been making too many excuses. It is very foolish and we ought
-to stop it. I am going to tell you what I&rsquo;d <i>like</i> to do. I shan&rsquo;t do
-it, of course&rdquo;&mdash;Anne had noted a glint of alarm in Susan&rsquo;s
-eye&mdash;&ldquo;it would be too unconventional, and we must be conventional or
-die, after we reach what is supposed to be a dignified age. But I&rsquo;d <i>like</i>
-to do it. I&rsquo;d like to call a meeting of the Ladies Aid and W.M.S. and the
-Girls Sewing Society, and include in the audience all and any Methodists who
-have been criticizing the Merediths&mdash;although I do think if we
-Presbyterians stopped criticizing and excusing we would find that other
-denominations would trouble themselves very little about our manse folks. I
-would say to them, &lsquo;Dear Christian friends&rsquo;&mdash;with marked
-emphasis on &lsquo;Christian&rsquo;&mdash;I have something to say to you and I
-want to say it good and hard, that you may take it home and repeat it to your
-families. You Methodists need not pity us, and we Presbyterians need not pity
-ourselves. We are not going to do it any more. And we are going to say, boldly
-and truthfully, to all critics and sympathizers, &lsquo;We are <i>proud</i> of our
-minister and his family. Mr. Meredith is the best preacher Glen St. Mary church
-ever had. Moreover, he is a sincere, earnest teacher of truth and Christian
-charity. He is a faithful friend, a judicious pastor in all essentials, and a
-refined, scholarly, well-bred man. His family are worthy of him. Gerald
-Meredith is the cleverest pupil in the Glen school, and Mr. Hazard says that he
-is destined to a brilliant career. He is a manly, honourable, truthful little
-fellow. Faith Meredith is a beauty, and as inspiring and original as she is
-beautiful. There is nothing commonplace about her. All the other girls in the
-Glen put together haven&rsquo;t the vim, and wit, and joyousness and
-&lsquo;spunk&rsquo; she has. She has not an enemy in the world. Every one who
-knows her loves her. Of how many, children or grown-ups, can that be said? Una
-Meredith is sweetness personified. She will make a most lovable woman. Carl
-Meredith, with his love for ants and frogs and spiders, will some day be a
-naturalist whom all Canada&mdash;nay, all the world, will delight to honour. Do
-you know of any other family in the Glen, or out of it, of whom all these
-things can be said? Away with shamefaced excuses and apologies. We <i>rejoice</i> in
-our minister and his splendid boys and girls!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Anne stopped, partly because she was out of breath after her vehement speech
-and partly because she could not trust herself to speak further in view of Miss
-Cornelia&rsquo;s face. That good lady was staring helplessly at Anne,
-apparently engulfed in billows of new ideas. But she came up with a gasp and
-struck out for shore gallantly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Anne Blythe, I wish you <i>would</i> call that meeting and say just that!
-You&rsquo;ve made me ashamed of myself, for one, and far be it from me to
-refuse to admit it. <i>Of course</i>, that is how we should have
-talked&mdash;especially to the Methodists. And it&rsquo;s every word of it
-true&mdash;every word. We&rsquo;ve just been shutting our eyes to the big
-worth-while things and squinting them on the little things that don&rsquo;t
-really matter a pin&rsquo;s worth. Oh, Anne dearie, I can see a thing when
-it&rsquo;s hammered into my head. No more apologizing for Cornelia Marshall!
-<i>I</i> shall hold <i>my</i> head up after this, believe <i>me</i>&mdash;though I <i>may</i> talk
-things over with you as usual just to relieve my feelings if the Merediths do
-any more startling stunts. Even that letter I felt so bad about&mdash;why,
-it&rsquo;s only a good joke after all, as Norman says. Not many girls would
-have been cute enough to think of writing it&mdash;and all punctuated so nicely
-and not one word misspelled. Just let me hear any Methodist say one word about
-it&mdash;though all the same I&rsquo;ll never forgive Joe Vickers&mdash;believe
-<i>me!</i> Where are the rest of your small fry to-night?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Walter and the twins are in Rainbow Valley. Jem is studying in the
-garret.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They are all crazy about Rainbow Valley. Mary Vance thinks it&rsquo;s
-the only place in the world. She&rsquo;d be off up here every evening if
-I&rsquo;d let her. But I don&rsquo;t encourage her in gadding. Besides, I miss
-the creature when she isn&rsquo;t around, Anne dearie. I never thought
-I&rsquo;d get so fond of her. Not but what I see her faults and try to correct
-them. But she has never said one saucy word to me since she came to my house
-and she is a <i>great</i> help&mdash;for when all is said and done, Anne dearie, I am
-not so young as I once was, and there is no sense denying it. I was fifty-nine
-my last birthday. I don&rsquo;t <i>feel</i> it, but there is no gainsaying the Family
-Bible.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap27"></a>CHAPTER XXVII.<br />
-A SACRED CONCERT</h2>
-
-<p>
-In spite of Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s new point of view she could not help feeling
-a little disturbed over the next performance of the manse children. In public
-she carried off the situation splendidly, saying to all the gossips the
-substance of what Anne had said in daffodil time, and saying it so pointedly
-and forcibly that her hearers found themselves feeling rather foolish and began
-to think that, after all, they were making too much of a childish prank. But in
-private Miss Cornelia allowed herself the relief of bemoaning it to Anne.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Anne dearie, they had a <i>concert in the graveyard</i> last Thursday evening,
-while the Methodist prayer meeting was going on. There they sat, on Hezekiah
-Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone, and sang for a solid hour. Of course, I understand
-it was mostly hymns they sang, and it wouldn&rsquo;t have been quite so bad if
-they&rsquo;d done nothing else. But I&rsquo;m told they finished up with
-<i>Polly Wolly Doodle</i> at full length&mdash;and that just when Deacon Baxter
-was praying.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I was there that night,&rdquo; said Susan, &ldquo;and, although I did
-not say anything about it to you, Mrs. Dr. dear, I could not help thinking that
-it was a great pity they picked that particular evening. It was truly
-blood-curdling to hear them sitting there in that abode of the dead, shouting
-that frivolous song at the tops of their lungs.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know what <i>you</i> were doing in a Methodist prayer
-meeting,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia acidly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have never found that Methodism was catching,&rdquo; retorted Susan
-stiffly. &ldquo;And, as I was going to say when I was interrupted, badly as I
-felt, I did <i>not</i> give in to the Methodists. When Mrs. Deacon Baxter said, as we
-came out, &lsquo;What a disgraceful exhibition!&rsquo; <i>I</i> said, looking
-her fairly in the eye, &lsquo;They are all beautiful singers, and none of <i>your</i>
-choir, Mrs. Baxter, ever bother themselves coming out to your prayer meeting,
-it seems. Their voices appear to be in tune only on Sundays!&rsquo; She was
-quite meek and I felt that I had snubbed her properly. But I could have done it
-much more thoroughly, Mrs. Dr. dear, if only they had left out <i>Polly Wolly
-Doodle</i>. It is truly terrible to think of that being sung in a
-graveyard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Some of those dead folks sang <i>Polly Wolly Doodle</i> when they were
-living, Susan. Perhaps they like to hear it yet,&rdquo; suggested Gilbert.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia looked at him reproachfully and made up her mind that, on some
-future occasion, she would hint to Anne that the doctor should be admonished
-not to say such things. They might injure his practice. People might get it
-into their heads that he wasn&rsquo;t orthodox. To be sure, Marshall said even
-worse things habitually, but then <i>he</i> was not a public man.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I understand that their father was in his study all the time, with his
-windows open, but never noticed them at all. Of course, he was lost in a book
-as usual. But I spoke to him about it yesterday, when he called.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How could you dare, Mrs. Marshall Elliott?&rdquo; asked Susan
-rebukingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dare! It&rsquo;s time somebody dared something. Why, they say he knows
-nothing about that letter of Faith&rsquo;s to the <i>journal</i> because nobody liked
-to mention it to him. He never looks at a <i>journal</i> of course. But I thought he
-ought to know of this to prevent any such performances in future. He said he
-would &lsquo;discuss it with them.&rsquo; But of course he&rsquo;d never think
-of it again after he got out of our gate. That man has no sense of humour,
-Anne, believe <i>me</i>. He preached last Sunday on &lsquo;How to Bring up
-Children.&rsquo; A beautiful sermon it was, too&mdash;and everybody in church
-thinking &lsquo;what a pity you can&rsquo;t practise what you
-preach.&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia did Mr. Meredith an injustice in thinking he would soon forget
-what she had told him. He went home much disturbed and when the children came
-from Rainbow Valley that night, at a much later hour than they should have been
-prowling in it, he called them into his study.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They went in, somewhat awed. It was such an unusual thing for their father to
-do. What could he be going to say to them? They racked their memories for any
-recent transgression of sufficient importance, but could not recall any. Carl
-had spilled a saucerful of jam on Mrs. Peter Flagg&rsquo;s silk dress two
-evenings before, when, at Aunt Martha&rsquo;s invitation, she had stayed to
-supper. But Mr. Meredith had not noticed it, and Mrs. Flagg, who was a kindly
-soul, had made no fuss. Besides, Carl had been punished by having to wear
-Una&rsquo;s dress all the rest of the evening.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una suddenly thought that perhaps her father meant to tell them that he was
-going to marry Miss West. Her heart began to beat violently and her legs
-trembled. Then she saw that Mr. Meredith looked very stern and sorrowful. No,
-it could not be that.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Children,&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith, &ldquo;I have heard something that
-has pained me very much. Is it true that you sat out in the graveyard all last
-Thursday evening and sang ribald songs while a prayer meeting was being held in
-the Methodist church?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Great Caesar, Dad, we forgot all about it being their prayer meeting
-night,&rdquo; exclaimed Jerry in dismay.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then it is true&mdash;you did do this thing?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Dad, I don&rsquo;t know what you mean by ribald songs. We sang
-hymns&mdash;it was a sacred concert, you know. What harm was that? I tell you
-we never thought about it&rsquo;s being Methodist prayer meeting night. They
-used to have their meeting Tuesday nights and since they&rsquo;ve changed to
-Thursdays it&rsquo;s hard to remember.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Did you sing nothing but hymns?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why,&rdquo; said Jerry, turning red, &ldquo;we <i>did</i> sing <i>Polly Wolly
-Doodle</i> at the last. Faith said, &lsquo;Let&rsquo;s have something cheerful
-to wind up with.&rsquo; But we didn&rsquo;t mean any harm, Father&mdash;truly
-we didn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The concert was my idea, Father,&rdquo; said Faith, afraid that Mr.
-Meredith might blame Jerry too much. &ldquo;You know the Methodists themselves
-had a sacred concert in their church three Sunday nights ago. I thought it
-would be good fun to get one up in imitation of it. Only they had prayers at
-theirs, and we left that part out, because we heard that people thought it
-awful for us to pray in a graveyard. <i>You</i> were sitting in here all the
-time,&rdquo; she added, &ldquo;and never said a word to us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I did not notice what you were doing. That is no excuse for me, of
-course. I am more to blame than you&mdash;I realize that. But why did you sing
-that foolish song at the end?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We didn&rsquo;t think,&rdquo; muttered Jerry, feeling that it was a very
-lame excuse, seeing that he had lectured Faith so strongly in the Good-Conduct
-Club sessions for her lack of thought. &ldquo;We&rsquo;re sorry,
-Father&mdash;truly, we are. Pitch into us hard&mdash;we deserve a regular
-combing down.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Mr. Meredith did no combing down or pitching into. He sat down and gathered
-his small culprits close to him and talked a little to them, tenderly and
-wisely. They were overcome with remorse and shame, and felt that they could
-never be so silly and thoughtless again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ve just got to punish ourselves good and hard for this,&rdquo;
-whispered Jerry as they crept upstairs. &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll have a session of
-the Club first thing tomorrow and decide how we&rsquo;ll do it. I never saw
-father so cut up. But I wish to goodness the Methodists would stick to one
-night for their prayer meeting and not wander all over the week.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Anyhow, I&rsquo;m glad it wasn&rsquo;t what I was afraid it was,&rdquo;
-murmured Una to herself.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Behind them, in the study, Mr. Meredith had sat down at his desk and buried his
-face in his arms.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;God help me!&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m a poor sort of father. Oh,
-Rosemary! If you had only cared!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap28"></a>CHAPTER XXVIII.<br />
-A FAST DAY</h2>
-
-<p>
-The Good-Conduct Club had a special session the next morning before school.
-After various suggestions, it was decided that a fast day would be an
-appropriate punishment.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We won&rsquo;t eat a single thing for a whole day,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m kind of curious to see what fasting is like, anyhow. This will
-be a good chance to find out.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What day will we choose for it?&rdquo; asked Una, who thought it would
-be quite an easy punishment and rather wondered that Jerry and Faith had not
-devised something harder.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let&rsquo;s pick Monday,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;We mostly have a
-pretty <i>filling</i> dinner on Sundays, and Mondays meals never amount to much
-anyhow.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But that&rsquo;s just the point,&rdquo; exclaimed Jerry. &ldquo;We
-mustn&rsquo;t take the easiest day to fast, but the hardest&mdash;and
-that&rsquo;s Sunday, because, as you say, we mostly have roast beef that day
-instead of cold ditto. It wouldn&rsquo;t be much punishment to fast from ditto.
-Let&rsquo;s take next Sunday. It will be a good day, for father is going to
-exchange for the morning service with the Upper Lowbridge minister. Father will
-be away till evening. If Aunt Martha wonders what&rsquo;s got into us,
-we&rsquo;ll tell her right up that we&rsquo;re fasting for the good of our
-souls, and it is in the Bible and she is not to interfere, and I guess she
-won&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Aunt Martha did not. She merely said in her fretful mumbling way, &ldquo;What
-foolishness are you young rips up to now?&rdquo; and thought no more about it.
-Mr. Meredith had gone away early in the morning before any one was up. He went
-without his breakfast, too, but that was, of course, of common occurrence. Half
-of the time he forgot it and there was no one to remind him of it.
-Breakfast&mdash;Aunt Martha&rsquo;s breakfast&mdash;was not a hard meal to
-miss. Even the hungry &ldquo;young rips&rdquo; did not feel it any great
-deprivation to abstain from the &ldquo;lumpy porridge and blue milk&rdquo;
-which had aroused the scorn of Mary Vance. But it was different at dinner time.
-They were furiously hungry then, and the odor of roast beef which pervaded the
-manse, and which was wholly delightful in spite of the fact that the roast beef
-was badly underdone, was almost more than they could stand. In desperation they
-rushed to the graveyard where they couldn&rsquo;t smell it. But Una could not
-keep her eyes from the dining room window, through which the Upper Lowbridge
-minister could be seen, placidly eating.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If I could only have just a weeny, teeny piece,&rdquo; she sighed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now, you stop that,&rdquo; commanded Jerry. &ldquo;Of course it&rsquo;s
-hard&mdash;but that&rsquo;s the punishment of it. I could eat a graven image
-this very minute, but am I complaining? Let&rsquo;s think of something else.
-We&rsquo;ve just got to rise above our stomachs.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At supper time they did not feel the pangs of hunger which they had suffered
-earlier in the day.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose we&rsquo;re getting used to it,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;I
-feel an awfully queer all-gone sort of feeling, but I can&rsquo;t say I&rsquo;m
-hungry.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My head is funny,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;It goes round and round
-sometimes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But she went gamely to church with the others. If Mr. Meredith had not been so
-wholly wrapped up in and carried away with his subject he might have noticed
-the pale little face and hollow eyes in the manse pew beneath. But he noticed
-nothing and his sermon was something longer than usual. Then, just before he
-gave out the final hymn, Una Meredith tumbled off the seat of the manse pew and
-lay in a dead faint on the floor.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. Elder Clow was the first to reach her. She caught the thin little body
-from the arms of white-faced, terrified Faith and carried it into the vestry.
-Mr. Meredith forgot the hymn and everything else and rushed madly after her.
-The congregation dismissed itself as best it could.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mrs. Clow,&rdquo; gasped Faith, &ldquo;is Una dead? Have we killed
-her?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is the matter with my child?&rdquo; demanded the pale father.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She has just fainted, I think,&rdquo; said Mrs. Clow. &ldquo;Oh,
-here&rsquo;s the doctor, thank goodness.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Gilbert did not find it a very easy thing to bring Una back to consciousness.
-He worked over her for a long time before her eyes opened. Then he carried her
-over to the manse, followed by Faith, sobbing hysterically in her relief.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She is just hungry, you know&mdash;she didn&rsquo;t eat a thing
-to-day&mdash;none of us did&mdash;we were all fasting.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Fasting!&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith, and &ldquo;Fasting?&rdquo; said the
-doctor.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes&mdash;to punish ourselves for singing <i>Polly Wolly</i> in the
-graveyard,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My child, I don&rsquo;t want you to punish yourselves for that,&rdquo;
-said Mr. Meredith in distress. &ldquo;I gave you your little scolding&mdash;and
-you were all penitent&mdash;and I forgave you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, but we had to be punished,&rdquo; explained Faith.
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s our rule&mdash;in our Good-Conduct Club, you know&mdash;if we
-do anything wrong, or anything that is likely to hurt father in the
-congregation, we <i>have</i> to punish ourselves. We are bringing ourselves up, you
-know, because there is nobody to do it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith groaned, but the doctor got up from Una&rsquo;s side with an air
-of relief.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then this child simply fainted from lack of food and all she needs is a
-good square meal,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Mrs. Clow, will you be kind enough to
-see she gets it? And I think from Faith&rsquo;s story that they all would be
-the better for something to eat, or we shall have more faintings.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose we shouldn&rsquo;t have made Una fast,&rdquo; said Faith
-remorsefully. &ldquo;When I think of it, only Jerry and I should have been
-punished. <i>We</i> got up the concert and we were the oldest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I sang <i>Polly Wolly</i> just the same as the rest of you,&rdquo; said
-Una&rsquo;s weak little voice, &ldquo;so I had to be punished, too.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. Clow came with a glass of milk, Faith and Jerry and Carl sneaked off to
-the pantry, and John Meredith went into his study, where he sat in the darkness
-for a long time, alone with his bitter thoughts. So his children were bringing
-themselves up because there was &ldquo;nobody to do it&rdquo;&mdash;struggling
-along amid their little perplexities without a hand to guide or a voice to
-counsel. Faith&rsquo;s innocently uttered phrase rankled in her father&rsquo;s
-mind like a barbed shaft. There was &ldquo;nobody&rdquo; to look after
-them&mdash;to comfort their little souls and care for their little bodies. How
-frail Una had looked, lying there on the vestry sofa in that long faint! How
-thin were her tiny hands, how pallid her little face! She looked as if she
-might slip away from him in a breath&mdash;sweet little Una, of whom Cecilia
-had begged him to take such special care. Since his wife&rsquo;s death he had
-not felt such an agony of dread as when he had hung over his little girl in her
-unconsciousness. He must do something&mdash;but what? Should he ask Elizabeth
-Kirk to marry him? She was a good woman&mdash;she would be kind to his
-children. He might bring himself to do it if it were not for his love for
-Rosemary West. But until he had crushed that out he could not seek another
-woman in marriage. And he could not crush it out&mdash;he had tried and he
-could not. Rosemary had been in church that evening, for the first time since
-her return from Kingsport. He had caught a glimpse of her face in the back of
-the crowded church, just as he had finished his sermon. His heart had given a
-fierce throb. He sat while the choir sang the &ldquo;collection piece,&rdquo;
-with his bent head and tingling pulses. He had not seen her since the evening
-upon which he had asked her to marry him. When he had risen to give out the
-hymn his hands were trembling and his pale face was flushed. Then Una&rsquo;s
-fainting spell had banished everything from his mind for a time. Now, in the
-darkness and solitude of the study it rushed back. Rosemary was the only woman
-in the world for him. It was of no use for him to think of marrying any other.
-He could not commit such a sacrilege even for his children&rsquo;s sake. He
-must take up his burden alone&mdash;he must try to be a better, a more watchful
-father&mdash;he must tell his children not to be afraid to come to him with all
-their little problems. Then he lighted his lamp and took up a bulky new book
-which was setting the theological world by the ears. He would read just one
-chapter to compose his mind. Five minutes later he was lost to the world and
-the troubles of the world.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap29"></a>CHAPTER XXIX.<br />
-A WEIRD TALE</h2>
-
-<p>
-On an early June evening Rainbow Valley was an entirely delightful place and
-the children felt it to be so, as they sat in the open glade where the bells
-rang elfishly on the Tree Lovers, and the White Lady shook her green tresses.
-The wind was laughing and whistling about them like a leal, glad-hearted
-comrade. The young ferns were spicy in the hollow. The wild cherry trees
-scattered over the valley, among the dark firs, were mistily white. The robins
-were whistling over in the maples behind Ingleside. Beyond, on the slopes of
-the Glen, were blossoming orchards, sweet and mystic and wonderful, veiled in
-dusk. It was spring, and young things <i>must</i> be glad in spring. Everybody was
-glad in Rainbow Valley that evening&mdash;until Mary Vance froze their blood
-with the story of Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jem was not there. Jem spent his evenings now studying for his entrance
-examination in the Ingleside garret. Jerry was down near the pond, trouting.
-Walter had been reading Longfellow&rsquo;s sea poems to the others and they
-were steeped in the beauty and mystery of the ships. Then they talked of what
-they would do when they were grown up&mdash;where they would travel&mdash;the
-far, fair shores they would see. Nan and Di meant to go to Europe. Walter
-longed for the Nile moaning past its Egyptian sands, and a glimpse of the
-sphinx. Faith opined rather dismally that she supposed she would have to be a
-missionary&mdash;old Mrs. Taylor told her she ought to be&mdash;and then she
-would at least see India or China, those mysterious lands of the Orient.
-Carl&rsquo;s heart was set on African jungles. Una said nothing. She thought
-she would just like to stay at home. It was prettier here than anywhere else.
-It would be dreadful when they were all grown up and had to scatter over the
-world. The very idea made Una feel lonesome and homesick. But the others
-dreamed on delightedly until Mary Vance arrived and vanished poesy and dreams
-at one fell swoop.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Laws, but I&rsquo;m out of puff,&rdquo; she exclaimed. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve
-run down that hill like sixty. I got an awful scare up there at the old Bailey
-place.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What frightened you?&rdquo; asked Di.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I dunno. I was poking about under them lilacs in the old garden, trying
-to see if there was any lilies-of-the-valley out yet. It was dark as a pocket
-there&mdash;and all at once I seen something stirring and rustling round at the
-other side of the garden, in those cherry bushes. It was <i>white</i>. I tell you I
-didn&rsquo;t stop for a second look. I flew over the dyke quicker than quick. I
-was sure it was Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who was Henry Warren?&rdquo; asked Di.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And why should he have a ghost?&rdquo; asked Nan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Laws, did you never hear the story? And you brought up in the Glen.
-Well, wait a minute till I get by breath all back and I&rsquo;ll tell
-you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter shivered delightsomely. He loved ghost stories. Their mystery, their
-dramatic climaxes, their eeriness gave him a fearful, exquisite pleasure.
-Longfellow instantly grew tame and commonplace. He threw the book aside and
-stretched himself out, propped upon his elbows to listen whole-heartedly,
-fixing his great luminous eyes on Mary&rsquo;s face. Mary wished he
-wouldn&rsquo;t look at her so. She felt she could make a better job of the
-ghost story if Walter were not looking at her. She could put on several frills
-and invent a few artistic details to enhance the horror. As it was, she had to
-stick to the bare truth&mdash;or what had been told her for the truth.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well,&rdquo; she began, &ldquo;you know old Tom Bailey and his wife used
-to live in that house up there thirty years ago. He was an awful old rip, they
-say, and his wife wasn&rsquo;t much better. They&rsquo;d no children of their
-own, but a sister of old Tom&rsquo;s died and left a little boy&mdash;this
-Henry Warren&mdash;and they took him. He was about twelve when he came to them,
-and kind of undersized and delicate. They say Tom and his wife used him awful
-from the start&mdash;whipped him and starved him. Folks said they wanted him to
-die so&rsquo;s they could get the little bit of money his mother had left for
-him. Henry didn&rsquo;t die right off, but he begun having fits&mdash;epileps,
-they called &lsquo;em&mdash;and he grew up kind of simple, till he was about
-eighteen. His uncle used to thrash him in that garden up there &lsquo;cause it
-was back of the house where no one could see him. But folks could hear, and
-they say it was awful sometimes hearing poor Henry plead with his uncle not to
-kill him. But nobody dared interfere &lsquo;cause old Tom was such a reprobate
-he&rsquo;d have been sure to get square with &lsquo;em some way. He burned the
-barns of a man at Harbour Head who offended him. At last Henry died and his
-uncle and aunt give out he died in one of his fits and that was all anybody
-ever knowed, but everybody said Tom had just up and killed him for keeps at
-last. And it wasn&rsquo;t long till it got around that Henry <i>walked</i>. That old
-garden was <i>ha&rsquo;nted</i>. He was heard there at nights, moaning and crying. Old
-Tom and his wife got out&mdash;went out West and never came back. The place got
-such a bad name nobody&rsquo;d buy or rent it. That&rsquo;s why it&rsquo;s all
-gone to ruin. That was thirty years ago, but Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost
-ha&rsquo;nts it yet.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you believe that?&rdquo; asked Nan scornfully. &ldquo;<i>I</i>
-don&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, <i>good</i> people have seen him&mdash;and heard him.&rdquo; retorted
-Mary. &ldquo;They say he appears and grovels on the ground and holds you by the
-legs and gibbers and moans like he did when he was alive. I thought of that as
-soon as I seen that white thing in the bushes and thought if it caught me like
-that and moaned I&rsquo;d drop down dead on the spot. So I cut and run. It
-<i>mightn&rsquo;t</i> have been his ghost, but I wasn&rsquo;t going to take any
-chances with a ha&rsquo;nt.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It was likely old Mrs. Stimson&rsquo;s white calf,&rdquo; laughed Di.
-&ldquo;It pastures in that garden&mdash;I&rsquo;ve seen it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maybe so. But <i>I&rsquo;m</i> not going home through the Bailey garden any
-more. Here&rsquo;s Jerry with a big string of trout and it&rsquo;s my turn to
-cook them. Jem and Jerry both say I&rsquo;m the best cook in the Glen. And
-Cornelia told me I could bring up this batch of cookies. I all but dropped them
-when I saw Henry&rsquo;s ghost.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jerry hooted when he heard the ghost story&mdash;which Mary repeated as she
-fried the fish, touching it up a trifle or so, since Walter had gone to help
-Faith to set the table. It made no impression on Jerry, but Faith and Una and
-Carl had been secretly much frightened, though they would never have given in
-to it. It was all right as long as the others were with them in the valley: but
-when the feast was over and the shadows fell they quaked with remembrance.
-Jerry went up to Ingleside with the Blythes to see Jem about something, and
-Mary Vance went around that way home. So Faith and Una and Carl had to go back
-to the manse alone. They walked very close together and gave the old Bailey
-garden a wide berth. They did not believe that it was haunted, of course, but
-they would not go near it for all that.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap30"></a>CHAPTER XXX.<br />
-THE GHOST ON THE DYKE</h2>
-
-<p>
-Somehow, Faith and Carl and Una could not shake off the hold which the story of
-Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost had taken upon their imaginations. They had never
-believed in ghosts. Ghost tales they had heard a-plenty&mdash;Mary Vance had
-told some far more blood-curdling than this; but those tales were all of places
-and people and spooks far away and unknown. After the first half-awful,
-half-pleasant thrill of awe and terror they thought of them no more. But this
-story came home to them. The old Bailey garden was almost at their very
-door&mdash;almost in their beloved Rainbow Valley. They had passed and repassed
-it constantly; they had hunted for flowers in it; they had made short cuts
-through it when they wished to go straight from the village to the valley. But
-never again! After the night when Mary Vance told them its gruesome tale they
-would not have gone through or near it on pain of death. Death! What was death
-compared to the unearthly possibility of falling into the clutches of Henry
-Warren&rsquo;s grovelling ghost?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-One warm July evening the three of them were sitting under the Tree Lovers,
-feeling a little lonely. Nobody else had come near the valley that evening. Jem
-Blythe was away in Charlottetown, writing on his entrance examinations. Jerry
-and Walter Blythe were off for a sail on the harbour with old Captain Crawford.
-Nan and Di and Rilla and Shirley had gone down the harbour road to visit
-Kenneth and Persis Ford, who had come with their parents for a flying visit to
-the little old House of Dreams. Nan had asked Faith to go with them, but Faith
-had declined. She would never have admitted it, but she felt a little secret
-jealousy of Persis Ford, concerning whose wonderful beauty and city glamour she
-had heard a great deal. No, she wasn&rsquo;t going to go down there and play
-second fiddle to anybody. She and Una took their story books to Rainbow Valley
-and read, while Carl investigated bugs along the banks of the brook, and all
-three were happy until they suddenly realized that it was twilight and that the
-old Bailey garden was uncomfortably near by. Carl came and sat down close to
-the girls. They all wished they had gone home a little sooner, but nobody said
-anything.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Great, velvety, purple clouds heaped up in the west and spread over the valley.
-There was no wind and everything was suddenly, strangely, dreadfully still. The
-marsh was full of thousands of fire-flies. Surely some fairy parliament was
-being convened that night. Altogether, Rainbow Valley was not a canny place
-just then.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith looked fearfully up the valley to the old Bailey garden. Then, if
-anybody&rsquo;s blood ever did freeze, Faith Meredith&rsquo;s certainly froze
-at that moment. The eyes of Carl and Una followed her entranced gaze and chills
-began gallopading up and down their spines also. For there, under the big
-tamarack tree on the tumble-down, grass-grown dyke of the Bailey garden, was
-something white&mdash;shapelessly white in the gathering gloom. The three
-Merediths sat and gazed as if turned to stone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s&mdash;it&rsquo;s the&mdash;calf,&rdquo; whispered Una at
-last.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s&mdash;too&mdash;big&mdash;for the calf,&rdquo; whispered
-Faith. Her mouth and lips were so dry she could hardly articulate the words.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Suddenly Carl gasped,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s coming here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The girls gave one last agonized glance. Yes, it was creeping down over the
-dyke, as no calf ever did or could creep. Reason fled before sudden,
-over-mastering panic. For the moment every one of the trio was firmly convinced
-that what they saw was Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost. Carl sprang to his feet and
-bolted blindly. With a simultaneous shriek the girls followed him. Like mad
-creatures they tore up the hill, across the road and into the manse. They had
-left Aunt Martha sewing in the kitchen. She was not there. They rushed to the
-study. It was dark and tenantless. As with one impulse, they swung around and
-made for Ingleside&mdash;but not across Rainbow Valley. Down the hill and
-through the Glen street they flew on the wings of their wild terror, Carl in
-the lead, Una bringing up the rear. Nobody tried to stop them, though everybody
-who saw them wondered what fresh devilment those manse youngsters were up to
-now. But at the gate of Ingleside they ran into Rosemary West, who had just
-been in for a moment to return some borrowed books.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She saw their ghastly faces and staring eyes. She realized that their poor
-little souls were wrung with some awful and real fear, whatever its cause. She
-caught Carl with one arm and Faith with the other. Una stumbled against her and
-held on desperately.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Children, dear, what has happened?&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;What has
-frightened you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost,&rdquo; answered Carl, through his chattering
-teeth.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Henry&mdash;Warren&rsquo;s&mdash;ghost!&rdquo; said amazed Rosemary, who
-had never heard the story.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; sobbed Faith hysterically. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s there&mdash;on
-the Bailey dyke&mdash;we saw it&mdash;and it started to&mdash;chase us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary herded the three distracted creatures to the Ingleside veranda.
-Gilbert and Anne were both away, having also gone to the House of Dreams, but
-Susan appeared in the doorway, gaunt and practical and unghostlike.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is all this rumpus about?&rdquo; she inquired.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Again the children gasped out their awful tale, while Rosemary held them close
-to her and soothed them with wordless comfort.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Likely it was an owl,&rdquo; said Susan, unstirred.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-An owl! The Meredith children never had any opinion of Susan&rsquo;s
-intelligence after that!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It was bigger than a million owls,&rdquo; said Carl, sobbing&mdash;oh,
-how ashamed Carl was of that sobbing in after days&mdash;&ldquo;and it&mdash;it
-<i>grovelled</i> just as Mary said&mdash;and it was crawling down over the dyke to get
-at us. Do owls <i>crawl?</i>&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary looked at Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They must have seen something to frighten them so,&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I will go and see,&rdquo; said Susan coolly. &ldquo;Now, children, calm
-yourselves. Whatever you have seen, it was not a ghost. As for poor Henry
-Warren, I feel sure he would be only too glad to rest quietly in his peaceful
-grave once he got there. No fear of <i>him</i> venturing back, and that you may tie
-to. If you can make them see reason, Miss West, I will find out the truth of
-the matter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan departed for Rainbow Valley, valiantly grasping a pitchfork which she
-found leaning against the back fence where the doctor had been working in his
-little hay-field. A pitchfork might not be of much use against
-&ldquo;ha&rsquo;nts,&rdquo; but it was a comforting sort of weapon. There was
-nothing to be seen in Rainbow Valley when Susan reached it. No white visitants
-appeared to be lurking in the shadowy, tangled old Bailey garden. Susan marched
-boldly through it and beyond it, and rapped with her pitchfork on the door of
-the little cottage on the other side, where Mrs. Stimson lived with her two
-daughters.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Back at Ingleside Rosemary had succeeded in calming the children. They still
-sobbed a little from shock, but they were beginning to feel a lurking and
-salutary suspicion that they had made dreadful geese of themselves. This
-suspicion became a certainty when Susan finally returned.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have found out what your ghost was,&rdquo; she said, with a grim
-smile, sitting down on a rocker and fanning herself. &ldquo;Old Mrs. Stimson
-has had a pair of factory cotton sheets bleaching in the Bailey garden for a
-week. She spread them on the dyke under the tamarack tree because the grass was
-clean and short there. This evening she went out to take them in. She had her
-knitting in her hands so she hung the sheets over her shoulders by way of
-carrying them. And then she must have dropped one of her needles and find it
-she could not and has not yet. But she went down on her knees and crept about
-to hunt for it, and she was at that when she heard awful yells down in the
-valley and saw the three children tearing up the hill past her. She thought
-they had been bit by something and it gave her poor old heart such a turn that
-she could not move or speak, but just crouched there till they disappeared.
-Then she staggered back home and they have been applying stimulants to her ever
-since, and her heart is in a terrible condition and she says she will not get
-over this fright all summer.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Merediths sat, crimson with a shame that even Rosemary&rsquo;s
-understanding sympathy could not remove. They sneaked off home, met Jerry at
-the manse gate and made remorseful confession. A session of the Good-Conduct
-Club was arranged for next morning.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Wasn&rsquo;t Miss West sweet to us to-night?&rdquo; whispered Faith in
-bed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; admitted Una. &ldquo;It is such a pity it changes people so
-much to be made stepmothers.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe it does,&rdquo; said Faith loyally.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap31"></a>CHAPTER XXXI.<br />
-CARL DOES PENANCE</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t see why we should be punished at all,&rdquo; said Faith,
-rather sulkily. &ldquo;We didn&rsquo;t do anything wrong. We couldn&rsquo;t
-help being frightened. And it won&rsquo;t do father any harm. It was just an
-accident.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You were cowards,&rdquo; said Jerry with judicial scorn, &ldquo;and you
-gave way to your cowardice. That is why you should be punished. Everybody will
-laugh at you about this, and that is a disgrace to the family.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If you knew how awful the whole thing was,&rdquo; said Faith with a
-shiver, &ldquo;you would think we had been punished enough already. I
-wouldn&rsquo;t go through it again for anything in the whole world.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I believe you&rsquo;d have run yourself if you&rsquo;d been
-there,&rdquo; muttered Carl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;From an old woman in a cotton sheet,&rdquo; mocked Jerry. &ldquo;Ho, ho,
-ho!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It didn&rsquo;t look a bit like an old woman,&rdquo; cried Faith.
-&ldquo;It was just a great, big, white thing crawling about in the grass just
-as Mary Vance said Henry Warren did. It&rsquo;s all very fine for you to laugh,
-Jerry Meredith, but you&rsquo;d have laughed on the other side of your mouth if
-you&rsquo;d been there. And how are we to be punished? <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t
-think it&rsquo;s fair, but let&rsquo;s know what we have to do, Judge
-Meredith!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The way I look at it,&rdquo; said Jerry, frowning, &ldquo;is that Carl
-was the most to blame. He bolted first, as I understand it. Besides, he was a
-boy, so he should have stood his ground to protect you girls, whatever the
-danger was. You know that, Carl, don&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I s&rsquo;pose so,&rdquo; growled Carl shamefacedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Very well. This is to be your punishment. To-night you&rsquo;ll sit on
-Mr. Hezekiah Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone in the graveyard alone, until twelve
-o&rsquo;clock.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl gave a little shudder. The graveyard was not so very far from the old
-Bailey garden. It would be a trying ordeal, but Carl was anxious to wipe out
-his disgrace and prove that he was not a coward after all.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right,&rdquo; he said sturdily. &ldquo;But how&rsquo;ll I know when
-it is twelve?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The study windows are open and you&rsquo;ll hear the clock striking. And
-mind you that you are not to budge out of that graveyard until the last stroke.
-As for you girls, you&rsquo;ve got to go without jam at supper for a
-week.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith and Una looked rather blank. They were inclined to think that even
-Carl&rsquo;s comparatively short though sharp agony was lighter punishment than
-this long drawn-out ordeal. A whole week of soggy bread without the saving
-grace of jam! But no shirking was permitted in the club. The girls accepted
-their lot with such philosophy as they could summon up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-That night they all went to bed at nine, except Carl, who was already keeping
-vigil on the tombstone. Una slipped in to bid him good night. Her tender heart
-was wrung with sympathy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Carl, are you much scared?&rdquo; she whispered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not a bit,&rdquo; said Carl airily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t sleep a wink till after twelve,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;If
-you get lonesome just look up at our window and remember that I&rsquo;m inside,
-awake, and thinking about you. That will be a little company, won&rsquo;t
-it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll be all right. Don&rsquo;t you worry about me,&rdquo; said
-Carl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But in spite of his dauntless words Carl was a pretty lonely boy when the
-lights went out in the manse. He had hoped his father would be in the study as
-he so often was. He would not feel alone then. But that night Mr. Meredith had
-been summoned to the fishing village at the harbour mouth to see a dying man.
-He would not likely be back until after midnight. Carl must dree his weird
-alone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A Glen man went past carrying a lantern. The mysterious shadows caused by the
-lantern-light went hurtling madly over the graveyard like a dance of demons or
-witches. Then they passed and darkness fell again. One by one the lights in the
-Glen went out. It was a very dark night, with a cloudy sky, and a raw east wind
-that was cold in spite of the calendar. Far away on the horizon was the low dim
-lustre of the Charlottetown lights. The wind wailed and sighed in the old
-fir-trees. Mr. Alec Davis&rsquo; tall monument gleamed whitely through the
-gloom. The willow beside it tossed long, writhing arms spectrally. At times,
-the gyrations of its boughs made it seem as if the monument were moving, too.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl curled himself up on the tombstone with his legs tucked under him. It
-wasn&rsquo;t precisely pleasant to hang them over the edge of the stone. Just
-suppose&mdash;just suppose&mdash;bony hands should reach up out of Mr.
-Pollock&rsquo;s grave under it and clutch him by the ankles. That had been one
-of Mary Vance&rsquo;s cheerful speculations one time when they had all been
-sitting there. It returned to haunt Carl now. He didn&rsquo;t believe those
-things; he didn&rsquo;t even really believe in Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost. As
-for Mr. Pollock, he had been dead sixty years, so it wasn&rsquo;t likely he
-cared who sat on his tombstone now. But there is something very strange and
-terrible in being awake when all the rest of the world is asleep. You are alone
-then with nothing but your own feeble personality to pit against the mighty
-principalities and powers of darkness. Carl was only ten and the dead were all
-around him&mdash;and he wished, oh, he wished that the clock would strike
-twelve. Would it <i>never</i> strike twelve? Surely Aunt Martha must have forgotten to
-wind it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And then it struck eleven&mdash;only eleven! He must stay yet another hour in
-that grim place. If only there were a few friendly stars to be seen! The
-darkness was so thick it seemed to press against his face. There was a sound as
-of stealthy passing footsteps all over the graveyard. Carl shivered, partly
-with prickling terror, partly with real cold.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then it began to rain&mdash;a chill, penetrating drizzle. Carl&rsquo;s thin
-little cotton blouse and shirt were soon wet through. He felt chilled to the
-bone. He forgot mental terrors in his physical discomfort. But he must stay
-there till twelve&mdash;he was punishing himself and he was on his honour.
-Nothing had been said about rain&mdash;but it did not make any difference. When
-the study clock finally struck twelve a drenched little figure crept stiffly
-down off Mr. Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone, made its way into the manse and
-upstairs to bed. Carl&rsquo;s teeth were chattering. He thought he would never
-get warm again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He was warm enough when morning came. Jerry gave one startled look at his
-crimson face and then rushed to call his father. Mr. Meredith came hurriedly,
-his own face ivory white from the pallor of his long night vigil by a death
-bed. He had not got home until daylight. He bent over his little lad anxiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Carl, are you sick?&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&mdash;tombstone&mdash;over here,&rdquo; said Carl,
-&ldquo;it&rsquo;s&mdash;moving&mdash;about&mdash;it&rsquo;s
-coming&mdash;at&mdash;me&mdash;keep it&mdash;away&mdash;please.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith rushed to the telephone. In ten minutes Dr. Blythe was at the
-manse. Half an hour later a wire was sent to town for a trained nurse, and all
-the Glen knew that Carl Meredith was very ill with pneumonia and that Dr.
-Blythe had been seen to shake his head.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Gilbert shook his head more than once in the fortnight that followed. Carl
-developed double pneumonia. There was one night when Mr. Meredith paced his
-study floor, and Faith and Una huddled in their bedroom and cried, and Jerry,
-wild with remorse, refused to budge from the floor of the hall outside
-Carl&rsquo;s door. Dr. Blythe and the nurse never left the bedside. They fought
-death gallantly until the red dawn and they won the victory. Carl rallied and
-passed the crisis in safety. The news was phoned about the waiting Glen and
-people found out how much they really loved their minister and his children.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I haven&rsquo;t had one decent night&rsquo;s sleep since I heard the
-child was sick,&rdquo; Miss Cornelia told Anne, &ldquo;and Mary Vance has cried
-until those queer eyes of hers looked like burnt holes in a blanket. Is it true
-that Carl got pneumonia from straying out in the graveyard that wet night for a
-dare?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. He was staying there to punish himself for cowardice in that affair
-of the Warren ghost. It seems they have a club for bringing themselves up, and
-they punish themselves when they do wrong. Jerry told Mr. Meredith all about
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The poor little souls,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl got better rapidly, for the congregation took enough nourishing things to
-the manse to furnish forth a hospital. Norman Douglas drove up every evening
-with a dozen fresh eggs and a jar of Jersey cream. Sometimes he stayed an hour
-and bellowed arguments on predestination with Mr. Meredith in the study;
-oftener he drove on up to the hill that overlooked the Glen.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When Carl was able to go again to Rainbow Valley they had a special feast in
-his honour and the doctor came down and helped them with the fireworks. Mary
-Vance was there, too, but she did not tell any ghost stories. Miss Cornelia had
-given her a talking on that subject which Mary would not forget in a hurry.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap32"></a>CHAPTER XXXII.<br />
-TWO STUBBORN PEOPLE</h2>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary West, on her way home from a music lesson at Ingleside, turned aside
-to the hidden spring in Rainbow Valley. She had not been there all summer; the
-beautiful little spot had no longer any allurement for her. The spirit of her
-young lover never came to the tryst now; and the memories connected with John
-Meredith were too painful and poignant. But she had happened to glance backward
-up the valley and had seen Norman Douglas vaulting as airily as a stripling
-over the old stone dyke of the Bailey garden and thought he was on his way up
-the hill. If he overtook her she would have to walk home with him and she was
-not going to do that. So she slipped at once behind the maples of the spring,
-hoping he had not seen her and would pass on.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Norman had seen her and, what was more, was in pursuit of her. He had been
-wanting for some time to have talk with Rosemary, but she had always, so it
-seemed, avoided him. Rosemary had never, at any time, liked Norman Douglas very
-well. His bluster, his temper, his noisy hilarity, had always antagonized her.
-Long ago she had often wondered how Ellen could possibly be attracted to him.
-Norman Douglas was perfectly aware of her dislike and he chuckled over it. It
-never worried Norman if people did not like him. It did not even make him
-dislike them in return, for he took it as a kind of extorted compliment. He
-thought Rosemary a fine girl, and he meant to be an excellent, generous
-brother-in-law to her. But before he could be her brother-in-law he had to have
-a talk with her, so, having seen her leaving Ingleside as he stood in the
-doorway of a Glen store, he had straightway plunged into the valley to overtake
-her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary was sitting pensively on the maple seat where John Meredith had been
-sitting on that evening nearly a year ago. The tiny spring shimmered and
-dimpled under its fringe of ferns. Ruby-red gleams of sunset fell through the
-arching boughs. A tall clump of perfect asters grew at her side. The little
-spot was as dreamy and witching and evasive as any retreat of fairies and
-dryads in ancient forests. Into it Norman Douglas bounced, scattering and
-annihilating its charm in a moment. His personality seemed to swallow the place
-up. There was simply nothing there but Norman Douglas, big, red-bearded,
-complacent.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good evening,&rdquo; said Rosemary coldly, standing up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;&lsquo;Evening, girl. Sit down again&mdash;sit down again. I want to
-have a talk with you. Bless the girl, what&rsquo;s she looking at me like that
-for? I don&rsquo;t want to eat you&mdash;I&rsquo;ve had my supper. Sit down and
-be civil.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I can hear what you have to say quite as well here,&rdquo; said
-Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So you can, girl, if you use your ears. I only wanted you to be
-comfortable. You look so durned uncomfortable, standing there. Well, <i>I&rsquo;ll</i>
-sit anyway.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman accordingly sat down in the very place John Meredith had once sat. The
-contrast was so ludicrous that Rosemary was afraid she would go off into a peal
-of hysterical laughter over it. Norman cast his hat aside, placed his huge, red
-hands on his knees, and looked up at her with his eyes a-twinkle.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come, girl, don&rsquo;t be so stiff,&rdquo; he said, ingratiatingly.
-When he liked he could be very ingratiating. &ldquo;Let&rsquo;s have a
-reasonable, sensible, friendly chat. There&rsquo;s something I want to ask you.
-Ellen says she won&rsquo;t, so it&rsquo;s up to me to do it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary looked down at the spring, which seemed to have shrunk to the size of
-a dewdrop. Norman gazed at her in despair.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Durn it all, you might help a fellow out a bit,&rdquo; he burst forth.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is it you want me to help you say?&rdquo; asked Rosemary
-scornfully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You know as well as I do, girl. Don&rsquo;t be putting on your tragedy
-airs. No wonder Ellen was scared to ask you. Look here, girl, Ellen and I want
-to marry each other. That&rsquo;s plain English, isn&rsquo;t it? Got that? And
-Ellen says she can&rsquo;t unless you give her back some tom-fool promise she
-made. Come now, will you do it? Will you do it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman bounced up and seized her reluctant hand.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good! I knew you would&mdash;I told Ellen you would. I knew it would
-only take a minute. Now, girl, you go home and tell Ellen, and we&rsquo;ll have
-a wedding in a fortnight and you&rsquo;ll come and live with us. We
-shan&rsquo;t leave you to roost on that hill-top like a lonely
-crow&mdash;don&rsquo;t you worry. I know you hate me, but, Lord, it&rsquo;ll be
-great fun living with some one that hates me. Life&rsquo;ll have some spice in
-it after this. Ellen will roast me and you&rsquo;ll freeze me. I won&rsquo;t
-have a dull moment.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary did not condescend to tell him that nothing would ever induce her to
-live in his house. She let him go striding back to the Glen, oozing delight and
-complacency, and she walked slowly up the hill home. She had known this was
-coming ever since she had returned from Kingsport, and found Norman Douglas
-established as a frequent evening caller. His name was never mentioned between
-her and Ellen, but the very avoidance of it was significant. It was not in
-Rosemary&rsquo;s nature to feel bitter, or she would have felt very bitter. She
-was coldly civil to Norman, and she made no difference in any way with Ellen.
-But Ellen had not found much comfort in her second courtship.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She was in the garden, attended by St. George, when Rosemary came home. The two
-sisters met in the dahlia walk. St. George sat down on the gravel walk between
-them and folded his glossy black tail gracefully around his white paws, with
-all the indifference of a well-fed, well-bred, well-groomed cat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Did you ever see such dahlias?&rdquo; demanded Ellen proudly.
-&ldquo;They are just the finest we&rsquo;ve ever had.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary had never cared for dahlias. Their presence in the garden was her
-concession to Ellen&rsquo;s taste. She noticed one huge mottled one of crimson
-and yellow that lorded it over all the others.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That dahlia,&rdquo; she said, pointing to it, &ldquo;is exactly like
-Norman Douglas. It might easily be his twin brother.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen&rsquo;s dark-browed face flushed. She admired the dahlia in question, but
-she knew Rosemary did not, and that no compliment was intended. But she dared
-not resent Rosemary&rsquo;s speech&mdash;poor Ellen dared not resent anything
-just then. And it was the first time Rosemary had ever mentioned Norman&rsquo;s
-name to her. She felt that this portended something.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I met Norman Douglas in the valley,&rdquo; said Rosemary, looking
-straight at her sister, &ldquo;and he told me you and he wanted to be
-married&mdash;if I would give you permission.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes? What did you say?&rdquo; asked Ellen, trying to speak naturally and
-off-handedly, and failing completely. She could not meet Rosemary&rsquo;s eyes.
-She looked down at St. George&rsquo;s sleek back and felt horribly afraid.
-Rosemary had either said she would or she wouldn&rsquo;t. If she would Ellen
-would feel so ashamed and remorseful that she would be a very uncomfortable
-bride-elect; and if she wouldn&rsquo;t&mdash;well, Ellen had once learned to
-live without Norman Douglas, but she had forgotten the lesson and felt that she
-could never learn it again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I said that as far as I was concerned you were at full liberty to marry
-each other as soon as you liked,&rdquo; said Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Thank you,&rdquo; said Ellen, still looking at St. George.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary&rsquo;s face softened.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope you&rsquo;ll be happy, Ellen,&rdquo; she said gently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Rosemary,&rdquo; Ellen looked up in distress, &ldquo;I&rsquo;m so
-ashamed&mdash;I don&rsquo;t deserve it&mdash;after all I said to
-you&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We won&rsquo;t speak about that,&rdquo; said Rosemary hurriedly and
-decidedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But&mdash;but,&rdquo; persisted Ellen, &ldquo;you are free now,
-too&mdash;and it&rsquo;s not too late&mdash;John Meredith&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen West!&rdquo; Rosemary had a little spark of temper under all her
-sweetness and it flashed forth now in her blue eyes. &ldquo;Have you quite lost
-your senses in <i>every</i> respect? Do you suppose for an instant that <i>I</i> am
-going to go to John Meredith and say meekly, &lsquo;Please, sir, I&rsquo;ve
-changed my mind and please, sir, I hope you haven&rsquo;t changed yours.&rsquo;
-Is that what you want me to do?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;no&mdash;but a little&mdash;encouragement&mdash;he would come
-back&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Never. He despises me&mdash;and rightly. No more of this, Ellen. I bear
-you no grudge&mdash;marry whom you like. But no meddling in my affairs.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then you must come and live with me,&rdquo; said Ellen. &ldquo;I shall
-not leave you here alone.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you really think that I would go and live in Norman Douglas&rsquo;s
-house?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why not?&rdquo; cried Ellen, half angrily, despite her humiliation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary began to laugh.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen, I thought you had a sense of humour. Can you see me doing
-it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t see why you wouldn&rsquo;t. His house is big
-enough&mdash;you&rsquo;d have your share of it to yourself&mdash;he
-wouldn&rsquo;t interfere.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen, the thing is not to be thought of. Don&rsquo;t bring this up
-again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then,&rdquo; said Ellen coldly, and determinedly, &ldquo;I shall not
-marry him. I shall not leave you here alone. That is all there is to be said
-about it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense, Ellen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is not nonsense. It is my firm decision. It would be absurd for you
-to think of living here by yourself&mdash;a mile from any other house. If you
-won&rsquo;t come with me I&rsquo;ll stay with you. Now, we won&rsquo;t argue
-the matter, so don&rsquo;t try.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I shall leave Norman to do the arguing,&rdquo; said Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>I&rsquo;ll</i> deal with Norman. I can manage <i>him</i>. I would never have asked
-you to give me back my promise&mdash;never&mdash;but I had to tell Norman why I
-couldn&rsquo;t marry him and he said <i>he</i> would ask you. I couldn&rsquo;t prevent
-him. You need not suppose you are the only person in the world who possesses
-self-respect. I never dreamed of marrying and leaving you here alone. And
-you&rsquo;ll find I can be as determined as yourself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary turned away and went into the house, with a shrug of her shoulders.
-Ellen looked down at St. George, who had never blinked an eyelash or stirred a
-whisker during the whole interview.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;St. George, this world would be a dull place without the men, I&rsquo;ll
-admit, but I&rsquo;m almost tempted to wish there wasn&rsquo;t one of &lsquo;em
-in it. Look at the trouble and bother they&rsquo;ve made right here,
-George&mdash;torn our happy old life completely up by the roots, Saint. John
-Meredith began it and Norman Douglas has finished it. And now both of them have
-to go into limbo. Norman is the only man I ever met who agrees with me that the
-Kaiser of Germany is the most dangerous creature alive on this earth&mdash;and
-I can&rsquo;t marry this sensible person because my sister is stubborn and
-I&rsquo;m stubborner. Mark my words, St. George, the minister would come back
-if she raised her little finger. But she won&rsquo;t George&mdash;she&rsquo;ll
-never do it&mdash;she won&rsquo;t even crook it&mdash;and I don&rsquo;t dare
-meddle, Saint. I won&rsquo;t sulk, George; Rosemary didn&rsquo;t sulk, so
-I&rsquo;m determined I won&rsquo;t either, Saint; Norman will tear up the turf,
-but the long and short of it is, St. George, that all of us old fools must just
-stop thinking of marrying. Well, well, &lsquo;despair is a free man, hope is a
-slave,&rsquo; Saint. So now come into the house, George, and I&rsquo;ll solace
-you with a saucerful of cream. Then there will be one happy and contented
-creature on this hill at least.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap33"></a>CHAPTER XXXIII.<br />
-CARL IS&mdash;NOT&mdash;WHIPPED</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is something I think I ought to tell you,&rdquo; said Mary Vance
-mysteriously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She and Faith and Una were walking arm in arm through the village, having
-foregathered at Mr. Flagg&rsquo;s store. Una and Faith exchanged looks which
-said, &ldquo;<i>Now</i> something disagreeable is coming.&rdquo; When Mary Vance
-thought she ought to tell them things there was seldom much pleasure in the
-hearing. They often wondered why they kept on liking Mary Vance&mdash;for like
-her they did, in spite of everything. To be sure, she was generally a
-stimulating and agreeable companion. If only she would not have those
-convictions that it was her duty to tell them things!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you know that Rosemary West won&rsquo;t marry your pa because she
-thinks you are such a wild lot? She&rsquo;s afraid she couldn&rsquo;t bring you
-up right and so she turned him down.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una&rsquo;s heart thrilled with secret exultation. She was very glad to hear
-that Miss West would not marry her father. But Faith was rather disappointed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How do you know?&rdquo; she asked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, everybody&rsquo;s saying it. I heard Mrs. Elliott talking it over
-with Mrs. Doctor. They thought I was too far away to hear, but I&rsquo;ve got
-ears like a cat&rsquo;s. Mrs. Elliott said she hadn&rsquo;t a doubt that
-Rosemary was afraid to try stepmothering you because you&rsquo;d got such a
-reputation. Your pa never goes up the hill now. Neither does Norman Douglas.
-Folks say Ellen has jilted him just to get square with him for jilting her ages
-ago. But Norman is going about declaring he&rsquo;ll get her yet. And I think
-you ought to know you&rsquo;ve spoiled your pa&rsquo;s match and <i>I</i> think
-it&rsquo;s a pity, for he&rsquo;s bound to marry somebody before long, and
-Rosemary West would have been the best wife <i>I</i> know of for him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You told me all stepmothers were cruel and wicked,&rdquo; said Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh&mdash;well,&rdquo; said Mary rather confusedly, &ldquo;they&rsquo;re
-mostly awful cranky, I know. But Rosemary West couldn&rsquo;t be very mean to
-any one. I tell you if your pa turns round and marries Emmeline Drew
-you&rsquo;ll wish you&rsquo;d behaved yourselves better and not frightened
-Rosemary out of it. It&rsquo;s awful that you&rsquo;ve got such a reputation
-that no decent woman&rsquo;ll marry your pa on account of you. Of course,
-<i>I</i> know that half the yarns that are told about you ain&rsquo;t true. But
-give a dog a bad name. Why, some folks are saying that it was Jerry and Carl
-that threw the stones through Mrs. Stimson&rsquo;s window the other night when
-it was really them two Boyd boys. But I&rsquo;m afraid it was Carl that put the
-eel in old Mrs. Carr&rsquo;s buggy, though I said at first I wouldn&rsquo;t
-believe it until I&rsquo;d better proof than old Kitty Alec&rsquo;s word. I
-told Mrs. Elliott so right to her face.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What did Carl do?&rdquo; cried Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, they say&mdash;now, mind, I&rsquo;m only telling you what people
-say&mdash;so there&rsquo;s no use in your blaming me for it&mdash;that Carl and
-a lot of other boys were fishing eels over the bridge one evening last week.
-Mrs. Carr drove past in that old rattletrap buggy of hers with the open back.
-And Carl he just up and threw a big eel into the back. When poor old Mrs. Carr
-was driving up the hill by Ingleside that eel came squirming out between her
-feet. She thought it was a snake and she just give one awful screech and stood
-up and jumped clean over the wheels. The horse bolted, but it went home and no
-damage was done. But Mrs. Carr jarred her legs most terrible, and has had
-nervous spasms ever since whenever she thinks of the eel. Say, it was a rotten
-trick to play on the poor old soul. She&rsquo;s a decent body, if she is as
-queer as Dick&rsquo;s hat band.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith and Una looked at each other again. This was a matter for the
-Good-Conduct Club. They would not talk it over with Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There goes your pa,&rdquo; said Mary as Mr. Meredith passed them,
-&ldquo;and never seeing us no more&rsquo;n if we weren&rsquo;t here. Well,
-I&rsquo;m getting so&rsquo;s I don&rsquo;t mind it. But there are folks who
-do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith had not seen them, but he was not walking along in his usual
-dreamy and abstracted fashion. He strode up the hill in agitation and distress.
-Mrs. Alec Davis had just told him the story of Carl and the eel. She had been
-very indignant about it. Old Mrs. Carr was her third cousin. Mr. Meredith was
-more than indignant. He was hurt and shocked. He had not thought Carl would do
-anything like this. He was not inclined to be hard on pranks of heedlessness or
-forgetfulness, but <i>this</i> was different. <i>This</i> had a nasty tang in it. When he
-reached home he found Carl on the lawn, patiently studying the habits and
-customs of a colony of wasps. Calling him into the study Mr. Meredith
-confronted him, with a sterner face than any of his children had ever seen
-before, and asked him if the story were true.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Carl, flushing, but meeting his father&rsquo;s eyes
-bravely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith groaned. He had hoped that there had been at least exaggeration.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Tell me the whole matter,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The boys were fishing for eels over the bridge,&rdquo; said Carl.
-&ldquo;Link Drew had caught a whopper&mdash;I mean an awful big one&mdash;the
-biggest eel I ever saw. He caught it right at the start and it had been lying
-in his basket a long time, still as still. I thought it was dead, honest I did.
-Then old Mrs. Carr drove over the bridge and she called us all young varmints
-and told us to go home. And we hadn&rsquo;t said a word to her, father, truly.
-So when she drove back again, after going to the store, the boys dared me to
-put Link&rsquo;s eel in her buggy. I thought it was so dead it couldn&rsquo;t
-hurt her and I threw it in. Then the eel came to life on the hill and we heard
-her scream and saw her jump out. I was awful sorry. That&rsquo;s all,
-father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was not quite as bad as Mr. Meredith had feared, but it was quite bad
-enough. &ldquo;I must punish you, Carl,&rdquo; he said sorrowfully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I know, father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&mdash;I must whip you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl winced. He had never been whipped. Then, seeing how badly his father felt,
-he said cheerfully,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right, father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith misunderstood his cheerfulness and thought him insensible. He told
-Carl to come to the study after supper, and when the boy had gone out he flung
-himself into his chair and groaned again. He dreaded the evening sevenfold more
-than Carl did. The poor minister did not even know what he should whip his boy
-with. What was used to whip boys? Rods? Canes? No, that would be too brutal. A
-timber switch, then? And he, John Meredith, must hie him to the woods and cut
-one. It was an abominable thought. Then a picture presented itself unbidden to
-his mind. He saw Mrs. Carr&rsquo;s wizened, nut-cracker little face at the
-appearance of that reviving eel&mdash;he saw her sailing witch-like over the
-buggy wheels. Before he could prevent himself the minister laughed. Then he was
-angry with himself and angrier still with Carl. He would get that switch at
-once&mdash;and it must not be too limber, after all.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl was talking the matter over in the graveyard with Faith and Una, who had
-just come home. They were horrified at the idea of his being whipped&mdash;and
-by father, who had never done such a thing! But they agreed soberly that it was
-just.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You know it was a dreadful thing to do,&rdquo; sighed Faith. &ldquo;And
-you never owned up in the club.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I forgot,&rdquo; said Carl. &ldquo;Besides, I didn&rsquo;t think any
-harm came of it. I didn&rsquo;t know she jarred her legs. But I&rsquo;m to be
-whipped and that will make things square.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will it hurt&mdash;very much?&rdquo; said Una, slipping her hand into
-Carl&rsquo;s.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, not so much, I guess,&rdquo; said Carl gamely. &ldquo;Anyhow,
-I&rsquo;m not going to cry, no matter how much it hurts. It would make father
-feel so bad, if I did. He&rsquo;s all cut up now. I wish I could whip myself
-hard enough and save him doing it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-After supper, at which Carl had eaten little and Mr. Meredith nothing at all,
-both went silently into the study. The switch lay on the table. Mr. Meredith
-had had a bad time getting a switch to suit him. He cut one, then felt it was
-too slender. Carl had done a really indefensible thing. Then he cut
-another&mdash;it was far too thick. After all, Carl had thought the eel was
-dead. The third one suited him better; but as he picked it up from the table it
-seemed very thick and heavy&mdash;more like a stick than a switch.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hold out your hand,&rdquo; he said to Carl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl threw back his head and held out his hand unflinchingly. But he was not
-very old and he could not quite keep a little fear out of his eyes. Mr.
-Meredith looked down into those eyes&mdash;why, they were Cecilia&rsquo;s
-eyes&mdash;her very eyes&mdash;and in them was the selfsame expression he had
-once seen in Cecilia&rsquo;s eyes when she had come to him to tell him
-something she had been a little afraid to tell him. Here were her eyes in
-Carl&rsquo;s little, white face&mdash;and six weeks ago he had thought, through
-one endless, terrible night, that his little lad was dying.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith threw down the switch.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Go,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;I cannot whip you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl fled to the graveyard, feeling that the look on his father&rsquo;s face
-was worse than any whipping.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is it over so soon?&rdquo; asked Faith. She and Una had been holding
-hands and setting teeth on the Pollock tombstone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He&mdash;he didn&rsquo;t whip me at all,&rdquo; said Carl with a sob,
-&ldquo;and&mdash;I wish he had&mdash;and he&rsquo;s in there, feeling just
-awful.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una slipped away. Her heart yearned to comfort her father. As noiselessly as a
-little gray mouse she opened the study door and crept in. The room was dark
-with twilight. Her father was sitting at his desk. His back was towards
-her&mdash;his head was in his hands. He was talking to himself&mdash;broken,
-anguished words&mdash;but Una heard&mdash;heard and understood, with the sudden
-illumination that comes to sensitive, unmothered children. As silently as she
-had come in she slipped out and closed the door. John Meredith went on talking
-out his pain in what he deemed his undisturbed solitude.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap34"></a>CHAPTER XXXIV.<br />
-UNA VISITS THE HILL</h2>
-
-<p>
-Una went upstairs. Carl and Faith were already on their way through the early
-moonlight to Rainbow Valley, having heard therefrom the elfin lilt of
-Jerry&rsquo;s jews-harp and having guessed that the Blythes were there and fun
-afoot. Una had no wish to go. She sought her own room first where she sat down
-on her bed and had a little cry. She did not want anybody to come in her dear
-mother&rsquo;s place. She did not want a stepmother who would hate her and make
-her father hate her. But father was so desperately unhappy&mdash;and if she
-could do any anything to make him happier she <i>must</i> do it. There was only one
-thing she could do&mdash;and she had known the moment she had left the study
-that she must do it. But it was a very hard thing to do.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-After Una cried her heart out she wiped her eyes and went to the spare room. It
-was dark and rather musty, for the blind had not been drawn up nor the window
-opened for a long time. Aunt Martha was no fresh-air fiend. But as nobody ever
-thought of shutting a door in the manse this did not matter so much, save when
-some unfortunate minister came to stay all night and was compelled to breathe
-the spare room atmosphere.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was a closet in the spare room and far back in the closet a gray silk
-dress was hanging. Una went into the closet and shut the door, went down on her
-knees and pressed her face against the soft silken folds. It had been her
-mother&rsquo;s wedding-dress. It was still full of a sweet, faint, haunting
-perfume, like lingering love. Una always felt very close to her mother
-there&mdash;as if she were kneeling at her feet with head in her lap. She went
-there once in a long while when life was <i>too</i> hard.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mother,&rdquo; she whispered to the gray silk gown, &ldquo;<i>I</i> will
-never forget you, mother, and I&rsquo;ll <i>always</i> love you best. But I have to do
-it, mother, because father is so very unhappy. I know you wouldn&rsquo;t want
-him to be unhappy. And I will be very good to her, mother, and try to love her,
-even if she is like Mary Vance said stepmothers always were.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una carried some fine, spiritual strength away from her secret shrine. She
-slept peacefully that night with the tear stains still glistening on her sweet,
-serious, little face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The next afternoon she put on her best dress and hat. They were shabby enough.
-Every other little girl in the Glen had new clothes that summer except Faith
-and Una. Mary Vance had a lovely dress of white embroidered lawn, with scarlet
-silk sash and shoulder bows. But to-day Una did not mind her shabbiness. She
-only wanted to be very neat. She washed her face carefully. She brushed her
-black hair until it was as smooth as satin. She tied her shoelaces carefully,
-having first sewed up two runs in her one pair of good stockings. She would
-have liked to black her shoes, but she could not find any blacking. Finally,
-she slipped away from the manse, down through Rainbow Valley, up through the
-whispering woods, and out to the road that ran past the house on the hill. It
-was quite a long walk and Una was tired and warm when she got there.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She saw Rosemary West sitting under a tree in the garden and stole past the
-dahlia beds to her. Rosemary had a book in her lap, but she was gazing afar
-across the harbour and her thoughts were sorrowful enough. Life had not been
-pleasant lately in the house on the hill. Ellen had not sulked&mdash;Ellen had
-been a brick. But things can be felt that are never said and at times the
-silence between the two women was intolerably eloquent. All the many familiar
-things that had once made life sweet had a flavour of bitterness now. Norman
-Douglas made periodical irruptions also, bullying and coaxing Ellen by turns.
-It would end, Rosemary believed, by his dragging Ellen off with him some day,
-and Rosemary felt that she would be almost glad when it happened. Existence
-would be horribly lonely then, but it would be no longer charged with dynamite.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She was roused from her unpleasant reverie by a timid little touch on her
-shoulder. Turning, she saw Una Meredith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Una, dear, did you walk up here in all this heat?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Una, &ldquo;I came to&mdash;I came to&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But she found it very hard to say what she had come to do. Her voice
-failed&mdash;her eyes filled with tears.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Una, little girl, what is the trouble? Don&rsquo;t be afraid to
-tell me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary put her arm around the thin little form and drew the child close to
-her. Her eyes were very beautiful&mdash;her touch so tender that Una found
-courage.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I came&mdash;to ask you&mdash;to marry father,&rdquo; she gasped.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary was silent for a moment from sheer dumbfounderment. She stared at Una
-blankly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, don&rsquo;t be angry, please, dear Miss West,&rdquo; said Una,
-pleadingly. &ldquo;You see, everybody is saying that you wouldn&rsquo;t marry
-father because we are so bad. He is <i>very</i> unhappy about it. So I thought I would
-come and tell you that we are never bad <i>on purpose</i>. And if you will only marry
-father we will all try to be good and do just what you tell us. I&rsquo;m <i>sure</i>
-you won&rsquo;t have any trouble with us. <i>Please</i>, Miss West.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary had been thinking rapidly. Gossiping surmise, she saw, had put this
-mistaken idea into Una&rsquo;s mind. She must be perfectly frank and sincere
-with the child.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Una, dear,&rdquo; she said softly. &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t because of you
-poor little souls that I cannot be your father&rsquo;s wife. I never thought of
-such a thing. You are not bad&mdash;I never supposed you were.
-There&mdash;there was another reason altogether, Una.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t you like father?&rdquo; asked Una, lifting reproachful eyes.
-&ldquo;Oh, Miss West, you don&rsquo;t know how nice he is. I&rsquo;m sure
-he&rsquo;d make you a <i>good</i> husband.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Even in the midst of her perplexity and distress Rosemary couldn&rsquo;t help a
-twisted, little smile.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, don&rsquo;t laugh, Miss West,&rdquo; Una cried passionately.
-&ldquo;Father feels <i>dreadful</i> about it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think you&rsquo;re mistaken, dear,&rdquo; said Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m not. I&rsquo;m <i>sure</i> I&rsquo;m not. Oh, Miss West, father was
-going to whip Carl yesterday&mdash;Carl had been naughty&mdash;and father
-couldn&rsquo;t do it because you see he had no <i>practice</i> in whipping. So when
-Carl came out and told us father felt so bad, I slipped into the study to see
-if I could help him&mdash;he <i>likes</i> me to comfort him, Miss West&mdash;and he
-didn&rsquo;t hear me come in and I heard what he was saying. I&rsquo;ll tell
-you, Miss West, if you&rsquo;ll let me whisper it in your ear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una whispered earnestly. Rosemary&rsquo;s face turned crimson. So John Meredith
-still cared. <i>He</i> hadn&rsquo;t changed his mind. And he must care intensely if he
-had said that&mdash;care more than she had ever supposed he did. She sat still
-for a moment, stroking Una&rsquo;s hair. Then she said,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will you take a little letter from me to your father, Una?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, are you going to marry him, Miss West?&rdquo; asked Una eagerly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Perhaps&mdash;if he really wants me to,&rdquo; said Rosemary, blushing
-again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m glad&mdash;I&rsquo;m glad,&rdquo; said Una bravely. Then she
-looked up, with quivering lips. &ldquo;Oh, Miss West, you won&rsquo;t turn
-father against us&mdash;you won&rsquo;t make him hate us, will you?&rdquo; she
-said beseechingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary stared again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Una Meredith! Do you think I would do such a thing? Whatever put such an
-idea into your head?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mary Vance said stepmothers were all like that&mdash;and that they all
-hated their stepchildren and made their father hate them&mdash;she said they
-just couldn&rsquo;t help it&mdash;just being stepmothers made them like
-that&rdquo;&mdash;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You poor child! And yet you came up here and asked me to marry your
-father because you wanted to make him happy? You&rsquo;re a darling&mdash;a
-heroine&mdash;as Ellen would say, you&rsquo;re a brick. Now listen to me, very
-closely, dearest. Mary Vance is a silly little girl who doesn&rsquo;t know very
-much and she is dreadfully mistaken about some things. I would never dream of
-trying to turn your father against you. I would love you all dearly. I
-don&rsquo;t want to take your own mother&rsquo;s place&mdash;she must always
-have that in your hearts. But neither have I any intention of being a
-stepmother. I want to be your friend and helper and <i>chum</i>. Don&rsquo;t you think
-that would be nice, Una&mdash;if you and Faith and Carl and Jerry could just
-think of me as a good jolly chum&mdash;a big older sister?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, it would be lovely,&rdquo; cried Una, with a transfigured face. She
-flung her arms impulsively round Rosemary&rsquo;s neck. She was so happy that
-she felt as if she could fly on wings.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do the others&mdash;do Faith and the boys have the same idea you had
-about stepmothers?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. Faith never believed Mary Vance. I was dreadfully foolish to believe
-her, either. Faith loves you already&mdash;she has loved you ever since poor
-Adam was eaten. And Jerry and Carl will think it is jolly. Oh, Miss West, when
-you come to live with us, will you&mdash;could you&mdash;teach me to
-cook&mdash;a little&mdash;and sew&mdash;and&mdash;and&mdash;and do things? I
-don&rsquo;t know anything. I won&rsquo;t be much trouble&mdash;I&rsquo;ll try
-to learn fast.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Darling, I&rsquo;ll teach you and help you all I can. Now, you
-won&rsquo;t say a word to anybody about this, will you&mdash;not even to Faith,
-until your father himself tells you you may? And you&rsquo;ll stay and have tea
-with me?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, thank you&mdash;but&mdash;but&mdash;I think I&rsquo;d rather go
-right back and take the letter to father,&rdquo; faltered Una. &ldquo;You see,
-he&rsquo;ll be glad that much <i>sooner</i>, Miss West.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I see,&rdquo; said Rosemary. She went to the house, wrote a note and
-gave it to Una. When that small damsel had run off, a palpitating bundle of
-happiness, Rosemary went to Ellen, who was shelling peas on the back porch.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;Una Meredith has just been here to ask me
-to marry her father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen looked up and read her sister&rsquo;s face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And you&rsquo;re going to?&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s quite likely.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen went on shelling peas for a few minutes. Then she suddenly put her hands
-up to her own face. There were tears in her black-browed eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&mdash;I hope we&rsquo;ll all be happy,&rdquo; she said between a sob
-and a laugh.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Down at the manse Una Meredith, warm, rosy, triumphant, marched boldly into her
-father&rsquo;s study and laid a letter on the desk before him. His pale face
-flushed as he saw the clear, fine handwriting he knew so well. He opened the
-letter. It was very short&mdash;but he shed twenty years as he read it.
-Rosemary asked him if he could meet her that evening at sunset by the spring in
-Rainbow Valley.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap35"></a>CHAPTER XXXV.<br />
-&ldquo;LET THE PIPER COME&rdquo;</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And so,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, &ldquo;the double wedding is to be
-sometime about the middle of this month.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was a faint chill in the air of the early September evening, so Anne had
-lighted her ever ready fire of driftwood in the big living room, and she and
-Miss Cornelia basked in its fairy flicker.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is so delightful&mdash;especially in regard to Mr. Meredith and
-Rosemary,&rdquo; said Anne. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m as happy in the thought of it, as
-I was when I was getting married myself. I felt exactly like a bride again last
-evening when I was up on the hill seeing Rosemary&rsquo;s trousseau.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They tell me her things are fine enough for a princess,&rdquo; said
-Susan from a shadowy corner where she was cuddling her brown boy. &ldquo;I have
-been invited up to see them also and I intend to go some evening. I understand
-that Rosemary is to wear white silk and a veil, but Ellen is to be married in
-navy blue. I have no doubt, Mrs. Dr. dear, that that is very sensible of her,
-but for my own part I have always felt that if I were ever married <i>I</i>
-would prefer the white and the veil, as being more bride-like.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A vision of Susan in &ldquo;white and a veil&rdquo; presented itself before
-Anne&rsquo;s inner vision and was almost too much for her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;As for Mr. Meredith,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, &ldquo;even his
-engagement has made a different man of him. He isn&rsquo;t half so dreamy and
-absent-minded, believe me. I was so relieved when I heard that he had decided
-to close the manse and let the children visit round while he was away on his
-honeymoon. If he had left them and old Aunt Martha there alone for a month I
-should have expected to wake every morning and see the place burned
-down.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Aunt Martha and Jerry are coming here,&rdquo; said Anne. &ldquo;Carl is
-going to Elder Clow&rsquo;s. I haven&rsquo;t heard where the girls are
-going.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I&rsquo;m going to take them,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;Of
-course, I was glad to, but Mary would have given me no peace till I asked them
-any way. The Ladies&rsquo; Aid is going to clean the manse from top to bottom
-before the bride and groom come back, and Norman Douglas has arranged to fill
-the cellar with vegetables. Nobody ever saw or heard anything quite like Norman
-Douglas these days, believe <i>me</i>. He&rsquo;s so tickled that he&rsquo;s going to
-marry Ellen West after wanting her all his life. If <i>I</i> was
-Ellen&mdash;but then, I&rsquo;m not, and if she is satisfied I can very well
-be. I heard her say years ago when she was a schoolgirl that she didn&rsquo;t
-want a tame puppy for a husband. There&rsquo;s nothing tame about Norman,
-believe <i>me</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The sun was setting over Rainbow Valley. The pond was wearing a wonderful
-tissue of purple and gold and green and crimson. A faint blue haze rested on
-the eastern hill, over which a great, pale, round moon was just floating up
-like a silver bubble.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They were all there, squatted in the little open glade&mdash;Faith and Una,
-Jerry and Carl, Jem and Walter, Nan and Di, and Mary Vance. They had been
-having a special celebration, for it would be Jem&rsquo;s last evening in
-Rainbow Valley. On the morrow he would leave for Charlottetown to attend
-Queen&rsquo;s Academy. Their charmed circle would be broken; and, in spite of
-the jollity of their little festival, there was a hint of sorrow in every gay
-young heart.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;See&mdash;there is a great golden palace over there in the
-sunset,&rdquo; said Walter, pointing. &ldquo;Look at the shining
-tower&mdash;and the crimson banners streaming from them. Perhaps a conqueror is
-riding home from battle&mdash;and they are hanging them out to do honour to
-him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I wish we had the old days back again,&rdquo; exclaimed Jem.
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;d love to be a soldier&mdash;a great, triumphant general.
-I&rsquo;d give <i>everything</i> to see a big battle.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Well, Jem was to be a soldier and see a greater battle than had ever been
-fought in the world; but that was as yet far in the future; and the mother,
-whose first-born son he was, was wont to look on her boys and thank God that
-the &ldquo;brave days of old,&rdquo; which Jem longed for, were gone for ever,
-and that never would it be necessary for the sons of Canada to ride forth to
-battle &ldquo;for the ashes of their fathers and the temples of their
-gods.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The shadow of the Great Conflict had not yet made felt any forerunner of its
-chill. The lads who were to fight, and perhaps fall, on the fields of France
-and Flanders, Gallipoli and Palestine, were still roguish schoolboys with a
-fair life in prospect before them: the girls whose hearts were to be wrung were
-yet fair little maidens a-star with hopes and dreams.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Slowly the banners of the sunset city gave up their crimson and gold; slowly
-the conqueror&rsquo;s pageant faded out. Twilight crept over the valley and the
-little group grew silent. Walter had been reading again that day in his beloved
-book of myths and he remembered how he had once fancied the Pied Piper coming
-down the valley on an evening just like this.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He began to speak dreamily, partly because he wanted to thrill his companions a
-little, partly because something apart from him seemed to be speaking through
-his lips.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The Piper is coming nearer,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;he is nearer than he
-was that evening I saw him before. His long, shadowy cloak is blowing around
-him. He pipes&mdash;he pipes&mdash;and we must follow&mdash;Jem and Carl and
-Jerry and I&mdash;round and round the world.
-Listen&mdash;listen&mdash;can&rsquo;t you hear his wild music?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The girls shivered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You know you&rsquo;re only pretending,&rdquo; protested Mary Vance,
-&ldquo;and I wish you wouldn&rsquo;t. You make it too real. I hate that old
-Piper of yours.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Jem sprang up with a gay laugh. He stood up on a little hillock, tall and
-splendid, with his open brow and his fearless eyes. There were thousands like
-him all over the land of the maple.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let the Piper come and welcome,&rdquo; he cried, waving his hand.
-&ldquo;<i>I&rsquo;ll</i> follow him gladly round and round the world.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<h3>THE END</h3>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div style='display:block;margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RAINBOW VALLEY ***</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0;'>This file should be named 5343-h.htm or 5343-h.zip</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0;'>This and all associated files of various formats will be found in https://www.gutenberg.org/5/3/4/5343/</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</body>
-
-</html>
-
-
diff --git a/5343-h/images/cover.jpg~ b/5343-h/images/cover.jpg~
deleted file mode 100644
index d5fece5..0000000
--- a/5343-h/images/cover.jpg~
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
index 6312041..b5dba15 100644
--- a/LICENSE.txt
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -1,4 +1,4 @@
-This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+This book, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
@@ -7,5 +7,5 @@ the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
-this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+this book outside of the United States should confirm copyright
status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
index 51d4149..350ee9a 100644
--- a/README.md
+++ b/README.md
@@ -1,2 +1,2 @@
Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
-eBook #5343 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/5343)
+book #5343 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/5343)
diff --git a/old/5343.txt b/old/5343.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index c2f1956..0000000
--- a/old/5343.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,9240 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Rainbow Valley, by Lucy Maud Montgomery
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-Title: Rainbow Valley
-
-Author: Lucy Maud Montgomery
-
-
-Release Date: March, 2004 [EBook #5343]
-This file was first posted on July 3, 2002
-Last Updated: April 15, 2013
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: ASCII
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RAINBOW VALLEY ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Bernard J. Farber, Carmen Baxter, Dona Rucci,
-Elizabeth Morton, Rebekah Neely, Joe Johnson, Joan Chovan,
-Judith Fetterolf, Mary Nuzzo, Sally Drake, Sally Starks,
-Steve Callis, Virginia Mohlere-Dellinger, Mary Mark
-Ockerbloom and Ben Crowder
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-RAINBOW VALLEY
-
-By L. M. Montgomery
-
-
-Author of "Anne of Green Gables," "Anne of the Island," "Anne's House of
-Dreams," "The Story Girl," "The Watchman," etc.
-
-________________________________________________________________________
-This book has been put on-line as part of the BUILD-A-BOOK Initiative at
-the Celebration of Women Writers through the combined work of Bernard J.
-Farber, Carmen Baxter, Dona Rucci, Elizabeth Morton, Rebekah Neely, Joe
-Johnson, Joan Chovan, Judith Fetterolf, Mary Nuzzo, Sally Drake,
-Sally Starks, Steve Callis, Virginia Mohlere-Dellinger and Mary Mark
-Ockerbloom.
-
-http://digital.library.upenn.edu/women/
-
-Reformatted by Ben Crowder
-________________________________________________________________________
-
-
- "The thoughts of youth are long, long thoughts."
- --LONGFELLOW
-
-TO THE MEMORY OF
-
-GOLDWIN LAPP, ROBERT BROOKES AND MORLEY SHIER
-
-WHO MADE THE SUPREME SACRIFICE THAT THE HAPPY VALLEYS OF THEIR HOME LAND
-MIGHT BE KEPT SACRED FROM THE RAVAGE OF THE INVADER
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
- I. Home Again
- II. Sheer Gossip
- III. The Ingleside Children
- IV. The Manse Children
- V. The Advent of Mary Vanse
- VI. Mary Stays at the Manse
- VII. A Fishy Episode
- VIII. Miss Cornelia Intervenes
- IX. Una Intervenes
- X. The Manse Girls Clean House
- XI. A Dreadful Discovery
- XII. An Explanation and a Dare
- XIII. The House on the Hill
- XIV. Mrs. Alec Davis Makes a Call
- XV. More Gossip
- XVI. Tit for Tat
- XVII. A Double Victory
- XVIII. Mary Brings Evil Tidings
- XIX. Poor Adam!
- XX. Faith Makes a Friend
- XXI. The Impossible Word
- XXII. St. George Knows All About It
- XXIII. The Good-Conduct Club
- XXIV. A Charitable Impulse
- XXV. Another Scandal and Another "Explanation"
- XXVI. Miss Cornelia Gets a New Point of View
- XXVII. A Sacred Concert
- XXVIII. A Fast Day
- XXIX. A Weird Tale
- XXX. The Ghost on the Dyke
- XXXI. Carl Does Penance
- XXXII. Two Stubborn People
- XXXIII. Carl Is--not--whipped
- XXXIV. Una Visits the Hill
- XXXV. "Let the Piper Come"
-
-
-
-
-RAINBOW VALLEY
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I. HOME AGAIN
-
-It was a clear, apple-green evening in May, and Four Winds Harbour was
-mirroring back the clouds of the golden west between its softly dark
-shores. The sea moaned eerily on the sand-bar, sorrowful even in spring,
-but a sly, jovial wind came piping down the red harbour road along which
-Miss Cornelia's comfortable, matronly figure was making its way towards
-the village of Glen St. Mary. Miss Cornelia was rightfully Mrs. Marshall
-Elliott, and had been Mrs. Marshall Elliott for thirteen years, but even
-yet more people referred to her as Miss Cornelia than as Mrs.
-Elliott. The old name was dear to her old friends, only one of them
-contemptuously dropped it. Susan Baker, the gray and grim and faithful
-handmaiden of the Blythe family at Ingleside, never lost an opportunity
-of calling her "Mrs. Marshall Elliott," with the most killing and
-pointed emphasis, as if to say "You wanted to be Mrs. and Mrs. you shall
-be with a vengeance as far as I am concerned."
-
-Miss Cornelia was going up to Ingleside to see Dr. and Mrs. Blythe, who
-were just home from Europe. They had been away for three months, having
-left in February to attend a famous medical congress in London; and
-certain things, which Miss Cornelia was anxious to discuss, had taken
-place in the Glen during their absence. For one thing, there was a new
-family in the manse. And such a family! Miss Cornelia shook her head
-over them several times as she walked briskly along.
-
-Susan Baker and the Anne Shirley of other days saw her coming, as they
-sat on the big veranda at Ingleside, enjoying the charm of the cat's
-light, the sweetness of sleepy robins whistling among the twilit maples,
-and the dance of a gusty group of daffodils blowing against the old,
-mellow, red brick wall of the lawn.
-
-Anne was sitting on the steps, her hands clasped over her knee, looking,
-in the kind dusk, as girlish as a mother of many has any right to be;
-and the beautiful gray-green eyes, gazing down the harbour road, were
-as full of unquenchable sparkle and dream as ever. Behind her, in the
-hammock, Rilla Blythe was curled up, a fat, roly-poly little creature
-of six years, the youngest of the Ingleside children. She had curly red
-hair and hazel eyes that were now buttoned up after the funny, wrinkled
-fashion in which Rilla always went to sleep.
-
-Shirley, "the little brown boy," as he was known in the family "Who's
-Who," was asleep in Susan's arms. He was brown-haired, brown-eyed and
-brown-skinned, with very rosy cheeks, and he was Susan's especial
-love. After his birth Anne had been very ill for a long time, and Susan
-"mothered" the baby with a passionate tenderness which none of the other
-children, dear as they were to her, had ever called out. Dr. Blythe had
-said that but for her he would never have lived.
-
-"I gave him life just as much as you did, Mrs. Dr. dear," Susan was wont
-to say. "He is just as much my baby as he is yours." And, indeed, it was
-always to Susan that Shirley ran, to be kissed for bumps, and rocked
-to sleep, and protected from well-deserved spankings. Susan had
-conscientiously spanked all the other Blythe children when she thought
-they needed it for their souls' good, but she would not spank Shirley
-nor allow his mother to do it. Once, Dr. Blythe had spanked him and
-Susan had been stormily indignant.
-
-"That man would spank an angel, Mrs. Dr. dear, that he would," she had
-declared bitterly; and she would not make the poor doctor a pie for
-weeks.
-
-She had taken Shirley with her to her brother's home during his parents'
-absence, while all the other children had gone to Avonlea, and she had
-three blessed months of him all to herself. Nevertheless, Susan was very
-glad to find herself back at Ingleside, with all her darlings around her
-again. Ingleside was her world and in it she reigned supreme. Even Anne
-seldom questioned her decisions, much to the disgust of Mrs. Rachel
-Lynde of Green Gables, who gloomily told Anne, whenever she visited Four
-Winds, that she was letting Susan get to be entirely too much of a boss
-and would live to rue it.
-
-"Here is Cornelia Bryant coming up the harbour road, Mrs. Dr. dear,"
-said Susan. "She will be coming up to unload three months' gossip on
-us."
-
-"I hope so," said Anne, hugging her knees. "I'm starving for Glen St.
-Mary gossip, Susan. I hope Miss Cornelia can tell me everything that
-has happened while we've been away--EVERYTHING--who has got born, or
-married, or drunk; who has died, or gone away, or come, or fought, or
-lost a cow, or found a beau. It's so delightful to be home again with
-all the dear Glen folks, and I want to know all about them. Why, I
-remember wondering, as I walked through Westminster Abbey which of her
-two especial beaux Millicent Drew would finally marry. Do you know,
-Susan, I have a dreadful suspicion that I love gossip."
-
-"Well, of course, Mrs. Dr. dear," admitted Susan, "every proper woman
-likes to hear the news. I am rather interested in Millicent Drew's case
-myself. I never had a beau, much less two, and I do not mind now, for
-being an old maid does not hurt when you get used to it. Millicent's
-hair always looks to me as if she had swept it up with a broom. But the
-men do not seem to mind that."
-
-"They see only her pretty, piquant, mocking, little face, Susan."
-
-"That may very well be, Mrs. Dr. dear. The Good Book says that favour is
-deceitful and beauty is vain, but I should not have minded finding that
-out for myself, if it had been so ordained. I have no doubt we will
-all be beautiful when we are angels, but what good will it do us then?
-Speaking of gossip, however, they do say that poor Mrs. Harrison Miller
-over harbour tried to hang herself last week."
-
-"Oh, Susan!"
-
-"Calm yourself, Mrs. Dr. dear. She did not succeed. But I really do not
-blame her for trying, for her husband is a terrible man. But she was
-very foolish to think of hanging herself and leaving the way clear for
-him to marry some other woman. If I had been in her shoes, Mrs. Dr.
-dear, I would have gone to work to worry him so that he would try
-to hang himself instead of me. Not that I hold with people hanging
-themselves under any circumstances, Mrs. Dr. dear."
-
-"What is the matter with Harrison Miller, anyway?" said Anne
-impatiently. "He is always driving some one to extremes."
-
-"Well, some people call it religion and some call it cussedness, begging
-your pardon, Mrs. Dr. dear, for using such a word. It seems they cannot
-make out which it is in Harrison's case. There are days when he
-growls at everybody because he thinks he is fore-ordained to eternal
-punishment. And then there are days when he says he does not care and
-goes and gets drunk. My own opinion is that he is not sound in his
-intellect, for none of that branch of the Millers were. His grandfather
-went out of his mind. He thought he was surrounded by big black spiders.
-They crawled over him and floated in the air about him. I hope I shall
-never go insane, Mrs. Dr. dear, and I do not think I will, because it is
-not a habit of the Bakers. But, if an all-wise Providence should decree
-it, I hope it will not take the form of big black spiders, for I loathe
-the animals. As for Mrs. Miller, I do not know whether she really
-deserves pity or not. There are some who say she just married Harrison
-to spite Richard Taylor, which seems to me a very peculiar reason
-for getting married. But then, of course, _I_ am no judge of things
-matrimonial, Mrs. Dr. dear. And there is Cornelia Bryant at the gate, so
-I will put this blessed brown baby on his bed and get my knitting."
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II. SHEER GOSSIP
-
-"Where are the other children?" asked Miss Cornelia, when the first
-greetings--cordial on her side, rapturous on Anne's, and dignified on
-Susan's--were over.
-
-"Shirley is in bed and Jem and Walter and the twins are down in their
-beloved Rainbow Valley," said Anne. "They just came home this afternoon,
-you know, and they could hardly wait until supper was over before
-rushing down to the valley. They love it above every spot on earth. Even
-the maple grove doesn't rival it in their affections."
-
-"I am afraid they love it too well," said Susan gloomily. "Little Jem
-said once he would rather go to Rainbow Valley than to heaven when he
-died, and that was not a proper remark."
-
-"I suppose they had a great time in Avonlea?" said Miss Cornelia.
-
-"Enormous. Marilla does spoil them terribly. Jem, in particular, can do
-no wrong in her eyes."
-
-"Miss Cuthbert must be an old lady now," said Miss Cornelia, getting out
-her knitting, so that she could hold her own with Susan. Miss Cornelia
-held that the woman whose hands were employed always had the advantage
-over the woman whose hands were not.
-
-"Marilla is eighty-five," said Anne with a sigh. "Her hair is
-snow-white. But, strange to say, her eyesight is better than it was when
-she was sixty."
-
-"Well, dearie, I'm real glad you're all back. I've been dreadful
-lonesome. But we haven't been dull in the Glen, believe ME. There hasn't
-been such an exciting spring in my time, as far as church matters go.
-We've got settled with a minister at last, Anne dearie."
-
-"The Reverend John Knox Meredith, Mrs. Dr. dear," said Susan, resolved
-not to let Miss Cornelia tell all the news.
-
-"Is he nice?" asked Anne interestedly.
-
-Miss Cornelia sighed and Susan groaned.
-
-"Yes, he's nice enough if that were all," said the former. "He is VERY
-nice--and very learned--and very spiritual. But, oh Anne dearie, he has
-no common sense!
-
-"How was it you called him, then?"
-
-"Well, there's no doubt he is by far the best preacher we ever had in
-Glen St. Mary church," said Miss Cornelia, veering a tack or two. "I
-suppose it is because he is so moony and absent-minded that he never got
-a town call. His trial sermon was simply wonderful, believe ME. Every
-one went mad about it--and his looks."
-
-"He is VERY comely, Mrs. Dr. dear, and when all is said and done, I DO
-like to see a well-looking man in the pulpit," broke in Susan, thinking
-it was time she asserted herself again.
-
-"Besides," said Miss Cornelia, "we were anxious to get settled. And Mr.
-Meredith was the first candidate we were all agreed on. Somebody had
-some objection to all the others. There was some talk of calling Mr.
-Folsom. He was a good preacher, too, but somehow people didn't care for
-his appearance. He was too dark and sleek."
-
-"He looked exactly like a great black tomcat, that he did, Mrs. Dr.
-dear," said Susan. "I never could abide such a man in the pulpit every
-Sunday."
-
-"Then Mr. Rogers came and he was like a chip in porridge--neither harm
-nor good," resumed Miss Cornelia. "But if he had preached like Peter and
-Paul it would have profited him nothing, for that was the day old Caleb
-Ramsay's sheep strayed into church and gave a loud 'ba-a-a' just as he
-announced his text. Everybody laughed, and poor Rogers had no chance
-after that. Some thought we ought to call Mr. Stewart, because he was so
-well educated. He could read the New Testament in five languages."
-
-"But I do not think he was any surer than other men of getting to heaven
-because of that," interjected Susan.
-
-"Most of us didn't like his delivery," said Miss Cornelia, ignoring
-Susan. "He talked in grunts, so to speak. And Mr. Arnett couldn't preach
-AT ALL. And he picked about the worst candidating text there is in the
-Bible--'Curse ye Meroz.'"
-
-"Whenever he got stuck for an idea, he would bang the Bible and shout
-very bitterly, 'Curse ye Meroz.' Poor Meroz got thoroughly cursed that
-day, whoever he was, Mrs. Dr. dear," said Susan.
-
-"The minister who is candidating can't be too careful what text he
-chooses," said Miss Cornelia solemnly. "I believe Mr. Pierson would have
-got the call if he had picked a different text. But when he announced 'I
-will lift my eyes to the hills' HE was done for. Every one grinned, for
-every one knew that those two Hill girls from the Harbour Head have been
-setting their caps for every single minister who came to the Glen for
-the last fifteen years. And Mr. Newman had too large a family."
-
-"He stayed with my brother-in-law, James Clow," said Susan. "'How many
-children have you got?' I asked him. 'Nine boys and a sister for each of
-them,' he said. 'Eighteen!' said I. 'Dear me, what a family!' And then
-he laughed and laughed. But I do not know why, Mrs. Dr. dear, and I am
-certain that eighteen children would be too many for any manse."
-
-"He had only ten children, Susan," explained Miss Cornelia, with
-contemptuous patience. "And ten good children would not be much worse
-for the manse and congregation than the four who are there now. Though
-I wouldn't say, Anne dearie, that they are so bad, either. I like
-them--everybody likes them. It's impossible to help liking them. They
-would be real nice little souls if there was anyone to look after their
-manners and teach them what is right and proper. For instance, at school
-the teacher says they are model children. But at home they simply run
-wild."
-
-"What about Mrs. Meredith?" asked Anne.
-
-"There's NO Mrs. Meredith. That is just the trouble. Mr. Meredith is
-a widower. His wife died four years ago. If we had known that I don't
-suppose we would have called him, for a widower is even worse in
-a congregation than a single man. But he was heard to speak of his
-children and we all supposed there was a mother, too. And when they came
-there was nobody but old Aunt Martha, as they call her. She's a cousin
-of Mr. Meredith's mother, I believe, and he took her in to save her from
-the poorhouse. She is seventy-five years old, half blind, and very deaf
-and very cranky."
-
-"And a very poor cook, Mrs. Dr. dear."
-
-"The worst possible manager for a manse," said Miss Cornelia bitterly.
-"Mr. Meredith won't get any other housekeeper because he says it would
-hurt Aunt Martha's feelings. Anne dearie, believe me, the state of that
-manse is something terrible. Everything is thick with dust and nothing
-is ever in its place. And we had painted and papered it all so nice
-before they came."
-
-"There are four children, you say?" asked Anne, beginning to mother them
-already in her heart.
-
-"Yes. They run up just like the steps of a stair. Gerald's the oldest.
-He's twelve and they call him Jerry. He's a clever boy. Faith is eleven.
-She is a regular tomboy but pretty as a picture, I must say."
-
-"She looks like an angel but she is a holy terror for mischief, Mrs. Dr.
-dear," said Susan solemnly. "I was at the manse one night last week and
-Mrs. James Millison was there, too. She had brought them up a dozen eggs
-and a little pail of milk--a VERY little pail, Mrs. Dr. dear. Faith
-took them and whisked down the cellar with them. Near the bottom of the
-stairs she caught her toe and fell the rest of the way, milk and eggs
-and all. You can imagine the result, Mrs. Dr. dear. But that child came
-up laughing. 'I don't know whether I'm myself or a custard pie,' she
-said. And Mrs. James Millison was very angry. She said she would never
-take another thing to the manse if it was to be wasted and destroyed in
-that fashion."
-
-"Maria Millison never hurt herself taking things to the manse,"
-sniffed Miss Cornelia. "She just took them that night as an excuse for
-curiosity. But poor Faith is always getting into scrapes. She is so
-heedless and impulsive."
-
-"Just like me. I'm going to like your Faith," said Anne decidedly.
-
-"She is full of spunk--and I do like spunk, Mrs. Dr. dear," admitted
-Susan.
-
-"There's something taking about her," conceded Miss Cornelia. "You never
-see her but she's laughing, and somehow it always makes you want
-to laugh too. She can't even keep a straight face in church. Una is
-ten--she's a sweet little thing--not pretty, but sweet. And Thomas
-Carlyle is nine. They call him Carl, and he has a regular mania for
-collecting toads and bugs and frogs and bringing them into the house."
-
-"I suppose he was responsible for the dead rat that was lying on a chair
-in the parlour the afternoon Mrs. Grant called. It gave her a turn,"
-said Susan, "and I do not wonder, for manse parlours are no places for
-dead rats. To be sure it may have been the cat who left it, there. HE is
-as full of the old Nick as he can be stuffed, Mrs. Dr. dear. A manse cat
-should at least LOOK respectable, in my opinion, whatever he really
-is. But I never saw such a rakish-looking beast. And he walks along the
-ridgepole of the manse almost every evening at sunset, Mrs. Dr. dear,
-and waves his tail, and that is not becoming."
-
-"The worst of it is, they are NEVER decently dressed," sighed Miss
-Cornelia. "And since the snow went they go to school barefooted.
-Now, you know Anne dearie, that isn't the right thing for manse
-children--especially when the Methodist minister's little girl always
-wears such nice buttoned boots. And I DO wish they wouldn't play in the
-old Methodist graveyard."
-
-"It's very tempting, when it's right beside the manse," said Anne. "I've
-always thought graveyards must be delightful places to play in."
-
-"Oh, no, you did not, Mrs. Dr. dear," said loyal Susan, determined to
-protect Anne from herself. "You have too much good sense and decorum."
-
-"Why did they ever build that manse beside the graveyard in the first
-place?" asked Anne. "Their lawn is so small there is no place for them
-to play except in the graveyard."
-
-"It WAS a mistake," admitted Miss Cornelia. "But they got the lot cheap.
-And no other manse children ever thought of playing there. Mr. Meredith
-shouldn't allow it. But he has always got his nose buried in a book,
-when he is home. He reads and reads, or walks about in his study in a
-day-dream. So far he hasn't forgotten to be in church on Sundays, but
-twice he has forgotten about the prayer-meeting and one of the elders
-had to go over to the manse and remind him. And he forgot about Fanny
-Cooper's wedding. They rang him up on the 'phone and then he rushed
-right over, just as he was, carpet slippers and all. One wouldn't
-mind if the Methodists didn't laugh so about it. But there's one
-comfort--they can't criticize his sermons. He wakes up when he's in the
-pulpit, believe ME. And the Methodist minister can't preach at all--so
-they tell me. _I_ have never heard him, thank goodness."
-
-Miss Cornelia's scorn of men had abated somewhat since her marriage,
-but her scorn of Methodists remained untinged of charity. Susan smiled
-slyly.
-
-"They do say, Mrs. Marshall Elliott, that the Methodists and
-Presbyterians are talking of uniting," she said.
-
-"Well, all I hope is that I'll be under the sod if that ever comes to
-pass," retorted Miss Cornelia. "I shall never have truck or trade with
-Methodists, and Mr. Meredith will find that he'd better steer clear of
-them, too. He is entirely too sociable with them, believe ME. Why,
-he went to the Jacob Drews' silver-wedding supper and got into a nice
-scrape as a result."
-
-"What was it?"
-
-"Mrs. Drew asked him to carve the roast goose--for Jacob Drew never did
-or could carve. Well, Mr. Meredith tackled it, and in the process he
-knocked it clean off the platter into Mrs. Reese's lap, who was sitting
-next him. And he just said dreamily. 'Mrs. Reese, will you kindly return
-me that goose?' Mrs. Reese 'returned' it, as meek as Moses, but she must
-have been furious, for she had on her new silk dress. The worst of it
-is, she was a Methodist."
-
-"But I think that is better than if she was a Presbyterian," interjected
-Susan. "If she had been a Presbyterian she would mostly likely have left
-the church and we cannot afford to lose our members. And Mrs. Reese is
-not liked in her own church, because she gives herself such great airs,
-so that the Methodists would be rather pleased that Mr. Meredith spoiled
-her dress."
-
-"The point is, he made himself ridiculous, and _I_, for one, do not like
-to see my minister made ridiculous in the eyes of the Methodists,"
-said Miss Cornelia stiffly. "If he had had a wife it would not have
-happened."
-
-"I do not see if he had a dozen wives how they could have prevented Mrs.
-Drew from using up her tough old gander for the wedding-feast," said
-Susan stubbornly.
-
-"They say that was her husband's doing," said Miss Cornelia. "Jacob Drew
-is a conceited, stingy, domineering creature."
-
-"And they do say he and his wife detest each other--which does not
-seem to me the proper way for married folks to get along. But then, of
-course, I have had no experience along that line," said Susan, tossing
-her head. "And _I_ am not one to blame everything on the men. Mrs. Drew
-is mean enough herself. They say that the only thing she was ever known
-to give away was a crock of butter made out of cream a rat had fell
-into. She contributed it to a church social. Nobody found out about the
-rat until afterwards."
-
-"Fortunately, all the people the Merediths have offended so far are
-Methodists," said Miss Cornelia. "That Jerry went to the Methodist
-prayer-meeting one night about a fortnight ago and sat beside old
-William Marsh who got up as usual and testified with fearful groans. 'Do
-you feel any better now?' whispered Jerry when William sat down. Poor
-Jerry meant to be sympathetic, but Mr. Marsh thought he was impertinent
-and is furious at him. Of course, Jerry had no business to be in a
-Methodist prayer-meeting at all. But they go where they like."
-
-"I hope they will not offend Mrs. Alec Davis of the Harbour Head," said
-Susan. "She is a very touchy woman, I understand, but she is very well
-off and pays the most of any one to the salary. I have heard that she
-says the Merediths are the worst brought up children she ever saw."
-
-"Every word you say convinces me more and more that the Merediths belong
-to the race that knows Joseph," said Mistress Anne decidedly.
-
-"When all is said and done, they DO," admitted Miss Cornelia. "And that
-balances everything. Anyway, we've got them now and we must just do the
-best we can by them and stick up for them to the Methodists. Well, I
-suppose I must be getting down harbour. Marshall will soon be home--he
-went over-harbour to-day--and wanting his super, man-like. I'm sorry I
-haven't seen the other children. And where's the doctor?"
-
-"Up at the Harbour Head. We've only been home three days and in that
-time he has spent three hours in his own bed and eaten two meals in his
-own house."
-
-"Well, everybody who has been sick for the last six weeks has been
-waiting for him to come home--and I don't blame them. When that
-over-harbour doctor married the undertaker's daughter at Lowbridge
-people felt suspicious of him. It didn't look well. You and the doctor
-must come down soon and tell us all about your trip. I suppose you've
-had a splendid time."
-
-"We had," agreed Anne. "It was the fulfilment of years of dreams. The
-old world is very lovely and very wonderful. But we have come back very
-well satisfied with our own land. Canada is the finest country in the
-world, Miss Cornelia."
-
-"Nobody ever doubted that," said Miss Cornelia, complacently.
-
-"And old P.E.I. is the loveliest province in it and Four Winds the
-loveliest spot in P.E.I.," laughed Anne, looking adoringly out over the
-sunset splendour of glen and harbour and gulf. She waved her hand at it.
-"I saw nothing more beautiful than that in Europe, Miss Cornelia. Must
-you go? The children will be sorry to have missed you."
-
-"They must come and see me soon. Tell them the doughnut jar is always
-full."
-
-"Oh, at supper they were planning a descent on you. They'll go soon; but
-they must settle down to school again now. And the twins are going to
-take music lessons."
-
-"Not from the Methodist minister's wife, I hope?" said Miss Cornelia
-anxiously.
-
-"No--from Rosemary West. I was up last evening to arrange it with her.
-What a pretty girl she is!"
-
-"Rosemary holds her own well. She isn't as young as she once was."
-
-"I thought her very charming. I've never had any real acquaintance with
-her, you know. Their house is so out of the way, and I've seldom ever
-seen her except at church."
-
-"People always have liked Rosemary West, though they don't understand
-her," said Miss Cornelia, quite unconscious of the high tribute she
-was paying to Rosemary's charm. "Ellen has always kept her down, so to
-speak. She has tyrannized over her, and yet she has always indulged
-her in a good many ways. Rosemary was engaged once, you know--to young
-Martin Crawford. His ship was wrecked on the Magdalens and all the crew
-were drowned. Rosemary was just a child--only seventeen. But she was
-never the same afterwards. She and Ellen have stayed very close at home
-since their mother's death. They don't often get to their own church at
-Lowbridge and I understand Ellen doesn't approve of going too often to a
-Presbyterian church. To the Methodist she NEVER goes, I'll say that much
-for her. That family of Wests have always been strong Episcopalians.
-Rosemary and Ellen are pretty well off. Rosemary doesn't really need to
-give music lessons. She does it because she likes to. They are distantly
-related to Leslie, you know. Are the Fords coming to the harbour this
-summer?"
-
-"No. They are going on a trip to Japan and will probably be away for a
-year. Owen's new novel is to have a Japanese setting. This will be the
-first summer that the dear old House of Dreams will be empty since we
-left it."
-
-"I should think Owen Ford might find enough to write about in Canada
-without dragging his wife and his innocent children off to a heathen
-country like Japan," grumbled Miss Cornelia. "_The Life Book_ was the
-best book he's ever written and he got the material for that right here
-in Four Winds."
-
-"Captain Jim gave him the most of that, you know. And he collected it
-all over the world. But Owen's books are all delightful, I think."
-
-"Oh, they're well enough as far as they go. I make it a point to read
-every one he writes, though I've always held, Anne dearie, that reading
-novels is a sinful waste of time. I shall write and tell him my opinion
-of this Japanese business, believe ME. Does he want Kenneth and Persis
-to be converted into pagans?"
-
-With which unanswerable conundrum Miss Cornelia took her departure.
-Susan proceeded to put Rilla in bed and Anne sat on the veranda steps
-under the early stars and dreamed her incorrigible dreams and learned
-all over again for the hundredth happy time what a moonrise splendour
-and sheen could be on Four Winds Harbour.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III. THE INGLESIDE CHILDREN
-
-In daytime the Blythe children liked very well to play in the rich, soft
-greens and glooms of the big maple grove between Ingleside and the Glen
-St. Mary pond; but for evening revels there was no place like the little
-valley behind the maple grove. It was a fairy realm of romance to them.
-Once, looking from the attic windows of Ingleside, through the mist
-and aftermath of a summer thunderstorm, they had seen the beloved spot
-arched by a glorious rainbow, one end of which seemed to dip straight
-down to where a corner of the pond ran up into the lower end of the
-valley.
-
-"Let us call it Rainbow Valley," said Walter delightedly, and Rainbow
-Valley thenceforth it was.
-
-Outside of Rainbow Valley the wind might be rollicking and boisterous.
-Here it always went gently. Little, winding, fairy paths ran here and
-there over spruce roots cushioned with moss. Wild cherry trees, that in
-blossom time would be misty white, were scattered all over the valley,
-mingling with the dark spruces. A little brook with amber waters
-ran through it from the Glen village. The houses of the village were
-comfortably far away; only at the upper end of the valley was a little
-tumble-down, deserted cottage, referred to as "the old Bailey house." It
-had not been occupied for many years, but a grass-grown dyke surrounded
-it and inside was an ancient garden where the Ingleside children could
-find violets and daisies and June lilies still blooming in season. For
-the rest, the garden was overgrown with caraway that swayed and foamed
-in the moonshine of summer eves like seas of silver.
-
-To the sought lay the pond and beyond it the ripened distance lost
-itself in purple woods, save where, on a high hill, a solitary old gray
-homestead looked down on glen and harbour. There was a certain wild
-woodsiness and solitude about Rainbow Valley, in spite of its nearness
-to the village, which endeared it to the children of Ingleside.
-
-The valley was full of dear, friendly hollows and the largest of these
-was their favourite stamping ground. Here they were assembled on this
-particular evening. There was a grove of young spruces in this hollow,
-with a tiny, grassy glade in its heart, opening on the bank of the
-brook. By the brook grew a silver birch-tree, a young, incredibly
-straight thing which Walter had named the "White Lady." In this glade,
-too, were the "Tree Lovers," as Walter called a spruce and maple
-which grew so closely together that their boughs were inextricably
-intertwined. Jem had hung an old string of sleigh-bells, given him
-by the Glen blacksmith, on the Tree Lovers, and every visitant breeze
-called out sudden fairy tinkles from it.
-
-"How nice it is to be back!" said Nan. "After all, none of the Avonlea
-places are quite as nice as Rainbow Valley."
-
-But they were very fond of the Avonlea places for all that. A visit to
-Green Gables was always considered a great treat. Aunt Marilla was very
-good to them, and so was Mrs. Rachel Lynde, who was spending the leisure
-of her old age in knitting cotton-warp quilts against the day when
-Anne's daughters should need a "setting-out." There were jolly playmates
-there, too--"Uncle" Davy's children and "Aunt" Diana's children. They
-knew all the spots their mother had loved so well in her girlhood at old
-Green Gables--the long Lover's Lane, that was pink-hedged in wild-rose
-time, the always neat yard, with its willows and poplars, the Dryad's
-Bubble, lucent and lovely as of yore, the Lake of Shining Waters, and
-Willowmere. The twins had their mother's old porch-gable room, and Aunt
-Marilla used to come in at night, when she thought they were asleep, to
-gloat over them. But they all knew she loved Jem the best.
-
-Jem was at present busily occupied in frying a mess of small trout which
-he had just caught in the pond. His stove consisted of a circle of red
-stones, with a fire kindled in it, and his culinary utensils were an
-old tin can, hammered out flat, and a fork with only one tine left.
-Nevertheless, ripping good meals had before now been thus prepared.
-
-Jem was the child of the House of Dreams. All the others had been born
-at Ingleside. He had curly red hair, like his mother's, and frank hazel
-eyes, like his father's; he had his mother's fine nose and his father's
-steady, humorous mouth. And he was the only one of the family who had
-ears nice enough to please Susan. But he had a standing feud with Susan
-because she would not give up calling him Little Jem. It was outrageous,
-thought thirteen-year-old Jem. Mother had more sense.
-
-"I'm NOT little any more, Mother," he had cried indignantly, on his
-eighth birthday. "I'm AWFUL big."
-
-Mother had sighed and laughed and sighed again; and she never called him
-Little Jem again--in his hearing at least.
-
-He was and always had been a sturdy, reliable little chap. He never
-broke a promise. He was not a great talker. His teachers did not think
-him brilliant, but he was a good, all-round student. He never took
-things on faith; he always liked to investigate the truth of a statement
-for himself. Once Susan had told him that if he touched his tongue to a
-frosty latch all the skin would tear off it. Jem had promptly done it,
-"just to see if it was so." He found it was "so," at the cost of a very
-sore tongue for several days. But Jem did not grudge suffering in the
-interests of science. By constant experiment and observation he
-learned a great deal and his brothers and sisters thought his extensive
-knowledge of their little world quite wonderful. Jem always knew where
-the first and ripest berries grew, where the first pale violets shyly
-wakened from their winter's sleep, and how many blue eggs were in a
-given robin's nest in the maple grove. He could tell fortunes from daisy
-petals and suck honey from red clovers, and grub up all sorts of edible
-roots on the banks of the pond, while Susan went in daily fear that they
-would all be poisoned. He knew where the finest spruce-gum was to be
-found, in pale amber knots on the lichened bark, he knew where the nuts
-grew thickest in the beechwoods around the Harbour Head, and where the
-best trouting places up the brooks were. He could mimic the call of any
-wild bird or beast in Four Winds and he knew the haunt of every wild
-flower from spring to autumn.
-
-Walter Blythe was sitting under the White Lady, with a volume of poems
-lying beside him, but he was not reading. He was gazing now at the
-emerald-misted willows by the pond, and now at a flock of clouds, like
-little silver sheep, herded by the wind, that were drifting over Rainbow
-Valley, with rapture in his wide splendid eyes. Walter's eyes were
-very wonderful. All the joy and sorrow and laughter and loyalty and
-aspiration of many generations lying under the sod looked out of their
-dark gray depths.
-
-Walter was a "hop out of kin," as far as looks went. He did not resemble
-any known relative. He was quite the handsomest of the Ingleside
-children, with straight black hair and finely modelled features. But he
-had all his mother's vivid imagination and passionate love of beauty.
-Frost of winter, invitation of spring, dream of summer and glamour of
-autumn, all meant much to Walter.
-
-In school, where Jem was a chieftain, Walter was not thought highly of.
-He was supposed to be "girly" and milk-soppish, because he never fought
-and seldom joined in the school sports, preferring to herd by himself in
-out of the way corners and read books--especially "po'try books." Walter
-loved the poets and pored over their pages from the time he could first
-read. Their music was woven into his growing soul--the music of the
-immortals. Walter cherished the ambition to be a poet himself some
-day. The thing could be done. A certain Uncle Paul--so called out of
-courtesy--who lived now in that mysterious realm called "the States,"
-was Walter's model. Uncle Paul had once been a little school boy in
-Avonlea and now his poetry was read everywhere. But the Glen schoolboys
-did not know of Walter's dreams and would not have been greatly
-impressed if they had. In spite of his lack of physical prowess,
-however, he commanded a certain unwilling respect because of his power
-of "talking book talk." Nobody in Glen St. Mary school could talk like
-him. He "sounded like a preacher," one boy said; and for this reason he
-was generally left alone and not persecuted, as most boys were who were
-suspected of disliking or fearing fisticuffs.
-
-The ten year old Ingleside twins violated twin tradition by not looking
-in the least alike. Anne, who was always called Nan, was very pretty,
-with velvety nut-brown eyes and silky nut-brown hair. She was a very
-blithe and dainty little maiden--Blythe by name and blithe by nature,
-one of her teachers had said. Her complexion was quite faultless, much
-to her mother's satisfaction.
-
-"I'm so glad I have one daughter who can wear pink," Mrs. Blythe was
-wont to say jubilantly.
-
-Diana Blythe, known as Di, was very like her mother, with gray-green
-eyes that always shone with a peculiar lustre and brilliancy in the
-dusk, and red hair. Perhaps this was why she was her father's favourite.
-She and Walter were especial chums; Di was the only one to whom he would
-ever read the verses he wrote himself--the only one who knew that he
-was secretly hard at work on an epic, strikingly resembling "Marmion" in
-some things, if not in others. She kept all his secrets, even from Nan,
-and told him all hers.
-
-"Won't you soon have those fish ready, Jem?" said Nan, sniffing with her
-dainty nose. "The smell makes me awfully hungry."
-
-"They're nearly ready," said Jem, giving one a dexterous turn. "Get out
-the bread and the plates, girls. Walter, wake up."
-
-"How the air shines to-night," said Walter dreamily. Not that he
-despised fried trout either, by any means; but with Walter food for the
-soul always took first place. "The flower angel has been walking over
-the world to-day, calling to the flowers. I can see his blue wings on
-that hill by the woods."
-
-"Any angels' wings I ever saw were white," said Nan.
-
-"The flower angel's aren't. They are a pale misty blue, just like the
-haze in the valley. Oh, how I wish I could fly. It must be glorious."
-
-"One does fly in dreams sometimes," said Di.
-
-"I never dream that I'm flying exactly," said Walter. "But I often dream
-that I just rise up from the ground and float over the fences and the
-trees. It's delightful--and I always think, 'This ISN'T a dream like
-it's always been before. THIS is real'--and then I wake up after all,
-and it's heart-breaking."
-
-"Hurry up, Nan," ordered Jem.
-
-Nan had produced the banquet-board--a board literally as well as
-figuratively--from which many a feast, seasoned as no viands were
-elsewhere, had been eaten in Rainbow Valley. It was converted into a
-table by propping it on two large, mossy stones. Newspapers served as
-tablecloth, and broken plates and handleless cups from Susan's discard
-furnished the dishes. From a tin box secreted at the root of a spruce
-tree Nan brought forth bread and salt. The brook gave Adam's ale of
-unsurpassed crystal. For the rest, there was a certain sauce, compounded
-of fresh air and appetite of youth, which gave to everything a divine
-flavour. To sit in Rainbow Valley, steeped in a twilight half gold, half
-amethyst, rife with the odours of balsam-fir and woodsy growing things
-in their springtime prime, with the pale stars of wild strawberry
-blossoms all around you, and with the sough of the wind and tinkle of
-bells in the shaking tree tops, and eat fried trout and dry bread, was
-something which the mighty of earth might have envied them.
-
-"Sit in," invited Nan, as Jem placed his sizzling tin platter of trout
-on the table. "It's your turn to say grace, Jem."
-
-"I've done my part frying the trout," protested Jem, who hated saying
-grace. "Let Walter say it. He LIKES saying grace. And cut it short, too,
-Walt. I'm starving."
-
-But Walter said no grace, short or long, just then. An interruption
-occurred.
-
-"Who's coming down from the manse hill?" said Di.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV. THE MANSE CHILDREN
-
-Aunt Martha might be, and was, a very poor housekeeper; the Rev. John
-Knox Meredith might be, and was, a very absent-minded, indulgent man.
-But it could not be denied that there was something very homelike and
-lovable about the Glen St. Mary manse in spite of its untidiness. Even
-the critical housewives of the Glen felt it, and were unconsciously
-mellowed in judgment because of it. Perhaps its charm was in part due to
-accidental circumstances--the luxuriant vines clustering over its
-gray, clap-boarded walls, the friendly acacias and balm-of-gileads that
-crowded about it with the freedom of old acquaintance, and the beautiful
-views of harbour and sand-dunes from its front windows. But these things
-had been there in the reign of Mr. Meredith's predecessor, when the
-manse had been the primmest, neatest, and dreariest house in the Glen.
-So much of the credit must be given to the personality of its new
-inmates. There was an atmosphere of laughter and comradeship about it;
-the doors were always open; and inner and outer worlds joined hands.
-Love was the only law in Glen St. Mary manse.
-
-The people of his congregation said that Mr. Meredith spoiled his
-children. Very likely he did. It is certain that he could not bear to
-scold them. "They have no mother," he used to say to himself, with a
-sigh, when some unusually glaring peccadillo forced itself upon his
-notice. But he did not know the half of their goings-on. He belonged
-to the sect of dreamers. The windows of his study looked out on the
-graveyard but, as he paced up and down the room, reflecting deeply on
-the immortality of the soul, he was quite unaware that Jerry and Carl
-were playing leap-frog hilariously over the flat stones in that abode of
-dead Methodists. Mr. Meredith had occasional acute realizations that his
-children were not so well looked after, physically or morally, as they
-had been before his wife died, and he had always a dim sub-consciousness
-that house and meals were very different under Aunt Martha's management
-from what they had been under Cecilia's. For the rest, he lived in a
-world of books and abstractions; and, therefore, although his clothes
-were seldom brushed, and although the Glen housewives concluded, from
-the ivory-like pallor of his clear-cut features and slender hands, that
-he never got enough to eat, he was not an unhappy man.
-
-If ever a graveyard could be called a cheerful place, the old Methodist
-graveyard at Glen St. Mary might be so called. The new graveyard, at the
-other side of the Methodist church, was a neat and proper and doleful
-spot; but the old one had been left so long to Nature's kindly and
-gracious ministries that it had become very pleasant.
-
-It was surrounded on three sides by a dyke of stones and sod, topped
-by a gray and uncertain paling. Outside the dyke grew a row of tall fir
-trees with thick, balsamic boughs. The dyke, which had been built by the
-first settlers of the Glen, was old enough to be beautiful, with mosses
-and green things growing out of its crevices, violets purpling at its
-base in the early spring days, and asters and golden-rod making an
-autumnal glory in its corners. Little ferns clustered companionably
-between its stones, and here and there a big bracken grew.
-
-On the eastern side there was neither fence nor dyke. The graveyard
-there straggled off into a young fir plantation, ever pushing nearer to
-the graves and deepening eastward into a thick wood. The air was always
-full of the harp-like voices of the sea, and the music of gray old
-trees, and in the spring mornings the choruses of birds in the elms
-around the two churches sang of life and not of death. The Meredith
-children loved the old graveyard.
-
-Blue-eyed ivy, "garden-spruce," and mint ran riot over the sunken
-graves. Blueberry bushes grew lavishly in the sandy corner next to the
-fir wood. The varying fashions of tombstones for three generations were
-to be found there, from the flat, oblong, red sandstone slabs of old
-settlers, down through the days of weeping willows and clasped hands, to
-the latest monstrosities of tall "monuments" and draped urns. One of
-the latter, the biggest and ugliest in the graveyard, was sacred to the
-memory of a certain Alec Davis who had been born a Methodist but had
-taken to himself a Presbyterian bride of the Douglas clan. She had made
-him turn Presbyterian and kept him toeing the Presbyterian mark all his
-life. But when he died she did not dare to doom him to a lonely grave in
-the Presbyterian graveyard over-harbour. His people were all buried in
-the Methodist cemetery; so Alec Davis went back to his own in death and
-his widow consoled herself by erecting a monument which cost more than
-any of the Methodists could afford. The Meredith children hated it,
-without just knowing why, but they loved the old, flat, bench-like
-stones with the tall grasses growing rankly about them. They made jolly
-seats for one thing. They were all sitting on one now. Jerry, tired of
-leap frog, was playing on a jew's-harp. Carl was lovingly poring over a
-strange beetle he had found; Una was trying to make a doll's dress, and
-Faith, leaning back on her slender brown wrists, was swinging her bare
-feet in lively time to the jew's-harp.
-
-Jerry had his father's black hair and large black eyes, but in him the
-latter were flashing instead of dreamy. Faith, who came next to him,
-wore her beauty like a rose, careless and glowing. She had golden-brown
-eyes, golden-brown curls and crimson cheeks. She laughed too much to
-please her father's congregation and had shocked old Mrs. Taylor,
-the disconsolate spouse of several departed husbands, by saucily
-declaring--in the church-porch at that--"The world ISN'T a vale of
-tears, Mrs. Taylor. It's a world of laughter."
-
-Little dreamy Una was not given to laughter. Her braids of straight,
-dead-black hair betrayed no lawless kinks, and her almond-shaped,
-dark-blue eyes had something wistful and sorrowful in them. Her mouth
-had a trick of falling open over her tiny white teeth, and a shy,
-meditative smile occasionally crept over her small face. She was
-much more sensitive to public opinion than Faith, and had an uneasy
-consciousness that there was something askew in their way of living. She
-longed to put it right, but did not know how. Now and then she dusted
-the furniture--but it was so seldom she could find the duster because it
-was never in the same place twice. And when the clothes-brush was to be
-found she tried to brush her father's best suit on Saturdays, and once
-sewed on a missing button with coarse white thread. When Mr. Meredith
-went to church next day every female eye saw that button and the peace
-of the Ladies' Aid was upset for weeks.
-
-Carl had the clear, bright, dark-blue eyes, fearless and direct, of his
-dead mother, and her brown hair with its glints of gold. He knew the
-secrets of bugs and had a sort of freemasonry with bees and beetles. Una
-never liked to sit near him because she never knew what uncanny creature
-might be secreted about him. Jerry refused to sleep with him because
-Carl had once taken a young garter snake to bed with him; so Carl slept
-in his old cot, which was so short that he could never stretch out, and
-had strange bed-fellows. Perhaps it was just as well that Aunt Martha
-was half blind when she made that bed. Altogether they were a jolly,
-lovable little crew, and Cecilia Meredith's heart must have ached
-bitterly when she faced the knowledge that she must leave them.
-
-"Where would you like to be buried if you were a Methodist?" asked Faith
-cheerfully.
-
-This opened up an interesting field of speculation.
-
-"There isn't much choice. The place is full," said Jerry. "I'D like that
-corner near the road, I guess. I could hear the teams going past and the
-people talking."
-
-"I'd like that little hollow under the weeping birch," said Una. "That
-birch is such a place for birds and they sing like mad in the mornings."
-
-"I'd take the Porter lot where there's so many children buried. _I_ like
-lots of company," said Faith. "Carl, where'd you?"
-
-"I'd rather not be buried at all," said Carl, "but if I had to be I'd
-like the ant-bed. Ants are AWF'LY int'resting."
-
-"How very good all the people who are buried here must have been," said
-Una, who had been reading the laudatory old epitaphs. "There doesn't
-seem to be a single bad person in the whole graveyard. Methodists must
-be better than Presbyterians after all."
-
-"Maybe the Methodists bury their bad people just like they do cats,"
-suggested Carl. "Maybe they don't bother bringing them to the graveyard
-at all."
-
-"Nonsense," said Faith. "The people that are buried here weren't any
-better than other folks, Una. But when anyone is dead you mustn't say
-anything of him but good or he'll come back and ha'nt you. Aunt Martha
-told me that. I asked father if it was true and he just looked through
-me and muttered, 'True? True? What is truth? What IS truth, O jesting
-Pilate?' I concluded from that it must be true."
-
-"I wonder if Mr. Alec Davis would come back and ha'nt me if I threw a
-stone at the urn on top of his tombstone," said Jerry.
-
-"Mrs. Davis would," giggled Faith. "She just watches us in church like
-a cat watching mice. Last Sunday I made a face at her nephew and he made
-one back at me and you should have seen her glare. I'll bet she boxed
-HIS ears when they got out. Mrs. Marshall Elliott told me we mustn't
-offend her on any account or I'd have made a face at her, too!"
-
-"They say Jem Blythe stuck out his tongue at her once and she would
-never have his father again, even when her husband was dying," said
-Jerry. "I wonder what the Blythe gang will be like."
-
-"I liked their looks," said Faith. The manse children had been at the
-station that afternoon when the Blythe small fry had arrived. "I liked
-Jem's looks ESPECIALLY."
-
-"They say in school that Walter's a sissy," said Jerry.
-
-"I don't believe it," said Una, who had thought Walter very handsome.
-
-"Well, he writes poetry, anyhow. He won the prize the teacher offered
-last year for writing a poem, Bertie Shakespeare Drew told me. Bertie's
-mother thought HE should have got the prize because of his name, but
-Bertie said he couldn't write poetry to save his soul, name or no name."
-
-"I suppose we'll get acquainted with them as soon as they begin going to
-school," mused Faith. "I hope the girls are nice. I don't like most of
-the girls round here. Even the nice ones are poky. But the Blythe twins
-look jolly. I thought twins always looked alike, but they don't. I think
-the red-haired one is the nicest."
-
-"I liked their mother's looks," said Una with a little sigh. Una envied
-all children their mothers. She had been only six when her mother died,
-but she had some very precious memories, treasured in her soul like
-jewels, of twilight cuddlings and morning frolics, of loving eyes, a
-tender voice, and the sweetest, gayest laugh.
-
-"They say she isn't like other people," said Jerry.
-
-"Mrs. Elliot says that is because she never really grew up," said Faith.
-
-"She's taller than Mrs. Elliott."
-
-"Yes, yes, but it is inside--Mrs. Elliot says Mrs. Blythe just stayed a
-little girl inside."
-
-"What do I smell?" interrupted Carl, sniffing.
-
-They all smelled it now. A most delectable odour came floating up on the
-still evening air from the direction of the little woodsy dell below the
-manse hill.
-
-"That makes me hungry," said Jerry.
-
-"We had only bread and molasses for supper and cold ditto for dinner,"
-said Una plaintively.
-
-Aunt Martha's habit was to boil a large slab of mutton early in the week
-and serve it up every day, cold and greasy, as long as it lasted. To
-this Faith, in a moment of inspiration, had give the name of "ditto",
-and by this it was invariably known at the manse.
-
-"Let's go and see where that smell is coming from," said Jerry.
-
-They all sprang up, frolicked over the lawn with the abandon of young
-puppies, climbed a fence, and tore down the mossy slope, guided by the
-savory lure that ever grew stronger. A few minutes later they arrived
-breathlessly in the sanctum sanctorum of Rainbow Valley where the Blythe
-children were just about to give thanks and eat.
-
-They halted shyly. Una wished they had not been so precipitate: but Di
-Blythe was equal to that and any occasion. She stepped forward, with a
-comrade's smile.
-
-"I guess I know who you are," she said. "You belong to the manse, don't
-you?"
-
-Faith nodded, her face creased by dimples.
-
-"We smelled your trout cooking and wondered what it was."
-
-"You must sit down and help us eat them," said Di.
-
-"Maybe you haven't more than you want yourselves," said Jerry, looking
-hungrily at the tin platter.
-
-"We've heaps--three apiece," said Jem. "Sit down."
-
-No more ceremony was necessary. Down they all sat on mossy stones. Merry
-was that feast and long. Nan and Di would probably have died of horror
-had they known what Faith and Una knew perfectly well--that Carl had
-two young mice in his jacket pocket. But they never knew it, so it never
-hurt them. Where can folks get better acquainted than over a meal table?
-When the last trout had vanished, the manse children and the Ingleside
-children were sworn friends and allies. They had always known each other
-and always would. The race of Joseph recognized its own.
-
-They poured out the history of their little pasts. The manse children
-heard of Avonlea and Green Gables, of Rainbow Valley traditions, and
-of the little house by the harbour shore where Jem had been born. The
-Ingleside children heard of Maywater, where the Merediths had lived
-before coming to the Glen, of Una's beloved, one-eyed doll and Faith's
-pet rooster.
-
-Faith was inclined to resent the fact that people laughed at her for
-petting a rooster. She liked the Blythes because they accepted it
-without question.
-
-"A handsome rooster like Adam is just as nice a pet as a dog or cat, _I_
-think," she said. "If he was a canary nobody would wonder. And I brought
-him up from a little, wee, yellow chicken. Mrs. Johnson at Maywater gave
-him to me. A weasel had killed all his brothers and sisters. I called
-him after her husband. I never liked dolls or cats. Cats are too sneaky
-and dolls are DEAD."
-
-"Who lives in that house away up there?" asked Jerry.
-
-"The Miss Wests--Rosemary and Ellen," answered Nan. "Di and I are going
-to take music lessons from Miss Rosemary this summer."
-
-Una gazed at the lucky twins with eyes whose longing was too gentle for
-envy. Oh, if she could only have music lessons! It was one of the dreams
-of her little hidden life. But nobody ever thought of such a thing.
-
-"Miss Rosemary is so sweet and she always dresses so pretty," said
-Di. "Her hair is just the colour of new molasses taffy," she added
-wistfully--for Di, like her mother before her, was not resigned to her
-own ruddy tresses.
-
-"I like Miss Ellen, too," said Nan. "She always used to give me candies
-when she came to church. But Di is afraid of her."
-
-"Her brows are so black and she has such a great deep voice," said
-Di. "Oh, how scared of her Kenneth Ford used to be when he was little!
-Mother says the first Sunday Mrs. Ford brought him to church Miss Ellen
-happened to be there, sitting right behind them. And the minute Kenneth
-saw her he just screamed and screamed until Mrs. Ford had to carry him
-out."
-
-"Who is Mrs. Ford?" asked Una wonderingly.
-
-"Oh, the Fords don't live here. They only come here in the summer. And
-they're not coming this summer. They live in that little house 'way,
-'way down on the harbour shore where father and mother used to lie. I
-wish you could see Persis Ford. She is just like a picture."
-
-"I've heard of Mrs. Ford," broke in Faith. "Bertie Shakespeare Drew told
-me about her. She was married fourteen years to a dead man and then he
-came to life."
-
-"Nonsense," said Nan. "That isn't the way it goes at all. Bertie
-Shakespeare can never get anything straight. I know the whole story and
-I'll tell it to you some time, but not now, for it's too long and it's
-time for us to go home. Mother doesn't like us to be out late these damp
-evenings."
-
-Nobody cared whether the manse children were out in the damp or not.
-Aunt Martha was already in bed and the minister was still too deeply
-lost in speculations concerning the immortality of the soul to remember
-the mortality of the body. But they went home, too, with visions of good
-times coming in their heads.
-
-"I think Rainbow Valley is even nicer than the graveyard," said Una.
-"And I just love those dear Blythes. It's SO nice when you can love
-people because so often you CAN'T. Father said in his sermon last Sunday
-that we should love everybody. But how can we? How could we love Mrs.
-Alec Davis?"
-
-"Oh, father only said that in the pulpit," said Faith airily. "He has
-more sense than to really think it outside."
-
-The Blythe children went up to Ingleside, except Jem, who slipped away
-for a few moments on a solitary expedition to a remote corner of Rainbow
-Valley. Mayflowers grew there and Jem never forgot to take his mother a
-bouquet as long as they lasted.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V. THE ADVENT OF MARY VANCE
-
-"This is just the sort of day you feel as if things might happen," said
-Faith, responsive to the lure of crystal air and blue hills. She hugged
-herself with delight and danced a hornpipe on old Hezekiah Pollock's
-bench tombstone, much to the horror of two ancient maidens who happened
-to be driving past just as Faith hopped on one foot around the stone,
-waving the other and her arms in the air.
-
-"And that," groaned one ancient maiden, "is our minister's daughter."
-
-"What else could you expect of a widower's family?" groaned the other
-ancient maiden. And then they both shook their heads.
-
-It was early on Saturday morning and the Merediths were out in the
-dew-drenched world with a delightful consciousness of the holiday. They
-had never had anything to do on a holiday. Even Nan and Di Blythe had
-certain household tasks for Saturday mornings, but the daughters of the
-manse were free to roam from blushing morn to dewy eve if so it pleased
-them. It DID please Faith, but Una felt a secret, bitter humiliation
-because they never learned to do anything. The other girls in her class
-at school could cook and sew and knit; she only was a little ignoramus.
-
-Jerry suggested that they go exploring; so they went lingeringly through
-the fir grove, picking up Carl on the way, who was on his knees in the
-dripping grass studying his darling ants. Beyond the grove they came out
-in Mr. Taylor's pasture field, sprinkled over with the white ghosts of
-dandelions; in a remote corner was an old tumbledown barn, where Mr.
-Taylor sometimes stored his surplus hay crop but which was never used
-for any other purpose. Thither the Meredith children trooped, and
-prowled about the ground floor for several minutes.
-
-"What was that?" whispered Una suddenly.
-
-They all listened. There was a faint but distinct rustle in the hayloft
-above. The Merediths looked at each other.
-
-"There's something up there," breathed Faith.
-
-"I'm going up to see what it is," said Jerry resolutely.
-
-"Oh, don't," begged Una, catching his arm.
-
-"I'm going."
-
-"We'll all go, too, then," said Faith.
-
-The whole four climbed the shaky ladder, Jerry and Faith quite
-dauntless, Una pale from fright, and Carl rather absent-mindedly
-speculating on the possibility of finding a bat up in the loft. He
-longed to see a bat in daylight.
-
-When they stepped off the ladder they saw what had made the rustle and
-the sight struck them dumb for a few moments.
-
-In a little nest in the hay a girl was curled up, looking as if she had
-just wakened from sleep. When she saw them she stood up, rather shakily,
-as it seemed, and in the bright sunlight that streamed through the
-cobwebbed window behind her, they saw that her thin, sunburned face was
-very pale under its tan. She had two braids of lank, thick, tow-coloured
-hair and very odd eyes--"white eyes," the manse children thought, as she
-stared at them half defiantly, half piteously. They were really of so
-pale a blue that they did seem almost white, especially when contrasted
-with the narrow black ring that circled the iris. She was barefooted and
-bareheaded, and was clad in a faded, ragged, old plaid dress, much too
-short and tight for her. As for years, she might have been almost any
-age, judging from her wizened little face, but her height seemed to be
-somewhere in the neighbourhood of twelve.
-
-"Who are you?" asked Jerry.
-
-The girl looked about her as if seeking a way of escape. Then she seemed
-to give in with a little shiver of despair.
-
-"I'm Mary Vance," she said.
-
-"Where'd you come from?" pursued Jerry.
-
-Mary, instead of replying, suddenly sat, or fell, down on the hay and
-began to cry. Instantly Faith had flung herself down beside her and put
-her arm around the thin, shaking shoulders.
-
-"You stop bothering her," she commanded Jerry. Then she hugged the waif.
-"Don't cry, dear. Just tell us what's the matter. WE'RE friends."
-
-"I'm so--so--hungry," wailed Mary. "I--I hain't had a thing to eat since
-Thursday morning, 'cept a little water from the brook out there."
-
-The manse children gazed at each other in horror. Faith sprang up.
-
-"You come right up to the manse and get something to eat before you say
-another word."
-
-Mary shrank.
-
-"Oh--I can't. What will your pa and ma say? Besides, they'd send me
-back."
-
-"We've no mother, and father won't bother about you. Neither will Aunt
-Martha. Come, I say." Faith stamped her foot impatiently. Was this queer
-girl going to insist on starving to death almost at their very door?
-
-Mary yielded. She was so weak that she could hardly climb down the
-ladder, but somehow they got her down and over the field and into the
-manse kitchen. Aunt Martha, muddling through her Saturday cooking, took
-no notice of her. Faith and Una flew to the pantry and ransacked it for
-such eatables as it contained--some "ditto," bread, butter, milk and a
-doubtful pie. Mary Vance attacked the food ravenously and uncritically,
-while the manse children stood around and watched her. Jerry noticed
-that she had a pretty mouth and very nice, even, white teeth. Faith
-decided, with secret horror, that Mary had not one stitch on her except
-that ragged, faded dress. Una was full of pure pity, Carl of amused
-wonder, and all of them of curiosity.
-
-"Now come out to the graveyard and tell us about yourself," ordered
-Faith, when Mary's appetite showed signs of failing her. Mary was now
-nothing loath. Food had restored her natural vivacity and unloosed her
-by no means reluctant tongue.
-
-"You won't tell your pa or anybody if I tell you?" she stipulated, when
-she was enthroned on Mr. Pollock's tombstone. Opposite her the manse
-children lined up on another. Here was spice and mystery and adventure.
-Something HAD happened.
-
-"No, we won't."
-
-"Cross your hearts?"
-
-"Cross our hearts."
-
-"Well, I've run away. I was living with Mrs. Wiley over-harbour. Do you
-know Mrs. Wiley?"
-
-"No."
-
-"Well, you don't want to know her. She's an awful woman. My, how I hate
-her! She worked me to death and wouldn't give me half enough to eat, and
-she used to larrup me 'most every day. Look a-here."
-
-Mary rolled up her ragged sleeves, and held up her scrawny arms and
-thin hands, chapped almost to rawness. They were black with bruises. The
-manse children shivered. Faith flushed crimson with indignation. Una's
-blue eyes filled with tears.
-
-"She licked me Wednesday night with a stick," said Mary, indifferently.
-"It was 'cause I let the cow kick over a pail of milk. How'd I know the
-darn old cow was going to kick?"
-
-A not unpleasant thrill ran over her listeners. They would never dream
-of using such dubious words, but it was rather titivating to hear
-someone else use them--and a girl, at that. Certainly this Mary Vance
-was an interesting creature.
-
-"I don't blame you for running away," said Faith.
-
-"Oh, I didn't run away 'cause she licked me. A licking was all in the
-day's work with me. I was darn well used to it. Nope, I'd meant to run
-away for a week 'cause I'd found out that Mrs. Wiley was going to rent
-her farm and go to Lowbridge to live and give me to a cousin of hers
-up Charlottetown way. I wasn't going to stand for THAT. She was a worse
-sort than Mrs. Wiley even. Mrs. Wiley lent me to her for a month last
-summer and I'd rather live with the devil himself."
-
-Sensation number two. But Una looked doubtful.
-
-"So I made up my mind I'd beat it. I had seventy cents saved up that
-Mrs. John Crawford give me in the spring for planting potatoes for her.
-Mrs. Wiley didn't know about it. She was away visiting her cousin when
-I planted them. I thought I'd sneak up here to the Glen and buy a ticket
-to Charlottetown and try to get work there. I'm a hustler, let me tell
-you. There ain't a lazy bone in MY body. So I lit out Thursday morning
-'fore Mrs. Wiley was up and walked to the Glen--six miles. And when I
-got to the station I found I'd lost my money. Dunno how--dunno where.
-Anyhow, it was gone. I didn't know what to do. If I went back to old
-Lady Wiley she'd take the hide off me. So I went and hid in that old
-barn."
-
-"And what will you do now?" asked Jerry.
-
-"Dunno. I s'pose I'll have to go back and take my medicine. Now that
-I've got some grub in my stomach I guess I can stand it."
-
-But there was fear behind the bravado in Mary's eyes. Una suddenly
-slipped from the one tombstone to the other and put her arm about Mary.
-
-"Don't go back. Just stay here with us."
-
-"Oh, Mrs. Wiley'll hunt me up," said Mary. "It's likely she's on my
-trail before this. I might stay here till she finds me, I s'pose, if
-your folks don't mind. I was a darn fool ever to think of skipping out.
-She'd run a weasel to earth. But I was so misrebul."
-
-Mary's voice quivered, but she was ashamed of showing her weakness.
-
-"I hain't had the life of a dog for these four years," she explained
-defiantly.
-
-"You've been four years with Mrs. Wiley?"
-
-"Yip. She took me out of the asylum over in Hopetown when I was eight."
-
-"That's the same place Mrs. Blythe came from," exclaimed Faith.
-
-"I was two years in the asylum. I was put there when I was six. My ma
-had hung herself and my pa had cut his throat."
-
-"Holy cats! Why?" said Jerry.
-
-"Booze," said Mary laconically.
-
-"And you've no relations?"
-
-"Not a darn one that I know of. Must have had some once, though. I was
-called after half a dozen of them. My full name is Mary Martha Lucilla
-Moore Ball Vance. Can you beat that? My grandfather was a rich man. I'll
-bet he was richer than YOUR grandfather. But pa drunk it all up and ma,
-she did her part. THEY used to beat me, too. Laws, I've been licked so
-much I kind of like it."
-
-Mary tossed her head. She divined that the manse children were pitying
-her for her many stripes and she did not want pity. She wanted to be
-envied. She looked gaily about her. Her strange eyes, now that the
-dullness of famine was removed from them, were brilliant. She would show
-these youngsters what a personage she was.
-
-"I've been sick an awful lot," she said proudly. "There's not many kids
-could have come through what I have. I've had scarlet fever and measles
-and ersipelas and mumps and whooping cough and pewmonia."
-
-"Were you ever fatally sick?" asked Una.
-
-"I don't know," said Mary doubtfully.
-
-"Of course she wasn't," scoffed Jerry. "If you're fatally sick you die."
-
-"Oh, well, I never died exactly," said Mary, "but I come blamed near it
-once. They thought I was dead and they were getting ready to lay me out
-when I up and come to."
-
-"What is it like to be half dead?" asked Jerry curiously.
-
-"Like nothing. I didn't know it for days afterwards. It was when I had
-the pewmonia. Mrs. Wiley wouldn't have the doctor--said she wasn't
-going to no such expense for a home girl. Old Aunt Christina MacAllister
-nursed me with poultices. She brung me round. But sometimes I wish I'd
-just died the other half and done with it. I'd been better off."
-
-"If you went to heaven I s'pose you would," said Faith, rather
-doubtfully.
-
-"Well, what other place is there to go to?" demanded Mary in a puzzled
-voice.
-
-"There's hell, you know," said Una, dropping her voice and hugging Mary
-to lessen the awfulness of the suggestion.
-
-"Hell? What's that?"
-
-"Why, it's where the devil lives," said Jerry. "You've heard of him--you
-spoke about him."
-
-"Oh, yes, but I didn't know he lived anywhere. I thought he just roamed
-round. Mr. Wiley used to mention hell when he was alive. He was always
-telling folks to go there. I thought it was some place over in New
-Brunswick where he come from."
-
-"Hell is an awful place," said Faith, with the dramatic enjoyment that
-is born of telling dreadful things. "Bad people go there when they die
-and burn in fire for ever and ever and ever."
-
-"Who told you that?" demanded Mary incredulously.
-
-"It's in the Bible. And Mr. Isaac Crothers at Maywater told us, too, in
-Sunday School. He was an elder and a pillar in the church and knew all
-about it. But you needn't worry. If you're good you'll go to heaven and
-if you're bad I guess you'd rather go to hell."
-
-"I wouldn't," said Mary positively. "No matter how bad I was I wouldn't
-want to be burned and burned. _I_ know what it's like. I picked up a red
-hot poker once by accident. What must you do to be good?"
-
-"You must go to church and Sunday School and read your Bible and pray
-every night and give to missions," said Una.
-
-"It sounds like a large order," said Mary. "Anything else?"
-
-"You must ask God to forgive the sins you've committed.
-
-"But I've never com--committed any," said Mary. "What's a sin any way?"
-
-"Oh, Mary, you must have. Everybody does. Did you never tell a lie?"
-
-"Heaps of 'em," said Mary.
-
-"That's a dreadful sin," said Una solemnly.
-
-"Do you mean to tell me," demanded Mary, "that I'd be sent to hell for
-telling a lie now and then? Why, I HAD to. Mr. Wiley would have broken
-every bone in my body one time if I hadn't told him a lie. Lies have
-saved me many a whack, I can tell you."
-
-Una sighed. Here were too many difficulties for her to solve. She
-shuddered as she thought of being cruelly whipped. Very likely she would
-have lied too. She squeezed Mary's little calloused hand.
-
-"Is that the only dress you've got?" asked Faith, whose joyous nature
-refused to dwell on disagreeable subjects.
-
-"I just put on this dress because it was no good," cried Mary flushing.
-"Mrs. Wiley'd bought my clothes and I wasn't going to be beholden to her
-for anything. And I'm honest. If I was going to run away I wasn't going
-to take what belong to HER that was worth anything. When I grow up
-I'm going to have a blue sating dress. Your own clothes don't look so
-stylish. I thought ministers' children were always dressed up."
-
-It was plain that Mary had a temper and was sensitive on some points.
-But there was a queer, wild charm about her which captivated them all.
-She was taken to Rainbow Valley that afternoon and introduced to the
-Blythes as "a friend of ours from over-harbour who is visiting us." The
-Blythes accepted her unquestioningly, perhaps because she was fairly
-respectable now. After dinner--through which Aunt Martha had mumbled and
-Mr. Meredith had been in a state of semi-unconsciousness while brooding
-his Sunday sermon--Faith had prevailed on Mary to put on one of her
-dresses, as well as certain other articles of clothing. With her hair
-neatly braided Mary passed muster tolerably well. She was an acceptable
-playmate, for she knew several new and exciting games, and her
-conversation lacked not spice. In fact, some of her expressions made Nan
-and Di look at her rather askance. They were not quite sure what their
-mother would have thought of her, but they knew quite well what Susan
-would. However, she was a visitor at the manse, so she must be all
-right.
-
-When bedtime came there was the problem of where Mary should sleep.
-
-"We can't put her in the spare room, you know," said Faith perplexedly
-to Una.
-
-"I haven't got anything in my head," cried Mary in an injured tone.
-
-"Oh, I didn't mean THAT," protested Faith. "The spare room is all torn
-up. The mice have gnawed a big hole in the feather tick and made a nest
-in it. We never found it out till Aunt Martha put the Rev. Mr. Fisher
-from Charlottetown there to sleep last week. HE soon found it out.
-Then father had to give him his bed and sleep on the study lounge. Aunt
-Martha hasn't had time to fix the spare room bed up yet, so she says;
-so NOBODY can sleep there, no matter how clean their heads are. And our
-room is so small, and the bed so small you can't sleep with us."
-
-"I can go back to the hay in the old barn for the night if you'll lend
-me a quilt," said Mary philosophically. "It was kind of chilly last
-night, but 'cept for that I've had worse beds."
-
-"Oh, no, no, you mustn't do that," said Una. "I've thought of a plan,
-Faith. You know that little trestle bed in the garret room, with the
-old mattress on it, that the last minister left there? Let's take up the
-spare room bedclothes and make Mary a bed there. You won't mind sleeping
-in the garret, will you, Mary? It's just above our room."
-
-"Any place'll do me. Laws, I never had a decent place to sleep in my
-life. I slept in the loft over the kitchen at Mrs. Wiley's. The roof
-leaked rain in the summer and the snow druv in in winter. My bed was a
-straw tick on the floor. You won't find me a mite huffy about where _I_
-sleep."
-
-The manse garret was a long, low, shadowy place, with one gable
-end partitioned off. Here a bed was made up for Mary of the dainty
-hemstitched sheets and embroidered spread which Cecilia Meredith had
-once so proudly made for her spare-room, and which still survived Aunt
-Martha's uncertain washings. The good nights were said and silence fell
-over the manse. Una was just falling asleep when she heard a sound in
-the room just above that made her sit up suddenly.
-
-"Listen, Faith--Mary's crying," she whispered. Faith replied not, being
-already asleep. Una slipped out of bed, and made her way in her little
-white gown down the hall and up the garret stairs. The creaking floor
-gave ample notice of her coming, and when she reached the corner room
-all was moonlit silence and the trestle bed showed only a hump in the
-middle.
-
-"Mary," whispered Una.
-
-There was no response.
-
-Una crept close to the bed and pulled at the spread. "Mary, I know you
-are crying. I heard you. Are you lonesome?"
-
-Mary suddenly appeared to view but said nothing.
-
-"Let me in beside you. I'm cold," said Una shivering in the chilly air,
-for the little garret window was open and the keen breath of the north
-shore at night blew in.
-
-Mary moved over and Una snuggled down beside her.
-
-"NOW you won't be lonesome. We shouldn't have left you here alone the
-first night."
-
-"I wasn't lonesome," sniffed Mary.
-
-"What were you crying for then?"
-
-"Oh, I just got to thinking of things when I was here alone. I thought
-of having to go back to Mrs. Wiley--and of being licked for running
-away--and--and--and of going to hell for telling lies. It all worried me
-something scandalous."
-
-"Oh, Mary," said poor Una in distress. "I don't believe God will send
-you to hell for telling lies when you didn't know it was wrong. He
-COULDN'T. Why, He's kind and good. Of course, you mustn't tell any more
-now that you know it's wrong."
-
-"If I can't tell lies what's to become of me?" said Mary with a sob.
-"YOU don't understand. You don't know anything about it. You've got a
-home and a kind father--though it does seem to me that he isn't more'n
-about half there. But anyway he doesn't lick you, and you get enough to
-eat such as it is--though that old aunt of yours doesn't know ANYTHING
-about cooking. Why, this is the first day I ever remember of feeling
-'sif I'd enough to eat. I've been knocked about all of my life, 'cept
-for the two years I was at the asylum. They didn't lick me there and it
-wasn't too bad, though the matron was cross. She always looked ready to
-bite my head off a nail. But Mrs. Wiley is a holy terror, that's what
-SHE is, and I'm just scared stiff when I think of going back to her."
-
-"Perhaps you won't have to. Perhaps we'll be able to think of a way out.
-Let's both ask God to keep you from having to go back to Mrs. Wiley. You
-say your prayers, don't you Mary?"
-
-"Oh, yes, I always go over an old rhyme 'fore I get into bed," said Mary
-indifferently. "I never thought of asking for anything in particular
-though. Nobody in this world ever bothered themselves about me so I
-didn't s'pose God would. He MIGHT take more trouble for you, seeing
-you're a minister's daughter."
-
-"He'd take every bit as much trouble for you, Mary, I'm sure," said Una.
-"It doesn't matter whose child you are. You just ask Him--and I will,
-too."
-
-"All right," agreed Mary. "It won't do any harm if it doesn't do much
-good. If you knew Mrs. Wiley as well as I do you wouldn't think God
-would want to meddle with her. Anyhow, I won't cry any more about it.
-This is a big sight better'n last night down in that old barn, with the
-mice running about. Look at the Four Winds light. Ain't it pretty?"
-
-"This is the only window we can see it from," said Una. "I love to watch
-it."
-
-"Do you? So do I. I could see it from the Wiley loft and it was the only
-comfort I had. When I was all sore from being licked I'd watch it and
-forget about the places that hurt. I'd think of the ships sailing
-away and away from it and wish I was on one of them sailing far away
-too--away from everything. On winter nights when it didn't shine, I just
-felt real lonesome. Say, Una, what makes all you folks so kind to me
-when I'm just a stranger?"
-
-"Because it's right to be. The bible tells us to be kind to everybody."
-
-"Does it? Well, I guess most folks don't mind it much then. I never
-remember of any one being kind to me before--true's you live I don't.
-Say, Una, ain't them shadows on the walls pretty? They look just like
-a flock of little dancing birds. And say, Una, I like all you folks and
-them Blythe boys and Di, but I don't like that Nan. She's a proud one."
-
-"Oh, no, Mary, she isn't a bit proud," said Una eagerly. "Not a single
-bit."
-
-"Don't tell me. Any one that holds her head like that IS proud. I don't
-like her."
-
-"WE all like her very much."
-
-"Oh, I s'pose you like her better'n me?" said Mary jealously. "Do you?"
-
-"Why, Mary--we've known her for weeks and we've only known you a few
-hours," stammered Una.
-
-"So you do like her better then?" said Mary in a rage. "All right! Like
-her all you want to. _I_ don't care. _I_ can get along without you."
-
-She flung herself over against the wall of the garret with a slam.
-
-"Oh, Mary," said Una, pushing a tender arm over Mary's uncompromising
-back, "don't talk like that. I DO like you ever so much. And you make me
-feel so bad."
-
-No answer. Presently Una gave a sob. Instantly Mary squirmed around
-again and engulfed Una in a bear's hug.
-
-"Hush up," she ordered. "Don't go crying over what I said. I was as mean
-as the devil to talk that way. I orter to be skinned alive--and you
-all so good to me. I should think you WOULD like any one better'n me. I
-deserve every licking I ever got. Hush, now. If you cry any more I'll
-go and walk right down to the harbour in this night-dress and drown
-myself."
-
-This terrible threat made Una choke back her sobs. Her tears were wiped
-away by Mary with the lace frill of the spare-room pillow and forgiver
-and forgiven cuddled down together again, harmony restored, to watch the
-shadows of the vine leaves on the moonlit wall until they fell asleep.
-
-And in the study below Rev. John Meredith walked the floor with rapt
-face and shining eyes, thinking out his message of the morrow, and knew
-not that under his own roof there was a little forlorn soul, stumbling
-in darkness and ignorance, beset by terror and compassed about with
-difficulties too great for it to grapple in its unequal struggle with a
-big indifferent world.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI. MARY STAYS AT THE MANSE
-
-The manse children took Mary Vance to church with them the next day. At
-first Mary objected to the idea.
-
-"Didn't you go to church over-harbour?" asked Una.
-
-"You bet. Mrs. Wiley never troubled church much, but I went every Sunday
-I could get off. I was mighty thankful to go to some place where I
-could sit down for a spell. But I can't go to church in this old ragged
-dress."
-
-This difficulty was removed by Faith offering the loan of her second
-best dress.
-
-"It's faded a little and two of the buttons are off, but I guess it'll
-do."
-
-"I'll sew the buttons on in a jiffy," said Mary.
-
-"Not on Sunday," said Una, shocked.
-
-"Sure. The better the day the better the deed. You just gimme a needle
-and thread and look the other way if you're squeamish."
-
-Faith's school boots, and an old black velvet cap that had once been
-Cecilia Meredith's, completed Mary's costume, and to church she went.
-Her behaviour was quite conventional, and though some wondered who the
-shabby little girl with the manse children was she did not attract much
-attention. She listened to the sermon with outward decorum and joined
-lustily in the singing. She had, it appeared, a clear, strong voice and
-a good ear.
-
-"His blood can make the VIOLETS clean," carolled Mary blithely. Mrs.
-Jimmy Milgrave, whose pew was just in front of the manse pew, turned
-suddenly and looked the child over from top to toe. Mary, in a mere
-superfluity of naughtiness, stuck out her tongue at Mrs. Milgrave, much
-to Una's horror.
-
-"I couldn't help it," she declared after church. "What'd she want to
-stare at me like that for? Such manners! I'm GLAD stuck my tongue out
-at her. I wish I'd stuck it farther out. Say, I saw Rob MacAllister from
-over-harbour there. Wonder if he'll tell Mrs. Wiley on me."
-
-No Mrs. Wiley appeared, however, and in a few day the children forgot
-to look for her. Mary was apparently a fixture at the manse. But she
-refused to go to school with the others.
-
-"Nope. I've finished my education," she said, when Faith urged her to
-go. "I went to school four winters since I come to Mrs. Wiley's and I've
-had all I want of THAT. I'm sick and tired of being everlastingly
-jawed at 'cause I didn't get my home-lessons done. I'D no time to do
-home-lessons."
-
-"Our teacher won't jaw you. He is awfully nice," said Faith.
-
-"Well, I ain't going. I can read and write and cipher up to fractions.
-That's all I want. You fellows go and I'll stay home. You needn't be
-scared I'll steal anything. I swear I'm honest."
-
-Mary employed herself while the others were at school in cleaning up
-the manse. In a few days it was a different place. Floors were swept,
-furniture dusted, everything straightened out. She mended the spare-room
-bed-tick, she sewed on missing buttons, she patched clothes neatly, she
-even invaded the study with broom and dustpan and ordered Mr. Meredith
-out while she put it to rights. But there was one department with which
-Aunt Martha refused to let her interfere. Aunt Martha might be deaf
-and half blind and very childish, but she was resolved to keep the
-commissariat in her own hands, in spite of all Mary's wiles and
-stratagems.
-
-"I can tell you if old Martha'd let ME cook you'd have some decent
-meals," she told the manse children indignantly. "There'd be no more
-'ditto'--and no more lumpy porridge and blue milk either. What DOES she
-do with all the cream?"
-
-"She gives it to the cat. He's hers, you know," said Faith.
-
-"I'd like to CAT her," exclaimed Mary bitterly. "I've no use for cats
-anyhow. They belong to the old Nick. You can tell that by their eyes.
-Well, if old Martha won't, she won't, I s'pose. But it gits on my nerves
-to see good vittles spoiled."
-
-When school came out they always went to Rainbow Valley. Mary refused to
-play in the graveyard. She declared she was afraid of ghosts.
-
-"There's no such thing as ghosts," declared Jem Blythe.
-
-"Oh, ain't there?"
-
-"Did you ever see any?"
-
-"Hundreds of 'em," said Mary promptly.
-
-"What are they like?" said Carl.
-
-"Awful-looking. Dressed all in white with skellington hands and heads,"
-said Mary.
-
-"What did you do?" asked Una.
-
-"Run like the devil," said Mary. Then she caught Walter's eyes and
-blushed. Mary was a good deal in awe of Walter. She declared to the
-manse girls that his eyes made her nervous.
-
-"I think of all the lies I've ever told when I look into them," she
-said, "and I wish I hadn't."
-
-Jem was Mary's favourite. When he took her to the attic at Ingleside and
-showed her the museum of curios that Captain Jim Boyd had bequeathed to
-him she was immensely pleased and flattered. She also won Carl's heart
-entirely by her interest in his beetles and ants. It could not be denied
-that Mary got on rather better with the boys than with the girls. She
-quarrelled bitterly with Nan Blythe the second day.
-
-"Your mother is a witch," she told Nan scornfully. "Red-haired women
-are always witches." Then she and Faith fell out about the rooster. Mary
-said its tail was too short. Faith angrily retorted that she guessed God
-know what length to make a rooster's tail. They did not "speak" for
-a day over this. Mary treated Una's hairless, one-eyed doll with
-consideration; but when Una showed her other prized treasure--a picture
-of an angel carrying a baby, presumably to heaven, Mary declared that
-it looked too much like a ghost for her. Una crept away to her room and
-cried over this, but Mary hunted her out, hugged her repentantly and
-implored forgiveness. No one could keep up a quarrel long with Mary--not
-even Nan, who was rather prone to hold grudges and never quite forgave
-the insult to her mother. Mary was jolly. She could and did tell the
-most thrilling ghost stories. Rainbow Valley seances were undeniably
-more exciting after Mary came. She learned to play on the jew's-harp and
-soon eclipsed Jerry.
-
-"Never struck anything yet I couldn't do if I put my mind to it," she
-declared. Mary seldom lost a chance of tooting her own horn. She
-taught them how to make "blow-bags" out of the thick leaves of the
-"live-forever" that flourished in the old Bailey garden, she initiated
-them into the toothsome qualities of the "sours" that grew in the niches
-of the graveyard dyke, and she could make the most wonderful shadow
-pictures on the walls with her long, flexible fingers. And when they all
-went picking gum in Rainbow Valley Mary always got "the biggest chew"
-and bragged about it. There were times when they hated her and times
-when they loved her. But at all times they found her interesting.
-So they submitted quite meekly to her bossing, and by the end of a
-fortnight had come to feel that she must always have been with them.
-
-"It's the queerest thing that Mrs. Wiley hain't been after me," said
-Mary. "I can't understand it."
-
-"Maybe she isn't going to bother about you at all," said Una. "Then you
-can just go on staying here."
-
-"This house ain't hardly big enough for me and old Martha," said Mary
-darkly. "It's a very fine thing to have enough to eat--I've often
-wondered what it would be like--but I'm p'ticler about my cooking. And
-Mrs. Wiley'll be here yet. SHE'S got a rod in pickle for me all right. I
-don't think about it so much in daytime but say, girls, up there in that
-garret at night I git to thinking and thinking of it, till I just almost
-wish she'd come and have it over with. I dunno's one real good whipping
-would be much worse'n all the dozen I've lived through in my mind ever
-since I run away. Were any of you ever licked?"
-
-"No, of course not," said Faith indignantly. "Father would never do such
-a thing."
-
-"You don't know you're alive," said Mary with a sigh half of envy, half
-of superiority. "You don't know what I've come through. And I s'pose the
-Blythes were never licked either?"
-
-"No-o-o, I guess not. But I THINK they were sometimes spanked when they
-were small."
-
-"A spanking doesn't amount to anything," said Mary contemptuously. "If
-my folks had just spanked me I'd have thought they were petting
-me. Well, it ain't a fair world. I wouldn't mind taking my share of
-wallopings but I've had a darn sight too many."
-
-"It isn't right to say that word, Mary," said Una reproachfully. "You
-promised me you wouldn't say it."
-
-"G'way," responded Mary. "If you knew some of the words I COULD say if I
-liked you wouldn't make such a fuss over darn. And you know very well I
-hain't ever told any lies since I come here."
-
-"What about all those ghosts you said you saw?" asked Faith.
-
-Mary blushed.
-
-"That was diff'runt," she said defiantly. "I knew you wouldn't believe
-them yarns and I didn't intend you to. And I really did see something
-queer one night when I was passing the over-harbour graveyard, true's
-you live. I dunno whether 'twas a ghost or Sandy Crawford's old white
-nag, but it looked blamed queer and I tell you I scooted at the rate of
-no man's business."
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII. A FISHY EPISODE
-
-Rilla Blythe walked proudly, and perhaps a little primly, through the
-main "street" of the Glen and up the manse hill, carefully carrying
-a small basketful of early strawberries, which Susan had coaxed into
-lusciousness in one of the sunny nooks of Ingleside. Susan had charged
-Rilla to give the basket to nobody except Aunt Martha or Mr. Meredith,
-and Rilla, very proud of being entrusted with such an errand, was
-resolved to carry out her instructions to the letter.
-
-Susan had dressed her daintily in a white, starched, and embroidered
-dress, with sash of blue and beaded slippers. Her long ruddy curls
-were sleek and round, and Susan had let her put on her best hat, out
-of compliment to the manse. It was a somewhat elaborate affair, wherein
-Susan's taste had had more to say than Anne's, and Rilla's small soul
-gloried in its splendours of silk and lace and flowers. She was very
-conscious of her hat, and I am afraid she strutted up the manse hill.
-The strut, or the hat, or both, got on the nerves of Mary Vance, who was
-swinging on the lawn gate. Mary's temper was somewhat ruffled just then,
-into the bargain. Aunt Martha had refused to let her peel the potatoes
-and had ordered her out of the kitchen.
-
-"Yah! You'll bring the potatoes to the table with strips of skin hanging
-to them and half boiled as usual! My, but it'll be nice to go to your
-funeral," shrieked Mary. She went out of the kitchen, giving the door
-such a bang that even Aunt Martha heard it, and Mr. Meredith in his
-study felt the vibration and thought absently that there must have been
-a slight earthquake shock. Then he went on with his sermon.
-
-Mary slipped from the gate and confronted the spick-and-span damsel of
-Ingleside.
-
-"What you got there?" she demanded, trying to take the basket.
-
-Rilla resisted. "It'th for Mithter Meredith," she lisped.
-
-"Give it to me. I'LL give it to him," said Mary.
-
-"No. Thuthan thaid that I wathn't to give it to anybody but Mithter
-Mer'dith or Aunt Martha," insisted Rilla.
-
-Mary eyed her sourly.
-
-"You think you're something, don't you, all dressed up like a doll! Look
-at me. My dress is all rags and _I_ don't care! I'd rather be ragged
-than a doll baby. Go home and tell them to put you in a glass case. Look
-at me--look at me--look at me!"
-
-Mary executed a wild dance around the dismayed and bewildered Rilla,
-flirting her ragged skirt and vociferating "Look at me--look at me"
-until poor Rilla was dizzy. But as the latter tried to edge away towards
-the gate Mary pounced on her again.
-
-"You give me that basket," she ordered with a grimace. Mary was past
-mistress in the art of "making faces." She could give her countenance
-a most grotesque and unearthly appearance out of which her strange,
-brilliant, white eyes gleamed with weird effect.
-
-"I won't," gasped Rilla, frightened but staunch. "You let me go, Mary
-Vanth."
-
-Mary let go for a minute and looked around here. Just inside the gate
-was a small "flake," on which a half a dozen large codfish were drying.
-One of Mr. Meredith's parishioners had presented him with them one
-day, perhaps in lieu of the subscription he was supposed to pay to the
-stipend and never did. Mr. Meredith had thanked him and then forgotten
-all about the fish, which would have promptly spoiled had not the
-indefatigable Mary prepared them for drying and rigged up the "flake"
-herself on which to dry them.
-
-Mary had a diabolical inspiration. She flew to the "flake" and seized
-the largest fish there--a huge, flat thing, nearly as big as herself.
-With a whoop she swooped down on the terrified Rilla, brandishing her
-weird missile. Rilla's courage gave way. To be lambasted with a dried
-codfish was such an unheard-of thing that Rilla could not face it. With
-a shriek she dropped her basket and fled. The beautiful berries, which
-Susan had so tenderly selected for the minister, rolled in a rosy
-torrent over the dusty road and were trodden on by the flying feet of
-pursuer and pursued. The basket and contents were no longer in Mary's
-mind. She thought only of the delight of giving Rilla Blythe the scare
-of her life. She would teach HER to come giving herself airs because of
-her fine clothes.
-
-Rilla flew down the hill and along the street. Terror lent wings to
-her feet, and she just managed to keep ahead of Mary, who was somewhat
-hampered by her own laughter, but who had breath enough to give
-occasional blood-curdling whoops as she ran, flourishing her codfish in
-the air. Through the Glen street they swept, while everybody ran to the
-windows and gates to see them. Mary felt she was making a tremendous
-sensation and enjoyed it. Rilla, blind with terror and spent of breath,
-felt that she could run no longer. In another instant that terrible girl
-would be on her with the codfish. At this point the poor mite stumbled
-and fell into the mud-puddle at the end of the street just as Miss
-Cornelia came out of Carter Flagg's store.
-
-Miss Cornelia took the whole situation in at a glance. So did Mary. The
-latter stopped short in her mad career and before Miss Cornelia could
-speak she had whirled around and was running up as fast as she had run
-down. Miss Cornelia's lips tightened ominously, but she knew it was no
-use to think of chasing her. So she picked up poor, sobbing, dishevelled
-Rilla instead and took her home. Rilla was heart-broken. Her dress and
-slippers and hat were ruined and her six year old pride had received
-terrible bruises.
-
-Susan, white with indignation, heard Miss Cornelia's story of Mary
-Vance's exploit.
-
-"Oh, the hussy--oh, the littly hussy!" she said, as she carried Rilla
-away for purification and comfort.
-
-"This thing has gone far enough, Anne dearie," said Miss Cornelia
-resolutely. "Something must be done. WHO is this creature who is staying
-at the manse and where does she come from?"
-
-"I understood she was a little girl from over-harbour who was visiting
-at the manse," answered Anne, who saw the comical side of the codfish
-chase and secretly thought Rilla was rather vain and needed a lesson or
-two.
-
-"I know all the over-harbour families who come to our church and that
-imp doesn't belong to any of them," retorted Miss Cornelia. "She is
-almost in rags and when she goes to church she wears Faith Meredith's
-old clothes. There's some mystery here, and I'm going to investigate
-it, since it seems nobody else will. I believe she was at the bottom of
-their goings-on in Warren Mead's spruce bush the other day. Did you hear
-of their frightening his mother into a fit?"
-
-"No. I knew Gilbert had been called to see her, but I did not hear what
-the trouble was."
-
-"Well, you know she has a weak heart. And one day last week, when
-she was all alone on the veranda, she heard the most awful shrieks of
-'murder' and 'help' coming from the bush--positively frightful sounds,
-Anne dearie. Her heart gave out at once. Warren heard them himself at
-the barn, and went straight to the bush to investigate, and there he
-found all the manse children sitting on a fallen tree and screaming
-'murder' at the top of their lungs. They told him they were only in fun
-and didn't think anyone would hear them. They were just playing
-Indian ambush. Warren went back to the house and found his poor mother
-unconscious on the veranda."
-
-Susan, who had returned, sniffed contemptuously.
-
-"I think she was very far from being unconscious, Mrs. Marshall Elliott,
-and that you may tie to. I have been hearing of Amelia Warren's weak
-heart for forty years. She had it when she was twenty. She enjoys making
-a fuss and having the doctor, and any excuse will do."
-
-"I don't think Gilbert thought her attack very serious," said Anne.
-
-"Oh, that may very well be," said Miss Cornelia. "But the matter has
-made an awful lot of talk and the Meads being Methodists makes it that
-much worse. What is going to become of those children? Sometimes I
-can't sleep at nights for thinking about them, Anne dearie. I really do
-question if they get enough to eat, even, for their father is so lost
-in dreams that he doesn't often remember he has a stomach, and that lazy
-old woman doesn't bother cooking what she ought. They are just running
-wild and now that school is closing they'll be worse than ever."
-
-"They do have jolly times," said Anne, laughing over the recollections
-of some Rainbow Valley happenings that had come to her ears. "And they
-are all brave and frank and loyal and truthful."
-
-"That's a true word, Anne dearie, and when you come to think of all the
-trouble in the church those two tattling, deceitful youngsters of
-the last minister's made, I'm inclined to overlook a good deal in the
-Merediths."
-
-"When all is said and done, Mrs. Dr. dear, they are very nice children,"
-said Susan. "They have got plenty of original sin in them and that I
-will admit, but maybe it is just as well, for if they had not they might
-spoil from over-sweetness. Only I do think it is not proper for them to
-play in a graveyard and that I will maintain."
-
-"But they really play quite quietly there," excused Anne. "They don't
-run and yell as they do elsewhere. Such howls as drift up here from
-Rainbow Valley sometimes! Though I fancy my own small fry bear a valiant
-part in them. They had a sham battle there last night and had to 'roar'
-themselves, because they had no artillery to do it, so Jem says. Jem is
-passing through the stage where all boys hanker to be soldiers."
-
-"Well, thank goodness, he'll never be a soldier," said Miss Cornelia. "I
-never approved of our boys going to that South African fracas. But it's
-over, and not likely anything of the kind will ever happen again. I
-think the world is getting more sensible. As for the Merediths, I've
-said many a time and I say it again, if Mr. Meredith had a wife all
-would be well."
-
-"He called twice at the Kirks' last week, so I am told," said Susan.
-
-"Well," said Miss Cornelia thoughtfully, "as a rule, I don't approve of
-a minister marrying in his congregation. It generally spoils him. But
-in this case it would do no harm, for every one likes Elizabeth Kirk and
-nobody else is hankering for the job of stepmothering those youngsters.
-Even the Hill girls balk at that. They haven't been found laying traps
-for Mr. Meredith. Elizabeth would make him a good wife if he only
-thought so. But the trouble is, she really is homely and, Anne dearie,
-Mr. Meredith, abstracted as he is, has an eye for a good-looking woman,
-man-like. He isn't SO other-worldly when it comes to that, believe ME."
-
-"Elizabeth Kirk is a very nice person, but they do say that people have
-nearly frozen to death in her mother's spare-room bed before now, Mrs.
-Dr. dear," said Susan darkly. "If I felt I had any right to express an
-opinion concerning such a solemn matter as a minister's marriage I would
-say that I think Elizabeth's cousin Sarah, over-harbour, would make Mr.
-Meredith a better wife."
-
-"Why, Sarah Kirk is a Methodist," said Miss Cornelia, much as if Susan
-had suggested a Hottentot as a manse bride.
-
-"She would likely turn Presbyterian if she married Mr. Meredith,"
-retorted Susan.
-
-Miss Cornelia shook her head. Evidently with her it was, once a
-Methodist, always a Methodist.
-
-"Sarah Kirk is entirely out of the question," she said positively. "And
-so is Emmeline Drew--though the Drews are all trying to make the match.
-They are literally throwing poor Emmeline at his head, and he hasn't the
-least idea of it."
-
-"Emmeline Drew has no gumption, I must allow," said Susan. "She is the
-kind of woman, Mrs. Dr. dear, who would put a hot-water bottle in your
-bed on a dog-night and then have her feelings hurt because you were not
-grateful. And her mother was a very poor housekeeper. Did you ever hear
-the story of her dishcloth? She lost her dishcloth one day. But the next
-day she found it. Oh, yes, Mrs. Dr. dear, she found it, in the goose at
-the dinner-table, mixed up with the stuffing. Do you think a woman like
-that would do for a minister's mother-in-law? I do not. But no doubt
-I would be better employed in mending little Jem's trousers than in
-talking gossip about my neighbours. He tore them something scandalous
-last night in Rainbow Valley."
-
-"Where is Walter?" asked Anne.
-
-"He is up to no good, I fear, Mrs. Dr. dear. He is in the attic writing
-something in an exercise book. And he has not done as well in arithmetic
-this term as he should, so the teacher tells me. Too well I know the
-reason why. He has been writing silly rhymes when he should have been
-doing his sums. I am afraid that boy is going to be a poet, Mrs. Dr.
-dear."
-
-"He is a poet now, Susan."
-
-"Well, you take it real calm, Mrs. Dr. dear. I suppose it is the best
-way, when a person has the strength. I had an uncle who began by being
-a poet and ended up by being a tramp. Our family were dreadfully ashamed
-of him."
-
-"You don't seem to think very highly of poets, Susan," said Anne,
-laughing.
-
-"Who does, Mrs. Dr. dear?" asked Susan in genuine astonishment.
-
-"What about Milton and Shakespeare? And the poets of the Bible?"
-
-"They tell me Milton could not get along with his wife, and Shakespeare
-was no more than respectable by times. As for the Bible, of course
-things were different in those sacred days--although I never had a high
-opinion of King David, say what you will. I never knew any good to come
-of writing poetry, and I hope and pray that blessed boy will outgrow
-the tendency. If he does not--we must see what emulsion of cod-liver oil
-will do."
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII. MISS CORNELIA INTERVENES
-
-Miss Cornelia descended upon the manse the next day and cross-questioned
-Mary, who, being a young person of considerable discernment and
-astuteness, told her story simple and truthfully, with an entire absence
-of complaint or bravado. Miss Cornelia was more favourably impressed
-than she had expected to be, but deemed it her duty to be severe.
-
-"Do you think," she said sternly, "that you showed your gratitude to
-this family, who have been far too kind to you, by insulting and chasing
-one of their little friends as you did yesterday?"
-
-"Say, it was rotten mean of me," admitted Mary easily. "I dunno what
-possessed me. That old codfish seemed to come in so blamed handy. But I
-was awful sorry--I cried last night after I went to bed about it, honest
-I did. You ask Una if I didn't. I wouldn't tell her what for 'cause
-I was ashamed of it, and then she cried, too, because she was afraid
-someone had hurt my feelings. Laws, _I_ ain't got any feelings to hurt
-worth speaking of. What worries me is why Mrs. Wiley hain't been hunting
-for me. It ain't like her."
-
-Miss Cornelia herself thought it rather peculiar, but she merely
-admonished Mary sharply not to take any further liberties with the
-minister's codfish, and went to report progress at Ingleside.
-
-"If the child's story is true the matter ought to be looked into," she
-said. "I know something about that Wiley woman, believe ME. Marshall
-used to be well acquainted with her when he lived over-harbour. I heard
-him say something last summer about her and a home child she had--likely
-this very Mary-creature. He said some one told him she was working the
-child to death and not half feeding and clothing it. You know, Anne
-dearie, it has always been my habit neither to make nor meddle with
-those over-harbour folks. But I shall send Marshall over to-morrow
-to find out the rights of this if he can. And THEN I'll speak to the
-minister. Mind you, Anne dearie, the Merediths found this girl literally
-starving in James Taylor's old hay barn. She had been there all night,
-cold and hungry and alone. And us sleeping warm in our beds after good
-suppers."
-
-"The poor little thing," said Anne, picturing one of her own dear
-babies, cold and hungry and alone in such circumstances. "If she has
-been ill-used, Miss Cornelia, she mustn't be taken back to such a place.
-_I_ was an orphan once in a very similar situation."
-
-"We'll have to consult the Hopetown asylum folks," said Miss Cornelia.
-"Anyway, she can't be left at the manse. Dear knows what those poor
-children might learn from her. I understand that she has been known to
-swear. But just think of her being there two whole weeks and Mr Meredith
-never waking up to it! What business has a man like that to have a
-family? Why, Anne dearie, he ought to be a monk."
-
-Two evenings later Miss Cornelia was back at Ingleside.
-
-"It's the most amazing thing!" she said. "Mrs. Wiley was found dead in
-her bed the very morning after this Mary-creature ran away. She has had
-a bad heart for years and the doctor had warned her it might happen at
-any time. She had sent away her hired man and there was nobody in the
-house. Some neighbours found her the next day. They missed the child,
-it seems, but supposed Mrs. Wiley had sent her to her cousin near
-Charlottetown as she had said she was going to do. The cousin didn't
-come to the funeral and so nobody ever knew that Mary wasn't with her.
-The people Marshall talked to told him some things about the way Mrs.
-Wiley used this Mary that made his blood boil, so he declares. You know,
-it puts Marshall in a regular fury to hear of a child being ill-used.
-They said she whipped her mercilessly for every little fault or mistake.
-Some folks talked of writing to the asylum authorities but everybody's
-business is nobody's business and it was never done."
-
-"I am sorry that Wiley person is dead," said Susan fiercely. "I should
-like to go over-harbour and give her a piece of my mind. Starving
-and beating a child, Mrs. Dr. dear! As you know, I hold with lawful
-spanking, but I go no further. And what is to become of this poor child
-now, Mrs. Marshall Elliott?"
-
-"I suppose she must be sent back to Hopetown," said Miss Cornelia. "I
-think every one hereabouts who wants a home child has one. I'll see Mr.
-Meredith to-morrow and tell him my opinion of the whole affair."
-
-"And no doubt she will, Mrs. Dr. dear," said Susan, after Miss Cornelia
-had gone. "She would stick at nothing, not even at shingling the church
-spire if she took it into her head. But I cannot understand how even
-Cornelia Bryant can talk to a minister as she does. You would think he
-was just any common person."
-
-When Miss Cornelia had gone, Nan Blythe uncurled herself from the
-hammock where she had been studying her lessons and slipped away to
-Rainbow Valley. The others were already there. Jem and Jerry were
-playing quoits with old horseshoes borrowed from the Glen blacksmith.
-Carl was stalking ants on a sunny hillock. Walter, lying on his stomach
-among the fern, was reading aloud to Mary and Di and Faith and Una from
-a wonderful book of myths wherein were fascinating accounts of Prester
-John and the Wandering Jew, divining rods and tailed men, of Schamir,
-the worm that split rocks and opened the way to golden treasure, of
-Fortunate Isles and swan-maidens. It was a great shock to Walter to
-learn that William Tell and Gelert were myths also; and the story of
-Bishop Hatto was to keep him awake all that night; but best of all he
-loved the stories of the Pied Piper and the San Greal. He read them
-thrillingly, while the bells on the Tree Lovers tinkled in the summer
-wind and the coolness of the evening shadows crept across the valley.
-
-"Say, ain't them in'resting lies?" said Mary admiringly when Walter had
-closed the book.
-
-"They aren't lies," said Di indignantly.
-
-"You don't mean they're true?" asked Mary incredulously.
-
-"No--not exactly. They're like those ghost-stories of yours. They
-weren't true--but you didn't expect us to believe them, so they weren't
-lies."
-
-"That yarn about the divining rod is no lie, anyhow," said Mary.
-"Old Jake Crawford over-harbour can work it. They send for him from
-everywhere when they want to dig a well. And I believe I know the
-Wandering Jew."
-
-"Oh, Mary," said Una, awe-struck.
-
-"I do--true's you're alive. There was an old man at Mrs. Wiley's one day
-last fall. He looked old enough to be ANYTHING. She was asking him about
-cedar posts, if he thought they'd last well. And he said, 'Last well?
-They'll last a thousand years. I know, for I've tried them twice.' Now,
-if he was two thousand years old who was he but your Wandering Jew?"
-
-"I don't believe the Wandering Jew would associate with a person like
-Mrs. Wiley," said Faith decidedly.
-
-"I love the Pied Piper story," said Di, "and so does mother. I always
-feel so sorry for the poor little lame boy who couldn't keep up with
-the others and got shut out of the mountain. He must have been so
-disappointed. I think all the rest of his life he'd be wondering what
-wonderful thing he had missed and wishing he could have got in with the
-others."
-
-"But how glad his mother must have been," said Una softly. "I think she
-had been sorry all her life that he was lame. Perhaps she even used to
-cry about it. But she would never be sorry again--never. She would be
-glad he was lame because that was why she hadn't lost him."
-
-"Some day," said Walter dreamily, looking afar into the sky, "the Pied
-Piper will come over the hill up there and down Rainbow Valley, piping
-merrily and sweetly. And I will follow him--follow him down to the
-shore--down to the sea--away from you all. I don't think I'll want to
-go--Jem will want to go--it will be such an adventure--but I won't.
-Only I'll HAVE to--the music will call and call and call me until I MUST
-follow."
-
-"We'll all go," cried Di, catching fire at the flame of Walter's fancy,
-and half-believing she could see the mocking, retreating figure of the
-mystic piper in the far, dim end of the valley.
-
-"No. You'll sit here and wait," said Walter, his great, splendid eyes
-full of strange glamour. "You'll wait for us to come back. And we may
-not come--for we cannot come as long as the Piper plays. He may pipe us
-round the world. And still you'll sit here and wait--and WAIT."
-
-"Oh, dry up," said Mary, shivering. "Don't look like that, Walter
-Blythe. You give me the creeps. Do you want to set me bawling? I could
-just see that horrid old Piper going away on, and you boys following
-him, and us girls sitting here waiting all alone. I dunno why it is--I
-never was one of the blubbering kind--but as soon as you start your
-spieling I always want to cry."
-
-Walter smiled in triumph. He liked to exercise this power of his over
-his companions--to play on their feelings, waken their fears, thrill
-their souls. It satisfied some dramatic instinct in him. But under his
-triumph was a queer little chill of some mysterious dread. The Pied
-Piper had seemed very real to him--as if the fluttering veil that hid
-the future had for a moment been blown aside in the starlit dusk of
-Rainbow Valley and some dim glimpse of coming years granted to him.
-
-Carl, coming up to their group with a report of the doings in ant-land,
-brought them all back to the realm of facts.
-
-"Ants ARE darned in'resting," exclaimed Mary, glad to escape the shadowy
-Piper's thrall. "Carl and me watched that bed in the graveyard all
-Saturday afternoon. I never thought there was so much in bugs. Say, but
-they're quarrelsome little cusses--some of 'em like to start a fight
-'thout any reason, far's we could see. And some of 'em are cowards. They
-got so scared they just doubled theirselves up into a ball and let the
-other fellows bang 'em. They wouldn't put up a fight at all. Some of 'em
-are lazy and won't work. We watched 'em shirking. And there was one ant
-died of grief 'cause another ant got killed--wouldn't work--wouldn't
-eat--just died--it did, honest to Go--oodness."
-
-A shocked silence prevailed. Every one knew that Mary had not started
-out to say "goodness." Faith and Di exchanged glances that would
-have done credit to Miss Cornelia herself. Walter and Carl looked
-uncomfortable and Una's lip trembled.
-
-Mary squirmed uncomfortably.
-
-"That slipped out 'fore I thought--it did, honest to--I mean, true's
-you live, and I swallowed half of it. You folks over here are mighty
-squeamish seems to me. Wish you could have heard the Wileys when they
-had a fight."
-
-"Ladies don't say such things," said Faith, very primly for her.
-
-"It isn't right," whispered Una.
-
-"I ain't a lady," said Mary. "What chance've I ever had of being a lady?
-But I won't say that again if I can help it. I promise you."
-
-"Besides," said Una, "you can't expect God to answer your prayers if you
-take His name in vain, Mary."
-
-"I don't expect Him to answer 'em anyhow," said Mary of little faith.
-"I've been asking Him for a week to clear up this Wiley affair and He
-hasn't done a thing. I'm going to give up."
-
-At this juncture Nan arrived breathless.
-
-"Oh, Mary, I've news for you. Mrs. Elliott has been over-harbour and
-what do you think she found out? Mrs. Wiley is dead--she was found dead
-in bed the morning after you ran away. So you'll never have to go back
-to her."
-
-"Dead!" said Mary stupefied. Then she shivered.
-
-"Do you s'pose my praying had anything to do with that?" she cried
-imploringly to Una. "If it had I'll never pray again as long as I live.
-Why, she may come back and ha'nt me."
-
-"No, no, Mary," said Una comfortingly, "it hadn't. Why, Mrs. Wiley died
-long before you ever began to pray about it at all."
-
-"That's so," said Mary recovering from her panic. "But I tell you it
-gave me a start. I wouldn't like to think I'd prayed anybody to death.
-I never thought of such a thing as her dying when I was praying. She
-didn't seem much like the dying kind. Did Mrs. Elliott say anything
-about me?"
-
-"She said you would likely have to go back to the asylum."
-
-"I thought as much," said Mary drearily. "And then they'll give me out
-again--likely to some one just like Mrs. Wiley. Well, I s'pose I can
-stand it. I'm tough."
-
-"I'm going to pray that you won't have to go back," whispered Una, as
-she and Mary walked home to the manse.
-
-"You can do as you like," said Mary decidedly, "but I vow _I_ won't. I'm
-good and scared of this praying business. See what's come of it. If Mrs.
-Wiley HAD died after I started praying it would have been my doings."
-
-"Oh, no, it wouldn't," said Una. "I wish I could explain things
-better--father could, I know, if you'd talk to him, Mary."
-
-"Catch me! I don't know what to make of your father, that's the long and
-short of it. He goes by me and never sees me in broad daylight. I ain't
-proud--but I ain't a door-mat, neither!"
-
-"Oh, Mary, it's just father's way. Most of the time he never sees us,
-either. He is thinking deeply, that is all. And I AM going to pray that
-God will keep you in Four Winds--because I like you, Mary."
-
-"All right. Only don't let me hear of any more people dying on account
-of it," said Mary. "I'd like to stay in Four Winds fine. I like it and
-I like the harbour and the light house--and you and the Blythes. You're
-the only friends I ever had and I'd hate to leave you."
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX. UNA INTERVENES
-
-Miss Cornelia had an interview with Mr. Meredith which proved something
-of a shock to that abstracted gentleman. She pointed out to him, none
-too respectfully, his dereliction of duty in allowing a waif like Mary
-Vance to come into his family and associate with his children without
-knowing or learning anything about her.
-
-"I don't say there is much harm done, of course," she concluded. "This
-Mary-creature isn't what you might call bad, when all is said and done.
-I've been questioning your children and the Blythes, and from what I can
-make out there's nothing much to be said against the child except that
-she's slangy and doesn't use very refined language. But think what might
-have happened if she'd been like some of those home children we know of.
-You know yourself what that poor little creature the Jim Flaggs' had,
-taught and told the Flagg children."
-
-Mr. Meredith did know and was honestly shocked over his own carelessness
-in the matter.
-
-"But what is to be done, Mrs. Elliott?" he asked helplessly. "We can't
-turn the poor child out. She must be cared for."
-
-"Of course. We'd better write to the Hopetown authorities at once.
-Meanwhile, I suppose she might as well stay here for a few more days
-till we hear from them. But keep your eyes and ears open, Mr. Meredith."
-
-Susan would have died of horror on the spot if she had heard Miss
-Cornelia so admonishing a minister. But Miss Cornelia departed in a warm
-glow of satisfaction over duty done, and that night Mr. Meredith asked
-Mary to come into his study with him. Mary obeyed, looking literally
-ghastly with fright. But she got the surprise of her poor, battered
-little life. This man, of whom she had stood so terribly in awe, was the
-kindest, gentlest soul she had ever met. Before she knew what happened
-Mary found herself pouring all her troubles into his ear and receiving
-in return such sympathy and tender understanding as it had never
-occurred to her to imagine. Mary left the study with her face and eyes
-so softened that Una hardly knew her.
-
-"Your father's all right, when he does wake up," she said with a sniff
-that just escaped being a sob. "It's a pity he doesn't wake up oftener.
-He said I wasn't to blame for Mrs. Wiley dying, but that I must try
-to think of her good points and not of her bad ones. I dunno what
-good points she had, unless it was keeping her house clean and making
-first-class butter. I know I 'most wore my arms out scrubbing her old
-kitchen floor with the knots in it. But anything your father says goes
-with me after this."
-
-Mary proved a rather dull companion in the following days, however. She
-confided to Una that the more she thought of going back to the asylum
-the more she hated it. Una racked her small brains for some way of
-averting it, but it was Nan Blythe who came to the rescue with a
-somewhat startling suggestion.
-
-"Mrs. Elliott might take Mary herself. She has a great big house and Mr.
-Elliott is always wanting her to have help. It would be just a splendid
-place for Mary. Only she'd have to behave herself."
-
-"Oh, Nan, do you think Mrs. Elliott would take her?"
-
-"It wouldn't do any harm if you asked her," said Nan. At first Una did
-not think she could. She was so shy that to ask a favour of anybody was
-agony to her. And she was very much in awe of the bustling, energetic
-Mrs. Elliott. She liked her very much and always enjoyed a visit to her
-house; but to go and ask her to adopt Mary Vance seemed such a height of
-presumption that Una's timid spirit quailed.
-
-When the Hopetown authorities wrote to Mr. Meredith to send Mary to them
-without delay Mary cried herself to sleep in the manse attic that night
-and Una found a desperate courage. The next evening she slipped away
-from the manse to the harbour road. Far down in Rainbow Valley she heard
-joyous laughter but her way lay not there. She was terribly pale and
-terribly in earnest--so much so that she took no notice of the people
-she met--and old Mrs. Stanley Flagg was quite huffed and said Una
-Meredith would be as absentminded as her father when she grew up.
-
-Miss Cornelia lived half way between the Glen and Four Winds Point, in a
-house whose original glaring green hue had mellowed down to an agreeable
-greenish gray. Marshall Elliott had planted trees about it and set out a
-rose garden and a spruce hedge. It was quite a different place from
-what it had been in years agone. The manse children and the Ingleside
-children liked to go there. It was a beautiful walk down the old harbour
-road, and there was always a well-filled cooky jar at the end.
-
-The misty sea was lapping softly far down on the sands. Three big boats
-were skimming down the harbour like great white sea-birds. A schooner
-was coming up the channel. The world of Four Winds was steeped in
-glowing colour, and subtle music, and strange glamour, and everybody
-should have been happy in it. But when Una turned in at Miss Cornelia's
-gate her very legs had almost refused to carry her.
-
-Miss Cornelia was alone on the veranda. Una had hoped Mr. Elliott would
-be there. He was so big and hearty and twinkly that there would be
-encouragement in his presence. She sat on the little stool Miss Cornelia
-brought out and tried to eat the doughnut Miss Cornelia gave her. It
-stuck in her throat, but she swallowed desperately lest Miss Cornelia be
-offended. She could not talk; she was still pale; and her big, dark-blue
-eyes looked so piteous that Miss Cornelia concluded the child was in
-some trouble.
-
-"What's on your mind, dearie?" she asked. "There's something, that's
-plain to be seen."
-
-Una swallowed the last twist of doughnut with a desperate gulp.
-
-"Mrs. Elliott, won't you take Mary Vance?" she said beseechingly.
-
-Miss Cornelia stared blankly.
-
-"Me! Take Mary Vance! Do you mean keep her?"
-
-"Yes--keep her--adopt her," said Una eagerly, gaining courage now that
-the ice was broken. "Oh, Mrs. Elliott, PLEASE do. She doesn't want to go
-back to the asylum--she cries every night about it. She's so afraid
-of being sent to another hard place. And she's SO smart--there isn't
-anything she can't do. I know you wouldn't be sorry if you took her."
-
-"I never thought of such a thing," said Miss Cornelia rather helplessly.
-
-"WON'T you think of it?" implored Una.
-
-"But, dearie, I don't want help. I'm quite able to do all the work here.
-And I never thought I'd like to have a home girl if I did need help."
-
-The light went out of Una's eyes. Her lips trembled. She sat down on her
-stool again, a pathetic little figure of disappointment, and began to
-cry.
-
-"Don't--dearie--don't," exclaimed Miss Cornelia in distress. She could
-never bear to hurt a child. "I don't say I WON'T take her--but the idea
-is so new it has just kerflummuxed me. I must think it over."
-
-"Mary is SO smart," said Una again.
-
-"Humph! So I've heard. I've heard she swears, too. Is that true?"
-
-"I've never heard her swear EXACTLY," faltered Una uncomfortably. "But
-I'm afraid she COULD."
-
-"I believe you! Does she always tell the truth?"
-
-"I think she does, except when she's afraid of a whipping."
-
-"And yet you want me to take her!"
-
-"SOME ONE has to take her," sobbed Una. "SOME ONE has to look after her,
-Mrs. Elliott."
-
-"That's true. Perhaps it IS my duty to do it," said Miss Cornelia with
-a sigh. "Well, I'll have to talk it over with Mr. Elliott. So don't say
-anything about it just yet. Take another doughnut, dearie."
-
-Una took it and ate it with a better appetite.
-
-"I'm very fond of doughnuts," she confessed "Aunt Martha never makes
-any. But Miss Susan at Ingleside does, and sometimes she lets us have
-a plateful in Rainbow Valley. Do you know what I do when I'm hungry for
-doughnuts and can't get any, Mrs. Elliott?"
-
-"No, dearie. What?"
-
-"I get out mother's old cook book and read the doughnut recipe--and
-the other recipes. They sound SO nice. I always do that when I'm
-hungry--especially after we've had ditto for dinner. THEN I read the
-fried chicken and the roast goose recipes. Mother could make all those
-nice things."
-
-"Those manse children will starve to death yet if Mr. Meredith doesn't
-get married," Miss Cornelia told her husband indignantly after Una
-had gone. "And he won't--and what's to be done? And SHALL we take this
-Mary-creature, Marshall?"
-
-"Yes, take her," said Marshall laconically.
-
-"Just like a man," said his wife, despairingly. "'Take her'--as if that
-was all. There are a hundred things to be considered, believe ME."
-
-"Take her--and we'll consider them afterwards, Cornelia," said her
-husband.
-
-In the end Miss Cornelia did take her and went up to announce her
-decision to the Ingleside people first.
-
-"Splendid!" said Anne delightedly. "I've been hoping you would do that
-very thing, Miss Cornelia. I want that poor child to get a good home. I
-was a homeless little orphan just like her once."
-
-"I don't think this Mary-creature is or ever will be much like you,"
-retorted Miss Cornelia gloomily. "She's a cat of another colour. But
-she's also a human being with an immortal soul to save. I've got a
-shorter catechism and a small tooth comb and I'm going to do my duty by
-her, now that I've set my hand to the plough, believe me."
-
-Mary received the news with chastened satisfaction.
-
-"It's better luck than I expected," she said.
-
-"You'll have to mind your p's and q's with Mrs. Elliott," said Nan.
-
-"Well, I can do that," flashed Mary. "I know how to behave when I want
-to just as well as you, Nan Blythe."
-
-"You mustn't use bad words, you know, Mary," said Una anxiously.
-
-"I s'pose she'd die of horror if I did," grinned Mary, her white eyes
-shining with unholy glee over the idea. "But you needn't worry, Una.
-Butter won't melt in my mouth after this. I'll be all prunes and
-prisms."
-
-"Nor tell lies," added Faith.
-
-"Not even to get off from a whipping?" pleaded Mary.
-
-"Mrs. Elliott will NEVER whip you--NEVER," exclaimed Di.
-
-"Won't she?" said Mary skeptically. "If I ever find myself in a place
-where I ain't licked I'll think it's heaven all right. No fear of me
-telling lies then. I ain't fond of telling 'em--I'd ruther not, if it
-comes to that."
-
-The day before Mary's departure from the manse they had a picnic in her
-honour in Rainbow Valley, and that evening all the manse children
-gave her something from their scanty store of treasured things for
-a keepsake. Carl gave her his Noah's ark and Jerry his second best
-jew's-harp. Faith gave her a little hairbrush with a mirror in the back
-of it, which Mary had always considered very wonderful. Una hesitated
-between an old beaded purse and a gay picture of Daniel in the lion's
-den, and finally offered Mary her choice. Mary really hankered after the
-beaded purse, but she knew Una loved it, so she said,
-
-"Give me Daniel. I'd rusher have it 'cause I'm partial to lions. Only I
-wish they'd et Daniel up. It would have been more exciting."
-
-At bedtime Mary coaxed Una to sleep with her.
-
-"It's for the last time," she said, "and it's raining tonight, and
-I hate sleeping up there alone when it's raining on account of that
-graveyard. I don't mind it on fine nights, but a night like this I can't
-see anything but the rain pouring down on them old white stones, and the
-wind round the window sounds as if them dead people were trying to get
-in and crying 'cause they couldn't."
-
-"I like rainy nights," said Una, when they were cuddled down together in
-the little attic room, "and so do the Blythe girls."
-
-"I don't mind 'em when I'm not handy to graveyards," said Mary. "If I
-was alone here I'd cry my eyes out I'd be so lonesome. I feel awful bad
-to be leaving you all."
-
-"Mrs. Elliott will let you come up and play in Rainbow Valley quite
-often I'm sure," said Una. "And you WILL be a good girl, won't you,
-Mary?"
-
-"Oh, I'll try," sighed Mary. "But it won't be as easy for me to be
-good--inside, I mean, as well as outside--as it is for you. You hadn't
-such scalawags of relations as I had."
-
-"But your people must have had some good qualities as well as bad ones,"
-argued Una. "You must live up to them and never mind their bad ones."
-
-"I don't believe they had any good qualities," said Mary gloomily. "I
-never heard of any. My grandfather had money, but they say he was a
-rascal. No, I'll just have to start out on my own hook and do the best I
-can."
-
-"And God will help you, you know, Mary, if you ask Him."
-
-"I don't know about that."
-
-"Oh, Mary. You know we asked God to get a home for you and He did."
-
-"I don't see what He had to do with it," retorted Mary. "It was you put
-it into Mrs. Elliott's head."
-
-"But God put it into her HEART to take you. All my putting it into her
-HEAD wouldn't have done any good if He hadn't."
-
-"Well, there may be something in that," admitted Mary. "Mind you, I
-haven't got anything against God, Una. I'm willing to give Him a
-chance. But, honest, I think He's an awful lot like your father--just
-absent-minded and never taking any notice of a body most of the time,
-but sometimes waking up all of a suddent and being awful good and kind
-and sensible."
-
-"Oh, Mary, no!" exclaimed horrified Una. "God isn't a bit like father--I
-mean He's a thousand times better and kinder."
-
-"If He's as good as your father He'll do for me," said Mary. "When your
-father was talking to me I felt as if I never could be bad any more."
-
-"I wish you'd talk to father about Him," sighed Una. "He can explain it
-all so much better than I can."
-
-"Why, so I will, next time he wakes up," promised Mary. "That night he
-talked to me in the study he showed me real clear that my praying didn't
-kill Mrs. Wiley. My mind's been easy since, but I'm real cautious about
-praying. I guess the old rhyme is the safest. Say, Una, it seems to me
-if one has to pray to anybody it'd be better to pray to the devil than
-to God. God's good, anyhow so you say, so He won't do you any harm,
-but from all I can make out the devil needs to be pacified. I think the
-sensible way would be to say to HIM, 'Good devil, please don't tempt me.
-Just leave me alone, please.' Now, don't you?"
-
-"Oh, no, no, Mary. I'm sure it couldn't be right to pray to the devil.
-And it wouldn't do any good because he's bad. It might aggravate him and
-he'd be worse than ever."
-
-"Well, as to this God-matter," said Mary stubbornly, "since you and I
-can't settle it, there ain't no use in talking more about it until we've
-a chanct to find out the rights of it. I'll do the best I can alone till
-then."
-
-"If mother was alive she could tell us everything," said Una with a
-sigh.
-
-"I wisht she was alive," said Mary. "I don't know what's going to become
-of you youngsters when I'm gone. Anyhow, DO try and keep the house a
-little tidy. The way people talks about it is scandalous. And the first
-thing you know your father will be getting married again and then your
-noses will be out of joint."
-
-Una was startled. The idea of her father marrying again had never
-presented itself to her before. She did not like it and she lay silent
-under the chill of it.
-
-"Stepmothers are AWFUL creatures," Mary went on. "I could make your
-blood run cold if I was to tell you all I know about 'em. The Wilson
-kids across the road from Wiley's had a stepmother. She was just as bad
-to 'em as Mrs. Wiley was to me. It'll be awful if you get a stepmother."
-
-"I'm sure we won't," said Una tremulously. "Father won't marry anybody
-else."
-
-"He'll be hounded into it, I expect," said Mary darkly. "All the old
-maids in the settlement are after him. There's no being up to them. And
-the worst of stepmothers is, they always set your father against you.
-He'd never care anything about you again. He'd always take her part and
-her children's part. You see, she'd make him believe you were all bad."
-
-"I wish you hadn't told me this, Mary," cried Una. "It makes me feel so
-unhappy."
-
-"I only wanted to warn you," said Mary, rather repentantly. "Of course,
-your father's so absent-minded he mightn't happen to think of getting
-married again. But it's better to be prepared."
-
-Long after Mary slept serenely little Una lay awake, her eyes smarting
-with tears. On, how dreadful it would be if her father should marry
-somebody who would make him hate her and Jerry and Faith and Carl! She
-couldn't bear it--she couldn't!
-
-Mary had not instilled any poison of the kind Miss Cornelia had feared
-into the manse children's minds. Yet she had certainly contrived to do a
-little mischief with the best of intentions. But she slept dreamlessly,
-while Una lay awake and the rain fell and the wind wailed around the
-old gray manse. And the Rev. John Meredith forgot to go to bed at all
-because he was absorbed in reading a life of St. Augustine. It was gray
-dawn when he finished it and went upstairs, wrestling with the problems
-of two thousand years ago. The door of the girls' room was open and he
-saw Faith lying asleep, rosy and beautiful. He wondered where Una was.
-Perhaps she had gone over to "stay all night" with the Blythe girls. She
-did this occasionally, deeming it a great treat. John Meredith sighed.
-He felt that Una's whereabouts ought not to be a mystery to him. Cecelia
-would have looked after her better than that.
-
-If only Cecelia were still with him! How pretty and gay she had been!
-How the old manse up at Maywater had echoed to her songs! And she
-had gone away so suddenly, taking her laughter and music and leaving
-silence--so suddenly that he had never quite got over his feeling of
-amazement. How could SHE, the beautiful and vivid, have died?
-
-The idea of a second marriage had never presented itself seriously to
-John Meredith. He had loved his wife so deeply that he believed he could
-never care for any woman again. He had a vague idea that before very
-long Faith would be old enough to take her mother's place. Until then,
-he must do the best he could alone. He sighed and went to his room,
-where the bed was still unmade. Aunt Martha had forgotten it, and Mary
-had not dared to make it because Aunt Martha had forbidden her to meddle
-with anything in the minister's room. But Mr. Meredith did not notice
-that it was unmade. His last thoughts were of St. Augustine.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X. THE MANSE GIRLS CLEAN HOUSE
-
-"Ugh," said Faith, sitting up in bed with a shiver. "It's raining. I do
-hate a rainy Sunday. Sunday is dull enough even when it's fine."
-
-"We oughtn't to find Sunday dull," said Una sleepily, trying to pull her
-drowsy wits together with an uneasy conviction that they had overslept.
-
-"But we DO, you know," said Faith candidly. "Mary Vance says most
-Sundays are so dull she could hang herself."
-
-"We ought to like Sunday better than Mary Vance," said Una remorsefully.
-"We're the minister's children."
-
-"I wish we were a blacksmith's children," protested Faith angrily,
-hunting for her stockings. "THEN people wouldn't expect us to be better
-than other children. JUST look at the holes in my heels. Mary darned
-them all up before she went away, but they're as bad as ever now. Una,
-get up. I can't get the breakfast alone. Oh, dear. I wish father and
-Jerry were home. You wouldn't think we'd miss father much--we don't see
-much of him when he is home. And yet EVERYTHING seems gone. I must run
-in and see how Aunt Martha is."
-
-"Is she any better?" asked Una, when Faith returned.
-
-"No, she isn't. She's groaning with the misery still. Maybe we ought to
-tell Dr. Blythe. But she says not--she never had a doctor in her
-life and she isn't going to begin now. She says doctors just live by
-poisoning people. Do you suppose they do?"
-
-"No, of course not," said Una indignantly. "I'm sure Dr. Blythe wouldn't
-poison anybody."
-
-"Well, we'll have to rub Aunt Martha's back again after breakfast. We'd
-better not make the flannels as hot as we did yesterday."
-
-Faith giggled over the remembrance. They had nearly scalded the skin off
-poor Aunt Martha's back. Una sighed. Mary Vance would have known just
-what the precise temperature of flannels for a misery back should be.
-Mary knew everything. They knew nothing. And how could they learn,
-save by bitter experience for which, in this instance, unfortunate Aunt
-Martha had paid?
-
-The preceding Monday Mr. Meredith had left for Nova Scotia to spend
-his short vacation, taking Jerry with him. On Wednesday Aunt Martha was
-suddenly seized with a recurring and mysterious ailment which she always
-called "the misery," and which was tolerably certain to attack her
-at the most inconvenient times. She could not rise from her bed, any
-movement causing agony. A doctor she flatly refused to have. Faith and
-Una cooked the meals and waited on her. The less said about the meals
-the better--yet they were not much worse than Aunt Martha's had been.
-There were many women in the village who would have been glad to come
-and help, but Aunt Martha refused to let her plight be known.
-
-"You must worry on till I kin git around," she groaned. "Thank goodness,
-John isn't here. There's a plenty o' cold biled meat and bread and you
-kin try your hand at making porridge."
-
-The girls had tried their hand, but so far without much success. The
-first day it had been too thin. The next day so thick that you could cut
-it in slices. And both days it had been burned.
-
-"I hate porridge," said Faith viciously. "When I have a house of my own
-I'm NEVER going to have a single bit of porridge in it."
-
-"What'll your children do then?" asked Una. "Children have to have
-porridge or they won't grow. Everybody says so."
-
-"They'll have to get along without it or stay runts," retorted Faith
-stubbornly. "Here, Una, you stir it while I set the table. If I leave it
-for a minute the horrid stuff will burn. It's half past nine. We'll be
-late for Sunday School."
-
-"I haven't seen anyone going past yet," said Una. "There won't likely be
-many out. Just see how it's pouring. And when there's no preaching the
-folks won't come from a distance to bring the children."
-
-"Go and call Carl," said Faith.
-
-Carl, it appeared, had a sore throat, induced by getting wet in the
-Rainbow Valley marsh the previous evening while pursuing dragon-flies.
-He had come home with dripping stockings and boots and had sat out the
-evening in them. He could not eat any breakfast and Faith made him go
-back to bed again. She and Una left the table as it was and went to
-Sunday School. There was no one in the school room when they got there
-and no one came. They waited until eleven and then went home.
-
-"There doesn't seem to be anybody at the Methodist Sunday School
-either," said Una.
-
-"I'm GLAD," said Faith. "I'd hate to think the Methodists were better
-at going to Sunday School on rainy Sundays than the Presbyterians. But
-there's no preaching in their Church to-day, either, so likely their
-Sunday School is in the afternoon."
-
-Una washed the dishes, doing them quite nicely, for so much had she
-learned from Mary Vance. Faith swept the floor after a fashion and
-peeled the potatoes for dinner, cutting her finger in the process.
-
-"I wish we had something for dinner besides ditto," sighed Una. "I'm so
-tired of it. The Blythe children don't know what ditto is. And we NEVER
-have any pudding. Nan says Susan would faint if they had no pudding on
-Sundays. Why aren't we like other people, Faith?"
-
-"I don't want to be like other people," laughed Faith, tying up her
-bleeding finger. "I like being myself. It's more interesting. Jessie
-Drew is as good a housekeeper as her mother, but would you want to be as
-stupid as she is?"
-
-"But our house isn't right. Mary Vance says so. She says people talk
-about it being so untidy."
-
-Faith had an inspiration.
-
-"We'll clean it all up," she cried. "We'll go right to work to-morrow.
-It's a real good chance when Aunt Martha is laid up and can't interfere
-with us. We'll have it all lovely and clean when father comes home, just
-like it was when Mary went away. ANY ONE can sweep and dust and wash
-windows. People won't be able to talk about us any more. Jem Blythe
-says it's only old cats that talk, but their talk hurts just as much as
-anybody's."
-
-"I hope it will be fine to-morrow," said Una, fired with enthusiasm.
-"Oh, Faith, it will be splendid to be all cleaned up and like other
-people."
-
-"I hope Aunt Martha's misery will last over to-morrow," said Faith. "If
-it doesn't we won't get a single thing done."
-
-Faith's amiable wish was fulfilled. The next day found Aunt Martha still
-unable to rise. Carl, too, was still sick and easily prevailed on to
-stay in bed. Neither Faith nor Una had any idea how sick the boy really
-was; a watchful mother would have had a doctor without delay; but there
-was no mother, and poor little Carl, with his sore throat and aching
-head and crimson cheeks, rolled himself up in his twisted bedclothes and
-suffered alone, somewhat comforted by the companionship of a small green
-lizard in the pocket of his ragged nighty.
-
-The world was full of summer sunshine after the rain. It was a peerless
-day for house-cleaning and Faith and Una went gaily to work.
-
-"We'll clean the dining-room and the parlour," said Faith. "It wouldn't
-do to meddle with the study, and it doesn't matter much about the
-upstairs. The first thing is to take everything out."
-
-Accordingly, everything was taken out. The furniture was piled on the
-veranda and lawn and the Methodist graveyard fence was gaily draped with
-rugs. An orgy of sweeping followed, with an attempt at dusting on Una's
-part, while Faith washed the windows of the dining-room, breaking one
-pane and cracking two in the process. Una surveyed the streaked result
-dubiously.
-
-"They don't look right, somehow," she said. "Mrs. Elliott's and Susan's
-windows just shine and sparkle."
-
-"Never mind. They let the sunshine through just as well," said Faith
-cheerfully. "They MUST be clean after all the soap and water I've used,
-and that's the main thing. Now, it's past eleven, so I'll wipe up this
-mess on the floor and we'll go outside. You dust the furniture and I'll
-shake the rugs. I'm going to do it in the graveyard. I don't want to
-send dust flying all over the lawn."
-
-Faith enjoyed the rug shaking. To stand on Hezekiah Pollock's tombstone,
-flapping and shaking rugs, was real fun. To be sure, Elder Abraham
-Clow and his wife, driving past in their capacious double-seated buggy,
-seemed to gaze at her in grim disapproval.
-
-"Isn't that a terrible sight?" said Elder Abraham solemnly.
-
-"I would never have believed it if I hadn't seen it with my own eyes,"
-said Mrs. Elder Abraham, more solemnly still.
-
-Faith waved a door mat cheerily at the Clow party. It did not worry her
-that the elder and his wife did not return her greeting. Everybody
-knew that Elder Abraham had never been known to smile since he had been
-appointed Superintendent of the Sunday School fourteen years previously.
-But it hurt her that Minnie and Adella Clow did not wave back. Faith
-liked Minnie and Adella. Next to the Blythes, they were her best friends
-in school and she always helped Adella with her sums. This was gratitude
-for you. Her friends cut her because she was shaking rugs in an old
-graveyard where, as Mary Vance said, not a living soul had been buried
-for years. Faith flounced around to the veranda, where she found Una
-grieved in spirit because the Clow girls had not waved to her, either.
-
-"I suppose they're mad over something," said Faith. "Perhaps they're
-jealous because we play so much in Rainbow Valley with the Blythes.
-Well, just wait till school opens and Adella wants me to show her how to
-do her sums! We'll get square then. Come on, let's put the things back
-in. I'm tired to death and I don't believe the rooms will look much
-better than before we started--though I shook out pecks of dust in the
-graveyard. I HATE house-cleaning."
-
-It was two o'clock before the tired girls finished the two rooms. They
-got a dreary bite in the kitchen and intended to wash the dishes at
-once. But Faith happened to pick up a new story-book Di Blythe had lent
-her and was lost to the world until sunset. Una took a cup of rank tea
-up to Carl but found him asleep; so she curled herself up on Jerry's bed
-and went to sleep too. Meanwhile, a weird story flew through Glen St.
-Mary and folks asked each other seriously what was to be done with those
-manse youngsters.
-
-"That is past laughing at, believe ME," said Miss Cornelia to her
-husband, with a heavy sigh. "I couldn't believe it at first. Miranda
-Drew brought the story home from the Methodist Sunday School this
-afternoon and I simply scoffed at it. But Mrs. Elder Abraham says she
-and the Elder saw it with their own eyes."
-
-"Saw what?" asked Marshall.
-
-"Faith and Una Meredith stayed home from Sunday School this morning and
-CLEANED HOUSE," said Miss Cornelia, in accents of despair. "When Elder
-Abraham went home from the church--he had stayed behind to straighten
-out the library books--he saw them shaking rugs in the Methodist
-graveyard. I can never look a Methodist in the face again. Just think
-what a scandal it will make!"
-
-A scandal it assuredly did make, growing more scandalous as it spread,
-until the over-harbour people heard that the manse children had not only
-cleaned house and put out a washing on Sunday, but had wound up with an
-afternoon picnic in the graveyard while the Methodist Sunday School was
-going on. The only household which remained in blissful ignorance of
-the terrible thing was the manse itself; on what Faith and Una fondly
-believed to be Tuesday it rained again; for the next three days it
-rained; nobody came near the manse; the manse folk went nowhere; they
-might have waded through the misty Rainbow Valley up to Ingleside, but
-all the Blythe family, save Susan and the doctor, were away on a visit
-to Avonlea.
-
-"This is the last of our bread," said Faith, "and the ditto is done. If
-Aunt Martha doesn't get better soon WHAT will we do?"
-
-"We can buy some bread in the village and there's the codfish Mary
-dried," said Una. "But we don't know how to cook it."
-
-"Oh, that's easy," laughed Faith. "You just boil it."
-
-Boil it they did; but as it did not occur to them to soak it beforehand
-it was too salty to eat. That night they were very hungry; but by the
-following day their troubles were over. Sunshine returned to the world;
-Carl was well and Aunt Martha's misery left her as suddenly as it had
-come; the butcher called at the manse and chased famine away. To crown
-all, the Blythes returned home, and that evening they and the manse
-children and Mary Vance kept sunset tryst once more in Rainbow Valley,
-where the daisies were floating upon the grass like spirits of the dew
-and the bells on the Tree Lovers rang like fairy chimes in the scented
-twilight.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI. A DREADFUL DISCOVERY
-
-"Well, you kids have gone and done it now," was Mary's greeting, as she
-joined them in the Valley. Miss Cornelia was up at Ingleside, holding
-agonized conclave with Anne and Susan, and Mary hoped that the session
-might be a long one, for it was all of two weeks since she had been
-allowed to revel with her chums in the dear valley of rainbows.
-
-"Done what?" demanded everybody but Walter, who was day-dreaming as
-usual.
-
-"It's you manse young ones, I mean," said Mary. "It was just awful of
-you. _I_ wouldn't have done such a thing for the world, and _I_ weren't
-brought up in a manse--weren't brought up ANYWHERE--just COME up."
-
-"What have WE done?" asked Faith blankly.
-
-"Done! You'd BETTER ask! The talk is something terrible. I expect it's
-ruined your father in this congregation. He'll never be able to live it
-down, poor man! Everybody blames him for it, and that isn't fair. But
-nothing IS fair in this world. You ought to be ashamed of yourselves."
-
-"What HAVE we done?" asked Una again, despairingly. Faith said nothing,
-but her eyes flashed golden-brown scorn at Mary.
-
-"Oh, don't pretend innocence," said Mary, witheringly. "Everybody knows
-what you have done."
-
-"_I_ don't," interjected Jem Blythe indignantly. "Don't let me catch you
-making Una cry, Mary Vance. What are you talking about?"
-
-"I s'pose you don't know, since you're just back from up west," said
-Mary, somewhat subdued. Jem could always manage her. "But everybody else
-knows, you'd better believe."
-
-"Knows what?"
-
-"That Faith and Una stayed home from Sunday School last Sunday and
-CLEANED HOUSE."
-
-"We didn't," cried Faith and Una, in passionate denial.
-
-Mary looked haughtily at them.
-
-"I didn't suppose you'd deny it, after the way you've combed ME down for
-lying," she said. "What's the good of saying you didn't? Everybody knows
-you DID. Elder Clow and his wife saw you. Some people say it will break
-up the church, but _I_ don't go that far. You ARE nice ones."
-
-Nan Blythe stood up and put her arms around the dazed Faith and Una.
-
-"They were nice enough to take you in and feed you and clothe you when
-you were starving in Mr. Taylor's barn, Mary Vance," she said. "You are
-VERY grateful, I must say."
-
-"I AM grateful," retorted Mary. "You'd know it if you'd heard me
-standing up for Mr. Meredith through thick and thin. I've blistered
-my tongue talking for him this week. I've said again and again that
-he isn't to blame if his young ones did clean house on Sunday. He was
-away--and they knew better."
-
-"But we didn't," protested Una. "It was MONDAY we cleaned house. Wasn't
-it, Faith?"
-
-"Of course it was," said Faith, with flashing eyes. "We went to Sunday
-School in spite of the rain--and no one came--not even Elder Abraham,
-for all his talk about fair-weather Christians."
-
-"It was Saturday it rained," said Mary. "Sunday was as fine as silk. I
-wasn't at Sunday School because I had toothache, but every one else was
-and they saw all your stuff out on the lawn. And Elder Abraham and Mrs.
-Elder Abraham saw you shaking rugs in the graveyard."
-
-Una sat down among the daisies and began to cry.
-
-"Look here," said Jem resolutely, "this thing must be cleared up.
-SOMEBODY has made a mistake. Sunday WAS fine, Faith. How could you have
-thought Saturday was Sunday?"
-
-"Prayer-meeting was Thursday night," cried Faith, "and Adam flew into
-the soup-pot on Friday when Aunt Martha's cat chased him, and spoiled
-our dinner; and Saturday there was a snake in the cellar and Carl caught
-it with a forked stick and carried it out, and Sunday it rained. So
-there!"
-
-"Prayer-meeting was Wednesday night," said Mary. "Elder Baxter was to
-lead and he couldn't go Thursday night and it was changed to Wednesday.
-You were just a day out, Faith Meredith, and you DID work on Sunday."
-
-Suddenly Faith burst into a peal of laughter.
-
-"I suppose we did. What a joke!"
-
-"It isn't much of a joke for your father," said Mary sourly.
-
-"It'll be all right when people find out it was just a mistake," said
-Faith carelessly. "We'll explain."
-
-"You can explain till you're black in the face," said Mary, "but a lie
-like that'll travel faster'n further than you ever will. I'VE seen more
-of the world than you and _I_ know. Besides, there are plenty of folks
-won't believe it was a mistake."
-
-"They will if I tell them," said Faith.
-
-"You can't tell everybody," said Mary. "No, I tell you you've disgraced
-your father."
-
-Una's evening was spoiled by this dire reflection, but Faith refused to
-be made uncomfortable. Besides, she had a plan that would put everything
-right. So she put the past with its mistake behind her and gave herself
-over to enjoyment of the present. Jem went away to fish and Walter came
-out of his reverie and proceeded to describe the woods of heaven. Mary
-pricked up her ears and listened respectfully. Despite her awe of
-Walter she revelled in his "book talk." It always gave her a delightful
-sensation. Walter had been reading his Coleridge that day, and he
-pictured a heaven where
-
- "There were gardens bright with sinuous rills
- Where blossomed many an incense bearing tree,
- And there were forests ancient as the hills
- Enfolding sunny spots of greenery."
-
-"I didn't know there was any woods in heaven," said Mary, with a long
-breath. "I thought it was all streets--and streets--AND streets."
-
-"Of course there are woods," said Nan. "Mother can't live without
-trees and I can't, so what would be the use of going to heaven if there
-weren't any trees?"
-
-"There are cities, too," said the young dreamer, "splendid
-cities--coloured just like the sunset, with sapphire towers and rainbow
-domes. They are built of gold and diamonds--whole streets of diamonds,
-flashing like the sun. In the squares there are crystal fountains kissed
-by the light, and everywhere the asphodel blooms--the flower of heaven."
-
-"Fancy!" said Mary. "I saw the main street in Charlottetown once and I
-thought it was real grand, but I s'pose it's nothing to heaven. Well, it
-all sounds gorgeous the way you tell it, but won't it be kind of dull,
-too?"
-
-"Oh, I guess we can have some fun when the angels' backs are turned,"
-said Faith comfortably.
-
-"Heaven is ALL fun," declared Di.
-
-"The Bible doesn't say so," cried Mary, who had read so much of the
-Bible on Sunday afternoons under Miss Cornelia's eye that she now
-considered herself quite an authority on it.
-
-"Mother says the Bible language is figurative," said Nan.
-
-"Does that mean that it isn't true?" asked Mary hopefully.
-
-"No--not exactly--but I think it means that heaven will be just like
-what you'd like it to be."
-
-"I'd like it to be just like Rainbow Valley," said Mary, "with all you
-kids to gas and play with. THAT'S good enough for me. Anyhow, we can't
-go to heaven till we're dead and maybe not then, so what's the use of
-worrying? Here's Jem with a string of trout and it's my turn to fry
-them."
-
-"We ought to know more about heaven than Walter does when we're the
-minister's family," said Una, as they walked home that night.
-
-"We KNOW just as much, but Walter can IMAGINE," said Faith. "Mrs.
-Elliott says he gets it from his mother."
-
-"I do wish we hadn't made that mistake about Sunday," sighed Una.
-
-"Don't worry over that. I've thought of a great plan to explain so that
-everybody will know," said Faith. "Just wait till to-morrow night."
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII. AN EXPLANATION AND A DARE
-
-The Rev. Dr. Cooper preached in Glen St. Mary the next evening and
-the Presbyterian Church was crowded with people from near and far. The
-Reverend Doctor was reputed to be a very eloquent speaker; and, bearing
-in mind the old dictum that a minister should take his best clothes
-to the city and his best sermons to the country, he delivered a very
-scholarly and impressive discourse. But when the folks went home that
-night it was not of Dr. Cooper's sermon they talked. They had completely
-forgotten all about it.
-
-Dr. Cooper had concluded with a fervent appeal, had wiped the
-perspiration from his massive brow, had said "Let us pray" as he was
-famed for saying it, and had duly prayed. There was a slight pause. In
-Glen St. Mary church the old fashion of taking the collection after the
-sermon instead of before still held--mainly because the Methodists had
-adopted the new fashion first, and Miss Cornelia and Elder Clow would
-not hear of following where Methodists had led. Charles Baxter and
-Thomas Douglas, whose duty it was to pass the plates, were on the point
-of rising to their feet. The organist had got out the music of her
-anthem and the choir had cleared its throat. Suddenly Faith Meredith
-rose in the manse pew, walked up to the pulpit platform, and faced the
-amazed audience.
-
-Miss Cornelia half rose in her seat and then sat down again. Her pew was
-far back and it occurred to her that whatever Faith meant to do or say
-would be half done or said before she could reach her. There was no use
-making the exhibition worse than it had to be. With an anguished glance
-at Mrs. Dr. Blythe, and another at Deacon Warren of the Methodist
-Church, Miss Cornelia resigned herself to another scandal.
-
-"If the child was only dressed decently itself," she groaned in spirit.
-
-Faith, having spilled ink on her good dress, had serenely put on an
-old one of faded pink print. A caticornered rent in the skirt had
-been darned with scarlet tracing cotton and the hem had been let down,
-showing a bright strip of unfaded pink around the skirt. But Faith was
-not thinking of her clothes at all. She was feeling suddenly nervous.
-What had seemed easy in imagination was rather hard in reality.
-Confronted by all those staring questioning eyes Faith's courage almost
-failed her. The lights were so bright, the silence so awesome. She
-thought she could not speak after all. But she MUST--her father MUST be
-cleared of suspicion. Only--the words would NOT come.
-
-Una's little pearl-pure face gleamed up at her beseechingly from the
-manse pew. The Blythe children were lost in amazement. Back under the
-gallery Faith saw the sweet graciousness of Miss Rosemary West's smile
-and the amusement of Miss Ellen's. But none of these helped her. It was
-Bertie Shakespeare Drew who saved the situation. Bertie Shakespeare sat
-in the front seat of the gallery and he made a derisive face at Faith.
-Faith promptly made a dreadful one back at him, and, in her anger over
-being grimaced at by Bertie Shakespeare, forgot her stage fright. She
-found her voice and spoke out clearly and bravely.
-
-"I want to explain something," she said, "and I want to do it now
-because everybody will hear it that heard the other. People are saying
-that Una and I stayed home last Sunday and cleaned house instead of
-going to Sunday School. Well, we did--but we didn't mean to. We
-got mixed up in the days of the week. It was all Elder Baxter's
-fault"--sensation in Baxter's pew--"because he went and changed the
-prayer-meeting to Wednesday night and then we thought Thursday was
-Friday and so on till we thought Saturday was Sunday. Carl was laid up
-sick and so was Aunt Martha, so they couldn't put us right. We went to
-Sunday School in all that rain on Saturday and nobody came. And then we
-thought we'd clean house on Monday and stop old cats from talking about
-how dirty the manse was"--general sensation all over the church--"and we
-did. I shook the rugs in the Methodist graveyard because it was such
-a convenient place and not because I meant to be disrespectful of the
-dead. It isn't the dead folks who have made the fuss over this--it's the
-living folks. And it isn't right for any of you to blame my father for
-this, because he was away and didn't know, and anyhow we thought it was
-Monday. He's just the best father that ever lived in the world and we
-love him with all our hearts."
-
-Faith's bravado ebbed out in a sob. She ran down the steps and flashed
-out of the side door of the church. There the friendly starlit, summer
-night comforted her and the ache went out of her eyes and throat. She
-felt very happy. The dreadful explanation was over and everybody knew
-now that her father wasn't to blame and that she and Una were not so
-wicked as to have cleaned house knowingly on Sunday.
-
-Inside the church people gazed blankly at each other, but Thomas Douglas
-rose and walked up the aisle with a set face. HIS duty was clear; the
-collection must be taken if the skies fell. Taken it was; the choir sang
-the anthem, with a dismal conviction that it fell terribly flat, and Dr.
-Cooper gave out the concluding hymn and pronounced the benediction with
-considerably less unction than usual. The Reverend Doctor had a sense of
-humour and Faith's performance tickled him. Besides, John Meredith was
-well known in Presbyterian circles.
-
-Mr. Meredith returned home the next afternoon, but before his coming
-Faith contrived to scandalize Glen St. Mary again. In the reaction from
-Sunday evening's intensity and strain she was especially full of what
-Miss Cornelia would have called "devilment" on Monday. This led her to
-dare Walter Blythe to ride through Main Street on a pig, while she rode
-another one.
-
-The pigs in question were two tall, lank animals, supposed to belong to
-Bertie Shakespeare Drew's father, which had been haunting the roadside
-by the manse for a couple of weeks. Walter did not want to ride a pig
-through Glen St. Mary, but whatever Faith Meredith dared him to do must
-be done. They tore down the hill and through the village, Faith bent
-double with laughter over her terrified courser, Walter crimson with
-shame. They tore past the minister himself, just coming home from the
-station; he, being a little less dreamy and abstracted than usual--owing
-to having had a talk on the train with Miss Cornelia who always wakened
-him up temporarily--noticed them, and thought he really must speak to
-Faith about it and tell her that such conduct was not seemly. But he had
-forgotten the trifling incident by the time he reached home. They passed
-Mrs. Alec Davis, who shrieked in horror, and they passed Miss Rosemary
-West who laughed and sighed. Finally, just before the pigs swooped into
-Bertie Shakespeare Drew's back yard, never to emerge therefrom again, so
-great had been the shock to their nerves--Faith and Walter jumped off,
-as Dr. and Mrs. Blythe drove swiftly by.
-
-"So that is how you bring up your boys," said Gilbert with mock
-severity.
-
-"Perhaps I do spoil them a little," said Anne contritely, "but, oh,
-Gilbert, when I think of my own childhood before I came to Green Gables
-I haven't the heart to be very strict. How hungry for love and fun I
-was--an unloved little drudge with never a chance to play! They do have
-such good times with the manse children."
-
-"What about the poor pigs?" asked Gilbert.
-
-Anne tried to look sober and failed.
-
-"Do you really think it hurt them?" she said. "I don't think anything
-could hurt those animals. They've been the plague of the neighbourhood
-this summer and the Drews WON'T shut them up. But I'll talk to
-Walter--if I can keep from laughing when I do it."
-
-Miss Cornelia came up to Ingleside that evening to relieve her feelings
-over Sunday night. To her surprise she found that Anne did not view
-Faith's performance in quite the same light as she did.
-
-"I thought there was something brave and pathetic in her getting up
-there before that churchful of people, to confess," she said. "You could
-see she was frightened to death--yet she was bound to clear her father.
-I loved her for it."
-
-"Oh, of course, the poor child meant well," sighed Miss Cornelia, "but
-just the same it was a terrible thing to do, and is making more talk
-than the house-cleaning on Sunday. THAT had begun to die away, and this
-has started it all up again. Rosemary West is like you--she said last
-night as she left the church that it was a plucky thing for Faith to do,
-but it made her feel sorry for the child, too. Miss Ellen thought it all
-a good joke, and said she hadn't had as much fun in church for years.
-Of course THEY don't care--they are Episcopalians. But we Presbyterians
-feel it. And there were so many hotel people there that night and scores
-of Methodists. Mrs. Leander Crawford cried, she felt so bad. And Mrs.
-Alec Davis said the little hussy ought to be spanked."
-
-"Mrs. Leander Crawford is always crying in church," said Susan
-contemptuously. "She cries over every affecting thing the minister says.
-But you do not often see her name on a subscription list, Mrs. Dr. dear.
-Tears come cheaper. She tried to talk to me one day about Aunt Martha
-being such a dirty housekeeper; and I wanted to say, 'Every one knows
-that YOU have been seen mixing up cakes in the kitchen wash-pan, Mrs.
-Leander Crawford!' But I did not say it, Mrs. Dr. dear, because I have
-too much respect for myself to condescend to argue with the likes of
-her. But I could tell worse things than THAT of Mrs. Leander Crawford,
-if I was disposed to gossip. And as for Mrs. Alec Davis, if she had said
-that to me, Mrs. Dr. dear, do you know what I would have said? I would
-have said, 'I have no doubt you would like to spank Faith, Mrs. Davis,
-but you will never have the chance to spank a minister's daughter either
-in this world or in that which is to come.'"
-
-"If poor Faith had only been decently dressed," lamented Miss Cornelia
-again, "it wouldn't have been quite that bad. But that dress looked
-dreadful, as she stood there upon the platform."
-
-"It was clean, though, Mrs. Dr. dear," said Susan. "They ARE clean
-children. They may be very heedless and reckless, Mrs. Dr. dear, and I
-am not saying they are not, but they NEVER forget to wash behind their
-ears."
-
-"The idea of Faith forgetting what day was Sunday," persisted Miss
-Cornelia. "She will grow up just as careless and impractical as her
-father, believe ME. I suppose Carl would have known better if he hadn't
-been sick. I don't know what was wrong with him, but I think it very
-likely he had been eating those blueberries that grew in the graveyard.
-No wonder they made him sick. If I was a Methodist I'd try to keep my
-graveyard cleaned up at least."
-
-"I am of the opinion that Carl only ate the sours that grow on the
-dyke," said Susan hopefully. "I do not think ANY minister's son would
-eat blueberries that grew on the graves of dead people. You know it
-would not be so bad, Mrs. Dr. dear, to eat things that grew on the
-dyke."
-
-"The worst of last night's performance was the face Faith made made at
-somebody in the congregation before she started in," said Miss Cornelia.
-"Elder Clow declares she made it at him. And DID you hear that she was
-seen riding on a pig to-day?"
-
-"I saw her. Walter was with her. I gave him a little--a VERY
-little--scolding about it. He did not say much, but he gave me the
-impression that it had been his idea and that Faith was not to blame."
-
-"I do not not believe THAT, Mrs. Dr. dear," cried Susan, up in arms.
-"That is just Walter's way--to take the blame on himself. But you know
-as well as I do, Mrs. Dr. dear, that that blessed child would never have
-thought of riding on a pig, even if he does write poetry."
-
-"Oh, there's no doubt the notion was hatched in Faith Meredith's brain,"
-said Miss Cornelia. "And I don't say that I'm sorry that Amos Drew's old
-pigs did get their come-uppance for once. But the minister's daughter!"
-
-"AND the doctor's son!" said Anne, mimicking Miss Cornelia's tone. Then
-she laughed. "Dear Miss Cornelia, they're only little children. And
-you KNOW they've never yet done anything bad--they're just heedless and
-impulsive--as I was myself once. They'll grow sedate and sober--as I've
-done."
-
-Miss Cornelia laughed, too.
-
-"There are times, Anne dearie, when I know by your eyes that YOUR
-soberness is put on like a garment and you're really aching to do
-something wild and young again. Well, I feel encouraged. Somehow, a
-talk with you always does have that effect on me. Now, when I go to
-see Barbara Samson, it's just the opposite. She makes me feel that
-everything's wrong and always will be. But of course living all your
-life with a man like Joe Samson wouldn't be exactly cheering."
-
-"It is a very strange thing to think that she married Joe Samson after
-all her chances," remarked Susan. "She was much sought after when she
-was a girl. She used to boast to me that she had twenty-one beaus and
-Mr. Pethick."
-
-"What was Mr. Pethick?"
-
-"Well, he was a sort of hanger-on, Mrs. Dr. dear, but you could
-not exactly call him a beau. He did not really have any intentions.
-Twenty-one beaus--and me that never had one! But Barbara went through
-the woods and picked up the crooked stick after all. And yet they say
-her husband can make better baking powder biscuits than she can, and she
-always gets him to make them when company comes to tea."
-
-"Which reminds ME that I have company coming to tea to-morrow and I must
-go home and set my bread," said Miss Cornelia. "Mary said she could set
-it and no doubt she could. But while I live and move and have my being
-_I_ set my own bread, believe me."
-
-"How is Mary getting on?" asked Anne.
-
-"I've no fault to find with Mary," said Miss Cornelia rather
-gloomily. "She's getting some flesh on her bones and she's clean and
-respectful--though there's more in her than _I_ can fathom. She's a sly
-puss. If you dug for a thousand years you couldn't get to the bottom of
-that child's mind, believe ME! As for work, I never saw anything like
-her. She EATS it up. Mrs. Wiley may have been cruel to her, but folks
-needn't say she made Mary work. Mary's a born worker. Sometimes I wonder
-which will wear out first--her legs or her tongue. I don't have enough
-to do to keep me out of mischief these days. I'll be real glad when
-school opens, for then I'll have something to do again. Mary doesn't
-want to go to school, but I put my foot down and said that go she must.
-I shall NOT have the Methodists saying that I kept her out of school
-while I lolled in idleness."
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII. THE HOUSE ON THE HILL
-
-There was a little unfailing spring, always icy cold and crystal pure,
-in a certain birch-screened hollow of Rainbow Valley in the lower corner
-near the marsh. Not a great many people knew of its existence. The manse
-and Ingleside children knew, of course, as they knew everything else
-about the magic valley. Occasionally they went there to get a drink,
-and it figured in many of their plays as a fountain of old romance. Anne
-knew of it and loved it because it somehow reminded her of the beloved
-Dryad's Bubble at Green Gables. Rosemary West knew of it; it was her
-fountain of romance, too. Eighteen years ago she had sat behind it one
-spring twilight and heard young Martin Crawford stammer out a confession
-of fervent, boyish love. She had whispered her own secret in return,
-and they had kissed and promised by the wild wood spring. They had never
-stood together by it again--Martin had sailed on his fatal voyage soon
-after; but to Rosemary West it was always a sacred spot, hallowed by
-that immortal hour of youth and love. Whenever she passed near it she
-turned aside to hold a secret tryst with an old dream--a dream from
-which the pain had long gone, leaving only its unforgettable sweetness.
-
-The spring was a hidden thing. You might have passed within ten feet of
-it and never have suspected its existence. Two generations past a huge
-old pine had fallen almost across it. Nothing was left of the tree but
-its crumbling trunk out of which the ferns grew thickly, making a green
-roof and a lacy screen for the water. A maple-tree grew beside it with
-a curiously gnarled and twisted trunk, creeping along the ground for
-a little way before shooting up into the air, and so forming a quaint
-seat; and September had flung a scarf of pale smoke-blue asters around
-the hollow.
-
-John Meredith, taking the cross-lots road through Rainbow Valley on
-his way home from some pastoral visitations around the Harbour head one
-evening, turned aside to drink of the little spring. Walter Blythe had
-shown it to him one afternoon only a few days before, and they had had
-a long talk together on the maple seat. John Meredith, under all his
-shyness and aloofness, had the heart of a boy. He had been called Jack
-in his youth, though nobody in Glen St. Mary would ever have believed
-it. Walter and he had taken to each other and had talked unreservedly.
-Mr. Meredith found his way into some sealed and sacred chambers of the
-lad's soul wherein not even Di had ever looked. They were to be
-chums from that friendly hour and Walter knew that he would never be
-frightened of the minister again.
-
-"I never believed before that it was possible to get really acquainted
-with a minister," he told his mother that night.
-
-John Meredith drank from his slender white hand, whose grip of steel
-always surprised people who were unacquainted with it, and then sat down
-on the maple seat. He was in no hurry to go home; this was a beautiful
-spot and he was mentally weary after a round of rather uninspiring
-conversations with many good and stupid people. The moon was rising.
-Rainbow Valley was wind-haunted and star-sentinelled only where he was,
-but afar from the upper end came the gay notes of children's laughter
-and voices.
-
-The ethereal beauty of the asters in the moonlight, the glimmer of the
-little spring, the soft croon of the brook, the wavering grace of
-the brackens all wove a white magic round John Meredith. He forgot
-congregational worries and spiritual problems; the years slipped away
-from him; he was a young divinity student again and the roses of June
-were blooming red and fragrant on the dark, queenly head of his Cecilia.
-He sat there and dreamed like any boy. And it was at this propitious
-moment that Rosemary West stepped aside from the by-path and stood
-beside him in that dangerous, spell-weaving place. John Meredith stood
-up as she came in and saw her--REALLY saw her--for the first time.
-
-He had met her in his church once or twice and shaken hands with her
-abstractedly as he did with anyone he happened to encounter on his
-way down the aisle. He had never met her elsewhere, for the Wests were
-Episcopalians, with church affinities in Lowbridge, and no occasion for
-calling upon them had ever arisen. Before to-night, if anyone had asked
-John Meredith what Rosemary West looked like he would not have had the
-slightest notion. But he was never to forget her, as she appeared to him
-in the glamour of kind moonlight by the spring.
-
-She was certainly not in the least like Cecilia, who had always been
-his ideal of womanly beauty. Cecilia had been small and dark and
-vivacious--Rosemary West was tall and fair and placid, yet John Meredith
-thought he had never seen so beautiful a woman.
-
-She was bareheaded and her golden hair--hair of a warm gold, "molasses
-taffy" colour as Di Blythe had said--was pinned in sleek, close coils
-over her head; she had large, tranquil, blue eyes that always seemed
-full of friendliness, a high white forehead and a finely shaped face.
-
-Rosemary West was always called a "sweet woman." She was so sweet that
-even her high-bred, stately air had never gained for her the reputation
-of being "stuck-up," which it would inevitably have done in the case
-of anyone else in Glen St. Mary. Life had taught her to be brave, to
-be patient, to love, to forgive. She had watched the ship on which
-her lover went sailing out of Four Winds Harbour into the sunset. But,
-though she watched long, she had never seen it coming sailing back.
-That vigil had taken girlhood from her eyes, yet she kept her youth to
-a marvellous degree. Perhaps this was because she always seemed to
-preserve that attitude of delighted surprise towards life which most of
-us leave behind in childhood--an attitude which not only made Rosemary
-herself seem young, but flung a pleasing illusion of youth over the
-consciousness of every one who talked to her.
-
-John Meredith was startled by her loveliness and Rosemary was startled
-by his presence. She had never thought she would find anyone by that
-remote spring, least of all the recluse of Glen St. Mary manse. She
-almost dropped the heavy armful of books she was carrying home from the
-Glen lending library, and then, to cover her confusion, she told one of
-those small fibs which even the best of women do tell at times.
-
-"I--I came for a drink," she said, stammering a little, in answer to
-Mr. Meredith's grave "good evening, Miss West." She felt that she was
-an unpardonable goose and she longed to shake herself. But John Meredith
-was not a vain man and he knew she would likely have been as much
-startled had she met old Elder Clow in that unexpected fashion. Her
-confusion put him at ease and he forgot to be shy; besides, even the
-shyest of men can sometimes be quite audacious in moonlight.
-
-"Let me get you a cup," he said smiling. There was a cup near by, if
-he had only known it, a cracked, handleless blue cup secreted under
-the maple by the Rainbow Valley children; but he did not know it, so he
-stepped out to one of the birch-trees and stripped a bit of its white
-skin away. Deftly he fashioned this into a three-cornered cup, filled it
-from the spring, and handed it to Rosemary.
-
-Rosemary took it and drank every drop to punish herself for her fib, for
-she was not in the least thirsty, and to drink a fairly large cupful of
-water when you are not thirsty is somewhat of an ordeal. Yet the memory
-of that draught was to be very pleasant to Rosemary. In after years it
-seemed to her that there was something sacramental about it. Perhaps
-this was because of what the minister did when she handed him back the
-cup. He stooped again and filled it and drank of it himself. It was only
-by accident that he put his lips just where Rosemary had put hers, and
-Rosemary knew it. Nevertheless, it had a curious significance for her.
-They two had drunk of the same cup. She remembered idly that an old
-aunt of hers used to say that when two people did this their after-lives
-would be linked in some fashion, whether for good or ill.
-
-John Meredith held the cup uncertainly. He did not know what to do with
-it. The logical thing would have been to toss it away, but somehow he
-was disinclined to do this. Rosemary held out her hand for it.
-
-"Will you let me have it?" she said. "You made it so knackily. I never
-saw anyone make a birch cup so since my little brother used to make them
-long ago--before he died."
-
-"I learned how to make them when _I_ was a boy, camping out one summer.
-An old hunter taught me," said Mr. Meredith. "Let me carry your books,
-Miss West."
-
-Rosemary was startled into another fib and said oh, they were not heavy.
-But the minister took them from her with quite a masterful air and they
-walked away together. It was the first time Rosemary had stood by the
-valley spring without thinking of Martin Crawford. The mystic tryst had
-been broken.
-
-The little by-path wound around the marsh and then struck up the long
-wooded hill on the top of which Rosemary lived. Beyond, through the
-trees, they could see the moonlight shining across the level summer
-fields. But the little path was shadowy and narrow. Trees crowded
-over it, and trees are never quite as friendly to human beings after
-nightfall as they are in daylight. They wrap themselves away from us.
-They whisper and plot furtively. If they reach out a hand to us it has
-a hostile, tentative touch. People walking amid trees after night
-always draw closer together instinctively and involuntarily, making an
-alliance, physical and mental, against certain alien powers around them.
-Rosemary's dress brushed against John Meredith as they walked. Not even
-an absent-minded minister, who was after all a young man still, though
-he firmly believed he had outlived romance, could be insensible to the
-charm of the night and the path and the companion.
-
-It is never quite safe to think we have done with life. When we imagine
-we have finished our story fate has a trick of turning the page and
-showing us yet another chapter. These two people each thought their
-hearts belonged irrevocably to the past; but they both found their walk
-up that hill very pleasant. Rosemary thought the Glen minister was by
-no means as shy and tongue-tied as he had been represented. He seemed to
-find no difficulty in talking easily and freely. Glen housewives would
-have been amazed had they heard him. But then so many Glen housewives
-talked only gossip and the price of eggs, and John Meredith was not
-interested in either. He talked to Rosemary of books and music and
-wide-world doings and something of his own history, and found that she
-could understand and respond. Rosemary, it appeared, possessed a book
-which Mr. Meredith had not read and wished to read. She offered to lend
-it to him and when they reached the old homestead on the hill he went in
-to get it.
-
-The house itself was an old-fashioned gray one, hung with vines, through
-which the light in the sitting-room winked in friendly fashion. It
-looked down the Glen, over the harbour, silvered in the moonlight, to
-the sand-dunes and the moaning ocean. They walked in through a garden
-that always seemed to smell of roses, even when no roses were in bloom.
-There was a sisterhood of lilies at the gate and a ribbon of asters on
-either side of the broad walk, and a lacery of fir trees on the hill's
-edge beyond the house.
-
-"You have the whole world at your doorstep here," said John Meredith,
-with a long breath. "What a view--what an outlook! At times I feel
-stifled down there in the Glen. You can breathe up here."
-
-"It is calm to-night," said Rosemary laughing. "If there were a wind it
-would blow your breath away. We get 'a' the airts the wind can blow' up
-here. This place should be called Four Winds instead of the Harbour."
-
-"I like wind," he said. "A day when there is no wind seems to me DEAD. A
-windy day wakes me up." He gave a conscious laugh. "On a calm day I fall
-into day dreams. No doubt you know my reputation, Miss West. If I cut
-you dead the next time we meet don't put it down to bad manners. Please
-understand that it is only abstraction and forgive me--and speak to me."
-
-They found Ellen West in the sitting room when they went in. She laid
-her glasses down on the book she had been reading and looked at them
-in amazement tinctured with something else. But she shook hands amiably
-with Mr. Meredith and he sat down and talked to her, while Rosemary
-hunted out his book.
-
-Ellen West was ten years older than Rosemary, and so different from her
-that it was hard to believe they were sisters. She was dark and massive,
-with black hair, thick, black eyebrows and eyes of the clear, slaty blue
-of the gulf water in a north wind. She had a rather stern, forbidding
-look, but she was in reality very jolly, with a hearty, gurgling laugh
-and a deep, mellow, pleasant voice with a suggestion of masculinity
-about it. She had once remarked to Rosemary that she would really like
-to have a talk with that Presbyterian minister at the Glen, to see if
-he could find a word to say to a woman when he was cornered. She had her
-chance now and she tackled him on world politics. Miss Ellen, who was
-a great reader, had been devouring a book on the Kaiser of Germany, and
-she demanded Mr. Meredith's opinion of him.
-
-"A dangerous man," was his answer.
-
-"I believe you!" Miss Ellen nodded. "Mark my words, Mr. Meredith, that
-man is going to fight somebody yet. He's ACHING to. He is going to set
-the world on fire."
-
-"If you mean that he will wantonly precipitate a great war I hardly
-think so," said Mr. Meredith. "The day has gone by for that sort of
-thing."
-
-"Bless you, it hasn't," rumbled Ellen. "The day never goes by for men
-and nations to make asses of themselves and take to the fists. The
-millenniun isn't THAT near, Mr. Meredith, and YOU don't think it is any
-more than I do. As for this Kaiser, mark my words, he is going to make a
-heap of trouble"--and Miss Ellen prodded her book emphatically with
-her long finger. "Yes, if he isn't nipped in the bud he's going to
-make trouble. WE'LL live to see it--you and I will live to see it, Mr.
-Meredith. And who is going to nip him? England should, but she won't.
-WHO is going to nip him? Tell me that, Mr. Meredith."
-
-Mr. Meredith couldn't tell her, but they plunged into a discussion of
-German militarism that lasted long after Rosemary had found the book.
-Rosemary said nothing, but sat in a little rocker behind Ellen and
-stroked an important black cat meditatively. John Meredith hunted big
-game in Europe with Ellen, but he looked oftener at Rosemary than at
-Ellen, and Ellen noticed it. After Rosemary had gone to the door with
-him and come back Ellen rose and looked at her accusingly.
-
-"Rosemary West, that man has a notion of courting you."
-
-Rosemary quivered. Ellen's speech was like a blow to her. It rubbed all
-the bloom off the pleasant evening. But she would not let Ellen see how
-it hurt her.
-
-"Nonsense," she said, and laughed, a little too carelessly. "You see
-a beau for me in every bush, Ellen. Why he told me all about his wife
-to-night--how much she was to him--how empty her death had left the
-world."
-
-"Well, that may be HIS way of courting," retorted Ellen. "Men have all
-kinds of ways, I understand. But don't forget your promise, Rosemary."
-
-"There is no need of my either forgetting or remembering it," said
-Rosemary, a little wearily. "YOU forget that I'm an old maid, Ellen. It
-is only your sisterly delusion that I am still young and blooming and
-dangerous. Mr. Meredith merely wants to be a friend--if he wants that
-much itself. He'll forget us both long before he gets back to the
-manse."
-
-"I've no objection to your being friends with him," conceded Ellen,
-"but it musn't go beyond friendship, remember. I'm always suspicious of
-widowers. They are not given to romantic ideas about friendship. They're
-apt to mean business. As for this Presbyterian man, what do they call
-him shy for? He's not a bit shy, though he may be absent-minded--so
-absent-minded that he forgot to say goodnight to ME when you started to
-go to the door with him. He's got brains, too. There's so few men round
-here that can talk sense to a body. I've enjoyed the evening. I wouldn't
-mind seeing more of him. But no philandering, Rosemary, mind you--no
-philandering."
-
-Rosemary was quite used to being warned by Ellen from philandering if
-she so much as talked five minutes to any marriageable man under eighty
-or over eighteen. She had always laughed at the warning with unfeigned
-amusement. This time it did not amuse her--it irritated her a little.
-Who wanted to philander?
-
-"Don't be such a goose, Ellen," she said with unaccustomed shortness as
-she took her lamp. She went upstairs without saying goodnight.
-
-Ellen shook her head dubiously and looked at the black cat.
-
-"What is she so cross about, St. George?" she asked. "When you howl
-you're hit, I've always heard, George. But she promised, Saint--she
-promised, and we Wests always keep our word. So it won't matter if he
-does want to philander, George. She promised. I won't worry."
-
-Upstairs, in her room, Rosemary sat for a long while looking out of the
-window across the moonlit garden to the distant, shining harbour. She
-felt vaguely upset and unsettled. She was suddenly tired of outworn
-dreams. And in the garden the petals of the last red rose were scattered
-by a sudden little wind. Summer was over--it was autumn.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV. MRS. ALEC DAVIS MAKES A CALL
-
-John Meredith walked slowly home. At first he thought a little about
-Rosemary, but by the time he reached Rainbow Valley he had forgotten all
-about her and was meditating on a point regarding German theology which
-Ellen had raised. He passed through Rainbow Valley and knew it not. The
-charm of Rainbow Valley had no potency against German theology. When he
-reached the manse he went to his study and took down a bulky volume in
-order to see which had been right, he or Ellen. He remained immersed in
-its mazes until dawn, struck a new trail of speculation and pursued it
-like a sleuth hound for the next week, utterly lost to the world, his
-parish and his family. He read day and night; he forgot to go to his
-meals when Una was not there to drag him to them; he never thought about
-Rosemary or Ellen again. Old Mrs. Marshall, over-harbour, was very ill
-and sent for him, but the message lay unheeded on his desk and gathered
-dust. Mrs. Marshall recovered but never forgave him. A young couple came
-to the manse to be married and Mr. Meredith, with unbrushed hair, in
-carpet slippers and faded dressing gown, married them. To be sure, he
-began by reading the funeral service to them and got along as far as
-"ashes to ashes and dust to dust" before he vaguely suspected that
-something was wrong.
-
-"Dear me," he said absently, "that is strange--very strange."
-
-The bride, who was very nervous, began to cry. The bridegroom, who was
-not in the least nervous, giggled.
-
-"Please, sir, I think you're burying us instead of marrying us," he
-said.
-
-"Excuse me," said Mr. Meredith, as it it did not matter much. He turned
-up the marriage service and got through with it, but the bride never
-felt quite properly married for the rest of her life.
-
-He forgot his prayer-meeting again--but that did not matter, for it was
-a wet night and nobody came. He might even have forgotten his Sunday
-service if it had not been for Mrs. Alec Davis. Aunt Martha came in on
-Saturday afternoon and told him that Mrs. Davis was in the parlour and
-wanted to see him. Mr. Meredith sighed. Mrs. Davis was the only woman in
-Glen St. Mary church whom he positively detested. Unfortunately, she
-was also the richest, and his board of managers had warned Mr. Meredith
-against offending her. Mr. Meredith seldom thought of such a worldly
-matter as his stipend; but the managers were more practical. Also, they
-were astute. Without mentioning money, they contrived to instil into
-Mr. Meredith's mind a conviction that he should not offend Mrs. Davis.
-Otherwise, he would likely have forgotten all about her as soon as Aunt
-Martha had gone out. As it was, he turned down his Ewald with a feeling
-of annoyance and went across the hall to the parlour.
-
-Mrs. Davis was sitting on the sofa, looking about her with an air of
-scornful disapproval.
-
-What a scandalous room! There were no curtains on the window. Mrs. Davis
-did not know that Faith and Una had taken them down the day before to
-use as court trains in one of their plays and had forgotten to put them
-up again, but she could not have accused those windows more fiercely
-if she had known. The blinds were cracked and torn. The pictures on the
-walls were crooked; the rugs were awry; the vases were full of faded
-flowers; the dust lay in heaps--literally in heaps.
-
-"What are we coming to?" Mrs. Davis asked herself, and then primmed up
-her unbeautiful mouth.
-
-Jerry and Carl had been whooping and sliding down the banisters as she
-came through the hall. They did not see her and continued whooping and
-sliding, and Mrs. Davis was convinced they did it on purpose. Faith's
-pet rooster ambled through the hall, stood in the parlour doorway and
-looked at her. Not liking her looks, he did not venture in. Mrs. Davis
-gave a scornful sniff. A pretty manse, indeed, where roosters paraded
-the halls and stared people out of countenance.
-
-"Shoo, there," commanded Mrs. Davis, poking her flounced,
-changeable-silk parasol at him.
-
-Adam shooed. He was a wise rooster and Mrs. Davis had wrung the necks
-of so many roosters with her own fair hands in the course of her fifty
-years that an air of the executioner seemed to hang around her. Adam
-scuttled through the hall as the minister came in.
-
-Mr. Meredith still wore slippers and dressing gown, and his dark hair
-still fell in uncared-for locks over his high brow. But he looked the
-gentleman he was; and Mrs. Alec Davis, in her silk dress and beplumed
-bonnet, and kid gloves and gold chain looked the vulgar, coarse-souled
-woman she was. Each felt the antagonisn of the other's personality. Mr.
-Meredith shrank, but Mrs. Davis girded up her loins for the fray. She
-had come to the manse to propose a certain thing to the minister and
-she meant to lose no time in proposing it. She was going to do him
-a favour--a great favour--and the sooner he was made aware of it the
-better. She had been thinking about it all summer and had come to a
-decision at last. This was all that mattered, Mrs. Davis thought. When
-she decided a thing it WAS decided. Nobody else had any say in the
-matter. That had always been her attitude. When she had made her mind up
-to marry Alec Davis she had married him and that was the end to it. Alec
-had never known how it happened, but what odds? So in this case--Mrs.
-Davis had arranged everything to her own satisfaction. Now it only
-remained to inform Mr. Meredith.
-
-"Will you please shut that door?" said Mrs. Davis, unprimming her
-mouth slightly to say it, but speaking with asperity. "I have something
-important to say, and I can't say it with that racket in the hall."
-
-Mr. Meredith shut the door meekly. Then he sat down before Mrs. Davis.
-He was not wholly aware of her yet. His mind was still wrestling with
-Ewald's arguments. Mrs. Davis sensed this detachment and it annoyed her.
-
-"I have come to tell you, Mr. Meredith," she said aggressively, "that I
-have decided to adopt Una."
-
-"To--adopt--Una!" Mr. Meredith gazed at her blankly, not understanding
-in the least.
-
-"Yes. I've been thinking it over for some time. I have often thought of
-adopting a child, since my husband's death. But it seemed so hard to
-get a suitable one. It is very few children I would want to take into MY
-home. I wouldn't think of taking a home child--some outcast of the slums
-in all probability. And there is hardly ever any other child to be got.
-One of the fishermen down at the harbour died last fall and left six
-youngsters. They tried to get me to take one, but I soon gave them
-to understand that I had no idea of adopting trash like that. Their
-grandfather stole a horse. Besides, they were all boys and I wanted a
-girl--a quiet, obedient girl that I could train up to be a lady. Una
-will suit me exactly. She would be a nice little thing if she was
-properly looked after--so different from Faith. I would never dream of
-adopting Faith. But I'll take Una and I'll give her a good home, and
-up-bringing, Mr. Meredith, and if she behaves herself I'll leave her all
-my money when I die. Not one of my own relatives shall have a cent of it
-in any case, I'm determined on that. It was the idea of aggravating them
-that set me to thinking of adopting a child as much as anything in the
-first place. Una shall be well dressed and educated and trained, Mr.
-Meredith, and I shall give her music and painting lessons and treat her
-as if she was my own."
-
-Mr. Meredith was wide enough awake by this time. There was a faint flush
-in his pale cheek and a dangerous light in his fine dark eyes. Was this
-woman, whose vulgarity and consciousness of money oozed out of her at
-every pore, actually asking him to give her Una--his dear little wistful
-Una with Cecilia's own dark-blue eyes--the child whom the dying mother
-had clasped to her heart after the other children had been led weeping
-from the room. Cecilia had clung to her baby until the gates of death
-had shut between them. She had looked over the little dark head to her
-husband.
-
-"Take good care of her, John," she had entreated. "She is so small--and
-sensitive. The others can fight their way--but the world will hurt HER.
-Oh, John, I don't know what you and she are going to do. You both need
-me so much. But keep her close to you--keep her close to you."
-
-These had been almost her last words except a few unforgettable ones for
-him alone. And it was this child whom Mrs. Davis had coolly announced
-her intention of taking from him. He sat up straight and looked at Mrs.
-Davis. In spite of the worn dressing gown and the frayed slippers there
-was something about him that made Mrs. Davis feel a little of the old
-reverence for "the cloth" in which she had been brought up. After all,
-there WAS a certain divinity hedging a minister, even a poor, unworldly,
-abstracted one.
-
-"I thank you for your kind intentions, Mrs. Davis," said Mr. Meredith
-with a gentle, final, quite awful courtesy, "but I cannot give you my
-child."
-
-Mrs. Davis looked blank. She had never dreamed of his refusing.
-
-"Why, Mr. Meredith," she said in astonishment. "You must be cr--you
-can't mean it. You must think it over--think of all the advantages I can
-give her."
-
-"There is no need to think it over, Mrs. Davis. It is entirely out of
-the question. All the worldly advantages it is in your power to bestow
-on her could not compensate for the loss of a father's love and care. I
-thank you again--but it is not to be thought of."
-
-Disappointment angered Mrs. Davis beyond the power of old habit to
-control. Her broad red face turned purple and her voice trembled.
-
-"I thought you'd be only too glad to let me have her," she sneered.
-
-"Why did you think that?" asked Mr. Meredith quietly.
-
-"Because nobody ever supposed you cared anything about any of your
-children," retorted Mrs. Davis contemptuously. "You neglect them
-scandalously. It is the talk of the place. They aren't fed and dressed
-properly, and they're not trained at all. They have no more manners than
-a pack of wild Indians. You never think of doing your duty as a father.
-You let a stray child come here among them for a fortnight and never
-took any notice of her--a child that swore like a trooper I'm told. YOU
-wouldn't have cared if they'd caught small-pox from her. And Faith made
-an exhibition of herself getting up in preaching and making that speech!
-And she rid a pig down the street--under your very eyes I understand.
-The way they act is past belief and you never lift a finger to stop them
-or try to teach them anything. And now when I offer one of them a good
-home and good prospects you refuse it and insult me. A pretty father
-you, to talk of loving and caring for your children!"
-
-"That will do, woman!" said Mr. Meredith. He stood up and looked at Mrs.
-Davis with eyes that made her quail. "That will do," he repeated. "I
-desire to hear no more, Mrs. Davis. You have said too much. It may be
-that I have been remiss in some respects in my duty as a parent, but it
-is not for you to remind me of it in such terms as you have used. Let us
-say good afternoon."
-
-Mrs. Davis did not say anything half so amiable as good afternoon, but
-she took her departure. As she swept past the minister a large, plump
-toad, which Carl had secreted under the lounge, hopped out almost under
-her feet. Mrs. Davis gave a shriek and in trying to avoid treading on
-the awful thing, lost her balance and her parasol. She did not exactly
-fall, but she staggered and reeled across the room in a very undignified
-fashion and brought up against the door with a thud that jarred her from
-head to foot. Mr. Meredith, who had not seen the toad, wondered if she
-had been attacked with some kind of apoplectic or paralytic seizure,
-and ran in alarm to her assistance. But Mrs. Davis, recovering her feet,
-waved him back furiously.
-
-"Don't you dare to touch me," she almost shouted. "This is some more
-of your children's doings, I suppose. This is no fit place for a decent
-woman. Give me my umbrella and let me go. I'll never darken the doors of
-your manse or your church again."
-
-Mr. Meredith picked up the gorgeous parasol meekly enough and gave it to
-her. Mrs. Davis seized it and marched out. Jerry and Carl had given up
-banister sliding and were sitting on the edge of the veranda with Faith.
-Unfortunately, all three were singing at the tops of their healthy young
-voices "There'll be a hot time in the old town to-night." Mrs. Davis
-believed the song was meant for her and her only. She stopped and shook
-her parasol at them.
-
-"Your father is a fool," she said, "and you are three young varmints
-that ought to be whipped within an inch of your lives."
-
-"He isn't," cried Faith. "We're not," cried the boys. But Mrs. Davis was
-gone.
-
-"Goodness, isn't she mad!" said Jerry. "And what is a 'varmint' anyhow?"
-
-John Meredith paced up and down the parlour for a few minutes; then he
-went back to his study and sat down. But he did not return to his German
-theology. He was too grievously disturbed for that. Mrs. Davis had
-wakened him up with a vengeance. WAS he such a remiss, careless father
-as she had accused him of being? HAD he so scandalously neglected the
-bodily and spiritual welfare of the four little motherless creatures
-dependent on him? WERE his people talking of it as harshly as Mrs. Davis
-had declared? It must be so, since Mrs. Davis had come to ask for Una in
-the full and confident belief that he would hand the child over to her
-as unconcernedly and gladly as one might hand over a strayed, unwelcome
-kitten. And, if so, what then?
-
-John Meredith groaned and resumed his pacing up and down the dusty,
-disordered room. What could he do? He loved his children as deeply as
-any father could and he knew, past the power of Mrs. Davis or any of her
-ilk, to disturb his conviction, that they loved him devotedly. But WAS
-he fit to have charge of them? He knew--none better--his weaknesses and
-limitations. What was needed was a good woman's presence and influence
-and common sense. But how could that be arranged? Even were he able
-to get such a housekeeper it would cut Aunt Martha to the quick. She
-believed she could still do all that was meet and necessary. He could
-not so hurt and insult the poor old woman who had been so kind to him
-and his. How devoted she had been to Cecilia! And Cecilia had asked
-him to be very considerate of Aunt Martha. To be sure, he suddenly
-remembered that Aunt Martha had once hinted that he ought to marry
-again. He felt she would not resent a wife as she would a housekeeper.
-But that was out of the question. He did not wish to marry--he did
-not and could not care for anyone. Then what could he do? It suddenly
-occurred to him that he would go over to Ingleside and talk over his
-difficulties with Mrs. Blythe. Mrs. Blythe was one of the few women he
-never felt shy or tongue-tied with. She was always so sympathetic and
-refreshing. It might be that she could suggest some solution of his
-problems. And even if she could not Mr. Meredith felt that he needed
-a little decent human companionship after his dose of Mrs.
-Davis--something to take the taste of her out of his soul.
-
-He dressed hurriedly and ate his supper less abstractedly than usual. It
-occurred to him that it was a poor meal. He looked at his children; they
-were rosy and healthy looking enough--except Una, and she had never been
-very strong even when her mother was alive. They were all laughing and
-talking--certainly they seemed happy. Carl was especially happy because
-he had two most beautiful spiders crawling around his supper plate.
-Their voices were pleasant, their manners did not seem bad, they were
-considerate of and gentle to one another. Yet Mrs. Davis had said their
-behaviour was the talk of the congregation.
-
-As Mr. Meredith went through his gate Dr. Blythe and Mrs. Blythe drove
-past on the road that led to Lowbridge. The minister's face fell. Mrs.
-Blythe was going away--there was no use in going to Ingleside. And
-he craved a little companionship more than ever. As he gazed rather
-hopelessly over the landscape the sunset light struck on a window of the
-old West homestead on the hill. It flared out rosily like a beacon of
-good hope. He suddenly remembered Rosemary and Ellen West. He thought
-that he would relish some of Ellen's pungent conversation. He thought it
-would be pleasant to see Rosemary's slow, sweet smile and calm,
-heavenly blue eyes again. What did that old poem of Sir Philip Sidney's
-say?--"continual comfort in a face"--that just suited her. And he needed
-comfort. Why not go and call? He remembered that Ellen had asked him to
-drop in sometimes and there was Rosemary's book to take back--he ought
-to take it back before he forgot. He had an uneasy suspicion that there
-were a great many books in his library which he had borrowed at sundry
-times and in divers places and had forgotten to take back. It was surely
-his duty to guard against that in this case. He went back into his
-study, got the book, and plunged downward into Rainbow Valley.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV. MORE GOSSIP
-
-On the evening after Mrs. Myra Murray of the over-harbour section had
-been buried Miss Cornelia and Mary Vance came up to Ingleside. There
-were several things concerning which Miss Cornelia wished to unburden
-her soul. The funeral had to be all talked over, of course. Susan and
-Miss Cornelia thrashed this out between them; Anne took no part or
-delight in such goulish conversations. She sat a little apart and
-watched the autumnal flame of dahlias in the garden, and the dreaming,
-glamorous harbour of the September sunset. Mary Vance sat beside her,
-knitting meekly. Mary's heart was down in the Rainbow Valley, whence
-came sweet, distance-softened sounds of children's laughter, but her
-fingers were under Miss Cornelia's eye. She had to knit so many rounds
-of her stocking before she might go to the valley. Mary knit and held
-her tongue, but used her ears.
-
-"I never saw a nicer looking corpse," said Miss Cornelia judicially.
-"Myra Murray was always a pretty woman--she was a Corey from Lowbridge
-and the Coreys were noted for their good looks."
-
-"I said to the corpse as I passed it, 'poor woman. I hope you are as
-happy as you look.'" sighed Susan. "She had not changed much. That dress
-she wore was the black satin she got for her daughter's wedding fourteen
-years ago. Her Aunt told her then to keep it for her funeral, but Myra
-laughed and said, 'I may wear it to my funeral, Aunty, but I will have a
-good time out of it first.' And I may say she did. Myra Murray was not a
-woman to attend her own funeral before she died. Many a time afterwards
-when I saw her enjoying herself out in company I thought to myself, 'You
-are a handsome woman, Myra Murray, and that dress becomes you, but it
-will likely be your shroud at last.' And you see my words have come
-true, Mrs. Marshall Elliott."
-
-Susan sighed again heavily. She was enjoying herself hugely. A funeral
-was really a delightful subject of conversation.
-
-"I always liked to meet Myra," said Miss Cornelia. "She was always so
-gay and cheerful--she made you feel better just by her handshake. Myra
-always made the best of things."
-
-"That is true," asserted Susan. "Her sister-in-law told me that when the
-doctor told her at last that he could do nothing for her and she would
-never rise from that bed again, Myra said quite cheerfully, 'Well, if
-that is so, I'm thankful the preserving is all done, and I will not
-have to face the fall house-cleaning. I always liked house-cleaning in
-spring,' she says, 'but I always hated it in the fall. I will get clear
-of it this year, thank goodness.' There are people who would call that
-levity, Mrs. Marshall Elliott, and I think her sister-in-law was a
-little ashamed of it. She said perhaps her sickness had made Myra a
-little light-headed. But I said, 'No, Mrs. Murray, do not worry over it.
-It was just Myra's way of looking at the bright side.'"
-
-"Her sister Luella was just the opposite," said Miss Cornelia. "There
-was no bright side for Luella--there was just black and shades of gray.
-For years she used always to be declaring she was going to die in a week
-or so. 'I won't be here to burden you long,' she would tell her family
-with a groan. And if any of them ventured to talk about their little
-future plans she'd groan also and say, 'Ah, _I_ won't be here then.'
-When I went to see her I always agreed with her and it made her so mad
-that she was always quite a lot better for several days afterwards. She
-has better health now but no more cheerfulness. Myra was so different.
-She was always doing or saying something to make some one feel good.
-Perhaps the men they married had something to do with it. Luella's man
-was a Tartar, believe ME, while Jim Murray was decent, as men go. He
-looked heart-broken to-day. It isn't often I feel sorry for a man at his
-wife's funeral, but I did feel for Jim Murray."
-
-"No wonder he looked sad. He will not get a wife like Myra again in a
-hurry," said Susan. "Maybe he will not try, since his children are all
-grown up and Mirabel is able to keep house. But there is no predicting
-what a widower may or may not do and I, for one, will not try."
-
-"We'll miss Myra terrible in church," said Miss Cornelia. "She was
-such a worker. Nothing ever stumped HER. If she couldn't get over a
-difficulty she'd get around it, and if she couldn't get around it she'd
-pretend it wasn't there--and generally it wasn't. 'I'll keep a stiff
-upper lip to my journey's end,' said she to me once. Well, she has ended
-her journey."
-
-"Do you think so?" asked Anne suddenly, coming back from dreamland. "I
-can't picture HER journey as being ended. Can YOU think of her sitting
-down and folding her hands--that eager, asking spirit of hers, with its
-fine adventurous outlook? No, I think in death she just opened a gate
-and went through--on--on--to new, shining adventures."
-
-"Maybe--maybe," assented Miss Cornelia. "Do you know, Anne dearie, I
-never was much taken with this everlasting rest doctrine myself--though
-I hope it isn't heresy to say so. I want to bustle round in heaven the
-same as here. And I hope there'll be a celestial substitute for pies and
-doughnuts--something that has to be MADE. Of course, one does get awful
-tired at times--and the older you are the tireder you get. But the
-very tiredest could get rested in something short of eternity, you'd
-think--except, perhaps, a lazy man."
-
-"When I meet Myra Murray again," said Anne, "I want to see her coming
-towards me, brisk and laughing, just as she always did here."
-
-"Oh, Mrs. Dr. dear," said Susan, in a shocked tone, "you surely do not
-think that Myra will be laughing in the world to come?"
-
-"Why not, Susan? Do you think we will be crying there?"
-
-"No, no, Mrs. Dr. dear, do not misunderstand me. I do not think we shall
-be either crying or laughing."
-
-"What then?"
-
-"Well," said Susan, driven to it, "it is my opinion, Mrs. Dr. dear, that
-we shall just look solemn and holy."
-
-"And do you really think, Susan," said Anne, looking solemn enough,
-"that either Myra Murray or I could look solemn and holy all the
-time--ALL the time, Susan?"
-
-"Well," admitted Susan reluctantly, "I might go so far as to say that
-you both would have to smile now and again, but I can never admit that
-there will be laughing in heaven. The idea seems really irreverent, Mrs.
-Dr. dear."
-
-"Well, to come back to earth," said Miss Cornelia, "who can we get to
-take Myra's class in Sunday School? Julia Clow has been teaching it
-since Myra took ill, but she's going to town for the winter and we'll
-have to get somebody else."
-
-"I heard that Mrs. Laurie Jamieson wanted it," said Anne. "The Jamiesons
-have come to church very regularly since they moved to the Glen from
-Lowbridge."
-
-"New brooms!" said Miss Cornelia dubiously. "Wait till they've gone
-regularly for a year."
-
-"You cannot depend on Mrs. Jamieson a bit, Mrs. Dr. dear," said Susan
-solemnly. "She died once and when they were measuring her for her
-coffin, after laying her out just beautiful, did she not go and come
-back to life! Now, Mrs. Dr. dear, you know you CANNOT depend on a woman
-like that."
-
-"She might turn Methodist at any moment," said Miss Cornelia. "They tell
-me they went to the Methodist Church at Lowbridge quite as often as to
-the Presbyterian. I haven't caught them at it here yet, but I would not
-approve of taking Mrs. Jamieson into the Sunday School. Yet we must not
-offend them. We are losing too many people, by death or bad temper. Mrs.
-Alec Davis has left the church, no one knows why. She told the managers
-that she would never pay another cent to Mr. Meredith's salary. Of
-course, most people say that the children offended her, but somehow I
-don't think so. I tried to pump Faith, but all I could get out of her
-was that Mrs. Davis had come, seemingly in high good humour, to see her
-father, and had left in an awful rage, calling them all 'varmints!'"
-
-"Varmints, indeed!" said Susan furiously. "Does Mrs. Alec Davis forget
-that her uncle on her mother's side was suspected of poisoning his
-wife? Not that it was ever proved, Mrs. Dr. dear, and it does not do to
-believe all you hear. But if _I_ had an uncle whose wife died without
-any satisfactory reason, _I_ would not go about the country calling
-innocent children varmints."
-
-"The point is," said Miss Cornelia, "that Mrs. Davis paid a large
-subscription, and how its loss is going to be made up is a problem.
-And if she turns the other Douglases against Mr. Meredith, as she will
-certainly try to do, he will just have to go."
-
-"I do not think Mrs. Alec Davis is very well liked by the rest of the
-clan," said Susan. "It is not likely she will be able to influence
-them."
-
-"But those Douglases all hang together so. If you touch one, you touch
-all. We can't do without them, so much is certain. They pay half the
-salary. They are not mean, whatever else may be said of them. Norman
-Douglas used to give a hundred a year long ago before he left."
-
-"What did he leave for?" asked Anne.
-
-"He declared a member of the session cheated him in a cow deal. He
-hasn't come to church for twenty years. His wife used to come regular
-while she was alive, poor thing, but he never would let her pay
-anything, except one red cent every Sunday. She felt dreadfully
-humiliated. I don't know that he was any too good a husband to her,
-though she was never heard to complain. But she always had a cowed look.
-Norman Douglas didn't get the woman he wanted thirty years ago and the
-Douglases never liked to put up with second best."
-
-"Who was the woman he did want."
-
-"Ellen West. They weren't engaged exactly, I believe, but they went
-about together for two years. And then they just broke off--nobody
-ever know why. Just some silly quarrel, I suppose. And Norman went and
-married Hester Reese before his temper had time to cool--married her
-just to spite Ellen, I haven't a doubt. So like a man! Hester was a nice
-little thing, but she never had much spirit and he broke what little she
-had. She was too meek for Norman. He needed a woman who could stand up
-to him. Ellen would have kept him in fine order and he would have liked
-her all the better for it. He despised Hester, that is the truth, just
-because she always gave in to him. I used to hear him say many a time,
-long ago when he was a young fellow 'Give me a spunky woman--spunk for
-me every time.' And then he went and married a girl who couldn't say boo
-to a goose--man-like. That family of Reeses were just vegetables. They
-went through the motions of living, but they didn't LIVE."
-
-"Russell Reese used his first wife's wedding-ring to marry his second,"
-said Susan reminiscently. "That was TOO economical in my opinion, Mrs.
-Dr. dear. And his brother John has his own tombstone put up in the
-over-harbour graveyard, with everything on it but the date of death, and
-he goes and looks at it every Sunday. Most folks would not consider that
-much fun, but it is plain he does. People do have such different ideas
-of enjoyment. As for Norman Douglas, he is a perfect heathen. When the
-last minister asked him why he never went to church he said 'Too many
-ugly women there, parson--too many ugly women!' I should like to go to
-such a man, Mrs. Dr. dear, and say to him solemnly, 'There is a hell!'"
-
-"Oh, Norman doesn't believe there is such a place," said Miss Cornelia.
-"I hope he'll find out his mistake when he comes to die. There, Mary,
-you've knit your three inches and you can go and play with the children
-for half an hour."
-
-Mary needed no second bidding. She flew to Rainbow Valley with a heart
-as light as her heels, and in the course of conversation told Faith
-Meredith all about Mrs. Alec Davis.
-
-"And Mrs. Elliott says that she'll turn all the Douglases against your
-father and then he'll have to leave the Glen because his salary won't
-be paid," concluded Mary. "_I_ don't know what is to be done, honest to
-goodness. If only old Norman Douglas would come back to church and pay,
-it wouldn't be so bad. But he won't--and the Douglases will leave--and
-you all will have to go."
-
-Faith carried a heavy heart to bed with her that night. The thought of
-leaving the Glen was unbearable. Nowhere else in the world were there
-such chums as the Blythes. Her little heart had been wrung when they
-had left Maywater--she had shed many bitter tears when she parted with
-Maywater chums and the old manse there where her mother had lived and
-died. She could not contemplate calmly the thought of such another and
-harder wrench. She COULDN'T leave Glen St. Mary and dear Rainbow Valley
-and that delicious graveyard.
-
-"It's awful to be minister's family," groaned Faith into her pillow.
-"Just as soon as you get fond of a place you are torn up by the roots.
-I'll never, never, NEVER marry a minister, no matter how nice he is."
-
-Faith sat up in bed and looked out of the little vine-hung window. The
-night was very still, the silence broken only by Una's soft breathing.
-Faith felt terribly alone in the world. She could see Glen St. Mary
-lying under the starry blue meadows of the autumn night. Over the
-valley a light shone from the girls' room at Ingleside, and another from
-Walter's room. Faith wondered if poor Walter had toothache again. Then
-she sighed, with a little passing sigh of envy of Nan and Di. They had a
-mother and a settled home--THEY were not at the mercy of people who got
-angry without any reason and called you a varmint. Away beyond the Glen,
-amid fields that were very quiet with sleep, another light was burning.
-Faith knew it shone in the house where Norman Douglas lived. He was
-reputed to sit up all hours of the night reading. Mary had said if he
-could only be induced to return to the church all would be well. And
-why not? Faith looked at a big, low star hanging over the tall, pointed
-spruce at the gate of the Methodist Church and had an inspiration. She
-knew what ought to be done and she, Faith Meredith, would do it. She
-would make everything right. With a sigh of satisfaction, she turned
-from the lonely, dark world and cuddled down beside Una.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI. TIT FOR TAT
-
-With Faith, to decide was to act. She lost no time in carrying out the
-idea. As soon as she came home from school the next day she left the
-manse and made her way down the Glen. Walter Blythe joined her as she
-passed the post office.
-
-"I'm going to Mrs. Elliott's on an errand for mother," he said. "Where
-are you going, Faith?"
-
-"I am going somewhere on church business," said Faith loftily. She did
-not volunteer any further information and Walter felt rather snubbed.
-They walked on in silence for a little while. It was a warm, windy
-evening with a sweet, resinous air. Beyond the sand dunes were gray
-seas, soft and beautiful. The Glen brook bore down a freight of gold
-and crimson leaves, like fairy shallops. In Mr. James Reese's buckwheat
-stubble-land, with its beautiful tones of red and brown, a crow
-parliament was being held, whereat solemn deliberations regarding the
-welfare of crowland were in progress. Faith cruelly broke up the august
-assembly by climbing up on the fence and hurling a broken rail at it.
-Instantly the air was filled with flapping black wings and indignant
-caws.
-
-"Why did you do that?" said Walter reproachfully. "They were having such
-a good time."
-
-"Oh, I hate crows," said Faith airily. "The are so black and sly I feel
-sure they're hypocrites. They steal little birds' eggs out of their
-nests, you know. I saw one do it on our lawn last spring. Walter, what
-makes you so pale to-day? Did you have the toothache again last night?"
-
-Walter shivered.
-
-"Yes--a raging one. I couldn't sleep a wink--so I just paced up and down
-the floor and imagined I was an early Christian martyr being tortured
-at the command of Nero. That helped ever so much for a while--and then I
-got so bad I couldn't imagine anything."
-
-"Did you cry?" asked Faith anxiously.
-
-"No--but I lay down on the floor and groaned," admitted Walter. "Then
-the girls came in and Nan put cayenne pepper in it--and that made
-it worse--Di made me hold a swallow of cold water in my mouth--and I
-couldn't stand it, so they called Susan. Susan said it served me right
-for sitting up in the cold garret yesterday writing poetry trash. But
-she started up the kitchen fire and got me a hot-water bottle and it
-stopped the toothache. As soon as I felt better I told Susan my poetry
-wasn't trash and she wasn't any judge. And she said no, thank goodness
-she was not and she did not know anything about poetry except that it
-was mostly a lot of lies. Now you know, Faith, that isn't so. That is
-one reason why I like writing poetry--you can say so many things in it
-that are true in poetry but wouldn't be true in prose. I told Susan
-so, but she said to stop my jawing and go to sleep before the water got
-cold, or she'd leave me to see if rhyming would cure toothache, and she
-hoped it would be a lesson to me."
-
-"Why don't you go to the dentist at Lowbridge and get the tooth out?"
-
-Walter shivered again.
-
-"They want me to--but I can't. It would hurt so."
-
-"Are you afraid of a little pain?" asked Faith contemptuously.
-
-Walter flushed.
-
-"It would be a BIG pain. I hate being hurt. Father said he wouldn't
-insist on my going--he'd wait until I'd made up my own mind to go."
-
-"It wouldn't hurt as long as the toothache," argued Faith, "You've had
-five spells of toothache. If you'd just go and have it out there'd be no
-more bad nights. _I_ had a tooth out once. I yelled for a moment, but it
-was all over then--only the bleeding."
-
-"The bleeding is worst of all--it's so ugly," cried Walter. "It just
-made me sick when Jem cut his foot last summer. Susan said I looked more
-like fainting than Jem did. But I couldn't hear to see Jem hurt, either.
-Somebody is always getting hurt, Faith--and it's awful. I just can't
-BEAR to see things hurt. It makes me just want to run--and run--and
-run--till I can't hear or see them."
-
-"There's no use making a fuss over anyone getting hurt," said Faith,
-tossing her curls. "Of course, if you've hurt yourself very bad, you
-have to yell--and blood IS messy--and I don't like seeing other people
-hurt, either. But I don't want to run--I want to go to work and help
-them. Your father HAS to hurt people lots of times to cure them. What
-would they do if HE ran away?"
-
-"I didn't say I WOULD run. I said I WANTED to run. That's a different
-thing. I want to help people, too. But oh, I wish there weren't any
-ugly, dreadful things in the world. I wish everything was glad and
-beautiful."
-
-"Well, don't let's think of what isn't," said Faith. "After all, there's
-lots of fun in being alive. You wouldn't have toothache if you were
-dead, but still, wouldn't you lots rather be alive than dead? I would,
-a hundred times. Oh, here's Dan Reese. He's been down to the harbour for
-fish."
-
-"I hate Dan Reese," said Walter.
-
-"So do I. All us girls do. I'm just going to walk past and never take
-the least notice of him. You watch me!"
-
-Faith accordingly stalked past Dan with her chin out and an expression
-of scorn that bit into his soul. He turned and shouted after her.
-
-"Pig-girl! Pig-girl!! Pig-girl!!!" in a crescendo of insult.
-
-Faith walked on, seemingly oblivious. But her lip trembled slightly with
-a sense of outrage. She knew she was no match for Dan Reese when it
-came to an exchange of epithets. She wished Jem Blythe had been with
-her instead of Walter. If Dan Reese had dared to call her a pig-girl in
-Jem's hearing, Jem would have wiped up the dust with him. But it never
-occurred to Faith to expect Walter to do it, or blame him for not doing
-it. Walter, she knew, never fought other boys. Neither did Charlie Clow
-of the north road. The strange part was that, while she despised Charlie
-for a coward, it never occurred to her to disdain Walter. It was
-simply that he seemed to her an inhabitant of a world of his own, where
-different traditions prevailed. Faith would as soon have expected a
-starry-eyed young angel to pummel dirty, freckled Dan Reese for her as
-Walter Blythe. She would not have blamed the angel and she did not blame
-Walter Blythe. But she wished that sturdy Jem or Jerry had been there
-and Dan's insult continued to rankle in her soul.
-
-Walter was pale no longer. He had flushed crimson and his beautiful eyes
-were clouded with shame and anger. He knew that he ought to have avenged
-Faith. Jem would have sailed right in and made Dan eat his words with
-bitter sauce. Ritchie Warren would have overwhelmed Dan with worse
-"names" than Dan had called Faith. But Walter could not--simply could
-not--"call names." He knew he would get the worst of it. He could never
-conceive or utter the vulgar, ribald insults of which Dan Reese had
-unlimited command. And as for the trial by fist, Walter couldn't fight.
-He hated the idea. It was rough and painful--and, worst of all, it
-was ugly. He never could understand Jem's exultation in an occasional
-conflict. But he wished he COULD fight Dan Reese. He was horribly
-ashamed because Faith Meredith had been insulted in his presence and he
-had not tried to punish her insulter. He felt sure she must despise him.
-She had not even spoken to him since Dan had called her pig-girl. He was
-glad when they came to the parting of the ways.
-
-Faith, too, was relieved, though for a different reason. She wanted
-to be alone because she suddenly felt rather nervous about her errand.
-Impulse had cooled, especially since Dan had bruised her self-respect.
-She must go through with it, but she no longer had enthusiasm to sustain
-her. She was going to see Norman Douglas and ask him to come back to
-church, and she began to be afraid of him. What had seemed so easy and
-simple up at the Glen seemed very different down here. She had heard a
-good deal about Norman Douglas, and she knew that even the biggest boys
-in school were afraid of him. Suppose he called her something nasty--she
-had heard he was given to that. Faith could not endure being called
-names--they subdued her far more quickly than a physical blow. But she
-would go on--Faith Meredith always went on. If she did not her father
-might have to leave the Glen.
-
-At the end of the long lane Faith came to the house--a big,
-old-fashioned one with a row of soldierly Lombardies marching past
-it. On the back veranda Norman Douglas himself was sitting, reading a
-newspaper. His big dog was beside him. Behind, in the kitchen, where
-his housekeeper, Mrs. Wilson, was getting supper, there was a clatter of
-dishes--an angry clatter, for Norman Douglas had just had a quarrel with
-Mrs. Wilson, and both were in a very bad temper over it. Consequently,
-when Faith stepped on the veranda and Norman Douglas lowered his
-newspaper she found herself looking into the choleric eyes of an
-irritated man.
-
-Norman Douglas was rather a fine-looking personage in his way. He had
-a sweep of long red beard over his broad chest and a mane of red hair,
-ungrizzled by the years, on his massive head. His high, white forehead
-was unwrinkled and his blue eyes could flash still with all the fire of
-his tempestuous youth. He could be very amiable when he liked, and he
-could be very terrible. Poor Faith, so anxiously bent on retrieving the
-situation in regard to the church, had caught him in one of his terrible
-moods.
-
-He did not know who she was and he gazed at her with disfavour. Norman
-Douglas liked girls of spirit and flame and laughter. At this moment
-Faith was very pale. She was of the type to which colour means
-everything. Lacking her crimson cheeks she seemed meek and even
-insignificant. She looked apologetic and afraid, and the bully in Norman
-Douglas's heart stirred.
-
-"Who the dickens are you? And what do you want here?" he demanded in his
-great resounding voice, with a fierce scowl.
-
-For once in her life Faith had nothing to say. She had never supposed
-Norman Douglas was like THIS. She was paralyzed with terror of him. He
-saw it and it made him worse.
-
-"What's the matter with you?" he boomed. "You look as if you wanted to
-say something and was scared to say it. What's troubling you? Confound
-it, speak up, can't you?"
-
-No. Faith could not speak up. No words would come. But her lips began to
-tremble.
-
-"For heaven's sake, don't cry," shouted Norman. "I can't stand
-snivelling. If you've anything to say, say it and have done. Great
-Kitty, is the girl possessed of a dumb spirit? Don't look at me like
-that--I'm human--I haven't got a tail! Who are you--who are you, I say?"
-
-Norman's voice could have been heard at the harbour. Operations in the
-kitchen were suspended. Mrs. Wilson was listening open-eared and eyed.
-Norman put his huge brown hands on his knees and leaned forward, staring
-into Faith's pallid, shrinking face. He seemed to loom over her like
-some evil giant out of a fairy tale. She felt as if he would eat her up
-next thing, body and bones.
-
-"I--am--Faith--Meredith," she said, in little more than a whisper.
-
-"Meredith, hey? One of the parson's youngsters, hey? I've heard of
-you--I've heard of you! Riding on pigs and breaking the Sabbath! A nice
-lot! What do you want here, hey? What do you want of the old pagan,
-hey? _I_ don't ask favours of parsons--and I don't give any. What do you
-want, I say?"
-
-Faith wished herself a thousand miles away. She stammered out her
-thought in its naked simplicity.
-
-"I came--to ask you--to go to church--and pay--to the salary."
-
-Norman glared at her. Then he burst forth again.
-
-"You impudent hussy--you! Who put you up to it, jade? Who put you up to
-it?"
-
-"Nobody," said poor Faith.
-
-"That's a lie. Don't lie to me! Who sent you here? It wasn't your
-father--he hasn't the smeddum of a flea--but he wouldn't send you to do
-what he dassn't do himself. I suppose it was some of them confounded old
-maids at the Glen, was it--was it, hey?"
-
-"No--I--I just came myself."
-
-"Do you take me for a fool?" shouted Norman.
-
-"No--I thought you were a gentleman," said Faith faintly, and certainly
-without any thought of being sarcastic.
-
-Norman bounced up.
-
-"Mind your own business. I don't want to hear another word from you. If
-you wasn't such a kid I'd teach you to interfere in what doesn't concern
-you. When I want parsons or pill-dosers I'll send for them. Till I
-do I'll have no truck with them. Do you understand? Now, get out,
-cheese-face."
-
-Faith got out. She stumbled blindly down the steps, out of the yard gate
-and into the lane. Half way up the lane her daze of fear passed away and
-a reaction of tingling anger possessed her. By the time she reached
-the end of the lane she was in such a furious temper as she had never
-experienced before. Norman Douglas' insults burned in her soul, kindling
-a scorching flame. Go home! Not she! She would go straight back and
-tell that old ogre just what she thought of him--she would show him--oh,
-wouldn't she! Cheese-face, indeed!
-
-Unhesitatingly she turned and walked back. The veranda was deserted and
-the kitchen door shut. Faith opened the door without knocking, and went
-in. Norman Douglas had just sat down at the supper table, but he still
-held his newspaper. Faith walked inflexibly across the room, caught the
-paper from his hand, flung it on the floor and stamped on it. Then she
-faced him, with her flashing eyes and scarlet cheeks. She was such a
-handsome young fury that Norman Douglas hardly recognized her.
-
-"What's brought you back?" he growled, but more in bewilderment than
-rage.
-
-Unquailingly she glared back into the angry eyes against which so few
-people could hold their own.
-
-"I have come back to tell you exactly what I think of you," said Faith
-in clear, ringing tones. "I am not afraid of you. You are a rude,
-unjust, tyrannical, disagreeable old man. Susan says you are sure to go
-to hell, and I was sorry for you, but I am not now. Your wife never had
-a new hat for ten years--no wonder she died. I am going to make faces at
-you whenever I see you after this. Every time I am behind you you will
-know what is happening. Father has a picture of the devil in a book in
-his study, and I mean to go home and write your name under it. You are
-an old vampire and I hope you'll have the Scotch fiddle!"
-
-Faith did not know what a vampire meant any more than she knew what the
-Scotch fiddle was. She had heard Susan use the expressions and gathered
-from her tone that both were dire things. But Norman Douglas knew
-what the latter meant at least. He had listened in absolute silence to
-Faith's tirade. When she paused for breath, with a stamp of her foot, he
-suddenly burst into loud laughter. With a mighty slap of hand on knee he
-exclaimed,
-
-"I vow you've got spunk, after all--I like spunk. Come, sit down--sit
-down!"
-
-"I will not." Faith's eyes flashed more passionately. She thought she
-was being made fun of--treated contemptuously. She would have enjoyed
-another explosion of rage, but this cut deep. "I will not sit down in
-your house. I am going home. But I am glad I came back here and told you
-exactly what my opinion of you is."
-
-"So am I--so am I," chuckled Norman. "I like you--you're fine--you're
-great. Such roses--such vim! Did I call her cheese-face? Why, she never
-smelt a cheese. Sit down. If you'd looked like that at the first, girl!
-So you'll write my name under the devil's picture, will you? But he's
-black, girl, he's black--and I'm red. It won't do--it won't do! And you
-hope I'll have the Scotch fiddle, do you? Lord love you, girl, I had
-IT when I was a boy. Don't wish it on me again. Sit down--sit in. We'll
-tak' a cup o' kindness."
-
-"No, thank you," said Faith haughtily.
-
-"Oh, yes, you will. Come, come now, I apologize, girl--I apologize. I
-made a fool of myself and I'm sorry. Man can't say fairer. Forget and
-forgive. Shake hands, girl--shake hands. She won't--no, she won't! But
-she must! Look-a-here, girl, if you'll shake hands and break bread with
-me I'll pay what I used to to the salary and I'll go to church the first
-Sunday in every month and I'll make Kitty Alec hold her jaw. I'm the
-only one in the clan can do it. Is it a bargain, girl?"
-
-It seemed a bargain. Faith found herself shaking hands with the ogre and
-then sitting at his board. Her temper was over--Faith's tempers never
-lasted very long--but its excitement still sparkled in her eyes and
-crimsoned her cheeks. Norman Douglas looked at her admiringly.
-
-"Go, get some of your best preserves, Wilson," he ordered, "and stop
-sulking, woman, stop sulking. What if we did have a quarrel, woman? A
-good squall clears the air and briskens things up. But no drizzling and
-fogging afterwards--no drizzling and fogging, woman. I can't stand that.
-Temper in a woman but no tears for me. Here, girl, is some messed up
-meat and potatoes for you. Begin on that. Wilson has some fancy name for
-it, but I call lit macanaccady. Anything I can't analyze in the
-eating line I call macanaccady and anything wet that puzzles me I call
-shallamagouslem. Wilson's tea is shallamagouslem. I swear she makes it
-out of burdocks. Don't take any of the ungodly black liquid--here's some
-milk for you. What did you say your name was?"
-
-"Faith."
-
-"No name that--no name that! I can't stomach such a name. Got any
-other?"
-
-"No, sir."
-
-"Don't like the name, don't like it. There's no smeddum to it. Besides,
-it makes me think of my Aunt Jinny. She called her three girls Faith,
-Hope, and Charity. Faith didn't believe in anything--Hope was a born
-pessimist--and Charity was a miser. You ought to be called Red Rose--you
-look like one when you're mad. I'LL call you Red Rose. And you've roped
-me into promising to go to church? But only once a month, remember--only
-once a month. Come now, girl, will you let me off? I used to pay a
-hundred to the salary every year and go to church. If I promise to pay
-two hundred a year will you let me off going to church? Come now!"
-
-"No, no, sir," said Faith, dimpling roguishly. "I want you to go to
-church, too."
-
-"Well, a bargain is a bargain. I reckon I can stand it twelve times a
-year. What a sensation it'll make the first Sunday I go! And old Susan
-Baker says I'm going to hell, hey? Do you believe I'll go there--come,
-now, do you?"
-
-"I hope not, sir," stammered Faith in some confusion.
-
-"WHY do you hope not? Come, now, WHY do you hope not? Give us a reason,
-girl--give us a reason."
-
-"It--it must be a very--uncomfortable place, sir."
-
-"Uncomfortable? All depends on your taste in comfortable, girl. I'd soon
-get tired of angels. Fancy old Susan in a halo, now!"
-
-Faith did fancy it, and it tickled her so much that she had to laugh.
-Norman eyed her approvingly.
-
-"See the fun of it, hey? Oh, I like you--you're great. About this church
-business, now--can your father preach?"
-
-"He is a splendid preacher," said loyal Faith.
-
-"He is, hey? I'll see--I'll watch out for flaws. He'd better be careful
-what he says before ME. I'll catch him--I'll trip him up--I'll keep tabs
-on his arguments. I'm bound to have some fun out of this church going
-business. Does he ever preach hell?"
-
-"No--o--o--I don't think so."
-
-"Too bad. I like sermons on that subject. You tell him that if he wants
-to keep me in good humour to preach a good rip-roaring sermon on hell
-once every six months--and the more brimstone the better. I like 'em
-smoking. And think of all the pleasure he'd give the old maids, too.
-They'd all keep looking at old Norman Douglas and thinking, 'That's for
-you, you old reprobate. That's what's in store for YOU!' I'll give an
-extra ten dollars every time you get your father to preach on hell.
-Here's Wilson and the jam. Like that, hey? IT isn't macanaccady. Taste!"
-
-Faith obediently swallowed the big spoonful Norman held out to her.
-Luckily it WAS good.
-
-"Best plum jam in the world," said Norman, filling a large saucer and
-plumping it down before her. "Glad you like it. I'll give you a couple
-of jars to take home with you. There's nothing mean about me--never was.
-The devil can't catch me at THAT corner, anyhow. It wasn't my fault that
-Hester didn't have a new hat for ten years. It was her own--she pinched
-on hats to save money to give yellow fellows over in China. _I_ never
-gave a cent to missions in my life--never will. Never you try to
-bamboozle me into that! A hundred a year to the salary and church once a
-month--but no spoiling good heathens to make poor Christians! Why,
-girl, they wouldn't be fit for heaven or hell--clean spoiled for either
-place--clean spoiled. Hey, Wilson, haven't you got a smile on yet? Beats
-all how you women can sulk! _I_ never sulked in my life--it's just one
-big flash and crash with me and then--pouf--the squall's over and the
-sun is out and you could eat out of my hand."
-
-Norman insisted on driving Faith home after supper and he filled the
-buggy up with apples, cabbages, potatoes and pumpkins and jars of jam.
-
-"There's a nice little tom-pussy out in the barn. I'll give you that
-too, if you'd like it. Say the word," he said.
-
-"No, thank you," said Faith decidedly. "I don't like cats, and besides,
-I have a rooster."
-
-"Listen to her. You can't cuddle a rooster as you can a kitten. Who ever
-heard of petting a rooster? Better take little Tom. I want to find a
-good home for him."
-
-"No. Aunt Martha has a cat and he would kill a strange kitten."
-
-Norman yielded the point rather reluctantly. He gave Faith an exciting
-drive home, behind his wild two-year old, and when he had let her out at
-the kitchen door of the manse and dumped his cargo on the back veranda
-he drove away shouting,
-
-"It's only once a month--only once a month, mind!"
-
-Faith went up to bed, feeling a little dizzy and breathless, as if she
-had just escaped from the grasp of a genial whirlwind. She was happy
-and thankful. No fear now that they would have to leave the Glen and
-the graveyard and Rainbow Valley. But she fell asleep troubled by a
-disagreeable subconsciousness that Dan Reese had called her pig-girl and
-that, having stumbled on such a congenial epithet, he would continue to
-call her so whenever opportunity offered.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII. A DOUBLE VICTORY
-
-Norman Douglas came to church the first Sunday in November and made all
-the sensation he desired. Mr. Meredith shook hands with him absently on
-the church steps and hoped dreamily that Mrs. Douglas was well.
-
-"She wasn't very well just before I buried her ten years ago, but I
-reckon she has better health now," boomed Norman, to the horror
-and amusement of every one except Mr. Meredith, who was absorbed in
-wondering if he had made the last head of his sermon as clear as he
-might have, and hadn't the least idea what Norman had said to him or he
-to Norman.
-
-Norman intercepted Faith at the gate.
-
-"Kept my word, you see--kept my word, Red Rose. I'm free now till the
-first Sunday in December. Fine sermon, girl--fine sermon. Your father
-has more in his head than he carries on his face. But he contradicted
-himself once--tell him he contradicted himself. And tell him I want that
-brimstone sermon in December. Great way to wind up the old year--with
-a taste of hell, you know. And what's the matter with a nice tasty
-discourse on heaven for New Year's? Though it wouldn't be half as
-interesting as hell, girl--not half. Only I'd like to know what your
-father thinks about heaven--he CAN think--rarest thing in the world--a
-person who can think. But he DID contradict himself. Ha, ha! Here's a
-question you might ask him sometime when he's awake, girl. 'Can God make
-a stone so big He couldn't lift it Himself?' Don't forget now. I want to
-hear his opinion on it. I've stumped many a minister with that, girl."
-
-Faith was glad to escape him and run home. Dan Reese, standing among the
-crowd of boys at the gate, looked at her and shaped his mouth into
-"pig-girl," but dared not utter it aloud just there. Next day in school
-was a different matter. At noon recess Faith encountered Dan in the
-little spruce plantation behind the school and Dan shouted once more,
-
-"Pig-girl! Pig-girl! ROOSTER-GIRL!"
-
-Walter Blythe suddenly rose from a mossy cushion behind a little clump
-of firs where he had been reading. He was very pale, but his eyes
-blazed.
-
-"You hold your tongue, Dan Reese!" he said.
-
-"Oh, hello, Miss Walter," retorted Dan, not at all abashed. He vaulted
-airily to the top of the rail fence and chanted insultingly,
-
- "Cowardy, cowardy-custard
- Stole a pot of mustard,
- Cowardy, cowardy-custard!"
-
-"You are a coincidence!" said Walter scornfully, turning still whiter.
-He had only a very hazy idea what a coincidence was, but Dan had none at
-all and thought it must be something peculiarly opprobrious.
-
-"Yah! Cowardy!" he yelled gain. "Your mother writes lies--lies--lies!
-And Faith Meredith is a pig-girl--a--pig-girl--a pig-girl! And she's
-a rooster-girl--a rooster-girl--a rooster-girl! Yah!
-Cowardy--cowardy--cust--"
-
-Dan got no further. Walter had hurled himself across the intervening
-space and knocked Dan off the fence backward with one well-directed
-blow. Dan's sudden inglorious sprawl was greeted with a burst of
-laughter and a clapping of hands from Faith. Dan sprang up, purple with
-rage, and began to climb the fence. But just then the school-bell rang
-and Dan knew what happened to boys who were late during Mr. Hazard's
-regime.
-
-"We'll fight this out," he howled. "Cowardy!"
-
-"Any time you like," said Walter.
-
-"Oh, no, no, Walter," protested Faith. "Don't fight him. _I_ don't mind
-what he says--I wouldn't condescend to mind the like of HIM."
-
-"He insulted you and he insulted my mother," said Walter, with the same
-deadly calm. "Tonight after school, Dan."
-
-"I've got to go right home from school to pick taters after the harrows,
-dad says," answered Dan sulkily. "But to-morrow night'll do."
-
-"All right--here to-morrow night," agreed Walter.
-
-"And I'll smash your sissy-face for you," promised Dan.
-
-Walter shuddered--not so much from fear of the threat as from repulsion
-over the ugliness and vulgarity of it. But he held his head high and
-marched into school. Faith followed in a conflict of emotions. She
-hated to think of Walter fighting that little sneak, but oh, he had been
-splendid! And he was going to fight for HER--Faith Meredith--to punish
-her insulter! Of course he would win--such eyes spelled victory.
-
-Faith's confidence in her champion had dimmed a little by evening,
-however. Walter had seemed so very quiet and dull the rest of the day in
-school.
-
-"If it were only Jem," she sighed to Una, as they sat on Hezekiah
-Pollock's tombstone in the graveyard. "HE is such a fighter--he could
-finish Dan off in no time. But Walter doesn't know much about fighting."
-
-"I'm so afraid he'll be hurt," sighed Una, who hated fighting and
-couldn't understand the subtle, secret exultation she divined in Faith.
-
-"He oughtn't to be," said Faith uncomfortably. "He's every bit as big as
-Dan."
-
-"But Dan's so much older," said Una. "Why, he's nearly a year older."
-
-"Dan hasn't done much fighting when you come to count up," said Faith.
-"I believe he's really a coward. He didn't think Walter would fight,
-or he wouldn't have called names before him. Oh, if you could just have
-seen Walter's face when he looked at him, Una! It made me shiver--with a
-nice shiver. He looked just like Sir Galahad in that poem father read us
-on Saturday."
-
-"I hate the thought of them fighting and I wish it could be stopped,"
-said Una.
-
-"Oh, it's got to go on now," cried Faith. "It's a matter of honour.
-Don't you DARE tell anyone, Una. If you do I'll never tell you secrets
-again!"
-
-"I won't tell," agreed Una. "But I won't stay to-morrow to watch the
-fight. I'm coming right home."
-
-"Oh, all right. _I_ have to be there--it would be mean not to,
-when Walter is fighting for me. I'm going to tie my colours on his
-arm--that's the thing to do when he's my knight. How lucky Mrs. Blythe
-gave me that pretty blue hair-ribbon for my birthday! I've only worn it
-twice so it will be almost new. But I wish I was sure Walter would win.
-It will be so--so HUMILIATING if he doesn't."
-
-Faith would have been yet more dubious if she could have seen her
-champion just then. Walter had gone home from school with all his
-righteous anger at a low ebb and a very nasty feeling in its place. He
-had to fight Dan Reese the next night--and he didn't want to--he hated
-the thought of it. And he kept thinking of it all the time. Not for a
-minute could he get away from the thought. Would it hurt much? He was
-terribly afraid that it would hurt. And would he be defeated and shamed?
-
-He could not eat any supper worth speaking of. Susan had made a big
-batch of his favourite monkey-faces, but he could choke only one down.
-Jem ate four. Walter wondered how he could. How could ANYBODY eat? And
-how could they all talk gaily as they were doing? There was mother, with
-her shining eyes and pink cheeks. SHE didn't know her son had to fight
-next day. Would she be so gay if she knew, Walter wondered darkly. Jem
-had taken Susan's picture with his new camera and the result was passed
-around the table and Susan was terribly indignant over it.
-
-"I am no beauty, Mrs. Dr. dear, and well I know it, and have always
-known it," she said in an aggrieved tone, "but that I am as ugly as that
-picture makes me out I will never, no, never believe."
-
-Jem laughed over this and Anne laughed again with him. Walter couldn't
-endure it. He got up and fled to his room.
-
-"That child has got something on his mind, Mrs. Dr. dear," said Susan.
-"He has et next to nothing. Do you suppose he is plotting another poem?"
-
-Poor Walter was very far removed in spirit from the starry realms of
-poesy just then. He propped his elbow on his open window-sill and leaned
-his head drearily on his hands.
-
-"Come on down to the shore, Walter," cried Jem, busting in. "The boys
-are going to burn the sand-hill grass to-night. Father says we can go.
-Come on."
-
-At any other time Walter would have been delighted. He gloried in the
-burning of the sand-hill grass. But now he flatly refused to go, and no
-arguments or entreaties could move him. Disappointed Jem, who did not
-care for the long dark walk to Four Winds Point alone, retreated to his
-museum in the garret and buried himself in a book. He soon forgot his
-disappointment, revelling with the heroes of old romance, and pausing
-occasionally to picture himself a famous general, leading his troops to
-victory on some great battlefield.
-
-Walter sat at his window until bedtime. Di crept in, hoping to be told
-what was wrong, but Walter could not talk of it, even to Di. Talking
-of it seemed to give it a reality from which he shrank. It was torture
-enough to think of it. The crisp, withered leaves rustled on the maple
-trees outside his window. The glow of rose and flame had died out of
-the hollow, silvery sky, and the full moon was rising gloriously over
-Rainbow Valley. Afar off, a ruddy woodfire was painting a page of glory
-on the horizon beyond the hills. It was a sharp, clear evening when
-far-away sounds were heard distinctly. A fox was barking across the
-pond; an engine was puffing down at the Glen station; a blue-jay was
-screaming madly in the maple grove; there was laughter over on the manse
-lawn. How could people laugh? How could foxes and blue-jays and engines
-behave as if nothing were going to happen on the morrow?
-
-"Oh, I wish it was over," groaned Walter.
-
-He slept very little that night and had hard work choking down his
-porridge in the morning. Susan WAS rather lavish in her platefuls. Mr.
-Hazard found him an unsatisfactory pupil that day. Faith Meredith's wits
-seemed to be wool-gathering, too. Dan Reese kept drawing surreptitious
-pictures of girls, with pig or rooster heads, on his slate and holding
-them up for all to see. The news of the coming battle had leaked out
-and most of the boys and many of the girls were in the spruce plantation
-when Dan and Walter sought it after school. Una had gone home, but Faith
-was there, having tied her blue ribbon around Walter's arm. Walter
-was thankful that neither Jem nor Di nor Nan were among the crowd of
-spectators. Somehow they had not heard of what was in the wind and had
-gone home, too. Walter faced Dan quite undauntedly now. At the last
-moment all his fear had vanished, but he still felt disgust at the idea
-of fighting. Dan, it was noted, was really paler under his freckles than
-Walter was. One of the older boys gave the word and Dan struck Walter in
-the face.
-
-Walter reeled a little. The pain of the blow tingled through all his
-sensitive frame for a moment. Then he felt pain no longer. Something,
-such as he had never experienced before, seemed to roll over him like
-a flood. His face flushed crimson, his eyes burned like flame. The
-scholars of Glen St. Mary school had never dreamed that "Miss Walter"
-could look like that. He hurled himself forward and closed with Dan like
-a young wildcat.
-
-There were no particular rules in the fights of the Glen school boys. It
-was catch-as-catch can, and get your blows in anyhow. Walter fought with
-a savage fury and a joy in the struggle against which Dan could not
-hold his ground. It was all over very speedily. Walter had no clear
-consciousness of what he was doing until suddenly the red mist cleared
-from his sight and he found himself kneeling on the body of the
-prostrate Dan whose nose--oh, horror!--was spouting blood.
-
-"Have you had enough?" demanded Walter through his clenched teeth.
-
-Dan sulkily admitted that he had.
-
-"My mother doesn't write lies?"
-
-"No."
-
-"Faith Meredith isn't a pig-girl?"
-
-"No."
-
-"Nor a rooster-girl?"
-
-"No."
-
-"And I'm not a coward?"
-
-"No."
-
-Walter had intended to ask, "And you are a liar?" but pity intervened
-and he did not humiliate Dan further. Besides, that blood was so
-horrible.
-
-"You can go, then," he said contemptuously.
-
-There was a loud clapping from the boys who were perched on the rail
-fence, but some of the girls were crying. They were frightened. They had
-seen schoolboy fights before, but nothing like Walter as he had grappled
-with Dan. There had been something terrifying about him. They thought he
-would kill Dan. Now that all was over they sobbed hysterically--except
-Faith, who still stood tense and crimson cheeked.
-
-Walter did not stay for any conqueror's meed. He sprang over the fence
-and rushed down the spruce hill to Rainbow Valley. He felt none of the
-victor's joy, but he felt a certain calm satisfaction in duty done and
-honour avenged--mingled with a sickish qualm when he thought of Dan's
-gory nose. It had been so ugly, and Walter hated ugliness.
-
-Also, he began to realize that he himself was somewhat sore and battered
-up. His lip was cut and swollen and one eye felt very strange. In
-Rainbow Valley he encountered Mr. Meredith, who was coming home from an
-afternoon call on the Miss Wests. That reverend gentleman looked gravely
-at him.
-
-"It seems to me that you have been fighting, Walter?"
-
-"Yes, sir," said Walter, expecting a scolding.
-
-"What was it about?"
-
-"Dan Reese said my mother wrote lies and that that Faith was a
-pig-girl," answered Walter bluntly.
-
-"Oh--h! Then you were certainly justified, Walter."
-
-"Do you think it's right to fight, sir?" asked Walter curiously.
-
-"Not always--and not often--but sometimes--yes, sometimes," said John
-Meredith. "When womenkind are insulted for instance--as in your case. My
-motto, Walter, is, don't fight till you're sure you ought to, and THEN
-put every ounce of you into it. In spite of sundry discolorations I
-infer that you came off best."
-
-"Yes. I made him take it all back."
-
-"Very good--very good, indeed. I didn't think you were such a fighter,
-Walter."
-
-"I never fought before--and I didn't want to right up to the last--and
-then," said Walter, determined to make a clean breast of it, "I liked it
-while I was at it."
-
-The Rev. John's eyes twinkled.
-
-"You were--a little frightened--at first?"
-
-"I was a whole lot frightened," said honest Walter. "But I'm not going
-to be frightened any more, sir. Being frightened of things is worse
-than the things themselves. I'm going to ask father to take me over to
-Lowbridge to-morrow to get my tooth out."
-
-"Right again. 'Fear is more pain than is the pain it fears.' Do you know
-who wrote that, Walter? It was Shakespeare. Was there any feeling or
-emotion or experience of the human heart that that wonderful man did not
-know? When you go home tell your mother I am proud of you."
-
-Walter did not tell her that, however; but he told her all the rest, and
-she sympathized with him and told him she was glad he had stood up for
-her and Faith, and she anointed his sore spots and rubbed cologne on his
-aching head.
-
-"Are all mothers as nice as you?" asked Walter, hugging her. "You're
-WORTH standing up for."
-
-Miss Cornelia and Susan were in the living room when Anne came
-downstairs, and listened to the story with much enjoyment. Susan in
-particular was highly gratified.
-
-"I am real glad to hear he has had a good fight, Mrs. Dr. dear. Perhaps
-it may knock that poetry nonsense out of him. And I never, no, never
-could bear that little viper of a Dan Reese. Will you not sit nearer
-to the fire, Mrs. Marshall Elliott? These November evenings are very
-chilly."
-
-"Thank you, Susan, I'm not cold. I called at the manse before I came
-here and got quite warm--though I had to go to the kitchen to do it, for
-there was no fire anywhere else. The kitchen looked as if it had
-been stirred up with a stick, believe ME. Mr. Meredith wasn't home. I
-couldn't find out where he was, but I have an idea that he was up at
-the Wests'. Do you know, Anne dearie, they say he has been going there
-frequently all the fall and people are beginning to think he is going to
-see Rosemary."
-
-"He would get a very charming wife if he married Rosemary," said Anne,
-piling driftwood on the fire. "She is one of the most delightful girls
-I've ever known--truly one of the race of Joseph."
-
-"Ye--s--only she is an Episcopalian," said Miss Cornelia doubtfully. "Of
-course, that is better than if she was a Methodist--but I do think Mr.
-Meredith could find a good enough wife in his own denomination. However,
-very likely there is nothing in it. It's only a month ago that I said to
-him, 'You ought to marry again, Mr. Meredith.' He looked as shocked as
-if I had suggested something improper. 'My wife is in her grave, Mrs.
-Elliott,' he said, in that gentle, saintly way of his. 'I suppose so,'
-I said, 'or I wouldn't be advising you to marry again.' Then he looked
-more shocked than ever. So I doubt if there is much in this Rosemary
-story. If a single minister calls twice at a house where there is a
-single woman all the gossips have it he is courting her."
-
-"It seems to me--if I may presume to say so--that Mr. Meredith is too
-shy to go courting a second wife," said Susan solemnly.
-
-"He ISN'T shy, believe ME," retorted Miss Cornelia.
-"Absent-minded,--yes--but shy, no. And for all he is so abstracted and
-dreamy he has a very good opinion of himself, man-like, and when he is
-really awake he wouldn't think it much of a chore to ask any woman to
-have him. No, the trouble is, he's deluding himself into believing that
-his heart is buried, while all the time it's beating away inside of him
-just like anybody else's. He may have a notion of Rosemary West and he
-may not. If he has, we must make the best of it. She is a sweet girl
-and a fine housekeeper, and would make a good mother for those poor,
-neglected children. And," concluded Miss Cornelia resignedly, "my own
-grandmother was an Episcopalian."
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII. MARY BRINGS EVIL TIDINGS
-
-Mary Vance, whom Mrs. Elliott had sent up to the manse on an errand,
-came tripping down Rainbow Valley on her way to Ingleside where she was
-to spend the afternoon with Nan and Di as a Saturday treat. Nan and Di
-had been picking spruce gum with Faith and Una in the manse woods and
-the four of them were now sitting on a fallen pine by the brook, all,
-it must be admitted, chewing rather vigorously. The Ingleside twins were
-not allowed to chew spruce gum anywhere but in the seclusion of Rainbow
-Valley, but Faith and Una were unrestricted by such rules of etiquette
-and cheerfully chewed it everywhere, at home and abroad, to the very
-proper horror of the Glen. Faith had been chewing it in church one day;
-but Jerry had realized the enormity of THAT, and had given her such an
-older-brotherly scolding that she never did it again.
-
-"I was so hungry I just felt as if I had to chew something," she
-protested. "You know well enough what breakfast was like, Jerry
-Meredith. I COULDN'T eat scorched porridge and my stomach just felt so
-queer and empty. The gum helped a lot--and I didn't chew VERY hard. I
-didn't make any noise and I never cracked the gum once."
-
-"You mustn't chew gum in church, anyhow," insisted Jerry. "Don't let me
-catch you at it again."
-
-"You chewed yourself in prayer-meeting last week," cried Faith.
-
-"THAT'S different," said Jerry loftily. "Prayer-meeting isn't on Sunday.
-Besides, I sat away at the back in a dark seat and nobody saw me. You
-were sitting right up front where every one saw you. And I took the gum
-out of my mouth for the last hymn and stuck it on the back of the pew
-right up in front where every one saw you. Then I came away and forgot
-it. I went back to get it next morning, but it was gone. I suppose Rod
-Warren swiped it. And it was a dandy
-chew."
-
-Mary Vance walked down the Valley with her head held high. She had on
-a new blue velvet cap with a scarlet rosette in it, a coat of navy blue
-cloth and a little squirrel-fur muff. She was very conscious of her new
-clothes and very well pleased with herself. Her hair was elaborately
-crimped, her face was quite plump, her cheeks rosy, her white eyes
-shining. She did not look much like the forlorn and ragged waif the
-Merediths had found in the old Taylor barn. Una tried not to feel
-envious. Here was Mary with a new velvet cap, but she and Faith had to
-wear their shabby old gray tams again this winter. Nobody ever thought
-of getting them new ones and they were afraid to ask their father for
-them for fear that he might be short of money and then he would feel
-badly. Mary had told them once that ministers were always short of
-money, and found it "awful hard" to make ends meet. Since then Faith and
-Una would have gone in rags rather than ask their father for anything
-if they could help it. They did not worry a great deal over their
-shabbiness; but it was rather trying to see Mary Vance coming out in
-such style and putting on such airs about it, too. The new squirrel muff
-was really the last straw. Neither Faith nor Una had ever had a muff,
-counting themselves lucky if they could compass mittens without holes in
-them. Aunt Martha could not see to darn holes and though Una tried to,
-she made sad cobbling. Somehow, they could not make their greeting of
-Mary very cordial. But Mary did not mind or notice that; she was not
-overly sensitive. She vaulted lightly to a seat on the pine tree, and
-laid the offending muff on a bough. Una saw that it was lined with
-shirred red satin and had red tassels. She looked down at her own rather
-purple, chapped, little hands and wondered if she would ever, EVER be
-able to put them into a muff like that.
-
-"Give us a chew," said Mary companionably. Nan, Di and Faith all
-produced an amber-hued knot or two from their pockets and passed them to
-Mary. Una sat very still. She had four lovely big knots in the pocket of
-her tight, thread-bare little jacket, but she wasn't going to give one
-of them to Mary Vance--not one Let Mary pick her own gum! People with
-squirrel muffs needn't expect to get everything in the world.
-
-"Great day, isn't it?" said Mary, swinging her legs, the better,
-perhaps, to display new boots with very smart cloth tops. Una tucked HER
-feet under her. There was a hole in the toe of one of her boots and both
-laces were much knotted. But they were the best she had. Oh, this Mary
-Vance! Why hadn't they left her in the old barn?
-
-Una never felt badly because the Ingleside twins were better dressed
-than she and Faith were. THEY wore their pretty clothes with careless
-grace and never seemed to think about them at all. Somehow, they did not
-make other people feel shabby. But when Mary Vance was dressed up she
-seemed fairly to exude clothes--to walk in an atmosphere of clothes--to
-make everybody else feel and think clothes. Una, as she sat there in the
-honey-tinted sunshine of the gracious December afternoon, was acutely
-and miserably conscious of everything she had on--the faded tam, which
-was yet her best, the skimpy jacket she had worn for three winters, the
-holes in her skirt and her boots, the shivering insufficiency of her
-poor little undergarments. Of course, Mary was going out for a visit and
-she was not. But even if she had been she had nothing better to put on
-and in this lay the sting.
-
-"Say, this is great gum. Listen to me cracking it. There ain't any gum
-spruces down at Four Winds," said Mary. "Sometimes I just hanker after
-a chew. Mrs. Elliott won't let me chew gum if she sees me. She says it
-ain't lady-like. This lady-business puzzles me. I can't get on to all
-its kinks. Say, Una, what's the matter with you? Cat got your tongue?"
-
-"No," said Una, who could not drag her fascinated eyes from that
-squirrel muff. Mary leaned past her, picked it up and thrust it into
-Una's hands.
-
-"Stick your paws in that for a while," she ordered. "They look sorter
-pinched. Ain't that a dandy muff? Mrs. Elliott give it to me last week
-for a birthday present. I'm to get the collar at Christmas. I heard her
-telling Mr. Elliott that."
-
-"Mrs. Elliott is very good to you," said Faith.
-
-"You bet she is. And I'M good to her, too," retorted Mary. "I work like
-a nigger to make it easy for her and have everything just as she likes
-it. We was made for each other. 'Tisn't every one could get along with
-her as well as I do. She's pizen neat, but so am I, and so we agree
-fine."
-
-"I told you she would never whip you."
-
-"So you did. She's never tried to lay a finger on me and I ain't never
-told a lie to her--not one, true's you live. She combs me down with her
-tongue sometimes though, but that just slips off ME like water off a
-duck's back. Say, Una, why didn't you hang on to the muff?"
-
-Una had put it back on the bough.
-
-"My hands aren't cold, thank you," she said stiffly.
-
-"Well, if you're satisfied, _I_ am. Say, old Kitty Alec has come back to
-church as meek as Moses and nobody knows why. But everybody is saying
-it was Faith brought Norman Douglas out. His housekeeper says you went
-there and gave him an awful tongue-lashing. Did you?"
-
-"I went and asked him to come to church," said Faith uncomfortably.
-
-"Fancy your spunk!" said Mary admiringly. "_I_ wouldn't have dared
-do that and I'm not so slow. Mrs. Wilson says the two of you jawed
-something scandalous, but you come off best and then he just turned
-round and like to eat you up. Say, is your father going to preach here
-to-morrow?"
-
-"No. He's going to exchange with Mr. Perry from Charlottetown. Father
-went to town this morning and Mr. Perry is coming out to-night."
-
-"I THOUGHT there was something in the wind, though old Martha wouldn't
-give me any satisfaction. But I felt sure she wouldn't have been killing
-that rooster for nothing."
-
-"What rooster? What do you mean?" cried Faith, turning pale.
-
-"_I_ don't know what rooster. I didn't see it. When she took the butter
-Mrs. Elliott sent up she said she'd been out to the barn killing a
-rooster for dinner tomorrow."
-
-Faith sprang down from the pine.
-
-"It's Adam--we have no other rooster--she has killed Adam."
-
-"Now, don't fly off the handle. Martha said the butcher at the Glen had
-no meat this week and she had to have something and the hens were all
-laying and too poor."
-
-"If she has killed Adam--" Faith began to run up the hill.
-
-Mary shrugged her shoulders.
-
-"She'll go crazy now. She was so fond of that Adam. He ought to have
-been in the pot long ago--he'll be as tough as sole leather. But _I_
-wouldn't like to be in Martha's shoes. Faith's just white with rage;
-Una, you'd better go after her and try to peacify her."
-
-Mary had gone a few steps with the Blythe girls when Una suddenly turned
-and ran after her.
-
-"Here's some gum for you, Mary," she said, with a little repentant catch
-in her voice, thrusting all her four knots into Mary's hands, "and I'm
-glad you have such a pretty muff."
-
-"Why, thanks," said Mary, rather taken by surprise. To the Blythe girls,
-after Una had gone, she said, "Ain't she a queer little mite? But I've
-always said she had a good heart."
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX. POOR ADAM!
-
-When Una got home Faith was lying face downwards on her bed, utterly
-refusing to be comforted. Aunt Martha had killed Adam. He was reposing
-on a platter in the pantry that very minute, trussed and dressed,
-encircled by his liver and heart and gizzard. Aunt Martha heeded Faith's
-passion of grief and anger not a whit.
-
-"We had to have something for the strange minister's dinner," she said.
-"You're too big a girl to make such a fuss over an old rooster. You knew
-he'd have to be killed sometime."
-
-"I'll tell father when he comes home what you've done," sobbed Faith.
-
-"Don't you go bothering your poor father. He has troubles enough. And
-I'M housekeeper here."
-
-"Adam was MINE--Mrs. Johnson gave him to me. You had no business to
-touch him," stormed Faith.
-
-"Don't you get sassy now. The rooster's killed and there's an end of it.
-I ain't going to set no strange minister down to a dinner of cold b'iled
-mutton. I was brought up to know better than that, if I have come down
-in the world."
-
-Faith would not go down to supper that night and she would not go to
-church the next morning. But at dinner time she went to the table, her
-eyes swollen with crying, her face sullen.
-
-The Rev. James Perry was a sleek, rubicund man, with a bristling
-white moustache, bushy white eyebrows, and a shining bald head. He
-was certainly not handsome and he was a very tiresome, pompous sort of
-person. But if he had looked like the Archangel Michael and talked with
-the tongues of men and angels Faith would still have utterly detested
-him. He carved Adam up dexterously, showing off his plump white hands
-and very handsome diamond ring. Also, he made jovial remarks all through
-the performance. Jerry and Carl giggled, and even Una smiled wanly,
-because she thought politeness demanded it. But Faith only scowled
-darkly. The Rev. James thought her manners shockingly bad. Once, when
-he was delivering himself of an unctuous remark to Jerry, Faith broke in
-rudely with a flat contradiction. The Rev. James drew his bushy eyebrows
-together at her.
-
-"Little girls should not interrupt," he said, "and they should not
-contradict people who know far more than they do."
-
-This put Faith in a worse temper than ever. To be called "little girl"
-as if she were no bigger than chubby Rilla Blythe over at Ingleside!
-It was insufferable. And how that abominable Mr. Perry did eat! He even
-picked poor Adam's bones. Neither Faith nor Una would touch a mouthful,
-and looked upon the boys as little better than cannibals. Faith felt
-that if that awful repast did not soon come to an end she would wind it
-up by throwing something at Mr. Perry's gleaming head. Fortunately,
-Mr. Perry found Aunt Martha's leathery apple pie too much even for his
-powers of mastication and the meal came to an end, after a long grace in
-which Mr. Perry offered up devout thanks for the food which a kind
-and beneficent Providence had provided for sustenance and temperate
-pleasure.
-
-"God hadn't a single thing to do with providing Adam for you," muttered
-Faith rebelliously under her breath.
-
-The boys gladly made their escape to outdoors, Una went to help Aunt
-Martha with the dishes--though that rather grumpy old dame never
-welcomed her timid assistance--and Faith betook herself to the study
-where a cheerful wood fire was burning in the grate. She thought she
-would thereby escape from the hated Mr. Perry, who had announced his
-intention of taking a nap in his room during the afternoon. But scarcely
-had Faith settled herself in a corner, with a book, when he walked in
-and, standing before the fire, proceeded to survey the disorderly study
-with an air of disapproval.
-
-"You father's books seem to be in somewhat deplorable confusion, my
-little girl," he said severely.
-
-Faith darkled in her corner and said not a word. She would NOT talk to
-this--this creature.
-
-"You should try to put them in order," Mr. Perry went on, playing with
-his handsome watch chain and smiling patronizingly on Faith. "You are
-quite old enough to attend to such duties. MY little daughter at home
-is only ten and she is already an excellent little housekeeper and the
-greatest help and comfort to her mother. She is a very sweet child. I
-wish you had the privilege of her acquaintance. She could help you in
-many ways. Of course, you have not had the inestimable privilege of a
-good mother's care and training. A sad lack--a very sad lack. I have
-spoken more than once to your father in this connection and pointed out
-his duty to him faithfully, but so far with no effect. I trust he may
-awaken to a realization of his responsibility before it is too late. In
-the meantime, it is your duty and privilege to endeavour to take your
-sainted mother's place. You might exercise a great influence over your
-brothers and your little sister--you might be a true mother to them. I
-fear that you do not think of these things as you should. My dear child,
-allow me to open your eyes in regard to them."
-
-Mr. Perry's oily, complacent voice trickled on. He was in his element.
-Nothing suited him better than to lay down the law, patronize and
-exhort. He had no idea of stopping, and he did not stop. He stood before
-the fire, his feet planted firmly on the rug, and poured out a flood of
-pompous platitudes. Faith heard not a word. She was really not listening
-to him at all. But she was watching his long black coat-tails with
-impish delight growing in her brown eyes. Mr. Perry was standing VERY
-near the fire. His coat-tails began to scorch--his coat-tails began
-to smoke. He still prosed on, wrapped up in his own eloquence. The
-coat-tails smoked worse. A tiny spark flew up from the burning wood and
-alighted in the middle of one. It clung and caught and spread into a
-smouldering flame. Faith could restrain herself no longer and broke into
-a stifled giggle.
-
-Mr. Perry stopped short, angered over this impertinence. Suddenly
-he became conscious that a reek of burning cloth filled the room.
-He whirled round and saw nothing. Then he clapped his hands to his
-coat-tails and brought them around in front of him. There was already
-quite a hole in one of them--and this was his new suit. Faith shook with
-helpless laughter over his pose and expression.
-
-"Did you see my coat-tails burning?" he demanded angrily.
-
-"Yes, sir," said Faith demurely.
-
-"Why didn't you tell me?" he demanded, glaring at her.
-
-"You said it wasn't good manners to interrupt, sir," said Faith, more
-demurely still.
-
-"If--if I was your father, I would give you a spanking that you would
-remember all your life, Miss," said a very angry reverend gentleman, as
-he stalked out of the study. The coat of Mr. Meredith's second best suit
-would not fit Mr. Perry, so he had to go to the evening service with
-his singed coat-tail. But he did not walk up the aisle with his usual
-consciousness of the honour he was conferring on the building. He never
-would agree to an exchange of pulpits with Mr. Meredith again, and he
-was barely civil to the latter when they met for a few minutes at the
-station the next morning. But Faith felt a certain gloomy satisfaction.
-Adam was partially avenged.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX. FAITH MAKES A FRIEND
-
-Next day in school was a hard one for Faith. Mary Vance had told the
-tale of Adam, and all the scholars, except the Blythes, thought it quite
-a joke. The girls told Faith, between giggles, that it was too bad, and
-the boys wrote sardonic notes of condolence to her. Poor Faith went home
-from school feeling her very soul raw and smarting within her.
-
-"I'm going over to Ingleside to have a talk with Mrs. Blythe," she
-sobbed. "SHE won't laugh at me, as everybody else does. I've just GOT to
-talk to somebody who understands how bad I feel."
-
-She ran down through Rainbow Valley. Enchantment had been at work
-the night before. A light snow had fallen and the powdered firs were
-dreaming of a spring to come and a joy to be. The long hill beyond was
-richly purple with leafless beeches. The rosy light of sunset lay over
-the world like a pink kiss. Of all the airy, fairy places, full of
-weird, elfin grace, Rainbow Valley that winter evening was the
-most beautiful. But all its dreamlike loveliness was lost on poor,
-sore-hearted little Faith.
-
-By the brook she came suddenly upon Rosemary West, who was sitting on
-the old pine tree. She was on her way home from Ingleside, where she
-had been giving the girls their music lesson. She had been lingering in
-Rainbow Valley quite a little time, looking across its white beauty and
-roaming some by-ways of dream. Judging from the expression of her face,
-her thoughts were pleasant ones. Perhaps the faint, occasional tinkle
-from the bells on the Tree Lovers brought the little lurking smile to
-her lips. Or perhaps it was occasioned by the consciousness that John
-Meredith seldom failed to spend Monday evening in the gray house on the
-white wind-swept hill.
-
-Into Rosemary's dreams burst Faith Meredith full of rebellious
-bitterness. Faith stopped abruptly when she saw Miss West. She did not
-know her very well--just well enough to speak to when they met. And she
-did not want to see any one just then--except Mrs. Blythe. She knew her
-eyes and nose were red and swollen and she hated to have a stranger know
-she had been crying.
-
-"Good evening, Miss West," she said uncomfortably.
-
-"What is the matter, Faith?" asked Rosemary gently.
-
-"Nothing," said Faith rather shortly.
-
-"Oh!" Rosemary smiled. "You mean nothing that you can tell to outsiders,
-don't you?"
-
-Faith looked at Miss West with sudden interest. Here was a person who
-understood things. And how pretty she was! How golden her hair was under
-her plumy hat! How pink her cheeks were over her velvet coat! How blue
-and companionable her eyes were! Faith felt that Miss West could be a
-lovely friend--if only she were a friend instead of a stranger!
-
-"I--I'm going up to tell Mrs. Blythe," said Faith. "She always
-understands--she never laughs at us. I always talk things over with her.
-It helps."
-
-"Dear girlie, I'm sorry to have to tell you that Mrs. Blythe isn't
-home," said Miss West, sympathetically. "She went to Avonlea to-day and
-isn't coming back till the last of the week."
-
-Faith's lip quivered.
-
-"Then I might as well go home again," she said miserably.
-
-"I suppose so--unless you think you could bring yourself to talk it over
-with me instead," said Miss Rosemary gently. "It IS such a help to talk
-things over. _I_ know. I don't suppose I can be as good at understanding
-as Mrs. Blythe--but I promise you that I won't laugh."
-
-"You wouldn't laugh outside," hesitated Faith. "But you might--inside."
-
-"No, I wouldn't laugh inside, either. Why should I? Something has hurt
-you--it never amuses me to see anybody hurt, no matter what hurts them.
-If you feel that you'd like to tell me what has hurt you I'll be glad to
-listen. But if you think you'd rather not--that's all right, too, dear."
-
-Faith took another long, earnest look into Miss West's eyes. They were
-very serious--there was no laughter in them, not even far, far back.
-With a little sigh she sat down on the old pine beside her new friend
-and told her all about Adam and his cruel fate.
-
-Rosemary did not laugh or feel like laughing. She understood and
-sympathized--really, she was almost as good as Mrs. Blythe--yes, quite
-as good.
-
-"Mr. Perry is a minister, but he should have been a BUTCHER," said Faith
-bitterly. "He is so fond of carving things up. He ENJOYED cutting
-poor Adam to pieces. He just sliced into him as if he were any common
-rooster."
-
-"Between you and me, Faith, _I_ don't like Mr. Perry very well myself,"
-said Rosemary, laughing a little--but at Mr. Perry, not at Adam, as
-Faith clearly understood. "I never did like him. I went to school with
-him--he was a Glen boy, you know--and he was a most detestable little
-prig even then. Oh, how we girls used to hate holding his fat, clammy
-hands in the ring-around games. But we must remember, dear, that he
-didn't know that Adam had been a pet of yours. He thought he WAS just a
-common rooster. We must be just, even when we are terribly hurt."
-
-"I suppose so," admitted Faith. "But why does everybody seem to think it
-funny that I should have loved Adam so much, Miss West? If it had been a
-horrid old cat nobody would have thought it queer. When Lottie Warren's
-kitten had its legs cut off by the binder everybody was sorry for her.
-She cried two days in school and nobody laughed at her, not even Dan
-Reese. And all her chums went to the kitten's funeral and helped her
-bury it--only they couldn't bury its poor little paws with it, because
-they couldn't find them. It was a horrid thing to have happen, of
-course, but I don't think it was as dreadful as seeing your pet EATEN
-UP. Yet everybody laughs at ME."
-
-"I think it is because the name 'rooster' seems rather a funny one,"
-said Rosemary gravely. "There IS something in it that is comical. Now,
-'chicken' is different. It doesn't sound so funny to talk of loving a
-chicken."
-
-"Adam was the dearest little chicken, Miss West. He was just a little
-golden ball. He would run up to me and peck out of my hand. And he was
-handsome when he grew up, too--white as snow, with such a beautiful
-curving white tail, though Mary Vance said it was too short. He knew
-his name and always came when I called him--he was a very intelligent
-rooster. And Aunt Martha had no right to kill him. He was mine. It
-wasn't fair, was it, Miss West?"
-
-"No, it wasn't," said Rosemary decidedly. "Not a bit fair. I remember
-I had a pet hen when I was a little girl. She was such a pretty little
-thing--all golden brown and speckly. I loved her as much as I ever loved
-any pet. She was never killed--she died of old age. Mother wouldn't have
-her killed because she was my pet."
-
-"If MY mother had been living she wouldn't have let Adam be killed,"
-said Faith. "For that matter, father wouldn't have either, if he'd been
-home and known of it. I'm SURE he wouldn't, Miss West."
-
-"I'm sure, too," said Rosemary. There was a little added flush on her
-face. She looked rather conscious but Faith noticed nothing.
-
-"Was it VERY wicked of me not to tell Mr. Perry his coat-tails were
-scorching?" she asked anxiously.
-
-"Oh, terribly wicked," answered Rosemary, with dancing eyes. "But _I_
-would have been just as naughty, Faith--_I_ wouldn't have told him they
-were scorching--and I don't believe I would ever have been a bit sorry
-for my wickedness, either."
-
-"Una thought I should have told him because he was a minister."
-
-"Dearest, if a minister doesn't behave as a gentleman we are not bound
-to respect his coat-tails. I know _I_ would just have loved to see Jimmy
-Perry's coat-tails burning up. It must have been fun."
-
-Both laughed; but Faith ended with a bitter little sigh.
-
-"Well, anyway, Adam is dead and I am NEVER going to love anything
-again."
-
-"Don't say that, dear. We miss so much out of life if we don't love. The
-more we love the richer life is--even if it is only some little furry or
-feathery pet. Would you like a canary, Faith--a little golden bit of a
-canary? If you would I'll give you one. We have two up home."
-
-"Oh, I WOULD like that," cried Faith. "I love birds. Only--would Aunt
-Martha's cat eat it? It's so TRAGIC to have your pets eaten. I don't
-think I could endure it a second time."
-
-"If you hang the cage far enough from the wall I don't think the cat
-could harm it. I'll tell you just how to take care of it and I'll bring
-it to Ingleside for you the next time I come down."
-
-To herself, Rosemary was thinking,
-
-"It will give every gossip in the Glen something to talk of, but I WILL
-not care. I want to comfort this poor little heart."
-
-Faith was comforted. Sympathy and understanding were very sweet. She and
-Miss Rosemary sat on the old pine until the twilight crept softly down
-over the white valley and the evening star shone over the gray maple
-grove. Faith told Rosemary all her small history and hopes, her likes
-and dislikes, the ins and outs of life at the manse, the ups and downs
-of school society. Finally they parted firm friends.
-
-Mr. Meredith was, as usual, lost in dreams when supper began that
-evening, but presently a name pierced his abstraction and brought him
-back to reality. Faith was telling Una of her meeting with Rosemary.
-
-"She is just lovely, I think," said Faith. "Just as nice as Mrs.
-Blythe--but different. I felt as if I wanted to hug her. She did hug
-ME--such a nice, velvety hug. And she called me 'dearest.' It THRILLED
-me. I could tell her ANYTHING."
-
-"So you liked Miss West, Faith?" Mr. Meredith asked, with a rather odd
-intonation.
-
-"I love her," cried Faith.
-
-"Ah!" said Mr. Meredith. "Ah!"
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI. THE IMPOSSIBLE WORD
-
-John Meredith walked meditatively through the clear crispness of a
-winter night in Rainbow Valley. The hills beyond glistened with the
-chill splendid lustre of moonlight on snow. Every little fir tree in the
-long valley sang its own wild song to the harp of wind and frost. His
-children and the Blythe lads and lasses were coasting down the eastern
-slope and whizzing over the glassy pond. They were having a glorious
-time and their gay voices and gayer laughter echoed up and down the
-valley, dying away in elfin cadences among the trees. On the right the
-lights of Ingleside gleamed through the maple grove with the genial lure
-and invitation which seems always to glow in the beacons of a home where
-we know there is love and good-cheer and a welcome for all kin, whether
-of flesh or spirit. Mr. Meredith liked very well on occasion to spend an
-evening arguing with the doctor by the drift wood fire, where the famous
-china dogs of Ingleside kept ceaseless watch and ward, as became deities
-of the hearth, but to-night he did not look that way. Far on the western
-hill gleamed a paler but more alluring star. Mr. Meredith was on his way
-to see Rosemary West, and he meant to tell her something which had been
-slowly blossoming in his heart since their first meeting and had sprung
-into full flower on the evening when Faith had so warmly voiced her
-admiration for Rosemary.
-
-He had come to realize that he had learned to care for Rosemary. Not as
-he had cared for Cecilia, of course. THAT was entirely different. That
-love of romance and dream and glamour could never, he thought, return.
-But Rosemary was beautiful and sweet and dear--very dear. She was the
-best of companions. He was happier in her company than he had ever
-expected to be again. She would be an ideal mistress for his home, a
-good mother to his children.
-
-During the years of his widowhood Mr. Meredith had received innumerable
-hints from brother members of Presbytery and from many parishioners who
-could not be suspected of any ulterior motive, as well as from some
-who could, that he ought to marry again: But these hints never made any
-impression on him. It was commonly thought he was never aware of them.
-But he was quite acutely aware of them. And in his own occasional
-visitations of common sense he knew that the common sensible thing for
-him to do was to marry. But common sense was not the strong point of
-John Meredith, and to choose out, deliberately and cold-bloodedly,
-some "suitable" woman, as one might choose a housekeeper or a business
-partner, was something he was quite incapable of doing. How he hated
-that word "suitable." It reminded him so strongly of James Perry. "A
-SUIT able woman of SUIT able age," that unctuous brother of the cloth
-had said, in his far from subtle hint. For the moment John Meredith
-had had a perfectly unbelievable desire to rush madly away and propose
-marriage to the youngest, most unsuitable woman it was possible to
-discover.
-
-Mrs. Marshall Elliott was his good friend and he liked her. But when she
-had bluntly told him he should marry again he felt as if she had torn
-away the veil that hung before some sacred shrine of his innermost life,
-and he had been more or less afraid of her ever since. He knew there
-were women in his congregation "of suitable age" who would marry him
-quite readily. That fact had seeped through all his abstraction very
-early in his ministry in Glen St. Mary. They were good, substantial,
-uninteresting women, one or two fairly comely, the others not exactly so
-and John Meredith would as soon have thought of marrying any one of them
-as of hanging himself. He had some ideals to which no seeming necessity
-could make him false. He could ask no woman to fill Cecilia's place in
-his home unless he could offer her at least some of the affection and
-homage he had given to his girlish bride. And where, in his limited
-feminine acquaintance, was such a woman to be found?
-
-Rosemary West had come into his life on that autumn evening bringing
-with her an atmosphere in which his spirit recognized native air. Across
-the gulf of strangerhood they clasped hands of friendship. He knew her
-better in that ten minutes by the hidden spring than he knew Emmeline
-Drew or Elizabeth Kirk or Amy Annetta Douglas in a year, or could know
-them, in a century. He had fled to her for comfort when Mrs. Alec Davis
-had outraged his mind and soul and had found it. Since then he had gone
-often to the house on the hill, slipping through the shadowy paths of
-night in Rainbow Valley so astutely that Glen gossip could never be
-absolutely certain that he DID go to see Rosemary West. Once or twice he
-had been caught in the West living room by other visitors; that was all
-the Ladies' Aid had to go by. But when Elizabeth Kirk heard it she put
-away a secret hope she had allowed herself to cherish, without a change
-of expression on her kind plain face, and Emmeline Drew resolved that
-the next time she saw a certain old bachelor of Lowbridge she would not
-snub him as she had done at a previous meeting. Of course, if Rosemary
-West was out to catch the minister she would catch him; she looked
-younger than she was and MEN thought her pretty; besides, the West girls
-had money!
-
-"It is to be hoped that he won't be so absent-minded as to propose to
-Ellen by mistake," was the only malicious thing she allowed herself
-to say to a sympathetic sister Drew. Emmeline bore no further grudge
-towards Rosemary. When all was said and done, an unencumbered bachelor
-was far better than a widower with four children. It had been only the
-glamour of the manse that had temporarily blinded Emmeline's eyes to the
-better part.
-
-A sled with three shrieking occupants sped past Mr. Meredith to the
-pond. Faith's long curls streamed in the wind and her laughter rang
-above that of the others. John Meredith looked after them kindly
-and longingly. He was glad that his children had such chums as the
-Blythes--glad that they had so wise and gay and tender a friend as Mrs.
-Blythe. But they needed something more, and that something would be
-supplied when he brought Rosemary West as a bride to the old manse.
-There was in her a quality essentially maternal.
-
-It was Saturday night and he did not often go calling on Saturday night,
-which was supposed to be dedicated to a thoughtful revision of Sunday's
-sermon. But he had chosen this night because he had learned that Ellen
-West was going to be away and Rosemary would be alone. Often as he had
-spent pleasant evenings in the house on the hill he had never, since
-that first meeting at the spring, seen Rosemary alone. Ellen had always
-been there.
-
-He did not precisely object to Ellen being there. He liked Ellen
-West very much and they were the best of friends. Ellen had an almost
-masculine understanding and a sense of humour which his own shy, hidden
-appreciation of fun found very agreeable. He liked her interest in
-politics and world events. There was no man in the Glen, not even
-excepting Dr. Blythe, who had a better grasp of such things.
-
-"I think it is just as well to be interested in things as long as you
-live," she had said. "If you're not, it doesn't seem to me that there's
-much difference between the quick and the dead."
-
-He liked her pleasant, deep, rumbly voice; he liked the hearty laugh
-with which she always ended up some jolly and well-told story. She never
-gave him digs about his children as other Glen women did; she never
-bored him with local gossip; she had no malice and no pettiness. She
-was always splendidly sincere. Mr. Meredith, who had picked up Miss
-Cornelia's way of classifying people, considered that Ellen belonged to
-the race of Joseph. Altogether, an admirable woman for a sister-in-law.
-Nevertheless, a man did not want even the most admirable of women around
-when he was proposing to another woman. And Ellen was always around. She
-did not insist on talking to Mr. Meredith herself all the time. She let
-Rosemary have a fair share of him. Many evenings, indeed, Ellen effaced
-herself almost totally, sitting back in the corner with St. George in
-her lap, and letting Mr. Meredith and Rosemary talk and sing and read
-books together. Sometimes they quite forgot her presence. But if their
-conversation or choice of duets ever betrayed the least tendency to what
-Ellen considered philandering, Ellen promptly nipped that tendency in
-the bud and blotted Rosemary out for the rest of the evening. But not
-even the grimmest of amiable dragons can altogether prevent a certain
-subtle language of eye and smile and eloquent silence; and so the
-minister's courtship progressed after a fashion.
-
-But if it was ever to reach a climax that climax must come when Ellen
-was away. And Ellen was so seldom away, especially in winter. She found
-her own fireside the pleasantest place in the world, she vowed. Gadding
-had no attraction for her. She was fond of company but she wanted it at
-home. Mr. Meredith had almost been driven to the conclusion that he must
-write to Rosemary what he wanted to say, when Ellen casually announced
-one evening that she was going to a silver wedding next Saturday night.
-She had been bridesmaid when the principals were married. Only old
-guests were invited, so Rosemary was not included. Mr. Meredith pricked
-up his ears a trifle and a gleam flashed into his dreamy dark eyes.
-Both Ellen and Rosemary saw it; and both Ellen and Rosemary felt, with a
-tingling shock, that Mr. Meredith would certainly come up the hill next
-Saturday night.
-
-"Might as well have it over with, St. George," Ellen sternly told the
-black cat, after Mr. Meredith had gone home and Rosemary had silently
-gone upstairs. "He means to ask her, St. George--I'm perfectly sure of
-that. So he might as well have his chance to do it and find out he can't
-get her, George. She'd rather like to take him, Saint. I know that--but
-she promised, and she's got to keep her promise. I'm rather sorry in
-some ways, St. George. I don't know of a man I'd sooner have for a
-brother-in-law if a brother-in-law was convenient. I haven't a thing
-against him, Saint--not a thing except that he won't see and can't be
-made to see that the Kaiser is a menace to the peace of Europe. That's
-HIS blind spot. But he's good company and I like him. A woman can say
-anything she likes to a man with a mouth like John Meredith's and
-be sure of not being misunderstood. Such a man is more precious than
-rubies, Saint--and much rarer, George. But he can't have Rosemary--and
-I suppose when he finds out he can't have her he'll drop us both. And
-we'll miss him, Saint--we'll miss him something scandalous, George. But
-she promised, and I'll see that she keeps her promise!"
-
-Ellen's face looked almost ugly in its lowering resolution. Upstairs
-Rosemary was crying into her pillow.
-
-So Mr. Meredith found his lady alone and looking very beautiful.
-Rosemary had not made any special toilet for the occasion; she wanted
-to, but she thought it would be absurd to dress up for a man you meant
-to refuse. So she wore her plain dark afternoon dress and looked like a
-queen in it. Her suppressed excitement coloured her face to brilliancy,
-her great blue eyes were pools of light less placid than usual.
-
-She wished the interview were over. She had looked forward to it all day
-with dread. She felt quite sure that John Meredith cared a great deal
-for her after a fashion--and she felt just as sure that he did not care
-for her as he had cared for his first love. She felt that her refusal
-would disappoint him considerably, but she did not think it would
-altogether overwhelm him. Yet she hated to make it; hated for his sake
-and--Rosemary was quite honest with herself--for her own. She knew she
-could have loved John Meredith if--if it had been permissible. She
-knew that life would be a blank thing if, rejected as lover, he refused
-longer to be a friend. She knew that she could be very happy with him
-and that she could make him happy. But between her and happiness stood
-the prison gate of the promise she had made to Ellen years ago. Rosemary
-could not remember her father. He had died when she was only three years
-old. Ellen, who had been thirteen, remembered him, but with no special
-tenderness. He had been a stern, reserved man many years older than his
-fair, pretty wife. Five years later their brother of twelve died also;
-since his death the two girls had always lived alone with their mother.
-They had never mingled very freely in the social life of the Glen or
-Lowbridge, though where they went the wit and spirit of Ellen and the
-sweetness and beauty of Rosemary made them welcome guests. Both had what
-was called "a disappointment" in their girlhood. The sea had not given
-up Rosemary's lover; and Norman Douglas, then a handsome, red-haired
-young giant, noted for wild driving and noisy though harmless escapades,
-had quarrelled with Ellen and left her in a fit of pique.
-
-There were not lacking candidates for both Martin's and Norman's places,
-but none seemed to find favour in the eyes of the West girls, who
-drifted slowly out of youth and bellehood without any seeming regret.
-They were devoted to their mother, who was a chronic invalid. The three
-had a little circle of home interests--books and pets and flowers--which
-made them happy and contented.
-
-Mrs. West's death, which occurred on Rosemary's twenty-fifth birthday,
-was a bitter grief to them. At first they were intolerably lonely.
-Ellen, especially, continued to grieve and brood, her long, moody
-musings broken only by fits of stormy, passionate weeping. The old
-Lowbridge doctor told Rosemary that he feared permanent melancholy or
-worse.
-
-Once, when Ellen had sat all day, refusing either to speak or eat,
-Rosemary had flung herself on her knees by her sister's side.
-
-"Oh, Ellen, you have me yet," she said imploringly. "Am I nothing to
-you? We have always loved each other so."
-
-"I won't have you always," Ellen had said, breaking her silence with
-harsh intensity. "You will marry and leave me. I shall be left all
-alone. I cannot bear the thought--I CANNOT. I would rather die."
-
-"I will never marry," said Rosemary, "never, Ellen."
-
-Ellen bent forward and looked searchingly into Rosemary's eyes.
-
-"Will you promise me that solemnly?" she said. "Promise it on mother's
-Bible."
-
-Rosemary assented at once, quite willing to humour Ellen. What did it
-matter? She knew quite well she would never want to marry any one. Her
-love had gone down with Martin Crawford to the deeps of the sea; and
-without love she could not marry any one. So she promised readily,
-though Ellen made rather a fearsome rite of it. They clasped hands over
-the Bible, in their mother's vacant room, and both vowed to each other
-that they would never marry and would always live together.
-
-Ellen's condition improved from that hour. She soon regained her normal
-cheery poise. For ten years she and Rosemary lived in the old house
-happily, undisturbed by any thought of marrying or giving in marriage.
-Their promise sat very lightly on them. Ellen never failed to remind her
-sister of it whenever any eligible male creature crossed their paths,
-but she had never been really alarmed until John Meredith came home that
-night with Rosemary. As for Rosemary, Ellen's obsession regarding that
-promise had always been a little matter of mirth to her--until lately.
-Now, it was a merciless fetter, self-imposed but never to be shaken off.
-Because of it to-night she must turn her face from happiness.
-
-It was true that the shy, sweet, rosebud love she had given to her
-boy-lover she could never give to another. But she knew now that she
-could give to John Meredith a love richer and more womanly. She knew
-that he touched deeps in her nature that Martin had never touched--that
-had not, perhaps, been in the girl of seventeen to touch. And she must
-send him away to-night--send him back to his lonely hearth and his empty
-life and his heart-breaking problems, because she had promised Ellen,
-ten years before, on their mother's Bible, that she would never marry.
-
-John Meredith did not immediately grasp his opportunity. On the
-contrary, he talked for two good hours on the least lover-like of
-subjects. He even tried politics, though politics always bored Rosemary.
-The later began to think that she had been altogether mistaken, and her
-fears and expectations suddenly seemed to her grotesque. She felt flat
-and foolish. The glow went out of her face and the lustre out of her
-eyes. John Meredith had not the slightest intention of asking her to
-marry him.
-
-And then, quite suddenly, he rose, came across the room, and standing
-by her chair, he asked it. The room had grown terribly still. Even St.
-George ceased to purr. Rosemary heard her own heart beating and was sure
-John Meredith must hear it too.
-
-Now was the time for her to say no, gently but firmly. She had been
-ready for days with her stilted, regretful little formula. And now
-the words of it had completely vanished from her mind. She had to say
-no--and she suddenly found she could not say it. It was the impossible
-word. She knew now that it was not that she COULD have loved John
-Meredith, but that she DID love him. The thought of putting him from her
-life was agony.
-
-She must say SOMETHING; she lifted her bowed golden head and asked him
-stammeringly to give her a few days for--for consideration.
-
-John Meredith was a little surprised. He was not vainer than any man has
-a right to be, but he had expected that Rosemary West would say yes.
-He had been tolerably sure she cared for him. Then why this doubt--this
-hesitation? She was not a school girl to be uncertain as to her own
-mind. He felt an ugly shock of disappointment and dismay. But he
-assented to her request with his unfailing gentle courtesy and went away
-at once.
-
-"I will tell you in a few days," said Rosemary, with downcast eyes and
-burning face.
-
-When the door shut behind him she went back into the room and wrung her
-hands.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXII. ST. GEORGE KNOWS ALL ABOUT IT
-
-At midnight Ellen West was walking home from the Pollock silver wedding.
-She had stayed a little while after the other guests had gone, to help
-the gray-haired bride wash the dishes. The distance between the two
-houses was not far and the road good, so that Ellen was enjoying the
-walk back home in the moonlight.
-
-The evening had been a pleasant one. Ellen, who had not been to a party
-for years, found it very pleasant. All the guests had been members of
-her old set and there was no intrusive youth to spoil the flavour, for
-the only son of the bride and groom was far away at college and could
-not be present. Norman Douglas had been there and they had met socially
-for the first time in years, though she had seen him once or twice in
-church that winter. Not the least sentiment was awakened in Ellen's
-heart by their meeting. She was accustomed to wonder, when she thought
-about it at all, how she could ever have fancied him or felt so badly
-over his sudden marriage. But she had rather liked meeting him again.
-She had forgotten how bracing and stimulating he could be. No gathering
-was ever stagnant when Norman Douglas was present. Everybody had been
-surprised when Norman came. It was well known he never went anywhere.
-The Pollocks had invited him because he had been one of the original
-guests, but they never thought he would come. He had taken his second
-cousin, Amy Annetta Douglas, out to supper and seemed rather attentive
-to her. But Ellen sat across the table from him and had a spirited
-argument with him--an argument during which all his shouting and banter
-could not fluster her and in which she came off best, flooring Norman so
-composedly and so completely that he was silent for ten minutes. At
-the end of which time he had muttered in his ruddy beard--"spunky as
-ever--spunky as ever"--and began to hector Amy Annetta, who giggled
-foolishly over his sallies where Ellen would have retorted bitingly.
-
-Ellen thought these things over as she walked home, tasting them with
-reminiscent relish. The moonlit air sparkled with frost. The snow
-crisped under her feet. Below her lay the Glen with the white harbour
-beyond. There was a light in the manse study. So John Meredith had gone
-home. Had he asked Rosemary to marry him? And after what fashion had
-she made her refusal known? Ellen felt that she would never know this,
-though she was quite curious. She was sure Rosemary would never tell
-her anything about it and she would not dare to ask. She must just be
-content with the fact of the refusal. After all, that was the only thing
-that really mattered.
-
-"I hope he'll have sense enough to come back once in a while and be
-friendly," she said to herself. She disliked so much to be alone that
-thinking aloud was one of her devices for circumventing unwelcome
-solitude. "It's awful never to have a man-body with some brains to talk
-to once in a while. And like as not he'll never come near the house
-again. There's Norman Douglas, too--I like that man, and I'd like to
-have a good rousing argument with him now and then. But he'd never dare
-come up for fear people would think he was courting me again--for fear
-I'D think it, too, most likely--though he's more a stranger to me now
-than John Meredith. It seems like a dream that we could ever have been
-beaus. But there it is--there's only two men in the Glen I'd ever want
-to talk to--and what with gossip and this wretched love-making business
-it's not likely I'll ever see either of them again. I could," said
-Ellen, addressing the unmoved stars with a spiteful emphasis, "I could
-have made a better world myself."
-
-She paused at her gate with a sudden vague feeling of alarm. There was
-still a light in the living-room and to and fro across the window-shades
-went the shadow of a woman walking restlessly up and down. What was
-Rosemary doing up at this hour of the night? And why was she striding
-about like a lunatic?
-
-Ellen went softly in. As she opened the hall door Rosemary came out of
-the room. She was flushed and breathless. An atmosphere of stress and
-passion hung about her like a garment.
-
-"Why aren't you in bed, Rosemary?" demanded Ellen.
-
-"Come in here," said Rosemary intensely. "I want to tell you something."
-
-Ellen composedly removed her wraps and overshoes, and followed her
-sister into the warm, fire-lighted room. She stood with her hand on
-the table and waited. She was looking very handsome herself, in her own
-grim, black-browed style. The new black velvet dress, with its train and
-V-neck, which she had made purposely for the party, became her stately,
-massive figure. She wore coiled around her neck the rich heavy necklace
-of amber beads which was a family heirloom. Her walk in the frosty air
-had stung her cheeks into a glowing scarlet. But her steel-blue eyes
-were as icy and unyielding as the sky of the winter night. She stood
-waiting in a silence which Rosemary could break only by a convulsive
-effort.
-
-"Ellen, Mr. Meredith was here this evening."
-
-"Yes?"
-
-"And--and--he asked me to marry him."
-
-"So I expected. Of course, you refused him?"
-
-"No."
-
-"Rosemary." Ellen clenched her hands and took an involuntary step
-forward. "Do you mean to tell me that you accepted him?"
-
-"No--no."
-
-Ellen recovered her self-command.
-
-"What DID you do then?"
-
-"I--I asked him to give me a few days to think it over."
-
-"I hardly see why that was necessary," said Ellen, coldly contemptuous,
-"when there is only the one answer you can make him."
-
-Rosemary held out her hands beseechingly.
-
-"Ellen," she said desperately, "I love John Meredith--I want to be his
-wife. Will you set me free from that promise?"
-
-"No," said Ellen, merciless, because she was sick from fear.
-
-"Ellen--Ellen--"
-
-"Listen," interrupted Ellen. "I did not ask you for that promise. You
-offered it."
-
-"I know--I know. But I did not think then that I could ever care for
-anyone again."
-
-"You offered it," went on Ellen unmovably. "You promised it over our
-mother's Bible. It was more than a promise--it was an oath. Now you want
-to break it."
-
-"I only asked you to set me free from it, Ellen."
-
-"I will not do it. A promise is a promise in my eyes. I will not do it.
-Break your promise--be forsworn if you will--but it shall not be with
-any assent of mine."
-
-"You are very hard on me, Ellen."
-
-"Hard on you! And what of me? Have you ever given a thought to what my
-loneliness would be here if you left me? I could not bear it--I would go
-crazy. I CANNOT live alone. Haven't I been a good sister to you? Have I
-ever opposed any wish of yours? Haven't I indulged you in everything?"
-
-"Yes--yes."
-
-"Then why do you want to leave me for this man whom you hadn't seen a
-year ago?"
-
-"I love him, Ellen."
-
-"Love! You talk like a school miss instead of a middle-aged woman. He
-doesn't love you. He wants a housekeeper and a governess. You don't love
-him. You want to be 'Mrs.'--you are one of those weak-minded women who
-think it's a disgrace to be ranked as an old maid. That's all there is
-to it."
-
-Rosemary quivered. Ellen could not, or would not, understand. There was
-no use arguing with her.
-
-"So you won't release me, Ellen?"
-
-"No, I won't. And I won't talk of it again. You promised and you've got
-to keep your word. That's all. Go to bed. Look at the time! You're all
-romantic and worked up. To-morrow you'll be more sensible. At any rate,
-don't let me hear any more of this nonsense. Go."
-
-Rosemary went without another word, pale and spiritless. Ellen walked
-stormily about the room for a few minutes, then paused before the chair
-where St. George had been calmly sleeping through the whole evening. A
-reluctant smile overspread her dark face. There had been only one time
-in her life--the time of her mother's death--when Ellen had not been
-able to temper tragedy with comedy. Even in that long ago bitterness,
-when Norman Douglas had, after a fashion, jilted her, she had laughed at
-herself quite as often as she had cried.
-
-"I expect there'll be some sulking, St. George. Yes, Saint, I expect
-we are in for a few unpleasant foggy days. Well, we'll weather them
-through, George. We've dealt with foolish children before, Saint.
-Rosemary'll sulk a while--and then she'll get over it--and all will be
-as before, George. She promised--and she's got to keep her promise. And
-that's the last word on the subject I'll say to you or her or anyone,
-Saint."
-
-But Ellen lay savagely awake till morning.
-
-There was no sulking, however. Rosemary was pale and quiet the next day,
-but beyond that Ellen could detect no difference in her. Certainly, she
-seemed to bear Ellen no grudge. It was stormy, so no mention was made of
-going to church. In the afternoon Rosemary shut herself in her room and
-wrote a note to John Meredith. She could not trust herself to say "no"
-in person. She felt quite sure that if he suspected she was saying "no"
-reluctantly he would not take it for an answer, and she could not face
-pleading or entreaty. She must make him think she cared nothing at
-all for him and she could do that only by letter. She wrote him the
-stiffest, coolest little refusal imaginable. It was barely courteous;
-it certainly left no loophole of hope for the boldest lover--and
-John Meredith was anything but that. He shrank into himself, hurt and
-mortified, when he read Rosemary's letter next day in his dusty study.
-But under his mortification a dreadful realization presently made itself
-felt. He had thought he did not love Rosemary as deeply as he had
-loved Cecilia. Now, when he had lost her, he knew that he did. She
-was everything to him--everything! And he must put her out of his life
-completely. Even friendship was impossible now. Life stretched before
-him in intolerable dreariness. He must go on--there was his work--his
-children--but the heart had gone out of him. He sat alone all that
-evening in his dark, cold, comfortless study with his head bowed on his
-hands. Up on the hill Rosemary had a headache and went early to bed,
-while Ellen remarked to St. George, purring his disdain of foolish
-humankind, who did not know that a soft cushion was the only thing that
-really mattered,
-
-"What would women do if headaches had never been invented, St. George?
-But never mind, Saint. We'll just wink the other eye for a few weeks.
-I admit I don't feel comfortable myself, George. I feel as if I had
-drowned a kitten. But she promised, Saint--and she was the one to offer
-it, George. Bismillah!"
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIII. THE GOOD-CONDUCT CLUB
-
-A light rain had been falling all day--a little, delicate, beautiful
-spring rain, that somehow seemed to hint and whisper of mayflowers
-and wakening violets. The harbour and the gulf and the low-lying shore
-fields had been dim with pearl-gray mists. But now in the evening the
-rain had ceased and the mists had blown out to sea. Clouds sprinkled the
-sky over the harbour like little fiery roses. Beyond it the hills were
-dark against a spendthrift splendour of daffodil and crimson. A great
-silvery evening star was watching over the bar. A brisk, dancing,
-new-sprung wind was blowing up from Rainbow Valley, resinous with the
-odours of fir and damp mosses. It crooned in the old spruces around
-the graveyard and ruffled Faith's splendid curls as she sat on Hezekiah
-Pollock's tombstone with her arms round Mary Vance and Una. Carl and
-Jerry were sitting opposite them on another tombstone and all were
-rather full of mischief after being cooped up all day.
-
-"The air just SHINES to-night, doesn't it? It's been washed so clean,
-you see," said Faith happily.
-
-Mary Vance eyed her gloomily. Knowing what she knew, or fancied she
-knew, Mary considered that Faith was far too light-hearted. Mary had
-something on her mind to say and she meant to say it before she went
-home. Mrs. Elliott had sent her up to the manse with some new-laid eggs,
-and had told her not to stay longer than half an hour. The half hour
-was nearly up, so Mary uncurled her cramped legs from under her and said
-abruptly,
-
-"Never mind about the air. Just you listen to me. You manse young ones
-have just got to behave yourselves better than you've been doing this
-spring--that's all there is to it. I just come up to-night a-purpose to
-tell you so. The way people are talking about you is awful."
-
-"What have we been doing now?" cried Faith in amazement, pulling her arm
-away from Mary. Una's lips trembled and her sensitive little soul shrank
-within her. Mary was always so brutally frank. Jerry began to whistle
-out of bravado. He meant to let Mary see he didn't care for HER tirades.
-Their behaviour was no business of HERS anyway. What right had SHE to
-lecture them on their conduct?
-
-"Doing now! You're doing ALL the time," retorted Mary. "Just as soon
-as the talk about one of your didos fades away you do something else
-to start it up again. It seems to me you haven't any idea of how manse
-children ought to behave!"
-
-"Maybe YOU can tell us," said Jerry, killingly sarcastic.
-
-Sarcasm was quite thrown away on Mary.
-
-"_I_ can tell you what will happen if you don't learn to behave
-yourselves. The session will ask your father to resign. There now,
-Master Jerry-know-it-all. Mrs. Alec Davis said so to Mrs. Elliott. I
-heard her. I always have my ears pricked up when Mrs. Alec Davis comes
-to tea. She said you were all going from bad to worse and that though
-it was only what was to be expected when you had nobody to bring you
-up, still the congregation couldn't be expected to put up with it much
-longer, and something would have to be done. The Methodists just laugh
-and laugh at you, and that hurts the Presbyterian feelings. SHE says you
-all need a good dose of birch tonic. Lor', if that would make folks good
-_I_ oughter be a young saint. I'm not telling you this because I want
-to hurt YOUR feelings. I'm sorry for you"--Mary was past mistress of
-the gentle art of condescension. "_I_ understand that you haven't
-much chance, the way things are. But other people don't make as much
-allowance as _I_ do. Miss Drew says Carl had a frog in his pocket in
-Sunday School last Sunday and it hopped out while she was hearing the
-lesson. She says she's going to give up the class. Why don't you keep
-your insecks home?"
-
-"I popped it right back in again," said Carl. "It didn't hurt anybody--a
-poor little frog! And I wish old Jane Drew WOULD give up our class. I
-hate her. Her own nephew had a dirty plug of tobacco in his pocket and
-offered us fellows a chew when Elder Clow was praying. I guess that's
-worse than a frog."
-
-"No, 'cause frogs are more unexpected-like. They make more of a
-sensation. 'Sides, he wasn't caught at it. And then that praying
-competition you had last week has made a fearful scandal. Everybody is
-talking about it."
-
-"Why, the Blythes were in that as well as us," cried Faith, indignantly.
-"It was Nan Blythe who suggested it in the first place. And Walter took
-the prize."
-
-"Well, you get the credit of it any way. It wouldn't have been so bad if
-you hadn't had it in the graveyard."
-
-"I should think a graveyard was a very good place to pray in," retorted
-Jerry.
-
-"Deacon Hazard drove past when YOU were praying," said Mary, "and he saw
-and heard you, with your hands folded over your stomach, and groaning
-after every sentence. He thought you were making fun of HIM."
-
-"So I was," declared unabashed Jerry. "Only I didn't know he was going
-by, of course. That was just a mean accident. _I_ wasn't praying in
-real earnest--I knew I had no chance of winning the prize. So I was just
-getting what fun I could out of it. Walter Blythe can pray bully. Why,
-he can pray as well as dad."
-
-"Una is the only one of US who really likes praying," said Faith
-pensively.
-
-"Well, if praying scandalizes people so much we mustn't do it any more,"
-sighed Una.
-
-"Shucks, you can pray all you want to, only not in the graveyard--and
-don't make a game of it. That was what made it so bad--that, and having
-a tea-party on the tombstones."
-
-"We hadn't."
-
-"Well, a soap-bubble party then. You had SOMETHING. The over-harbour
-people swear you had a tea-party, but I'm willing to take your word. And
-you used this tombstone as a table."
-
-"Well, Martha wouldn't let us blow bubbles in the house. She was awful
-cross that day," explained Jerry. "And this old slab made such a jolly
-table."
-
-"Weren't they pretty?" cried Faith, her eyes sparkling over the
-remembrance. "They reflected the trees and the hills and the harbour
-like little fairy worlds, and when we shook them loose they floated away
-down to Rainbow Valley."
-
-"All but one and it went over and bust up on the Methodist spire," said
-Carl.
-
-"I'm glad we did it once, anyhow, before we found out it was wrong,"
-said Faith.
-
-"It wouldn't have been wrong to blow them on the lawn," said Mary
-impatiently. "Seems like I can't knock any sense into your heads.
-You've been told often enough you shouldn't play in the graveyard. The
-Methodists are sensitive about it."
-
-"We forget," said Faith dolefully. "And the lawn is so small--and so
-caterpillary--and so full of shrubs and things. We can't be in Rainbow
-Valley all the time--and where are we to go?"
-
-"It's the things you DO in the graveyard. It wouldn't matter if you just
-sat here and talked quiet, same as we're doing now. Well, I don't know
-what is going to come of it all, but I DO know that Elder Warren is
-going to speak to your pa about it. Deacon Hazard is his cousin."
-
-"I wish they wouldn't bother father about us," said Una.
-
-"Well, people think he ought to bother himself about you a little more.
-_I_ don't--_I_ understand him. He's a child in some ways himself--that's
-what he is, and needs some one to look after him as bad as you do. Well,
-perhaps he'll have some one before long, if all tales is true."
-
-"What do you mean?" asked Faith.
-
-"Haven't you got any idea--honest?" demanded Mary.
-
-"No, no. What DO you mean?"
-
-"Well, you are a lot of innocents, upon my word. Why, EVERYbody is
-talking of it. Your pa goes to see Rosemary West. SHE is going to be
-your step-ma."
-
-"I don't believe it," cried Una, flushing crimson.
-
-"Well, _I_ dunno. I just go by what folks say. _I_ don't give it for
-a fact. But it would be a good thing. Rosemary West'd make you toe
-the mark if she came here, I'll bet a cent, for all she's so sweet and
-smiley on the face of her. They're always that way till they've caught
-them. But you need some one to bring you up. You're disgracing your pa
-and I feel for him. I've always thought an awful lot of your pa ever
-since that night he talked to me so nice. I've never said a single
-swear word since, or told a lie. And I'd like to see him happy and
-comfortable, with his buttons on and his meals decent, and you young
-ones licked into shape, and that old cat of a Martha put in HER proper
-place. The way she looked at the eggs I brought her to-night. 'I hope
-they're fresh,' says she. I just wished they WAS rotten. But you just
-mind that she gives you all one for breakfast, including your pa. Make
-a fuss if she doesn't. That was what they was sent up for--but I don't
-trust old Martha. She's quite capable of feeding 'em to her cat."
-
-Mary's tongue being temporarily tired, a brief silence fell over the
-graveyard. The manse children did not feel like talking. They were
-digesting the new and not altogether palatable ideas Mary had suggested
-to them. Jerry and Carl were somewhat startled. But, after all, what did
-it matter? And it wasn't likely there was a word of truth in it. Faith,
-on the whole, was pleased. Only Una was seriously upset. She felt that
-she would like to get away and cry.
-
-"Will there be any stars in my crown?" sang the Methodist choir,
-beginning to practise in the Methodist church.
-
-"_I_ want just three," said Mary, whose theological knowledge had
-increased notably since her residence with Mrs. Elliott. "Just
-three--setting up on my head, like a corownet, a big one in the middle
-and a small one each side."
-
-"Are there different sizes in souls?" asked Carl.
-
-"Of course. Why, little babies must have smaller ones than big men.
-Well, it's getting dark and I must scoot home. Mrs. Elliott doesn't like
-me to be out after dark. Laws, when I lived with Mrs. Wiley the dark was
-just the same as the daylight to me. I didn't mind it no more'n a gray
-cat. Them days seem a hundred years ago. Now, you mind what I've said
-and try to behave yourselves, for you pa's sake. I'LL always back you
-up and defend you--you can be dead sure of that. Mrs. Elliott says she
-never saw the like of me for sticking up for my friends. I was real
-sassy to Mrs. Alec Davis about you and Mrs. Elliott combed me down for
-it afterwards. The fair Cornelia has a tongue of her own and no mistake.
-But she was pleased underneath for all, 'cause she hates old Kitty Alec
-and she's real fond of you. _I_ can see through folks."
-
-Mary sailed off, excellently well pleased with herself, leaving a rather
-depressed little group behind her.
-
-"Mary Vance always says something that makes us feel bad when she comes
-up," said Una resentfully.
-
-"I wish we'd left her to starve in the old barn," said Jerry
-vindictively.
-
-"Oh, that's wicked, Jerry," rebuked Una.
-
-"May as well have the game as the name," retorted unrepentant Jerry. "If
-people say we're so bad let's BE bad."
-
-"But not if it hurts father," pleaded Faith.
-
-Jerry squirmed uncomfortably. He adored his father. Through the unshaded
-study window they could see Mr. Meredith at his desk. He did not seem
-to be either reading or writing. His head was in his hands and there was
-something in his whole attitude that spoke of weariness and dejection.
-The children suddenly felt it.
-
-"I dare say somebody's been worrying him about us to-day," said Faith.
-"I wish we COULD get along without making people talk. Oh--Jem Blythe!
-How you scared me!"
-
-Jem Blythe had slipped into the graveyard and sat down beside the girls.
-He had been prowling about Rainbow Valley and had succeeded in finding
-the first little star-white cluster of arbutus for his mother. The manse
-children were rather silent after his coming. Jem was beginning to grow
-away from them somewhat this spring. He was studying for the entrance
-examination of Queen's Academy and stayed after school with the older
-pupils for extra lessons. Also, his evenings were so full of work that
-he seldom joined the others in Rainbow Valley now. He seemed to be
-drifting away into grown-up land.
-
-"What is the matter with you all to-night?" he asked. "There's no fun in
-you."
-
-"Not much," agreed Faith dolefully. "There wouldn't be much fun in you
-either if YOU knew you were disgracing your father and making people
-talk about you."
-
-"Who's been talking about you now?"
-
-"Everybody--so Mary Vance says." And Faith poured out her troubles to
-sympathetic Jem. "You see," she concluded dolefully, "we've nobody to
-bring us up. And so we get into scrapes and people think we're bad."
-
-"Why don't you bring yourselves up?" suggested Jem. "I'll tell you what
-to do. Form a Good-Conduct Club and punish yourselves every time you do
-anything that's not right."
-
-"That's a good idea," said Faith, struck by it. "But," she added
-doubtfully, "things that don't seem a bit of harm to US seem simply
-dreadful to other people. How can we tell? We can't be bothering father
-all the time--and he has to be away a lot, anyhow."
-
-"You could mostly tell if you stopped to think a thing over before doing
-it and ask yourselves what the congregation would say about it," said
-Jem. "The trouble is you just rush into things and don't think them over
-at all. Mother says you're all too impulsive, just as she used to be.
-The Good-Conduct Club would help you to think, if you were fair and
-honest about punishing yourselves when you broke the rules. You'd have
-to punish in some way that really HURT, or it wouldn't do any good."
-
-"Whip each other?"
-
-"Not exactly. You'd have to think up different ways of punishment
-to suit the person. You wouldn't punish each other--you'd punish
-YOURSELVES. I read all about such a club in a story-book. You try it and
-see how it works."
-
-"Let's," said Faith; and when Jem was gone they agreed they would. "If
-things aren't right we've just got to make them right," said Faith,
-resolutely.
-
-"We've got to be fair and square, as Jem says," said Jerry. "This is a
-club to bring ourselves up, seeing there's nobody else to do it. There's
-no use in having many rules. Let's just have one and any of us that
-breaks it has got to be punished hard."
-
-"But HOW."
-
-"We'll think that up as we go along. We'll hold a session of the club
-here in the graveyard every night and talk over what we've done through
-the day, and if we think we've done anything that isn't right or that
-would disgrace dad the one that does it, or is responsible for it,
-must be punished. That's the rule. We'll all decide on the kind of
-punishment--it must be made to fit the crime, as Mr. Flagg says. And
-the one that's, guilty will be bound to carry it out and no shirking.
-There's going to be fun in this," concluded Jerry, with a relish.
-
-"You suggested the soap-bubble party," said Faith.
-
-"But that was before we'd formed the club," said Jerry hastily.
-"Everything starts from to-night."
-
-"But what if we can't agree on what's right, or what the punishment
-ought to be? S'pose two of us thought of one thing and two another.
-There ought to be five in a club like this."
-
-"We can ask Jem Blythe to be umpire. He is the squarest boy in Glen St.
-Mary. But I guess we can settle our own affairs mostly. We want to keep
-this as much of a secret as we can. Don't breathe a word to Mary Vance.
-She'd want to join and do the bringing up."
-
-"_I_ think," said Faith, "that there's no use in spoiling every day by
-dragging punishments in. Let's have a punishment day."
-
-"We'd better choose Saturday because there is no school to interfere,"
-suggested Una.
-
-"And spoil the one holiday in the week," cried Faith. "Not much! No,
-let's take Friday. That's fish day, anyhow, and we all hate fish. We may
-as well have all the disagreeable things in one day. Then other days we
-can go ahead and have a good time."
-
-"Nonsense," said Jerry authoritatively. "Such a scheme wouldn't work at
-all. We'll just punish ourselves as we go along and keep a clear slate.
-Now, we all understand, don't we? This is a Good-Conduct Club, for the
-purpose of bringing ourselves up. We agree to punish ourselves for bad
-conduct, and always to stop before we do anything, no matter what, and
-ask ourselves if it is likely to hurt dad in any way, and any one who
-shirks is to be cast out of the club and never allowed to play with the
-rest of us in Rainbow Valley again. Jem Blythe to be umpire in case
-of disputes. No more taking bugs to Sunday School, Carl, and no more
-chewing gum in public, if you please, Miss Faith."
-
-"No more making fun of elders praying or going to the Methodist prayer
-meeting," retorted Faith.
-
-"Why, it isn't any harm to go to the Methodist prayer meeting,"
-protested Jerry in amazement.
-
-"Mrs. Elliott says it is, She says manse children have no business to go
-anywhere but to Presbyterian things."
-
-"Darn it, I won't give up going to the Methodist prayer meeting," cried
-Jerry. "It's ten times more fun than ours is."
-
-"You said a naughty word," cried Faith. "NOW, you've got to punish
-yourself."
-
-"Not till it's all down in black and white. We're only talking the club
-over. It isn't really formed until we've written it out and signed
-it. There's got to be a constitution and by-laws. And you KNOW there's
-nothing wrong in going to a prayer meeting."
-
-"But it's not only the wrong things we're to punish ourselves for, but
-anything that might hurt father."
-
-"It won't hurt anybody. You know Mrs. Elliott is cracked on the subject
-of Methodists. Nobody else makes any fuss about my going. I always
-behave myself. You ask Jem or Mrs. Blythe and see what they say. I'll
-abide by their opinion. I'm going for the paper now and I'll bring out
-the lantern and we'll all sign."
-
-Fifteen minutes later the document was solemnly signed on Hezekiah
-Pollock's tombstone, on the centre of which stood the smoky manse
-lantern, while the children knelt around it. Mrs. Elder Clow was going
-past at the moment and next day all the Glen heard that the manse
-children had been having another praying competition and had wound it up
-by chasing each other all over the graves with a lantern. This piece of
-embroidery was probably suggested by the fact that, after the signing
-and sealing was completed, Carl had taken the lantern and had walked
-circumspectly to the little hollow to examine his ant-hill. The others
-had gone quietly into the manse and to bed.
-
-"Do you think it is true that father is going to marry Miss West?" Una
-had tremulously asked of Faith, after their prayers had been said.
-
-"I don't know, but I'd like it," said Faith.
-
-"Oh, I wouldn't," said Una, chokingly. "She is nice the way she is. But
-Mary Vance says it changes people ALTOGETHER to be made stepmothers.
-They get horrid cross and mean and hateful then, and turn your father
-against you. She says they're sure to do that. She never knew it to fail
-in a single case."
-
-"I don't believe Miss West would EVER try to do that," cried Faith.
-
-"Mary says ANYBODY would. She knows ALL about stepmothers, Faith--she
-says she's seen hundreds of them--and you've never seen one. Oh, Mary
-has told me blood-curdling things about them. She says she knew of one
-who whipped her husband's little girls on their bare shoulders till they
-bled, and then shut them up in a cold, dark coal cellar all night. She
-says they're ALL aching to do things like that."
-
-"I don't believe Miss West would. You don't know her as well as I do,
-Una. Just think of that sweet little bird she sent me. I love it far
-more even than Adam."
-
-"It's just being a stepmother changes them. Mary says they can't help
-it. I wouldn't mind the whippings so much as having father hate us."
-
-"You know nothing could make father hate us. Don't be silly, Una. I dare
-say there's nothing to worry over. Likely if we run our club right and
-bring ourselves up properly father won't think of marrying any one. And
-if he does, I KNOW Miss West will be lovely to us."
-
-But Una had no such conviction and she cried herself to sleep.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIV. A CHARITABLE IMPULSE
-
-For a fortnight things ran smoothly in the Good-Conduct Club. It seemed
-to work admirably. Not once was Jem Blythe called in as umpire. Not once
-did any of the manse children set the Glen gossips by the ears. As for
-their minor peccadilloes at home, they kept sharp tabs on each other and
-gamely underwent their self-imposed punishment--generally a voluntary
-absence from some gay Friday night frolic in Rainbow Valley, or a
-sojourn in bed on some spring evening when all young bones ached to be
-out and away. Faith, for whispering in Sunday School, condemned herself
-to pass a whole day without speaking a single word, unless it was
-absolutely necessary, and accomplished it. It was rather unfortunate
-that Mr. Baker from over-harbour should have chosen that evening for
-calling at the manse, and that Faith should have happened to go to
-the door. Not one word did she reply to his genial greeting, but
-went silently away to call her father briefly. Mr. Baker was slightly
-offended and told his wife when he went home that that the biggest
-Meredith girl seemed a very shy, sulky little thing, without manners
-enough to speak when she was spoken to. But nothing worse came of it,
-and generally their penances did no harm to themselves or anybody else.
-All of them were beginning to feel quite cocksure that after all, it was
-a very easy matter to bring yourself up.
-
-"I guess people will soon see that we can behave ourselves properly as
-well as anybody," said Faith jubilantly. "It isn't hard when we put our
-minds to it."
-
-She and Una were sitting on the Pollock tombstone. It had been a cold,
-raw, wet day of spring storm and Rainbow Valley was out of the question
-for girls, though the manse and the Ingleside boys were down there
-fishing. The rain had held up, but the east wind blew mercilessly in
-from the sea, cutting to bone and marrow. Spring was late in spite of
-its early promise, and there was even yet a hard drift of old snow and
-ice in the northern corner of the graveyard. Lida Marsh, who had come
-up to bring the manse a mess of herring, slipped in through the gate
-shivering. She belonged to the fishing village at the harbour mouth and
-her father had, for thirty years, made a practice of sending a mess from
-his first spring catch to the manse. He never darkened a church door;
-he was a hard drinker and a reckless man, but as long as he sent those
-herring up to the manse every spring, as his father had done before him,
-he felt comfortably sure that his account with the Powers That Govern
-was squared for the year. He would not have expected a good mackerel
-catch if he had not so sent the first fruits of the season.
-
-Lida was a mite of ten and looked younger, because she was such a small,
-wizened little creature. To-night, as she sidled boldly enough up to
-the manse girls, she looked as if she had never been warm since she was
-born. Her face was purple and her pale-blue, bold little eyes were
-red and watery. She wore a tattered print dress and a ragged woollen
-comforter, tied across her thin shoulders and under her arms. She had
-walked the three miles from the harbour mouth barefooted, over a road
-where there was still snow and slush and mud. Her feet and legs were
-as purple as her face. But Lida did not mind this much. She was used to
-being cold, and she had been going barefooted for a month already, like
-all the other swarming young fry of the fishing village. There was no
-self-pity in her heart as she sat down on the tombstone and grinned
-cheerfully at Faith and Una. Faith and Una grinned cheerfully back. They
-knew Lida slightly, having met her once or twice the preceding summer
-when they had gone down the harbour with the Blythes.
-
-"Hello!" said Lida, "ain't this a fierce kind of a night? 'T'ain't fit
-for a dog to be out, is it?"
-
-"Then why are you out?" asked Faith.
-
-"Pa made me bring you up some herring," returned Lida. She shivered,
-coughed, and stuck out her bare feet. Lida was not thinking about
-herself or her feet, and was making no bid for sympathy. She held
-her feet out instinctively to keep them from the wet grass around the
-tombstone. But Faith and Una were instantly swamped with a wave of pity
-for her. She looked so cold--so miserable.
-
-"Oh, why are you barefooted on such a cold night?" cried Faith. "Your
-feet must be almost frozen."
-
-"Pretty near," said Lida proudly. "I tell you it was fierce walking up
-that harbour road."
-
-"Why didn't you put on your shoes and stockings?" asked Una.
-
-"Hain't none to put on. All I had was wore out by the time winter was
-over," said Lida indifferently.
-
-For a moment Faith stated in horror. This was terrible. Here was a
-little girl, almost a neighbour, half frozen because she had no shoes
-or stockings in this cruel spring weather. Impulsive Faith thought of
-nothing but the dreadfulness of it. In a moment she was pulling off her
-own shoes and stockings.
-
-"Here, take these and put them right on," she said, forcing them into
-the hands of the astonished Lida. "Quick now. You'll catch your death of
-cold. I've got others. Put them right on."
-
-Lida, recovering her wits, snatched at the offered gift, with a sparkle
-in her dull eyes. Sure she would put them on, and that mighty quick,
-before any one appeared with authority to recall them. In a minute
-she had pulled the stockings over her scrawny little legs and slipped
-Faith's shoes over her thick little ankles.
-
-"I'm obliged to you," she said, "but won't your folks be cross?"
-
-"No--and I don't care if they are," said Faith. "Do you think I could
-see any one freezing to death without helping them if I could? It
-wouldn't be right, especially when my father's a minister."
-
-"Will you want them back? It's awful cold down at the harbour
-mouth--long after it's warm up here," said Lida slyly.
-
-"No, you're to keep them, of course. That is what I meant when I gave
-them. I have another pair of shoes and plenty of stockings."
-
-Lida had meant to stay awhile and talk to the girls about many things.
-But now she thought she had better get away before somebody came and
-made her yield up her booty. So she shuffled off through the bitter
-twilight, in the noiseless, shadowy way she had slipped in. As soon as
-she was out of sight of the manse she sat down, took off the shoes and
-stockings, and put them in her herring basket. She had no intention of
-keeping them on down that dirty harbour road. They were to be kept good
-for gala occasions. Not another little girl down at the harbour mouth
-had such fine black cashmere stockings and such smart, almost new
-shoes. Lida was furnished forth for the summer. She had no qualms in the
-matter. In her eyes the manse people were quite fabulously rich, and
-no doubt those girls had slathers of shoes and stockings. Then Lida ran
-down to the Glen village and played for an hour with the boys before Mr.
-Flagg's store, splashing about in a pool of slush with the maddest of
-them, until Mrs. Elliott came along and bade her begone home.
-
-"I don't think, Faith, that you should have done that," said Una, a
-little reproachfully, after Lida had gone. "You'll have to wear your
-good boots every day now and they'll soon scuff out."
-
-"I don't care," cried Faith, still in the fine glow of having done a
-kindness to a fellow creature. "It isn't fair that I should have two
-pairs of shoes and poor little Lida Marsh not have any. NOW we both have
-a pair. You know perfectly well, Una, that father said in his sermon
-last Sunday that there was no real happiness in getting or having--only
-in giving. And it's true. I feel FAR happier now than I ever did in my
-whole life before. Just think of Lida walking home this very minute with
-her poor little feet all nice and warm and comfy."
-
-"You know you haven't another pair of black cashmere stockings," said
-Una. "Your other pair were so full of holes that Aunt Martha said she
-couldn't darn them any more and she cut the legs up for stove dusters.
-You've nothing but those two pairs of striped stockings you hate so."
-
-All the glow and uplift went out of Faith. Her gladness collapsed like a
-pricked balloon. She sat for a few dismal minutes in silence, facing the
-consequences of her rash act.
-
-"Oh, Una, I never thought of that," she said dolefully. "I didn't stop
-to think at all."
-
-The striped stockings were thick, heavy, coarse, ribbed stockings of
-blue and red which Aunt Martha had knit for Faith in the winter. They
-were undoubtedly hideous. Faith loathed them as she had never loathed
-anything before. Wear them she certainly would not. They were still
-unworn in her bureau drawer.
-
-"You'll have to wear the striped stockings after this," said Una. "Just
-think how the boys in school will laugh at you. You know how they laugh
-at Mamie Warren for her striped stockings and call her barber pole and
-yours are far worse."
-
-"I won't wear them," said Faith. "I'll go barefooted first, cold as it
-is."
-
-"You can't go barefooted to church to-morrow. Think what people would
-say."
-
-"Then I'll stay home."
-
-"You can't. You know very well Aunt Martha will make you go."
-
-Faith did know this. The one thing on which Aunt Martha troubled herself
-to insist was that they must all go to church, rain or shine. How they
-were dressed, or if they were dressed at all, never concerned her. But
-go they must. That was how Aunt Martha had been brought up seventy years
-ago, and that was how she meant to bring them up.
-
-"Haven't you got a pair you can lend me, Una?" said poor Faith
-piteously.
-
-Una shook her head. "No, you know I only have the one black pair. And
-they're so tight I can hardly get them on. They wouldn't go on you.
-Neither would my gray ones. Besides, the legs of THEM are all darned AND
-darned."
-
-"I won't wear those striped stockings," said Faith stubbornly. "The feel
-of them is even worse than the looks. They make me feel as if my legs
-were as big as barrels and they're so SCRATCHY."
-
-"Well, I don't know what you're going to do."
-
-"If father was home I'd go and ask him to get me a new pair before
-the store closes. But he won't be home till too late. I'll ask him
-Monday--and I won't go to church tomorrow. I'll pretend I'm sick and
-Aunt Martha'll HAVE to let me stay home."
-
-"That would be acting a lie, Faith," cried Una. "You CAN'T do that. You
-know it would be dreadful. What would father say if he knew? Don't
-you remember how he talked to us after mother died and told us we must
-always be TRUE, no matter what else we failed in. He said we must never
-tell or act a lie--he said he'd TRUST us not to. You CAN'T do it, Faith.
-Just wear the striped stockings. It'll only be for once. Nobody will
-notice them in church. It isn't like school. And your new brown dress is
-so long they won't show much. Wasn't it lucky Aunt Martha made it big,
-so you'd have room to grow in it, for all you hated it so when she
-finished it?"
-
-"I won't wear those stockings," repeated Faith. She uncoiled her bare,
-white legs from the tombstone and deliberately walked through the wet,
-cold grass to the bank of snow. Setting her teeth, she stepped upon it
-and stood there.
-
-"What are you doing?" cried Una aghast. "You'll catch your death of
-cold, Faith Meredith."
-
-"I'm trying to," answered Faith. "I hope I'll catch a fearful cold and
-be AWFUL sick to-morrow. Then I won't be acting a lie. I'm going to
-stand here as long as I can bear it."
-
-"But, Faith, you might really die. You might get pneumonia. Please,
-Faith don't. Let's go into the house and get SOMETHING for your feet.
-Oh, here's Jerry. I'm so thankful. Jerry, MAKE Faith get off that snow.
-Look at her feet."
-
-"Holy cats! Faith, what ARE you doing?" demanded Jerry. "Are you crazy?"
-
-"No. Go away!" snapped Faith.
-
-"Then are you punishing yourself for something? It isn't right, if you
-are. You'll be sick."
-
-"I want to be sick. I'm not punishing myself. Go away."
-
-"Where's her shoes and stockings?" asked Jerry of Una.
-
-"She gave them to Lida Marsh."
-
-"Lida Marsh? What for?"
-
-"Because Lida had none--and her feet were so cold. And now she wants to
-be sick so that she won't have to go to church to-morrow and wear her
-striped stockings. But, Jerry, she may die."
-
-"Faith," said Jerry, "get off that ice-bank or I'll pull you off."
-
-"Pull away," dared Faith.
-
-Jerry sprang at her and caught her arms. He pulled one way and Faith
-pulled another. Una ran behind Faith and pushed. Faith stormed at Jerry
-to leave her alone. Jerry stormed back at her not to be a dizzy idiot;
-and Una cried. They made no end of noise and they were close to the road
-fence of the graveyard. Henry Warren and his wife drove by and heard
-and saw them. Very soon the Glen heard that the manse children had been
-having an awful fight in the graveyard and using most improper language.
-Meanwhile, Faith had allowed herself to be pulled off the ice because
-her feet were aching so sharply that she was ready to get off any way.
-They all went in amiably and went to bed. Faith slept like a cherub
-and woke in the morning without a trace of a cold. She felt that she
-couldn't feign sickness and act a lie, after remembering that long-ago
-talk with her father. But she was still as fully determined as ever that
-she would not wear those abominable stockings to church.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXV. ANOTHER SCANDAL AND ANOTHER "EXPLANATION"
-
-Faith went early to Sunday School and was seated in the corner of her
-class pew before any one came. Therefore, the dreadful truth did not
-burst upon any one until Faith left the class pew near the door to walk
-up to the manse pew after Sunday School. The church was already half
-filled and all who were sitting near the aisle saw that the minister's
-daughter had boots on but no stockings!
-
-Faith's new brown dress, which Aunt Martha had made from an ancient
-pattern, was absurdly long for her, but even so it did not meet her
-boot-tops. Two good inches of bare white leg showed plainly.
-
-Faith and Carl sat alone in the manse pew. Jerry had gone into the
-gallery to sit with a chum and the Blythe girls had taken Una with them.
-The Meredith children were given to "sitting all over the church" in
-this fashion and a great many people thought it very improper. The
-gallery especially, where irresponsible lads congregated and were known
-to whisper and suspected of chewing tobacco during service, was no
-place, for a son of the manse. But Jerry hated the manse pew at the
-very top of the church, under the eyes of Elder Clow and his family. He
-escaped from it whenever he could.
-
-Carl, absorbed in watching a spider spinning its web at the window, did
-not notice Faith's legs. She walked home with her father after church
-and he never noticed them. She got on the hated striped stockings before
-Jerry and Una arrived, so that for the time being none of the occupants
-of the manse knew what she had done. But nobody else in Glen St. Mary
-was ignorant of it. The few who had not seen soon heard. Nothing else
-was talked of on the way home from church. Mrs. Alec Davis said it was
-only what she expected, and the next thing you would see some of those
-young ones coming to church with no clothes on at all. The president of
-the Ladies' Aid decided that she would bring the matter up at the next
-Aid meeting, and suggest that they wait in a body on the minister and
-protest. Miss Cornelia said that she, for her part, gave up. There was
-no use worrying over the manse fry any longer. Even Mrs. Dr. Blythe felt
-a little shocked, though she attributed the occurrence solely to Faith's
-forgetfulness. Susan could not immediately begin knitting stockings for
-Faith because it was Sunday, but she had one set up before any one else
-was out of bed at Ingleside the next morning.
-
-"You need not tell me anything but that it was old Martha's fault,
-Mrs. Dr. dear." she told Anne. "I suppose that poor little child had no
-decent stockings to wear. I suppose every stocking she had was in holes,
-as you know very well they generally are. And _I_ think, Mrs. Dr. dear,
-that the Ladies' Aid would be better employed in knitting some for them
-than in fighting over the new carpet for the pulpit platform. _I_ am not
-a Ladies' Aider, but I shall knit Faith two pairs of stockings, out of
-this nice black yarn, as fast as my fingers can move and that you may
-tie to. Never shall I forget my sensations, Mrs. Dr. dear, when I saw
-a minister's child walking up the aisle of our church with no stockings
-on. I really did not know what way to look."
-
-"And the church was just full of Methodists yesterday, too," groaned
-Miss Cornelia, who had come up to the Glen to do some shopping and run
-into Ingleside to talk the affair over. "I don't know how it is, but
-just as sure as those manse children do something especially awful the
-church is sure to be crowded with Methodists. I thought Mrs. Deacon
-Hazard's eyes would drop out of her head. When she came out of church
-she said, 'Well, that exhibition was no more than decent. I do pity the
-Presbyterians.' And we just had to TAKE it. There was nothing one could
-say."
-
-"There was something _I_ could have said, Mrs. Dr. dear, if I had heard
-her," said Susan grimly. "I would have said, for one thing, that in my
-opinion clean bare legs were quite as decent as holes. And I would have
-said, for another, that the Presbyterians did not feel greatly in
-need of pity seeing that they had a minister who could PREACH and the
-Methodists had NOT. I could have squelched Mrs. Deacon Hazard, Mrs. Dr
-dear, and that you may tie to."
-
-"I wish Mr. Meredith didn't preach quite so well and looked after his
-family a little better," retorted Miss Cornelia. "He could at least
-glance over his children before they went to church and see that they
-were quite properly clothed. I'm tired making excuses for him, believe
-ME."
-
-Meanwhile, Faith's soul was being harrowed up in Rainbow Valley. Mary
-Vance was there and, as usual, in a lecturing mood. She gave Faith
-to understand that she had disgraced herself and her father beyond
-redemption and that she, Mary Vance, was done with her. "Everybody" was
-talking, and "everybody" said the same thing.
-
-"I simply feel that I can't associate with you any longer," she
-concluded.
-
-"WE are going to associate with her then," cried Nan Blythe. Nan
-secretly thought Faith HAD done a awful thing, but she wasn't going to
-let Mary Vance run matters in this high-handed fashion. "And if YOU are
-not you needn't come any more to Rainbow Valley, MISS Vance."
-
-Nan and Di both put their arms around Faith and glared defiance at Mary.
-The latter suddenly crumpled up, sat down on a stump and began to cry.
-
-"It ain't that I don't want to," she wailed. "But if I keep in with
-Faith people'll be saying I put her up to doing things. Some are saying
-it now, true's you live. I can't afford to have such things said of me,
-now that I'm in a respectable place and trying to be a lady. And _I_
-never went bare-legged in church in my toughest days. I'd never have
-thought of doing such a thing. But that hateful old Kitty Alec says
-Faith has never been the same girl since that time I stayed in the
-manse. She says Cornelia Elliott will live to rue the day she took me
-in. It hurts my feelings, I tell you. But it's Mr. Meredith I'm really
-worried over."
-
-"I think you needn't worry about him," said Di scornfully. "It isn't
-likely necessary. Now, Faith darling, stop crying and tell us why you
-did it."
-
-Faith explained tearfully. The Blythe girls sympathized with her, and
-even Mary Vance agreed that it was a hard position to be in. But Jerry,
-on whom the thing came like a thunderbolt, refused to be placated. So
-THIS was what some mysterious hints he had got in school that day meant!
-He marched Faith and Una home without ceremony, and the Good-Conduct
-Club held an immediate session in the graveyard to sit in judgment on
-Faith's case.
-
-"I don't see that it was any harm," said Faith defiantly. "Not MUCH of
-my legs showed. It wasn't WRONG and it didn't hurt anybody."
-
-"It will hurt Dad. You KNOW it will. You know people blame him whenever
-we do anything queer."
-
-"I didn't think of that," muttered Faith.
-
-"That's just the trouble. You didn't think and you SHOULD have thought.
-That's what our Club is for--to bring us up and MAKE us think. We
-promised we'd always stop and think before doing things. You didn't and
-you've got to be punished, Faith--and real hard, too. You'll wear those
-striped stockings to school for a week for punishment."
-
-"Oh, Jerry, won't a day do--two days? Not a whole week!"
-
-"Yes, a whole week," said inexorable Jerry. "It is fair--ask Jem Blythe
-if it isn't."
-
-Faith felt she would rather submit then ask Jem Blythe about such
-a matter. She was beginning to realize that her offence was a quite
-shameful one.
-
-"I'll do it, then," she muttered, a little sulkily.
-
-"You're getting off easy," said, Jerry severely. "And no matter how we
-punish you it won't help father. People will always think you just did
-it for mischief, and they'll blame father for not stopping it. We can
-never explain it to everybody."
-
-This aspect of the case weighed on Faith's mind. Her own condemnation
-she could bear, but it tortured her that her father should be blamed. If
-people knew the true facts of the case they would not blame him. But how
-could she make them known to all the world? Getting up in church, as she
-had once done, and explaining the matter was out of the question. Faith
-had heard from Mary Vance how the congregation had looked upon that
-performance and realized that she must not repeat it. Faith worried over
-the problem for half a week. Then she had an inspiration and promptly
-acted upon it. She spent that evening in the garret, with a lamp and an
-exercise book, writing busily, with flushed cheeks and shining eyes. It
-was the very thing! How clever she was to have thought of it! It would
-put everything right and explain everything and yet cause no scandal. It
-was eleven o'clock when she had finished to her satisfaction and crept
-down to bed, dreadfully tired, but perfectly happy.
-
-In a few days the little weekly published in the Glen under the name of
-_The Journal_ came out as usual, and the Glen had another sensation. A
-letter signed "Faith Meredith" occupied a prominent place on the front
-page and ran as follows:--
-
-"TO WHOM IT MAY CONCERN:
-
-"I want to explain to everybody how it was I came to go to church without
-stockings on, so that everybody will know that father was not to blame
-one bit for it, and the old gossips need not say he is, because it is
-not true. I gave my only pair of black stockings to Lida Marsh, because
-she hadn't any and her poor little feet were awful cold and I was so
-sorry for her. No child ought to have to go without shoes and stockings
-in a Christian community before the snow is all gone, and I think the W.
-F. M. S. ought to have given her stockings. Of course, I know they are
-sending things to the little heathen children, and that is all right and
-a kind thing to do. But the little heathen children have lots more warm
-weather than we have, and I think the women of our church ought to look
-after Lida and not leave it all to me. When I gave her my stockings I
-forgot they were the only black pair I had without holes, but I am
-glad I did give them to her, because my conscience would have been
-uncomfortable if I hadn't. When she had gone away, looking so proud and
-happy, the poor little thing, I remembered that all I had to wear were
-the horrid red and blue things Aunt Martha knit last winter for me
-out of some yarn that Mrs. Joseph Burr of Upper Glen sent us. It was
-dreadfully coarse yarn and all knots, and I never saw any of Mrs. Burr's
-own children wearing things made of such yarn. But Mary Vance says Mrs.
-Burr gives the minister stuff that she can't use or eat herself, and
-thinks it ought to go as part of the salary her husband signed to pay,
-but never does.
-
-"I just couldn't bear to wear those hateful stockings. They were so ugly
-and rough and felt so scratchy. Everybody would have made fun of me. I
-thought at first I'd pretend to be sick and not go to church next day,
-but I decided I couldn't do that, because it would be acting a lie, and
-father told us after mother died that was something we must never, never
-do. It is just as bad to act a lie as to tell one, though I know some
-people, right here in the Glen, who act them, and never seem to feel a
-bit bad about it. I will not mention any names, but I know who they are
-and so does father.
-
-"Then I tried my best to catch cold and really be sick by standing on the
-snowbank in the Methodist graveyard with my bare feet until Jerry pulled
-me off. But it didn't hurt me a bit and so I couldn't get out of going
-to church. So I just decided I would put my boots on and go that way. I
-can't see why it was so wrong and I was so careful to wash my legs just
-as clean as my face, but, anyway, father wasn't to blame for it. He was
-in the study thinking of his sermon and other heavenly things, and I
-kept out of his way before I went to Sunday School. Father does not look
-at people's legs in church, so of course he did not notice mine, but all
-the gossips did and talked about it, and that is why I am writing this
-letter to the _Journal_ to explain. I suppose I did very wrong, since
-everybody says so, and I am sorry and I am wearing those awful stockings
-to punish myself, although father bought me two nice new black pairs as
-soon as Mr. Flagg's store opened on Monday morning. But it was all my
-fault, and if people blame father for it after they read this they are
-not Christians and so I do not mind what they say.
-
-"There is another thing I want to explain about before I stop. Mary
-Vance told me that Mr. Evan Boyd is blaming the Lew Baxters for stealing
-potatoes out of his field last fall. They did not touch his potatoes.
-They are very poor, but they are honest. It was us did it--Jerry and
-Carl and I. Una was not with us at the time. We never thought it was
-stealing. We just wanted a few potatoes to cook over a fire in Rainbow
-Valley one evening to eat with our fried trout. Mr. Boyd's field was the
-nearest, just between the valley and the village, so we climbed over his
-fence and pulled up some stalks. The potatoes were awful small, because
-Mr. Boyd did not put enough fertilizer on them and we had to pull up a
-lot of stalks before we got enough, and then they were not much bigger
-than marbles. Walter and Di Blythe helped us eat them, but they did not
-come along until we had them cooked and did not know where we got them,
-so they were not to blame at all, only us. We didn't mean any harm, but
-if it was stealing we are very sorry and we will pay Mr. Boyd for them
-if he will wait until we grow up. We never have any money now because we
-are not big enough to earn any, and Aunt Martha says it takes every cent
-of poor father's salary, even when it is paid up regularly--and it isn't
-often--to run this house. But Mr. Boyd must not blame the Lew Baxters
-any more, when they were quite innocent, and give them a bad name.
-
-"Yours respectfully,
-
-"FAITH MEREDITH."
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVI. MISS CORNELIA GETS A NEW POINT OF VIEW
-
-"Susan, after I'm dead I'm going to come back to earth every time when
-the daffodils blow in this garden," said Anne rapturously. "Nobody may
-see me, but I'll be here. If anybody is in the garden at the time--I
-THINK I'll come on an evening just like this, but it MIGHT be just at
-dawn--a lovely, pale-pinky spring dawn--they'll just see the daffodils
-nodding wildly as if an extra gust of wind had blown past them, but it
-will be _I_."
-
-"Indeed, Mrs. Dr. dear, you will not be thinking of flaunting worldly
-things like daffies after you are dead," said Susan. "And I do NOT
-believe in ghosts, seen or unseen."
-
-"Oh, Susan, I shall not be a ghost! That has such a horrible sound. I
-shall just be ME. And I shall run around in the twilight, whether it is
-morn or eve, and see all the spots I love. Do you remember how badly I
-felt when I left our little House of Dreams, Susan? I thought I could
-never love Ingleside so well. But I do. I love every inch of the ground
-and every stick and stone on it."
-
-"I am rather fond of the place myself," said Susan, who would have died
-if she had been removed from it, "but we must not set our affections too
-much on earthly things, Mrs. Dr. dear. There are such things as fires
-and earthquakes. We should always be prepared. The Tom MacAllisters
-over-harbour were burned out three nights ago. Some say Tom MacAllister
-set the house on fire himself to get the insurance. That may or may not
-be. But I advise the doctor to have our chimneys seen to at once. An
-ounce of prevention is worth a pound of cure. But I see Mrs. Marshall
-Elliott coming in at the gate, looking as if she had been sent for and
-couldn't go."
-
-"Anne dearie, have you seen the _Journal_ to-day?"
-
-Miss Cornelia's voice was trembling, partly from emotion, partly from
-the fact that she had hurried up from the store too fast and lost her
-breath.
-
-Anne bent over the daffodils to hide a smile. She and Gilbert had
-laughed heartily and heartlessly over the front page of the _Journal_
-that day, but she knew that to dear Miss Cornelia it was almost a
-tragedy, and she must not wound her feelings by any display of levity.
-
-"Isn't it dreadful? What IS to be done?" asked Miss Cornelia
-despairingly. Miss Cornelia had vowed that she was done with worrying
-over the pranks of the manse children, but she went on worrying just the
-same.
-
-Anne led the way to the veranda, where Susan was knitting, with Shirley
-and Rilla conning their primers on either side. Susan was already on
-her second pair of stockings for Faith. Susan never worried over poor
-humanity. She did what in her lay for its betterment and serenely left
-the rest to the Higher Powers.
-
-"Cornelia Elliott thinks she was born to run this world, Mrs. Dr.
-dear," she had once said to Anne, "and so she is always in a stew over
-something. I have never thought _I_ was, and so I go calmly along. Not
-but what it has sometimes occurred to me that things might be run a
-little better than they are. But it is not for us poor worms to nourish
-such thoughts. They only make us uncomfortable and do not get us
-anywhere."
-
-"I don't see that anything can be done--now--" said Anne, pulling out
-a nice, cushiony chair for Miss Cornelia. "But how in the world did Mr.
-Vickers allow that letter to be printed? Surely he should have known
-better."
-
-"Why, he's away, Anne dearie--he's been away to New Brunswick for a
-week. And that young scalawag of a Joe Vickers is editing the _Journal_
-in his absence. Of course, Mr. Vickers would never have put it in, even
-if he is a Methodist, but Joe would just think it a good joke. As you
-say, I don't suppose there is anything to be done now, only live it
-down. But if I ever get Joe Vickers cornered somewhere I'll give him
-a talking to he won't forget in a hurry. I wanted Marshall to stop our
-subscription to the _Journal_ instantly, but he only laughed and said
-that to-day's issue was the only one that had had anything readable in
-it for a year. Marshall never will take anything seriously--just like a
-man. Fortunately, Evan Boyd is like that, too. He takes it as a joke and
-is laughing all over the place about it. And he's another Methodist! As
-for Mrs. Burr of Upper Glen, of course she will be furious and they will
-leave the church. Not that it will be a great loss from any point of
-view. The Methodists are quite welcome to THEM."
-
-"It serves Mrs. Burr right," said Susan, who had an old feud with the
-lady in question and had been hugely tickled over the reference to her
-in Faith's letter. "She will find that she will not be able to cheat the
-Methodist parson out of HIS salary with bad yarn."
-
-"The worst of it is, there's not much hope of things getting any
-better," said Miss Cornelia gloomily. "As long as Mr. Meredith was
-going to see Rosemary West I did hope the manse would soon have a
-proper mistress. But that is all off. I suppose she wouldn't have him on
-account of the children--at least, everybody seems to think so."
-
-"I do not believe that he ever asked her," said Susan, who could not
-conceive of any one refusing a minister.
-
-"Well, nobody knows anything about THAT. But one thing is certain,
-he doesn't go there any longer. And Rosemary didn't look well all the
-spring. I hope her visit to Kingsport will do her good. She's been gone
-for a month and will stay another month, I understand. I can't remember
-when Rosemary was away from home before. She and Ellen could never bear
-to be parted. But I understand Ellen insisted on her going this time.
-And meanwhile Ellen and Norman Douglas are warming up the old soup."
-
-"Is that really so?" asked Anne, laughing. "I heard a rumour of it, but
-I hardly believed it."
-
-"Believe it! You may believe it all right, Anne, dearie. Nobody is in
-ignorance of it. Norman Douglas never left anybody in doubt as to his
-intentions in regard to anything. He always did his courting before the
-public. He told Marshall that he hadn't thought about Ellen for years,
-but the first time he went to church last fall he saw her and fell in
-love with her all over again. He said he'd clean forgot how handsome
-she was. He hadn't seen her for twenty years, if you can believe it. Of
-course he never went to church, and Ellen never went anywhere else
-round here. Oh, we all know what Norman means, but what Ellen means is a
-different matter. I shan't take it upon me to predict whether it will be
-a match or not."
-
-"He jilted her once--but it seems that does not count with some people,
-Mrs. Dr. dear," Susan remarked rather acidly.
-
-"He jilted her in a fit of temper and repented it all his life," said
-Miss Cornelia. "That is different from a cold-blooded jilting. For my
-part, I never detested Norman as some folks do. He could never over-crow
-ME. I DO wonder what started him coming to church. I have never been
-able to believe Mrs. Wilsons's story that Faith Meredith went there and
-bullied him into it. I've always intended to ask Faith herself, but I've
-never happened to think of it just when I saw her. What influence could
-SHE have over Norman Douglas? He was in the store when I left, bellowing
-with laughter over that scandalous letter. You could have heard him at
-Four Winds Point. 'The greatest girl in the world,' he was shouting.
-'She's that full of spunk she's bursting with it. And all the old
-grannies want to tame her, darn them. But they'll never be able to do
-it--never! They might as well try to drown a fish. Boyd, see that you
-put more fertilizer on your potatoes next year. Ho, ho, ho!' And then he
-laughed till the roof shook."
-
-"Mr. Douglas pays well to the salary, at least," remarked Susan.
-
-"Oh, Norman isn't mean in some ways. He'd give a thousand without
-blinking a lash, and roar like a Bull of Bashan if he had to pay five
-cents too much for anything. Besides, he likes Mr. Meredith's sermons,
-and Norman Douglas was always willing to shell out if he got his brains
-tickled up. There is no more Christianity about him than there is about
-a black, naked heathen in Africa and never will be. But he's clever and
-well read and he judges sermons as he would lectures. Anyhow, it's well
-he backs up Mr. Meredith and the children as he does, for they'll need
-friends more than ever after this. I am tired of making excuses for
-them, believe ME."
-
-"Do you know, dear Miss Cornelia," said Anne seriously, "I think we have
-all been making too many excuses. It is very foolish and we ought to
-stop it. I am going to tell you what I'd LIKE to do. I shan't do it, of
-course"--Anne had noted a glint of alarm in Susan's eye--"it would be
-too unconventional, and we must be conventional or die, after we reach
-what is supposed to be a dignified age. But I'd LIKE to do it. I'd like
-to call a meeting of the Ladies Aid and W.M.S. and the Girls Sewing
-Society, and include in the audience all and any Methodists who have
-been criticizing the Merediths--although I do think if we Presbyterians
-stopped criticizing and excusing we would find that other denominations
-would trouble themselves very little about our manse folks. I would
-say to them, 'Dear Christian friends'--with marked emphasis on
-'Christian'--I have something to say to you and I want to say it good
-and hard, that you may take it home and repeat it to your families.
-You Methodists need not pity us, and we Presbyterians need not pity
-ourselves. We are not going to do it any more. And we are going to say,
-boldly and truthfully, to all critics and sympathizers, 'We are PROUD of
-our minister and his family. Mr. Meredith is the best preacher Glen
-St. Mary church ever had. Moreover, he is a sincere, earnest teacher of
-truth and Christian charity. He is a faithful friend, a judicious pastor
-in all essentials, and a refined, scholarly, well-bred man. His family
-are worthy of him. Gerald Meredith is the cleverest pupil in the Glen
-school, and Mr. Hazard says that he is destined to a brilliant career.
-He is a manly, honourable, truthful little fellow. Faith Meredith is
-a beauty, and as inspiring and original as she is beautiful. There
-is nothing commonplace about her. All the other girls in the Glen put
-together haven't the vim, and wit, and joyousness and 'spunk' she has.
-She has not an enemy in the world. Every one who knows her loves her.
-Of how many, children or grown-ups, can that be said? Una Meredith
-is sweetness personified. She will make a most lovable woman. Carl
-Meredith, with his love for ants and frogs and spiders, will some day
-be a naturalist whom all Canada--nay, all the world, will delight to
-honour. Do you know of any other family in the Glen, or out of it, of
-whom all these things can be said? Away with shamefaced excuses and
-apologies. We REJOICE in our minister and his splendid boys and girls!"
-
-Anne stopped, partly because she was out of breath after her vehement
-speech and partly because she could not trust herself to speak further
-in view of Miss Cornelia's face. That good lady was staring helplessly
-at Anne, apparently engulfed in billows of new ideas. But she came up
-with a gasp and struck out for shore gallantly.
-
-"Anne Blythe, I wish you WOULD call that meeting and say just that!
-You've made me ashamed of myself, for one, and far be it from me
-to refuse to admit it. OF COURSE, that is how we should have
-talked--especially to the Methodists. And it's every word of it
-true--every word. We've just been shutting our eyes to the big
-worth-while things and squinting them on the little things that don't
-really matter a pin's worth. Oh, Anne dearie, I can see a thing when
-it's hammered into my head. No more apologizing for Cornelia Marshall!
-_I_ shall hold MY head up after this, believe ME--though I MAY talk
-things over with you as usual just to relieve my feelings if the
-Merediths do any more startling stunts. Even that letter I felt so bad
-about--why, it's only a good joke after all, as Norman says. Not many
-girls would have been cute enough to think of writing it--and all
-punctuated so nicely and not one word misspelled. Just let me hear any
-Methodist say one word about it--though all the same I'll never forgive
-Joe Vickers--believe ME! Where are the rest of your small fry to-night?"
-
-"Walter and the twins are in Rainbow Valley. Jem is studying in the
-garret."
-
-"They are all crazy about Rainbow Valley. Mary Vance thinks it's the
-only place in the world. She'd be off up here every evening if I'd let
-her. But I don't encourage her in gadding. Besides, I miss the creature
-when she isn't around, Anne dearie. I never thought I'd get so fond of
-her. Not but what I see her faults and try to correct them. But she has
-never said one saucy word to me since she came to my house and she is
-a GREAT help--for when all is said and done, Anne dearie, I am not so
-young as I once was, and there is no sense denying it. I was fifty-nine
-my last birthday. I don't FEEL it, but there is no gainsaying the Family
-Bible."
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVII. A SACRED CONCERT
-
-In spite of Miss Cornelia's new point of view she could not help feeling
-a little disturbed over the next performance of the manse children.
-In public she carried off the situation splendidly, saying to all the
-gossips the substance of what Anne had said in daffodil time, and saying
-it so pointedly and forcibly that her hearers found themselves feeling
-rather foolish and began to think that, after all, they were making too
-much of a childish prank. But in private Miss Cornelia allowed herself
-the relief of bemoaning it to Anne.
-
-"Anne dearie, they had a CONCERT IN THE GRAVEYARD last Thursday evening,
-while the Methodist prayer meeting was going on. There they sat, on
-Hezekiah Pollock's tombstone, and sang for a solid hour. Of course,
-I understand it was mostly hymns they sang, and it wouldn't have been
-quite so bad if they'd done nothing else. But I'm told they finished
-up with _Polly Wolly Doodle_ at full length--and that just when Deacon
-Baxter was praying."
-
-"I was there that night," said Susan, "and, although I did not say
-anything about it to you, Mrs. Dr. dear, I could not help thinking that
-it was a great pity they picked that particular evening. It was truly
-blood-curdling to hear them sitting there in that abode of the dead,
-shouting that frivolous song at the tops of their lungs."
-
-"I don't know what YOU were doing in a Methodist prayer meeting," said
-Miss Cornelia acidly.
-
-"I have never found that Methodism was catching," retorted Susan
-stiffly. "And, as I was going to say when I was interrupted, badly as I
-felt, I did NOT give in to the Methodists. When Mrs. Deacon Baxter said,
-as we came out, 'What a disgraceful exhibition!' _I_ said, looking her
-fairly in the eye, 'They are all beautiful singers, and none of YOUR
-choir, Mrs. Baxter, ever bother themselves coming out to your prayer
-meeting, it seems. Their voices appear to be in tune only on Sundays!'
-She was quite meek and I felt that I had snubbed her properly. But I
-could have done it much more thoroughly, Mrs. Dr. dear, if only they
-had left out _Polly Wolly Doodle_. It is truly terrible to think of that
-being sung in a graveyard."
-
-"Some of those dead folks sang _Polly Wolly Doodle_ when they were
-living, Susan. Perhaps they like to hear it yet," suggested Gilbert.
-
-Miss Cornelia looked at him reproachfully and made up her mind that, on
-some future occasion, she would hint to Anne that the doctor should
-be admonished not to say such things. They might injure his practice.
-People might get it into their heads that he wasn't orthodox. To be
-sure, Marshall said even worse things habitually, but then HE was not a
-public man.
-
-"I understand that their father was in his study all the time, with his
-windows open, but never noticed them at all. Of course, he was lost in a
-book as usual. But I spoke to him about it yesterday, when he called."
-
-"How could you dare, Mrs. Marshall Elliott?" asked Susan rebukingly.
-
-"Dare! It's time somebody dared something. Why, they say he knows
-nothing about that letter of Faith's to the JOURNAL because nobody
-liked to mention it to him. He never looks at a JOURNAL of course. But
-I thought he ought to know of this to prevent any such performances
-in future. He said he would 'discuss it with them.' But of course he'd
-never think of it again after he got out of our gate. That man has no
-sense of humour, Anne, believe ME. He preached last Sunday on 'How to
-Bring up Children.' A beautiful sermon it was, too--and everybody in
-church thinking 'what a pity you can't practise what you preach.'"
-
-Miss Cornelia did Mr. Meredith an injustice in thinking he would soon
-forget what she had told him. He went home much disturbed and when the
-children came from Rainbow Valley that night, at a much later hour than
-they should have been prowling in it, he called them into his study.
-
-They went in, somewhat awed. It was such an unusual thing for their
-father to do. What could he be going to say to them? They racked their
-memories for any recent transgression of sufficient importance, but
-could not recall any. Carl had spilled a saucerful of jam on Mrs.
-Peter Flagg's silk dress two evenings before, when, at Aunt Martha's
-invitation, she had stayed to supper. But Mr. Meredith had not noticed
-it, and Mrs. Flagg, who was a kindly soul, had made no fuss. Besides,
-Carl had been punished by having to wear Una's dress all the rest of the
-evening.
-
-Una suddenly thought that perhaps her father meant to tell them that he
-was going to marry Miss West. Her heart began to beat violently and
-her legs trembled. Then she saw that Mr. Meredith looked very stern and
-sorrowful. No, it could not be that.
-
-"Children," said Mr. Meredith, "I have heard something that has pained
-me very much. Is it true that you sat out in the graveyard all last
-Thursday evening and sang ribald songs while a prayer meeting was being
-held in the Methodist church?"
-
-"Great Caesar, Dad, we forgot all about it being their prayer meeting
-night," exclaimed Jerry in dismay.
-
-"Then it is true--you did do this thing?"
-
-"Why, Dad, I don't know what you mean by ribald songs. We sang hymns--it
-was a sacred concert, you know. What harm was that? I tell you we never
-thought about it's being Methodist prayer meeting night. They used to
-have their meeting Tuesday nights and since they've changed to Thursdays
-it's hard to remember."
-
-"Did you sing nothing but hymns?"
-
-"Why," said Jerry, turning red, "we DID sing _Polly Wolly Doodle_ at the
-last. Faith said, 'Let's have something cheerful to wind up with.' But
-we didn't mean any harm, Father--truly we didn't."
-
-"The concert was my idea, Father," said Faith, afraid that Mr. Meredith
-might blame Jerry too much. "You know the Methodists themselves had a
-sacred concert in their church three Sunday nights ago. I thought
-it would be good fun to get one up in imitation of it. Only they had
-prayers at theirs, and we left that part out, because we heard that
-people thought it awful for us to pray in a graveyard. YOU were sitting
-in here all the time," she added, "and never said a word to us."
-
-"I did not notice what you were doing. That is no excuse for me, of
-course. I am more to blame than you--I realize that. But why did you
-sing that foolish song at the end?"
-
-"We didn't think," muttered Jerry, feeling that it was a very
-lame excuse, seeing that he had lectured Faith so strongly in the
-Good-Conduct Club sessions for her lack of thought. "We're sorry,
-Father--truly, we are. Pitch into us hard--we deserve a regular combing
-down."
-
-But Mr. Meredith did no combing down or pitching into. He sat down and
-gathered his small culprits close to him and talked a little to them,
-tenderly and wisely. They were overcome with remorse and shame, and felt
-that they could never be so silly and thoughtless again.
-
-"We've just got to punish ourselves good and hard for this," whispered
-Jerry as they crept upstairs. "We'll have a session of the Club first
-thing tomorrow and decide how we'll do it. I never saw father so cut up.
-But I wish to goodness the Methodists would stick to one night for their
-prayer meeting and not wander all over the week."
-
-"Anyhow, I'm glad it wasn't what I was afraid it was," murmured Una to
-herself.
-
-Behind them, in the study, Mr. Meredith had sat down at his desk and
-buried his face in his arms.
-
-"God help me!" he said. "I'm a poor sort of father. Oh, Rosemary! If you
-had only cared!"
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVIII. A FAST DAY
-
-The Good-Conduct Club had a special session the next morning before
-school. After various suggestions, it was decided that a fast day would
-be an appropriate punishment.
-
-"We won't eat a single thing for a whole day," said Jerry. "I'm kind of
-curious to see what fasting is like, anyhow. This will be a good chance
-to find out."
-
-"What day will we choose for it?" asked Una, who thought it would be
-quite an easy punishment and rather wondered that Jerry and Faith had
-not devised something harder.
-
-"Let's pick Monday," said Faith. "We mostly have a pretty FILLING dinner
-on Sundays, and Mondays meals never amount to much anyhow."
-
-"But that's just the point," exclaimed Jerry. "We mustn't take the
-easiest day to fast, but the hardest--and that's Sunday, because, as
-you say, we mostly have roast beef that day instead of cold ditto. It
-wouldn't be much punishment to fast from ditto. Let's take next Sunday.
-It will be a good day, for father is going to exchange for the morning
-service with the Upper Lowbridge minister. Father will be away till
-evening. If Aunt Martha wonders what's got into us, we'll tell her right
-up that we're fasting for the good of our souls, and it is in the Bible
-and she is not to interfere, and I guess she won't."
-
-Aunt Martha did not. She merely said in her fretful mumbling way, "What
-foolishness are you young rips up to now?" and thought no more about it.
-Mr. Meredith had gone away early in the morning before any one was up.
-He went without his breakfast, too, but that was, of course, of common
-occurrence. Half of the time he forgot it and there was no one to remind
-him of it. Breakfast--Aunt Martha's breakfast--was not a hard meal to
-miss. Even the hungry "young rips" did not feel it any great deprivation
-to abstain from the "lumpy porridge and blue milk" which had aroused
-the scorn of Mary Vance. But it was different at dinner time. They were
-furiously hungry then, and the odor of roast beef which pervaded the
-manse, and which was wholly delightful in spite of the fact that the
-roast beef was badly underdone, was almost more than they could stand.
-In desperation they rushed to the graveyard where they couldn't smell
-it. But Una could not keep her eyes from the dining room window, through
-which the Upper Lowbridge minister could be seen, placidly eating.
-
-"If I could only have just a weeny, teeny piece," she sighed.
-
-"Now, you stop that," commanded Jerry. "Of course it's hard--but that's
-the punishment of it. I could eat a graven image this very minute, but
-am I complaining? Let's think of something else. We've just got to rise
-above our stomachs."
-
-At supper time they did not feel the pangs of hunger which they had
-suffered earlier in the day.
-
-"I suppose we're getting used to it," said Faith. "I feel an awfully
-queer all-gone sort of feeling, but I can't say I'm hungry."
-
-"My head is funny," said Una. "It goes round and round sometimes."
-
-But she went gamely to church with the others. If Mr. Meredith had not
-been so wholly wrapped up in and carried away with his subject he might
-have noticed the pale little face and hollow eyes in the manse pew
-beneath. But he noticed nothing and his sermon was something longer
-than usual. Then, just before he gave out the final hymn, Una Meredith
-tumbled off the seat of the manse pew and lay in a dead faint on the
-floor.
-
-Mrs. Elder Clow was the first to reach her. She caught the thin little
-body from the arms of white-faced, terrified Faith and carried it into
-the vestry. Mr. Meredith forgot the hymn and everything else and rushed
-madly after her. The congregation dismissed itself as best it could.
-
-"Oh, Mrs. Clow," gasped Faith, "is Una dead? Have we killed her?"
-
-"What is the matter with my child?" demanded the pale father.
-
-"She has just fainted, I think," said Mrs. Clow. "Oh, here's the doctor,
-thank goodness."
-
-Gilbert did not find it a very easy thing to bring Una back to
-consciousness. He worked over her for a long time before her eyes
-opened. Then he carried her over to the manse, followed by Faith,
-sobbing hysterically in her relief.
-
-"She is just hungry, you know--she didn't eat a thing to-day--none of us
-did--we were all fasting."
-
-"Fasting!" said Mr. Meredith, and "Fasting?" said the doctor.
-
-"Yes--to punish ourselves for singing _Polly Wolly_ in the graveyard,"
-said Faith.
-
-"My child, I don't want you to punish yourselves for that," said Mr.
-Meredith in distress. "I gave you your little scolding--and you were all
-penitent--and I forgave you."
-
-"Yes, but we had to be punished," explained Faith. "It's our rule--in
-our Good-Conduct Club, you know--if we do anything wrong, or anything
-that is likely to hurt father in the congregation, we HAVE to punish
-ourselves. We are bringing ourselves up, you know, because there is
-nobody to do it."
-
-Mr. Meredith groaned, but the doctor got up from Una's side with an air
-of relief.
-
-"Then this child simply fainted from lack of food and all she needs is
-a good square meal," he said. "Mrs. Clow, will you be kind enough to see
-she gets it? And I think from Faith's story that they all would be the
-better for something to eat, or we shall have more faintings."
-
-"I suppose we shouldn't have made Una fast," said Faith remorsefully.
-"When I think of it, only Jerry and I should have been punished. WE got
-up the concert and we were the oldest."
-
-"I sang _Polly Wolly_ just the same as the rest of you," said Una's weak
-little voice, "so I had to be punished, too."
-
-Mrs. Clow came with a glass of milk, Faith and Jerry and Carl sneaked
-off to the pantry, and John Meredith went into his study, where he sat
-in the darkness for a long time, alone with his bitter thoughts. So his
-children were bringing themselves up because there was "nobody to do
-it"--struggling along amid their little perplexities without a hand to
-guide or a voice to counsel. Faith's innocently uttered phrase rankled
-in her father's mind like a barbed shaft. There was "nobody" to look
-after them--to comfort their little souls and care for their little
-bodies. How frail Una had looked, lying there on the vestry sofa in that
-long faint! How thin were her tiny hands, how pallid her little face!
-She looked as if she might slip away from him in a breath--sweet little
-Una, of whom Cecilia had begged him to take such special care. Since his
-wife's death he had not felt such an agony of dread as when he had hung
-over his little girl in her unconsciousness. He must do something--but
-what? Should he ask Elizabeth Kirk to marry him? She was a good
-woman--she would be kind to his children. He might bring himself to
-do it if it were not for his love for Rosemary West. But until he had
-crushed that out he could not seek another woman in marriage. And he
-could not crush it out--he had tried and he could not. Rosemary had
-been in church that evening, for the first time since her return from
-Kingsport. He had caught a glimpse of her face in the back of the
-crowded church, just as he had finished his sermon. His heart had given
-a fierce throb. He sat while the choir sang the "collection piece," with
-his bent head and tingling pulses. He had not seen her since the evening
-upon which he had asked her to marry him. When he had risen to give out
-the hymn his hands were trembling and his pale face was flushed. Then
-Una's fainting spell had banished everything from his mind for a time.
-Now, in the darkness and solitude of the study it rushed back. Rosemary
-was the only woman in the world for him. It was of no use for him to
-think of marrying any other. He could not commit such a sacrilege even
-for his children's sake. He must take up his burden alone--he must try
-to be a better, a more watchful father--he must tell his children not to
-be afraid to come to him with all their little problems. Then he lighted
-his lamp and took up a bulky new book which was setting the theological
-world by the ears. He would read just one chapter to compose his mind.
-Five minutes later he was lost to the world and the troubles of the
-world.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIX. A WEIRD TALE
-
-On an early June evening Rainbow Valley was an entirely delightful place
-and the children felt it to be so, as they sat in the open glade where
-the bells rang elfishly on the Tree Lovers, and the White Lady shook
-her green tresses. The wind was laughing and whistling about them like
-a leal, glad-hearted comrade. The young ferns were spicy in the hollow.
-The wild cherry trees scattered over the valley, among the dark firs,
-were mistily white. The robins were whistling over in the maples behind
-Ingleside. Beyond, on the slopes of the Glen, were blossoming orchards,
-sweet and mystic and wonderful, veiled in dusk. It was spring, and young
-things MUST be glad in spring. Everybody was glad in Rainbow Valley
-that evening--until Mary Vance froze their blood with the story of Henry
-Warren's ghost.
-
-Jem was not there. Jem spent his evenings now studying for his entrance
-examination in the Ingleside garret. Jerry was down near the pond,
-trouting. Walter had been reading Longfellow's sea poems to the others
-and they were steeped in the beauty and mystery of the ships. Then they
-talked of what they would do when they were grown up--where they would
-travel--the far, fair shores they would see. Nan and Di meant to go to
-Europe. Walter longed for the Nile moaning past its Egyptian sands, and
-a glimpse of the sphinx. Faith opined rather dismally that she supposed
-she would have to be a missionary--old Mrs. Taylor told her she ought
-to be--and then she would at least see India or China, those mysterious
-lands of the Orient. Carl's heart was set on African jungles. Una
-said nothing. She thought she would just like to stay at home. It was
-prettier here than anywhere else. It would be dreadful when they were
-all grown up and had to scatter over the world. The very idea made Una
-feel lonesome and homesick. But the others dreamed on delightedly until
-Mary Vance arrived and vanished poesy and dreams at one fell swoop.
-
-"Laws, but I'm out of puff," she exclaimed. "I've run down that hill
-like sixty. I got an awful scare up there at the old Bailey place."
-
-"What frightened you?" asked Di.
-
-"I dunno. I was poking about under them lilacs in the old garden, trying
-to see if there was any lilies-of-the-valley out yet. It was dark as
-a pocket there--and all at once I seen something stirring and rustling
-round at the other side of the garden, in those cherry bushes. It was
-WHITE. I tell you I didn't stop for a second look. I flew over the dyke
-quicker than quick. I was sure it was Henry Warren's ghost."
-
-"Who was Henry Warren?" asked Di.
-
-"And why should he have a ghost?" asked Nan.
-
-"Laws, did you never hear the story? And you brought up in the Glen.
-Well, wait a minute till I get by breath all back and I'll tell you."
-
-Walter shivered delightsomely. He loved ghost stories. Their mystery,
-their dramatic climaxes, their eeriness gave him a fearful, exquisite
-pleasure. Longfellow instantly grew tame and commonplace. He threw the
-book aside and stretched himself out, propped upon his elbows to listen
-whole-heartedly, fixing his great luminous eyes on Mary's face. Mary
-wished he wouldn't look at her so. She felt she could make a better job
-of the ghost story if Walter were not looking at her. She could put on
-several frills and invent a few artistic details to enhance the horror.
-As it was, she had to stick to the bare truth--or what had been told her
-for the truth.
-
-"Well," she began, "you know old Tom Bailey and his wife used to live in
-that house up there thirty years ago. He was an awful old rip, they say,
-and his wife wasn't much better. They'd no children of their own, but a
-sister of old Tom's died and left a little boy--this Henry Warren--and
-they took him. He was about twelve when he came to them, and kind of
-undersized and delicate. They say Tom and his wife used him awful from
-the start--whipped him and starved him. Folks said they wanted him to
-die so's they could get the little bit of money his mother had left for
-him. Henry didn't die right off, but he begun having fits--epileps, they
-called 'em--and he grew up kind of simple, till he was about eighteen.
-His uncle used to thrash him in that garden up there 'cause it was back
-of the house where no one could see him. But folks could hear, and they
-say it was awful sometimes hearing poor Henry plead with his uncle
-not to kill him. But nobody dared interfere 'cause old Tom was such a
-reprobate he'd have been sure to get square with 'em some way. He burned
-the barns of a man at Harbour Head who offended him. At last Henry died
-and his uncle and aunt give out he died in one of his fits and that was
-all anybody ever knowed, but everybody said Tom had just up and killed
-him for keeps at last. And it wasn't long till it got around that Henry
-WALKED. That old garden was HA'NTED. He was heard there at nights,
-moaning and crying. Old Tom and his wife got out--went out West and
-never came back. The place got such a bad name nobody'd buy or rent it.
-That's why it's all gone to ruin. That was thirty years ago, but Henry
-Warren's ghost ha'nts it yet."
-
-"Do you believe that?" asked Nan scornfully. "_I_ don't."
-
-"Well, GOOD people have seen him--and heard him." retorted Mary. "They
-say he appears and grovels on the ground and holds you by the legs and
-gibbers and moans like he did when he was alive. I thought of that as
-soon as I seen that white thing in the bushes and thought if it caught
-me like that and moaned I'd drop down dead on the spot. So I cut and
-run. It MIGHTN'T have been his ghost, but I wasn't going to take any
-chances with a ha'nt."
-
-"It was likely old Mrs. Stimson's white calf," laughed Di. "It pastures
-in that garden--I've seen it."
-
-"Maybe so. But I'M not going home through the Bailey garden any more.
-Here's Jerry with a big string of trout and it's my turn to cook them.
-Jem and Jerry both say I'm the best cook in the Glen. And Cornelia told
-me I could bring up this batch of cookies. I all but dropped them when I
-saw Henry's ghost."
-
-Jerry hooted when he heard the ghost story--which Mary repeated as she
-fried the fish, touching it up a trifle or so, since Walter had gone to
-help Faith to set the table. It made no impression on Jerry, but Faith
-and Una and Carl had been secretly much frightened, though they would
-never have given in to it. It was all right as long as the others were
-with them in the valley: but when the feast was over and the shadows
-fell they quaked with remembrance. Jerry went up to Ingleside with the
-Blythes to see Jem about something, and Mary Vance went around that way
-home. So Faith and Una and Carl had to go back to the manse alone. They
-walked very close together and gave the old Bailey garden a wide berth.
-They did not believe that it was haunted, of course, but they would not
-go near it for all that.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXX. THE GHOST ON THE DYKE
-
-Somehow, Faith and Carl and Una could not shake off the hold which the
-story of Henry Warren's ghost had taken upon their imaginations. They
-had never believed in ghosts. Ghost tales they had heard a-plenty--Mary
-Vance had told some far more blood-curdling than this; but those tales
-were all of places and people and spooks far away and unknown. After the
-first half-awful, half-pleasant thrill of awe and terror they thought
-of them no more. But this story came home to them. The old Bailey garden
-was almost at their very door--almost in their beloved Rainbow Valley.
-They had passed and repassed it constantly; they had hunted for flowers
-in it; they had made short cuts through it when they wished to go
-straight from the village to the valley. But never again! After the
-night when Mary Vance told them its gruesome tale they would not have
-gone through or near it on pain of death. Death! What was death compared
-to the unearthly possibility of falling into the clutches of Henry
-Warren's grovelling ghost?
-
-One warm July evening the three of them were sitting under the Tree
-Lovers, feeling a little lonely. Nobody else had come near the valley
-that evening. Jem Blythe was away in Charlottetown, writing on his
-entrance examinations. Jerry and Walter Blythe were off for a sail on
-the harbour with old Captain Crawford. Nan and Di and Rilla and Shirley
-had gone down the harbour road to visit Kenneth and Persis Ford, who had
-come with their parents for a flying visit to the little old House of
-Dreams. Nan had asked Faith to go with them, but Faith had declined. She
-would never have admitted it, but she felt a little secret jealousy of
-Persis Ford, concerning whose wonderful beauty and city glamour she
-had heard a great deal. No, she wasn't going to go down there and play
-second fiddle to anybody. She and Una took their story books to Rainbow
-Valley and read, while Carl investigated bugs along the banks of the
-brook, and all three were happy until they suddenly realized that it was
-twilight and that the old Bailey garden was uncomfortably near by. Carl
-came and sat down close to the girls. They all wished they had gone home
-a little sooner, but nobody said anything.
-
-Great, velvety, purple clouds heaped up in the west and spread over
-the valley. There was no wind and everything was suddenly, strangely,
-dreadfully still. The marsh was full of thousands of fire-flies. Surely
-some fairy parliament was being convened that night. Altogether, Rainbow
-Valley was not a canny place just then.
-
-Faith looked fearfully up the valley to the old Bailey garden. Then,
-if anybody's blood ever did freeze, Faith Meredith's certainly froze at
-that moment. The eyes of Carl and Una followed her entranced gaze and
-chills began gallopading up and down their spines also. For there, under
-the big tamarack tree on the tumble-down, grass-grown dyke of the Bailey
-garden, was something white--shapelessly white in the gathering gloom.
-The three Merediths sat and gazed as if turned to stone.
-
-"It's--it's the--calf," whispered Una at last.
-
-"It's--too--big--for the calf," whispered Faith. Her mouth and lips were
-so dry she could hardly articulate the words.
-
-Suddenly Carl gasped,
-
-"It's coming here."
-
-The girls gave one last agonized glance. Yes, it was creeping down over
-the dyke, as no calf ever did or could creep. Reason fled before sudden,
-over-mastering panic. For the moment every one of the trio was firmly
-convinced that what they saw was Henry Warren's ghost. Carl sprang
-to his feet and bolted blindly. With a simultaneous shriek the girls
-followed him. Like mad creatures they tore up the hill, across the road
-and into the manse. They had left Aunt Martha sewing in the kitchen. She
-was not there. They rushed to the study. It was dark and tenantless.
-As with one impulse, they swung around and made for Ingleside--but not
-across Rainbow Valley. Down the hill and through the Glen street they
-flew on the wings of their wild terror, Carl in the lead, Una bringing
-up the rear. Nobody tried to stop them, though everybody who saw them
-wondered what fresh devilment those manse youngsters were up to now. But
-at the gate of Ingleside they ran into Rosemary West, who had just been
-in for a moment to return some borrowed books.
-
-She saw their ghastly faces and staring eyes. She realized that their
-poor little souls were wrung with some awful and real fear, whatever
-its cause. She caught Carl with one arm and Faith with the other. Una
-stumbled against her and held on desperately.
-
-"Children, dear, what has happened?" she said. "What has frightened
-you?"
-
-"Henry Warren's ghost," answered Carl, through his chattering teeth.
-
-"Henry--Warren's--ghost!" said amazed Rosemary, who had never heard the
-story.
-
-"Yes," sobbed Faith hysterically. "It's there--on the Bailey dyke--we
-saw it--and it started to--chase us."
-
-Rosemary herded the three distracted creatures to the Ingleside veranda.
-Gilbert and Anne were both away, having also gone to the House of
-Dreams, but Susan appeared in the doorway, gaunt and practical and
-unghostlike.
-
-"What is all this rumpus about?" she inquired.
-
-Again the children gasped out their awful tale, while Rosemary held them
-close to her and soothed them with wordless comfort.
-
-"Likely it was an owl," said Susan, unstirred.
-
-An owl! The Meredith children never had any opinion of Susan's
-intelligence after that!
-
-"It was bigger than a million owls," said Carl, sobbing--oh, how ashamed
-Carl was of that sobbing in after days--"and it--it GROVELLED just as
-Mary said--and it was crawling down over the dyke to get at us. Do owls
-CRAWL?"
-
-Rosemary looked at Susan.
-
-"They must have seen something to frighten them so," she said.
-
-"I will go and see," said Susan coolly. "Now, children, calm yourselves.
-Whatever you have seen, it was not a ghost. As for poor Henry Warren,
-I feel sure he would be only too glad to rest quietly in his peaceful
-grave once he got there. No fear of HIM venturing back, and that you may
-tie to. If you can make them see reason, Miss West, I will find out the
-truth of the matter."
-
-Susan departed for Rainbow Valley, valiantly grasping a pitchfork which
-she found leaning against the back fence where the doctor had been
-working in his little hay-field. A pitchfork might not be of much use
-against "ha'nts," but it was a comforting sort of weapon. There was
-nothing to be seen in Rainbow Valley when Susan reached it. No white
-visitants appeared to be lurking in the shadowy, tangled old Bailey
-garden. Susan marched boldly through it and beyond it, and rapped with
-her pitchfork on the door of the little cottage on the other side, where
-Mrs. Stimson lived with her two daughters.
-
-Back at Ingleside Rosemary had succeeded in calming the children. They
-still sobbed a little from shock, but they were beginning to feel a
-lurking and salutary suspicion that they had made dreadful geese
-of themselves. This suspicion became a certainty when Susan finally
-returned.
-
-"I have found out what your ghost was," she said, with a grim smile,
-sitting down on a rocker and fanning herself. "Old Mrs. Stimson has had
-a pair of factory cotton sheets bleaching in the Bailey garden for a
-week. She spread them on the dyke under the tamarack tree because the
-grass was clean and short there. This evening she went out to take them
-in. She had her knitting in her hands so she hung the sheets over her
-shoulders by way of carrying them. And then she must have dropped one of
-her needles and find it she could not and has not yet. But she went down
-on her knees and crept about to hunt for it, and she was at that when
-she heard awful yells down in the valley and saw the three children
-tearing up the hill past her. She thought they had been bit by something
-and it gave her poor old heart such a turn that she could not move or
-speak, but just crouched there till they disappeared. Then she staggered
-back home and they have been applying stimulants to her ever since, and
-her heart is in a terrible condition and she says she will not get over
-this fright all summer."
-
-The Merediths sat, crimson with a shame that even Rosemary's
-understanding sympathy could not remove. They sneaked off home, met
-Jerry at the manse gate and made remorseful confession. A session of the
-Good-Conduct Club was arranged for next morning.
-
-"Wasn't Miss West sweet to us to-night?" whispered Faith in bed.
-
-"Yes," admitted Una. "It is such a pity it changes people so much to be
-made stepmothers."
-
-"I don't believe it does," said Faith loyally.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXI. CARL DOES PENANCE
-
-"I don't see why we should be punished at all," said Faith, rather
-sulkily. "We didn't do anything wrong. We couldn't help being
-frightened. And it won't do father any harm. It was just an accident."
-
-"You were cowards," said Jerry with judicial scorn, "and you gave way to
-your cowardice. That is why you should be punished. Everybody will laugh
-at you about this, and that is a disgrace to the family."
-
-"If you knew how awful the whole thing was," said Faith with a shiver,
-"you would think we had been punished enough already. I wouldn't go
-through it again for anything in the whole world."
-
-"I believe you'd have run yourself if you'd been there," muttered Carl.
-
-"From an old woman in a cotton sheet," mocked Jerry. "Ho, ho, ho!"
-
-"It didn't look a bit like an old woman," cried Faith. "It was just a
-great, big, white thing crawling about in the grass just as Mary Vance
-said Henry Warren did. It's all very fine for you to laugh, Jerry
-Meredith, but you'd have laughed on the other side of your mouth if
-you'd been there. And how are we to be punished? _I_ don't think it's
-fair, but let's know what we have to do, Judge Meredith!"
-
-"The way I look at it," said Jerry, frowning, "is that Carl was the most
-to blame. He bolted first, as I understand it. Besides, he was a boy,
-so he should have stood his ground to protect you girls, whatever the
-danger was. You know that, Carl, don't you?"
-
-"I s'pose so," growled Carl shamefacedly.
-
-"Very well. This is to be your punishment. To-night you'll sit on
-Mr. Hezekiah Pollock's tombstone in the graveyard alone, until twelve
-o'clock."
-
-Carl gave a little shudder. The graveyard was not so very far from the
-old Bailey garden. It would be a trying ordeal, but Carl was anxious to
-wipe out his disgrace and prove that he was not a coward after all.
-
-"All right," he said sturdily. "But how'll I know when it is twelve?"
-
-"The study windows are open and you'll hear the clock striking. And
-mind you that you are not to budge out of that graveyard until the last
-stroke. As for you girls, you've got to go without jam at supper for a
-week."
-
-Faith and Una looked rather blank. They were inclined to think that even
-Carl's comparatively short though sharp agony was lighter punishment
-than this long drawn-out ordeal. A whole week of soggy bread without
-the saving grace of jam! But no shirking was permitted in the club. The
-girls accepted their lot with such philosophy as they could summon up.
-
-That night they all went to bed at nine, except Carl, who was already
-keeping vigil on the tombstone. Una slipped in to bid him good night.
-Her tender heart was wrung with sympathy.
-
-"Oh, Carl, are you much scared?" she whispered.
-
-"Not a bit," said Carl airily.
-
-"I won't sleep a wink till after twelve," said Una. "If you get lonesome
-just look up at our window and remember that I'm inside, awake, and
-thinking about you. That will be a little company, won't it?"
-
-"I'll be all right. Don't you worry about me," said Carl.
-
-But in spite of his dauntless words Carl was a pretty lonely boy when
-the lights went out in the manse. He had hoped his father would be in
-the study as he so often was. He would not feel alone then. But that
-night Mr. Meredith had been summoned to the fishing village at the
-harbour mouth to see a dying man. He would not likely be back until
-after midnight. Carl must dree his weird alone.
-
-A Glen man went past carrying a lantern. The mysterious shadows caused
-by the lantern-light went hurtling madly over the graveyard like a dance
-of demons or witches. Then they passed and darkness fell again. One by
-one the lights in the Glen went out. It was a very dark night, with a
-cloudy sky, and a raw east wind that was cold in spite of the calendar.
-Far away on the horizon was the low dim lustre of the Charlottetown
-lights. The wind wailed and sighed in the old fir-trees. Mr. Alec Davis'
-tall monument gleamed whitely through the gloom. The willow beside it
-tossed long, writhing arms spectrally. At times, the gyrations of its
-boughs made it seem as if the monument were moving, too.
-
-Carl curled himself up on the tombstone with his legs tucked under him.
-It wasn't precisely pleasant to hang them over the edge of the stone.
-Just suppose--just suppose--bony hands should reach up out of Mr.
-Pollock's grave under it and clutch him by the ankles. That had been one
-of Mary Vance's cheerful speculations one time when they had all been
-sitting there. It returned to haunt Carl now. He didn't believe those
-things; he didn't even really believe in Henry Warren's ghost. As for
-Mr. Pollock, he had been dead sixty years, so it wasn't likely he cared
-who sat on his tombstone now. But there is something very strange and
-terrible in being awake when all the rest of the world is asleep. You
-are alone then with nothing but your own feeble personality to pit
-against the mighty principalities and powers of darkness. Carl was only
-ten and the dead were all around him--and he wished, oh, he wished that
-the clock would strike twelve. Would it NEVER strike twelve? Surely Aunt
-Martha must have forgotten to wind it.
-
-And then it struck eleven--only eleven! He must stay yet another hour in
-that grim place. If only there were a few friendly stars to be seen! The
-darkness was so thick it seemed to press against his face. There was
-a sound as of stealthy passing footsteps all over the graveyard. Carl
-shivered, partly with prickling terror, partly with real cold.
-
-Then it began to rain--a chill, penetrating drizzle. Carl's thin little
-cotton blouse and shirt were soon wet through. He felt chilled to the
-bone. He forgot mental terrors in his physical discomfort. But he must
-stay there till twelve--he was punishing himself and he was on his
-honour. Nothing had been said about rain--but it did not make any
-difference. When the study clock finally struck twelve a drenched little
-figure crept stiffly down off Mr. Pollock's tombstone, made its way into
-the manse and upstairs to bed. Carl's teeth were chattering. He thought
-he would never get warm again.
-
-He was warm enough when morning came. Jerry gave one startled look at
-his crimson face and then rushed to call his father. Mr. Meredith came
-hurriedly, his own face ivory white from the pallor of his long night
-vigil by a death bed. He had not got home until daylight. He bent over
-his little lad anxiously.
-
-"Carl, are you sick?" he said.
-
-"That--tombstone--over here," said Carl, "it's--moving--about--it's
-coming--at--me--keep it--away--please."
-
-Mr. Meredith rushed to the telephone. In ten minutes Dr. Blythe was
-at the manse. Half an hour later a wire was sent to town for a trained
-nurse, and all the Glen knew that Carl Meredith was very ill with
-pneumonia and that Dr. Blythe had been seen to shake his head.
-
-Gilbert shook his head more than once in the fortnight that followed.
-Carl developed double pneumonia. There was one night when Mr. Meredith
-paced his study floor, and Faith and Una huddled in their bedroom and
-cried, and Jerry, wild with remorse, refused to budge from the floor of
-the hall outside Carl's door. Dr. Blythe and the nurse never left the
-bedside. They fought death gallantly until the red dawn and they won
-the victory. Carl rallied and passed the crisis in safety. The news was
-phoned about the waiting Glen and people found out how much they really
-loved their minister and his children.
-
-"I haven't had one decent night's sleep since I heard the child was
-sick," Miss Cornelia told Anne, "and Mary Vance has cried until those
-queer eyes of hers looked like burnt holes in a blanket. Is it true that
-Carl got pneumonia from straying out in the graveyard that wet night for
-a dare?"
-
-"No. He was staying there to punish himself for cowardice in that affair
-of the Warren ghost. It seems they have a club for bringing themselves
-up, and they punish themselves when they do wrong. Jerry told Mr.
-Meredith all about it."
-
-"The poor little souls," said Miss Cornelia.
-
-Carl got better rapidly, for the congregation took enough nourishing
-things to the manse to furnish forth a hospital. Norman Douglas drove
-up every evening with a dozen fresh eggs and a jar of Jersey cream.
-Sometimes he stayed an hour and bellowed arguments on predestination
-with Mr. Meredith in the study; oftener he drove on up to the hill that
-overlooked the Glen.
-
-When Carl was able to go again to Rainbow Valley they had a special
-feast in his honour and the doctor came down and helped them with the
-fireworks. Mary Vance was there, too, but she did not tell any ghost
-stories. Miss Cornelia had given her a talking on that subject which
-Mary would not forget in a hurry.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXII. TWO STUBBORN PEOPLE
-
-Rosemary West, on her way home from a music lesson at Ingleside, turned
-aside to the hidden spring in Rainbow Valley. She had not been there all
-summer; the beautiful little spot had no longer any allurement for
-her. The spirit of her young lover never came to the tryst now; and the
-memories connected with John Meredith were too painful and poignant. But
-she had happened to glance backward up the valley and had seen Norman
-Douglas vaulting as airily as a stripling over the old stone dyke of the
-Bailey garden and thought he was on his way up the hill. If he overtook
-her she would have to walk home with him and she was not going to do
-that. So she slipped at once behind the maples of the spring, hoping he
-had not seen her and would pass on.
-
-But Norman had seen her and, what was more, was in pursuit of her. He
-had been wanting for some time to have talk with Rosemary, but she had
-always, so it seemed, avoided him. Rosemary had never, at any time,
-liked Norman Douglas very well. His bluster, his temper, his noisy
-hilarity, had always antagonized her. Long ago she had often wondered
-how Ellen could possibly be attracted to him. Norman Douglas was
-perfectly aware of her dislike and he chuckled over it. It never worried
-Norman if people did not like him. It did not even make him dislike them
-in return, for he took it as a kind of extorted compliment. He thought
-Rosemary a fine girl, and he meant to be an excellent, generous
-brother-in-law to her. But before he could be her brother-in-law he had
-to have a talk with her, so, having seen her leaving Ingleside as he
-stood in the doorway of a Glen store, he had straightway plunged into
-the valley to overtake her.
-
-Rosemary was sitting pensively on the maple seat where John Meredith
-had been sitting on that evening nearly a year ago. The tiny spring
-shimmered and dimpled under its fringe of ferns. Ruby-red gleams of
-sunset fell through the arching boughs. A tall clump of perfect asters
-grew at her side. The little spot was as dreamy and witching and evasive
-as any retreat of fairies and dryads in ancient forests. Into it Norman
-Douglas bounced, scattering and annihilating its charm in a moment. His
-personality seemed to swallow the place up. There was simply nothing
-there but Norman Douglas, big, red-bearded, complacent.
-
-"Good evening," said Rosemary coldly, standing up.
-
-"'Evening, girl. Sit down again--sit down again. I want to have a talk
-with you. Bless the girl, what's she looking at me like that for? I
-don't want to eat you--I've had my supper. Sit down and be civil."
-
-"I can hear what you have to say quite as well here," said Rosemary.
-
-"So you can, girl, if you use your ears. I only wanted you to be
-comfortable. You look so durned uncomfortable, standing there. Well,
-I'LL sit anyway."
-
-Norman accordingly sat down in the very place John Meredith had once
-sat. The contrast was so ludicrous that Rosemary was afraid she would
-go off into a peal of hysterical laughter over it. Norman cast his hat
-aside, placed his huge, red hands on his knees, and looked up at her
-with his eyes a-twinkle.
-
-"Come, girl, don't be so stiff," he said, ingratiatingly. When he liked
-he could be very ingratiating. "Let's have a reasonable, sensible,
-friendly chat. There's something I want to ask you. Ellen says she
-won't, so it's up to me to do it."
-
-Rosemary looked down at the spring, which seemed to have shrunk to the
-size of a dewdrop. Norman gazed at her in despair.
-
-"Durn it all, you might help a fellow out a bit," he burst forth.
-
-"What is it you want me to help you say?" asked Rosemary scornfully.
-
-"You know as well as I do, girl. Don't be putting on your tragedy airs.
-No wonder Ellen was scared to ask you. Look here, girl, Ellen and I want
-to marry each other. That's plain English, isn't it? Got that? And Ellen
-says she can't unless you give her back some tom-fool promise she made.
-Come now, will you do it? Will you do it?"
-
-"Yes," said Rosemary.
-
-Norman bounced up and seized her reluctant hand.
-
-"Good! I knew you would--I told Ellen you would. I knew it would only
-take a minute. Now, girl, you go home and tell Ellen, and we'll have a
-wedding in a fortnight and you'll come and live with us. We shan't leave
-you to roost on that hill-top like a lonely crow--don't you worry. I
-know you hate me, but, Lord, it'll be great fun living with some one
-that hates me. Life'll have some spice in it after this. Ellen will
-roast me and you'll freeze me. I won't have a dull moment."
-
-Rosemary did not condescend to tell him that nothing would ever induce
-her to live in his house. She let him go striding back to the Glen,
-oozing delight and complacency, and she walked slowly up the hill
-home. She had known this was coming ever since she had returned from
-Kingsport, and found Norman Douglas established as a frequent evening
-caller. His name was never mentioned between her and Ellen, but the very
-avoidance of it was significant. It was not in Rosemary's nature to
-feel bitter, or she would have felt very bitter. She was coldly civil to
-Norman, and she made no difference in any way with Ellen. But Ellen had
-not found much comfort in her second courtship.
-
-She was in the garden, attended by St. George, when Rosemary came home.
-The two sisters met in the dahlia walk. St. George sat down on the
-gravel walk between them and folded his glossy black tail gracefully
-around his white paws, with all the indifference of a well-fed,
-well-bred, well-groomed cat.
-
-"Did you ever see such dahlias?" demanded Ellen proudly. "They are just
-the finest we've ever had."
-
-Rosemary had never cared for dahlias. Their presence in the garden was
-her concession to Ellen's taste. She noticed one huge mottled one of
-crimson and yellow that lorded it over all the others.
-
-"That dahlia," she said, pointing to it, "is exactly like Norman
-Douglas. It might easily be his twin brother."
-
-Ellen's dark-browed face flushed. She admired the dahlia in question,
-but she knew Rosemary did not, and that no compliment was intended.
-But she dared not resent Rosemary's speech--poor Ellen dared not
-resent anything just then. And it was the first time Rosemary had ever
-mentioned Norman's name to her. She felt that this portended something.
-
-"I met Norman Douglas in the valley," said Rosemary, looking straight at
-her sister, "and he told me you and he wanted to be married--if I would
-give you permission."
-
-"Yes? What did you say?" asked Ellen, trying to speak naturally and
-off-handedly, and failing completely. She could not meet Rosemary's
-eyes. She looked down at St. George's sleek back and felt horribly
-afraid. Rosemary had either said she would or she wouldn't. If she would
-Ellen would feel so ashamed and remorseful that she would be a very
-uncomfortable bride-elect; and if she wouldn't--well, Ellen had once
-learned to live without Norman Douglas, but she had forgotten the lesson
-and felt that she could never learn it again.
-
-"I said that as far as I was concerned you were at full liberty to marry
-each other as soon as you liked," said Rosemary.
-
-"Thank you," said Ellen, still looking at St. George.
-
-Rosemary's face softened.
-
-"I hope you'll be happy, Ellen," she said gently.
-
-"Oh, Rosemary," Ellen looked up in distress, "I'm so ashamed--I don't
-deserve it--after all I said to you--"
-
-"We won't speak about that," said Rosemary hurriedly and decidedly.
-
-"But--but," persisted Ellen, "you are free now, too--and it's not too
-late--John Meredith--"
-
-"Ellen West!" Rosemary had a little spark of temper under all her
-sweetness and it flashed forth now in her blue eyes. "Have you quite
-lost your senses in EVERY respect? Do you suppose for an instant that
-_I_ am going to go to John Meredith and say meekly, 'Please, sir, I've
-changed my mind and please, sir, I hope you haven't changed yours.' Is
-that what you want me to do?"
-
-"No--no--but a little--encouragement--he would come back--"
-
-"Never. He despises me--and rightly. No more of this, Ellen. I bear you
-no grudge--marry whom you like. But no meddling in my affairs."
-
-"Then you must come and live with me," said Ellen. "I shall not leave
-you here alone."
-
-"Do you really think that I would go and live in Norman Douglas's
-house?"
-
-"Why not?" cried Ellen, half angrily, despite her humiliation.
-
-Rosemary began to laugh.
-
-"Ellen, I thought you had a sense of humour. Can you see me doing it?"
-
-"I don't see why you wouldn't. His house is big enough--you'd have your
-share of it to yourself--he wouldn't interfere."
-
-"Ellen, the thing is not to be thought of. Don't bring this up again."
-
-"Then," said Ellen coldly, and determinedly, "I shall not marry him. I
-shall not leave you here alone. That is all there is to be said about
-it."
-
-"Nonsense, Ellen."
-
-"It is not nonsense. It is my firm decision. It would be absurd for you
-to think of living here by yourself--a mile from any other house. If you
-won't come with me I'll stay with you. Now, we won't argue the matter,
-so don't try."
-
-"I shall leave Norman to do the arguing," said Rosemary.
-
-"I'LL deal with Norman. I can manage HIM. I would never have asked
-you to give me back my promise--never--but I had to tell Norman why I
-couldn't marry him and he said HE would ask you. I couldn't prevent him.
-You need not suppose you are the only person in the world who possesses
-self-respect. I never dreamed of marrying and leaving you here alone.
-And you'll find I can be as determined as yourself."
-
-Rosemary turned away and went into the house, with a shrug of her
-shoulders. Ellen looked down at St. George, who had never blinked an
-eyelash or stirred a whisker during the whole interview.
-
-"St. George, this world would be a dull place without the men, I'll
-admit, but I'm almost tempted to wish there wasn't one of 'em in it.
-Look at the trouble and bother they've made right here, George--torn our
-happy old life completely up by the roots, Saint. John Meredith began it
-and Norman Douglas has finished it. And now both of them have to go into
-limbo. Norman is the only man I ever met who agrees with me that
-the Kaiser of Germany is the most dangerous creature alive on this
-earth--and I can't marry this sensible person because my sister is
-stubborn and I'm stubborner. Mark my words, St. George, the minister
-would come back if she raised her little finger. But she won't
-George--she'll never do it--she won't even crook it--and I don't dare
-meddle, Saint. I won't sulk, George; Rosemary didn't sulk, so I'm
-determined I won't either, Saint; Norman will tear up the turf, but the
-long and short of it is, St. George, that all of us old fools must just
-stop thinking of marrying. Well, well, 'despair is a free man, hope is
-a slave,' Saint. So now come into the house, George, and I'll solace you
-with a saucerful of cream. Then there will be one happy and contented
-creature on this hill at least."
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIII. CARL IS--NOT--WHIPPED
-
-"There is something I think I ought to tell you," said Mary Vance
-mysteriously.
-
-She and Faith and Una were walking arm in arm through the village,
-having foregathered at Mr. Flagg's store. Una and Faith exchanged looks
-which said, "NOW something disagreeable is coming." When Mary Vance
-thought she ought to tell them things there was seldom much pleasure in
-the hearing. They often wondered why they kept on liking Mary Vance--for
-like her they did, in spite of everything. To be sure, she was generally
-a stimulating and agreeable companion. If only she would not have those
-convictions that it was her duty to tell them things!
-
-"Do you know that Rosemary West won't marry your pa because she thinks
-you are such a wild lot? She's afraid she couldn't bring you up right
-and so she turned him down."
-
-Una's heart thrilled with secret exultation. She was very glad to
-hear that Miss West would not marry her father. But Faith was rather
-disappointed.
-
-"How do you know?" she asked.
-
-"Oh, everybody's saying it. I heard Mrs. Elliott talking it over with
-Mrs. Doctor. They thought I was too far away to hear, but I've got ears
-like a cat's. Mrs. Elliott said she hadn't a doubt that Rosemary was
-afraid to try stepmothering you because you'd got such a reputation.
-Your pa never goes up the hill now. Neither does Norman Douglas. Folks
-say Ellen has jilted him just to get square with him for jilting her
-ages ago. But Norman is going about declaring he'll get her yet. And
-I think you ought to know you've spoiled your pa's match and _I_ think
-it's a pity, for he's bound to marry somebody before long, and Rosemary
-West would have been the best wife _I_ know of for him."
-
-"You told me all stepmothers were cruel and wicked," said Una.
-
-"Oh--well," said Mary rather confusedly, "they're mostly awful cranky, I
-know. But Rosemary West couldn't be very mean to any one. I tell you if
-your pa turns round and marries Emmeline Drew you'll wish you'd behaved
-yourselves better and not frightened Rosemary out of it. It's awful that
-you've got such a reputation that no decent woman'll marry your pa on
-account of you. Of course, _I_ know that half the yarns that are told
-about you ain't true. But give a dog a bad name. Why, some folks are
-saying that it was Jerry and Carl that threw the stones through Mrs.
-Stimson's window the other night when it was really them two Boyd boys.
-But I'm afraid it was Carl that put the eel in old Mrs. Carr's buggy,
-though I said at first I wouldn't believe it until I'd better proof than
-old Kitty Alec's word. I told Mrs. Elliott so right to her face."
-
-"What did Carl do?" cried Faith.
-
-"Well, they say--now, mind, I'm only telling you what people say--so
-there's no use in your blaming me for it--that Carl and a lot of other
-boys were fishing eels over the bridge one evening last week. Mrs. Carr
-drove past in that old rattletrap buggy of hers with the open back. And
-Carl he just up and threw a big eel into the back. When poor old Mrs.
-Carr was driving up the hill by Ingleside that eel came squirming out
-between her feet. She thought it was a snake and she just give one awful
-screech and stood up and jumped clean over the wheels. The horse bolted,
-but it went home and no damage was done. But Mrs. Carr jarred her legs
-most terrible, and has had nervous spasms ever since whenever she thinks
-of the eel. Say, it was a rotten trick to play on the poor old soul.
-She's a decent body, if she is as queer as Dick's hat band."
-
-Faith and Una looked at each other again. This was a matter for the
-Good-Conduct Club. They would not talk it over with Mary.
-
-"There goes your pa," said Mary as Mr. Meredith passed them, "and never
-seeing us no more'n if we weren't here. Well, I'm getting so's I don't
-mind it. But there are folks who do."
-
-Mr. Meredith had not seen them, but he was not walking along in his
-usual dreamy and abstracted fashion. He strode up the hill in agitation
-and distress. Mrs. Alec Davis had just told him the story of Carl and
-the eel. She had been very indignant about it. Old Mrs. Carr was her
-third cousin. Mr. Meredith was more than indignant. He was hurt and
-shocked. He had not thought Carl would do anything like this. He was not
-inclined to be hard on pranks of heedlessness or forgetfulness, but
-THIS was different. THIS had a nasty tang in it. When he reached home he
-found Carl on the lawn, patiently studying the habits and customs of a
-colony of wasps. Calling him into the study Mr. Meredith confronted him,
-with a sterner face than any of his children had ever seen before, and
-asked him if the story were true.
-
-"Yes," said Carl, flushing, but meeting his father's eyes bravely.
-
-Mr. Meredith groaned. He had hoped that there had been at least
-exaggeration.
-
-"Tell me the whole matter," he said.
-
-"The boys were fishing for eels over the bridge," said Carl. "Link Drew
-had caught a whopper--I mean an awful big one--the biggest eel I ever
-saw. He caught it right at the start and it had been lying in his basket
-a long time, still as still. I thought it was dead, honest I did. Then
-old Mrs. Carr drove over the bridge and she called us all young varmints
-and told us to go home. And we hadn't said a word to her, father, truly.
-So when she drove back again, after going to the store, the boys dared
-me to put Link's eel in her buggy. I thought it was so dead it couldn't
-hurt her and I threw it in. Then the eel came to life on the hill and
-we heard her scream and saw her jump out. I was awful sorry. That's all,
-father."
-
-It was not quite as bad as Mr. Meredith had feared, but it was quite bad
-enough. "I must punish you, Carl," he said sorrowfully.
-
-"Yes, I know, father."
-
-"I--I must whip you."
-
-Carl winced. He had never been whipped. Then, seeing how badly his
-father felt, he said cheerfully,
-
-"All right, father."
-
-Mr. Meredith misunderstood his cheerfulness and thought him insensible.
-He told Carl to come to the study after supper, and when the boy had
-gone out he flung himself into his chair and groaned again. He dreaded
-the evening sevenfold more than Carl did. The poor minister did not even
-know what he should whip his boy with. What was used to whip boys? Rods?
-Canes? No, that would be too brutal. A timber switch, then? And he, John
-Meredith, must hie him to the woods and cut one. It was an abominable
-thought. Then a picture presented itself unbidden to his mind. He saw
-Mrs. Carr's wizened, nut-cracker little face at the appearance of that
-reviving eel--he saw her sailing witch-like over the buggy wheels.
-Before he could prevent himself the minister laughed. Then he was angry
-with himself and angrier still with Carl. He would get that switch at
-once--and it must not be too limber, after all.
-
-Carl was talking the matter over in the graveyard with Faith and Una,
-who had just come home. They were horrified at the idea of his being
-whipped--and by father, who had never done such a thing! But they agreed
-soberly that it was just.
-
-"You know it was a dreadful thing to do," sighed Faith. "And you never
-owned up in the club."
-
-"I forgot," said Carl. "Besides, I didn't think any harm came of it.
-I didn't know she jarred her legs. But I'm to be whipped and that will
-make things square."
-
-"Will it hurt--very much?" said Una, slipping her hand into Carl's.
-
-"Oh, not so much, I guess," said Carl gamely. "Anyhow, I'm not going to
-cry, no matter how much it hurts. It would make father feel so bad, if
-I did. He's all cut up now. I wish I could whip myself hard enough and
-save him doing it."
-
-After supper, at which Carl had eaten little and Mr. Meredith nothing at
-all, both went silently into the study. The switch lay on the table. Mr.
-Meredith had had a bad time getting a switch to suit him. He cut one,
-then felt it was too slender. Carl had done a really indefensible thing.
-Then he cut another--it was far too thick. After all, Carl had thought
-the eel was dead. The third one suited him better; but as he picked it
-up from the table it seemed very thick and heavy--more like a stick than
-a switch.
-
-"Hold out your hand," he said to Carl.
-
-Carl threw back his head and held out his hand unflinchingly. But he was
-not very old and he could not quite keep a little fear out of his eyes.
-Mr. Meredith looked down into those eyes--why, they were Cecilia's
-eyes--her very eyes--and in them was the selfsame expression he had once
-seen in Cecilia's eyes when she had come to him to tell him something
-she had been a little afraid to tell him. Here were her eyes in Carl's
-little, white face--and six weeks ago he had thought, through one
-endless, terrible night, that his little lad was dying.
-
-John Meredith threw down the switch.
-
-"Go," he said, "I cannot whip you."
-
-Carl fled to the graveyard, feeling that the look on his father's face
-was worse than any whipping.
-
-"Is it over so soon?" asked Faith. She and Una had been holding hands
-and setting teeth on the Pollock tombstone.
-
-"He--he didn't whip me at all," said Carl with a sob, "and--I wish he
-had--and he's in there, feeling just awful."
-
-Una slipped away. Her heart yearned to comfort her father. As
-noiselessly as a little gray mouse she opened the study door and crept
-in. The room was dark with twilight. Her father was sitting at his desk.
-His back was towards her--his head was in his hands. He was talking to
-himself--broken, anguished words--but Una heard--heard and understood,
-with the sudden illumination that comes to sensitive, unmothered
-children. As silently as she had come in she slipped out and closed the
-door. John Meredith went on talking out his pain in what he deemed his
-undisturbed solitude.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIV. UNA VISITS THE HILL
-
-Una went upstairs. Carl and Faith were already on their way through the
-early moonlight to Rainbow Valley, having heard therefrom the elfin lilt
-of Jerry's jews-harp and having guessed that the Blythes were there and
-fun afoot. Una had no wish to go. She sought her own room first where
-she sat down on her bed and had a little cry. She did not want anybody
-to come in her dear mother's place. She did not want a stepmother
-who would hate her and make her father hate her. But father was so
-desperately unhappy--and if she could do any anything to make him
-happier she MUST do it. There was only one thing she could do--and she
-had known the moment she had left the study that she must do it. But it
-was a very hard thing to do.
-
-After Una cried her heart out she wiped her eyes and went to the spare
-room. It was dark and rather musty, for the blind had not been drawn
-up nor the window opened for a long time. Aunt Martha was no fresh-air
-fiend. But as nobody ever thought of shutting a door in the manse this
-did not matter so much, save when some unfortunate minister came to stay
-all night and was compelled to breathe the spare room atmosphere.
-
-There was a closet in the spare room and far back in the closet a gray
-silk dress was hanging. Una went into the closet and shut the door, went
-down on her knees and pressed her face against the soft silken folds.
-It had been her mother's wedding-dress. It was still full of a sweet,
-faint, haunting perfume, like lingering love. Una always felt very close
-to her mother there--as if she were kneeling at her feet with head in
-her lap. She went there once in a long while when life was TOO hard.
-
-"Mother," she whispered to the gray silk gown, "_I_ will never forget
-you, mother, and I'll ALWAYS love you best. But I have to do it, mother,
-because father is so very unhappy. I know you wouldn't want him to be
-unhappy. And I will be very good to her, mother, and try to love her,
-even if she is like Mary Vance said stepmothers always were."
-
-Una carried some fine, spiritual strength away from her secret shrine.
-She slept peacefully that night with the tear stains still glistening on
-her sweet, serious, little face.
-
-The next afternoon she put on her best dress and hat. They were shabby
-enough. Every other little girl in the Glen had new clothes that summer
-except Faith and Una. Mary Vance had a lovely dress of white embroidered
-lawn, with scarlet silk sash and shoulder bows. But to-day Una did not
-mind her shabbiness. She only wanted to be very neat. She washed her
-face carefully. She brushed her black hair until it was as smooth as
-satin. She tied her shoelaces carefully, having first sewed up two runs
-in her one pair of good stockings. She would have liked to black her
-shoes, but she could not find any blacking. Finally, she slipped away
-from the manse, down through Rainbow Valley, up through the whispering
-woods, and out to the road that ran past the house on the hill. It was
-quite a long walk and Una was tired and warm when she got there.
-
-She saw Rosemary West sitting under a tree in the garden and stole past
-the dahlia beds to her. Rosemary had a book in her lap, but she was
-gazing afar across the harbour and her thoughts were sorrowful enough.
-Life had not been pleasant lately in the house on the hill. Ellen had
-not sulked--Ellen had been a brick. But things can be felt that
-are never said and at times the silence between the two women was
-intolerably eloquent. All the many familiar things that had once
-made life sweet had a flavour of bitterness now. Norman Douglas made
-periodical irruptions also, bullying and coaxing Ellen by turns. It
-would end, Rosemary believed, by his dragging Ellen off with him some
-day, and Rosemary felt that she would be almost glad when it happened.
-Existence would be horribly lonely then, but it would be no longer
-charged with dynamite.
-
-She was roused from her unpleasant reverie by a timid little touch on
-her shoulder. Turning, she saw Una Meredith.
-
-"Why, Una, dear, did you walk up here in all this heat?"
-
-"Yes," said Una, "I came to--I came to--"
-
-But she found it very hard to say what she had come to do. Her voice
-failed--her eyes filled with tears.
-
-"Why, Una, little girl, what is the trouble? Don't be afraid to tell
-me."
-
-Rosemary put her arm around the thin little form and drew the child
-close to her. Her eyes were very beautiful--her touch so tender that Una
-found courage.
-
-"I came--to ask you--to marry father," she gasped.
-
-Rosemary was silent for a moment from sheer dumbfounderment. She stared
-at Una blankly.
-
-"Oh, don't be angry, please, dear Miss West," said Una, pleadingly. "You
-see, everybody is saying that you wouldn't marry father because we are
-so bad. He is VERY unhappy about it. So I thought I would come and tell
-you that we are never bad ON PURPOSE. And if you will only marry father
-we will all try to be good and do just what you tell us. I'm SURE you
-won't have any trouble with us. PLEASE, Miss West."
-
-Rosemary had been thinking rapidly. Gossiping surmise, she saw, had
-put this mistaken idea into Una's mind. She must be perfectly frank and
-sincere with the child.
-
-"Una, dear," she said softly. "It isn't because of you poor little souls
-that I cannot be your father's wife. I never thought of such a thing.
-You are not bad--I never supposed you were. There--there was another
-reason altogether, Una."
-
-"Don't you like father?" asked Una, lifting reproachful eyes. "Oh,
-Miss West, you don't know how nice he is. I'm sure he'd make you a GOOD
-husband."
-
-Even in the midst of her perplexity and distress Rosemary couldn't help
-a twisted, little smile.
-
-"Oh, don't laugh, Miss West," Una cried passionately. "Father feels
-DREADFUL about it."
-
-"I think you're mistaken, dear," said Rosemary.
-
-"I'm not. I'm SURE I'm not. Oh, Miss West, father was going to whip Carl
-yesterday--Carl had been naughty--and father couldn't do it because you
-see he had no PRACTICE in whipping. So when Carl came out and told us
-father felt so bad, I slipped into the study to see if I could help
-him--he LIKES me to comfort him, Miss West--and he didn't hear me come
-in and I heard what he was saying. I'll tell you, Miss West, if you'll
-let me whisper it in your ear."
-
-Una whispered earnestly. Rosemary's face turned crimson. So John
-Meredith still cared. HE hadn't changed his mind. And he must care
-intensely if he had said that--care more than she had ever supposed he
-did. She sat still for a moment, stroking Una's hair. Then she said,
-
-"Will you take a little letter from me to your father, Una?"
-
-"Oh, are you going to marry him, Miss West?" asked Una eagerly.
-
-"Perhaps--if he really wants me to," said Rosemary, blushing again.
-
-"I'm glad--I'm glad," said Una bravely. Then she looked up, with
-quivering lips. "Oh, Miss West, you won't turn father against us--you
-won't make him hate us, will you?" she said beseechingly.
-
-Rosemary stared again.
-
-"Una Meredith! Do you think I would do such a thing? Whatever put such
-an idea into your head?"
-
-"Mary Vance said stepmothers were all like that--and that they all hated
-their stepchildren and made their father hate them--she said they just
-couldn't help it--just being stepmothers made them like that"--
-
-"You poor child! And yet you came up here and asked me to marry your
-father because you wanted to make him happy? You're a darling--a
-heroine--as Ellen would say, you're a brick. Now listen to me, very
-closely, dearest. Mary Vance is a silly little girl who doesn't know
-very much and she is dreadfully mistaken about some things. I would
-never dream of trying to turn your father against you. I would love
-you all dearly. I don't want to take your own mother's place--she must
-always have that in your hearts. But neither have I any intention of
-being a stepmother. I want to be your friend and helper and CHUM. Don't
-you think that would be nice, Una--if you and Faith and Carl and Jerry
-could just think of me as a good jolly chum--a big older sister?"
-
-"Oh, it would be lovely," cried Una, with a transfigured face. She flung
-her arms impulsively round Rosemary's neck. She was so happy that she
-felt as if she could fly on wings.
-
-"Do the others--do Faith and the boys have the same idea you had about
-stepmothers?"
-
-"No. Faith never believed Mary Vance. I was dreadfully foolish to
-believe her, either. Faith loves you already--she has loved you ever
-since poor Adam was eaten. And Jerry and Carl will think it is jolly.
-Oh, Miss West, when you come to live with us, will you--could you--teach
-me to cook--a little--and sew--and--and--and do things? I don't know
-anything. I won't be much trouble--I'll try to learn fast."
-
-"Darling, I'll teach you and help you all I can. Now, you won't say
-a word to anybody about this, will you--not even to Faith, until your
-father himself tells you you may? And you'll stay and have tea with me?"
-
-"Oh, thank you--but--but--I think I'd rather go right back and take
-the letter to father," faltered Una. "You see, he'll be glad that much
-SOONER, Miss West."
-
-"I see," said Rosemary. She went to the house, wrote a note and gave
-it to Una. When that small damsel had run off, a palpitating bundle of
-happiness, Rosemary went to Ellen, who was shelling peas on the back
-porch.
-
-"Ellen," she said, "Una Meredith has just been here to ask me to marry
-her father."
-
-Ellen looked up and read her sister's face.
-
-"And you're going to?" she said.
-
-"It's quite likely."
-
-Ellen went on shelling peas for a few minutes. Then she suddenly put her
-hands up to her own face. There were tears in her black-browed eyes.
-
-"I--I hope we'll all be happy," she said between a sob and a laugh.
-
-Down at the manse Una Meredith, warm, rosy, triumphant, marched boldly
-into her father's study and laid a letter on the desk before him. His
-pale face flushed as he saw the clear, fine handwriting he knew so well.
-He opened the letter. It was very short--but he shed twenty years as he
-read it. Rosemary asked him if he could meet her that evening at sunset
-by the spring in Rainbow Valley.
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXV. "LET THE PIPER COME"
-
-"And so," said Miss Cornelia, "the double wedding is to be sometime
-about the middle of this month."
-
-There was a faint chill in the air of the early September evening, so
-Anne had lighted her ever ready fire of driftwood in the big living
-room, and she and Miss Cornelia basked in its fairy flicker.
-
-"It is so delightful--especially in regard to Mr. Meredith and
-Rosemary," said Anne. "I'm as happy in the thought of it, as I was when
-I was getting married myself. I felt exactly like a bride again last
-evening when I was up on the hill seeing Rosemary's trousseau."
-
-"They tell me her things are fine enough for a princess," said Susan
-from a shadowy corner where she was cuddling her brown boy. "I have
-been invited up to see them also and I intend to go some evening. I
-understand that Rosemary is to wear white silk and a veil, but Ellen is
-to be married in navy blue. I have no doubt, Mrs. Dr. dear, that that is
-very sensible of her, but for my own part I have always felt that if I
-were ever married _I_ would prefer the white and the veil, as being more
-bride-like."
-
-A vision of Susan in "white and a veil" presented itself before Anne's
-inner vision and was almost too much for her.
-
-"As for Mr. Meredith," said Miss Cornelia, "even his engagement has
-made a different man of him. He isn't half so dreamy and absent-minded,
-believe me. I was so relieved when I heard that he had decided to close
-the manse and let the children visit round while he was away on his
-honeymoon. If he had left them and old Aunt Martha there alone for a
-month I should have expected to wake every morning and see the place
-burned down."
-
-"Aunt Martha and Jerry are coming here," said Anne. "Carl is going to
-Elder Clow's. I haven't heard where the girls are going."
-
-"Oh, I'm going to take them," said Miss Cornelia. "Of course, I was glad
-to, but Mary would have given me no peace till I asked them any way. The
-Ladies' Aid is going to clean the manse from top to bottom before the
-bride and groom come back, and Norman Douglas has arranged to fill the
-cellar with vegetables. Nobody ever saw or heard anything quite like
-Norman Douglas these days, believe ME. He's so tickled that he's
-going to marry Ellen West after wanting her all his life. If _I_ was
-Ellen--but then, I'm not, and if she is satisfied I can very well be. I
-heard her say years ago when she was a schoolgirl that she didn't want
-a tame puppy for a husband. There's nothing tame about Norman, believe
-ME."
-
-The sun was setting over Rainbow Valley. The pond was wearing a
-wonderful tissue of purple and gold and green and crimson. A faint blue
-haze rested on the eastern hill, over which a great, pale, round moon
-was just floating up like a silver bubble.
-
-They were all there, squatted in the little open glade--Faith and Una,
-Jerry and Carl, Jem and Walter, Nan and Di, and Mary Vance. They had
-been having a special celebration, for it would be Jem's last evening in
-Rainbow Valley. On the morrow he would leave for Charlottetown to attend
-Queen's Academy. Their charmed circle would be broken; and, in spite
-of the jollity of their little festival, there was a hint of sorrow in
-every gay young heart.
-
-"See--there is a great golden palace over there in the sunset," said
-Walter, pointing. "Look at the shining tower--and the crimson banners
-streaming from them. Perhaps a conqueror is riding home from battle--and
-they are hanging them out to do honour to him."
-
-"Oh, I wish we had the old days back again," exclaimed Jem. "I'd love to
-be a soldier--a great, triumphant general. I'd give EVERYTHING to see a
-big battle."
-
-Well, Jem was to be a soldier and see a greater battle than had ever
-been fought in the world; but that was as yet far in the future; and the
-mother, whose first-born son he was, was wont to look on her boys and
-thank God that the "brave days of old," which Jem longed for, were gone
-for ever, and that never would it be necessary for the sons of Canada to
-ride forth to battle "for the ashes of their fathers and the temples of
-their gods."
-
-The shadow of the Great Conflict had not yet made felt any forerunner of
-its chill. The lads who were to fight, and perhaps fall, on the fields
-of France and Flanders, Gallipoli and Palestine, were still roguish
-schoolboys with a fair life in prospect before them: the girls whose
-hearts were to be wrung were yet fair little maidens a-star with hopes
-and dreams.
-
-Slowly the banners of the sunset city gave up their crimson and gold;
-slowly the conqueror's pageant faded out. Twilight crept over the valley
-and the little group grew silent. Walter had been reading again that day
-in his beloved book of myths and he remembered how he had once fancied
-the Pied Piper coming down the valley on an evening just like this.
-
-He began to speak dreamily, partly because he wanted to thrill his
-companions a little, partly because something apart from him seemed to
-be speaking through his lips.
-
-"The Piper is coming nearer," he said, "he is nearer than he was that
-evening I saw him before. His long, shadowy cloak is blowing around
-him. He pipes--he pipes--and we must follow--Jem and Carl and Jerry and
-I--round and round the world. Listen--listen--can't you hear his wild
-music?"
-
-The girls shivered.
-
-"You know you're only pretending," protested Mary Vance, "and I wish you
-wouldn't. You make it too real. I hate that old Piper of yours."
-
-But Jem sprang up with a gay laugh. He stood up on a little hillock,
-tall and splendid, with his open brow and his fearless eyes. There were
-thousands like him all over the land of the maple.
-
-"Let the Piper come and welcome," he cried, waving his hand. "I'LL
-follow him gladly round and round the world."
-
-THE END
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Rainbow Valley, by Lucy Maud Montgomery
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RAINBOW VALLEY ***
-
-***** This file should be named 5343.txt or 5343.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/3/4/5343/
-
-Produced by Bernard J. Farber, Carmen Baxter, Dona Rucci,
-Elizabeth Morton, Rebekah Neely, Joe Johnson, Joan Chovan,
-Judith Fetterolf, Mary Nuzzo, Sally Drake, Sally Starks,
-Steve Callis, Virginia Mohlere-Dellinger, Mary Mark
-Ockerbloom and Ben Crowder
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
-will be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
-one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
-(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
-permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
-set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
-copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
-protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
-Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
-charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
-do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
-rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
-such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
-research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
-practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
-subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
-redistribution.
-
-
-
-*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
- www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
-all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
-If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
-or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
-collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
-copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
-works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
-are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
-Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
-freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
-this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
-the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
-keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
-access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
-whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
-copied or distributed:
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
-from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
-posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
-and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
-or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
-with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
-work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
-through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
-Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
-1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
-terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
-to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
-permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
-you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
-copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
-request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
-form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
-that
-
-- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
-
-- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
-forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
-both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
-Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
-Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
-collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
-"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
-property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
-computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
-your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
-To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
-and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
-permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
-Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809
-North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email
-contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the
-Foundation's web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
-SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
-particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
-To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
-unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
-keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
- www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/old-2025-06-17/5343-0.txt b/old/old-2025-06-17/5343-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index e2d49d4..0000000
--- a/old/old-2025-06-17/5343-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,9409 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of Rainbow Valley, by Lucy Maud Montgomery
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: Rainbow Valley
-
-Author: Lucy Maud Montgomery
-
-Release Date: July 3, 2002 [eBook #5343]
-[Most recently updated: May 5, 2021]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-Produced by: Bernard J. Farber, Carmen Baxter, Dona Rucci, Elizabeth
-Morton, Rebekah Neely, Joe Johnson, Joan Chovan, Judith Fetterolf,
-Mary Nuzzo, Sally Drake, Sally Starks, Steve Callis, Virginia
-Mohlere-Dellinger, Mary Mark Ockerbloom, Ben Crowder and David Widger
-
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RAINBOW VALLEY ***
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-Rainbow Valley
-
-by Lucy Maud Montgomery
-
-Author of “Anne of Green Gables,” “Anne of the
-Island,”
-
-“Anne’s House of Dreams,” “The Story Girl,”
-“The Watchman,” etc.
-
-“The thoughts of youth are long, long thoughts.”
-—LONGFELLOW
-
-TO THE MEMORY OF
-
-GOLDWIN LAPP, ROBERT BROOKES AND MORLEY SHIER
-
-WHO MADE THE SUPREME SACRIFICE THAT THE HAPPY VALLEYS OF THEIR HOME
-LAND MIGHT BE KEPT SACRED FROM THE RAVAGE OF THE INVADER
-
-
-Contents
-
- I. HOME AGAIN
- II. SHEER GOSSIP
- III. THE INGLESIDE CHILDREN
- IV. THE MANSE CHILDREN
- V. THE ADVENT OF MARY VANCE
- VI. MARY STAYS AT THE MANSE
- VII. A FISHY EPISODE
- VIII. MISS CORNELIA INTERVENES
- IX. UNA INTERVENES
- X. THE MANSE GIRLS CLEAN HOUSE
- XI. A DREADFUL DISCOVERY
- XII. AN EXPLANATION AND A DARE
- XIII. THE HOUSE ON THE HILL
- XIV. MRS. ALEC DAVIS MAKES A CALL
- XV. MORE GOSSIP
- XVI. TIT FOR TAT
- XVII. A DOUBLE VICTORY
- XVIII. MARY BRINGS EVIL TIDINGS
- XIX. POOR ADAM!
- XX. FAITH MAKES A FRIEND
- XXI. THE IMPOSSIBLE WORD
- XXII. ST. GEORGE KNOWS ALL ABOUT IT
- XXIII. THE GOOD-CONDUCT CLUB
- XXIV. A CHARITABLE IMPULSE
- XXV. ANOTHER SCANDAL AND ANOTHER “EXPLANATION”
- XXVI. MISS CORNELIA GETS A NEW POINT OF VIEW
- XXVII. A SACRED CONCERT
- XXVIII. A FAST DAY
- XXIX. A WEIRD TALE
- XXX. THE GHOST ON THE DYKE
- XXXI. CARL DOES PENANCE
- XXXII. TWO STUBBORN PEOPLE
- XXXIII. CARL IS—NOT—WHIPPED
- XXXIV. UNA VISITS THE HILL
- XXXV. “LET THE PIPER COME”
-
-
-
-
-RAINBOW VALLEY
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I.
-HOME AGAIN
-
-
-It was a clear, apple-green evening in May, and Four Winds Harbour was
-mirroring back the clouds of the golden west between its softly dark
-shores. The sea moaned eerily on the sand-bar, sorrowful even in
-spring, but a sly, jovial wind came piping down the red harbour road
-along which Miss Cornelia’s comfortable, matronly figure was making its
-way towards the village of Glen St. Mary. Miss Cornelia was rightfully
-Mrs. Marshall Elliott, and had been Mrs. Marshall Elliott for thirteen
-years, but even yet more people referred to her as Miss Cornelia than
-as Mrs. Elliott. The old name was dear to her old friends, only one of
-them contemptuously dropped it. Susan Baker, the gray and grim and
-faithful handmaiden of the Blythe family at Ingleside, never lost an
-opportunity of calling her “Mrs. Marshall Elliott,” with the most
-killing and pointed emphasis, as if to say “You wanted to be Mrs. and
-Mrs. you shall be with a vengeance as far as I am concerned.”
-
-Miss Cornelia was going up to Ingleside to see Dr. and Mrs. Blythe, who
-were just home from Europe. They had been away for three months, having
-left in February to attend a famous medical congress in London; and
-certain things, which Miss Cornelia was anxious to discuss, had taken
-place in the Glen during their absence. For one thing, there was a new
-family in the manse. And such a family! Miss Cornelia shook her head
-over them several times as she walked briskly along.
-
-Susan Baker and the Anne Shirley of other days saw her coming, as they
-sat on the big veranda at Ingleside, enjoying the charm of the cat’s
-light, the sweetness of sleepy robins whistling among the twilit
-maples, and the dance of a gusty group of daffodils blowing against the
-old, mellow, red brick wall of the lawn.
-
-Anne was sitting on the steps, her hands clasped over her knee,
-looking, in the kind dusk, as girlish as a mother of many has any right
-to be; and the beautiful gray-green eyes, gazing down the harbour road,
-were as full of unquenchable sparkle and dream as ever. Behind her, in
-the hammock, Rilla Blythe was curled up, a fat, roly-poly little
-creature of six years, the youngest of the Ingleside children. She had
-curly red hair and hazel eyes that were now buttoned up after the
-funny, wrinkled fashion in which Rilla always went to sleep.
-
-Shirley, “the little brown boy,” as he was known in the family “Who’s
-Who,” was asleep in Susan’s arms. He was brown-haired, brown-eyed and
-brown-skinned, with very rosy cheeks, and he was Susan’s especial love.
-After his birth Anne had been very ill for a long time, and Susan
-“mothered” the baby with a passionate tenderness which none of the
-other children, dear as they were to her, had ever called out. Dr.
-Blythe had said that but for her he would never have lived.
-
-“I gave him life just as much as you did, Mrs. Dr. dear,” Susan was
-wont to say. “He is just as much my baby as he is yours.” And, indeed,
-it was always to Susan that Shirley ran, to be kissed for bumps, and
-rocked to sleep, and protected from well-deserved spankings. Susan had
-conscientiously spanked all the other Blythe children when she thought
-they needed it for their souls’ good, but she would not spank Shirley
-nor allow his mother to do it. Once, Dr. Blythe had spanked him and
-Susan had been stormily indignant.
-
-“That man would spank an angel, Mrs. Dr. dear, that he would,” she had
-declared bitterly; and she would not make the poor doctor a pie for
-weeks.
-
-She had taken Shirley with her to her brother’s home during his
-parents’ absence, while all the other children had gone to Avonlea, and
-she had three blessed months of him all to herself. Nevertheless, Susan
-was very glad to find herself back at Ingleside, with all her darlings
-around her again. Ingleside was her world and in it she reigned
-supreme. Even Anne seldom questioned her decisions, much to the disgust
-of Mrs. Rachel Lynde of Green Gables, who gloomily told Anne, whenever
-she visited Four Winds, that she was letting Susan get to be entirely
-too much of a boss and would live to rue it.
-
-“Here is Cornelia Bryant coming up the harbour road, Mrs. Dr. dear,”
-said Susan. “She will be coming up to unload three months’ gossip on
-us.”
-
-“I hope so,” said Anne, hugging her knees. “I’m starving for Glen St.
-Mary gossip, Susan. I hope Miss Cornelia can tell me everything that
-has happened while we’ve been away—_everything_—who has got born, or
-married, or drunk; who has died, or gone away, or come, or fought, or
-lost a cow, or found a beau. It’s so delightful to be home again with
-all the dear Glen folks, and I want to know all about them. Why, I
-remember wondering, as I walked through Westminster Abbey which of her
-two especial beaux Millicent Drew would finally marry. Do you know,
-Susan, I have a dreadful suspicion that I love gossip.”
-
-“Well, of course, Mrs. Dr. dear,” admitted Susan, “every proper woman
-likes to hear the news. I am rather interested in Millicent Drew’s case
-myself. I never had a beau, much less two, and I do not mind now, for
-being an old maid does not hurt when you get used to it. Millicent’s
-hair always looks to me as if she had swept it up with a broom. But the
-men do not seem to mind that.”
-
-“They see only her pretty, piquant, mocking, little face, Susan.”
-
-“That may very well be, Mrs. Dr. dear. The Good Book says that favour
-is deceitful and beauty is vain, but I should not have minded finding
-that out for myself, if it had been so ordained. I have no doubt we
-will all be beautiful when we are angels, but what good will it do us
-then? Speaking of gossip, however, they do say that poor Mrs. Harrison
-Miller over harbour tried to hang herself last week.”
-
-“Oh, Susan!”
-
-“Calm yourself, Mrs. Dr. dear. She did not succeed. But I really do not
-blame her for trying, for her husband is a terrible man. But she was
-very foolish to think of hanging herself and leaving the way clear for
-him to marry some other woman. If I had been in her shoes, Mrs. Dr.
-dear, I would have gone to work to worry him so that he would try to
-hang himself instead of me. Not that I hold with people hanging
-themselves under any circumstances, Mrs. Dr. dear.”
-
-“What is the matter with Harrison Miller, anyway?” said Anne
-impatiently. “He is always driving some one to extremes.”
-
-“Well, some people call it religion and some call it cussedness,
-begging your pardon, Mrs. Dr. dear, for using such a word. It seems
-they cannot make out which it is in Harrison’s case. There are days
-when he growls at everybody because he thinks he is fore-ordained to
-eternal punishment. And then there are days when he says he does not
-care and goes and gets drunk. My own opinion is that he is not sound in
-his intellect, for none of that branch of the Millers were. His
-grandfather went out of his mind. He thought he was surrounded by big
-black spiders. They crawled over him and floated in the air about him.
-I hope I shall never go insane, Mrs. Dr. dear, and I do not think I
-will, because it is not a habit of the Bakers. But, if an all-wise
-Providence should decree it, I hope it will not take the form of big
-black spiders, for I loathe the animals. As for Mrs. Miller, I do not
-know whether she really deserves pity or not. There are some who say
-she just married Harrison to spite Richard Taylor, which seems to me a
-very peculiar reason for getting married. But then, of course, _I_ am
-no judge of things matrimonial, Mrs. Dr. dear. And there is Cornelia
-Bryant at the gate, so I will put this blessed brown baby on his bed
-and get my knitting.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II.
-SHEER GOSSIP
-
-
-“Where are the other children?” asked Miss Cornelia, when the first
-greetings—cordial on her side, rapturous on Anne’s, and dignified on
-Susan’s—were over.
-
-“Shirley is in bed and Jem and Walter and the twins are down in their
-beloved Rainbow Valley,” said Anne. “They just came home this
-afternoon, you know, and they could hardly wait until supper was over
-before rushing down to the valley. They love it above every spot on
-earth. Even the maple grove doesn’t rival it in their affections.”
-
-“I am afraid they love it too well,” said Susan gloomily. “Little Jem
-said once he would rather go to Rainbow Valley than to heaven when he
-died, and that was not a proper remark.”
-
-“I suppose they had a great time in Avonlea?” said Miss Cornelia.
-
-“Enormous. Marilla does spoil them terribly. Jem, in particular, can do
-no wrong in her eyes.”
-
-“Miss Cuthbert must be an old lady now,” said Miss Cornelia, getting
-out her knitting, so that she could hold her own with Susan. Miss
-Cornelia held that the woman whose hands were employed always had the
-advantage over the woman whose hands were not.
-
-“Marilla is eighty-five,” said Anne with a sigh. “Her hair is
-snow-white. But, strange to say, her eyesight is better than it was
-when she was sixty.”
-
-“Well, dearie, I’m real glad you’re all back. I’ve been dreadful
-lonesome. But we haven’t been dull in the Glen, believe _me_. There
-hasn’t been such an exciting spring in my time, as far as church
-matters go. We’ve got settled with a minister at last, Anne dearie.”
-
-“The Reverend John Knox Meredith, Mrs. Dr. dear,” said Susan, resolved
-not to let Miss Cornelia tell all the news.
-
-“Is he nice?” asked Anne interestedly.
-
-Miss Cornelia sighed and Susan groaned.
-
-“Yes, he’s nice enough if that were all,” said the former. “He is
-_very_ nice—and very learned—and very spiritual. But, oh Anne dearie,
-he has no common sense!
-
-“How was it you called him, then?”
-
-“Well, there’s no doubt he is by far the best preacher we ever had in
-Glen St. Mary church,” said Miss Cornelia, veering a tack or two. “I
-suppose it is because he is so moony and absent-minded that he never
-got a town call. His trial sermon was simply wonderful, believe _me_.
-Every one went mad about it—and his looks.”
-
-“He is _very_ comely, Mrs. Dr. dear, and when all is said and done, I
-_do_ like to see a well-looking man in the pulpit,” broke in Susan,
-thinking it was time she asserted herself again.
-
-“Besides,” said Miss Cornelia, “we were anxious to get settled. And Mr.
-Meredith was the first candidate we were all agreed on. Somebody had
-some objection to all the others. There was some talk of calling Mr.
-Folsom. He was a good preacher, too, but somehow people didn’t care for
-his appearance. He was too dark and sleek.”
-
-“He looked exactly like a great black tomcat, that he did, Mrs. Dr.
-dear,” said Susan. “I never could abide such a man in the pulpit every
-Sunday.”
-
-“Then Mr. Rogers came and he was like a chip in porridge—neither harm
-nor good,” resumed Miss Cornelia. “But if he had preached like Peter
-and Paul it would have profited him nothing, for that was the day old
-Caleb Ramsay’s sheep strayed into church and gave a loud ‘ba-a-a’ just
-as he announced his text. Everybody laughed, and poor Rogers had no
-chance after that. Some thought we ought to call Mr. Stewart, because
-he was so well educated. He could read the New Testament in five
-languages.”
-
-“But I do not think he was any surer than other men of getting to
-heaven because of that,” interjected Susan.
-
-“Most of us didn’t like his delivery,” said Miss Cornelia, ignoring
-Susan. “He talked in grunts, so to speak. And Mr. Arnett couldn’t
-preach _at all_. And he picked about the worst candidating text there
-is in the Bible—‘Curse ye Meroz.’”
-
-“Whenever he got stuck for an idea, he would bang the Bible and shout
-very bitterly, ‘Curse ye Meroz.’ Poor Meroz got thoroughly cursed that
-day, whoever he was, Mrs. Dr. dear,” said Susan.
-
-“The minister who is candidating can’t be too careful what text he
-chooses,” said Miss Cornelia solemnly. “I believe Mr. Pierson would
-have got the call if he had picked a different text. But when he
-announced ‘I will lift my eyes to the hills’ _he_ was done for. Every
-one grinned, for every one knew that those two Hill girls from the
-Harbour Head have been setting their caps for every single minister who
-came to the Glen for the last fifteen years. And Mr. Newman had too
-large a family.”
-
-“He stayed with my brother-in-law, James Clow,” said Susan. “‘How many
-children have you got?’ I asked him. ‘Nine boys and a sister for each
-of them,’ he said. ‘Eighteen!’ said I. ‘Dear me, what a family!’ And
-then he laughed and laughed. But I do not know why, Mrs. Dr. dear, and
-I am certain that eighteen children would be too many for any manse.”
-
-“He had only ten children, Susan,” explained Miss Cornelia, with
-contemptuous patience. “And ten good children would not be much worse
-for the manse and congregation than the four who are there now. Though
-I wouldn’t say, Anne dearie, that they are so bad, either. I like
-them—everybody likes them. It’s impossible to help liking them. They
-would be real nice little souls if there was anyone to look after their
-manners and teach them what is right and proper. For instance, at
-school the teacher says they are model children. But at home they
-simply run wild.”
-
-“What about Mrs. Meredith?” asked Anne.
-
-“There’s _no_ Mrs. Meredith. That is just the trouble. Mr. Meredith is
-a widower. His wife died four years ago. If we had known that I don’t
-suppose we would have called him, for a widower is even worse in a
-congregation than a single man. But he was heard to speak of his
-children and we all supposed there was a mother, too. And when they
-came there was nobody but old Aunt Martha, as they call her. She’s a
-cousin of Mr. Meredith’s mother, I believe, and he took her in to save
-her from the poorhouse. She is seventy-five years old, half blind, and
-very deaf and very cranky.”
-
-“And a very poor cook, Mrs. Dr. dear.”
-
-“The worst possible manager for a manse,” said Miss Cornelia bitterly.
-“Mr. Meredith won’t get any other housekeeper because he says it would
-hurt Aunt Martha’s feelings. Anne dearie, believe me, the state of that
-manse is something terrible. Everything is thick with dust and nothing
-is ever in its place. And we had painted and papered it all so nice
-before they came.”
-
-“There are four children, you say?” asked Anne, beginning to mother
-them already in her heart.
-
-“Yes. They run up just like the steps of a stair. Gerald’s the oldest.
-He’s twelve and they call him Jerry. He’s a clever boy. Faith is
-eleven. She is a regular tomboy but pretty as a picture, I must say.”
-
-“She looks like an angel but she is a holy terror for mischief, Mrs.
-Dr. dear,” said Susan solemnly. “I was at the manse one night last week
-and Mrs. James Millison was there, too. She had brought them up a dozen
-eggs and a little pail of milk—a _very_ little pail, Mrs. Dr. dear.
-Faith took them and whisked down the cellar with them. Near the bottom
-of the stairs she caught her toe and fell the rest of the way, milk and
-eggs and all. You can imagine the result, Mrs. Dr. dear. But that child
-came up laughing. ‘I don’t know whether I’m myself or a custard pie,’
-she said. And Mrs. James Millison was very angry. She said she would
-never take another thing to the manse if it was to be wasted and
-destroyed in that fashion.”
-
-“Maria Millison never hurt herself taking things to the manse,” sniffed
-Miss Cornelia. “She just took them that night as an excuse for
-curiosity. But poor Faith is always getting into scrapes. She is so
-heedless and impulsive.”
-
-“Just like me. I’m going to like your Faith,” said Anne decidedly.
-
-“She is full of spunk—and I do like spunk, Mrs. Dr. dear,” admitted
-Susan.
-
-“There’s something taking about her,” conceded Miss Cornelia. “You
-never see her but she’s laughing, and somehow it always makes you want
-to laugh too. She can’t even keep a straight face in church. Una is
-ten—she’s a sweet little thing—not pretty, but sweet. And Thomas
-Carlyle is nine. They call him Carl, and he has a regular mania for
-collecting toads and bugs and frogs and bringing them into the house.”
-
-“I suppose he was responsible for the dead rat that was lying on a
-chair in the parlour the afternoon Mrs. Grant called. It gave her a
-turn,” said Susan, “and I do not wonder, for manse parlours are no
-places for dead rats. To be sure it may have been the cat who left it,
-there. _He_ is as full of the old Nick as he can be stuffed, Mrs. Dr.
-dear. A manse cat should at least _look_ respectable, in my opinion,
-whatever he really is. But I never saw such a rakish-looking beast. And
-he walks along the ridgepole of the manse almost every evening at
-sunset, Mrs. Dr. dear, and waves his tail, and that is not becoming.”
-
-“The worst of it is, they are _never_ decently dressed,” sighed Miss
-Cornelia. “And since the snow went they go to school barefooted. Now,
-you know Anne dearie, that isn’t the right thing for manse
-children—especially when the Methodist minister’s little girl always
-wears such nice buttoned boots. And I _do_ wish they wouldn’t play in
-the old Methodist graveyard.”
-
-“It’s very tempting, when it’s right beside the manse,” said Anne.
-“I’ve always thought graveyards must be delightful places to play in.”
-
-“Oh, no, you did not, Mrs. Dr. dear,” said loyal Susan, determined to
-protect Anne from herself. “You have too much good sense and decorum.”
-
-“Why did they ever build that manse beside the graveyard in the first
-place?” asked Anne. “Their lawn is so small there is no place for them
-to play except in the graveyard.”
-
-“It _was_ a mistake,” admitted Miss Cornelia. “But they got the lot
-cheap. And no other manse children ever thought of playing there. Mr.
-Meredith shouldn’t allow it. But he has always got his nose buried in a
-book, when he is home. He reads and reads, or walks about in his study
-in a day-dream. So far he hasn’t forgotten to be in church on Sundays,
-but twice he has forgotten about the prayer-meeting and one of the
-elders had to go over to the manse and remind him. And he forgot about
-Fanny Cooper’s wedding. They rang him up on the ‘phone and then he
-rushed right over, just as he was, carpet slippers and all. One
-wouldn’t mind if the Methodists didn’t laugh so about it. But there’s
-one comfort—they can’t criticize his sermons. He wakes up when he’s in
-the pulpit, believe _me_. And the Methodist minister can’t preach at
-all—so they tell me. _I_ have never heard him, thank goodness.”
-
-Miss Cornelia’s scorn of men had abated somewhat since her marriage,
-but her scorn of Methodists remained untinged of charity. Susan smiled
-slyly.
-
-“They do say, Mrs. Marshall Elliott, that the Methodists and
-Presbyterians are talking of uniting,” she said.
-
-“Well, all I hope is that I’ll be under the sod if that ever comes to
-pass,” retorted Miss Cornelia. “I shall never have truck or trade with
-Methodists, and Mr. Meredith will find that he’d better steer clear of
-them, too. He is entirely too sociable with them, believe _me_. Why, he
-went to the Jacob Drews’ silver-wedding supper and got into a nice
-scrape as a result.”
-
-“What was it?”
-
-“Mrs. Drew asked him to carve the roast goose—for Jacob Drew never did
-or could carve. Well, Mr. Meredith tackled it, and in the process he
-knocked it clean off the platter into Mrs. Reese’s lap, who was sitting
-next him. And he just said dreamily. ‘Mrs. Reese, will you kindly
-return me that goose?’ Mrs. Reese ‘returned’ it, as meek as Moses, but
-she must have been furious, for she had on her new silk dress. The
-worst of it is, she was a Methodist.”
-
-“But I think that is better than if she was a Presbyterian,”
-interjected Susan. “If she had been a Presbyterian she would mostly
-likely have left the church and we cannot afford to lose our members.
-And Mrs. Reese is not liked in her own church, because she gives
-herself such great airs, so that the Methodists would be rather pleased
-that Mr. Meredith spoiled her dress.”
-
-“The point is, he made himself ridiculous, and _I_, for one, do not
-like to see my minister made ridiculous in the eyes of the Methodists,”
-said Miss Cornelia stiffly. “If he had had a wife it would not have
-happened.”
-
-“I do not see if he had a dozen wives how they could have prevented
-Mrs. Drew from using up her tough old gander for the wedding-feast,”
-said Susan stubbornly.
-
-“They say that was her husband’s doing,” said Miss Cornelia. “Jacob
-Drew is a conceited, stingy, domineering creature.”
-
-“And they do say he and his wife detest each other—which does not seem
-to me the proper way for married folks to get along. But then, of
-course, I have had no experience along that line,” said Susan, tossing
-her head. “And _I_ am not one to blame everything on the men. Mrs. Drew
-is mean enough herself. They say that the only thing she was ever known
-to give away was a crock of butter made out of cream a rat had fell
-into. She contributed it to a church social. Nobody found out about the
-rat until afterwards.”
-
-“Fortunately, all the people the Merediths have offended so far are
-Methodists,” said Miss Cornelia. “That Jerry went to the Methodist
-prayer-meeting one night about a fortnight ago and sat beside old
-William Marsh who got up as usual and testified with fearful groans.
-‘Do you feel any better now?’ whispered Jerry when William sat down.
-Poor Jerry meant to be sympathetic, but Mr. Marsh thought he was
-impertinent and is furious at him. Of course, Jerry had no business to
-be in a Methodist prayer-meeting at all. But they go where they like.”
-
-“I hope they will not offend Mrs. Alec Davis of the Harbour Head,” said
-Susan. “She is a very touchy woman, I understand, but she is very well
-off and pays the most of any one to the salary. I have heard that she
-says the Merediths are the worst brought up children she ever saw.”
-
-“Every word you say convinces me more and more that the Merediths
-belong to the race that knows Joseph,” said Mistress Anne decidedly.
-
-“When all is said and done, they _do_,” admitted Miss Cornelia. “And
-that balances everything. Anyway, we’ve got them now and we must just
-do the best we can by them and stick up for them to the Methodists.
-Well, I suppose I must be getting down harbour. Marshall will soon be
-home—he went over-harbour to-day—and wanting his super, man-like. I’m
-sorry I haven’t seen the other children. And where’s the doctor?”
-
-“Up at the Harbour Head. We’ve only been home three days and in that
-time he has spent three hours in his own bed and eaten two meals in his
-own house.”
-
-“Well, everybody who has been sick for the last six weeks has been
-waiting for him to come home—and I don’t blame them. When that
-over-harbour doctor married the undertaker’s daughter at Lowbridge
-people felt suspicious of him. It didn’t look well. You and the doctor
-must come down soon and tell us all about your trip. I suppose you’ve
-had a splendid time.”
-
-“We had,” agreed Anne. “It was the fulfilment of years of dreams. The
-old world is very lovely and very wonderful. But we have come back very
-well satisfied with our own land. Canada is the finest country in the
-world, Miss Cornelia.”
-
-“Nobody ever doubted that,” said Miss Cornelia, complacently.
-
-“And old P.E.I. is the loveliest province in it and Four Winds the
-loveliest spot in P.E.I.,” laughed Anne, looking adoringly out over the
-sunset splendour of glen and harbour and gulf. She waved her hand at
-it. “I saw nothing more beautiful than that in Europe, Miss Cornelia.
-Must you go? The children will be sorry to have missed you.”
-
-“They must come and see me soon. Tell them the doughnut jar is always
-full.”
-
-“Oh, at supper they were planning a descent on you. They’ll go soon;
-but they must settle down to school again now. And the twins are going
-to take music lessons.”
-
-“Not from the Methodist minister’s wife, I hope?” said Miss Cornelia
-anxiously.
-
-“No—from Rosemary West. I was up last evening to arrange it with her.
-What a pretty girl she is!”
-
-“Rosemary holds her own well. She isn’t as young as she once was.”
-
-“I thought her very charming. I’ve never had any real acquaintance with
-her, you know. Their house is so out of the way, and I’ve seldom ever
-seen her except at church.”
-
-“People always have liked Rosemary West, though they don’t understand
-her,” said Miss Cornelia, quite unconscious of the high tribute she was
-paying to Rosemary’s charm. “Ellen has always kept her down, so to
-speak. She has tyrannized over her, and yet she has always indulged her
-in a good many ways. Rosemary was engaged once, you know—to young
-Martin Crawford. His ship was wrecked on the Magdalens and all the crew
-were drowned. Rosemary was just a child—only seventeen. But she was
-never the same afterwards. She and Ellen have stayed very close at home
-since their mother’s death. They don’t often get to their own church at
-Lowbridge and I understand Ellen doesn’t approve of going too often to
-a Presbyterian church. To the Methodist she _never_ goes, I’ll say that
-much for her. That family of Wests have always been strong
-Episcopalians. Rosemary and Ellen are pretty well off. Rosemary doesn’t
-really need to give music lessons. She does it because she likes to.
-They are distantly related to Leslie, you know. Are the Fords coming to
-the harbour this summer?”
-
-“No. They are going on a trip to Japan and will probably be away for a
-year. Owen’s new novel is to have a Japanese setting. This will be the
-first summer that the dear old House of Dreams will be empty since we
-left it.”
-
-“I should think Owen Ford might find enough to write about in Canada
-without dragging his wife and his innocent children off to a heathen
-country like Japan,” grumbled Miss Cornelia. “_The Life Book_ was the
-best book he’s ever written and he got the material for that right here
-in Four Winds.”
-
-“Captain Jim gave him the most of that, you know. And he collected it
-all over the world. But Owen’s books are all delightful, I think.”
-
-“Oh, they’re well enough as far as they go. I make it a point to read
-every one he writes, though I’ve always held, Anne dearie, that reading
-novels is a sinful waste of time. I shall write and tell him my opinion
-of this Japanese business, believe _me_. Does he want Kenneth and
-Persis to be converted into pagans?”
-
-With which unanswerable conundrum Miss Cornelia took her departure.
-Susan proceeded to put Rilla in bed and Anne sat on the veranda steps
-under the early stars and dreamed her incorrigible dreams and learned
-all over again for the hundredth happy time what a moonrise splendour
-and sheen could be on Four Winds Harbour.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III.
-THE INGLESIDE CHILDREN
-
-
-In daytime the Blythe children liked very well to play in the rich,
-soft greens and glooms of the big maple grove between Ingleside and the
-Glen St. Mary pond; but for evening revels there was no place like the
-little valley behind the maple grove. It was a fairy realm of romance
-to them. Once, looking from the attic windows of Ingleside, through the
-mist and aftermath of a summer thunderstorm, they had seen the beloved
-spot arched by a glorious rainbow, one end of which seemed to dip
-straight down to where a corner of the pond ran up into the lower end
-of the valley.
-
-“Let us call it Rainbow Valley,” said Walter delightedly, and Rainbow
-Valley thenceforth it was.
-
-Outside of Rainbow Valley the wind might be rollicking and boisterous.
-Here it always went gently. Little, winding, fairy paths ran here and
-there over spruce roots cushioned with moss. Wild cherry trees, that in
-blossom time would be misty white, were scattered all over the valley,
-mingling with the dark spruces. A little brook with amber waters ran
-through it from the Glen village. The houses of the village were
-comfortably far away; only at the upper end of the valley was a little
-tumble-down, deserted cottage, referred to as “the old Bailey house.”
-It had not been occupied for many years, but a grass-grown dyke
-surrounded it and inside was an ancient garden where the Ingleside
-children could find violets and daisies and June lilies still blooming
-in season. For the rest, the garden was overgrown with caraway that
-swayed and foamed in the moonshine of summer eves like seas of silver.
-
-To the sought lay the pond and beyond it the ripened distance lost
-itself in purple woods, save where, on a high hill, a solitary old gray
-homestead looked down on glen and harbour. There was a certain wild
-woodsiness and solitude about Rainbow Valley, in spite of its nearness
-to the village, which endeared it to the children of Ingleside.
-
-The valley was full of dear, friendly hollows and the largest of these
-was their favourite stamping ground. Here they were assembled on this
-particular evening. There was a grove of young spruces in this hollow,
-with a tiny, grassy glade in its heart, opening on the bank of the
-brook. By the brook grew a silver birch-tree, a young, incredibly
-straight thing which Walter had named the “White Lady.” In this glade,
-too, were the “Tree Lovers,” as Walter called a spruce and maple which
-grew so closely together that their boughs were inextricably
-intertwined. Jem had hung an old string of sleigh-bells, given him by
-the Glen blacksmith, on the Tree Lovers, and every visitant breeze
-called out sudden fairy tinkles from it.
-
-“How nice it is to be back!” said Nan. “After all, none of the Avonlea
-places are quite as nice as Rainbow Valley.”
-
-But they were very fond of the Avonlea places for all that. A visit to
-Green Gables was always considered a great treat. Aunt Marilla was very
-good to them, and so was Mrs. Rachel Lynde, who was spending the
-leisure of her old age in knitting cotton-warp quilts against the day
-when Anne’s daughters should need a “setting-out.” There were jolly
-playmates there, too—“Uncle” Davy’s children and “Aunt” Diana’s
-children. They knew all the spots their mother had loved so well in her
-girlhood at old Green Gables—the long Lover’s Lane, that was
-pink-hedged in wild-rose time, the always neat yard, with its willows
-and poplars, the Dryad’s Bubble, lucent and lovely as of yore, the Lake
-of Shining Waters, and Willowmere. The twins had their mother’s old
-porch-gable room, and Aunt Marilla used to come in at night, when she
-thought they were asleep, to gloat over them. But they all knew she
-loved Jem the best.
-
-Jem was at present busily occupied in frying a mess of small trout
-which he had just caught in the pond. His stove consisted of a circle
-of red stones, with a fire kindled in it, and his culinary utensils
-were an old tin can, hammered out flat, and a fork with only one tine
-left. Nevertheless, ripping good meals had before now been thus
-prepared.
-
-Jem was the child of the House of Dreams. All the others had been born
-at Ingleside. He had curly red hair, like his mother’s, and frank hazel
-eyes, like his father’s; he had his mother’s fine nose and his father’s
-steady, humorous mouth. And he was the only one of the family who had
-ears nice enough to please Susan. But he had a standing feud with Susan
-because she would not give up calling him Little Jem. It was
-outrageous, thought thirteen-year-old Jem. Mother had more sense.
-
-“I’m _not_ little any more, Mother,” he had cried indignantly, on his
-eighth birthday. “I’m _awful_ big.”
-
-Mother had sighed and laughed and sighed again; and she never called
-him Little Jem again—in his hearing at least.
-
-He was and always had been a sturdy, reliable little chap. He never
-broke a promise. He was not a great talker. His teachers did not think
-him brilliant, but he was a good, all-round student. He never took
-things on faith; he always liked to investigate the truth of a
-statement for himself. Once Susan had told him that if he touched his
-tongue to a frosty latch all the skin would tear off it. Jem had
-promptly done it, “just to see if it was so.” He found it was “so,” at
-the cost of a very sore tongue for several days. But Jem did not grudge
-suffering in the interests of science. By constant experiment and
-observation he learned a great deal and his brothers and sisters
-thought his extensive knowledge of their little world quite wonderful.
-Jem always knew where the first and ripest berries grew, where the
-first pale violets shyly wakened from their winter’s sleep, and how
-many blue eggs were in a given robin’s nest in the maple grove. He
-could tell fortunes from daisy petals and suck honey from red clovers,
-and grub up all sorts of edible roots on the banks of the pond, while
-Susan went in daily fear that they would all be poisoned. He knew where
-the finest spruce-gum was to be found, in pale amber knots on the
-lichened bark, he knew where the nuts grew thickest in the beechwoods
-around the Harbour Head, and where the best trouting places up the
-brooks were. He could mimic the call of any wild bird or beast in Four
-Winds and he knew the haunt of every wild flower from spring to autumn.
-
-Walter Blythe was sitting under the White Lady, with a volume of poems
-lying beside him, but he was not reading. He was gazing now at the
-emerald-misted willows by the pond, and now at a flock of clouds, like
-little silver sheep, herded by the wind, that were drifting over
-Rainbow Valley, with rapture in his wide splendid eyes. Walter’s eyes
-were very wonderful. All the joy and sorrow and laughter and loyalty
-and aspiration of many generations lying under the sod looked out of
-their dark gray depths.
-
-Walter was a “hop out of kin,” as far as looks went. He did not
-resemble any known relative. He was quite the handsomest of the
-Ingleside children, with straight black hair and finely modelled
-features. But he had all his mother’s vivid imagination and passionate
-love of beauty. Frost of winter, invitation of spring, dream of summer
-and glamour of autumn, all meant much to Walter.
-
-In school, where Jem was a chieftain, Walter was not thought highly of.
-He was supposed to be “girly” and milk-soppish, because he never fought
-and seldom joined in the school sports, preferring to herd by himself
-in out of the way corners and read books—especially “po’try books.”
-Walter loved the poets and pored over their pages from the time he
-could first read. Their music was woven into his growing soul—the music
-of the immortals. Walter cherished the ambition to be a poet himself
-some day. The thing could be done. A certain Uncle Paul—so called out
-of courtesy—who lived now in that mysterious realm called “the States,”
-was Walter’s model. Uncle Paul had once been a little school boy in
-Avonlea and now his poetry was read everywhere. But the Glen schoolboys
-did not know of Walter’s dreams and would not have been greatly
-impressed if they had. In spite of his lack of physical prowess,
-however, he commanded a certain unwilling respect because of his power
-of “talking book talk.” Nobody in Glen St. Mary school could talk like
-him. He “sounded like a preacher,” one boy said; and for this reason he
-was generally left alone and not persecuted, as most boys were who were
-suspected of disliking or fearing fisticuffs.
-
-The ten year old Ingleside twins violated twin tradition by not looking
-in the least alike. Anne, who was always called Nan, was very pretty,
-with velvety nut-brown eyes and silky nut-brown hair. She was a very
-blithe and dainty little maiden—Blythe by name and blithe by nature,
-one of her teachers had said. Her complexion was quite faultless, much
-to her mother’s satisfaction.
-
-“I’m so glad I have one daughter who can wear pink,” Mrs. Blythe was
-wont to say jubilantly.
-
-Diana Blythe, known as Di, was very like her mother, with gray-green
-eyes that always shone with a peculiar lustre and brilliancy in the
-dusk, and red hair. Perhaps this was why she was her father’s
-favourite. She and Walter were especial chums; Di was the only one to
-whom he would ever read the verses he wrote himself—the only one who
-knew that he was secretly hard at work on an epic, strikingly
-resembling “Marmion” in some things, if not in others. She kept all his
-secrets, even from Nan, and told him all hers.
-
-“Won’t you soon have those fish ready, Jem?” said Nan, sniffing with
-her dainty nose. “The smell makes me awfully hungry.”
-
-“They’re nearly ready,” said Jem, giving one a dexterous turn. “Get out
-the bread and the plates, girls. Walter, wake up.”
-
-“How the air shines to-night,” said Walter dreamily. Not that he
-despised fried trout either, by any means; but with Walter food for the
-soul always took first place. “The flower angel has been walking over
-the world to-day, calling to the flowers. I can see his blue wings on
-that hill by the woods.”
-
-“Any angels’ wings I ever saw were white,” said Nan.
-
-“The flower angel’s aren’t. They are a pale misty blue, just like the
-haze in the valley. Oh, how I wish I could fly. It must be glorious.”
-
-“One does fly in dreams sometimes,” said Di.
-
-“I never dream that I’m flying exactly,” said Walter. “But I often
-dream that I just rise up from the ground and float over the fences and
-the trees. It’s delightful—and I always think, ‘This _isn’t_ a dream
-like it’s always been before. _This_ is real’—and then I wake up after
-all, and it’s heart-breaking.”
-
-“Hurry up, Nan,” ordered Jem.
-
-Nan had produced the banquet-board—a board literally as well as
-figuratively—from which many a feast, seasoned as no viands were
-elsewhere, had been eaten in Rainbow Valley. It was converted into a
-table by propping it on two large, mossy stones. Newspapers served as
-tablecloth, and broken plates and handleless cups from Susan’s discard
-furnished the dishes. From a tin box secreted at the root of a spruce
-tree Nan brought forth bread and salt. The brook gave Adam’s ale of
-unsurpassed crystal. For the rest, there was a certain sauce,
-compounded of fresh air and appetite of youth, which gave to everything
-a divine flavour. To sit in Rainbow Valley, steeped in a twilight half
-gold, half amethyst, rife with the odours of balsam-fir and woodsy
-growing things in their springtime prime, with the pale stars of wild
-strawberry blossoms all around you, and with the sough of the wind and
-tinkle of bells in the shaking tree tops, and eat fried trout and dry
-bread, was something which the mighty of earth might have envied them.
-
-“Sit in,” invited Nan, as Jem placed his sizzling tin platter of trout
-on the table. “It’s your turn to say grace, Jem.”
-
-“I’ve done my part frying the trout,” protested Jem, who hated saying
-grace. “Let Walter say it. He _likes_ saying grace. And cut it short,
-too, Walt. I’m starving.”
-
-But Walter said no grace, short or long, just then. An interruption
-occurred.
-
-“Who’s coming down from the manse hill?” said Di.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV.
-THE MANSE CHILDREN
-
-
-Aunt Martha might be, and was, a very poor housekeeper; the Rev. John
-Knox Meredith might be, and was, a very absent-minded, indulgent man.
-But it could not be denied that there was something very homelike and
-lovable about the Glen St. Mary manse in spite of its untidiness. Even
-the critical housewives of the Glen felt it, and were unconsciously
-mellowed in judgment because of it. Perhaps its charm was in part due
-to accidental circumstances—the luxuriant vines clustering over its
-gray, clap-boarded walls, the friendly acacias and balm-of-gileads that
-crowded about it with the freedom of old acquaintance, and the
-beautiful views of harbour and sand-dunes from its front windows. But
-these things had been there in the reign of Mr. Meredith’s predecessor,
-when the manse had been the primmest, neatest, and dreariest house in
-the Glen. So much of the credit must be given to the personality of its
-new inmates. There was an atmosphere of laughter and comradeship about
-it; the doors were always open; and inner and outer worlds joined
-hands. Love was the only law in Glen St. Mary manse.
-
-The people of his congregation said that Mr. Meredith spoiled his
-children. Very likely he did. It is certain that he could not bear to
-scold them. “They have no mother,” he used to say to himself, with a
-sigh, when some unusually glaring peccadillo forced itself upon his
-notice. But he did not know the half of their goings-on. He belonged to
-the sect of dreamers. The windows of his study looked out on the
-graveyard but, as he paced up and down the room, reflecting deeply on
-the immortality of the soul, he was quite unaware that Jerry and Carl
-were playing leap-frog hilariously over the flat stones in that abode
-of dead Methodists. Mr. Meredith had occasional acute realizations that
-his children were not so well looked after, physically or morally, as
-they had been before his wife died, and he had always a dim
-sub-consciousness that house and meals were very different under Aunt
-Martha’s management from what they had been under Cecilia’s. For the
-rest, he lived in a world of books and abstractions; and, therefore,
-although his clothes were seldom brushed, and although the Glen
-housewives concluded, from the ivory-like pallor of his clear-cut
-features and slender hands, that he never got enough to eat, he was not
-an unhappy man.
-
-If ever a graveyard could be called a cheerful place, the old Methodist
-graveyard at Glen St. Mary might be so called. The new graveyard, at
-the other side of the Methodist church, was a neat and proper and
-doleful spot; but the old one had been left so long to Nature’s kindly
-and gracious ministries that it had become very pleasant.
-
-It was surrounded on three sides by a dyke of stones and sod, topped by
-a gray and uncertain paling. Outside the dyke grew a row of tall fir
-trees with thick, balsamic boughs. The dyke, which had been built by
-the first settlers of the Glen, was old enough to be beautiful, with
-mosses and green things growing out of its crevices, violets purpling
-at its base in the early spring days, and asters and golden-rod making
-an autumnal glory in its corners. Little ferns clustered companionably
-between its stones, and here and there a big bracken grew.
-
-On the eastern side there was neither fence nor dyke. The graveyard
-there straggled off into a young fir plantation, ever pushing nearer to
-the graves and deepening eastward into a thick wood. The air was always
-full of the harp-like voices of the sea, and the music of gray old
-trees, and in the spring mornings the choruses of birds in the elms
-around the two churches sang of life and not of death. The Meredith
-children loved the old graveyard.
-
-Blue-eyed ivy, “garden-spruce,” and mint ran riot over the sunken
-graves. Blueberry bushes grew lavishly in the sandy corner next to the
-fir wood. The varying fashions of tombstones for three generations were
-to be found there, from the flat, oblong, red sandstone slabs of old
-settlers, down through the days of weeping willows and clasped hands,
-to the latest monstrosities of tall “monuments” and draped urns. One of
-the latter, the biggest and ugliest in the graveyard, was sacred to the
-memory of a certain Alec Davis who had been born a Methodist but had
-taken to himself a Presbyterian bride of the Douglas clan. She had made
-him turn Presbyterian and kept him toeing the Presbyterian mark all his
-life. But when he died she did not dare to doom him to a lonely grave
-in the Presbyterian graveyard over-harbour. His people were all buried
-in the Methodist cemetery; so Alec Davis went back to his own in death
-and his widow consoled herself by erecting a monument which cost more
-than any of the Methodists could afford. The Meredith children hated
-it, without just knowing why, but they loved the old, flat, bench-like
-stones with the tall grasses growing rankly about them. They made jolly
-seats for one thing. They were all sitting on one now. Jerry, tired of
-leap frog, was playing on a jew’s-harp. Carl was lovingly poring over a
-strange beetle he had found; Una was trying to make a doll’s dress, and
-Faith, leaning back on her slender brown wrists, was swinging her bare
-feet in lively time to the jew’s-harp.
-
-Jerry had his father’s black hair and large black eyes, but in him the
-latter were flashing instead of dreamy. Faith, who came next to him,
-wore her beauty like a rose, careless and glowing. She had golden-brown
-eyes, golden-brown curls and crimson cheeks. She laughed too much to
-please her father’s congregation and had shocked old Mrs. Taylor, the
-disconsolate spouse of several departed husbands, by saucily
-declaring—in the church-porch at that—“The world _isn’t_ a vale of
-tears, Mrs. Taylor. It’s a world of laughter.”
-
-Little dreamy Una was not given to laughter. Her braids of straight,
-dead-black hair betrayed no lawless kinks, and her almond-shaped,
-dark-blue eyes had something wistful and sorrowful in them. Her mouth
-had a trick of falling open over her tiny white teeth, and a shy,
-meditative smile occasionally crept over her small face. She was much
-more sensitive to public opinion than Faith, and had an uneasy
-consciousness that there was something askew in their way of living.
-She longed to put it right, but did not know how. Now and then she
-dusted the furniture—but it was so seldom she could find the duster
-because it was never in the same place twice. And when the
-clothes-brush was to be found she tried to brush her father’s best suit
-on Saturdays, and once sewed on a missing button with coarse white
-thread. When Mr. Meredith went to church next day every female eye saw
-that button and the peace of the Ladies’ Aid was upset for weeks.
-
-Carl had the clear, bright, dark-blue eyes, fearless and direct, of his
-dead mother, and her brown hair with its glints of gold. He knew the
-secrets of bugs and had a sort of freemasonry with bees and beetles.
-Una never liked to sit near him because she never knew what uncanny
-creature might be secreted about him. Jerry refused to sleep with him
-because Carl had once taken a young garter snake to bed with him; so
-Carl slept in his old cot, which was so short that he could never
-stretch out, and had strange bed-fellows. Perhaps it was just as well
-that Aunt Martha was half blind when she made that bed. Altogether they
-were a jolly, lovable little crew, and Cecilia Meredith’s heart must
-have ached bitterly when she faced the knowledge that she must leave
-them.
-
-“Where would you like to be buried if you were a Methodist?” asked
-Faith cheerfully.
-
-This opened up an interesting field of speculation.
-
-“There isn’t much choice. The place is full,” said Jerry. “_I’d_ like
-that corner near the road, I guess. I could hear the teams going past
-and the people talking.”
-
-“I’d like that little hollow under the weeping birch,” said Una. “That
-birch is such a place for birds and they sing like mad in the
-mornings.”
-
-“I’d take the Porter lot where there’s so many children buried. _I_
-like lots of company,” said Faith. “Carl, where’d you?”
-
-“I’d rather not be buried at all,” said Carl, “but if I had to be I’d
-like the ant-bed. Ants are _awf’ly_ int’resting.”
-
-“How very good all the people who are buried here must have been,” said
-Una, who had been reading the laudatory old epitaphs. “There doesn’t
-seem to be a single bad person in the whole graveyard. Methodists must
-be better than Presbyterians after all.”
-
-“Maybe the Methodists bury their bad people just like they do cats,”
-suggested Carl. “Maybe they don’t bother bringing them to the graveyard
-at all.”
-
-“Nonsense,” said Faith. “The people that are buried here weren’t any
-better than other folks, Una. But when anyone is dead you mustn’t say
-anything of him but good or he’ll come back and ha’nt you. Aunt Martha
-told me that. I asked father if it was true and he just looked through
-me and muttered, ‘True? True? What is truth? What _is_ truth, O jesting
-Pilate?’ I concluded from that it must be true.”
-
-“I wonder if Mr. Alec Davis would come back and ha’nt me if I threw a
-stone at the urn on top of his tombstone,” said Jerry.
-
-“Mrs. Davis would,” giggled Faith. “She just watches us in church like
-a cat watching mice. Last Sunday I made a face at her nephew and he
-made one back at me and you should have seen her glare. I’ll bet she
-boxed _his_ ears when they got out. Mrs. Marshall Elliott told me we
-mustn’t offend her on any account or I’d have made a face at her, too!”
-
-“They say Jem Blythe stuck out his tongue at her once and she would
-never have his father again, even when her husband was dying,” said
-Jerry. “I wonder what the Blythe gang will be like.”
-
-“I liked their looks,” said Faith. The manse children had been at the
-station that afternoon when the Blythe small fry had arrived. “I liked
-Jem’s looks _especially_.”
-
-“They say in school that Walter’s a sissy,” said Jerry.
-
-“I don’t believe it,” said Una, who had thought Walter very handsome.
-
-“Well, he writes poetry, anyhow. He won the prize the teacher offered
-last year for writing a poem, Bertie Shakespeare Drew told me. Bertie’s
-mother thought _he_ should have got the prize because of his name, but
-Bertie said he couldn’t write poetry to save his soul, name or no
-name.”
-
-“I suppose we’ll get acquainted with them as soon as they begin going
-to school,” mused Faith. “I hope the girls are nice. I don’t like most
-of the girls round here. Even the nice ones are poky. But the Blythe
-twins look jolly. I thought twins always looked alike, but they don’t.
-I think the red-haired one is the nicest.”
-
-“I liked their mother’s looks,” said Una with a little sigh. Una envied
-all children their mothers. She had been only six when her mother died,
-but she had some very precious memories, treasured in her soul like
-jewels, of twilight cuddlings and morning frolics, of loving eyes, a
-tender voice, and the sweetest, gayest laugh.
-
-“They say she isn’t like other people,” said Jerry.
-
-“Mrs. Elliot says that is because she never really grew up,” said
-Faith.
-
-“She’s taller than Mrs. Elliott.”
-
-“Yes, yes, but it is inside—Mrs. Elliot says Mrs. Blythe just stayed a
-little girl inside.”
-
-“What do I smell?” interrupted Carl, sniffing.
-
-They all smelled it now. A most delectable odour came floating up on
-the still evening air from the direction of the little woodsy dell
-below the manse hill.
-
-“That makes me hungry,” said Jerry.
-
-“We had only bread and molasses for supper and cold ditto for dinner,”
-said Una plaintively.
-
-Aunt Martha’s habit was to boil a large slab of mutton early in the
-week and serve it up every day, cold and greasy, as long as it lasted.
-To this Faith, in a moment of inspiration, had give the name of
-“ditto”, and by this it was invariably known at the manse.
-
-“Let’s go and see where that smell is coming from,” said Jerry.
-
-They all sprang up, frolicked over the lawn with the abandon of young
-puppies, climbed a fence, and tore down the mossy slope, guided by the
-savory lure that ever grew stronger. A few minutes later they arrived
-breathlessly in the sanctum sanctorum of Rainbow Valley where the
-Blythe children were just about to give thanks and eat.
-
-They halted shyly. Una wished they had not been so precipitate: but Di
-Blythe was equal to that and any occasion. She stepped forward, with a
-comrade’s smile.
-
-“I guess I know who you are,” she said. “You belong to the manse, don’t
-you?”
-
-Faith nodded, her face creased by dimples.
-
-“We smelled your trout cooking and wondered what it was.”
-
-“You must sit down and help us eat them,” said Di.
-
-“Maybe you haven’t more than you want yourselves,” said Jerry, looking
-hungrily at the tin platter.
-
-“We’ve heaps—three apiece,” said Jem. “Sit down.”
-
-No more ceremony was necessary. Down they all sat on mossy stones.
-Merry was that feast and long. Nan and Di would probably have died of
-horror had they known what Faith and Una knew perfectly well—that Carl
-had two young mice in his jacket pocket. But they never knew it, so it
-never hurt them. Where can folks get better acquainted than over a meal
-table? When the last trout had vanished, the manse children and the
-Ingleside children were sworn friends and allies. They had always known
-each other and always would. The race of Joseph recognized its own.
-
-They poured out the history of their little pasts. The manse children
-heard of Avonlea and Green Gables, of Rainbow Valley traditions, and of
-the little house by the harbour shore where Jem had been born. The
-Ingleside children heard of Maywater, where the Merediths had lived
-before coming to the Glen, of Una’s beloved, one-eyed doll and Faith’s
-pet rooster.
-
-Faith was inclined to resent the fact that people laughed at her for
-petting a rooster. She liked the Blythes because they accepted it
-without question.
-
-“A handsome rooster like Adam is just as nice a pet as a dog or cat,
-_I_ think,” she said. “If he was a canary nobody would wonder. And I
-brought him up from a little, wee, yellow chicken. Mrs. Johnson at
-Maywater gave him to me. A weasel had killed all his brothers and
-sisters. I called him after her husband. I never liked dolls or cats.
-Cats are too sneaky and dolls are _dead_.”
-
-“Who lives in that house away up there?” asked Jerry.
-
-“The Miss Wests—Rosemary and Ellen,” answered Nan. “Di and I are going
-to take music lessons from Miss Rosemary this summer.”
-
-Una gazed at the lucky twins with eyes whose longing was too gentle for
-envy. Oh, if she could only have music lessons! It was one of the
-dreams of her little hidden life. But nobody ever thought of such a
-thing.
-
-“Miss Rosemary is so sweet and she always dresses so pretty,” said Di.
-“Her hair is just the colour of new molasses taffy,” she added
-wistfully—for Di, like her mother before her, was not resigned to her
-own ruddy tresses.
-
-“I like Miss Ellen, too,” said Nan. “She always used to give me candies
-when she came to church. But Di is afraid of her.”
-
-“Her brows are so black and she has such a great deep voice,” said Di.
-“Oh, how scared of her Kenneth Ford used to be when he was little!
-Mother says the first Sunday Mrs. Ford brought him to church Miss Ellen
-happened to be there, sitting right behind them. And the minute Kenneth
-saw her he just screamed and screamed until Mrs. Ford had to carry him
-out.”
-
-“Who is Mrs. Ford?” asked Una wonderingly.
-
-“Oh, the Fords don’t live here. They only come here in the summer. And
-they’re not coming this summer. They live in that little house ‘way,
-‘way down on the harbour shore where father and mother used to live. I
-wish you could see Persis Ford. She is just like a picture.”
-
-“I’ve heard of Mrs. Ford,” broke in Faith. “Bertie Shakespeare Drew
-told me about her. She was married fourteen years to a dead man and
-then he came to life.”
-
-“Nonsense,” said Nan. “That isn’t the way it goes at all. Bertie
-Shakespeare can never get anything straight. I know the whole story and
-I’ll tell it to you some time, but not now, for it’s too long and it’s
-time for us to go home. Mother doesn’t like us to be out late these
-damp evenings.”
-
-Nobody cared whether the manse children were out in the damp or not.
-Aunt Martha was already in bed and the minister was still too deeply
-lost in speculations concerning the immortality of the soul to remember
-the mortality of the body. But they went home, too, with visions of
-good times coming in their heads.
-
-“I think Rainbow Valley is even nicer than the graveyard,” said Una.
-“And I just love those dear Blythes. It’s _so_ nice when you can love
-people because so often you _can’t_. Father said in his sermon last
-Sunday that we should love everybody. But how can we? How could we love
-Mrs. Alec Davis?”
-
-“Oh, father only said that in the pulpit,” said Faith airily. “He has
-more sense than to really think it outside.”
-
-The Blythe children went up to Ingleside, except Jem, who slipped away
-for a few moments on a solitary expedition to a remote corner of
-Rainbow Valley. Mayflowers grew there and Jem never forgot to take his
-mother a bouquet as long as they lasted.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V.
-THE ADVENT OF MARY VANCE
-
-
-“This is just the sort of day you feel as if things might happen,” said
-Faith, responsive to the lure of crystal air and blue hills. She hugged
-herself with delight and danced a hornpipe on old Hezekiah Pollock’s
-bench tombstone, much to the horror of two ancient maidens who happened
-to be driving past just as Faith hopped on one foot around the stone,
-waving the other and her arms in the air.
-
-“And that,” groaned one ancient maiden, “is our minister’s daughter.”
-
-“What else could you expect of a widower’s family?” groaned the other
-ancient maiden. And then they both shook their heads.
-
-It was early on Saturday morning and the Merediths were out in the
-dew-drenched world with a delightful consciousness of the holiday. They
-had never had anything to do on a holiday. Even Nan and Di Blythe had
-certain household tasks for Saturday mornings, but the daughters of the
-manse were free to roam from blushing morn to dewy eve if so it pleased
-them. It _did_ please Faith, but Una felt a secret, bitter humiliation
-because they never learned to do anything. The other girls in her class
-at school could cook and sew and knit; she only was a little ignoramus.
-
-Jerry suggested that they go exploring; so they went lingeringly
-through the fir grove, picking up Carl on the way, who was on his knees
-in the dripping grass studying his darling ants. Beyond the grove they
-came out in Mr. Taylor’s pasture field, sprinkled over with the white
-ghosts of dandelions; in a remote corner was an old tumbledown barn,
-where Mr. Taylor sometimes stored his surplus hay crop but which was
-never used for any other purpose. Thither the Meredith children
-trooped, and prowled about the ground floor for several minutes.
-
-“What was that?” whispered Una suddenly.
-
-They all listened. There was a faint but distinct rustle in the hayloft
-above. The Merediths looked at each other.
-
-“There’s something up there,” breathed Faith.
-
-“I’m going up to see what it is,” said Jerry resolutely.
-
-“Oh, don’t,” begged Una, catching his arm.
-
-“I’m going.”
-
-“We’ll all go, too, then,” said Faith.
-
-The whole four climbed the shaky ladder, Jerry and Faith quite
-dauntless, Una pale from fright, and Carl rather absent-mindedly
-speculating on the possibility of finding a bat up in the loft. He
-longed to see a bat in daylight.
-
-When they stepped off the ladder they saw what had made the rustle and
-the sight struck them dumb for a few moments.
-
-In a little nest in the hay a girl was curled up, looking as if she had
-just wakened from sleep. When she saw them she stood up, rather
-shakily, as it seemed, and in the bright sunlight that streamed through
-the cobwebbed window behind her, they saw that her thin, sunburned face
-was very pale under its tan. She had two braids of lank, thick,
-tow-coloured hair and very odd eyes—“white eyes,” the manse children
-thought, as she stared at them half defiantly, half piteously. They
-were really of so pale a blue that they did seem almost white,
-especially when contrasted with the narrow black ring that circled the
-iris. She was barefooted and bareheaded, and was clad in a faded,
-ragged, old plaid dress, much too short and tight for her. As for
-years, she might have been almost any age, judging from her wizened
-little face, but her height seemed to be somewhere in the neighbourhood
-of twelve.
-
-“Who are you?” asked Jerry.
-
-The girl looked about her as if seeking a way of escape. Then she
-seemed to give in with a little shiver of despair.
-
-“I’m Mary Vance,” she said.
-
-“Where’d you come from?” pursued Jerry.
-
-Mary, instead of replying, suddenly sat, or fell, down on the hay and
-began to cry. Instantly Faith had flung herself down beside her and put
-her arm around the thin, shaking shoulders.
-
-“You stop bothering her,” she commanded Jerry. Then she hugged the
-waif. “Don’t cry, dear. Just tell us what’s the matter. _We’re_
-friends.”
-
-“I’m so—so—hungry,” wailed Mary. “I—I hain’t had a thing to eat since
-Thursday morning, ‘cept a little water from the brook out there.”
-
-The manse children gazed at each other in horror. Faith sprang up.
-
-“You come right up to the manse and get something to eat before you say
-another word.”
-
-Mary shrank.
-
-“Oh—I can’t. What will your pa and ma say? Besides, they’d send me
-back.”
-
-“We’ve no mother, and father won’t bother about you. Neither will Aunt
-Martha. Come, I say.” Faith stamped her foot impatiently. Was this
-queer girl going to insist on starving to death almost at their very
-door?
-
-Mary yielded. She was so weak that she could hardly climb down the
-ladder, but somehow they got her down and over the field and into the
-manse kitchen. Aunt Martha, muddling through her Saturday cooking, took
-no notice of her. Faith and Una flew to the pantry and ransacked it for
-such eatables as it contained—some “ditto,” bread, butter, milk and a
-doubtful pie. Mary Vance attacked the food ravenously and uncritically,
-while the manse children stood around and watched her. Jerry noticed
-that she had a pretty mouth and very nice, even, white teeth. Faith
-decided, with secret horror, that Mary had not one stitch on her except
-that ragged, faded dress. Una was full of pure pity, Carl of amused
-wonder, and all of them of curiosity.
-
-“Now come out to the graveyard and tell us about yourself,” ordered
-Faith, when Mary’s appetite showed signs of failing her. Mary was now
-nothing loath. Food had restored her natural vivacity and unloosed her
-by no means reluctant tongue.
-
-“You won’t tell your pa or anybody if I tell you?” she stipulated, when
-she was enthroned on Mr. Pollock’s tombstone. Opposite her the manse
-children lined up on another. Here was spice and mystery and adventure.
-Something _had_ happened.
-
-“No, we won’t.”
-
-“Cross your hearts?”
-
-“Cross our hearts.”
-
-“Well, I’ve run away. I was living with Mrs. Wiley over-harbour. Do you
-know Mrs. Wiley?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“Well, you don’t want to know her. She’s an awful woman. My, how I hate
-her! She worked me to death and wouldn’t give me half enough to eat,
-and she used to larrup me ‘most every day. Look a-here.”
-
-Mary rolled up her ragged sleeves, and held up her scrawny arms and
-thin hands, chapped almost to rawness. They were black with bruises.
-The manse children shivered. Faith flushed crimson with indignation.
-Una’s blue eyes filled with tears.
-
-“She licked me Wednesday night with a stick,” said Mary, indifferently.
-“It was ‘cause I let the cow kick over a pail of milk. How’d I know the
-darn old cow was going to kick?”
-
-A not unpleasant thrill ran over her listeners. They would never dream
-of using such dubious words, but it was rather titivating to hear
-someone else use them—and a girl, at that. Certainly this Mary Vance
-was an interesting creature.
-
-“I don’t blame you for running away,” said Faith.
-
-“Oh, I didn’t run away ‘cause she licked me. A licking was all in the
-day’s work with me. I was darn well used to it. Nope, I’d meant to run
-away for a week ‘cause I’d found out that Mrs. Wiley was going to rent
-her farm and go to Lowbridge to live and give me to a cousin of hers up
-Charlottetown way. I wasn’t going to stand for _that_. She was a worse
-sort than Mrs. Wiley even. Mrs. Wiley lent me to her for a month last
-summer and I’d rather live with the devil himself.”
-
-Sensation number two. But Una looked doubtful.
-
-“So I made up my mind I’d beat it. I had seventy cents saved up that
-Mrs. John Crawford give me in the spring for planting potatoes for her.
-Mrs. Wiley didn’t know about it. She was away visiting her cousin when
-I planted them. I thought I’d sneak up here to the Glen and buy a
-ticket to Charlottetown and try to get work there. I’m a hustler, let
-me tell you. There ain’t a lazy bone in _my_ body. So I lit out
-Thursday morning ‘fore Mrs. Wiley was up and walked to the Glen—six
-miles. And when I got to the station I found I’d lost my money. Dunno
-how—dunno where. Anyhow, it was gone. I didn’t know what to do. If I
-went back to old Lady Wiley she’d take the hide off me. So I went and
-hid in that old barn.”
-
-“And what will you do now?” asked Jerry.
-
-“Dunno. I s’pose I’ll have to go back and take my medicine. Now that
-I’ve got some grub in my stomach I guess I can stand it.”
-
-But there was fear behind the bravado in Mary’s eyes. Una suddenly
-slipped from the one tombstone to the other and put her arm about Mary.
-
-“Don’t go back. Just stay here with us.”
-
-“Oh, Mrs. Wiley’ll hunt me up,” said Mary. “It’s likely she’s on my
-trail before this. I might stay here till she finds me, I s’pose, if
-your folks don’t mind. I was a darn fool ever to think of skipping out.
-She’d run a weasel to earth. But I was so misrebul.”
-
-Mary’s voice quivered, but she was ashamed of showing her weakness.
-
-“I hain’t had the life of a dog for these four years,” she explained
-defiantly.
-
-“You’ve been four years with Mrs. Wiley?”
-
-“Yip. She took me out of the asylum over in Hopetown when I was eight.”
-
-“That’s the same place Mrs. Blythe came from,” exclaimed Faith.
-
-“I was two years in the asylum. I was put there when I was six. My ma
-had hung herself and my pa had cut his throat.”
-
-“Holy cats! Why?” said Jerry.
-
-“Booze,” said Mary laconically.
-
-“And you’ve no relations?”
-
-“Not a darn one that I know of. Must have had some once, though. I was
-called after half a dozen of them. My full name is Mary Martha Lucilla
-Moore Ball Vance. Can you beat that? My grandfather was a rich man.
-I’ll bet he was richer than _your_ grandfather. But pa drunk it all up
-and ma, she did her part. _They_ used to beat me, too. Laws, I’ve been
-licked so much I kind of like it.”
-
-Mary tossed her head. She divined that the manse children were pitying
-her for her many stripes and she did not want pity. She wanted to be
-envied. She looked gaily about her. Her strange eyes, now that the
-dullness of famine was removed from them, were brilliant. She would
-show these youngsters what a personage she was.
-
-“I’ve been sick an awful lot,” she said proudly. “There’s not many kids
-could have come through what I have. I’ve had scarlet fever and measles
-and ersipelas and mumps and whooping cough and pewmonia.”
-
-“Were you ever fatally sick?” asked Una.
-
-“I don’t know,” said Mary doubtfully.
-
-“Of course she wasn’t,” scoffed Jerry. “If you’re fatally sick you
-die.”
-
-“Oh, well, I never died exactly,” said Mary, “but I come blamed near it
-once. They thought I was dead and they were getting ready to lay me out
-when I up and come to.”
-
-“What is it like to be half dead?” asked Jerry curiously.
-
-“Like nothing. I didn’t know it for days afterwards. It was when I had
-the pewmonia. Mrs. Wiley wouldn’t have the doctor—said she wasn’t going
-to no such expense for a home girl. Old Aunt Christina MacAllister
-nursed me with poultices. She brung me round. But sometimes I wish I’d
-just died the other half and done with it. I’d been better off.”
-
-“If you went to heaven I s’pose you would,” said Faith, rather
-doubtfully.
-
-“Well, what other place is there to go to?” demanded Mary in a puzzled
-voice.
-
-“There’s hell, you know,” said Una, dropping her voice and hugging Mary
-to lessen the awfulness of the suggestion.
-
-“Hell? What’s that?”
-
-“Why, it’s where the devil lives,” said Jerry. “You’ve heard of him—you
-spoke about him.”
-
-“Oh, yes, but I didn’t know he lived anywhere. I thought he just roamed
-round. Mr. Wiley used to mention hell when he was alive. He was always
-telling folks to go there. I thought it was some place over in New
-Brunswick where he come from.”
-
-“Hell is an awful place,” said Faith, with the dramatic enjoyment that
-is born of telling dreadful things. “Bad people go there when they die
-and burn in fire for ever and ever and ever.”
-
-“Who told you that?” demanded Mary incredulously.
-
-“It’s in the Bible. And Mr. Isaac Crothers at Maywater told us, too, in
-Sunday School. He was an elder and a pillar in the church and knew all
-about it. But you needn’t worry. If you’re good you’ll go to heaven and
-if you’re bad I guess you’d rather go to hell.”
-
-“I wouldn’t,” said Mary positively. “No matter how bad I was I wouldn’t
-want to be burned and burned. _I_ know what it’s like. I picked up a
-red hot poker once by accident. What must you do to be good?”
-
-“You must go to church and Sunday School and read your Bible and pray
-every night and give to missions,” said Una.
-
-“It sounds like a large order,” said Mary. “Anything else?”
-
-“You must ask God to forgive the sins you’ve committed.
-
-“But I’ve never com—committed any,” said Mary. “What’s a sin any way?”
-
-“Oh, Mary, you must have. Everybody does. Did you never tell a lie?”
-
-“Heaps of ‘em,” said Mary.
-
-“That’s a dreadful sin,” said Una solemnly.
-
-“Do you mean to tell me,” demanded Mary, “that I’d be sent to hell for
-telling a lie now and then? Why, I _had_ to. Mr. Wiley would have
-broken every bone in my body one time if I hadn’t told him a lie. Lies
-have saved me many a whack, I can tell you.”
-
-Una sighed. Here were too many difficulties for her to solve. She
-shuddered as she thought of being cruelly whipped. Very likely she
-would have lied too. She squeezed Mary’s little calloused hand.
-
-“Is that the only dress you’ve got?” asked Faith, whose joyous nature
-refused to dwell on disagreeable subjects.
-
-“I just put on this dress because it was no good,” cried Mary flushing.
-“Mrs. Wiley’d bought my clothes and I wasn’t going to be beholden to
-her for anything. And I’m honest. If I was going to run away I wasn’t
-going to take what belong to _her_ that was worth anything. When I grow
-up I’m going to have a blue sating dress. Your own clothes don’t look
-so stylish. I thought ministers’ children were always dressed up.”
-
-It was plain that Mary had a temper and was sensitive on some points.
-But there was a queer, wild charm about her which captivated them all.
-She was taken to Rainbow Valley that afternoon and introduced to the
-Blythes as “a friend of ours from over-harbour who is visiting us.” The
-Blythes accepted her unquestioningly, perhaps because she was fairly
-respectable now. After dinner—through which Aunt Martha had mumbled and
-Mr. Meredith had been in a state of semi-unconsciousness while brooding
-his Sunday sermon—Faith had prevailed on Mary to put on one of her
-dresses, as well as certain other articles of clothing. With her hair
-neatly braided Mary passed muster tolerably well. She was an acceptable
-playmate, for she knew several new and exciting games, and her
-conversation lacked not spice. In fact, some of her expressions made
-Nan and Di look at her rather askance. They were not quite sure what
-their mother would have thought of her, but they knew quite well what
-Susan would. However, she was a visitor at the manse, so she must be
-all right.
-
-When bedtime came there was the problem of where Mary should sleep.
-
-“We can’t put her in the spare room, you know,” said Faith perplexedly
-to Una.
-
-“I haven’t got anything in my head,” cried Mary in an injured tone.
-
-“Oh, I didn’t mean _that_,” protested Faith. “The spare room is all
-torn up. The mice have gnawed a big hole in the feather tick and made a
-nest in it. We never found it out till Aunt Martha put the Rev. Mr.
-Fisher from Charlottetown there to sleep last week. _He_ soon found it
-out. Then father had to give him his bed and sleep on the study lounge.
-Aunt Martha hasn’t had time to fix the spare room bed up yet, so she
-says; so _nobody_ can sleep there, no matter how clean their heads are.
-And our room is so small, and the bed so small you can’t sleep with
-us.”
-
-“I can go back to the hay in the old barn for the night if you’ll lend
-me a quilt,” said Mary philosophically. “It was kind of chilly last
-night, but ‘cept for that I’ve had worse beds.”
-
-“Oh, no, no, you mustn’t do that,” said Una. “I’ve thought of a plan,
-Faith. You know that little trestle bed in the garret room, with the
-old mattress on it, that the last minister left there? Let’s take up
-the spare room bedclothes and make Mary a bed there. You won’t mind
-sleeping in the garret, will you, Mary? It’s just above our room.”
-
-“Any place’ll do me. Laws, I never had a decent place to sleep in my
-life. I slept in the loft over the kitchen at Mrs. Wiley’s. The roof
-leaked rain in the summer and the snow druv in in winter. My bed was a
-straw tick on the floor. You won’t find me a mite huffy about where _I_
-sleep.”
-
-The manse garret was a long, low, shadowy place, with one gable end
-partitioned off. Here a bed was made up for Mary of the dainty
-hemstitched sheets and embroidered spread which Cecilia Meredith had
-once so proudly made for her spare-room, and which still survived Aunt
-Martha’s uncertain washings. The good nights were said and silence fell
-over the manse. Una was just falling asleep when she heard a sound in
-the room just above that made her sit up suddenly.
-
-“Listen, Faith—Mary’s crying,” she whispered. Faith replied not, being
-already asleep. Una slipped out of bed, and made her way in her little
-white gown down the hall and up the garret stairs. The creaking floor
-gave ample notice of her coming, and when she reached the corner room
-all was moonlit silence and the trestle bed showed only a hump in the
-middle.
-
-“Mary,” whispered Una.
-
-There was no response.
-
-Una crept close to the bed and pulled at the spread. “Mary, I know you
-are crying. I heard you. Are you lonesome?”
-
-Mary suddenly appeared to view but said nothing.
-
-“Let me in beside you. I’m cold,” said Una shivering in the chilly air,
-for the little garret window was open and the keen breath of the north
-shore at night blew in.
-
-Mary moved over and Una snuggled down beside her.
-
-“_Now_ you won’t be lonesome. We shouldn’t have left you here alone the
-first night.”
-
-“I wasn’t lonesome,” sniffed Mary.
-
-“What were you crying for then?”
-
-“Oh, I just got to thinking of things when I was here alone. I thought
-of having to go back to Mrs. Wiley—and of being licked for running
-away—and—and—and of going to hell for telling lies. It all worried me
-something scandalous.”
-
-“Oh, Mary,” said poor Una in distress. “I don’t believe God will send
-you to hell for telling lies when you didn’t know it was wrong. He
-_couldn’t_. Why, He’s kind and good. Of course, you mustn’t tell any
-more now that you know it’s wrong.”
-
-“If I can’t tell lies what’s to become of me?” said Mary with a sob.
-“_You_ don’t understand. You don’t know anything about it. You’ve got a
-home and a kind father—though it does seem to me that he isn’t more’n
-about half there. But anyway he doesn’t lick you, and you get enough to
-eat such as it is—though that old aunt of yours doesn’t know _anything_
-about cooking. Why, this is the first day I ever remember of feeling
-‘sif I’d enough to eat. I’ve been knocked about all of my life, ‘cept
-for the two years I was at the asylum. They didn’t lick me there and it
-wasn’t too bad, though the matron was cross. She always looked ready to
-bite my head off a nail. But Mrs. Wiley is a holy terror, that’s what
-_she_ is, and I’m just scared stiff when I think of going back to her.”
-
-“Perhaps you won’t have to. Perhaps we’ll be able to think of a way
-out. Let’s both ask God to keep you from having to go back to Mrs.
-Wiley. You say your prayers, don’t you Mary?”
-
-“Oh, yes, I always go over an old rhyme ‘fore I get into bed,” said
-Mary indifferently. “I never thought of asking for anything in
-particular though. Nobody in this world ever bothered themselves about
-me so I didn’t s’pose God would. He _might_ take more trouble for you,
-seeing you’re a minister’s daughter.”
-
-“He’d take every bit as much trouble for you, Mary, I’m sure,” said
-Una. “It doesn’t matter whose child you are. You just ask Him—and I
-will, too.”
-
-“All right,” agreed Mary. “It won’t do any harm if it doesn’t do much
-good. If you knew Mrs. Wiley as well as I do you wouldn’t think God
-would want to meddle with her. Anyhow, I won’t cry any more about it.
-This is a big sight better’n last night down in that old barn, with the
-mice running about. Look at the Four Winds light. Ain’t it pretty?”
-
-“This is the only window we can see it from,” said Una. “I love to
-watch it.”
-
-“Do you? So do I. I could see it from the Wiley loft and it was the
-only comfort I had. When I was all sore from being licked I’d watch it
-and forget about the places that hurt. I’d think of the ships sailing
-away and away from it and wish I was on one of them sailing far away
-too—away from everything. On winter nights when it didn’t shine, I just
-felt real lonesome. Say, Una, what makes all you folks so kind to me
-when I’m just a stranger?”
-
-“Because it’s right to be. The bible tells us to be kind to everybody.”
-
-“Does it? Well, I guess most folks don’t mind it much then. I never
-remember of any one being kind to me before—true’s you live I don’t.
-Say, Una, ain’t them shadows on the walls pretty? They look just like a
-flock of little dancing birds. And say, Una, I like all you folks and
-them Blythe boys and Di, but I don’t like that Nan. She’s a proud one.”
-
-“Oh, no, Mary, she isn’t a bit proud,” said Una eagerly. “Not a single
-bit.”
-
-“Don’t tell me. Any one that holds her head like that _is_ proud. I
-don’t like her.”
-
-“_We_ all like her very much.”
-
-“Oh, I s’pose you like her better’n me?” said Mary jealously. “Do you?”
-
-“Why, Mary—we’ve known her for weeks and we’ve only known you a few
-hours,” stammered Una.
-
-“So you do like her better then?” said Mary in a rage. “All right! Like
-her all you want to. _I_ don’t care. _I_ can get along without you.”
-
-She flung herself over against the wall of the garret with a slam.
-
-“Oh, Mary,” said Una, pushing a tender arm over Mary’s uncompromising
-back, “don’t talk like that. I _do_ like you ever so much. And you make
-me feel so bad.”
-
-No answer. Presently Una gave a sob. Instantly Mary squirmed around
-again and engulfed Una in a bear’s hug.
-
-“Hush up,” she ordered. “Don’t go crying over what I said. I was as
-mean as the devil to talk that way. I orter to be skinned alive—and you
-all so good to me. I should think you _would_ like any one better’n me.
-I deserve every licking I ever got. Hush, now. If you cry any more I’ll
-go and walk right down to the harbour in this night-dress and drown
-myself.”
-
-This terrible threat made Una choke back her sobs. Her tears were wiped
-away by Mary with the lace frill of the spare-room pillow and forgiver
-and forgiven cuddled down together again, harmony restored, to watch
-the shadows of the vine leaves on the moonlit wall until they fell
-asleep.
-
-And in the study below Rev. John Meredith walked the floor with rapt
-face and shining eyes, thinking out his message of the morrow, and knew
-not that under his own roof there was a little forlorn soul, stumbling
-in darkness and ignorance, beset by terror and compassed about with
-difficulties too great for it to grapple in its unequal struggle with a
-big indifferent world.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI.
-MARY STAYS AT THE MANSE
-
-
-The manse children took Mary Vance to church with them the next day. At
-first Mary objected to the idea.
-
-“Didn’t you go to church over-harbour?” asked Una.
-
-“You bet. Mrs. Wiley never troubled church much, but I went every
-Sunday I could get off. I was mighty thankful to go to some place where
-I could sit down for a spell. But I can’t go to church in this old
-ragged dress.”
-
-This difficulty was removed by Faith offering the loan of her second
-best dress.
-
-“It’s faded a little and two of the buttons are off, but I guess it’ll
-do.”
-
-“I’ll sew the buttons on in a jiffy,” said Mary.
-
-“Not on Sunday,” said Una, shocked.
-
-“Sure. The better the day the better the deed. You just gimme a needle
-and thread and look the other way if you’re squeamish.”
-
-Faith’s school boots, and an old black velvet cap that had once been
-Cecilia Meredith’s, completed Mary’s costume, and to church she went.
-Her behaviour was quite conventional, and though some wondered who the
-shabby little girl with the manse children was she did not attract much
-attention. She listened to the sermon with outward decorum and joined
-lustily in the singing. She had, it appeared, a clear, strong voice and
-a good ear.
-
-“His blood can make the _violets_ clean,” carolled Mary blithely. Mrs.
-Jimmy Milgrave, whose pew was just in front of the manse pew, turned
-suddenly and looked the child over from top to toe. Mary, in a mere
-superfluity of naughtiness, stuck out her tongue at Mrs. Milgrave, much
-to Una’s horror.
-
-“I couldn’t help it,” she declared after church. “What’d she want to
-stare at me like that for? Such manners! I’m _glad_ stuck my tongue out
-at her. I wish I’d stuck it farther out. Say, I saw Rob MacAllister
-from over-harbour there. Wonder if he’ll tell Mrs. Wiley on me.”
-
-No Mrs. Wiley appeared, however, and in a few day the children forgot
-to look for her. Mary was apparently a fixture at the manse. But she
-refused to go to school with the others.
-
-“Nope. I’ve finished my education,” she said, when Faith urged her to
-go. “I went to school four winters since I come to Mrs. Wiley’s and
-I’ve had all I want of _that_. I’m sick and tired of being
-everlastingly jawed at ‘cause I didn’t get my home-lessons done. _I’d_
-no time to do home-lessons.”
-
-“Our teacher won’t jaw you. He is awfully nice,” said Faith.
-
-“Well, I ain’t going. I can read and write and cipher up to fractions.
-That’s all I want. You fellows go and I’ll stay home. You needn’t be
-scared I’ll steal anything. I swear I’m honest.”
-
-Mary employed herself while the others were at school in cleaning up
-the manse. In a few days it was a different place. Floors were swept,
-furniture dusted, everything straightened out. She mended the
-spare-room bed-tick, she sewed on missing buttons, she patched clothes
-neatly, she even invaded the study with broom and dustpan and ordered
-Mr. Meredith out while she put it to rights. But there was one
-department with which Aunt Martha refused to let her interfere. Aunt
-Martha might be deaf and half blind and very childish, but she was
-resolved to keep the commissariat in her own hands, in spite of all
-Mary’s wiles and stratagems.
-
-“I can tell you if old Martha’d let _me_ cook you’d have some decent
-meals,” she told the manse children indignantly. “There’d be no more
-‘ditto’—and no more lumpy porridge and blue milk either. What _does_
-she do with all the cream?”
-
-“She gives it to the cat. He’s hers, you know,” said Faith.
-
-“I’d like to _cat_ her,” exclaimed Mary bitterly. “I’ve no use for cats
-anyhow. They belong to the old Nick. You can tell that by their eyes.
-Well, if old Martha won’t, she won’t, I s’pose. But it gits on my
-nerves to see good vittles spoiled.”
-
-When school came out they always went to Rainbow Valley. Mary refused
-to play in the graveyard. She declared she was afraid of ghosts.
-
-“There’s no such thing as ghosts,” declared Jem Blythe.
-
-“Oh, ain’t there?”
-
-“Did you ever see any?”
-
-“Hundreds of ‘em,” said Mary promptly.
-
-“What are they like?” said Carl.
-
-“Awful-looking. Dressed all in white with skellington hands and heads,”
-said Mary.
-
-“What did you do?” asked Una.
-
-“Run like the devil,” said Mary. Then she caught Walter’s eyes and
-blushed. Mary was a good deal in awe of Walter. She declared to the
-manse girls that his eyes made her nervous.
-
-“I think of all the lies I’ve ever told when I look into them,” she
-said, “and I wish I hadn’t.”
-
-Jem was Mary’s favourite. When he took her to the attic at Ingleside
-and showed her the museum of curios that Captain Jim Boyd had
-bequeathed to him she was immensely pleased and flattered. She also won
-Carl’s heart entirely by her interest in his beetles and ants. It could
-not be denied that Mary got on rather better with the boys than with
-the girls. She quarrelled bitterly with Nan Blythe the second day.
-
-“Your mother is a witch,” she told Nan scornfully. “Red-haired women
-are always witches.” Then she and Faith fell out about the rooster.
-Mary said its tail was too short. Faith angrily retorted that she
-guessed God know what length to make a rooster’s tail. They did not
-“speak” for a day over this. Mary treated Una’s hairless, one-eyed doll
-with consideration; but when Una showed her other prized treasure—a
-picture of an angel carrying a baby, presumably to heaven, Mary
-declared that it looked too much like a ghost for her. Una crept away
-to her room and cried over this, but Mary hunted her out, hugged her
-repentantly and implored forgiveness. No one could keep up a quarrel
-long with Mary—not even Nan, who was rather prone to hold grudges and
-never quite forgave the insult to her mother. Mary was jolly. She could
-and did tell the most thrilling ghost stories. Rainbow Valley seances
-were undeniably more exciting after Mary came. She learned to play on
-the jew’s-harp and soon eclipsed Jerry.
-
-“Never struck anything yet I couldn’t do if I put my mind to it,” she
-declared. Mary seldom lost a chance of tooting her own horn. She taught
-them how to make “blow-bags” out of the thick leaves of the
-“live-forever” that flourished in the old Bailey garden, she initiated
-them into the toothsome qualities of the “sours” that grew in the
-niches of the graveyard dyke, and she could make the most wonderful
-shadow pictures on the walls with her long, flexible fingers. And when
-they all went picking gum in Rainbow Valley Mary always got “the
-biggest chew” and bragged about it. There were times when they hated
-her and times when they loved her. But at all times they found her
-interesting. So they submitted quite meekly to her bossing, and by the
-end of a fortnight had come to feel that she must always have been with
-them.
-
-“It’s the queerest thing that Mrs. Wiley hain’t been after me,” said
-Mary. “I can’t understand it.”
-
-“Maybe she isn’t going to bother about you at all,” said Una. “Then you
-can just go on staying here.”
-
-“This house ain’t hardly big enough for me and old Martha,” said Mary
-darkly. “It’s a very fine thing to have enough to eat—I’ve often
-wondered what it would be like—but I’m p’ticler about my cooking. And
-Mrs. Wiley’ll be here yet. _She’s_ got a rod in pickle for me all
-right. I don’t think about it so much in daytime but say, girls, up
-there in that garret at night I git to thinking and thinking of it,
-till I just almost wish she’d come and have it over with. I dunno’s one
-real good whipping would be much worse’n all the dozen I’ve lived
-through in my mind ever since I run away. Were any of you ever licked?”
-
-“No, of course not,” said Faith indignantly. “Father would never do
-such a thing.”
-
-“You don’t know you’re alive,” said Mary with a sigh half of envy, half
-of superiority. “You don’t know what I’ve come through. And I s’pose
-the Blythes were never licked either?”
-
-“No-o-o, I guess not. But I _think_ they were sometimes spanked when
-they were small.”
-
-“A spanking doesn’t amount to anything,” said Mary contemptuously. “If
-my folks had just spanked me I’d have thought they were petting me.
-Well, it ain’t a fair world. I wouldn’t mind taking my share of
-wallopings but I’ve had a darn sight too many.”
-
-“It isn’t right to say that word, Mary,” said Una reproachfully. “You
-promised me you wouldn’t say it.”
-
-“G’way,” responded Mary. “If you knew some of the words I _could_ say
-if I liked you wouldn’t make such a fuss over darn. And you know very
-well I hain’t ever told any lies since I come here.”
-
-“What about all those ghosts you said you saw?” asked Faith.
-
-Mary blushed.
-
-“That was diff’runt,” she said defiantly. “I knew you wouldn’t believe
-them yarns and I didn’t intend you to. And I really did see something
-queer one night when I was passing the over-harbour graveyard, true’s
-you live. I dunno whether ‘twas a ghost or Sandy Crawford’s old white
-nag, but it looked blamed queer and I tell you I scooted at the rate of
-no man’s business.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII.
-A FISHY EPISODE
-
-
-Rilla Blythe walked proudly, and perhaps a little primly, through the
-main “street” of the Glen and up the manse hill, carefully carrying a
-small basketful of early strawberries, which Susan had coaxed into
-lusciousness in one of the sunny nooks of Ingleside. Susan had charged
-Rilla to give the basket to nobody except Aunt Martha or Mr. Meredith,
-and Rilla, very proud of being entrusted with such an errand, was
-resolved to carry out her instructions to the letter.
-
-Susan had dressed her daintily in a white, starched, and embroidered
-dress, with sash of blue and beaded slippers. Her long ruddy curls were
-sleek and round, and Susan had let her put on her best hat, out of
-compliment to the manse. It was a somewhat elaborate affair, wherein
-Susan’s taste had had more to say than Anne’s, and Rilla’s small soul
-gloried in its splendours of silk and lace and flowers. She was very
-conscious of her hat, and I am afraid she strutted up the manse hill.
-The strut, or the hat, or both, got on the nerves of Mary Vance, who
-was swinging on the lawn gate. Mary’s temper was somewhat ruffled just
-then, into the bargain. Aunt Martha had refused to let her peel the
-potatoes and had ordered her out of the kitchen.
-
-“Yah! You’ll bring the potatoes to the table with strips of skin
-hanging to them and half boiled as usual! My, but it’ll be nice to go
-to your funeral,” shrieked Mary. She went out of the kitchen, giving
-the door such a bang that even Aunt Martha heard it, and Mr. Meredith
-in his study felt the vibration and thought absently that there must
-have been a slight earthquake shock. Then he went on with his sermon.
-
-Mary slipped from the gate and confronted the spick-and-span damsel of
-Ingleside.
-
-“What you got there?” she demanded, trying to take the basket.
-
-Rilla resisted. “It’th for Mithter Meredith,” she lisped.
-
-“Give it to me. _I’ll_ give it to him,” said Mary.
-
-“No. Thuthan thaid that I wathn’t to give it to anybody but Mithter
-Mer’dith or Aunt Martha,” insisted Rilla.
-
-Mary eyed her sourly.
-
-“You think you’re something, don’t you, all dressed up like a doll!
-Look at me. My dress is all rags and _I_ don’t care! I’d rather be
-ragged than a doll baby. Go home and tell them to put you in a glass
-case. Look at me—look at me—look at me!”
-
-Mary executed a wild dance around the dismayed and bewildered Rilla,
-flirting her ragged skirt and vociferating “Look at me—look at me”
-until poor Rilla was dizzy. But as the latter tried to edge away
-towards the gate Mary pounced on her again.
-
-“You give me that basket,” she ordered with a grimace. Mary was past
-mistress in the art of “making faces.” She could give her countenance a
-most grotesque and unearthly appearance out of which her strange,
-brilliant, white eyes gleamed with weird effect.
-
-“I won’t,” gasped Rilla, frightened but staunch. “You let me go, Mary
-Vanth.”
-
-Mary let go for a minute and looked around her. Just inside the gate
-was a small “flake,” on which a half a dozen large codfish were drying.
-One of Mr. Meredith’s parishioners had presented him with them one day,
-perhaps in lieu of the subscription he was supposed to pay to the
-stipend and never did. Mr. Meredith had thanked him and then forgotten
-all about the fish, which would have promptly spoiled had not the
-indefatigable Mary prepared them for drying and rigged up the “flake”
-herself on which to dry them.
-
-Mary had a diabolical inspiration. She flew to the “flake” and seized
-the largest fish there—a huge, flat thing, nearly as big as herself.
-With a whoop she swooped down on the terrified Rilla, brandishing her
-weird missile. Rilla’s courage gave way. To be lambasted with a dried
-codfish was such an unheard-of thing that Rilla could not face it. With
-a shriek she dropped her basket and fled. The beautiful berries, which
-Susan had so tenderly selected for the minister, rolled in a rosy
-torrent over the dusty road and were trodden on by the flying feet of
-pursuer and pursued. The basket and contents were no longer in Mary’s
-mind. She thought only of the delight of giving Rilla Blythe the scare
-of her life. She would teach _her_ to come giving herself airs because
-of her fine clothes.
-
-Rilla flew down the hill and along the street. Terror lent wings to her
-feet, and she just managed to keep ahead of Mary, who was somewhat
-hampered by her own laughter, but who had breath enough to give
-occasional blood-curdling whoops as she ran, flourishing her codfish in
-the air. Through the Glen street they swept, while everybody ran to the
-windows and gates to see them. Mary felt she was making a tremendous
-sensation and enjoyed it. Rilla, blind with terror and spent of breath,
-felt that she could run no longer. In another instant that terrible
-girl would be on her with the codfish. At this point the poor mite
-stumbled and fell into the mud-puddle at the end of the street just as
-Miss Cornelia came out of Carter Flagg’s store.
-
-Miss Cornelia took the whole situation in at a glance. So did Mary. The
-latter stopped short in her mad career and before Miss Cornelia could
-speak she had whirled around and was running up as fast as she had run
-down. Miss Cornelia’s lips tightened ominously, but she knew it was no
-use to think of chasing her. So she picked up poor, sobbing,
-dishevelled Rilla instead and took her home. Rilla was heart-broken.
-Her dress and slippers and hat were ruined and her six year old pride
-had received terrible bruises.
-
-Susan, white with indignation, heard Miss Cornelia’s story of Mary
-Vance’s exploit.
-
-“Oh, the hussy—oh, the littly hussy!” she said, as she carried Rilla
-away for purification and comfort.
-
-“This thing has gone far enough, Anne dearie,” said Miss Cornelia
-resolutely. “Something must be done. _Who_ is this creature who is
-staying at the manse and where does she come from?”
-
-“I understood she was a little girl from over-harbour who was visiting
-at the manse,” answered Anne, who saw the comical side of the codfish
-chase and secretly thought Rilla was rather vain and needed a lesson or
-two.
-
-“I know all the over-harbour families who come to our church and that
-imp doesn’t belong to any of them,” retorted Miss Cornelia. “She is
-almost in rags and when she goes to church she wears Faith Meredith’s
-old clothes. There’s some mystery here, and I’m going to investigate
-it, since it seems nobody else will. I believe she was at the bottom of
-their goings-on in Warren Mead’s spruce bush the other day. Did you
-hear of their frightening his mother into a fit?”
-
-“No. I knew Gilbert had been called to see her, but I did not hear what
-the trouble was.”
-
-“Well, you know she has a weak heart. And one day last week, when she
-was all alone on the veranda, she heard the most awful shrieks of
-‘murder’ and ‘help’ coming from the bush—positively frightful sounds,
-Anne dearie. Her heart gave out at once. Warren heard them himself at
-the barn, and went straight to the bush to investigate, and there he
-found all the manse children sitting on a fallen tree and screaming
-‘murder’ at the top of their lungs. They told him they were only in fun
-and didn’t think anyone would hear them. They were just playing Indian
-ambush. Warren went back to the house and found his poor mother
-unconscious on the veranda.”
-
-Susan, who had returned, sniffed contemptuously.
-
-“I think she was very far from being unconscious, Mrs. Marshall
-Elliott, and that you may tie to. I have been hearing of Amelia
-Warren’s weak heart for forty years. She had it when she was twenty.
-She enjoys making a fuss and having the doctor, and any excuse will
-do.”
-
-“I don’t think Gilbert thought her attack very serious,” said Anne.
-
-“Oh, that may very well be,” said Miss Cornelia. “But the matter has
-made an awful lot of talk and the Meads being Methodists makes it that
-much worse. What is going to become of those children? Sometimes I
-can’t sleep at nights for thinking about them, Anne dearie. I really do
-question if they get enough to eat, even, for their father is so lost
-in dreams that he doesn’t often remember he has a stomach, and that
-lazy old woman doesn’t bother cooking what she ought. They are just
-running wild and now that school is closing they’ll be worse than
-ever.”
-
-“They do have jolly times,” said Anne, laughing over the recollections
-of some Rainbow Valley happenings that had come to her ears. “And they
-are all brave and frank and loyal and truthful.”
-
-“That’s a true word, Anne dearie, and when you come to think of all the
-trouble in the church those two tattling, deceitful youngsters of the
-last minister’s made, I’m inclined to overlook a good deal in the
-Merediths.”
-
-“When all is said and done, Mrs. Dr. dear, they are very nice
-children,” said Susan. “They have got plenty of original sin in them
-and that I will admit, but maybe it is just as well, for if they had
-not they might spoil from over-sweetness. Only I do think it is not
-proper for them to play in a graveyard and that I will maintain.”
-
-“But they really play quite quietly there,” excused Anne. “They don’t
-run and yell as they do elsewhere. Such howls as drift up here from
-Rainbow Valley sometimes! Though I fancy my own small fry bear a
-valiant part in them. They had a sham battle there last night and had
-to ‘roar’ themselves, because they had no artillery to do it, so Jem
-says. Jem is passing through the stage where all boys hanker to be
-soldiers.”
-
-“Well, thank goodness, he’ll never be a soldier,” said Miss Cornelia.
-“I never approved of our boys going to that South African fracas. But
-it’s over, and not likely anything of the kind will ever happen again.
-I think the world is getting more sensible. As for the Merediths, I’ve
-said many a time and I say it again, if Mr. Meredith had a wife all
-would be well.”
-
-“He called twice at the Kirks’ last week, so I am told,” said Susan.
-
-“Well,” said Miss Cornelia thoughtfully, “as a rule, I don’t approve of
-a minister marrying in his congregation. It generally spoils him. But
-in this case it would do no harm, for every one likes Elizabeth Kirk
-and nobody else is hankering for the job of stepmothering those
-youngsters. Even the Hill girls balk at that. They haven’t been found
-laying traps for Mr. Meredith. Elizabeth would make him a good wife if
-he only thought so. But the trouble is, she really is homely and, Anne
-dearie, Mr. Meredith, abstracted as he is, has an eye for a
-good-looking woman, man-like. He isn’t _so_ other-worldly when it comes
-to that, believe _me_.”
-
-“Elizabeth Kirk is a very nice person, but they do say that people have
-nearly frozen to death in her mother’s spare-room bed before now, Mrs.
-Dr. dear,” said Susan darkly. “If I felt I had any right to express an
-opinion concerning such a solemn matter as a minister’s marriage I
-would say that I think Elizabeth’s cousin Sarah, over-harbour, would
-make Mr. Meredith a better wife.”
-
-“Why, Sarah Kirk is a Methodist,” said Miss Cornelia, much as if Susan
-had suggested a Hottentot as a manse bride.
-
-“She would likely turn Presbyterian if she married Mr. Meredith,”
-retorted Susan.
-
-Miss Cornelia shook her head. Evidently with her it was, once a
-Methodist, always a Methodist.
-
-“Sarah Kirk is entirely out of the question,” she said positively. “And
-so is Emmeline Drew—though the Drews are all trying to make the match.
-They are literally throwing poor Emmeline at his head, and he hasn’t
-the least idea of it.”
-
-“Emmeline Drew has no gumption, I must allow,” said Susan. “She is the
-kind of woman, Mrs. Dr. dear, who would put a hot-water bottle in your
-bed on a dog-night and then have her feelings hurt because you were not
-grateful. And her mother was a very poor housekeeper. Did you ever hear
-the story of her dishcloth? She lost her dishcloth one day. But the
-next day she found it. Oh, yes, Mrs. Dr. dear, she found it, in the
-goose at the dinner-table, mixed up with the stuffing. Do you think a
-woman like that would do for a minister’s mother-in-law? I do not. But
-no doubt I would be better employed in mending little Jem’s trousers
-than in talking gossip about my neighbours. He tore them something
-scandalous last night in Rainbow Valley.”
-
-“Where is Walter?” asked Anne.
-
-“He is up to no good, I fear, Mrs. Dr. dear. He is in the attic writing
-something in an exercise book. And he has not done as well in
-arithmetic this term as he should, so the teacher tells me. Too well I
-know the reason why. He has been writing silly rhymes when he should
-have been doing his sums. I am afraid that boy is going to be a poet,
-Mrs. Dr. dear.”
-
-“He is a poet now, Susan.”
-
-“Well, you take it real calm, Mrs. Dr. dear. I suppose it is the best
-way, when a person has the strength. I had an uncle who began by being
-a poet and ended up by being a tramp. Our family were dreadfully
-ashamed of him.”
-
-“You don’t seem to think very highly of poets, Susan,” said Anne,
-laughing.
-
-“Who does, Mrs. Dr. dear?” asked Susan in genuine astonishment.
-
-“What about Milton and Shakespeare? And the poets of the Bible?”
-
-“They tell me Milton could not get along with his wife, and Shakespeare
-was no more than respectable by times. As for the Bible, of course
-things were different in those sacred days—although I never had a high
-opinion of King David, say what you will. I never knew any good to come
-of writing poetry, and I hope and pray that blessed boy will outgrow
-the tendency. If he does not—we must see what emulsion of cod-liver oil
-will do.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII.
-MISS CORNELIA INTERVENES
-
-
-Miss Cornelia descended upon the manse the next day and
-cross-questioned Mary, who, being a young person of considerable
-discernment and astuteness, told her story simple and truthfully, with
-an entire absence of complaint or bravado. Miss Cornelia was more
-favourably impressed than she had expected to be, but deemed it her
-duty to be severe.
-
-“Do you think,” she said sternly, “that you showed your gratitude to
-this family, who have been far too kind to you, by insulting and
-chasing one of their little friends as you did yesterday?”
-
-“Say, it was rotten mean of me,” admitted Mary easily. “I dunno what
-possessed me. That old codfish seemed to come in so blamed handy. But I
-was awful sorry—I cried last night after I went to bed about it, honest
-I did. You ask Una if I didn’t. I wouldn’t tell her what for ‘cause I
-was ashamed of it, and then she cried, too, because she was afraid
-someone had hurt my feelings. Laws, _I_ ain’t got any feelings to hurt
-worth speaking of. What worries me is why Mrs. Wiley hain’t been
-hunting for me. It ain’t like her.”
-
-Miss Cornelia herself thought it rather peculiar, but she merely
-admonished Mary sharply not to take any further liberties with the
-minister’s codfish, and went to report progress at Ingleside.
-
-“If the child’s story is true the matter ought to be looked into,” she
-said. “I know something about that Wiley woman, believe _me_. Marshall
-used to be well acquainted with her when he lived over-harbour. I heard
-him say something last summer about her and a home child she had—likely
-this very Mary-creature. He said some one told him she was working the
-child to death and not half feeding and clothing it. You know, Anne
-dearie, it has always been my habit neither to make nor meddle with
-those over-harbour folks. But I shall send Marshall over to-morrow to
-find out the rights of this if he can. And _then_ I’ll speak to the
-minister. Mind you, Anne dearie, the Merediths found this girl
-literally starving in James Taylor’s old hay barn. She had been there
-all night, cold and hungry and alone. And us sleeping warm in our beds
-after good suppers.”
-
-“The poor little thing,” said Anne, picturing one of her own dear
-babies, cold and hungry and alone in such circumstances. “If she has
-been ill-used, Miss Cornelia, she mustn’t be taken back to such a
-place. _I_ was an orphan once in a very similar situation.”
-
-“We’ll have to consult the Hopetown asylum folks,” said Miss Cornelia.
-“Anyway, she can’t be left at the manse. Dear knows what those poor
-children might learn from her. I understand that she has been known to
-swear. But just think of her being there two whole weeks and Mr
-Meredith never waking up to it! What business has a man like that to
-have a family? Why, Anne dearie, he ought to be a monk.”
-
-Two evenings later Miss Cornelia was back at Ingleside.
-
-“It’s the most amazing thing!” she said. “Mrs. Wiley was found dead in
-her bed the very morning after this Mary-creature ran away. She has had
-a bad heart for years and the doctor had warned her it might happen at
-any time. She had sent away her hired man and there was nobody in the
-house. Some neighbours found her the next day. They missed the child,
-it seems, but supposed Mrs. Wiley had sent her to her cousin near
-Charlottetown as she had said she was going to do. The cousin didn’t
-come to the funeral and so nobody ever knew that Mary wasn’t with her.
-The people Marshall talked to told him some things about the way Mrs.
-Wiley used this Mary that made his blood boil, so he declares. You
-know, it puts Marshall in a regular fury to hear of a child being
-ill-used. They said she whipped her mercilessly for every little fault
-or mistake. Some folks talked of writing to the asylum authorities but
-everybody’s business is nobody’s business and it was never done.”
-
-“I am sorry that Wiley person is dead,” said Susan fiercely. “I should
-like to go over-harbour and give her a piece of my mind. Starving and
-beating a child, Mrs. Dr. dear! As you know, I hold with lawful
-spanking, but I go no further. And what is to become of this poor child
-now, Mrs. Marshall Elliott?”
-
-“I suppose she must be sent back to Hopetown,” said Miss Cornelia. “I
-think every one hereabouts who wants a home child has one. I’ll see Mr.
-Meredith to-morrow and tell him my opinion of the whole affair.”
-
-“And no doubt she will, Mrs. Dr. dear,” said Susan, after Miss Cornelia
-had gone. “She would stick at nothing, not even at shingling the church
-spire if she took it into her head. But I cannot understand how even
-Cornelia Bryant can talk to a minister as she does. You would think he
-was just any common person.”
-
-When Miss Cornelia had gone, Nan Blythe uncurled herself from the
-hammock where she had been studying her lessons and slipped away to
-Rainbow Valley. The others were already there. Jem and Jerry were
-playing quoits with old horseshoes borrowed from the Glen blacksmith.
-Carl was stalking ants on a sunny hillock. Walter, lying on his stomach
-among the fern, was reading aloud to Mary and Di and Faith and Una from
-a wonderful book of myths wherein were fascinating accounts of Prester
-John and the Wandering Jew, divining rods and tailed men, of Schamir,
-the worm that split rocks and opened the way to golden treasure, of
-Fortunate Isles and swan-maidens. It was a great shock to Walter to
-learn that William Tell and Gelert were myths also; and the story of
-Bishop Hatto was to keep him awake all that night; but best of all he
-loved the stories of the Pied Piper and the San Greal. He read them
-thrillingly, while the bells on the Tree Lovers tinkled in the summer
-wind and the coolness of the evening shadows crept across the valley.
-
-“Say, ain’t them in’resting lies?” said Mary admiringly when Walter had
-closed the book.
-
-“They aren’t lies,” said Di indignantly.
-
-“You don’t mean they’re true?” asked Mary incredulously.
-
-“No—not exactly. They’re like those ghost-stories of yours. They
-weren’t true—but you didn’t expect us to believe them, so they weren’t
-lies.”
-
-“That yarn about the divining rod is no lie, anyhow,” said Mary. “Old
-Jake Crawford over-harbour can work it. They send for him from
-everywhere when they want to dig a well. And I believe I know the
-Wandering Jew.”
-
-“Oh, Mary,” said Una, awe-struck.
-
-“I do—true’s you’re alive. There was an old man at Mrs. Wiley’s one day
-last fall. He looked old enough to be _anything_. She was asking him
-about cedar posts, if he thought they’d last well. And he said, ‘Last
-well? They’ll last a thousand years. I know, for I’ve tried them
-twice.’ Now, if he was two thousand years old who was he but your
-Wandering Jew?”
-
-“I don’t believe the Wandering Jew would associate with a person like
-Mrs. Wiley,” said Faith decidedly.
-
-“I love the Pied Piper story,” said Di, “and so does mother. I always
-feel so sorry for the poor little lame boy who couldn’t keep up with
-the others and got shut out of the mountain. He must have been so
-disappointed. I think all the rest of his life he’d be wondering what
-wonderful thing he had missed and wishing he could have got in with the
-others.”
-
-“But how glad his mother must have been,” said Una softly. “I think she
-had been sorry all her life that he was lame. Perhaps she even used to
-cry about it. But she would never be sorry again—never. She would be
-glad he was lame because that was why she hadn’t lost him.”
-
-“Some day,” said Walter dreamily, looking afar into the sky, “the Pied
-Piper will come over the hill up there and down Rainbow Valley, piping
-merrily and sweetly. And I will follow him—follow him down to the
-shore—down to the sea—away from you all. I don’t think I’ll want to
-go—Jem will want to go—it will be such an adventure—but I won’t. Only
-I’ll _have_ to—the music will call and call and call me until I _must_
-follow.”
-
-“We’ll all go,” cried Di, catching fire at the flame of Walter’s fancy,
-and half-believing she could see the mocking, retreating figure of the
-mystic piper in the far, dim end of the valley.
-
-“No. You’ll sit here and wait,” said Walter, his great, splendid eyes
-full of strange glamour. “You’ll wait for us to come back. And we may
-not come—for we cannot come as long as the Piper plays. He may pipe us
-round the world. And still you’ll sit here and wait—and _wait_.”
-
-“Oh, dry up,” said Mary, shivering. “Don’t look like that, Walter
-Blythe. You give me the creeps. Do you want to set me bawling? I could
-just see that horrid old Piper going away on, and you boys following
-him, and us girls sitting here waiting all alone. I dunno why it is—I
-never was one of the blubbering kind—but as soon as you start your
-spieling I always want to cry.”
-
-Walter smiled in triumph. He liked to exercise this power of his over
-his companions—to play on their feelings, waken their fears, thrill
-their souls. It satisfied some dramatic instinct in him. But under his
-triumph was a queer little chill of some mysterious dread. The Pied
-Piper had seemed very real to him—as if the fluttering veil that hid
-the future had for a moment been blown aside in the starlit dusk of
-Rainbow Valley and some dim glimpse of coming years granted to him.
-
-Carl, coming up to their group with a report of the doings in ant-land,
-brought them all back to the realm of facts.
-
-“Ants _are_ darned in’resting,” exclaimed Mary, glad to escape the
-shadowy Piper’s thrall. “Carl and me watched that bed in the graveyard
-all Saturday afternoon. I never thought there was so much in bugs. Say,
-but they’re quarrelsome little cusses—some of ‘em like to start a fight
-‘thout any reason, far’s we could see. And some of ‘em are cowards.
-They got so scared they just doubled theirselves up into a ball and let
-the other fellows bang ‘em. They wouldn’t put up a fight at all. Some
-of ‘em are lazy and won’t work. We watched ‘em shirking. And there was
-one ant died of grief ‘cause another ant got killed—wouldn’t
-work—wouldn’t eat—just died—it did, honest to Go—oodness.”
-
-A shocked silence prevailed. Every one knew that Mary had not started
-out to say “goodness.” Faith and Di exchanged glances that would have
-done credit to Miss Cornelia herself. Walter and Carl looked
-uncomfortable and Una’s lip trembled.
-
-Mary squirmed uncomfortably.
-
-“That slipped out ‘fore I thought—it did, honest to—I mean, true’s you
-live, and I swallowed half of it. You folks over here are mighty
-squeamish seems to me. Wish you could have heard the Wileys when they
-had a fight.”
-
-“Ladies don’t say such things,” said Faith, very primly for her.
-
-“It isn’t right,” whispered Una.
-
-“I ain’t a lady,” said Mary. “What chance’ve I ever had of being a
-lady? But I won’t say that again if I can help it. I promise you.”
-
-“Besides,” said Una, “you can’t expect God to answer your prayers if
-you take His name in vain, Mary.”
-
-“I don’t expect Him to answer ‘em anyhow,” said Mary of little faith.
-“I’ve been asking Him for a week to clear up this Wiley affair and He
-hasn’t done a thing. I’m going to give up.”
-
-At this juncture Nan arrived breathless.
-
-“Oh, Mary, I’ve news for you. Mrs. Elliott has been over-harbour and
-what do you think she found out? Mrs. Wiley is dead—she was found dead
-in bed the morning after you ran away. So you’ll never have to go back
-to her.”
-
-“Dead!” said Mary stupefied. Then she shivered.
-
-“Do you s’pose my praying had anything to do with that?” she cried
-imploringly to Una. “If it had I’ll never pray again as long as I live.
-Why, she may come back and ha’nt me.”
-
-“No, no, Mary,” said Una comfortingly, “it hadn’t. Why, Mrs. Wiley died
-long before you ever began to pray about it at all.”
-
-“That’s so,” said Mary recovering from her panic. “But I tell you it
-gave me a start. I wouldn’t like to think I’d prayed anybody to death.
-I never thought of such a thing as her dying when I was praying. She
-didn’t seem much like the dying kind. Did Mrs. Elliott say anything
-about me?”
-
-“She said you would likely have to go back to the asylum.”
-
-“I thought as much,” said Mary drearily. “And then they’ll give me out
-again—likely to some one just like Mrs. Wiley. Well, I s’pose I can
-stand it. I’m tough.”
-
-“I’m going to pray that you won’t have to go back,” whispered Una, as
-she and Mary walked home to the manse.
-
-“You can do as you like,” said Mary decidedly, “but I vow _I_ won’t.
-I’m good and scared of this praying business. See what’s come of it. If
-Mrs. Wiley _had_ died after I started praying it would have been my
-doings.”
-
-“Oh, no, it wouldn’t,” said Una. “I wish I could explain things
-better—father could, I know, if you’d talk to him, Mary.”
-
-“Catch me! I don’t know what to make of your father, that’s the long
-and short of it. He goes by me and never sees me in broad daylight. I
-ain’t proud—but I ain’t a door-mat, neither!”
-
-“Oh, Mary, it’s just father’s way. Most of the time he never sees us,
-either. He is thinking deeply, that is all. And I _am_ going to pray
-that God will keep you in Four Winds—because I like you, Mary.”
-
-“All right. Only don’t let me hear of any more people dying on account
-of it,” said Mary. “I’d like to stay in Four Winds fine. I like it and
-I like the harbour and the light house—and you and the Blythes. You’re
-the only friends I ever had and I’d hate to leave you.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX.
-UNA INTERVENES
-
-
-Miss Cornelia had an interview with Mr. Meredith which proved something
-of a shock to that abstracted gentleman. She pointed out to him, none
-too respectfully, his dereliction of duty in allowing a waif like Mary
-Vance to come into his family and associate with his children without
-knowing or learning anything about her.
-
-“I don’t say there is much harm done, of course,” she concluded. “This
-Mary-creature isn’t what you might call bad, when all is said and done.
-I’ve been questioning your children and the Blythes, and from what I
-can make out there’s nothing much to be said against the child except
-that she’s slangy and doesn’t use very refined language. But think what
-might have happened if she’d been like some of those home children we
-know of. You know yourself what that poor little creature the Jim
-Flaggs’ had, taught and told the Flagg children.”
-
-Mr. Meredith did know and was honestly shocked over his own
-carelessness in the matter.
-
-“But what is to be done, Mrs. Elliott?” he asked helplessly. “We can’t
-turn the poor child out. She must be cared for.”
-
-“Of course. We’d better write to the Hopetown authorities at once.
-Meanwhile, I suppose she might as well stay here for a few more days
-till we hear from them. But keep your eyes and ears open, Mr.
-Meredith.”
-
-Susan would have died of horror on the spot if she had heard Miss
-Cornelia so admonishing a minister. But Miss Cornelia departed in a
-warm glow of satisfaction over duty done, and that night Mr. Meredith
-asked Mary to come into his study with him. Mary obeyed, looking
-literally ghastly with fright. But she got the surprise of her poor,
-battered little life. This man, of whom she had stood so terribly in
-awe, was the kindest, gentlest soul she had ever met. Before she knew
-what happened Mary found herself pouring all her troubles into his ear
-and receiving in return such sympathy and tender understanding as it
-had never occurred to her to imagine. Mary left the study with her face
-and eyes so softened that Una hardly knew her.
-
-“Your father’s all right, when he does wake up,” she said with a sniff
-that just escaped being a sob. “It’s a pity he doesn’t wake up oftener.
-He said I wasn’t to blame for Mrs. Wiley dying, but that I must try to
-think of her good points and not of her bad ones. I dunno what good
-points she had, unless it was keeping her house clean and making
-first-class butter. I know I ‘most wore my arms out scrubbing her old
-kitchen floor with the knots in it. But anything your father says goes
-with me after this.”
-
-Mary proved a rather dull companion in the following days, however. She
-confided to Una that the more she thought of going back to the asylum
-the more she hated it. Una racked her small brains for some way of
-averting it, but it was Nan Blythe who came to the rescue with a
-somewhat startling suggestion.
-
-“Mrs. Elliott might take Mary herself. She has a great big house and
-Mr. Elliott is always wanting her to have help. It would be just a
-splendid place for Mary. Only she’d have to behave herself.”
-
-“Oh, Nan, do you think Mrs. Elliott would take her?”
-
-“It wouldn’t do any harm if you asked her,” said Nan. At first Una did
-not think she could. She was so shy that to ask a favour of anybody was
-agony to her. And she was very much in awe of the bustling, energetic
-Mrs. Elliott. She liked her very much and always enjoyed a visit to her
-house; but to go and ask her to adopt Mary Vance seemed such a height
-of presumption that Una’s timid spirit quailed.
-
-When the Hopetown authorities wrote to Mr. Meredith to send Mary to
-them without delay Mary cried herself to sleep in the manse attic that
-night and Una found a desperate courage. The next evening she slipped
-away from the manse to the harbour road. Far down in Rainbow Valley she
-heard joyous laughter but her way lay not there. She was terribly pale
-and terribly in earnest—so much so that she took no notice of the
-people she met—and old Mrs. Stanley Flagg was quite huffed and said Una
-Meredith would be as absentminded as her father when she grew up.
-
-Miss Cornelia lived half way between the Glen and Four Winds Point, in
-a house whose original glaring green hue had mellowed down to an
-agreeable greenish gray. Marshall Elliott had planted trees about it
-and set out a rose garden and a spruce hedge. It was quite a different
-place from what it had been in years agone. The manse children and the
-Ingleside children liked to go there. It was a beautiful walk down the
-old harbour road, and there was always a well-filled cooky jar at the
-end.
-
-The misty sea was lapping softly far down on the sands. Three big boats
-were skimming down the harbour like great white sea-birds. A schooner
-was coming up the channel. The world of Four Winds was steeped in
-glowing colour, and subtle music, and strange glamour, and everybody
-should have been happy in it. But when Una turned in at Miss Cornelia’s
-gate her very legs had almost refused to carry her.
-
-Miss Cornelia was alone on the veranda. Una had hoped Mr. Elliott would
-be there. He was so big and hearty and twinkly that there would be
-encouragement in his presence. She sat on the little stool Miss
-Cornelia brought out and tried to eat the doughnut Miss Cornelia gave
-her. It stuck in her throat, but she swallowed desperately lest Miss
-Cornelia be offended. She could not talk; she was still pale; and her
-big, dark-blue eyes looked so piteous that Miss Cornelia concluded the
-child was in some trouble.
-
-“What’s on your mind, dearie?” she asked. “There’s something, that’s
-plain to be seen.”
-
-Una swallowed the last twist of doughnut with a desperate gulp.
-
-“Mrs. Elliott, won’t you take Mary Vance?” she said beseechingly.
-
-Miss Cornelia stared blankly.
-
-“Me! Take Mary Vance! Do you mean keep her?”
-
-“Yes—keep her—adopt her,” said Una eagerly, gaining courage now that
-the ice was broken. “Oh, Mrs. Elliott, _please_ do. She doesn’t want to
-go back to the asylum—she cries every night about it. She’s so afraid
-of being sent to another hard place. And she’s _so_ smart—there isn’t
-anything she can’t do. I know you wouldn’t be sorry if you took her.”
-
-“I never thought of such a thing,” said Miss Cornelia rather
-helplessly.
-
-“_Won’t_ you think of it?” implored Una.
-
-“But, dearie, I don’t want help. I’m quite able to do all the work
-here. And I never thought I’d like to have a home girl if I did need
-help.”
-
-The light went out of Una’s eyes. Her lips trembled. She sat down on
-her stool again, a pathetic little figure of disappointment, and began
-to cry.
-
-“Don’t—dearie—don’t,” exclaimed Miss Cornelia in distress. She could
-never bear to hurt a child. “I don’t say I _won’t_ take her—but the
-idea is so new it has just kerflummuxed me. I must think it over.”
-
-“Mary is _so_ smart,” said Una again.
-
-“Humph! So I’ve heard. I’ve heard she swears, too. Is that true?”
-
-“I’ve never heard her swear _exactly_,” faltered Una uncomfortably.
-“But I’m afraid she _could_.”
-
-“I believe you! Does she always tell the truth?”
-
-“I think she does, except when she’s afraid of a whipping.”
-
-“And yet you want me to take her!”
-
-“_Some one_ has to take her,” sobbed Una. “_Some one_ has to look after
-her, Mrs. Elliott.”
-
-“That’s true. Perhaps it _is_ my duty to do it,” said Miss Cornelia
-with a sigh. “Well, I’ll have to talk it over with Mr. Elliott. So
-don’t say anything about it just yet. Take another doughnut, dearie.”
-
-Una took it and ate it with a better appetite.
-
-“I’m very fond of doughnuts,” she confessed “Aunt Martha never makes
-any. But Miss Susan at Ingleside does, and sometimes she lets us have a
-plateful in Rainbow Valley. Do you know what I do when I’m hungry for
-doughnuts and can’t get any, Mrs. Elliott?”
-
-“No, dearie. What?”
-
-“I get out mother’s old cook book and read the doughnut recipe—and the
-other recipes. They sound _so_ nice. I always do that when I’m
-hungry—especially after we’ve had ditto for dinner. _Then_ I read the
-fried chicken and the roast goose recipes. Mother could make all those
-nice things.”
-
-“Those manse children will starve to death yet if Mr. Meredith doesn’t
-get married,” Miss Cornelia told her husband indignantly after Una had
-gone. “And he won’t—and what’s to be done? And _shall_ we take this
-Mary-creature, Marshall?”
-
-“Yes, take her,” said Marshall laconically.
-
-“Just like a man,” said his wife, despairingly. “‘Take her’—as if that
-was all. There are a hundred things to be considered, believe _me_.”
-
-“Take her—and we’ll consider them afterwards, Cornelia,” said her
-husband.
-
-In the end Miss Cornelia did take her and went up to announce her
-decision to the Ingleside people first.
-
-“Splendid!” said Anne delightedly. “I’ve been hoping you would do that
-very thing, Miss Cornelia. I want that poor child to get a good home. I
-was a homeless little orphan just like her once.”
-
-“I don’t think this Mary-creature is or ever will be much like you,”
-retorted Miss Cornelia gloomily. “She’s a cat of another colour. But
-she’s also a human being with an immortal soul to save. I’ve got a
-shorter catechism and a small tooth comb and I’m going to do my duty by
-her, now that I’ve set my hand to the plough, believe me.”
-
-Mary received the news with chastened satisfaction.
-
-“It’s better luck than I expected,” she said.
-
-“You’ll have to mind your p’s and q’s with Mrs. Elliott,” said Nan.
-
-“Well, I can do that,” flashed Mary. “I know how to behave when I want
-to just as well as you, Nan Blythe.”
-
-“You mustn’t use bad words, you know, Mary,” said Una anxiously.
-
-“I s’pose she’d die of horror if I did,” grinned Mary, her white eyes
-shining with unholy glee over the idea. “But you needn’t worry, Una.
-Butter won’t melt in my mouth after this. I’ll be all prunes and
-prisms.”
-
-“Nor tell lies,” added Faith.
-
-“Not even to get off from a whipping?” pleaded Mary.
-
-“Mrs. Elliott will _never_ whip you—_never_,” exclaimed Di.
-
-“Won’t she?” said Mary skeptically. “If I ever find myself in a place
-where I ain’t licked I’ll think it’s heaven all right. No fear of me
-telling lies then. I ain’t fond of telling ‘em—I’d ruther not, if it
-comes to that.”
-
-The day before Mary’s departure from the manse they had a picnic in her
-honour in Rainbow Valley, and that evening all the manse children gave
-her something from their scanty store of treasured things for a
-keepsake. Carl gave her his Noah’s ark and Jerry his second best
-jew’s-harp. Faith gave her a little hairbrush with a mirror in the back
-of it, which Mary had always considered very wonderful. Una hesitated
-between an old beaded purse and a gay picture of Daniel in the lion’s
-den, and finally offered Mary her choice. Mary really hankered after
-the beaded purse, but she knew Una loved it, so she said,
-
-“Give me Daniel. I’d rusher have it ‘cause I’m partial to lions. Only I
-wish they’d et Daniel up. It would have been more exciting.”
-
-At bedtime Mary coaxed Una to sleep with her.
-
-“It’s for the last time,” she said, “and it’s raining tonight, and I
-hate sleeping up there alone when it’s raining on account of that
-graveyard. I don’t mind it on fine nights, but a night like this I
-can’t see anything but the rain pouring down on them old white stones,
-and the wind round the window sounds as if them dead people were trying
-to get in and crying ‘cause they couldn’t.”
-
-“I like rainy nights,” said Una, when they were cuddled down together
-in the little attic room, “and so do the Blythe girls.”
-
-“I don’t mind ‘em when I’m not handy to graveyards,” said Mary. “If I
-was alone here I’d cry my eyes out I’d be so lonesome. I feel awful bad
-to be leaving you all.”
-
-“Mrs. Elliott will let you come up and play in Rainbow Valley quite
-often I’m sure,” said Una. “And you _will_ be a good girl, won’t you,
-Mary?”
-
-“Oh, I’ll try,” sighed Mary. “But it won’t be as easy for me to be
-good—inside, I mean, as well as outside—as it is for you. You hadn’t
-such scalawags of relations as I had.”
-
-“But your people must have had some good qualities as well as bad
-ones,” argued Una. “You must live up to them and never mind their bad
-ones.”
-
-“I don’t believe they had any good qualities,” said Mary gloomily. “I
-never heard of any. My grandfather had money, but they say he was a
-rascal. No, I’ll just have to start out on my own hook and do the best
-I can.”
-
-“And God will help you, you know, Mary, if you ask Him.”
-
-“I don’t know about that.”
-
-“Oh, Mary. You know we asked God to get a home for you and He did.”
-
-“I don’t see what He had to do with it,” retorted Mary. “It was you put
-it into Mrs. Elliott’s head.”
-
-“But God put it into her _heart_ to take you. All my putting it into
-her _head_ wouldn’t have done any good if He hadn’t.”
-
-“Well, there may be something in that,” admitted Mary. “Mind you, I
-haven’t got anything against God, Una. I’m willing to give Him a
-chance. But, honest, I think He’s an awful lot like your father—just
-absent-minded and never taking any notice of a body most of the time,
-but sometimes waking up all of a suddent and being awful good and kind
-and sensible.”
-
-“Oh, Mary, no!” exclaimed horrified Una. “God isn’t a bit like father—I
-mean He’s a thousand times better and kinder.”
-
-“If He’s as good as your father He’ll do for me,” said Mary. “When your
-father was talking to me I felt as if I never could be bad any more.”
-
-“I wish you’d talk to father about Him,” sighed Una. “He can explain it
-all so much better than I can.”
-
-“Why, so I will, next time he wakes up,” promised Mary. “That night he
-talked to me in the study he showed me real clear that my praying
-didn’t kill Mrs. Wiley. My mind’s been easy since, but I’m real
-cautious about praying. I guess the old rhyme is the safest. Say, Una,
-it seems to me if one has to pray to anybody it’d be better to pray to
-the devil than to God. God’s good, anyhow so you say, so He won’t do
-you any harm, but from all I can make out the devil needs to be
-pacified. I think the sensible way would be to say to _him_, ‘Good
-devil, please don’t tempt me. Just leave me alone, please.’ Now, don’t
-you?”
-
-“Oh, no, no, Mary. I’m sure it couldn’t be right to pray to the devil.
-And it wouldn’t do any good because he’s bad. It might aggravate him
-and he’d be worse than ever.”
-
-“Well, as to this God-matter,” said Mary stubbornly, “since you and I
-can’t settle it, there ain’t no use in talking more about it until
-we’ve a chanct to find out the rights of it. I’ll do the best I can
-alone till then.”
-
-“If mother was alive she could tell us everything,” said Una with a
-sigh.
-
-“I wisht she was alive,” said Mary. “I don’t know what’s going to
-become of you youngsters when I’m gone. Anyhow, _do_ try and keep the
-house a little tidy. The way people talks about it is scandalous. And
-the first thing you know your father will be getting married again and
-then your noses will be out of joint.”
-
-Una was startled. The idea of her father marrying again had never
-presented itself to her before. She did not like it and she lay silent
-under the chill of it.
-
-“Stepmothers are _awful_ creatures,” Mary went on. “I could make your
-blood run cold if I was to tell you all I know about ‘em. The Wilson
-kids across the road from Wiley’s had a stepmother. She was just as bad
-to ‘em as Mrs. Wiley was to me. It’ll be awful if you get a
-stepmother.”
-
-“I’m sure we won’t,” said Una tremulously. “Father won’t marry anybody
-else.”
-
-“He’ll be hounded into it, I expect,” said Mary darkly. “All the old
-maids in the settlement are after him. There’s no being up to them. And
-the worst of stepmothers is, they always set your father against you.
-He’d never care anything about you again. He’d always take her part and
-her children’s part. You see, she’d make him believe you were all bad.”
-
-“I wish you hadn’t told me this, Mary,” cried Una. “It makes me feel so
-unhappy.”
-
-“I only wanted to warn you,” said Mary, rather repentantly. “Of course,
-your father’s so absent-minded he mightn’t happen to think of getting
-married again. But it’s better to be prepared.”
-
-Long after Mary slept serenely little Una lay awake, her eyes smarting
-with tears. On, how dreadful it would be if her father should marry
-somebody who would make him hate her and Jerry and Faith and Carl! She
-couldn’t bear it—she couldn’t!
-
-Mary had not instilled any poison of the kind Miss Cornelia had feared
-into the manse children’s minds. Yet she had certainly contrived to do
-a little mischief with the best of intentions. But she slept
-dreamlessly, while Una lay awake and the rain fell and the wind wailed
-around the old gray manse. And the Rev. John Meredith forgot to go to
-bed at all because he was absorbed in reading a life of St. Augustine.
-It was gray dawn when he finished it and went upstairs, wrestling with
-the problems of two thousand years ago. The door of the girls’ room was
-open and he saw Faith lying asleep, rosy and beautiful. He wondered
-where Una was. Perhaps she had gone over to “stay all night” with the
-Blythe girls. She did this occasionally, deeming it a great treat. John
-Meredith sighed. He felt that Una’s whereabouts ought not to be a
-mystery to him. Cecelia would have looked after her better than that.
-
-If only Cecelia were still with him! How pretty and gay she had been!
-How the old manse up at Maywater had echoed to her songs! And she had
-gone away so suddenly, taking her laughter and music and leaving
-silence—so suddenly that he had never quite got over his feeling of
-amazement. How could _she_, the beautiful and vivid, have died?
-
-The idea of a second marriage had never presented itself seriously to
-John Meredith. He had loved his wife so deeply that he believed he
-could never care for any woman again. He had a vague idea that before
-very long Faith would be old enough to take her mother’s place. Until
-then, he must do the best he could alone. He sighed and went to his
-room, where the bed was still unmade. Aunt Martha had forgotten it, and
-Mary had not dared to make it because Aunt Martha had forbidden her to
-meddle with anything in the minister’s room. But Mr. Meredith did not
-notice that it was unmade. His last thoughts were of St. Augustine.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X.
-THE MANSE GIRLS CLEAN HOUSE
-
-
-“Ugh,” said Faith, sitting up in bed with a shiver. “It’s raining. I do
-hate a rainy Sunday. Sunday is dull enough even when it’s fine.”
-
-“We oughtn’t to find Sunday dull,” said Una sleepily, trying to pull
-her drowsy wits together with an uneasy conviction that they had
-overslept.
-
-“But we _do_, you know,” said Faith candidly. “Mary Vance says most
-Sundays are so dull she could hang herself.”
-
-“We ought to like Sunday better than Mary Vance,” said Una
-remorsefully. “We’re the minister’s children.”
-
-“I wish we were a blacksmith’s children,” protested Faith angrily,
-hunting for her stockings. “_Then_ people wouldn’t expect us to be
-better than other children. _Just_ look at the holes in my heels. Mary
-darned them all up before she went away, but they’re as bad as ever
-now. Una, get up. I can’t get the breakfast alone. Oh, dear. I wish
-father and Jerry were home. You wouldn’t think we’d miss father much—we
-don’t see much of him when he is home. And yet _everything_ seems gone.
-I must run in and see how Aunt Martha is.”
-
-“Is she any better?” asked Una, when Faith returned.
-
-“No, she isn’t. She’s groaning with the misery still. Maybe we ought to
-tell Dr. Blythe. But she says not—she never had a doctor in her life
-and she isn’t going to begin now. She says doctors just live by
-poisoning people. Do you suppose they do?”
-
-“No, of course not,” said Una indignantly. “I’m sure Dr. Blythe
-wouldn’t poison anybody.”
-
-“Well, we’ll have to rub Aunt Martha’s back again after breakfast. We’d
-better not make the flannels as hot as we did yesterday.”
-
-Faith giggled over the remembrance. They had nearly scalded the skin
-off poor Aunt Martha’s back. Una sighed. Mary Vance would have known
-just what the precise temperature of flannels for a misery back should
-be. Mary knew everything. They knew nothing. And how could they learn,
-save by bitter experience for which, in this instance, unfortunate Aunt
-Martha had paid?
-
-The preceding Monday Mr. Meredith had left for Nova Scotia to spend his
-short vacation, taking Jerry with him. On Wednesday Aunt Martha was
-suddenly seized with a recurring and mysterious ailment which she
-always called “the misery,” and which was tolerably certain to attack
-her at the most inconvenient times. She could not rise from her bed,
-any movement causing agony. A doctor she flatly refused to have. Faith
-and Una cooked the meals and waited on her. The less said about the
-meals the better—yet they were not much worse than Aunt Martha’s had
-been. There were many women in the village who would have been glad to
-come and help, but Aunt Martha refused to let her plight be known.
-
-“You must worry on till I kin git around,” she groaned. “Thank
-goodness, John isn’t here. There’s a plenty o’ cold biled meat and
-bread and you kin try your hand at making porridge.”
-
-The girls had tried their hand, but so far without much success. The
-first day it had been too thin. The next day so thick that you could
-cut it in slices. And both days it had been burned.
-
-“I hate porridge,” said Faith viciously. “When I have a house of my own
-I’m _never_ going to have a single bit of porridge in it.”
-
-“What’ll your children do then?” asked Una. “Children have to have
-porridge or they won’t grow. Everybody says so.”
-
-“They’ll have to get along without it or stay runts,” retorted Faith
-stubbornly. “Here, Una, you stir it while I set the table. If I leave
-it for a minute the horrid stuff will burn. It’s half past nine. We’ll
-be late for Sunday School.”
-
-“I haven’t seen anyone going past yet,” said Una. “There won’t likely
-be many out. Just see how it’s pouring. And when there’s no preaching
-the folks won’t come from a distance to bring the children.”
-
-“Go and call Carl,” said Faith.
-
-Carl, it appeared, had a sore throat, induced by getting wet in the
-Rainbow Valley marsh the previous evening while pursuing dragon-flies.
-He had come home with dripping stockings and boots and had sat out the
-evening in them. He could not eat any breakfast and Faith made him go
-back to bed again. She and Una left the table as it was and went to
-Sunday School. There was no one in the school room when they got there
-and no one came. They waited until eleven and then went home.
-
-“There doesn’t seem to be anybody at the Methodist Sunday School
-either,” said Una.
-
-“I’m _glad_,” said Faith. “I’d hate to think the Methodists were better
-at going to Sunday School on rainy Sundays than the Presbyterians. But
-there’s no preaching in their Church to-day, either, so likely their
-Sunday School is in the afternoon.”
-
-Una washed the dishes, doing them quite nicely, for so much had she
-learned from Mary Vance. Faith swept the floor after a fashion and
-peeled the potatoes for dinner, cutting her finger in the process.
-
-“I wish we had something for dinner besides ditto,” sighed Una. “I’m so
-tired of it. The Blythe children don’t know what ditto is. And we
-_never_ have any pudding. Nan says Susan would faint if they had no
-pudding on Sundays. Why aren’t we like other people, Faith?”
-
-“I don’t want to be like other people,” laughed Faith, tying up her
-bleeding finger. “I like being myself. It’s more interesting. Jessie
-Drew is as good a housekeeper as her mother, but would you want to be
-as stupid as she is?”
-
-“But our house isn’t right. Mary Vance says so. She says people talk
-about it being so untidy.”
-
-Faith had an inspiration.
-
-“We’ll clean it all up,” she cried. “We’ll go right to work to-morrow.
-It’s a real good chance when Aunt Martha is laid up and can’t interfere
-with us. We’ll have it all lovely and clean when father comes home,
-just like it was when Mary went away. _any one_ can sweep and dust and
-wash windows. People won’t be able to talk about us any more. Jem
-Blythe says it’s only old cats that talk, but their talk hurts just as
-much as anybody’s.”
-
-“I hope it will be fine to-morrow,” said Una, fired with enthusiasm.
-“Oh, Faith, it will be splendid to be all cleaned up and like other
-people.”
-
-“I hope Aunt Martha’s misery will last over to-morrow,” said Faith. “If
-it doesn’t we won’t get a single thing done.”
-
-Faith’s amiable wish was fulfilled. The next day found Aunt Martha
-still unable to rise. Carl, too, was still sick and easily prevailed on
-to stay in bed. Neither Faith nor Una had any idea how sick the boy
-really was; a watchful mother would have had a doctor without delay;
-but there was no mother, and poor little Carl, with his sore throat and
-aching head and crimson cheeks, rolled himself up in his twisted
-bedclothes and suffered alone, somewhat comforted by the companionship
-of a small green lizard in the pocket of his ragged nighty.
-
-The world was full of summer sunshine after the rain. It was a peerless
-day for house-cleaning and Faith and Una went gaily to work.
-
-“We’ll clean the dining-room and the parlour,” said Faith. “It wouldn’t
-do to meddle with the study, and it doesn’t matter much about the
-upstairs. The first thing is to take everything out.”
-
-Accordingly, everything was taken out. The furniture was piled on the
-veranda and lawn and the Methodist graveyard fence was gaily draped
-with rugs. An orgy of sweeping followed, with an attempt at dusting on
-Una’s part, while Faith washed the windows of the dining-room, breaking
-one pane and cracking two in the process. Una surveyed the streaked
-result dubiously.
-
-“They don’t look right, somehow,” she said. “Mrs. Elliott’s and Susan’s
-windows just shine and sparkle.”
-
-“Never mind. They let the sunshine through just as well,” said Faith
-cheerfully. “They _must_ be clean after all the soap and water I’ve
-used, and that’s the main thing. Now, it’s past eleven, so I’ll wipe up
-this mess on the floor and we’ll go outside. You dust the furniture and
-I’ll shake the rugs. I’m going to do it in the graveyard. I don’t want
-to send dust flying all over the lawn.”
-
-Faith enjoyed the rug shaking. To stand on Hezekiah Pollock’s
-tombstone, flapping and shaking rugs, was real fun. To be sure, Elder
-Abraham Clow and his wife, driving past in their capacious
-double-seated buggy, seemed to gaze at her in grim disapproval.
-
-“Isn’t that a terrible sight?” said Elder Abraham solemnly.
-
-“I would never have believed it if I hadn’t seen it with my own eyes,”
-said Mrs. Elder Abraham, more solemnly still.
-
-Faith waved a door mat cheerily at the Clow party. It did not worry her
-that the elder and his wife did not return her greeting. Everybody knew
-that Elder Abraham had never been known to smile since he had been
-appointed Superintendent of the Sunday School fourteen years
-previously. But it hurt her that Minnie and Adella Clow did not wave
-back. Faith liked Minnie and Adella. Next to the Blythes, they were her
-best friends in school and she always helped Adella with her sums. This
-was gratitude for you. Her friends cut her because she was shaking rugs
-in an old graveyard where, as Mary Vance said, not a living soul had
-been buried for years. Faith flounced around to the veranda, where she
-found Una grieved in spirit because the Clow girls had not waved to
-her, either.
-
-“I suppose they’re mad over something,” said Faith. “Perhaps they’re
-jealous because we play so much in Rainbow Valley with the Blythes.
-Well, just wait till school opens and Adella wants me to show her how
-to do her sums! We’ll get square then. Come on, let’s put the things
-back in. I’m tired to death and I don’t believe the rooms will look
-much better than before we started—though I shook out pecks of dust in
-the graveyard. I _hate_ house-cleaning.”
-
-It was two o’clock before the tired girls finished the two rooms. They
-got a dreary bite in the kitchen and intended to wash the dishes at
-once. But Faith happened to pick up a new story-book Di Blythe had lent
-her and was lost to the world until sunset. Una took a cup of rank tea
-up to Carl but found him asleep; so she curled herself up on Jerry’s
-bed and went to sleep too. Meanwhile, a weird story flew through Glen
-St. Mary and folks asked each other seriously what was to be done with
-those manse youngsters.
-
-“That is past laughing at, believe _me_,” said Miss Cornelia to her
-husband, with a heavy sigh. “I couldn’t believe it at first. Miranda
-Drew brought the story home from the Methodist Sunday School this
-afternoon and I simply scoffed at it. But Mrs. Elder Abraham says she
-and the Elder saw it with their own eyes.”
-
-“Saw what?” asked Marshall.
-
-“Faith and Una Meredith stayed home from Sunday School this morning and
-_cleaned house_,” said Miss Cornelia, in accents of despair. “When
-Elder Abraham went home from the church—he had stayed behind to
-straighten out the library books—he saw them shaking rugs in the
-Methodist graveyard. I can never look a Methodist in the face again.
-Just think what a scandal it will make!”
-
-A scandal it assuredly did make, growing more scandalous as it spread,
-until the over-harbour people heard that the manse children had not
-only cleaned house and put out a washing on Sunday, but had wound up
-with an afternoon picnic in the graveyard while the Methodist Sunday
-School was going on. The only household which remained in blissful
-ignorance of the terrible thing was the manse itself; on what Faith and
-Una fondly believed to be Tuesday it rained again; for the next three
-days it rained; nobody came near the manse; the manse folk went
-nowhere; they might have waded through the misty Rainbow Valley up to
-Ingleside, but all the Blythe family, save Susan and the doctor, were
-away on a visit to Avonlea.
-
-“This is the last of our bread,” said Faith, “and the ditto is done. If
-Aunt Martha doesn’t get better soon _what_ will we do?”
-
-“We can buy some bread in the village and there’s the codfish Mary
-dried,” said Una. “But we don’t know how to cook it.”
-
-“Oh, that’s easy,” laughed Faith. “You just boil it.”
-
-Boil it they did; but as it did not occur to them to soak it beforehand
-it was too salty to eat. That night they were very hungry; but by the
-following day their troubles were over. Sunshine returned to the world;
-Carl was well and Aunt Martha’s misery left her as suddenly as it had
-come; the butcher called at the manse and chased famine away. To crown
-all, the Blythes returned home, and that evening they and the manse
-children and Mary Vance kept sunset tryst once more in Rainbow Valley,
-where the daisies were floating upon the grass like spirits of the dew
-and the bells on the Tree Lovers rang like fairy chimes in the scented
-twilight.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI.
-A DREADFUL DISCOVERY
-
-
-“Well, you kids have gone and done it now,” was Mary’s greeting, as she
-joined them in the Valley. Miss Cornelia was up at Ingleside, holding
-agonized conclave with Anne and Susan, and Mary hoped that the session
-might be a long one, for it was all of two weeks since she had been
-allowed to revel with her chums in the dear valley of rainbows.
-
-“Done what?” demanded everybody but Walter, who was day-dreaming as
-usual.
-
-“It’s you manse young ones, I mean,” said Mary. “It was just awful of
-you. _I_ wouldn’t have done such a thing for the world, and _I_ weren’t
-brought up in a manse—weren’t brought up _anywhere_—just _come_ up.”
-
-“What have _we_ done?” asked Faith blankly.
-
-“Done! You’d _better_ ask! The talk is something terrible. I expect
-it’s ruined your father in this congregation. He’ll never be able to
-live it down, poor man! Everybody blames him for it, and that isn’t
-fair. But nothing _is_ fair in this world. You ought to be ashamed of
-yourselves.”
-
-“What _have_ we done?” asked Una again, despairingly. Faith said
-nothing, but her eyes flashed golden-brown scorn at Mary.
-
-“Oh, don’t pretend innocence,” said Mary, witheringly. “Everybody knows
-what you have done.”
-
-“_I_ don’t,” interjected Jem Blythe indignantly. “Don’t let me catch
-you making Una cry, Mary Vance. What are you talking about?”
-
-“I s’pose you don’t know, since you’re just back from up west,” said
-Mary, somewhat subdued. Jem could always manage her. “But everybody
-else knows, you’d better believe.”
-
-“Knows what?”
-
-“That Faith and Una stayed home from Sunday School last Sunday and
-_cleaned house_.”
-
-“We didn’t,” cried Faith and Una, in passionate denial.
-
-Mary looked haughtily at them.
-
-“I didn’t suppose you’d deny it, after the way you’ve combed _me_ down
-for lying,” she said. “What’s the good of saying you didn’t? Everybody
-knows you _did_. Elder Clow and his wife saw you. Some people say it
-will break up the church, but _I_ don’t go that far. You _are_ nice
-ones.”
-
-Nan Blythe stood up and put her arms around the dazed Faith and Una.
-
-“They were nice enough to take you in and feed you and clothe you when
-you were starving in Mr. Taylor’s barn, Mary Vance,” she said. “You are
-_very_ grateful, I must say.”
-
-“I _am_ grateful,” retorted Mary. “You’d know it if you’d heard me
-standing up for Mr. Meredith through thick and thin. I’ve blistered my
-tongue talking for him this week. I’ve said again and again that he
-isn’t to blame if his young ones did clean house on Sunday. He was
-away—and they knew better.”
-
-“But we didn’t,” protested Una. “It was _Monday_ we cleaned house.
-Wasn’t it, Faith?”
-
-“Of course it was,” said Faith, with flashing eyes. “We went to Sunday
-School in spite of the rain—and no one came—not even Elder Abraham, for
-all his talk about fair-weather Christians.”
-
-“It was Saturday it rained,” said Mary. “Sunday was as fine as silk. I
-wasn’t at Sunday School because I had toothache, but every one else was
-and they saw all your stuff out on the lawn. And Elder Abraham and Mrs.
-Elder Abraham saw you shaking rugs in the graveyard.”
-
-Una sat down among the daisies and began to cry.
-
-“Look here,” said Jem resolutely, “this thing must be cleared up.
-_Somebody_ has made a mistake. Sunday _was_ fine, Faith. How could you
-have thought Saturday was Sunday?”
-
-“Prayer-meeting was Thursday night,” cried Faith, “and Adam flew into
-the soup-pot on Friday when Aunt Martha’s cat chased him, and spoiled
-our dinner; and Saturday there was a snake in the cellar and Carl
-caught it with a forked stick and carried it out, and Sunday it rained.
-So there!”
-
-“Prayer-meeting was Wednesday night,” said Mary. “Elder Baxter was to
-lead and he couldn’t go Thursday night and it was changed to Wednesday.
-You were just a day out, Faith Meredith, and you _did_ work on Sunday.”
-
-Suddenly Faith burst into a peal of laughter.
-
-“I suppose we did. What a joke!”
-
-“It isn’t much of a joke for your father,” said Mary sourly.
-
-“It’ll be all right when people find out it was just a mistake,” said
-Faith carelessly. “We’ll explain.”
-
-“You can explain till you’re black in the face,” said Mary, “but a lie
-like that’ll travel faster’n further than you ever will. I’VE seen more
-of the world than you and _I_ know. Besides, there are plenty of folks
-won’t believe it was a mistake.”
-
-“They will if I tell them,” said Faith.
-
-“You can’t tell everybody,” said Mary. “No, I tell you you’ve disgraced
-your father.”
-
-Una’s evening was spoiled by this dire reflection, but Faith refused to
-be made uncomfortable. Besides, she had a plan that would put
-everything right. So she put the past with its mistake behind her and
-gave herself over to enjoyment of the present. Jem went away to fish
-and Walter came out of his reverie and proceeded to describe the woods
-of heaven. Mary pricked up her ears and listened respectfully. Despite
-her awe of Walter she revelled in his “book talk.” It always gave her a
-delightful sensation. Walter had been reading his Coleridge that day,
-and he pictured a heaven where
-
-“There were gardens bright with sinuous rills
-Where blossomed many an incense bearing tree,
-And there were forests ancient as the hills
-Enfolding sunny spots of greenery.”
-
-“I didn’t know there was any woods in heaven,” said Mary, with a long
-breath. “I thought it was all streets—and streets—_and_ streets.”
-
-“Of course there are woods,” said Nan. “Mother can’t live without trees
-and I can’t, so what would be the use of going to heaven if there
-weren’t any trees?”
-
-“There are cities, too,” said the young dreamer, “splendid
-cities—coloured just like the sunset, with sapphire towers and rainbow
-domes. They are built of gold and diamonds—whole streets of diamonds,
-flashing like the sun. In the squares there are crystal fountains
-kissed by the light, and everywhere the asphodel blooms—the flower of
-heaven.”
-
-“Fancy!” said Mary. “I saw the main street in Charlottetown once and I
-thought it was real grand, but I s’pose it’s nothing to heaven. Well,
-it all sounds gorgeous the way you tell it, but won’t it be kind of
-dull, too?”
-
-“Oh, I guess we can have some fun when the angels’ backs are turned,”
-said Faith comfortably.
-
-“Heaven is _all_ fun,” declared Di.
-
-“The Bible doesn’t say so,” cried Mary, who had read so much of the
-Bible on Sunday afternoons under Miss Cornelia’s eye that she now
-considered herself quite an authority on it.
-
-“Mother says the Bible language is figurative,” said Nan.
-
-“Does that mean that it isn’t true?” asked Mary hopefully.
-
-“No—not exactly—but I think it means that heaven will be just like what
-you’d like it to be.”
-
-“I’d like it to be just like Rainbow Valley,” said Mary, “with all you
-kids to gas and play with. _That’s_ good enough for me. Anyhow, we
-can’t go to heaven till we’re dead and maybe not then, so what’s the
-use of worrying? Here’s Jem with a string of trout and it’s my turn to
-fry them.”
-
-“We ought to know more about heaven than Walter does when we’re the
-minister’s family,” said Una, as they walked home that night.
-
-“We _know_ just as much, but Walter can _imagine_,” said Faith. “Mrs.
-Elliott says he gets it from his mother.”
-
-“I do wish we hadn’t made that mistake about Sunday,” sighed Una.
-
-“Don’t worry over that. I’ve thought of a great plan to explain so that
-everybody will know,” said Faith. “Just wait till to-morrow night.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII.
-AN EXPLANATION AND A DARE
-
-
-The Rev. Dr. Cooper preached in Glen St. Mary the next evening and the
-Presbyterian Church was crowded with people from near and far. The
-Reverend Doctor was reputed to be a very eloquent speaker; and, bearing
-in mind the old dictum that a minister should take his best clothes to
-the city and his best sermons to the country, he delivered a very
-scholarly and impressive discourse. But when the folks went home that
-night it was not of Dr. Cooper’s sermon they talked. They had
-completely forgotten all about it.
-
-Dr. Cooper had concluded with a fervent appeal, had wiped the
-perspiration from his massive brow, had said “Let us pray” as he was
-famed for saying it, and had duly prayed. There was a slight pause. In
-Glen St. Mary church the old fashion of taking the collection after the
-sermon instead of before still held—mainly because the Methodists had
-adopted the new fashion first, and Miss Cornelia and Elder Clow would
-not hear of following where Methodists had led. Charles Baxter and
-Thomas Douglas, whose duty it was to pass the plates, were on the point
-of rising to their feet. The organist had got out the music of her
-anthem and the choir had cleared its throat. Suddenly Faith Meredith
-rose in the manse pew, walked up to the pulpit platform, and faced the
-amazed audience.
-
-Miss Cornelia half rose in her seat and then sat down again. Her pew
-was far back and it occurred to her that whatever Faith meant to do or
-say would be half done or said before she could reach her. There was no
-use making the exhibition worse than it had to be. With an anguished
-glance at Mrs. Dr. Blythe, and another at Deacon Warren of the
-Methodist Church, Miss Cornelia resigned herself to another scandal.
-
-“If the child was only dressed decently itself,” she groaned in spirit.
-
-Faith, having spilled ink on her good dress, had serenely put on an old
-one of faded pink print. A caticornered rent in the skirt had been
-darned with scarlet tracing cotton and the hem had been let down,
-showing a bright strip of unfaded pink around the skirt. But Faith was
-not thinking of her clothes at all. She was feeling suddenly nervous.
-What had seemed easy in imagination was rather hard in reality.
-Confronted by all those staring questioning eyes Faith’s courage almost
-failed her. The lights were so bright, the silence so awesome. She
-thought she could not speak after all. But she _must_—her father _must_
-be cleared of suspicion. Only—the words would _not_ come.
-
-Una’s little pearl-pure face gleamed up at her beseechingly from the
-manse pew. The Blythe children were lost in amazement. Back under the
-gallery Faith saw the sweet graciousness of Miss Rosemary West’s smile
-and the amusement of Miss Ellen’s. But none of these helped her. It was
-Bertie Shakespeare Drew who saved the situation. Bertie Shakespeare sat
-in the front seat of the gallery and he made a derisive face at Faith.
-Faith promptly made a dreadful one back at him, and, in her anger over
-being grimaced at by Bertie Shakespeare, forgot her stage fright. She
-found her voice and spoke out clearly and bravely.
-
-“I want to explain something,” she said, “and I want to do it now
-because everybody will hear it that heard the other. People are saying
-that Una and I stayed home last Sunday and cleaned house instead of
-going to Sunday School. Well, we did—but we didn’t mean to. We got
-mixed up in the days of the week. It was all Elder Baxter’s
-fault”—sensation in Baxter’s pew—“because he went and changed the
-prayer-meeting to Wednesday night and then we thought Thursday was
-Friday and so on till we thought Saturday was Sunday. Carl was laid up
-sick and so was Aunt Martha, so they couldn’t put us right. We went to
-Sunday School in all that rain on Saturday and nobody came. And then we
-thought we’d clean house on Monday and stop old cats from talking about
-how dirty the manse was”—general sensation all over the church—“and we
-did. I shook the rugs in the Methodist graveyard because it was such a
-convenient place and not because I meant to be disrespectful of the
-dead. It isn’t the dead folks who have made the fuss over this—it’s the
-living folks. And it isn’t right for any of you to blame my father for
-this, because he was away and didn’t know, and anyhow we thought it was
-Monday. He’s just the best father that ever lived in the world and we
-love him with all our hearts.”
-
-Faith’s bravado ebbed out in a sob. She ran down the steps and flashed
-out of the side door of the church. There the friendly starlit, summer
-night comforted her and the ache went out of her eyes and throat. She
-felt very happy. The dreadful explanation was over and everybody knew
-now that her father wasn’t to blame and that she and Una were not so
-wicked as to have cleaned house knowingly on Sunday.
-
-Inside the church people gazed blankly at each other, but Thomas
-Douglas rose and walked up the aisle with a set face. _His_ duty was
-clear; the collection must be taken if the skies fell. Taken it was;
-the choir sang the anthem, with a dismal conviction that it fell
-terribly flat, and Dr. Cooper gave out the concluding hymn and
-pronounced the benediction with considerably less unction than usual.
-The Reverend Doctor had a sense of humour and Faith’s performance
-tickled him. Besides, John Meredith was well known in Presbyterian
-circles.
-
-Mr. Meredith returned home the next afternoon, but before his coming
-Faith contrived to scandalize Glen St. Mary again. In the reaction from
-Sunday evening’s intensity and strain she was especially full of what
-Miss Cornelia would have called “devilment” on Monday. This led her to
-dare Walter Blythe to ride through Main Street on a pig, while she rode
-another one.
-
-The pigs in question were two tall, lank animals, supposed to belong to
-Bertie Shakespeare Drew’s father, which had been haunting the roadside
-by the manse for a couple of weeks. Walter did not want to ride a pig
-through Glen St. Mary, but whatever Faith Meredith dared him to do must
-be done. They tore down the hill and through the village, Faith bent
-double with laughter over her terrified courser, Walter crimson with
-shame. They tore past the minister himself, just coming home from the
-station; he, being a little less dreamy and abstracted than usual—owing
-to having had a talk on the train with Miss Cornelia who always wakened
-him up temporarily—noticed them, and thought he really must speak to
-Faith about it and tell her that such conduct was not seemly. But he
-had forgotten the trifling incident by the time he reached home. They
-passed Mrs. Alec Davis, who shrieked in horror, and they passed Miss
-Rosemary West who laughed and sighed. Finally, just before the pigs
-swooped into Bertie Shakespeare Drew’s back yard, never to emerge
-therefrom again, so great had been the shock to their nerves—Faith and
-Walter jumped off, as Dr. and Mrs. Blythe drove swiftly by.
-
-“So that is how you bring up your boys,” said Gilbert with mock
-severity.
-
-“Perhaps I do spoil them a little,” said Anne contritely, “but, oh,
-Gilbert, when I think of my own childhood before I came to Green Gables
-I haven’t the heart to be very strict. How hungry for love and fun I
-was—an unloved little drudge with never a chance to play! They do have
-such good times with the manse children.”
-
-“What about the poor pigs?” asked Gilbert.
-
-Anne tried to look sober and failed.
-
-“Do you really think it hurt them?” she said. “I don’t think anything
-could hurt those animals. They’ve been the plague of the neighbourhood
-this summer and the Drews _won’t_ shut them up. But I’ll talk to
-Walter—if I can keep from laughing when I do it.”
-
-Miss Cornelia came up to Ingleside that evening to relieve her feelings
-over Sunday night. To her surprise she found that Anne did not view
-Faith’s performance in quite the same light as she did.
-
-“I thought there was something brave and pathetic in her getting up
-there before that churchful of people, to confess,” she said. “You
-could see she was frightened to death—yet she was bound to clear her
-father. I loved her for it.”
-
-“Oh, of course, the poor child meant well,” sighed Miss Cornelia, “but
-just the same it was a terrible thing to do, and is making more talk
-than the house-cleaning on Sunday. _That_ had begun to die away, and
-this has started it all up again. Rosemary West is like you—she said
-last night as she left the church that it was a plucky thing for Faith
-to do, but it made her feel sorry for the child, too. Miss Ellen
-thought it all a good joke, and said she hadn’t had as much fun in
-church for years. Of course _they_ don’t care—they are Episcopalians.
-But we Presbyterians feel it. And there were so many hotel people there
-that night and scores of Methodists. Mrs. Leander Crawford cried, she
-felt so bad. And Mrs. Alec Davis said the little hussy ought to be
-spanked.”
-
-“Mrs. Leander Crawford is always crying in church,” said Susan
-contemptuously. “She cries over every affecting thing the minister
-says. But you do not often see her name on a subscription list, Mrs.
-Dr. dear. Tears come cheaper. She tried to talk to me one day about
-Aunt Martha being such a dirty housekeeper; and I wanted to say, ‘Every
-one knows that _you_ have been seen mixing up cakes in the kitchen
-wash-pan, Mrs. Leander Crawford!’ But I did not say it, Mrs. Dr. dear,
-because I have too much respect for myself to condescend to argue with
-the likes of her. But I could tell worse things than _that_ of Mrs.
-Leander Crawford, if I was disposed to gossip. And as for Mrs. Alec
-Davis, if she had said that to me, Mrs. Dr. dear, do you know what I
-would have said? I would have said, ‘I have no doubt you would like to
-spank Faith, Mrs. Davis, but you will never have the chance to spank a
-minister’s daughter either in this world or in that which is to come.’”
-
-“If poor Faith had only been decently dressed,” lamented Miss Cornelia
-again, “it wouldn’t have been quite that bad. But that dress looked
-dreadful, as she stood there upon the platform.”
-
-“It was clean, though, Mrs. Dr. dear,” said Susan. “They _are_ clean
-children. They may be very heedless and reckless, Mrs. Dr. dear, and I
-am not saying they are not, but they _never_ forget to wash behind
-their ears.”
-
-“The idea of Faith forgetting what day was Sunday,” persisted Miss
-Cornelia. “She will grow up just as careless and impractical as her
-father, believe _me_. I suppose Carl would have known better if he
-hadn’t been sick. I don’t know what was wrong with him, but I think it
-very likely he had been eating those blueberries that grew in the
-graveyard. No wonder they made him sick. If I was a Methodist I’d try
-to keep my graveyard cleaned up at least.”
-
-“I am of the opinion that Carl only ate the sours that grow on the
-dyke,” said Susan hopefully. “I do not think _any_ minister’s son would
-eat blueberries that grew on the graves of dead people. You know it
-would not be so bad, Mrs. Dr. dear, to eat things that grew on the
-dyke.”
-
-“The worst of last night’s performance was the face Faith made made at
-somebody in the congregation before she started in,” said Miss
-Cornelia. “Elder Clow declares she made it at him. And _did_ you hear
-that she was seen riding on a pig to-day?”
-
-“I saw her. Walter was with her. I gave him a little—a _very_
-little—scolding about it. He did not say much, but he gave me the
-impression that it had been his idea and that Faith was not to blame.”
-
-“I do not not believe _that_, Mrs. Dr. dear,” cried Susan, up in arms.
-“That is just Walter’s way—to take the blame on himself. But you know
-as well as I do, Mrs. Dr. dear, that that blessed child would never
-have thought of riding on a pig, even if he does write poetry.”
-
-“Oh, there’s no doubt the notion was hatched in Faith Meredith’s
-brain,” said Miss Cornelia. “And I don’t say that I’m sorry that Amos
-Drew’s old pigs did get their come-uppance for once. But the minister’s
-daughter!”
-
-“_And_ the doctor’s son!” said Anne, mimicking Miss Cornelia’s tone.
-Then she laughed. “Dear Miss Cornelia, they’re only little children.
-And you _know_ they’ve never yet done anything bad—they’re just
-heedless and impulsive—as I was myself once. They’ll grow sedate and
-sober—as I’ve done.”
-
-Miss Cornelia laughed, too.
-
-“There are times, Anne dearie, when I know by your eyes that _your_
-soberness is put on like a garment and you’re really aching to do
-something wild and young again. Well, I feel encouraged. Somehow, a
-talk with you always does have that effect on me. Now, when I go to see
-Barbara Samson, it’s just the opposite. She makes me feel that
-everything’s wrong and always will be. But of course living all your
-life with a man like Joe Samson wouldn’t be exactly cheering.”
-
-“It is a very strange thing to think that she married Joe Samson after
-all her chances,” remarked Susan. “She was much sought after when she
-was a girl. She used to boast to me that she had twenty-one beaus and
-Mr. Pethick.”
-
-“What was Mr. Pethick?”
-
-“Well, he was a sort of hanger-on, Mrs. Dr. dear, but you could not
-exactly call him a beau. He did not really have any intentions.
-Twenty-one beaus—and me that never had one! But Barbara went through
-the woods and picked up the crooked stick after all. And yet they say
-her husband can make better baking powder biscuits than she can, and
-she always gets him to make them when company comes to tea.”
-
-“Which reminds _me_ that I have company coming to tea to-morrow and I
-must go home and set my bread,” said Miss Cornelia. “Mary said she
-could set it and no doubt she could. But while I live and move and have
-my being _I_ set my own bread, believe me.”
-
-“How is Mary getting on?” asked Anne.
-
-“I’ve no fault to find with Mary,” said Miss Cornelia rather gloomily.
-“She’s getting some flesh on her bones and she’s clean and
-respectful—though there’s more in her than _I_ can fathom. She’s a sly
-puss. If you dug for a thousand years you couldn’t get to the bottom of
-that child’s mind, believe _me!_ As for work, I never saw anything like
-her. She _eats_ it up. Mrs. Wiley may have been cruel to her, but folks
-needn’t say she made Mary work. Mary’s a born worker. Sometimes I
-wonder which will wear out first—her legs or her tongue. I don’t have
-enough to do to keep me out of mischief these days. I’ll be real glad
-when school opens, for then I’ll have something to do again. Mary
-doesn’t want to go to school, but I put my foot down and said that go
-she must. I shall _not_ have the Methodists saying that I kept her out
-of school while I lolled in idleness.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII.
-THE HOUSE ON THE HILL
-
-
-There was a little unfailing spring, always icy cold and crystal pure,
-in a certain birch-screened hollow of Rainbow Valley in the lower
-corner near the marsh. Not a great many people knew of its existence.
-The manse and Ingleside children knew, of course, as they knew
-everything else about the magic valley. Occasionally they went there to
-get a drink, and it figured in many of their plays as a fountain of old
-romance. Anne knew of it and loved it because it somehow reminded her
-of the beloved Dryad’s Bubble at Green Gables. Rosemary West knew of
-it; it was her fountain of romance, too. Eighteen years ago she had sat
-behind it one spring twilight and heard young Martin Crawford stammer
-out a confession of fervent, boyish love. She had whispered her own
-secret in return, and they had kissed and promised by the wild wood
-spring. They had never stood together by it again—Martin had sailed on
-his fatal voyage soon after; but to Rosemary West it was always a
-sacred spot, hallowed by that immortal hour of youth and love. Whenever
-she passed near it she turned aside to hold a secret tryst with an old
-dream—a dream from which the pain had long gone, leaving only its
-unforgettable sweetness.
-
-The spring was a hidden thing. You might have passed within ten feet of
-it and never have suspected its existence. Two generations past a huge
-old pine had fallen almost across it. Nothing was left of the tree but
-its crumbling trunk out of which the ferns grew thickly, making a green
-roof and a lacy screen for the water. A maple-tree grew beside it with
-a curiously gnarled and twisted trunk, creeping along the ground for a
-little way before shooting up into the air, and so forming a quaint
-seat; and September had flung a scarf of pale smoke-blue asters around
-the hollow.
-
-John Meredith, taking the cross-lots road through Rainbow Valley on his
-way home from some pastoral visitations around the Harbour head one
-evening, turned aside to drink of the little spring. Walter Blythe had
-shown it to him one afternoon only a few days before, and they had had
-a long talk together on the maple seat. John Meredith, under all his
-shyness and aloofness, had the heart of a boy. He had been called Jack
-in his youth, though nobody in Glen St. Mary would ever have believed
-it. Walter and he had taken to each other and had talked unreservedly.
-Mr. Meredith found his way into some sealed and sacred chambers of the
-lad’s soul wherein not even Di had ever looked. They were to be chums
-from that friendly hour and Walter knew that he would never be
-frightened of the minister again.
-
-“I never believed before that it was possible to get really acquainted
-with a minister,” he told his mother that night.
-
-John Meredith drank from his slender white hand, whose grip of steel
-always surprised people who were unacquainted with it, and then sat
-down on the maple seat. He was in no hurry to go home; this was a
-beautiful spot and he was mentally weary after a round of rather
-uninspiring conversations with many good and stupid people. The moon
-was rising. Rainbow Valley was wind-haunted and star-sentinelled only
-where he was, but afar from the upper end came the gay notes of
-children’s laughter and voices.
-
-The ethereal beauty of the asters in the moonlight, the glimmer of the
-little spring, the soft croon of the brook, the wavering grace of the
-brackens all wove a white magic round John Meredith. He forgot
-congregational worries and spiritual problems; the years slipped away
-from him; he was a young divinity student again and the roses of June
-were blooming red and fragrant on the dark, queenly head of his
-Cecilia. He sat there and dreamed like any boy. And it was at this
-propitious moment that Rosemary West stepped aside from the by-path and
-stood beside him in that dangerous, spell-weaving place. John Meredith
-stood up as she came in and saw her—_really_ saw her—for the first
-time.
-
-He had met her in his church once or twice and shaken hands with her
-abstractedly as he did with anyone he happened to encounter on his way
-down the aisle. He had never met her elsewhere, for the Wests were
-Episcopalians, with church affinities in Lowbridge, and no occasion for
-calling upon them had ever arisen. Before to-night, if anyone had asked
-John Meredith what Rosemary West looked like he would not have had the
-slightest notion. But he was never to forget her, as she appeared to
-him in the glamour of kind moonlight by the spring.
-
-She was certainly not in the least like Cecilia, who had always been
-his ideal of womanly beauty. Cecilia had been small and dark and
-vivacious—Rosemary West was tall and fair and placid, yet John Meredith
-thought he had never seen so beautiful a woman.
-
-She was bareheaded and her golden hair—hair of a warm gold, “molasses
-taffy” colour as Di Blythe had said—was pinned in sleek, close coils
-over her head; she had large, tranquil, blue eyes that always seemed
-full of friendliness, a high white forehead and a finely shaped face.
-
-Rosemary West was always called a “sweet woman.” She was so sweet that
-even her high-bred, stately air had never gained for her the reputation
-of being “stuck-up,” which it would inevitably have done in the case of
-anyone else in Glen St. Mary. Life had taught her to be brave, to be
-patient, to love, to forgive. She had watched the ship on which her
-lover went sailing out of Four Winds Harbour into the sunset. But,
-though she watched long, she had never seen it coming sailing back.
-That vigil had taken girlhood from her eyes, yet she kept her youth to
-a marvellous degree. Perhaps this was because she always seemed to
-preserve that attitude of delighted surprise towards life which most of
-us leave behind in childhood—an attitude which not only made Rosemary
-herself seem young, but flung a pleasing illusion of youth over the
-consciousness of every one who talked to her.
-
-John Meredith was startled by her loveliness and Rosemary was startled
-by his presence. She had never thought she would find anyone by that
-remote spring, least of all the recluse of Glen St. Mary manse. She
-almost dropped the heavy armful of books she was carrying home from the
-Glen lending library, and then, to cover her confusion, she told one of
-those small fibs which even the best of women do tell at times.
-
-“I—I came for a drink,” she said, stammering a little, in answer to Mr.
-Meredith’s grave “good evening, Miss West.” She felt that she was an
-unpardonable goose and she longed to shake herself. But John Meredith
-was not a vain man and he knew she would likely have been as much
-startled had she met old Elder Clow in that unexpected fashion. Her
-confusion put him at ease and he forgot to be shy; besides, even the
-shyest of men can sometimes be quite audacious in moonlight.
-
-“Let me get you a cup,” he said smiling. There was a cup near by, if he
-had only known it, a cracked, handleless blue cup secreted under the
-maple by the Rainbow Valley children; but he did not know it, so he
-stepped out to one of the birch-trees and stripped a bit of its white
-skin away. Deftly he fashioned this into a three-cornered cup, filled
-it from the spring, and handed it to Rosemary.
-
-Rosemary took it and drank every drop to punish herself for her fib,
-for she was not in the least thirsty, and to drink a fairly large
-cupful of water when you are not thirsty is somewhat of an ordeal. Yet
-the memory of that draught was to be very pleasant to Rosemary. In
-after years it seemed to her that there was something sacramental about
-it. Perhaps this was because of what the minister did when she handed
-him back the cup. He stooped again and filled it and drank of it
-himself. It was only by accident that he put his lips just where
-Rosemary had put hers, and Rosemary knew it. Nevertheless, it had a
-curious significance for her. They two had drunk of the same cup. She
-remembered idly that an old aunt of hers used to say that when two
-people did this their after-lives would be linked in some fashion,
-whether for good or ill.
-
-John Meredith held the cup uncertainly. He did not know what to do with
-it. The logical thing would have been to toss it away, but somehow he
-was disinclined to do this. Rosemary held out her hand for it.
-
-“Will you let me have it?” she said. “You made it so knackily. I never
-saw anyone make a birch cup so since my little brother used to make
-them long ago—before he died.”
-
-“I learned how to make them when _I_ was a boy, camping out one summer.
-An old hunter taught me,” said Mr. Meredith. “Let me carry your books,
-Miss West.”
-
-Rosemary was startled into another fib and said oh, they were not
-heavy. But the minister took them from her with quite a masterful air
-and they walked away together. It was the first time Rosemary had stood
-by the valley spring without thinking of Martin Crawford. The mystic
-tryst had been broken.
-
-The little by-path wound around the marsh and then struck up the long
-wooded hill on the top of which Rosemary lived. Beyond, through the
-trees, they could see the moonlight shining across the level summer
-fields. But the little path was shadowy and narrow. Trees crowded over
-it, and trees are never quite as friendly to human beings after
-nightfall as they are in daylight. They wrap themselves away from us.
-They whisper and plot furtively. If they reach out a hand to us it has
-a hostile, tentative touch. People walking amid trees after night
-always draw closer together instinctively and involuntarily, making an
-alliance, physical and mental, against certain alien powers around
-them. Rosemary’s dress brushed against John Meredith as they walked.
-Not even an absent-minded minister, who was after all a young man
-still, though he firmly believed he had outlived romance, could be
-insensible to the charm of the night and the path and the companion.
-
-It is never quite safe to think we have done with life. When we imagine
-we have finished our story fate has a trick of turning the page and
-showing us yet another chapter. These two people each thought their
-hearts belonged irrevocably to the past; but they both found their walk
-up that hill very pleasant. Rosemary thought the Glen minister was by
-no means as shy and tongue-tied as he had been represented. He seemed
-to find no difficulty in talking easily and freely. Glen housewives
-would have been amazed had they heard him. But then so many Glen
-housewives talked only gossip and the price of eggs, and John Meredith
-was not interested in either. He talked to Rosemary of books and music
-and wide-world doings and something of his own history, and found that
-she could understand and respond. Rosemary, it appeared, possessed a
-book which Mr. Meredith had not read and wished to read. She offered to
-lend it to him and when they reached the old homestead on the hill he
-went in to get it.
-
-The house itself was an old-fashioned gray one, hung with vines,
-through which the light in the sitting-room winked in friendly fashion.
-It looked down the Glen, over the harbour, silvered in the moonlight,
-to the sand-dunes and the moaning ocean. They walked in through a
-garden that always seemed to smell of roses, even when no roses were in
-bloom. There was a sisterhood of lilies at the gate and a ribbon of
-asters on either side of the broad walk, and a lacery of fir trees on
-the hill’s edge beyond the house.
-
-“You have the whole world at your doorstep here,” said John Meredith,
-with a long breath. “What a view—what an outlook! At times I feel
-stifled down there in the Glen. You can breathe up here.”
-
-“It is calm to-night,” said Rosemary laughing. “If there were a wind it
-would blow your breath away. We get ‘a’ the airts the wind can blow’ up
-here. This place should be called Four Winds instead of the Harbour.”
-
-“I like wind,” he said. “A day when there is no wind seems to me
-_dead_. A windy day wakes me up.” He gave a conscious laugh. “On a calm
-day I fall into day dreams. No doubt you know my reputation, Miss West.
-If I cut you dead the next time we meet don’t put it down to bad
-manners. Please understand that it is only abstraction and forgive
-me—and speak to me.”
-
-They found Ellen West in the sitting room when they went in. She laid
-her glasses down on the book she had been reading and looked at them in
-amazement tinctured with something else. But she shook hands amiably
-with Mr. Meredith and he sat down and talked to her, while Rosemary
-hunted out his book.
-
-Ellen West was ten years older than Rosemary, and so different from her
-that it was hard to believe they were sisters. She was dark and
-massive, with black hair, thick, black eyebrows and eyes of the clear,
-slaty blue of the gulf water in a north wind. She had a rather stern,
-forbidding look, but she was in reality very jolly, with a hearty,
-gurgling laugh and a deep, mellow, pleasant voice with a suggestion of
-masculinity about it. She had once remarked to Rosemary that she would
-really like to have a talk with that Presbyterian minister at the Glen,
-to see if he could find a word to say to a woman when he was cornered.
-She had her chance now and she tackled him on world politics. Miss
-Ellen, who was a great reader, had been devouring a book on the Kaiser
-of Germany, and she demanded Mr. Meredith’s opinion of him.
-
-“A dangerous man,” was his answer.
-
-“I believe you!” Miss Ellen nodded. “Mark my words, Mr. Meredith, that
-man is going to fight somebody yet. He’s _aching_ to. He is going to
-set the world on fire.”
-
-“If you mean that he will wantonly precipitate a great war I hardly
-think so,” said Mr. Meredith. “The day has gone by for that sort of
-thing.”
-
-“Bless you, it hasn’t,” rumbled Ellen. “The day never goes by for men
-and nations to make asses of themselves and take to the fists. The
-millenniun isn’t _that_ near, Mr. Meredith, and _you_ don’t think it is
-any more than I do. As for this Kaiser, mark my words, he is going to
-make a heap of trouble”—and Miss Ellen prodded her book emphatically
-with her long finger. “Yes, if he isn’t nipped in the bud he’s going to
-make trouble. _We’ll_ live to see it—you and I will live to see it, Mr.
-Meredith. And who is going to nip him? England should, but she won’t.
-_Who_ is going to nip him? Tell me that, Mr. Meredith.”
-
-Mr. Meredith couldn’t tell her, but they plunged into a discussion of
-German militarism that lasted long after Rosemary had found the book.
-Rosemary said nothing, but sat in a little rocker behind Ellen and
-stroked an important black cat meditatively. John Meredith hunted big
-game in Europe with Ellen, but he looked oftener at Rosemary than at
-Ellen, and Ellen noticed it. After Rosemary had gone to the door with
-him and come back Ellen rose and looked at her accusingly.
-
-“Rosemary West, that man has a notion of courting you.”
-
-Rosemary quivered. Ellen’s speech was like a blow to her. It rubbed all
-the bloom off the pleasant evening. But she would not let Ellen see how
-it hurt her.
-
-“Nonsense,” she said, and laughed, a little too carelessly. “You see a
-beau for me in every bush, Ellen. Why he told me all about his wife
-to-night—how much she was to him—how empty her death had left the
-world.”
-
-“Well, that may be _his_ way of courting,” retorted Ellen. “Men have
-all kinds of ways, I understand. But don’t forget your promise,
-Rosemary.”
-
-“There is no need of my either forgetting or remembering it,” said
-Rosemary, a little wearily. “_You_ forget that I’m an old maid, Ellen.
-It is only your sisterly delusion that I am still young and blooming
-and dangerous. Mr. Meredith merely wants to be a friend—if he wants
-that much itself. He’ll forget us both long before he gets back to the
-manse.”
-
-“I’ve no objection to your being friends with him,” conceded Ellen,
-“but it musn’t go beyond friendship, remember. I’m always suspicious of
-widowers. They are not given to romantic ideas about friendship.
-They’re apt to mean business. As for this Presbyterian man, what do
-they call him shy for? He’s not a bit shy, though he may be
-absent-minded—so absent-minded that he forgot to say goodnight to _me_
-when you started to go to the door with him. He’s got brains, too.
-There’s so few men round here that can talk sense to a body. I’ve
-enjoyed the evening. I wouldn’t mind seeing more of him. But no
-philandering, Rosemary, mind you—no philandering.”
-
-Rosemary was quite used to being warned by Ellen from philandering if
-she so much as talked five minutes to any marriageable man under eighty
-or over eighteen. She had always laughed at the warning with unfeigned
-amusement. This time it did not amuse her—it irritated her a little.
-Who wanted to philander?
-
-“Don’t be such a goose, Ellen,” she said with unaccustomed shortness as
-she took her lamp. She went upstairs without saying goodnight.
-
-Ellen shook her head dubiously and looked at the black cat.
-
-“What is she so cross about, St. George?” she asked. “When you howl
-you’re hit, I’ve always heard, George. But she promised, Saint—she
-promised, and we Wests always keep our word. So it won’t matter if he
-does want to philander, George. She promised. I won’t worry.”
-
-Upstairs, in her room, Rosemary sat for a long while looking out of the
-window across the moonlit garden to the distant, shining harbour. She
-felt vaguely upset and unsettled. She was suddenly tired of outworn
-dreams. And in the garden the petals of the last red rose were
-scattered by a sudden little wind. Summer was over—it was autumn.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV.
-MRS. ALEC DAVIS MAKES A CALL
-
-
-John Meredith walked slowly home. At first he thought a little about
-Rosemary, but by the time he reached Rainbow Valley he had forgotten
-all about her and was meditating on a point regarding German theology
-which Ellen had raised. He passed through Rainbow Valley and knew it
-not. The charm of Rainbow Valley had no potency against German
-theology. When he reached the manse he went to his study and took down
-a bulky volume in order to see which had been right, he or Ellen. He
-remained immersed in its mazes until dawn, struck a new trail of
-speculation and pursued it like a sleuth hound for the next week,
-utterly lost to the world, his parish and his family. He read day and
-night; he forgot to go to his meals when Una was not there to drag him
-to them; he never thought about Rosemary or Ellen again. Old Mrs.
-Marshall, over-harbour, was very ill and sent for him, but the message
-lay unheeded on his desk and gathered dust. Mrs. Marshall recovered but
-never forgave him. A young couple came to the manse to be married and
-Mr. Meredith, with unbrushed hair, in carpet slippers and faded
-dressing gown, married them. To be sure, he began by reading the
-funeral service to them and got along as far as “ashes to ashes and
-dust to dust” before he vaguely suspected that something was wrong.
-
-“Dear me,” he said absently, “that is strange—very strange.”
-
-The bride, who was very nervous, began to cry. The bridegroom, who was
-not in the least nervous, giggled.
-
-“Please, sir, I think you’re burying us instead of marrying us,” he
-said.
-
-“Excuse me,” said Mr. Meredith, as it it did not matter much. He turned
-up the marriage service and got through with it, but the bride never
-felt quite properly married for the rest of her life.
-
-He forgot his prayer-meeting again—but that did not matter, for it was
-a wet night and nobody came. He might even have forgotten his Sunday
-service if it had not been for Mrs. Alec Davis. Aunt Martha came in on
-Saturday afternoon and told him that Mrs. Davis was in the parlour and
-wanted to see him. Mr. Meredith sighed. Mrs. Davis was the only woman
-in Glen St. Mary church whom he positively detested. Unfortunately, she
-was also the richest, and his board of managers had warned Mr. Meredith
-against offending her. Mr. Meredith seldom thought of such a worldly
-matter as his stipend; but the managers were more practical. Also, they
-were astute. Without mentioning money, they contrived to instil into
-Mr. Meredith’s mind a conviction that he should not offend Mrs. Davis.
-Otherwise, he would likely have forgotten all about her as soon as Aunt
-Martha had gone out. As it was, he turned down his Ewald with a feeling
-of annoyance and went across the hall to the parlour.
-
-Mrs. Davis was sitting on the sofa, looking about her with an air of
-scornful disapproval.
-
-What a scandalous room! There were no curtains on the window. Mrs.
-Davis did not know that Faith and Una had taken them down the day
-before to use as court trains in one of their plays and had forgotten
-to put them up again, but she could not have accused those windows more
-fiercely if she had known. The blinds were cracked and torn. The
-pictures on the walls were crooked; the rugs were awry; the vases were
-full of faded flowers; the dust lay in heaps—literally in heaps.
-
-“What are we coming to?” Mrs. Davis asked herself, and then primmed up
-her unbeautiful mouth.
-
-Jerry and Carl had been whooping and sliding down the banisters as she
-came through the hall. They did not see her and continued whooping and
-sliding, and Mrs. Davis was convinced they did it on purpose. Faith’s
-pet rooster ambled through the hall, stood in the parlour doorway and
-looked at her. Not liking her looks, he did not venture in. Mrs. Davis
-gave a scornful sniff. A pretty manse, indeed, where roosters paraded
-the halls and stared people out of countenance.
-
-“Shoo, there,” commanded Mrs. Davis, poking her flounced,
-changeable-silk parasol at him.
-
-Adam shooed. He was a wise rooster and Mrs. Davis had wrung the necks
-of so many roosters with her own fair hands in the course of her fifty
-years that an air of the executioner seemed to hang around her. Adam
-scuttled through the hall as the minister came in.
-
-Mr. Meredith still wore slippers and dressing gown, and his dark hair
-still fell in uncared-for locks over his high brow. But he looked the
-gentleman he was; and Mrs. Alec Davis, in her silk dress and beplumed
-bonnet, and kid gloves and gold chain looked the vulgar, coarse-souled
-woman she was. Each felt the antagonisn of the other’s personality. Mr.
-Meredith shrank, but Mrs. Davis girded up her loins for the fray. She
-had come to the manse to propose a certain thing to the minister and
-she meant to lose no time in proposing it. She was going to do him a
-favour—a great favour—and the sooner he was made aware of it the
-better. She had been thinking about it all summer and had come to a
-decision at last. This was all that mattered, Mrs. Davis thought. When
-she decided a thing it _was_ decided. Nobody else had any say in the
-matter. That had always been her attitude. When she had made her mind
-up to marry Alec Davis she had married him and that was the end to it.
-Alec had never known how it happened, but what odds? So in this
-case—Mrs. Davis had arranged everything to her own satisfaction. Now it
-only remained to inform Mr. Meredith.
-
-“Will you please shut that door?” said Mrs. Davis, unprimming her mouth
-slightly to say it, but speaking with asperity. “I have something
-important to say, and I can’t say it with that racket in the hall.”
-
-Mr. Meredith shut the door meekly. Then he sat down before Mrs. Davis.
-He was not wholly aware of her yet. His mind was still wrestling with
-Ewald’s arguments. Mrs. Davis sensed this detachment and it annoyed
-her.
-
-“I have come to tell you, Mr. Meredith,” she said aggressively, “that I
-have decided to adopt Una.”
-
-“To—adopt—Una!” Mr. Meredith gazed at her blankly, not understanding in
-the least.
-
-“Yes. I’ve been thinking it over for some time. I have often thought of
-adopting a child, since my husband’s death. But it seemed so hard to
-get a suitable one. It is very few children I would want to take into
-_my_ home. I wouldn’t think of taking a home child—some outcast of the
-slums in all probability. And there is hardly ever any other child to
-be got. One of the fishermen down at the harbour died last fall and
-left six youngsters. They tried to get me to take one, but I soon gave
-them to understand that I had no idea of adopting trash like that.
-Their grandfather stole a horse. Besides, they were all boys and I
-wanted a girl—a quiet, obedient girl that I could train up to be a
-lady. Una will suit me exactly. She would be a nice little thing if she
-was properly looked after—so different from Faith. I would never dream
-of adopting Faith. But I’ll take Una and I’ll give her a good home, and
-up-bringing, Mr. Meredith, and if she behaves herself I’ll leave her
-all my money when I die. Not one of my own relatives shall have a cent
-of it in any case, I’m determined on that. It was the idea of
-aggravating them that set me to thinking of adopting a child as much as
-anything in the first place. Una shall be well dressed and educated and
-trained, Mr. Meredith, and I shall give her music and painting lessons
-and treat her as if she was my own.”
-
-Mr. Meredith was wide enough awake by this time. There was a faint
-flush in his pale cheek and a dangerous light in his fine dark eyes.
-Was this woman, whose vulgarity and consciousness of money oozed out of
-her at every pore, actually asking him to give her Una—his dear little
-wistful Una with Cecilia’s own dark-blue eyes—the child whom the dying
-mother had clasped to her heart after the other children had been led
-weeping from the room. Cecilia had clung to her baby until the gates of
-death had shut between them. She had looked over the little dark head
-to her husband.
-
-“Take good care of her, John,” she had entreated. “She is so small—and
-sensitive. The others can fight their way—but the world will hurt
-_her_. Oh, John, I don’t know what you and she are going to do. You
-both need me so much. But keep her close to you—keep her close to you.”
-
-These had been almost her last words except a few unforgettable ones
-for him alone. And it was this child whom Mrs. Davis had coolly
-announced her intention of taking from him. He sat up straight and
-looked at Mrs. Davis. In spite of the worn dressing gown and the frayed
-slippers there was something about him that made Mrs. Davis feel a
-little of the old reverence for “the cloth” in which she had been
-brought up. After all, there _was_ a certain divinity hedging a
-minister, even a poor, unworldly, abstracted one.
-
-“I thank you for your kind intentions, Mrs. Davis,” said Mr. Meredith
-with a gentle, final, quite awful courtesy, “but I cannot give you my
-child.”
-
-Mrs. Davis looked blank. She had never dreamed of his refusing.
-
-“Why, Mr. Meredith,” she said in astonishment. “You must be cr—you
-can’t mean it. You must think it over—think of all the advantages I can
-give her.”
-
-“There is no need to think it over, Mrs. Davis. It is entirely out of
-the question. All the worldly advantages it is in your power to bestow
-on her could not compensate for the loss of a father’s love and care. I
-thank you again—but it is not to be thought of.”
-
-Disappointment angered Mrs. Davis beyond the power of old habit to
-control. Her broad red face turned purple and her voice trembled.
-
-“I thought you’d be only too glad to let me have her,” she sneered.
-
-“Why did you think that?” asked Mr. Meredith quietly.
-
-“Because nobody ever supposed you cared anything about any of your
-children,” retorted Mrs. Davis contemptuously. “You neglect them
-scandalously. It is the talk of the place. They aren’t fed and dressed
-properly, and they’re not trained at all. They have no more manners
-than a pack of wild Indians. You never think of doing your duty as a
-father. You let a stray child come here among them for a fortnight and
-never took any notice of her—a child that swore like a trooper I’m
-told. _You_ wouldn’t have cared if they’d caught small-pox from her.
-And Faith made an exhibition of herself getting up in preaching and
-making that speech! And she rid a pig down the street—under your very
-eyes I understand. The way they act is past belief and you never lift a
-finger to stop them or try to teach them anything. And now when I offer
-one of them a good home and good prospects you refuse it and insult me.
-A pretty father you, to talk of loving and caring for your children!”
-
-“That will do, woman!” said Mr. Meredith. He stood up and looked at
-Mrs. Davis with eyes that made her quail. “That will do,” he repeated.
-“I desire to hear no more, Mrs. Davis. You have said too much. It may
-be that I have been remiss in some respects in my duty as a parent, but
-it is not for you to remind me of it in such terms as you have used.
-Let us say good afternoon.”
-
-Mrs. Davis did not say anything half so amiable as good afternoon, but
-she took her departure. As she swept past the minister a large, plump
-toad, which Carl had secreted under the lounge, hopped out almost under
-her feet. Mrs. Davis gave a shriek and in trying to avoid treading on
-the awful thing, lost her balance and her parasol. She did not exactly
-fall, but she staggered and reeled across the room in a very
-undignified fashion and brought up against the door with a thud that
-jarred her from head to foot. Mr. Meredith, who had not seen the toad,
-wondered if she had been attacked with some kind of apoplectic or
-paralytic seizure, and ran in alarm to her assistance. But Mrs. Davis,
-recovering her feet, waved him back furiously.
-
-“Don’t you dare to touch me,” she almost shouted. “This is some more of
-your children’s doings, I suppose. This is no fit place for a decent
-woman. Give me my umbrella and let me go. I’ll never darken the doors
-of your manse or your church again.”
-
-Mr. Meredith picked up the gorgeous parasol meekly enough and gave it
-to her. Mrs. Davis seized it and marched out. Jerry and Carl had given
-up banister sliding and were sitting on the edge of the veranda with
-Faith. Unfortunately, all three were singing at the tops of their
-healthy young voices “There’ll be a hot time in the old town to-night.”
-Mrs. Davis believed the song was meant for her and her only. She
-stopped and shook her parasol at them.
-
-“Your father is a fool,” she said, “and you are three young varmints
-that ought to be whipped within an inch of your lives.”
-
-“He isn’t,” cried Faith. “We’re not,” cried the boys. But Mrs. Davis
-was gone.
-
-“Goodness, isn’t she mad!” said Jerry. “And what is a ‘varmint’
-anyhow?”
-
-John Meredith paced up and down the parlour for a few minutes; then he
-went back to his study and sat down. But he did not return to his
-German theology. He was too grievously disturbed for that. Mrs. Davis
-had wakened him up with a vengeance. _Was_ he such a remiss, careless
-father as she had accused him of being? _Had_ he so scandalously
-neglected the bodily and spiritual welfare of the four little
-motherless creatures dependent on him? _Were_ his people talking of it
-as harshly as Mrs. Davis had declared? It must be so, since Mrs. Davis
-had come to ask for Una in the full and confident belief that he would
-hand the child over to her as unconcernedly and gladly as one might
-hand over a strayed, unwelcome kitten. And, if so, what then?
-
-John Meredith groaned and resumed his pacing up and down the dusty,
-disordered room. What could he do? He loved his children as deeply as
-any father could and he knew, past the power of Mrs. Davis or any of
-her ilk, to disturb his conviction, that they loved him devotedly. But
-_was_ he fit to have charge of them? He knew—none better—his weaknesses
-and limitations. What was needed was a good woman’s presence and
-influence and common sense. But how could that be arranged? Even were
-he able to get such a housekeeper it would cut Aunt Martha to the
-quick. She believed she could still do all that was meet and necessary.
-He could not so hurt and insult the poor old woman who had been so kind
-to him and his. How devoted she had been to Cecilia! And Cecilia had
-asked him to be very considerate of Aunt Martha. To be sure, he
-suddenly remembered that Aunt Martha had once hinted that he ought to
-marry again. He felt she would not resent a wife as she would a
-housekeeper. But that was out of the question. He did not wish to
-marry—he did not and could not care for anyone. Then what could he do?
-It suddenly occurred to him that he would go over to Ingleside and talk
-over his difficulties with Mrs. Blythe. Mrs. Blythe was one of the few
-women he never felt shy or tongue-tied with. She was always so
-sympathetic and refreshing. It might be that she could suggest some
-solution of his problems. And even if she could not Mr. Meredith felt
-that he needed a little decent human companionship after his dose of
-Mrs. Davis—something to take the taste of her out of his soul.
-
-He dressed hurriedly and ate his supper less abstractedly than usual.
-It occurred to him that it was a poor meal. He looked at his children;
-they were rosy and healthy looking enough—except Una, and she had never
-been very strong even when her mother was alive. They were all laughing
-and talking—certainly they seemed happy. Carl was especially happy
-because he had two most beautiful spiders crawling around his supper
-plate. Their voices were pleasant, their manners did not seem bad, they
-were considerate of and gentle to one another. Yet Mrs. Davis had said
-their behaviour was the talk of the congregation.
-
-As Mr. Meredith went through his gate Dr. Blythe and Mrs. Blythe drove
-past on the road that led to Lowbridge. The minister’s face fell. Mrs.
-Blythe was going away—there was no use in going to Ingleside. And he
-craved a little companionship more than ever. As he gazed rather
-hopelessly over the landscape the sunset light struck on a window of
-the old West homestead on the hill. It flared out rosily like a beacon
-of good hope. He suddenly remembered Rosemary and Ellen West. He
-thought that he would relish some of Ellen’s pungent conversation. He
-thought it would be pleasant to see Rosemary’s slow, sweet smile and
-calm, heavenly blue eyes again. What did that old poem of Sir Philip
-Sidney’s say?—“continual comfort in a face”—that just suited her. And
-he needed comfort. Why not go and call? He remembered that Ellen had
-asked him to drop in sometimes and there was Rosemary’s book to take
-back—he ought to take it back before he forgot. He had an uneasy
-suspicion that there were a great many books in his library which he
-had borrowed at sundry times and in divers places and had forgotten to
-take back. It was surely his duty to guard against that in this case.
-He went back into his study, got the book, and plunged downward into
-Rainbow Valley.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV.
-MORE GOSSIP
-
-
-On the evening after Mrs. Myra Murray of the over-harbour section had
-been buried Miss Cornelia and Mary Vance came up to Ingleside. There
-were several things concerning which Miss Cornelia wished to unburden
-her soul. The funeral had to be all talked over, of course. Susan and
-Miss Cornelia thrashed this out between them; Anne took no part or
-delight in such goulish conversations. She sat a little apart and
-watched the autumnal flame of dahlias in the garden, and the dreaming,
-glamorous harbour of the September sunset. Mary Vance sat beside her,
-knitting meekly. Mary’s heart was down in the Rainbow Valley, whence
-came sweet, distance-softened sounds of children’s laughter, but her
-fingers were under Miss Cornelia’s eye. She had to knit so many rounds
-of her stocking before she might go to the valley. Mary knit and held
-her tongue, but used her ears.
-
-“I never saw a nicer looking corpse,” said Miss Cornelia judicially.
-“Myra Murray was always a pretty woman—she was a Corey from Lowbridge
-and the Coreys were noted for their good looks.”
-
-“I said to the corpse as I passed it, ‘poor woman. I hope you are as
-happy as you look.’” sighed Susan. “She had not changed much. That
-dress she wore was the black satin she got for her daughter’s wedding
-fourteen years ago. Her Aunt told her then to keep it for her funeral,
-but Myra laughed and said, ‘I may wear it to my funeral, Aunty, but I
-will have a good time out of it first.’ And I may say she did. Myra
-Murray was not a woman to attend her own funeral before she died. Many
-a time afterwards when I saw her enjoying herself out in company I
-thought to myself, ‘You are a handsome woman, Myra Murray, and that
-dress becomes you, but it will likely be your shroud at last.’ And you
-see my words have come true, Mrs. Marshall Elliott.”
-
-Susan sighed again heavily. She was enjoying herself hugely. A funeral
-was really a delightful subject of conversation.
-
-“I always liked to meet Myra,” said Miss Cornelia. “She was always so
-gay and cheerful—she made you feel better just by her handshake. Myra
-always made the best of things.”
-
-“That is true,” asserted Susan. “Her sister-in-law told me that when
-the doctor told her at last that he could do nothing for her and she
-would never rise from that bed again, Myra said quite cheerfully,
-‘Well, if that is so, I’m thankful the preserving is all done, and I
-will not have to face the fall house-cleaning. I always liked
-house-cleaning in spring,’ she says, ‘but I always hated it in the
-fall. I will get clear of it this year, thank goodness.’ There are
-people who would call that levity, Mrs. Marshall Elliott, and I think
-her sister-in-law was a little ashamed of it. She said perhaps her
-sickness had made Myra a little light-headed. But I said, ‘No, Mrs.
-Murray, do not worry over it. It was just Myra’s way of looking at the
-bright side.’”
-
-“Her sister Luella was just the opposite,” said Miss Cornelia. “There
-was no bright side for Luella—there was just black and shades of gray.
-For years she used always to be declaring she was going to die in a
-week or so. ‘I won’t be here to burden you long,’ she would tell her
-family with a groan. And if any of them ventured to talk about their
-little future plans she’d groan also and say, ‘Ah, _I_ won’t be here
-then.’ When I went to see her I always agreed with her and it made her
-so mad that she was always quite a lot better for several days
-afterwards. She has better health now but no more cheerfulness. Myra
-was so different. She was always doing or saying something to make some
-one feel good. Perhaps the men they married had something to do with
-it. Luella’s man was a Tartar, believe _me_, while Jim Murray was
-decent, as men go. He looked heart-broken to-day. It isn’t often I feel
-sorry for a man at his wife’s funeral, but I did feel for Jim Murray.”
-
-“No wonder he looked sad. He will not get a wife like Myra again in a
-hurry,” said Susan. “Maybe he will not try, since his children are all
-grown up and Mirabel is able to keep house. But there is no predicting
-what a widower may or may not do and I, for one, will not try.”
-
-“We’ll miss Myra terrible in church,” said Miss Cornelia. “She was such
-a worker. Nothing ever stumped _her_. If she couldn’t get over a
-difficulty she’d get around it, and if she couldn’t get around it she’d
-pretend it wasn’t there—and generally it wasn’t. ‘I’ll keep a stiff
-upper lip to my journey’s end,’ said she to me once. Well, she has
-ended her journey.”
-
-“Do you think so?” asked Anne suddenly, coming back from dreamland. “I
-can’t picture _her_ journey as being ended. Can _you_ think of her
-sitting down and folding her hands—that eager, asking spirit of hers,
-with its fine adventurous outlook? No, I think in death she just opened
-a gate and went through—on—on—to new, shining adventures.”
-
-“Maybe—maybe,” assented Miss Cornelia. “Do you know, Anne dearie, I
-never was much taken with this everlasting rest doctrine myself—though
-I hope it isn’t heresy to say so. I want to bustle round in heaven the
-same as here. And I hope there’ll be a celestial substitute for pies
-and doughnuts—something that has to be MADE. Of course, one does get
-awful tired at times—and the older you are the tireder you get. But the
-very tiredest could get rested in something short of eternity, you’d
-think—except, perhaps, a lazy man.”
-
-“When I meet Myra Murray again,” said Anne, “I want to see her coming
-towards me, brisk and laughing, just as she always did here.”
-
-“Oh, Mrs. Dr. dear,” said Susan, in a shocked tone, “you surely do not
-think that Myra will be laughing in the world to come?”
-
-“Why not, Susan? Do you think we will be crying there?”
-
-“No, no, Mrs. Dr. dear, do not misunderstand me. I do not think we
-shall be either crying or laughing.”
-
-“What then?”
-
-“Well,” said Susan, driven to it, “it is my opinion, Mrs. Dr. dear,
-that we shall just look solemn and holy.”
-
-“And do you really think, Susan,” said Anne, looking solemn enough,
-“that either Myra Murray or I could look solemn and holy all the
-time—_all_ the time, Susan?”
-
-“Well,” admitted Susan reluctantly, “I might go so far as to say that
-you both would have to smile now and again, but I can never admit that
-there will be laughing in heaven. The idea seems really irreverent,
-Mrs. Dr. dear.”
-
-“Well, to come back to earth,” said Miss Cornelia, “who can we get to
-take Myra’s class in Sunday School? Julia Clow has been teaching it
-since Myra took ill, but she’s going to town for the winter and we’ll
-have to get somebody else.”
-
-“I heard that Mrs. Laurie Jamieson wanted it,” said Anne. “The
-Jamiesons have come to church very regularly since they moved to the
-Glen from Lowbridge.”
-
-“New brooms!” said Miss Cornelia dubiously. “Wait till they’ve gone
-regularly for a year.”
-
-“You cannot depend on Mrs. Jamieson a bit, Mrs. Dr. dear,” said Susan
-solemnly. “She died once and when they were measuring her for her
-coffin, after laying her out just beautiful, did she not go and come
-back to life! Now, Mrs. Dr. dear, you know you _cannot_ depend on a
-woman like that.”
-
-“She might turn Methodist at any moment,” said Miss Cornelia. “They
-tell me they went to the Methodist Church at Lowbridge quite as often
-as to the Presbyterian. I haven’t caught them at it here yet, but I
-would not approve of taking Mrs. Jamieson into the Sunday School. Yet
-we must not offend them. We are losing too many people, by death or bad
-temper. Mrs. Alec Davis has left the church, no one knows why. She told
-the managers that she would never pay another cent to Mr. Meredith’s
-salary. Of course, most people say that the children offended her, but
-somehow I don’t think so. I tried to pump Faith, but all I could get
-out of her was that Mrs. Davis had come, seemingly in high good humour,
-to see her father, and had left in an awful rage, calling them all
-‘varmints!’”
-
-“Varmints, indeed!” said Susan furiously. “Does Mrs. Alec Davis forget
-that her uncle on her mother’s side was suspected of poisoning his
-wife? Not that it was ever proved, Mrs. Dr. dear, and it does not do to
-believe all you hear. But if _I_ had an uncle whose wife died without
-any satisfactory reason, _I_ would not go about the country calling
-innocent children varmints.”
-
-“The point is,” said Miss Cornelia, “that Mrs. Davis paid a large
-subscription, and how its loss is going to be made up is a problem. And
-if she turns the other Douglases against Mr. Meredith, as she will
-certainly try to do, he will just have to go.”
-
-“I do not think Mrs. Alec Davis is very well liked by the rest of the
-clan,” said Susan. “It is not likely she will be able to influence
-them.”
-
-“But those Douglases all hang together so. If you touch one, you touch
-all. We can’t do without them, so much is certain. They pay half the
-salary. They are not mean, whatever else may be said of them. Norman
-Douglas used to give a hundred a year long ago before he left.”
-
-“What did he leave for?” asked Anne.
-
-“He declared a member of the session cheated him in a cow deal. He
-hasn’t come to church for twenty years. His wife used to come regular
-while she was alive, poor thing, but he never would let her pay
-anything, except one red cent every Sunday. She felt dreadfully
-humiliated. I don’t know that he was any too good a husband to her,
-though she was never heard to complain. But she always had a cowed
-look. Norman Douglas didn’t get the woman he wanted thirty years ago
-and the Douglases never liked to put up with second best.”
-
-“Who was the woman he did want.”
-
-“Ellen West. They weren’t engaged exactly, I believe, but they went
-about together for two years. And then they just broke off—nobody ever
-knew why. Just some silly quarrel, I suppose. And Norman went and
-married Hester Reese before his temper had time to cool—married her
-just to spite Ellen, I haven’t a doubt. So like a man! Hester was a
-nice little thing, but she never had much spirit and he broke what
-little she had. She was too meek for Norman. He needed a woman who
-could stand up to him. Ellen would have kept him in fine order and he
-would have liked her all the better for it. He despised Hester, that is
-the truth, just because she always gave in to him. I used to hear him
-say many a time, long ago when he was a young fellow ‘Give me a spunky
-woman—spunk for me every time.’ And then he went and married a girl who
-couldn’t say boo to a goose—man-like. That family of Reeses were just
-vegetables. They went through the motions of living, but they didn’t
-_live_.”
-
-“Russell Reese used his first wife’s wedding-ring to marry his second,”
-said Susan reminiscently. “That was _too_ economical in my opinion,
-Mrs. Dr. dear. And his brother John has his own tombstone put up in the
-over-harbour graveyard, with everything on it but the date of death,
-and he goes and looks at it every Sunday. Most folks would not consider
-that much fun, but it is plain he does. People do have such different
-ideas of enjoyment. As for Norman Douglas, he is a perfect heathen.
-When the last minister asked him why he never went to church he said
-‘Too many ugly women there, parson—too many ugly women!’ I should like
-to go to such a man, Mrs. Dr. dear, and say to him solemnly, ‘There is
-a hell!’”
-
-“Oh, Norman doesn’t believe there is such a place,” said Miss Cornelia.
-“I hope he’ll find out his mistake when he comes to die. There, Mary,
-you’ve knit your three inches and you can go and play with the children
-for half an hour.”
-
-Mary needed no second bidding. She flew to Rainbow Valley with a heart
-as light as her heels, and in the course of conversation told Faith
-Meredith all about Mrs. Alec Davis.
-
-“And Mrs. Elliott says that she’ll turn all the Douglases against your
-father and then he’ll have to leave the Glen because his salary won’t
-be paid,” concluded Mary. “_I_ don’t know what is to be done, honest to
-goodness. If only old Norman Douglas would come back to church and pay,
-it wouldn’t be so bad. But he won’t—and the Douglases will leave—and
-you all will have to go.”
-
-Faith carried a heavy heart to bed with her that night. The thought of
-leaving the Glen was unbearable. Nowhere else in the world were there
-such chums as the Blythes. Her little heart had been wrung when they
-had left Maywater—she had shed many bitter tears when she parted with
-Maywater chums and the old manse there where her mother had lived and
-died. She could not contemplate calmly the thought of such another and
-harder wrench. She _couldn’t_ leave Glen St. Mary and dear Rainbow
-Valley and that delicious graveyard.
-
-“It’s awful to be minister’s family,” groaned Faith into her pillow.
-“Just as soon as you get fond of a place you are torn up by the roots.
-I’ll never, never, _never_ marry a minister, no matter how nice he is.”
-
-Faith sat up in bed and looked out of the little vine-hung window. The
-night was very still, the silence broken only by Una’s soft breathing.
-Faith felt terribly alone in the world. She could see Glen St. Mary
-lying under the starry blue meadows of the autumn night. Over the
-valley a light shone from the girls’ room at Ingleside, and another
-from Walter’s room. Faith wondered if poor Walter had toothache again.
-Then she sighed, with a little passing sigh of envy of Nan and Di. They
-had a mother and a settled home—_they_ were not at the mercy of people
-who got angry without any reason and called you a varmint. Away beyond
-the Glen, amid fields that were very quiet with sleep, another light
-was burning. Faith knew it shone in the house where Norman Douglas
-lived. He was reputed to sit up all hours of the night reading. Mary
-had said if he could only be induced to return to the church all would
-be well. And why not? Faith looked at a big, low star hanging over the
-tall, pointed spruce at the gate of the Methodist Church and had an
-inspiration. She knew what ought to be done and she, Faith Meredith,
-would do it. She would make everything right. With a sigh of
-satisfaction, she turned from the lonely, dark world and cuddled down
-beside Una.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI.
-TIT FOR TAT
-
-
-With Faith, to decide was to act. She lost no time in carrying out the
-idea. As soon as she came home from school the next day she left the
-manse and made her way down the Glen. Walter Blythe joined her as she
-passed the post office.
-
-“I’m going to Mrs. Elliott’s on an errand for mother,” he said. “Where
-are you going, Faith?”
-
-“I am going somewhere on church business,” said Faith loftily. She did
-not volunteer any further information and Walter felt rather snubbed.
-They walked on in silence for a little while. It was a warm, windy
-evening with a sweet, resinous air. Beyond the sand dunes were gray
-seas, soft and beautiful. The Glen brook bore down a freight of gold
-and crimson leaves, like fairy shallops. In Mr. James Reese’s buckwheat
-stubble-land, with its beautiful tones of red and brown, a crow
-parliament was being held, whereat solemn deliberations regarding the
-welfare of crowland were in progress. Faith cruelly broke up the august
-assembly by climbing up on the fence and hurling a broken rail at it.
-Instantly the air was filled with flapping black wings and indignant
-caws.
-
-“Why did you do that?” said Walter reproachfully. “They were having
-such a good time.”
-
-“Oh, I hate crows,” said Faith airily. “The are so black and sly I feel
-sure they’re hypocrites. They steal little birds’ eggs out of their
-nests, you know. I saw one do it on our lawn last spring. Walter, what
-makes you so pale to-day? Did you have the toothache again last night?”
-
-Walter shivered.
-
-“Yes—a raging one. I couldn’t sleep a wink—so I just paced up and down
-the floor and imagined I was an early Christian martyr being tortured
-at the command of Nero. That helped ever so much for a while—and then I
-got so bad I couldn’t imagine anything.”
-
-“Did you cry?” asked Faith anxiously.
-
-“No—but I lay down on the floor and groaned,” admitted Walter. “Then
-the girls came in and Nan put cayenne pepper in it—and that made it
-worse—Di made me hold a swallow of cold water in my mouth—and I
-couldn’t stand it, so they called Susan. Susan said it served me right
-for sitting up in the cold garret yesterday writing poetry trash. But
-she started up the kitchen fire and got me a hot-water bottle and it
-stopped the toothache. As soon as I felt better I told Susan my poetry
-wasn’t trash and she wasn’t any judge. And she said no, thank goodness
-she was not and she did not know anything about poetry except that it
-was mostly a lot of lies. Now you know, Faith, that isn’t so. That is
-one reason why I like writing poetry—you can say so many things in it
-that are true in poetry but wouldn’t be true in prose. I told Susan so,
-but she said to stop my jawing and go to sleep before the water got
-cold, or she’d leave me to see if rhyming would cure toothache, and she
-hoped it would be a lesson to me.”
-
-“Why don’t you go to the dentist at Lowbridge and get the tooth out?”
-
-Walter shivered again.
-
-“They want me to—but I can’t. It would hurt so.”
-
-“Are you afraid of a little pain?” asked Faith contemptuously.
-
-Walter flushed.
-
-“It would be a _big_ pain. I hate being hurt. Father said he wouldn’t
-insist on my going—he’d wait until I’d made up my own mind to go.”
-
-“It wouldn’t hurt as long as the toothache,” argued Faith, “You’ve had
-five spells of toothache. If you’d just go and have it out there’d be
-no more bad nights. _I_ had a tooth out once. I yelled for a moment,
-but it was all over then—only the bleeding.”
-
-“The bleeding is worst of all—it’s so ugly,” cried Walter. “It just
-made me sick when Jem cut his foot last summer. Susan said I looked
-more like fainting than Jem did. But I couldn’t bear to see Jem hurt,
-either. Somebody is always getting hurt, Faith—and it’s awful. I just
-can’t _bear_ to see things hurt. It makes me just want to run—and
-run—and run—till I can’t hear or see them.”
-
-“There’s no use making a fuss over anyone getting hurt,” said Faith,
-tossing her curls. “Of course, if you’ve hurt yourself very bad, you
-have to yell—and blood _is_ messy—and I don’t like seeing other people
-hurt, either. But I don’t want to run—I want to go to work and help
-them. Your father _has_ to hurt people lots of times to cure them. What
-would they do if _he_ ran away?”
-
-“I didn’t say I _would_ run. I said I _wanted_ to run. That’s a
-different thing. I want to help people, too. But oh, I wish there
-weren’t any ugly, dreadful things in the world. I wish everything was
-glad and beautiful.”
-
-“Well, don’t let’s think of what isn’t,” said Faith. “After all,
-there’s lots of fun in being alive. You wouldn’t have toothache if you
-were dead, but still, wouldn’t you lots rather be alive than dead? I
-would, a hundred times. Oh, here’s Dan Reese. He’s been down to the
-harbour for fish.”
-
-“I hate Dan Reese,” said Walter.
-
-“So do I. All us girls do. I’m just going to walk past and never take
-the least notice of him. You watch me!”
-
-Faith accordingly stalked past Dan with her chin out and an expression
-of scorn that bit into his soul. He turned and shouted after her.
-
-“Pig-girl! Pig-girl!! Pig-girl!!!” in a crescendo of insult.
-
-Faith walked on, seemingly oblivious. But her lip trembled slightly
-with a sense of outrage. She knew she was no match for Dan Reese when
-it came to an exchange of epithets. She wished Jem Blythe had been with
-her instead of Walter. If Dan Reese had dared to call her a pig-girl in
-Jem’s hearing, Jem would have wiped up the dust with him. But it never
-occurred to Faith to expect Walter to do it, or blame him for not doing
-it. Walter, she knew, never fought other boys. Neither did Charlie Clow
-of the north road. The strange part was that, while she despised
-Charlie for a coward, it never occurred to her to disdain Walter. It
-was simply that he seemed to her an inhabitant of a world of his own,
-where different traditions prevailed. Faith would as soon have expected
-a starry-eyed young angel to pummel dirty, freckled Dan Reese for her
-as Walter Blythe. She would not have blamed the angel and she did not
-blame Walter Blythe. But she wished that sturdy Jem or Jerry had been
-there and Dan’s insult continued to rankle in her soul.
-
-Walter was pale no longer. He had flushed crimson and his beautiful
-eyes were clouded with shame and anger. He knew that he ought to have
-avenged Faith. Jem would have sailed right in and made Dan eat his
-words with bitter sauce. Ritchie Warren would have overwhelmed Dan with
-worse “names” than Dan had called Faith. But Walter could not—simply
-could not—“call names.” He knew he would get the worst of it. He could
-never conceive or utter the vulgar, ribald insults of which Dan Reese
-had unlimited command. And as for the trial by fist, Walter couldn’t
-fight. He hated the idea. It was rough and painful—and, worst of all,
-it was ugly. He never could understand Jem’s exultation in an
-occasional conflict. But he wished he _could_ fight Dan Reese. He was
-horribly ashamed because Faith Meredith had been insulted in his
-presence and he had not tried to punish her insulter. He felt sure she
-must despise him. She had not even spoken to him since Dan had called
-her pig-girl. He was glad when they came to the parting of the ways.
-
-Faith, too, was relieved, though for a different reason. She wanted to
-be alone because she suddenly felt rather nervous about her errand.
-Impulse had cooled, especially since Dan had bruised her self-respect.
-She must go through with it, but she no longer had enthusiasm to
-sustain her. She was going to see Norman Douglas and ask him to come
-back to church, and she began to be afraid of him. What had seemed so
-easy and simple up at the Glen seemed very different down here. She had
-heard a good deal about Norman Douglas, and she knew that even the
-biggest boys in school were afraid of him. Suppose he called her
-something nasty—she had heard he was given to that. Faith could not
-endure being called names—they subdued her far more quickly than a
-physical blow. But she would go on—Faith Meredith always went on. If
-she did not her father might have to leave the Glen.
-
-At the end of the long lane Faith came to the house—a big,
-old-fashioned one with a row of soldierly Lombardies marching past it.
-On the back veranda Norman Douglas himself was sitting, reading a
-newspaper. His big dog was beside him. Behind, in the kitchen, where
-his housekeeper, Mrs. Wilson, was getting supper, there was a clatter
-of dishes—an angry clatter, for Norman Douglas had just had a quarrel
-with Mrs. Wilson, and both were in a very bad temper over it.
-Consequently, when Faith stepped on the veranda and Norman Douglas
-lowered his newspaper she found herself looking into the choleric eyes
-of an irritated man.
-
-Norman Douglas was rather a fine-looking personage in his way. He had a
-sweep of long red beard over his broad chest and a mane of red hair,
-ungrizzled by the years, on his massive head. His high, white forehead
-was unwrinkled and his blue eyes could flash still with all the fire of
-his tempestuous youth. He could be very amiable when he liked, and he
-could be very terrible. Poor Faith, so anxiously bent on retrieving the
-situation in regard to the church, had caught him in one of his
-terrible moods.
-
-He did not know who she was and he gazed at her with disfavour. Norman
-Douglas liked girls of spirit and flame and laughter. At this moment
-Faith was very pale. She was of the type to which colour means
-everything. Lacking her crimson cheeks she seemed meek and even
-insignificant. She looked apologetic and afraid, and the bully in
-Norman Douglas’s heart stirred.
-
-“Who the dickens are you? And what do you want here?” he demanded in
-his great resounding voice, with a fierce scowl.
-
-For once in her life Faith had nothing to say. She had never supposed
-Norman Douglas was like _this_. She was paralyzed with terror of him.
-He saw it and it made him worse.
-
-“What’s the matter with you?” he boomed. “You look as if you wanted to
-say something and was scared to say it. What’s troubling you? Confound
-it, speak up, can’t you?”
-
-No. Faith could not speak up. No words would come. But her lips began
-to tremble.
-
-“For heaven’s sake, don’t cry,” shouted Norman. “I can’t stand
-snivelling. If you’ve anything to say, say it and have done. Great
-Kitty, is the girl possessed of a dumb spirit? Don’t look at me like
-that—I’m human—I haven’t got a tail! Who are you—who are you, I say?”
-
-Norman’s voice could have been heard at the harbour. Operations in the
-kitchen were suspended. Mrs. Wilson was listening open-eared and eyed.
-Norman put his huge brown hands on his knees and leaned forward,
-staring into Faith’s pallid, shrinking face. He seemed to loom over her
-like some evil giant out of a fairy tale. She felt as if he would eat
-her up next thing, body and bones.
-
-“I—am—Faith—Meredith,” she said, in little more than a whisper.
-
-“Meredith, hey? One of the parson’s youngsters, hey? I’ve heard of
-you—I’ve heard of you! Riding on pigs and breaking the Sabbath! A nice
-lot! What do you want here, hey? What do you want of the old pagan,
-hey? _I_ don’t ask favours of parsons—and I don’t give any. What do you
-want, I say?”
-
-Faith wished herself a thousand miles away. She stammered out her
-thought in its naked simplicity.
-
-“I came—to ask you—to go to church—and pay—to the salary.”
-
-Norman glared at her. Then he burst forth again.
-
-“You impudent hussy—you! Who put you up to it, jade? Who put you up to
-it?”
-
-“Nobody,” said poor Faith.
-
-“That’s a lie. Don’t lie to me! Who sent you here? It wasn’t your
-father—he hasn’t the smeddum of a flea—but he wouldn’t send you to do
-what he dassn’t do himself. I suppose it was some of them confounded
-old maids at the Glen, was it—was it, hey?”
-
-“No—I—I just came myself.”
-
-“Do you take me for a fool?” shouted Norman.
-
-“No—I thought you were a gentleman,” said Faith faintly, and certainly
-without any thought of being sarcastic.
-
-Norman bounced up.
-
-“Mind your own business. I don’t want to hear another word from you. If
-you wasn’t such a kid I’d teach you to interfere in what doesn’t
-concern you. When I want parsons or pill-dosers I’ll send for them.
-Till I do I’ll have no truck with them. Do you understand? Now, get
-out, cheese-face.”
-
-Faith got out. She stumbled blindly down the steps, out of the yard
-gate and into the lane. Half way up the lane her daze of fear passed
-away and a reaction of tingling anger possessed her. By the time she
-reached the end of the lane she was in such a furious temper as she had
-never experienced before. Norman Douglas’ insults burned in her soul,
-kindling a scorching flame. Go home! Not she! She would go straight
-back and tell that old ogre just what she thought of him—she would show
-him—oh, wouldn’t she! Cheese-face, indeed!
-
-Unhesitatingly she turned and walked back. The veranda was deserted and
-the kitchen door shut. Faith opened the door without knocking, and went
-in. Norman Douglas had just sat down at the supper table, but he still
-held his newspaper. Faith walked inflexibly across the room, caught the
-paper from his hand, flung it on the floor and stamped on it. Then she
-faced him, with her flashing eyes and scarlet cheeks. She was such a
-handsome young fury that Norman Douglas hardly recognized her.
-
-“What’s brought you back?” he growled, but more in bewilderment than
-rage.
-
-Unquailingly she glared back into the angry eyes against which so few
-people could hold their own.
-
-“I have come back to tell you exactly what I think of you,” said Faith
-in clear, ringing tones. “I am not afraid of you. You are a rude,
-unjust, tyrannical, disagreeable old man. Susan says you are sure to go
-to hell, and I was sorry for you, but I am not now. Your wife never had
-a new hat for ten years—no wonder she died. I am going to make faces at
-you whenever I see you after this. Every time I am behind you you will
-know what is happening. Father has a picture of the devil in a book in
-his study, and I mean to go home and write your name under it. You are
-an old vampire and I hope you’ll have the Scotch fiddle!”
-
-Faith did not know what a vampire meant any more than she knew what the
-Scotch fiddle was. She had heard Susan use the expressions and gathered
-from her tone that both were dire things. But Norman Douglas knew what
-the latter meant at least. He had listened in absolute silence to
-Faith’s tirade. When she paused for breath, with a stamp of her foot,
-he suddenly burst into loud laughter. With a mighty slap of hand on
-knee he exclaimed,
-
-“I vow you’ve got spunk, after all—I like spunk. Come, sit down—sit
-down!”
-
-“I will not.” Faith’s eyes flashed more passionately. She thought she
-was being made fun of—treated contemptuously. She would have enjoyed
-another explosion of rage, but this cut deep. “I will not sit down in
-your house. I am going home. But I am glad I came back here and told
-you exactly what my opinion of you is.”
-
-“So am I—so am I,” chuckled Norman. “I like you—you’re fine—you’re
-great. Such roses—such vim! Did I call her cheese-face? Why, she never
-smelt a cheese. Sit down. If you’d looked like that at the first, girl!
-So you’ll write my name under the devil’s picture, will you? But he’s
-black, girl, he’s black—and I’m red. It won’t do—it won’t do! And you
-hope I’ll have the Scotch fiddle, do you? Lord love you, girl, I had
-_it_ when I was a boy. Don’t wish it on me again. Sit down—sit in.
-We’ll tak’ a cup o’ kindness.”
-
-“No, thank you,” said Faith haughtily.
-
-“Oh, yes, you will. Come, come now, I apologize, girl—I apologize. I
-made a fool of myself and I’m sorry. Man can’t say fairer. Forget and
-forgive. Shake hands, girl—shake hands. She won’t—no, she won’t! But
-she must! Look-a-here, girl, if you’ll shake hands and break bread with
-me I’ll pay what I used to to the salary and I’ll go to church the
-first Sunday in every month and I’ll make Kitty Alec hold her jaw. I’m
-the only one in the clan can do it. Is it a bargain, girl?”
-
-It seemed a bargain. Faith found herself shaking hands with the ogre
-and then sitting at his board. Her temper was over—Faith’s tempers
-never lasted very long—but its excitement still sparkled in her eyes
-and crimsoned her cheeks. Norman Douglas looked at her admiringly.
-
-“Go, get some of your best preserves, Wilson,” he ordered, “and stop
-sulking, woman, stop sulking. What if we did have a quarrel, woman? A
-good squall clears the air and briskens things up. But no drizzling and
-fogging afterwards—no drizzling and fogging, woman. I can’t stand that.
-Temper in a woman but no tears for me. Here, girl, is some messed up
-meat and potatoes for you. Begin on that. Wilson has some fancy name
-for it, but I call lit macanaccady. Anything I can’t analyze in the
-eating line I call macanaccady and anything wet that puzzles me I call
-shallamagouslem. Wilson’s tea is shallamagouslem. I swear she makes it
-out of burdocks. Don’t take any of the ungodly black liquid—here’s some
-milk for you. What did you say your name was?”
-
-“Faith.”
-
-“No name that—no name that! I can’t stomach such a name. Got any
-other?”
-
-“No, sir.”
-
-“Don’t like the name, don’t like it. There’s no smeddum to it. Besides,
-it makes me think of my Aunt Jinny. She called her three girls Faith,
-Hope, and Charity. Faith didn’t believe in anything—Hope was a born
-pessimist—and Charity was a miser. You ought to be called Red Rose—you
-look like one when you’re mad. _I’ll_ call you Red Rose. And you’ve
-roped me into promising to go to church? But only once a month,
-remember—only once a month. Come now, girl, will you let me off? I used
-to pay a hundred to the salary every year and go to church. If I
-promise to pay two hundred a year will you let me off going to church?
-Come now!”
-
-“No, no, sir,” said Faith, dimpling roguishly. “I want you to go to
-church, too.”
-
-“Well, a bargain is a bargain. I reckon I can stand it twelve times a
-year. What a sensation it’ll make the first Sunday I go! And old Susan
-Baker says I’m going to hell, hey? Do you believe I’ll go there—come,
-now, do you?”
-
-“I hope not, sir,” stammered Faith in some confusion.
-
-“_Why_ do you hope not? Come, now, _why_ do you hope not? Give us a
-reason, girl—give us a reason.”
-
-“It—it must be a very—uncomfortable place, sir.”
-
-“Uncomfortable? All depends on your taste in comfortable, girl. I’d
-soon get tired of angels. Fancy old Susan in a halo, now!”
-
-Faith did fancy it, and it tickled her so much that she had to laugh.
-Norman eyed her approvingly.
-
-“See the fun of it, hey? Oh, I like you—you’re great. About this church
-business, now—can your father preach?”
-
-“He is a splendid preacher,” said loyal Faith.
-
-“He is, hey? I’ll see—I’ll watch out for flaws. He’d better be careful
-what he says before _me_. I’ll catch him—I’ll trip him up—I’ll keep
-tabs on his arguments. I’m bound to have some fun out of this church
-going business. Does he ever preach hell?”
-
-“No—o—o—I don’t think so.”
-
-“Too bad. I like sermons on that subject. You tell him that if he wants
-to keep me in good humour to preach a good rip-roaring sermon on hell
-once every six months—and the more brimstone the better. I like ‘em
-smoking. And think of all the pleasure he’d give the old maids, too.
-They’d all keep looking at old Norman Douglas and thinking, ‘That’s for
-you, you old reprobate. That’s what’s in store for _you!_’ I’ll give an
-extra ten dollars every time you get your father to preach on hell.
-Here’s Wilson and the jam. Like that, hey? _It_ isn’t macanaccady.
-Taste!”
-
-Faith obediently swallowed the big spoonful Norman held out to her.
-Luckily it _was_ good.
-
-“Best plum jam in the world,” said Norman, filling a large saucer and
-plumping it down before her. “Glad you like it. I’ll give you a couple
-of jars to take home with you. There’s nothing mean about me—never was.
-The devil can’t catch me at _that_ corner, anyhow. It wasn’t my fault
-that Hester didn’t have a new hat for ten years. It was her own—she
-pinched on hats to save money to give yellow fellows over in China. _I_
-never gave a cent to missions in my life—never will. Never you try to
-bamboozle me into that! A hundred a year to the salary and church once
-a month—but no spoiling good heathens to make poor Christians! Why,
-girl, they wouldn’t be fit for heaven or hell—clean spoiled for either
-place—clean spoiled. Hey, Wilson, haven’t you got a smile on yet? Beats
-all how you women can sulk! _I_ never sulked in my life—it’s just one
-big flash and crash with me and then—pouf—the squall’s over and the sun
-is out and you could eat out of my hand.”
-
-Norman insisted on driving Faith home after supper and he filled the
-buggy up with apples, cabbages, potatoes and pumpkins and jars of jam.
-
-“There’s a nice little tom-pussy out in the barn. I’ll give you that
-too, if you’d like it. Say the word,” he said.
-
-“No, thank you,” said Faith decidedly. “I don’t like cats, and besides,
-I have a rooster.”
-
-“Listen to her. You can’t cuddle a rooster as you can a kitten. Who
-ever heard of petting a rooster? Better take little Tom. I want to find
-a good home for him.”
-
-“No. Aunt Martha has a cat and he would kill a strange kitten.”
-
-Norman yielded the point rather reluctantly. He gave Faith an exciting
-drive home, behind his wild two-year old, and when he had let her out
-at the kitchen door of the manse and dumped his cargo on the back
-veranda he drove away shouting,
-
-“It’s only once a month—only once a month, mind!”
-
-Faith went up to bed, feeling a little dizzy and breathless, as if she
-had just escaped from the grasp of a genial whirlwind. She was happy
-and thankful. No fear now that they would have to leave the Glen and
-the graveyard and Rainbow Valley. But she fell asleep troubled by a
-disagreeable subconsciousness that Dan Reese had called her pig-girl
-and that, having stumbled on such a congenial epithet, he would
-continue to call her so whenever opportunity offered.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII.
-A DOUBLE VICTORY
-
-
-Norman Douglas came to church the first Sunday in November and made all
-the sensation he desired. Mr. Meredith shook hands with him absently on
-the church steps and hoped dreamily that Mrs. Douglas was well.
-
-“She wasn’t very well just before I buried her ten years ago, but I
-reckon she has better health now,” boomed Norman, to the horror and
-amusement of every one except Mr. Meredith, who was absorbed in
-wondering if he had made the last head of his sermon as clear as he
-might have, and hadn’t the least idea what Norman had said to him or he
-to Norman.
-
-Norman intercepted Faith at the gate.
-
-“Kept my word, you see—kept my word, Red Rose. I’m free now till the
-first Sunday in December. Fine sermon, girl—fine sermon. Your father
-has more in his head than he carries on his face. But he contradicted
-himself once—tell him he contradicted himself. And tell him I want that
-brimstone sermon in December. Great way to wind up the old year—with a
-taste of hell, you know. And what’s the matter with a nice tasty
-discourse on heaven for New Year’s? Though it wouldn’t be half as
-interesting as hell, girl—not half. Only I’d like to know what your
-father thinks about heaven—he _can_ think—rarest thing in the world—a
-person who can think. But he _did_ contradict himself. Ha, ha! Here’s a
-question you might ask him sometime when he’s awake, girl. ‘Can God
-make a stone so big He couldn’t lift it Himself?’ Don’t forget now. I
-want to hear his opinion on it. I’ve stumped many a minister with that,
-girl.”
-
-Faith was glad to escape him and run home. Dan Reese, standing among
-the crowd of boys at the gate, looked at her and shaped his mouth into
-“pig-girl,” but dared not utter it aloud just there. Next day in school
-was a different matter. At noon recess Faith encountered Dan in the
-little spruce plantation behind the school and Dan shouted once more,
-
-“Pig-girl! Pig-girl! _Rooster-girl!_”
-
-Walter Blythe suddenly rose from a mossy cushion behind a little clump
-of firs where he had been reading. He was very pale, but his eyes
-blazed.
-
-“You hold your tongue, Dan Reese!” he said.
-
-“Oh, hello, Miss Walter,” retorted Dan, not at all abashed. He vaulted
-airily to the top of the rail fence and chanted insultingly,
-
-“Cowardy, cowardy-custard
-Stole a pot of mustard,
-Cowardy, cowardy-custard!”
-
-“You are a coincidence!” said Walter scornfully, turning still whiter.
-He had only a very hazy idea what a coincidence was, but Dan had none
-at all and thought it must be something peculiarly opprobrious.
-
-“Yah! Cowardy!” he yelled gain. “Your mother writes lies—lies—lies! And
-Faith Meredith is a pig-girl—a—pig-girl—a pig-girl! And she’s a
-rooster-girl—a rooster-girl—a rooster-girl! Yah! Cowardy—cowardy—cust—”
-
-Dan got no further. Walter had hurled himself across the intervening
-space and knocked Dan off the fence backward with one well-directed
-blow. Dan’s sudden inglorious sprawl was greeted with a burst of
-laughter and a clapping of hands from Faith. Dan sprang up, purple with
-rage, and began to climb the fence. But just then the school-bell rang
-and Dan knew what happened to boys who were late during Mr. Hazard’s
-regime.
-
-“We’ll fight this out,” he howled. “Cowardy!”
-
-“Any time you like,” said Walter.
-
-“Oh, no, no, Walter,” protested Faith. “Don’t fight him. _I_ don’t mind
-what he says—I wouldn’t condescend to mind the like of _him_.”
-
-“He insulted you and he insulted my mother,” said Walter, with the same
-deadly calm. “Tonight after school, Dan.”
-
-“I’ve got to go right home from school to pick taters after the
-harrows, dad says,” answered Dan sulkily. “But to-morrow night’ll do.”
-
-“All right—here to-morrow night,” agreed Walter.
-
-“And I’ll smash your sissy-face for you,” promised Dan.
-
-Walter shuddered—not so much from fear of the threat as from repulsion
-over the ugliness and vulgarity of it. But he held his head high and
-marched into school. Faith followed in a conflict of emotions. She
-hated to think of Walter fighting that little sneak, but oh, he had
-been splendid! And he was going to fight for _her_—Faith Meredith—to
-punish her insulter! Of course he would win—such eyes spelled victory.
-
-Faith’s confidence in her champion had dimmed a little by evening,
-however. Walter had seemed so very quiet and dull the rest of the day
-in school.
-
-“If it were only Jem,” she sighed to Una, as they sat on Hezekiah
-Pollock’s tombstone in the graveyard. “_He_ is such a fighter—he could
-finish Dan off in no time. But Walter doesn’t know much about
-fighting.”
-
-“I’m so afraid he’ll be hurt,” sighed Una, who hated fighting and
-couldn’t understand the subtle, secret exultation she divined in Faith.
-
-“He oughtn’t to be,” said Faith uncomfortably. “He’s every bit as big
-as Dan.”
-
-“But Dan’s so much older,” said Una. “Why, he’s nearly a year older.”
-
-“Dan hasn’t done much fighting when you come to count up,” said Faith.
-“I believe he’s really a coward. He didn’t think Walter would fight, or
-he wouldn’t have called names before him. Oh, if you could just have
-seen Walter’s face when he looked at him, Una! It made me shiver—with a
-nice shiver. He looked just like Sir Galahad in that poem father read
-us on Saturday.”
-
-“I hate the thought of them fighting and I wish it could be stopped,”
-said Una.
-
-“Oh, it’s got to go on now,” cried Faith. “It’s a matter of honour.
-Don’t you _dare_ tell anyone, Una. If you do I’ll never tell you
-secrets again!”
-
-“I won’t tell,” agreed Una. “But I won’t stay to-morrow to watch the
-fight. I’m coming right home.”
-
-“Oh, all right. _I_ have to be there—it would be mean not to, when
-Walter is fighting for me. I’m going to tie my colours on his
-arm—that’s the thing to do when he’s my knight. How lucky Mrs. Blythe
-gave me that pretty blue hair-ribbon for my birthday! I’ve only worn it
-twice so it will be almost new. But I wish I was sure Walter would win.
-It will be so—so _humiliating_ if he doesn’t.”
-
-Faith would have been yet more dubious if she could have seen her
-champion just then. Walter had gone home from school with all his
-righteous anger at a low ebb and a very nasty feeling in its place. He
-had to fight Dan Reese the next night—and he didn’t want to—he hated
-the thought of it. And he kept thinking of it all the time. Not for a
-minute could he get away from the thought. Would it hurt much? He was
-terribly afraid that it would hurt. And would he be defeated and
-shamed?
-
-He could not eat any supper worth speaking of. Susan had made a big
-batch of his favourite monkey-faces, but he could choke only one down.
-Jem ate four. Walter wondered how he could. How could _anybody_ eat?
-And how could they all talk gaily as they were doing? There was mother,
-with her shining eyes and pink cheeks. _She_ didn’t know her son had to
-fight next day. Would she be so gay if she knew, Walter wondered
-darkly. Jem had taken Susan’s picture with his new camera and the
-result was passed around the table and Susan was terribly indignant
-over it.
-
-“I am no beauty, Mrs. Dr. dear, and well I know it, and have always
-known it,” she said in an aggrieved tone, “but that I am as ugly as
-that picture makes me out I will never, no, never believe.”
-
-Jem laughed over this and Anne laughed again with him. Walter couldn’t
-endure it. He got up and fled to his room.
-
-“That child has got something on his mind, Mrs. Dr. dear,” said Susan.
-“He has et next to nothing. Do you suppose he is plotting another
-poem?”
-
-Poor Walter was very far removed in spirit from the starry realms of
-poesy just then. He propped his elbow on his open window-sill and
-leaned his head drearily on his hands.
-
-“Come on down to the shore, Walter,” cried Jem, busting in. “The boys
-are going to burn the sand-hill grass to-night. Father says we can go.
-Come on.”
-
-At any other time Walter would have been delighted. He gloried in the
-burning of the sand-hill grass. But now he flatly refused to go, and no
-arguments or entreaties could move him. Disappointed Jem, who did not
-care for the long dark walk to Four Winds Point alone, retreated to his
-museum in the garret and buried himself in a book. He soon forgot his
-disappointment, revelling with the heroes of old romance, and pausing
-occasionally to picture himself a famous general, leading his troops to
-victory on some great battlefield.
-
-Walter sat at his window until bedtime. Di crept in, hoping to be told
-what was wrong, but Walter could not talk of it, even to Di. Talking of
-it seemed to give it a reality from which he shrank. It was torture
-enough to think of it. The crisp, withered leaves rustled on the maple
-trees outside his window. The glow of rose and flame had died out of
-the hollow, silvery sky, and the full moon was rising gloriously over
-Rainbow Valley. Afar off, a ruddy woodfire was painting a page of glory
-on the horizon beyond the hills. It was a sharp, clear evening when
-far-away sounds were heard distinctly. A fox was barking across the
-pond; an engine was puffing down at the Glen station; a blue-jay was
-screaming madly in the maple grove; there was laughter over on the
-manse lawn. How could people laugh? How could foxes and blue-jays and
-engines behave as if nothing were going to happen on the morrow?
-
-“Oh, I wish it was over,” groaned Walter.
-
-He slept very little that night and had hard work choking down his
-porridge in the morning. Susan _was_ rather lavish in her platefuls.
-Mr. Hazard found him an unsatisfactory pupil that day. Faith Meredith’s
-wits seemed to be wool-gathering, too. Dan Reese kept drawing
-surreptitious pictures of girls, with pig or rooster heads, on his
-slate and holding them up for all to see. The news of the coming battle
-had leaked out and most of the boys and many of the girls were in the
-spruce plantation when Dan and Walter sought it after school. Una had
-gone home, but Faith was there, having tied her blue ribbon around
-Walter’s arm. Walter was thankful that neither Jem nor Di nor Nan were
-among the crowd of spectators. Somehow they had not heard of what was
-in the wind and had gone home, too. Walter faced Dan quite undauntedly
-now. At the last moment all his fear had vanished, but he still felt
-disgust at the idea of fighting. Dan, it was noted, was really paler
-under his freckles than Walter was. One of the older boys gave the word
-and Dan struck Walter in the face.
-
-Walter reeled a little. The pain of the blow tingled through all his
-sensitive frame for a moment. Then he felt pain no longer. Something,
-such as he had never experienced before, seemed to roll over him like a
-flood. His face flushed crimson, his eyes burned like flame. The
-scholars of Glen St. Mary school had never dreamed that “Miss Walter”
-could look like that. He hurled himself forward and closed with Dan
-like a young wildcat.
-
-There were no particular rules in the fights of the Glen school boys.
-It was catch-as-catch can, and get your blows in anyhow. Walter fought
-with a savage fury and a joy in the struggle against which Dan could
-not hold his ground. It was all over very speedily. Walter had no clear
-consciousness of what he was doing until suddenly the red mist cleared
-from his sight and he found himself kneeling on the body of the
-prostrate Dan whose nose—oh, horror!—was spouting blood.
-
-“Have you had enough?” demanded Walter through his clenched teeth.
-
-Dan sulkily admitted that he had.
-
-“My mother doesn’t write lies?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“Faith Meredith isn’t a pig-girl?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“Nor a rooster-girl?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“And I’m not a coward?”
-
-“No.”
-
-Walter had intended to ask, “And you are a liar?” but pity intervened
-and he did not humiliate Dan further. Besides, that blood was so
-horrible.
-
-“You can go, then,” he said contemptuously.
-
-There was a loud clapping from the boys who were perched on the rail
-fence, but some of the girls were crying. They were frightened. They
-had seen schoolboy fights before, but nothing like Walter as he had
-grappled with Dan. There had been something terrifying about him. They
-thought he would kill Dan. Now that all was over they sobbed
-hysterically—except Faith, who still stood tense and crimson cheeked.
-
-Walter did not stay for any conqueror’s meed. He sprang over the fence
-and rushed down the spruce hill to Rainbow Valley. He felt none of the
-victor’s joy, but he felt a certain calm satisfaction in duty done and
-honour avenged—mingled with a sickish qualm when he thought of Dan’s
-gory nose. It had been so ugly, and Walter hated ugliness.
-
-Also, he began to realize that he himself was somewhat sore and
-battered up. His lip was cut and swollen and one eye felt very strange.
-In Rainbow Valley he encountered Mr. Meredith, who was coming home from
-an afternoon call on the Miss Wests. That reverend gentleman looked
-gravely at him.
-
-“It seems to me that you have been fighting, Walter?”
-
-“Yes, sir,” said Walter, expecting a scolding.
-
-“What was it about?”
-
-“Dan Reese said my mother wrote lies and that that Faith was a
-pig-girl,” answered Walter bluntly.
-
-“Oh—h! Then you were certainly justified, Walter.”
-
-“Do you think it’s right to fight, sir?” asked Walter curiously.
-
-“Not always—and not often—but sometimes—yes, sometimes,” said John
-Meredith. “When womenkind are insulted for instance—as in your case. My
-motto, Walter, is, don’t fight till you’re sure you ought to, and
-_then_ put every ounce of you into it. In spite of sundry
-discolorations I infer that you came off best.”
-
-“Yes. I made him take it all back.”
-
-“Very good—very good, indeed. I didn’t think you were such a fighter,
-Walter.”
-
-“I never fought before—and I didn’t want to right up to the last—and
-then,” said Walter, determined to make a clean breast of it, “I liked
-it while I was at it.”
-
-The Rev. John’s eyes twinkled.
-
-“You were—a little frightened—at first?”
-
-“I was a whole lot frightened,” said honest Walter. “But I’m not going
-to be frightened any more, sir. Being frightened of things is worse
-than the things themselves. I’m going to ask father to take me over to
-Lowbridge to-morrow to get my tooth out.”
-
-“Right again. ‘Fear is more pain than is the pain it fears.’ Do you
-know who wrote that, Walter? It was Shakespeare. Was there any feeling
-or emotion or experience of the human heart that that wonderful man did
-not know? When you go home tell your mother I am proud of you.”
-
-Walter did not tell her that, however; but he told her all the rest,
-and she sympathized with him and told him she was glad he had stood up
-for her and Faith, and she anointed his sore spots and rubbed cologne
-on his aching head.
-
-“Are all mothers as nice as you?” asked Walter, hugging her. “You’re
-_worth_ standing up for.”
-
-Miss Cornelia and Susan were in the living room when Anne came
-downstairs, and listened to the story with much enjoyment. Susan in
-particular was highly gratified.
-
-“I am real glad to hear he has had a good fight, Mrs. Dr. dear. Perhaps
-it may knock that poetry nonsense out of him. And I never, no, never
-could bear that little viper of a Dan Reese. Will you not sit nearer to
-the fire, Mrs. Marshall Elliott? These November evenings are very
-chilly.”
-
-“Thank you, Susan, I’m not cold. I called at the manse before I came
-here and got quite warm—though I had to go to the kitchen to do it, for
-there was no fire anywhere else. The kitchen looked as if it had been
-stirred up with a stick, believe _me_. Mr. Meredith wasn’t home. I
-couldn’t find out where he was, but I have an idea that he was up at
-the Wests’. Do you know, Anne dearie, they say he has been going there
-frequently all the fall and people are beginning to think he is going
-to see Rosemary.”
-
-“He would get a very charming wife if he married Rosemary,” said Anne,
-piling driftwood on the fire. “She is one of the most delightful girls
-I’ve ever known—truly one of the race of Joseph.”
-
-“Ye—s—only she is an Episcopalian,” said Miss Cornelia doubtfully. “Of
-course, that is better than if she was a Methodist—but I do think Mr.
-Meredith could find a good enough wife in his own denomination.
-However, very likely there is nothing in it. It’s only a month ago that
-I said to him, ‘You ought to marry again, Mr. Meredith.’ He looked as
-shocked as if I had suggested something improper. ‘My wife is in her
-grave, Mrs. Elliott,’ he said, in that gentle, saintly way of his. ‘I
-suppose so,’ I said, ‘or I wouldn’t be advising you to marry again.’
-Then he looked more shocked than ever. So I doubt if there is much in
-this Rosemary story. If a single minister calls twice at a house where
-there is a single woman all the gossips have it he is courting her.”
-
-“It seems to me—if I may presume to say so—that Mr. Meredith is too shy
-to go courting a second wife,” said Susan solemnly.
-
-“He _isn’t_ shy, believe _me_,” retorted Miss Cornelia.
-“Absent-minded,—yes—but shy, no. And for all he is so abstracted and
-dreamy he has a very good opinion of himself, man-like, and when he is
-really awake he wouldn’t think it much of a chore to ask any woman to
-have him. No, the trouble is, he’s deluding himself into believing that
-his heart is buried, while all the time it’s beating away inside of him
-just like anybody else’s. He may have a notion of Rosemary West and he
-may not. If he has, we must make the best of it. She is a sweet girl
-and a fine housekeeper, and would make a good mother for those poor,
-neglected children. And,” concluded Miss Cornelia resignedly, “my own
-grandmother was an Episcopalian.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII.
-MARY BRINGS EVIL TIDINGS
-
-
-Mary Vance, whom Mrs. Elliott had sent up to the manse on an errand,
-came tripping down Rainbow Valley on her way to Ingleside where she was
-to spend the afternoon with Nan and Di as a Saturday treat. Nan and Di
-had been picking spruce gum with Faith and Una in the manse woods and
-the four of them were now sitting on a fallen pine by the brook, all,
-it must be admitted, chewing rather vigorously. The Ingleside twins
-were not allowed to chew spruce gum anywhere but in the seclusion of
-Rainbow Valley, but Faith and Una were unrestricted by such rules of
-etiquette and cheerfully chewed it everywhere, at home and abroad, to
-the very proper horror of the Glen. Faith had been chewing it in church
-one day; but Jerry had realized the enormity of _that_, and had given
-her such an older-brotherly scolding that she never did it again.
-
-“I was so hungry I just felt as if I had to chew something,” she
-protested. “You know well enough what breakfast was like, Jerry
-Meredith. I _couldn’t_ eat scorched porridge and my stomach just felt
-so queer and empty. The gum helped a lot—and I didn’t chew _very_ hard.
-I didn’t make any noise and I never cracked the gum once.”
-
-“You mustn’t chew gum in church, anyhow,” insisted Jerry. “Don’t let me
-catch you at it again.”
-
-“You chewed yourself in prayer-meeting last week,” cried Faith.
-
-“_that’s_ different,” said Jerry loftily. “Prayer-meeting isn’t on
-Sunday. Besides, I sat away at the back in a dark seat and nobody saw
-me. You were sitting right up front where every one saw you. And I took
-the gum out of my mouth for the last hymn and stuck it on the back of
-the pew right up in front where every one saw you. Then I came away and
-forgot it. I went back to get it next morning, but it was gone. I
-suppose Rod Warren swiped it. And it was a dandy chew.”
-
-Mary Vance walked down the Valley with her head held high. She had on a
-new blue velvet cap with a scarlet rosette in it, a coat of navy blue
-cloth and a little squirrel-fur muff. She was very conscious of her new
-clothes and very well pleased with herself. Her hair was elaborately
-crimped, her face was quite plump, her cheeks rosy, her white eyes
-shining. She did not look much like the forlorn and ragged waif the
-Merediths had found in the old Taylor barn. Una tried not to feel
-envious. Here was Mary with a new velvet cap, but she and Faith had to
-wear their shabby old gray tams again this winter. Nobody ever thought
-of getting them new ones and they were afraid to ask their father for
-them for fear that he might be short of money and then he would feel
-badly. Mary had told them once that ministers were always short of
-money, and found it “awful hard” to make ends meet. Since then Faith
-and Una would have gone in rags rather than ask their father for
-anything if they could help it. They did not worry a great deal over
-their shabbiness; but it was rather trying to see Mary Vance coming out
-in such style and putting on such airs about it, too. The new squirrel
-muff was really the last straw. Neither Faith nor Una had ever had a
-muff, counting themselves lucky if they could compass mittens without
-holes in them. Aunt Martha could not see to darn holes and though Una
-tried to, she made sad cobbling. Somehow, they could not make their
-greeting of Mary very cordial. But Mary did not mind or notice that;
-she was not overly sensitive. She vaulted lightly to a seat on the pine
-tree, and laid the offending muff on a bough. Una saw that it was lined
-with shirred red satin and had red tassels. She looked down at her own
-rather purple, chapped, little hands and wondered if she would ever,
-_ever_ be able to put them into a muff like that.
-
-“Give us a chew,” said Mary companionably. Nan, Di and Faith all
-produced an amber-hued knot or two from their pockets and passed them
-to Mary. Una sat very still. She had four lovely big knots in the
-pocket of her tight, thread-bare little jacket, but she wasn’t going to
-give one of them to Mary Vance—not one Let Mary pick her own gum!
-People with squirrel muffs needn’t expect to get everything in the
-world.
-
-“Great day, isn’t it?” said Mary, swinging her legs, the better,
-perhaps, to display new boots with very smart cloth tops. Una tucked
-_her_ feet under her. There was a hole in the toe of one of her boots
-and both laces were much knotted. But they were the best she had. Oh,
-this Mary Vance! Why hadn’t they left her in the old barn?
-
-Una never felt badly because the Ingleside twins were better dressed
-than she and Faith were. _They_ wore their pretty clothes with careless
-grace and never seemed to think about them at all. Somehow, they did
-not make other people feel shabby. But when Mary Vance was dressed up
-she seemed fairly to exude clothes—to walk in an atmosphere of
-clothes—to make everybody else feel and think clothes. Una, as she sat
-there in the honey-tinted sunshine of the gracious December afternoon,
-was acutely and miserably conscious of everything she had on—the faded
-tam, which was yet her best, the skimpy jacket she had worn for three
-winters, the holes in her skirt and her boots, the shivering
-insufficiency of her poor little undergarments. Of course, Mary was
-going out for a visit and she was not. But even if she had been she had
-nothing better to put on and in this lay the sting.
-
-“Say, this is great gum. Listen to me cracking it. There ain’t any gum
-spruces down at Four Winds,” said Mary. “Sometimes I just hanker after
-a chew. Mrs. Elliott won’t let me chew gum if she sees me. She says it
-ain’t lady-like. This lady-business puzzles me. I can’t get on to all
-its kinks. Say, Una, what’s the matter with you? Cat got your tongue?”
-
-“No,” said Una, who could not drag her fascinated eyes from that
-squirrel muff. Mary leaned past her, picked it up and thrust it into
-Una’s hands.
-
-“Stick your paws in that for a while,” she ordered. “They look sorter
-pinched. Ain’t that a dandy muff? Mrs. Elliott give it to me last week
-for a birthday present. I’m to get the collar at Christmas. I heard her
-telling Mr. Elliott that.”
-
-“Mrs. Elliott is very good to you,” said Faith.
-
-“You bet she is. And _I’m_ good to her, too,” retorted Mary. “I work
-like a nigger to make it easy for her and have everything just as she
-likes it. We was made for each other. ‘Tisn’t every one could get along
-with her as well as I do. She’s pizen neat, but so am I, and so we
-agree fine.”
-
-“I told you she would never whip you.”
-
-“So you did. She’s never tried to lay a finger on me and I ain’t never
-told a lie to her—not one, true’s you live. She combs me down with her
-tongue sometimes though, but that just slips off _me_ like water off a
-duck’s back. Say, Una, why didn’t you hang on to the muff?”
-
-Una had put it back on the bough.
-
-“My hands aren’t cold, thank you,” she said stiffly.
-
-“Well, if you’re satisfied, _I_ am. Say, old Kitty Alec has come back
-to church as meek as Moses and nobody knows why. But everybody is
-saying it was Faith brought Norman Douglas out. His housekeeper says
-you went there and gave him an awful tongue-lashing. Did you?”
-
-“I went and asked him to come to church,” said Faith uncomfortably.
-
-“Fancy your spunk!” said Mary admiringly. “_I_ wouldn’t have dared do
-that and I’m not so slow. Mrs. Wilson says the two of you jawed
-something scandalous, but you come off best and then he just turned
-round and like to eat you up. Say, is your father going to preach here
-to-morrow?”
-
-“No. He’s going to exchange with Mr. Perry from Charlottetown. Father
-went to town this morning and Mr. Perry is coming out to-night.”
-
-“I _thought_ there was something in the wind, though old Martha
-wouldn’t give me any satisfaction. But I felt sure she wouldn’t have
-been killing that rooster for nothing.”
-
-“What rooster? What do you mean?” cried Faith, turning pale.
-
-“_I_ don’t know what rooster. I didn’t see it. When she took the butter
-Mrs. Elliott sent up she said she’d been out to the barn killing a
-rooster for dinner tomorrow.”
-
-Faith sprang down from the pine.
-
-“It’s Adam—we have no other rooster—she has killed Adam.”
-
-“Now, don’t fly off the handle. Martha said the butcher at the Glen had
-no meat this week and she had to have something and the hens were all
-laying and too poor.”
-
-“If she has killed Adam—” Faith began to run up the hill.
-
-Mary shrugged her shoulders.
-
-“She’ll go crazy now. She was so fond of that Adam. He ought to have
-been in the pot long ago—he’ll be as tough as sole leather. But _I_
-wouldn’t like to be in Martha’s shoes. Faith’s just white with rage;
-Una, you’d better go after her and try to peacify her.”
-
-Mary had gone a few steps with the Blythe girls when Una suddenly
-turned and ran after her.
-
-“Here’s some gum for you, Mary,” she said, with a little repentant
-catch in her voice, thrusting all her four knots into Mary’s hands,
-“and I’m glad you have such a pretty muff.”
-
-“Why, thanks,” said Mary, rather taken by surprise. To the Blythe
-girls, after Una had gone, she said, “Ain’t she a queer little mite?
-But I’ve always said she had a good heart.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX.
-POOR ADAM!
-
-
-When Una got home Faith was lying face downwards on her bed, utterly
-refusing to be comforted. Aunt Martha had killed Adam. He was reposing
-on a platter in the pantry that very minute, trussed and dressed,
-encircled by his liver and heart and gizzard. Aunt Martha heeded
-Faith’s passion of grief and anger not a whit.
-
-“We had to have something for the strange minister’s dinner,” she said.
-“You’re too big a girl to make such a fuss over an old rooster. You
-knew he’d have to be killed sometime.”
-
-“I’ll tell father when he comes home what you’ve done,” sobbed Faith.
-
-“Don’t you go bothering your poor father. He has troubles enough. And
-_I’m_ housekeeper here.”
-
-“Adam was _mine_—Mrs. Johnson gave him to me. You had no business to
-touch him,” stormed Faith.
-
-“Don’t you get sassy now. The rooster’s killed and there’s an end of
-it. I ain’t going to set no strange minister down to a dinner of cold
-b’iled mutton. I was brought up to know better than that, if I have
-come down in the world.”
-
-Faith would not go down to supper that night and she would not go to
-church the next morning. But at dinner time she went to the table, her
-eyes swollen with crying, her face sullen.
-
-The Rev. James Perry was a sleek, rubicund man, with a bristling white
-moustache, bushy white eyebrows, and a shining bald head. He was
-certainly not handsome and he was a very tiresome, pompous sort of
-person. But if he had looked like the Archangel Michael and talked with
-the tongues of men and angels Faith would still have utterly detested
-him. He carved Adam up dexterously, showing off his plump white hands
-and very handsome diamond ring. Also, he made jovial remarks all
-through the performance. Jerry and Carl giggled, and even Una smiled
-wanly, because she thought politeness demanded it. But Faith only
-scowled darkly. The Rev. James thought her manners shockingly bad.
-Once, when he was delivering himself of an unctuous remark to Jerry,
-Faith broke in rudely with a flat contradiction. The Rev. James drew
-his bushy eyebrows together at her.
-
-“Little girls should not interrupt,” he said, “and they should not
-contradict people who know far more than they do.”
-
-This put Faith in a worse temper than ever. To be called “little girl”
-as if she were no bigger than chubby Rilla Blythe over at Ingleside! It
-was insufferable. And how that abominable Mr. Perry did eat! He even
-picked poor Adam’s bones. Neither Faith nor Una would touch a mouthful,
-and looked upon the boys as little better than cannibals. Faith felt
-that if that awful repast did not soon come to an end she would wind it
-up by throwing something at Mr. Perry’s gleaming head. Fortunately, Mr.
-Perry found Aunt Martha’s leathery apple pie too much even for his
-powers of mastication and the meal came to an end, after a long grace
-in which Mr. Perry offered up devout thanks for the food which a kind
-and beneficent Providence had provided for sustenance and temperate
-pleasure.
-
-“God hadn’t a single thing to do with providing Adam for you,” muttered
-Faith rebelliously under her breath.
-
-The boys gladly made their escape to outdoors, Una went to help Aunt
-Martha with the dishes—though that rather grumpy old dame never
-welcomed her timid assistance—and Faith betook herself to the study
-where a cheerful wood fire was burning in the grate. She thought she
-would thereby escape from the hated Mr. Perry, who had announced his
-intention of taking a nap in his room during the afternoon. But
-scarcely had Faith settled herself in a corner, with a book, when he
-walked in and, standing before the fire, proceeded to survey the
-disorderly study with an air of disapproval.
-
-“You father’s books seem to be in somewhat deplorable confusion, my
-little girl,” he said severely.
-
-Faith darkled in her corner and said not a word. She would _not_ talk
-to this—this creature.
-
-“You should try to put them in order,” Mr. Perry went on, playing with
-his handsome watch chain and smiling patronizingly on Faith. “You are
-quite old enough to attend to such duties. _My_ little daughter at home
-is only ten and she is already an excellent little housekeeper and the
-greatest help and comfort to her mother. She is a very sweet child. I
-wish you had the privilege of her acquaintance. She could help you in
-many ways. Of course, you have not had the inestimable privilege of a
-good mother’s care and training. A sad lack—a very sad lack. I have
-spoken more than once to your father in this connection and pointed out
-his duty to him faithfully, but so far with no effect. I trust he may
-awaken to a realization of his responsibility before it is too late. In
-the meantime, it is your duty and privilege to endeavour to take your
-sainted mother’s place. You might exercise a great influence over your
-brothers and your little sister—you might be a true mother to them. I
-fear that you do not think of these things as you should. My dear
-child, allow me to open your eyes in regard to them.”
-
-Mr. Perry’s oily, complacent voice trickled on. He was in his element.
-Nothing suited him better than to lay down the law, patronize and
-exhort. He had no idea of stopping, and he did not stop. He stood
-before the fire, his feet planted firmly on the rug, and poured out a
-flood of pompous platitudes. Faith heard not a word. She was really not
-listening to him at all. But she was watching his long black coat-tails
-with impish delight growing in her brown eyes. Mr. Perry was standing
-_very_ near the fire. His coat-tails began to scorch—his coat-tails
-began to smoke. He still prosed on, wrapped up in his own eloquence.
-The coat-tails smoked worse. A tiny spark flew up from the burning wood
-and alighted in the middle of one. It clung and caught and spread into
-a smouldering flame. Faith could restrain herself no longer and broke
-into a stifled giggle.
-
-Mr. Perry stopped short, angered over this impertinence. Suddenly he
-became conscious that a reek of burning cloth filled the room. He
-whirled round and saw nothing. Then he clapped his hands to his
-coat-tails and brought them around in front of him. There was already
-quite a hole in one of them—and this was his new suit. Faith shook with
-helpless laughter over his pose and expression.
-
-“Did you see my coat-tails burning?” he demanded angrily.
-
-“Yes, sir,” said Faith demurely.
-
-“Why didn’t you tell me?” he demanded, glaring at her.
-
-“You said it wasn’t good manners to interrupt, sir,” said Faith, more
-demurely still.
-
-“If—if I was your father, I would give you a spanking that you would
-remember all your life, Miss,” said a very angry reverend gentleman, as
-he stalked out of the study. The coat of Mr. Meredith’s second best
-suit would not fit Mr. Perry, so he had to go to the evening service
-with his singed coat-tail. But he did not walk up the aisle with his
-usual consciousness of the honour he was conferring on the building. He
-never would agree to an exchange of pulpits with Mr. Meredith again,
-and he was barely civil to the latter when they met for a few minutes
-at the station the next morning. But Faith felt a certain gloomy
-satisfaction. Adam was partially avenged.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX.
-FAITH MAKES A FRIEND
-
-
-Next day in school was a hard one for Faith. Mary Vance had told the
-tale of Adam, and all the scholars, except the Blythes, thought it
-quite a joke. The girls told Faith, between giggles, that it was too
-bad, and the boys wrote sardonic notes of condolence to her. Poor Faith
-went home from school feeling her very soul raw and smarting within
-her.
-
-“I’m going over to Ingleside to have a talk with Mrs. Blythe,” she
-sobbed. “_She_ won’t laugh at me, as everybody else does. I’ve just
-_got_ to talk to somebody who understands how bad I feel.”
-
-She ran down through Rainbow Valley. Enchantment had been at work the
-night before. A light snow had fallen and the powdered firs were
-dreaming of a spring to come and a joy to be. The long hill beyond was
-richly purple with leafless beeches. The rosy light of sunset lay over
-the world like a pink kiss. Of all the airy, fairy places, full of
-weird, elfin grace, Rainbow Valley that winter evening was the most
-beautiful. But all its dreamlike loveliness was lost on poor,
-sore-hearted little Faith.
-
-By the brook she came suddenly upon Rosemary West, who was sitting on
-the old pine tree. She was on her way home from Ingleside, where she
-had been giving the girls their music lesson. She had been lingering in
-Rainbow Valley quite a little time, looking across its white beauty and
-roaming some by-ways of dream. Judging from the expression of her face,
-her thoughts were pleasant ones. Perhaps the faint, occasional tinkle
-from the bells on the Tree Lovers brought the little lurking smile to
-her lips. Or perhaps it was occasioned by the consciousness that John
-Meredith seldom failed to spend Monday evening in the gray house on the
-white wind-swept hill.
-
-Into Rosemary’s dreams burst Faith Meredith full of rebellious
-bitterness. Faith stopped abruptly when she saw Miss West. She did not
-know her very well—just well enough to speak to when they met. And she
-did not want to see any one just then—except Mrs. Blythe. She knew her
-eyes and nose were red and swollen and she hated to have a stranger
-know she had been crying.
-
-“Good evening, Miss West,” she said uncomfortably.
-
-“What is the matter, Faith?” asked Rosemary gently.
-
-“Nothing,” said Faith rather shortly.
-
-“Oh!” Rosemary smiled. “You mean nothing that you can tell to
-outsiders, don’t you?”
-
-Faith looked at Miss West with sudden interest. Here was a person who
-understood things. And how pretty she was! How golden her hair was
-under her plumy hat! How pink her cheeks were over her velvet coat! How
-blue and companionable her eyes were! Faith felt that Miss West could
-be a lovely friend—if only she were a friend instead of a stranger!
-
-“I—I’m going up to tell Mrs. Blythe,” said Faith. “She always
-understands—she never laughs at us. I always talk things over with her.
-It helps.”
-
-“Dear girlie, I’m sorry to have to tell you that Mrs. Blythe isn’t
-home,” said Miss West, sympathetically. “She went to Avonlea to-day and
-isn’t coming back till the last of the week.”
-
-Faith’s lip quivered.
-
-“Then I might as well go home again,” she said miserably.
-
-“I suppose so—unless you think you could bring yourself to talk it over
-with me instead,” said Miss Rosemary gently. “It _is_ such a help to
-talk things over. _I_ know. I don’t suppose I can be as good at
-understanding as Mrs. Blythe—but I promise you that I won’t laugh.”
-
-“You wouldn’t laugh outside,” hesitated Faith. “But you might—inside.”
-
-“No, I wouldn’t laugh inside, either. Why should I? Something has hurt
-you—it never amuses me to see anybody hurt, no matter what hurts them.
-If you feel that you’d like to tell me what has hurt you I’ll be glad
-to listen. But if you think you’d rather not—that’s all right, too,
-dear.”
-
-Faith took another long, earnest look into Miss West’s eyes. They were
-very serious—there was no laughter in them, not even far, far back.
-With a little sigh she sat down on the old pine beside her new friend
-and told her all about Adam and his cruel fate.
-
-Rosemary did not laugh or feel like laughing. She understood and
-sympathized—really, she was almost as good as Mrs. Blythe—yes, quite as
-good.
-
-“Mr. Perry is a minister, but he should have been a _butcher_,” said
-Faith bitterly. “He is so fond of carving things up. He _enjoyed_
-cutting poor Adam to pieces. He just sliced into him as if he were any
-common rooster.”
-
-“Between you and me, Faith, _I_ don’t like Mr. Perry very well myself,”
-said Rosemary, laughing a little—but at Mr. Perry, not at Adam, as
-Faith clearly understood. “I never did like him. I went to school with
-him—he was a Glen boy, you know—and he was a most detestable little
-prig even then. Oh, how we girls used to hate holding his fat, clammy
-hands in the ring-around games. But we must remember, dear, that he
-didn’t know that Adam had been a pet of yours. He thought he _was_ just
-a common rooster. We must be just, even when we are terribly hurt.”
-
-“I suppose so,” admitted Faith. “But why does everybody seem to think
-it funny that I should have loved Adam so much, Miss West? If it had
-been a horrid old cat nobody would have thought it queer. When Lottie
-Warren’s kitten had its legs cut off by the binder everybody was sorry
-for her. She cried two days in school and nobody laughed at her, not
-even Dan Reese. And all her chums went to the kitten’s funeral and
-helped her bury it—only they couldn’t bury its poor little paws with
-it, because they couldn’t find them. It was a horrid thing to have
-happen, of course, but I don’t think it was as dreadful as seeing your
-pet _eaten up_. Yet everybody laughs at _me_.”
-
-“I think it is because the name ‘rooster’ seems rather a funny one,”
-said Rosemary gravely. “There _is_ something in it that is comical.
-Now, ‘chicken’ is different. It doesn’t sound so funny to talk of
-loving a chicken.”
-
-“Adam was the dearest little chicken, Miss West. He was just a little
-golden ball. He would run up to me and peck out of my hand. And he was
-handsome when he grew up, too—white as snow, with such a beautiful
-curving white tail, though Mary Vance said it was too short. He knew
-his name and always came when I called him—he was a very intelligent
-rooster. And Aunt Martha had no right to kill him. He was mine. It
-wasn’t fair, was it, Miss West?”
-
-“No, it wasn’t,” said Rosemary decidedly. “Not a bit fair. I remember I
-had a pet hen when I was a little girl. She was such a pretty little
-thing—all golden brown and speckly. I loved her as much as I ever loved
-any pet. She was never killed—she died of old age. Mother wouldn’t have
-her killed because she was my pet.”
-
-“If _my_ mother had been living she wouldn’t have let Adam be killed,”
-said Faith. “For that matter, father wouldn’t have either, if he’d been
-home and known of it. I’m _sure_ he wouldn’t, Miss West.”
-
-“I’m sure, too,” said Rosemary. There was a little added flush on her
-face. She looked rather conscious but Faith noticed nothing.
-
-“Was it _very_ wicked of me not to tell Mr. Perry his coat-tails were
-scorching?” she asked anxiously.
-
-“Oh, terribly wicked,” answered Rosemary, with dancing eyes. “But _I_
-would have been just as naughty, Faith—_I_ wouldn’t have told him they
-were scorching—and I don’t believe I would ever have been a bit sorry
-for my wickedness, either.”
-
-“Una thought I should have told him because he was a minister.”
-
-“Dearest, if a minister doesn’t behave as a gentleman we are not bound
-to respect his coat-tails. I know _I_ would just have loved to see
-Jimmy Perry’s coat-tails burning up. It must have been fun.”
-
-Both laughed; but Faith ended with a bitter little sigh.
-
-“Well, anyway, Adam is dead and I am _never_ going to love anything
-again.”
-
-“Don’t say that, dear. We miss so much out of life if we don’t love.
-The more we love the richer life is—even if it is only some little
-furry or feathery pet. Would you like a canary, Faith—a little golden
-bit of a canary? If you would I’ll give you one. We have two up home.”
-
-“Oh, I _would_ like that,” cried Faith. “I love birds. Only—would Aunt
-Martha’s cat eat it? It’s so _tragic_ to have your pets eaten. I don’t
-think I could endure it a second time.”
-
-“If you hang the cage far enough from the wall I don’t think the cat
-could harm it. I’ll tell you just how to take care of it and I’ll bring
-it to Ingleside for you the next time I come down.”
-
-To herself, Rosemary was thinking,
-
-“It will give every gossip in the Glen something to talk of, but I
-_will_ not care. I want to comfort this poor little heart.”
-
-Faith was comforted. Sympathy and understanding were very sweet. She
-and Miss Rosemary sat on the old pine until the twilight crept softly
-down over the white valley and the evening star shone over the gray
-maple grove. Faith told Rosemary all her small history and hopes, her
-likes and dislikes, the ins and outs of life at the manse, the ups and
-downs of school society. Finally they parted firm friends.
-
-Mr. Meredith was, as usual, lost in dreams when supper began that
-evening, but presently a name pierced his abstraction and brought him
-back to reality. Faith was telling Una of her meeting with Rosemary.
-
-“She is just lovely, I think,” said Faith. “Just as nice as Mrs.
-Blythe—but different. I felt as if I wanted to hug her. She did hug
-_me_—such a nice, velvety hug. And she called me ‘dearest.’ It
-_thriled_ me. I could tell her _anything_.”
-
-“So you liked Miss West, Faith?” Mr. Meredith asked, with a rather odd
-intonation.
-
-“I love her,” cried Faith.
-
-“Ah!” said Mr. Meredith. “Ah!”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI.
-THE IMPOSSIBLE WORD
-
-
-John Meredith walked meditatively through the clear crispness of a
-winter night in Rainbow Valley. The hills beyond glistened with the
-chill splendid lustre of moonlight on snow. Every little fir tree in
-the long valley sang its own wild song to the harp of wind and frost.
-His children and the Blythe lads and lasses were coasting down the
-eastern slope and whizzing over the glassy pond. They were having a
-glorious time and their gay voices and gayer laughter echoed up and
-down the valley, dying away in elfin cadences among the trees. On the
-right the lights of Ingleside gleamed through the maple grove with the
-genial lure and invitation which seems always to glow in the beacons of
-a home where we know there is love and good-cheer and a welcome for all
-kin, whether of flesh or spirit. Mr. Meredith liked very well on
-occasion to spend an evening arguing with the doctor by the drift wood
-fire, where the famous china dogs of Ingleside kept ceaseless watch and
-ward, as became deities of the hearth, but to-night he did not look
-that way. Far on the western hill gleamed a paler but more alluring
-star. Mr. Meredith was on his way to see Rosemary West, and he meant to
-tell her something which had been slowly blossoming in his heart since
-their first meeting and had sprung into full flower on the evening when
-Faith had so warmly voiced her admiration for Rosemary.
-
-He had come to realize that he had learned to care for Rosemary. Not as
-he had cared for Cecilia, of course. _That_ was entirely different.
-That love of romance and dream and glamour could never, he thought,
-return. But Rosemary was beautiful and sweet and dear—very dear. She
-was the best of companions. He was happier in her company than he had
-ever expected to be again. She would be an ideal mistress for his home,
-a good mother to his children.
-
-During the years of his widowhood Mr. Meredith had received innumerable
-hints from brother members of Presbytery and from many parishioners who
-could not be suspected of any ulterior motive, as well as from some who
-could, that he ought to marry again: But these hints never made any
-impression on him. It was commonly thought he was never aware of them.
-But he was quite acutely aware of them. And in his own occasional
-visitations of common sense he knew that the common sensible thing for
-him to do was to marry. But common sense was not the strong point of
-John Meredith, and to choose out, deliberately and cold-bloodedly, some
-“suitable” woman, as one might choose a housekeeper or a business
-partner, was something he was quite incapable of doing. How he hated
-that word “suitable.” It reminded him so strongly of James Perry. “A
-_suit_ able woman of _suit_ able age,” that unctuous brother of the
-cloth had said, in his far from subtle hint. For the moment John
-Meredith had had a perfectly unbelievable desire to rush madly away and
-propose marriage to the youngest, most unsuitable woman it was possible
-to discover.
-
-Mrs. Marshall Elliott was his good friend and he liked her. But when
-she had bluntly told him he should marry again he felt as if she had
-torn away the veil that hung before some sacred shrine of his innermost
-life, and he had been more or less afraid of her ever since. He knew
-there were women in his congregation “of suitable age” who would marry
-him quite readily. That fact had seeped through all his abstraction
-very early in his ministry in Glen St. Mary. They were good,
-substantial, uninteresting women, one or two fairly comely, the others
-not exactly so and John Meredith would as soon have thought of marrying
-any one of them as of hanging himself. He had some ideals to which no
-seeming necessity could make him false. He could ask no woman to fill
-Cecilia’s place in his home unless he could offer her at least some of
-the affection and homage he had given to his girlish bride. And where,
-in his limited feminine acquaintance, was such a woman to be found?
-
-Rosemary West had come into his life on that autumn evening bringing
-with her an atmosphere in which his spirit recognized native air.
-Across the gulf of strangerhood they clasped hands of friendship. He
-knew her better in that ten minutes by the hidden spring than he knew
-Emmeline Drew or Elizabeth Kirk or Amy Annetta Douglas in a year, or
-could know them, in a century. He had fled to her for comfort when Mrs.
-Alec Davis had outraged his mind and soul and had found it. Since then
-he had gone often to the house on the hill, slipping through the
-shadowy paths of night in Rainbow Valley so astutely that Glen gossip
-could never be absolutely certain that he _did_ go to see Rosemary
-West. Once or twice he had been caught in the West living room by other
-visitors; that was all the Ladies’ Aid had to go by. But when Elizabeth
-Kirk heard it she put away a secret hope she had allowed herself to
-cherish, without a change of expression on her kind plain face, and
-Emmeline Drew resolved that the next time she saw a certain old
-bachelor of Lowbridge she would not snub him as she had done at a
-previous meeting. Of course, if Rosemary West was out to catch the
-minister she would catch him; she looked younger than she was and _men_
-thought her pretty; besides, the West girls had money!
-
-“It is to be hoped that he won’t be so absent-minded as to propose to
-Ellen by mistake,” was the only malicious thing she allowed herself to
-say to a sympathetic sister Drew. Emmeline bore no further grudge
-towards Rosemary. When all was said and done, an unencumbered bachelor
-was far better than a widower with four children. It had been only the
-glamour of the manse that had temporarily blinded Emmeline’s eyes to
-the better part.
-
-A sled with three shrieking occupants sped past Mr. Meredith to the
-pond. Faith’s long curls streamed in the wind and her laughter rang
-above that of the others. John Meredith looked after them kindly and
-longingly. He was glad that his children had such chums as the
-Blythes—glad that they had so wise and gay and tender a friend as Mrs.
-Blythe. But they needed something more, and that something would be
-supplied when he brought Rosemary West as a bride to the old manse.
-There was in her a quality essentially maternal.
-
-It was Saturday night and he did not often go calling on Saturday
-night, which was supposed to be dedicated to a thoughtful revision of
-Sunday’s sermon. But he had chosen this night because he had learned
-that Ellen West was going to be away and Rosemary would be alone. Often
-as he had spent pleasant evenings in the house on the hill he had
-never, since that first meeting at the spring, seen Rosemary alone.
-Ellen had always been there.
-
-He did not precisely object to Ellen being there. He liked Ellen West
-very much and they were the best of friends. Ellen had an almost
-masculine understanding and a sense of humour which his own shy, hidden
-appreciation of fun found very agreeable. He liked her interest in
-politics and world events. There was no man in the Glen, not even
-excepting Dr. Blythe, who had a better grasp of such things.
-
-“I think it is just as well to be interested in things as long as you
-live,” she had said. “If you’re not, it doesn’t seem to me that there’s
-much difference between the quick and the dead.”
-
-He liked her pleasant, deep, rumbly voice; he liked the hearty laugh
-with which she always ended up some jolly and well-told story. She
-never gave him digs about his children as other Glen women did; she
-never bored him with local gossip; she had no malice and no pettiness.
-She was always splendidly sincere. Mr. Meredith, who had picked up Miss
-Cornelia’s way of classifying people, considered that Ellen belonged to
-the race of Joseph. Altogether, an admirable woman for a sister-in-law.
-Nevertheless, a man did not want even the most admirable of women
-around when he was proposing to another woman. And Ellen was always
-around. She did not insist on talking to Mr. Meredith herself all the
-time. She let Rosemary have a fair share of him. Many evenings, indeed,
-Ellen effaced herself almost totally, sitting back in the corner with
-St. George in her lap, and letting Mr. Meredith and Rosemary talk and
-sing and read books together. Sometimes they quite forgot her presence.
-But if their conversation or choice of duets ever betrayed the least
-tendency to what Ellen considered philandering, Ellen promptly nipped
-that tendency in the bud and blotted Rosemary out for the rest of the
-evening. But not even the grimmest of amiable dragons can altogether
-prevent a certain subtle language of eye and smile and eloquent
-silence; and so the minister’s courtship progressed after a fashion.
-
-But if it was ever to reach a climax that climax must come when Ellen
-was away. And Ellen was so seldom away, especially in winter. She found
-her own fireside the pleasantest place in the world, she vowed. Gadding
-had no attraction for her. She was fond of company but she wanted it at
-home. Mr. Meredith had almost been driven to the conclusion that he
-must write to Rosemary what he wanted to say, when Ellen casually
-announced one evening that she was going to a silver wedding next
-Saturday night. She had been bridesmaid when the principals were
-married. Only old guests were invited, so Rosemary was not included.
-Mr. Meredith pricked up his ears a trifle and a gleam flashed into his
-dreamy dark eyes. Both Ellen and Rosemary saw it; and both Ellen and
-Rosemary felt, with a tingling shock, that Mr. Meredith would certainly
-come up the hill next Saturday night.
-
-“Might as well have it over with, St. George,” Ellen sternly told the
-black cat, after Mr. Meredith had gone home and Rosemary had silently
-gone upstairs. “He means to ask her, St. George—I’m perfectly sure of
-that. So he might as well have his chance to do it and find out he
-can’t get her, George. She’d rather like to take him, Saint. I know
-that—but she promised, and she’s got to keep her promise. I’m rather
-sorry in some ways, St. George. I don’t know of a man I’d sooner have
-for a brother-in-law if a brother-in-law was convenient. I haven’t a
-thing against him, Saint—not a thing except that he won’t see and can’t
-be made to see that the Kaiser is a menace to the peace of Europe.
-That’s _his_ blind spot. But he’s good company and I like him. A woman
-can say anything she likes to a man with a mouth like John Meredith’s
-and be sure of not being misunderstood. Such a man is more precious
-than rubies, Saint—and much rarer, George. But he can’t have
-Rosemary—and I suppose when he finds out he can’t have her he’ll drop
-us both. And we’ll miss him, Saint—we’ll miss him something scandalous,
-George. But she promised, and I’ll see that she keeps her promise!”
-
-Ellen’s face looked almost ugly in its lowering resolution. Upstairs
-Rosemary was crying into her pillow.
-
-So Mr. Meredith found his lady alone and looking very beautiful.
-Rosemary had not made any special toilet for the occasion; she wanted
-to, but she thought it would be absurd to dress up for a man you meant
-to refuse. So she wore her plain dark afternoon dress and looked like a
-queen in it. Her suppressed excitement coloured her face to brilliancy,
-her great blue eyes were pools of light less placid than usual.
-
-She wished the interview were over. She had looked forward to it all
-day with dread. She felt quite sure that John Meredith cared a great
-deal for her after a fashion—and she felt just as sure that he did not
-care for her as he had cared for his first love. She felt that her
-refusal would disappoint him considerably, but she did not think it
-would altogether overwhelm him. Yet she hated to make it; hated for his
-sake and—Rosemary was quite honest with herself—for her own. She knew
-she could have loved John Meredith if—if it had been permissible. She
-knew that life would be a blank thing if, rejected as lover, he refused
-longer to be a friend. She knew that she could be very happy with him
-and that she could make him happy. But between her and happiness stood
-the prison gate of the promise she had made to Ellen years ago.
-Rosemary could not remember her father. He had died when she was only
-three years old. Ellen, who had been thirteen, remembered him, but with
-no special tenderness. He had been a stern, reserved man many years
-older than his fair, pretty wife. Five years later their brother of
-twelve died also; since his death the two girls had always lived alone
-with their mother. They had never mingled very freely in the social
-life of the Glen or Lowbridge, though where they went the wit and
-spirit of Ellen and the sweetness and beauty of Rosemary made them
-welcome guests. Both had what was called “a disappointment” in their
-girlhood. The sea had not given up Rosemary’s lover; and Norman
-Douglas, then a handsome, red-haired young giant, noted for wild
-driving and noisy though harmless escapades, had quarrelled with Ellen
-and left her in a fit of pique.
-
-There were not lacking candidates for both Martin’s and Norman’s
-places, but none seemed to find favour in the eyes of the West girls,
-who drifted slowly out of youth and bellehood without any seeming
-regret. They were devoted to their mother, who was a chronic invalid.
-The three had a little circle of home interests—books and pets and
-flowers—which made them happy and contented.
-
-Mrs. West’s death, which occurred on Rosemary’s twenty-fifth birthday,
-was a bitter grief to them. At first they were intolerably lonely.
-Ellen, especially, continued to grieve and brood, her long, moody
-musings broken only by fits of stormy, passionate weeping. The old
-Lowbridge doctor told Rosemary that he feared permanent melancholy or
-worse.
-
-Once, when Ellen had sat all day, refusing either to speak or eat,
-Rosemary had flung herself on her knees by her sister’s side.
-
-“Oh, Ellen, you have me yet,” she said imploringly. “Am I nothing to
-you? We have always loved each other so.”
-
-“I won’t have you always,” Ellen had said, breaking her silence with
-harsh intensity. “You will marry and leave me. I shall be left all
-alone. I cannot bear the thought—I _cannot_. I would rather die.”
-
-“I will never marry,” said Rosemary, “never, Ellen.”
-
-Ellen bent forward and looked searchingly into Rosemary’s eyes.
-
-“Will you promise me that solemnly?” she said. “Promise it on mother’s
-Bible.”
-
-Rosemary assented at once, quite willing to humour Ellen. What did it
-matter? She knew quite well she would never want to marry any one. Her
-love had gone down with Martin Crawford to the deeps of the sea; and
-without love she could not marry any one. So she promised readily,
-though Ellen made rather a fearsome rite of it. They clasped hands over
-the Bible, in their mother’s vacant room, and both vowed to each other
-that they would never marry and would always live together.
-
-Ellen’s condition improved from that hour. She soon regained her normal
-cheery poise. For ten years she and Rosemary lived in the old house
-happily, undisturbed by any thought of marrying or giving in marriage.
-Their promise sat very lightly on them. Ellen never failed to remind
-her sister of it whenever any eligible male creature crossed their
-paths, but she had never been really alarmed until John Meredith came
-home that night with Rosemary. As for Rosemary, Ellen’s obsession
-regarding that promise had always been a little matter of mirth to
-her—until lately. Now, it was a merciless fetter, self-imposed but
-never to be shaken off. Because of it to-night she must turn her face
-from happiness.
-
-It was true that the shy, sweet, rosebud love she had given to her
-boy-lover she could never give to another. But she knew now that she
-could give to John Meredith a love richer and more womanly. She knew
-that he touched deeps in her nature that Martin had never touched—that
-had not, perhaps, been in the girl of seventeen to touch. And she must
-send him away to-night—send him back to his lonely hearth and his empty
-life and his heart-breaking problems, because she had promised Ellen,
-ten years before, on their mother’s Bible, that she would never marry.
-
-John Meredith did not immediately grasp his opportunity. On the
-contrary, he talked for two good hours on the least lover-like of
-subjects. He even tried politics, though politics always bored
-Rosemary. The later began to think that she had been altogether
-mistaken, and her fears and expectations suddenly seemed to her
-grotesque. She felt flat and foolish. The glow went out of her face and
-the lustre out of her eyes. John Meredith had not the slightest
-intention of asking her to marry him.
-
-And then, quite suddenly, he rose, came across the room, and standing
-by her chair, he asked it. The room had grown terribly still. Even St.
-George ceased to purr. Rosemary heard her own heart beating and was
-sure John Meredith must hear it too.
-
-Now was the time for her to say no, gently but firmly. She had been
-ready for days with her stilted, regretful little formula. And now the
-words of it had completely vanished from her mind. She had to say
-no—and she suddenly found she could not say it. It was the impossible
-word. She knew now that it was not that she _could_ have loved John
-Meredith, but that she _did_ love him. The thought of putting him from
-her life was agony.
-
-She must say _something;_ she lifted her bowed golden head and asked
-him stammeringly to give her a few days for—for consideration.
-
-John Meredith was a little surprised. He was not vainer than any man
-has a right to be, but he had expected that Rosemary West would say
-yes. He had been tolerably sure she cared for him. Then why this
-doubt—this hesitation? She was not a school girl to be uncertain as to
-her own mind. He felt an ugly shock of disappointment and dismay. But
-he assented to her request with his unfailing gentle courtesy and went
-away at once.
-
-“I will tell you in a few days,” said Rosemary, with downcast eyes and
-burning face.
-
-When the door shut behind him she went back into the room and wrung her
-hands.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXII.
-ST. GEORGE KNOWS ALL ABOUT IT
-
-
-At midnight Ellen West was walking home from the Pollock silver
-wedding. She had stayed a little while after the other guests had gone,
-to help the gray-haired bride wash the dishes. The distance between the
-two houses was not far and the road good, so that Ellen was enjoying
-the walk back home in the moonlight.
-
-The evening had been a pleasant one. Ellen, who had not been to a party
-for years, found it very pleasant. All the guests had been members of
-her old set and there was no intrusive youth to spoil the flavour, for
-the only son of the bride and groom was far away at college and could
-not be present. Norman Douglas had been there and they had met socially
-for the first time in years, though she had seen him once or twice in
-church that winter. Not the least sentiment was awakened in Ellen’s
-heart by their meeting. She was accustomed to wonder, when she thought
-about it at all, how she could ever have fancied him or felt so badly
-over his sudden marriage. But she had rather liked meeting him again.
-She had forgotten how bracing and stimulating he could be. No gathering
-was ever stagnant when Norman Douglas was present. Everybody had been
-surprised when Norman came. It was well known he never went anywhere.
-The Pollocks had invited him because he had been one of the original
-guests, but they never thought he would come. He had taken his second
-cousin, Amy Annetta Douglas, out to supper and seemed rather attentive
-to her. But Ellen sat across the table from him and had a spirited
-argument with him—an argument during which all his shouting and banter
-could not fluster her and in which she came off best, flooring Norman
-so composedly and so completely that he was silent for ten minutes. At
-the end of which time he had muttered in his ruddy beard—“spunky as
-ever—spunky as ever”—and began to hector Amy Annetta, who giggled
-foolishly over his sallies where Ellen would have retorted bitingly.
-
-Ellen thought these things over as she walked home, tasting them with
-reminiscent relish. The moonlit air sparkled with frost. The snow
-crisped under her feet. Below her lay the Glen with the white harbour
-beyond. There was a light in the manse study. So John Meredith had gone
-home. Had he asked Rosemary to marry him? And after what fashion had
-she made her refusal known? Ellen felt that she would never know this,
-though she was quite curious. She was sure Rosemary would never tell
-her anything about it and she would not dare to ask. She must just be
-content with the fact of the refusal. After all, that was the only
-thing that really mattered.
-
-“I hope he’ll have sense enough to come back once in a while and be
-friendly,” she said to herself. She disliked so much to be alone that
-thinking aloud was one of her devices for circumventing unwelcome
-solitude. “It’s awful never to have a man-body with some brains to talk
-to once in a while. And like as not he’ll never come near the house
-again. There’s Norman Douglas, too—I like that man, and I’d like to
-have a good rousing argument with him now and then. But he’d never dare
-come up for fear people would think he was courting me again—for fear
-_I’d_ think it, too, most likely—though he’s more a stranger to me now
-than John Meredith. It seems like a dream that we could ever have been
-beaus. But there it is—there’s only two men in the Glen I’d ever want
-to talk to—and what with gossip and this wretched love-making business
-it’s not likely I’ll ever see either of them again. I could,” said
-Ellen, addressing the unmoved stars with a spiteful emphasis, “I could
-have made a better world myself.”
-
-She paused at her gate with a sudden vague feeling of alarm. There was
-still a light in the living-room and to and fro across the
-window-shades went the shadow of a woman walking restlessly up and
-down. What was Rosemary doing up at this hour of the night? And why was
-she striding about like a lunatic?
-
-Ellen went softly in. As she opened the hall door Rosemary came out of
-the room. She was flushed and breathless. An atmosphere of stress and
-passion hung about her like a garment.
-
-“Why aren’t you in bed, Rosemary?” demanded Ellen.
-
-“Come in here,” said Rosemary intensely. “I want to tell you
-something.”
-
-Ellen composedly removed her wraps and overshoes, and followed her
-sister into the warm, fire-lighted room. She stood with her hand on the
-table and waited. She was looking very handsome herself, in her own
-grim, black-browed style. The new black velvet dress, with its train
-and V-neck, which she had made purposely for the party, became her
-stately, massive figure. She wore coiled around her neck the rich heavy
-necklace of amber beads which was a family heirloom. Her walk in the
-frosty air had stung her cheeks into a glowing scarlet. But her
-steel-blue eyes were as icy and unyielding as the sky of the winter
-night. She stood waiting in a silence which Rosemary could break only
-by a convulsive effort.
-
-“Ellen, Mr. Meredith was here this evening.”
-
-“Yes?”
-
-“And—and—he asked me to marry him.”
-
-“So I expected. Of course, you refused him?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“Rosemary.” Ellen clenched her hands and took an involuntary step
-forward. “Do you mean to tell me that you accepted him?”
-
-“No—no.”
-
-Ellen recovered her self-command.
-
-“What _did_ you do then?”
-
-“I—I asked him to give me a few days to think it over.”
-
-“I hardly see why that was necessary,” said Ellen, coldly contemptuous,
-“when there is only the one answer you can make him.”
-
-Rosemary held out her hands beseechingly.
-
-“Ellen,” she said desperately, “I love John Meredith—I want to be his
-wife. Will you set me free from that promise?”
-
-“No,” said Ellen, merciless, because she was sick from fear.
-
-“Ellen—Ellen—”
-
-“Listen,” interrupted Ellen. “I did not ask you for that promise. You
-offered it.”
-
-“I know—I know. But I did not think then that I could ever care for
-anyone again.”
-
-“You offered it,” went on Ellen unmovably. “You promised it over our
-mother’s Bible. It was more than a promise—it was an oath. Now you want
-to break it.”
-
-“I only asked you to set me free from it, Ellen.”
-
-“I will not do it. A promise is a promise in my eyes. I will not do it.
-Break your promise—be forsworn if you will—but it shall not be with any
-assent of mine.”
-
-“You are very hard on me, Ellen.”
-
-“Hard on you! And what of me? Have you ever given a thought to what my
-loneliness would be here if you left me? I could not bear it—I would go
-crazy. I _cannot_ live alone. Haven’t I been a good sister to you? Have
-I ever opposed any wish of yours? Haven’t I indulged you in
-everything?”
-
-“Yes—yes.”
-
-“Then why do you want to leave me for this man whom you hadn’t seen a
-year ago?”
-
-“I love him, Ellen.”
-
-“Love! You talk like a school miss instead of a middle-aged woman. He
-doesn’t love you. He wants a housekeeper and a governess. You don’t
-love him. You want to be ‘Mrs.’—you are one of those weak-minded women
-who think it’s a disgrace to be ranked as an old maid. That’s all there
-is to it.”
-
-Rosemary quivered. Ellen could not, or would not, understand. There was
-no use arguing with her.
-
-“So you won’t release me, Ellen?”
-
-“No, I won’t. And I won’t talk of it again. You promised and you’ve got
-to keep your word. That’s all. Go to bed. Look at the time! You’re all
-romantic and worked up. To-morrow you’ll be more sensible. At any rate,
-don’t let me hear any more of this nonsense. Go.”
-
-Rosemary went without another word, pale and spiritless. Ellen walked
-stormily about the room for a few minutes, then paused before the chair
-where St. George had been calmly sleeping through the whole evening. A
-reluctant smile overspread her dark face. There had been only one time
-in her life—the time of her mother’s death—when Ellen had not been able
-to temper tragedy with comedy. Even in that long ago bitterness, when
-Norman Douglas had, after a fashion, jilted her, she had laughed at
-herself quite as often as she had cried.
-
-“I expect there’ll be some sulking, St. George. Yes, Saint, I expect we
-are in for a few unpleasant foggy days. Well, we’ll weather them
-through, George. We’ve dealt with foolish children before, Saint.
-Rosemary’ll sulk a while—and then she’ll get over it—and all will be as
-before, George. She promised—and she’s got to keep her promise. And
-that’s the last word on the subject I’ll say to you or her or anyone,
-Saint.”
-
-But Ellen lay savagely awake till morning.
-
-There was no sulking, however. Rosemary was pale and quiet the next
-day, but beyond that Ellen could detect no difference in her.
-Certainly, she seemed to bear Ellen no grudge. It was stormy, so no
-mention was made of going to church. In the afternoon Rosemary shut
-herself in her room and wrote a note to John Meredith. She could not
-trust herself to say “no” in person. She felt quite sure that if he
-suspected she was saying “no” reluctantly he would not take it for an
-answer, and she could not face pleading or entreaty. She must make him
-think she cared nothing at all for him and she could do that only by
-letter. She wrote him the stiffest, coolest little refusal imaginable.
-It was barely courteous; it certainly left no loophole of hope for the
-boldest lover—and John Meredith was anything but that. He shrank into
-himself, hurt and mortified, when he read Rosemary’s letter next day in
-his dusty study. But under his mortification a dreadful realization
-presently made itself felt. He had thought he did not love Rosemary as
-deeply as he had loved Cecilia. Now, when he had lost her, he knew that
-he did. She was everything to him—everything! And he must put her out
-of his life completely. Even friendship was impossible now. Life
-stretched before him in intolerable dreariness. He must go on—there was
-his work—his children—but the heart had gone out of him. He sat alone
-all that evening in his dark, cold, comfortless study with his head
-bowed on his hands. Up on the hill Rosemary had a headache and went
-early to bed, while Ellen remarked to St. George, purring his disdain
-of foolish humankind, who did not know that a soft cushion was the only
-thing that really mattered,
-
-“What would women do if headaches had never been invented, St. George?
-But never mind, Saint. We’ll just wink the other eye for a few weeks. I
-admit I don’t feel comfortable myself, George. I feel as if I had
-drowned a kitten. But she promised, Saint—and she was the one to offer
-it, George. Bismillah!”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIII.
-THE GOOD-CONDUCT CLUB
-
-
-A light rain had been falling all day—a little, delicate, beautiful
-spring rain, that somehow seemed to hint and whisper of mayflowers and
-wakening violets. The harbour and the gulf and the low-lying shore
-fields had been dim with pearl-gray mists. But now in the evening the
-rain had ceased and the mists had blown out to sea. Clouds sprinkled
-the sky over the harbour like little fiery roses. Beyond it the hills
-were dark against a spendthrift splendour of daffodil and crimson. A
-great silvery evening star was watching over the bar. A brisk, dancing,
-new-sprung wind was blowing up from Rainbow Valley, resinous with the
-odours of fir and damp mosses. It crooned in the old spruces around the
-graveyard and ruffled Faith’s splendid curls as she sat on Hezekiah
-Pollock’s tombstone with her arms round Mary Vance and Una. Carl and
-Jerry were sitting opposite them on another tombstone and all were
-rather full of mischief after being cooped up all day.
-
-“The air just _shines_ to-night, doesn’t it? It’s been washed so clean,
-you see,” said Faith happily.
-
-Mary Vance eyed her gloomily. Knowing what she knew, or fancied she
-knew, Mary considered that Faith was far too light-hearted. Mary had
-something on her mind to say and she meant to say it before she went
-home. Mrs. Elliott had sent her up to the manse with some new-laid
-eggs, and had told her not to stay longer than half an hour. The half
-hour was nearly up, so Mary uncurled her cramped legs from under her
-and said abruptly,
-
-“Never mind about the air. Just you listen to me. You manse young ones
-have just got to behave yourselves better than you’ve been doing this
-spring—that’s all there is to it. I just come up to-night a-purpose to
-tell you so. The way people are talking about you is awful.”
-
-“What have we been doing now?” cried Faith in amazement, pulling her
-arm away from Mary. Una’s lips trembled and her sensitive little soul
-shrank within her. Mary was always so brutally frank. Jerry began to
-whistle out of bravado. He meant to let Mary see he didn’t care for
-_her_ tirades. Their behaviour was no business of _hers_ anyway. What
-right had _she_ to lecture them on their conduct?
-
-“Doing now! You’re doing _all_ the time,” retorted Mary. “Just as soon
-as the talk about one of your didos fades away you do something else to
-start it up again. It seems to me you haven’t any idea of how manse
-children ought to behave!”
-
-“Maybe _you_ can tell us,” said Jerry, killingly sarcastic.
-
-Sarcasm was quite thrown away on Mary.
-
-“_I_ can tell you what will happen if you don’t learn to behave
-yourselves. The session will ask your father to resign. There now,
-Master Jerry-know-it-all. Mrs. Alec Davis said so to Mrs. Elliott. I
-heard her. I always have my ears pricked up when Mrs. Alec Davis comes
-to tea. She said you were all going from bad to worse and that though
-it was only what was to be expected when you had nobody to bring you
-up, still the congregation couldn’t be expected to put up with it much
-longer, and something would have to be done. The Methodists just laugh
-and laugh at you, and that hurts the Presbyterian feelings. _She_ says
-you all need a good dose of birch tonic. Lor’, if that would make folks
-good _I_ oughter be a young saint. I’m not telling you this because I
-want to hurt _your_ feelings. I’m sorry for you”—Mary was past mistress
-of the gentle art of condescension. “_I_ understand that you haven’t
-much chance, the way things are. But other people don’t make as much
-allowance as _I_ do. Miss Drew says Carl had a frog in his pocket in
-Sunday School last Sunday and it hopped out while she was hearing the
-lesson. She says she’s going to give up the class. Why don’t you keep
-your insecks home?”
-
-“I popped it right back in again,” said Carl. “It didn’t hurt anybody—a
-poor little frog! And I wish old Jane Drew _would_ give up our class. I
-hate her. Her own nephew had a dirty plug of tobacco in his pocket and
-offered us fellows a chew when Elder Clow was praying. I guess that’s
-worse than a frog.”
-
-“No, ‘cause frogs are more unexpected-like. They make more of a
-sensation. ‘Sides, he wasn’t caught at it. And then that praying
-competition you had last week has made a fearful scandal. Everybody is
-talking about it.”
-
-“Why, the Blythes were in that as well as us,” cried Faith,
-indignantly. “It was Nan Blythe who suggested it in the first place.
-And Walter took the prize.”
-
-“Well, you get the credit of it any way. It wouldn’t have been so bad
-if you hadn’t had it in the graveyard.”
-
-“I should think a graveyard was a very good place to pray in,” retorted
-Jerry.
-
-“Deacon Hazard drove past when _you_ were praying,” said Mary, “and he
-saw and heard you, with your hands folded over your stomach, and
-groaning after every sentence. He thought you were making fun of
-_him_.”
-
-“So I was,” declared unabashed Jerry. “Only I didn’t know he was going
-by, of course. That was just a mean accident. _I_ wasn’t praying in
-real earnest—I knew I had no chance of winning the prize. So I was just
-getting what fun I could out of it. Walter Blythe can pray bully. Why,
-he can pray as well as dad.”
-
-“Una is the only one of US who really likes praying,” said Faith
-pensively.
-
-“Well, if praying scandalizes people so much we mustn’t do it any
-more,” sighed Una.
-
-“Shucks, you can pray all you want to, only not in the graveyard—and
-don’t make a game of it. That was what made it so bad—that, and having
-a tea-party on the tombstones.”
-
-“We hadn’t.”
-
-“Well, a soap-bubble party then. You had _something_. The over-harbour
-people swear you had a tea-party, but I’m willing to take your word.
-And you used this tombstone as a table.”
-
-“Well, Martha wouldn’t let us blow bubbles in the house. She was awful
-cross that day,” explained Jerry. “And this old slab made such a jolly
-table.”
-
-“Weren’t they pretty?” cried Faith, her eyes sparkling over the
-remembrance. “They reflected the trees and the hills and the harbour
-like little fairy worlds, and when we shook them loose they floated
-away down to Rainbow Valley.”
-
-“All but one and it went over and bust up on the Methodist spire,” said
-Carl.
-
-“I’m glad we did it once, anyhow, before we found out it was wrong,”
-said Faith.
-
-“It wouldn’t have been wrong to blow them on the lawn,” said Mary
-impatiently. “Seems like I can’t knock any sense into your heads.
-You’ve been told often enough you shouldn’t play in the graveyard. The
-Methodists are sensitive about it.”
-
-“We forget,” said Faith dolefully. “And the lawn is so small—and so
-caterpillary—and so full of shrubs and things. We can’t be in Rainbow
-Valley all the time—and where are we to go?”
-
-“It’s the things you _do_ in the graveyard. It wouldn’t matter if you
-just sat here and talked quiet, same as we’re doing now. Well, I don’t
-know what is going to come of it all, but I _do_ know that Elder Warren
-is going to speak to your pa about it. Deacon Hazard is his cousin.”
-
-“I wish they wouldn’t bother father about us,” said Una.
-
-“Well, people think he ought to bother himself about you a little more.
-_I_ don’t—_I_ understand him. He’s a child in some ways himself—that’s
-what he is, and needs some one to look after him as bad as you do.
-Well, perhaps he’ll have some one before long, if all tales is true.”
-
-“What do you mean?” asked Faith.
-
-“Haven’t you got any idea—honest?” demanded Mary.
-
-“No, no. What _do_ you mean?”
-
-“Well, you are a lot of innocents, upon my word. Why, _every_body is
-talking of it. Your pa goes to see Rosemary West. _She_ is going to be
-your step-ma.”
-
-“I don’t believe it,” cried Una, flushing crimson.
-
-“Well, _I_ dunno. I just go by what folks say. _I_ don’t give it for a
-fact. But it would be a good thing. Rosemary West’d make you toe the
-mark if she came here, I’ll bet a cent, for all she’s so sweet and
-smiley on the face of her. They’re always that way till they’ve caught
-them. But you need some one to bring you up. You’re disgracing your pa
-and I feel for him. I’ve always thought an awful lot of your pa ever
-since that night he talked to me so nice. I’ve never said a single
-swear word since, or told a lie. And I’d like to see him happy and
-comfortable, with his buttons on and his meals decent, and you young
-ones licked into shape, and that old cat of a Martha put in _her_
-proper place. The way she looked at the eggs I brought her to-night. ‘I
-hope they’re fresh,’ says she. I just wished they _was_ rotten. But you
-just mind that she gives you all one for breakfast, including your pa.
-Make a fuss if she doesn’t. That was what they was sent up for—but I
-don’t trust old Martha. She’s quite capable of feeding ‘em to her cat.”
-
-Mary’s tongue being temporarily tired, a brief silence fell over the
-graveyard. The manse children did not feel like talking. They were
-digesting the new and not altogether palatable ideas Mary had suggested
-to them. Jerry and Carl were somewhat startled. But, after all, what
-did it matter? And it wasn’t likely there was a word of truth in it.
-Faith, on the whole, was pleased. Only Una was seriously upset. She
-felt that she would like to get away and cry.
-
-“Will there be any stars in my crown?” sang the Methodist choir,
-beginning to practise in the Methodist church.
-
-“_I_ want just three,” said Mary, whose theological knowledge had
-increased notably since her residence with Mrs. Elliott. “Just
-three—setting up on my head, like a corownet, a big one in the middle
-and a small one each side.”
-
-“Are there different sizes in souls?” asked Carl.
-
-“Of course. Why, little babies must have smaller ones than big men.
-Well, it’s getting dark and I must scoot home. Mrs. Elliott doesn’t
-like me to be out after dark. Laws, when I lived with Mrs. Wiley the
-dark was just the same as the daylight to me. I didn’t mind it no
-more’n a gray cat. Them days seem a hundred years ago. Now, you mind
-what I’ve said and try to behave yourselves, for you pa’s sake. _I’ll_
-always back you up and defend you—you can be dead sure of that. Mrs.
-Elliott says she never saw the like of me for sticking up for my
-friends. I was real sassy to Mrs. Alec Davis about you and Mrs. Elliott
-combed me down for it afterwards. The fair Cornelia has a tongue of her
-own and no mistake. But she was pleased underneath for all, ‘cause she
-hates old Kitty Alec and she’s real fond of you. _I_ can see through
-folks.”
-
-Mary sailed off, excellently well pleased with herself, leaving a
-rather depressed little group behind her.
-
-“Mary Vance always says something that makes us feel bad when she comes
-up,” said Una resentfully.
-
-“I wish we’d left her to starve in the old barn,” said Jerry
-vindictively.
-
-“Oh, that’s wicked, Jerry,” rebuked Una.
-
-“May as well have the game as the name,” retorted unrepentant Jerry.
-“If people say we’re so bad let’s _be_ bad.”
-
-“But not if it hurts father,” pleaded Faith.
-
-Jerry squirmed uncomfortably. He adored his father. Through the
-unshaded study window they could see Mr. Meredith at his desk. He did
-not seem to be either reading or writing. His head was in his hands and
-there was something in his whole attitude that spoke of weariness and
-dejection. The children suddenly felt it.
-
-“I dare say somebody’s been worrying him about us to-day,” said Faith.
-“I wish we _could_ get along without making people talk. Oh—Jem Blythe!
-How you scared me!”
-
-Jem Blythe had slipped into the graveyard and sat down beside the
-girls. He had been prowling about Rainbow Valley and had succeeded in
-finding the first little star-white cluster of arbutus for his mother.
-The manse children were rather silent after his coming. Jem was
-beginning to grow away from them somewhat this spring. He was studying
-for the entrance examination of Queen’s Academy and stayed after school
-with the older pupils for extra lessons. Also, his evenings were so
-full of work that he seldom joined the others in Rainbow Valley now. He
-seemed to be drifting away into grown-up land.
-
-“What is the matter with you all to-night?” he asked. “There’s no fun
-in you.”
-
-“Not much,” agreed Faith dolefully. “There wouldn’t be much fun in you
-either if _you_ knew you were disgracing your father and making people
-talk about you.”
-
-“Who’s been talking about you now?”
-
-“Everybody—so Mary Vance says.” And Faith poured out her troubles to
-sympathetic Jem. “You see,” she concluded dolefully, “we’ve nobody to
-bring us up. And so we get into scrapes and people think we’re bad.”
-
-“Why don’t you bring yourselves up?” suggested Jem. “I’ll tell you what
-to do. Form a Good-Conduct Club and punish yourselves every time you do
-anything that’s not right.”
-
-“That’s a good idea,” said Faith, struck by it. “But,” she added
-doubtfully, “things that don’t seem a bit of harm to US seem simply
-dreadful to other people. How can we tell? We can’t be bothering father
-all the time—and he has to be away a lot, anyhow.”
-
-“You could mostly tell if you stopped to think a thing over before
-doing it and ask yourselves what the congregation would say about it,”
-said Jem. “The trouble is you just rush into things and don’t think
-them over at all. Mother says you’re all too impulsive, just as she
-used to be. The Good-Conduct Club would help you to think, if you were
-fair and honest about punishing yourselves when you broke the rules.
-You’d have to punish in some way that really _hurt_, or it wouldn’t do
-any good.”
-
-“Whip each other?”
-
-“Not exactly. You’d have to think up different ways of punishment to
-suit the person. You wouldn’t punish each other—you’d punish
-_yourselves_. I read all about such a club in a story-book. You try it
-and see how it works.”
-
-“Let’s,” said Faith; and when Jem was gone they agreed they would. “If
-things aren’t right we’ve just got to make them right,” said Faith,
-resolutely.
-
-“We’ve got to be fair and square, as Jem says,” said Jerry. “This is a
-club to bring ourselves up, seeing there’s nobody else to do it.
-There’s no use in having many rules. Let’s just have one and any of us
-that breaks it has got to be punished hard.”
-
-“But _how_.”
-
-“We’ll think that up as we go along. We’ll hold a session of the club
-here in the graveyard every night and talk over what we’ve done through
-the day, and if we think we’ve done anything that isn’t right or that
-would disgrace dad the one that does it, or is responsible for it, must
-be punished. That’s the rule. We’ll all decide on the kind of
-punishment—it must be made to fit the crime, as Mr. Flagg says. And the
-one that’s, guilty will be bound to carry it out and no shirking.
-There’s going to be fun in this,” concluded Jerry, with a relish.
-
-“You suggested the soap-bubble party,” said Faith.
-
-“But that was before we’d formed the club,” said Jerry hastily.
-“Everything starts from to-night.”
-
-“But what if we can’t agree on what’s right, or what the punishment
-ought to be? S’pose two of us thought of one thing and two another.
-There ought to be five in a club like this.”
-
-“We can ask Jem Blythe to be umpire. He is the squarest boy in Glen St.
-Mary. But I guess we can settle our own affairs mostly. We want to keep
-this as much of a secret as we can. Don’t breathe a word to Mary Vance.
-She’d want to join and do the bringing up.”
-
-“_I_ think,” said Faith, “that there’s no use in spoiling every day by
-dragging punishments in. Let’s have a punishment day.”
-
-“We’d better choose Saturday because there is no school to interfere,”
-suggested Una.
-
-“And spoil the one holiday in the week,” cried Faith. “Not much! No,
-let’s take Friday. That’s fish day, anyhow, and we all hate fish. We
-may as well have all the disagreeable things in one day. Then other
-days we can go ahead and have a good time.”
-
-“Nonsense,” said Jerry authoritatively. “Such a scheme wouldn’t work at
-all. We’ll just punish ourselves as we go along and keep a clear slate.
-Now, we all understand, don’t we? This is a Good-Conduct Club, for the
-purpose of bringing ourselves up. We agree to punish ourselves for bad
-conduct, and always to stop before we do anything, no matter what, and
-ask ourselves if it is likely to hurt dad in any way, and any one who
-shirks is to be cast out of the club and never allowed to play with the
-rest of us in Rainbow Valley again. Jem Blythe to be umpire in case of
-disputes. No more taking bugs to Sunday School, Carl, and no more
-chewing gum in public, if you please, Miss Faith.”
-
-“No more making fun of elders praying or going to the Methodist prayer
-meeting,” retorted Faith.
-
-“Why, it isn’t any harm to go to the Methodist prayer meeting,”
-protested Jerry in amazement.
-
-“Mrs. Elliott says it is, She says manse children have no business to
-go anywhere but to Presbyterian things.”
-
-“Darn it, I won’t give up going to the Methodist prayer meeting,” cried
-Jerry. “It’s ten times more fun than ours is.”
-
-“You said a naughty word,” cried Faith. “_Now_, you’ve got to punish
-yourself.”
-
-“Not till it’s all down in black and white. We’re only talking the club
-over. It isn’t really formed until we’ve written it out and signed it.
-There’s got to be a constitution and by-laws. And you _know_ there’s
-nothing wrong in going to a prayer meeting.”
-
-“But it’s not only the wrong things we’re to punish ourselves for, but
-anything that might hurt father.”
-
-“It won’t hurt anybody. You know Mrs. Elliott is cracked on the subject
-of Methodists. Nobody else makes any fuss about my going. I always
-behave myself. You ask Jem or Mrs. Blythe and see what they say. I’ll
-abide by their opinion. I’m going for the paper now and I’ll bring out
-the lantern and we’ll all sign.”
-
-Fifteen minutes later the document was solemnly signed on Hezekiah
-Pollock’s tombstone, on the centre of which stood the smoky manse
-lantern, while the children knelt around it. Mrs. Elder Clow was going
-past at the moment and next day all the Glen heard that the manse
-children had been having another praying competition and had wound it
-up by chasing each other all over the graves with a lantern. This piece
-of embroidery was probably suggested by the fact that, after the
-signing and sealing was completed, Carl had taken the lantern and had
-walked circumspectly to the little hollow to examine his ant-hill. The
-others had gone quietly into the manse and to bed.
-
-“Do you think it is true that father is going to marry Miss West?” Una
-had tremulously asked of Faith, after their prayers had been said.
-
-“I don’t know, but I’d like it,” said Faith.
-
-“Oh, I wouldn’t,” said Una, chokingly. “She is nice the way she is. But
-Mary Vance says it changes people _altogether_ to be made stepmothers.
-They get horrid cross and mean and hateful then, and turn your father
-against you. She says they’re sure to do that. She never knew it to
-fail in a single case.”
-
-“I don’t believe Miss West would _ever_ try to do that,” cried Faith.
-
-“Mary says _anybody_ would. She knows _all_ about stepmothers,
-Faith—she says she’s seen hundreds of them—and you’ve never seen one.
-Oh, Mary has told me blood-curdling things about them. She says she
-knew of one who whipped her husband’s little girls on their bare
-shoulders till they bled, and then shut them up in a cold, dark coal
-cellar all night. She says they’re _all_ aching to do things like
-that.”
-
-“I don’t believe Miss West would. You don’t know her as well as I do,
-Una. Just think of that sweet little bird she sent me. I love it far
-more even than Adam.”
-
-“It’s just being a stepmother changes them. Mary says they can’t help
-it. I wouldn’t mind the whippings so much as having father hate us.”
-
-“You know nothing could make father hate us. Don’t be silly, Una. I
-dare say there’s nothing to worry over. Likely if we run our club right
-and bring ourselves up properly father won’t think of marrying any one.
-And if he does, I _know_ Miss West will be lovely to us.”
-
-But Una had no such conviction and she cried herself to sleep.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIV.
-A CHARITABLE IMPULSE
-
-
-For a fortnight things ran smoothly in the Good-Conduct Club. It seemed
-to work admirably. Not once was Jem Blythe called in as umpire. Not
-once did any of the manse children set the Glen gossips by the ears. As
-for their minor peccadilloes at home, they kept sharp tabs on each
-other and gamely underwent their self-imposed punishment—generally a
-voluntary absence from some gay Friday night frolic in Rainbow Valley,
-or a sojourn in bed on some spring evening when all young bones ached
-to be out and away. Faith, for whispering in Sunday School, condemned
-herself to pass a whole day without speaking a single word, unless it
-was absolutely necessary, and accomplished it. It was rather
-unfortunate that Mr. Baker from over-harbour should have chosen that
-evening for calling at the manse, and that Faith should have happened
-to go to the door. Not one word did she reply to his genial greeting,
-but went silently away to call her father briefly. Mr. Baker was
-slightly offended and told his wife when he went home that that the
-biggest Meredith girl seemed a very shy, sulky little thing, without
-manners enough to speak when she was spoken to. But nothing worse came
-of it, and generally their penances did no harm to themselves or
-anybody else. All of them were beginning to feel quite cocksure that
-after all, it was a very easy matter to bring yourself up.
-
-“I guess people will soon see that we can behave ourselves properly as
-well as anybody,” said Faith jubilantly. “It isn’t hard when we put our
-minds to it.”
-
-She and Una were sitting on the Pollock tombstone. It had been a cold,
-raw, wet day of spring storm and Rainbow Valley was out of the question
-for girls, though the manse and the Ingleside boys were down there
-fishing. The rain had held up, but the east wind blew mercilessly in
-from the sea, cutting to bone and marrow. Spring was late in spite of
-its early promise, and there was even yet a hard drift of old snow and
-ice in the northern corner of the graveyard. Lida Marsh, who had come
-up to bring the manse a mess of herring, slipped in through the gate
-shivering. She belonged to the fishing village at the harbour mouth and
-her father had, for thirty years, made a practice of sending a mess
-from his first spring catch to the manse. He never darkened a church
-door; he was a hard drinker and a reckless man, but as long as he sent
-those herring up to the manse every spring, as his father had done
-before him, he felt comfortably sure that his account with the Powers
-That Govern was squared for the year. He would not have expected a good
-mackerel catch if he had not so sent the first fruits of the season.
-
-Lida was a mite of ten and looked younger, because she was such a
-small, wizened little creature. To-night, as she sidled boldly enough
-up to the manse girls, she looked as if she had never been warm since
-she was born. Her face was purple and her pale-blue, bold little eyes
-were red and watery. She wore a tattered print dress and a ragged
-woollen comforter, tied across her thin shoulders and under her arms.
-She had walked the three miles from the harbour mouth barefooted, over
-a road where there was still snow and slush and mud. Her feet and legs
-were as purple as her face. But Lida did not mind this much. She was
-used to being cold, and she had been going barefooted for a month
-already, like all the other swarming young fry of the fishing village.
-There was no self-pity in her heart as she sat down on the tombstone
-and grinned cheerfully at Faith and Una. Faith and Una grinned
-cheerfully back. They knew Lida slightly, having met her once or twice
-the preceding summer when they had gone down the harbour with the
-Blythes.
-
-“Hello!” said Lida, “ain’t this a fierce kind of a night? ‘T’ain’t fit
-for a dog to be out, is it?”
-
-“Then why are you out?” asked Faith.
-
-“Pa made me bring you up some herring,” returned Lida. She shivered,
-coughed, and stuck out her bare feet. Lida was not thinking about
-herself or her feet, and was making no bid for sympathy. She held her
-feet out instinctively to keep them from the wet grass around the
-tombstone. But Faith and Una were instantly swamped with a wave of pity
-for her. She looked so cold—so miserable.
-
-“Oh, why are you barefooted on such a cold night?” cried Faith. “Your
-feet must be almost frozen.”
-
-“Pretty near,” said Lida proudly. “I tell you it was fierce walking up
-that harbour road.”
-
-“Why didn’t you put on your shoes and stockings?” asked Una.
-
-“Hain’t none to put on. All I had was wore out by the time winter was
-over,” said Lida indifferently.
-
-For a moment Faith stated in horror. This was terrible. Here was a
-little girl, almost a neighbour, half frozen because she had no shoes
-or stockings in this cruel spring weather. Impulsive Faith thought of
-nothing but the dreadfulness of it. In a moment she was pulling off her
-own shoes and stockings.
-
-“Here, take these and put them right on,” she said, forcing them into
-the hands of the astonished Lida. “Quick now. You’ll catch your death
-of cold. I’ve got others. Put them right on.”
-
-Lida, recovering her wits, snatched at the offered gift, with a sparkle
-in her dull eyes. Sure she would put them on, and that mighty quick,
-before any one appeared with authority to recall them. In a minute she
-had pulled the stockings over her scrawny little legs and slipped
-Faith’s shoes over her thick little ankles.
-
-“I’m obliged to you,” she said, “but won’t your folks be cross?”
-
-“No—and I don’t care if they are,” said Faith. “Do you think I could
-see any one freezing to death without helping them if I could? It
-wouldn’t be right, especially when my father’s a minister.”
-
-“Will you want them back? It’s awful cold down at the harbour
-mouth—long after it’s warm up here,” said Lida slyly.
-
-“No, you’re to keep them, of course. That is what I meant when I gave
-them. I have another pair of shoes and plenty of stockings.”
-
-Lida had meant to stay awhile and talk to the girls about many things.
-But now she thought she had better get away before somebody came and
-made her yield up her booty. So she shuffled off through the bitter
-twilight, in the noiseless, shadowy way she had slipped in. As soon as
-she was out of sight of the manse she sat down, took off the shoes and
-stockings, and put them in her herring basket. She had no intention of
-keeping them on down that dirty harbour road. They were to be kept good
-for gala occasions. Not another little girl down at the harbour mouth
-had such fine black cashmere stockings and such smart, almost new
-shoes. Lida was furnished forth for the summer. She had no qualms in
-the matter. In her eyes the manse people were quite fabulously rich,
-and no doubt those girls had slathers of shoes and stockings. Then Lida
-ran down to the Glen village and played for an hour with the boys
-before Mr. Flagg’s store, splashing about in a pool of slush with the
-maddest of them, until Mrs. Elliott came along and bade her begone
-home.
-
-“I don’t think, Faith, that you should have done that,” said Una, a
-little reproachfully, after Lida had gone. “You’ll have to wear your
-good boots every day now and they’ll soon scuff out.”
-
-“I don’t care,” cried Faith, still in the fine glow of having done a
-kindness to a fellow creature. “It isn’t fair that I should have two
-pairs of shoes and poor little Lida Marsh not have any. _Now_ we both
-have a pair. You know perfectly well, Una, that father said in his
-sermon last Sunday that there was no real happiness in getting or
-having—only in giving. And it’s true. I feel _far_ happier now than I
-ever did in my whole life before. Just think of Lida walking home this
-very minute with her poor little feet all nice and warm and comfy.”
-
-“You know you haven’t another pair of black cashmere stockings,” said
-Una. “Your other pair were so full of holes that Aunt Martha said she
-couldn’t darn them any more and she cut the legs up for stove dusters.
-You’ve nothing but those two pairs of striped stockings you hate so.”
-
-All the glow and uplift went out of Faith. Her gladness collapsed like
-a pricked balloon. She sat for a few dismal minutes in silence, facing
-the consequences of her rash act.
-
-“Oh, Una, I never thought of that,” she said dolefully. “I didn’t stop
-to think at all.”
-
-The striped stockings were thick, heavy, coarse, ribbed stockings of
-blue and red which Aunt Martha had knit for Faith in the winter. They
-were undoubtedly hideous. Faith loathed them as she had never loathed
-anything before. Wear them she certainly would not. They were still
-unworn in her bureau drawer.
-
-“You’ll have to wear the striped stockings after this,” said Una. “Just
-think how the boys in school will laugh at you. You know how they laugh
-at Mamie Warren for her striped stockings and call her barber pole and
-yours are far worse.”
-
-“I won’t wear them,” said Faith. “I’ll go barefooted first, cold as it
-is.”
-
-“You can’t go barefooted to church to-morrow. Think what people would
-say.”
-
-“Then I’ll stay home.”
-
-“You can’t. You know very well Aunt Martha will make you go.”
-
-Faith did know this. The one thing on which Aunt Martha troubled
-herself to insist was that they must all go to church, rain or shine.
-How they were dressed, or if they were dressed at all, never concerned
-her. But go they must. That was how Aunt Martha had been brought up
-seventy years ago, and that was how she meant to bring them up.
-
-“Haven’t you got a pair you can lend me, Una?” said poor Faith
-piteously.
-
-Una shook her head. “No, you know I only have the one black pair. And
-they’re so tight I can hardly get them on. They wouldn’t go on you.
-Neither would my gray ones. Besides, the legs of _them_ are all darned
-_and_ darned.”
-
-“I won’t wear those striped stockings,” said Faith stubbornly. “The
-feel of them is even worse than the looks. They make me feel as if my
-legs were as big as barrels and they’re so _scratchy_.”
-
-“Well, I don’t know what you’re going to do.”
-
-“If father was home I’d go and ask him to get me a new pair before the
-store closes. But he won’t be home till too late. I’ll ask him
-Monday—and I won’t go to church tomorrow. I’ll pretend I’m sick and
-Aunt Martha’ll _have_ to let me stay home.”
-
-“That would be acting a lie, Faith,” cried Una. “You _can’t_ do that.
-You know it would be dreadful. What would father say if he knew? Don’t
-you remember how he talked to us after mother died and told us we must
-always be _true_, no matter what else we failed in. He said we must
-never tell or act a lie—he said he’d _trust_ us not to. You _can’t_ do
-it, Faith. Just wear the striped stockings. It’ll only be for once.
-Nobody will notice them in church. It isn’t like school. And your new
-brown dress is so long they won’t show much. Wasn’t it lucky Aunt
-Martha made it big, so you’d have room to grow in it, for all you hated
-it so when she finished it?”
-
-“I won’t wear those stockings,” repeated Faith. She uncoiled her bare,
-white legs from the tombstone and deliberately walked through the wet,
-cold grass to the bank of snow. Setting her teeth, she stepped upon it
-and stood there.
-
-“What are you doing?” cried Una aghast. “You’ll catch your death of
-cold, Faith Meredith.”
-
-“I’m trying to,” answered Faith. “I hope I’ll catch a fearful cold and
-be _awful_ sick to-morrow. Then I won’t be acting a lie. I’m going to
-stand here as long as I can bear it.”
-
-“But, Faith, you might really die. You might get pneumonia. Please,
-Faith don’t. Let’s go into the house and get _something_ for your feet.
-Oh, here’s Jerry. I’m so thankful. Jerry, _make_ Faith get off that
-snow. Look at her feet.”
-
-“Holy cats! Faith, what _are_ you doing?” demanded Jerry. “Are you
-crazy?”
-
-“No. Go away!” snapped Faith.
-
-“Then are you punishing yourself for something? It isn’t right, if you
-are. You’ll be sick.”
-
-“I want to be sick. I’m not punishing myself. Go away.”
-
-“Where’s her shoes and stockings?” asked Jerry of Una.
-
-“She gave them to Lida Marsh.”
-
-“Lida Marsh? What for?”
-
-“Because Lida had none—and her feet were so cold. And now she wants to
-be sick so that she won’t have to go to church to-morrow and wear her
-striped stockings. But, Jerry, she may die.”
-
-“Faith,” said Jerry, “get off that ice-bank or I’ll pull you off.”
-
-“Pull away,” dared Faith.
-
-Jerry sprang at her and caught her arms. He pulled one way and Faith
-pulled another. Una ran behind Faith and pushed. Faith stormed at Jerry
-to leave her alone. Jerry stormed back at her not to be a dizzy idiot;
-and Una cried. They made no end of noise and they were close to the
-road fence of the graveyard. Henry Warren and his wife drove by and
-heard and saw them. Very soon the Glen heard that the manse children
-had been having an awful fight in the graveyard and using most improper
-language. Meanwhile, Faith had allowed herself to be pulled off the ice
-because her feet were aching so sharply that she was ready to get off
-any way. They all went in amiably and went to bed. Faith slept like a
-cherub and woke in the morning without a trace of a cold. She felt that
-she couldn’t feign sickness and act a lie, after remembering that
-long-ago talk with her father. But she was still as fully determined as
-ever that she would not wear those abominable stockings to church.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXV.
-ANOTHER SCANDAL AND ANOTHER “EXPLANATION”
-
-
-Faith went early to Sunday School and was seated in the corner of her
-class pew before any one came. Therefore, the dreadful truth did not
-burst upon any one until Faith left the class pew near the door to walk
-up to the manse pew after Sunday School. The church was already half
-filled and all who were sitting near the aisle saw that the minister’s
-daughter had boots on but no stockings!
-
-Faith’s new brown dress, which Aunt Martha had made from an ancient
-pattern, was absurdly long for her, but even so it did not meet her
-boot-tops. Two good inches of bare white leg showed plainly.
-
-Faith and Carl sat alone in the manse pew. Jerry had gone into the
-gallery to sit with a chum and the Blythe girls had taken Una with
-them. The Meredith children were given to “sitting all over the church”
-in this fashion and a great many people thought it very improper. The
-gallery especially, where irresponsible lads congregated and were known
-to whisper and suspected of chewing tobacco during service, was no
-place, for a son of the manse. But Jerry hated the manse pew at the
-very top of the church, under the eyes of Elder Clow and his family. He
-escaped from it whenever he could.
-
-Carl, absorbed in watching a spider spinning its web at the window, did
-not notice Faith’s legs. She walked home with her father after church
-and he never noticed them. She got on the hated striped stockings
-before Jerry and Una arrived, so that for the time being none of the
-occupants of the manse knew what she had done. But nobody else in Glen
-St. Mary was ignorant of it. The few who had not seen soon heard.
-Nothing else was talked of on the way home from church. Mrs. Alec Davis
-said it was only what she expected, and the next thing you would see
-some of those young ones coming to church with no clothes on at all.
-The president of the Ladies’ Aid decided that she would bring the
-matter up at the next Aid meeting, and suggest that they wait in a body
-on the minister and protest. Miss Cornelia said that she, for her part,
-gave up. There was no use worrying over the manse fry any longer. Even
-Mrs. Dr. Blythe felt a little shocked, though she attributed the
-occurrence solely to Faith’s forgetfulness. Susan could not immediately
-begin knitting stockings for Faith because it was Sunday, but she had
-one set up before any one else was out of bed at Ingleside the next
-morning.
-
-“You need not tell me anything but that it was old Martha’s fault, Mrs.
-Dr. dear.” she told Anne. “I suppose that poor little child had no
-decent stockings to wear. I suppose every stocking she had was in
-holes, as you know very well they generally are. And _I_ think, Mrs.
-Dr. dear, that the Ladies’ Aid would be better employed in knitting
-some for them than in fighting over the new carpet for the pulpit
-platform. _I_ am not a Ladies’ Aider, but I shall knit Faith two pairs
-of stockings, out of this nice black yarn, as fast as my fingers can
-move and that you may tie to. Never shall I forget my sensations, Mrs.
-Dr. dear, when I saw a minister’s child walking up the aisle of our
-church with no stockings on. I really did not know what way to look.”
-
-“And the church was just full of Methodists yesterday, too,” groaned
-Miss Cornelia, who had come up to the Glen to do some shopping and run
-into Ingleside to talk the affair over. “I don’t know how it is, but
-just as sure as those manse children do something especially awful the
-church is sure to be crowded with Methodists. I thought Mrs. Deacon
-Hazard’s eyes would drop out of her head. When she came out of church
-she said, ‘Well, that exhibition was no more than decent. I do pity the
-Presbyterians.’ And we just had to _take_ it. There was nothing one
-could say.”
-
-“There was something _I_ could have said, Mrs. Dr. dear, if I had heard
-her,” said Susan grimly. “I would have said, for one thing, that in my
-opinion clean bare legs were quite as decent as holes. And I would have
-said, for another, that the Presbyterians did not feel greatly in need
-of pity seeing that they had a minister who could _preach_ and the
-Methodists had _not_. I could have squelched Mrs. Deacon Hazard, Mrs.
-Dr dear, and that you may tie to.”
-
-“I wish Mr. Meredith didn’t preach quite so well and looked after his
-family a little better,” retorted Miss Cornelia. “He could at least
-glance over his children before they went to church and see that they
-were quite properly clothed. I’m tired making excuses for him, believe
-_me_.”
-
-Meanwhile, Faith’s soul was being harrowed up in Rainbow Valley. Mary
-Vance was there and, as usual, in a lecturing mood. She gave Faith to
-understand that she had disgraced herself and her father beyond
-redemption and that she, Mary Vance, was done with her. “Everybody” was
-talking, and “everybody” said the same thing.
-
-“I simply feel that I can’t associate with you any longer,” she
-concluded.
-
-“_We_ are going to associate with her then,” cried Nan Blythe. Nan
-secretly thought Faith _had_ done a awful thing, but she wasn’t going
-to let Mary Vance run matters in this high-handed fashion. “And if
-_you_ are not you needn’t come any more to Rainbow Valley, _Miss_
-Vance.”
-
-Nan and Di both put their arms around Faith and glared defiance at
-Mary. The latter suddenly crumpled up, sat down on a stump and began to
-cry.
-
-“It ain’t that I don’t want to,” she wailed. “But if I keep in with
-Faith people’ll be saying I put her up to doing things. Some are saying
-it now, true’s you live. I can’t afford to have such things said of me,
-now that I’m in a respectable place and trying to be a lady. And _I_
-never went bare-legged in church in my toughest days. I’d never have
-thought of doing such a thing. But that hateful old Kitty Alec says
-Faith has never been the same girl since that time I stayed in the
-manse. She says Cornelia Elliott will live to rue the day she took me
-in. It hurts my feelings, I tell you. But it’s Mr. Meredith I’m really
-worried over.”
-
-“I think you needn’t worry about him,” said Di scornfully. “It isn’t
-likely necessary. Now, Faith darling, stop crying and tell us why you
-did it.”
-
-Faith explained tearfully. The Blythe girls sympathized with her, and
-even Mary Vance agreed that it was a hard position to be in. But Jerry,
-on whom the thing came like a thunderbolt, refused to be placated. So
-_this_ was what some mysterious hints he had got in school that day
-meant! He marched Faith and Una home without ceremony, and the
-Good-Conduct Club held an immediate session in the graveyard to sit in
-judgment on Faith’s case.
-
-“I don’t see that it was any harm,” said Faith defiantly. “Not _much_
-of my legs showed. It wasn’t _wrong_ and it didn’t hurt anybody.”
-
-“It will hurt Dad. You _know_ it will. You know people blame him
-whenever we do anything queer.”
-
-“I didn’t think of that,” muttered Faith.
-
-“That’s just the trouble. You didn’t think and you _should_ have
-thought. That’s what our Club is for—to bring us up and _make_ us
-think. We promised we’d always stop and think before doing things. You
-didn’t and you’ve got to be punished, Faith—and real hard, too. You’ll
-wear those striped stockings to school for a week for punishment.”
-
-“Oh, Jerry, won’t a day do—two days? Not a whole week!”
-
-“Yes, a whole week,” said inexorable Jerry. “It is fair—ask Jem Blythe
-if it isn’t.”
-
-Faith felt she would rather submit then ask Jem Blythe about such a
-matter. She was beginning to realize that her offence was a quite
-shameful one.
-
-“I’ll do it, then,” she muttered, a little sulkily.
-
-“You’re getting off easy,” said, Jerry severely. “And no matter how we
-punish you it won’t help father. People will always think you just did
-it for mischief, and they’ll blame father for not stopping it. We can
-never explain it to everybody.”
-
-This aspect of the case weighed on Faith’s mind. Her own condemnation
-she could bear, but it tortured her that her father should be blamed.
-If people knew the true facts of the case they would not blame him. But
-how could she make them known to all the world? Getting up in church,
-as she had once done, and explaining the matter was out of the
-question. Faith had heard from Mary Vance how the congregation had
-looked upon that performance and realized that she must not repeat it.
-Faith worried over the problem for half a week. Then she had an
-inspiration and promptly acted upon it. She spent that evening in the
-garret, with a lamp and an exercise book, writing busily, with flushed
-cheeks and shining eyes. It was the very thing! How clever she was to
-have thought of it! It would put everything right and explain
-everything and yet cause no scandal. It was eleven o’clock when she had
-finished to her satisfaction and crept down to bed, dreadfully tired,
-but perfectly happy.
-
-In a few days the little weekly published in the Glen under the name of
-_The Journal_ came out as usual, and the Glen had another sensation. A
-letter signed “Faith Meredith” occupied a prominent place on the front
-page and ran as follows:—
-
-“TO WHOM IT MAY CONCERN:
-
-“I want to explain to everybody how it was I came to go to church
-without stockings on, so that everybody will know that father was not
-to blame one bit for it, and the old gossips need not say he is,
-because it is not true. I gave my only pair of black stockings to Lida
-Marsh, because she hadn’t any and her poor little feet were awful cold
-and I was so sorry for her. No child ought to have to go without shoes
-and stockings in a Christian community before the snow is all gone, and
-I think the W. F. M. S. ought to have given her stockings. Of course, I
-know they are sending things to the little heathen children, and that
-is all right and a kind thing to do. But the little heathen children
-have lots more warm weather than we have, and I think the women of our
-church ought to look after Lida and not leave it all to me. When I gave
-her my stockings I forgot they were the only black pair I had without
-holes, but I am glad I did give them to her, because my conscience
-would have been uncomfortable if I hadn’t. When she had gone away,
-looking so proud and happy, the poor little thing, I remembered that
-all I had to wear were the horrid red and blue things Aunt Martha knit
-last winter for me out of some yarn that Mrs. Joseph Burr of Upper Glen
-sent us. It was dreadfully coarse yarn and all knots, and I never saw
-any of Mrs. Burr’s own children wearing things made of such yarn. But
-Mary Vance says Mrs. Burr gives the minister stuff that she can’t use
-or eat herself, and thinks it ought to go as part of the salary her
-husband signed to pay, but never does.
-
-“I just couldn’t bear to wear those hateful stockings. They were so
-ugly and rough and felt so scratchy. Everybody would have made fun of
-me. I thought at first I’d pretend to be sick and not go to church next
-day, but I decided I couldn’t do that, because it would be acting a
-lie, and father told us after mother died that was something we must
-never, never do. It is just as bad to act a lie as to tell one, though
-I know some people, right here in the Glen, who act them, and never
-seem to feel a bit bad about it. I will not mention any names, but I
-know who they are and so does father.
-
-“Then I tried my best to catch cold and really be sick by standing on
-the snowbank in the Methodist graveyard with my bare feet until Jerry
-pulled me off. But it didn’t hurt me a bit and so I couldn’t get out of
-going to church. So I just decided I would put my boots on and go that
-way. I can’t see why it was so wrong and I was so careful to wash my
-legs just as clean as my face, but, anyway, father wasn’t to blame for
-it. He was in the study thinking of his sermon and other heavenly
-things, and I kept out of his way before I went to Sunday School.
-Father does not look at people’s legs in church, so of course he did
-not notice mine, but all the gossips did and talked about it, and that
-is why I am writing this letter to the _Journal_ to explain. I suppose
-I did very wrong, since everybody says so, and I am sorry and I am
-wearing those awful stockings to punish myself, although father bought
-me two nice new black pairs as soon as Mr. Flagg’s store opened on
-Monday morning. But it was all my fault, and if people blame father for
-it after they read this they are not Christians and so I do not mind
-what they say.
-
-“There is another thing I want to explain about before I stop. Mary
-Vance told me that Mr. Evan Boyd is blaming the Lew Baxters for
-stealing potatoes out of his field last fall. They did not touch his
-potatoes. They are very poor, but they are honest. It was us did
-it—Jerry and Carl and I. Una was not with us at the time. We never
-thought it was stealing. We just wanted a few potatoes to cook over a
-fire in Rainbow Valley one evening to eat with our fried trout. Mr.
-Boyd’s field was the nearest, just between the valley and the village,
-so we climbed over his fence and pulled up some stalks. The potatoes
-were awful small, because Mr. Boyd did not put enough fertilizer on
-them and we had to pull up a lot of stalks before we got enough, and
-then they were not much bigger than marbles. Walter and Di Blythe
-helped us eat them, but they did not come along until we had them
-cooked and did not know where we got them, so they were not to blame at
-all, only us. We didn’t mean any harm, but if it was stealing we are
-very sorry and we will pay Mr. Boyd for them if he will wait until we
-grow up. We never have any money now because we are not big enough to
-earn any, and Aunt Martha says it takes every cent of poor father’s
-salary, even when it is paid up regularly—and it isn’t often—to run
-this house. But Mr. Boyd must not blame the Lew Baxters any more, when
-they were quite innocent, and give them a bad name.
-
-“Yours respectfully,
-“FAITH MEREDITH.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVI.
-MISS CORNELIA GETS A NEW POINT OF VIEW
-
-
-“Susan, after I’m dead I’m going to come back to earth every time when
-the daffodils blow in this garden,” said Anne rapturously. “Nobody may
-see me, but I’ll be here. If anybody is in the garden at the time—I
-_think_ I’ll come on an evening just like this, but it _might_ be just
-at dawn—a lovely, pale-pinky spring dawn—they’ll just see the daffodils
-nodding wildly as if an extra gust of wind had blown past them, but it
-will be _I_.”
-
-“Indeed, Mrs. Dr. dear, you will not be thinking of flaunting worldly
-things like daffies after you are dead,” said Susan. “And I do _not_
-believe in ghosts, seen or unseen.”
-
-“Oh, Susan, I shall not be a ghost! That has such a horrible sound. I
-shall just be _me_. And I shall run around in the twilight, whether it
-is morn or eve, and see all the spots I love. Do you remember how badly
-I felt when I left our little House of Dreams, Susan? I thought I could
-never love Ingleside so well. But I do. I love every inch of the ground
-and every stick and stone on it.”
-
-“I am rather fond of the place myself,” said Susan, who would have died
-if she had been removed from it, “but we must not set our affections
-too much on earthly things, Mrs. Dr. dear. There are such things as
-fires and earthquakes. We should always be prepared. The Tom
-MacAllisters over-harbour were burned out three nights ago. Some say
-Tom MacAllister set the house on fire himself to get the insurance.
-That may or may not be. But I advise the doctor to have our chimneys
-seen to at once. An ounce of prevention is worth a pound of cure. But I
-see Mrs. Marshall Elliott coming in at the gate, looking as if she had
-been sent for and couldn’t go.”
-
-“Anne dearie, have you seen the _Journal_ to-day?”
-
-Miss Cornelia’s voice was trembling, partly from emotion, partly from
-the fact that she had hurried up from the store too fast and lost her
-breath.
-
-Anne bent over the daffodils to hide a smile. She and Gilbert had
-laughed heartily and heartlessly over the front page of the _Journal_
-that day, but she knew that to dear Miss Cornelia it was almost a
-tragedy, and she must not wound her feelings by any display of levity.
-
-“Isn’t it dreadful? What _is_ to be done?” asked Miss Cornelia
-despairingly. Miss Cornelia had vowed that she was done with worrying
-over the pranks of the manse children, but she went on worrying just
-the same.
-
-Anne led the way to the veranda, where Susan was knitting, with Shirley
-and Rilla conning their primers on either side. Susan was already on
-her second pair of stockings for Faith. Susan never worried over poor
-humanity. She did what in her lay for its betterment and serenely left
-the rest to the Higher Powers.
-
-“Cornelia Elliott thinks she was born to run this world, Mrs. Dr.
-dear,” she had once said to Anne, “and so she is always in a stew over
-something. I have never thought _I_ was, and so I go calmly along. Not
-but what it has sometimes occurred to me that things might be run a
-little better than they are. But it is not for us poor worms to nourish
-such thoughts. They only make us uncomfortable and do not get us
-anywhere.”
-
-“I don’t see that anything can be done—now—” said Anne, pulling out a
-nice, cushiony chair for Miss Cornelia. “But how in the world did Mr.
-Vickers allow that letter to be printed? Surely he should have known
-better.”
-
-“Why, he’s away, Anne dearie—he’s been away to New Brunswick for a
-week. And that young scalawag of a Joe Vickers is editing the _Journal_
-in his absence. Of course, Mr. Vickers would never have put it in, even
-if he is a Methodist, but Joe would just think it a good joke. As you
-say, I don’t suppose there is anything to be done now, only live it
-down. But if I ever get Joe Vickers cornered somewhere I’ll give him a
-talking to he won’t forget in a hurry. I wanted Marshall to stop our
-subscription to the _Journal_ instantly, but he only laughed and said
-that to-day’s issue was the only one that had had anything readable in
-it for a year. Marshall never will take anything seriously—just like a
-man. Fortunately, Evan Boyd is like that, too. He takes it as a joke
-and is laughing all over the place about it. And he’s another
-Methodist! As for Mrs. Burr of Upper Glen, of course she will be
-furious and they will leave the church. Not that it will be a great
-loss from any point of view. The Methodists are quite welcome to
-_them_.”
-
-“It serves Mrs. Burr right,” said Susan, who had an old feud with the
-lady in question and had been hugely tickled over the reference to her
-in Faith’s letter. “She will find that she will not be able to cheat
-the Methodist parson out of _his_ salary with bad yarn.”
-
-“The worst of it is, there’s not much hope of things getting any
-better,” said Miss Cornelia gloomily. “As long as Mr. Meredith was
-going to see Rosemary West I did hope the manse would soon have a
-proper mistress. But that is all off. I suppose she wouldn’t have him
-on account of the children—at least, everybody seems to think so.”
-
-“I do not believe that he ever asked her,” said Susan, who could not
-conceive of any one refusing a minister.
-
-“Well, nobody knows anything about _that_. But one thing is certain, he
-doesn’t go there any longer. And Rosemary didn’t look well all the
-spring. I hope her visit to Kingsport will do her good. She’s been gone
-for a month and will stay another month, I understand. I can’t remember
-when Rosemary was away from home before. She and Ellen could never bear
-to be parted. But I understand Ellen insisted on her going this time.
-And meanwhile Ellen and Norman Douglas are warming up the old soup.”
-
-“Is that really so?” asked Anne, laughing. “I heard a rumour of it, but
-I hardly believed it.”
-
-“Believe it! You may believe it all right, Anne, dearie. Nobody is in
-ignorance of it. Norman Douglas never left anybody in doubt as to his
-intentions in regard to anything. He always did his courting before the
-public. He told Marshall that he hadn’t thought about Ellen for years,
-but the first time he went to church last fall he saw her and fell in
-love with her all over again. He said he’d clean forgot how handsome
-she was. He hadn’t seen her for twenty years, if you can believe it. Of
-course he never went to church, and Ellen never went anywhere else
-round here. Oh, we all know what Norman means, but what Ellen means is
-a different matter. I shan’t take it upon me to predict whether it will
-be a match or not.”
-
-“He jilted her once—but it seems that does not count with some people,
-Mrs. Dr. dear,” Susan remarked rather acidly.
-
-“He jilted her in a fit of temper and repented it all his life,” said
-Miss Cornelia. “That is different from a cold-blooded jilting. For my
-part, I never detested Norman as some folks do. He could never
-over-crow _me_. I _do_ wonder what started him coming to church. I have
-never been able to believe Mrs. Wilsons’s story that Faith Meredith
-went there and bullied him into it. I’ve always intended to ask Faith
-herself, but I’ve never happened to think of it just when I saw her.
-What influence could _she_ have over Norman Douglas? He was in the
-store when I left, bellowing with laughter over that scandalous letter.
-You could have heard him at Four Winds Point. ‘The greatest girl in the
-world,’ he was shouting. ‘She’s that full of spunk she’s bursting with
-it. And all the old grannies want to tame her, darn them. But they’ll
-never be able to do it—never! They might as well try to drown a fish.
-Boyd, see that you put more fertilizer on your potatoes next year. Ho,
-ho, ho!’ And then he laughed till the roof shook.”
-
-“Mr. Douglas pays well to the salary, at least,” remarked Susan.
-
-“Oh, Norman isn’t mean in some ways. He’d give a thousand without
-blinking a lash, and roar like a Bull of Bashan if he had to pay five
-cents too much for anything. Besides, he likes Mr. Meredith’s sermons,
-and Norman Douglas was always willing to shell out if he got his brains
-tickled up. There is no more Christianity about him than there is about
-a black, naked heathen in Africa and never will be. But he’s clever and
-well read and he judges sermons as he would lectures. Anyhow, it’s well
-he backs up Mr. Meredith and the children as he does, for they’ll need
-friends more than ever after this. I am tired of making excuses for
-them, believe _me_.”
-
-“Do you know, dear Miss Cornelia,” said Anne seriously, “I think we
-have all been making too many excuses. It is very foolish and we ought
-to stop it. I am going to tell you what I’d _like_ to do. I shan’t do
-it, of course”—Anne had noted a glint of alarm in Susan’s eye—“it would
-be too unconventional, and we must be conventional or die, after we
-reach what is supposed to be a dignified age. But I’d _like_ to do it.
-I’d like to call a meeting of the Ladies Aid and W.M.S. and the Girls
-Sewing Society, and include in the audience all and any Methodists who
-have been criticizing the Merediths—although I do think if we
-Presbyterians stopped criticizing and excusing we would find that other
-denominations would trouble themselves very little about our manse
-folks. I would say to them, ‘Dear Christian friends’—with marked
-emphasis on ‘Christian’—I have something to say to you and I want to
-say it good and hard, that you may take it home and repeat it to your
-families. You Methodists need not pity us, and we Presbyterians need
-not pity ourselves. We are not going to do it any more. And we are
-going to say, boldly and truthfully, to all critics and sympathizers,
-‘We are _proud_ of our minister and his family. Mr. Meredith is the
-best preacher Glen St. Mary church ever had. Moreover, he is a sincere,
-earnest teacher of truth and Christian charity. He is a faithful
-friend, a judicious pastor in all essentials, and a refined, scholarly,
-well-bred man. His family are worthy of him. Gerald Meredith is the
-cleverest pupil in the Glen school, and Mr. Hazard says that he is
-destined to a brilliant career. He is a manly, honourable, truthful
-little fellow. Faith Meredith is a beauty, and as inspiring and
-original as she is beautiful. There is nothing commonplace about her.
-All the other girls in the Glen put together haven’t the vim, and wit,
-and joyousness and ‘spunk’ she has. She has not an enemy in the world.
-Every one who knows her loves her. Of how many, children or grown-ups,
-can that be said? Una Meredith is sweetness personified. She will make
-a most lovable woman. Carl Meredith, with his love for ants and frogs
-and spiders, will some day be a naturalist whom all Canada—nay, all the
-world, will delight to honour. Do you know of any other family in the
-Glen, or out of it, of whom all these things can be said? Away with
-shamefaced excuses and apologies. We _rejoice_ in our minister and his
-splendid boys and girls!”
-
-Anne stopped, partly because she was out of breath after her vehement
-speech and partly because she could not trust herself to speak further
-in view of Miss Cornelia’s face. That good lady was staring helplessly
-at Anne, apparently engulfed in billows of new ideas. But she came up
-with a gasp and struck out for shore gallantly.
-
-“Anne Blythe, I wish you _would_ call that meeting and say just that!
-You’ve made me ashamed of myself, for one, and far be it from me to
-refuse to admit it. _Of course_, that is how we should have
-talked—especially to the Methodists. And it’s every word of it
-true—every word. We’ve just been shutting our eyes to the big
-worth-while things and squinting them on the little things that don’t
-really matter a pin’s worth. Oh, Anne dearie, I can see a thing when
-it’s hammered into my head. No more apologizing for Cornelia Marshall!
-_I_ shall hold _my_ head up after this, believe _me_—though I _may_
-talk things over with you as usual just to relieve my feelings if the
-Merediths do any more startling stunts. Even that letter I felt so bad
-about—why, it’s only a good joke after all, as Norman says. Not many
-girls would have been cute enough to think of writing it—and all
-punctuated so nicely and not one word misspelled. Just let me hear any
-Methodist say one word about it—though all the same I’ll never forgive
-Joe Vickers—believe _me!_ Where are the rest of your small fry
-to-night?”
-
-“Walter and the twins are in Rainbow Valley. Jem is studying in the
-garret.”
-
-“They are all crazy about Rainbow Valley. Mary Vance thinks it’s the
-only place in the world. She’d be off up here every evening if I’d let
-her. But I don’t encourage her in gadding. Besides, I miss the creature
-when she isn’t around, Anne dearie. I never thought I’d get so fond of
-her. Not but what I see her faults and try to correct them. But she has
-never said one saucy word to me since she came to my house and she is a
-_great_ help—for when all is said and done, Anne dearie, I am not so
-young as I once was, and there is no sense denying it. I was fifty-nine
-my last birthday. I don’t _feel_ it, but there is no gainsaying the
-Family Bible.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVII.
-A SACRED CONCERT
-
-
-In spite of Miss Cornelia’s new point of view she could not help
-feeling a little disturbed over the next performance of the manse
-children. In public she carried off the situation splendidly, saying to
-all the gossips the substance of what Anne had said in daffodil time,
-and saying it so pointedly and forcibly that her hearers found
-themselves feeling rather foolish and began to think that, after all,
-they were making too much of a childish prank. But in private Miss
-Cornelia allowed herself the relief of bemoaning it to Anne.
-
-“Anne dearie, they had a _concert in the graveyard_ last Thursday
-evening, while the Methodist prayer meeting was going on. There they
-sat, on Hezekiah Pollock’s tombstone, and sang for a solid hour. Of
-course, I understand it was mostly hymns they sang, and it wouldn’t
-have been quite so bad if they’d done nothing else. But I’m told they
-finished up with _Polly Wolly Doodle_ at full length—and that just when
-Deacon Baxter was praying.”
-
-“I was there that night,” said Susan, “and, although I did not say
-anything about it to you, Mrs. Dr. dear, I could not help thinking that
-it was a great pity they picked that particular evening. It was truly
-blood-curdling to hear them sitting there in that abode of the dead,
-shouting that frivolous song at the tops of their lungs.”
-
-“I don’t know what _you_ were doing in a Methodist prayer meeting,”
-said Miss Cornelia acidly.
-
-“I have never found that Methodism was catching,” retorted Susan
-stiffly. “And, as I was going to say when I was interrupted, badly as I
-felt, I did _not_ give in to the Methodists. When Mrs. Deacon Baxter
-said, as we came out, ‘What a disgraceful exhibition!’ _I_ said,
-looking her fairly in the eye, ‘They are all beautiful singers, and
-none of _your_ choir, Mrs. Baxter, ever bother themselves coming out to
-your prayer meeting, it seems. Their voices appear to be in tune only
-on Sundays!’ She was quite meek and I felt that I had snubbed her
-properly. But I could have done it much more thoroughly, Mrs. Dr. dear,
-if only they had left out _Polly Wolly Doodle_. It is truly terrible to
-think of that being sung in a graveyard.”
-
-“Some of those dead folks sang _Polly Wolly Doodle_ when they were
-living, Susan. Perhaps they like to hear it yet,” suggested Gilbert.
-
-Miss Cornelia looked at him reproachfully and made up her mind that, on
-some future occasion, she would hint to Anne that the doctor should be
-admonished not to say such things. They might injure his practice.
-People might get it into their heads that he wasn’t orthodox. To be
-sure, Marshall said even worse things habitually, but then _he_ was not
-a public man.
-
-“I understand that their father was in his study all the time, with his
-windows open, but never noticed them at all. Of course, he was lost in
-a book as usual. But I spoke to him about it yesterday, when he
-called.”
-
-“How could you dare, Mrs. Marshall Elliott?” asked Susan rebukingly.
-
-“Dare! It’s time somebody dared something. Why, they say he knows
-nothing about that letter of Faith’s to the _journal_ because nobody
-liked to mention it to him. He never looks at a _journal_ of course.
-But I thought he ought to know of this to prevent any such performances
-in future. He said he would ‘discuss it with them.’ But of course he’d
-never think of it again after he got out of our gate. That man has no
-sense of humour, Anne, believe _me_. He preached last Sunday on ‘How to
-Bring up Children.’ A beautiful sermon it was, too—and everybody in
-church thinking ‘what a pity you can’t practise what you preach.’”
-
-Miss Cornelia did Mr. Meredith an injustice in thinking he would soon
-forget what she had told him. He went home much disturbed and when the
-children came from Rainbow Valley that night, at a much later hour than
-they should have been prowling in it, he called them into his study.
-
-They went in, somewhat awed. It was such an unusual thing for their
-father to do. What could he be going to say to them? They racked their
-memories for any recent transgression of sufficient importance, but
-could not recall any. Carl had spilled a saucerful of jam on Mrs. Peter
-Flagg’s silk dress two evenings before, when, at Aunt Martha’s
-invitation, she had stayed to supper. But Mr. Meredith had not noticed
-it, and Mrs. Flagg, who was a kindly soul, had made no fuss. Besides,
-Carl had been punished by having to wear Una’s dress all the rest of
-the evening.
-
-Una suddenly thought that perhaps her father meant to tell them that he
-was going to marry Miss West. Her heart began to beat violently and her
-legs trembled. Then she saw that Mr. Meredith looked very stern and
-sorrowful. No, it could not be that.
-
-“Children,” said Mr. Meredith, “I have heard something that has pained
-me very much. Is it true that you sat out in the graveyard all last
-Thursday evening and sang ribald songs while a prayer meeting was being
-held in the Methodist church?”
-
-“Great Caesar, Dad, we forgot all about it being their prayer meeting
-night,” exclaimed Jerry in dismay.
-
-“Then it is true—you did do this thing?”
-
-“Why, Dad, I don’t know what you mean by ribald songs. We sang hymns—it
-was a sacred concert, you know. What harm was that? I tell you we never
-thought about it’s being Methodist prayer meeting night. They used to
-have their meeting Tuesday nights and since they’ve changed to
-Thursdays it’s hard to remember.”
-
-“Did you sing nothing but hymns?”
-
-“Why,” said Jerry, turning red, “we _did_ sing _Polly Wolly Doodle_ at
-the last. Faith said, ‘Let’s have something cheerful to wind up with.’
-But we didn’t mean any harm, Father—truly we didn’t.”
-
-“The concert was my idea, Father,” said Faith, afraid that Mr. Meredith
-might blame Jerry too much. “You know the Methodists themselves had a
-sacred concert in their church three Sunday nights ago. I thought it
-would be good fun to get one up in imitation of it. Only they had
-prayers at theirs, and we left that part out, because we heard that
-people thought it awful for us to pray in a graveyard. _You_ were
-sitting in here all the time,” she added, “and never said a word to
-us.”
-
-“I did not notice what you were doing. That is no excuse for me, of
-course. I am more to blame than you—I realize that. But why did you
-sing that foolish song at the end?”
-
-“We didn’t think,” muttered Jerry, feeling that it was a very lame
-excuse, seeing that he had lectured Faith so strongly in the
-Good-Conduct Club sessions for her lack of thought. “We’re sorry,
-Father—truly, we are. Pitch into us hard—we deserve a regular combing
-down.”
-
-But Mr. Meredith did no combing down or pitching into. He sat down and
-gathered his small culprits close to him and talked a little to them,
-tenderly and wisely. They were overcome with remorse and shame, and
-felt that they could never be so silly and thoughtless again.
-
-“We’ve just got to punish ourselves good and hard for this,” whispered
-Jerry as they crept upstairs. “We’ll have a session of the Club first
-thing tomorrow and decide how we’ll do it. I never saw father so cut
-up. But I wish to goodness the Methodists would stick to one night for
-their prayer meeting and not wander all over the week.”
-
-“Anyhow, I’m glad it wasn’t what I was afraid it was,” murmured Una to
-herself.
-
-Behind them, in the study, Mr. Meredith had sat down at his desk and
-buried his face in his arms.
-
-“God help me!” he said. “I’m a poor sort of father. Oh, Rosemary! If
-you had only cared!”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVIII.
-A FAST DAY
-
-
-The Good-Conduct Club had a special session the next morning before
-school. After various suggestions, it was decided that a fast day would
-be an appropriate punishment.
-
-“We won’t eat a single thing for a whole day,” said Jerry. “I’m kind of
-curious to see what fasting is like, anyhow. This will be a good chance
-to find out.”
-
-“What day will we choose for it?” asked Una, who thought it would be
-quite an easy punishment and rather wondered that Jerry and Faith had
-not devised something harder.
-
-“Let’s pick Monday,” said Faith. “We mostly have a pretty _filling_
-dinner on Sundays, and Mondays meals never amount to much anyhow.”
-
-“But that’s just the point,” exclaimed Jerry. “We mustn’t take the
-easiest day to fast, but the hardest—and that’s Sunday, because, as you
-say, we mostly have roast beef that day instead of cold ditto. It
-wouldn’t be much punishment to fast from ditto. Let’s take next Sunday.
-It will be a good day, for father is going to exchange for the morning
-service with the Upper Lowbridge minister. Father will be away till
-evening. If Aunt Martha wonders what’s got into us, we’ll tell her
-right up that we’re fasting for the good of our souls, and it is in the
-Bible and she is not to interfere, and I guess she won’t.”
-
-Aunt Martha did not. She merely said in her fretful mumbling way, “What
-foolishness are you young rips up to now?” and thought no more about
-it. Mr. Meredith had gone away early in the morning before any one was
-up. He went without his breakfast, too, but that was, of course, of
-common occurrence. Half of the time he forgot it and there was no one
-to remind him of it. Breakfast—Aunt Martha’s breakfast—was not a hard
-meal to miss. Even the hungry “young rips” did not feel it any great
-deprivation to abstain from the “lumpy porridge and blue milk” which
-had aroused the scorn of Mary Vance. But it was different at dinner
-time. They were furiously hungry then, and the odor of roast beef which
-pervaded the manse, and which was wholly delightful in spite of the
-fact that the roast beef was badly underdone, was almost more than they
-could stand. In desperation they rushed to the graveyard where they
-couldn’t smell it. But Una could not keep her eyes from the dining room
-window, through which the Upper Lowbridge minister could be seen,
-placidly eating.
-
-“If I could only have just a weeny, teeny piece,” she sighed.
-
-“Now, you stop that,” commanded Jerry. “Of course it’s hard—but that’s
-the punishment of it. I could eat a graven image this very minute, but
-am I complaining? Let’s think of something else. We’ve just got to rise
-above our stomachs.”
-
-At supper time they did not feel the pangs of hunger which they had
-suffered earlier in the day.
-
-“I suppose we’re getting used to it,” said Faith. “I feel an awfully
-queer all-gone sort of feeling, but I can’t say I’m hungry.”
-
-“My head is funny,” said Una. “It goes round and round sometimes.”
-
-But she went gamely to church with the others. If Mr. Meredith had not
-been so wholly wrapped up in and carried away with his subject he might
-have noticed the pale little face and hollow eyes in the manse pew
-beneath. But he noticed nothing and his sermon was something longer
-than usual. Then, just before he gave out the final hymn, Una Meredith
-tumbled off the seat of the manse pew and lay in a dead faint on the
-floor.
-
-Mrs. Elder Clow was the first to reach her. She caught the thin little
-body from the arms of white-faced, terrified Faith and carried it into
-the vestry. Mr. Meredith forgot the hymn and everything else and rushed
-madly after her. The congregation dismissed itself as best it could.
-
-“Oh, Mrs. Clow,” gasped Faith, “is Una dead? Have we killed her?”
-
-“What is the matter with my child?” demanded the pale father.
-
-“She has just fainted, I think,” said Mrs. Clow. “Oh, here’s the
-doctor, thank goodness.”
-
-Gilbert did not find it a very easy thing to bring Una back to
-consciousness. He worked over her for a long time before her eyes
-opened. Then he carried her over to the manse, followed by Faith,
-sobbing hysterically in her relief.
-
-“She is just hungry, you know—she didn’t eat a thing to-day—none of us
-did—we were all fasting.”
-
-“Fasting!” said Mr. Meredith, and “Fasting?” said the doctor.
-
-“Yes—to punish ourselves for singing _Polly Wolly_ in the graveyard,”
-said Faith.
-
-“My child, I don’t want you to punish yourselves for that,” said Mr.
-Meredith in distress. “I gave you your little scolding—and you were all
-penitent—and I forgave you.”
-
-“Yes, but we had to be punished,” explained Faith. “It’s our rule—in
-our Good-Conduct Club, you know—if we do anything wrong, or anything
-that is likely to hurt father in the congregation, we _have_ to punish
-ourselves. We are bringing ourselves up, you know, because there is
-nobody to do it.”
-
-Mr. Meredith groaned, but the doctor got up from Una’s side with an air
-of relief.
-
-“Then this child simply fainted from lack of food and all she needs is
-a good square meal,” he said. “Mrs. Clow, will you be kind enough to
-see she gets it? And I think from Faith’s story that they all would be
-the better for something to eat, or we shall have more faintings.”
-
-“I suppose we shouldn’t have made Una fast,” said Faith remorsefully.
-“When I think of it, only Jerry and I should have been punished. _We_
-got up the concert and we were the oldest.”
-
-“I sang _Polly Wolly_ just the same as the rest of you,” said Una’s
-weak little voice, “so I had to be punished, too.”
-
-Mrs. Clow came with a glass of milk, Faith and Jerry and Carl sneaked
-off to the pantry, and John Meredith went into his study, where he sat
-in the darkness for a long time, alone with his bitter thoughts. So his
-children were bringing themselves up because there was “nobody to do
-it”—struggling along amid their little perplexities without a hand to
-guide or a voice to counsel. Faith’s innocently uttered phrase rankled
-in her father’s mind like a barbed shaft. There was “nobody” to look
-after them—to comfort their little souls and care for their little
-bodies. How frail Una had looked, lying there on the vestry sofa in
-that long faint! How thin were her tiny hands, how pallid her little
-face! She looked as if she might slip away from him in a breath—sweet
-little Una, of whom Cecilia had begged him to take such special care.
-Since his wife’s death he had not felt such an agony of dread as when
-he had hung over his little girl in her unconsciousness. He must do
-something—but what? Should he ask Elizabeth Kirk to marry him? She was
-a good woman—she would be kind to his children. He might bring himself
-to do it if it were not for his love for Rosemary West. But until he
-had crushed that out he could not seek another woman in marriage. And
-he could not crush it out—he had tried and he could not. Rosemary had
-been in church that evening, for the first time since her return from
-Kingsport. He had caught a glimpse of her face in the back of the
-crowded church, just as he had finished his sermon. His heart had given
-a fierce throb. He sat while the choir sang the “collection piece,”
-with his bent head and tingling pulses. He had not seen her since the
-evening upon which he had asked her to marry him. When he had risen to
-give out the hymn his hands were trembling and his pale face was
-flushed. Then Una’s fainting spell had banished everything from his
-mind for a time. Now, in the darkness and solitude of the study it
-rushed back. Rosemary was the only woman in the world for him. It was
-of no use for him to think of marrying any other. He could not commit
-such a sacrilege even for his children’s sake. He must take up his
-burden alone—he must try to be a better, a more watchful father—he must
-tell his children not to be afraid to come to him with all their little
-problems. Then he lighted his lamp and took up a bulky new book which
-was setting the theological world by the ears. He would read just one
-chapter to compose his mind. Five minutes later he was lost to the
-world and the troubles of the world.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIX.
-A WEIRD TALE
-
-
-On an early June evening Rainbow Valley was an entirely delightful
-place and the children felt it to be so, as they sat in the open glade
-where the bells rang elfishly on the Tree Lovers, and the White Lady
-shook her green tresses. The wind was laughing and whistling about them
-like a leal, glad-hearted comrade. The young ferns were spicy in the
-hollow. The wild cherry trees scattered over the valley, among the dark
-firs, were mistily white. The robins were whistling over in the maples
-behind Ingleside. Beyond, on the slopes of the Glen, were blossoming
-orchards, sweet and mystic and wonderful, veiled in dusk. It was
-spring, and young things _must_ be glad in spring. Everybody was glad
-in Rainbow Valley that evening—until Mary Vance froze their blood with
-the story of Henry Warren’s ghost.
-
-Jem was not there. Jem spent his evenings now studying for his entrance
-examination in the Ingleside garret. Jerry was down near the pond,
-trouting. Walter had been reading Longfellow’s sea poems to the others
-and they were steeped in the beauty and mystery of the ships. Then they
-talked of what they would do when they were grown up—where they would
-travel—the far, fair shores they would see. Nan and Di meant to go to
-Europe. Walter longed for the Nile moaning past its Egyptian sands, and
-a glimpse of the sphinx. Faith opined rather dismally that she supposed
-she would have to be a missionary—old Mrs. Taylor told her she ought to
-be—and then she would at least see India or China, those mysterious
-lands of the Orient. Carl’s heart was set on African jungles. Una said
-nothing. She thought she would just like to stay at home. It was
-prettier here than anywhere else. It would be dreadful when they were
-all grown up and had to scatter over the world. The very idea made Una
-feel lonesome and homesick. But the others dreamed on delightedly until
-Mary Vance arrived and vanished poesy and dreams at one fell swoop.
-
-“Laws, but I’m out of puff,” she exclaimed. “I’ve run down that hill
-like sixty. I got an awful scare up there at the old Bailey place.”
-
-“What frightened you?” asked Di.
-
-“I dunno. I was poking about under them lilacs in the old garden,
-trying to see if there was any lilies-of-the-valley out yet. It was
-dark as a pocket there—and all at once I seen something stirring and
-rustling round at the other side of the garden, in those cherry bushes.
-It was _white_. I tell you I didn’t stop for a second look. I flew over
-the dyke quicker than quick. I was sure it was Henry Warren’s ghost.”
-
-“Who was Henry Warren?” asked Di.
-
-“And why should he have a ghost?” asked Nan.
-
-“Laws, did you never hear the story? And you brought up in the Glen.
-Well, wait a minute till I get by breath all back and I’ll tell you.”
-
-Walter shivered delightsomely. He loved ghost stories. Their mystery,
-their dramatic climaxes, their eeriness gave him a fearful, exquisite
-pleasure. Longfellow instantly grew tame and commonplace. He threw the
-book aside and stretched himself out, propped upon his elbows to listen
-whole-heartedly, fixing his great luminous eyes on Mary’s face. Mary
-wished he wouldn’t look at her so. She felt she could make a better job
-of the ghost story if Walter were not looking at her. She could put on
-several frills and invent a few artistic details to enhance the horror.
-As it was, she had to stick to the bare truth—or what had been told her
-for the truth.
-
-“Well,” she began, “you know old Tom Bailey and his wife used to live
-in that house up there thirty years ago. He was an awful old rip, they
-say, and his wife wasn’t much better. They’d no children of their own,
-but a sister of old Tom’s died and left a little boy—this Henry
-Warren—and they took him. He was about twelve when he came to them, and
-kind of undersized and delicate. They say Tom and his wife used him
-awful from the start—whipped him and starved him. Folks said they
-wanted him to die so’s they could get the little bit of money his
-mother had left for him. Henry didn’t die right off, but he begun
-having fits—epileps, they called ‘em—and he grew up kind of simple,
-till he was about eighteen. His uncle used to thrash him in that garden
-up there ‘cause it was back of the house where no one could see him.
-But folks could hear, and they say it was awful sometimes hearing poor
-Henry plead with his uncle not to kill him. But nobody dared interfere
-‘cause old Tom was such a reprobate he’d have been sure to get square
-with ‘em some way. He burned the barns of a man at Harbour Head who
-offended him. At last Henry died and his uncle and aunt give out he
-died in one of his fits and that was all anybody ever knowed, but
-everybody said Tom had just up and killed him for keeps at last. And it
-wasn’t long till it got around that Henry _walked_. That old garden was
-_ha’nted_. He was heard there at nights, moaning and crying. Old Tom
-and his wife got out—went out West and never came back. The place got
-such a bad name nobody’d buy or rent it. That’s why it’s all gone to
-ruin. That was thirty years ago, but Henry Warren’s ghost ha’nts it
-yet.”
-
-“Do you believe that?” asked Nan scornfully. “_I_ don’t.”
-
-“Well, _good_ people have seen him—and heard him.” retorted Mary. “They
-say he appears and grovels on the ground and holds you by the legs and
-gibbers and moans like he did when he was alive. I thought of that as
-soon as I seen that white thing in the bushes and thought if it caught
-me like that and moaned I’d drop down dead on the spot. So I cut and
-run. It _mightn’t_ have been his ghost, but I wasn’t going to take any
-chances with a ha’nt.”
-
-“It was likely old Mrs. Stimson’s white calf,” laughed Di. “It pastures
-in that garden—I’ve seen it.”
-
-“Maybe so. But _I’m_ not going home through the Bailey garden any more.
-Here’s Jerry with a big string of trout and it’s my turn to cook them.
-Jem and Jerry both say I’m the best cook in the Glen. And Cornelia told
-me I could bring up this batch of cookies. I all but dropped them when
-I saw Henry’s ghost.”
-
-Jerry hooted when he heard the ghost story—which Mary repeated as she
-fried the fish, touching it up a trifle or so, since Walter had gone to
-help Faith to set the table. It made no impression on Jerry, but Faith
-and Una and Carl had been secretly much frightened, though they would
-never have given in to it. It was all right as long as the others were
-with them in the valley: but when the feast was over and the shadows
-fell they quaked with remembrance. Jerry went up to Ingleside with the
-Blythes to see Jem about something, and Mary Vance went around that way
-home. So Faith and Una and Carl had to go back to the manse alone. They
-walked very close together and gave the old Bailey garden a wide berth.
-They did not believe that it was haunted, of course, but they would not
-go near it for all that.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXX.
-THE GHOST ON THE DYKE
-
-
-Somehow, Faith and Carl and Una could not shake off the hold which the
-story of Henry Warren’s ghost had taken upon their imaginations. They
-had never believed in ghosts. Ghost tales they had heard a-plenty—Mary
-Vance had told some far more blood-curdling than this; but those tales
-were all of places and people and spooks far away and unknown. After
-the first half-awful, half-pleasant thrill of awe and terror they
-thought of them no more. But this story came home to them. The old
-Bailey garden was almost at their very door—almost in their beloved
-Rainbow Valley. They had passed and repassed it constantly; they had
-hunted for flowers in it; they had made short cuts through it when they
-wished to go straight from the village to the valley. But never again!
-After the night when Mary Vance told them its gruesome tale they would
-not have gone through or near it on pain of death. Death! What was
-death compared to the unearthly possibility of falling into the
-clutches of Henry Warren’s grovelling ghost?
-
-One warm July evening the three of them were sitting under the Tree
-Lovers, feeling a little lonely. Nobody else had come near the valley
-that evening. Jem Blythe was away in Charlottetown, writing on his
-entrance examinations. Jerry and Walter Blythe were off for a sail on
-the harbour with old Captain Crawford. Nan and Di and Rilla and Shirley
-had gone down the harbour road to visit Kenneth and Persis Ford, who
-had come with their parents for a flying visit to the little old House
-of Dreams. Nan had asked Faith to go with them, but Faith had declined.
-She would never have admitted it, but she felt a little secret jealousy
-of Persis Ford, concerning whose wonderful beauty and city glamour she
-had heard a great deal. No, she wasn’t going to go down there and play
-second fiddle to anybody. She and Una took their story books to Rainbow
-Valley and read, while Carl investigated bugs along the banks of the
-brook, and all three were happy until they suddenly realized that it
-was twilight and that the old Bailey garden was uncomfortably near by.
-Carl came and sat down close to the girls. They all wished they had
-gone home a little sooner, but nobody said anything.
-
-Great, velvety, purple clouds heaped up in the west and spread over the
-valley. There was no wind and everything was suddenly, strangely,
-dreadfully still. The marsh was full of thousands of fire-flies. Surely
-some fairy parliament was being convened that night. Altogether,
-Rainbow Valley was not a canny place just then.
-
-Faith looked fearfully up the valley to the old Bailey garden. Then, if
-anybody’s blood ever did freeze, Faith Meredith’s certainly froze at
-that moment. The eyes of Carl and Una followed her entranced gaze and
-chills began gallopading up and down their spines also. For there,
-under the big tamarack tree on the tumble-down, grass-grown dyke of the
-Bailey garden, was something white—shapelessly white in the gathering
-gloom. The three Merediths sat and gazed as if turned to stone.
-
-“It’s—it’s the—calf,” whispered Una at last.
-
-“It’s—too—big—for the calf,” whispered Faith. Her mouth and lips were
-so dry she could hardly articulate the words.
-
-Suddenly Carl gasped,
-
-“It’s coming here.”
-
-The girls gave one last agonized glance. Yes, it was creeping down over
-the dyke, as no calf ever did or could creep. Reason fled before
-sudden, over-mastering panic. For the moment every one of the trio was
-firmly convinced that what they saw was Henry Warren’s ghost. Carl
-sprang to his feet and bolted blindly. With a simultaneous shriek the
-girls followed him. Like mad creatures they tore up the hill, across
-the road and into the manse. They had left Aunt Martha sewing in the
-kitchen. She was not there. They rushed to the study. It was dark and
-tenantless. As with one impulse, they swung around and made for
-Ingleside—but not across Rainbow Valley. Down the hill and through the
-Glen street they flew on the wings of their wild terror, Carl in the
-lead, Una bringing up the rear. Nobody tried to stop them, though
-everybody who saw them wondered what fresh devilment those manse
-youngsters were up to now. But at the gate of Ingleside they ran into
-Rosemary West, who had just been in for a moment to return some
-borrowed books.
-
-She saw their ghastly faces and staring eyes. She realized that their
-poor little souls were wrung with some awful and real fear, whatever
-its cause. She caught Carl with one arm and Faith with the other. Una
-stumbled against her and held on desperately.
-
-“Children, dear, what has happened?” she said. “What has frightened
-you?”
-
-“Henry Warren’s ghost,” answered Carl, through his chattering teeth.
-
-“Henry—Warren’s—ghost!” said amazed Rosemary, who had never heard the
-story.
-
-“Yes,” sobbed Faith hysterically. “It’s there—on the Bailey dyke—we saw
-it—and it started to—chase us.”
-
-Rosemary herded the three distracted creatures to the Ingleside
-veranda. Gilbert and Anne were both away, having also gone to the House
-of Dreams, but Susan appeared in the doorway, gaunt and practical and
-unghostlike.
-
-“What is all this rumpus about?” she inquired.
-
-Again the children gasped out their awful tale, while Rosemary held
-them close to her and soothed them with wordless comfort.
-
-“Likely it was an owl,” said Susan, unstirred.
-
-An owl! The Meredith children never had any opinion of Susan’s
-intelligence after that!
-
-“It was bigger than a million owls,” said Carl, sobbing—oh, how ashamed
-Carl was of that sobbing in after days—“and it—it _grovelled_ just as
-Mary said—and it was crawling down over the dyke to get at us. Do owls
-_crawl?_”
-
-Rosemary looked at Susan.
-
-“They must have seen something to frighten them so,” she said.
-
-“I will go and see,” said Susan coolly. “Now, children, calm
-yourselves. Whatever you have seen, it was not a ghost. As for poor
-Henry Warren, I feel sure he would be only too glad to rest quietly in
-his peaceful grave once he got there. No fear of _him_ venturing back,
-and that you may tie to. If you can make them see reason, Miss West, I
-will find out the truth of the matter.”
-
-Susan departed for Rainbow Valley, valiantly grasping a pitchfork which
-she found leaning against the back fence where the doctor had been
-working in his little hay-field. A pitchfork might not be of much use
-against “ha’nts,” but it was a comforting sort of weapon. There was
-nothing to be seen in Rainbow Valley when Susan reached it. No white
-visitants appeared to be lurking in the shadowy, tangled old Bailey
-garden. Susan marched boldly through it and beyond it, and rapped with
-her pitchfork on the door of the little cottage on the other side,
-where Mrs. Stimson lived with her two daughters.
-
-Back at Ingleside Rosemary had succeeded in calming the children. They
-still sobbed a little from shock, but they were beginning to feel a
-lurking and salutary suspicion that they had made dreadful geese of
-themselves. This suspicion became a certainty when Susan finally
-returned.
-
-“I have found out what your ghost was,” she said, with a grim smile,
-sitting down on a rocker and fanning herself. “Old Mrs. Stimson has had
-a pair of factory cotton sheets bleaching in the Bailey garden for a
-week. She spread them on the dyke under the tamarack tree because the
-grass was clean and short there. This evening she went out to take them
-in. She had her knitting in her hands so she hung the sheets over her
-shoulders by way of carrying them. And then she must have dropped one
-of her needles and find it she could not and has not yet. But she went
-down on her knees and crept about to hunt for it, and she was at that
-when she heard awful yells down in the valley and saw the three
-children tearing up the hill past her. She thought they had been bit by
-something and it gave her poor old heart such a turn that she could not
-move or speak, but just crouched there till they disappeared. Then she
-staggered back home and they have been applying stimulants to her ever
-since, and her heart is in a terrible condition and she says she will
-not get over this fright all summer.”
-
-The Merediths sat, crimson with a shame that even Rosemary’s
-understanding sympathy could not remove. They sneaked off home, met
-Jerry at the manse gate and made remorseful confession. A session of
-the Good-Conduct Club was arranged for next morning.
-
-“Wasn’t Miss West sweet to us to-night?” whispered Faith in bed.
-
-“Yes,” admitted Una. “It is such a pity it changes people so much to be
-made stepmothers.”
-
-“I don’t believe it does,” said Faith loyally.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXI.
-CARL DOES PENANCE
-
-
-“I don’t see why we should be punished at all,” said Faith, rather
-sulkily. “We didn’t do anything wrong. We couldn’t help being
-frightened. And it won’t do father any harm. It was just an accident.”
-
-“You were cowards,” said Jerry with judicial scorn, “and you gave way
-to your cowardice. That is why you should be punished. Everybody will
-laugh at you about this, and that is a disgrace to the family.”
-
-“If you knew how awful the whole thing was,” said Faith with a shiver,
-“you would think we had been punished enough already. I wouldn’t go
-through it again for anything in the whole world.”
-
-“I believe you’d have run yourself if you’d been there,” muttered Carl.
-
-“From an old woman in a cotton sheet,” mocked Jerry. “Ho, ho, ho!”
-
-“It didn’t look a bit like an old woman,” cried Faith. “It was just a
-great, big, white thing crawling about in the grass just as Mary Vance
-said Henry Warren did. It’s all very fine for you to laugh, Jerry
-Meredith, but you’d have laughed on the other side of your mouth if
-you’d been there. And how are we to be punished? _I_ don’t think it’s
-fair, but let’s know what we have to do, Judge Meredith!”
-
-“The way I look at it,” said Jerry, frowning, “is that Carl was the
-most to blame. He bolted first, as I understand it. Besides, he was a
-boy, so he should have stood his ground to protect you girls, whatever
-the danger was. You know that, Carl, don’t you?”
-
-“I s’pose so,” growled Carl shamefacedly.
-
-“Very well. This is to be your punishment. To-night you’ll sit on Mr.
-Hezekiah Pollock’s tombstone in the graveyard alone, until twelve
-o’clock.”
-
-Carl gave a little shudder. The graveyard was not so very far from the
-old Bailey garden. It would be a trying ordeal, but Carl was anxious to
-wipe out his disgrace and prove that he was not a coward after all.
-
-“All right,” he said sturdily. “But how’ll I know when it is twelve?”
-
-“The study windows are open and you’ll hear the clock striking. And
-mind you that you are not to budge out of that graveyard until the last
-stroke. As for you girls, you’ve got to go without jam at supper for a
-week.”
-
-Faith and Una looked rather blank. They were inclined to think that
-even Carl’s comparatively short though sharp agony was lighter
-punishment than this long drawn-out ordeal. A whole week of soggy bread
-without the saving grace of jam! But no shirking was permitted in the
-club. The girls accepted their lot with such philosophy as they could
-summon up.
-
-That night they all went to bed at nine, except Carl, who was already
-keeping vigil on the tombstone. Una slipped in to bid him good night.
-Her tender heart was wrung with sympathy.
-
-“Oh, Carl, are you much scared?” she whispered.
-
-“Not a bit,” said Carl airily.
-
-“I won’t sleep a wink till after twelve,” said Una. “If you get
-lonesome just look up at our window and remember that I’m inside,
-awake, and thinking about you. That will be a little company, won’t
-it?”
-
-“I’ll be all right. Don’t you worry about me,” said Carl.
-
-But in spite of his dauntless words Carl was a pretty lonely boy when
-the lights went out in the manse. He had hoped his father would be in
-the study as he so often was. He would not feel alone then. But that
-night Mr. Meredith had been summoned to the fishing village at the
-harbour mouth to see a dying man. He would not likely be back until
-after midnight. Carl must dree his weird alone.
-
-A Glen man went past carrying a lantern. The mysterious shadows caused
-by the lantern-light went hurtling madly over the graveyard like a
-dance of demons or witches. Then they passed and darkness fell again.
-One by one the lights in the Glen went out. It was a very dark night,
-with a cloudy sky, and a raw east wind that was cold in spite of the
-calendar. Far away on the horizon was the low dim lustre of the
-Charlottetown lights. The wind wailed and sighed in the old fir-trees.
-Mr. Alec Davis’ tall monument gleamed whitely through the gloom. The
-willow beside it tossed long, writhing arms spectrally. At times, the
-gyrations of its boughs made it seem as if the monument were moving,
-too.
-
-Carl curled himself up on the tombstone with his legs tucked under him.
-It wasn’t precisely pleasant to hang them over the edge of the stone.
-Just suppose—just suppose—bony hands should reach up out of Mr.
-Pollock’s grave under it and clutch him by the ankles. That had been
-one of Mary Vance’s cheerful speculations one time when they had all
-been sitting there. It returned to haunt Carl now. He didn’t believe
-those things; he didn’t even really believe in Henry Warren’s ghost. As
-for Mr. Pollock, he had been dead sixty years, so it wasn’t likely he
-cared who sat on his tombstone now. But there is something very strange
-and terrible in being awake when all the rest of the world is asleep.
-You are alone then with nothing but your own feeble personality to pit
-against the mighty principalities and powers of darkness. Carl was only
-ten and the dead were all around him—and he wished, oh, he wished that
-the clock would strike twelve. Would it _never_ strike twelve? Surely
-Aunt Martha must have forgotten to wind it.
-
-And then it struck eleven—only eleven! He must stay yet another hour in
-that grim place. If only there were a few friendly stars to be seen!
-The darkness was so thick it seemed to press against his face. There
-was a sound as of stealthy passing footsteps all over the graveyard.
-Carl shivered, partly with prickling terror, partly with real cold.
-
-Then it began to rain—a chill, penetrating drizzle. Carl’s thin little
-cotton blouse and shirt were soon wet through. He felt chilled to the
-bone. He forgot mental terrors in his physical discomfort. But he must
-stay there till twelve—he was punishing himself and he was on his
-honour. Nothing had been said about rain—but it did not make any
-difference. When the study clock finally struck twelve a drenched
-little figure crept stiffly down off Mr. Pollock’s tombstone, made its
-way into the manse and upstairs to bed. Carl’s teeth were chattering.
-He thought he would never get warm again.
-
-He was warm enough when morning came. Jerry gave one startled look at
-his crimson face and then rushed to call his father. Mr. Meredith came
-hurriedly, his own face ivory white from the pallor of his long night
-vigil by a death bed. He had not got home until daylight. He bent over
-his little lad anxiously.
-
-“Carl, are you sick?” he said.
-
-“That—tombstone—over here,” said Carl, “it’s—moving—about—it’s
-coming—at—me—keep it—away—please.”
-
-Mr. Meredith rushed to the telephone. In ten minutes Dr. Blythe was at
-the manse. Half an hour later a wire was sent to town for a trained
-nurse, and all the Glen knew that Carl Meredith was very ill with
-pneumonia and that Dr. Blythe had been seen to shake his head.
-
-Gilbert shook his head more than once in the fortnight that followed.
-Carl developed double pneumonia. There was one night when Mr. Meredith
-paced his study floor, and Faith and Una huddled in their bedroom and
-cried, and Jerry, wild with remorse, refused to budge from the floor of
-the hall outside Carl’s door. Dr. Blythe and the nurse never left the
-bedside. They fought death gallantly until the red dawn and they won
-the victory. Carl rallied and passed the crisis in safety. The news was
-phoned about the waiting Glen and people found out how much they really
-loved their minister and his children.
-
-“I haven’t had one decent night’s sleep since I heard the child was
-sick,” Miss Cornelia told Anne, “and Mary Vance has cried until those
-queer eyes of hers looked like burnt holes in a blanket. Is it true
-that Carl got pneumonia from straying out in the graveyard that wet
-night for a dare?”
-
-“No. He was staying there to punish himself for cowardice in that
-affair of the Warren ghost. It seems they have a club for bringing
-themselves up, and they punish themselves when they do wrong. Jerry
-told Mr. Meredith all about it.”
-
-“The poor little souls,” said Miss Cornelia.
-
-Carl got better rapidly, for the congregation took enough nourishing
-things to the manse to furnish forth a hospital. Norman Douglas drove
-up every evening with a dozen fresh eggs and a jar of Jersey cream.
-Sometimes he stayed an hour and bellowed arguments on predestination
-with Mr. Meredith in the study; oftener he drove on up to the hill that
-overlooked the Glen.
-
-When Carl was able to go again to Rainbow Valley they had a special
-feast in his honour and the doctor came down and helped them with the
-fireworks. Mary Vance was there, too, but she did not tell any ghost
-stories. Miss Cornelia had given her a talking on that subject which
-Mary would not forget in a hurry.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXII.
-TWO STUBBORN PEOPLE
-
-
-Rosemary West, on her way home from a music lesson at Ingleside, turned
-aside to the hidden spring in Rainbow Valley. She had not been there
-all summer; the beautiful little spot had no longer any allurement for
-her. The spirit of her young lover never came to the tryst now; and the
-memories connected with John Meredith were too painful and poignant.
-But she had happened to glance backward up the valley and had seen
-Norman Douglas vaulting as airily as a stripling over the old stone
-dyke of the Bailey garden and thought he was on his way up the hill. If
-he overtook her she would have to walk home with him and she was not
-going to do that. So she slipped at once behind the maples of the
-spring, hoping he had not seen her and would pass on.
-
-But Norman had seen her and, what was more, was in pursuit of her. He
-had been wanting for some time to have talk with Rosemary, but she had
-always, so it seemed, avoided him. Rosemary had never, at any time,
-liked Norman Douglas very well. His bluster, his temper, his noisy
-hilarity, had always antagonized her. Long ago she had often wondered
-how Ellen could possibly be attracted to him. Norman Douglas was
-perfectly aware of her dislike and he chuckled over it. It never
-worried Norman if people did not like him. It did not even make him
-dislike them in return, for he took it as a kind of extorted
-compliment. He thought Rosemary a fine girl, and he meant to be an
-excellent, generous brother-in-law to her. But before he could be her
-brother-in-law he had to have a talk with her, so, having seen her
-leaving Ingleside as he stood in the doorway of a Glen store, he had
-straightway plunged into the valley to overtake her.
-
-Rosemary was sitting pensively on the maple seat where John Meredith
-had been sitting on that evening nearly a year ago. The tiny spring
-shimmered and dimpled under its fringe of ferns. Ruby-red gleams of
-sunset fell through the arching boughs. A tall clump of perfect asters
-grew at her side. The little spot was as dreamy and witching and
-evasive as any retreat of fairies and dryads in ancient forests. Into
-it Norman Douglas bounced, scattering and annihilating its charm in a
-moment. His personality seemed to swallow the place up. There was
-simply nothing there but Norman Douglas, big, red-bearded, complacent.
-
-“Good evening,” said Rosemary coldly, standing up.
-
-“‘Evening, girl. Sit down again—sit down again. I want to have a talk
-with you. Bless the girl, what’s she looking at me like that for? I
-don’t want to eat you—I’ve had my supper. Sit down and be civil.”
-
-“I can hear what you have to say quite as well here,” said Rosemary.
-
-“So you can, girl, if you use your ears. I only wanted you to be
-comfortable. You look so durned uncomfortable, standing there. Well,
-_I’ll_ sit anyway.”
-
-Norman accordingly sat down in the very place John Meredith had once
-sat. The contrast was so ludicrous that Rosemary was afraid she would
-go off into a peal of hysterical laughter over it. Norman cast his hat
-aside, placed his huge, red hands on his knees, and looked up at her
-with his eyes a-twinkle.
-
-“Come, girl, don’t be so stiff,” he said, ingratiatingly. When he liked
-he could be very ingratiating. “Let’s have a reasonable, sensible,
-friendly chat. There’s something I want to ask you. Ellen says she
-won’t, so it’s up to me to do it.”
-
-Rosemary looked down at the spring, which seemed to have shrunk to the
-size of a dewdrop. Norman gazed at her in despair.
-
-“Durn it all, you might help a fellow out a bit,” he burst forth.
-
-“What is it you want me to help you say?” asked Rosemary scornfully.
-
-“You know as well as I do, girl. Don’t be putting on your tragedy airs.
-No wonder Ellen was scared to ask you. Look here, girl, Ellen and I
-want to marry each other. That’s plain English, isn’t it? Got that? And
-Ellen says she can’t unless you give her back some tom-fool promise she
-made. Come now, will you do it? Will you do it?”
-
-“Yes,” said Rosemary.
-
-Norman bounced up and seized her reluctant hand.
-
-“Good! I knew you would—I told Ellen you would. I knew it would only
-take a minute. Now, girl, you go home and tell Ellen, and we’ll have a
-wedding in a fortnight and you’ll come and live with us. We shan’t
-leave you to roost on that hill-top like a lonely crow—don’t you worry.
-I know you hate me, but, Lord, it’ll be great fun living with some one
-that hates me. Life’ll have some spice in it after this. Ellen will
-roast me and you’ll freeze me. I won’t have a dull moment.”
-
-Rosemary did not condescend to tell him that nothing would ever induce
-her to live in his house. She let him go striding back to the Glen,
-oozing delight and complacency, and she walked slowly up the hill home.
-She had known this was coming ever since she had returned from
-Kingsport, and found Norman Douglas established as a frequent evening
-caller. His name was never mentioned between her and Ellen, but the
-very avoidance of it was significant. It was not in Rosemary’s nature
-to feel bitter, or she would have felt very bitter. She was coldly
-civil to Norman, and she made no difference in any way with Ellen. But
-Ellen had not found much comfort in her second courtship.
-
-She was in the garden, attended by St. George, when Rosemary came home.
-The two sisters met in the dahlia walk. St. George sat down on the
-gravel walk between them and folded his glossy black tail gracefully
-around his white paws, with all the indifference of a well-fed,
-well-bred, well-groomed cat.
-
-“Did you ever see such dahlias?” demanded Ellen proudly. “They are just
-the finest we’ve ever had.”
-
-Rosemary had never cared for dahlias. Their presence in the garden was
-her concession to Ellen’s taste. She noticed one huge mottled one of
-crimson and yellow that lorded it over all the others.
-
-“That dahlia,” she said, pointing to it, “is exactly like Norman
-Douglas. It might easily be his twin brother.”
-
-Ellen’s dark-browed face flushed. She admired the dahlia in question,
-but she knew Rosemary did not, and that no compliment was intended. But
-she dared not resent Rosemary’s speech—poor Ellen dared not resent
-anything just then. And it was the first time Rosemary had ever
-mentioned Norman’s name to her. She felt that this portended something.
-
-“I met Norman Douglas in the valley,” said Rosemary, looking straight
-at her sister, “and he told me you and he wanted to be married—if I
-would give you permission.”
-
-“Yes? What did you say?” asked Ellen, trying to speak naturally and
-off-handedly, and failing completely. She could not meet Rosemary’s
-eyes. She looked down at St. George’s sleek back and felt horribly
-afraid. Rosemary had either said she would or she wouldn’t. If she
-would Ellen would feel so ashamed and remorseful that she would be a
-very uncomfortable bride-elect; and if she wouldn’t—well, Ellen had
-once learned to live without Norman Douglas, but she had forgotten the
-lesson and felt that she could never learn it again.
-
-“I said that as far as I was concerned you were at full liberty to
-marry each other as soon as you liked,” said Rosemary.
-
-“Thank you,” said Ellen, still looking at St. George.
-
-Rosemary’s face softened.
-
-“I hope you’ll be happy, Ellen,” she said gently.
-
-“Oh, Rosemary,” Ellen looked up in distress, “I’m so ashamed—I don’t
-deserve it—after all I said to you—”
-
-“We won’t speak about that,” said Rosemary hurriedly and decidedly.
-
-“But—but,” persisted Ellen, “you are free now, too—and it’s not too
-late—John Meredith—”
-
-“Ellen West!” Rosemary had a little spark of temper under all her
-sweetness and it flashed forth now in her blue eyes. “Have you quite
-lost your senses in _every_ respect? Do you suppose for an instant that
-_I_ am going to go to John Meredith and say meekly, ‘Please, sir, I’ve
-changed my mind and please, sir, I hope you haven’t changed yours.’ Is
-that what you want me to do?”
-
-“No—no—but a little—encouragement—he would come back—”
-
-“Never. He despises me—and rightly. No more of this, Ellen. I bear you
-no grudge—marry whom you like. But no meddling in my affairs.”
-
-“Then you must come and live with me,” said Ellen. “I shall not leave
-you here alone.”
-
-“Do you really think that I would go and live in Norman Douglas’s
-house?”
-
-“Why not?” cried Ellen, half angrily, despite her humiliation.
-
-Rosemary began to laugh.
-
-“Ellen, I thought you had a sense of humour. Can you see me doing it?”
-
-“I don’t see why you wouldn’t. His house is big enough—you’d have your
-share of it to yourself—he wouldn’t interfere.”
-
-“Ellen, the thing is not to be thought of. Don’t bring this up again.”
-
-“Then,” said Ellen coldly, and determinedly, “I shall not marry him. I
-shall not leave you here alone. That is all there is to be said about
-it.”
-
-“Nonsense, Ellen.”
-
-“It is not nonsense. It is my firm decision. It would be absurd for you
-to think of living here by yourself—a mile from any other house. If you
-won’t come with me I’ll stay with you. Now, we won’t argue the matter,
-so don’t try.”
-
-“I shall leave Norman to do the arguing,” said Rosemary.
-
-“_I’ll_ deal with Norman. I can manage _him_. I would never have asked
-you to give me back my promise—never—but I had to tell Norman why I
-couldn’t marry him and he said _he_ would ask you. I couldn’t prevent
-him. You need not suppose you are the only person in the world who
-possesses self-respect. I never dreamed of marrying and leaving you
-here alone. And you’ll find I can be as determined as yourself.”
-
-Rosemary turned away and went into the house, with a shrug of her
-shoulders. Ellen looked down at St. George, who had never blinked an
-eyelash or stirred a whisker during the whole interview.
-
-“St. George, this world would be a dull place without the men, I’ll
-admit, but I’m almost tempted to wish there wasn’t one of ‘em in it.
-Look at the trouble and bother they’ve made right here, George—torn our
-happy old life completely up by the roots, Saint. John Meredith began
-it and Norman Douglas has finished it. And now both of them have to go
-into limbo. Norman is the only man I ever met who agrees with me that
-the Kaiser of Germany is the most dangerous creature alive on this
-earth—and I can’t marry this sensible person because my sister is
-stubborn and I’m stubborner. Mark my words, St. George, the minister
-would come back if she raised her little finger. But she won’t
-George—she’ll never do it—she won’t even crook it—and I don’t dare
-meddle, Saint. I won’t sulk, George; Rosemary didn’t sulk, so I’m
-determined I won’t either, Saint; Norman will tear up the turf, but the
-long and short of it is, St. George, that all of us old fools must just
-stop thinking of marrying. Well, well, ‘despair is a free man, hope is
-a slave,’ Saint. So now come into the house, George, and I’ll solace
-you with a saucerful of cream. Then there will be one happy and
-contented creature on this hill at least.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIII.
-CARL IS—NOT—WHIPPED
-
-
-“There is something I think I ought to tell you,” said Mary Vance
-mysteriously.
-
-She and Faith and Una were walking arm in arm through the village,
-having foregathered at Mr. Flagg’s store. Una and Faith exchanged looks
-which said, “_Now_ something disagreeable is coming.” When Mary Vance
-thought she ought to tell them things there was seldom much pleasure in
-the hearing. They often wondered why they kept on liking Mary Vance—for
-like her they did, in spite of everything. To be sure, she was
-generally a stimulating and agreeable companion. If only she would not
-have those convictions that it was her duty to tell them things!
-
-“Do you know that Rosemary West won’t marry your pa because she thinks
-you are such a wild lot? She’s afraid she couldn’t bring you up right
-and so she turned him down.”
-
-Una’s heart thrilled with secret exultation. She was very glad to hear
-that Miss West would not marry her father. But Faith was rather
-disappointed.
-
-“How do you know?” she asked.
-
-“Oh, everybody’s saying it. I heard Mrs. Elliott talking it over with
-Mrs. Doctor. They thought I was too far away to hear, but I’ve got ears
-like a cat’s. Mrs. Elliott said she hadn’t a doubt that Rosemary was
-afraid to try stepmothering you because you’d got such a reputation.
-Your pa never goes up the hill now. Neither does Norman Douglas. Folks
-say Ellen has jilted him just to get square with him for jilting her
-ages ago. But Norman is going about declaring he’ll get her yet. And I
-think you ought to know you’ve spoiled your pa’s match and _I_ think
-it’s a pity, for he’s bound to marry somebody before long, and Rosemary
-West would have been the best wife _I_ know of for him.”
-
-“You told me all stepmothers were cruel and wicked,” said Una.
-
-“Oh—well,” said Mary rather confusedly, “they’re mostly awful cranky, I
-know. But Rosemary West couldn’t be very mean to any one. I tell you if
-your pa turns round and marries Emmeline Drew you’ll wish you’d behaved
-yourselves better and not frightened Rosemary out of it. It’s awful
-that you’ve got such a reputation that no decent woman’ll marry your pa
-on account of you. Of course, _I_ know that half the yarns that are
-told about you ain’t true. But give a dog a bad name. Why, some folks
-are saying that it was Jerry and Carl that threw the stones through
-Mrs. Stimson’s window the other night when it was really them two Boyd
-boys. But I’m afraid it was Carl that put the eel in old Mrs. Carr’s
-buggy, though I said at first I wouldn’t believe it until I’d better
-proof than old Kitty Alec’s word. I told Mrs. Elliott so right to her
-face.”
-
-“What did Carl do?” cried Faith.
-
-“Well, they say—now, mind, I’m only telling you what people say—so
-there’s no use in your blaming me for it—that Carl and a lot of other
-boys were fishing eels over the bridge one evening last week. Mrs. Carr
-drove past in that old rattletrap buggy of hers with the open back. And
-Carl he just up and threw a big eel into the back. When poor old Mrs.
-Carr was driving up the hill by Ingleside that eel came squirming out
-between her feet. She thought it was a snake and she just give one
-awful screech and stood up and jumped clean over the wheels. The horse
-bolted, but it went home and no damage was done. But Mrs. Carr jarred
-her legs most terrible, and has had nervous spasms ever since whenever
-she thinks of the eel. Say, it was a rotten trick to play on the poor
-old soul. She’s a decent body, if she is as queer as Dick’s hat band.”
-
-Faith and Una looked at each other again. This was a matter for the
-Good-Conduct Club. They would not talk it over with Mary.
-
-“There goes your pa,” said Mary as Mr. Meredith passed them, “and never
-seeing us no more’n if we weren’t here. Well, I’m getting so’s I don’t
-mind it. But there are folks who do.”
-
-Mr. Meredith had not seen them, but he was not walking along in his
-usual dreamy and abstracted fashion. He strode up the hill in agitation
-and distress. Mrs. Alec Davis had just told him the story of Carl and
-the eel. She had been very indignant about it. Old Mrs. Carr was her
-third cousin. Mr. Meredith was more than indignant. He was hurt and
-shocked. He had not thought Carl would do anything like this. He was
-not inclined to be hard on pranks of heedlessness or forgetfulness, but
-_this_ was different. _This_ had a nasty tang in it. When he reached
-home he found Carl on the lawn, patiently studying the habits and
-customs of a colony of wasps. Calling him into the study Mr. Meredith
-confronted him, with a sterner face than any of his children had ever
-seen before, and asked him if the story were true.
-
-“Yes,” said Carl, flushing, but meeting his father’s eyes bravely.
-
-Mr. Meredith groaned. He had hoped that there had been at least
-exaggeration.
-
-“Tell me the whole matter,” he said.
-
-“The boys were fishing for eels over the bridge,” said Carl. “Link Drew
-had caught a whopper—I mean an awful big one—the biggest eel I ever
-saw. He caught it right at the start and it had been lying in his
-basket a long time, still as still. I thought it was dead, honest I
-did. Then old Mrs. Carr drove over the bridge and she called us all
-young varmints and told us to go home. And we hadn’t said a word to
-her, father, truly. So when she drove back again, after going to the
-store, the boys dared me to put Link’s eel in her buggy. I thought it
-was so dead it couldn’t hurt her and I threw it in. Then the eel came
-to life on the hill and we heard her scream and saw her jump out. I was
-awful sorry. That’s all, father.”
-
-It was not quite as bad as Mr. Meredith had feared, but it was quite
-bad enough. “I must punish you, Carl,” he said sorrowfully.
-
-“Yes, I know, father.”
-
-“I—I must whip you.”
-
-Carl winced. He had never been whipped. Then, seeing how badly his
-father felt, he said cheerfully,
-
-“All right, father.”
-
-Mr. Meredith misunderstood his cheerfulness and thought him insensible.
-He told Carl to come to the study after supper, and when the boy had
-gone out he flung himself into his chair and groaned again. He dreaded
-the evening sevenfold more than Carl did. The poor minister did not
-even know what he should whip his boy with. What was used to whip boys?
-Rods? Canes? No, that would be too brutal. A timber switch, then? And
-he, John Meredith, must hie him to the woods and cut one. It was an
-abominable thought. Then a picture presented itself unbidden to his
-mind. He saw Mrs. Carr’s wizened, nut-cracker little face at the
-appearance of that reviving eel—he saw her sailing witch-like over the
-buggy wheels. Before he could prevent himself the minister laughed.
-Then he was angry with himself and angrier still with Carl. He would
-get that switch at once—and it must not be too limber, after all.
-
-Carl was talking the matter over in the graveyard with Faith and Una,
-who had just come home. They were horrified at the idea of his being
-whipped—and by father, who had never done such a thing! But they agreed
-soberly that it was just.
-
-“You know it was a dreadful thing to do,” sighed Faith. “And you never
-owned up in the club.”
-
-“I forgot,” said Carl. “Besides, I didn’t think any harm came of it. I
-didn’t know she jarred her legs. But I’m to be whipped and that will
-make things square.”
-
-“Will it hurt—very much?” said Una, slipping her hand into Carl’s.
-
-“Oh, not so much, I guess,” said Carl gamely. “Anyhow, I’m not going to
-cry, no matter how much it hurts. It would make father feel so bad, if
-I did. He’s all cut up now. I wish I could whip myself hard enough and
-save him doing it.”
-
-After supper, at which Carl had eaten little and Mr. Meredith nothing
-at all, both went silently into the study. The switch lay on the table.
-Mr. Meredith had had a bad time getting a switch to suit him. He cut
-one, then felt it was too slender. Carl had done a really indefensible
-thing. Then he cut another—it was far too thick. After all, Carl had
-thought the eel was dead. The third one suited him better; but as he
-picked it up from the table it seemed very thick and heavy—more like a
-stick than a switch.
-
-“Hold out your hand,” he said to Carl.
-
-Carl threw back his head and held out his hand unflinchingly. But he
-was not very old and he could not quite keep a little fear out of his
-eyes. Mr. Meredith looked down into those eyes—why, they were Cecilia’s
-eyes—her very eyes—and in them was the selfsame expression he had once
-seen in Cecilia’s eyes when she had come to him to tell him something
-she had been a little afraid to tell him. Here were her eyes in Carl’s
-little, white face—and six weeks ago he had thought, through one
-endless, terrible night, that his little lad was dying.
-
-John Meredith threw down the switch.
-
-“Go,” he said, “I cannot whip you.”
-
-Carl fled to the graveyard, feeling that the look on his father’s face
-was worse than any whipping.
-
-“Is it over so soon?” asked Faith. She and Una had been holding hands
-and setting teeth on the Pollock tombstone.
-
-“He—he didn’t whip me at all,” said Carl with a sob, “and—I wish he
-had—and he’s in there, feeling just awful.”
-
-Una slipped away. Her heart yearned to comfort her father. As
-noiselessly as a little gray mouse she opened the study door and crept
-in. The room was dark with twilight. Her father was sitting at his
-desk. His back was towards her—his head was in his hands. He was
-talking to himself—broken, anguished words—but Una heard—heard and
-understood, with the sudden illumination that comes to sensitive,
-unmothered children. As silently as she had come in she slipped out and
-closed the door. John Meredith went on talking out his pain in what he
-deemed his undisturbed solitude.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIV.
-UNA VISITS THE HILL
-
-
-Una went upstairs. Carl and Faith were already on their way through the
-early moonlight to Rainbow Valley, having heard therefrom the elfin
-lilt of Jerry’s jews-harp and having guessed that the Blythes were
-there and fun afoot. Una had no wish to go. She sought her own room
-first where she sat down on her bed and had a little cry. She did not
-want anybody to come in her dear mother’s place. She did not want a
-stepmother who would hate her and make her father hate her. But father
-was so desperately unhappy—and if she could do any anything to make him
-happier she _must_ do it. There was only one thing she could do—and she
-had known the moment she had left the study that she must do it. But it
-was a very hard thing to do.
-
-After Una cried her heart out she wiped her eyes and went to the spare
-room. It was dark and rather musty, for the blind had not been drawn up
-nor the window opened for a long time. Aunt Martha was no fresh-air
-fiend. But as nobody ever thought of shutting a door in the manse this
-did not matter so much, save when some unfortunate minister came to
-stay all night and was compelled to breathe the spare room atmosphere.
-
-There was a closet in the spare room and far back in the closet a gray
-silk dress was hanging. Una went into the closet and shut the door,
-went down on her knees and pressed her face against the soft silken
-folds. It had been her mother’s wedding-dress. It was still full of a
-sweet, faint, haunting perfume, like lingering love. Una always felt
-very close to her mother there—as if she were kneeling at her feet with
-head in her lap. She went there once in a long while when life was
-_too_ hard.
-
-“Mother,” she whispered to the gray silk gown, “_I_ will never forget
-you, mother, and I’ll _always_ love you best. But I have to do it,
-mother, because father is so very unhappy. I know you wouldn’t want him
-to be unhappy. And I will be very good to her, mother, and try to love
-her, even if she is like Mary Vance said stepmothers always were.”
-
-Una carried some fine, spiritual strength away from her secret shrine.
-She slept peacefully that night with the tear stains still glistening
-on her sweet, serious, little face.
-
-The next afternoon she put on her best dress and hat. They were shabby
-enough. Every other little girl in the Glen had new clothes that summer
-except Faith and Una. Mary Vance had a lovely dress of white
-embroidered lawn, with scarlet silk sash and shoulder bows. But to-day
-Una did not mind her shabbiness. She only wanted to be very neat. She
-washed her face carefully. She brushed her black hair until it was as
-smooth as satin. She tied her shoelaces carefully, having first sewed
-up two runs in her one pair of good stockings. She would have liked to
-black her shoes, but she could not find any blacking. Finally, she
-slipped away from the manse, down through Rainbow Valley, up through
-the whispering woods, and out to the road that ran past the house on
-the hill. It was quite a long walk and Una was tired and warm when she
-got there.
-
-She saw Rosemary West sitting under a tree in the garden and stole past
-the dahlia beds to her. Rosemary had a book in her lap, but she was
-gazing afar across the harbour and her thoughts were sorrowful enough.
-Life had not been pleasant lately in the house on the hill. Ellen had
-not sulked—Ellen had been a brick. But things can be felt that are
-never said and at times the silence between the two women was
-intolerably eloquent. All the many familiar things that had once made
-life sweet had a flavour of bitterness now. Norman Douglas made
-periodical irruptions also, bullying and coaxing Ellen by turns. It
-would end, Rosemary believed, by his dragging Ellen off with him some
-day, and Rosemary felt that she would be almost glad when it happened.
-Existence would be horribly lonely then, but it would be no longer
-charged with dynamite.
-
-She was roused from her unpleasant reverie by a timid little touch on
-her shoulder. Turning, she saw Una Meredith.
-
-“Why, Una, dear, did you walk up here in all this heat?”
-
-“Yes,” said Una, “I came to—I came to—”
-
-But she found it very hard to say what she had come to do. Her voice
-failed—her eyes filled with tears.
-
-“Why, Una, little girl, what is the trouble? Don’t be afraid to tell
-me.”
-
-Rosemary put her arm around the thin little form and drew the child
-close to her. Her eyes were very beautiful—her touch so tender that Una
-found courage.
-
-“I came—to ask you—to marry father,” she gasped.
-
-Rosemary was silent for a moment from sheer dumbfounderment. She stared
-at Una blankly.
-
-“Oh, don’t be angry, please, dear Miss West,” said Una, pleadingly.
-“You see, everybody is saying that you wouldn’t marry father because we
-are so bad. He is _very_ unhappy about it. So I thought I would come
-and tell you that we are never bad _on purpose_. And if you will only
-marry father we will all try to be good and do just what you tell us.
-I’m _sure_ you won’t have any trouble with us. _Please_, Miss West.”
-
-Rosemary had been thinking rapidly. Gossiping surmise, she saw, had put
-this mistaken idea into Una’s mind. She must be perfectly frank and
-sincere with the child.
-
-“Una, dear,” she said softly. “It isn’t because of you poor little
-souls that I cannot be your father’s wife. I never thought of such a
-thing. You are not bad—I never supposed you were. There—there was
-another reason altogether, Una.”
-
-“Don’t you like father?” asked Una, lifting reproachful eyes. “Oh, Miss
-West, you don’t know how nice he is. I’m sure he’d make you a _good_
-husband.”
-
-Even in the midst of her perplexity and distress Rosemary couldn’t help
-a twisted, little smile.
-
-“Oh, don’t laugh, Miss West,” Una cried passionately. “Father feels
-_dreadful_ about it.”
-
-“I think you’re mistaken, dear,” said Rosemary.
-
-“I’m not. I’m _sure_ I’m not. Oh, Miss West, father was going to whip
-Carl yesterday—Carl had been naughty—and father couldn’t do it because
-you see he had no _practice_ in whipping. So when Carl came out and
-told us father felt so bad, I slipped into the study to see if I could
-help him—he _likes_ me to comfort him, Miss West—and he didn’t hear me
-come in and I heard what he was saying. I’ll tell you, Miss West, if
-you’ll let me whisper it in your ear.”
-
-Una whispered earnestly. Rosemary’s face turned crimson. So John
-Meredith still cared. _He_ hadn’t changed his mind. And he must care
-intensely if he had said that—care more than she had ever supposed he
-did. She sat still for a moment, stroking Una’s hair. Then she said,
-
-“Will you take a little letter from me to your father, Una?”
-
-“Oh, are you going to marry him, Miss West?” asked Una eagerly.
-
-“Perhaps—if he really wants me to,” said Rosemary, blushing again.
-
-“I’m glad—I’m glad,” said Una bravely. Then she looked up, with
-quivering lips. “Oh, Miss West, you won’t turn father against us—you
-won’t make him hate us, will you?” she said beseechingly.
-
-Rosemary stared again.
-
-“Una Meredith! Do you think I would do such a thing? Whatever put such
-an idea into your head?”
-
-“Mary Vance said stepmothers were all like that—and that they all hated
-their stepchildren and made their father hate them—she said they just
-couldn’t help it—just being stepmothers made them like that”—
-
-“You poor child! And yet you came up here and asked me to marry your
-father because you wanted to make him happy? You’re a darling—a
-heroine—as Ellen would say, you’re a brick. Now listen to me, very
-closely, dearest. Mary Vance is a silly little girl who doesn’t know
-very much and she is dreadfully mistaken about some things. I would
-never dream of trying to turn your father against you. I would love you
-all dearly. I don’t want to take your own mother’s place—she must
-always have that in your hearts. But neither have I any intention of
-being a stepmother. I want to be your friend and helper and _chum_.
-Don’t you think that would be nice, Una—if you and Faith and Carl and
-Jerry could just think of me as a good jolly chum—a big older sister?”
-
-“Oh, it would be lovely,” cried Una, with a transfigured face. She
-flung her arms impulsively round Rosemary’s neck. She was so happy that
-she felt as if she could fly on wings.
-
-“Do the others—do Faith and the boys have the same idea you had about
-stepmothers?”
-
-“No. Faith never believed Mary Vance. I was dreadfully foolish to
-believe her, either. Faith loves you already—she has loved you ever
-since poor Adam was eaten. And Jerry and Carl will think it is jolly.
-Oh, Miss West, when you come to live with us, will you—could you—teach
-me to cook—a little—and sew—and—and—and do things? I don’t know
-anything. I won’t be much trouble—I’ll try to learn fast.”
-
-“Darling, I’ll teach you and help you all I can. Now, you won’t say a
-word to anybody about this, will you—not even to Faith, until your
-father himself tells you you may? And you’ll stay and have tea with
-me?”
-
-“Oh, thank you—but—but—I think I’d rather go right back and take the
-letter to father,” faltered Una. “You see, he’ll be glad that much
-_sooner_, Miss West.”
-
-“I see,” said Rosemary. She went to the house, wrote a note and gave it
-to Una. When that small damsel had run off, a palpitating bundle of
-happiness, Rosemary went to Ellen, who was shelling peas on the back
-porch.
-
-“Ellen,” she said, “Una Meredith has just been here to ask me to marry
-her father.”
-
-Ellen looked up and read her sister’s face.
-
-“And you’re going to?” she said.
-
-“It’s quite likely.”
-
-Ellen went on shelling peas for a few minutes. Then she suddenly put
-her hands up to her own face. There were tears in her black-browed
-eyes.
-
-“I—I hope we’ll all be happy,” she said between a sob and a laugh.
-
-Down at the manse Una Meredith, warm, rosy, triumphant, marched boldly
-into her father’s study and laid a letter on the desk before him. His
-pale face flushed as he saw the clear, fine handwriting he knew so
-well. He opened the letter. It was very short—but he shed twenty years
-as he read it. Rosemary asked him if he could meet her that evening at
-sunset by the spring in Rainbow Valley.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXV.
-“LET THE PIPER COME”
-
-
-“And so,” said Miss Cornelia, “the double wedding is to be sometime
-about the middle of this month.”
-
-There was a faint chill in the air of the early September evening, so
-Anne had lighted her ever ready fire of driftwood in the big living
-room, and she and Miss Cornelia basked in its fairy flicker.
-
-“It is so delightful—especially in regard to Mr. Meredith and
-Rosemary,” said Anne. “I’m as happy in the thought of it, as I was when
-I was getting married myself. I felt exactly like a bride again last
-evening when I was up on the hill seeing Rosemary’s trousseau.”
-
-“They tell me her things are fine enough for a princess,” said Susan
-from a shadowy corner where she was cuddling her brown boy. “I have
-been invited up to see them also and I intend to go some evening. I
-understand that Rosemary is to wear white silk and a veil, but Ellen is
-to be married in navy blue. I have no doubt, Mrs. Dr. dear, that that
-is very sensible of her, but for my own part I have always felt that if
-I were ever married _I_ would prefer the white and the veil, as being
-more bride-like.”
-
-A vision of Susan in “white and a veil” presented itself before Anne’s
-inner vision and was almost too much for her.
-
-“As for Mr. Meredith,” said Miss Cornelia, “even his engagement has
-made a different man of him. He isn’t half so dreamy and absent-minded,
-believe me. I was so relieved when I heard that he had decided to close
-the manse and let the children visit round while he was away on his
-honeymoon. If he had left them and old Aunt Martha there alone for a
-month I should have expected to wake every morning and see the place
-burned down.”
-
-“Aunt Martha and Jerry are coming here,” said Anne. “Carl is going to
-Elder Clow’s. I haven’t heard where the girls are going.”
-
-“Oh, I’m going to take them,” said Miss Cornelia. “Of course, I was
-glad to, but Mary would have given me no peace till I asked them any
-way. The Ladies’ Aid is going to clean the manse from top to bottom
-before the bride and groom come back, and Norman Douglas has arranged
-to fill the cellar with vegetables. Nobody ever saw or heard anything
-quite like Norman Douglas these days, believe _me_. He’s so tickled
-that he’s going to marry Ellen West after wanting her all his life. If
-_I_ was Ellen—but then, I’m not, and if she is satisfied I can very
-well be. I heard her say years ago when she was a schoolgirl that she
-didn’t want a tame puppy for a husband. There’s nothing tame about
-Norman, believe _me_.”
-
-The sun was setting over Rainbow Valley. The pond was wearing a
-wonderful tissue of purple and gold and green and crimson. A faint blue
-haze rested on the eastern hill, over which a great, pale, round moon
-was just floating up like a silver bubble.
-
-They were all there, squatted in the little open glade—Faith and Una,
-Jerry and Carl, Jem and Walter, Nan and Di, and Mary Vance. They had
-been having a special celebration, for it would be Jem’s last evening
-in Rainbow Valley. On the morrow he would leave for Charlottetown to
-attend Queen’s Academy. Their charmed circle would be broken; and, in
-spite of the jollity of their little festival, there was a hint of
-sorrow in every gay young heart.
-
-“See—there is a great golden palace over there in the sunset,” said
-Walter, pointing. “Look at the shining tower—and the crimson banners
-streaming from them. Perhaps a conqueror is riding home from battle—and
-they are hanging them out to do honour to him.”
-
-“Oh, I wish we had the old days back again,” exclaimed Jem. “I’d love
-to be a soldier—a great, triumphant general. I’d give _everything_ to
-see a big battle.”
-
-Well, Jem was to be a soldier and see a greater battle than had ever
-been fought in the world; but that was as yet far in the future; and
-the mother, whose first-born son he was, was wont to look on her boys
-and thank God that the “brave days of old,” which Jem longed for, were
-gone for ever, and that never would it be necessary for the sons of
-Canada to ride forth to battle “for the ashes of their fathers and the
-temples of their gods.”
-
-The shadow of the Great Conflict had not yet made felt any forerunner
-of its chill. The lads who were to fight, and perhaps fall, on the
-fields of France and Flanders, Gallipoli and Palestine, were still
-roguish schoolboys with a fair life in prospect before them: the girls
-whose hearts were to be wrung were yet fair little maidens a-star with
-hopes and dreams.
-
-Slowly the banners of the sunset city gave up their crimson and gold;
-slowly the conqueror’s pageant faded out. Twilight crept over the
-valley and the little group grew silent. Walter had been reading again
-that day in his beloved book of myths and he remembered how he had once
-fancied the Pied Piper coming down the valley on an evening just like
-this.
-
-He began to speak dreamily, partly because he wanted to thrill his
-companions a little, partly because something apart from him seemed to
-be speaking through his lips.
-
-“The Piper is coming nearer,” he said, “he is nearer than he was that
-evening I saw him before. His long, shadowy cloak is blowing around
-him. He pipes—he pipes—and we must follow—Jem and Carl and Jerry and
-I—round and round the world. Listen—listen—can’t you hear his wild
-music?”
-
-The girls shivered.
-
-“You know you’re only pretending,” protested Mary Vance, “and I wish
-you wouldn’t. You make it too real. I hate that old Piper of yours.”
-
-But Jem sprang up with a gay laugh. He stood up on a little hillock,
-tall and splendid, with his open brow and his fearless eyes. There were
-thousands like him all over the land of the maple.
-
-“Let the Piper come and welcome,” he cried, waving his hand. “_I’ll_
-follow him gladly round and round the world.”
-
-THE END
-
-
-
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RAINBOW VALLEY ***
-
-***** This file should be named 5343-0.txt or 5343-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- https://www.gutenberg.org/5/3/4/5343/
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
diff --git a/old/old-2025-06-17/5343-0.zip b/old/old-2025-06-17/5343-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 607d9ea..0000000
--- a/old/old-2025-06-17/5343-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/old-2025-06-17/5343-h.zip b/old/old-2025-06-17/5343-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index c39a361..0000000
--- a/old/old-2025-06-17/5343-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/old-2025-06-17/5343-h/5343-h.htm b/old/old-2025-06-17/5343-h/5343-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index c78571d..0000000
--- a/old/old-2025-06-17/5343-h/5343-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,12839 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
-"http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
-<head>
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
-<title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of Rainbow Valley, by Lucy Maud Montgomery</title>
-<link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
-<style type="text/css">
-
-body { margin-left: 20%;
- margin-right: 20%;
- text-align: justify; }
-
-h1, h2, h3, h4, h5 {text-align: center; font-style: normal; font-weight:
-normal; line-height: 1.5; margin-top: .5em; margin-bottom: .5em;}
-
-h1 {font-size: 300%;
- margin-top: 0.6em;
- margin-bottom: 0.6em;
- letter-spacing: 0.12em;
- word-spacing: 0.2em;
- text-indent: 0em;}
-h2 {font-size: 150%; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 1em;}
-h3 {font-size: 130%; margin-top: 1em;}
-h4 {font-size: 120%;}
-h5 {font-size: 110%;}
-
-.no-break {page-break-before: avoid;} /* for epubs */
-
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always; margin-top: 4em;}
-
-hr {width: 80%; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 2em;}
-
-p {text-indent: 1em;
- margin-top: 0.25em;
- margin-bottom: 0.25em; }
-
-p.poem {text-indent: 0%;
- margin-left: 10%;
- font-size: 90%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; }
-
-p.letter {text-indent: 0%;
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; }
-
-p.right {text-align: right;
- margin-right: 10%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; }
-
-div.fig { display:block;
- margin:0 auto;
- text-align:center;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;}
-
-a:link {color:blue; text-decoration:none}
-a:visited {color:blue; text-decoration:none}
-a:hover {color:red}
-
-</style>
-
-</head>
-
-<body>
-
-<div style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold;'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of Rainbow Valley, by Lucy Maud Montgomery</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: Rainbow Valley</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Lucy Maud Montgomery</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0'>Release Date: July 3, 2002 [eBook #5343]<br />
-[Most recently updated: May 5, 2021]</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0'>Language: English</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0'>Character set encoding: UTF-8</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Produced by: Bernard J. Farber, Carmen Baxter, Dona Rucci, Elizabeth Morton, Rebekah Neely, Joe Johnson, Joan Chovan, Judith Fetterolf, Mary Nuzzo, Sally Drake, Sally Starks, Steve Callis, Virginia Mohlere-Dellinger, Mary Mark Ockerbloom, Ben Crowder and David Widger</div>
-<div style='margin-top:2em;margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RAINBOW VALLEY ***</div>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:55%;">
-<img src="images/cover.jpg" style="width:100%;" alt="[Illustration]" />
-</div>
-
-<h1>Rainbow Valley</h1>
-
-<h2 class="no-break">by Lucy Maud Montgomery</h2>
-
-<h5>Author of &ldquo;Anne of Green Gables,&rdquo; &ldquo;Anne of the
-Island,&rdquo;<br />
-&ldquo;Anne&rsquo;s House of Dreams,&rdquo; &ldquo;The Story Girl,&rdquo;
-&ldquo;The Watchman,&rdquo; etc.</h5>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p class="letter">
-&ldquo;The thoughts of youth are long, long thoughts.&rdquo;<br />
-&mdash;LONGFELLOW
-</p>
-
-<h5>TO THE MEMORY OF<br />
-<br />
-GOLDWIN LAPP, ROBERT BROOKES AND MORLEY SHIER<br />
-<br />
-WHO MADE THE SUPREME SACRIFICE THAT THE HAPPY VALLEYS OF THEIR HOME LAND MIGHT
-BE KEPT SACRED FROM THE RAVAGE OF THE INVADER</h5>
-
-<hr />
-
-<h2>Contents</h2>
-
-<table summary="" style="">
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap01">I. HOME AGAIN</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap02">II. SHEER GOSSIP</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap03">III. THE INGLESIDE CHILDREN</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap04">IV. THE MANSE CHILDREN</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap05">V. THE ADVENT OF MARY VANCE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap06">VI. MARY STAYS AT THE MANSE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap07">VII. A FISHY EPISODE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap08">VIII. MISS CORNELIA INTERVENES</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap09">IX. UNA INTERVENES</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap10">X. THE MANSE GIRLS CLEAN HOUSE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap11">XI. A DREADFUL DISCOVERY</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap12">XII. AN EXPLANATION AND A DARE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap13">XIII. THE HOUSE ON THE HILL</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap14">XIV. MRS. ALEC DAVIS MAKES A CALL</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap15">XV. MORE GOSSIP</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap16">XVI. TIT FOR TAT</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap17">XVII. A DOUBLE VICTORY</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap18">XVIII. MARY BRINGS EVIL TIDINGS</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap19">XIX. POOR ADAM!</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap20">XX. FAITH MAKES A FRIEND</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap21">XXI. THE IMPOSSIBLE WORD</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap22">XXII. ST. GEORGE KNOWS ALL ABOUT IT</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap23">XXIII. THE GOOD-CONDUCT CLUB</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap24">XXIV. A CHARITABLE IMPULSE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap25">XXV. ANOTHER SCANDAL AND ANOTHER &ldquo;EXPLANATION&rdquo;</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap26">XXVI. MISS CORNELIA GETS A NEW POINT OF VIEW</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap27">XXVII. A SACRED CONCERT</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap28">XXVIII. A FAST DAY</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap29">XXIX. A WEIRD TALE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap30">XXX. THE GHOST ON THE DYKE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap31">XXXI. CARL DOES PENANCE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap32">XXXII. TWO STUBBORN PEOPLE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap33">XXXIII. CARL IS&mdash;NOT&mdash;WHIPPED</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap34">XXXIV. UNA VISITS THE HILL</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap35">XXXV. &ldquo;LET THE PIPER COME&rdquo;</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-</table>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2>RAINBOW VALLEY</h2>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap01"></a>CHAPTER I.<br />
-HOME AGAIN</h2>
-
-<p>
-It was a clear, apple-green evening in May, and Four Winds Harbour was
-mirroring back the clouds of the golden west between its softly dark shores.
-The sea moaned eerily on the sand-bar, sorrowful even in spring, but a sly,
-jovial wind came piping down the red harbour road along which Miss
-Cornelia&rsquo;s comfortable, matronly figure was making its way towards the
-village of Glen St. Mary. Miss Cornelia was rightfully Mrs. Marshall Elliott,
-and had been Mrs. Marshall Elliott for thirteen years, but even yet more people
-referred to her as Miss Cornelia than as Mrs. Elliott. The old name was dear to
-her old friends, only one of them contemptuously dropped it. Susan Baker, the
-gray and grim and faithful handmaiden of the Blythe family at Ingleside, never
-lost an opportunity of calling her &ldquo;Mrs. Marshall Elliott,&rdquo; with
-the most killing and pointed emphasis, as if to say &ldquo;You wanted to be
-Mrs. and Mrs. you shall be with a vengeance as far as I am concerned.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia was going up to Ingleside to see Dr. and Mrs. Blythe, who were
-just home from Europe. They had been away for three months, having left in
-February to attend a famous medical congress in London; and certain things,
-which Miss Cornelia was anxious to discuss, had taken place in the Glen during
-their absence. For one thing, there was a new family in the manse. And such a
-family! Miss Cornelia shook her head over them several times as she walked
-briskly along.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan Baker and the Anne Shirley of other days saw her coming, as they sat on
-the big veranda at Ingleside, enjoying the charm of the cat&rsquo;s light, the
-sweetness of sleepy robins whistling among the twilit maples, and the dance of
-a gusty group of daffodils blowing against the old, mellow, red brick wall of
-the lawn.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Anne was sitting on the steps, her hands clasped over her knee, looking, in the
-kind dusk, as girlish as a mother of many has any right to be; and the
-beautiful gray-green eyes, gazing down the harbour road, were as full of
-unquenchable sparkle and dream as ever. Behind her, in the hammock, Rilla
-Blythe was curled up, a fat, roly-poly little creature of six years, the
-youngest of the Ingleside children. She had curly red hair and hazel eyes that
-were now buttoned up after the funny, wrinkled fashion in which Rilla always
-went to sleep.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Shirley, &ldquo;the little brown boy,&rdquo; as he was known in the family
-&ldquo;Who&rsquo;s Who,&rdquo; was asleep in Susan&rsquo;s arms. He was
-brown-haired, brown-eyed and brown-skinned, with very rosy cheeks, and he was
-Susan&rsquo;s especial love. After his birth Anne had been very ill for a long
-time, and Susan &ldquo;mothered&rdquo; the baby with a passionate tenderness
-which none of the other children, dear as they were to her, had ever called
-out. Dr. Blythe had said that but for her he would never have lived.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I gave him life just as much as you did, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; Susan was
-wont to say. &ldquo;He is just as much my baby as he is yours.&rdquo; And,
-indeed, it was always to Susan that Shirley ran, to be kissed for bumps, and
-rocked to sleep, and protected from well-deserved spankings. Susan had
-conscientiously spanked all the other Blythe children when she thought they
-needed it for their souls&rsquo; good, but she would not spank Shirley nor
-allow his mother to do it. Once, Dr. Blythe had spanked him and Susan had been
-stormily indignant.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That man would spank an angel, Mrs. Dr. dear, that he would,&rdquo; she
-had declared bitterly; and she would not make the poor doctor a pie for weeks.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She had taken Shirley with her to her brother&rsquo;s home during his
-parents&rsquo; absence, while all the other children had gone to Avonlea, and
-she had three blessed months of him all to herself. Nevertheless, Susan was
-very glad to find herself back at Ingleside, with all her darlings around her
-again. Ingleside was her world and in it she reigned supreme. Even Anne seldom
-questioned her decisions, much to the disgust of Mrs. Rachel Lynde of Green
-Gables, who gloomily told Anne, whenever she visited Four Winds, that she was
-letting Susan get to be entirely too much of a boss and would live to rue it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Here is Cornelia Bryant coming up the harbour road, Mrs. Dr.
-dear,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;She will be coming up to unload three
-months&rsquo; gossip on us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope so,&rdquo; said Anne, hugging her knees. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m
-starving for Glen St. Mary gossip, Susan. I hope Miss Cornelia can tell me
-everything that has happened while we&rsquo;ve been
-away&mdash;<i>everything</i>&mdash;who has got born, or married, or drunk; who
-has died, or gone away, or come, or fought, or lost a cow, or found a beau.
-It&rsquo;s so delightful to be home again with all the dear Glen folks, and I
-want to know all about them. Why, I remember wondering, as I walked through
-Westminster Abbey which of her two especial beaux Millicent Drew would finally
-marry. Do you know, Susan, I have a dreadful suspicion that I love
-gossip.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, of course, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; admitted Susan, &ldquo;every
-proper woman likes to hear the news. I am rather interested in Millicent
-Drew&rsquo;s case myself. I never had a beau, much less two, and I do not mind
-now, for being an old maid does not hurt when you get used to it.
-Millicent&rsquo;s hair always looks to me as if she had swept it up with a
-broom. But the men do not seem to mind that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They see only her pretty, piquant, mocking, little face, Susan.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That may very well be, Mrs. Dr. dear. The Good Book says that favour is
-deceitful and beauty is vain, but I should not have minded finding that out for
-myself, if it had been so ordained. I have no doubt we will all be beautiful
-when we are angels, but what good will it do us then? Speaking of gossip,
-however, they do say that poor Mrs. Harrison Miller over harbour tried to hang
-herself last week.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Susan!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Calm yourself, Mrs. Dr. dear. She did not succeed. But I really do not
-blame her for trying, for her husband is a terrible man. But she was very
-foolish to think of hanging herself and leaving the way clear for him to marry
-some other woman. If I had been in her shoes, Mrs. Dr. dear, I would have gone
-to work to worry him so that he would try to hang himself instead of me. Not
-that I hold with people hanging themselves under any circumstances, Mrs. Dr.
-dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is the matter with Harrison Miller, anyway?&rdquo; said Anne
-impatiently. &ldquo;He is always driving some one to extremes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, some people call it religion and some call it cussedness, begging
-your pardon, Mrs. Dr. dear, for using such a word. It seems they cannot make
-out which it is in Harrison&rsquo;s case. There are days when he growls at
-everybody because he thinks he is fore-ordained to eternal punishment. And then
-there are days when he says he does not care and goes and gets drunk. My own
-opinion is that he is not sound in his intellect, for none of that branch of
-the Millers were. His grandfather went out of his mind. He thought he was
-surrounded by big black spiders. They crawled over him and floated in the air
-about him. I hope I shall never go insane, Mrs. Dr. dear, and I do not think I
-will, because it is not a habit of the Bakers. But, if an all-wise Providence
-should decree it, I hope it will not take the form of big black spiders, for I
-loathe the animals. As for Mrs. Miller, I do not know whether she really
-deserves pity or not. There are some who say she just married Harrison to spite
-Richard Taylor, which seems to me a very peculiar reason for getting married.
-But then, of course, <i>I</i> am no judge of things matrimonial, Mrs. Dr. dear.
-And there is Cornelia Bryant at the gate, so I will put this blessed brown baby
-on his bed and get my knitting.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap02"></a>CHAPTER II.<br />
-SHEER GOSSIP</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where are the other children?&rdquo; asked Miss Cornelia, when the first
-greetings&mdash;cordial on her side, rapturous on Anne&rsquo;s, and dignified
-on Susan&rsquo;s&mdash;were over.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Shirley is in bed and Jem and Walter and the twins are down in their
-beloved Rainbow Valley,&rdquo; said Anne. &ldquo;They just came home this
-afternoon, you know, and they could hardly wait until supper was over before
-rushing down to the valley. They love it above every spot on earth. Even the
-maple grove doesn&rsquo;t rival it in their affections.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am afraid they love it too well,&rdquo; said Susan gloomily.
-&ldquo;Little Jem said once he would rather go to Rainbow Valley than to heaven
-when he died, and that was not a proper remark.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose they had a great time in Avonlea?&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Enormous. Marilla does spoil them terribly. Jem, in particular, can do
-no wrong in her eyes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Miss Cuthbert must be an old lady now,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia,
-getting out her knitting, so that she could hold her own with Susan. Miss
-Cornelia held that the woman whose hands were employed always had the advantage
-over the woman whose hands were not.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Marilla is eighty-five,&rdquo; said Anne with a sigh. &ldquo;Her hair is
-snow-white. But, strange to say, her eyesight is better than it was when she
-was sixty.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, dearie, I&rsquo;m real glad you&rsquo;re all back. I&rsquo;ve been
-dreadful lonesome. But we haven&rsquo;t been dull in the Glen, believe
-<i>me</i>. There hasn&rsquo;t been such an exciting spring in my time, as far
-as church matters go. We&rsquo;ve got settled with a minister at last, Anne
-dearie.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The Reverend John Knox Meredith, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said Susan,
-resolved not to let Miss Cornelia tell all the news.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is he nice?&rdquo; asked Anne interestedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia sighed and Susan groaned.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, he&rsquo;s nice enough if that were all,&rdquo; said the former.
-&ldquo;He is <i>very</i> nice&mdash;and very learned&mdash;and very spiritual.
-But, oh Anne dearie, he has no common sense!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How was it you called him, then?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, there&rsquo;s no doubt he is by far the best preacher we ever had
-in Glen St. Mary church,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, veering a tack or two.
-&ldquo;I suppose it is because he is so moony and absent-minded that he never
-got a town call. His trial sermon was simply wonderful, believe <i>me</i>.
-Every one went mad about it&mdash;and his looks.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is <i>very</i> comely, Mrs. Dr. dear, and when all is said and done,
-I <i>do</i> like to see a well-looking man in the pulpit,&rdquo; broke in
-Susan, thinking it was time she asserted herself again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Besides,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, &ldquo;we were anxious to get
-settled. And Mr. Meredith was the first candidate we were all agreed on.
-Somebody had some objection to all the others. There was some talk of calling
-Mr. Folsom. He was a good preacher, too, but somehow people didn&rsquo;t care
-for his appearance. He was too dark and sleek.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He looked exactly like a great black tomcat, that he did, Mrs. Dr.
-dear,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;I never could abide such a man in the pulpit
-every Sunday.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then Mr. Rogers came and he was like a chip in porridge&mdash;neither
-harm nor good,&rdquo; resumed Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;But if he had preached like
-Peter and Paul it would have profited him nothing, for that was the day old
-Caleb Ramsay&rsquo;s sheep strayed into church and gave a loud
-&lsquo;ba-a-a&rsquo; just as he announced his text. Everybody laughed, and poor
-Rogers had no chance after that. Some thought we ought to call Mr. Stewart,
-because he was so well educated. He could read the New Testament in five
-languages.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But I do not think he was any surer than other men of getting to heaven
-because of that,&rdquo; interjected Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Most of us didn&rsquo;t like his delivery,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia,
-ignoring Susan. &ldquo;He talked in grunts, so to speak. And Mr. Arnett
-couldn&rsquo;t preach <i>at all</i>. And he picked about the worst candidating
-text there is in the Bible&mdash;&lsquo;Curse ye Meroz.&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Whenever he got stuck for an idea, he would bang the Bible and shout
-very bitterly, &lsquo;Curse ye Meroz.&rsquo; Poor Meroz got thoroughly cursed
-that day, whoever he was, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The minister who is candidating can&rsquo;t be too careful what text he
-chooses,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia solemnly. &ldquo;I believe Mr. Pierson would
-have got the call if he had picked a different text. But when he announced
-&lsquo;I will lift my eyes to the hills&rsquo; <i>he</i> was done for. Every
-one grinned, for every one knew that those two Hill girls from the Harbour Head
-have been setting their caps for every single minister who came to the Glen for
-the last fifteen years. And Mr. Newman had too large a family.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He stayed with my brother-in-law, James Clow,&rdquo; said Susan.
-&ldquo;&lsquo;How many children have you got?&rsquo; I asked him. &lsquo;Nine
-boys and a sister for each of them,&rsquo; he said. &lsquo;Eighteen!&rsquo;
-said I. &lsquo;Dear me, what a family!&rsquo; And then he laughed and laughed.
-But I do not know why, Mrs. Dr. dear, and I am certain that eighteen children
-would be too many for any manse.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He had only ten children, Susan,&rdquo; explained Miss Cornelia, with
-contemptuous patience. &ldquo;And ten good children would not be much worse for
-the manse and congregation than the four who are there now. Though I
-wouldn&rsquo;t say, Anne dearie, that they are so bad, either. I like
-them&mdash;everybody likes them. It&rsquo;s impossible to help liking them.
-They would be real nice little souls if there was anyone to look after their
-manners and teach them what is right and proper. For instance, at school the
-teacher says they are model children. But at home they simply run wild.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What about Mrs. Meredith?&rdquo; asked Anne.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s <i>no</i> Mrs. Meredith. That is just the trouble. Mr.
-Meredith is a widower. His wife died four years ago. If we had known that I
-don&rsquo;t suppose we would have called him, for a widower is even worse in a
-congregation than a single man. But he was heard to speak of his children and
-we all supposed there was a mother, too. And when they came there was nobody
-but old Aunt Martha, as they call her. She&rsquo;s a cousin of Mr.
-Meredith&rsquo;s mother, I believe, and he took her in to save her from the
-poorhouse. She is seventy-five years old, half blind, and very deaf and very
-cranky.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And a very poor cook, Mrs. Dr. dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The worst possible manager for a manse,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia
-bitterly. &ldquo;Mr. Meredith won&rsquo;t get any other housekeeper because he
-says it would hurt Aunt Martha&rsquo;s feelings. Anne dearie, believe me, the
-state of that manse is something terrible. Everything is thick with dust and
-nothing is ever in its place. And we had painted and papered it all so nice
-before they came.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There are four children, you say?&rdquo; asked Anne, beginning to mother
-them already in her heart.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes. They run up just like the steps of a stair. Gerald&rsquo;s the
-oldest. He&rsquo;s twelve and they call him Jerry. He&rsquo;s a clever boy.
-Faith is eleven. She is a regular tomboy but pretty as a picture, I must
-say.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She looks like an angel but she is a holy terror for mischief, Mrs. Dr.
-dear,&rdquo; said Susan solemnly. &ldquo;I was at the manse one night last week
-and Mrs. James Millison was there, too. She had brought them up a dozen eggs
-and a little pail of milk&mdash;a <i>very</i> little pail, Mrs. Dr. dear. Faith took
-them and whisked down the cellar with them. Near the bottom of the stairs she
-caught her toe and fell the rest of the way, milk and eggs and all. You can
-imagine the result, Mrs. Dr. dear. But that child came up laughing. &lsquo;I
-don&rsquo;t know whether I&rsquo;m myself or a custard pie,&rsquo; she said.
-And Mrs. James Millison was very angry. She said she would never take another
-thing to the manse if it was to be wasted and destroyed in that fashion.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maria Millison never hurt herself taking things to the manse,&rdquo;
-sniffed Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;She just took them that night as an excuse for
-curiosity. But poor Faith is always getting into scrapes. She is so heedless
-and impulsive.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Just like me. I&rsquo;m going to like your Faith,&rdquo; said Anne
-decidedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She is full of spunk&mdash;and I do like spunk, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo;
-admitted Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s something taking about her,&rdquo; conceded Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;You never see her but she&rsquo;s laughing, and somehow it always makes
-you want to laugh too. She can&rsquo;t even keep a straight face in church. Una
-is ten&mdash;she&rsquo;s a sweet little thing&mdash;not pretty, but sweet. And
-Thomas Carlyle is nine. They call him Carl, and he has a regular mania for
-collecting toads and bugs and frogs and bringing them into the house.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose he was responsible for the dead rat that was lying on a chair
-in the parlour the afternoon Mrs. Grant called. It gave her a turn,&rdquo; said
-Susan, &ldquo;and I do not wonder, for manse parlours are no places for dead
-rats. To be sure it may have been the cat who left it, there. <i>He</i> is as full of
-the old Nick as he can be stuffed, Mrs. Dr. dear. A manse cat should at least
-<i>look</i> respectable, in my opinion, whatever he really is. But I never saw such a
-rakish-looking beast. And he walks along the ridgepole of the manse almost
-every evening at sunset, Mrs. Dr. dear, and waves his tail, and that is not
-becoming.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The worst of it is, they are <i>never</i> decently dressed,&rdquo; sighed Miss
-Cornelia. &ldquo;And since the snow went they go to school barefooted. Now, you
-know Anne dearie, that isn&rsquo;t the right thing for manse
-children&mdash;especially when the Methodist minister&rsquo;s little girl
-always wears such nice buttoned boots. And I <i>do</i> wish they wouldn&rsquo;t play
-in the old Methodist graveyard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s very tempting, when it&rsquo;s right beside the manse,&rdquo;
-said Anne. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve always thought graveyards must be delightful
-places to play in.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, no, you did not, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said loyal Susan, determined
-to protect Anne from herself. &ldquo;You have too much good sense and
-decorum.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why did they ever build that manse beside the graveyard in the first
-place?&rdquo; asked Anne. &ldquo;Their lawn is so small there is no place for
-them to play except in the graveyard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It <i>was</i> a mistake,&rdquo; admitted Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;But they got the
-lot cheap. And no other manse children ever thought of playing there. Mr.
-Meredith shouldn&rsquo;t allow it. But he has always got his nose buried in a
-book, when he is home. He reads and reads, or walks about in his study in a
-day-dream. So far he hasn&rsquo;t forgotten to be in church on Sundays, but
-twice he has forgotten about the prayer-meeting and one of the elders had to go
-over to the manse and remind him. And he forgot about Fanny Cooper&rsquo;s
-wedding. They rang him up on the &lsquo;phone and then he rushed right over,
-just as he was, carpet slippers and all. One wouldn&rsquo;t mind if the
-Methodists didn&rsquo;t laugh so about it. But there&rsquo;s one
-comfort&mdash;they can&rsquo;t criticize his sermons. He wakes up when
-he&rsquo;s in the pulpit, believe <i>me</i>. And the Methodist minister can&rsquo;t
-preach at all&mdash;so they tell me. <i>I</i> have never heard him, thank
-goodness.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s scorn of men had abated somewhat since her marriage, but
-her scorn of Methodists remained untinged of charity. Susan smiled slyly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They do say, Mrs. Marshall Elliott, that the Methodists and
-Presbyterians are talking of uniting,&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, all I hope is that I&rsquo;ll be under the sod if that ever comes
-to pass,&rdquo; retorted Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;I shall never have truck or
-trade with Methodists, and Mr. Meredith will find that he&rsquo;d better steer
-clear of them, too. He is entirely too sociable with them, believe <i>me</i>. Why, he
-went to the Jacob Drews&rsquo; silver-wedding supper and got into a nice scrape
-as a result.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What was it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Drew asked him to carve the roast goose&mdash;for Jacob Drew never
-did or could carve. Well, Mr. Meredith tackled it, and in the process he
-knocked it clean off the platter into Mrs. Reese&rsquo;s lap, who was sitting
-next him. And he just said dreamily. &lsquo;Mrs. Reese, will you kindly return
-me that goose?&rsquo; Mrs. Reese &lsquo;returned&rsquo; it, as meek as Moses,
-but she must have been furious, for she had on her new silk dress. The worst of
-it is, she was a Methodist.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But I think that is better than if she was a Presbyterian,&rdquo;
-interjected Susan. &ldquo;If she had been a Presbyterian she would mostly
-likely have left the church and we cannot afford to lose our members. And Mrs.
-Reese is not liked in her own church, because she gives herself such great
-airs, so that the Methodists would be rather pleased that Mr. Meredith spoiled
-her dress.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The point is, he made himself ridiculous, and <i>I</i>, for one, do not
-like to see my minister made ridiculous in the eyes of the Methodists,&rdquo;
-said Miss Cornelia stiffly. &ldquo;If he had had a wife it would not have
-happened.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do not see if he had a dozen wives how they could have prevented Mrs.
-Drew from using up her tough old gander for the wedding-feast,&rdquo; said
-Susan stubbornly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They say that was her husband&rsquo;s doing,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;Jacob Drew is a conceited, stingy, domineering creature.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And they do say he and his wife detest each other&mdash;which does not
-seem to me the proper way for married folks to get along. But then, of course,
-I have had no experience along that line,&rdquo; said Susan, tossing her head.
-&ldquo;And <i>I</i> am not one to blame everything on the men. Mrs. Drew is
-mean enough herself. They say that the only thing she was ever known to give
-away was a crock of butter made out of cream a rat had fell into. She
-contributed it to a church social. Nobody found out about the rat until
-afterwards.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Fortunately, all the people the Merediths have offended so far are
-Methodists,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;That Jerry went to the Methodist
-prayer-meeting one night about a fortnight ago and sat beside old William Marsh
-who got up as usual and testified with fearful groans. &lsquo;Do you feel any
-better now?&rsquo; whispered Jerry when William sat down. Poor Jerry meant to
-be sympathetic, but Mr. Marsh thought he was impertinent and is furious at him.
-Of course, Jerry had no business to be in a Methodist prayer-meeting at all.
-But they go where they like.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope they will not offend Mrs. Alec Davis of the Harbour Head,&rdquo;
-said Susan. &ldquo;She is a very touchy woman, I understand, but she is very
-well off and pays the most of any one to the salary. I have heard that she says
-the Merediths are the worst brought up children she ever saw.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Every word you say convinces me more and more that the Merediths belong
-to the race that knows Joseph,&rdquo; said Mistress Anne decidedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;When all is said and done, they <i>do</i>,&rdquo; admitted Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;And that balances everything. Anyway, we&rsquo;ve got them now and we
-must just do the best we can by them and stick up for them to the Methodists.
-Well, I suppose I must be getting down harbour. Marshall will soon be
-home&mdash;he went over-harbour to-day&mdash;and wanting his super, man-like.
-I&rsquo;m sorry I haven&rsquo;t seen the other children. And where&rsquo;s the
-doctor?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Up at the Harbour Head. We&rsquo;ve only been home three days and in
-that time he has spent three hours in his own bed and eaten two meals in his
-own house.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, everybody who has been sick for the last six weeks has been
-waiting for him to come home&mdash;and I don&rsquo;t blame them. When that
-over-harbour doctor married the undertaker&rsquo;s daughter at Lowbridge people
-felt suspicious of him. It didn&rsquo;t look well. You and the doctor must come
-down soon and tell us all about your trip. I suppose you&rsquo;ve had a
-splendid time.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We had,&rdquo; agreed Anne. &ldquo;It was the fulfilment of years of
-dreams. The old world is very lovely and very wonderful. But we have come back
-very well satisfied with our own land. Canada is the finest country in the
-world, Miss Cornelia.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nobody ever doubted that,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, complacently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And old P.E.I. is the loveliest province in it and Four Winds the
-loveliest spot in P.E.I.,&rdquo; laughed Anne, looking adoringly out over the
-sunset splendour of glen and harbour and gulf. She waved her hand at it.
-&ldquo;I saw nothing more beautiful than that in Europe, Miss Cornelia. Must
-you go? The children will be sorry to have missed you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They must come and see me soon. Tell them the doughnut jar is always
-full.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, at supper they were planning a descent on you. They&rsquo;ll go
-soon; but they must settle down to school again now. And the twins are going to
-take music lessons.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not from the Methodist minister&rsquo;s wife, I hope?&rdquo; said Miss
-Cornelia anxiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;from Rosemary West. I was up last evening to arrange it with
-her. What a pretty girl she is!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Rosemary holds her own well. She isn&rsquo;t as young as she once
-was.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I thought her very charming. I&rsquo;ve never had any real acquaintance
-with her, you know. Their house is so out of the way, and I&rsquo;ve seldom
-ever seen her except at church.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;People always have liked Rosemary West, though they don&rsquo;t
-understand her,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, quite unconscious of the high
-tribute she was paying to Rosemary&rsquo;s charm. &ldquo;Ellen has always kept
-her down, so to speak. She has tyrannized over her, and yet she has always
-indulged her in a good many ways. Rosemary was engaged once, you know&mdash;to
-young Martin Crawford. His ship was wrecked on the Magdalens and all the crew
-were drowned. Rosemary was just a child&mdash;only seventeen. But she was never
-the same afterwards. She and Ellen have stayed very close at home since their
-mother&rsquo;s death. They don&rsquo;t often get to their own church at
-Lowbridge and I understand Ellen doesn&rsquo;t approve of going too often to a
-Presbyterian church. To the Methodist she <i>never</i> goes, I&rsquo;ll say that much
-for her. That family of Wests have always been strong Episcopalians. Rosemary
-and Ellen are pretty well off. Rosemary doesn&rsquo;t really need to give music
-lessons. She does it because she likes to. They are distantly related to
-Leslie, you know. Are the Fords coming to the harbour this summer?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. They are going on a trip to Japan and will probably be away for a
-year. Owen&rsquo;s new novel is to have a Japanese setting. This will be the
-first summer that the dear old House of Dreams will be empty since we left
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I should think Owen Ford might find enough to write about in Canada
-without dragging his wife and his innocent children off to a heathen country
-like Japan,&rdquo; grumbled Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;<i>The Life Book</i> was the
-best book he&rsquo;s ever written and he got the material for that right here
-in Four Winds.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Captain Jim gave him the most of that, you know. And he collected it all
-over the world. But Owen&rsquo;s books are all delightful, I think.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, they&rsquo;re well enough as far as they go. I make it a point to
-read every one he writes, though I&rsquo;ve always held, Anne dearie, that
-reading novels is a sinful waste of time. I shall write and tell him my opinion
-of this Japanese business, believe <i>me</i>. Does he want Kenneth and Persis to be
-converted into pagans?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-With which unanswerable conundrum Miss Cornelia took her departure. Susan
-proceeded to put Rilla in bed and Anne sat on the veranda steps under the early
-stars and dreamed her incorrigible dreams and learned all over again for the
-hundredth happy time what a moonrise splendour and sheen could be on Four Winds
-Harbour.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap03"></a>CHAPTER III.<br />
-THE INGLESIDE CHILDREN</h2>
-
-<p>
-In daytime the Blythe children liked very well to play in the rich, soft greens
-and glooms of the big maple grove between Ingleside and the Glen St. Mary pond;
-but for evening revels there was no place like the little valley behind the
-maple grove. It was a fairy realm of romance to them. Once, looking from the
-attic windows of Ingleside, through the mist and aftermath of a summer
-thunderstorm, they had seen the beloved spot arched by a glorious rainbow, one
-end of which seemed to dip straight down to where a corner of the pond ran up
-into the lower end of the valley.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let us call it Rainbow Valley,&rdquo; said Walter delightedly, and
-Rainbow Valley thenceforth it was.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Outside of Rainbow Valley the wind might be rollicking and boisterous. Here it
-always went gently. Little, winding, fairy paths ran here and there over spruce
-roots cushioned with moss. Wild cherry trees, that in blossom time would be
-misty white, were scattered all over the valley, mingling with the dark
-spruces. A little brook with amber waters ran through it from the Glen village.
-The houses of the village were comfortably far away; only at the upper end of
-the valley was a little tumble-down, deserted cottage, referred to as
-&ldquo;the old Bailey house.&rdquo; It had not been occupied for many years,
-but a grass-grown dyke surrounded it and inside was an ancient garden where the
-Ingleside children could find violets and daisies and June lilies still
-blooming in season. For the rest, the garden was overgrown with caraway that
-swayed and foamed in the moonshine of summer eves like seas of silver.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-To the sought lay the pond and beyond it the ripened distance lost itself in
-purple woods, save where, on a high hill, a solitary old gray homestead looked
-down on glen and harbour. There was a certain wild woodsiness and solitude
-about Rainbow Valley, in spite of its nearness to the village, which endeared
-it to the children of Ingleside.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The valley was full of dear, friendly hollows and the largest of these was
-their favourite stamping ground. Here they were assembled on this particular
-evening. There was a grove of young spruces in this hollow, with a tiny, grassy
-glade in its heart, opening on the bank of the brook. By the brook grew a
-silver birch-tree, a young, incredibly straight thing which Walter had named
-the &ldquo;White Lady.&rdquo; In this glade, too, were the &ldquo;Tree
-Lovers,&rdquo; as Walter called a spruce and maple which grew so closely
-together that their boughs were inextricably intertwined. Jem had hung an old
-string of sleigh-bells, given him by the Glen blacksmith, on the Tree Lovers,
-and every visitant breeze called out sudden fairy tinkles from it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How nice it is to be back!&rdquo; said Nan. &ldquo;After all, none of
-the Avonlea places are quite as nice as Rainbow Valley.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But they were very fond of the Avonlea places for all that. A visit to Green
-Gables was always considered a great treat. Aunt Marilla was very good to them,
-and so was Mrs. Rachel Lynde, who was spending the leisure of her old age in
-knitting cotton-warp quilts against the day when Anne&rsquo;s daughters should
-need a &ldquo;setting-out.&rdquo; There were jolly playmates there,
-too&mdash;&ldquo;Uncle&rdquo; Davy&rsquo;s children and &ldquo;Aunt&rdquo;
-Diana&rsquo;s children. They knew all the spots their mother had loved so well
-in her girlhood at old Green Gables&mdash;the long Lover&rsquo;s Lane, that was
-pink-hedged in wild-rose time, the always neat yard, with its willows and
-poplars, the Dryad&rsquo;s Bubble, lucent and lovely as of yore, the Lake of
-Shining Waters, and Willowmere. The twins had their mother&rsquo;s old
-porch-gable room, and Aunt Marilla used to come in at night, when she thought
-they were asleep, to gloat over them. But they all knew she loved Jem the best.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jem was at present busily occupied in frying a mess of small trout which he had
-just caught in the pond. His stove consisted of a circle of red stones, with a
-fire kindled in it, and his culinary utensils were an old tin can, hammered out
-flat, and a fork with only one tine left. Nevertheless, ripping good meals had
-before now been thus prepared.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jem was the child of the House of Dreams. All the others had been born at
-Ingleside. He had curly red hair, like his mother&rsquo;s, and frank hazel
-eyes, like his father&rsquo;s; he had his mother&rsquo;s fine nose and his
-father&rsquo;s steady, humorous mouth. And he was the only one of the family
-who had ears nice enough to please Susan. But he had a standing feud with Susan
-because she would not give up calling him Little Jem. It was outrageous,
-thought thirteen-year-old Jem. Mother had more sense.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m <i>not</i> little any more, Mother,&rdquo; he had cried indignantly,
-on his eighth birthday. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m <i>awful</i> big.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mother had sighed and laughed and sighed again; and she never called him Little
-Jem again&mdash;in his hearing at least.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He was and always had been a sturdy, reliable little chap. He never broke a
-promise. He was not a great talker. His teachers did not think him brilliant,
-but he was a good, all-round student. He never took things on faith; he always
-liked to investigate the truth of a statement for himself. Once Susan had told
-him that if he touched his tongue to a frosty latch all the skin would tear off
-it. Jem had promptly done it, &ldquo;just to see if it was so.&rdquo; He found
-it was &ldquo;so,&rdquo; at the cost of a very sore tongue for several days.
-But Jem did not grudge suffering in the interests of science. By constant
-experiment and observation he learned a great deal and his brothers and sisters
-thought his extensive knowledge of their little world quite wonderful. Jem
-always knew where the first and ripest berries grew, where the first pale
-violets shyly wakened from their winter&rsquo;s sleep, and how many blue eggs
-were in a given robin&rsquo;s nest in the maple grove. He could tell fortunes
-from daisy petals and suck honey from red clovers, and grub up all sorts of
-edible roots on the banks of the pond, while Susan went in daily fear that they
-would all be poisoned. He knew where the finest spruce-gum was to be found, in
-pale amber knots on the lichened bark, he knew where the nuts grew thickest in
-the beechwoods around the Harbour Head, and where the best trouting places up
-the brooks were. He could mimic the call of any wild bird or beast in Four
-Winds and he knew the haunt of every wild flower from spring to autumn.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter Blythe was sitting under the White Lady, with a volume of poems lying
-beside him, but he was not reading. He was gazing now at the emerald-misted
-willows by the pond, and now at a flock of clouds, like little silver sheep,
-herded by the wind, that were drifting over Rainbow Valley, with rapture in his
-wide splendid eyes. Walter&rsquo;s eyes were very wonderful. All the joy and
-sorrow and laughter and loyalty and aspiration of many generations lying under
-the sod looked out of their dark gray depths.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter was a &ldquo;hop out of kin,&rdquo; as far as looks went. He did not
-resemble any known relative. He was quite the handsomest of the Ingleside
-children, with straight black hair and finely modelled features. But he had all
-his mother&rsquo;s vivid imagination and passionate love of beauty. Frost of
-winter, invitation of spring, dream of summer and glamour of autumn, all meant
-much to Walter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In school, where Jem was a chieftain, Walter was not thought highly of. He was
-supposed to be &ldquo;girly&rdquo; and milk-soppish, because he never fought
-and seldom joined in the school sports, preferring to herd by himself in out of
-the way corners and read books&mdash;especially &ldquo;po&rsquo;try
-books.&rdquo; Walter loved the poets and pored over their pages from the time
-he could first read. Their music was woven into his growing soul&mdash;the
-music of the immortals. Walter cherished the ambition to be a poet himself some
-day. The thing could be done. A certain Uncle Paul&mdash;so called out of
-courtesy&mdash;who lived now in that mysterious realm called &ldquo;the
-States,&rdquo; was Walter&rsquo;s model. Uncle Paul had once been a little
-school boy in Avonlea and now his poetry was read everywhere. But the Glen
-schoolboys did not know of Walter&rsquo;s dreams and would not have been
-greatly impressed if they had. In spite of his lack of physical prowess,
-however, he commanded a certain unwilling respect because of his power of
-&ldquo;talking book talk.&rdquo; Nobody in Glen St. Mary school could talk like
-him. He &ldquo;sounded like a preacher,&rdquo; one boy said; and for this
-reason he was generally left alone and not persecuted, as most boys were who
-were suspected of disliking or fearing fisticuffs.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The ten year old Ingleside twins violated twin tradition by not looking in the
-least alike. Anne, who was always called Nan, was very pretty, with velvety
-nut-brown eyes and silky nut-brown hair. She was a very blithe and dainty
-little maiden&mdash;Blythe by name and blithe by nature, one of her teachers
-had said. Her complexion was quite faultless, much to her mother&rsquo;s
-satisfaction.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m so glad I have one daughter who can wear pink,&rdquo; Mrs.
-Blythe was wont to say jubilantly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Diana Blythe, known as Di, was very like her mother, with gray-green eyes that
-always shone with a peculiar lustre and brilliancy in the dusk, and red hair.
-Perhaps this was why she was her father&rsquo;s favourite. She and Walter were
-especial chums; Di was the only one to whom he would ever read the verses he
-wrote himself&mdash;the only one who knew that he was secretly hard at work on
-an epic, strikingly resembling &ldquo;Marmion&rdquo; in some things, if not in
-others. She kept all his secrets, even from Nan, and told him all hers.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Won&rsquo;t you soon have those fish ready, Jem?&rdquo; said Nan,
-sniffing with her dainty nose. &ldquo;The smell makes me awfully hungry.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They&rsquo;re nearly ready,&rdquo; said Jem, giving one a dexterous
-turn. &ldquo;Get out the bread and the plates, girls. Walter, wake up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How the air shines to-night,&rdquo; said Walter dreamily. Not that he
-despised fried trout either, by any means; but with Walter food for the soul
-always took first place. &ldquo;The flower angel has been walking over the
-world to-day, calling to the flowers. I can see his blue wings on that hill by
-the woods.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Any angels&rsquo; wings I ever saw were white,&rdquo; said Nan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The flower angel&rsquo;s aren&rsquo;t. They are a pale misty blue, just
-like the haze in the valley. Oh, how I wish I could fly. It must be
-glorious.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;One does fly in dreams sometimes,&rdquo; said Di.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I never dream that I&rsquo;m flying exactly,&rdquo; said Walter.
-&ldquo;But I often dream that I just rise up from the ground and float over the
-fences and the trees. It&rsquo;s delightful&mdash;and I always think,
-&lsquo;This <i>isn&rsquo;t</i> a dream like it&rsquo;s always been before. <i>This</i> is
-real&rsquo;&mdash;and then I wake up after all, and it&rsquo;s
-heart-breaking.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hurry up, Nan,&rdquo; ordered Jem.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Nan had produced the banquet-board&mdash;a board literally as well as
-figuratively&mdash;from which many a feast, seasoned as no viands were
-elsewhere, had been eaten in Rainbow Valley. It was converted into a table by
-propping it on two large, mossy stones. Newspapers served as tablecloth, and
-broken plates and handleless cups from Susan&rsquo;s discard furnished the
-dishes. From a tin box secreted at the root of a spruce tree Nan brought forth
-bread and salt. The brook gave Adam&rsquo;s ale of unsurpassed crystal. For the
-rest, there was a certain sauce, compounded of fresh air and appetite of youth,
-which gave to everything a divine flavour. To sit in Rainbow Valley, steeped in
-a twilight half gold, half amethyst, rife with the odours of balsam-fir and
-woodsy growing things in their springtime prime, with the pale stars of wild
-strawberry blossoms all around you, and with the sough of the wind and tinkle
-of bells in the shaking tree tops, and eat fried trout and dry bread, was
-something which the mighty of earth might have envied them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Sit in,&rdquo; invited Nan, as Jem placed his sizzling tin platter of
-trout on the table. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s your turn to say grace, Jem.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve done my part frying the trout,&rdquo; protested Jem, who
-hated saying grace. &ldquo;Let Walter say it. He <i>likes</i> saying grace. And cut it
-short, too, Walt. I&rsquo;m starving.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Walter said no grace, short or long, just then. An interruption occurred.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who&rsquo;s coming down from the manse hill?&rdquo; said Di.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap04"></a>CHAPTER IV.<br />
-THE MANSE CHILDREN</h2>
-
-<p>
-Aunt Martha might be, and was, a very poor housekeeper; the Rev. John Knox
-Meredith might be, and was, a very absent-minded, indulgent man. But it could
-not be denied that there was something very homelike and lovable about the Glen
-St. Mary manse in spite of its untidiness. Even the critical housewives of the
-Glen felt it, and were unconsciously mellowed in judgment because of it.
-Perhaps its charm was in part due to accidental circumstances&mdash;the
-luxuriant vines clustering over its gray, clap-boarded walls, the friendly
-acacias and balm-of-gileads that crowded about it with the freedom of old
-acquaintance, and the beautiful views of harbour and sand-dunes from its front
-windows. But these things had been there in the reign of Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s
-predecessor, when the manse had been the primmest, neatest, and dreariest house
-in the Glen. So much of the credit must be given to the personality of its new
-inmates. There was an atmosphere of laughter and comradeship about it; the
-doors were always open; and inner and outer worlds joined hands. Love was the
-only law in Glen St. Mary manse.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The people of his congregation said that Mr. Meredith spoiled his children.
-Very likely he did. It is certain that he could not bear to scold them.
-&ldquo;They have no mother,&rdquo; he used to say to himself, with a sigh, when
-some unusually glaring peccadillo forced itself upon his notice. But he did not
-know the half of their goings-on. He belonged to the sect of dreamers. The
-windows of his study looked out on the graveyard but, as he paced up and down
-the room, reflecting deeply on the immortality of the soul, he was quite
-unaware that Jerry and Carl were playing leap-frog hilariously over the flat
-stones in that abode of dead Methodists. Mr. Meredith had occasional acute
-realizations that his children were not so well looked after, physically or
-morally, as they had been before his wife died, and he had always a dim
-sub-consciousness that house and meals were very different under Aunt
-Martha&rsquo;s management from what they had been under Cecilia&rsquo;s. For
-the rest, he lived in a world of books and abstractions; and, therefore,
-although his clothes were seldom brushed, and although the Glen housewives
-concluded, from the ivory-like pallor of his clear-cut features and slender
-hands, that he never got enough to eat, he was not an unhappy man.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-If ever a graveyard could be called a cheerful place, the old Methodist
-graveyard at Glen St. Mary might be so called. The new graveyard, at the other
-side of the Methodist church, was a neat and proper and doleful spot; but the
-old one had been left so long to Nature&rsquo;s kindly and gracious ministries
-that it had become very pleasant.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was surrounded on three sides by a dyke of stones and sod, topped by a gray
-and uncertain paling. Outside the dyke grew a row of tall fir trees with thick,
-balsamic boughs. The dyke, which had been built by the first settlers of the
-Glen, was old enough to be beautiful, with mosses and green things growing out
-of its crevices, violets purpling at its base in the early spring days, and
-asters and golden-rod making an autumnal glory in its corners. Little ferns
-clustered companionably between its stones, and here and there a big bracken
-grew.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-On the eastern side there was neither fence nor dyke. The graveyard there
-straggled off into a young fir plantation, ever pushing nearer to the graves
-and deepening eastward into a thick wood. The air was always full of the
-harp-like voices of the sea, and the music of gray old trees, and in the spring
-mornings the choruses of birds in the elms around the two churches sang of life
-and not of death. The Meredith children loved the old graveyard.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Blue-eyed ivy, &ldquo;garden-spruce,&rdquo; and mint ran riot over the sunken
-graves. Blueberry bushes grew lavishly in the sandy corner next to the fir
-wood. The varying fashions of tombstones for three generations were to be found
-there, from the flat, oblong, red sandstone slabs of old settlers, down through
-the days of weeping willows and clasped hands, to the latest monstrosities of
-tall &ldquo;monuments&rdquo; and draped urns. One of the latter, the biggest
-and ugliest in the graveyard, was sacred to the memory of a certain Alec Davis
-who had been born a Methodist but had taken to himself a Presbyterian bride of
-the Douglas clan. She had made him turn Presbyterian and kept him toeing the
-Presbyterian mark all his life. But when he died she did not dare to doom him
-to a lonely grave in the Presbyterian graveyard over-harbour. His people were
-all buried in the Methodist cemetery; so Alec Davis went back to his own in
-death and his widow consoled herself by erecting a monument which cost more
-than any of the Methodists could afford. The Meredith children hated it,
-without just knowing why, but they loved the old, flat, bench-like stones with
-the tall grasses growing rankly about them. They made jolly seats for one
-thing. They were all sitting on one now. Jerry, tired of leap frog, was playing
-on a jew&rsquo;s-harp. Carl was lovingly poring over a strange beetle he had
-found; Una was trying to make a doll&rsquo;s dress, and Faith, leaning back on
-her slender brown wrists, was swinging her bare feet in lively time to the
-jew&rsquo;s-harp.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jerry had his father&rsquo;s black hair and large black eyes, but in him the
-latter were flashing instead of dreamy. Faith, who came next to him, wore her
-beauty like a rose, careless and glowing. She had golden-brown eyes,
-golden-brown curls and crimson cheeks. She laughed too much to please her
-father&rsquo;s congregation and had shocked old Mrs. Taylor, the disconsolate
-spouse of several departed husbands, by saucily declaring&mdash;in the
-church-porch at that&mdash;&ldquo;The world <i>isn&rsquo;t</i> a vale of tears, Mrs.
-Taylor. It&rsquo;s a world of laughter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Little dreamy Una was not given to laughter. Her braids of straight, dead-black
-hair betrayed no lawless kinks, and her almond-shaped, dark-blue eyes had
-something wistful and sorrowful in them. Her mouth had a trick of falling open
-over her tiny white teeth, and a shy, meditative smile occasionally crept over
-her small face. She was much more sensitive to public opinion than Faith, and
-had an uneasy consciousness that there was something askew in their way of
-living. She longed to put it right, but did not know how. Now and then she
-dusted the furniture&mdash;but it was so seldom she could find the duster
-because it was never in the same place twice. And when the clothes-brush was to
-be found she tried to brush her father&rsquo;s best suit on Saturdays, and once
-sewed on a missing button with coarse white thread. When Mr. Meredith went to
-church next day every female eye saw that button and the peace of the
-Ladies&rsquo; Aid was upset for weeks.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl had the clear, bright, dark-blue eyes, fearless and direct, of his dead
-mother, and her brown hair with its glints of gold. He knew the secrets of bugs
-and had a sort of freemasonry with bees and beetles. Una never liked to sit
-near him because she never knew what uncanny creature might be secreted about
-him. Jerry refused to sleep with him because Carl had once taken a young garter
-snake to bed with him; so Carl slept in his old cot, which was so short that he
-could never stretch out, and had strange bed-fellows. Perhaps it was just as
-well that Aunt Martha was half blind when she made that bed. Altogether they
-were a jolly, lovable little crew, and Cecilia Meredith&rsquo;s heart must have
-ached bitterly when she faced the knowledge that she must leave them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where would you like to be buried if you were a Methodist?&rdquo; asked
-Faith cheerfully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This opened up an interesting field of speculation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There isn&rsquo;t much choice. The place is full,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-&ldquo;<i>I&rsquo;d</i> like that corner near the road, I guess. I could hear the
-teams going past and the people talking.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;d like that little hollow under the weeping birch,&rdquo; said
-Una. &ldquo;That birch is such a place for birds and they sing like mad in the
-mornings.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;d take the Porter lot where there&rsquo;s so many children
-buried. <i>I</i> like lots of company,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;Carl,
-where&rsquo;d you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;d rather not be buried at all,&rdquo; said Carl, &ldquo;but if I
-had to be I&rsquo;d like the ant-bed. Ants are <i>awf&rsquo;ly</i>
-int&rsquo;resting.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How very good all the people who are buried here must have been,&rdquo;
-said Una, who had been reading the laudatory old epitaphs. &ldquo;There
-doesn&rsquo;t seem to be a single bad person in the whole graveyard. Methodists
-must be better than Presbyterians after all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maybe the Methodists bury their bad people just like they do
-cats,&rdquo; suggested Carl. &ldquo;Maybe they don&rsquo;t bother bringing them
-to the graveyard at all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;The people that are buried here
-weren&rsquo;t any better than other folks, Una. But when anyone is dead you
-mustn&rsquo;t say anything of him but good or he&rsquo;ll come back and
-ha&rsquo;nt you. Aunt Martha told me that. I asked father if it was true and he
-just looked through me and muttered, &lsquo;True? True? What is truth? What <i>is</i>
-truth, O jesting Pilate?&rsquo; I concluded from that it must be true.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wonder if Mr. Alec Davis would come back and ha&rsquo;nt me if I threw
-a stone at the urn on top of his tombstone,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Davis would,&rdquo; giggled Faith. &ldquo;She just watches us in
-church like a cat watching mice. Last Sunday I made a face at her nephew and he
-made one back at me and you should have seen her glare. I&rsquo;ll bet she
-boxed <i>his</i> ears when they got out. Mrs. Marshall Elliott told me we
-mustn&rsquo;t offend her on any account or I&rsquo;d have made a face at her,
-too!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They say Jem Blythe stuck out his tongue at her once and she would never
-have his father again, even when her husband was dying,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-&ldquo;I wonder what the Blythe gang will be like.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I liked their looks,&rdquo; said Faith. The manse children had been at
-the station that afternoon when the Blythe small fry had arrived. &ldquo;I
-liked Jem&rsquo;s looks <i>especially</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They say in school that Walter&rsquo;s a sissy,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe it,&rdquo; said Una, who had thought Walter very
-handsome.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, he writes poetry, anyhow. He won the prize the teacher offered
-last year for writing a poem, Bertie Shakespeare Drew told me. Bertie&rsquo;s
-mother thought <i>he</i> should have got the prize because of his name, but Bertie
-said he couldn&rsquo;t write poetry to save his soul, name or no name.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose we&rsquo;ll get acquainted with them as soon as they begin
-going to school,&rdquo; mused Faith. &ldquo;I hope the girls are nice. I
-don&rsquo;t like most of the girls round here. Even the nice ones are poky. But
-the Blythe twins look jolly. I thought twins always looked alike, but they
-don&rsquo;t. I think the red-haired one is the nicest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I liked their mother&rsquo;s looks,&rdquo; said Una with a little sigh.
-Una envied all children their mothers. She had been only six when her mother
-died, but she had some very precious memories, treasured in her soul like
-jewels, of twilight cuddlings and morning frolics, of loving eyes, a tender
-voice, and the sweetest, gayest laugh.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They say she isn&rsquo;t like other people,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliot says that is because she never really grew up,&rdquo; said
-Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She&rsquo;s taller than Mrs. Elliott.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, yes, but it is inside&mdash;Mrs. Elliot says Mrs. Blythe just
-stayed a little girl inside.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What do I smell?&rdquo; interrupted Carl, sniffing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They all smelled it now. A most delectable odour came floating up on the still
-evening air from the direction of the little woodsy dell below the manse hill.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That makes me hungry,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We had only bread and molasses for supper and cold ditto for
-dinner,&rdquo; said Una plaintively.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Aunt Martha&rsquo;s habit was to boil a large slab of mutton early in the week
-and serve it up every day, cold and greasy, as long as it lasted. To this
-Faith, in a moment of inspiration, had give the name of &ldquo;ditto&rdquo;,
-and by this it was invariably known at the manse.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let&rsquo;s go and see where that smell is coming from,&rdquo; said
-Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They all sprang up, frolicked over the lawn with the abandon of young puppies,
-climbed a fence, and tore down the mossy slope, guided by the savory lure that
-ever grew stronger. A few minutes later they arrived breathlessly in the
-sanctum sanctorum of Rainbow Valley where the Blythe children were just about
-to give thanks and eat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They halted shyly. Una wished they had not been so precipitate: but Di Blythe
-was equal to that and any occasion. She stepped forward, with a comrade&rsquo;s
-smile.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I guess I know who you are,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;You belong to the
-manse, don&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith nodded, her face creased by dimples.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We smelled your trout cooking and wondered what it was.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You must sit down and help us eat them,&rdquo; said Di.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maybe you haven&rsquo;t more than you want yourselves,&rdquo; said
-Jerry, looking hungrily at the tin platter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ve heaps&mdash;three apiece,&rdquo; said Jem. &ldquo;Sit
-down.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-No more ceremony was necessary. Down they all sat on mossy stones. Merry was
-that feast and long. Nan and Di would probably have died of horror had they
-known what Faith and Una knew perfectly well&mdash;that Carl had two young mice
-in his jacket pocket. But they never knew it, so it never hurt them. Where can
-folks get better acquainted than over a meal table? When the last trout had
-vanished, the manse children and the Ingleside children were sworn friends and
-allies. They had always known each other and always would. The race of Joseph
-recognized its own.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They poured out the history of their little pasts. The manse children heard of
-Avonlea and Green Gables, of Rainbow Valley traditions, and of the little house
-by the harbour shore where Jem had been born. The Ingleside children heard of
-Maywater, where the Merediths had lived before coming to the Glen, of
-Una&rsquo;s beloved, one-eyed doll and Faith&rsquo;s pet rooster.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith was inclined to resent the fact that people laughed at her for petting a
-rooster. She liked the Blythes because they accepted it without question.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;A handsome rooster like Adam is just as nice a pet as a dog or cat,
-<i>I</i> think,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;If he was a canary nobody would wonder.
-And I brought him up from a little, wee, yellow chicken. Mrs. Johnson at
-Maywater gave him to me. A weasel had killed all his brothers and sisters. I
-called him after her husband. I never liked dolls or cats. Cats are too sneaky
-and dolls are <i>dead</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who lives in that house away up there?&rdquo; asked Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The Miss Wests&mdash;Rosemary and Ellen,&rdquo; answered Nan. &ldquo;Di
-and I are going to take music lessons from Miss Rosemary this summer.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una gazed at the lucky twins with eyes whose longing was too gentle for envy.
-Oh, if she could only have music lessons! It was one of the dreams of her
-little hidden life. But nobody ever thought of such a thing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Miss Rosemary is so sweet and she always dresses so pretty,&rdquo; said
-Di. &ldquo;Her hair is just the colour of new molasses taffy,&rdquo; she added
-wistfully&mdash;for Di, like her mother before her, was not resigned to her own
-ruddy tresses.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I like Miss Ellen, too,&rdquo; said Nan. &ldquo;She always used to give
-me candies when she came to church. But Di is afraid of her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Her brows are so black and she has such a great deep voice,&rdquo; said
-Di. &ldquo;Oh, how scared of her Kenneth Ford used to be when he was little!
-Mother says the first Sunday Mrs. Ford brought him to church Miss Ellen
-happened to be there, sitting right behind them. And the minute Kenneth saw her
-he just screamed and screamed until Mrs. Ford had to carry him out.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who is Mrs. Ford?&rdquo; asked Una wonderingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, the Fords don&rsquo;t live here. They only come here in the summer.
-And they&rsquo;re not coming this summer. They live in that little house
-&lsquo;way, &lsquo;way down on the harbour shore where father and mother used
-to live. I wish you could see Persis Ford. She is just like a picture.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve heard of Mrs. Ford,&rdquo; broke in Faith. &ldquo;Bertie
-Shakespeare Drew told me about her. She was married fourteen years to a dead
-man and then he came to life.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense,&rdquo; said Nan. &ldquo;That isn&rsquo;t the way it goes at
-all. Bertie Shakespeare can never get anything straight. I know the whole story
-and I&rsquo;ll tell it to you some time, but not now, for it&rsquo;s too long
-and it&rsquo;s time for us to go home. Mother doesn&rsquo;t like us to be out
-late these damp evenings.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Nobody cared whether the manse children were out in the damp or not. Aunt
-Martha was already in bed and the minister was still too deeply lost in
-speculations concerning the immortality of the soul to remember the mortality
-of the body. But they went home, too, with visions of good times coming in
-their heads.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think Rainbow Valley is even nicer than the graveyard,&rdquo; said
-Una. &ldquo;And I just love those dear Blythes. It&rsquo;s <i>so</i> nice when you can
-love people because so often you <i>can&rsquo;t</i>. Father said in his sermon last
-Sunday that we should love everybody. But how can we? How could we love Mrs.
-Alec Davis?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, father only said that in the pulpit,&rdquo; said Faith airily.
-&ldquo;He has more sense than to really think it outside.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Blythe children went up to Ingleside, except Jem, who slipped away for a
-few moments on a solitary expedition to a remote corner of Rainbow Valley.
-Mayflowers grew there and Jem never forgot to take his mother a bouquet as long
-as they lasted.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap05"></a>CHAPTER V.<br />
-THE ADVENT OF MARY VANCE</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This is just the sort of day you feel as if things might happen,&rdquo;
-said Faith, responsive to the lure of crystal air and blue hills. She hugged
-herself with delight and danced a hornpipe on old Hezekiah Pollock&rsquo;s
-bench tombstone, much to the horror of two ancient maidens who happened to be
-driving past just as Faith hopped on one foot around the stone, waving the
-other and her arms in the air.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And that,&rdquo; groaned one ancient maiden, &ldquo;is our
-minister&rsquo;s daughter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What else could you expect of a widower&rsquo;s family?&rdquo; groaned
-the other ancient maiden. And then they both shook their heads.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was early on Saturday morning and the Merediths were out in the dew-drenched
-world with a delightful consciousness of the holiday. They had never had
-anything to do on a holiday. Even Nan and Di Blythe had certain household tasks
-for Saturday mornings, but the daughters of the manse were free to roam from
-blushing morn to dewy eve if so it pleased them. It <i>did</i> please Faith, but Una
-felt a secret, bitter humiliation because they never learned to do anything.
-The other girls in her class at school could cook and sew and knit; she only
-was a little ignoramus.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jerry suggested that they go exploring; so they went lingeringly through the
-fir grove, picking up Carl on the way, who was on his knees in the dripping
-grass studying his darling ants. Beyond the grove they came out in Mr.
-Taylor&rsquo;s pasture field, sprinkled over with the white ghosts of
-dandelions; in a remote corner was an old tumbledown barn, where Mr. Taylor
-sometimes stored his surplus hay crop but which was never used for any other
-purpose. Thither the Meredith children trooped, and prowled about the ground
-floor for several minutes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What was that?&rdquo; whispered Una suddenly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They all listened. There was a faint but distinct rustle in the hayloft above.
-The Merediths looked at each other.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s something up there,&rdquo; breathed Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m going up to see what it is,&rdquo; said Jerry resolutely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, don&rsquo;t,&rdquo; begged Una, catching his arm.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m going.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll all go, too, then,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The whole four climbed the shaky ladder, Jerry and Faith quite dauntless, Una
-pale from fright, and Carl rather absent-mindedly speculating on the
-possibility of finding a bat up in the loft. He longed to see a bat in
-daylight.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When they stepped off the ladder they saw what had made the rustle and the
-sight struck them dumb for a few moments.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In a little nest in the hay a girl was curled up, looking as if she had just
-wakened from sleep. When she saw them she stood up, rather shakily, as it
-seemed, and in the bright sunlight that streamed through the cobwebbed window
-behind her, they saw that her thin, sunburned face was very pale under its tan.
-She had two braids of lank, thick, tow-coloured hair and very odd
-eyes&mdash;&ldquo;white eyes,&rdquo; the manse children thought, as she stared
-at them half defiantly, half piteously. They were really of so pale a blue that
-they did seem almost white, especially when contrasted with the narrow black
-ring that circled the iris. She was barefooted and bareheaded, and was clad in
-a faded, ragged, old plaid dress, much too short and tight for her. As for
-years, she might have been almost any age, judging from her wizened little
-face, but her height seemed to be somewhere in the neighbourhood of twelve.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who are you?&rdquo; asked Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The girl looked about her as if seeking a way of escape. Then she seemed to
-give in with a little shiver of despair.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m Mary Vance,&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where&rsquo;d you come from?&rdquo; pursued Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary, instead of replying, suddenly sat, or fell, down on the hay and began to
-cry. Instantly Faith had flung herself down beside her and put her arm around
-the thin, shaking shoulders.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You stop bothering her,&rdquo; she commanded Jerry. Then she hugged the
-waif. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t cry, dear. Just tell us what&rsquo;s the matter.
-<i>We&rsquo;re</i> friends.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m so&mdash;so&mdash;hungry,&rdquo; wailed Mary. &ldquo;I&mdash;I
-hain&rsquo;t had a thing to eat since Thursday morning, &lsquo;cept a little
-water from the brook out there.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The manse children gazed at each other in horror. Faith sprang up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You come right up to the manse and get something to eat before you say
-another word.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary shrank.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh&mdash;I can&rsquo;t. What will your pa and ma say? Besides,
-they&rsquo;d send me back.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ve no mother, and father won&rsquo;t bother about you. Neither
-will Aunt Martha. Come, I say.&rdquo; Faith stamped her foot impatiently. Was
-this queer girl going to insist on starving to death almost at their very door?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary yielded. She was so weak that she could hardly climb down the ladder, but
-somehow they got her down and over the field and into the manse kitchen. Aunt
-Martha, muddling through her Saturday cooking, took no notice of her. Faith and
-Una flew to the pantry and ransacked it for such eatables as it
-contained&mdash;some &ldquo;ditto,&rdquo; bread, butter, milk and a doubtful
-pie. Mary Vance attacked the food ravenously and uncritically, while the manse
-children stood around and watched her. Jerry noticed that she had a pretty
-mouth and very nice, even, white teeth. Faith decided, with secret horror, that
-Mary had not one stitch on her except that ragged, faded dress. Una was full of
-pure pity, Carl of amused wonder, and all of them of curiosity.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now come out to the graveyard and tell us about yourself,&rdquo; ordered
-Faith, when Mary&rsquo;s appetite showed signs of failing her. Mary was now
-nothing loath. Food had restored her natural vivacity and unloosed her by no
-means reluctant tongue.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You won&rsquo;t tell your pa or anybody if I tell you?&rdquo; she
-stipulated, when she was enthroned on Mr. Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone. Opposite
-her the manse children lined up on another. Here was spice and mystery and
-adventure. Something <i>had</i> happened.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, we won&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Cross your hearts?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Cross our hearts.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I&rsquo;ve run away. I was living with Mrs. Wiley over-harbour. Do
-you know Mrs. Wiley?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you don&rsquo;t want to know her. She&rsquo;s an awful woman. My,
-how I hate her! She worked me to death and wouldn&rsquo;t give me half enough
-to eat, and she used to larrup me &lsquo;most every day. Look a-here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary rolled up her ragged sleeves, and held up her scrawny arms and thin hands,
-chapped almost to rawness. They were black with bruises. The manse children
-shivered. Faith flushed crimson with indignation. Una&rsquo;s blue eyes filled
-with tears.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She licked me Wednesday night with a stick,&rdquo; said Mary,
-indifferently. &ldquo;It was &lsquo;cause I let the cow kick over a pail of
-milk. How&rsquo;d I know the darn old cow was going to kick?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A not unpleasant thrill ran over her listeners. They would never dream of using
-such dubious words, but it was rather titivating to hear someone else use
-them&mdash;and a girl, at that. Certainly this Mary Vance was an interesting
-creature.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t blame you for running away,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I didn&rsquo;t run away &lsquo;cause she licked me. A licking was
-all in the day&rsquo;s work with me. I was darn well used to it. Nope,
-I&rsquo;d meant to run away for a week &lsquo;cause I&rsquo;d found out that
-Mrs. Wiley was going to rent her farm and go to Lowbridge to live and give me
-to a cousin of hers up Charlottetown way. I wasn&rsquo;t going to stand for
-<i>that</i>. She was a worse sort than Mrs. Wiley even. Mrs. Wiley lent me to her for
-a month last summer and I&rsquo;d rather live with the devil himself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Sensation number two. But Una looked doubtful.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So I made up my mind I&rsquo;d beat it. I had seventy cents saved up
-that Mrs. John Crawford give me in the spring for planting potatoes for her.
-Mrs. Wiley didn&rsquo;t know about it. She was away visiting her cousin when I
-planted them. I thought I&rsquo;d sneak up here to the Glen and buy a ticket to
-Charlottetown and try to get work there. I&rsquo;m a hustler, let me tell you.
-There ain&rsquo;t a lazy bone in <i>my</i> body. So I lit out Thursday morning
-&lsquo;fore Mrs. Wiley was up and walked to the Glen&mdash;six miles. And when
-I got to the station I found I&rsquo;d lost my money. Dunno how&mdash;dunno
-where. Anyhow, it was gone. I didn&rsquo;t know what to do. If I went back to
-old Lady Wiley she&rsquo;d take the hide off me. So I went and hid in that old
-barn.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And what will you do now?&rdquo; asked Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dunno. I s&rsquo;pose I&rsquo;ll have to go back and take my medicine.
-Now that I&rsquo;ve got some grub in my stomach I guess I can stand it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But there was fear behind the bravado in Mary&rsquo;s eyes. Una suddenly
-slipped from the one tombstone to the other and put her arm about Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t go back. Just stay here with us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mrs. Wiley&rsquo;ll hunt me up,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s
-likely she&rsquo;s on my trail before this. I might stay here till she finds
-me, I s&rsquo;pose, if your folks don&rsquo;t mind. I was a darn fool ever to
-think of skipping out. She&rsquo;d run a weasel to earth. But I was so
-misrebul.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary&rsquo;s voice quivered, but she was ashamed of showing her weakness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hain&rsquo;t had the life of a dog for these four years,&rdquo; she
-explained defiantly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;ve been four years with Mrs. Wiley?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yip. She took me out of the asylum over in Hopetown when I was
-eight.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s the same place Mrs. Blythe came from,&rdquo; exclaimed
-Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I was two years in the asylum. I was put there when I was six. My ma had
-hung herself and my pa had cut his throat.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Holy cats! Why?&rdquo; said Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Booze,&rdquo; said Mary laconically.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And you&rsquo;ve no relations?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not a darn one that I know of. Must have had some once, though. I was
-called after half a dozen of them. My full name is Mary Martha Lucilla Moore
-Ball Vance. Can you beat that? My grandfather was a rich man. I&rsquo;ll bet he
-was richer than <i>your</i> grandfather. But pa drunk it all up and ma, she did her
-part. <i>They</i> used to beat me, too. Laws, I&rsquo;ve been licked so much I kind of
-like it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary tossed her head. She divined that the manse children were pitying her for
-her many stripes and she did not want pity. She wanted to be envied. She looked
-gaily about her. Her strange eyes, now that the dullness of famine was removed
-from them, were brilliant. She would show these youngsters what a personage she
-was.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve been sick an awful lot,&rdquo; she said proudly.
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s not many kids could have come through what I have.
-I&rsquo;ve had scarlet fever and measles and ersipelas and mumps and whooping
-cough and pewmonia.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Were you ever fatally sick?&rdquo; asked Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know,&rdquo; said Mary doubtfully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course she wasn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; scoffed Jerry. &ldquo;If you&rsquo;re
-fatally sick you die.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, well, I never died exactly,&rdquo; said Mary, &ldquo;but I come
-blamed near it once. They thought I was dead and they were getting ready to lay
-me out when I up and come to.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is it like to be half dead?&rdquo; asked Jerry curiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Like nothing. I didn&rsquo;t know it for days afterwards. It was when I
-had the pewmonia. Mrs. Wiley wouldn&rsquo;t have the doctor&mdash;said she
-wasn&rsquo;t going to no such expense for a home girl. Old Aunt Christina
-MacAllister nursed me with poultices. She brung me round. But sometimes I wish
-I&rsquo;d just died the other half and done with it. I&rsquo;d been better
-off.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If you went to heaven I s&rsquo;pose you would,&rdquo; said Faith,
-rather doubtfully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, what other place is there to go to?&rdquo; demanded Mary in a
-puzzled voice.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s hell, you know,&rdquo; said Una, dropping her voice and
-hugging Mary to lessen the awfulness of the suggestion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hell? What&rsquo;s that?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, it&rsquo;s where the devil lives,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;ve heard of him&mdash;you spoke about him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, yes, but I didn&rsquo;t know he lived anywhere. I thought he just
-roamed round. Mr. Wiley used to mention hell when he was alive. He was always
-telling folks to go there. I thought it was some place over in New Brunswick
-where he come from.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hell is an awful place,&rdquo; said Faith, with the dramatic enjoyment
-that is born of telling dreadful things. &ldquo;Bad people go there when they
-die and burn in fire for ever and ever and ever.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who told you that?&rdquo; demanded Mary incredulously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s in the Bible. And Mr. Isaac Crothers at Maywater told us,
-too, in Sunday School. He was an elder and a pillar in the church and knew all
-about it. But you needn&rsquo;t worry. If you&rsquo;re good you&rsquo;ll go to
-heaven and if you&rsquo;re bad I guess you&rsquo;d rather go to hell.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wouldn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said Mary positively. &ldquo;No matter how bad
-I was I wouldn&rsquo;t want to be burned and burned. <i>I</i> know what
-it&rsquo;s like. I picked up a red hot poker once by accident. What must you do
-to be good?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You must go to church and Sunday School and read your Bible and pray
-every night and give to missions,&rdquo; said Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It sounds like a large order,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;Anything
-else?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You must ask God to forgive the sins you&rsquo;ve committed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But I&rsquo;ve never com&mdash;committed any,&rdquo; said Mary.
-&ldquo;What&rsquo;s a sin any way?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary, you must have. Everybody does. Did you never tell a
-lie?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Heaps of &lsquo;em,&rdquo; said Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s a dreadful sin,&rdquo; said Una solemnly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you mean to tell me,&rdquo; demanded Mary, &ldquo;that I&rsquo;d be
-sent to hell for telling a lie now and then? Why, I <i>had</i> to. Mr. Wiley would
-have broken every bone in my body one time if I hadn&rsquo;t told him a lie.
-Lies have saved me many a whack, I can tell you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una sighed. Here were too many difficulties for her to solve. She shuddered as
-she thought of being cruelly whipped. Very likely she would have lied too. She
-squeezed Mary&rsquo;s little calloused hand.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is that the only dress you&rsquo;ve got?&rdquo; asked Faith, whose
-joyous nature refused to dwell on disagreeable subjects.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I just put on this dress because it was no good,&rdquo; cried Mary
-flushing. &ldquo;Mrs. Wiley&rsquo;d bought my clothes and I wasn&rsquo;t going
-to be beholden to her for anything. And I&rsquo;m honest. If I was going to run
-away I wasn&rsquo;t going to take what belong to <i>her</i> that was worth anything.
-When I grow up I&rsquo;m going to have a blue sating dress. Your own clothes
-don&rsquo;t look so stylish. I thought ministers&rsquo; children were always
-dressed up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was plain that Mary had a temper and was sensitive on some points. But there
-was a queer, wild charm about her which captivated them all. She was taken to
-Rainbow Valley that afternoon and introduced to the Blythes as &ldquo;a friend
-of ours from over-harbour who is visiting us.&rdquo; The Blythes accepted her
-unquestioningly, perhaps because she was fairly respectable now. After
-dinner&mdash;through which Aunt Martha had mumbled and Mr. Meredith had been in
-a state of semi-unconsciousness while brooding his Sunday sermon&mdash;Faith
-had prevailed on Mary to put on one of her dresses, as well as certain other
-articles of clothing. With her hair neatly braided Mary passed muster tolerably
-well. She was an acceptable playmate, for she knew several new and exciting
-games, and her conversation lacked not spice. In fact, some of her expressions
-made Nan and Di look at her rather askance. They were not quite sure what their
-mother would have thought of her, but they knew quite well what Susan would.
-However, she was a visitor at the manse, so she must be all right.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When bedtime came there was the problem of where Mary should sleep.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We can&rsquo;t put her in the spare room, you know,&rdquo; said Faith
-perplexedly to Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I haven&rsquo;t got anything in my head,&rdquo; cried Mary in an injured
-tone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I didn&rsquo;t mean <i>that</i>,&rdquo; protested Faith. &ldquo;The spare
-room is all torn up. The mice have gnawed a big hole in the feather tick and
-made a nest in it. We never found it out till Aunt Martha put the Rev. Mr.
-Fisher from Charlottetown there to sleep last week. <i>He</i> soon found it out. Then
-father had to give him his bed and sleep on the study lounge. Aunt Martha
-hasn&rsquo;t had time to fix the spare room bed up yet, so she says; so <i>nobody</i>
-can sleep there, no matter how clean their heads are. And our room is so small,
-and the bed so small you can&rsquo;t sleep with us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I can go back to the hay in the old barn for the night if you&rsquo;ll
-lend me a quilt,&rdquo; said Mary philosophically. &ldquo;It was kind of chilly
-last night, but &lsquo;cept for that I&rsquo;ve had worse beds.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, no, no, you mustn&rsquo;t do that,&rdquo; said Una.
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve thought of a plan, Faith. You know that little trestle bed in
-the garret room, with the old mattress on it, that the last minister left
-there? Let&rsquo;s take up the spare room bedclothes and make Mary a bed there.
-You won&rsquo;t mind sleeping in the garret, will you, Mary? It&rsquo;s just
-above our room.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Any place&rsquo;ll do me. Laws, I never had a decent place to sleep in
-my life. I slept in the loft over the kitchen at Mrs. Wiley&rsquo;s. The roof
-leaked rain in the summer and the snow druv in in winter. My bed was a straw
-tick on the floor. You won&rsquo;t find me a mite huffy about where <i>I</i>
-sleep.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The manse garret was a long, low, shadowy place, with one gable end partitioned
-off. Here a bed was made up for Mary of the dainty hemstitched sheets and
-embroidered spread which Cecilia Meredith had once so proudly made for her
-spare-room, and which still survived Aunt Martha&rsquo;s uncertain washings.
-The good nights were said and silence fell over the manse. Una was just falling
-asleep when she heard a sound in the room just above that made her sit up
-suddenly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Listen, Faith&mdash;Mary&rsquo;s crying,&rdquo; she whispered. Faith
-replied not, being already asleep. Una slipped out of bed, and made her way in
-her little white gown down the hall and up the garret stairs. The creaking
-floor gave ample notice of her coming, and when she reached the corner room all
-was moonlit silence and the trestle bed showed only a hump in the middle.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mary,&rdquo; whispered Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was no response.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una crept close to the bed and pulled at the spread. &ldquo;Mary, I know you
-are crying. I heard you. Are you lonesome?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary suddenly appeared to view but said nothing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let me in beside you. I&rsquo;m cold,&rdquo; said Una shivering in the
-chilly air, for the little garret window was open and the keen breath of the
-north shore at night blew in.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary moved over and Una snuggled down beside her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Now</i> you won&rsquo;t be lonesome. We shouldn&rsquo;t have left you here
-alone the first night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wasn&rsquo;t lonesome,&rdquo; sniffed Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What were you crying for then?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I just got to thinking of things when I was here alone. I thought of
-having to go back to Mrs. Wiley&mdash;and of being licked for running
-away&mdash;and&mdash;and&mdash;and of going to hell for telling lies. It all
-worried me something scandalous.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary,&rdquo; said poor Una in distress. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe
-God will send you to hell for telling lies when you didn&rsquo;t know it was
-wrong. He <i>couldn&rsquo;t</i>. Why, He&rsquo;s kind and good. Of course, you
-mustn&rsquo;t tell any more now that you know it&rsquo;s wrong.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If I can&rsquo;t tell lies what&rsquo;s to become of me?&rdquo; said
-Mary with a sob. &ldquo;<i>You</i> don&rsquo;t understand. You don&rsquo;t know
-anything about it. You&rsquo;ve got a home and a kind father&mdash;though it
-does seem to me that he isn&rsquo;t more&rsquo;n about half there. But anyway
-he doesn&rsquo;t lick you, and you get enough to eat such as it is&mdash;though
-that old aunt of yours doesn&rsquo;t know <i>anything</i> about cooking. Why, this is
-the first day I ever remember of feeling &lsquo;sif I&rsquo;d enough to eat.
-I&rsquo;ve been knocked about all of my life, &lsquo;cept for the two years I
-was at the asylum. They didn&rsquo;t lick me there and it wasn&rsquo;t too bad,
-though the matron was cross. She always looked ready to bite my head off a
-nail. But Mrs. Wiley is a holy terror, that&rsquo;s what <i>she</i> is, and I&rsquo;m
-just scared stiff when I think of going back to her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Perhaps you won&rsquo;t have to. Perhaps we&rsquo;ll be able to think of
-a way out. Let&rsquo;s both ask God to keep you from having to go back to Mrs.
-Wiley. You say your prayers, don&rsquo;t you Mary?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, yes, I always go over an old rhyme &lsquo;fore I get into
-bed,&rdquo; said Mary indifferently. &ldquo;I never thought of asking for
-anything in particular though. Nobody in this world ever bothered themselves
-about me so I didn&rsquo;t s&rsquo;pose God would. He <i>might</i> take more trouble
-for you, seeing you&rsquo;re a minister&rsquo;s daughter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He&rsquo;d take every bit as much trouble for you, Mary, I&rsquo;m
-sure,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;It doesn&rsquo;t matter whose child you are. You
-just ask Him&mdash;and I will, too.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right,&rdquo; agreed Mary. &ldquo;It won&rsquo;t do any harm if it
-doesn&rsquo;t do much good. If you knew Mrs. Wiley as well as I do you
-wouldn&rsquo;t think God would want to meddle with her. Anyhow, I won&rsquo;t
-cry any more about it. This is a big sight better&rsquo;n last night down in
-that old barn, with the mice running about. Look at the Four Winds light.
-Ain&rsquo;t it pretty?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This is the only window we can see it from,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;I
-love to watch it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you? So do I. I could see it from the Wiley loft and it was the only
-comfort I had. When I was all sore from being licked I&rsquo;d watch it and
-forget about the places that hurt. I&rsquo;d think of the ships sailing away
-and away from it and wish I was on one of them sailing far away too&mdash;away
-from everything. On winter nights when it didn&rsquo;t shine, I just felt real
-lonesome. Say, Una, what makes all you folks so kind to me when I&rsquo;m just
-a stranger?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because it&rsquo;s right to be. The bible tells us to be kind to
-everybody.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Does it? Well, I guess most folks don&rsquo;t mind it much then. I never
-remember of any one being kind to me before&mdash;true&rsquo;s you live I
-don&rsquo;t. Say, Una, ain&rsquo;t them shadows on the walls pretty? They look
-just like a flock of little dancing birds. And say, Una, I like all you folks
-and them Blythe boys and Di, but I don&rsquo;t like that Nan. She&rsquo;s a
-proud one.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, no, Mary, she isn&rsquo;t a bit proud,&rdquo; said Una eagerly.
-&ldquo;Not a single bit.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t tell me. Any one that holds her head like that <i>is</i> proud. I
-don&rsquo;t like her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>We</i> all like her very much.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I s&rsquo;pose you like her better&rsquo;n me?&rdquo; said Mary
-jealously. &ldquo;Do you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Mary&mdash;we&rsquo;ve known her for weeks and we&rsquo;ve only
-known you a few hours,&rdquo; stammered Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So you do like her better then?&rdquo; said Mary in a rage. &ldquo;All
-right! Like her all you want to. <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t care. <i>I</i> can get
-along without you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She flung herself over against the wall of the garret with a slam.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary,&rdquo; said Una, pushing a tender arm over Mary&rsquo;s
-uncompromising back, &ldquo;don&rsquo;t talk like that. I <i>do</i> like you ever so
-much. And you make me feel so bad.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-No answer. Presently Una gave a sob. Instantly Mary squirmed around again and
-engulfed Una in a bear&rsquo;s hug.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hush up,&rdquo; she ordered. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t go crying over what I
-said. I was as mean as the devil to talk that way. I orter to be skinned
-alive&mdash;and you all so good to me. I should think you <i>would</i> like any one
-better&rsquo;n me. I deserve every licking I ever got. Hush, now. If you cry
-any more I&rsquo;ll go and walk right down to the harbour in this night-dress
-and drown myself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This terrible threat made Una choke back her sobs. Her tears were wiped away by
-Mary with the lace frill of the spare-room pillow and forgiver and forgiven
-cuddled down together again, harmony restored, to watch the shadows of the vine
-leaves on the moonlit wall until they fell asleep.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And in the study below Rev. John Meredith walked the floor with rapt face and
-shining eyes, thinking out his message of the morrow, and knew not that under
-his own roof there was a little forlorn soul, stumbling in darkness and
-ignorance, beset by terror and compassed about with difficulties too great for
-it to grapple in its unequal struggle with a big indifferent world.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap06"></a>CHAPTER VI.<br />
-MARY STAYS AT THE MANSE</h2>
-
-<p>
-The manse children took Mary Vance to church with them the next day. At first
-Mary objected to the idea.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Didn&rsquo;t you go to church over-harbour?&rdquo; asked Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You bet. Mrs. Wiley never troubled church much, but I went every Sunday
-I could get off. I was mighty thankful to go to some place where I could sit
-down for a spell. But I can&rsquo;t go to church in this old ragged
-dress.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This difficulty was removed by Faith offering the loan of her second best
-dress.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s faded a little and two of the buttons are off, but I guess
-it&rsquo;ll do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll sew the buttons on in a jiffy,&rdquo; said Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not on Sunday,&rdquo; said Una, shocked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Sure. The better the day the better the deed. You just gimme a needle
-and thread and look the other way if you&rsquo;re squeamish.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith&rsquo;s school boots, and an old black velvet cap that had once been
-Cecilia Meredith&rsquo;s, completed Mary&rsquo;s costume, and to church she
-went. Her behaviour was quite conventional, and though some wondered who the
-shabby little girl with the manse children was she did not attract much
-attention. She listened to the sermon with outward decorum and joined lustily
-in the singing. She had, it appeared, a clear, strong voice and a good ear.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;His blood can make the <i>violets</i> clean,&rdquo; carolled Mary blithely.
-Mrs. Jimmy Milgrave, whose pew was just in front of the manse pew, turned
-suddenly and looked the child over from top to toe. Mary, in a mere superfluity
-of naughtiness, stuck out her tongue at Mrs. Milgrave, much to Una&rsquo;s
-horror.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I couldn&rsquo;t help it,&rdquo; she declared after church.
-&ldquo;What&rsquo;d she want to stare at me like that for? Such manners!
-I&rsquo;m <i>glad</i> stuck my tongue out at her. I wish I&rsquo;d stuck it farther
-out. Say, I saw Rob MacAllister from over-harbour there. Wonder if he&rsquo;ll
-tell Mrs. Wiley on me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-No Mrs. Wiley appeared, however, and in a few day the children forgot to look
-for her. Mary was apparently a fixture at the manse. But she refused to go to
-school with the others.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nope. I&rsquo;ve finished my education,&rdquo; she said, when Faith
-urged her to go. &ldquo;I went to school four winters since I come to Mrs.
-Wiley&rsquo;s and I&rsquo;ve had all I want of <i>that</i>. I&rsquo;m sick and tired
-of being everlastingly jawed at &lsquo;cause I didn&rsquo;t get my home-lessons
-done. <i>I&rsquo;d</i> no time to do home-lessons.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Our teacher won&rsquo;t jaw you. He is awfully nice,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I ain&rsquo;t going. I can read and write and cipher up to
-fractions. That&rsquo;s all I want. You fellows go and I&rsquo;ll stay home.
-You needn&rsquo;t be scared I&rsquo;ll steal anything. I swear I&rsquo;m
-honest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary employed herself while the others were at school in cleaning up the manse.
-In a few days it was a different place. Floors were swept, furniture dusted,
-everything straightened out. She mended the spare-room bed-tick, she sewed on
-missing buttons, she patched clothes neatly, she even invaded the study with
-broom and dustpan and ordered Mr. Meredith out while she put it to rights. But
-there was one department with which Aunt Martha refused to let her interfere.
-Aunt Martha might be deaf and half blind and very childish, but she was
-resolved to keep the commissariat in her own hands, in spite of all
-Mary&rsquo;s wiles and stratagems.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I can tell you if old Martha&rsquo;d let <i>me</i> cook you&rsquo;d have some
-decent meals,&rdquo; she told the manse children indignantly.
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;d be no more &lsquo;ditto&rsquo;&mdash;and no more lumpy
-porridge and blue milk either. What <i>does</i> she do with all the cream?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She gives it to the cat. He&rsquo;s hers, you know,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;d like to <i>cat</i> her,&rdquo; exclaimed Mary bitterly.
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve no use for cats anyhow. They belong to the old Nick. You can
-tell that by their eyes. Well, if old Martha won&rsquo;t, she won&rsquo;t, I
-s&rsquo;pose. But it gits on my nerves to see good vittles spoiled.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When school came out they always went to Rainbow Valley. Mary refused to play
-in the graveyard. She declared she was afraid of ghosts.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s no such thing as ghosts,&rdquo; declared Jem Blythe.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, ain&rsquo;t there?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Did you ever see any?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hundreds of &lsquo;em,&rdquo; said Mary promptly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What are they like?&rdquo; said Carl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Awful-looking. Dressed all in white with skellington hands and
-heads,&rdquo; said Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What did you do?&rdquo; asked Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Run like the devil,&rdquo; said Mary. Then she caught Walter&rsquo;s
-eyes and blushed. Mary was a good deal in awe of Walter. She declared to the
-manse girls that his eyes made her nervous.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think of all the lies I&rsquo;ve ever told when I look into
-them,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;and I wish I hadn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jem was Mary&rsquo;s favourite. When he took her to the attic at Ingleside and
-showed her the museum of curios that Captain Jim Boyd had bequeathed to him she
-was immensely pleased and flattered. She also won Carl&rsquo;s heart entirely
-by her interest in his beetles and ants. It could not be denied that Mary got
-on rather better with the boys than with the girls. She quarrelled bitterly
-with Nan Blythe the second day.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Your mother is a witch,&rdquo; she told Nan scornfully.
-&ldquo;Red-haired women are always witches.&rdquo; Then she and Faith fell out
-about the rooster. Mary said its tail was too short. Faith angrily retorted
-that she guessed God know what length to make a rooster&rsquo;s tail. They did
-not &ldquo;speak&rdquo; for a day over this. Mary treated Una&rsquo;s hairless,
-one-eyed doll with consideration; but when Una showed her other prized
-treasure&mdash;a picture of an angel carrying a baby, presumably to heaven,
-Mary declared that it looked too much like a ghost for her. Una crept away to
-her room and cried over this, but Mary hunted her out, hugged her repentantly
-and implored forgiveness. No one could keep up a quarrel long with
-Mary&mdash;not even Nan, who was rather prone to hold grudges and never quite
-forgave the insult to her mother. Mary was jolly. She could and did tell the
-most thrilling ghost stories. Rainbow Valley seances were undeniably more
-exciting after Mary came. She learned to play on the jew&rsquo;s-harp and soon
-eclipsed Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Never struck anything yet I couldn&rsquo;t do if I put my mind to
-it,&rdquo; she declared. Mary seldom lost a chance of tooting her own horn. She
-taught them how to make &ldquo;blow-bags&rdquo; out of the thick leaves of the
-&ldquo;live-forever&rdquo; that flourished in the old Bailey garden, she
-initiated them into the toothsome qualities of the &ldquo;sours&rdquo; that
-grew in the niches of the graveyard dyke, and she could make the most wonderful
-shadow pictures on the walls with her long, flexible fingers. And when they all
-went picking gum in Rainbow Valley Mary always got &ldquo;the biggest
-chew&rdquo; and bragged about it. There were times when they hated her and
-times when they loved her. But at all times they found her interesting. So they
-submitted quite meekly to her bossing, and by the end of a fortnight had come
-to feel that she must always have been with them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s the queerest thing that Mrs. Wiley hain&rsquo;t been after
-me,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;I can&rsquo;t understand it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maybe she isn&rsquo;t going to bother about you at all,&rdquo; said Una.
-&ldquo;Then you can just go on staying here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This house ain&rsquo;t hardly big enough for me and old Martha,&rdquo;
-said Mary darkly. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a very fine thing to have enough to
-eat&mdash;I&rsquo;ve often wondered what it would be like&mdash;but I&rsquo;m
-p&rsquo;ticler about my cooking. And Mrs. Wiley&rsquo;ll be here yet.
-<i>She&rsquo;s</i> got a rod in pickle for me all right. I don&rsquo;t think about it
-so much in daytime but say, girls, up there in that garret at night I git to
-thinking and thinking of it, till I just almost wish she&rsquo;d come and have
-it over with. I dunno&rsquo;s one real good whipping would be much
-worse&rsquo;n all the dozen I&rsquo;ve lived through in my mind ever since I
-run away. Were any of you ever licked?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, of course not,&rdquo; said Faith indignantly. &ldquo;Father would
-never do such a thing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You don&rsquo;t know you&rsquo;re alive,&rdquo; said Mary with a sigh
-half of envy, half of superiority. &ldquo;You don&rsquo;t know what I&rsquo;ve
-come through. And I s&rsquo;pose the Blythes were never licked either?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No-o-o, I guess not. But I <i>think</i> they were sometimes spanked when they
-were small.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;A spanking doesn&rsquo;t amount to anything,&rdquo; said Mary
-contemptuously. &ldquo;If my folks had just spanked me I&rsquo;d have thought
-they were petting me. Well, it ain&rsquo;t a fair world. I wouldn&rsquo;t mind
-taking my share of wallopings but I&rsquo;ve had a darn sight too many.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t right to say that word, Mary,&rdquo; said Una
-reproachfully. &ldquo;You promised me you wouldn&rsquo;t say it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;G&rsquo;way,&rdquo; responded Mary. &ldquo;If you knew some of the words
-I <i>could</i> say if I liked you wouldn&rsquo;t make such a fuss over darn. And you
-know very well I hain&rsquo;t ever told any lies since I come here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What about all those ghosts you said you saw?&rdquo; asked Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary blushed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That was diff&rsquo;runt,&rdquo; she said defiantly. &ldquo;I knew you
-wouldn&rsquo;t believe them yarns and I didn&rsquo;t intend you to. And I
-really did see something queer one night when I was passing the over-harbour
-graveyard, true&rsquo;s you live. I dunno whether &lsquo;twas a ghost or Sandy
-Crawford&rsquo;s old white nag, but it looked blamed queer and I tell you I
-scooted at the rate of no man&rsquo;s business.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap07"></a>CHAPTER VII.<br />
-A FISHY EPISODE</h2>
-
-<p>
-Rilla Blythe walked proudly, and perhaps a little primly, through the main
-&ldquo;street&rdquo; of the Glen and up the manse hill, carefully carrying a
-small basketful of early strawberries, which Susan had coaxed into lusciousness
-in one of the sunny nooks of Ingleside. Susan had charged Rilla to give the
-basket to nobody except Aunt Martha or Mr. Meredith, and Rilla, very proud of
-being entrusted with such an errand, was resolved to carry out her instructions
-to the letter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan had dressed her daintily in a white, starched, and embroidered dress,
-with sash of blue and beaded slippers. Her long ruddy curls were sleek and
-round, and Susan had let her put on her best hat, out of compliment to the
-manse. It was a somewhat elaborate affair, wherein Susan&rsquo;s taste had had
-more to say than Anne&rsquo;s, and Rilla&rsquo;s small soul gloried in its
-splendours of silk and lace and flowers. She was very conscious of her hat, and
-I am afraid she strutted up the manse hill. The strut, or the hat, or both, got
-on the nerves of Mary Vance, who was swinging on the lawn gate. Mary&rsquo;s
-temper was somewhat ruffled just then, into the bargain. Aunt Martha had
-refused to let her peel the potatoes and had ordered her out of the kitchen.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yah! You&rsquo;ll bring the potatoes to the table with strips of skin
-hanging to them and half boiled as usual! My, but it&rsquo;ll be nice to go to
-your funeral,&rdquo; shrieked Mary. She went out of the kitchen, giving the
-door such a bang that even Aunt Martha heard it, and Mr. Meredith in his study
-felt the vibration and thought absently that there must have been a slight
-earthquake shock. Then he went on with his sermon.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary slipped from the gate and confronted the spick-and-span damsel of
-Ingleside.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What you got there?&rdquo; she demanded, trying to take the basket.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rilla resisted. &ldquo;It&rsquo;th for Mithter Meredith,&rdquo; she lisped.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Give it to me. <i>I&rsquo;ll</i> give it to him,&rdquo; said Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. Thuthan thaid that I wathn&rsquo;t to give it to anybody but Mithter
-Mer&rsquo;dith or Aunt Martha,&rdquo; insisted Rilla.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary eyed her sourly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You think you&rsquo;re something, don&rsquo;t you, all dressed up like a
-doll! Look at me. My dress is all rags and <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t care! I&rsquo;d
-rather be ragged than a doll baby. Go home and tell them to put you in a glass
-case. Look at me&mdash;look at me&mdash;look at me!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary executed a wild dance around the dismayed and bewildered Rilla, flirting
-her ragged skirt and vociferating &ldquo;Look at me&mdash;look at me&rdquo;
-until poor Rilla was dizzy. But as the latter tried to edge away towards the
-gate Mary pounced on her again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You give me that basket,&rdquo; she ordered with a grimace. Mary was
-past mistress in the art of &ldquo;making faces.&rdquo; She could give her
-countenance a most grotesque and unearthly appearance out of which her strange,
-brilliant, white eyes gleamed with weird effect.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t,&rdquo; gasped Rilla, frightened but staunch. &ldquo;You
-let me go, Mary Vanth.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary let go for a minute and looked around her. Just inside the gate was a
-small &ldquo;flake,&rdquo; on which a half a dozen large codfish were drying.
-One of Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s parishioners had presented him with them one day,
-perhaps in lieu of the subscription he was supposed to pay to the stipend and
-never did. Mr. Meredith had thanked him and then forgotten all about the fish,
-which would have promptly spoiled had not the indefatigable Mary prepared them
-for drying and rigged up the &ldquo;flake&rdquo; herself on which to dry them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary had a diabolical inspiration. She flew to the &ldquo;flake&rdquo; and
-seized the largest fish there&mdash;a huge, flat thing, nearly as big as
-herself. With a whoop she swooped down on the terrified Rilla, brandishing her
-weird missile. Rilla&rsquo;s courage gave way. To be lambasted with a dried
-codfish was such an unheard-of thing that Rilla could not face it. With a
-shriek she dropped her basket and fled. The beautiful berries, which Susan had
-so tenderly selected for the minister, rolled in a rosy torrent over the dusty
-road and were trodden on by the flying feet of pursuer and pursued. The basket
-and contents were no longer in Mary&rsquo;s mind. She thought only of the
-delight of giving Rilla Blythe the scare of her life. She would teach <i>her</i> to
-come giving herself airs because of her fine clothes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rilla flew down the hill and along the street. Terror lent wings to her feet,
-and she just managed to keep ahead of Mary, who was somewhat hampered by her
-own laughter, but who had breath enough to give occasional blood-curdling
-whoops as she ran, flourishing her codfish in the air. Through the Glen street
-they swept, while everybody ran to the windows and gates to see them. Mary felt
-she was making a tremendous sensation and enjoyed it. Rilla, blind with terror
-and spent of breath, felt that she could run no longer. In another instant that
-terrible girl would be on her with the codfish. At this point the poor mite
-stumbled and fell into the mud-puddle at the end of the street just as Miss
-Cornelia came out of Carter Flagg&rsquo;s store.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia took the whole situation in at a glance. So did Mary. The latter
-stopped short in her mad career and before Miss Cornelia could speak she had
-whirled around and was running up as fast as she had run down. Miss
-Cornelia&rsquo;s lips tightened ominously, but she knew it was no use to think
-of chasing her. So she picked up poor, sobbing, dishevelled Rilla instead and
-took her home. Rilla was heart-broken. Her dress and slippers and hat were
-ruined and her six year old pride had received terrible bruises.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan, white with indignation, heard Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s story of Mary
-Vance&rsquo;s exploit.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, the hussy&mdash;oh, the littly hussy!&rdquo; she said, as she
-carried Rilla away for purification and comfort.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This thing has gone far enough, Anne dearie,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia
-resolutely. &ldquo;Something must be done. <i>Who</i> is this creature who is staying
-at the manse and where does she come from?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I understood she was a little girl from over-harbour who was visiting at
-the manse,&rdquo; answered Anne, who saw the comical side of the codfish chase
-and secretly thought Rilla was rather vain and needed a lesson or two.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I know all the over-harbour families who come to our church and that imp
-doesn&rsquo;t belong to any of them,&rdquo; retorted Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;She
-is almost in rags and when she goes to church she wears Faith Meredith&rsquo;s
-old clothes. There&rsquo;s some mystery here, and I&rsquo;m going to
-investigate it, since it seems nobody else will. I believe she was at the
-bottom of their goings-on in Warren Mead&rsquo;s spruce bush the other day. Did
-you hear of their frightening his mother into a fit?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. I knew Gilbert had been called to see her, but I did not hear what
-the trouble was.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you know she has a weak heart. And one day last week, when she was
-all alone on the veranda, she heard the most awful shrieks of
-&lsquo;murder&rsquo; and &lsquo;help&rsquo; coming from the
-bush&mdash;positively frightful sounds, Anne dearie. Her heart gave out at
-once. Warren heard them himself at the barn, and went straight to the bush to
-investigate, and there he found all the manse children sitting on a fallen tree
-and screaming &lsquo;murder&rsquo; at the top of their lungs. They told him
-they were only in fun and didn&rsquo;t think anyone would hear them. They were
-just playing Indian ambush. Warren went back to the house and found his poor
-mother unconscious on the veranda.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan, who had returned, sniffed contemptuously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think she was very far from being unconscious, Mrs. Marshall Elliott,
-and that you may tie to. I have been hearing of Amelia Warren&rsquo;s weak
-heart for forty years. She had it when she was twenty. She enjoys making a fuss
-and having the doctor, and any excuse will do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t think Gilbert thought her attack very serious,&rdquo; said
-Anne.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, that may very well be,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;But the
-matter has made an awful lot of talk and the Meads being Methodists makes it
-that much worse. What is going to become of those children? Sometimes I
-can&rsquo;t sleep at nights for thinking about them, Anne dearie. I really do
-question if they get enough to eat, even, for their father is so lost in dreams
-that he doesn&rsquo;t often remember he has a stomach, and that lazy old woman
-doesn&rsquo;t bother cooking what she ought. They are just running wild and now
-that school is closing they&rsquo;ll be worse than ever.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They do have jolly times,&rdquo; said Anne, laughing over the
-recollections of some Rainbow Valley happenings that had come to her ears.
-&ldquo;And they are all brave and frank and loyal and truthful.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s a true word, Anne dearie, and when you come to think of all
-the trouble in the church those two tattling, deceitful youngsters of the last
-minister&rsquo;s made, I&rsquo;m inclined to overlook a good deal in the
-Merediths.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;When all is said and done, Mrs. Dr. dear, they are very nice
-children,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;They have got plenty of original sin in
-them and that I will admit, but maybe it is just as well, for if they had not
-they might spoil from over-sweetness. Only I do think it is not proper for them
-to play in a graveyard and that I will maintain.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But they really play quite quietly there,&rdquo; excused Anne.
-&ldquo;They don&rsquo;t run and yell as they do elsewhere. Such howls as drift
-up here from Rainbow Valley sometimes! Though I fancy my own small fry bear a
-valiant part in them. They had a sham battle there last night and had to
-&lsquo;roar&rsquo; themselves, because they had no artillery to do it, so Jem
-says. Jem is passing through the stage where all boys hanker to be
-soldiers.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, thank goodness, he&rsquo;ll never be a soldier,&rdquo; said Miss
-Cornelia. &ldquo;I never approved of our boys going to that South African
-fracas. But it&rsquo;s over, and not likely anything of the kind will ever
-happen again. I think the world is getting more sensible. As for the Merediths,
-I&rsquo;ve said many a time and I say it again, if Mr. Meredith had a wife all
-would be well.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He called twice at the Kirks&rsquo; last week, so I am told,&rdquo; said
-Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia thoughtfully, &ldquo;as a rule, I
-don&rsquo;t approve of a minister marrying in his congregation. It generally
-spoils him. But in this case it would do no harm, for every one likes Elizabeth
-Kirk and nobody else is hankering for the job of stepmothering those
-youngsters. Even the Hill girls balk at that. They haven&rsquo;t been found
-laying traps for Mr. Meredith. Elizabeth would make him a good wife if he only
-thought so. But the trouble is, she really is homely and, Anne dearie, Mr.
-Meredith, abstracted as he is, has an eye for a good-looking woman, man-like.
-He isn&rsquo;t <i>so</i> other-worldly when it comes to that, believe <i>me</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Elizabeth Kirk is a very nice person, but they do say that people have
-nearly frozen to death in her mother&rsquo;s spare-room bed before now, Mrs.
-Dr. dear,&rdquo; said Susan darkly. &ldquo;If I felt I had any right to express
-an opinion concerning such a solemn matter as a minister&rsquo;s marriage I
-would say that I think Elizabeth&rsquo;s cousin Sarah, over-harbour, would make
-Mr. Meredith a better wife.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Sarah Kirk is a Methodist,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, much as if
-Susan had suggested a Hottentot as a manse bride.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She would likely turn Presbyterian if she married Mr. Meredith,&rdquo;
-retorted Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia shook her head. Evidently with her it was, once a Methodist,
-always a Methodist.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Sarah Kirk is entirely out of the question,&rdquo; she said positively.
-&ldquo;And so is Emmeline Drew&mdash;though the Drews are all trying to make
-the match. They are literally throwing poor Emmeline at his head, and he
-hasn&rsquo;t the least idea of it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Emmeline Drew has no gumption, I must allow,&rdquo; said Susan.
-&ldquo;She is the kind of woman, Mrs. Dr. dear, who would put a hot-water
-bottle in your bed on a dog-night and then have her feelings hurt because you
-were not grateful. And her mother was a very poor housekeeper. Did you ever
-hear the story of her dishcloth? She lost her dishcloth one day. But the next
-day she found it. Oh, yes, Mrs. Dr. dear, she found it, in the goose at the
-dinner-table, mixed up with the stuffing. Do you think a woman like that would
-do for a minister&rsquo;s mother-in-law? I do not. But no doubt I would be
-better employed in mending little Jem&rsquo;s trousers than in talking gossip
-about my neighbours. He tore them something scandalous last night in Rainbow
-Valley.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where is Walter?&rdquo; asked Anne.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is up to no good, I fear, Mrs. Dr. dear. He is in the attic writing
-something in an exercise book. And he has not done as well in arithmetic this
-term as he should, so the teacher tells me. Too well I know the reason why. He
-has been writing silly rhymes when he should have been doing his sums. I am
-afraid that boy is going to be a poet, Mrs. Dr. dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is a poet now, Susan.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you take it real calm, Mrs. Dr. dear. I suppose it is the best
-way, when a person has the strength. I had an uncle who began by being a poet
-and ended up by being a tramp. Our family were dreadfully ashamed of
-him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You don&rsquo;t seem to think very highly of poets, Susan,&rdquo; said
-Anne, laughing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who does, Mrs. Dr. dear?&rdquo; asked Susan in genuine astonishment.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What about Milton and Shakespeare? And the poets of the Bible?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They tell me Milton could not get along with his wife, and Shakespeare
-was no more than respectable by times. As for the Bible, of course things were
-different in those sacred days&mdash;although I never had a high opinion of
-King David, say what you will. I never knew any good to come of writing poetry,
-and I hope and pray that blessed boy will outgrow the tendency. If he does
-not&mdash;we must see what emulsion of cod-liver oil will do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap08"></a>CHAPTER VIII.<br />
-MISS CORNELIA INTERVENES</h2>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia descended upon the manse the next day and cross-questioned Mary,
-who, being a young person of considerable discernment and astuteness, told her
-story simple and truthfully, with an entire absence of complaint or bravado.
-Miss Cornelia was more favourably impressed than she had expected to be, but
-deemed it her duty to be severe.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you think,&rdquo; she said sternly, &ldquo;that you showed your
-gratitude to this family, who have been far too kind to you, by insulting and
-chasing one of their little friends as you did yesterday?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Say, it was rotten mean of me,&rdquo; admitted Mary easily. &ldquo;I
-dunno what possessed me. That old codfish seemed to come in so blamed handy.
-But I was awful sorry&mdash;I cried last night after I went to bed about it,
-honest I did. You ask Una if I didn&rsquo;t. I wouldn&rsquo;t tell her what for
-&lsquo;cause I was ashamed of it, and then she cried, too, because she was
-afraid someone had hurt my feelings. Laws, <i>I</i> ain&rsquo;t got any
-feelings to hurt worth speaking of. What worries me is why Mrs. Wiley
-hain&rsquo;t been hunting for me. It ain&rsquo;t like her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia herself thought it rather peculiar, but she merely admonished
-Mary sharply not to take any further liberties with the minister&rsquo;s
-codfish, and went to report progress at Ingleside.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If the child&rsquo;s story is true the matter ought to be looked
-into,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;I know something about that Wiley woman, believe
-<i>me</i>. Marshall used to be well acquainted with her when he lived over-harbour. I
-heard him say something last summer about her and a home child she
-had&mdash;likely this very Mary-creature. He said some one told him she was
-working the child to death and not half feeding and clothing it. You know, Anne
-dearie, it has always been my habit neither to make nor meddle with those
-over-harbour folks. But I shall send Marshall over to-morrow to find out the
-rights of this if he can. And <i>then</i> I&rsquo;ll speak to the minister. Mind you,
-Anne dearie, the Merediths found this girl literally starving in James
-Taylor&rsquo;s old hay barn. She had been there all night, cold and hungry and
-alone. And us sleeping warm in our beds after good suppers.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The poor little thing,&rdquo; said Anne, picturing one of her own dear
-babies, cold and hungry and alone in such circumstances. &ldquo;If she has been
-ill-used, Miss Cornelia, she mustn&rsquo;t be taken back to such a place.
-<i>I</i> was an orphan once in a very similar situation.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll have to consult the Hopetown asylum folks,&rdquo; said Miss
-Cornelia. &ldquo;Anyway, she can&rsquo;t be left at the manse. Dear knows what
-those poor children might learn from her. I understand that she has been known
-to swear. But just think of her being there two whole weeks and Mr Meredith
-never waking up to it! What business has a man like that to have a family? Why,
-Anne dearie, he ought to be a monk.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Two evenings later Miss Cornelia was back at Ingleside.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s the most amazing thing!&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;Mrs. Wiley
-was found dead in her bed the very morning after this Mary-creature ran away.
-She has had a bad heart for years and the doctor had warned her it might happen
-at any time. She had sent away her hired man and there was nobody in the house.
-Some neighbours found her the next day. They missed the child, it seems, but
-supposed Mrs. Wiley had sent her to her cousin near Charlottetown as she had
-said she was going to do. The cousin didn&rsquo;t come to the funeral and so
-nobody ever knew that Mary wasn&rsquo;t with her. The people Marshall talked to
-told him some things about the way Mrs. Wiley used this Mary that made his
-blood boil, so he declares. You know, it puts Marshall in a regular fury to
-hear of a child being ill-used. They said she whipped her mercilessly for every
-little fault or mistake. Some folks talked of writing to the asylum authorities
-but everybody&rsquo;s business is nobody&rsquo;s business and it was never
-done.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am sorry that Wiley person is dead,&rdquo; said Susan fiercely.
-&ldquo;I should like to go over-harbour and give her a piece of my mind.
-Starving and beating a child, Mrs. Dr. dear! As you know, I hold with lawful
-spanking, but I go no further. And what is to become of this poor child now,
-Mrs. Marshall Elliott?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose she must be sent back to Hopetown,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;I think every one hereabouts who wants a home child has one. I&rsquo;ll
-see Mr. Meredith to-morrow and tell him my opinion of the whole affair.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And no doubt she will, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said Susan, after Miss
-Cornelia had gone. &ldquo;She would stick at nothing, not even at shingling the
-church spire if she took it into her head. But I cannot understand how even
-Cornelia Bryant can talk to a minister as she does. You would think he was just
-any common person.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When Miss Cornelia had gone, Nan Blythe uncurled herself from the hammock where
-she had been studying her lessons and slipped away to Rainbow Valley. The
-others were already there. Jem and Jerry were playing quoits with old
-horseshoes borrowed from the Glen blacksmith. Carl was stalking ants on a sunny
-hillock. Walter, lying on his stomach among the fern, was reading aloud to Mary
-and Di and Faith and Una from a wonderful book of myths wherein were
-fascinating accounts of Prester John and the Wandering Jew, divining rods and
-tailed men, of Schamir, the worm that split rocks and opened the way to golden
-treasure, of Fortunate Isles and swan-maidens. It was a great shock to Walter
-to learn that William Tell and Gelert were myths also; and the story of Bishop
-Hatto was to keep him awake all that night; but best of all he loved the
-stories of the Pied Piper and the San Greal. He read them thrillingly, while
-the bells on the Tree Lovers tinkled in the summer wind and the coolness of the
-evening shadows crept across the valley.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Say, ain&rsquo;t them in&rsquo;resting lies?&rdquo; said Mary admiringly
-when Walter had closed the book.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They aren&rsquo;t lies,&rdquo; said Di indignantly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You don&rsquo;t mean they&rsquo;re true?&rdquo; asked Mary
-incredulously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;not exactly. They&rsquo;re like those ghost-stories of yours.
-They weren&rsquo;t true&mdash;but you didn&rsquo;t expect us to believe them,
-so they weren&rsquo;t lies.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That yarn about the divining rod is no lie, anyhow,&rdquo; said Mary.
-&ldquo;Old Jake Crawford over-harbour can work it. They send for him from
-everywhere when they want to dig a well. And I believe I know the Wandering
-Jew.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary,&rdquo; said Una, awe-struck.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do&mdash;true&rsquo;s you&rsquo;re alive. There was an old man at Mrs.
-Wiley&rsquo;s one day last fall. He looked old enough to be <i>anything</i>. She was
-asking him about cedar posts, if he thought they&rsquo;d last well. And he
-said, &lsquo;Last well? They&rsquo;ll last a thousand years. I know, for
-I&rsquo;ve tried them twice.&rsquo; Now, if he was two thousand years old who
-was he but your Wandering Jew?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe the Wandering Jew would associate with a person
-like Mrs. Wiley,&rdquo; said Faith decidedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I love the Pied Piper story,&rdquo; said Di, &ldquo;and so does mother.
-I always feel so sorry for the poor little lame boy who couldn&rsquo;t keep up
-with the others and got shut out of the mountain. He must have been so
-disappointed. I think all the rest of his life he&rsquo;d be wondering what
-wonderful thing he had missed and wishing he could have got in with the
-others.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But how glad his mother must have been,&rdquo; said Una softly. &ldquo;I
-think she had been sorry all her life that he was lame. Perhaps she even used
-to cry about it. But she would never be sorry again&mdash;never. She would be
-glad he was lame because that was why she hadn&rsquo;t lost him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Some day,&rdquo; said Walter dreamily, looking afar into the sky,
-&ldquo;the Pied Piper will come over the hill up there and down Rainbow Valley,
-piping merrily and sweetly. And I will follow him&mdash;follow him down to the
-shore&mdash;down to the sea&mdash;away from you all. I don&rsquo;t think
-I&rsquo;ll want to go&mdash;Jem will want to go&mdash;it will be such an
-adventure&mdash;but I won&rsquo;t. Only I&rsquo;ll <i>have</i> to&mdash;the music will
-call and call and call me until I <i>must</i> follow.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll all go,&rdquo; cried Di, catching fire at the flame of
-Walter&rsquo;s fancy, and half-believing she could see the mocking, retreating
-figure of the mystic piper in the far, dim end of the valley.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. You&rsquo;ll sit here and wait,&rdquo; said Walter, his great,
-splendid eyes full of strange glamour. &ldquo;You&rsquo;ll wait for us to come
-back. And we may not come&mdash;for we cannot come as long as the Piper plays.
-He may pipe us round the world. And still you&rsquo;ll sit here and
-wait&mdash;and <i>wait</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, dry up,&rdquo; said Mary, shivering. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t look like
-that, Walter Blythe. You give me the creeps. Do you want to set me bawling? I
-could just see that horrid old Piper going away on, and you boys following him,
-and us girls sitting here waiting all alone. I dunno why it is&mdash;I never
-was one of the blubbering kind&mdash;but as soon as you start your spieling I
-always want to cry.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter smiled in triumph. He liked to exercise this power of his over his
-companions&mdash;to play on their feelings, waken their fears, thrill their
-souls. It satisfied some dramatic instinct in him. But under his triumph was a
-queer little chill of some mysterious dread. The Pied Piper had seemed very
-real to him&mdash;as if the fluttering veil that hid the future had for a
-moment been blown aside in the starlit dusk of Rainbow Valley and some dim
-glimpse of coming years granted to him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl, coming up to their group with a report of the doings in ant-land, brought
-them all back to the realm of facts.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ants <i>are</i> darned in&rsquo;resting,&rdquo; exclaimed Mary, glad to escape
-the shadowy Piper&rsquo;s thrall. &ldquo;Carl and me watched that bed in the
-graveyard all Saturday afternoon. I never thought there was so much in bugs.
-Say, but they&rsquo;re quarrelsome little cusses&mdash;some of &lsquo;em like
-to start a fight &lsquo;thout any reason, far&rsquo;s we could see. And some of
-&lsquo;em are cowards. They got so scared they just doubled theirselves up into
-a ball and let the other fellows bang &lsquo;em. They wouldn&rsquo;t put up a
-fight at all. Some of &lsquo;em are lazy and won&rsquo;t work. We watched
-&lsquo;em shirking. And there was one ant died of grief &lsquo;cause another
-ant got killed&mdash;wouldn&rsquo;t work&mdash;wouldn&rsquo;t eat&mdash;just
-died&mdash;it did, honest to Go&mdash;oodness.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A shocked silence prevailed. Every one knew that Mary had not started out to
-say &ldquo;goodness.&rdquo; Faith and Di exchanged glances that would have done
-credit to Miss Cornelia herself. Walter and Carl looked uncomfortable and
-Una&rsquo;s lip trembled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary squirmed uncomfortably.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That slipped out &lsquo;fore I thought&mdash;it did, honest to&mdash;I
-mean, true&rsquo;s you live, and I swallowed half of it. You folks over here
-are mighty squeamish seems to me. Wish you could have heard the Wileys when
-they had a fight.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ladies don&rsquo;t say such things,&rdquo; said Faith, very primly for
-her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t right,&rdquo; whispered Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I ain&rsquo;t a lady,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;What chance&rsquo;ve I
-ever had of being a lady? But I won&rsquo;t say that again if I can help it. I
-promise you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Besides,&rdquo; said Una, &ldquo;you can&rsquo;t expect God to answer
-your prayers if you take His name in vain, Mary.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t expect Him to answer &lsquo;em anyhow,&rdquo; said Mary of
-little faith. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve been asking Him for a week to clear up this
-Wiley affair and He hasn&rsquo;t done a thing. I&rsquo;m going to give
-up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At this juncture Nan arrived breathless.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary, I&rsquo;ve news for you. Mrs. Elliott has been over-harbour
-and what do you think she found out? Mrs. Wiley is dead&mdash;she was found
-dead in bed the morning after you ran away. So you&rsquo;ll never have to go
-back to her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dead!&rdquo; said Mary stupefied. Then she shivered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you s&rsquo;pose my praying had anything to do with that?&rdquo; she
-cried imploringly to Una. &ldquo;If it had I&rsquo;ll never pray again as long
-as I live. Why, she may come back and ha&rsquo;nt me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, no, Mary,&rdquo; said Una comfortingly, &ldquo;it hadn&rsquo;t. Why,
-Mrs. Wiley died long before you ever began to pray about it at all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s so,&rdquo; said Mary recovering from her panic. &ldquo;But
-I tell you it gave me a start. I wouldn&rsquo;t like to think I&rsquo;d prayed
-anybody to death. I never thought of such a thing as her dying when I was
-praying. She didn&rsquo;t seem much like the dying kind. Did Mrs. Elliott say
-anything about me?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She said you would likely have to go back to the asylum.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I thought as much,&rdquo; said Mary drearily. &ldquo;And then
-they&rsquo;ll give me out again&mdash;likely to some one just like Mrs. Wiley.
-Well, I s&rsquo;pose I can stand it. I&rsquo;m tough.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m going to pray that you won&rsquo;t have to go back,&rdquo;
-whispered Una, as she and Mary walked home to the manse.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can do as you like,&rdquo; said Mary decidedly, &ldquo;but I vow
-<i>I</i> won&rsquo;t. I&rsquo;m good and scared of this praying business. See
-what&rsquo;s come of it. If Mrs. Wiley <i>had</i> died after I started praying it
-would have been my doings.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, no, it wouldn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;I wish I could
-explain things better&mdash;father could, I know, if you&rsquo;d talk to him,
-Mary.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Catch me! I don&rsquo;t know what to make of your father, that&rsquo;s
-the long and short of it. He goes by me and never sees me in broad daylight. I
-ain&rsquo;t proud&mdash;but I ain&rsquo;t a door-mat, neither!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary, it&rsquo;s just father&rsquo;s way. Most of the time he never
-sees us, either. He is thinking deeply, that is all. And I <i>am</i> going to pray
-that God will keep you in Four Winds&mdash;because I like you, Mary.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right. Only don&rsquo;t let me hear of any more people dying on
-account of it,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;I&rsquo;d like to stay in Four Winds
-fine. I like it and I like the harbour and the light house&mdash;and you and
-the Blythes. You&rsquo;re the only friends I ever had and I&rsquo;d hate to
-leave you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap09"></a>CHAPTER IX.<br />
-UNA INTERVENES</h2>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia had an interview with Mr. Meredith which proved something of a
-shock to that abstracted gentleman. She pointed out to him, none too
-respectfully, his dereliction of duty in allowing a waif like Mary Vance to
-come into his family and associate with his children without knowing or
-learning anything about her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t say there is much harm done, of course,&rdquo; she
-concluded. &ldquo;This Mary-creature isn&rsquo;t what you might call bad, when
-all is said and done. I&rsquo;ve been questioning your children and the
-Blythes, and from what I can make out there&rsquo;s nothing much to be said
-against the child except that she&rsquo;s slangy and doesn&rsquo;t use very
-refined language. But think what might have happened if she&rsquo;d been like
-some of those home children we know of. You know yourself what that poor little
-creature the Jim Flaggs&rsquo; had, taught and told the Flagg children.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith did know and was honestly shocked over his own carelessness in the
-matter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But what is to be done, Mrs. Elliott?&rdquo; he asked helplessly.
-&ldquo;We can&rsquo;t turn the poor child out. She must be cared for.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course. We&rsquo;d better write to the Hopetown authorities at once.
-Meanwhile, I suppose she might as well stay here for a few more days till we
-hear from them. But keep your eyes and ears open, Mr. Meredith.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan would have died of horror on the spot if she had heard Miss Cornelia so
-admonishing a minister. But Miss Cornelia departed in a warm glow of
-satisfaction over duty done, and that night Mr. Meredith asked Mary to come
-into his study with him. Mary obeyed, looking literally ghastly with fright.
-But she got the surprise of her poor, battered little life. This man, of whom
-she had stood so terribly in awe, was the kindest, gentlest soul she had ever
-met. Before she knew what happened Mary found herself pouring all her troubles
-into his ear and receiving in return such sympathy and tender understanding as
-it had never occurred to her to imagine. Mary left the study with her face and
-eyes so softened that Una hardly knew her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Your father&rsquo;s all right, when he does wake up,&rdquo; she said
-with a sniff that just escaped being a sob. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a pity he
-doesn&rsquo;t wake up oftener. He said I wasn&rsquo;t to blame for Mrs. Wiley
-dying, but that I must try to think of her good points and not of her bad ones.
-I dunno what good points she had, unless it was keeping her house clean and
-making first-class butter. I know I &lsquo;most wore my arms out scrubbing her
-old kitchen floor with the knots in it. But anything your father says goes with
-me after this.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary proved a rather dull companion in the following days, however. She
-confided to Una that the more she thought of going back to the asylum the more
-she hated it. Una racked her small brains for some way of averting it, but it
-was Nan Blythe who came to the rescue with a somewhat startling suggestion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott might take Mary herself. She has a great big house and Mr.
-Elliott is always wanting her to have help. It would be just a splendid place
-for Mary. Only she&rsquo;d have to behave herself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Nan, do you think Mrs. Elliott would take her?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It wouldn&rsquo;t do any harm if you asked her,&rdquo; said Nan. At
-first Una did not think she could. She was so shy that to ask a favour of
-anybody was agony to her. And she was very much in awe of the bustling,
-energetic Mrs. Elliott. She liked her very much and always enjoyed a visit to
-her house; but to go and ask her to adopt Mary Vance seemed such a height of
-presumption that Una&rsquo;s timid spirit quailed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When the Hopetown authorities wrote to Mr. Meredith to send Mary to them
-without delay Mary cried herself to sleep in the manse attic that night and Una
-found a desperate courage. The next evening she slipped away from the manse to
-the harbour road. Far down in Rainbow Valley she heard joyous laughter but her
-way lay not there. She was terribly pale and terribly in earnest&mdash;so much
-so that she took no notice of the people she met&mdash;and old Mrs. Stanley
-Flagg was quite huffed and said Una Meredith would be as absentminded as her
-father when she grew up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia lived half way between the Glen and Four Winds Point, in a house
-whose original glaring green hue had mellowed down to an agreeable greenish
-gray. Marshall Elliott had planted trees about it and set out a rose garden and
-a spruce hedge. It was quite a different place from what it had been in years
-agone. The manse children and the Ingleside children liked to go there. It was
-a beautiful walk down the old harbour road, and there was always a well-filled
-cooky jar at the end.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The misty sea was lapping softly far down on the sands. Three big boats were
-skimming down the harbour like great white sea-birds. A schooner was coming up
-the channel. The world of Four Winds was steeped in glowing colour, and subtle
-music, and strange glamour, and everybody should have been happy in it. But
-when Una turned in at Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s gate her very legs had almost
-refused to carry her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia was alone on the veranda. Una had hoped Mr. Elliott would be
-there. He was so big and hearty and twinkly that there would be encouragement
-in his presence. She sat on the little stool Miss Cornelia brought out and
-tried to eat the doughnut Miss Cornelia gave her. It stuck in her throat, but
-she swallowed desperately lest Miss Cornelia be offended. She could not talk;
-she was still pale; and her big, dark-blue eyes looked so piteous that Miss
-Cornelia concluded the child was in some trouble.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What&rsquo;s on your mind, dearie?&rdquo; she asked.
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s something, that&rsquo;s plain to be seen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una swallowed the last twist of doughnut with a desperate gulp.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott, won&rsquo;t you take Mary Vance?&rdquo; she said
-beseechingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia stared blankly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Me! Take Mary Vance! Do you mean keep her?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes&mdash;keep her&mdash;adopt her,&rdquo; said Una eagerly, gaining
-courage now that the ice was broken. &ldquo;Oh, Mrs. Elliott, <i>please</i> do. She
-doesn&rsquo;t want to go back to the asylum&mdash;she cries every night about
-it. She&rsquo;s so afraid of being sent to another hard place. And she&rsquo;s
-<i>so</i> smart&mdash;there isn&rsquo;t anything she can&rsquo;t do. I know you
-wouldn&rsquo;t be sorry if you took her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I never thought of such a thing,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia rather
-helplessly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Won&rsquo;t</i> you think of it?&rdquo; implored Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But, dearie, I don&rsquo;t want help. I&rsquo;m quite able to do all the
-work here. And I never thought I&rsquo;d like to have a home girl if I did need
-help.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The light went out of Una&rsquo;s eyes. Her lips trembled. She sat down on her
-stool again, a pathetic little figure of disappointment, and began to cry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t&mdash;dearie&mdash;don&rsquo;t,&rdquo; exclaimed Miss
-Cornelia in distress. She could never bear to hurt a child. &ldquo;I
-don&rsquo;t say I <i>won&rsquo;t</i> take her&mdash;but the idea is so new it has just
-kerflummuxed me. I must think it over.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mary is <i>so</i> smart,&rdquo; said Una again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Humph! So I&rsquo;ve heard. I&rsquo;ve heard she swears, too. Is that
-true?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve never heard her swear <i>exactly</i>,&rdquo; faltered Una
-uncomfortably. &ldquo;But I&rsquo;m afraid she <i>could</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I believe you! Does she always tell the truth?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think she does, except when she&rsquo;s afraid of a whipping.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And yet you want me to take her!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Some one</i> has to take her,&rdquo; sobbed Una. &ldquo;<i>Some one</i> has to look
-after her, Mrs. Elliott.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s true. Perhaps it <i>is</i> my duty to do it,&rdquo; said Miss
-Cornelia with a sigh. &ldquo;Well, I&rsquo;ll have to talk it over with Mr.
-Elliott. So don&rsquo;t say anything about it just yet. Take another doughnut,
-dearie.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una took it and ate it with a better appetite.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m very fond of doughnuts,&rdquo; she confessed &ldquo;Aunt
-Martha never makes any. But Miss Susan at Ingleside does, and sometimes she
-lets us have a plateful in Rainbow Valley. Do you know what I do when I&rsquo;m
-hungry for doughnuts and can&rsquo;t get any, Mrs. Elliott?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, dearie. What?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I get out mother&rsquo;s old cook book and read the doughnut
-recipe&mdash;and the other recipes. They sound <i>so</i> nice. I always do that when
-I&rsquo;m hungry&mdash;especially after we&rsquo;ve had ditto for dinner. <i>Then</i>
-I read the fried chicken and the roast goose recipes. Mother could make all
-those nice things.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Those manse children will starve to death yet if Mr. Meredith
-doesn&rsquo;t get married,&rdquo; Miss Cornelia told her husband indignantly
-after Una had gone. &ldquo;And he won&rsquo;t&mdash;and what&rsquo;s to be
-done? And <i>shall</i> we take this Mary-creature, Marshall?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, take her,&rdquo; said Marshall laconically.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Just like a man,&rdquo; said his wife, despairingly. &ldquo;&lsquo;Take
-her&rsquo;&mdash;as if that was all. There are a hundred things to be
-considered, believe <i>me</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Take her&mdash;and we&rsquo;ll consider them afterwards,
-Cornelia,&rdquo; said her husband.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In the end Miss Cornelia did take her and went up to announce her decision to
-the Ingleside people first.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Splendid!&rdquo; said Anne delightedly. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve been hoping
-you would do that very thing, Miss Cornelia. I want that poor child to get a
-good home. I was a homeless little orphan just like her once.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t think this Mary-creature is or ever will be much like
-you,&rdquo; retorted Miss Cornelia gloomily. &ldquo;She&rsquo;s a cat of
-another colour. But she&rsquo;s also a human being with an immortal soul to
-save. I&rsquo;ve got a shorter catechism and a small tooth comb and I&rsquo;m
-going to do my duty by her, now that I&rsquo;ve set my hand to the plough,
-believe me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary received the news with chastened satisfaction.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s better luck than I expected,&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;ll have to mind your p&rsquo;s and q&rsquo;s with Mrs.
-Elliott,&rdquo; said Nan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I can do that,&rdquo; flashed Mary. &ldquo;I know how to behave
-when I want to just as well as you, Nan Blythe.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You mustn&rsquo;t use bad words, you know, Mary,&rdquo; said Una
-anxiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I s&rsquo;pose she&rsquo;d die of horror if I did,&rdquo; grinned Mary,
-her white eyes shining with unholy glee over the idea. &ldquo;But you
-needn&rsquo;t worry, Una. Butter won&rsquo;t melt in my mouth after this.
-I&rsquo;ll be all prunes and prisms.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nor tell lies,&rdquo; added Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not even to get off from a whipping?&rdquo; pleaded Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott will <i>never</i> whip you&mdash;<i>never</i>,&rdquo; exclaimed Di.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Won&rsquo;t she?&rdquo; said Mary skeptically. &ldquo;If I ever find
-myself in a place where I ain&rsquo;t licked I&rsquo;ll think it&rsquo;s heaven
-all right. No fear of me telling lies then. I ain&rsquo;t fond of telling
-&lsquo;em&mdash;I&rsquo;d ruther not, if it comes to that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The day before Mary&rsquo;s departure from the manse they had a picnic in her
-honour in Rainbow Valley, and that evening all the manse children gave her
-something from their scanty store of treasured things for a keepsake. Carl gave
-her his Noah&rsquo;s ark and Jerry his second best jew&rsquo;s-harp. Faith gave
-her a little hairbrush with a mirror in the back of it, which Mary had always
-considered very wonderful. Una hesitated between an old beaded purse and a gay
-picture of Daniel in the lion&rsquo;s den, and finally offered Mary her choice.
-Mary really hankered after the beaded purse, but she knew Una loved it, so she
-said,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Give me Daniel. I&rsquo;d rusher have it &lsquo;cause I&rsquo;m partial
-to lions. Only I wish they&rsquo;d et Daniel up. It would have been more
-exciting.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At bedtime Mary coaxed Una to sleep with her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s for the last time,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;and it&rsquo;s
-raining tonight, and I hate sleeping up there alone when it&rsquo;s raining on
-account of that graveyard. I don&rsquo;t mind it on fine nights, but a night
-like this I can&rsquo;t see anything but the rain pouring down on them old
-white stones, and the wind round the window sounds as if them dead people were
-trying to get in and crying &lsquo;cause they couldn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I like rainy nights,&rdquo; said Una, when they were cuddled down
-together in the little attic room, &ldquo;and so do the Blythe girls.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t mind &lsquo;em when I&rsquo;m not handy to
-graveyards,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;If I was alone here I&rsquo;d cry my eyes
-out I&rsquo;d be so lonesome. I feel awful bad to be leaving you all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott will let you come up and play in Rainbow Valley quite often
-I&rsquo;m sure,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;And you <i>will</i> be a good girl,
-won&rsquo;t you, Mary?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I&rsquo;ll try,&rdquo; sighed Mary. &ldquo;But it won&rsquo;t be as
-easy for me to be good&mdash;inside, I mean, as well as outside&mdash;as it is
-for you. You hadn&rsquo;t such scalawags of relations as I had.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But your people must have had some good qualities as well as bad
-ones,&rdquo; argued Una. &ldquo;You must live up to them and never mind their
-bad ones.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe they had any good qualities,&rdquo; said Mary
-gloomily. &ldquo;I never heard of any. My grandfather had money, but they say
-he was a rascal. No, I&rsquo;ll just have to start out on my own hook and do
-the best I can.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And God will help you, you know, Mary, if you ask Him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know about that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary. You know we asked God to get a home for you and He did.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t see what He had to do with it,&rdquo; retorted Mary.
-&ldquo;It was you put it into Mrs. Elliott&rsquo;s head.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But God put it into her <i>heart</i> to take you. All my putting it into her
-<i>head</i> wouldn&rsquo;t have done any good if He hadn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, there may be something in that,&rdquo; admitted Mary. &ldquo;Mind
-you, I haven&rsquo;t got anything against God, Una. I&rsquo;m willing to give
-Him a chance. But, honest, I think He&rsquo;s an awful lot like your
-father&mdash;just absent-minded and never taking any notice of a body most of
-the time, but sometimes waking up all of a suddent and being awful good and
-kind and sensible.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mary, no!&rdquo; exclaimed horrified Una. &ldquo;God isn&rsquo;t a
-bit like father&mdash;I mean He&rsquo;s a thousand times better and
-kinder.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If He&rsquo;s as good as your father He&rsquo;ll do for me,&rdquo; said
-Mary. &ldquo;When your father was talking to me I felt as if I never could be
-bad any more.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish you&rsquo;d talk to father about Him,&rdquo; sighed Una.
-&ldquo;He can explain it all so much better than I can.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, so I will, next time he wakes up,&rdquo; promised Mary. &ldquo;That
-night he talked to me in the study he showed me real clear that my praying
-didn&rsquo;t kill Mrs. Wiley. My mind&rsquo;s been easy since, but I&rsquo;m
-real cautious about praying. I guess the old rhyme is the safest. Say, Una, it
-seems to me if one has to pray to anybody it&rsquo;d be better to pray to the
-devil than to God. God&rsquo;s good, anyhow so you say, so He won&rsquo;t do
-you any harm, but from all I can make out the devil needs to be pacified. I
-think the sensible way would be to say to <i>him</i>, &lsquo;Good devil, please
-don&rsquo;t tempt me. Just leave me alone, please.&rsquo; Now, don&rsquo;t
-you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, no, no, Mary. I&rsquo;m sure it couldn&rsquo;t be right to pray to
-the devil. And it wouldn&rsquo;t do any good because he&rsquo;s bad. It might
-aggravate him and he&rsquo;d be worse than ever.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, as to this God-matter,&rdquo; said Mary stubbornly, &ldquo;since
-you and I can&rsquo;t settle it, there ain&rsquo;t no use in talking more about
-it until we&rsquo;ve a chanct to find out the rights of it. I&rsquo;ll do the
-best I can alone till then.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If mother was alive she could tell us everything,&rdquo; said Una with a
-sigh.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wisht she was alive,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know
-what&rsquo;s going to become of you youngsters when I&rsquo;m gone. Anyhow, <i>do</i>
-try and keep the house a little tidy. The way people talks about it is
-scandalous. And the first thing you know your father will be getting married
-again and then your noses will be out of joint.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una was startled. The idea of her father marrying again had never presented
-itself to her before. She did not like it and she lay silent under the chill of
-it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Stepmothers are <i>awful</i> creatures,&rdquo; Mary went on. &ldquo;I could
-make your blood run cold if I was to tell you all I know about &lsquo;em. The
-Wilson kids across the road from Wiley&rsquo;s had a stepmother. She was just
-as bad to &lsquo;em as Mrs. Wiley was to me. It&rsquo;ll be awful if you get a
-stepmother.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m sure we won&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said Una tremulously.
-&ldquo;Father won&rsquo;t marry anybody else.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He&rsquo;ll be hounded into it, I expect,&rdquo; said Mary darkly.
-&ldquo;All the old maids in the settlement are after him. There&rsquo;s no
-being up to them. And the worst of stepmothers is, they always set your father
-against you. He&rsquo;d never care anything about you again. He&rsquo;d always
-take her part and her children&rsquo;s part. You see, she&rsquo;d make him
-believe you were all bad.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish you hadn&rsquo;t told me this, Mary,&rdquo; cried Una. &ldquo;It
-makes me feel so unhappy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I only wanted to warn you,&rdquo; said Mary, rather repentantly.
-&ldquo;Of course, your father&rsquo;s so absent-minded he mightn&rsquo;t happen
-to think of getting married again. But it&rsquo;s better to be prepared.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Long after Mary slept serenely little Una lay awake, her eyes smarting with
-tears. On, how dreadful it would be if her father should marry somebody who
-would make him hate her and Jerry and Faith and Carl! She couldn&rsquo;t bear
-it&mdash;she couldn&rsquo;t!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary had not instilled any poison of the kind Miss Cornelia had feared into the
-manse children&rsquo;s minds. Yet she had certainly contrived to do a little
-mischief with the best of intentions. But she slept dreamlessly, while Una lay
-awake and the rain fell and the wind wailed around the old gray manse. And the
-Rev. John Meredith forgot to go to bed at all because he was absorbed in
-reading a life of St. Augustine. It was gray dawn when he finished it and went
-upstairs, wrestling with the problems of two thousand years ago. The door of
-the girls&rsquo; room was open and he saw Faith lying asleep, rosy and
-beautiful. He wondered where Una was. Perhaps she had gone over to &ldquo;stay
-all night&rdquo; with the Blythe girls. She did this occasionally, deeming it a
-great treat. John Meredith sighed. He felt that Una&rsquo;s whereabouts ought
-not to be a mystery to him. Cecelia would have looked after her better than
-that.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-If only Cecelia were still with him! How pretty and gay she had been! How the
-old manse up at Maywater had echoed to her songs! And she had gone away so
-suddenly, taking her laughter and music and leaving silence&mdash;so suddenly
-that he had never quite got over his feeling of amazement. How could <i>she</i>, the
-beautiful and vivid, have died?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The idea of a second marriage had never presented itself seriously to John
-Meredith. He had loved his wife so deeply that he believed he could never care
-for any woman again. He had a vague idea that before very long Faith would be
-old enough to take her mother&rsquo;s place. Until then, he must do the best he
-could alone. He sighed and went to his room, where the bed was still unmade.
-Aunt Martha had forgotten it, and Mary had not dared to make it because Aunt
-Martha had forbidden her to meddle with anything in the minister&rsquo;s room.
-But Mr. Meredith did not notice that it was unmade. His last thoughts were of
-St. Augustine.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap10"></a>CHAPTER X.<br />
-THE MANSE GIRLS CLEAN HOUSE</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ugh,&rdquo; said Faith, sitting up in bed with a shiver.
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s raining. I do hate a rainy Sunday. Sunday is dull enough even
-when it&rsquo;s fine.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We oughtn&rsquo;t to find Sunday dull,&rdquo; said Una sleepily, trying
-to pull her drowsy wits together with an uneasy conviction that they had
-overslept.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But we <i>do</i>, you know,&rdquo; said Faith candidly. &ldquo;Mary Vance says
-most Sundays are so dull she could hang herself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We ought to like Sunday better than Mary Vance,&rdquo; said Una
-remorsefully. &ldquo;We&rsquo;re the minister&rsquo;s children.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish we were a blacksmith&rsquo;s children,&rdquo; protested Faith
-angrily, hunting for her stockings. &ldquo;<i>Then</i> people wouldn&rsquo;t expect us
-to be better than other children. <i>Just</i> look at the holes in my heels. Mary
-darned them all up before she went away, but they&rsquo;re as bad as ever now.
-Una, get up. I can&rsquo;t get the breakfast alone. Oh, dear. I wish father and
-Jerry were home. You wouldn&rsquo;t think we&rsquo;d miss father much&mdash;we
-don&rsquo;t see much of him when he is home. And yet <i>everything</i> seems gone. I
-must run in and see how Aunt Martha is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is she any better?&rdquo; asked Una, when Faith returned.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, she isn&rsquo;t. She&rsquo;s groaning with the misery still. Maybe
-we ought to tell Dr. Blythe. But she says not&mdash;she never had a doctor in
-her life and she isn&rsquo;t going to begin now. She says doctors just live by
-poisoning people. Do you suppose they do?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, of course not,&rdquo; said Una indignantly. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m sure
-Dr. Blythe wouldn&rsquo;t poison anybody.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, we&rsquo;ll have to rub Aunt Martha&rsquo;s back again after
-breakfast. We&rsquo;d better not make the flannels as hot as we did
-yesterday.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith giggled over the remembrance. They had nearly scalded the skin off poor
-Aunt Martha&rsquo;s back. Una sighed. Mary Vance would have known just what the
-precise temperature of flannels for a misery back should be. Mary knew
-everything. They knew nothing. And how could they learn, save by bitter
-experience for which, in this instance, unfortunate Aunt Martha had paid?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The preceding Monday Mr. Meredith had left for Nova Scotia to spend his short
-vacation, taking Jerry with him. On Wednesday Aunt Martha was suddenly seized
-with a recurring and mysterious ailment which she always called &ldquo;the
-misery,&rdquo; and which was tolerably certain to attack her at the most
-inconvenient times. She could not rise from her bed, any movement causing
-agony. A doctor she flatly refused to have. Faith and Una cooked the meals and
-waited on her. The less said about the meals the better&mdash;yet they were not
-much worse than Aunt Martha&rsquo;s had been. There were many women in the
-village who would have been glad to come and help, but Aunt Martha refused to
-let her plight be known.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You must worry on till I kin git around,&rdquo; she groaned.
-&ldquo;Thank goodness, John isn&rsquo;t here. There&rsquo;s a plenty o&rsquo;
-cold biled meat and bread and you kin try your hand at making porridge.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The girls had tried their hand, but so far without much success. The first day
-it had been too thin. The next day so thick that you could cut it in slices.
-And both days it had been burned.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hate porridge,&rdquo; said Faith viciously. &ldquo;When I have a house
-of my own I&rsquo;m <i>never</i> going to have a single bit of porridge in it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What&rsquo;ll your children do then?&rdquo; asked Una. &ldquo;Children
-have to have porridge or they won&rsquo;t grow. Everybody says so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They&rsquo;ll have to get along without it or stay runts,&rdquo;
-retorted Faith stubbornly. &ldquo;Here, Una, you stir it while I set the table.
-If I leave it for a minute the horrid stuff will burn. It&rsquo;s half past
-nine. We&rsquo;ll be late for Sunday School.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I haven&rsquo;t seen anyone going past yet,&rdquo; said Una.
-&ldquo;There won&rsquo;t likely be many out. Just see how it&rsquo;s pouring.
-And when there&rsquo;s no preaching the folks won&rsquo;t come from a distance
-to bring the children.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Go and call Carl,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl, it appeared, had a sore throat, induced by getting wet in the Rainbow
-Valley marsh the previous evening while pursuing dragon-flies. He had come home
-with dripping stockings and boots and had sat out the evening in them. He could
-not eat any breakfast and Faith made him go back to bed again. She and Una left
-the table as it was and went to Sunday School. There was no one in the school
-room when they got there and no one came. They waited until eleven and then
-went home.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There doesn&rsquo;t seem to be anybody at the Methodist Sunday School
-either,&rdquo; said Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m <i>glad</i>,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;I&rsquo;d hate to think the
-Methodists were better at going to Sunday School on rainy Sundays than the
-Presbyterians. But there&rsquo;s no preaching in their Church to-day, either,
-so likely their Sunday School is in the afternoon.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una washed the dishes, doing them quite nicely, for so much had she learned
-from Mary Vance. Faith swept the floor after a fashion and peeled the potatoes
-for dinner, cutting her finger in the process.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish we had something for dinner besides ditto,&rdquo; sighed Una.
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m so tired of it. The Blythe children don&rsquo;t know what
-ditto is. And we <i>never</i> have any pudding. Nan says Susan would faint if they had
-no pudding on Sundays. Why aren&rsquo;t we like other people, Faith?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t want to be like other people,&rdquo; laughed Faith, tying
-up her bleeding finger. &ldquo;I like being myself. It&rsquo;s more
-interesting. Jessie Drew is as good a housekeeper as her mother, but would you
-want to be as stupid as she is?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But our house isn&rsquo;t right. Mary Vance says so. She says people
-talk about it being so untidy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith had an inspiration.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll clean it all up,&rdquo; she cried. &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll go
-right to work to-morrow. It&rsquo;s a real good chance when Aunt Martha is laid
-up and can&rsquo;t interfere with us. We&rsquo;ll have it all lovely and clean
-when father comes home, just like it was when Mary went away. <i>any one</i> can sweep
-and dust and wash windows. People won&rsquo;t be able to talk about us any
-more. Jem Blythe says it&rsquo;s only old cats that talk, but their talk hurts
-just as much as anybody&rsquo;s.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope it will be fine to-morrow,&rdquo; said Una, fired with
-enthusiasm. &ldquo;Oh, Faith, it will be splendid to be all cleaned up and like
-other people.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope Aunt Martha&rsquo;s misery will last over to-morrow,&rdquo; said
-Faith. &ldquo;If it doesn&rsquo;t we won&rsquo;t get a single thing
-done.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith&rsquo;s amiable wish was fulfilled. The next day found Aunt Martha still
-unable to rise. Carl, too, was still sick and easily prevailed on to stay in
-bed. Neither Faith nor Una had any idea how sick the boy really was; a watchful
-mother would have had a doctor without delay; but there was no mother, and poor
-little Carl, with his sore throat and aching head and crimson cheeks, rolled
-himself up in his twisted bedclothes and suffered alone, somewhat comforted by
-the companionship of a small green lizard in the pocket of his ragged nighty.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The world was full of summer sunshine after the rain. It was a peerless day for
-house-cleaning and Faith and Una went gaily to work.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll clean the dining-room and the parlour,&rdquo; said Faith.
-&ldquo;It wouldn&rsquo;t do to meddle with the study, and it doesn&rsquo;t
-matter much about the upstairs. The first thing is to take everything
-out.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Accordingly, everything was taken out. The furniture was piled on the veranda
-and lawn and the Methodist graveyard fence was gaily draped with rugs. An orgy
-of sweeping followed, with an attempt at dusting on Una&rsquo;s part, while
-Faith washed the windows of the dining-room, breaking one pane and cracking two
-in the process. Una surveyed the streaked result dubiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They don&rsquo;t look right, somehow,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;Mrs.
-Elliott&rsquo;s and Susan&rsquo;s windows just shine and sparkle.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Never mind. They let the sunshine through just as well,&rdquo; said
-Faith cheerfully. &ldquo;They <i>must</i> be clean after all the soap and water
-I&rsquo;ve used, and that&rsquo;s the main thing. Now, it&rsquo;s past eleven,
-so I&rsquo;ll wipe up this mess on the floor and we&rsquo;ll go outside. You
-dust the furniture and I&rsquo;ll shake the rugs. I&rsquo;m going to do it in
-the graveyard. I don&rsquo;t want to send dust flying all over the lawn.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith enjoyed the rug shaking. To stand on Hezekiah Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone,
-flapping and shaking rugs, was real fun. To be sure, Elder Abraham Clow and his
-wife, driving past in their capacious double-seated buggy, seemed to gaze at
-her in grim disapproval.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Isn&rsquo;t that a terrible sight?&rdquo; said Elder Abraham solemnly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I would never have believed it if I hadn&rsquo;t seen it with my own
-eyes,&rdquo; said Mrs. Elder Abraham, more solemnly still.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith waved a door mat cheerily at the Clow party. It did not worry her that
-the elder and his wife did not return her greeting. Everybody knew that Elder
-Abraham had never been known to smile since he had been appointed
-Superintendent of the Sunday School fourteen years previously. But it hurt her
-that Minnie and Adella Clow did not wave back. Faith liked Minnie and Adella.
-Next to the Blythes, they were her best friends in school and she always helped
-Adella with her sums. This was gratitude for you. Her friends cut her because
-she was shaking rugs in an old graveyard where, as Mary Vance said, not a
-living soul had been buried for years. Faith flounced around to the veranda,
-where she found Una grieved in spirit because the Clow girls had not waved to
-her, either.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose they&rsquo;re mad over something,&rdquo; said Faith.
-&ldquo;Perhaps they&rsquo;re jealous because we play so much in Rainbow Valley
-with the Blythes. Well, just wait till school opens and Adella wants me to show
-her how to do her sums! We&rsquo;ll get square then. Come on, let&rsquo;s put
-the things back in. I&rsquo;m tired to death and I don&rsquo;t believe the
-rooms will look much better than before we started&mdash;though I shook out
-pecks of dust in the graveyard. I <i>hate</i> house-cleaning.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was two o&rsquo;clock before the tired girls finished the two rooms. They
-got a dreary bite in the kitchen and intended to wash the dishes at once. But
-Faith happened to pick up a new story-book Di Blythe had lent her and was lost
-to the world until sunset. Una took a cup of rank tea up to Carl but found him
-asleep; so she curled herself up on Jerry&rsquo;s bed and went to sleep too.
-Meanwhile, a weird story flew through Glen St. Mary and folks asked each other
-seriously what was to be done with those manse youngsters.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is past laughing at, believe <i>me</i>,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia to her
-husband, with a heavy sigh. &ldquo;I couldn&rsquo;t believe it at first.
-Miranda Drew brought the story home from the Methodist Sunday School this
-afternoon and I simply scoffed at it. But Mrs. Elder Abraham says she and the
-Elder saw it with their own eyes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Saw what?&rdquo; asked Marshall.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Faith and Una Meredith stayed home from Sunday School this morning and
-<i>cleaned house</i>,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, in accents of despair. &ldquo;When
-Elder Abraham went home from the church&mdash;he had stayed behind to
-straighten out the library books&mdash;he saw them shaking rugs in the
-Methodist graveyard. I can never look a Methodist in the face again. Just think
-what a scandal it will make!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A scandal it assuredly did make, growing more scandalous as it spread, until
-the over-harbour people heard that the manse children had not only cleaned
-house and put out a washing on Sunday, but had wound up with an afternoon
-picnic in the graveyard while the Methodist Sunday School was going on. The
-only household which remained in blissful ignorance of the terrible thing was
-the manse itself; on what Faith and Una fondly believed to be Tuesday it rained
-again; for the next three days it rained; nobody came near the manse; the manse
-folk went nowhere; they might have waded through the misty Rainbow Valley up to
-Ingleside, but all the Blythe family, save Susan and the doctor, were away on a
-visit to Avonlea.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This is the last of our bread,&rdquo; said Faith, &ldquo;and the ditto
-is done. If Aunt Martha doesn&rsquo;t get better soon <i>what</i> will we do?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We can buy some bread in the village and there&rsquo;s the codfish Mary
-dried,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;But we don&rsquo;t know how to cook it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, that&rsquo;s easy,&rdquo; laughed Faith. &ldquo;You just boil
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Boil it they did; but as it did not occur to them to soak it beforehand it was
-too salty to eat. That night they were very hungry; but by the following day
-their troubles were over. Sunshine returned to the world; Carl was well and
-Aunt Martha&rsquo;s misery left her as suddenly as it had come; the butcher
-called at the manse and chased famine away. To crown all, the Blythes returned
-home, and that evening they and the manse children and Mary Vance kept sunset
-tryst once more in Rainbow Valley, where the daisies were floating upon the
-grass like spirits of the dew and the bells on the Tree Lovers rang like fairy
-chimes in the scented twilight.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap11"></a>CHAPTER XI.<br />
-A DREADFUL DISCOVERY</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you kids have gone and done it now,&rdquo; was Mary&rsquo;s
-greeting, as she joined them in the Valley. Miss Cornelia was up at Ingleside,
-holding agonized conclave with Anne and Susan, and Mary hoped that the session
-might be a long one, for it was all of two weeks since she had been allowed to
-revel with her chums in the dear valley of rainbows.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Done what?&rdquo; demanded everybody but Walter, who was day-dreaming as
-usual.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s you manse young ones, I mean,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;It was
-just awful of you. <i>I</i> wouldn&rsquo;t have done such a thing for the
-world, and <i>I</i> weren&rsquo;t brought up in a manse&mdash;weren&rsquo;t
-brought up <i>anywhere</i>&mdash;just <i>come</i> up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What have <i>we</i> done?&rdquo; asked Faith blankly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Done! You&rsquo;d <i>better</i> ask! The talk is something terrible. I expect
-it&rsquo;s ruined your father in this congregation. He&rsquo;ll never be able
-to live it down, poor man! Everybody blames him for it, and that isn&rsquo;t
-fair. But nothing <i>is</i> fair in this world. You ought to be ashamed of
-yourselves.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What <i>have</i> we done?&rdquo; asked Una again, despairingly. Faith said
-nothing, but her eyes flashed golden-brown scorn at Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, don&rsquo;t pretend innocence,&rdquo; said Mary, witheringly.
-&ldquo;Everybody knows what you have done.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>I</i> don&rsquo;t,&rdquo; interjected Jem Blythe indignantly.
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t let me catch you making Una cry, Mary Vance. What are you
-talking about?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I s&rsquo;pose you don&rsquo;t know, since you&rsquo;re just back from
-up west,&rdquo; said Mary, somewhat subdued. Jem could always manage her.
-&ldquo;But everybody else knows, you&rsquo;d better believe.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Knows what?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That Faith and Una stayed home from Sunday School last Sunday and
-<i>cleaned house</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We didn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; cried Faith and Una, in passionate denial.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary looked haughtily at them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t suppose you&rsquo;d deny it, after the way you&rsquo;ve
-combed <i>me</i> down for lying,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;What&rsquo;s the good of
-saying you didn&rsquo;t? Everybody knows you <i>did</i>. Elder Clow and his wife saw
-you. Some people say it will break up the church, but <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t go
-that far. You <i>are</i> nice ones.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Nan Blythe stood up and put her arms around the dazed Faith and Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They were nice enough to take you in and feed you and clothe you when
-you were starving in Mr. Taylor&rsquo;s barn, Mary Vance,&rdquo; she said.
-&ldquo;You are <i>very</i> grateful, I must say.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I <i>am</i> grateful,&rdquo; retorted Mary. &ldquo;You&rsquo;d know it if
-you&rsquo;d heard me standing up for Mr. Meredith through thick and thin.
-I&rsquo;ve blistered my tongue talking for him this week. I&rsquo;ve said again
-and again that he isn&rsquo;t to blame if his young ones did clean house on
-Sunday. He was away&mdash;and they knew better.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But we didn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; protested Una. &ldquo;It was <i>Monday</i> we
-cleaned house. Wasn&rsquo;t it, Faith?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course it was,&rdquo; said Faith, with flashing eyes. &ldquo;We went
-to Sunday School in spite of the rain&mdash;and no one came&mdash;not even
-Elder Abraham, for all his talk about fair-weather Christians.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It was Saturday it rained,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;Sunday was as fine
-as silk. I wasn&rsquo;t at Sunday School because I had toothache, but every one
-else was and they saw all your stuff out on the lawn. And Elder Abraham and
-Mrs. Elder Abraham saw you shaking rugs in the graveyard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una sat down among the daisies and began to cry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Look here,&rdquo; said Jem resolutely, &ldquo;this thing must be cleared
-up. <i>Somebody</i> has made a mistake. Sunday <i>was</i> fine, Faith. How could you have
-thought Saturday was Sunday?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Prayer-meeting was Thursday night,&rdquo; cried Faith, &ldquo;and Adam
-flew into the soup-pot on Friday when Aunt Martha&rsquo;s cat chased him, and
-spoiled our dinner; and Saturday there was a snake in the cellar and Carl
-caught it with a forked stick and carried it out, and Sunday it rained. So
-there!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Prayer-meeting was Wednesday night,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;Elder
-Baxter was to lead and he couldn&rsquo;t go Thursday night and it was changed
-to Wednesday. You were just a day out, Faith Meredith, and you <i>did</i> work on
-Sunday.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Suddenly Faith burst into a peal of laughter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose we did. What a joke!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t much of a joke for your father,&rdquo; said Mary sourly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;ll be all right when people find out it was just a
-mistake,&rdquo; said Faith carelessly. &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll explain.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can explain till you&rsquo;re black in the face,&rdquo; said Mary,
-&ldquo;but a lie like that&rsquo;ll travel faster&rsquo;n further than you ever
-will. I&rsquo;VE seen more of the world than you and <i>I</i> know. Besides,
-there are plenty of folks won&rsquo;t believe it was a mistake.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They will if I tell them,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can&rsquo;t tell everybody,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;No, I tell you
-you&rsquo;ve disgraced your father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una&rsquo;s evening was spoiled by this dire reflection, but Faith refused to
-be made uncomfortable. Besides, she had a plan that would put everything right.
-So she put the past with its mistake behind her and gave herself over to
-enjoyment of the present. Jem went away to fish and Walter came out of his
-reverie and proceeded to describe the woods of heaven. Mary pricked up her ears
-and listened respectfully. Despite her awe of Walter she revelled in his
-&ldquo;book talk.&rdquo; It always gave her a delightful sensation. Walter had
-been reading his Coleridge that day, and he pictured a heaven where
-</p>
-
-<p class="poem">
-&ldquo;There were gardens bright with sinuous rills<br />
-Where blossomed many an incense bearing tree,<br />
-And there were forests ancient as the hills<br />
-Enfolding sunny spots of greenery.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t know there was any woods in heaven,&rdquo; said Mary,
-with a long breath. &ldquo;I thought it was all streets&mdash;and
-streets&mdash;<i>and</i> streets.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course there are woods,&rdquo; said Nan. &ldquo;Mother can&rsquo;t
-live without trees and I can&rsquo;t, so what would be the use of going to
-heaven if there weren&rsquo;t any trees?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There are cities, too,&rdquo; said the young dreamer, &ldquo;splendid
-cities&mdash;coloured just like the sunset, with sapphire towers and rainbow
-domes. They are built of gold and diamonds&mdash;whole streets of diamonds,
-flashing like the sun. In the squares there are crystal fountains kissed by the
-light, and everywhere the asphodel blooms&mdash;the flower of heaven.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Fancy!&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;I saw the main street in Charlottetown
-once and I thought it was real grand, but I s&rsquo;pose it&rsquo;s nothing to
-heaven. Well, it all sounds gorgeous the way you tell it, but won&rsquo;t it be
-kind of dull, too?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I guess we can have some fun when the angels&rsquo; backs are
-turned,&rdquo; said Faith comfortably.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Heaven is <i>all</i> fun,&rdquo; declared Di.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The Bible doesn&rsquo;t say so,&rdquo; cried Mary, who had read so much
-of the Bible on Sunday afternoons under Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s eye that she now
-considered herself quite an authority on it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mother says the Bible language is figurative,&rdquo; said Nan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Does that mean that it isn&rsquo;t true?&rdquo; asked Mary hopefully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;not exactly&mdash;but I think it means that heaven will be just
-like what you&rsquo;d like it to be.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;d like it to be just like Rainbow Valley,&rdquo; said Mary,
-&ldquo;with all you kids to gas and play with. <i>That&rsquo;s</i> good enough for me.
-Anyhow, we can&rsquo;t go to heaven till we&rsquo;re dead and maybe not then,
-so what&rsquo;s the use of worrying? Here&rsquo;s Jem with a string of trout
-and it&rsquo;s my turn to fry them.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We ought to know more about heaven than Walter does when we&rsquo;re the
-minister&rsquo;s family,&rdquo; said Una, as they walked home that night.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We <i>know</i> just as much, but Walter can <i>imagine</i>,&rdquo; said Faith.
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott says he gets it from his mother.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do wish we hadn&rsquo;t made that mistake about Sunday,&rdquo; sighed
-Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t worry over that. I&rsquo;ve thought of a great plan to
-explain so that everybody will know,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;Just wait till
-to-morrow night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap12"></a>CHAPTER XII.<br />
-AN EXPLANATION AND A DARE</h2>
-
-<p>
-The Rev. Dr. Cooper preached in Glen St. Mary the next evening and the
-Presbyterian Church was crowded with people from near and far. The Reverend
-Doctor was reputed to be a very eloquent speaker; and, bearing in mind the old
-dictum that a minister should take his best clothes to the city and his best
-sermons to the country, he delivered a very scholarly and impressive discourse.
-But when the folks went home that night it was not of Dr. Cooper&rsquo;s sermon
-they talked. They had completely forgotten all about it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dr. Cooper had concluded with a fervent appeal, had wiped the perspiration from
-his massive brow, had said &ldquo;Let us pray&rdquo; as he was famed for saying
-it, and had duly prayed. There was a slight pause. In Glen St. Mary church the
-old fashion of taking the collection after the sermon instead of before still
-held&mdash;mainly because the Methodists had adopted the new fashion first, and
-Miss Cornelia and Elder Clow would not hear of following where Methodists had
-led. Charles Baxter and Thomas Douglas, whose duty it was to pass the plates,
-were on the point of rising to their feet. The organist had got out the music
-of her anthem and the choir had cleared its throat. Suddenly Faith Meredith
-rose in the manse pew, walked up to the pulpit platform, and faced the amazed
-audience.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia half rose in her seat and then sat down again. Her pew was far
-back and it occurred to her that whatever Faith meant to do or say would be
-half done or said before she could reach her. There was no use making the
-exhibition worse than it had to be. With an anguished glance at Mrs. Dr.
-Blythe, and another at Deacon Warren of the Methodist Church, Miss Cornelia
-resigned herself to another scandal.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If the child was only dressed decently itself,&rdquo; she groaned in
-spirit.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith, having spilled ink on her good dress, had serenely put on an old one of
-faded pink print. A caticornered rent in the skirt had been darned with scarlet
-tracing cotton and the hem had been let down, showing a bright strip of unfaded
-pink around the skirt. But Faith was not thinking of her clothes at all. She
-was feeling suddenly nervous. What had seemed easy in imagination was rather
-hard in reality. Confronted by all those staring questioning eyes Faith&rsquo;s
-courage almost failed her. The lights were so bright, the silence so awesome.
-She thought she could not speak after all. But she <i>must</i>&mdash;her father <i>must</i>
-be cleared of suspicion. Only&mdash;the words would <i>not</i> come.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una&rsquo;s little pearl-pure face gleamed up at her beseechingly from the
-manse pew. The Blythe children were lost in amazement. Back under the gallery
-Faith saw the sweet graciousness of Miss Rosemary West&rsquo;s smile and the
-amusement of Miss Ellen&rsquo;s. But none of these helped her. It was Bertie
-Shakespeare Drew who saved the situation. Bertie Shakespeare sat in the front
-seat of the gallery and he made a derisive face at Faith. Faith promptly made a
-dreadful one back at him, and, in her anger over being grimaced at by Bertie
-Shakespeare, forgot her stage fright. She found her voice and spoke out clearly
-and bravely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I want to explain something,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;and I want to do it
-now because everybody will hear it that heard the other. People are saying that
-Una and I stayed home last Sunday and cleaned house instead of going to Sunday
-School. Well, we did&mdash;but we didn&rsquo;t mean to. We got mixed up in the
-days of the week. It was all Elder Baxter&rsquo;s fault&rdquo;&mdash;sensation
-in Baxter&rsquo;s pew&mdash;&ldquo;because he went and changed the
-prayer-meeting to Wednesday night and then we thought Thursday was Friday and
-so on till we thought Saturday was Sunday. Carl was laid up sick and so was
-Aunt Martha, so they couldn&rsquo;t put us right. We went to Sunday School in
-all that rain on Saturday and nobody came. And then we thought we&rsquo;d clean
-house on Monday and stop old cats from talking about how dirty the manse
-was&rdquo;&mdash;general sensation all over the church&mdash;&ldquo;and we did.
-I shook the rugs in the Methodist graveyard because it was such a convenient
-place and not because I meant to be disrespectful of the dead. It isn&rsquo;t
-the dead folks who have made the fuss over this&mdash;it&rsquo;s the living
-folks. And it isn&rsquo;t right for any of you to blame my father for this,
-because he was away and didn&rsquo;t know, and anyhow we thought it was Monday.
-He&rsquo;s just the best father that ever lived in the world and we love him
-with all our hearts.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith&rsquo;s bravado ebbed out in a sob. She ran down the steps and flashed
-out of the side door of the church. There the friendly starlit, summer night
-comforted her and the ache went out of her eyes and throat. She felt very
-happy. The dreadful explanation was over and everybody knew now that her father
-wasn&rsquo;t to blame and that she and Una were not so wicked as to have
-cleaned house knowingly on Sunday.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Inside the church people gazed blankly at each other, but Thomas Douglas rose
-and walked up the aisle with a set face. <i>His</i> duty was clear; the collection
-must be taken if the skies fell. Taken it was; the choir sang the anthem, with
-a dismal conviction that it fell terribly flat, and Dr. Cooper gave out the
-concluding hymn and pronounced the benediction with considerably less unction
-than usual. The Reverend Doctor had a sense of humour and Faith&rsquo;s
-performance tickled him. Besides, John Meredith was well known in Presbyterian
-circles.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith returned home the next afternoon, but before his coming Faith
-contrived to scandalize Glen St. Mary again. In the reaction from Sunday
-evening&rsquo;s intensity and strain she was especially full of what Miss
-Cornelia would have called &ldquo;devilment&rdquo; on Monday. This led her to
-dare Walter Blythe to ride through Main Street on a pig, while she rode another
-one.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The pigs in question were two tall, lank animals, supposed to belong to Bertie
-Shakespeare Drew&rsquo;s father, which had been haunting the roadside by the
-manse for a couple of weeks. Walter did not want to ride a pig through Glen St.
-Mary, but whatever Faith Meredith dared him to do must be done. They tore down
-the hill and through the village, Faith bent double with laughter over her
-terrified courser, Walter crimson with shame. They tore past the minister
-himself, just coming home from the station; he, being a little less dreamy and
-abstracted than usual&mdash;owing to having had a talk on the train with Miss
-Cornelia who always wakened him up temporarily&mdash;noticed them, and thought
-he really must speak to Faith about it and tell her that such conduct was not
-seemly. But he had forgotten the trifling incident by the time he reached home.
-They passed Mrs. Alec Davis, who shrieked in horror, and they passed Miss
-Rosemary West who laughed and sighed. Finally, just before the pigs swooped
-into Bertie Shakespeare Drew&rsquo;s back yard, never to emerge therefrom
-again, so great had been the shock to their nerves&mdash;Faith and Walter
-jumped off, as Dr. and Mrs. Blythe drove swiftly by.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So that is how you bring up your boys,&rdquo; said Gilbert with mock
-severity.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Perhaps I do spoil them a little,&rdquo; said Anne contritely,
-&ldquo;but, oh, Gilbert, when I think of my own childhood before I came to
-Green Gables I haven&rsquo;t the heart to be very strict. How hungry for love
-and fun I was&mdash;an unloved little drudge with never a chance to play! They
-do have such good times with the manse children.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What about the poor pigs?&rdquo; asked Gilbert.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Anne tried to look sober and failed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you really think it hurt them?&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t
-think anything could hurt those animals. They&rsquo;ve been the plague of the
-neighbourhood this summer and the Drews <i>won&rsquo;t</i> shut them up. But
-I&rsquo;ll talk to Walter&mdash;if I can keep from laughing when I do
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia came up to Ingleside that evening to relieve her feelings over
-Sunday night. To her surprise she found that Anne did not view Faith&rsquo;s
-performance in quite the same light as she did.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I thought there was something brave and pathetic in her getting up there
-before that churchful of people, to confess,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;You could
-see she was frightened to death&mdash;yet she was bound to clear her father. I
-loved her for it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, of course, the poor child meant well,&rdquo; sighed Miss Cornelia,
-&ldquo;but just the same it was a terrible thing to do, and is making more talk
-than the house-cleaning on Sunday. <i>That</i> had begun to die away, and this has
-started it all up again. Rosemary West is like you&mdash;she said last night as
-she left the church that it was a plucky thing for Faith to do, but it made her
-feel sorry for the child, too. Miss Ellen thought it all a good joke, and said
-she hadn&rsquo;t had as much fun in church for years. Of course <i>they</i>
-don&rsquo;t care&mdash;they are Episcopalians. But we Presbyterians feel it.
-And there were so many hotel people there that night and scores of Methodists.
-Mrs. Leander Crawford cried, she felt so bad. And Mrs. Alec Davis said the
-little hussy ought to be spanked.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Leander Crawford is always crying in church,&rdquo; said Susan
-contemptuously. &ldquo;She cries over every affecting thing the minister says.
-But you do not often see her name on a subscription list, Mrs. Dr. dear. Tears
-come cheaper. She tried to talk to me one day about Aunt Martha being such a
-dirty housekeeper; and I wanted to say, &lsquo;Every one knows that <i>you</i> have
-been seen mixing up cakes in the kitchen wash-pan, Mrs. Leander
-Crawford!&rsquo; But I did not say it, Mrs. Dr. dear, because I have too much
-respect for myself to condescend to argue with the likes of her. But I could
-tell worse things than <i>that</i> of Mrs. Leander Crawford, if I was disposed to
-gossip. And as for Mrs. Alec Davis, if she had said that to me, Mrs. Dr. dear,
-do you know what I would have said? I would have said, &lsquo;I have no doubt
-you would like to spank Faith, Mrs. Davis, but you will never have the chance
-to spank a minister&rsquo;s daughter either in this world or in that which is
-to come.&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If poor Faith had only been decently dressed,&rdquo; lamented Miss
-Cornelia again, &ldquo;it wouldn&rsquo;t have been quite that bad. But that
-dress looked dreadful, as she stood there upon the platform.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It was clean, though, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;They <i>are</i>
-clean children. They may be very heedless and reckless, Mrs. Dr. dear, and I am
-not saying they are not, but they <i>never</i> forget to wash behind their
-ears.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The idea of Faith forgetting what day was Sunday,&rdquo; persisted Miss
-Cornelia. &ldquo;She will grow up just as careless and impractical as her
-father, believe <i>me</i>. I suppose Carl would have known better if he hadn&rsquo;t
-been sick. I don&rsquo;t know what was wrong with him, but I think it very
-likely he had been eating those blueberries that grew in the graveyard. No
-wonder they made him sick. If I was a Methodist I&rsquo;d try to keep my
-graveyard cleaned up at least.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am of the opinion that Carl only ate the sours that grow on the
-dyke,&rdquo; said Susan hopefully. &ldquo;I do not think <i>any</i> minister&rsquo;s
-son would eat blueberries that grew on the graves of dead people. You know it
-would not be so bad, Mrs. Dr. dear, to eat things that grew on the dyke.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The worst of last night&rsquo;s performance was the face Faith made made
-at somebody in the congregation before she started in,&rdquo; said Miss
-Cornelia. &ldquo;Elder Clow declares she made it at him. And <i>did</i> you hear that
-she was seen riding on a pig to-day?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I saw her. Walter was with her. I gave him a little&mdash;a <i>very</i>
-little&mdash;scolding about it. He did not say much, but he gave me the
-impression that it had been his idea and that Faith was not to blame.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do not not believe <i>that</i>, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; cried Susan, up in
-arms. &ldquo;That is just Walter&rsquo;s way&mdash;to take the blame on
-himself. But you know as well as I do, Mrs. Dr. dear, that that blessed child
-would never have thought of riding on a pig, even if he does write
-poetry.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, there&rsquo;s no doubt the notion was hatched in Faith
-Meredith&rsquo;s brain,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;And I don&rsquo;t say
-that I&rsquo;m sorry that Amos Drew&rsquo;s old pigs did get their come-uppance
-for once. But the minister&rsquo;s daughter!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>And</i> the doctor&rsquo;s son!&rdquo; said Anne, mimicking Miss
-Cornelia&rsquo;s tone. Then she laughed. &ldquo;Dear Miss Cornelia,
-they&rsquo;re only little children. And you <i>know</i> they&rsquo;ve never yet done
-anything bad&mdash;they&rsquo;re just heedless and impulsive&mdash;as I was
-myself once. They&rsquo;ll grow sedate and sober&mdash;as I&rsquo;ve
-done.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia laughed, too.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There are times, Anne dearie, when I know by your eyes that <i>your</i>
-soberness is put on like a garment and you&rsquo;re really aching to do
-something wild and young again. Well, I feel encouraged. Somehow, a talk with
-you always does have that effect on me. Now, when I go to see Barbara Samson,
-it&rsquo;s just the opposite. She makes me feel that everything&rsquo;s wrong
-and always will be. But of course living all your life with a man like Joe
-Samson wouldn&rsquo;t be exactly cheering.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is a very strange thing to think that she married Joe Samson after
-all her chances,&rdquo; remarked Susan. &ldquo;She was much sought after when
-she was a girl. She used to boast to me that she had twenty-one beaus and Mr.
-Pethick.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What was Mr. Pethick?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, he was a sort of hanger-on, Mrs. Dr. dear, but you could not
-exactly call him a beau. He did not really have any intentions. Twenty-one
-beaus&mdash;and me that never had one! But Barbara went through the woods and
-picked up the crooked stick after all. And yet they say her husband can make
-better baking powder biscuits than she can, and she always gets him to make
-them when company comes to tea.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Which reminds <i>me</i> that I have company coming to tea to-morrow and I must
-go home and set my bread,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;Mary said she could
-set it and no doubt she could. But while I live and move and have my being
-<i>I</i> set my own bread, believe me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How is Mary getting on?&rdquo; asked Anne.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve no fault to find with Mary,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia rather
-gloomily. &ldquo;She&rsquo;s getting some flesh on her bones and she&rsquo;s
-clean and respectful&mdash;though there&rsquo;s more in her than <i>I</i> can
-fathom. She&rsquo;s a sly puss. If you dug for a thousand years you
-couldn&rsquo;t get to the bottom of that child&rsquo;s mind, believe <i>me!</i> As for
-work, I never saw anything like her. She <i>eats</i> it up. Mrs. Wiley may have been
-cruel to her, but folks needn&rsquo;t say she made Mary work. Mary&rsquo;s a
-born worker. Sometimes I wonder which will wear out first&mdash;her legs or her
-tongue. I don&rsquo;t have enough to do to keep me out of mischief these days.
-I&rsquo;ll be real glad when school opens, for then I&rsquo;ll have something
-to do again. Mary doesn&rsquo;t want to go to school, but I put my foot down
-and said that go she must. I shall <i>not</i> have the Methodists saying that I kept
-her out of school while I lolled in idleness.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap13"></a>CHAPTER XIII.<br />
-THE HOUSE ON THE HILL</h2>
-
-<p>
-There was a little unfailing spring, always icy cold and crystal pure, in a
-certain birch-screened hollow of Rainbow Valley in the lower corner near the
-marsh. Not a great many people knew of its existence. The manse and Ingleside
-children knew, of course, as they knew everything else about the magic valley.
-Occasionally they went there to get a drink, and it figured in many of their
-plays as a fountain of old romance. Anne knew of it and loved it because it
-somehow reminded her of the beloved Dryad&rsquo;s Bubble at Green Gables.
-Rosemary West knew of it; it was her fountain of romance, too. Eighteen years
-ago she had sat behind it one spring twilight and heard young Martin Crawford
-stammer out a confession of fervent, boyish love. She had whispered her own
-secret in return, and they had kissed and promised by the wild wood spring.
-They had never stood together by it again&mdash;Martin had sailed on his fatal
-voyage soon after; but to Rosemary West it was always a sacred spot, hallowed
-by that immortal hour of youth and love. Whenever she passed near it she turned
-aside to hold a secret tryst with an old dream&mdash;a dream from which the
-pain had long gone, leaving only its unforgettable sweetness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The spring was a hidden thing. You might have passed within ten feet of it and
-never have suspected its existence. Two generations past a huge old pine had
-fallen almost across it. Nothing was left of the tree but its crumbling trunk
-out of which the ferns grew thickly, making a green roof and a lacy screen for
-the water. A maple-tree grew beside it with a curiously gnarled and twisted
-trunk, creeping along the ground for a little way before shooting up into the
-air, and so forming a quaint seat; and September had flung a scarf of pale
-smoke-blue asters around the hollow.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith, taking the cross-lots road through Rainbow Valley on his way
-home from some pastoral visitations around the Harbour head one evening, turned
-aside to drink of the little spring. Walter Blythe had shown it to him one
-afternoon only a few days before, and they had had a long talk together on the
-maple seat. John Meredith, under all his shyness and aloofness, had the heart
-of a boy. He had been called Jack in his youth, though nobody in Glen St. Mary
-would ever have believed it. Walter and he had taken to each other and had
-talked unreservedly. Mr. Meredith found his way into some sealed and sacred
-chambers of the lad&rsquo;s soul wherein not even Di had ever looked. They were
-to be chums from that friendly hour and Walter knew that he would never be
-frightened of the minister again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I never believed before that it was possible to get really acquainted
-with a minister,&rdquo; he told his mother that night.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith drank from his slender white hand, whose grip of steel always
-surprised people who were unacquainted with it, and then sat down on the maple
-seat. He was in no hurry to go home; this was a beautiful spot and he was
-mentally weary after a round of rather uninspiring conversations with many good
-and stupid people. The moon was rising. Rainbow Valley was wind-haunted and
-star-sentinelled only where he was, but afar from the upper end came the gay
-notes of children&rsquo;s laughter and voices.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The ethereal beauty of the asters in the moonlight, the glimmer of the little
-spring, the soft croon of the brook, the wavering grace of the brackens all
-wove a white magic round John Meredith. He forgot congregational worries and
-spiritual problems; the years slipped away from him; he was a young divinity
-student again and the roses of June were blooming red and fragrant on the dark,
-queenly head of his Cecilia. He sat there and dreamed like any boy. And it was
-at this propitious moment that Rosemary West stepped aside from the by-path and
-stood beside him in that dangerous, spell-weaving place. John Meredith stood up
-as she came in and saw her&mdash;<i>really</i> saw her&mdash;for the first time.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He had met her in his church once or twice and shaken hands with her
-abstractedly as he did with anyone he happened to encounter on his way down the
-aisle. He had never met her elsewhere, for the Wests were Episcopalians, with
-church affinities in Lowbridge, and no occasion for calling upon them had ever
-arisen. Before to-night, if anyone had asked John Meredith what Rosemary West
-looked like he would not have had the slightest notion. But he was never to
-forget her, as she appeared to him in the glamour of kind moonlight by the
-spring.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She was certainly not in the least like Cecilia, who had always been his ideal
-of womanly beauty. Cecilia had been small and dark and vivacious&mdash;Rosemary
-West was tall and fair and placid, yet John Meredith thought he had never seen
-so beautiful a woman.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She was bareheaded and her golden hair&mdash;hair of a warm gold,
-&ldquo;molasses taffy&rdquo; colour as Di Blythe had said&mdash;was pinned in
-sleek, close coils over her head; she had large, tranquil, blue eyes that
-always seemed full of friendliness, a high white forehead and a finely shaped
-face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary West was always called a &ldquo;sweet woman.&rdquo; She was so sweet
-that even her high-bred, stately air had never gained for her the reputation of
-being &ldquo;stuck-up,&rdquo; which it would inevitably have done in the case
-of anyone else in Glen St. Mary. Life had taught her to be brave, to be
-patient, to love, to forgive. She had watched the ship on which her lover went
-sailing out of Four Winds Harbour into the sunset. But, though she watched
-long, she had never seen it coming sailing back. That vigil had taken girlhood
-from her eyes, yet she kept her youth to a marvellous degree. Perhaps this was
-because she always seemed to preserve that attitude of delighted surprise
-towards life which most of us leave behind in childhood&mdash;an attitude which
-not only made Rosemary herself seem young, but flung a pleasing illusion of
-youth over the consciousness of every one who talked to her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith was startled by her loveliness and Rosemary was startled by his
-presence. She had never thought she would find anyone by that remote spring,
-least of all the recluse of Glen St. Mary manse. She almost dropped the heavy
-armful of books she was carrying home from the Glen lending library, and then,
-to cover her confusion, she told one of those small fibs which even the best of
-women do tell at times.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&mdash;I came for a drink,&rdquo; she said, stammering a little, in
-answer to Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s grave &ldquo;good evening, Miss West.&rdquo; She
-felt that she was an unpardonable goose and she longed to shake herself. But
-John Meredith was not a vain man and he knew she would likely have been as much
-startled had she met old Elder Clow in that unexpected fashion. Her confusion
-put him at ease and he forgot to be shy; besides, even the shyest of men can
-sometimes be quite audacious in moonlight.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let me get you a cup,&rdquo; he said smiling. There was a cup near by,
-if he had only known it, a cracked, handleless blue cup secreted under the
-maple by the Rainbow Valley children; but he did not know it, so he stepped out
-to one of the birch-trees and stripped a bit of its white skin away. Deftly he
-fashioned this into a three-cornered cup, filled it from the spring, and handed
-it to Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary took it and drank every drop to punish herself for her fib, for she
-was not in the least thirsty, and to drink a fairly large cupful of water when
-you are not thirsty is somewhat of an ordeal. Yet the memory of that draught
-was to be very pleasant to Rosemary. In after years it seemed to her that there
-was something sacramental about it. Perhaps this was because of what the
-minister did when she handed him back the cup. He stooped again and filled it
-and drank of it himself. It was only by accident that he put his lips just
-where Rosemary had put hers, and Rosemary knew it. Nevertheless, it had a
-curious significance for her. They two had drunk of the same cup. She
-remembered idly that an old aunt of hers used to say that when two people did
-this their after-lives would be linked in some fashion, whether for good or
-ill.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith held the cup uncertainly. He did not know what to do with it. The
-logical thing would have been to toss it away, but somehow he was disinclined
-to do this. Rosemary held out her hand for it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will you let me have it?&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;You made it so
-knackily. I never saw anyone make a birch cup so since my little brother used
-to make them long ago&mdash;before he died.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I learned how to make them when <i>I</i> was a boy, camping out one
-summer. An old hunter taught me,&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith. &ldquo;Let me carry
-your books, Miss West.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary was startled into another fib and said oh, they were not heavy. But
-the minister took them from her with quite a masterful air and they walked away
-together. It was the first time Rosemary had stood by the valley spring without
-thinking of Martin Crawford. The mystic tryst had been broken.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The little by-path wound around the marsh and then struck up the long wooded
-hill on the top of which Rosemary lived. Beyond, through the trees, they could
-see the moonlight shining across the level summer fields. But the little path
-was shadowy and narrow. Trees crowded over it, and trees are never quite as
-friendly to human beings after nightfall as they are in daylight. They wrap
-themselves away from us. They whisper and plot furtively. If they reach out a
-hand to us it has a hostile, tentative touch. People walking amid trees after
-night always draw closer together instinctively and involuntarily, making an
-alliance, physical and mental, against certain alien powers around them.
-Rosemary&rsquo;s dress brushed against John Meredith as they walked. Not even
-an absent-minded minister, who was after all a young man still, though he
-firmly believed he had outlived romance, could be insensible to the charm of
-the night and the path and the companion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It is never quite safe to think we have done with life. When we imagine we have
-finished our story fate has a trick of turning the page and showing us yet
-another chapter. These two people each thought their hearts belonged
-irrevocably to the past; but they both found their walk up that hill very
-pleasant. Rosemary thought the Glen minister was by no means as shy and
-tongue-tied as he had been represented. He seemed to find no difficulty in
-talking easily and freely. Glen housewives would have been amazed had they
-heard him. But then so many Glen housewives talked only gossip and the price of
-eggs, and John Meredith was not interested in either. He talked to Rosemary of
-books and music and wide-world doings and something of his own history, and
-found that she could understand and respond. Rosemary, it appeared, possessed a
-book which Mr. Meredith had not read and wished to read. She offered to lend it
-to him and when they reached the old homestead on the hill he went in to get
-it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The house itself was an old-fashioned gray one, hung with vines, through which
-the light in the sitting-room winked in friendly fashion. It looked down the
-Glen, over the harbour, silvered in the moonlight, to the sand-dunes and the
-moaning ocean. They walked in through a garden that always seemed to smell of
-roses, even when no roses were in bloom. There was a sisterhood of lilies at
-the gate and a ribbon of asters on either side of the broad walk, and a lacery
-of fir trees on the hill&rsquo;s edge beyond the house.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You have the whole world at your doorstep here,&rdquo; said John
-Meredith, with a long breath. &ldquo;What a view&mdash;what an outlook! At
-times I feel stifled down there in the Glen. You can breathe up here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is calm to-night,&rdquo; said Rosemary laughing. &ldquo;If there were
-a wind it would blow your breath away. We get &lsquo;a&rsquo; the airts the
-wind can blow&rsquo; up here. This place should be called Four Winds instead of
-the Harbour.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I like wind,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;A day when there is no wind seems to
-me <i>dead</i>. A windy day wakes me up.&rdquo; He gave a conscious laugh. &ldquo;On a
-calm day I fall into day dreams. No doubt you know my reputation, Miss West. If
-I cut you dead the next time we meet don&rsquo;t put it down to bad manners.
-Please understand that it is only abstraction and forgive me&mdash;and speak to
-me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They found Ellen West in the sitting room when they went in. She laid her
-glasses down on the book she had been reading and looked at them in amazement
-tinctured with something else. But she shook hands amiably with Mr. Meredith
-and he sat down and talked to her, while Rosemary hunted out his book.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen West was ten years older than Rosemary, and so different from her that it
-was hard to believe they were sisters. She was dark and massive, with black
-hair, thick, black eyebrows and eyes of the clear, slaty blue of the gulf water
-in a north wind. She had a rather stern, forbidding look, but she was in
-reality very jolly, with a hearty, gurgling laugh and a deep, mellow, pleasant
-voice with a suggestion of masculinity about it. She had once remarked to
-Rosemary that she would really like to have a talk with that Presbyterian
-minister at the Glen, to see if he could find a word to say to a woman when he
-was cornered. She had her chance now and she tackled him on world politics.
-Miss Ellen, who was a great reader, had been devouring a book on the Kaiser of
-Germany, and she demanded Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s opinion of him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;A dangerous man,&rdquo; was his answer.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I believe you!&rdquo; Miss Ellen nodded. &ldquo;Mark my words, Mr.
-Meredith, that man is going to fight somebody yet. He&rsquo;s <i>aching</i> to. He is
-going to set the world on fire.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If you mean that he will wantonly precipitate a great war I hardly think
-so,&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith. &ldquo;The day has gone by for that sort of
-thing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Bless you, it hasn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; rumbled Ellen. &ldquo;The day never
-goes by for men and nations to make asses of themselves and take to the fists.
-The millenniun isn&rsquo;t <i>that</i> near, Mr. Meredith, and <i>you</i> don&rsquo;t think
-it is any more than I do. As for this Kaiser, mark my words, he is going to
-make a heap of trouble&rdquo;&mdash;and Miss Ellen prodded her book
-emphatically with her long finger. &ldquo;Yes, if he isn&rsquo;t nipped in the
-bud he&rsquo;s going to make trouble. <i>We&rsquo;ll</i> live to see it&mdash;you and
-I will live to see it, Mr. Meredith. And who is going to nip him? England
-should, but she won&rsquo;t. <i>Who</i> is going to nip him? Tell me that, Mr.
-Meredith.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith couldn&rsquo;t tell her, but they plunged into a discussion of
-German militarism that lasted long after Rosemary had found the book. Rosemary
-said nothing, but sat in a little rocker behind Ellen and stroked an important
-black cat meditatively. John Meredith hunted big game in Europe with Ellen, but
-he looked oftener at Rosemary than at Ellen, and Ellen noticed it. After
-Rosemary had gone to the door with him and come back Ellen rose and looked at
-her accusingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Rosemary West, that man has a notion of courting you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary quivered. Ellen&rsquo;s speech was like a blow to her. It rubbed all
-the bloom off the pleasant evening. But she would not let Ellen see how it hurt
-her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense,&rdquo; she said, and laughed, a little too carelessly.
-&ldquo;You see a beau for me in every bush, Ellen. Why he told me all about his
-wife to-night&mdash;how much she was to him&mdash;how empty her death had left
-the world.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, that may be <i>his</i> way of courting,&rdquo; retorted Ellen. &ldquo;Men
-have all kinds of ways, I understand. But don&rsquo;t forget your promise,
-Rosemary.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is no need of my either forgetting or remembering it,&rdquo; said
-Rosemary, a little wearily. &ldquo;<i>You</i> forget that I&rsquo;m an old maid,
-Ellen. It is only your sisterly delusion that I am still young and blooming and
-dangerous. Mr. Meredith merely wants to be a friend&mdash;if he wants that much
-itself. He&rsquo;ll forget us both long before he gets back to the
-manse.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve no objection to your being friends with him,&rdquo; conceded
-Ellen, &ldquo;but it musn&rsquo;t go beyond friendship, remember. I&rsquo;m
-always suspicious of widowers. They are not given to romantic ideas about
-friendship. They&rsquo;re apt to mean business. As for this Presbyterian man,
-what do they call him shy for? He&rsquo;s not a bit shy, though he may be
-absent-minded&mdash;so absent-minded that he forgot to say goodnight to <i>me</i> when
-you started to go to the door with him. He&rsquo;s got brains, too.
-There&rsquo;s so few men round here that can talk sense to a body. I&rsquo;ve
-enjoyed the evening. I wouldn&rsquo;t mind seeing more of him. But no
-philandering, Rosemary, mind you&mdash;no philandering.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary was quite used to being warned by Ellen from philandering if she so
-much as talked five minutes to any marriageable man under eighty or over
-eighteen. She had always laughed at the warning with unfeigned amusement. This
-time it did not amuse her&mdash;it irritated her a little. Who wanted to
-philander?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t be such a goose, Ellen,&rdquo; she said with unaccustomed
-shortness as she took her lamp. She went upstairs without saying goodnight.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen shook her head dubiously and looked at the black cat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is she so cross about, St. George?&rdquo; she asked. &ldquo;When
-you howl you&rsquo;re hit, I&rsquo;ve always heard, George. But she promised,
-Saint&mdash;she promised, and we Wests always keep our word. So it won&rsquo;t
-matter if he does want to philander, George. She promised. I won&rsquo;t
-worry.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Upstairs, in her room, Rosemary sat for a long while looking out of the window
-across the moonlit garden to the distant, shining harbour. She felt vaguely
-upset and unsettled. She was suddenly tired of outworn dreams. And in the
-garden the petals of the last red rose were scattered by a sudden little wind.
-Summer was over&mdash;it was autumn.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap14"></a>CHAPTER XIV.<br />
-MRS. ALEC DAVIS MAKES A CALL</h2>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith walked slowly home. At first he thought a little about Rosemary,
-but by the time he reached Rainbow Valley he had forgotten all about her and
-was meditating on a point regarding German theology which Ellen had raised. He
-passed through Rainbow Valley and knew it not. The charm of Rainbow Valley had
-no potency against German theology. When he reached the manse he went to his
-study and took down a bulky volume in order to see which had been right, he or
-Ellen. He remained immersed in its mazes until dawn, struck a new trail of
-speculation and pursued it like a sleuth hound for the next week, utterly lost
-to the world, his parish and his family. He read day and night; he forgot to go
-to his meals when Una was not there to drag him to them; he never thought about
-Rosemary or Ellen again. Old Mrs. Marshall, over-harbour, was very ill and sent
-for him, but the message lay unheeded on his desk and gathered dust. Mrs.
-Marshall recovered but never forgave him. A young couple came to the manse to
-be married and Mr. Meredith, with unbrushed hair, in carpet slippers and faded
-dressing gown, married them. To be sure, he began by reading the funeral
-service to them and got along as far as &ldquo;ashes to ashes and dust to
-dust&rdquo; before he vaguely suspected that something was wrong.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dear me,&rdquo; he said absently, &ldquo;that is strange&mdash;very
-strange.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The bride, who was very nervous, began to cry. The bridegroom, who was not in
-the least nervous, giggled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Please, sir, I think you&rsquo;re burying us instead of marrying
-us,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Excuse me,&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith, as it it did not matter much. He
-turned up the marriage service and got through with it, but the bride never
-felt quite properly married for the rest of her life.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He forgot his prayer-meeting again&mdash;but that did not matter, for it was a
-wet night and nobody came. He might even have forgotten his Sunday service if
-it had not been for Mrs. Alec Davis. Aunt Martha came in on Saturday afternoon
-and told him that Mrs. Davis was in the parlour and wanted to see him. Mr.
-Meredith sighed. Mrs. Davis was the only woman in Glen St. Mary church whom he
-positively detested. Unfortunately, she was also the richest, and his board of
-managers had warned Mr. Meredith against offending her. Mr. Meredith seldom
-thought of such a worldly matter as his stipend; but the managers were more
-practical. Also, they were astute. Without mentioning money, they contrived to
-instil into Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s mind a conviction that he should not offend
-Mrs. Davis. Otherwise, he would likely have forgotten all about her as soon as
-Aunt Martha had gone out. As it was, he turned down his Ewald with a feeling of
-annoyance and went across the hall to the parlour.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. Davis was sitting on the sofa, looking about her with an air of scornful
-disapproval.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-What a scandalous room! There were no curtains on the window. Mrs. Davis did
-not know that Faith and Una had taken them down the day before to use as court
-trains in one of their plays and had forgotten to put them up again, but she
-could not have accused those windows more fiercely if she had known. The blinds
-were cracked and torn. The pictures on the walls were crooked; the rugs were
-awry; the vases were full of faded flowers; the dust lay in
-heaps&mdash;literally in heaps.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What are we coming to?&rdquo; Mrs. Davis asked herself, and then primmed
-up her unbeautiful mouth.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jerry and Carl had been whooping and sliding down the banisters as she came
-through the hall. They did not see her and continued whooping and sliding, and
-Mrs. Davis was convinced they did it on purpose. Faith&rsquo;s pet rooster
-ambled through the hall, stood in the parlour doorway and looked at her. Not
-liking her looks, he did not venture in. Mrs. Davis gave a scornful sniff. A
-pretty manse, indeed, where roosters paraded the halls and stared people out of
-countenance.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Shoo, there,&rdquo; commanded Mrs. Davis, poking her flounced,
-changeable-silk parasol at him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Adam shooed. He was a wise rooster and Mrs. Davis had wrung the necks of so
-many roosters with her own fair hands in the course of her fifty years that an
-air of the executioner seemed to hang around her. Adam scuttled through the
-hall as the minister came in.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith still wore slippers and dressing gown, and his dark hair still
-fell in uncared-for locks over his high brow. But he looked the gentleman he
-was; and Mrs. Alec Davis, in her silk dress and beplumed bonnet, and kid gloves
-and gold chain looked the vulgar, coarse-souled woman she was. Each felt the
-antagonisn of the other&rsquo;s personality. Mr. Meredith shrank, but Mrs.
-Davis girded up her loins for the fray. She had come to the manse to propose a
-certain thing to the minister and she meant to lose no time in proposing it.
-She was going to do him a favour&mdash;a great favour&mdash;and the sooner he
-was made aware of it the better. She had been thinking about it all summer and
-had come to a decision at last. This was all that mattered, Mrs. Davis thought.
-When she decided a thing it <i>was</i> decided. Nobody else had any say in the matter.
-That had always been her attitude. When she had made her mind up to marry Alec
-Davis she had married him and that was the end to it. Alec had never known how
-it happened, but what odds? So in this case&mdash;Mrs. Davis had arranged
-everything to her own satisfaction. Now it only remained to inform Mr.
-Meredith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will you please shut that door?&rdquo; said Mrs. Davis, unprimming her
-mouth slightly to say it, but speaking with asperity. &ldquo;I have something
-important to say, and I can&rsquo;t say it with that racket in the hall.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith shut the door meekly. Then he sat down before Mrs. Davis. He was
-not wholly aware of her yet. His mind was still wrestling with Ewald&rsquo;s
-arguments. Mrs. Davis sensed this detachment and it annoyed her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have come to tell you, Mr. Meredith,&rdquo; she said aggressively,
-&ldquo;that I have decided to adopt Una.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;To&mdash;adopt&mdash;Una!&rdquo; Mr. Meredith gazed at her blankly, not
-understanding in the least.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes. I&rsquo;ve been thinking it over for some time. I have often
-thought of adopting a child, since my husband&rsquo;s death. But it seemed so
-hard to get a suitable one. It is very few children I would want to take into
-<i>my</i> home. I wouldn&rsquo;t think of taking a home child&mdash;some outcast of
-the slums in all probability. And there is hardly ever any other child to be
-got. One of the fishermen down at the harbour died last fall and left six
-youngsters. They tried to get me to take one, but I soon gave them to
-understand that I had no idea of adopting trash like that. Their grandfather
-stole a horse. Besides, they were all boys and I wanted a girl&mdash;a quiet,
-obedient girl that I could train up to be a lady. Una will suit me exactly. She
-would be a nice little thing if she was properly looked after&mdash;so
-different from Faith. I would never dream of adopting Faith. But I&rsquo;ll
-take Una and I&rsquo;ll give her a good home, and up-bringing, Mr. Meredith,
-and if she behaves herself I&rsquo;ll leave her all my money when I die. Not
-one of my own relatives shall have a cent of it in any case, I&rsquo;m
-determined on that. It was the idea of aggravating them that set me to thinking
-of adopting a child as much as anything in the first place. Una shall be well
-dressed and educated and trained, Mr. Meredith, and I shall give her music and
-painting lessons and treat her as if she was my own.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith was wide enough awake by this time. There was a faint flush in his
-pale cheek and a dangerous light in his fine dark eyes. Was this woman, whose
-vulgarity and consciousness of money oozed out of her at every pore, actually
-asking him to give her Una&mdash;his dear little wistful Una with
-Cecilia&rsquo;s own dark-blue eyes&mdash;the child whom the dying mother had
-clasped to her heart after the other children had been led weeping from the
-room. Cecilia had clung to her baby until the gates of death had shut between
-them. She had looked over the little dark head to her husband.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Take good care of her, John,&rdquo; she had entreated. &ldquo;She is so
-small&mdash;and sensitive. The others can fight their way&mdash;but the world
-will hurt <i>her</i>. Oh, John, I don&rsquo;t know what you and she are going to do.
-You both need me so much. But keep her close to you&mdash;keep her close to
-you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-These had been almost her last words except a few unforgettable ones for him
-alone. And it was this child whom Mrs. Davis had coolly announced her intention
-of taking from him. He sat up straight and looked at Mrs. Davis. In spite of
-the worn dressing gown and the frayed slippers there was something about him
-that made Mrs. Davis feel a little of the old reverence for &ldquo;the
-cloth&rdquo; in which she had been brought up. After all, there <i>was</i> a certain
-divinity hedging a minister, even a poor, unworldly, abstracted one.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I thank you for your kind intentions, Mrs. Davis,&rdquo; said Mr.
-Meredith with a gentle, final, quite awful courtesy, &ldquo;but I cannot give
-you my child.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. Davis looked blank. She had never dreamed of his refusing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Mr. Meredith,&rdquo; she said in astonishment. &ldquo;You must be
-cr&mdash;you can&rsquo;t mean it. You must think it over&mdash;think of all the
-advantages I can give her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is no need to think it over, Mrs. Davis. It is entirely out of the
-question. All the worldly advantages it is in your power to bestow on her could
-not compensate for the loss of a father&rsquo;s love and care. I thank you
-again&mdash;but it is not to be thought of.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Disappointment angered Mrs. Davis beyond the power of old habit to control. Her
-broad red face turned purple and her voice trembled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I thought you&rsquo;d be only too glad to let me have her,&rdquo; she
-sneered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why did you think that?&rdquo; asked Mr. Meredith quietly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because nobody ever supposed you cared anything about any of your
-children,&rdquo; retorted Mrs. Davis contemptuously. &ldquo;You neglect them
-scandalously. It is the talk of the place. They aren&rsquo;t fed and dressed
-properly, and they&rsquo;re not trained at all. They have no more manners than
-a pack of wild Indians. You never think of doing your duty as a father. You let
-a stray child come here among them for a fortnight and never took any notice of
-her&mdash;a child that swore like a trooper I&rsquo;m told. <i>You</i> wouldn&rsquo;t
-have cared if they&rsquo;d caught small-pox from her. And Faith made an
-exhibition of herself getting up in preaching and making that speech! And she
-rid a pig down the street&mdash;under your very eyes I understand. The way they
-act is past belief and you never lift a finger to stop them or try to teach
-them anything. And now when I offer one of them a good home and good prospects
-you refuse it and insult me. A pretty father you, to talk of loving and caring
-for your children!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That will do, woman!&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith. He stood up and looked at
-Mrs. Davis with eyes that made her quail. &ldquo;That will do,&rdquo; he
-repeated. &ldquo;I desire to hear no more, Mrs. Davis. You have said too much.
-It may be that I have been remiss in some respects in my duty as a parent, but
-it is not for you to remind me of it in such terms as you have used. Let us say
-good afternoon.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. Davis did not say anything half so amiable as good afternoon, but she took
-her departure. As she swept past the minister a large, plump toad, which Carl
-had secreted under the lounge, hopped out almost under her feet. Mrs. Davis
-gave a shriek and in trying to avoid treading on the awful thing, lost her
-balance and her parasol. She did not exactly fall, but she staggered and reeled
-across the room in a very undignified fashion and brought up against the door
-with a thud that jarred her from head to foot. Mr. Meredith, who had not seen
-the toad, wondered if she had been attacked with some kind of apoplectic or
-paralytic seizure, and ran in alarm to her assistance. But Mrs. Davis,
-recovering her feet, waved him back furiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t you dare to touch me,&rdquo; she almost shouted. &ldquo;This
-is some more of your children&rsquo;s doings, I suppose. This is no fit place
-for a decent woman. Give me my umbrella and let me go. I&rsquo;ll never darken
-the doors of your manse or your church again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith picked up the gorgeous parasol meekly enough and gave it to her.
-Mrs. Davis seized it and marched out. Jerry and Carl had given up banister
-sliding and were sitting on the edge of the veranda with Faith. Unfortunately,
-all three were singing at the tops of their healthy young voices
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;ll be a hot time in the old town to-night.&rdquo; Mrs. Davis
-believed the song was meant for her and her only. She stopped and shook her
-parasol at them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Your father is a fool,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;and you are three young
-varmints that ought to be whipped within an inch of your lives.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He isn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; cried Faith. &ldquo;We&rsquo;re not,&rdquo; cried
-the boys. But Mrs. Davis was gone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Goodness, isn&rsquo;t she mad!&rdquo; said Jerry. &ldquo;And what is a
-&lsquo;varmint&rsquo; anyhow?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith paced up and down the parlour for a few minutes; then he went
-back to his study and sat down. But he did not return to his German theology.
-He was too grievously disturbed for that. Mrs. Davis had wakened him up with a
-vengeance. <i>Was</i> he such a remiss, careless father as she had accused him of
-being? <i>Had</i> he so scandalously neglected the bodily and spiritual welfare of the
-four little motherless creatures dependent on him? <i>Were</i> his people talking of
-it as harshly as Mrs. Davis had declared? It must be so, since Mrs. Davis had
-come to ask for Una in the full and confident belief that he would hand the
-child over to her as unconcernedly and gladly as one might hand over a strayed,
-unwelcome kitten. And, if so, what then?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith groaned and resumed his pacing up and down the dusty, disordered
-room. What could he do? He loved his children as deeply as any father could and
-he knew, past the power of Mrs. Davis or any of her ilk, to disturb his
-conviction, that they loved him devotedly. But <i>was</i> he fit to have charge of
-them? He knew&mdash;none better&mdash;his weaknesses and limitations. What was
-needed was a good woman&rsquo;s presence and influence and common sense. But
-how could that be arranged? Even were he able to get such a housekeeper it
-would cut Aunt Martha to the quick. She believed she could still do all that
-was meet and necessary. He could not so hurt and insult the poor old woman who
-had been so kind to him and his. How devoted she had been to Cecilia! And
-Cecilia had asked him to be very considerate of Aunt Martha. To be sure, he
-suddenly remembered that Aunt Martha had once hinted that he ought to marry
-again. He felt she would not resent a wife as she would a housekeeper. But that
-was out of the question. He did not wish to marry&mdash;he did not and could
-not care for anyone. Then what could he do? It suddenly occurred to him that he
-would go over to Ingleside and talk over his difficulties with Mrs. Blythe.
-Mrs. Blythe was one of the few women he never felt shy or tongue-tied with. She
-was always so sympathetic and refreshing. It might be that she could suggest
-some solution of his problems. And even if she could not Mr. Meredith felt that
-he needed a little decent human companionship after his dose of Mrs.
-Davis&mdash;something to take the taste of her out of his soul.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He dressed hurriedly and ate his supper less abstractedly than usual. It
-occurred to him that it was a poor meal. He looked at his children; they were
-rosy and healthy looking enough&mdash;except Una, and she had never been very
-strong even when her mother was alive. They were all laughing and
-talking&mdash;certainly they seemed happy. Carl was especially happy because he
-had two most beautiful spiders crawling around his supper plate. Their voices
-were pleasant, their manners did not seem bad, they were considerate of and
-gentle to one another. Yet Mrs. Davis had said their behaviour was the talk of
-the congregation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-As Mr. Meredith went through his gate Dr. Blythe and Mrs. Blythe drove past on
-the road that led to Lowbridge. The minister&rsquo;s face fell. Mrs. Blythe was
-going away&mdash;there was no use in going to Ingleside. And he craved a little
-companionship more than ever. As he gazed rather hopelessly over the landscape
-the sunset light struck on a window of the old West homestead on the hill. It
-flared out rosily like a beacon of good hope. He suddenly remembered Rosemary
-and Ellen West. He thought that he would relish some of Ellen&rsquo;s pungent
-conversation. He thought it would be pleasant to see Rosemary&rsquo;s slow,
-sweet smile and calm, heavenly blue eyes again. What did that old poem of Sir
-Philip Sidney&rsquo;s say?&mdash;&ldquo;continual comfort in a
-face&rdquo;&mdash;that just suited her. And he needed comfort. Why not go and
-call? He remembered that Ellen had asked him to drop in sometimes and there was
-Rosemary&rsquo;s book to take back&mdash;he ought to take it back before he
-forgot. He had an uneasy suspicion that there were a great many books in his
-library which he had borrowed at sundry times and in divers places and had
-forgotten to take back. It was surely his duty to guard against that in this
-case. He went back into his study, got the book, and plunged downward into
-Rainbow Valley.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap15"></a>CHAPTER XV.<br />
-MORE GOSSIP</h2>
-
-<p>
-On the evening after Mrs. Myra Murray of the over-harbour section had been
-buried Miss Cornelia and Mary Vance came up to Ingleside. There were several
-things concerning which Miss Cornelia wished to unburden her soul. The funeral
-had to be all talked over, of course. Susan and Miss Cornelia thrashed this out
-between them; Anne took no part or delight in such goulish conversations. She
-sat a little apart and watched the autumnal flame of dahlias in the garden, and
-the dreaming, glamorous harbour of the September sunset. Mary Vance sat beside
-her, knitting meekly. Mary&rsquo;s heart was down in the Rainbow Valley, whence
-came sweet, distance-softened sounds of children&rsquo;s laughter, but her
-fingers were under Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s eye. She had to knit so many rounds of
-her stocking before she might go to the valley. Mary knit and held her tongue,
-but used her ears.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I never saw a nicer looking corpse,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia
-judicially. &ldquo;Myra Murray was always a pretty woman&mdash;she was a Corey
-from Lowbridge and the Coreys were noted for their good looks.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I said to the corpse as I passed it, &lsquo;poor woman. I hope you are
-as happy as you look.&rsquo;&rdquo; sighed Susan. &ldquo;She had not changed
-much. That dress she wore was the black satin she got for her daughter&rsquo;s
-wedding fourteen years ago. Her Aunt told her then to keep it for her funeral,
-but Myra laughed and said, &lsquo;I may wear it to my funeral, Aunty, but I
-will have a good time out of it first.&rsquo; And I may say she did. Myra
-Murray was not a woman to attend her own funeral before she died. Many a time
-afterwards when I saw her enjoying herself out in company I thought to myself,
-&lsquo;You are a handsome woman, Myra Murray, and that dress becomes you, but
-it will likely be your shroud at last.&rsquo; And you see my words have come
-true, Mrs. Marshall Elliott.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan sighed again heavily. She was enjoying herself hugely. A funeral was
-really a delightful subject of conversation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I always liked to meet Myra,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;She was
-always so gay and cheerful&mdash;she made you feel better just by her
-handshake. Myra always made the best of things.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is true,&rdquo; asserted Susan. &ldquo;Her sister-in-law told me
-that when the doctor told her at last that he could do nothing for her and she
-would never rise from that bed again, Myra said quite cheerfully, &lsquo;Well,
-if that is so, I&rsquo;m thankful the preserving is all done, and I will not
-have to face the fall house-cleaning. I always liked house-cleaning in
-spring,&rsquo; she says, &lsquo;but I always hated it in the fall. I will get
-clear of it this year, thank goodness.&rsquo; There are people who would call
-that levity, Mrs. Marshall Elliott, and I think her sister-in-law was a little
-ashamed of it. She said perhaps her sickness had made Myra a little
-light-headed. But I said, &lsquo;No, Mrs. Murray, do not worry over it. It was
-just Myra&rsquo;s way of looking at the bright side.&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Her sister Luella was just the opposite,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;There was no bright side for Luella&mdash;there was just black and
-shades of gray. For years she used always to be declaring she was going to die
-in a week or so. &lsquo;I won&rsquo;t be here to burden you long,&rsquo; she
-would tell her family with a groan. And if any of them ventured to talk about
-their little future plans she&rsquo;d groan also and say, &lsquo;Ah, <i>I</i>
-won&rsquo;t be here then.&rsquo; When I went to see her I always agreed with
-her and it made her so mad that she was always quite a lot better for several
-days afterwards. She has better health now but no more cheerfulness. Myra was
-so different. She was always doing or saying something to make some one feel
-good. Perhaps the men they married had something to do with it. Luella&rsquo;s
-man was a Tartar, believe <i>me</i>, while Jim Murray was decent, as men go. He looked
-heart-broken to-day. It isn&rsquo;t often I feel sorry for a man at his
-wife&rsquo;s funeral, but I did feel for Jim Murray.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No wonder he looked sad. He will not get a wife like Myra again in a
-hurry,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;Maybe he will not try, since his children are
-all grown up and Mirabel is able to keep house. But there is no predicting what
-a widower may or may not do and I, for one, will not try.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll miss Myra terrible in church,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;She was such a worker. Nothing ever stumped <i>her</i>. If she couldn&rsquo;t
-get over a difficulty she&rsquo;d get around it, and if she couldn&rsquo;t get
-around it she&rsquo;d pretend it wasn&rsquo;t there&mdash;and generally it
-wasn&rsquo;t. &lsquo;I&rsquo;ll keep a stiff upper lip to my journey&rsquo;s
-end,&rsquo; said she to me once. Well, she has ended her journey.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you think so?&rdquo; asked Anne suddenly, coming back from dreamland.
-&ldquo;I can&rsquo;t picture <i>her</i> journey as being ended. Can <i>you</i> think of her
-sitting down and folding her hands&mdash;that eager, asking spirit of hers,
-with its fine adventurous outlook? No, I think in death she just opened a gate
-and went through&mdash;on&mdash;on&mdash;to new, shining adventures.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maybe&mdash;maybe,&rdquo; assented Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;Do you know,
-Anne dearie, I never was much taken with this everlasting rest doctrine
-myself&mdash;though I hope it isn&rsquo;t heresy to say so. I want to bustle
-round in heaven the same as here. And I hope there&rsquo;ll be a celestial
-substitute for pies and doughnuts&mdash;something that has to be MADE. Of
-course, one does get awful tired at times&mdash;and the older you are the
-tireder you get. But the very tiredest could get rested in something short of
-eternity, you&rsquo;d think&mdash;except, perhaps, a lazy man.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;When I meet Myra Murray again,&rdquo; said Anne, &ldquo;I want to see
-her coming towards me, brisk and laughing, just as she always did here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said Susan, in a shocked tone, &ldquo;you
-surely do not think that Myra will be laughing in the world to come?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why not, Susan? Do you think we will be crying there?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, no, Mrs. Dr. dear, do not misunderstand me. I do not think we shall
-be either crying or laughing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What then?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Susan, driven to it, &ldquo;it is my opinion, Mrs. Dr.
-dear, that we shall just look solemn and holy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And do you really think, Susan,&rdquo; said Anne, looking solemn enough,
-&ldquo;that either Myra Murray or I could look solemn and holy all the
-time&mdash;<i>all</i> the time, Susan?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well,&rdquo; admitted Susan reluctantly, &ldquo;I might go so far as to
-say that you both would have to smile now and again, but I can never admit that
-there will be laughing in heaven. The idea seems really irreverent, Mrs. Dr.
-dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, to come back to earth,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, &ldquo;who can
-we get to take Myra&rsquo;s class in Sunday School? Julia Clow has been
-teaching it since Myra took ill, but she&rsquo;s going to town for the winter
-and we&rsquo;ll have to get somebody else.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I heard that Mrs. Laurie Jamieson wanted it,&rdquo; said Anne.
-&ldquo;The Jamiesons have come to church very regularly since they moved to the
-Glen from Lowbridge.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;New brooms!&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia dubiously. &ldquo;Wait till
-they&rsquo;ve gone regularly for a year.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You cannot depend on Mrs. Jamieson a bit, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said
-Susan solemnly. &ldquo;She died once and when they were measuring her for her
-coffin, after laying her out just beautiful, did she not go and come back to
-life! Now, Mrs. Dr. dear, you know you <i>cannot</i> depend on a woman like
-that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She might turn Methodist at any moment,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;They tell me they went to the Methodist Church at Lowbridge quite as
-often as to the Presbyterian. I haven&rsquo;t caught them at it here yet, but I
-would not approve of taking Mrs. Jamieson into the Sunday School. Yet we must
-not offend them. We are losing too many people, by death or bad temper. Mrs.
-Alec Davis has left the church, no one knows why. She told the managers that
-she would never pay another cent to Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s salary. Of course,
-most people say that the children offended her, but somehow I don&rsquo;t think
-so. I tried to pump Faith, but all I could get out of her was that Mrs. Davis
-had come, seemingly in high good humour, to see her father, and had left in an
-awful rage, calling them all &lsquo;varmints!&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Varmints, indeed!&rdquo; said Susan furiously. &ldquo;Does Mrs. Alec
-Davis forget that her uncle on her mother&rsquo;s side was suspected of
-poisoning his wife? Not that it was ever proved, Mrs. Dr. dear, and it does not
-do to believe all you hear. But if <i>I</i> had an uncle whose wife died
-without any satisfactory reason, <i>I</i> would not go about the country
-calling innocent children varmints.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The point is,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, &ldquo;that Mrs. Davis paid a
-large subscription, and how its loss is going to be made up is a problem. And
-if she turns the other Douglases against Mr. Meredith, as she will certainly
-try to do, he will just have to go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do not think Mrs. Alec Davis is very well liked by the rest of the
-clan,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;It is not likely she will be able to influence
-them.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But those Douglases all hang together so. If you touch one, you touch
-all. We can&rsquo;t do without them, so much is certain. They pay half the
-salary. They are not mean, whatever else may be said of them. Norman Douglas
-used to give a hundred a year long ago before he left.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What did he leave for?&rdquo; asked Anne.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He declared a member of the session cheated him in a cow deal. He
-hasn&rsquo;t come to church for twenty years. His wife used to come regular
-while she was alive, poor thing, but he never would let her pay anything,
-except one red cent every Sunday. She felt dreadfully humiliated. I don&rsquo;t
-know that he was any too good a husband to her, though she was never heard to
-complain. But she always had a cowed look. Norman Douglas didn&rsquo;t get the
-woman he wanted thirty years ago and the Douglases never liked to put up with
-second best.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who was the woman he did want.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen West. They weren&rsquo;t engaged exactly, I believe, but they went
-about together for two years. And then they just broke off&mdash;nobody ever
-knew why. Just some silly quarrel, I suppose. And Norman went and married
-Hester Reese before his temper had time to cool&mdash;married her just to spite
-Ellen, I haven&rsquo;t a doubt. So like a man! Hester was a nice little thing,
-but she never had much spirit and he broke what little she had. She was too
-meek for Norman. He needed a woman who could stand up to him. Ellen would have
-kept him in fine order and he would have liked her all the better for it. He
-despised Hester, that is the truth, just because she always gave in to him. I
-used to hear him say many a time, long ago when he was a young fellow
-&lsquo;Give me a spunky woman&mdash;spunk for me every time.&rsquo; And then he
-went and married a girl who couldn&rsquo;t say boo to a goose&mdash;man-like.
-That family of Reeses were just vegetables. They went through the motions of
-living, but they didn&rsquo;t <i>live</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Russell Reese used his first wife&rsquo;s wedding-ring to marry his
-second,&rdquo; said Susan reminiscently. &ldquo;That was <i>too</i> economical in my
-opinion, Mrs. Dr. dear. And his brother John has his own tombstone put up in
-the over-harbour graveyard, with everything on it but the date of death, and he
-goes and looks at it every Sunday. Most folks would not consider that much fun,
-but it is plain he does. People do have such different ideas of enjoyment. As
-for Norman Douglas, he is a perfect heathen. When the last minister asked him
-why he never went to church he said &lsquo;Too many ugly women there,
-parson&mdash;too many ugly women!&rsquo; I should like to go to such a man,
-Mrs. Dr. dear, and say to him solemnly, &lsquo;There is a hell!&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Norman doesn&rsquo;t believe there is such a place,&rdquo; said Miss
-Cornelia. &ldquo;I hope he&rsquo;ll find out his mistake when he comes to die.
-There, Mary, you&rsquo;ve knit your three inches and you can go and play with
-the children for half an hour.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary needed no second bidding. She flew to Rainbow Valley with a heart as light
-as her heels, and in the course of conversation told Faith Meredith all about
-Mrs. Alec Davis.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And Mrs. Elliott says that she&rsquo;ll turn all the Douglases against
-your father and then he&rsquo;ll have to leave the Glen because his salary
-won&rsquo;t be paid,&rdquo; concluded Mary. &ldquo;<i>I</i> don&rsquo;t know
-what is to be done, honest to goodness. If only old Norman Douglas would come
-back to church and pay, it wouldn&rsquo;t be so bad. But he
-won&rsquo;t&mdash;and the Douglases will leave&mdash;and you all will have to
-go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith carried a heavy heart to bed with her that night. The thought of leaving
-the Glen was unbearable. Nowhere else in the world were there such chums as the
-Blythes. Her little heart had been wrung when they had left Maywater&mdash;she
-had shed many bitter tears when she parted with Maywater chums and the old
-manse there where her mother had lived and died. She could not contemplate
-calmly the thought of such another and harder wrench. She <i>couldn&rsquo;t</i> leave
-Glen St. Mary and dear Rainbow Valley and that delicious graveyard.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s awful to be minister&rsquo;s family,&rdquo; groaned Faith
-into her pillow. &ldquo;Just as soon as you get fond of a place you are torn up
-by the roots. I&rsquo;ll never, never, <i>never</i> marry a minister, no matter how
-nice he is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith sat up in bed and looked out of the little vine-hung window. The night
-was very still, the silence broken only by Una&rsquo;s soft breathing. Faith
-felt terribly alone in the world. She could see Glen St. Mary lying under the
-starry blue meadows of the autumn night. Over the valley a light shone from the
-girls&rsquo; room at Ingleside, and another from Walter&rsquo;s room. Faith
-wondered if poor Walter had toothache again. Then she sighed, with a little
-passing sigh of envy of Nan and Di. They had a mother and a settled
-home&mdash;<i>they</i> were not at the mercy of people who got angry without any
-reason and called you a varmint. Away beyond the Glen, amid fields that were
-very quiet with sleep, another light was burning. Faith knew it shone in the
-house where Norman Douglas lived. He was reputed to sit up all hours of the
-night reading. Mary had said if he could only be induced to return to the
-church all would be well. And why not? Faith looked at a big, low star hanging
-over the tall, pointed spruce at the gate of the Methodist Church and had an
-inspiration. She knew what ought to be done and she, Faith Meredith, would do
-it. She would make everything right. With a sigh of satisfaction, she turned
-from the lonely, dark world and cuddled down beside Una.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap16"></a>CHAPTER XVI.<br />
-TIT FOR TAT</h2>
-
-<p>
-With Faith, to decide was to act. She lost no time in carrying out the idea. As
-soon as she came home from school the next day she left the manse and made her
-way down the Glen. Walter Blythe joined her as she passed the post office.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m going to Mrs. Elliott&rsquo;s on an errand for mother,&rdquo;
-he said. &ldquo;Where are you going, Faith?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am going somewhere on church business,&rdquo; said Faith loftily. She
-did not volunteer any further information and Walter felt rather snubbed. They
-walked on in silence for a little while. It was a warm, windy evening with a
-sweet, resinous air. Beyond the sand dunes were gray seas, soft and beautiful.
-The Glen brook bore down a freight of gold and crimson leaves, like fairy
-shallops. In Mr. James Reese&rsquo;s buckwheat stubble-land, with its beautiful
-tones of red and brown, a crow parliament was being held, whereat solemn
-deliberations regarding the welfare of crowland were in progress. Faith cruelly
-broke up the august assembly by climbing up on the fence and hurling a broken
-rail at it. Instantly the air was filled with flapping black wings and
-indignant caws.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why did you do that?&rdquo; said Walter reproachfully. &ldquo;They were
-having such a good time.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I hate crows,&rdquo; said Faith airily. &ldquo;The are so black and
-sly I feel sure they&rsquo;re hypocrites. They steal little birds&rsquo; eggs
-out of their nests, you know. I saw one do it on our lawn last spring. Walter,
-what makes you so pale to-day? Did you have the toothache again last
-night?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter shivered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes&mdash;a raging one. I couldn&rsquo;t sleep a wink&mdash;so I just
-paced up and down the floor and imagined I was an early Christian martyr being
-tortured at the command of Nero. That helped ever so much for a while&mdash;and
-then I got so bad I couldn&rsquo;t imagine anything.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Did you cry?&rdquo; asked Faith anxiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;but I lay down on the floor and groaned,&rdquo; admitted
-Walter. &ldquo;Then the girls came in and Nan put cayenne pepper in
-it&mdash;and that made it worse&mdash;Di made me hold a swallow of cold water
-in my mouth&mdash;and I couldn&rsquo;t stand it, so they called Susan. Susan
-said it served me right for sitting up in the cold garret yesterday writing
-poetry trash. But she started up the kitchen fire and got me a hot-water bottle
-and it stopped the toothache. As soon as I felt better I told Susan my poetry
-wasn&rsquo;t trash and she wasn&rsquo;t any judge. And she said no, thank
-goodness she was not and she did not know anything about poetry except that it
-was mostly a lot of lies. Now you know, Faith, that isn&rsquo;t so. That is one
-reason why I like writing poetry&mdash;you can say so many things in it that
-are true in poetry but wouldn&rsquo;t be true in prose. I told Susan so, but
-she said to stop my jawing and go to sleep before the water got cold, or
-she&rsquo;d leave me to see if rhyming would cure toothache, and she hoped it
-would be a lesson to me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why don&rsquo;t you go to the dentist at Lowbridge and get the tooth
-out?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter shivered again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They want me to&mdash;but I can&rsquo;t. It would hurt so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Are you afraid of a little pain?&rdquo; asked Faith contemptuously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter flushed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It would be a <i>big</i> pain. I hate being hurt. Father said he wouldn&rsquo;t
-insist on my going&mdash;he&rsquo;d wait until I&rsquo;d made up my own mind to
-go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It wouldn&rsquo;t hurt as long as the toothache,&rdquo; argued Faith,
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;ve had five spells of toothache. If you&rsquo;d just go and
-have it out there&rsquo;d be no more bad nights. <i>I</i> had a tooth out once.
-I yelled for a moment, but it was all over then&mdash;only the bleeding.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The bleeding is worst of all&mdash;it&rsquo;s so ugly,&rdquo; cried
-Walter. &ldquo;It just made me sick when Jem cut his foot last summer. Susan
-said I looked more like fainting than Jem did. But I couldn&rsquo;t bear to see
-Jem hurt, either. Somebody is always getting hurt, Faith&mdash;and it&rsquo;s
-awful. I just can&rsquo;t <i>bear</i> to see things hurt. It makes me just want to
-run&mdash;and run&mdash;and run&mdash;till I can&rsquo;t hear or see
-them.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s no use making a fuss over anyone getting hurt,&rdquo; said
-Faith, tossing her curls. &ldquo;Of course, if you&rsquo;ve hurt yourself very
-bad, you have to yell&mdash;and blood <i>is</i> messy&mdash;and I don&rsquo;t like
-seeing other people hurt, either. But I don&rsquo;t want to run&mdash;I want to
-go to work and help them. Your father <i>has</i> to hurt people lots of times to cure
-them. What would they do if <i>he</i> ran away?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t say I <i>would</i> run. I said I <i>wanted</i> to run. That&rsquo;s a
-different thing. I want to help people, too. But oh, I wish there weren&rsquo;t
-any ugly, dreadful things in the world. I wish everything was glad and
-beautiful.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, don&rsquo;t let&rsquo;s think of what isn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said
-Faith. &ldquo;After all, there&rsquo;s lots of fun in being alive. You
-wouldn&rsquo;t have toothache if you were dead, but still, wouldn&rsquo;t you
-lots rather be alive than dead? I would, a hundred times. Oh, here&rsquo;s Dan
-Reese. He&rsquo;s been down to the harbour for fish.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hate Dan Reese,&rdquo; said Walter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So do I. All us girls do. I&rsquo;m just going to walk past and never
-take the least notice of him. You watch me!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith accordingly stalked past Dan with her chin out and an expression of scorn
-that bit into his soul. He turned and shouted after her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pig-girl! Pig-girl!! Pig-girl!!!&rdquo; in a crescendo of insult.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith walked on, seemingly oblivious. But her lip trembled slightly with a
-sense of outrage. She knew she was no match for Dan Reese when it came to an
-exchange of epithets. She wished Jem Blythe had been with her instead of
-Walter. If Dan Reese had dared to call her a pig-girl in Jem&rsquo;s hearing,
-Jem would have wiped up the dust with him. But it never occurred to Faith to
-expect Walter to do it, or blame him for not doing it. Walter, she knew, never
-fought other boys. Neither did Charlie Clow of the north road. The strange part
-was that, while she despised Charlie for a coward, it never occurred to her to
-disdain Walter. It was simply that he seemed to her an inhabitant of a world of
-his own, where different traditions prevailed. Faith would as soon have
-expected a starry-eyed young angel to pummel dirty, freckled Dan Reese for her
-as Walter Blythe. She would not have blamed the angel and she did not blame
-Walter Blythe. But she wished that sturdy Jem or Jerry had been there and
-Dan&rsquo;s insult continued to rankle in her soul.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter was pale no longer. He had flushed crimson and his beautiful eyes were
-clouded with shame and anger. He knew that he ought to have avenged Faith. Jem
-would have sailed right in and made Dan eat his words with bitter sauce.
-Ritchie Warren would have overwhelmed Dan with worse &ldquo;names&rdquo; than
-Dan had called Faith. But Walter could not&mdash;simply could
-not&mdash;&ldquo;call names.&rdquo; He knew he would get the worst of it. He
-could never conceive or utter the vulgar, ribald insults of which Dan Reese had
-unlimited command. And as for the trial by fist, Walter couldn&rsquo;t fight.
-He hated the idea. It was rough and painful&mdash;and, worst of all, it was
-ugly. He never could understand Jem&rsquo;s exultation in an occasional
-conflict. But he wished he <i>could</i> fight Dan Reese. He was horribly ashamed
-because Faith Meredith had been insulted in his presence and he had not tried
-to punish her insulter. He felt sure she must despise him. She had not even
-spoken to him since Dan had called her pig-girl. He was glad when they came to
-the parting of the ways.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith, too, was relieved, though for a different reason. She wanted to be alone
-because she suddenly felt rather nervous about her errand. Impulse had cooled,
-especially since Dan had bruised her self-respect. She must go through with it,
-but she no longer had enthusiasm to sustain her. She was going to see Norman
-Douglas and ask him to come back to church, and she began to be afraid of him.
-What had seemed so easy and simple up at the Glen seemed very different down
-here. She had heard a good deal about Norman Douglas, and she knew that even
-the biggest boys in school were afraid of him. Suppose he called her something
-nasty&mdash;she had heard he was given to that. Faith could not endure being
-called names&mdash;they subdued her far more quickly than a physical blow. But
-she would go on&mdash;Faith Meredith always went on. If she did not her father
-might have to leave the Glen.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At the end of the long lane Faith came to the house&mdash;a big, old-fashioned
-one with a row of soldierly Lombardies marching past it. On the back veranda
-Norman Douglas himself was sitting, reading a newspaper. His big dog was beside
-him. Behind, in the kitchen, where his housekeeper, Mrs. Wilson, was getting
-supper, there was a clatter of dishes&mdash;an angry clatter, for Norman
-Douglas had just had a quarrel with Mrs. Wilson, and both were in a very bad
-temper over it. Consequently, when Faith stepped on the veranda and Norman
-Douglas lowered his newspaper she found herself looking into the choleric eyes
-of an irritated man.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman Douglas was rather a fine-looking personage in his way. He had a sweep
-of long red beard over his broad chest and a mane of red hair, ungrizzled by
-the years, on his massive head. His high, white forehead was unwrinkled and his
-blue eyes could flash still with all the fire of his tempestuous youth. He
-could be very amiable when he liked, and he could be very terrible. Poor Faith,
-so anxiously bent on retrieving the situation in regard to the church, had
-caught him in one of his terrible moods.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He did not know who she was and he gazed at her with disfavour. Norman Douglas
-liked girls of spirit and flame and laughter. At this moment Faith was very
-pale. She was of the type to which colour means everything. Lacking her crimson
-cheeks she seemed meek and even insignificant. She looked apologetic and
-afraid, and the bully in Norman Douglas&rsquo;s heart stirred.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who the dickens are you? And what do you want here?&rdquo; he demanded
-in his great resounding voice, with a fierce scowl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-For once in her life Faith had nothing to say. She had never supposed Norman
-Douglas was like <i>this</i>. She was paralyzed with terror of him. He saw it and it
-made him worse.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What&rsquo;s the matter with you?&rdquo; he boomed. &ldquo;You look as
-if you wanted to say something and was scared to say it. What&rsquo;s troubling
-you? Confound it, speak up, can&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-No. Faith could not speak up. No words would come. But her lips began to
-tremble.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;For heaven&rsquo;s sake, don&rsquo;t cry,&rdquo; shouted Norman.
-&ldquo;I can&rsquo;t stand snivelling. If you&rsquo;ve anything to say, say it
-and have done. Great Kitty, is the girl possessed of a dumb spirit? Don&rsquo;t
-look at me like that&mdash;I&rsquo;m human&mdash;I haven&rsquo;t got a tail!
-Who are you&mdash;who are you, I say?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman&rsquo;s voice could have been heard at the harbour. Operations in the
-kitchen were suspended. Mrs. Wilson was listening open-eared and eyed. Norman
-put his huge brown hands on his knees and leaned forward, staring into
-Faith&rsquo;s pallid, shrinking face. He seemed to loom over her like some evil
-giant out of a fairy tale. She felt as if he would eat her up next thing, body
-and bones.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&mdash;am&mdash;Faith&mdash;Meredith,&rdquo; she said, in little more
-than a whisper.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Meredith, hey? One of the parson&rsquo;s youngsters, hey? I&rsquo;ve
-heard of you&mdash;I&rsquo;ve heard of you! Riding on pigs and breaking the
-Sabbath! A nice lot! What do you want here, hey? What do you want of the old
-pagan, hey? <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t ask favours of parsons&mdash;and I don&rsquo;t
-give any. What do you want, I say?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith wished herself a thousand miles away. She stammered out her thought in
-its naked simplicity.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I came&mdash;to ask you&mdash;to go to church&mdash;and pay&mdash;to the
-salary.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman glared at her. Then he burst forth again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You impudent hussy&mdash;you! Who put you up to it, jade? Who put you up
-to it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nobody,&rdquo; said poor Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s a lie. Don&rsquo;t lie to me! Who sent you here? It
-wasn&rsquo;t your father&mdash;he hasn&rsquo;t the smeddum of a flea&mdash;but
-he wouldn&rsquo;t send you to do what he dassn&rsquo;t do himself. I suppose it
-was some of them confounded old maids at the Glen, was it&mdash;was it,
-hey?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;I&mdash;I just came myself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you take me for a fool?&rdquo; shouted Norman.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;I thought you were a gentleman,&rdquo; said Faith faintly, and
-certainly without any thought of being sarcastic.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman bounced up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mind your own business. I don&rsquo;t want to hear another word from
-you. If you wasn&rsquo;t such a kid I&rsquo;d teach you to interfere in what
-doesn&rsquo;t concern you. When I want parsons or pill-dosers I&rsquo;ll send
-for them. Till I do I&rsquo;ll have no truck with them. Do you understand? Now,
-get out, cheese-face.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith got out. She stumbled blindly down the steps, out of the yard gate and
-into the lane. Half way up the lane her daze of fear passed away and a reaction
-of tingling anger possessed her. By the time she reached the end of the lane
-she was in such a furious temper as she had never experienced before. Norman
-Douglas&rsquo; insults burned in her soul, kindling a scorching flame. Go home!
-Not she! She would go straight back and tell that old ogre just what she
-thought of him&mdash;she would show him&mdash;oh, wouldn&rsquo;t she!
-Cheese-face, indeed!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Unhesitatingly she turned and walked back. The veranda was deserted and the
-kitchen door shut. Faith opened the door without knocking, and went in. Norman
-Douglas had just sat down at the supper table, but he still held his newspaper.
-Faith walked inflexibly across the room, caught the paper from his hand, flung
-it on the floor and stamped on it. Then she faced him, with her flashing eyes
-and scarlet cheeks. She was such a handsome young fury that Norman Douglas
-hardly recognized her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What&rsquo;s brought you back?&rdquo; he growled, but more in
-bewilderment than rage.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Unquailingly she glared back into the angry eyes against which so few people
-could hold their own.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have come back to tell you exactly what I think of you,&rdquo; said
-Faith in clear, ringing tones. &ldquo;I am not afraid of you. You are a rude,
-unjust, tyrannical, disagreeable old man. Susan says you are sure to go to
-hell, and I was sorry for you, but I am not now. Your wife never had a new hat
-for ten years&mdash;no wonder she died. I am going to make faces at you
-whenever I see you after this. Every time I am behind you you will know what is
-happening. Father has a picture of the devil in a book in his study, and I mean
-to go home and write your name under it. You are an old vampire and I hope
-you&rsquo;ll have the Scotch fiddle!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith did not know what a vampire meant any more than she knew what the Scotch
-fiddle was. She had heard Susan use the expressions and gathered from her tone
-that both were dire things. But Norman Douglas knew what the latter meant at
-least. He had listened in absolute silence to Faith&rsquo;s tirade. When she
-paused for breath, with a stamp of her foot, he suddenly burst into loud
-laughter. With a mighty slap of hand on knee he exclaimed,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I vow you&rsquo;ve got spunk, after all&mdash;I like spunk. Come, sit
-down&mdash;sit down!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I will not.&rdquo; Faith&rsquo;s eyes flashed more passionately. She
-thought she was being made fun of&mdash;treated contemptuously. She would have
-enjoyed another explosion of rage, but this cut deep. &ldquo;I will not sit
-down in your house. I am going home. But I am glad I came back here and told
-you exactly what my opinion of you is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So am I&mdash;so am I,&rdquo; chuckled Norman. &ldquo;I like
-you&mdash;you&rsquo;re fine&mdash;you&rsquo;re great. Such roses&mdash;such
-vim! Did I call her cheese-face? Why, she never smelt a cheese. Sit down. If
-you&rsquo;d looked like that at the first, girl! So you&rsquo;ll write my name
-under the devil&rsquo;s picture, will you? But he&rsquo;s black, girl,
-he&rsquo;s black&mdash;and I&rsquo;m red. It won&rsquo;t do&mdash;it
-won&rsquo;t do! And you hope I&rsquo;ll have the Scotch fiddle, do you? Lord
-love you, girl, I had <i>it</i> when I was a boy. Don&rsquo;t wish it on me again. Sit
-down&mdash;sit in. We&rsquo;ll tak&rsquo; a cup o&rsquo; kindness.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, thank you,&rdquo; said Faith haughtily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, yes, you will. Come, come now, I apologize, girl&mdash;I apologize.
-I made a fool of myself and I&rsquo;m sorry. Man can&rsquo;t say fairer. Forget
-and forgive. Shake hands, girl&mdash;shake hands. She won&rsquo;t&mdash;no, she
-won&rsquo;t! But she must! Look-a-here, girl, if you&rsquo;ll shake hands and
-break bread with me I&rsquo;ll pay what I used to to the salary and I&rsquo;ll
-go to church the first Sunday in every month and I&rsquo;ll make Kitty Alec
-hold her jaw. I&rsquo;m the only one in the clan can do it. Is it a bargain,
-girl?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It seemed a bargain. Faith found herself shaking hands with the ogre and then
-sitting at his board. Her temper was over&mdash;Faith&rsquo;s tempers never
-lasted very long&mdash;but its excitement still sparkled in her eyes and
-crimsoned her cheeks. Norman Douglas looked at her admiringly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Go, get some of your best preserves, Wilson,&rdquo; he ordered,
-&ldquo;and stop sulking, woman, stop sulking. What if we did have a quarrel,
-woman? A good squall clears the air and briskens things up. But no drizzling
-and fogging afterwards&mdash;no drizzling and fogging, woman. I can&rsquo;t
-stand that. Temper in a woman but no tears for me. Here, girl, is some messed
-up meat and potatoes for you. Begin on that. Wilson has some fancy name for it,
-but I call lit macanaccady. Anything I can&rsquo;t analyze in the eating line I
-call macanaccady and anything wet that puzzles me I call shallamagouslem.
-Wilson&rsquo;s tea is shallamagouslem. I swear she makes it out of burdocks.
-Don&rsquo;t take any of the ungodly black liquid&mdash;here&rsquo;s some milk
-for you. What did you say your name was?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Faith.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No name that&mdash;no name that! I can&rsquo;t stomach such a name. Got
-any other?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, sir.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t like the name, don&rsquo;t like it. There&rsquo;s no smeddum
-to it. Besides, it makes me think of my Aunt Jinny. She called her three girls
-Faith, Hope, and Charity. Faith didn&rsquo;t believe in anything&mdash;Hope was
-a born pessimist&mdash;and Charity was a miser. You ought to be called Red
-Rose&mdash;you look like one when you&rsquo;re mad. <i>I&rsquo;ll</i> call you Red
-Rose. And you&rsquo;ve roped me into promising to go to church? But only once a
-month, remember&mdash;only once a month. Come now, girl, will you let me off? I
-used to pay a hundred to the salary every year and go to church. If I promise
-to pay two hundred a year will you let me off going to church? Come now!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, no, sir,&rdquo; said Faith, dimpling roguishly. &ldquo;I want you to
-go to church, too.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, a bargain is a bargain. I reckon I can stand it twelve times a
-year. What a sensation it&rsquo;ll make the first Sunday I go! And old Susan
-Baker says I&rsquo;m going to hell, hey? Do you believe I&rsquo;ll go
-there&mdash;come, now, do you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope not, sir,&rdquo; stammered Faith in some confusion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Why</i> do you hope not? Come, now, <i>why</i> do you hope not? Give us a reason,
-girl&mdash;give us a reason.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&mdash;it must be a very&mdash;uncomfortable place, sir.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Uncomfortable? All depends on your taste in comfortable, girl. I&rsquo;d
-soon get tired of angels. Fancy old Susan in a halo, now!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith did fancy it, and it tickled her so much that she had to laugh. Norman
-eyed her approvingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;See the fun of it, hey? Oh, I like you&mdash;you&rsquo;re great. About
-this church business, now&mdash;can your father preach?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is a splendid preacher,&rdquo; said loyal Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is, hey? I&rsquo;ll see&mdash;I&rsquo;ll watch out for flaws.
-He&rsquo;d better be careful what he says before <i>me</i>. I&rsquo;ll catch
-him&mdash;I&rsquo;ll trip him up&mdash;I&rsquo;ll keep tabs on his arguments.
-I&rsquo;m bound to have some fun out of this church going business. Does he
-ever preach hell?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;o&mdash;o&mdash;I don&rsquo;t think so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Too bad. I like sermons on that subject. You tell him that if he wants
-to keep me in good humour to preach a good rip-roaring sermon on hell once
-every six months&mdash;and the more brimstone the better. I like &lsquo;em
-smoking. And think of all the pleasure he&rsquo;d give the old maids, too.
-They&rsquo;d all keep looking at old Norman Douglas and thinking,
-&lsquo;That&rsquo;s for you, you old reprobate. That&rsquo;s what&rsquo;s in
-store for <i>you!</i>&rsquo; I&rsquo;ll give an extra ten dollars every time you get
-your father to preach on hell. Here&rsquo;s Wilson and the jam. Like that, hey?
-<i>It</i> isn&rsquo;t macanaccady. Taste!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith obediently swallowed the big spoonful Norman held out to her. Luckily it
-<i>was</i> good.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Best plum jam in the world,&rdquo; said Norman, filling a large saucer
-and plumping it down before her. &ldquo;Glad you like it. I&rsquo;ll give you a
-couple of jars to take home with you. There&rsquo;s nothing mean about
-me&mdash;never was. The devil can&rsquo;t catch me at <i>that</i> corner, anyhow. It
-wasn&rsquo;t my fault that Hester didn&rsquo;t have a new hat for ten years. It
-was her own&mdash;she pinched on hats to save money to give yellow fellows over
-in China. <i>I</i> never gave a cent to missions in my life&mdash;never will.
-Never you try to bamboozle me into that! A hundred a year to the salary and
-church once a month&mdash;but no spoiling good heathens to make poor
-Christians! Why, girl, they wouldn&rsquo;t be fit for heaven or
-hell&mdash;clean spoiled for either place&mdash;clean spoiled. Hey, Wilson,
-haven&rsquo;t you got a smile on yet? Beats all how you women can sulk!
-<i>I</i> never sulked in my life&mdash;it&rsquo;s just one big flash and crash
-with me and then&mdash;pouf&mdash;the squall&rsquo;s over and the sun is out
-and you could eat out of my hand.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman insisted on driving Faith home after supper and he filled the buggy up
-with apples, cabbages, potatoes and pumpkins and jars of jam.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s a nice little tom-pussy out in the barn. I&rsquo;ll give
-you that too, if you&rsquo;d like it. Say the word,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, thank you,&rdquo; said Faith decidedly. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t like
-cats, and besides, I have a rooster.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Listen to her. You can&rsquo;t cuddle a rooster as you can a kitten. Who
-ever heard of petting a rooster? Better take little Tom. I want to find a good
-home for him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. Aunt Martha has a cat and he would kill a strange kitten.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman yielded the point rather reluctantly. He gave Faith an exciting drive
-home, behind his wild two-year old, and when he had let her out at the kitchen
-door of the manse and dumped his cargo on the back veranda he drove away
-shouting,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s only once a month&mdash;only once a month, mind!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith went up to bed, feeling a little dizzy and breathless, as if she had just
-escaped from the grasp of a genial whirlwind. She was happy and thankful. No
-fear now that they would have to leave the Glen and the graveyard and Rainbow
-Valley. But she fell asleep troubled by a disagreeable subconsciousness that
-Dan Reese had called her pig-girl and that, having stumbled on such a congenial
-epithet, he would continue to call her so whenever opportunity offered.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap17"></a>CHAPTER XVII.<br />
-A DOUBLE VICTORY</h2>
-
-<p>
-Norman Douglas came to church the first Sunday in November and made all the
-sensation he desired. Mr. Meredith shook hands with him absently on the church
-steps and hoped dreamily that Mrs. Douglas was well.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She wasn&rsquo;t very well just before I buried her ten years ago, but I
-reckon she has better health now,&rdquo; boomed Norman, to the horror and
-amusement of every one except Mr. Meredith, who was absorbed in wondering if he
-had made the last head of his sermon as clear as he might have, and
-hadn&rsquo;t the least idea what Norman had said to him or he to Norman.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman intercepted Faith at the gate.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Kept my word, you see&mdash;kept my word, Red Rose. I&rsquo;m free now
-till the first Sunday in December. Fine sermon, girl&mdash;fine sermon. Your
-father has more in his head than he carries on his face. But he contradicted
-himself once&mdash;tell him he contradicted himself. And tell him I want that
-brimstone sermon in December. Great way to wind up the old year&mdash;with a
-taste of hell, you know. And what&rsquo;s the matter with a nice tasty
-discourse on heaven for New Year&rsquo;s? Though it wouldn&rsquo;t be half as
-interesting as hell, girl&mdash;not half. Only I&rsquo;d like to know what your
-father thinks about heaven&mdash;he <i>can</i> think&mdash;rarest thing in the
-world&mdash;a person who can think. But he <i>did</i> contradict himself. Ha, ha!
-Here&rsquo;s a question you might ask him sometime when he&rsquo;s awake, girl.
-&lsquo;Can God make a stone so big He couldn&rsquo;t lift it Himself?&rsquo;
-Don&rsquo;t forget now. I want to hear his opinion on it. I&rsquo;ve stumped
-many a minister with that, girl.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith was glad to escape him and run home. Dan Reese, standing among the crowd
-of boys at the gate, looked at her and shaped his mouth into
-&ldquo;pig-girl,&rdquo; but dared not utter it aloud just there. Next day in
-school was a different matter. At noon recess Faith encountered Dan in the
-little spruce plantation behind the school and Dan shouted once more,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pig-girl! Pig-girl! <i>Rooster-girl!</i>&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter Blythe suddenly rose from a mossy cushion behind a little clump of firs
-where he had been reading. He was very pale, but his eyes blazed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You hold your tongue, Dan Reese!&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, hello, Miss Walter,&rdquo; retorted Dan, not at all abashed. He
-vaulted airily to the top of the rail fence and chanted insultingly,
-</p>
-
-<p class="poem">
-&ldquo;Cowardy, cowardy-custard<br />
-Stole a pot of mustard,<br />
-Cowardy, cowardy-custard!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are a coincidence!&rdquo; said Walter scornfully, turning still
-whiter. He had only a very hazy idea what a coincidence was, but Dan had none
-at all and thought it must be something peculiarly opprobrious.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yah! Cowardy!&rdquo; he yelled gain. &ldquo;Your mother writes
-lies&mdash;lies&mdash;lies! And Faith Meredith is a
-pig-girl&mdash;a&mdash;pig-girl&mdash;a pig-girl! And she&rsquo;s a
-rooster-girl&mdash;a rooster-girl&mdash;a rooster-girl! Yah!
-Cowardy&mdash;cowardy&mdash;cust&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dan got no further. Walter had hurled himself across the intervening space and
-knocked Dan off the fence backward with one well-directed blow. Dan&rsquo;s
-sudden inglorious sprawl was greeted with a burst of laughter and a clapping of
-hands from Faith. Dan sprang up, purple with rage, and began to climb the
-fence. But just then the school-bell rang and Dan knew what happened to boys
-who were late during Mr. Hazard&rsquo;s regime.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll fight this out,&rdquo; he howled. &ldquo;Cowardy!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Any time you like,&rdquo; said Walter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, no, no, Walter,&rdquo; protested Faith. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t fight
-him. <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t mind what he says&mdash;I wouldn&rsquo;t condescend
-to mind the like of <i>him</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He insulted you and he insulted my mother,&rdquo; said Walter, with the
-same deadly calm. &ldquo;Tonight after school, Dan.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve got to go right home from school to pick taters after the
-harrows, dad says,&rdquo; answered Dan sulkily. &ldquo;But to-morrow
-night&rsquo;ll do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right&mdash;here to-morrow night,&rdquo; agreed Walter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And I&rsquo;ll smash your sissy-face for you,&rdquo; promised Dan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter shuddered&mdash;not so much from fear of the threat as from repulsion
-over the ugliness and vulgarity of it. But he held his head high and marched
-into school. Faith followed in a conflict of emotions. She hated to think of
-Walter fighting that little sneak, but oh, he had been splendid! And he was
-going to fight for <i>her</i>&mdash;Faith Meredith&mdash;to punish her insulter! Of
-course he would win&mdash;such eyes spelled victory.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith&rsquo;s confidence in her champion had dimmed a little by evening,
-however. Walter had seemed so very quiet and dull the rest of the day in
-school.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If it were only Jem,&rdquo; she sighed to Una, as they sat on Hezekiah
-Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone in the graveyard. &ldquo;<i>He</i> is such a
-fighter&mdash;he could finish Dan off in no time. But Walter doesn&rsquo;t know
-much about fighting.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m so afraid he&rsquo;ll be hurt,&rdquo; sighed Una, who hated
-fighting and couldn&rsquo;t understand the subtle, secret exultation she
-divined in Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He oughtn&rsquo;t to be,&rdquo; said Faith uncomfortably.
-&ldquo;He&rsquo;s every bit as big as Dan.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But Dan&rsquo;s so much older,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;Why, he&rsquo;s
-nearly a year older.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dan hasn&rsquo;t done much fighting when you come to count up,&rdquo;
-said Faith. &ldquo;I believe he&rsquo;s really a coward. He didn&rsquo;t think
-Walter would fight, or he wouldn&rsquo;t have called names before him. Oh, if
-you could just have seen Walter&rsquo;s face when he looked at him, Una! It
-made me shiver&mdash;with a nice shiver. He looked just like Sir Galahad in
-that poem father read us on Saturday.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hate the thought of them fighting and I wish it could be
-stopped,&rdquo; said Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, it&rsquo;s got to go on now,&rdquo; cried Faith. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s a
-matter of honour. Don&rsquo;t you <i>dare</i> tell anyone, Una. If you do I&rsquo;ll
-never tell you secrets again!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t tell,&rdquo; agreed Una. &ldquo;But I won&rsquo;t stay
-to-morrow to watch the fight. I&rsquo;m coming right home.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, all right. <i>I</i> have to be there&mdash;it would be mean not to,
-when Walter is fighting for me. I&rsquo;m going to tie my colours on his
-arm&mdash;that&rsquo;s the thing to do when he&rsquo;s my knight. How lucky
-Mrs. Blythe gave me that pretty blue hair-ribbon for my birthday! I&rsquo;ve
-only worn it twice so it will be almost new. But I wish I was sure Walter would
-win. It will be so&mdash;so <i>humiliating</i> if he doesn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith would have been yet more dubious if she could have seen her champion just
-then. Walter had gone home from school with all his righteous anger at a low
-ebb and a very nasty feeling in its place. He had to fight Dan Reese the next
-night&mdash;and he didn&rsquo;t want to&mdash;he hated the thought of it. And
-he kept thinking of it all the time. Not for a minute could he get away from
-the thought. Would it hurt much? He was terribly afraid that it would hurt. And
-would he be defeated and shamed?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He could not eat any supper worth speaking of. Susan had made a big batch of
-his favourite monkey-faces, but he could choke only one down. Jem ate four.
-Walter wondered how he could. How could <i>anybody</i> eat? And how could they all
-talk gaily as they were doing? There was mother, with her shining eyes and pink
-cheeks. <i>She</i> didn&rsquo;t know her son had to fight next day. Would she be so
-gay if she knew, Walter wondered darkly. Jem had taken Susan&rsquo;s picture
-with his new camera and the result was passed around the table and Susan was
-terribly indignant over it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am no beauty, Mrs. Dr. dear, and well I know it, and have always known
-it,&rdquo; she said in an aggrieved tone, &ldquo;but that I am as ugly as that
-picture makes me out I will never, no, never believe.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jem laughed over this and Anne laughed again with him. Walter couldn&rsquo;t
-endure it. He got up and fled to his room.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That child has got something on his mind, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; said
-Susan. &ldquo;He has et next to nothing. Do you suppose he is plotting another
-poem?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Poor Walter was very far removed in spirit from the starry realms of poesy just
-then. He propped his elbow on his open window-sill and leaned his head drearily
-on his hands.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come on down to the shore, Walter,&rdquo; cried Jem, busting in.
-&ldquo;The boys are going to burn the sand-hill grass to-night. Father says we
-can go. Come on.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At any other time Walter would have been delighted. He gloried in the burning
-of the sand-hill grass. But now he flatly refused to go, and no arguments or
-entreaties could move him. Disappointed Jem, who did not care for the long dark
-walk to Four Winds Point alone, retreated to his museum in the garret and
-buried himself in a book. He soon forgot his disappointment, revelling with the
-heroes of old romance, and pausing occasionally to picture himself a famous
-general, leading his troops to victory on some great battlefield.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter sat at his window until bedtime. Di crept in, hoping to be told what was
-wrong, but Walter could not talk of it, even to Di. Talking of it seemed to
-give it a reality from which he shrank. It was torture enough to think of it.
-The crisp, withered leaves rustled on the maple trees outside his window. The
-glow of rose and flame had died out of the hollow, silvery sky, and the full
-moon was rising gloriously over Rainbow Valley. Afar off, a ruddy woodfire was
-painting a page of glory on the horizon beyond the hills. It was a sharp, clear
-evening when far-away sounds were heard distinctly. A fox was barking across
-the pond; an engine was puffing down at the Glen station; a blue-jay was
-screaming madly in the maple grove; there was laughter over on the manse lawn.
-How could people laugh? How could foxes and blue-jays and engines behave as if
-nothing were going to happen on the morrow?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I wish it was over,&rdquo; groaned Walter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He slept very little that night and had hard work choking down his porridge in
-the morning. Susan <i>was</i> rather lavish in her platefuls. Mr. Hazard found him an
-unsatisfactory pupil that day. Faith Meredith&rsquo;s wits seemed to be
-wool-gathering, too. Dan Reese kept drawing surreptitious pictures of girls,
-with pig or rooster heads, on his slate and holding them up for all to see. The
-news of the coming battle had leaked out and most of the boys and many of the
-girls were in the spruce plantation when Dan and Walter sought it after school.
-Una had gone home, but Faith was there, having tied her blue ribbon around
-Walter&rsquo;s arm. Walter was thankful that neither Jem nor Di nor Nan were
-among the crowd of spectators. Somehow they had not heard of what was in the
-wind and had gone home, too. Walter faced Dan quite undauntedly now. At the
-last moment all his fear had vanished, but he still felt disgust at the idea of
-fighting. Dan, it was noted, was really paler under his freckles than Walter
-was. One of the older boys gave the word and Dan struck Walter in the face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter reeled a little. The pain of the blow tingled through all his sensitive
-frame for a moment. Then he felt pain no longer. Something, such as he had
-never experienced before, seemed to roll over him like a flood. His face
-flushed crimson, his eyes burned like flame. The scholars of Glen St. Mary
-school had never dreamed that &ldquo;Miss Walter&rdquo; could look like that.
-He hurled himself forward and closed with Dan like a young wildcat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There were no particular rules in the fights of the Glen school boys. It was
-catch-as-catch can, and get your blows in anyhow. Walter fought with a savage
-fury and a joy in the struggle against which Dan could not hold his ground. It
-was all over very speedily. Walter had no clear consciousness of what he was
-doing until suddenly the red mist cleared from his sight and he found himself
-kneeling on the body of the prostrate Dan whose nose&mdash;oh,
-horror!&mdash;was spouting blood.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Have you had enough?&rdquo; demanded Walter through his clenched teeth.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dan sulkily admitted that he had.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My mother doesn&rsquo;t write lies?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Faith Meredith isn&rsquo;t a pig-girl?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nor a rooster-girl?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And I&rsquo;m not a coward?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter had intended to ask, &ldquo;And you are a liar?&rdquo; but pity
-intervened and he did not humiliate Dan further. Besides, that blood was so
-horrible.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can go, then,&rdquo; he said contemptuously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was a loud clapping from the boys who were perched on the rail fence, but
-some of the girls were crying. They were frightened. They had seen schoolboy
-fights before, but nothing like Walter as he had grappled with Dan. There had
-been something terrifying about him. They thought he would kill Dan. Now that
-all was over they sobbed hysterically&mdash;except Faith, who still stood tense
-and crimson cheeked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter did not stay for any conqueror&rsquo;s meed. He sprang over the fence
-and rushed down the spruce hill to Rainbow Valley. He felt none of the
-victor&rsquo;s joy, but he felt a certain calm satisfaction in duty done and
-honour avenged&mdash;mingled with a sickish qualm when he thought of
-Dan&rsquo;s gory nose. It had been so ugly, and Walter hated ugliness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Also, he began to realize that he himself was somewhat sore and battered up.
-His lip was cut and swollen and one eye felt very strange. In Rainbow Valley he
-encountered Mr. Meredith, who was coming home from an afternoon call on the
-Miss Wests. That reverend gentleman looked gravely at him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It seems to me that you have been fighting, Walter?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, sir,&rdquo; said Walter, expecting a scolding.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What was it about?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dan Reese said my mother wrote lies and that that Faith was a
-pig-girl,&rdquo; answered Walter bluntly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh&mdash;h! Then you were certainly justified, Walter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you think it&rsquo;s right to fight, sir?&rdquo; asked Walter
-curiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not always&mdash;and not often&mdash;but sometimes&mdash;yes,
-sometimes,&rdquo; said John Meredith. &ldquo;When womenkind are insulted for
-instance&mdash;as in your case. My motto, Walter, is, don&rsquo;t fight till
-you&rsquo;re sure you ought to, and <i>then</i> put every ounce of you into it. In
-spite of sundry discolorations I infer that you came off best.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes. I made him take it all back.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Very good&mdash;very good, indeed. I didn&rsquo;t think you were such a
-fighter, Walter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I never fought before&mdash;and I didn&rsquo;t want to right up to the
-last&mdash;and then,&rdquo; said Walter, determined to make a clean breast of
-it, &ldquo;I liked it while I was at it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Rev. John&rsquo;s eyes twinkled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You were&mdash;a little frightened&mdash;at first?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I was a whole lot frightened,&rdquo; said honest Walter. &ldquo;But
-I&rsquo;m not going to be frightened any more, sir. Being frightened of things
-is worse than the things themselves. I&rsquo;m going to ask father to take me
-over to Lowbridge to-morrow to get my tooth out.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Right again. &lsquo;Fear is more pain than is the pain it fears.&rsquo;
-Do you know who wrote that, Walter? It was Shakespeare. Was there any feeling
-or emotion or experience of the human heart that that wonderful man did not
-know? When you go home tell your mother I am proud of you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter did not tell her that, however; but he told her all the rest, and she
-sympathized with him and told him she was glad he had stood up for her and
-Faith, and she anointed his sore spots and rubbed cologne on his aching head.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Are all mothers as nice as you?&rdquo; asked Walter, hugging her.
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;re <i>worth</i> standing up for.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia and Susan were in the living room when Anne came downstairs, and
-listened to the story with much enjoyment. Susan in particular was highly
-gratified.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am real glad to hear he has had a good fight, Mrs. Dr. dear. Perhaps
-it may knock that poetry nonsense out of him. And I never, no, never could bear
-that little viper of a Dan Reese. Will you not sit nearer to the fire, Mrs.
-Marshall Elliott? These November evenings are very chilly.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Thank you, Susan, I&rsquo;m not cold. I called at the manse before I
-came here and got quite warm&mdash;though I had to go to the kitchen to do it,
-for there was no fire anywhere else. The kitchen looked as if it had been
-stirred up with a stick, believe <i>me</i>. Mr. Meredith wasn&rsquo;t home. I
-couldn&rsquo;t find out where he was, but I have an idea that he was up at the
-Wests&rsquo;. Do you know, Anne dearie, they say he has been going there
-frequently all the fall and people are beginning to think he is going to see
-Rosemary.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He would get a very charming wife if he married Rosemary,&rdquo; said
-Anne, piling driftwood on the fire. &ldquo;She is one of the most delightful
-girls I&rsquo;ve ever known&mdash;truly one of the race of Joseph.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ye&mdash;s&mdash;only she is an Episcopalian,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia
-doubtfully. &ldquo;Of course, that is better than if she was a
-Methodist&mdash;but I do think Mr. Meredith could find a good enough wife in
-his own denomination. However, very likely there is nothing in it. It&rsquo;s
-only a month ago that I said to him, &lsquo;You ought to marry again, Mr.
-Meredith.&rsquo; He looked as shocked as if I had suggested something improper.
-&lsquo;My wife is in her grave, Mrs. Elliott,&rsquo; he said, in that gentle,
-saintly way of his. &lsquo;I suppose so,&rsquo; I said, &lsquo;or I
-wouldn&rsquo;t be advising you to marry again.&rsquo; Then he looked more
-shocked than ever. So I doubt if there is much in this Rosemary story. If a
-single minister calls twice at a house where there is a single woman all the
-gossips have it he is courting her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It seems to me&mdash;if I may presume to say so&mdash;that Mr. Meredith
-is too shy to go courting a second wife,&rdquo; said Susan solemnly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He <i>isn&rsquo;t</i> shy, believe <i>me</i>,&rdquo; retorted Miss Cornelia.
-&ldquo;Absent-minded,&mdash;yes&mdash;but shy, no. And for all he is so
-abstracted and dreamy he has a very good opinion of himself, man-like, and when
-he is really awake he wouldn&rsquo;t think it much of a chore to ask any woman
-to have him. No, the trouble is, he&rsquo;s deluding himself into believing
-that his heart is buried, while all the time it&rsquo;s beating away inside of
-him just like anybody else&rsquo;s. He may have a notion of Rosemary West and
-he may not. If he has, we must make the best of it. She is a sweet girl and a
-fine housekeeper, and would make a good mother for those poor, neglected
-children. And,&rdquo; concluded Miss Cornelia resignedly, &ldquo;my own
-grandmother was an Episcopalian.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap18"></a>CHAPTER XVIII.<br />
-MARY BRINGS EVIL TIDINGS</h2>
-
-<p>
-Mary Vance, whom Mrs. Elliott had sent up to the manse on an errand, came
-tripping down Rainbow Valley on her way to Ingleside where she was to spend the
-afternoon with Nan and Di as a Saturday treat. Nan and Di had been picking
-spruce gum with Faith and Una in the manse woods and the four of them were now
-sitting on a fallen pine by the brook, all, it must be admitted, chewing rather
-vigorously. The Ingleside twins were not allowed to chew spruce gum anywhere
-but in the seclusion of Rainbow Valley, but Faith and Una were unrestricted by
-such rules of etiquette and cheerfully chewed it everywhere, at home and
-abroad, to the very proper horror of the Glen. Faith had been chewing it in
-church one day; but Jerry had realized the enormity of <i>that</i>, and had given her
-such an older-brotherly scolding that she never did it again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I was so hungry I just felt as if I had to chew something,&rdquo; she
-protested. &ldquo;You know well enough what breakfast was like, Jerry Meredith.
-I <i>couldn&rsquo;t</i> eat scorched porridge and my stomach just felt so queer and
-empty. The gum helped a lot&mdash;and I didn&rsquo;t chew <i>very</i> hard. I
-didn&rsquo;t make any noise and I never cracked the gum once.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You mustn&rsquo;t chew gum in church, anyhow,&rdquo; insisted Jerry.
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t let me catch you at it again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You chewed yourself in prayer-meeting last week,&rdquo; cried Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>that&rsquo;s</i> different,&rdquo; said Jerry loftily. &ldquo;Prayer-meeting
-isn&rsquo;t on Sunday. Besides, I sat away at the back in a dark seat and
-nobody saw me. You were sitting right up front where every one saw you. And I
-took the gum out of my mouth for the last hymn and stuck it on the back of the
-pew right up in front where every one saw you. Then I came away and forgot it.
-I went back to get it next morning, but it was gone. I suppose Rod Warren
-swiped it. And it was a dandy chew.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary Vance walked down the Valley with her head held high. She had on a new
-blue velvet cap with a scarlet rosette in it, a coat of navy blue cloth and a
-little squirrel-fur muff. She was very conscious of her new clothes and very
-well pleased with herself. Her hair was elaborately crimped, her face was quite
-plump, her cheeks rosy, her white eyes shining. She did not look much like the
-forlorn and ragged waif the Merediths had found in the old Taylor barn. Una
-tried not to feel envious. Here was Mary with a new velvet cap, but she and
-Faith had to wear their shabby old gray tams again this winter. Nobody ever
-thought of getting them new ones and they were afraid to ask their father for
-them for fear that he might be short of money and then he would feel badly.
-Mary had told them once that ministers were always short of money, and found it
-&ldquo;awful hard&rdquo; to make ends meet. Since then Faith and Una would have
-gone in rags rather than ask their father for anything if they could help it.
-They did not worry a great deal over their shabbiness; but it was rather trying
-to see Mary Vance coming out in such style and putting on such airs about it,
-too. The new squirrel muff was really the last straw. Neither Faith nor Una had
-ever had a muff, counting themselves lucky if they could compass mittens
-without holes in them. Aunt Martha could not see to darn holes and though Una
-tried to, she made sad cobbling. Somehow, they could not make their greeting of
-Mary very cordial. But Mary did not mind or notice that; she was not overly
-sensitive. She vaulted lightly to a seat on the pine tree, and laid the
-offending muff on a bough. Una saw that it was lined with shirred red satin and
-had red tassels. She looked down at her own rather purple, chapped, little
-hands and wondered if she would ever, <i>ever</i> be able to put them into a muff like
-that.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Give us a chew,&rdquo; said Mary companionably. Nan, Di and Faith all
-produced an amber-hued knot or two from their pockets and passed them to Mary.
-Una sat very still. She had four lovely big knots in the pocket of her tight,
-thread-bare little jacket, but she wasn&rsquo;t going to give one of them to
-Mary Vance&mdash;not one Let Mary pick her own gum! People with squirrel muffs
-needn&rsquo;t expect to get everything in the world.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Great day, isn&rsquo;t it?&rdquo; said Mary, swinging her legs, the
-better, perhaps, to display new boots with very smart cloth tops. Una tucked
-<i>her</i> feet under her. There was a hole in the toe of one of her boots and both
-laces were much knotted. But they were the best she had. Oh, this Mary Vance!
-Why hadn&rsquo;t they left her in the old barn?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una never felt badly because the Ingleside twins were better dressed than she
-and Faith were. <i>They</i> wore their pretty clothes with careless grace and never
-seemed to think about them at all. Somehow, they did not make other people feel
-shabby. But when Mary Vance was dressed up she seemed fairly to exude
-clothes&mdash;to walk in an atmosphere of clothes&mdash;to make everybody else
-feel and think clothes. Una, as she sat there in the honey-tinted sunshine of
-the gracious December afternoon, was acutely and miserably conscious of
-everything she had on&mdash;the faded tam, which was yet her best, the skimpy
-jacket she had worn for three winters, the holes in her skirt and her boots,
-the shivering insufficiency of her poor little undergarments. Of course, Mary
-was going out for a visit and she was not. But even if she had been she had
-nothing better to put on and in this lay the sting.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Say, this is great gum. Listen to me cracking it. There ain&rsquo;t any
-gum spruces down at Four Winds,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;Sometimes I just
-hanker after a chew. Mrs. Elliott won&rsquo;t let me chew gum if she sees me.
-She says it ain&rsquo;t lady-like. This lady-business puzzles me. I can&rsquo;t
-get on to all its kinks. Say, Una, what&rsquo;s the matter with you? Cat got
-your tongue?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Una, who could not drag her fascinated eyes from that
-squirrel muff. Mary leaned past her, picked it up and thrust it into
-Una&rsquo;s hands.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Stick your paws in that for a while,&rdquo; she ordered. &ldquo;They
-look sorter pinched. Ain&rsquo;t that a dandy muff? Mrs. Elliott give it to me
-last week for a birthday present. I&rsquo;m to get the collar at Christmas. I
-heard her telling Mr. Elliott that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott is very good to you,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You bet she is. And <i>I&rsquo;m</i> good to her, too,&rdquo; retorted Mary.
-&ldquo;I work like a nigger to make it easy for her and have everything just as
-she likes it. We was made for each other. &lsquo;Tisn&rsquo;t every one could
-get along with her as well as I do. She&rsquo;s pizen neat, but so am I, and so
-we agree fine.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I told you she would never whip you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So you did. She&rsquo;s never tried to lay a finger on me and I
-ain&rsquo;t never told a lie to her&mdash;not one, true&rsquo;s you live. She
-combs me down with her tongue sometimes though, but that just slips off <i>me</i> like
-water off a duck&rsquo;s back. Say, Una, why didn&rsquo;t you hang on to the
-muff?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una had put it back on the bough.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My hands aren&rsquo;t cold, thank you,&rdquo; she said stiffly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, if you&rsquo;re satisfied, <i>I</i> am. Say, old Kitty Alec has
-come back to church as meek as Moses and nobody knows why. But everybody is
-saying it was Faith brought Norman Douglas out. His housekeeper says you went
-there and gave him an awful tongue-lashing. Did you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I went and asked him to come to church,&rdquo; said Faith uncomfortably.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Fancy your spunk!&rdquo; said Mary admiringly. &ldquo;<i>I</i>
-wouldn&rsquo;t have dared do that and I&rsquo;m not so slow. Mrs. Wilson says
-the two of you jawed something scandalous, but you come off best and then he
-just turned round and like to eat you up. Say, is your father going to preach
-here to-morrow?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. He&rsquo;s going to exchange with Mr. Perry from Charlottetown.
-Father went to town this morning and Mr. Perry is coming out to-night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I <i>thought</i> there was something in the wind, though old Martha
-wouldn&rsquo;t give me any satisfaction. But I felt sure she wouldn&rsquo;t
-have been killing that rooster for nothing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What rooster? What do you mean?&rdquo; cried Faith, turning pale.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>I</i> don&rsquo;t know what rooster. I didn&rsquo;t see it. When she
-took the butter Mrs. Elliott sent up she said she&rsquo;d been out to the barn
-killing a rooster for dinner tomorrow.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith sprang down from the pine.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s Adam&mdash;we have no other rooster&mdash;she has killed
-Adam.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now, don&rsquo;t fly off the handle. Martha said the butcher at the Glen
-had no meat this week and she had to have something and the hens were all
-laying and too poor.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If she has killed Adam&mdash;&rdquo; Faith began to run up the hill.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary shrugged her shoulders.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She&rsquo;ll go crazy now. She was so fond of that Adam. He ought to
-have been in the pot long ago&mdash;he&rsquo;ll be as tough as sole leather.
-But <i>I</i> wouldn&rsquo;t like to be in Martha&rsquo;s shoes. Faith&rsquo;s
-just white with rage; Una, you&rsquo;d better go after her and try to peacify
-her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary had gone a few steps with the Blythe girls when Una suddenly turned and
-ran after her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Here&rsquo;s some gum for you, Mary,&rdquo; she said, with a little
-repentant catch in her voice, thrusting all her four knots into Mary&rsquo;s
-hands, &ldquo;and I&rsquo;m glad you have such a pretty muff.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, thanks,&rdquo; said Mary, rather taken by surprise. To the Blythe
-girls, after Una had gone, she said, &ldquo;Ain&rsquo;t she a queer little
-mite? But I&rsquo;ve always said she had a good heart.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap19"></a>CHAPTER XIX.<br />
-POOR ADAM!</h2>
-
-<p>
-When Una got home Faith was lying face downwards on her bed, utterly refusing
-to be comforted. Aunt Martha had killed Adam. He was reposing on a platter in
-the pantry that very minute, trussed and dressed, encircled by his liver and
-heart and gizzard. Aunt Martha heeded Faith&rsquo;s passion of grief and anger
-not a whit.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We had to have something for the strange minister&rsquo;s dinner,&rdquo;
-she said. &ldquo;You&rsquo;re too big a girl to make such a fuss over an old
-rooster. You knew he&rsquo;d have to be killed sometime.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll tell father when he comes home what you&rsquo;ve done,&rdquo;
-sobbed Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t you go bothering your poor father. He has troubles enough.
-And <i>I&rsquo;m</i> housekeeper here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Adam was <i>mine</i>&mdash;Mrs. Johnson gave him to me. You had no business to
-touch him,&rdquo; stormed Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t you get sassy now. The rooster&rsquo;s killed and
-there&rsquo;s an end of it. I ain&rsquo;t going to set no strange minister down
-to a dinner of cold b&rsquo;iled mutton. I was brought up to know better than
-that, if I have come down in the world.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith would not go down to supper that night and she would not go to church the
-next morning. But at dinner time she went to the table, her eyes swollen with
-crying, her face sullen.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Rev. James Perry was a sleek, rubicund man, with a bristling white
-moustache, bushy white eyebrows, and a shining bald head. He was certainly not
-handsome and he was a very tiresome, pompous sort of person. But if he had
-looked like the Archangel Michael and talked with the tongues of men and angels
-Faith would still have utterly detested him. He carved Adam up dexterously,
-showing off his plump white hands and very handsome diamond ring. Also, he made
-jovial remarks all through the performance. Jerry and Carl giggled, and even
-Una smiled wanly, because she thought politeness demanded it. But Faith only
-scowled darkly. The Rev. James thought her manners shockingly bad. Once, when
-he was delivering himself of an unctuous remark to Jerry, Faith broke in rudely
-with a flat contradiction. The Rev. James drew his bushy eyebrows together at
-her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Little girls should not interrupt,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;and they
-should not contradict people who know far more than they do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This put Faith in a worse temper than ever. To be called &ldquo;little
-girl&rdquo; as if she were no bigger than chubby Rilla Blythe over at
-Ingleside! It was insufferable. And how that abominable Mr. Perry did eat! He
-even picked poor Adam&rsquo;s bones. Neither Faith nor Una would touch a
-mouthful, and looked upon the boys as little better than cannibals. Faith felt
-that if that awful repast did not soon come to an end she would wind it up by
-throwing something at Mr. Perry&rsquo;s gleaming head. Fortunately, Mr. Perry
-found Aunt Martha&rsquo;s leathery apple pie too much even for his powers of
-mastication and the meal came to an end, after a long grace in which Mr. Perry
-offered up devout thanks for the food which a kind and beneficent Providence
-had provided for sustenance and temperate pleasure.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;God hadn&rsquo;t a single thing to do with providing Adam for
-you,&rdquo; muttered Faith rebelliously under her breath.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The boys gladly made their escape to outdoors, Una went to help Aunt Martha
-with the dishes&mdash;though that rather grumpy old dame never welcomed her
-timid assistance&mdash;and Faith betook herself to the study where a cheerful
-wood fire was burning in the grate. She thought she would thereby escape from
-the hated Mr. Perry, who had announced his intention of taking a nap in his
-room during the afternoon. But scarcely had Faith settled herself in a corner,
-with a book, when he walked in and, standing before the fire, proceeded to
-survey the disorderly study with an air of disapproval.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You father&rsquo;s books seem to be in somewhat deplorable confusion, my
-little girl,&rdquo; he said severely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith darkled in her corner and said not a word. She would <i>not</i> talk to
-this&mdash;this creature.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You should try to put them in order,&rdquo; Mr. Perry went on, playing
-with his handsome watch chain and smiling patronizingly on Faith. &ldquo;You
-are quite old enough to attend to such duties. <i>My</i> little daughter at home is
-only ten and she is already an excellent little housekeeper and the greatest
-help and comfort to her mother. She is a very sweet child. I wish you had the
-privilege of her acquaintance. She could help you in many ways. Of course, you
-have not had the inestimable privilege of a good mother&rsquo;s care and
-training. A sad lack&mdash;a very sad lack. I have spoken more than once to
-your father in this connection and pointed out his duty to him faithfully, but
-so far with no effect. I trust he may awaken to a realization of his
-responsibility before it is too late. In the meantime, it is your duty and
-privilege to endeavour to take your sainted mother&rsquo;s place. You might
-exercise a great influence over your brothers and your little sister&mdash;you
-might be a true mother to them. I fear that you do not think of these things as
-you should. My dear child, allow me to open your eyes in regard to them.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Perry&rsquo;s oily, complacent voice trickled on. He was in his element.
-Nothing suited him better than to lay down the law, patronize and exhort. He
-had no idea of stopping, and he did not stop. He stood before the fire, his
-feet planted firmly on the rug, and poured out a flood of pompous platitudes.
-Faith heard not a word. She was really not listening to him at all. But she was
-watching his long black coat-tails with impish delight growing in her brown
-eyes. Mr. Perry was standing <i>very</i> near the fire. His coat-tails began to
-scorch&mdash;his coat-tails began to smoke. He still prosed on, wrapped up in
-his own eloquence. The coat-tails smoked worse. A tiny spark flew up from the
-burning wood and alighted in the middle of one. It clung and caught and spread
-into a smouldering flame. Faith could restrain herself no longer and broke into
-a stifled giggle.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Perry stopped short, angered over this impertinence. Suddenly he became
-conscious that a reek of burning cloth filled the room. He whirled round and
-saw nothing. Then he clapped his hands to his coat-tails and brought them
-around in front of him. There was already quite a hole in one of them&mdash;and
-this was his new suit. Faith shook with helpless laughter over his pose and
-expression.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Did you see my coat-tails burning?&rdquo; he demanded angrily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, sir,&rdquo; said Faith demurely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why didn&rsquo;t you tell me?&rdquo; he demanded, glaring at her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You said it wasn&rsquo;t good manners to interrupt, sir,&rdquo; said
-Faith, more demurely still.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If&mdash;if I was your father, I would give you a spanking that you
-would remember all your life, Miss,&rdquo; said a very angry reverend
-gentleman, as he stalked out of the study. The coat of Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s
-second best suit would not fit Mr. Perry, so he had to go to the evening
-service with his singed coat-tail. But he did not walk up the aisle with his
-usual consciousness of the honour he was conferring on the building. He never
-would agree to an exchange of pulpits with Mr. Meredith again, and he was
-barely civil to the latter when they met for a few minutes at the station the
-next morning. But Faith felt a certain gloomy satisfaction. Adam was partially
-avenged.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap20"></a>CHAPTER XX.<br />
-FAITH MAKES A FRIEND</h2>
-
-<p>
-Next day in school was a hard one for Faith. Mary Vance had told the tale of
-Adam, and all the scholars, except the Blythes, thought it quite a joke. The
-girls told Faith, between giggles, that it was too bad, and the boys wrote
-sardonic notes of condolence to her. Poor Faith went home from school feeling
-her very soul raw and smarting within her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m going over to Ingleside to have a talk with Mrs.
-Blythe,&rdquo; she sobbed. &ldquo;<i>She</i> won&rsquo;t laugh at me, as everybody
-else does. I&rsquo;ve just <i>got</i> to talk to somebody who understands how bad I
-feel.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She ran down through Rainbow Valley. Enchantment had been at work the night
-before. A light snow had fallen and the powdered firs were dreaming of a spring
-to come and a joy to be. The long hill beyond was richly purple with leafless
-beeches. The rosy light of sunset lay over the world like a pink kiss. Of all
-the airy, fairy places, full of weird, elfin grace, Rainbow Valley that winter
-evening was the most beautiful. But all its dreamlike loveliness was lost on
-poor, sore-hearted little Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-By the brook she came suddenly upon Rosemary West, who was sitting on the old
-pine tree. She was on her way home from Ingleside, where she had been giving
-the girls their music lesson. She had been lingering in Rainbow Valley quite a
-little time, looking across its white beauty and roaming some by-ways of dream.
-Judging from the expression of her face, her thoughts were pleasant ones.
-Perhaps the faint, occasional tinkle from the bells on the Tree Lovers brought
-the little lurking smile to her lips. Or perhaps it was occasioned by the
-consciousness that John Meredith seldom failed to spend Monday evening in the
-gray house on the white wind-swept hill.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Into Rosemary&rsquo;s dreams burst Faith Meredith full of rebellious
-bitterness. Faith stopped abruptly when she saw Miss West. She did not know her
-very well&mdash;just well enough to speak to when they met. And she did not
-want to see any one just then&mdash;except Mrs. Blythe. She knew her eyes and
-nose were red and swollen and she hated to have a stranger know she had been
-crying.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good evening, Miss West,&rdquo; she said uncomfortably.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is the matter, Faith?&rdquo; asked Rosemary gently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nothing,&rdquo; said Faith rather shortly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; Rosemary smiled. &ldquo;You mean nothing that you can tell to
-outsiders, don&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith looked at Miss West with sudden interest. Here was a person who
-understood things. And how pretty she was! How golden her hair was under her
-plumy hat! How pink her cheeks were over her velvet coat! How blue and
-companionable her eyes were! Faith felt that Miss West could be a lovely
-friend&mdash;if only she were a friend instead of a stranger!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&mdash;I&rsquo;m going up to tell Mrs. Blythe,&rdquo; said Faith.
-&ldquo;She always understands&mdash;she never laughs at us. I always talk
-things over with her. It helps.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dear girlie, I&rsquo;m sorry to have to tell you that Mrs. Blythe
-isn&rsquo;t home,&rdquo; said Miss West, sympathetically. &ldquo;She went to
-Avonlea to-day and isn&rsquo;t coming back till the last of the week.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith&rsquo;s lip quivered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then I might as well go home again,&rdquo; she said miserably.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose so&mdash;unless you think you could bring yourself to talk it
-over with me instead,&rdquo; said Miss Rosemary gently. &ldquo;It <i>is</i> such a
-help to talk things over. <i>I</i> know. I don&rsquo;t suppose I can be as good
-at understanding as Mrs. Blythe&mdash;but I promise you that I won&rsquo;t
-laugh.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You wouldn&rsquo;t laugh outside,&rdquo; hesitated Faith. &ldquo;But you
-might&mdash;inside.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, I wouldn&rsquo;t laugh inside, either. Why should I? Something has
-hurt you&mdash;it never amuses me to see anybody hurt, no matter what hurts
-them. If you feel that you&rsquo;d like to tell me what has hurt you I&rsquo;ll
-be glad to listen. But if you think you&rsquo;d rather not&mdash;that&rsquo;s
-all right, too, dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith took another long, earnest look into Miss West&rsquo;s eyes. They were
-very serious&mdash;there was no laughter in them, not even far, far back. With
-a little sigh she sat down on the old pine beside her new friend and told her
-all about Adam and his cruel fate.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary did not laugh or feel like laughing. She understood and
-sympathized&mdash;really, she was almost as good as Mrs. Blythe&mdash;yes,
-quite as good.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mr. Perry is a minister, but he should have been a <i>butcher</i>,&rdquo; said
-Faith bitterly. &ldquo;He is so fond of carving things up. He <i>enjoyed</i> cutting
-poor Adam to pieces. He just sliced into him as if he were any common
-rooster.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Between you and me, Faith, <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t like Mr. Perry very well
-myself,&rdquo; said Rosemary, laughing a little&mdash;but at Mr. Perry, not at
-Adam, as Faith clearly understood. &ldquo;I never did like him. I went to
-school with him&mdash;he was a Glen boy, you know&mdash;and he was a most
-detestable little prig even then. Oh, how we girls used to hate holding his
-fat, clammy hands in the ring-around games. But we must remember, dear, that he
-didn&rsquo;t know that Adam had been a pet of yours. He thought he <i>was</i> just a
-common rooster. We must be just, even when we are terribly hurt.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose so,&rdquo; admitted Faith. &ldquo;But why does everybody seem
-to think it funny that I should have loved Adam so much, Miss West? If it had
-been a horrid old cat nobody would have thought it queer. When Lottie
-Warren&rsquo;s kitten had its legs cut off by the binder everybody was sorry
-for her. She cried two days in school and nobody laughed at her, not even Dan
-Reese. And all her chums went to the kitten&rsquo;s funeral and helped her bury
-it&mdash;only they couldn&rsquo;t bury its poor little paws with it, because
-they couldn&rsquo;t find them. It was a horrid thing to have happen, of course,
-but I don&rsquo;t think it was as dreadful as seeing your pet <i>eaten up</i>. Yet
-everybody laughs at <i>me</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think it is because the name &lsquo;rooster&rsquo; seems rather a
-funny one,&rdquo; said Rosemary gravely. &ldquo;There <i>is</i> something in it that
-is comical. Now, &lsquo;chicken&rsquo; is different. It doesn&rsquo;t sound so
-funny to talk of loving a chicken.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Adam was the dearest little chicken, Miss West. He was just a little
-golden ball. He would run up to me and peck out of my hand. And he was handsome
-when he grew up, too&mdash;white as snow, with such a beautiful curving white
-tail, though Mary Vance said it was too short. He knew his name and always came
-when I called him&mdash;he was a very intelligent rooster. And Aunt Martha had
-no right to kill him. He was mine. It wasn&rsquo;t fair, was it, Miss
-West?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, it wasn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said Rosemary decidedly. &ldquo;Not a bit
-fair. I remember I had a pet hen when I was a little girl. She was such a
-pretty little thing&mdash;all golden brown and speckly. I loved her as much as
-I ever loved any pet. She was never killed&mdash;she died of old age. Mother
-wouldn&rsquo;t have her killed because she was my pet.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If <i>my</i> mother had been living she wouldn&rsquo;t have let Adam be
-killed,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;For that matter, father wouldn&rsquo;t have
-either, if he&rsquo;d been home and known of it. I&rsquo;m <i>sure</i> he
-wouldn&rsquo;t, Miss West.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m sure, too,&rdquo; said Rosemary. There was a little added
-flush on her face. She looked rather conscious but Faith noticed nothing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Was it <i>very</i> wicked of me not to tell Mr. Perry his coat-tails were
-scorching?&rdquo; she asked anxiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, terribly wicked,&rdquo; answered Rosemary, with dancing eyes.
-&ldquo;But <i>I</i> would have been just as naughty, Faith&mdash;<i>I</i>
-wouldn&rsquo;t have told him they were scorching&mdash;and I don&rsquo;t
-believe I would ever have been a bit sorry for my wickedness, either.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Una thought I should have told him because he was a minister.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dearest, if a minister doesn&rsquo;t behave as a gentleman we are not
-bound to respect his coat-tails. I know <i>I</i> would just have loved to see
-Jimmy Perry&rsquo;s coat-tails burning up. It must have been fun.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Both laughed; but Faith ended with a bitter little sigh.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, anyway, Adam is dead and I am <i>never</i> going to love anything
-again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t say that, dear. We miss so much out of life if we
-don&rsquo;t love. The more we love the richer life is&mdash;even if it is only
-some little furry or feathery pet. Would you like a canary, Faith&mdash;a
-little golden bit of a canary? If you would I&rsquo;ll give you one. We have
-two up home.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I <i>would</i> like that,&rdquo; cried Faith. &ldquo;I love birds.
-Only&mdash;would Aunt Martha&rsquo;s cat eat it? It&rsquo;s so <i>tragic</i> to have
-your pets eaten. I don&rsquo;t think I could endure it a second time.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If you hang the cage far enough from the wall I don&rsquo;t think the
-cat could harm it. I&rsquo;ll tell you just how to take care of it and
-I&rsquo;ll bring it to Ingleside for you the next time I come down.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-To herself, Rosemary was thinking,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It will give every gossip in the Glen something to talk of, but I <i>will</i>
-not care. I want to comfort this poor little heart.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith was comforted. Sympathy and understanding were very sweet. She and Miss
-Rosemary sat on the old pine until the twilight crept softly down over the
-white valley and the evening star shone over the gray maple grove. Faith told
-Rosemary all her small history and hopes, her likes and dislikes, the ins and
-outs of life at the manse, the ups and downs of school society. Finally they
-parted firm friends.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith was, as usual, lost in dreams when supper began that evening, but
-presently a name pierced his abstraction and brought him back to reality. Faith
-was telling Una of her meeting with Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She is just lovely, I think,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;Just as nice as
-Mrs. Blythe&mdash;but different. I felt as if I wanted to hug her. She did hug
-<i>me</i>&mdash;such a nice, velvety hug. And she called me &lsquo;dearest.&rsquo; It
-<i>thriled</i> me. I could tell her <i>anything</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So you liked Miss West, Faith?&rdquo; Mr. Meredith asked, with a rather
-odd intonation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I love her,&rdquo; cried Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah!&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith. &ldquo;Ah!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap21"></a>CHAPTER XXI.<br />
-THE IMPOSSIBLE WORD</h2>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith walked meditatively through the clear crispness of a winter night
-in Rainbow Valley. The hills beyond glistened with the chill splendid lustre of
-moonlight on snow. Every little fir tree in the long valley sang its own wild
-song to the harp of wind and frost. His children and the Blythe lads and lasses
-were coasting down the eastern slope and whizzing over the glassy pond. They
-were having a glorious time and their gay voices and gayer laughter echoed up
-and down the valley, dying away in elfin cadences among the trees. On the right
-the lights of Ingleside gleamed through the maple grove with the genial lure
-and invitation which seems always to glow in the beacons of a home where we
-know there is love and good-cheer and a welcome for all kin, whether of flesh
-or spirit. Mr. Meredith liked very well on occasion to spend an evening arguing
-with the doctor by the drift wood fire, where the famous china dogs of
-Ingleside kept ceaseless watch and ward, as became deities of the hearth, but
-to-night he did not look that way. Far on the western hill gleamed a paler but
-more alluring star. Mr. Meredith was on his way to see Rosemary West, and he
-meant to tell her something which had been slowly blossoming in his heart since
-their first meeting and had sprung into full flower on the evening when Faith
-had so warmly voiced her admiration for Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He had come to realize that he had learned to care for Rosemary. Not as he had
-cared for Cecilia, of course. <i>That</i> was entirely different. That love of romance
-and dream and glamour could never, he thought, return. But Rosemary was
-beautiful and sweet and dear&mdash;very dear. She was the best of companions.
-He was happier in her company than he had ever expected to be again. She would
-be an ideal mistress for his home, a good mother to his children.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-During the years of his widowhood Mr. Meredith had received innumerable hints
-from brother members of Presbytery and from many parishioners who could not be
-suspected of any ulterior motive, as well as from some who could, that he ought
-to marry again: But these hints never made any impression on him. It was
-commonly thought he was never aware of them. But he was quite acutely aware of
-them. And in his own occasional visitations of common sense he knew that the
-common sensible thing for him to do was to marry. But common sense was not the
-strong point of John Meredith, and to choose out, deliberately and
-cold-bloodedly, some &ldquo;suitable&rdquo; woman, as one might choose a
-housekeeper or a business partner, was something he was quite incapable of
-doing. How he hated that word &ldquo;suitable.&rdquo; It reminded him so
-strongly of James Perry. &ldquo;A <i>suit</i> able woman of <i>suit</i> able age,&rdquo; that
-unctuous brother of the cloth had said, in his far from subtle hint. For the
-moment John Meredith had had a perfectly unbelievable desire to rush madly away
-and propose marriage to the youngest, most unsuitable woman it was possible to
-discover.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. Marshall Elliott was his good friend and he liked her. But when she had
-bluntly told him he should marry again he felt as if she had torn away the veil
-that hung before some sacred shrine of his innermost life, and he had been more
-or less afraid of her ever since. He knew there were women in his congregation
-&ldquo;of suitable age&rdquo; who would marry him quite readily. That fact had
-seeped through all his abstraction very early in his ministry in Glen St. Mary.
-They were good, substantial, uninteresting women, one or two fairly comely, the
-others not exactly so and John Meredith would as soon have thought of marrying
-any one of them as of hanging himself. He had some ideals to which no seeming
-necessity could make him false. He could ask no woman to fill Cecilia&rsquo;s
-place in his home unless he could offer her at least some of the affection and
-homage he had given to his girlish bride. And where, in his limited feminine
-acquaintance, was such a woman to be found?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary West had come into his life on that autumn evening bringing with her
-an atmosphere in which his spirit recognized native air. Across the gulf of
-strangerhood they clasped hands of friendship. He knew her better in that ten
-minutes by the hidden spring than he knew Emmeline Drew or Elizabeth Kirk or
-Amy Annetta Douglas in a year, or could know them, in a century. He had fled to
-her for comfort when Mrs. Alec Davis had outraged his mind and soul and had
-found it. Since then he had gone often to the house on the hill, slipping
-through the shadowy paths of night in Rainbow Valley so astutely that Glen
-gossip could never be absolutely certain that he <i>did</i> go to see Rosemary West.
-Once or twice he had been caught in the West living room by other visitors;
-that was all the Ladies&rsquo; Aid had to go by. But when Elizabeth Kirk heard
-it she put away a secret hope she had allowed herself to cherish, without a
-change of expression on her kind plain face, and Emmeline Drew resolved that
-the next time she saw a certain old bachelor of Lowbridge she would not snub
-him as she had done at a previous meeting. Of course, if Rosemary West was out
-to catch the minister she would catch him; she looked younger than she was and
-<i>men</i> thought her pretty; besides, the West girls had money!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is to be hoped that he won&rsquo;t be so absent-minded as to propose
-to Ellen by mistake,&rdquo; was the only malicious thing she allowed herself to
-say to a sympathetic sister Drew. Emmeline bore no further grudge towards
-Rosemary. When all was said and done, an unencumbered bachelor was far better
-than a widower with four children. It had been only the glamour of the manse
-that had temporarily blinded Emmeline&rsquo;s eyes to the better part.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A sled with three shrieking occupants sped past Mr. Meredith to the pond.
-Faith&rsquo;s long curls streamed in the wind and her laughter rang above that
-of the others. John Meredith looked after them kindly and longingly. He was
-glad that his children had such chums as the Blythes&mdash;glad that they had
-so wise and gay and tender a friend as Mrs. Blythe. But they needed something
-more, and that something would be supplied when he brought Rosemary West as a
-bride to the old manse. There was in her a quality essentially maternal.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was Saturday night and he did not often go calling on Saturday night, which
-was supposed to be dedicated to a thoughtful revision of Sunday&rsquo;s sermon.
-But he had chosen this night because he had learned that Ellen West was going
-to be away and Rosemary would be alone. Often as he had spent pleasant evenings
-in the house on the hill he had never, since that first meeting at the spring,
-seen Rosemary alone. Ellen had always been there.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He did not precisely object to Ellen being there. He liked Ellen West very much
-and they were the best of friends. Ellen had an almost masculine understanding
-and a sense of humour which his own shy, hidden appreciation of fun found very
-agreeable. He liked her interest in politics and world events. There was no man
-in the Glen, not even excepting Dr. Blythe, who had a better grasp of such
-things.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think it is just as well to be interested in things as long as you
-live,&rdquo; she had said. &ldquo;If you&rsquo;re not, it doesn&rsquo;t seem to
-me that there&rsquo;s much difference between the quick and the dead.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He liked her pleasant, deep, rumbly voice; he liked the hearty laugh with which
-she always ended up some jolly and well-told story. She never gave him digs
-about his children as other Glen women did; she never bored him with local
-gossip; she had no malice and no pettiness. She was always splendidly sincere.
-Mr. Meredith, who had picked up Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s way of classifying
-people, considered that Ellen belonged to the race of Joseph. Altogether, an
-admirable woman for a sister-in-law. Nevertheless, a man did not want even the
-most admirable of women around when he was proposing to another woman. And
-Ellen was always around. She did not insist on talking to Mr. Meredith herself
-all the time. She let Rosemary have a fair share of him. Many evenings, indeed,
-Ellen effaced herself almost totally, sitting back in the corner with St.
-George in her lap, and letting Mr. Meredith and Rosemary talk and sing and read
-books together. Sometimes they quite forgot her presence. But if their
-conversation or choice of duets ever betrayed the least tendency to what Ellen
-considered philandering, Ellen promptly nipped that tendency in the bud and
-blotted Rosemary out for the rest of the evening. But not even the grimmest of
-amiable dragons can altogether prevent a certain subtle language of eye and
-smile and eloquent silence; and so the minister&rsquo;s courtship progressed
-after a fashion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But if it was ever to reach a climax that climax must come when Ellen was away.
-And Ellen was so seldom away, especially in winter. She found her own fireside
-the pleasantest place in the world, she vowed. Gadding had no attraction for
-her. She was fond of company but she wanted it at home. Mr. Meredith had almost
-been driven to the conclusion that he must write to Rosemary what he wanted to
-say, when Ellen casually announced one evening that she was going to a silver
-wedding next Saturday night. She had been bridesmaid when the principals were
-married. Only old guests were invited, so Rosemary was not included. Mr.
-Meredith pricked up his ears a trifle and a gleam flashed into his dreamy dark
-eyes. Both Ellen and Rosemary saw it; and both Ellen and Rosemary felt, with a
-tingling shock, that Mr. Meredith would certainly come up the hill next
-Saturday night.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Might as well have it over with, St. George,&rdquo; Ellen sternly told
-the black cat, after Mr. Meredith had gone home and Rosemary had silently gone
-upstairs. &ldquo;He means to ask her, St. George&mdash;I&rsquo;m perfectly sure
-of that. So he might as well have his chance to do it and find out he
-can&rsquo;t get her, George. She&rsquo;d rather like to take him, Saint. I know
-that&mdash;but she promised, and she&rsquo;s got to keep her promise. I&rsquo;m
-rather sorry in some ways, St. George. I don&rsquo;t know of a man I&rsquo;d
-sooner have for a brother-in-law if a brother-in-law was convenient. I
-haven&rsquo;t a thing against him, Saint&mdash;not a thing except that he
-won&rsquo;t see and can&rsquo;t be made to see that the Kaiser is a menace to
-the peace of Europe. That&rsquo;s <i>his</i> blind spot. But he&rsquo;s good company
-and I like him. A woman can say anything she likes to a man with a mouth like
-John Meredith&rsquo;s and be sure of not being misunderstood. Such a man is
-more precious than rubies, Saint&mdash;and much rarer, George. But he
-can&rsquo;t have Rosemary&mdash;and I suppose when he finds out he can&rsquo;t
-have her he&rsquo;ll drop us both. And we&rsquo;ll miss him,
-Saint&mdash;we&rsquo;ll miss him something scandalous, George. But she
-promised, and I&rsquo;ll see that she keeps her promise!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen&rsquo;s face looked almost ugly in its lowering resolution. Upstairs
-Rosemary was crying into her pillow.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-So Mr. Meredith found his lady alone and looking very beautiful. Rosemary had
-not made any special toilet for the occasion; she wanted to, but she thought it
-would be absurd to dress up for a man you meant to refuse. So she wore her
-plain dark afternoon dress and looked like a queen in it. Her suppressed
-excitement coloured her face to brilliancy, her great blue eyes were pools of
-light less placid than usual.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She wished the interview were over. She had looked forward to it all day with
-dread. She felt quite sure that John Meredith cared a great deal for her after
-a fashion&mdash;and she felt just as sure that he did not care for her as he
-had cared for his first love. She felt that her refusal would disappoint him
-considerably, but she did not think it would altogether overwhelm him. Yet she
-hated to make it; hated for his sake and&mdash;Rosemary was quite honest with
-herself&mdash;for her own. She knew she could have loved John Meredith
-if&mdash;if it had been permissible. She knew that life would be a blank thing
-if, rejected as lover, he refused longer to be a friend. She knew that she
-could be very happy with him and that she could make him happy. But between her
-and happiness stood the prison gate of the promise she had made to Ellen years
-ago. Rosemary could not remember her father. He had died when she was only
-three years old. Ellen, who had been thirteen, remembered him, but with no
-special tenderness. He had been a stern, reserved man many years older than his
-fair, pretty wife. Five years later their brother of twelve died also; since
-his death the two girls had always lived alone with their mother. They had
-never mingled very freely in the social life of the Glen or Lowbridge, though
-where they went the wit and spirit of Ellen and the sweetness and beauty of
-Rosemary made them welcome guests. Both had what was called &ldquo;a
-disappointment&rdquo; in their girlhood. The sea had not given up
-Rosemary&rsquo;s lover; and Norman Douglas, then a handsome, red-haired young
-giant, noted for wild driving and noisy though harmless escapades, had
-quarrelled with Ellen and left her in a fit of pique.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There were not lacking candidates for both Martin&rsquo;s and Norman&rsquo;s
-places, but none seemed to find favour in the eyes of the West girls, who
-drifted slowly out of youth and bellehood without any seeming regret. They were
-devoted to their mother, who was a chronic invalid. The three had a little
-circle of home interests&mdash;books and pets and flowers&mdash;which made them
-happy and contented.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. West&rsquo;s death, which occurred on Rosemary&rsquo;s twenty-fifth
-birthday, was a bitter grief to them. At first they were intolerably lonely.
-Ellen, especially, continued to grieve and brood, her long, moody musings
-broken only by fits of stormy, passionate weeping. The old Lowbridge doctor
-told Rosemary that he feared permanent melancholy or worse.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Once, when Ellen had sat all day, refusing either to speak or eat, Rosemary had
-flung herself on her knees by her sister&rsquo;s side.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Ellen, you have me yet,&rdquo; she said imploringly. &ldquo;Am I
-nothing to you? We have always loved each other so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t have you always,&rdquo; Ellen had said, breaking her
-silence with harsh intensity. &ldquo;You will marry and leave me. I shall be
-left all alone. I cannot bear the thought&mdash;I <i>cannot</i>. I would rather
-die.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I will never marry,&rdquo; said Rosemary, &ldquo;never, Ellen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen bent forward and looked searchingly into Rosemary&rsquo;s eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will you promise me that solemnly?&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;Promise it on
-mother&rsquo;s Bible.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary assented at once, quite willing to humour Ellen. What did it matter?
-She knew quite well she would never want to marry any one. Her love had gone
-down with Martin Crawford to the deeps of the sea; and without love she could
-not marry any one. So she promised readily, though Ellen made rather a fearsome
-rite of it. They clasped hands over the Bible, in their mother&rsquo;s vacant
-room, and both vowed to each other that they would never marry and would always
-live together.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen&rsquo;s condition improved from that hour. She soon regained her normal
-cheery poise. For ten years she and Rosemary lived in the old house happily,
-undisturbed by any thought of marrying or giving in marriage. Their promise sat
-very lightly on them. Ellen never failed to remind her sister of it whenever
-any eligible male creature crossed their paths, but she had never been really
-alarmed until John Meredith came home that night with Rosemary. As for
-Rosemary, Ellen&rsquo;s obsession regarding that promise had always been a
-little matter of mirth to her&mdash;until lately. Now, it was a merciless
-fetter, self-imposed but never to be shaken off. Because of it to-night she
-must turn her face from happiness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was true that the shy, sweet, rosebud love she had given to her boy-lover
-she could never give to another. But she knew now that she could give to John
-Meredith a love richer and more womanly. She knew that he touched deeps in her
-nature that Martin had never touched&mdash;that had not, perhaps, been in the
-girl of seventeen to touch. And she must send him away to-night&mdash;send him
-back to his lonely hearth and his empty life and his heart-breaking problems,
-because she had promised Ellen, ten years before, on their mother&rsquo;s
-Bible, that she would never marry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith did not immediately grasp his opportunity. On the contrary, he
-talked for two good hours on the least lover-like of subjects. He even tried
-politics, though politics always bored Rosemary. The later began to think that
-she had been altogether mistaken, and her fears and expectations suddenly
-seemed to her grotesque. She felt flat and foolish. The glow went out of her
-face and the lustre out of her eyes. John Meredith had not the slightest
-intention of asking her to marry him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And then, quite suddenly, he rose, came across the room, and standing by her
-chair, he asked it. The room had grown terribly still. Even St. George ceased
-to purr. Rosemary heard her own heart beating and was sure John Meredith must
-hear it too.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Now was the time for her to say no, gently but firmly. She had been ready for
-days with her stilted, regretful little formula. And now the words of it had
-completely vanished from her mind. She had to say no&mdash;and she suddenly
-found she could not say it. It was the impossible word. She knew now that it
-was not that she <i>could</i> have loved John Meredith, but that she <i>did</i> love him. The
-thought of putting him from her life was agony.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She must say <i>something;</i> she lifted her bowed golden head and asked him
-stammeringly to give her a few days for&mdash;for consideration.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith was a little surprised. He was not vainer than any man has a
-right to be, but he had expected that Rosemary West would say yes. He had been
-tolerably sure she cared for him. Then why this doubt&mdash;this hesitation?
-She was not a school girl to be uncertain as to her own mind. He felt an ugly
-shock of disappointment and dismay. But he assented to her request with his
-unfailing gentle courtesy and went away at once.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I will tell you in a few days,&rdquo; said Rosemary, with downcast eyes
-and burning face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When the door shut behind him she went back into the room and wrung her hands.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap22"></a>CHAPTER XXII.<br />
-ST. GEORGE KNOWS ALL ABOUT IT</h2>
-
-<p>
-At midnight Ellen West was walking home from the Pollock silver wedding. She
-had stayed a little while after the other guests had gone, to help the
-gray-haired bride wash the dishes. The distance between the two houses was not
-far and the road good, so that Ellen was enjoying the walk back home in the
-moonlight.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The evening had been a pleasant one. Ellen, who had not been to a party for
-years, found it very pleasant. All the guests had been members of her old set
-and there was no intrusive youth to spoil the flavour, for the only son of the
-bride and groom was far away at college and could not be present. Norman
-Douglas had been there and they had met socially for the first time in years,
-though she had seen him once or twice in church that winter. Not the least
-sentiment was awakened in Ellen&rsquo;s heart by their meeting. She was
-accustomed to wonder, when she thought about it at all, how she could ever have
-fancied him or felt so badly over his sudden marriage. But she had rather liked
-meeting him again. She had forgotten how bracing and stimulating he could be.
-No gathering was ever stagnant when Norman Douglas was present. Everybody had
-been surprised when Norman came. It was well known he never went anywhere. The
-Pollocks had invited him because he had been one of the original guests, but
-they never thought he would come. He had taken his second cousin, Amy Annetta
-Douglas, out to supper and seemed rather attentive to her. But Ellen sat across
-the table from him and had a spirited argument with him&mdash;an argument
-during which all his shouting and banter could not fluster her and in which she
-came off best, flooring Norman so composedly and so completely that he was
-silent for ten minutes. At the end of which time he had muttered in his ruddy
-beard&mdash;&ldquo;spunky as ever&mdash;spunky as ever&rdquo;&mdash;and began
-to hector Amy Annetta, who giggled foolishly over his sallies where Ellen would
-have retorted bitingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen thought these things over as she walked home, tasting them with
-reminiscent relish. The moonlit air sparkled with frost. The snow crisped under
-her feet. Below her lay the Glen with the white harbour beyond. There was a
-light in the manse study. So John Meredith had gone home. Had he asked Rosemary
-to marry him? And after what fashion had she made her refusal known? Ellen felt
-that she would never know this, though she was quite curious. She was sure
-Rosemary would never tell her anything about it and she would not dare to ask.
-She must just be content with the fact of the refusal. After all, that was the
-only thing that really mattered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope he&rsquo;ll have sense enough to come back once in a while and be
-friendly,&rdquo; she said to herself. She disliked so much to be alone that
-thinking aloud was one of her devices for circumventing unwelcome solitude.
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s awful never to have a man-body with some brains to talk to
-once in a while. And like as not he&rsquo;ll never come near the house again.
-There&rsquo;s Norman Douglas, too&mdash;I like that man, and I&rsquo;d like to
-have a good rousing argument with him now and then. But he&rsquo;d never dare
-come up for fear people would think he was courting me again&mdash;for fear
-<i>I&rsquo;d</i> think it, too, most likely&mdash;though he&rsquo;s more a stranger to
-me now than John Meredith. It seems like a dream that we could ever have been
-beaus. But there it is&mdash;there&rsquo;s only two men in the Glen I&rsquo;d
-ever want to talk to&mdash;and what with gossip and this wretched love-making
-business it&rsquo;s not likely I&rsquo;ll ever see either of them again. I
-could,&rdquo; said Ellen, addressing the unmoved stars with a spiteful
-emphasis, &ldquo;I could have made a better world myself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She paused at her gate with a sudden vague feeling of alarm. There was still a
-light in the living-room and to and fro across the window-shades went the
-shadow of a woman walking restlessly up and down. What was Rosemary doing up at
-this hour of the night? And why was she striding about like a lunatic?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen went softly in. As she opened the hall door Rosemary came out of the
-room. She was flushed and breathless. An atmosphere of stress and passion hung
-about her like a garment.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why aren&rsquo;t you in bed, Rosemary?&rdquo; demanded Ellen.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come in here,&rdquo; said Rosemary intensely. &ldquo;I want to tell you
-something.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen composedly removed her wraps and overshoes, and followed her sister into
-the warm, fire-lighted room. She stood with her hand on the table and waited.
-She was looking very handsome herself, in her own grim, black-browed style. The
-new black velvet dress, with its train and V-neck, which she had made purposely
-for the party, became her stately, massive figure. She wore coiled around her
-neck the rich heavy necklace of amber beads which was a family heirloom. Her
-walk in the frosty air had stung her cheeks into a glowing scarlet. But her
-steel-blue eyes were as icy and unyielding as the sky of the winter night. She
-stood waiting in a silence which Rosemary could break only by a convulsive
-effort.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen, Mr. Meredith was here this evening.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And&mdash;and&mdash;he asked me to marry him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So I expected. Of course, you refused him?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Rosemary.&rdquo; Ellen clenched her hands and took an involuntary step
-forward. &ldquo;Do you mean to tell me that you accepted him?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;no.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen recovered her self-command.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What <i>did</i> you do then?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&mdash;I asked him to give me a few days to think it over.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hardly see why that was necessary,&rdquo; said Ellen, coldly
-contemptuous, &ldquo;when there is only the one answer you can make him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary held out her hands beseechingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen,&rdquo; she said desperately, &ldquo;I love John Meredith&mdash;I
-want to be his wife. Will you set me free from that promise?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Ellen, merciless, because she was sick from fear.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen&mdash;Ellen&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Listen,&rdquo; interrupted Ellen. &ldquo;I did not ask you for that
-promise. You offered it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I know&mdash;I know. But I did not think then that I could ever care for
-anyone again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You offered it,&rdquo; went on Ellen unmovably. &ldquo;You promised it
-over our mother&rsquo;s Bible. It was more than a promise&mdash;it was an oath.
-Now you want to break it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I only asked you to set me free from it, Ellen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I will not do it. A promise is a promise in my eyes. I will not do it.
-Break your promise&mdash;be forsworn if you will&mdash;but it shall not be with
-any assent of mine.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are very hard on me, Ellen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hard on you! And what of me? Have you ever given a thought to what my
-loneliness would be here if you left me? I could not bear it&mdash;I would go
-crazy. I <i>cannot</i> live alone. Haven&rsquo;t I been a good sister to you? Have I
-ever opposed any wish of yours? Haven&rsquo;t I indulged you in
-everything?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes&mdash;yes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then why do you want to leave me for this man whom you hadn&rsquo;t seen
-a year ago?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I love him, Ellen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Love! You talk like a school miss instead of a middle-aged woman. He
-doesn&rsquo;t love you. He wants a housekeeper and a governess. You don&rsquo;t
-love him. You want to be &lsquo;Mrs.&rsquo;&mdash;you are one of those
-weak-minded women who think it&rsquo;s a disgrace to be ranked as an old maid.
-That&rsquo;s all there is to it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary quivered. Ellen could not, or would not, understand. There was no use
-arguing with her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So you won&rsquo;t release me, Ellen?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, I won&rsquo;t. And I won&rsquo;t talk of it again. You promised and
-you&rsquo;ve got to keep your word. That&rsquo;s all. Go to bed. Look at the
-time! You&rsquo;re all romantic and worked up. To-morrow you&rsquo;ll be more
-sensible. At any rate, don&rsquo;t let me hear any more of this nonsense.
-Go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary went without another word, pale and spiritless. Ellen walked stormily
-about the room for a few minutes, then paused before the chair where St. George
-had been calmly sleeping through the whole evening. A reluctant smile
-overspread her dark face. There had been only one time in her life&mdash;the
-time of her mother&rsquo;s death&mdash;when Ellen had not been able to temper
-tragedy with comedy. Even in that long ago bitterness, when Norman Douglas had,
-after a fashion, jilted her, she had laughed at herself quite as often as she
-had cried.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I expect there&rsquo;ll be some sulking, St. George. Yes, Saint, I
-expect we are in for a few unpleasant foggy days. Well, we&rsquo;ll weather
-them through, George. We&rsquo;ve dealt with foolish children before, Saint.
-Rosemary&rsquo;ll sulk a while&mdash;and then she&rsquo;ll get over
-it&mdash;and all will be as before, George. She promised&mdash;and she&rsquo;s
-got to keep her promise. And that&rsquo;s the last word on the subject
-I&rsquo;ll say to you or her or anyone, Saint.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Ellen lay savagely awake till morning.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was no sulking, however. Rosemary was pale and quiet the next day, but
-beyond that Ellen could detect no difference in her. Certainly, she seemed to
-bear Ellen no grudge. It was stormy, so no mention was made of going to church.
-In the afternoon Rosemary shut herself in her room and wrote a note to John
-Meredith. She could not trust herself to say &ldquo;no&rdquo; in person. She
-felt quite sure that if he suspected she was saying &ldquo;no&rdquo;
-reluctantly he would not take it for an answer, and she could not face pleading
-or entreaty. She must make him think she cared nothing at all for him and she
-could do that only by letter. She wrote him the stiffest, coolest little
-refusal imaginable. It was barely courteous; it certainly left no loophole of
-hope for the boldest lover&mdash;and John Meredith was anything but that. He
-shrank into himself, hurt and mortified, when he read Rosemary&rsquo;s letter
-next day in his dusty study. But under his mortification a dreadful realization
-presently made itself felt. He had thought he did not love Rosemary as deeply
-as he had loved Cecilia. Now, when he had lost her, he knew that he did. She
-was everything to him&mdash;everything! And he must put her out of his life
-completely. Even friendship was impossible now. Life stretched before him in
-intolerable dreariness. He must go on&mdash;there was his work&mdash;his
-children&mdash;but the heart had gone out of him. He sat alone all that evening
-in his dark, cold, comfortless study with his head bowed on his hands. Up on
-the hill Rosemary had a headache and went early to bed, while Ellen remarked to
-St. George, purring his disdain of foolish humankind, who did not know that a
-soft cushion was the only thing that really mattered,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What would women do if headaches had never been invented, St. George?
-But never mind, Saint. We&rsquo;ll just wink the other eye for a few weeks. I
-admit I don&rsquo;t feel comfortable myself, George. I feel as if I had drowned
-a kitten. But she promised, Saint&mdash;and she was the one to offer it,
-George. Bismillah!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap23"></a>CHAPTER XXIII.<br />
-THE GOOD-CONDUCT CLUB</h2>
-
-<p>
-A light rain had been falling all day&mdash;a little, delicate, beautiful
-spring rain, that somehow seemed to hint and whisper of mayflowers and wakening
-violets. The harbour and the gulf and the low-lying shore fields had been dim
-with pearl-gray mists. But now in the evening the rain had ceased and the mists
-had blown out to sea. Clouds sprinkled the sky over the harbour like little
-fiery roses. Beyond it the hills were dark against a spendthrift splendour of
-daffodil and crimson. A great silvery evening star was watching over the bar. A
-brisk, dancing, new-sprung wind was blowing up from Rainbow Valley, resinous
-with the odours of fir and damp mosses. It crooned in the old spruces around
-the graveyard and ruffled Faith&rsquo;s splendid curls as she sat on Hezekiah
-Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone with her arms round Mary Vance and Una. Carl and
-Jerry were sitting opposite them on another tombstone and all were rather full
-of mischief after being cooped up all day.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The air just <i>shines</i> to-night, doesn&rsquo;t it? It&rsquo;s been washed
-so clean, you see,&rdquo; said Faith happily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary Vance eyed her gloomily. Knowing what she knew, or fancied she knew, Mary
-considered that Faith was far too light-hearted. Mary had something on her mind
-to say and she meant to say it before she went home. Mrs. Elliott had sent her
-up to the manse with some new-laid eggs, and had told her not to stay longer
-than half an hour. The half hour was nearly up, so Mary uncurled her cramped
-legs from under her and said abruptly,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Never mind about the air. Just you listen to me. You manse young ones
-have just got to behave yourselves better than you&rsquo;ve been doing this
-spring&mdash;that&rsquo;s all there is to it. I just come up to-night a-purpose
-to tell you so. The way people are talking about you is awful.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What have we been doing now?&rdquo; cried Faith in amazement, pulling
-her arm away from Mary. Una&rsquo;s lips trembled and her sensitive little soul
-shrank within her. Mary was always so brutally frank. Jerry began to whistle
-out of bravado. He meant to let Mary see he didn&rsquo;t care for <i>her</i> tirades.
-Their behaviour was no business of <i>hers</i> anyway. What right had <i>she</i> to lecture
-them on their conduct?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Doing now! You&rsquo;re doing <i>all</i> the time,&rdquo; retorted Mary.
-&ldquo;Just as soon as the talk about one of your didos fades away you do
-something else to start it up again. It seems to me you haven&rsquo;t any idea
-of how manse children ought to behave!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maybe <i>you</i> can tell us,&rdquo; said Jerry, killingly sarcastic.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Sarcasm was quite thrown away on Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>I</i> can tell you what will happen if you don&rsquo;t learn to
-behave yourselves. The session will ask your father to resign. There now,
-Master Jerry-know-it-all. Mrs. Alec Davis said so to Mrs. Elliott. I heard her.
-I always have my ears pricked up when Mrs. Alec Davis comes to tea. She said
-you were all going from bad to worse and that though it was only what was to be
-expected when you had nobody to bring you up, still the congregation
-couldn&rsquo;t be expected to put up with it much longer, and something would
-have to be done. The Methodists just laugh and laugh at you, and that hurts the
-Presbyterian feelings. <i>She</i> says you all need a good dose of birch tonic.
-Lor&rsquo;, if that would make folks good <i>I</i> oughter be a young saint.
-I&rsquo;m not telling you this because I want to hurt <i>your</i> feelings. I&rsquo;m
-sorry for you&rdquo;&mdash;Mary was past mistress of the gentle art of
-condescension. &ldquo;<i>I</i> understand that you haven&rsquo;t much chance,
-the way things are. But other people don&rsquo;t make as much allowance as
-<i>I</i> do. Miss Drew says Carl had a frog in his pocket in Sunday School last
-Sunday and it hopped out while she was hearing the lesson. She says she&rsquo;s
-going to give up the class. Why don&rsquo;t you keep your insecks home?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I popped it right back in again,&rdquo; said Carl. &ldquo;It
-didn&rsquo;t hurt anybody&mdash;a poor little frog! And I wish old Jane Drew
-<i>would</i> give up our class. I hate her. Her own nephew had a dirty plug of tobacco
-in his pocket and offered us fellows a chew when Elder Clow was praying. I
-guess that&rsquo;s worse than a frog.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, &lsquo;cause frogs are more unexpected-like. They make more of a
-sensation. &lsquo;Sides, he wasn&rsquo;t caught at it. And then that praying
-competition you had last week has made a fearful scandal. Everybody is talking
-about it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, the Blythes were in that as well as us,&rdquo; cried Faith,
-indignantly. &ldquo;It was Nan Blythe who suggested it in the first place. And
-Walter took the prize.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you get the credit of it any way. It wouldn&rsquo;t have been so
-bad if you hadn&rsquo;t had it in the graveyard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I should think a graveyard was a very good place to pray in,&rdquo;
-retorted Jerry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Deacon Hazard drove past when <i>you</i> were praying,&rdquo; said Mary,
-&ldquo;and he saw and heard you, with your hands folded over your stomach, and
-groaning after every sentence. He thought you were making fun of <i>him</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So I was,&rdquo; declared unabashed Jerry. &ldquo;Only I didn&rsquo;t
-know he was going by, of course. That was just a mean accident. <i>I</i>
-wasn&rsquo;t praying in real earnest&mdash;I knew I had no chance of winning
-the prize. So I was just getting what fun I could out of it. Walter Blythe can
-pray bully. Why, he can pray as well as dad.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Una is the only one of US who really likes praying,&rdquo; said Faith
-pensively.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, if praying scandalizes people so much we mustn&rsquo;t do it any
-more,&rdquo; sighed Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Shucks, you can pray all you want to, only not in the
-graveyard&mdash;and don&rsquo;t make a game of it. That was what made it so
-bad&mdash;that, and having a tea-party on the tombstones.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We hadn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, a soap-bubble party then. You had <i>something</i>. The over-harbour
-people swear you had a tea-party, but I&rsquo;m willing to take your word. And
-you used this tombstone as a table.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Martha wouldn&rsquo;t let us blow bubbles in the house. She was
-awful cross that day,&rdquo; explained Jerry. &ldquo;And this old slab made
-such a jolly table.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Weren&rsquo;t they pretty?&rdquo; cried Faith, her eyes sparkling over
-the remembrance. &ldquo;They reflected the trees and the hills and the harbour
-like little fairy worlds, and when we shook them loose they floated away down
-to Rainbow Valley.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All but one and it went over and bust up on the Methodist spire,&rdquo;
-said Carl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m glad we did it once, anyhow, before we found out it was
-wrong,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It wouldn&rsquo;t have been wrong to blow them on the lawn,&rdquo; said
-Mary impatiently. &ldquo;Seems like I can&rsquo;t knock any sense into your
-heads. You&rsquo;ve been told often enough you shouldn&rsquo;t play in the
-graveyard. The Methodists are sensitive about it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We forget,&rdquo; said Faith dolefully. &ldquo;And the lawn is so
-small&mdash;and so caterpillary&mdash;and so full of shrubs and things. We
-can&rsquo;t be in Rainbow Valley all the time&mdash;and where are we to
-go?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s the things you <i>do</i> in the graveyard. It wouldn&rsquo;t matter
-if you just sat here and talked quiet, same as we&rsquo;re doing now. Well, I
-don&rsquo;t know what is going to come of it all, but I <i>do</i> know that Elder
-Warren is going to speak to your pa about it. Deacon Hazard is his
-cousin.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish they wouldn&rsquo;t bother father about us,&rdquo; said Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, people think he ought to bother himself about you a little more.
-<i>I</i> don&rsquo;t&mdash;<i>I</i> understand him. He&rsquo;s a child in some
-ways himself&mdash;that&rsquo;s what he is, and needs some one to look after
-him as bad as you do. Well, perhaps he&rsquo;ll have some one before long, if
-all tales is true.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What do you mean?&rdquo; asked Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Haven&rsquo;t you got any idea&mdash;honest?&rdquo; demanded Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, no. What <i>do</i> you mean?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you are a lot of innocents, upon my word. Why, <i>every</i>body is
-talking of it. Your pa goes to see Rosemary West. <i>She</i> is going to be your
-step-ma.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe it,&rdquo; cried Una, flushing crimson.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, <i>I</i> dunno. I just go by what folks say. <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t
-give it for a fact. But it would be a good thing. Rosemary West&rsquo;d make
-you toe the mark if she came here, I&rsquo;ll bet a cent, for all she&rsquo;s
-so sweet and smiley on the face of her. They&rsquo;re always that way till
-they&rsquo;ve caught them. But you need some one to bring you up. You&rsquo;re
-disgracing your pa and I feel for him. I&rsquo;ve always thought an awful lot
-of your pa ever since that night he talked to me so nice. I&rsquo;ve never said
-a single swear word since, or told a lie. And I&rsquo;d like to see him happy
-and comfortable, with his buttons on and his meals decent, and you young ones
-licked into shape, and that old cat of a Martha put in <i>her</i> proper place. The
-way she looked at the eggs I brought her to-night. &lsquo;I hope they&rsquo;re
-fresh,&rsquo; says she. I just wished they <i>was</i> rotten. But you just mind that
-she gives you all one for breakfast, including your pa. Make a fuss if she
-doesn&rsquo;t. That was what they was sent up for&mdash;but I don&rsquo;t trust
-old Martha. She&rsquo;s quite capable of feeding &lsquo;em to her cat.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary&rsquo;s tongue being temporarily tired, a brief silence fell over the
-graveyard. The manse children did not feel like talking. They were digesting
-the new and not altogether palatable ideas Mary had suggested to them. Jerry
-and Carl were somewhat startled. But, after all, what did it matter? And it
-wasn&rsquo;t likely there was a word of truth in it. Faith, on the whole, was
-pleased. Only Una was seriously upset. She felt that she would like to get away
-and cry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will there be any stars in my crown?&rdquo; sang the Methodist choir,
-beginning to practise in the Methodist church.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>I</i> want just three,&rdquo; said Mary, whose theological knowledge
-had increased notably since her residence with Mrs. Elliott. &ldquo;Just
-three&mdash;setting up on my head, like a corownet, a big one in the middle and
-a small one each side.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Are there different sizes in souls?&rdquo; asked Carl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course. Why, little babies must have smaller ones than big men. Well,
-it&rsquo;s getting dark and I must scoot home. Mrs. Elliott doesn&rsquo;t like
-me to be out after dark. Laws, when I lived with Mrs. Wiley the dark was just
-the same as the daylight to me. I didn&rsquo;t mind it no more&rsquo;n a gray
-cat. Them days seem a hundred years ago. Now, you mind what I&rsquo;ve said and
-try to behave yourselves, for you pa&rsquo;s sake. <i>I&rsquo;ll</i> always back you
-up and defend you&mdash;you can be dead sure of that. Mrs. Elliott says she
-never saw the like of me for sticking up for my friends. I was real sassy to
-Mrs. Alec Davis about you and Mrs. Elliott combed me down for it afterwards.
-The fair Cornelia has a tongue of her own and no mistake. But she was pleased
-underneath for all, &lsquo;cause she hates old Kitty Alec and she&rsquo;s real
-fond of you. <i>I</i> can see through folks.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mary sailed off, excellently well pleased with herself, leaving a rather
-depressed little group behind her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mary Vance always says something that makes us feel bad when she comes
-up,&rdquo; said Una resentfully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish we&rsquo;d left her to starve in the old barn,&rdquo; said Jerry
-vindictively.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, that&rsquo;s wicked, Jerry,&rdquo; rebuked Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;May as well have the game as the name,&rdquo; retorted unrepentant
-Jerry. &ldquo;If people say we&rsquo;re so bad let&rsquo;s <i>be</i> bad.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But not if it hurts father,&rdquo; pleaded Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jerry squirmed uncomfortably. He adored his father. Through the unshaded study
-window they could see Mr. Meredith at his desk. He did not seem to be either
-reading or writing. His head was in his hands and there was something in his
-whole attitude that spoke of weariness and dejection. The children suddenly
-felt it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I dare say somebody&rsquo;s been worrying him about us to-day,&rdquo;
-said Faith. &ldquo;I wish we <i>could</i> get along without making people talk.
-Oh&mdash;Jem Blythe! How you scared me!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jem Blythe had slipped into the graveyard and sat down beside the girls. He had
-been prowling about Rainbow Valley and had succeeded in finding the first
-little star-white cluster of arbutus for his mother. The manse children were
-rather silent after his coming. Jem was beginning to grow away from them
-somewhat this spring. He was studying for the entrance examination of
-Queen&rsquo;s Academy and stayed after school with the older pupils for extra
-lessons. Also, his evenings were so full of work that he seldom joined the
-others in Rainbow Valley now. He seemed to be drifting away into grown-up land.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is the matter with you all to-night?&rdquo; he asked.
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s no fun in you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not much,&rdquo; agreed Faith dolefully. &ldquo;There wouldn&rsquo;t be
-much fun in you either if <i>you</i> knew you were disgracing your father and making
-people talk about you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who&rsquo;s been talking about you now?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Everybody&mdash;so Mary Vance says.&rdquo; And Faith poured out her
-troubles to sympathetic Jem. &ldquo;You see,&rdquo; she concluded dolefully,
-&ldquo;we&rsquo;ve nobody to bring us up. And so we get into scrapes and people
-think we&rsquo;re bad.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why don&rsquo;t you bring yourselves up?&rdquo; suggested Jem.
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll tell you what to do. Form a Good-Conduct Club and punish
-yourselves every time you do anything that&rsquo;s not right.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s a good idea,&rdquo; said Faith, struck by it.
-&ldquo;But,&rdquo; she added doubtfully, &ldquo;things that don&rsquo;t seem a
-bit of harm to US seem simply dreadful to other people. How can we tell? We
-can&rsquo;t be bothering father all the time&mdash;and he has to be away a lot,
-anyhow.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You could mostly tell if you stopped to think a thing over before doing
-it and ask yourselves what the congregation would say about it,&rdquo; said
-Jem. &ldquo;The trouble is you just rush into things and don&rsquo;t think them
-over at all. Mother says you&rsquo;re all too impulsive, just as she used to
-be. The Good-Conduct Club would help you to think, if you were fair and honest
-about punishing yourselves when you broke the rules. You&rsquo;d have to punish
-in some way that really <i>hurt</i>, or it wouldn&rsquo;t do any good.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Whip each other?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not exactly. You&rsquo;d have to think up different ways of punishment
-to suit the person. You wouldn&rsquo;t punish each other&mdash;you&rsquo;d
-punish <i>yourselves</i>. I read all about such a club in a story-book. You try it and
-see how it works.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let&rsquo;s,&rdquo; said Faith; and when Jem was gone they agreed they
-would. &ldquo;If things aren&rsquo;t right we&rsquo;ve just got to make them
-right,&rdquo; said Faith, resolutely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ve got to be fair and square, as Jem says,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-&ldquo;This is a club to bring ourselves up, seeing there&rsquo;s nobody else
-to do it. There&rsquo;s no use in having many rules. Let&rsquo;s just have one
-and any of us that breaks it has got to be punished hard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But <i>how</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll think that up as we go along. We&rsquo;ll hold a session of
-the club here in the graveyard every night and talk over what we&rsquo;ve done
-through the day, and if we think we&rsquo;ve done anything that isn&rsquo;t
-right or that would disgrace dad the one that does it, or is responsible for
-it, must be punished. That&rsquo;s the rule. We&rsquo;ll all decide on the kind
-of punishment&mdash;it must be made to fit the crime, as Mr. Flagg says. And
-the one that&rsquo;s, guilty will be bound to carry it out and no shirking.
-There&rsquo;s going to be fun in this,&rdquo; concluded Jerry, with a relish.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You suggested the soap-bubble party,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But that was before we&rsquo;d formed the club,&rdquo; said Jerry
-hastily. &ldquo;Everything starts from to-night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But what if we can&rsquo;t agree on what&rsquo;s right, or what the
-punishment ought to be? S&rsquo;pose two of us thought of one thing and two
-another. There ought to be five in a club like this.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We can ask Jem Blythe to be umpire. He is the squarest boy in Glen St.
-Mary. But I guess we can settle our own affairs mostly. We want to keep this as
-much of a secret as we can. Don&rsquo;t breathe a word to Mary Vance.
-She&rsquo;d want to join and do the bringing up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>I</i> think,&rdquo; said Faith, &ldquo;that there&rsquo;s no use in
-spoiling every day by dragging punishments in. Let&rsquo;s have a punishment
-day.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;d better choose Saturday because there is no school to
-interfere,&rdquo; suggested Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And spoil the one holiday in the week,&rdquo; cried Faith. &ldquo;Not
-much! No, let&rsquo;s take Friday. That&rsquo;s fish day, anyhow, and we all
-hate fish. We may as well have all the disagreeable things in one day. Then
-other days we can go ahead and have a good time.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense,&rdquo; said Jerry authoritatively. &ldquo;Such a scheme
-wouldn&rsquo;t work at all. We&rsquo;ll just punish ourselves as we go along
-and keep a clear slate. Now, we all understand, don&rsquo;t we? This is a
-Good-Conduct Club, for the purpose of bringing ourselves up. We agree to punish
-ourselves for bad conduct, and always to stop before we do anything, no matter
-what, and ask ourselves if it is likely to hurt dad in any way, and any one who
-shirks is to be cast out of the club and never allowed to play with the rest of
-us in Rainbow Valley again. Jem Blythe to be umpire in case of disputes. No
-more taking bugs to Sunday School, Carl, and no more chewing gum in public, if
-you please, Miss Faith.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No more making fun of elders praying or going to the Methodist prayer
-meeting,&rdquo; retorted Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, it isn&rsquo;t any harm to go to the Methodist prayer
-meeting,&rdquo; protested Jerry in amazement.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mrs. Elliott says it is, She says manse children have no business to go
-anywhere but to Presbyterian things.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Darn it, I won&rsquo;t give up going to the Methodist prayer
-meeting,&rdquo; cried Jerry. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s ten times more fun than ours
-is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You said a naughty word,&rdquo; cried Faith. &ldquo;<i>Now</i>, you&rsquo;ve
-got to punish yourself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not till it&rsquo;s all down in black and white. We&rsquo;re only
-talking the club over. It isn&rsquo;t really formed until we&rsquo;ve written
-it out and signed it. There&rsquo;s got to be a constitution and by-laws. And
-you <i>know</i> there&rsquo;s nothing wrong in going to a prayer meeting.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But it&rsquo;s not only the wrong things we&rsquo;re to punish ourselves
-for, but anything that might hurt father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It won&rsquo;t hurt anybody. You know Mrs. Elliott is cracked on the
-subject of Methodists. Nobody else makes any fuss about my going. I always
-behave myself. You ask Jem or Mrs. Blythe and see what they say. I&rsquo;ll
-abide by their opinion. I&rsquo;m going for the paper now and I&rsquo;ll bring
-out the lantern and we&rsquo;ll all sign.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Fifteen minutes later the document was solemnly signed on Hezekiah
-Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone, on the centre of which stood the smoky manse
-lantern, while the children knelt around it. Mrs. Elder Clow was going past at
-the moment and next day all the Glen heard that the manse children had been
-having another praying competition and had wound it up by chasing each other
-all over the graves with a lantern. This piece of embroidery was probably
-suggested by the fact that, after the signing and sealing was completed, Carl
-had taken the lantern and had walked circumspectly to the little hollow to
-examine his ant-hill. The others had gone quietly into the manse and to bed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you think it is true that father is going to marry Miss West?&rdquo;
-Una had tremulously asked of Faith, after their prayers had been said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know, but I&rsquo;d like it,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I wouldn&rsquo;t,&rdquo; said Una, chokingly. &ldquo;She is nice the
-way she is. But Mary Vance says it changes people <i>altogether</i> to be made
-stepmothers. They get horrid cross and mean and hateful then, and turn your
-father against you. She says they&rsquo;re sure to do that. She never knew it
-to fail in a single case.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe Miss West would <i>ever</i> try to do that,&rdquo; cried
-Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mary says <i>anybody</i> would. She knows <i>all</i> about stepmothers,
-Faith&mdash;she says she&rsquo;s seen hundreds of them&mdash;and you&rsquo;ve
-never seen one. Oh, Mary has told me blood-curdling things about them. She says
-she knew of one who whipped her husband&rsquo;s little girls on their bare
-shoulders till they bled, and then shut them up in a cold, dark coal cellar all
-night. She says they&rsquo;re <i>all</i> aching to do things like that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe Miss West would. You don&rsquo;t know her as well
-as I do, Una. Just think of that sweet little bird she sent me. I love it far
-more even than Adam.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s just being a stepmother changes them. Mary says they
-can&rsquo;t help it. I wouldn&rsquo;t mind the whippings so much as having
-father hate us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You know nothing could make father hate us. Don&rsquo;t be silly, Una. I
-dare say there&rsquo;s nothing to worry over. Likely if we run our club right
-and bring ourselves up properly father won&rsquo;t think of marrying any one.
-And if he does, I <i>know</i> Miss West will be lovely to us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Una had no such conviction and she cried herself to sleep.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap24"></a>CHAPTER XXIV.<br />
-A CHARITABLE IMPULSE</h2>
-
-<p>
-For a fortnight things ran smoothly in the Good-Conduct Club. It seemed to work
-admirably. Not once was Jem Blythe called in as umpire. Not once did any of the
-manse children set the Glen gossips by the ears. As for their minor
-peccadilloes at home, they kept sharp tabs on each other and gamely underwent
-their self-imposed punishment&mdash;generally a voluntary absence from some gay
-Friday night frolic in Rainbow Valley, or a sojourn in bed on some spring
-evening when all young bones ached to be out and away. Faith, for whispering in
-Sunday School, condemned herself to pass a whole day without speaking a single
-word, unless it was absolutely necessary, and accomplished it. It was rather
-unfortunate that Mr. Baker from over-harbour should have chosen that evening
-for calling at the manse, and that Faith should have happened to go to the
-door. Not one word did she reply to his genial greeting, but went silently away
-to call her father briefly. Mr. Baker was slightly offended and told his wife
-when he went home that that the biggest Meredith girl seemed a very shy, sulky
-little thing, without manners enough to speak when she was spoken to. But
-nothing worse came of it, and generally their penances did no harm to
-themselves or anybody else. All of them were beginning to feel quite cocksure
-that after all, it was a very easy matter to bring yourself up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I guess people will soon see that we can behave ourselves properly as
-well as anybody,&rdquo; said Faith jubilantly. &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t hard when
-we put our minds to it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She and Una were sitting on the Pollock tombstone. It had been a cold, raw, wet
-day of spring storm and Rainbow Valley was out of the question for girls,
-though the manse and the Ingleside boys were down there fishing. The rain had
-held up, but the east wind blew mercilessly in from the sea, cutting to bone
-and marrow. Spring was late in spite of its early promise, and there was even
-yet a hard drift of old snow and ice in the northern corner of the graveyard.
-Lida Marsh, who had come up to bring the manse a mess of herring, slipped in
-through the gate shivering. She belonged to the fishing village at the harbour
-mouth and her father had, for thirty years, made a practice of sending a mess
-from his first spring catch to the manse. He never darkened a church door; he
-was a hard drinker and a reckless man, but as long as he sent those herring up
-to the manse every spring, as his father had done before him, he felt
-comfortably sure that his account with the Powers That Govern was squared for
-the year. He would not have expected a good mackerel catch if he had not so
-sent the first fruits of the season.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Lida was a mite of ten and looked younger, because she was such a small,
-wizened little creature. To-night, as she sidled boldly enough up to the manse
-girls, she looked as if she had never been warm since she was born. Her face
-was purple and her pale-blue, bold little eyes were red and watery. She wore a
-tattered print dress and a ragged woollen comforter, tied across her thin
-shoulders and under her arms. She had walked the three miles from the harbour
-mouth barefooted, over a road where there was still snow and slush and mud. Her
-feet and legs were as purple as her face. But Lida did not mind this much. She
-was used to being cold, and she had been going barefooted for a month already,
-like all the other swarming young fry of the fishing village. There was no
-self-pity in her heart as she sat down on the tombstone and grinned cheerfully
-at Faith and Una. Faith and Una grinned cheerfully back. They knew Lida
-slightly, having met her once or twice the preceding summer when they had gone
-down the harbour with the Blythes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hello!&rdquo; said Lida, &ldquo;ain&rsquo;t this a fierce kind of a
-night? &lsquo;T&rsquo;ain&rsquo;t fit for a dog to be out, is it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then why are you out?&rdquo; asked Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pa made me bring you up some herring,&rdquo; returned Lida. She
-shivered, coughed, and stuck out her bare feet. Lida was not thinking about
-herself or her feet, and was making no bid for sympathy. She held her feet out
-instinctively to keep them from the wet grass around the tombstone. But Faith
-and Una were instantly swamped with a wave of pity for her. She looked so
-cold&mdash;so miserable.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, why are you barefooted on such a cold night?&rdquo; cried Faith.
-&ldquo;Your feet must be almost frozen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pretty near,&rdquo; said Lida proudly. &ldquo;I tell you it was fierce
-walking up that harbour road.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why didn&rsquo;t you put on your shoes and stockings?&rdquo; asked Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hain&rsquo;t none to put on. All I had was wore out by the time winter
-was over,&rdquo; said Lida indifferently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-For a moment Faith stated in horror. This was terrible. Here was a little girl,
-almost a neighbour, half frozen because she had no shoes or stockings in this
-cruel spring weather. Impulsive Faith thought of nothing but the dreadfulness
-of it. In a moment she was pulling off her own shoes and stockings.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Here, take these and put them right on,&rdquo; she said, forcing them
-into the hands of the astonished Lida. &ldquo;Quick now. You&rsquo;ll catch
-your death of cold. I&rsquo;ve got others. Put them right on.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Lida, recovering her wits, snatched at the offered gift, with a sparkle in her
-dull eyes. Sure she would put them on, and that mighty quick, before any one
-appeared with authority to recall them. In a minute she had pulled the
-stockings over her scrawny little legs and slipped Faith&rsquo;s shoes over her
-thick little ankles.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m obliged to you,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;but won&rsquo;t your
-folks be cross?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;and I don&rsquo;t care if they are,&rdquo; said Faith.
-&ldquo;Do you think I could see any one freezing to death without helping them
-if I could? It wouldn&rsquo;t be right, especially when my father&rsquo;s a
-minister.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will you want them back? It&rsquo;s awful cold down at the harbour
-mouth&mdash;long after it&rsquo;s warm up here,&rdquo; said Lida slyly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, you&rsquo;re to keep them, of course. That is what I meant when I
-gave them. I have another pair of shoes and plenty of stockings.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Lida had meant to stay awhile and talk to the girls about many things. But now
-she thought she had better get away before somebody came and made her yield up
-her booty. So she shuffled off through the bitter twilight, in the noiseless,
-shadowy way she had slipped in. As soon as she was out of sight of the manse
-she sat down, took off the shoes and stockings, and put them in her herring
-basket. She had no intention of keeping them on down that dirty harbour road.
-They were to be kept good for gala occasions. Not another little girl down at
-the harbour mouth had such fine black cashmere stockings and such smart, almost
-new shoes. Lida was furnished forth for the summer. She had no qualms in the
-matter. In her eyes the manse people were quite fabulously rich, and no doubt
-those girls had slathers of shoes and stockings. Then Lida ran down to the Glen
-village and played for an hour with the boys before Mr. Flagg&rsquo;s store,
-splashing about in a pool of slush with the maddest of them, until Mrs. Elliott
-came along and bade her begone home.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t think, Faith, that you should have done that,&rdquo; said
-Una, a little reproachfully, after Lida had gone. &ldquo;You&rsquo;ll have to
-wear your good boots every day now and they&rsquo;ll soon scuff out.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t care,&rdquo; cried Faith, still in the fine glow of having
-done a kindness to a fellow creature. &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t fair that I should
-have two pairs of shoes and poor little Lida Marsh not have any. <i>Now</i> we both
-have a pair. You know perfectly well, Una, that father said in his sermon last
-Sunday that there was no real happiness in getting or having&mdash;only in
-giving. And it&rsquo;s true. I feel <i>far</i> happier now than I ever did in my whole
-life before. Just think of Lida walking home this very minute with her poor
-little feet all nice and warm and comfy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You know you haven&rsquo;t another pair of black cashmere
-stockings,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;Your other pair were so full of holes that
-Aunt Martha said she couldn&rsquo;t darn them any more and she cut the legs up
-for stove dusters. You&rsquo;ve nothing but those two pairs of striped
-stockings you hate so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-All the glow and uplift went out of Faith. Her gladness collapsed like a
-pricked balloon. She sat for a few dismal minutes in silence, facing the
-consequences of her rash act.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Una, I never thought of that,&rdquo; she said dolefully. &ldquo;I
-didn&rsquo;t stop to think at all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The striped stockings were thick, heavy, coarse, ribbed stockings of blue and
-red which Aunt Martha had knit for Faith in the winter. They were undoubtedly
-hideous. Faith loathed them as she had never loathed anything before. Wear them
-she certainly would not. They were still unworn in her bureau drawer.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;ll have to wear the striped stockings after this,&rdquo; said
-Una. &ldquo;Just think how the boys in school will laugh at you. You know how
-they laugh at Mamie Warren for her striped stockings and call her barber pole
-and yours are far worse.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t wear them,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll go
-barefooted first, cold as it is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can&rsquo;t go barefooted to church to-morrow. Think what people
-would say.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then I&rsquo;ll stay home.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can&rsquo;t. You know very well Aunt Martha will make you go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith did know this. The one thing on which Aunt Martha troubled herself to
-insist was that they must all go to church, rain or shine. How they were
-dressed, or if they were dressed at all, never concerned her. But go they must.
-That was how Aunt Martha had been brought up seventy years ago, and that was
-how she meant to bring them up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Haven&rsquo;t you got a pair you can lend me, Una?&rdquo; said poor
-Faith piteously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una shook her head. &ldquo;No, you know I only have the one black pair. And
-they&rsquo;re so tight I can hardly get them on. They wouldn&rsquo;t go on you.
-Neither would my gray ones. Besides, the legs of <i>them</i> are all darned <i>and</i>
-darned.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t wear those striped stockings,&rdquo; said Faith
-stubbornly. &ldquo;The feel of them is even worse than the looks. They make me
-feel as if my legs were as big as barrels and they&rsquo;re so <i>scratchy</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I don&rsquo;t know what you&rsquo;re going to do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If father was home I&rsquo;d go and ask him to get me a new pair before
-the store closes. But he won&rsquo;t be home till too late. I&rsquo;ll ask him
-Monday&mdash;and I won&rsquo;t go to church tomorrow. I&rsquo;ll pretend
-I&rsquo;m sick and Aunt Martha&rsquo;ll <i>have</i> to let me stay home.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That would be acting a lie, Faith,&rdquo; cried Una. &ldquo;You
-<i>can&rsquo;t</i> do that. You know it would be dreadful. What would father say if he
-knew? Don&rsquo;t you remember how he talked to us after mother died and told
-us we must always be <i>true</i>, no matter what else we failed in. He said we must
-never tell or act a lie&mdash;he said he&rsquo;d <i>trust</i> us not to. You
-<i>can&rsquo;t</i> do it, Faith. Just wear the striped stockings. It&rsquo;ll only be
-for once. Nobody will notice them in church. It isn&rsquo;t like school. And
-your new brown dress is so long they won&rsquo;t show much. Wasn&rsquo;t it
-lucky Aunt Martha made it big, so you&rsquo;d have room to grow in it, for all
-you hated it so when she finished it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t wear those stockings,&rdquo; repeated Faith. She uncoiled
-her bare, white legs from the tombstone and deliberately walked through the
-wet, cold grass to the bank of snow. Setting her teeth, she stepped upon it and
-stood there.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What are you doing?&rdquo; cried Una aghast. &ldquo;You&rsquo;ll catch
-your death of cold, Faith Meredith.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m trying to,&rdquo; answered Faith. &ldquo;I hope I&rsquo;ll
-catch a fearful cold and be <i>awful</i> sick to-morrow. Then I won&rsquo;t be acting
-a lie. I&rsquo;m going to stand here as long as I can bear it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But, Faith, you might really die. You might get pneumonia. Please, Faith
-don&rsquo;t. Let&rsquo;s go into the house and get <i>something</i> for your feet. Oh,
-here&rsquo;s Jerry. I&rsquo;m so thankful. Jerry, <i>make</i> Faith get off that snow.
-Look at her feet.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Holy cats! Faith, what <i>are</i> you doing?&rdquo; demanded Jerry. &ldquo;Are
-you crazy?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. Go away!&rdquo; snapped Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then are you punishing yourself for something? It isn&rsquo;t right, if
-you are. You&rsquo;ll be sick.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I want to be sick. I&rsquo;m not punishing myself. Go away.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where&rsquo;s her shoes and stockings?&rdquo; asked Jerry of Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She gave them to Lida Marsh.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Lida Marsh? What for?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because Lida had none&mdash;and her feet were so cold. And now she wants
-to be sick so that she won&rsquo;t have to go to church to-morrow and wear her
-striped stockings. But, Jerry, she may die.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Faith,&rdquo; said Jerry, &ldquo;get off that ice-bank or I&rsquo;ll
-pull you off.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pull away,&rdquo; dared Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jerry sprang at her and caught her arms. He pulled one way and Faith pulled
-another. Una ran behind Faith and pushed. Faith stormed at Jerry to leave her
-alone. Jerry stormed back at her not to be a dizzy idiot; and Una cried. They
-made no end of noise and they were close to the road fence of the graveyard.
-Henry Warren and his wife drove by and heard and saw them. Very soon the Glen
-heard that the manse children had been having an awful fight in the graveyard
-and using most improper language. Meanwhile, Faith had allowed herself to be
-pulled off the ice because her feet were aching so sharply that she was ready
-to get off any way. They all went in amiably and went to bed. Faith slept like
-a cherub and woke in the morning without a trace of a cold. She felt that she
-couldn&rsquo;t feign sickness and act a lie, after remembering that long-ago
-talk with her father. But she was still as fully determined as ever that she
-would not wear those abominable stockings to church.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap25"></a>CHAPTER XXV.<br />
-ANOTHER SCANDAL AND ANOTHER &ldquo;EXPLANATION&rdquo;</h2>
-
-<p>
-Faith went early to Sunday School and was seated in the corner of her class pew
-before any one came. Therefore, the dreadful truth did not burst upon any one
-until Faith left the class pew near the door to walk up to the manse pew after
-Sunday School. The church was already half filled and all who were sitting near
-the aisle saw that the minister&rsquo;s daughter had boots on but no stockings!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith&rsquo;s new brown dress, which Aunt Martha had made from an ancient
-pattern, was absurdly long for her, but even so it did not meet her boot-tops.
-Two good inches of bare white leg showed plainly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith and Carl sat alone in the manse pew. Jerry had gone into the gallery to
-sit with a chum and the Blythe girls had taken Una with them. The Meredith
-children were given to &ldquo;sitting all over the church&rdquo; in this
-fashion and a great many people thought it very improper. The gallery
-especially, where irresponsible lads congregated and were known to whisper and
-suspected of chewing tobacco during service, was no place, for a son of the
-manse. But Jerry hated the manse pew at the very top of the church, under the
-eyes of Elder Clow and his family. He escaped from it whenever he could.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl, absorbed in watching a spider spinning its web at the window, did not
-notice Faith&rsquo;s legs. She walked home with her father after church and he
-never noticed them. She got on the hated striped stockings before Jerry and Una
-arrived, so that for the time being none of the occupants of the manse knew
-what she had done. But nobody else in Glen St. Mary was ignorant of it. The few
-who had not seen soon heard. Nothing else was talked of on the way home from
-church. Mrs. Alec Davis said it was only what she expected, and the next thing
-you would see some of those young ones coming to church with no clothes on at
-all. The president of the Ladies&rsquo; Aid decided that she would bring the
-matter up at the next Aid meeting, and suggest that they wait in a body on the
-minister and protest. Miss Cornelia said that she, for her part, gave up. There
-was no use worrying over the manse fry any longer. Even Mrs. Dr. Blythe felt a
-little shocked, though she attributed the occurrence solely to Faith&rsquo;s
-forgetfulness. Susan could not immediately begin knitting stockings for Faith
-because it was Sunday, but she had one set up before any one else was out of
-bed at Ingleside the next morning.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You need not tell me anything but that it was old Martha&rsquo;s fault,
-Mrs. Dr. dear.&rdquo; she told Anne. &ldquo;I suppose that poor little child
-had no decent stockings to wear. I suppose every stocking she had was in holes,
-as you know very well they generally are. And <i>I</i> think, Mrs. Dr. dear,
-that the Ladies&rsquo; Aid would be better employed in knitting some for them
-than in fighting over the new carpet for the pulpit platform. <i>I</i> am not a
-Ladies&rsquo; Aider, but I shall knit Faith two pairs of stockings, out of this
-nice black yarn, as fast as my fingers can move and that you may tie to. Never
-shall I forget my sensations, Mrs. Dr. dear, when I saw a minister&rsquo;s
-child walking up the aisle of our church with no stockings on. I really did not
-know what way to look.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And the church was just full of Methodists yesterday, too,&rdquo;
-groaned Miss Cornelia, who had come up to the Glen to do some shopping and run
-into Ingleside to talk the affair over. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know how it is,
-but just as sure as those manse children do something especially awful the
-church is sure to be crowded with Methodists. I thought Mrs. Deacon
-Hazard&rsquo;s eyes would drop out of her head. When she came out of church she
-said, &lsquo;Well, that exhibition was no more than decent. I do pity the
-Presbyterians.&rsquo; And we just had to <i>take</i> it. There was nothing one could
-say.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There was something <i>I</i> could have said, Mrs. Dr. dear, if I had
-heard her,&rdquo; said Susan grimly. &ldquo;I would have said, for one thing,
-that in my opinion clean bare legs were quite as decent as holes. And I would
-have said, for another, that the Presbyterians did not feel greatly in need of
-pity seeing that they had a minister who could <i>preach</i> and the Methodists had
-<i>not</i>. I could have squelched Mrs. Deacon Hazard, Mrs. Dr dear, and that you may
-tie to.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish Mr. Meredith didn&rsquo;t preach quite so well and looked after
-his family a little better,&rdquo; retorted Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;He could at
-least glance over his children before they went to church and see that they
-were quite properly clothed. I&rsquo;m tired making excuses for him, believe
-<i>me</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Meanwhile, Faith&rsquo;s soul was being harrowed up in Rainbow Valley. Mary
-Vance was there and, as usual, in a lecturing mood. She gave Faith to
-understand that she had disgraced herself and her father beyond redemption and
-that she, Mary Vance, was done with her. &ldquo;Everybody&rdquo; was talking,
-and &ldquo;everybody&rdquo; said the same thing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I simply feel that I can&rsquo;t associate with you any longer,&rdquo;
-she concluded.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>We</i> are going to associate with her then,&rdquo; cried Nan Blythe. Nan
-secretly thought Faith <i>had</i> done a awful thing, but she wasn&rsquo;t going to
-let Mary Vance run matters in this high-handed fashion. &ldquo;And if <i>you</i> are
-not you needn&rsquo;t come any more to Rainbow Valley, <i>Miss</i> Vance.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Nan and Di both put their arms around Faith and glared defiance at Mary. The
-latter suddenly crumpled up, sat down on a stump and began to cry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It ain&rsquo;t that I don&rsquo;t want to,&rdquo; she wailed. &ldquo;But
-if I keep in with Faith people&rsquo;ll be saying I put her up to doing things.
-Some are saying it now, true&rsquo;s you live. I can&rsquo;t afford to have
-such things said of me, now that I&rsquo;m in a respectable place and trying to
-be a lady. And <i>I</i> never went bare-legged in church in my toughest days.
-I&rsquo;d never have thought of doing such a thing. But that hateful old Kitty
-Alec says Faith has never been the same girl since that time I stayed in the
-manse. She says Cornelia Elliott will live to rue the day she took me in. It
-hurts my feelings, I tell you. But it&rsquo;s Mr. Meredith I&rsquo;m really
-worried over.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think you needn&rsquo;t worry about him,&rdquo; said Di scornfully.
-&ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t likely necessary. Now, Faith darling, stop crying and
-tell us why you did it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith explained tearfully. The Blythe girls sympathized with her, and even Mary
-Vance agreed that it was a hard position to be in. But Jerry, on whom the thing
-came like a thunderbolt, refused to be placated. So <i>this</i> was what some
-mysterious hints he had got in school that day meant! He marched Faith and Una
-home without ceremony, and the Good-Conduct Club held an immediate session in
-the graveyard to sit in judgment on Faith&rsquo;s case.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t see that it was any harm,&rdquo; said Faith defiantly.
-&ldquo;Not <i>much</i> of my legs showed. It wasn&rsquo;t <i>wrong</i> and it didn&rsquo;t
-hurt anybody.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It will hurt Dad. You <i>know</i> it will. You know people blame him whenever
-we do anything queer.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t think of that,&rdquo; muttered Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s just the trouble. You didn&rsquo;t think and you <i>should</i>
-have thought. That&rsquo;s what our Club is for&mdash;to bring us up and <i>make</i>
-us think. We promised we&rsquo;d always stop and think before doing things. You
-didn&rsquo;t and you&rsquo;ve got to be punished, Faith&mdash;and real hard,
-too. You&rsquo;ll wear those striped stockings to school for a week for
-punishment.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Jerry, won&rsquo;t a day do&mdash;two days? Not a whole week!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, a whole week,&rdquo; said inexorable Jerry. &ldquo;It is
-fair&mdash;ask Jem Blythe if it isn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith felt she would rather submit then ask Jem Blythe about such a matter. She
-was beginning to realize that her offence was a quite shameful one.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll do it, then,&rdquo; she muttered, a little sulkily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;re getting off easy,&rdquo; said, Jerry severely. &ldquo;And
-no matter how we punish you it won&rsquo;t help father. People will always
-think you just did it for mischief, and they&rsquo;ll blame father for not
-stopping it. We can never explain it to everybody.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This aspect of the case weighed on Faith&rsquo;s mind. Her own condemnation she
-could bear, but it tortured her that her father should be blamed. If people
-knew the true facts of the case they would not blame him. But how could she
-make them known to all the world? Getting up in church, as she had once done,
-and explaining the matter was out of the question. Faith had heard from Mary
-Vance how the congregation had looked upon that performance and realized that
-she must not repeat it. Faith worried over the problem for half a week. Then
-she had an inspiration and promptly acted upon it. She spent that evening in
-the garret, with a lamp and an exercise book, writing busily, with flushed
-cheeks and shining eyes. It was the very thing! How clever she was to have
-thought of it! It would put everything right and explain everything and yet
-cause no scandal. It was eleven o&rsquo;clock when she had finished to her
-satisfaction and crept down to bed, dreadfully tired, but perfectly happy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In a few days the little weekly published in the Glen under the name of <i>The
-Journal</i> came out as usual, and the Glen had another sensation. A letter
-signed &ldquo;Faith Meredith&rdquo; occupied a prominent place on the front
-page and ran as follows:&mdash;
-</p>
-
-<p class="letter">
-&ldquo;T<small>O WHOM IT MAY CONCERN</small>:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I want to explain to everybody how it was I came to go to church without
-stockings on, so that everybody will know that father was not to blame one bit
-for it, and the old gossips need not say he is, because it is not true. I gave
-my only pair of black stockings to Lida Marsh, because she hadn&rsquo;t any and
-her poor little feet were awful cold and I was so sorry for her. No child ought
-to have to go without shoes and stockings in a Christian community before the
-snow is all gone, and I think the W. F. M. S. ought to have given her
-stockings. Of course, I know they are sending things to the little heathen
-children, and that is all right and a kind thing to do. But the little heathen
-children have lots more warm weather than we have, and I think the women of our
-church ought to look after Lida and not leave it all to me. When I gave her my
-stockings I forgot they were the only black pair I had without holes, but I am
-glad I did give them to her, because my conscience would have been
-uncomfortable if I hadn&rsquo;t. When she had gone away, looking so proud and
-happy, the poor little thing, I remembered that all I had to wear were the
-horrid red and blue things Aunt Martha knit last winter for me out of some yarn
-that Mrs. Joseph Burr of Upper Glen sent us. It was dreadfully coarse yarn and
-all knots, and I never saw any of Mrs. Burr&rsquo;s own children wearing things
-made of such yarn. But Mary Vance says Mrs. Burr gives the minister stuff that
-she can&rsquo;t use or eat herself, and thinks it ought to go as part of the
-salary her husband signed to pay, but never does.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I just couldn&rsquo;t bear to wear those hateful stockings. They were so
-ugly and rough and felt so scratchy. Everybody would have made fun of me. I
-thought at first I&rsquo;d pretend to be sick and not go to church next day,
-but I decided I couldn&rsquo;t do that, because it would be acting a lie, and
-father told us after mother died that was something we must never, never do. It
-is just as bad to act a lie as to tell one, though I know some people, right
-here in the Glen, who act them, and never seem to feel a bit bad about it. I
-will not mention any names, but I know who they are and so does father.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then I tried my best to catch cold and really be sick by standing on the
-snowbank in the Methodist graveyard with my bare feet until Jerry pulled me
-off. But it didn&rsquo;t hurt me a bit and so I couldn&rsquo;t get out of going
-to church. So I just decided I would put my boots on and go that way. I
-can&rsquo;t see why it was so wrong and I was so careful to wash my legs just
-as clean as my face, but, anyway, father wasn&rsquo;t to blame for it. He was
-in the study thinking of his sermon and other heavenly things, and I kept out
-of his way before I went to Sunday School. Father does not look at
-people&rsquo;s legs in church, so of course he did not notice mine, but all the
-gossips did and talked about it, and that is why I am writing this letter to
-the <i>Journal</i> to explain. I suppose I did very wrong, since everybody says
-so, and I am sorry and I am wearing those awful stockings to punish myself,
-although father bought me two nice new black pairs as soon as Mr. Flagg&rsquo;s
-store opened on Monday morning. But it was all my fault, and if people blame
-father for it after they read this they are not Christians and so I do not mind
-what they say.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is another thing I want to explain about before I stop. Mary Vance
-told me that Mr. Evan Boyd is blaming the Lew Baxters for stealing potatoes out
-of his field last fall. They did not touch his potatoes. They are very poor,
-but they are honest. It was us did it&mdash;Jerry and Carl and I. Una was not
-with us at the time. We never thought it was stealing. We just wanted a few
-potatoes to cook over a fire in Rainbow Valley one evening to eat with our
-fried trout. Mr. Boyd&rsquo;s field was the nearest, just between the valley
-and the village, so we climbed over his fence and pulled up some stalks. The
-potatoes were awful small, because Mr. Boyd did not put enough fertilizer on
-them and we had to pull up a lot of stalks before we got enough, and then they
-were not much bigger than marbles. Walter and Di Blythe helped us eat them, but
-they did not come along until we had them cooked and did not know where we got
-them, so they were not to blame at all, only us. We didn&rsquo;t mean any harm,
-but if it was stealing we are very sorry and we will pay Mr. Boyd for them if
-he will wait until we grow up. We never have any money now because we are not
-big enough to earn any, and Aunt Martha says it takes every cent of poor
-father&rsquo;s salary, even when it is paid up regularly&mdash;and it
-isn&rsquo;t often&mdash;to run this house. But Mr. Boyd must not blame the Lew
-Baxters any more, when they were quite innocent, and give them a bad name.
-</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&ldquo;Yours respectfully,<br />
-&ldquo;F<small>AITH</small> M<small>EREDITH</small>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap26"></a>CHAPTER XXVI.<br />
-MISS CORNELIA GETS A NEW POINT OF VIEW</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Susan, after I&rsquo;m dead I&rsquo;m going to come back to earth every
-time when the daffodils blow in this garden,&rdquo; said Anne rapturously.
-&ldquo;Nobody may see me, but I&rsquo;ll be here. If anybody is in the garden
-at the time&mdash;I <i>think</i> I&rsquo;ll come on an evening just like this, but it
-<i>might</i> be just at dawn&mdash;a lovely, pale-pinky spring
-dawn&mdash;they&rsquo;ll just see the daffodils nodding wildly as if an extra
-gust of wind had blown past them, but it will be <i>I</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Indeed, Mrs. Dr. dear, you will not be thinking of flaunting worldly
-things like daffies after you are dead,&rdquo; said Susan. &ldquo;And I do <i>not</i>
-believe in ghosts, seen or unseen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Susan, I shall not be a ghost! That has such a horrible sound. I
-shall just be <i>me</i>. And I shall run around in the twilight, whether it is morn or
-eve, and see all the spots I love. Do you remember how badly I felt when I left
-our little House of Dreams, Susan? I thought I could never love Ingleside so
-well. But I do. I love every inch of the ground and every stick and stone on
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am rather fond of the place myself,&rdquo; said Susan, who would have
-died if she had been removed from it, &ldquo;but we must not set our affections
-too much on earthly things, Mrs. Dr. dear. There are such things as fires and
-earthquakes. We should always be prepared. The Tom MacAllisters over-harbour
-were burned out three nights ago. Some say Tom MacAllister set the house on
-fire himself to get the insurance. That may or may not be. But I advise the
-doctor to have our chimneys seen to at once. An ounce of prevention is worth a
-pound of cure. But I see Mrs. Marshall Elliott coming in at the gate, looking
-as if she had been sent for and couldn&rsquo;t go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Anne dearie, have you seen the <i>Journal</i> to-day?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s voice was trembling, partly from emotion, partly from the
-fact that she had hurried up from the store too fast and lost her breath.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Anne bent over the daffodils to hide a smile. She and Gilbert had laughed
-heartily and heartlessly over the front page of the <i>Journal</i> that day,
-but she knew that to dear Miss Cornelia it was almost a tragedy, and she must
-not wound her feelings by any display of levity.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Isn&rsquo;t it dreadful? What <i>is</i> to be done?&rdquo; asked Miss Cornelia
-despairingly. Miss Cornelia had vowed that she was done with worrying over the
-pranks of the manse children, but she went on worrying just the same.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Anne led the way to the veranda, where Susan was knitting, with Shirley and
-Rilla conning their primers on either side. Susan was already on her second
-pair of stockings for Faith. Susan never worried over poor humanity. She did
-what in her lay for its betterment and serenely left the rest to the Higher
-Powers.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Cornelia Elliott thinks she was born to run this world, Mrs. Dr.
-dear,&rdquo; she had once said to Anne, &ldquo;and so she is always in a stew
-over something. I have never thought <i>I</i> was, and so I go calmly along.
-Not but what it has sometimes occurred to me that things might be run a little
-better than they are. But it is not for us poor worms to nourish such thoughts.
-They only make us uncomfortable and do not get us anywhere.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t see that anything can be done&mdash;now&mdash;&rdquo; said
-Anne, pulling out a nice, cushiony chair for Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;But how in
-the world did Mr. Vickers allow that letter to be printed? Surely he should
-have known better.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, he&rsquo;s away, Anne dearie&mdash;he&rsquo;s been away to New
-Brunswick for a week. And that young scalawag of a Joe Vickers is editing the
-<i>Journal</i> in his absence. Of course, Mr. Vickers would never have put it
-in, even if he is a Methodist, but Joe would just think it a good joke. As you
-say, I don&rsquo;t suppose there is anything to be done now, only live it down.
-But if I ever get Joe Vickers cornered somewhere I&rsquo;ll give him a talking
-to he won&rsquo;t forget in a hurry. I wanted Marshall to stop our subscription
-to the <i>Journal</i> instantly, but he only laughed and said that
-to-day&rsquo;s issue was the only one that had had anything readable in it for
-a year. Marshall never will take anything seriously&mdash;just like a man.
-Fortunately, Evan Boyd is like that, too. He takes it as a joke and is laughing
-all over the place about it. And he&rsquo;s another Methodist! As for Mrs. Burr
-of Upper Glen, of course she will be furious and they will leave the church.
-Not that it will be a great loss from any point of view. The Methodists are
-quite welcome to <i>them</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It serves Mrs. Burr right,&rdquo; said Susan, who had an old feud with
-the lady in question and had been hugely tickled over the reference to her in
-Faith&rsquo;s letter. &ldquo;She will find that she will not be able to cheat
-the Methodist parson out of <i>his</i> salary with bad yarn.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The worst of it is, there&rsquo;s not much hope of things getting any
-better,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia gloomily. &ldquo;As long as Mr. Meredith was
-going to see Rosemary West I did hope the manse would soon have a proper
-mistress. But that is all off. I suppose she wouldn&rsquo;t have him on account
-of the children&mdash;at least, everybody seems to think so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do not believe that he ever asked her,&rdquo; said Susan, who could
-not conceive of any one refusing a minister.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, nobody knows anything about <i>that</i>. But one thing is certain, he
-doesn&rsquo;t go there any longer. And Rosemary didn&rsquo;t look well all the
-spring. I hope her visit to Kingsport will do her good. She&rsquo;s been gone
-for a month and will stay another month, I understand. I can&rsquo;t remember
-when Rosemary was away from home before. She and Ellen could never bear to be
-parted. But I understand Ellen insisted on her going this time. And meanwhile
-Ellen and Norman Douglas are warming up the old soup.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is that really so?&rdquo; asked Anne, laughing. &ldquo;I heard a rumour
-of it, but I hardly believed it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Believe it! You may believe it all right, Anne, dearie. Nobody is in
-ignorance of it. Norman Douglas never left anybody in doubt as to his
-intentions in regard to anything. He always did his courting before the public.
-He told Marshall that he hadn&rsquo;t thought about Ellen for years, but the
-first time he went to church last fall he saw her and fell in love with her all
-over again. He said he&rsquo;d clean forgot how handsome she was. He
-hadn&rsquo;t seen her for twenty years, if you can believe it. Of course he
-never went to church, and Ellen never went anywhere else round here. Oh, we all
-know what Norman means, but what Ellen means is a different matter. I
-shan&rsquo;t take it upon me to predict whether it will be a match or
-not.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He jilted her once&mdash;but it seems that does not count with some
-people, Mrs. Dr. dear,&rdquo; Susan remarked rather acidly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He jilted her in a fit of temper and repented it all his life,&rdquo;
-said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;That is different from a cold-blooded jilting. For
-my part, I never detested Norman as some folks do. He could never over-crow <i>me</i>.
-I <i>do</i> wonder what started him coming to church. I have never been able to
-believe Mrs. Wilsons&rsquo;s story that Faith Meredith went there and bullied
-him into it. I&rsquo;ve always intended to ask Faith herself, but I&rsquo;ve
-never happened to think of it just when I saw her. What influence could <i>she</i>
-have over Norman Douglas? He was in the store when I left, bellowing with
-laughter over that scandalous letter. You could have heard him at Four Winds
-Point. &lsquo;The greatest girl in the world,&rsquo; he was shouting.
-&lsquo;She&rsquo;s that full of spunk she&rsquo;s bursting with it. And all the
-old grannies want to tame her, darn them. But they&rsquo;ll never be able to do
-it&mdash;never! They might as well try to drown a fish. Boyd, see that you put
-more fertilizer on your potatoes next year. Ho, ho, ho!&rsquo; And then he
-laughed till the roof shook.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mr. Douglas pays well to the salary, at least,&rdquo; remarked Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Norman isn&rsquo;t mean in some ways. He&rsquo;d give a thousand
-without blinking a lash, and roar like a Bull of Bashan if he had to pay five
-cents too much for anything. Besides, he likes Mr. Meredith&rsquo;s sermons,
-and Norman Douglas was always willing to shell out if he got his brains tickled
-up. There is no more Christianity about him than there is about a black, naked
-heathen in Africa and never will be. But he&rsquo;s clever and well read and he
-judges sermons as he would lectures. Anyhow, it&rsquo;s well he backs up Mr.
-Meredith and the children as he does, for they&rsquo;ll need friends more than
-ever after this. I am tired of making excuses for them, believe <i>me</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you know, dear Miss Cornelia,&rdquo; said Anne seriously, &ldquo;I
-think we have all been making too many excuses. It is very foolish and we ought
-to stop it. I am going to tell you what I&rsquo;d <i>like</i> to do. I shan&rsquo;t do
-it, of course&rdquo;&mdash;Anne had noted a glint of alarm in Susan&rsquo;s
-eye&mdash;&ldquo;it would be too unconventional, and we must be conventional or
-die, after we reach what is supposed to be a dignified age. But I&rsquo;d <i>like</i>
-to do it. I&rsquo;d like to call a meeting of the Ladies Aid and W.M.S. and the
-Girls Sewing Society, and include in the audience all and any Methodists who
-have been criticizing the Merediths&mdash;although I do think if we
-Presbyterians stopped criticizing and excusing we would find that other
-denominations would trouble themselves very little about our manse folks. I
-would say to them, &lsquo;Dear Christian friends&rsquo;&mdash;with marked
-emphasis on &lsquo;Christian&rsquo;&mdash;I have something to say to you and I
-want to say it good and hard, that you may take it home and repeat it to your
-families. You Methodists need not pity us, and we Presbyterians need not pity
-ourselves. We are not going to do it any more. And we are going to say, boldly
-and truthfully, to all critics and sympathizers, &lsquo;We are <i>proud</i> of our
-minister and his family. Mr. Meredith is the best preacher Glen St. Mary church
-ever had. Moreover, he is a sincere, earnest teacher of truth and Christian
-charity. He is a faithful friend, a judicious pastor in all essentials, and a
-refined, scholarly, well-bred man. His family are worthy of him. Gerald
-Meredith is the cleverest pupil in the Glen school, and Mr. Hazard says that he
-is destined to a brilliant career. He is a manly, honourable, truthful little
-fellow. Faith Meredith is a beauty, and as inspiring and original as she is
-beautiful. There is nothing commonplace about her. All the other girls in the
-Glen put together haven&rsquo;t the vim, and wit, and joyousness and
-&lsquo;spunk&rsquo; she has. She has not an enemy in the world. Every one who
-knows her loves her. Of how many, children or grown-ups, can that be said? Una
-Meredith is sweetness personified. She will make a most lovable woman. Carl
-Meredith, with his love for ants and frogs and spiders, will some day be a
-naturalist whom all Canada&mdash;nay, all the world, will delight to honour. Do
-you know of any other family in the Glen, or out of it, of whom all these
-things can be said? Away with shamefaced excuses and apologies. We <i>rejoice</i> in
-our minister and his splendid boys and girls!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Anne stopped, partly because she was out of breath after her vehement speech
-and partly because she could not trust herself to speak further in view of Miss
-Cornelia&rsquo;s face. That good lady was staring helplessly at Anne,
-apparently engulfed in billows of new ideas. But she came up with a gasp and
-struck out for shore gallantly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Anne Blythe, I wish you <i>would</i> call that meeting and say just that!
-You&rsquo;ve made me ashamed of myself, for one, and far be it from me to
-refuse to admit it. <i>Of course</i>, that is how we should have
-talked&mdash;especially to the Methodists. And it&rsquo;s every word of it
-true&mdash;every word. We&rsquo;ve just been shutting our eyes to the big
-worth-while things and squinting them on the little things that don&rsquo;t
-really matter a pin&rsquo;s worth. Oh, Anne dearie, I can see a thing when
-it&rsquo;s hammered into my head. No more apologizing for Cornelia Marshall!
-<i>I</i> shall hold <i>my</i> head up after this, believe <i>me</i>&mdash;though I <i>may</i> talk
-things over with you as usual just to relieve my feelings if the Merediths do
-any more startling stunts. Even that letter I felt so bad about&mdash;why,
-it&rsquo;s only a good joke after all, as Norman says. Not many girls would
-have been cute enough to think of writing it&mdash;and all punctuated so nicely
-and not one word misspelled. Just let me hear any Methodist say one word about
-it&mdash;though all the same I&rsquo;ll never forgive Joe Vickers&mdash;believe
-<i>me!</i> Where are the rest of your small fry to-night?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Walter and the twins are in Rainbow Valley. Jem is studying in the
-garret.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They are all crazy about Rainbow Valley. Mary Vance thinks it&rsquo;s
-the only place in the world. She&rsquo;d be off up here every evening if
-I&rsquo;d let her. But I don&rsquo;t encourage her in gadding. Besides, I miss
-the creature when she isn&rsquo;t around, Anne dearie. I never thought
-I&rsquo;d get so fond of her. Not but what I see her faults and try to correct
-them. But she has never said one saucy word to me since she came to my house
-and she is a <i>great</i> help&mdash;for when all is said and done, Anne dearie, I am
-not so young as I once was, and there is no sense denying it. I was fifty-nine
-my last birthday. I don&rsquo;t <i>feel</i> it, but there is no gainsaying the Family
-Bible.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap27"></a>CHAPTER XXVII.<br />
-A SACRED CONCERT</h2>
-
-<p>
-In spite of Miss Cornelia&rsquo;s new point of view she could not help feeling
-a little disturbed over the next performance of the manse children. In public
-she carried off the situation splendidly, saying to all the gossips the
-substance of what Anne had said in daffodil time, and saying it so pointedly
-and forcibly that her hearers found themselves feeling rather foolish and began
-to think that, after all, they were making too much of a childish prank. But in
-private Miss Cornelia allowed herself the relief of bemoaning it to Anne.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Anne dearie, they had a <i>concert in the graveyard</i> last Thursday evening,
-while the Methodist prayer meeting was going on. There they sat, on Hezekiah
-Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone, and sang for a solid hour. Of course, I understand
-it was mostly hymns they sang, and it wouldn&rsquo;t have been quite so bad if
-they&rsquo;d done nothing else. But I&rsquo;m told they finished up with
-<i>Polly Wolly Doodle</i> at full length&mdash;and that just when Deacon Baxter
-was praying.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I was there that night,&rdquo; said Susan, &ldquo;and, although I did
-not say anything about it to you, Mrs. Dr. dear, I could not help thinking that
-it was a great pity they picked that particular evening. It was truly
-blood-curdling to hear them sitting there in that abode of the dead, shouting
-that frivolous song at the tops of their lungs.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know what <i>you</i> were doing in a Methodist prayer
-meeting,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia acidly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have never found that Methodism was catching,&rdquo; retorted Susan
-stiffly. &ldquo;And, as I was going to say when I was interrupted, badly as I
-felt, I did <i>not</i> give in to the Methodists. When Mrs. Deacon Baxter said, as we
-came out, &lsquo;What a disgraceful exhibition!&rsquo; <i>I</i> said, looking
-her fairly in the eye, &lsquo;They are all beautiful singers, and none of <i>your</i>
-choir, Mrs. Baxter, ever bother themselves coming out to your prayer meeting,
-it seems. Their voices appear to be in tune only on Sundays!&rsquo; She was
-quite meek and I felt that I had snubbed her properly. But I could have done it
-much more thoroughly, Mrs. Dr. dear, if only they had left out <i>Polly Wolly
-Doodle</i>. It is truly terrible to think of that being sung in a
-graveyard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Some of those dead folks sang <i>Polly Wolly Doodle</i> when they were
-living, Susan. Perhaps they like to hear it yet,&rdquo; suggested Gilbert.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia looked at him reproachfully and made up her mind that, on some
-future occasion, she would hint to Anne that the doctor should be admonished
-not to say such things. They might injure his practice. People might get it
-into their heads that he wasn&rsquo;t orthodox. To be sure, Marshall said even
-worse things habitually, but then <i>he</i> was not a public man.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I understand that their father was in his study all the time, with his
-windows open, but never noticed them at all. Of course, he was lost in a book
-as usual. But I spoke to him about it yesterday, when he called.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How could you dare, Mrs. Marshall Elliott?&rdquo; asked Susan
-rebukingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dare! It&rsquo;s time somebody dared something. Why, they say he knows
-nothing about that letter of Faith&rsquo;s to the <i>journal</i> because nobody liked
-to mention it to him. He never looks at a <i>journal</i> of course. But I thought he
-ought to know of this to prevent any such performances in future. He said he
-would &lsquo;discuss it with them.&rsquo; But of course he&rsquo;d never think
-of it again after he got out of our gate. That man has no sense of humour,
-Anne, believe <i>me</i>. He preached last Sunday on &lsquo;How to Bring up
-Children.&rsquo; A beautiful sermon it was, too&mdash;and everybody in church
-thinking &lsquo;what a pity you can&rsquo;t practise what you
-preach.&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Cornelia did Mr. Meredith an injustice in thinking he would soon forget
-what she had told him. He went home much disturbed and when the children came
-from Rainbow Valley that night, at a much later hour than they should have been
-prowling in it, he called them into his study.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They went in, somewhat awed. It was such an unusual thing for their father to
-do. What could he be going to say to them? They racked their memories for any
-recent transgression of sufficient importance, but could not recall any. Carl
-had spilled a saucerful of jam on Mrs. Peter Flagg&rsquo;s silk dress two
-evenings before, when, at Aunt Martha&rsquo;s invitation, she had stayed to
-supper. But Mr. Meredith had not noticed it, and Mrs. Flagg, who was a kindly
-soul, had made no fuss. Besides, Carl had been punished by having to wear
-Una&rsquo;s dress all the rest of the evening.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una suddenly thought that perhaps her father meant to tell them that he was
-going to marry Miss West. Her heart began to beat violently and her legs
-trembled. Then she saw that Mr. Meredith looked very stern and sorrowful. No,
-it could not be that.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Children,&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith, &ldquo;I have heard something that
-has pained me very much. Is it true that you sat out in the graveyard all last
-Thursday evening and sang ribald songs while a prayer meeting was being held in
-the Methodist church?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Great Caesar, Dad, we forgot all about it being their prayer meeting
-night,&rdquo; exclaimed Jerry in dismay.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then it is true&mdash;you did do this thing?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Dad, I don&rsquo;t know what you mean by ribald songs. We sang
-hymns&mdash;it was a sacred concert, you know. What harm was that? I tell you
-we never thought about it&rsquo;s being Methodist prayer meeting night. They
-used to have their meeting Tuesday nights and since they&rsquo;ve changed to
-Thursdays it&rsquo;s hard to remember.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Did you sing nothing but hymns?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why,&rdquo; said Jerry, turning red, &ldquo;we <i>did</i> sing <i>Polly Wolly
-Doodle</i> at the last. Faith said, &lsquo;Let&rsquo;s have something cheerful
-to wind up with.&rsquo; But we didn&rsquo;t mean any harm, Father&mdash;truly
-we didn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The concert was my idea, Father,&rdquo; said Faith, afraid that Mr.
-Meredith might blame Jerry too much. &ldquo;You know the Methodists themselves
-had a sacred concert in their church three Sunday nights ago. I thought it
-would be good fun to get one up in imitation of it. Only they had prayers at
-theirs, and we left that part out, because we heard that people thought it
-awful for us to pray in a graveyard. <i>You</i> were sitting in here all the
-time,&rdquo; she added, &ldquo;and never said a word to us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I did not notice what you were doing. That is no excuse for me, of
-course. I am more to blame than you&mdash;I realize that. But why did you sing
-that foolish song at the end?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We didn&rsquo;t think,&rdquo; muttered Jerry, feeling that it was a very
-lame excuse, seeing that he had lectured Faith so strongly in the Good-Conduct
-Club sessions for her lack of thought. &ldquo;We&rsquo;re sorry,
-Father&mdash;truly, we are. Pitch into us hard&mdash;we deserve a regular
-combing down.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Mr. Meredith did no combing down or pitching into. He sat down and gathered
-his small culprits close to him and talked a little to them, tenderly and
-wisely. They were overcome with remorse and shame, and felt that they could
-never be so silly and thoughtless again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ve just got to punish ourselves good and hard for this,&rdquo;
-whispered Jerry as they crept upstairs. &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll have a session of
-the Club first thing tomorrow and decide how we&rsquo;ll do it. I never saw
-father so cut up. But I wish to goodness the Methodists would stick to one
-night for their prayer meeting and not wander all over the week.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Anyhow, I&rsquo;m glad it wasn&rsquo;t what I was afraid it was,&rdquo;
-murmured Una to herself.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Behind them, in the study, Mr. Meredith had sat down at his desk and buried his
-face in his arms.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;God help me!&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m a poor sort of father. Oh,
-Rosemary! If you had only cared!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap28"></a>CHAPTER XXVIII.<br />
-A FAST DAY</h2>
-
-<p>
-The Good-Conduct Club had a special session the next morning before school.
-After various suggestions, it was decided that a fast day would be an
-appropriate punishment.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We won&rsquo;t eat a single thing for a whole day,&rdquo; said Jerry.
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m kind of curious to see what fasting is like, anyhow. This will
-be a good chance to find out.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What day will we choose for it?&rdquo; asked Una, who thought it would
-be quite an easy punishment and rather wondered that Jerry and Faith had not
-devised something harder.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let&rsquo;s pick Monday,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;We mostly have a
-pretty <i>filling</i> dinner on Sundays, and Mondays meals never amount to much
-anyhow.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But that&rsquo;s just the point,&rdquo; exclaimed Jerry. &ldquo;We
-mustn&rsquo;t take the easiest day to fast, but the hardest&mdash;and
-that&rsquo;s Sunday, because, as you say, we mostly have roast beef that day
-instead of cold ditto. It wouldn&rsquo;t be much punishment to fast from ditto.
-Let&rsquo;s take next Sunday. It will be a good day, for father is going to
-exchange for the morning service with the Upper Lowbridge minister. Father will
-be away till evening. If Aunt Martha wonders what&rsquo;s got into us,
-we&rsquo;ll tell her right up that we&rsquo;re fasting for the good of our
-souls, and it is in the Bible and she is not to interfere, and I guess she
-won&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Aunt Martha did not. She merely said in her fretful mumbling way, &ldquo;What
-foolishness are you young rips up to now?&rdquo; and thought no more about it.
-Mr. Meredith had gone away early in the morning before any one was up. He went
-without his breakfast, too, but that was, of course, of common occurrence. Half
-of the time he forgot it and there was no one to remind him of it.
-Breakfast&mdash;Aunt Martha&rsquo;s breakfast&mdash;was not a hard meal to
-miss. Even the hungry &ldquo;young rips&rdquo; did not feel it any great
-deprivation to abstain from the &ldquo;lumpy porridge and blue milk&rdquo;
-which had aroused the scorn of Mary Vance. But it was different at dinner time.
-They were furiously hungry then, and the odor of roast beef which pervaded the
-manse, and which was wholly delightful in spite of the fact that the roast beef
-was badly underdone, was almost more than they could stand. In desperation they
-rushed to the graveyard where they couldn&rsquo;t smell it. But Una could not
-keep her eyes from the dining room window, through which the Upper Lowbridge
-minister could be seen, placidly eating.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If I could only have just a weeny, teeny piece,&rdquo; she sighed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now, you stop that,&rdquo; commanded Jerry. &ldquo;Of course it&rsquo;s
-hard&mdash;but that&rsquo;s the punishment of it. I could eat a graven image
-this very minute, but am I complaining? Let&rsquo;s think of something else.
-We&rsquo;ve just got to rise above our stomachs.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At supper time they did not feel the pangs of hunger which they had suffered
-earlier in the day.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose we&rsquo;re getting used to it,&rdquo; said Faith. &ldquo;I
-feel an awfully queer all-gone sort of feeling, but I can&rsquo;t say I&rsquo;m
-hungry.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My head is funny,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;It goes round and round
-sometimes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But she went gamely to church with the others. If Mr. Meredith had not been so
-wholly wrapped up in and carried away with his subject he might have noticed
-the pale little face and hollow eyes in the manse pew beneath. But he noticed
-nothing and his sermon was something longer than usual. Then, just before he
-gave out the final hymn, Una Meredith tumbled off the seat of the manse pew and
-lay in a dead faint on the floor.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. Elder Clow was the first to reach her. She caught the thin little body
-from the arms of white-faced, terrified Faith and carried it into the vestry.
-Mr. Meredith forgot the hymn and everything else and rushed madly after her.
-The congregation dismissed itself as best it could.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mrs. Clow,&rdquo; gasped Faith, &ldquo;is Una dead? Have we killed
-her?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is the matter with my child?&rdquo; demanded the pale father.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She has just fainted, I think,&rdquo; said Mrs. Clow. &ldquo;Oh,
-here&rsquo;s the doctor, thank goodness.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Gilbert did not find it a very easy thing to bring Una back to consciousness.
-He worked over her for a long time before her eyes opened. Then he carried her
-over to the manse, followed by Faith, sobbing hysterically in her relief.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She is just hungry, you know&mdash;she didn&rsquo;t eat a thing
-to-day&mdash;none of us did&mdash;we were all fasting.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Fasting!&rdquo; said Mr. Meredith, and &ldquo;Fasting?&rdquo; said the
-doctor.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes&mdash;to punish ourselves for singing <i>Polly Wolly</i> in the
-graveyard,&rdquo; said Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My child, I don&rsquo;t want you to punish yourselves for that,&rdquo;
-said Mr. Meredith in distress. &ldquo;I gave you your little scolding&mdash;and
-you were all penitent&mdash;and I forgave you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, but we had to be punished,&rdquo; explained Faith.
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s our rule&mdash;in our Good-Conduct Club, you know&mdash;if we
-do anything wrong, or anything that is likely to hurt father in the
-congregation, we <i>have</i> to punish ourselves. We are bringing ourselves up, you
-know, because there is nobody to do it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith groaned, but the doctor got up from Una&rsquo;s side with an air
-of relief.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then this child simply fainted from lack of food and all she needs is a
-good square meal,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Mrs. Clow, will you be kind enough to
-see she gets it? And I think from Faith&rsquo;s story that they all would be
-the better for something to eat, or we shall have more faintings.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose we shouldn&rsquo;t have made Una fast,&rdquo; said Faith
-remorsefully. &ldquo;When I think of it, only Jerry and I should have been
-punished. <i>We</i> got up the concert and we were the oldest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I sang <i>Polly Wolly</i> just the same as the rest of you,&rdquo; said
-Una&rsquo;s weak little voice, &ldquo;so I had to be punished, too.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mrs. Clow came with a glass of milk, Faith and Jerry and Carl sneaked off to
-the pantry, and John Meredith went into his study, where he sat in the darkness
-for a long time, alone with his bitter thoughts. So his children were bringing
-themselves up because there was &ldquo;nobody to do it&rdquo;&mdash;struggling
-along amid their little perplexities without a hand to guide or a voice to
-counsel. Faith&rsquo;s innocently uttered phrase rankled in her father&rsquo;s
-mind like a barbed shaft. There was &ldquo;nobody&rdquo; to look after
-them&mdash;to comfort their little souls and care for their little bodies. How
-frail Una had looked, lying there on the vestry sofa in that long faint! How
-thin were her tiny hands, how pallid her little face! She looked as if she
-might slip away from him in a breath&mdash;sweet little Una, of whom Cecilia
-had begged him to take such special care. Since his wife&rsquo;s death he had
-not felt such an agony of dread as when he had hung over his little girl in her
-unconsciousness. He must do something&mdash;but what? Should he ask Elizabeth
-Kirk to marry him? She was a good woman&mdash;she would be kind to his
-children. He might bring himself to do it if it were not for his love for
-Rosemary West. But until he had crushed that out he could not seek another
-woman in marriage. And he could not crush it out&mdash;he had tried and he
-could not. Rosemary had been in church that evening, for the first time since
-her return from Kingsport. He had caught a glimpse of her face in the back of
-the crowded church, just as he had finished his sermon. His heart had given a
-fierce throb. He sat while the choir sang the &ldquo;collection piece,&rdquo;
-with his bent head and tingling pulses. He had not seen her since the evening
-upon which he had asked her to marry him. When he had risen to give out the
-hymn his hands were trembling and his pale face was flushed. Then Una&rsquo;s
-fainting spell had banished everything from his mind for a time. Now, in the
-darkness and solitude of the study it rushed back. Rosemary was the only woman
-in the world for him. It was of no use for him to think of marrying any other.
-He could not commit such a sacrilege even for his children&rsquo;s sake. He
-must take up his burden alone&mdash;he must try to be a better, a more watchful
-father&mdash;he must tell his children not to be afraid to come to him with all
-their little problems. Then he lighted his lamp and took up a bulky new book
-which was setting the theological world by the ears. He would read just one
-chapter to compose his mind. Five minutes later he was lost to the world and
-the troubles of the world.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap29"></a>CHAPTER XXIX.<br />
-A WEIRD TALE</h2>
-
-<p>
-On an early June evening Rainbow Valley was an entirely delightful place and
-the children felt it to be so, as they sat in the open glade where the bells
-rang elfishly on the Tree Lovers, and the White Lady shook her green tresses.
-The wind was laughing and whistling about them like a leal, glad-hearted
-comrade. The young ferns were spicy in the hollow. The wild cherry trees
-scattered over the valley, among the dark firs, were mistily white. The robins
-were whistling over in the maples behind Ingleside. Beyond, on the slopes of
-the Glen, were blossoming orchards, sweet and mystic and wonderful, veiled in
-dusk. It was spring, and young things <i>must</i> be glad in spring. Everybody was
-glad in Rainbow Valley that evening&mdash;until Mary Vance froze their blood
-with the story of Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jem was not there. Jem spent his evenings now studying for his entrance
-examination in the Ingleside garret. Jerry was down near the pond, trouting.
-Walter had been reading Longfellow&rsquo;s sea poems to the others and they
-were steeped in the beauty and mystery of the ships. Then they talked of what
-they would do when they were grown up&mdash;where they would travel&mdash;the
-far, fair shores they would see. Nan and Di meant to go to Europe. Walter
-longed for the Nile moaning past its Egyptian sands, and a glimpse of the
-sphinx. Faith opined rather dismally that she supposed she would have to be a
-missionary&mdash;old Mrs. Taylor told her she ought to be&mdash;and then she
-would at least see India or China, those mysterious lands of the Orient.
-Carl&rsquo;s heart was set on African jungles. Una said nothing. She thought
-she would just like to stay at home. It was prettier here than anywhere else.
-It would be dreadful when they were all grown up and had to scatter over the
-world. The very idea made Una feel lonesome and homesick. But the others
-dreamed on delightedly until Mary Vance arrived and vanished poesy and dreams
-at one fell swoop.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Laws, but I&rsquo;m out of puff,&rdquo; she exclaimed. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve
-run down that hill like sixty. I got an awful scare up there at the old Bailey
-place.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What frightened you?&rdquo; asked Di.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I dunno. I was poking about under them lilacs in the old garden, trying
-to see if there was any lilies-of-the-valley out yet. It was dark as a pocket
-there&mdash;and all at once I seen something stirring and rustling round at the
-other side of the garden, in those cherry bushes. It was <i>white</i>. I tell you I
-didn&rsquo;t stop for a second look. I flew over the dyke quicker than quick. I
-was sure it was Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who was Henry Warren?&rdquo; asked Di.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And why should he have a ghost?&rdquo; asked Nan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Laws, did you never hear the story? And you brought up in the Glen.
-Well, wait a minute till I get by breath all back and I&rsquo;ll tell
-you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Walter shivered delightsomely. He loved ghost stories. Their mystery, their
-dramatic climaxes, their eeriness gave him a fearful, exquisite pleasure.
-Longfellow instantly grew tame and commonplace. He threw the book aside and
-stretched himself out, propped upon his elbows to listen whole-heartedly,
-fixing his great luminous eyes on Mary&rsquo;s face. Mary wished he
-wouldn&rsquo;t look at her so. She felt she could make a better job of the
-ghost story if Walter were not looking at her. She could put on several frills
-and invent a few artistic details to enhance the horror. As it was, she had to
-stick to the bare truth&mdash;or what had been told her for the truth.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well,&rdquo; she began, &ldquo;you know old Tom Bailey and his wife used
-to live in that house up there thirty years ago. He was an awful old rip, they
-say, and his wife wasn&rsquo;t much better. They&rsquo;d no children of their
-own, but a sister of old Tom&rsquo;s died and left a little boy&mdash;this
-Henry Warren&mdash;and they took him. He was about twelve when he came to them,
-and kind of undersized and delicate. They say Tom and his wife used him awful
-from the start&mdash;whipped him and starved him. Folks said they wanted him to
-die so&rsquo;s they could get the little bit of money his mother had left for
-him. Henry didn&rsquo;t die right off, but he begun having fits&mdash;epileps,
-they called &lsquo;em&mdash;and he grew up kind of simple, till he was about
-eighteen. His uncle used to thrash him in that garden up there &lsquo;cause it
-was back of the house where no one could see him. But folks could hear, and
-they say it was awful sometimes hearing poor Henry plead with his uncle not to
-kill him. But nobody dared interfere &lsquo;cause old Tom was such a reprobate
-he&rsquo;d have been sure to get square with &lsquo;em some way. He burned the
-barns of a man at Harbour Head who offended him. At last Henry died and his
-uncle and aunt give out he died in one of his fits and that was all anybody
-ever knowed, but everybody said Tom had just up and killed him for keeps at
-last. And it wasn&rsquo;t long till it got around that Henry <i>walked</i>. That old
-garden was <i>ha&rsquo;nted</i>. He was heard there at nights, moaning and crying. Old
-Tom and his wife got out&mdash;went out West and never came back. The place got
-such a bad name nobody&rsquo;d buy or rent it. That&rsquo;s why it&rsquo;s all
-gone to ruin. That was thirty years ago, but Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost
-ha&rsquo;nts it yet.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you believe that?&rdquo; asked Nan scornfully. &ldquo;<i>I</i>
-don&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, <i>good</i> people have seen him&mdash;and heard him.&rdquo; retorted
-Mary. &ldquo;They say he appears and grovels on the ground and holds you by the
-legs and gibbers and moans like he did when he was alive. I thought of that as
-soon as I seen that white thing in the bushes and thought if it caught me like
-that and moaned I&rsquo;d drop down dead on the spot. So I cut and run. It
-<i>mightn&rsquo;t</i> have been his ghost, but I wasn&rsquo;t going to take any
-chances with a ha&rsquo;nt.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It was likely old Mrs. Stimson&rsquo;s white calf,&rdquo; laughed Di.
-&ldquo;It pastures in that garden&mdash;I&rsquo;ve seen it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Maybe so. But <i>I&rsquo;m</i> not going home through the Bailey garden any
-more. Here&rsquo;s Jerry with a big string of trout and it&rsquo;s my turn to
-cook them. Jem and Jerry both say I&rsquo;m the best cook in the Glen. And
-Cornelia told me I could bring up this batch of cookies. I all but dropped them
-when I saw Henry&rsquo;s ghost.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jerry hooted when he heard the ghost story&mdash;which Mary repeated as she
-fried the fish, touching it up a trifle or so, since Walter had gone to help
-Faith to set the table. It made no impression on Jerry, but Faith and Una and
-Carl had been secretly much frightened, though they would never have given in
-to it. It was all right as long as the others were with them in the valley: but
-when the feast was over and the shadows fell they quaked with remembrance.
-Jerry went up to Ingleside with the Blythes to see Jem about something, and
-Mary Vance went around that way home. So Faith and Una and Carl had to go back
-to the manse alone. They walked very close together and gave the old Bailey
-garden a wide berth. They did not believe that it was haunted, of course, but
-they would not go near it for all that.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap30"></a>CHAPTER XXX.<br />
-THE GHOST ON THE DYKE</h2>
-
-<p>
-Somehow, Faith and Carl and Una could not shake off the hold which the story of
-Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost had taken upon their imaginations. They had never
-believed in ghosts. Ghost tales they had heard a-plenty&mdash;Mary Vance had
-told some far more blood-curdling than this; but those tales were all of places
-and people and spooks far away and unknown. After the first half-awful,
-half-pleasant thrill of awe and terror they thought of them no more. But this
-story came home to them. The old Bailey garden was almost at their very
-door&mdash;almost in their beloved Rainbow Valley. They had passed and repassed
-it constantly; they had hunted for flowers in it; they had made short cuts
-through it when they wished to go straight from the village to the valley. But
-never again! After the night when Mary Vance told them its gruesome tale they
-would not have gone through or near it on pain of death. Death! What was death
-compared to the unearthly possibility of falling into the clutches of Henry
-Warren&rsquo;s grovelling ghost?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-One warm July evening the three of them were sitting under the Tree Lovers,
-feeling a little lonely. Nobody else had come near the valley that evening. Jem
-Blythe was away in Charlottetown, writing on his entrance examinations. Jerry
-and Walter Blythe were off for a sail on the harbour with old Captain Crawford.
-Nan and Di and Rilla and Shirley had gone down the harbour road to visit
-Kenneth and Persis Ford, who had come with their parents for a flying visit to
-the little old House of Dreams. Nan had asked Faith to go with them, but Faith
-had declined. She would never have admitted it, but she felt a little secret
-jealousy of Persis Ford, concerning whose wonderful beauty and city glamour she
-had heard a great deal. No, she wasn&rsquo;t going to go down there and play
-second fiddle to anybody. She and Una took their story books to Rainbow Valley
-and read, while Carl investigated bugs along the banks of the brook, and all
-three were happy until they suddenly realized that it was twilight and that the
-old Bailey garden was uncomfortably near by. Carl came and sat down close to
-the girls. They all wished they had gone home a little sooner, but nobody said
-anything.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Great, velvety, purple clouds heaped up in the west and spread over the valley.
-There was no wind and everything was suddenly, strangely, dreadfully still. The
-marsh was full of thousands of fire-flies. Surely some fairy parliament was
-being convened that night. Altogether, Rainbow Valley was not a canny place
-just then.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith looked fearfully up the valley to the old Bailey garden. Then, if
-anybody&rsquo;s blood ever did freeze, Faith Meredith&rsquo;s certainly froze
-at that moment. The eyes of Carl and Una followed her entranced gaze and chills
-began gallopading up and down their spines also. For there, under the big
-tamarack tree on the tumble-down, grass-grown dyke of the Bailey garden, was
-something white&mdash;shapelessly white in the gathering gloom. The three
-Merediths sat and gazed as if turned to stone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s&mdash;it&rsquo;s the&mdash;calf,&rdquo; whispered Una at
-last.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s&mdash;too&mdash;big&mdash;for the calf,&rdquo; whispered
-Faith. Her mouth and lips were so dry she could hardly articulate the words.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Suddenly Carl gasped,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s coming here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The girls gave one last agonized glance. Yes, it was creeping down over the
-dyke, as no calf ever did or could creep. Reason fled before sudden,
-over-mastering panic. For the moment every one of the trio was firmly convinced
-that what they saw was Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost. Carl sprang to his feet and
-bolted blindly. With a simultaneous shriek the girls followed him. Like mad
-creatures they tore up the hill, across the road and into the manse. They had
-left Aunt Martha sewing in the kitchen. She was not there. They rushed to the
-study. It was dark and tenantless. As with one impulse, they swung around and
-made for Ingleside&mdash;but not across Rainbow Valley. Down the hill and
-through the Glen street they flew on the wings of their wild terror, Carl in
-the lead, Una bringing up the rear. Nobody tried to stop them, though everybody
-who saw them wondered what fresh devilment those manse youngsters were up to
-now. But at the gate of Ingleside they ran into Rosemary West, who had just
-been in for a moment to return some borrowed books.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She saw their ghastly faces and staring eyes. She realized that their poor
-little souls were wrung with some awful and real fear, whatever its cause. She
-caught Carl with one arm and Faith with the other. Una stumbled against her and
-held on desperately.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Children, dear, what has happened?&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;What has
-frightened you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost,&rdquo; answered Carl, through his chattering
-teeth.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Henry&mdash;Warren&rsquo;s&mdash;ghost!&rdquo; said amazed Rosemary, who
-had never heard the story.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; sobbed Faith hysterically. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s there&mdash;on
-the Bailey dyke&mdash;we saw it&mdash;and it started to&mdash;chase us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary herded the three distracted creatures to the Ingleside veranda.
-Gilbert and Anne were both away, having also gone to the House of Dreams, but
-Susan appeared in the doorway, gaunt and practical and unghostlike.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is all this rumpus about?&rdquo; she inquired.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Again the children gasped out their awful tale, while Rosemary held them close
-to her and soothed them with wordless comfort.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Likely it was an owl,&rdquo; said Susan, unstirred.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-An owl! The Meredith children never had any opinion of Susan&rsquo;s
-intelligence after that!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It was bigger than a million owls,&rdquo; said Carl, sobbing&mdash;oh,
-how ashamed Carl was of that sobbing in after days&mdash;&ldquo;and it&mdash;it
-<i>grovelled</i> just as Mary said&mdash;and it was crawling down over the dyke to get
-at us. Do owls <i>crawl?</i>&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary looked at Susan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They must have seen something to frighten them so,&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I will go and see,&rdquo; said Susan coolly. &ldquo;Now, children, calm
-yourselves. Whatever you have seen, it was not a ghost. As for poor Henry
-Warren, I feel sure he would be only too glad to rest quietly in his peaceful
-grave once he got there. No fear of <i>him</i> venturing back, and that you may tie
-to. If you can make them see reason, Miss West, I will find out the truth of
-the matter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Susan departed for Rainbow Valley, valiantly grasping a pitchfork which she
-found leaning against the back fence where the doctor had been working in his
-little hay-field. A pitchfork might not be of much use against
-&ldquo;ha&rsquo;nts,&rdquo; but it was a comforting sort of weapon. There was
-nothing to be seen in Rainbow Valley when Susan reached it. No white visitants
-appeared to be lurking in the shadowy, tangled old Bailey garden. Susan marched
-boldly through it and beyond it, and rapped with her pitchfork on the door of
-the little cottage on the other side, where Mrs. Stimson lived with her two
-daughters.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Back at Ingleside Rosemary had succeeded in calming the children. They still
-sobbed a little from shock, but they were beginning to feel a lurking and
-salutary suspicion that they had made dreadful geese of themselves. This
-suspicion became a certainty when Susan finally returned.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have found out what your ghost was,&rdquo; she said, with a grim
-smile, sitting down on a rocker and fanning herself. &ldquo;Old Mrs. Stimson
-has had a pair of factory cotton sheets bleaching in the Bailey garden for a
-week. She spread them on the dyke under the tamarack tree because the grass was
-clean and short there. This evening she went out to take them in. She had her
-knitting in her hands so she hung the sheets over her shoulders by way of
-carrying them. And then she must have dropped one of her needles and find it
-she could not and has not yet. But she went down on her knees and crept about
-to hunt for it, and she was at that when she heard awful yells down in the
-valley and saw the three children tearing up the hill past her. She thought
-they had been bit by something and it gave her poor old heart such a turn that
-she could not move or speak, but just crouched there till they disappeared.
-Then she staggered back home and they have been applying stimulants to her ever
-since, and her heart is in a terrible condition and she says she will not get
-over this fright all summer.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Merediths sat, crimson with a shame that even Rosemary&rsquo;s
-understanding sympathy could not remove. They sneaked off home, met Jerry at
-the manse gate and made remorseful confession. A session of the Good-Conduct
-Club was arranged for next morning.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Wasn&rsquo;t Miss West sweet to us to-night?&rdquo; whispered Faith in
-bed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; admitted Una. &ldquo;It is such a pity it changes people so
-much to be made stepmothers.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe it does,&rdquo; said Faith loyally.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap31"></a>CHAPTER XXXI.<br />
-CARL DOES PENANCE</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t see why we should be punished at all,&rdquo; said Faith,
-rather sulkily. &ldquo;We didn&rsquo;t do anything wrong. We couldn&rsquo;t
-help being frightened. And it won&rsquo;t do father any harm. It was just an
-accident.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You were cowards,&rdquo; said Jerry with judicial scorn, &ldquo;and you
-gave way to your cowardice. That is why you should be punished. Everybody will
-laugh at you about this, and that is a disgrace to the family.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If you knew how awful the whole thing was,&rdquo; said Faith with a
-shiver, &ldquo;you would think we had been punished enough already. I
-wouldn&rsquo;t go through it again for anything in the whole world.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I believe you&rsquo;d have run yourself if you&rsquo;d been
-there,&rdquo; muttered Carl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;From an old woman in a cotton sheet,&rdquo; mocked Jerry. &ldquo;Ho, ho,
-ho!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It didn&rsquo;t look a bit like an old woman,&rdquo; cried Faith.
-&ldquo;It was just a great, big, white thing crawling about in the grass just
-as Mary Vance said Henry Warren did. It&rsquo;s all very fine for you to laugh,
-Jerry Meredith, but you&rsquo;d have laughed on the other side of your mouth if
-you&rsquo;d been there. And how are we to be punished? <i>I</i> don&rsquo;t
-think it&rsquo;s fair, but let&rsquo;s know what we have to do, Judge
-Meredith!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The way I look at it,&rdquo; said Jerry, frowning, &ldquo;is that Carl
-was the most to blame. He bolted first, as I understand it. Besides, he was a
-boy, so he should have stood his ground to protect you girls, whatever the
-danger was. You know that, Carl, don&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I s&rsquo;pose so,&rdquo; growled Carl shamefacedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Very well. This is to be your punishment. To-night you&rsquo;ll sit on
-Mr. Hezekiah Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone in the graveyard alone, until twelve
-o&rsquo;clock.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl gave a little shudder. The graveyard was not so very far from the old
-Bailey garden. It would be a trying ordeal, but Carl was anxious to wipe out
-his disgrace and prove that he was not a coward after all.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right,&rdquo; he said sturdily. &ldquo;But how&rsquo;ll I know when
-it is twelve?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The study windows are open and you&rsquo;ll hear the clock striking. And
-mind you that you are not to budge out of that graveyard until the last stroke.
-As for you girls, you&rsquo;ve got to go without jam at supper for a
-week.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith and Una looked rather blank. They were inclined to think that even
-Carl&rsquo;s comparatively short though sharp agony was lighter punishment than
-this long drawn-out ordeal. A whole week of soggy bread without the saving
-grace of jam! But no shirking was permitted in the club. The girls accepted
-their lot with such philosophy as they could summon up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-That night they all went to bed at nine, except Carl, who was already keeping
-vigil on the tombstone. Una slipped in to bid him good night. Her tender heart
-was wrung with sympathy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Carl, are you much scared?&rdquo; she whispered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not a bit,&rdquo; said Carl airily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t sleep a wink till after twelve,&rdquo; said Una. &ldquo;If
-you get lonesome just look up at our window and remember that I&rsquo;m inside,
-awake, and thinking about you. That will be a little company, won&rsquo;t
-it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll be all right. Don&rsquo;t you worry about me,&rdquo; said
-Carl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But in spite of his dauntless words Carl was a pretty lonely boy when the
-lights went out in the manse. He had hoped his father would be in the study as
-he so often was. He would not feel alone then. But that night Mr. Meredith had
-been summoned to the fishing village at the harbour mouth to see a dying man.
-He would not likely be back until after midnight. Carl must dree his weird
-alone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A Glen man went past carrying a lantern. The mysterious shadows caused by the
-lantern-light went hurtling madly over the graveyard like a dance of demons or
-witches. Then they passed and darkness fell again. One by one the lights in the
-Glen went out. It was a very dark night, with a cloudy sky, and a raw east wind
-that was cold in spite of the calendar. Far away on the horizon was the low dim
-lustre of the Charlottetown lights. The wind wailed and sighed in the old
-fir-trees. Mr. Alec Davis&rsquo; tall monument gleamed whitely through the
-gloom. The willow beside it tossed long, writhing arms spectrally. At times,
-the gyrations of its boughs made it seem as if the monument were moving, too.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl curled himself up on the tombstone with his legs tucked under him. It
-wasn&rsquo;t precisely pleasant to hang them over the edge of the stone. Just
-suppose&mdash;just suppose&mdash;bony hands should reach up out of Mr.
-Pollock&rsquo;s grave under it and clutch him by the ankles. That had been one
-of Mary Vance&rsquo;s cheerful speculations one time when they had all been
-sitting there. It returned to haunt Carl now. He didn&rsquo;t believe those
-things; he didn&rsquo;t even really believe in Henry Warren&rsquo;s ghost. As
-for Mr. Pollock, he had been dead sixty years, so it wasn&rsquo;t likely he
-cared who sat on his tombstone now. But there is something very strange and
-terrible in being awake when all the rest of the world is asleep. You are alone
-then with nothing but your own feeble personality to pit against the mighty
-principalities and powers of darkness. Carl was only ten and the dead were all
-around him&mdash;and he wished, oh, he wished that the clock would strike
-twelve. Would it <i>never</i> strike twelve? Surely Aunt Martha must have forgotten to
-wind it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And then it struck eleven&mdash;only eleven! He must stay yet another hour in
-that grim place. If only there were a few friendly stars to be seen! The
-darkness was so thick it seemed to press against his face. There was a sound as
-of stealthy passing footsteps all over the graveyard. Carl shivered, partly
-with prickling terror, partly with real cold.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then it began to rain&mdash;a chill, penetrating drizzle. Carl&rsquo;s thin
-little cotton blouse and shirt were soon wet through. He felt chilled to the
-bone. He forgot mental terrors in his physical discomfort. But he must stay
-there till twelve&mdash;he was punishing himself and he was on his honour.
-Nothing had been said about rain&mdash;but it did not make any difference. When
-the study clock finally struck twelve a drenched little figure crept stiffly
-down off Mr. Pollock&rsquo;s tombstone, made its way into the manse and
-upstairs to bed. Carl&rsquo;s teeth were chattering. He thought he would never
-get warm again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He was warm enough when morning came. Jerry gave one startled look at his
-crimson face and then rushed to call his father. Mr. Meredith came hurriedly,
-his own face ivory white from the pallor of his long night vigil by a death
-bed. He had not got home until daylight. He bent over his little lad anxiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Carl, are you sick?&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&mdash;tombstone&mdash;over here,&rdquo; said Carl,
-&ldquo;it&rsquo;s&mdash;moving&mdash;about&mdash;it&rsquo;s
-coming&mdash;at&mdash;me&mdash;keep it&mdash;away&mdash;please.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith rushed to the telephone. In ten minutes Dr. Blythe was at the
-manse. Half an hour later a wire was sent to town for a trained nurse, and all
-the Glen knew that Carl Meredith was very ill with pneumonia and that Dr.
-Blythe had been seen to shake his head.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Gilbert shook his head more than once in the fortnight that followed. Carl
-developed double pneumonia. There was one night when Mr. Meredith paced his
-study floor, and Faith and Una huddled in their bedroom and cried, and Jerry,
-wild with remorse, refused to budge from the floor of the hall outside
-Carl&rsquo;s door. Dr. Blythe and the nurse never left the bedside. They fought
-death gallantly until the red dawn and they won the victory. Carl rallied and
-passed the crisis in safety. The news was phoned about the waiting Glen and
-people found out how much they really loved their minister and his children.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I haven&rsquo;t had one decent night&rsquo;s sleep since I heard the
-child was sick,&rdquo; Miss Cornelia told Anne, &ldquo;and Mary Vance has cried
-until those queer eyes of hers looked like burnt holes in a blanket. Is it true
-that Carl got pneumonia from straying out in the graveyard that wet night for a
-dare?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. He was staying there to punish himself for cowardice in that affair
-of the Warren ghost. It seems they have a club for bringing themselves up, and
-they punish themselves when they do wrong. Jerry told Mr. Meredith all about
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The poor little souls,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl got better rapidly, for the congregation took enough nourishing things to
-the manse to furnish forth a hospital. Norman Douglas drove up every evening
-with a dozen fresh eggs and a jar of Jersey cream. Sometimes he stayed an hour
-and bellowed arguments on predestination with Mr. Meredith in the study;
-oftener he drove on up to the hill that overlooked the Glen.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When Carl was able to go again to Rainbow Valley they had a special feast in
-his honour and the doctor came down and helped them with the fireworks. Mary
-Vance was there, too, but she did not tell any ghost stories. Miss Cornelia had
-given her a talking on that subject which Mary would not forget in a hurry.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap32"></a>CHAPTER XXXII.<br />
-TWO STUBBORN PEOPLE</h2>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary West, on her way home from a music lesson at Ingleside, turned aside
-to the hidden spring in Rainbow Valley. She had not been there all summer; the
-beautiful little spot had no longer any allurement for her. The spirit of her
-young lover never came to the tryst now; and the memories connected with John
-Meredith were too painful and poignant. But she had happened to glance backward
-up the valley and had seen Norman Douglas vaulting as airily as a stripling
-over the old stone dyke of the Bailey garden and thought he was on his way up
-the hill. If he overtook her she would have to walk home with him and she was
-not going to do that. So she slipped at once behind the maples of the spring,
-hoping he had not seen her and would pass on.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Norman had seen her and, what was more, was in pursuit of her. He had been
-wanting for some time to have talk with Rosemary, but she had always, so it
-seemed, avoided him. Rosemary had never, at any time, liked Norman Douglas very
-well. His bluster, his temper, his noisy hilarity, had always antagonized her.
-Long ago she had often wondered how Ellen could possibly be attracted to him.
-Norman Douglas was perfectly aware of her dislike and he chuckled over it. It
-never worried Norman if people did not like him. It did not even make him
-dislike them in return, for he took it as a kind of extorted compliment. He
-thought Rosemary a fine girl, and he meant to be an excellent, generous
-brother-in-law to her. But before he could be her brother-in-law he had to have
-a talk with her, so, having seen her leaving Ingleside as he stood in the
-doorway of a Glen store, he had straightway plunged into the valley to overtake
-her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary was sitting pensively on the maple seat where John Meredith had been
-sitting on that evening nearly a year ago. The tiny spring shimmered and
-dimpled under its fringe of ferns. Ruby-red gleams of sunset fell through the
-arching boughs. A tall clump of perfect asters grew at her side. The little
-spot was as dreamy and witching and evasive as any retreat of fairies and
-dryads in ancient forests. Into it Norman Douglas bounced, scattering and
-annihilating its charm in a moment. His personality seemed to swallow the place
-up. There was simply nothing there but Norman Douglas, big, red-bearded,
-complacent.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good evening,&rdquo; said Rosemary coldly, standing up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;&lsquo;Evening, girl. Sit down again&mdash;sit down again. I want to
-have a talk with you. Bless the girl, what&rsquo;s she looking at me like that
-for? I don&rsquo;t want to eat you&mdash;I&rsquo;ve had my supper. Sit down and
-be civil.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I can hear what you have to say quite as well here,&rdquo; said
-Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So you can, girl, if you use your ears. I only wanted you to be
-comfortable. You look so durned uncomfortable, standing there. Well, <i>I&rsquo;ll</i>
-sit anyway.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman accordingly sat down in the very place John Meredith had once sat. The
-contrast was so ludicrous that Rosemary was afraid she would go off into a peal
-of hysterical laughter over it. Norman cast his hat aside, placed his huge, red
-hands on his knees, and looked up at her with his eyes a-twinkle.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come, girl, don&rsquo;t be so stiff,&rdquo; he said, ingratiatingly.
-When he liked he could be very ingratiating. &ldquo;Let&rsquo;s have a
-reasonable, sensible, friendly chat. There&rsquo;s something I want to ask you.
-Ellen says she won&rsquo;t, so it&rsquo;s up to me to do it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary looked down at the spring, which seemed to have shrunk to the size of
-a dewdrop. Norman gazed at her in despair.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Durn it all, you might help a fellow out a bit,&rdquo; he burst forth.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is it you want me to help you say?&rdquo; asked Rosemary
-scornfully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You know as well as I do, girl. Don&rsquo;t be putting on your tragedy
-airs. No wonder Ellen was scared to ask you. Look here, girl, Ellen and I want
-to marry each other. That&rsquo;s plain English, isn&rsquo;t it? Got that? And
-Ellen says she can&rsquo;t unless you give her back some tom-fool promise she
-made. Come now, will you do it? Will you do it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Norman bounced up and seized her reluctant hand.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good! I knew you would&mdash;I told Ellen you would. I knew it would
-only take a minute. Now, girl, you go home and tell Ellen, and we&rsquo;ll have
-a wedding in a fortnight and you&rsquo;ll come and live with us. We
-shan&rsquo;t leave you to roost on that hill-top like a lonely
-crow&mdash;don&rsquo;t you worry. I know you hate me, but, Lord, it&rsquo;ll be
-great fun living with some one that hates me. Life&rsquo;ll have some spice in
-it after this. Ellen will roast me and you&rsquo;ll freeze me. I won&rsquo;t
-have a dull moment.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary did not condescend to tell him that nothing would ever induce her to
-live in his house. She let him go striding back to the Glen, oozing delight and
-complacency, and she walked slowly up the hill home. She had known this was
-coming ever since she had returned from Kingsport, and found Norman Douglas
-established as a frequent evening caller. His name was never mentioned between
-her and Ellen, but the very avoidance of it was significant. It was not in
-Rosemary&rsquo;s nature to feel bitter, or she would have felt very bitter. She
-was coldly civil to Norman, and she made no difference in any way with Ellen.
-But Ellen had not found much comfort in her second courtship.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She was in the garden, attended by St. George, when Rosemary came home. The two
-sisters met in the dahlia walk. St. George sat down on the gravel walk between
-them and folded his glossy black tail gracefully around his white paws, with
-all the indifference of a well-fed, well-bred, well-groomed cat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Did you ever see such dahlias?&rdquo; demanded Ellen proudly.
-&ldquo;They are just the finest we&rsquo;ve ever had.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary had never cared for dahlias. Their presence in the garden was her
-concession to Ellen&rsquo;s taste. She noticed one huge mottled one of crimson
-and yellow that lorded it over all the others.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That dahlia,&rdquo; she said, pointing to it, &ldquo;is exactly like
-Norman Douglas. It might easily be his twin brother.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen&rsquo;s dark-browed face flushed. She admired the dahlia in question, but
-she knew Rosemary did not, and that no compliment was intended. But she dared
-not resent Rosemary&rsquo;s speech&mdash;poor Ellen dared not resent anything
-just then. And it was the first time Rosemary had ever mentioned Norman&rsquo;s
-name to her. She felt that this portended something.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I met Norman Douglas in the valley,&rdquo; said Rosemary, looking
-straight at her sister, &ldquo;and he told me you and he wanted to be
-married&mdash;if I would give you permission.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes? What did you say?&rdquo; asked Ellen, trying to speak naturally and
-off-handedly, and failing completely. She could not meet Rosemary&rsquo;s eyes.
-She looked down at St. George&rsquo;s sleek back and felt horribly afraid.
-Rosemary had either said she would or she wouldn&rsquo;t. If she would Ellen
-would feel so ashamed and remorseful that she would be a very uncomfortable
-bride-elect; and if she wouldn&rsquo;t&mdash;well, Ellen had once learned to
-live without Norman Douglas, but she had forgotten the lesson and felt that she
-could never learn it again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I said that as far as I was concerned you were at full liberty to marry
-each other as soon as you liked,&rdquo; said Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Thank you,&rdquo; said Ellen, still looking at St. George.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary&rsquo;s face softened.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope you&rsquo;ll be happy, Ellen,&rdquo; she said gently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Rosemary,&rdquo; Ellen looked up in distress, &ldquo;I&rsquo;m so
-ashamed&mdash;I don&rsquo;t deserve it&mdash;after all I said to
-you&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We won&rsquo;t speak about that,&rdquo; said Rosemary hurriedly and
-decidedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But&mdash;but,&rdquo; persisted Ellen, &ldquo;you are free now,
-too&mdash;and it&rsquo;s not too late&mdash;John Meredith&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen West!&rdquo; Rosemary had a little spark of temper under all her
-sweetness and it flashed forth now in her blue eyes. &ldquo;Have you quite lost
-your senses in <i>every</i> respect? Do you suppose for an instant that <i>I</i> am
-going to go to John Meredith and say meekly, &lsquo;Please, sir, I&rsquo;ve
-changed my mind and please, sir, I hope you haven&rsquo;t changed yours.&rsquo;
-Is that what you want me to do?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;no&mdash;but a little&mdash;encouragement&mdash;he would come
-back&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Never. He despises me&mdash;and rightly. No more of this, Ellen. I bear
-you no grudge&mdash;marry whom you like. But no meddling in my affairs.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then you must come and live with me,&rdquo; said Ellen. &ldquo;I shall
-not leave you here alone.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you really think that I would go and live in Norman Douglas&rsquo;s
-house?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why not?&rdquo; cried Ellen, half angrily, despite her humiliation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary began to laugh.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen, I thought you had a sense of humour. Can you see me doing
-it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t see why you wouldn&rsquo;t. His house is big
-enough&mdash;you&rsquo;d have your share of it to yourself&mdash;he
-wouldn&rsquo;t interfere.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen, the thing is not to be thought of. Don&rsquo;t bring this up
-again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then,&rdquo; said Ellen coldly, and determinedly, &ldquo;I shall not
-marry him. I shall not leave you here alone. That is all there is to be said
-about it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense, Ellen.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is not nonsense. It is my firm decision. It would be absurd for you
-to think of living here by yourself&mdash;a mile from any other house. If you
-won&rsquo;t come with me I&rsquo;ll stay with you. Now, we won&rsquo;t argue
-the matter, so don&rsquo;t try.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I shall leave Norman to do the arguing,&rdquo; said Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>I&rsquo;ll</i> deal with Norman. I can manage <i>him</i>. I would never have asked
-you to give me back my promise&mdash;never&mdash;but I had to tell Norman why I
-couldn&rsquo;t marry him and he said <i>he</i> would ask you. I couldn&rsquo;t prevent
-him. You need not suppose you are the only person in the world who possesses
-self-respect. I never dreamed of marrying and leaving you here alone. And
-you&rsquo;ll find I can be as determined as yourself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary turned away and went into the house, with a shrug of her shoulders.
-Ellen looked down at St. George, who had never blinked an eyelash or stirred a
-whisker during the whole interview.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;St. George, this world would be a dull place without the men, I&rsquo;ll
-admit, but I&rsquo;m almost tempted to wish there wasn&rsquo;t one of &lsquo;em
-in it. Look at the trouble and bother they&rsquo;ve made right here,
-George&mdash;torn our happy old life completely up by the roots, Saint. John
-Meredith began it and Norman Douglas has finished it. And now both of them have
-to go into limbo. Norman is the only man I ever met who agrees with me that the
-Kaiser of Germany is the most dangerous creature alive on this earth&mdash;and
-I can&rsquo;t marry this sensible person because my sister is stubborn and
-I&rsquo;m stubborner. Mark my words, St. George, the minister would come back
-if she raised her little finger. But she won&rsquo;t George&mdash;she&rsquo;ll
-never do it&mdash;she won&rsquo;t even crook it&mdash;and I don&rsquo;t dare
-meddle, Saint. I won&rsquo;t sulk, George; Rosemary didn&rsquo;t sulk, so
-I&rsquo;m determined I won&rsquo;t either, Saint; Norman will tear up the turf,
-but the long and short of it is, St. George, that all of us old fools must just
-stop thinking of marrying. Well, well, &lsquo;despair is a free man, hope is a
-slave,&rsquo; Saint. So now come into the house, George, and I&rsquo;ll solace
-you with a saucerful of cream. Then there will be one happy and contented
-creature on this hill at least.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap33"></a>CHAPTER XXXIII.<br />
-CARL IS&mdash;NOT&mdash;WHIPPED</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is something I think I ought to tell you,&rdquo; said Mary Vance
-mysteriously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She and Faith and Una were walking arm in arm through the village, having
-foregathered at Mr. Flagg&rsquo;s store. Una and Faith exchanged looks which
-said, &ldquo;<i>Now</i> something disagreeable is coming.&rdquo; When Mary Vance
-thought she ought to tell them things there was seldom much pleasure in the
-hearing. They often wondered why they kept on liking Mary Vance&mdash;for like
-her they did, in spite of everything. To be sure, she was generally a
-stimulating and agreeable companion. If only she would not have those
-convictions that it was her duty to tell them things!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you know that Rosemary West won&rsquo;t marry your pa because she
-thinks you are such a wild lot? She&rsquo;s afraid she couldn&rsquo;t bring you
-up right and so she turned him down.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una&rsquo;s heart thrilled with secret exultation. She was very glad to hear
-that Miss West would not marry her father. But Faith was rather disappointed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How do you know?&rdquo; she asked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, everybody&rsquo;s saying it. I heard Mrs. Elliott talking it over
-with Mrs. Doctor. They thought I was too far away to hear, but I&rsquo;ve got
-ears like a cat&rsquo;s. Mrs. Elliott said she hadn&rsquo;t a doubt that
-Rosemary was afraid to try stepmothering you because you&rsquo;d got such a
-reputation. Your pa never goes up the hill now. Neither does Norman Douglas.
-Folks say Ellen has jilted him just to get square with him for jilting her ages
-ago. But Norman is going about declaring he&rsquo;ll get her yet. And I think
-you ought to know you&rsquo;ve spoiled your pa&rsquo;s match and <i>I</i> think
-it&rsquo;s a pity, for he&rsquo;s bound to marry somebody before long, and
-Rosemary West would have been the best wife <i>I</i> know of for him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You told me all stepmothers were cruel and wicked,&rdquo; said Una.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh&mdash;well,&rdquo; said Mary rather confusedly, &ldquo;they&rsquo;re
-mostly awful cranky, I know. But Rosemary West couldn&rsquo;t be very mean to
-any one. I tell you if your pa turns round and marries Emmeline Drew
-you&rsquo;ll wish you&rsquo;d behaved yourselves better and not frightened
-Rosemary out of it. It&rsquo;s awful that you&rsquo;ve got such a reputation
-that no decent woman&rsquo;ll marry your pa on account of you. Of course,
-<i>I</i> know that half the yarns that are told about you ain&rsquo;t true. But
-give a dog a bad name. Why, some folks are saying that it was Jerry and Carl
-that threw the stones through Mrs. Stimson&rsquo;s window the other night when
-it was really them two Boyd boys. But I&rsquo;m afraid it was Carl that put the
-eel in old Mrs. Carr&rsquo;s buggy, though I said at first I wouldn&rsquo;t
-believe it until I&rsquo;d better proof than old Kitty Alec&rsquo;s word. I
-told Mrs. Elliott so right to her face.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What did Carl do?&rdquo; cried Faith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, they say&mdash;now, mind, I&rsquo;m only telling you what people
-say&mdash;so there&rsquo;s no use in your blaming me for it&mdash;that Carl and
-a lot of other boys were fishing eels over the bridge one evening last week.
-Mrs. Carr drove past in that old rattletrap buggy of hers with the open back.
-And Carl he just up and threw a big eel into the back. When poor old Mrs. Carr
-was driving up the hill by Ingleside that eel came squirming out between her
-feet. She thought it was a snake and she just give one awful screech and stood
-up and jumped clean over the wheels. The horse bolted, but it went home and no
-damage was done. But Mrs. Carr jarred her legs most terrible, and has had
-nervous spasms ever since whenever she thinks of the eel. Say, it was a rotten
-trick to play on the poor old soul. She&rsquo;s a decent body, if she is as
-queer as Dick&rsquo;s hat band.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Faith and Una looked at each other again. This was a matter for the
-Good-Conduct Club. They would not talk it over with Mary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There goes your pa,&rdquo; said Mary as Mr. Meredith passed them,
-&ldquo;and never seeing us no more&rsquo;n if we weren&rsquo;t here. Well,
-I&rsquo;m getting so&rsquo;s I don&rsquo;t mind it. But there are folks who
-do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith had not seen them, but he was not walking along in his usual
-dreamy and abstracted fashion. He strode up the hill in agitation and distress.
-Mrs. Alec Davis had just told him the story of Carl and the eel. She had been
-very indignant about it. Old Mrs. Carr was her third cousin. Mr. Meredith was
-more than indignant. He was hurt and shocked. He had not thought Carl would do
-anything like this. He was not inclined to be hard on pranks of heedlessness or
-forgetfulness, but <i>this</i> was different. <i>This</i> had a nasty tang in it. When he
-reached home he found Carl on the lawn, patiently studying the habits and
-customs of a colony of wasps. Calling him into the study Mr. Meredith
-confronted him, with a sterner face than any of his children had ever seen
-before, and asked him if the story were true.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Carl, flushing, but meeting his father&rsquo;s eyes
-bravely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith groaned. He had hoped that there had been at least exaggeration.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Tell me the whole matter,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The boys were fishing for eels over the bridge,&rdquo; said Carl.
-&ldquo;Link Drew had caught a whopper&mdash;I mean an awful big one&mdash;the
-biggest eel I ever saw. He caught it right at the start and it had been lying
-in his basket a long time, still as still. I thought it was dead, honest I did.
-Then old Mrs. Carr drove over the bridge and she called us all young varmints
-and told us to go home. And we hadn&rsquo;t said a word to her, father, truly.
-So when she drove back again, after going to the store, the boys dared me to
-put Link&rsquo;s eel in her buggy. I thought it was so dead it couldn&rsquo;t
-hurt her and I threw it in. Then the eel came to life on the hill and we heard
-her scream and saw her jump out. I was awful sorry. That&rsquo;s all,
-father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was not quite as bad as Mr. Meredith had feared, but it was quite bad
-enough. &ldquo;I must punish you, Carl,&rdquo; he said sorrowfully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I know, father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&mdash;I must whip you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl winced. He had never been whipped. Then, seeing how badly his father felt,
-he said cheerfully,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right, father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Meredith misunderstood his cheerfulness and thought him insensible. He told
-Carl to come to the study after supper, and when the boy had gone out he flung
-himself into his chair and groaned again. He dreaded the evening sevenfold more
-than Carl did. The poor minister did not even know what he should whip his boy
-with. What was used to whip boys? Rods? Canes? No, that would be too brutal. A
-timber switch, then? And he, John Meredith, must hie him to the woods and cut
-one. It was an abominable thought. Then a picture presented itself unbidden to
-his mind. He saw Mrs. Carr&rsquo;s wizened, nut-cracker little face at the
-appearance of that reviving eel&mdash;he saw her sailing witch-like over the
-buggy wheels. Before he could prevent himself the minister laughed. Then he was
-angry with himself and angrier still with Carl. He would get that switch at
-once&mdash;and it must not be too limber, after all.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl was talking the matter over in the graveyard with Faith and Una, who had
-just come home. They were horrified at the idea of his being whipped&mdash;and
-by father, who had never done such a thing! But they agreed soberly that it was
-just.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You know it was a dreadful thing to do,&rdquo; sighed Faith. &ldquo;And
-you never owned up in the club.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I forgot,&rdquo; said Carl. &ldquo;Besides, I didn&rsquo;t think any
-harm came of it. I didn&rsquo;t know she jarred her legs. But I&rsquo;m to be
-whipped and that will make things square.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will it hurt&mdash;very much?&rdquo; said Una, slipping her hand into
-Carl&rsquo;s.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, not so much, I guess,&rdquo; said Carl gamely. &ldquo;Anyhow,
-I&rsquo;m not going to cry, no matter how much it hurts. It would make father
-feel so bad, if I did. He&rsquo;s all cut up now. I wish I could whip myself
-hard enough and save him doing it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-After supper, at which Carl had eaten little and Mr. Meredith nothing at all,
-both went silently into the study. The switch lay on the table. Mr. Meredith
-had had a bad time getting a switch to suit him. He cut one, then felt it was
-too slender. Carl had done a really indefensible thing. Then he cut
-another&mdash;it was far too thick. After all, Carl had thought the eel was
-dead. The third one suited him better; but as he picked it up from the table it
-seemed very thick and heavy&mdash;more like a stick than a switch.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hold out your hand,&rdquo; he said to Carl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl threw back his head and held out his hand unflinchingly. But he was not
-very old and he could not quite keep a little fear out of his eyes. Mr.
-Meredith looked down into those eyes&mdash;why, they were Cecilia&rsquo;s
-eyes&mdash;her very eyes&mdash;and in them was the selfsame expression he had
-once seen in Cecilia&rsquo;s eyes when she had come to him to tell him
-something she had been a little afraid to tell him. Here were her eyes in
-Carl&rsquo;s little, white face&mdash;and six weeks ago he had thought, through
-one endless, terrible night, that his little lad was dying.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-John Meredith threw down the switch.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Go,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;I cannot whip you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Carl fled to the graveyard, feeling that the look on his father&rsquo;s face
-was worse than any whipping.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is it over so soon?&rdquo; asked Faith. She and Una had been holding
-hands and setting teeth on the Pollock tombstone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He&mdash;he didn&rsquo;t whip me at all,&rdquo; said Carl with a sob,
-&ldquo;and&mdash;I wish he had&mdash;and he&rsquo;s in there, feeling just
-awful.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una slipped away. Her heart yearned to comfort her father. As noiselessly as a
-little gray mouse she opened the study door and crept in. The room was dark
-with twilight. Her father was sitting at his desk. His back was towards
-her&mdash;his head was in his hands. He was talking to himself&mdash;broken,
-anguished words&mdash;but Una heard&mdash;heard and understood, with the sudden
-illumination that comes to sensitive, unmothered children. As silently as she
-had come in she slipped out and closed the door. John Meredith went on talking
-out his pain in what he deemed his undisturbed solitude.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap34"></a>CHAPTER XXXIV.<br />
-UNA VISITS THE HILL</h2>
-
-<p>
-Una went upstairs. Carl and Faith were already on their way through the early
-moonlight to Rainbow Valley, having heard therefrom the elfin lilt of
-Jerry&rsquo;s jews-harp and having guessed that the Blythes were there and fun
-afoot. Una had no wish to go. She sought her own room first where she sat down
-on her bed and had a little cry. She did not want anybody to come in her dear
-mother&rsquo;s place. She did not want a stepmother who would hate her and make
-her father hate her. But father was so desperately unhappy&mdash;and if she
-could do any anything to make him happier she <i>must</i> do it. There was only one
-thing she could do&mdash;and she had known the moment she had left the study
-that she must do it. But it was a very hard thing to do.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-After Una cried her heart out she wiped her eyes and went to the spare room. It
-was dark and rather musty, for the blind had not been drawn up nor the window
-opened for a long time. Aunt Martha was no fresh-air fiend. But as nobody ever
-thought of shutting a door in the manse this did not matter so much, save when
-some unfortunate minister came to stay all night and was compelled to breathe
-the spare room atmosphere.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was a closet in the spare room and far back in the closet a gray silk
-dress was hanging. Una went into the closet and shut the door, went down on her
-knees and pressed her face against the soft silken folds. It had been her
-mother&rsquo;s wedding-dress. It was still full of a sweet, faint, haunting
-perfume, like lingering love. Una always felt very close to her mother
-there&mdash;as if she were kneeling at her feet with head in her lap. She went
-there once in a long while when life was <i>too</i> hard.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mother,&rdquo; she whispered to the gray silk gown, &ldquo;<i>I</i> will
-never forget you, mother, and I&rsquo;ll <i>always</i> love you best. But I have to do
-it, mother, because father is so very unhappy. I know you wouldn&rsquo;t want
-him to be unhappy. And I will be very good to her, mother, and try to love her,
-even if she is like Mary Vance said stepmothers always were.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una carried some fine, spiritual strength away from her secret shrine. She
-slept peacefully that night with the tear stains still glistening on her sweet,
-serious, little face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The next afternoon she put on her best dress and hat. They were shabby enough.
-Every other little girl in the Glen had new clothes that summer except Faith
-and Una. Mary Vance had a lovely dress of white embroidered lawn, with scarlet
-silk sash and shoulder bows. But to-day Una did not mind her shabbiness. She
-only wanted to be very neat. She washed her face carefully. She brushed her
-black hair until it was as smooth as satin. She tied her shoelaces carefully,
-having first sewed up two runs in her one pair of good stockings. She would
-have liked to black her shoes, but she could not find any blacking. Finally,
-she slipped away from the manse, down through Rainbow Valley, up through the
-whispering woods, and out to the road that ran past the house on the hill. It
-was quite a long walk and Una was tired and warm when she got there.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She saw Rosemary West sitting under a tree in the garden and stole past the
-dahlia beds to her. Rosemary had a book in her lap, but she was gazing afar
-across the harbour and her thoughts were sorrowful enough. Life had not been
-pleasant lately in the house on the hill. Ellen had not sulked&mdash;Ellen had
-been a brick. But things can be felt that are never said and at times the
-silence between the two women was intolerably eloquent. All the many familiar
-things that had once made life sweet had a flavour of bitterness now. Norman
-Douglas made periodical irruptions also, bullying and coaxing Ellen by turns.
-It would end, Rosemary believed, by his dragging Ellen off with him some day,
-and Rosemary felt that she would be almost glad when it happened. Existence
-would be horribly lonely then, but it would be no longer charged with dynamite.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She was roused from her unpleasant reverie by a timid little touch on her
-shoulder. Turning, she saw Una Meredith.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Una, dear, did you walk up here in all this heat?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Una, &ldquo;I came to&mdash;I came to&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But she found it very hard to say what she had come to do. Her voice
-failed&mdash;her eyes filled with tears.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Una, little girl, what is the trouble? Don&rsquo;t be afraid to
-tell me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary put her arm around the thin little form and drew the child close to
-her. Her eyes were very beautiful&mdash;her touch so tender that Una found
-courage.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I came&mdash;to ask you&mdash;to marry father,&rdquo; she gasped.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary was silent for a moment from sheer dumbfounderment. She stared at Una
-blankly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, don&rsquo;t be angry, please, dear Miss West,&rdquo; said Una,
-pleadingly. &ldquo;You see, everybody is saying that you wouldn&rsquo;t marry
-father because we are so bad. He is <i>very</i> unhappy about it. So I thought I would
-come and tell you that we are never bad <i>on purpose</i>. And if you will only marry
-father we will all try to be good and do just what you tell us. I&rsquo;m <i>sure</i>
-you won&rsquo;t have any trouble with us. <i>Please</i>, Miss West.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary had been thinking rapidly. Gossiping surmise, she saw, had put this
-mistaken idea into Una&rsquo;s mind. She must be perfectly frank and sincere
-with the child.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Una, dear,&rdquo; she said softly. &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t because of you
-poor little souls that I cannot be your father&rsquo;s wife. I never thought of
-such a thing. You are not bad&mdash;I never supposed you were.
-There&mdash;there was another reason altogether, Una.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t you like father?&rdquo; asked Una, lifting reproachful eyes.
-&ldquo;Oh, Miss West, you don&rsquo;t know how nice he is. I&rsquo;m sure
-he&rsquo;d make you a <i>good</i> husband.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Even in the midst of her perplexity and distress Rosemary couldn&rsquo;t help a
-twisted, little smile.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, don&rsquo;t laugh, Miss West,&rdquo; Una cried passionately.
-&ldquo;Father feels <i>dreadful</i> about it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think you&rsquo;re mistaken, dear,&rdquo; said Rosemary.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m not. I&rsquo;m <i>sure</i> I&rsquo;m not. Oh, Miss West, father was
-going to whip Carl yesterday&mdash;Carl had been naughty&mdash;and father
-couldn&rsquo;t do it because you see he had no <i>practice</i> in whipping. So when
-Carl came out and told us father felt so bad, I slipped into the study to see
-if I could help him&mdash;he <i>likes</i> me to comfort him, Miss West&mdash;and he
-didn&rsquo;t hear me come in and I heard what he was saying. I&rsquo;ll tell
-you, Miss West, if you&rsquo;ll let me whisper it in your ear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Una whispered earnestly. Rosemary&rsquo;s face turned crimson. So John Meredith
-still cared. <i>He</i> hadn&rsquo;t changed his mind. And he must care intensely if he
-had said that&mdash;care more than she had ever supposed he did. She sat still
-for a moment, stroking Una&rsquo;s hair. Then she said,
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will you take a little letter from me to your father, Una?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, are you going to marry him, Miss West?&rdquo; asked Una eagerly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Perhaps&mdash;if he really wants me to,&rdquo; said Rosemary, blushing
-again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;m glad&mdash;I&rsquo;m glad,&rdquo; said Una bravely. Then she
-looked up, with quivering lips. &ldquo;Oh, Miss West, you won&rsquo;t turn
-father against us&mdash;you won&rsquo;t make him hate us, will you?&rdquo; she
-said beseechingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rosemary stared again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Una Meredith! Do you think I would do such a thing? Whatever put such an
-idea into your head?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mary Vance said stepmothers were all like that&mdash;and that they all
-hated their stepchildren and made their father hate them&mdash;she said they
-just couldn&rsquo;t help it&mdash;just being stepmothers made them like
-that&rdquo;&mdash;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You poor child! And yet you came up here and asked me to marry your
-father because you wanted to make him happy? You&rsquo;re a darling&mdash;a
-heroine&mdash;as Ellen would say, you&rsquo;re a brick. Now listen to me, very
-closely, dearest. Mary Vance is a silly little girl who doesn&rsquo;t know very
-much and she is dreadfully mistaken about some things. I would never dream of
-trying to turn your father against you. I would love you all dearly. I
-don&rsquo;t want to take your own mother&rsquo;s place&mdash;she must always
-have that in your hearts. But neither have I any intention of being a
-stepmother. I want to be your friend and helper and <i>chum</i>. Don&rsquo;t you think
-that would be nice, Una&mdash;if you and Faith and Carl and Jerry could just
-think of me as a good jolly chum&mdash;a big older sister?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, it would be lovely,&rdquo; cried Una, with a transfigured face. She
-flung her arms impulsively round Rosemary&rsquo;s neck. She was so happy that
-she felt as if she could fly on wings.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do the others&mdash;do Faith and the boys have the same idea you had
-about stepmothers?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No. Faith never believed Mary Vance. I was dreadfully foolish to believe
-her, either. Faith loves you already&mdash;she has loved you ever since poor
-Adam was eaten. And Jerry and Carl will think it is jolly. Oh, Miss West, when
-you come to live with us, will you&mdash;could you&mdash;teach me to
-cook&mdash;a little&mdash;and sew&mdash;and&mdash;and&mdash;and do things? I
-don&rsquo;t know anything. I won&rsquo;t be much trouble&mdash;I&rsquo;ll try
-to learn fast.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Darling, I&rsquo;ll teach you and help you all I can. Now, you
-won&rsquo;t say a word to anybody about this, will you&mdash;not even to Faith,
-until your father himself tells you you may? And you&rsquo;ll stay and have tea
-with me?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, thank you&mdash;but&mdash;but&mdash;I think I&rsquo;d rather go
-right back and take the letter to father,&rdquo; faltered Una. &ldquo;You see,
-he&rsquo;ll be glad that much <i>sooner</i>, Miss West.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I see,&rdquo; said Rosemary. She went to the house, wrote a note and
-gave it to Una. When that small damsel had run off, a palpitating bundle of
-happiness, Rosemary went to Ellen, who was shelling peas on the back porch.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ellen,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;Una Meredith has just been here to ask me
-to marry her father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen looked up and read her sister&rsquo;s face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And you&rsquo;re going to?&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s quite likely.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ellen went on shelling peas for a few minutes. Then she suddenly put her hands
-up to her own face. There were tears in her black-browed eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&mdash;I hope we&rsquo;ll all be happy,&rdquo; she said between a sob
-and a laugh.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Down at the manse Una Meredith, warm, rosy, triumphant, marched boldly into her
-father&rsquo;s study and laid a letter on the desk before him. His pale face
-flushed as he saw the clear, fine handwriting he knew so well. He opened the
-letter. It was very short&mdash;but he shed twenty years as he read it.
-Rosemary asked him if he could meet her that evening at sunset by the spring in
-Rainbow Valley.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap35"></a>CHAPTER XXXV.<br />
-&ldquo;LET THE PIPER COME&rdquo;</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And so,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, &ldquo;the double wedding is to be
-sometime about the middle of this month.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was a faint chill in the air of the early September evening, so Anne had
-lighted her ever ready fire of driftwood in the big living room, and she and
-Miss Cornelia basked in its fairy flicker.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is so delightful&mdash;especially in regard to Mr. Meredith and
-Rosemary,&rdquo; said Anne. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m as happy in the thought of it, as
-I was when I was getting married myself. I felt exactly like a bride again last
-evening when I was up on the hill seeing Rosemary&rsquo;s trousseau.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They tell me her things are fine enough for a princess,&rdquo; said
-Susan from a shadowy corner where she was cuddling her brown boy. &ldquo;I have
-been invited up to see them also and I intend to go some evening. I understand
-that Rosemary is to wear white silk and a veil, but Ellen is to be married in
-navy blue. I have no doubt, Mrs. Dr. dear, that that is very sensible of her,
-but for my own part I have always felt that if I were ever married <i>I</i>
-would prefer the white and the veil, as being more bride-like.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A vision of Susan in &ldquo;white and a veil&rdquo; presented itself before
-Anne&rsquo;s inner vision and was almost too much for her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;As for Mr. Meredith,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia, &ldquo;even his
-engagement has made a different man of him. He isn&rsquo;t half so dreamy and
-absent-minded, believe me. I was so relieved when I heard that he had decided
-to close the manse and let the children visit round while he was away on his
-honeymoon. If he had left them and old Aunt Martha there alone for a month I
-should have expected to wake every morning and see the place burned
-down.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Aunt Martha and Jerry are coming here,&rdquo; said Anne. &ldquo;Carl is
-going to Elder Clow&rsquo;s. I haven&rsquo;t heard where the girls are
-going.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I&rsquo;m going to take them,&rdquo; said Miss Cornelia. &ldquo;Of
-course, I was glad to, but Mary would have given me no peace till I asked them
-any way. The Ladies&rsquo; Aid is going to clean the manse from top to bottom
-before the bride and groom come back, and Norman Douglas has arranged to fill
-the cellar with vegetables. Nobody ever saw or heard anything quite like Norman
-Douglas these days, believe <i>me</i>. He&rsquo;s so tickled that he&rsquo;s going to
-marry Ellen West after wanting her all his life. If <i>I</i> was
-Ellen&mdash;but then, I&rsquo;m not, and if she is satisfied I can very well
-be. I heard her say years ago when she was a schoolgirl that she didn&rsquo;t
-want a tame puppy for a husband. There&rsquo;s nothing tame about Norman,
-believe <i>me</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The sun was setting over Rainbow Valley. The pond was wearing a wonderful
-tissue of purple and gold and green and crimson. A faint blue haze rested on
-the eastern hill, over which a great, pale, round moon was just floating up
-like a silver bubble.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They were all there, squatted in the little open glade&mdash;Faith and Una,
-Jerry and Carl, Jem and Walter, Nan and Di, and Mary Vance. They had been
-having a special celebration, for it would be Jem&rsquo;s last evening in
-Rainbow Valley. On the morrow he would leave for Charlottetown to attend
-Queen&rsquo;s Academy. Their charmed circle would be broken; and, in spite of
-the jollity of their little festival, there was a hint of sorrow in every gay
-young heart.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;See&mdash;there is a great golden palace over there in the
-sunset,&rdquo; said Walter, pointing. &ldquo;Look at the shining
-tower&mdash;and the crimson banners streaming from them. Perhaps a conqueror is
-riding home from battle&mdash;and they are hanging them out to do honour to
-him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I wish we had the old days back again,&rdquo; exclaimed Jem.
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;d love to be a soldier&mdash;a great, triumphant general.
-I&rsquo;d give <i>everything</i> to see a big battle.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Well, Jem was to be a soldier and see a greater battle than had ever been
-fought in the world; but that was as yet far in the future; and the mother,
-whose first-born son he was, was wont to look on her boys and thank God that
-the &ldquo;brave days of old,&rdquo; which Jem longed for, were gone for ever,
-and that never would it be necessary for the sons of Canada to ride forth to
-battle &ldquo;for the ashes of their fathers and the temples of their
-gods.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The shadow of the Great Conflict had not yet made felt any forerunner of its
-chill. The lads who were to fight, and perhaps fall, on the fields of France
-and Flanders, Gallipoli and Palestine, were still roguish schoolboys with a
-fair life in prospect before them: the girls whose hearts were to be wrung were
-yet fair little maidens a-star with hopes and dreams.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Slowly the banners of the sunset city gave up their crimson and gold; slowly
-the conqueror&rsquo;s pageant faded out. Twilight crept over the valley and the
-little group grew silent. Walter had been reading again that day in his beloved
-book of myths and he remembered how he had once fancied the Pied Piper coming
-down the valley on an evening just like this.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He began to speak dreamily, partly because he wanted to thrill his companions a
-little, partly because something apart from him seemed to be speaking through
-his lips.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The Piper is coming nearer,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;he is nearer than he
-was that evening I saw him before. His long, shadowy cloak is blowing around
-him. He pipes&mdash;he pipes&mdash;and we must follow&mdash;Jem and Carl and
-Jerry and I&mdash;round and round the world.
-Listen&mdash;listen&mdash;can&rsquo;t you hear his wild music?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The girls shivered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You know you&rsquo;re only pretending,&rdquo; protested Mary Vance,
-&ldquo;and I wish you wouldn&rsquo;t. You make it too real. I hate that old
-Piper of yours.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Jem sprang up with a gay laugh. He stood up on a little hillock, tall and
-splendid, with his open brow and his fearless eyes. There were thousands like
-him all over the land of the maple.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let the Piper come and welcome,&rdquo; he cried, waving his hand.
-&ldquo;<i>I&rsquo;ll</i> follow him gladly round and round the world.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<h3>THE END</h3>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div style='display:block;margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RAINBOW VALLEY ***</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0;'>This file should be named 5343-h.htm or 5343-h.zip</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0;'>This and all associated files of various formats will be found in https://www.gutenberg.org/5/3/4/5343/</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</body>
-
-</html>
-
-
diff --git a/old/old-2025-06-17/5343-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/old-2025-06-17/5343-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d5fece5..0000000
--- a/old/old-2025-06-17/5343-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/rnbvl10.zip b/old/rnbvl10.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 6fa9e01..0000000
--- a/old/rnbvl10.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ